summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--13941-0.txt12322
-rw-r--r--13941-h/13941-h.htm12530
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/13941-8.txt12707
-rw-r--r--old/13941-8.zipbin0 -> 255499 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/13941-h.zipbin0 -> 260985 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/13941-h/13941-h.htm12941
-rw-r--r--old/13941.txt12707
-rw-r--r--old/13941.zipbin0 -> 255472 bytes
11 files changed, 63223 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/13941-0.txt b/13941-0.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6a857a3
--- /dev/null
+++ b/13941-0.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,12322 @@
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 13941 ***
+
+THE
+
+DIVINE RIGHT
+
+OF
+
+CHURCH GOVERNMENT:
+
+WHEREIN IT IS PROVED
+
+THAT THE PRESBYTERIAN GOVERNMENT, BY PREACHING AND RULING ELDERS, IN
+SESSIONAL, PRESBYTERIAL, AND SYNODICAL ASSEMBLIES, MAY LAY THE ONLY
+LAWFUL CLAIM TO A DIVINE RIGHT, ACCORDING TO THE HOLY SCRIPTURES.
+
+A NEW EDITION, CORRECTED AND AMENDED.
+
+ * * * * *
+BY SUNDRY MINISTERS OF CHRIST WITHIN THE
+CITY OF LONDON.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+TO WHICH IS ADDED
+
+AN APPENDIX,
+
+CONTAINING
+
+EXTRACTS FROM SOME OF THE BEST AUTHORS WHO HAVE WRITTEN ON CHURCH
+GOVERNMENT,
+
+CONCERNING THE SCRIPTURAL QUALIFICATIONS AND DUTIES OF CHURCH MEMBERS;
+THE SOLE RIGHT OF GOSPEL MINISTERS TO PREACH THE GOSPEL; THE PEOPLE'S
+DIVINE RIGHT TO CHOOSE THEIR OWN PASTORS;
+
+TOGETHER WITH
+
+AN ABSTRACT OF THE ARGUMENTS OF THE GREAT DR. OWEN (THOUGH A PROFESSED
+INDEPENDENT) IN FAVOUR OF THE DIVINE RIGHT OF THE OFFICE OF THE RULING
+ELDER.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+NEW YORK: R. MARTIN & CO., 26 JOHN-STREET.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+M.DCCC.XLIV.
+
+
+
+
+THE EDITOR TO THE READER.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+After what the authors of the following Treatise have said in their
+preface, the Editor judges it unnecessary for him to detain the reader
+long with any observations of his upon the subject. He, however, could
+sincerely wish that the friends of Christ would pay that attention to
+the government and discipline of his Church which it justly deserves.
+Although this subject should not be placed among the things essential to
+the being of a Christian; yet if it be found among the things that
+Christ has commanded, it is at our peril if we continue wilfully
+ignorant of, or despise it. He has expressly declared, that he who
+breaks one of the _least_ of his commandments, and teacheth men to do
+so, shall be called least in the kingdom of heaven. It is an opinion too
+common, that if we believe the _essentials_ of religion, there is no
+occasion for so much preciseness about the forms of church government,
+which are only _circumstantials_, as there will be no inquiry made about
+these at the tribunal of Christ. But whatever relative importance the
+things of religion may have, when compared with one another, we ought to
+reckon nothing which God hath appointed, nothing which Jesus hath
+ratified with his blood, nothing which the Holy Spirit hath indited, so
+_circumstantial_, as to be unworthy of our serious regard. It is at
+least very rash, if not presumptuous, to say, that nothing about the
+circumstantials of religion will be inquired into at the tribunal of
+Christ. God has expressly said, that every work, good or evil, every
+idle word, and every deed done in the body, shall be brought into
+judgment; and false worshippers will, perhaps, find that their form of
+worship consisted in something worse than idle words, or sinful words
+either, even in sinful deeds, for which they will be accountable at the
+judgment. As Christ laid down his life for his people, has instructed
+them, and has set a hedge about all that they have, it would be most
+ungrateful to requite him with pouring the highest contempt on his
+kingly honor and authority; and when his worship is polluted, his truth
+perverted, and the walls of his New Testament Zion broken down, to care
+for none of those things. Government and discipline are the hedge of his
+garden, the Church; and how will what men call the essentials of
+religion remain in their glory, when this is broken down, the present
+state of affairs can sufficiently attest, when the most damnable errors
+are propagated with impunity.
+
+In our times the enemies of the scriptural order of the house of God are
+very numerous and very active, exerting all their power to break down
+the carved work of God's sanctuary. The present spirit for novelty and
+innovation, together with the rage for infidelity so prevalent, strongly
+favors the opposition made to every thing which has a tendency to bind
+men closely to God, to his truths, to the purity of his worship and
+ordinances, or to one another by a holy profession. The design,
+therefore, of republishing this Treatise is to assist Presbyterians of
+all denominations in the understanding of those passages of Scripture
+upon which their wall is built, that they be not led aside by the
+cunning speeches of false teachers, whereby they deceive and draw aside
+the hearts of the simple.
+
+This work was first published at London, at the time when the
+controversy between the Presbyterians and ancient Independents ran very
+high, and every intelligent and unprejudiced reader will see, that the
+Holy Scriptures have been carefully perused, accurately compared, wisely
+collected, and judiciously explained, in order to evince that the
+Presbyterian government has the only lawful claim to a divine right, and
+is the only form appointed by Christ in his Church. It is, therefore, to
+be wished, that all his people would endeavor, in the strength of Divine
+grace, to observe the laws of his house, and to walk in all his
+ordinances and commandments blameless.
+
+Considerable pains have been taken to make this edition more easily
+understood by common readers than the former, and yet several difficult
+and hard words have passed unnoticed. The Latin quotations from the
+Fathers have been omitted, because they contain nothing materially
+different from what is in the body of the work, and modern Independents
+pay little regard to any human authorities but their own. It was
+proposed to have added a few extracts from Messrs. Rutherford and
+Gillespie, but upon looking into their works nothing of consequence was
+observed, that tended to cast any new light upon the subject. It is
+hoped, however, that the Appendix is filled up with extracts from other
+authors upon subjects of considerable importance, and very necessary for
+these times, concerning the scriptural qualifications and duties of
+church members; the divine right of the gospel ministry; the people's
+divine right to choose their own pastors; with an abstract of Dr. Owen's
+arguments in favor of the divine right of the ruling elder: and as there
+are many serious Christians who have not a capacity to take up and
+retain a long chain of reasoning, a summary of the whole Treatise is
+given by way of question and answer as a conclusion.
+
+The Editor is not to be understood as approving of, or vindicating every
+single sentiment, or mode of expression, used in this Treatise: at the
+same time, next to the Holy Scriptures, he recommends it as one of the
+best defences of presbytery which he has seen.
+
+That it may be blessed of God for informing the ignorant, settling the
+wavering, and establishing the believers of _the present Truth_, is the
+earnest desire of,
+
+Christian reader,
+
+Your humble servant in the Gospel,
+
+T.H.
+
+_Paisley, 28th February, 1799._
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE
+
+TO THE PIOUS AND JUDICIOUS READER.
+
+
+CHRISTIAN READER:
+
+Thou hast in the ensuing treatise, 1st, a brief delineation of the
+nature of a divine right, wherein it consists, and how many ways a thing
+may be accounted of divine right, according to the Scriptures; as also,
+2d, a plain and familiar description of that church government which
+seems to have the clearest divine right for it, and (of all other
+contended for) to be the most consonant and agreeable to the word of
+Christ; which description (comprehending in itself the whole frame and
+system of the government) is in the several branches thereof explained
+and confirmed by testimonies or arguments from Scripture; more briefly,
+in particulars which are easily granted; more largely, in particulars
+which are commonly controverted; yet as perspicuously and concisely in
+both as the nature of this unusual and comprehensive subject insisted
+upon would permit. Things are handled rather by way of positive
+assertion, than of polemical dissertation, (which too commonly
+degenerates into verbal strifes, 1 Tim. vi. 3, 4; 2 Tim. ii. 23; and
+vain-jangling, 1 Tim. i. 6,) and where any dissenting opinions or
+objections are refuted, we hope it is with that sobriety, meekness, and
+moderation of spirit, that any unprejudiced judgment may perceive, that
+we had rather gain than grieve those who dissent from us; that we
+endeavor rather to heal up than to tear open the rent; and that we
+contend more for truth than for victory.
+
+To the publication hereof we have been inclinable (after much
+importunity) principally upon deliberate and serious consideration of,
+1st, the necessity of a treatise of this kind; 2d, the advantage likely
+to accrue thereupon; and, 3d, the seasonable opportunity of sending it
+abroad at such a time as this is.
+
+I. The necessity of a treatise of this nature, is evident and urgent.
+For,
+
+1. We hold ourselves obliged, not only by the common duty of our
+ministerial calling, but also by the special bond of our solemn
+covenant with God, especially in Art. 1, to bend all our best endeavors
+to help forward a reformation of religion according to the word of God,
+which can never be effected without a due establishment of the
+scripture-government and discipline in the Church of God. And to make
+known what this government is from the law and testimony, by preaching
+or writing, comes properly and peculiarly within the sphere of our place
+and vocation.
+
+2. A cloud of darkness and prejudice, in reference to this matter of
+church government, too generally rests upon the judgments and
+apprehensions of men (yea of God's own people) among us, either, 1st,
+through the difficulty or uncommonness of this matter of church
+government, (though ancient and familiar in other reformed churches, yet
+new and strange to us;) or, 2d, through the strange misrepresentations
+that are made hereof, by those that are small friends to the true
+presbyterial government, or that are enemies to all church government
+whatsoever; or, 3d, through the different opinions about church
+government, which are to be found among pious people and ministers: by
+all which the weak and unstable minds of many are cast into a maze of
+many confused thoughts and irresolutions.
+
+3. Though many learned treatises have been published, some whereof have
+positively asserted, others have polemically vindicated divers parts of
+church government, and the divine right thereof, yet hitherto no
+treatise of this nature is extant, positively laying open the nature of
+a divine right, what it is, and a system of that government, which is
+so, and proving both by the Scriptures; without which, how shall the
+judgments and consciences of men be satisfied, that this is that church
+government, according to the word of God, which they have covenanted to
+endeavor to promote, and whereto they are obliged to submit? And since
+it is our lot to travel in an unbeaten path, we, therefore, promise to
+ourselves, from all sober and judicious readers, the greater candor and
+ingenuity in their measuring of our steps and progress herein.
+
+II. The advantage which may probably accrue hereupon, we hope shall be
+manifold: For, 1. Who can tell but that some of them, that in some
+things are misled and contrary-minded, may be convinced and regained?
+and it will be no small reward of our labors if but one erring brother
+may be brought back. 2. Some satisfaction may redound to such as are of
+doubtful, unresolved minds, by removing of their doubts and scruples,
+and ripening of their resolutions, to settle more safely in point of
+church government. 3. Those that as yet are unseen in the matter of
+church government, or that want money to buy, or leisure to read many
+books upon this subject, may here have much in a little, and
+competently inform themselves of the whole body of the government. 4.
+Consequently upon the attaining of the former ends, the work of
+reformation will be much facilitated and smoothed, the hearts of the
+people being prepared for the Lord and his ordinances. 5. The present
+attempt (if it reach not to that completeness and satisfactoriness which
+is desired) may yet incite some of our brethren of more acute and
+polished judgments to embark themselves in some further discoveries for
+the public benefit of the Church. 6. But though it should fall out that
+in all the former we should be utterly disappointed, we shall have this
+peace and comfort upon our own spirits, that we have not hid our talent
+in the earth, nor neglected to bear witness to this part of Christ's
+truth, touching the government of his Church, by his kingly power,
+wherein Christ was opposed so much in all ages, Psalm ii. 1, 2, 3; Luke
+xix. 14, 27; Acts iv., and for which Christ did suffer so much in a
+special and immediate manner, as[1] some have observed. For this end
+Christ came into the world, (and for this end we came into the
+ministerial calling,) to bear witness to the truth.
+
+III. Finally, the present opportunity of publishing a treatise on this
+subject doth much incite and encourage us therein. For at this time we
+are beginning, in this province of London, (and we hope the whole
+kingdom will, with all convenient speed, and due caution, second us,) to
+put that covenanted church government into actual execution, which we
+have a long time intended in our deliberate resolutions. So that
+generally we shall be engaged in the government one way or other, either
+as acting in it as the church officers, or as submitting to it as church
+members: now, how shall any truly conscientious person, either act in
+it, or conform and submit unto it with faith, judgment, and alacrity,
+till he be in some competent measure satisfied of the divine right
+thereof?
+
+Will mere prudence, without a divine right, be a sufficient basis to
+erect the whole frame of church government upon, as some conceive?
+Prudentials, according to general rules of Scripture, may be of use in
+circumstantials, but will bare prudentials in substantials also satisfy
+either our God, our covenant, our consciences, or our end in this great
+work of reformation? What conscientious person durst have a hand in
+acting as a ruling elder, did he not apprehend the word of God holds
+forth a divine right for the ruling elder? Who durst have a hand in the
+censures of admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the scandalous and
+obstinate, and of restoring the penitent, were there not a divine right
+hereof revealed in the Scripture, &c. Now, therefore, that ruling
+elders, and the rest of the people, may begin this happy work
+conscientiously, judiciously, cheerfully, in some measure perceiving the
+divine right of the whole government, wherein they engage themselves,
+cleared by Scripture, we hope, by God's blessing, that this small tract
+will afford some seasonable assistance, which will be unto us a very
+acceptable recompense.
+
+Thus far of the nature of this treatise, and the grounds of our
+publishing thereof. In the next place, a few doubts or scruples touching
+church government here asserted, being succinctly resolved, we shall
+preface no further.
+
+_Doubt_ 1. Many scruple, and much question the divine right of the whole
+frame of church government; as, 1. Whether there be any particular
+church government of divine right? 2. What that government is? 3. What
+church officers or members of elderships are of divine right? 4. Whether
+parochial or congregational elderships be of divine right? 5. Whether
+classical presbyteries be of divine right? 6. Whether provincial,
+national, and ecumenical assemblies be of divine right? 7. Whether
+appeals from congregational to classical, provincial, national, and
+ecumenical assemblies, and their power to determine upon such appeals,
+be of divine right? 8. Whether the power of censures in the
+congregational eldership, or any other assembly, be of divine right? 9.
+Whether there be any particular rules in the Scripture directing persons
+or assemblies in the exercise of their power? 10. Whether the civil
+magistrates, or their committees' and commissioners' execution of church
+censures be contrary to that way of government which Christ hath
+appointed in his Church?
+
+_Resol_. To all or most of these doubts some competent satisfaction may
+be had from this treatise ensuing, if seriously considered. For, 1. That
+there is a church government of divine right, now under the New
+Testament, declared in Scripture, is proved, Part I. 2. What that
+government is in particular, is evidenced both by the description of
+church government, and the confirmation of the parts thereof by
+Scripture, Part. II. chap. 1, and so to the end of the book: whereby it
+is cleared that the presbyterial government is that particular
+government which is of divine right, according to the word of God. 3.
+What ordinary church officers, (members of the several elderships,) are
+of divine right, is proved, Part II, chap. 11, sect. 1, viz. pastors and
+teachers, with ruling elders. 4. That parochial or congregational
+elderships, consisting of preaching and ruling elders, are of divine
+right, is manifested, Part II. chap. 12. 5. That classical presbyteries,
+or assemblies, and their power in church government, are of divine
+right, is demonstrated, Part II. chap. 13. 6. That synodical assemblies,
+or councils in general, (consequently provincial, national, or
+ecumenical councils in particular,) and their power in church
+government, are of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap. 14. 7. That
+appeals from congregational elderships, to classical and synodical
+assemblies, from lesser to greater assemblies associated, and power in
+those assemblies to determine authoritatively in such, appeals, are of
+divine right, is proved, Part II. chap. 15. 8. That the power of church
+censures is in Christ's own church officers only as the first subject
+and proper receptacle there of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap.
+11, sect. 2, which officers of Christ have and execute the said power
+respectively, in all the ruling assemblies, congregational, classical,
+or synodical. See section 3, and chap. 12, 13, 14, 15. 9. That the
+Scriptures hold forth, touching church government, not only general, but
+also many particular rules, sufficiently directing both persons and
+assemblies how they should duly put in execution their power of church,
+government. This is made good, Part II. chap. 4; and those that desire
+to know which are these rules in particular, may consult those
+learned[2] centuriators of Magdeburg, who have collected and
+methodically digested, in the very words of the Scripture, a system of
+canons or rules, touching church government, as in the preface to those
+rules they do profess, saying, touching things pertaining to the
+government of the Church, the apostles delivered certain canons, which
+we will add in order, &c., the very heads of which would be too prolix
+to recite. 10. Finally, that neither the supreme civil magistrate, as
+such, nor consequently any commissioner or committees whatsoever,
+devised and erected by his authority, are the proper subject of the
+formal power of church government, nor may lawfully, by any virtue of
+the magistratical office, dispense any ecclesiastical censures or
+ordinances: but that such undertakings are inconsistent with that way of
+government which Christ hath appointed in his Church, is evidenced, Part
+II. chap. 9, well compared with chap. 11.
+
+_Doubt_ 2. But this presbyterial government is likely to be an arbitrary
+and tyrannical government, forasmuch as the presbyters of the assembly
+of divines and others (who, Diotrephes-like, generally affect
+domineering) have desired an unlimited power, according to their own
+judgments and prudence, in excommunicating men from the ordinances in
+cases of scandal.
+
+_Resol_. A heinous charge, could it be proved against the presbyterial
+government. Now for wiping off this black aspersion, consider two
+things, viz: I. The imputation itself, which is unjust and groundless;
+II. The pretended ground hereof, which is false or frivolous.
+
+I. The imputation itself is, that the presbyterial government is likely
+to be an arbitrary and tyrannical government. _Ans_. How unjust this
+aspersion! I. What likelihood of arbitrary conduct in this government,
+that is, that it should be managed and carried on according to men's
+mere will and pleasure? For, 1. The presbyterial government (truly so
+called) is not in the nature of it any invention of man, but an
+ordinance of Christ; nor in the execution of it to be stated by the will
+of man, but only by the sure word of prophecy, the sacred Scriptures.
+This government allows not of one church officer at all; nor of one
+ruling assembly made up of those officers; nor of one censure or act of
+power to be done by any officer or assembly; nor of one ordinance to be
+managed in the Church of God, but what are grounded upon, and warranted
+by the word of God. This government allows no execution of any part
+thereof, neither in substantials, nor circumstantials, but according to
+the particular, or at least, the general rules of Scripture
+respectively. And can that be arbitrary, which is not at all according
+to man's will, but only according to Christ's rule, limiting and
+ordering man's will? Or is not the Scripture a better and safer
+provision against all arbitrary government in the Church, than all the
+ordinances, decrees, statutes, or whatsoever municipal laws in the world
+of man's devising, can be against all arbitrary government in the
+commonwealth? Let not men put out their own eyes, though others would
+cast a mist before them. 2. Who can justly challenge the reformed
+presbyterial churches for arbitrary proceedings in matters of church
+government, practised in some of them for above these fourscore years?
+Or where are their accusers? 3. Why should the presbyterial
+government, to be erected in England, be prejudged as arbitrary, before
+the government be put in execution? When arbitrary conduct appears, let
+the adversaries complain. 4. If any arbitrary conduct hath been
+discovered in any reformed church, or shall fall out in ours, it is or
+shall be more justly reputed the infirmity and fault of the governors,
+than of the government itself.
+
+II. What probability or possibility of tyranny in the presbyterial
+government? For, 1. Who should tyrannize, what persons, what ruling
+assemblies? Not the ministers; for, hitherto they have given no just
+cause of any suspicion, since this government was in hand: and they are
+counterpoised in all assemblies with a plurality of ruling elders, it
+being already studiously[3] provided that there be always two ruling
+elders to one minister: if there be still two to one, how should they
+tyrannize if they would? Neither ministers nor ruling elders are likely
+to tyrannize, if due care be taken by them, whom it doth concern, to
+elect, place, and appoint, conscientious, prudent, and gracious
+ministers and ruling elders over all congregations. Nor yet the ruling
+assemblies, lesser or greater; for in the presbyterial government all
+lesser ruling assemblies (though now at first, perhaps, some of them
+consisting of more weak and less experienced members) are subordinate to
+the greater authoritatively; and persons aggrieved by any
+mal-administrations have liberty to appeal from inferior to superior:
+and the very national assembly itself, though not properly subordinate,
+yet is it to be responsible to the supreme political magistracy in all
+their proceedings so far as subjects and members of the commonwealth.
+
+III. How can they tyrannize over any? Or in what respects? Not over
+their estates: for they claim no secular power at all over men's
+estates, by fines, penalties, forfeitures, or confiscations. Not over
+their bodies, for they inflict no corporal punishment, by banishment,
+imprisonment, branding, slitting, cropping, striking, whipping,
+dismembering, or killing. Not over their souls; for, them they desire by
+this government to gain, Matth. xviii. 15; to edify, 2 Cor. x. 8, and
+xiii. 10; and to save, 1 Cor. v. 5. Only this government ought to be
+impartial and severe against sin, that the flesh may be destroyed, 1
+Cor. v. 5. It is only destructive to corruption, which is deadly and
+destructive to the soul. Thus the imputation itself of arbitrary conduct
+and tyranny to the presbyterial government is unjust and groundless.
+
+II. The pretended ground of this aspersion is false and frivolous. The
+presbyters of the Assembly of Divines, and others (_Diotrephes_-like,
+affecting pre-eminence) have desired an unlimited power, according to
+their own prudence and judgment, in keeping men from the ordinances in
+cases of scandal not enumerated. _Ans_. 1. The presbyters of the
+Assembly and others, are so far from the domineering humor of
+Diotrephes, that they could gladly and heartily have quitted all
+intermeddling in church government, if Jesus Christ had not by office
+engaged them thereto; only to have dispensed the word and sacraments
+would have procured them less hatred, and more case. 2. They desired
+liberty to keep from the ordinances, not only persons guilty of the
+scandals enumerated, but of all such like scandals, (and to judge which
+are those scandals, not according to their minds unlimitedly, but
+according to the mind of Christ in his word, more sure than all
+ordinances or acts of Parliament in the world.) And was this so hideous
+a desire? This liberty was desired, not for themselves, but for
+well-constituted elderships. As great power was granted by the very
+service-book to every single curate; (see the Rubric before the
+communion.) A perfect enumeration and description of scandals can be
+made in no book but in the Scriptures; and when all is done, must we not
+refer thither? All scandals are punishable, as well as any, and to
+inflict penalties on some, and not on others as bad or worse, is
+inexcusable partiality. Why should not presbyteries duly constituted,
+especially the greater, be accounted, at least, as faithful,
+intelligent, prudent, and every way as competent judges of what is
+scandal, and what not, according to the Scriptures, and that without
+arbitrary conduct and tyranny, as any civil court, committees, or
+commissioners whatsoever? Ruling church assemblies are intrusted with
+the whole government in the church, consequently with this, and every
+part. The best reformed churches allow to their presbyteries power to
+keep from the ordinances scandalous persons, not only for scandals
+enumerated, but for scandals of like nature not enumerated, with some
+general clause or other, as may appear in eight several churches,
+according to the allegations here in the foot-note;[4] and, therefore,
+no new thing is desired, but what is commonly practised in the reformed
+churches, whom we should imitate so far as they lead us on towards
+purity and perfection.
+
+_Doubt_ 3. But the independent government seems to be a far more
+excellent way, and it is embraced by many godly and precious people and
+ministers.
+
+_Ans_. 1. What true excellency is there at all in the whole independent
+government, save only in those particulars wherein it agrees with the
+presbyterial government; and only so far as it is presbyterial?
+Therefore, the presbyterial government is equally, yea, primarily and
+principally excellent. Wherein is the excellency of the independent way
+of government? 1st. Have they only those officers which Christ himself
+hath appointed, pastors and teachers, ruling elders and deacons? So the
+Presbyterians. 2d. Have they those spiritual censures, of admonishing,
+excommunicating, and receiving again into communion, which Christ
+ordained in his Church, for guarding his ordinances, and well guiding of
+the flock? So the Presbyterians. 3d. Have they congregational
+presbyteries duly elected, and constituted for the exercise of all acts
+of government, proper and necessary for their respective congregations?
+So the Presbyterians. 4th. Have they liberty of electing their own[5]
+officers, pastors, elders, and deacons? So the Presbyterians. 5th. Have
+they power to keep the whole lump of the Church from being leavened, and
+purely to preserve the ordinances of Christ, from pollution and
+profanation, &c.? So the Presbyterians, &c. So that whereinsoever the
+independent government is truly excellent, the presbyterial government
+stands in a full equipage and equality of excellence.
+
+II. What one true excellence is there in the whole independent
+government in any one point, wherein it really differs from the
+presbyterial government? Take for instance a few points of difference.
+
+_In the independent government._
+
+ No other visible Church of Christ is acknowledged, but only a single
+ congregational meeting in one place to partake of all ordinances.
+
+ The matter of their visible Church must be to their utmost judgment
+ of discerning such as have true grace, real saints.
+
+ Their churches are gathered out of other true visible churches of
+ Christ, without any leave or consent of pastor or flock; yea,
+ against their wills, receiving such as tender themselves, yea, too
+ often by themselves or others, directly or indirectly seducing
+ disciples after them.
+
+ Preaching elders are only elected, not ordained.
+
+ Ruling elders also preach.
+
+ The subject of church government is the community of the faithful.
+
+ The church officers act immediately as the servants of the church,
+ and deputed thereby.
+
+ All censures and acts of government are dispensed in single
+ congregations ultimately, independently, without all liberty of
+ appeal from them to any superior church assembly; so the parties
+ grieved are left without remedy.
+
+ There are acknowledged no authoritative classes or synods, in
+ common, great, difficult cases, and in matters of appeals, but only
+ suasive and consultative; and in case advice be not followed, they
+ proceed only to a non-communion.
+
+
+_In the presbyterial government._
+
+ One general visible Church of Christ on earth is acknowledged, and
+ all particular churches; and single congregations are but as similar
+ parts of that whole.
+
+ The matter of the Church invisible are only true believers, but of
+ the Church visible persons professing true faith in Christ, and
+ obedience to him according to the rules of the Gospel.
+
+ Parochial churches are received as true visible churches of Christ,
+ and most convenient for mutual edification. Gathering churches out
+ of churches, hath no footsteps in Scripture; is contrary to
+ apostolical practice; is the scattering of churches, the daughter of
+ schism, the mother of confusion, but the stepmother to edification.
+
+ Preaching elders are both elected and ordained.
+
+ Ruling elders only rule, preach not, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+
+ The subject of church government is only Christ's own church
+ officers.
+
+ The church governors act immediately as the servants of Christ, and
+ as appointed by him.
+
+ All censures and acts of government are dispensed in congregational
+ presbyteries subordinately, dependently, with liberty of appeal in
+ all cases to presbyterial or synodal assemblies; where parties
+ grieved have sufficient remedy.
+
+ There are acknowledged, and with happy success used, not only
+ suasive and consultative; but also authoritative classes and synods,
+ in cases of great importance, difficulty, common concernment, or
+ appeals; which have power to dispense all church censures, as need
+ shall require.
+
+Let these and such like particulars in the independent way, differing
+from the presbyterial, be duly pondered, and then let the impartial and
+indifferent reader judge, whether they be not the deformities, at least
+the infirmities of that way.
+
+III. How many true excellences are there in the way of the presbyterial
+government, wherein it utterly surpasses the independent government!
+Read but the particulars of the former parallel in the presbyterial
+government, and then consider how far this transcends, yea, how the
+independent government is indeed no government at all, to the
+presbyterial government; wherein is to be found such ample provision,
+and that according to the word of God, for comely order against
+confusion; for peace and unity of the Church against schism and
+division; for truth of the faith against all error and heresy; for piety
+and unblamableness against all impiety and scandal of conversation; for
+equity and right against all mal-administrations, whether ignorant,
+arbitrary, or tyrannical; for the honor and purity of all Christ's
+ordinances against all contempt, pollution, and profanation; for
+comfort, quickening, and encouragement of the saints in all the ways of
+Christ; and consequently for the honor of God and our Lord Jesus Christ
+in all the mysterious services of his spiritual sanctuary: all which
+rich advantages, how impossible is it they should ever be found in the
+independent government so long as it continues independent? And what
+though some pious minister and people embrace the independent way! This
+dazzles not the eyes of the intelligent, but of the infirm; we are to be
+regulated by Scripture warrant, not by human examples. The best of
+saints have failed in the ecclesiastical affairs; what a sharp
+contention was there between Paul and Barnabas, Acts xv. 39, &c.; what a
+dangerous dissimulation was there in Peter, the Jews, and Barnabas! Gal.
+ii. 11, 12, 13, &c.; and, therefore, it is not safe, prudent, or
+conscientious, to imitate all the examples of the best, and yet how few
+are those that have engaged themselves in the independent way, in
+comparison to the multitude of precious ministers and people, inferior
+to them neither in parts, learning, piety, nor any other spiritual gift,
+who are for the presbyterial way of church government! Notwithstanding,
+let all the true Israel of God constantly follow, not the doubtful
+practices of unglorified saints, but the written pleasure of the most
+glorious King of saints; and as many as walk according to this rule,
+peace shall be on them, and upon the Israel of God.
+
+
+
+
+THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH GOVERNMENT.
+
+PART I.
+
+OF THE NATURE OF A DIVINE RIGHT: AND HOW MANY WAYS A THING MAY BE OF
+DIVINE RIGHT.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I.
+
+_That there is a Government in the Church of_ DIVINE RIGHT _now under
+the New Testament._
+
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath _the government_ (both of the Church, and
+of all things for the Church) laid _upon his shoulder_, Isa. ix. 6, and
+to that end hath _all power in heaven and earth given to him_, Matth.
+xxviii. 18, John v. 22, Ephes. i. 22. But lapsed man (being full of
+pride, Psal. x. 2, 4, and enmity against the law of God, Rom. viii. 7)
+is most impatient of all government of God and of Christ, Ps. ii. 1, 2,
+3, with Luke xix. 14, 27; whence it comes to pass, that the _governing_
+and _kingly power_ of Christ hath been opposed in all ages, and
+especially in this of ours, by quarrelsome queries, wrangling disputes,
+plausible pretences, subtle policies, strong self-interests, and mere
+violent wilfulness of many in England, even after they are brought under
+the _oath of God to reform church government according to the word of
+God_. Yet it will be easily granted _that there should be a government
+in the Church of God_, otherwise the Church would become a mere _Babel_
+and _chaos_ of confusion, and be in a far worse condition than all human
+societies in the whole world: and _that some one church government is
+much to be preferred before another, yea, before all other_; as being
+most desirable in itself, and most suitable to this state; otherwise,
+why is the _Prelatical_ government rejected, that another and a better
+may be erected instead thereof? But the pinch lies in this, _Whether
+there be any government in the Church visible of divine right?_ And, if
+so, _which of those church governments_ (which lay claim to a divine
+right for their foundation) _may be most clearly evinced by the
+Scriptures to be of_ divine right _indeed?_ If the former be
+convincingly affirmed, the fancy of the _Erastians_ and _semi-Erastians_
+of these things will vanish, that deny all government to the Church
+distinct from that of the civil magistrate. If the latter be solidly
+proved by Scripture, it will appear, whether the _monarchical
+government_ of the pope and prelates; or the _mere democratical
+government_ of all the people in an equal level of authority, as among
+the Brownists; or the _mixed democratical government_ of both elders and
+people within their own single congregation only, without all
+subordination of Assemblies, and benefit of appeals, as among the
+Independents; or rather the _pure representative government_ of the
+presbytery or church rulers only, chosen by the people, in subordination
+to superior synodical assemblies, and with appeals thereto, as it is
+among the Presbyterians, be that peculiar government which Jesus Christ
+hath left unto his church, by divine right, and in comparison of which
+all others are to be rejected.
+
+To draw things therefore to a clear and speedy issue about the divine
+right of church government, let this general proposition be laid down--
+
+_The Scriptures declare, That there is a government of_ DIVINE RIGHT _in
+the visible Church of Christ now under the New Testament._
+
+This is evident, 1 Cor. xii. 28, _God hath set some in the Church,
+first, Apostles, secondly, Prophets, thirdly, Teachers--Helps,
+Governments;_ in which place these things are plain: 1. That here the
+Apostle speaks of the visible Church: for he had formerly spoken of
+visible gifts and _manifestations of the Spirit given to profit this_
+Church _withal_, ver. 7 to 12. He also compares this Church of God to a
+visible organical body, consisting of many visible members, ver. 12, 13,
+&c. And in this 28th verse he enumerates the visible officers of this
+Church. 2. That here the Apostle speaks of one general visible Church;
+for he saith not _churches_, but _church_, in the singular number, that
+is, of one; besides, he speaks here of the Church in such a latitude as
+to comprehend in itself all gifts of the Spirit, all members, and all
+officers, both extraordinary and ordinary, which cannot be meant of the
+church of Corinth, or any one particular church, but only of that one
+general Church on earth. 3. That this general visible Church here meant,
+is the Church of Christ now under the New Testament, and not under the
+Old Testament; for he mentions here the New Testament officers only,
+ver. 28. 4. That in the visible Church now under the New Testament,
+there is a government settled; for besides _Apostles, Prophets_, and
+_Teachers_, here is mention of another sort of officer distinct from
+them all, called, in the abstract, _Governments_, a metaphor from
+pilots, mariners, or shipmasters, who by their helm, card, or compass,
+cables, and other tacklings, guide, and order, turn and twine the ship
+as necessity shall require; so these officers called _Governments_, have
+a power of governing and steering the spiritual vessel of the Church;
+thus, Beza on this place, says he declares the order of Presbyters, _who
+are keepers of discipline and church polity_. For how improperly should
+these, or any officers be styled _Governments in the Church_, if they
+had not a power of government in the Church settled upon them? Nor can
+this be interpreted of the civil magistrate; for, when the Apostle wrote
+this, the Church had her government, when yet she had no civil
+magistrate to protect her; and when did God ever take this power from
+the Church and settle it upon the civil magistrate? Besides, all the
+other officers here enumerated are purely ecclesiastical officers; how
+groundless then and inconsistent is it under this name of _Governments_
+to introduce a foreign power, viz. the political magistrate, into the
+list and roll of mere church officers? Finally, the civil magistrate, as
+a magistrate, is not so much as a member of the visible Church, (for
+then all Pagan magistrates should be members of the Church,) much less a
+governor in the Church of Christ. 5. That this government settled in the
+Church is of divine right; for, of those _Governments_, as well as of
+_Apostles, Prophets_, and _Teachers_, it is said, _God hath set_ them
+_in the Church. God hath set_ them, _hath put, set_--Tremellius out of
+the Syriac. Hath _constituted, ordained_--Beza out of the Greek. Now, if
+they be set in the Church and God hath set them there, here is a plain
+divine right for government in the Church.
+
+Add hereto, 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority, which the Lord hath given to
+us for the edification, and not for the destruction of you." Here are
+mentioned--1. Church power or authority for government in the Church. 2.
+The end of this power--positively, for the edification; negatively, not
+for the destruction of the Church. 3. The Author or Fountain of this
+authority--the Lord Christ hath given it, dispensed it; there is the
+divine right. 4. The proper subjects intrusted with this authority, viz:
+the church guides, our authority, which he hath given to us. They are
+the receptacle of power for the Church, and the government thereof.
+Compare also 1 Thes. v. 12, Matth. xvi. 19, 20, with xviii. 11, and John
+xx. 21, 22, 23. In which and divers like places the divine right of
+church government is apparently vouched by the Scripture, as will
+hereafter more fully appear; but this may suffice in general for the
+confirmation of this general proposition.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II.
+
+_Of the Nature of a_ DIVINE RIGHT _in general._
+
+
+Now touching this divine right of church government, two things are yet
+more particularly to be opened and proved, for the more satisfactory
+clearing thereof unto sober minds, to unprejudiced and unpre-engaged
+judgments, viz:--1. What the nature of a divine right is, and how many
+ways a thing may be said to be of divine right, and that by warrant of
+Scripture. 2. What the nature of the government of the Church under the
+New Testament is, which is vouched by the Scripture to be of divine
+right.
+
+For the first--viz. What the nature of a divine right is--consider both
+what a divine right is in general, and how many ways a thing may be said
+by Scripture warrant to be of divine right in particular.
+
+_Right_ is that which is most proper, just, or equal; or that which is
+prescribed or commanded by some statute law, and is just to be received
+in virtue of said law.
+
+_Divine_ sometimes points out a divine warrant or authority from God,
+engraven or enstamped upon any thing, whereby it is exalted above all
+human or created authority and power. And thus, all Scripture is styled
+divinely breathed or inspired of God. Hence is the divine authority of
+Scripture asserted, 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17; and in this sense divine right
+is here spoken of, in reference to church government, as it signifies a
+divine warrant and authority from God himself, engraven upon that church
+government and discipline, (hereafter to be handled,) and revealed to us
+in his holy Scriptures, the infallible and perfect oracles. So that
+divine right, according to this interpretation of the terms, is that
+which is either just, meet, and equal; or commanded and enjoined by any
+divine warrant or authority. And generally, a thing may be said to be of
+divine right, which is any way divinely just, equal, &c.; or divinely
+commanded by any law of God, or by that which is equivalent to a divine
+law. And whatsoever matters in church government can be proved by
+Scripture to have this stamp of divine warrant and authority set upon
+them, they may properly be said to be of divine right, and that by the
+will and appointment of Jesus Christ, to whom God hath delegated all
+power and authority for the government of his Church, Matth. xxviii. 18,
+19, 20, Isa. ix. 6, John v. 22, Eph. i. 22. In this sense, if church
+government, or any part of it, be found to be of divine right, then
+consequently--1. It is above all mere human power and created authority
+in the world whatsoever, and that supereminently. A divine
+right is the highest and best tenure whereby the Church can hold of
+Christ any doctrine, worship, or government; only God can stamp such a
+divine right upon any of these things, whereby conscience shall be
+obliged. All human inventions herein, whether devised of our own hearts,
+or derived as traditions from others, are incompatible and inconsistent
+herewith; vain in themselves, and to all that use them, and condemned of
+God. See 1 Kings xii. 32, 33, Isa. xxix. 4, Matth. xv. 6, 7, 8, 9. 2. It
+is beyond all just, human, or created power, to abolish or oppose the
+same, or the due execution thereof in the Church of Christ; for what is
+of divine right, is held of God, and not of man; and to oppose that,
+were to fight against God. The supreme magistrates in such cases should
+be nurse-fathers, Isa. xlix. 23, not step-fathers to the Church; their
+power being cumulative and perfective, not privative and destructive
+unto her; for she both had and exercised a power in church government,
+long before there was any Christian magistrate in the world; and it
+cannot be proved that ever Christ took away that power from his Church,
+or translated it to the political magistrate, when he became Christian.
+3. It is so obligatory upon all churches in the whole Christian world,
+that they ought uniformly to submit themselves unto it; for a divine
+right is equally obligatory on one church as well as on another. And it
+is so obligatory on all persons, states, and degrees, that none ought to
+be exempted from that church government which is of divine right, nor to
+be _tolerated_ in another church government, which is but of human
+invention; nor ought any Christian to seek after, or content himself
+with any such exemption or _toleration_; for in so doing, the inventions
+of men should be preferred before the ordinances of God; our own wisdom,
+will, and authority, before the wisdom, will, and authority of Christ:
+and we should in effect say, _We will not have this man to reign over
+us_, Luke xix. 27. _Let us break their bands asunder, and cast their
+cords away from us_, Psalm ii. 3.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III.
+
+_Of the Nature of a_ DIVINE RIGHT _in particular. How many ways a thing
+may be of_ DIVINE RIGHT. _And first, of a_ DIVINE RIGHT _by the true
+light of nature._
+
+
+Thus we see in general what a divine right is: now in particular let us
+come to consider how many ways a thing may be said to be of divine right
+by scripture-warrant, keeping still our eye upon this subject of church
+government, at which all particulars are to be levelled for the clearing
+of it.
+
+A thing may be said to be of divine right, or (which is the same for
+substance) of divine institution, divers ways. 1. _By the true light of
+nature._ 2. _By obligatory scripture examples._ 3. _By divine
+approbation._ 4. _By divine acts._ 5. _By divine precepts or mandates._
+All may be reduced to these five heads, ascending by degrees from the
+lowest to the highest divine right.
+
+I. _By light of nature._ That which is evident by, and consonant to the
+true light of nature, or natural reason, is to be accounted of divine
+right in matters of religion. Hence two things are to be made out by
+Scripture. 1. What is meant by the true light of nature. 2. How it may
+be proved, that what things in religion are evident by, or consonant to
+this true light of nature, are of divine right.
+
+1. For the first, What is meant by the true light of nature, or natural
+reason? Thus conceive. The light of nature may be considered two ways.
+1. As it was in man before the fall, and so it was that image and
+similitude of God, in which man was at first created, Gen. i. 26, 27, or
+at least part of that image; which image of God, and light of nature,
+was con-created with man, and was perfect: viz. so perfect as the sphere
+of humanity and state of innocency did require; there was no sinful
+darkness, crookedness, or imperfection in it; and whatsoever was evident
+by, or consonant to this pure and perfect light of nature, in respect
+either of theory or practice, was doubtless of divine right, because
+correspondent to that divine law of God's image naturally engraved in
+Adam's heart. But man being lapsed, this will not be now our question,
+as it is not our case. 2. As it is now in man after the fall. The light
+of nature and image of God in man is not totally abolished and utterly
+razed by the fall; there remain still some relics and fragments thereof,
+some glimmerings, dawnings, and common principles of light, both
+touching piety to God, equity to man, and sobriety to a man's self, &c.,
+as is evident by comparing these places, Psal. xix. 1, 2, &c., Acts
+xiv. 17, and xvii. 27, 28; Rom. i. 18-21, and ii. 12, 14, 15; 2 Cor. v.
+1: in which places it is plain, 1. That the book of the creature is able
+(without the scriptures, or divine revelations) to make known to man
+much of God, his invisible Godhead and attributes, Psalm xix. 1, 2, &c.;
+Acts xiv. 17, and xvii. 27, 28; yea, so far as to leave them without
+excuse, Rom. i. 18-21. 2. That there remained so much natural light in
+the minds even of the heathens, as to render them capable of instruction
+by the creature in the invisible things of God; yea, and that they
+actually in some measure did know God, and because they walked not up to
+this knowledge, were plagued, Rom. i. 18-21, 24, &c. 3. That the work of
+the law (though not the right ground, manner, and end of that work,
+which is the blessing of the new covenant, Jer. xxxi. 33; Heb. viii. 10)
+was materially written in some measure in their hearts. Partly because
+they did by nature without the law the things contained in the law, so
+being a law to themselves, Rom. ii. 14, 15; partly, because they by
+nature forbore some of those sins which were forbidden in the law, and
+were practised by some that had the law, as 2 Cor. v. 1; and partly,
+because according to the good and bad they did, &c., their conscience
+did accuse or excuse, Rom. ii. 15. Now conscience doth not accuse or
+excuse but according to some rule, principle, or law of God, (which is
+above the conscience,) or at least so supposed to be. And they had no
+law but the imperfect characters thereof in their own hearts, which were
+not quite obliterated by the fall. Now so far as this light of nature
+after the fall, is a true relic of the light of nature before the fall,
+that which is according to this light may be counted of divine right in
+matters of religion, which is the next thing to be proved.
+
+For the second, how it may be proved that what things in religion are
+evident by, or consonant to this true light of nature, are of divine
+right. Thus briefly,
+
+1. Because that knowledge which by the light of nature Gentiles have of
+the invisible things of God, is a beam of divine light, as the apostle,
+speaking of the Gentiles' light of nature, saith, That which may be
+known of God is manifest in them--for God hath showed it to them. For
+the invisible things, &c., Rom. i. 19, 20. God himself is the Fountain
+and Author of the true light of nature; hence some not unfitly call it
+the divine light of nature, not only because it hath God for its object,
+but also God for its principle; now that which is according to God's
+manifestation, must needs be of divine right.
+
+2. Because the Spirit of God and of Christ in the New Testament is
+pleased often to argue from the light of nature in condemning of sin, in
+commending and urging of duty, as in the case of the incestuous
+Corinthian; "It is reported commonly, that there is fornication among
+you, and such fornication as is not so much as named among the
+Gentiles," (who had only the light of nature to guide them,) 1 Cor. v.
+1. In case of the habits of men and women in their public church
+assemblies, that women's heads should be covered, men's uncovered in
+praying or prophesying. "Judge in yourselves, is it comely that a woman
+pray unto God uncovered? Doth not even nature itself teach you, that if
+a man hath long hair, it is a shame to him? but if a woman have long
+hair it is a glory to her," &c., 1 Cor. xi. 13-15. Here the apostle
+appeals plainly to the very light of nature for the regulating and
+directing of their habits in church assemblies; and thus, in case of
+praying or prophesying in the congregation in an unknown tongue, (unless
+some do interpret,) he strongly argues against it from the light of
+nature, 1 Cor. xiv. 7-11, and afterwards urges that women be silent in
+their churches, from the natural uncomeliness of their speaking there,
+for it is a shame for women to speak in the church, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35.
+
+Now, if the Spirit of God condemn things as vicious, and commend things
+as virtuous from the light of nature, is there not divine right in the
+light of nature? May we not say, that which is repugnant to the light of
+nature in matters of religion, is condemned by divine right; and what is
+correspondent to the light of nature, is prescribed by divine right? And
+if not, where is the strength or force of this kind of arguing from the
+light of nature?
+
+Consequently, in the present case of church government, that which is
+agreeable to the true light of nature, must needs be confessed to be of
+divine right. Though the light of nature be but dim, yet it will lend
+some help in this particular: e.g. the light of nature teaches, 1. That
+as every society in the world hath a distinct government of its own
+within itself, without which it could not subsist, so must the Church,
+which is a society, have its own distinct government within itself,
+without which it cannot subsist more than any other society. 2. That in
+all matters of difference the lesser number in every society should give
+way to, and the matters controverted be determined and concluded by the
+major part; else there would never be an end: and why not so in the
+Church? 3. That in every ill administration in inferior societies the
+parties aggrieved should have liberty to appeal from them to superior
+societies, that equity may take place; and why not from inferior to
+superior church assemblies?
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV.
+
+II. _Of a Divine Right by obligatory Scripture Examples._
+
+
+II. By obligatory scripture examples (which God's people are bound to
+follow and imitate) matters of religion become of divine right, and by
+the will and appointment of Jesus Christ, by whose Spirit those examples
+were recorded in Scripture, and propounded for imitation to the saints.
+The light of nature in this case helps something; but the light of
+obligatory scripture examples helps much more, as being more clear,
+distinct, and particular. We say scripture examples; for only these
+examples are held forth to us by an infallible, impartial, divine hand,
+and those scripture examples obligatory, or binding; for there are many
+sorts of scripture examples that oblige not us to imitation of them,
+being written for other uses and purposes.
+
+Great use is to be made of such examples in matters of religion, and
+particularly in matters of church government, for the clearing of the
+divine right thereof; and great opposition is made by some against the
+binding force of examples, especially by men of perverse spirits, (as
+too many of the Erastian party are;) therefore it will be of great
+consequence to unfold and clear this matter of scripture examples, and
+the obliging power thereof, that we may see how far examples are to be a
+law and rule for us by divine right. In general, this proposition seems
+to be unquestionable, that whatsoever matter or act of religion Jesus
+Christ makes known to his Church and people, by or under any binding
+scripture example, that matter or act of religion so made known, is of
+divine right, and by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ: But to
+evince this more satisfactorily, these several particulars are to be
+distinctly made good and manifested: 1. That some scripture examples are
+obligatory and binding on Christians in matters of religion. 2. Which
+are those obligatory scripture examples? These things being made out, we
+shall see with what strength scripture examples hold forth a divine
+right to us in the mysteries of religion, and particularly in church
+government.
+
+I. That some scripture examples in matters of religion are obligatory on
+Christians, as patterns and rules, which they are bound in conscience to
+follow and imitate, is evident,
+
+1. By the divine intention of the Spirit of God, in recording and
+propounding of examples in Scripture: for he records and propounds them
+for this very end, that they may be imitated. Thus Christ's humility,
+in washing the feet of his disciples, was intentionally propounded as an
+obligatory example, binding both the disciples, and us after them, to
+perform the meanest offices of love in humility to one another. "If I
+then, your Lord and Master, have washed your feet, ye ought also to wash
+one another's feet. For I have given you an example, that ye should do
+as I have done to you," John xiii. 4, &c., 13-15. Thus Christ's
+suffering with innocence and unprovoked patience, not reviling again,
+&c., is purposely propounded for all Christians to imitate, and they are
+bound in conscience as well as they can to follow it--"Christ suffered
+for us, leaving us an example, that ye should follow his steps," &c., 1
+Pet. ii. 21-23. Hence, the apostle so urges the example of Christ for
+the Corinthians to follow in their bounty to the poor saints, yea,
+though to their own impoverishing, "For you know the grace of our Lord
+Jesus Christ, that though he was rich, yet for your sakes he became
+poor, that ye through his poverty might be rich," 2 Cor. viii. 9. Nor
+was the example of Christ only written for our imitation; but the
+examples of the apostles also in the primitive churches were
+intentionally left upon record for this end, that they might be binding
+patterns for us to follow in like cases in after ages. And in
+particular, this seems to be one singular ground, scope, and intention
+of Christ's Spirit in writing the history of the Acts of the Apostles,
+that the apostles' acts in the primitive churches might be our rules in
+successive churches. For, 1. Though this book contain in it many things
+dogmatical, that is, divers doctrines of the apostles, yet it is not
+styled the book of the doctrine, but of the Acts of the Apostles, that
+we may learn to act as they acted. This being one main difference
+between profane and sacred histories; those are for speculation, these
+also for admonition and imitation, 1 Cor. x. 11. The history, therefore,
+of the Acts propounds examples admonitory and obligatory upon us, that
+we should express like acts in like cases. 2. Luke (the penman of the
+Acts) makes such a transition from his history of Christ, to this
+history of Christ's apostles, as to unite and knit them into one volume,
+Acts i. 1; whence we are given to understand, that if the Church wanted
+this history of the apostles, she should want that perfect direction
+which the Spirit intended for her: as also that this book is useful and
+needful to her as well as the other. 3. In the very front of the Acts it
+is said, that _Christ after his resurrection_ (and before his ascension)
+_gave commandments to the apostles--and spake of the things pertaining
+to the kingdom of God_, Acts i. 2, 3; viz. of the polity of the Church,
+say some.[6] Of the kingdom of grace, say others.[7] Judicious
+Calvin[8] interprets it partly of church government, saying, Luke
+admonisheth us, that Christ did not so depart out of the world, as to
+cast off all care of us: for by this doctrine he shows that he hath
+constituted a perpetual government in his Church. Therefore Luke
+signifies, that Christ departed not, before he had provided for his
+Church's government. Now those expressions are set in the frontispiece,
+to stamp the greater authority and obligatory power upon the acts after
+recorded, being done according to Christ's commandments; Christ
+intending their acts in the first founding of his kingdom and polity
+ecclesiastic to be the rule for after churches. For what Christ spoke of
+his kingdom to the apostles is like that, "What I say to you, I say to
+all," Matt. xiii. 37, as what was said to the apostles touching
+preaching and baptizing, remitting and retaining of sins, was said to
+all the apostles' successors, "to the end of the world," John xx. 21,
+23, with Matt, xxviii. 18-20.
+
+2. By God's approving and commending such as were followers not only of
+the doctrine, but also of the examples of the Lord, his apostles, and
+primitive churches; "And ye became followers" (or imitators) "of us and
+of the Lord," 1 Thess. i. 6, 7; and again, "Ye, brethren, became
+followers" (or imitators) "of the churches of God, which in Judea are in
+Christ Jesus: for ye also have suffered like things of your own
+countrymen, even as they have of the Jews," 1 Thess. ii. 14. In which
+places the Holy Ghost recites the Thessalonians imitating of the Lord,
+of the apostles, and of the churches, to the praise of the
+Thessalonians, by which they are given to understand that they did well,
+and discharged their duty in such imitations: for God's condemning or
+commending any thing, is virtually a prohibiting or prescribing thereof.
+
+3. By the Lord's commanding some examples to be imitated. Commands of
+this nature are frequent. In general, "Beloved, imitate not that which
+is evil, but that which is good," 3 John 11. In particular, 1. Imitating
+of God and Christ; "Be ye, therefore, followers of God as dear children:
+and walk in love, as Christ also hath loved us," Eph. v. 1, 2, with Eph.
+iv. 32. "He that saith he abideth in him, ought himself also to walk,
+even as he walked," 1 John ii. 6. 2. Imitating the apostles and other
+saints of God. "I beseech you, be ye imitators of me: for this cause
+have I sent unto you Timothy--who shall bring you into remembrance of my
+ways which be in Christ," 1 Cor. iv. 16, 17. "Be ye imitators of me,
+even as I also am of Christ," 1 Cor. xi. 1.
+
+"Those things which you have both learned, and received, and heard, and
+seen in me, do: and the God of peace shall be with you," Phil. iv. 9.
+"Be not slothful, but imitators of them who through faith and patience
+inherit the promises," Heb. vi. 12. "Whose faith imitate, considering
+the end of their conversation," Heb. xiii. 7. "Take, my brethren, the
+prophets, who have spoken in the name of the Lord, for an example" (or
+pattern) "of suffering affliction, and of patience," James v. 10. These
+and like divine commands infallibly evidence that many scripture
+examples are obligatory, and do bind our consciences to the imitation of
+them.
+
+4. By consent of orthodox and learned writers, both ancient and modern,
+acknowledging an obligatory force in some scripture examples, as being
+left upon record for our imitation. As among others Chrysostom,[9] and
+Greg. Nyssen[10] well observe.
+
+Among modern writers, Mr. Perkins excellently observes, This is a rule
+in divinity, that the ordinary examples of the godly approved in
+Scripture, being against no general precept, have the force of a general
+rule, and are to be followed. See also Pet. Martyr, Calvin, and
+others.[11]
+
+II. Thus, it is clear that some scripture examples are obligatory. Now
+(to come closer to the matter) consider which scripture examples are
+obligatory. 1. How many sorts of binding examples are propounded to us
+in Scripture. 2. What rules we may walk by for finding out the
+obligatory force of such examples.
+
+How many sorts of binding examples are propounded unto us in Scripture,
+and which are those examples? Ans. There are principally three sorts,
+viz: Examples of God, of Christ, of Christians.
+
+I. Of God. The example of God is propounded in Scripture as obligatory
+on us in all moral excellencies and actions: e.g. Matt. v. 44, 45, 48;
+Eph. v. 1; 1 Pet. i. 14-16; 1 John iv. 10, 11.
+
+II. Of Christ. That the example of Christ is obligatory, and a binding
+rule to us for imitation, is evident by these and like testimonies of
+Scripture, Matt. xi. 29; 1 Cor. xi. 11; Eph. v. 2, 3, 25, &c.; 1 John
+ii. 6; 1 Pet. ii. 21-23. "If I then, your Lord and Master, have washed
+your feet, ye ought also to wash one another's feet. For I have given
+you an example, that ye should do as I have done to you," John xiii. 14,
+15. In this place we must follow the reason of the example, rather than
+the individual act, viz: after Christ's example, we must be ready to
+perform the lowest and meanest offices of love and service to one
+another.
+
+But which of Christ's examples are obligatory on Christians, will better
+appear, by distinguishing the several sorts of Christ's actions.
+Christ's actions were of several kinds; and to imitate them all is
+neither needful, nor possible, nor warrantable. Orthodox writers thus
+rank Christ's actions:
+
+1. Some of Christ's actions were of divine power and virtue; as his
+miracles, turning water into wine, John ii. 7, &c.; walking on the sea,
+Mark vi. 48, 49; dispossessing of devils by his word, Mark i. 27; Luke
+iv. 36; curing one born blind with clay and spittle, John ix.; healing
+the sick by his word or touch, John iv. 50; Mark vi. 56; raising the
+dead to life again, as John xii. 1; Matt. xi. 5; Luke vii. 22.
+
+2. Some were acts of divine prerogative, as sending for the ass and
+colt, without first asking the owner's leave, Matt. xxi. 2, &c.
+
+3. Some mediatory, done by him as Mediator, Prophet, Priest, and King of
+his Church: e.g. inditing the Scripture, called therefore the word of
+Christ, Col. iii. 16; laying down his life _for the sheep_, John x. 15,
+&c.; giving of the Spirit, John xx. 22; Acts ii.; appointing of his own
+officers, and giving them commissions, Eph. iv. 7, 10, 11; Matt. x. and
+xxviii. 18-20; instituting of new, and thereby abrogating of old
+ordinances, Matt. xxviii. 18, 19; 1 Cor. xi. 23, &c.
+
+4. Some accidental, occasional, incidental, or circumstantial, as in
+the case of his celebrating his supper, that it was at night, not in the
+morning; after supper, not before; with none but men, none but
+ministers; with unleavened, not with leavened bread, &c.; these
+circumstantials were accidentally occasioned by the passover, nature of
+his family, &c.
+
+5. Some acts of Christ were moral, as Matt. xi. 29; Eph. v. 2, 3, 25,
+&c.; or at least founded upon a moral reason and foundation, as John
+xiii. 14,15.
+
+To imitate Christ in his three first sort of acts, is utterly unlawful,
+and in part impossible. To imitate him in his circumstantial acts from
+necessity, were to make accidentals necessary, and happily to border
+upon superstition; for, to urge any thing above what is appointed, as
+absolutely necessary, is to urge superstition; and to yield to any thing
+above what is appointed, as simply necessary, were to yield to
+superstition. But to imitate Christ in his moral acts, or acts grounded
+upon a moral reason, is our duty: such acts of Christ ought to be the
+Christian's rules.
+
+III. Of prophets, apostles, saints, or primitive churches. That their
+examples are obligatory, is evident by these places, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil.
+iv. 8, 9; 1 Pet. iii. 4, 5, 6; 1 Thess. i. 6, and ii. 14; Heb. xiii. 7;
+James v. 10, 11; 3 John 11.
+
+Which of their examples are obligatory, may be thus resolved, by
+distinguishing of their actions.
+
+1. Some were sinful; written for our caution and admonition, not for our
+imitation: as 1 Cor. x. 5, 6, 10, 12. That neither the just be lifted up
+into pride by security, nor the unjust be hardened against the medicine
+through despair. See the fourth rule following.
+
+2. Some were heroical; done by singular instinct and instigation of the
+Spirit of God; as divers acts may be presumed to be, (though we read not
+the instinct clearly recorded:) as, Elias's calling for fire from
+heaven, 2 Kings i. 10; which the very apostles might not imitate, not
+having his spirit, Luke ix. 54, 55; Phinehas's killing the adulterer and
+adulteress, Numb. xxv. 7, 8; Samson's avenging himself upon his enemies
+by his own death, Judges xvi. 30, of which, saith Bernard, if it be
+defended not to have been his sin, it is undoubtedly to be believed he
+had private counsel, viz. from God, for his fact; David's fighting with
+Goliath of Gath the giant, hand to hand, 1 Sam. xvii. 32, &c., which is
+no warrant for private duels and quarrels. Such heroic acts are not
+imitable but by men furnished with like heroic spirit, and instinct
+divine.
+
+3. Some were by special calling, and singular extraordinary
+dispensation: as Abraham's call to leave his own country for pilgrimage
+in Canaan, Gen. xii. 1, 4, which is no warrant for popish pilgrimages
+to the holy land, &c.; Abraham's attempts, upon God's special trying
+commands, to kill and sacrifice his son, Gen. xxii. 10, no warrant for
+parents to kill or sacrifice their children; the Israelites borrowing
+of, and robbing the Egyptians, Exod. xii. 35, no warrant for cozenage,
+stealing, or for borrowing with intent not to pay again: compare Rom.
+xiii. 8; 1 Thess. iv. 6; Psal. xxxvii. 21; the Israelites taking usury
+of the Canaanitish strangers, (who were destined to ruin both in their
+states and persons, Deut. xx. 15-17,) Deut. xxiii. 20, which justifies
+neither their nor our taking usury of our brethren, Lev. xxv. 36, 37;
+Deut. xxiii. 19, 20; Neh. v. 7, 10; Psal. xv. 5; Prov. xxviii. 8; Ezek.
+xviii. 8, 13, 17, and xxii. 12; John Baptist's living in the desert,
+Mat. iii., no protection for popish hermitage, or proof that it is a
+state of greater perfection, &c.
+
+4. Some were only accidental or occasional, occasioned by special
+necessity of times and seasons, or some present appearance of scandal,
+or some such accidental emergency. Thus primitive Christians had all
+things common, Acts iv. 32, but that is no ground for anabaptistical
+community. Paul wrought at his trade of tent-making, made his hands
+_minister to his necessities_, Acts xx. 34; would not take wages for
+preaching to the church of Corinth, 2 Cor. xi. 7-9; but this lays no
+necessity on ministers to preach the gospel _gratis_, and maintain
+themselves by their own manual labors, except when cases and seasons are
+alike, Gal. vi. 6-8; 1 Cor. ix. 6-13; 1 Tim. v. 17, 18.
+
+5. Some were of a moral nature, and upon moral grounds, wherein they
+followed Christ, and we are to follow them, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil. iv. 8,
+9, and other places forementioned; for, whatsoever actions were done
+then, upon such grounds as are of a moral, perpetual, and common
+concernment to one person as well as another, to one church as well as
+another, in one age as well as another, those actions are obligatory on
+all, and a rule to after generations. Thus the baptizing of women in the
+primitive churches, Acts viii. 12, and xvi. 15, though only the males
+were circumcised under the Old Testament, is a rule for our baptizing of
+women as well as men, they being _all one in Christ,_ Gal. iii. 28. So
+the admitting of infants to the first initiating sacrament of the Old
+Testament, circumcision, because they with their parents' were accounted
+within the covenant of grace by God, Gen. xvii., is a rule for us now to
+admit infants to the first initiating sacrament of the New Testament,
+baptism, because infants are federally holy, and within the covenant
+with their believing parents now, as well as then, Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor.
+vii. 14; Col. ii. 11, 12. Thus the baptizing of divers persons formerly,
+though into no particular congregation, nor as members of any
+particular congregation, as the eunuch, Acts viii.; Lydia, Acts xvi.;
+the jailer, Acts xvi.; because it was sufficient they were baptized into
+that one general visible body of Christ, 1 Cor. xii. 12, 13, is a rule
+for us what to do in like cases upon the same common ground. Thus the
+Church's practice of preaching the word, and breaking bread on the first
+day of the week, Acts xx. 7, &c., is our rule for sanctifying the Lord's
+day, by celebrating the word, sacraments, and other holy ordinances, at
+these times. And in like manner, the primitive practices of ordaining
+preaching presbyters, by laying on of hands, 1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6;
+Acts xiii. 3; of governing all the congregations of a city by one common
+presbytery, in which respect they are all called by the name of one
+church, as the church of Jerusalem, Acts viii. 1, and xv. 4; the church
+of Antioch, Acts xiii. 1, and xi. 25, 26; the church of Corinth, 1 Cor.
+i. 2, 2 Cor. i. 1; which had churches in it, 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Of healing
+common scandals and errors, troubling divers presbyterial churches by
+the authoritative decrees of a synod, made up of members from divers
+presbyterial churches, as Acts xv., and such like, are our rules in like
+particulars, which the Lord hath left for our direction, the same
+grounds of such actions reaching us as well as them.
+
+Now this last kind of examples are those which we are, by divers divine
+commands, especially enjoined to follow; and therefore such examples
+amount to a divine right or institution; and what we ought to do by
+virtue of such binding examples is of divine right, and by the will and
+appointment of Jesus Christ.
+
+What discriminatory notes or rules may we walk by, for finding out the
+obligatory force of scripture examples; and what manner of examples
+those be? For discovery hereof, take these ensuing general rules:
+
+1. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ commands us
+to imitate, are undoubtedly obligatory. Such are the moral examples of
+God, Christ, apostles, prophets, saints, and churches, recorded in
+Scripture, with command to follow them, Eph. iv. 32, and v. 1, 2; 1 John
+ii. 6; 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil. iv. 6; Heb. vi. 12, and xiii. 7; James v. 10;
+3 John 11.
+
+2. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ commends and
+praises, are obligatory; his commendings are virtual commandings; and we
+ought to follow whatsoever is praiseworthy, especially in God's account,
+Phil. iv. 8, 9; 2 Cor. x. 18. Now the Spirit of Christ commends many
+examples to us: as, _Enoch's walking with God_, Gen. v. 24; _Noah's
+uprightness,_ Gen. vi.; _Abraham's faith_, Rom. iv., _and obedience_,
+Gen. xxii.; _Lot's zeal against Sodom's sins_, 2 Pet. ii. 9; _Job's
+patience_, James v. 10, 11. And in a word, all the examples of the
+saints, which the Lord approves and speaks well of; as Heb. xi.; 1 Pet.
+iii. 5, 6: together with all such examples, whose imitation by others is
+commended in Scripture; as, 1 Thess. i. 6, 7, and ii. 14.
+
+3. Those examples in Scripture are obligatory, whose ground, reason,
+scope, or end, are obligatory, and of a moral nature, and as much
+concern one Christian as another, one church as another, one time as
+another, &c., whether they be the examples under the Old or New
+Testament. Thus the example of the church of Corinth, in excommunicating
+the incestuous person, because he was a wicked person--and lest he
+should _leaven the whole lump;_ and that they might keep the
+evangelical passover sincerely, and for that they had power _to judge
+them within_; and that his "flesh might be destroyed, and his spirit
+saved in the day of the Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5-8, 11-13: which grounds
+and ends being moral, oblige us to use the like remedy against all
+wicked and scandalous persons.
+
+4. Those acts which are propounded in Scripture as patterns or examples,
+that we should act the like good, or avoid the like ill, are an
+obligatory law to us. There is an example of caution, and an example of
+imitation.
+
+Thus in reference to well-doing, or suffering for well-doing, the
+examples of Christ, his apostles, and other saints, are propounded as
+patterns to write after, as John xiii. 14, 15; Heb. xi. tot. with Heb.
+xii. 1, _with such a cloud of witnesses_. This verse is as the epilogue
+of the former chapter, (saith the learned Calvin,) showing to what end
+the catalogue of saints was reckoned up, who under the law excelled in
+faith, viz: that every one may fit himself to imitate them. Another
+adds,[12] He calls them a cloud, whereby we may be directed; in allusion
+to that cloud that went before Israel in the wilderness, to conduct them
+to the land of Canaan. See also 1 Pet. ii. 21-23; James v. 10.
+
+Thus also, in reference to ill-doing, that it may be avoided by us, the
+bad examples of saints and others are laid before us as warnings and
+cautions to us, binding us to eschew like evils, 1 Cor. x. 5, 6, 11.
+"Now these things were our examples, to the intent we should not lust
+after evil things, as they also lusted. Now all these things happened
+unto them for examples," &c., Jude 7.
+
+5. Those acts of saints or Christians, which were done by them as saints
+and Christians, are obligatory upon, and to be followed by all
+Christians; but those acts which are done by magistrates, prophets,
+apostles, ministers, &c., only as such, are only obligatory on such as
+have like offices, not on all; according to the maxim, that which agrees
+to any thing as such, agrees to every thing that is such. Thus James
+urges the example of Elias in praying, James v. 17. Paul presses the
+example of Abraham in being justified by believing, Rom. iv. 23,24.
+Peter prescribes, as a pattern to wives, the example of Sarah, and other
+holy women of old, for "adorning themselves with a meek and quiet
+spirit,--being in subjection to their own husbands," 1 Pet. iii. 4-6.
+
+6. Those acts that were commonly and ordinarily done, are ordinarily to
+be imitated; as, baptizing _in water only_, and not in any other
+element, was the ordinary practice of the New Testament, Matt. iii. 11,
+16; Mark i. 6, 10; Luke iii. 16; John i. 26, 31, 33; Acts i. 5, and
+viii. 36, 38, and x. 47, and xi. 16; and by that practice we are obliged
+to baptize in water only. Joining of many Christians together in
+receiving the Lord's supper was an ordinary practice, Matt. xxvi. 20,
+26, 27; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7, &c.; 1 Cor. xi. 20, and by us ordinarily
+to be imitated; how else is it a communion? 1 Cor. x. 16, 17.
+
+But such acts as were done only upon special causes or singular reasons,
+are only to be imitated in like cases. Thus Christ argues from a like
+special cause, that he was not to do miracles at Nazareth without a
+call, as he did in other places where he had a call of God; from the
+particular example of Elijah and Elisha, who only went to them to whom
+God called them, Luke ix. 25-27; so he proves that in like case of
+necessity it was lawful for his disciples on the sabbath-day to rub ears
+of corn and eat them, &c., from David's example of eating show-bread when
+he had need, Matt. xii. 1-5.
+
+7. Those acts that were done from extraordinary calling and gifts, are
+to be imitated (in regard of their special way of acting) only by those
+that have such extraordinary calling and gifts. Christ therefore blames
+his apostles for desiring to imitate Elijah's extraordinary act in
+calling for fire from heaven, &c., when they had not his spirit, Luke ix.
+54, 55. Papists are blameworthy for imitating the extraordinary forty
+days' and nights' fast of Moses, Elijah, and Christ, in their Lent fast.
+Prelates argue corruptly for bishops' prelacy over their brethren the
+ministers, from the superiority of the apostles over presbyters.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V.
+
+_Of a Divine Right by Divine Approbation._
+
+
+III. By divine approbation of the Spirit of Jesus Christ in his word.
+Whatsoever in matters of religion hath the divine approbation of the
+Spirit of Christ in the Scriptures, that is of divine right, and by the
+will and appointment of Jesus Christ. God's approving or allowing of any
+thing, plainly implies that it is according to his will and pleasure,
+and so is equivalent to a divine institution or appointment; for what is
+a divine institution or law but the publishing of the divine will of the
+legislator, touching things to be acted or omitted? and God cannot
+approve any thing that is against his will. Contrariwise, God's
+disallowing of any thing, plainly implies that it is against his will,
+and so of divine right prohibited, and unlawful. God allows or disallows
+things not because they are good or evil; but things are, therefore,
+good or evil, because he approves or disallows them.
+
+Now God approves or disallows things divers ways:
+
+1. By commending or discommending. God commended king Josiah for his
+zeal and impartiality in completing of the reformation of religion, 1
+Kings xiii. 25. This is a rule for all princes and magistrates how they
+should reform. The angel of the church of Ephesus is commended, for not
+bearing of those that were evil, for trying and detecting the false
+apostles, and for hating the works of the Nicolaitans, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6.
+The angel of the church of Pergamus is praised, for holding fast
+Christ's name, and not denying his faith in places of danger, and days
+of deepest persecution, Rev. ii. 13: a rule for all pastors and
+churches, how in all such cases they should carry themselves. God's
+commendings are divine commandings. On the contrary, God dispraises
+Ephesus, for falling from her first love, Rev. ii. 4. Pergamus, for
+holding the doctrine of Balaam, and the doctrine of the Nicolaitans,
+Rev. ii. 14, 15. Thyatira, for tolerating the false prophetess Jezebel,
+to teach and seduce his servants, &c., Rev. ii. 20. Laodicea, because
+she was neither hot nor cold, but lukewarm, Rev. iii. 15. The church of
+Corinth, for coming together in public assemblies, not for better but
+for worse, by reason of schisms, scandals, and other disorders about the
+Lord's supper, 1 Cor. xi. 17, &c. In these and all such divine
+discommendings of the churches for their corruptions, all succeeding
+churches are strongly forbidden the like corruptions: God's dispraises
+are divine prohibitions. Thus good church elders are commended in this
+notion, that they are _elders ruling well_, 1 Tim. v. 17; therefore,
+that elders in the church should rule, and rule well, is by this
+commendation of divine right.
+
+2. By promising and threatening. What promise did God ever make to any
+act or performance, which was not a duty? or what threatening against
+any act which was not a sin? He promises to them that forsake all for
+Christ, a "hundred-fold now in this time, and in the world to come
+eternal life," Mark x. 29, 30; therefore it is our duty to forsake all
+for Christ. He promised to ratify in heaven his disciples' sentences of
+_building or loosing on earth_; and to _be with them_ whensoever _two or
+three of them were met together_ for that end, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii.
+18-20, and John xx. 23. Therefore binding and loosing, remitting and
+retaining of sins, and meeting together for that end, belong to them by
+divine right. He promised to be with them that baptize, preach, remit,
+and retain sins in his name, &c., _always, to the end of the world_,
+John xx. 23; with Matt, xxviii. 18-20, which promise shows, that these
+works and employments belong to all succeeding ministers to the world's
+end, as well as to the apostles by divine right. On the contrary, the
+Lord threatens Ephesus for decay of first love, Rev. ii. 4, 5; Pergamus,
+for holding false doctrine, Rev. ii. 14, 15; Thyatira, for tolerating of
+Jezebel and her false teaching, &c., Rev. ii. 21, 21, 23; and Laodicea,
+for lukewarmness, Rev. iii. 15, 16. Therefore, all these were their
+sins, and we are bound, even by this divine threatening, to avoid the
+like by a divine warrant.
+
+3. By remunerating or rewarding; whether he reward with blessings or
+with judgments. With blessings God rewarded the Hebrew midwives, because
+they preserved the male children of Israel, contrary to Pharaoh's bloody
+command; _God made them houses_, Exod. i. 17, 20, 21. He will have the
+elders that rule well _counted worthy of double honor_, &c.; i.e.
+rewarded with a bountiful, plentiful maintenance, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+Therefore, their ruling in the church is of divine right, for which God
+appoints such a good reward. Contrariwise, with judgments God rewarded
+king Saul, for offering a burnt-offering himself, 1 Sam. xiii. 12-14;
+Uzzah, for touching the ark, though it was ready to fall, 2 Sam. vi. 6,
+7; and king Uzziah, for going into the temple to burn incense, 2 Chron.
+xxvi. 16. None of these being priests, yet presuming to meddle with the
+priest's office. A rule for all persons, being not church officers, yea,
+though they be princes or supreme magistrates, that they are hereby
+warned by the divine law, not to usurp church authority or offices to
+themselves. God rewarded the Corinthians with the judgments of
+weakness, sickness, and death, for unworthy receiving of the Lord's
+supper, 1 Cor. xi. 30. So that this is a divine warning for all after
+churches against unworthy communicating.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI.
+
+IV. _Of a Divine Right by Divine Acts._
+
+
+IV. By divine acts. Whatsoever matters of religion were erected in, or
+conferred upon the Church of God, by God, or any person of the blessed
+Trinity, and are left recorded in the Scripture, they are of divine
+right, by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ. Shall divine
+approbation, yea, shall the saints' binding example hold forth to us a
+divine right, and shall not the divine actions of God, Christ, and the
+Spirit, do it much more? Take some instances: the Lord's-day sabbath,
+under the New Testament, was it not instituted (the seventh day being
+changed to the first day of the week) by the acts of Christ, having now
+perfected the spiritual creation of the new world? viz: by his
+resurrection and apparitions to his disciples on that day, and
+miraculous blessing and sanctifying of that day, by pouring forth the
+gifts of the Holy Ghost, Acts ii., all which were seconded with the
+apostolical practice in the primitive churches, Acts xx. 7, &c.; 1 Cor.
+xvi. 1, 2. And do not the churches of Christ generally conclude upon
+these grounds, that the Lord's-day sabbath is of divine warrant? Thus
+circumcision is abrogated of divine right, by Christ's act, instituting
+baptism instead thereof, Col. ii. 11, 12. The passover is abolished of
+divine right, by Christ himself, our true passover, _being sacrificed
+for us_, 1 Cor. v. 7; and the Lord's supper being instituted a memorial
+of Christ's death instead of it, Matt, xxvi., Mark xiv., Luke xxii. And
+the whole ceremonial law is antiquated and made void by Christ's death,
+accomplishing all those dark types; therefore Christ, immediately before
+his yielding up the ghost, cried, _It is finished_, John xix. 30. See
+Col. ii. 14; Eph. ii. 14, 15; _abolishing the law of commandments in
+ordinances_, Heb. viii. 13, and x. 4, 5, &c. Thus by Christ's act of
+giving the keys of the kingdom of heaven to Peter and the apostles,
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, 19, the keys belong to the officers of the
+church by divine right. By God's act of _setting in the Church some,
+first apostles_, &c., 1 Cor. xii. 28, all those officers belong to the
+general visible Church by divine right. By Christ's act of bounty upon
+his triumphant ascension into heaven, _in giving gifts to men_, Eph.
+iv. 7, 11, 12; all those church officers being Christ's gifts, are of
+divine right. Finally, by the Holy Ghost's act, in setting elders,
+overseers over the flock, Acts xx. 28, elders are such overseers by
+divine right.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII.
+
+V. _Of a Divine Right by Divine Precepts._
+
+
+V. Finally, and primarily, by divine precepts, whatsoever in matters of
+religion is commanded or forbidden by God in his word, that is
+accordingly a duty or sin, by divine right: as, the duties of the whole
+moral law, the ten words, commanded of God, Exod. xx.; Deut. v.
+Believing in Christ, commanded of God, 1 John iii. 23. The plentiful and
+honorable maintenance of ministers, commanded of God, 1 Tim. v. 17, 18;
+1 Cor. ix. 9-11, 13, 14; Gal. vi. 6. The people's esteeming, loving, and
+obeying their pastors and teachers, commanded of God, 1 Thess. v. 12;
+Heb. xiii. 7, 17. Ministers' diligence and faithfulness, in feeding and
+watching over their flocks, commanded of God, Acts xx. 28; 2 Tim. iv.
+1-3; 1 Pet. iv. 1-3; with innumerable commands and precepts of all
+sorts: now all things so commanded are evidently of divine right, and
+without gainsaying, granted on all hands, even by Erastians themselves.
+But the question will be, how far we shall extend this head of _divine
+commands_. For clearness' sake, thus distinguish, thus resolve:
+
+God's commands are either immediate or mediate.
+
+1. Immediate divine commands: as those which God propounds and urges; as
+the ten commandments, Exod. xx., Deut. v., and all other injunctions of
+his in his word positively laid down. Of such commands, the apostle
+saith, "I command, yet not I, but the Lord," 1 Cor. vii. 10.
+
+Now these immediate commands of God, in regard of their manner of
+publishing and propounding, are either explicit or implicit.
+
+1. Explicit: which are expressly and in plain terms laid down, as the
+letter of the commandments of the decalogue, Exod. xx. The commands of
+Christ, "Feed my lambs, feed my sheep," John xxi.; "Go, disciple ye all
+nations," &c., Matt, xxviii. 19; "Do this in remembrance of me," Matt,
+xxvi; 1 Cor. xi. 23, 24, &c. Now whatsoever is expressly commanded of
+God in plain, evident terms, that is of divine right, without all color
+of controversy. Only take this caution, the divine right of things
+enjoined by God's express command, is to be interpreted according to the
+nature of the thing commanded, and the end or scope of the Lord in
+commanding: e.g. 1. Some things God commands morally, to be of perpetual
+use; as to honor father and mother, &c.; these are of divine right
+forever. 2. Some things he commands but positively, to be of use for a
+certain season; as the ceremonial administrations till Christ should
+come, for the Jewish church, and the judicial observances for their
+Jewish polity; and all these positive laws were of divine right till
+Christ abrogated them. 3. Some things he commands only by way of trial,
+not with intention that the things commanded should be done, but that
+his people's fear, love, and obedience may be proved, tried, &c. Thus
+God commanded Abraham to offer up his son Isaac for a burnt-offering,
+Gen. xxii.: such things are of divine right only in such cases of
+special infallible command. 4. Some things he commands extraordinarily
+in certain select and special cases: as, _Israel to borrow jewels of the
+Egyptians to rob them_, without intention ever to restore them, Exod.
+xi. 2, &c. The disciples to _go preach_--yet to _provide neither gold
+nor silver_, &c. Matt. x. 7-10. The elders of the church (while miracles
+were of use in the church) _to anoint the sick with oil in the name of
+the Lord_, for their recovery, James v. 14. These and like extraordinary
+commands were only of force by divine right, in these extraordinary
+select cases, when they were propounded.
+
+1. Implicit, or implied: which are either comprehensively contained in
+or under the express terms and letter of the command; or,
+consequentially, are deducible from the express command.
+
+Comprehensively, many things are contained in a command, that are not
+expressed in the very letter of the command. Thus sound interpreters of
+the decalogue generally confess, that all precepts thereof include the
+whole parts under the general term, and God wills many things by them
+more than the bare words signify: e.g. in negative commands, forbidding
+sin, we are to understand the positive precepts prescribing the contrary
+duties; and so, on the contrary, under affirmative commands, we are to
+understand the negative thereof: thus Christ expounds the sixth
+commandment, Matt. v. 21-27, and ver. 43, to the end of the chapter. So
+when any evil is forbidden, not only the outward gross acts, but all
+inward acts and degrees thereof, with all causes and occasions, all
+fruits and effects thereof, are forbidden likewise: as, under killing,
+provoking terms, rash anger, Matt. v. 21, 22; under adultery, wanton
+looks, lustful thoughts, &c., Matt. v. 27-30. Now all things
+comprehended in a command (though not expressed) are of divine right.
+
+Consequentially, many things are clearly deducible from express commands
+in Scripture, by clear, unforced, infallible, and undeniable
+consequence. Now what things are commanded by necessary consequence,
+they are of divine right, as well as things in express terms prescribed:
+e.g. in the case of baptism, have the ordinary ministers of the New
+Testament any punctual express command to baptize? yet, by consequence,
+it is evident infallibly, the apostles are commanded to baptize, and the
+promise is made to them by Christ, that he _will be with them always to
+the end of the world_, Matt, xxviii. 18-20, which cannot be interpreted
+of the apostles' persons only; for they were not to live till the
+world's end, but are dead and gone long ago; but of the apostles and
+their successors, the ministers of the gospel to the world's end; now to
+whom the promise of Christ's presence is here to be applied, to them the
+precept of baptizing and teaching is intended by clear consequence and
+deduction. So, infants of Christian parents under the New Testament are
+commanded to be baptized by consequence; for that the infants of God's
+people under the Old Testament were commanded to be circumcised, Gen.
+xvii.; for, the privileges of believers under the New Testament are as
+large as the privileges of believers under the Old Testament: and the
+children of believers under the New Testament are federally holy, and
+within the covenant of God, as well as the children of believers under
+the Old Testament, Gen. xvii., compared with Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor. vii.
+14: and what objections can be made from infants' incapacity now,
+against their baptism, might as well then have been made against their
+being circumcised: and why children should once be admitted to the
+initiating sacrament, and not still be admitted to the like initiating
+sacrament, (the Lord of the covenant and sacrament nowhere forbidding
+them,) there can be no just ground. And baptism succeeds in the room of
+circumcision, Col. ii. 11, 12. _Thus in case of the Lord's supper_,
+apostles were commanded to dispense it, and men commanded to receive it.
+"Do ye this in remembrance of me," Matt, xxvi., 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25; yet
+by consequence, the ministers of the gospel succeeding the apostles,
+being stewards of the mysteries of God, have the same charge laid upon
+them; and women as well as men are enjoined to keep that sacrament,
+whole families communicating in the passover, the forerunner of the
+Lord's supper, Exod. xiv., and male and female being _all one in
+Christ_, Gal. iii. 28. _Thus in case of the maintenance of ministers
+under the New Testament_: the apostle proves it by consequence to be
+commanded, God hath ordained, &c., from God's command of not _muzzling
+the ox that treads out the corn_, and of maintaining the priests under
+the Old Testament, 1 Cor. ix. 14, &c.; l Tim. v. 17, 18. And thus, in
+case of church polity, the Hebrews are commanded to obey and be
+subordinate to their rulers in the Lord, Heb. xiii. 17; consequently,
+other churches are commanded not only to have rulers, but to obey and
+submit to their rule and government. Timothy is commanded to lay hands
+_suddenly on none_, &c., in ordaining of preaching elders, 1 Tim. v. 21,
+22; consequently, such as succeed Timothy in ordaining of preaching
+elders are enjoined therein to do nothing suddenly, hastily, &c., but
+upon mature deliberation. The apostle commands, that men must _first be
+proved, and found blameless, before they execute the deacon's office_, 1
+Tim. iii. 10; by consequence, it is much more necessarily commanded,
+that ruling elders should first be proved, and be found blameless,
+before they exercise rule; and that ministers be examined, and found
+blameless, before they be ordained to or execute the ministerial
+function, for these offices are of greater and higher concernment than
+the deacon's office.
+
+2. Mediate divine commands, which are mediately from God, but
+immediately from men; and these come under a double consideration, being
+either,
+
+1. Such commands whose general principles are immediately the Lord's,
+yet accommodations and determinations of particulars are from men, by
+apparent deductions from those grounds. Of such the apostle saith, "But
+to the rest speak I, not the Lord," 1 Cor. vii. 12; not that Paul
+delivered any commands merely of his own head, (for he had "obtained
+mercy of the Lord to be faithful," ver. 25, and did _think that he had
+the Spirit of the Lord_, ver. 40,) but grounded his commands upon the
+word of God, whereof the apostle was the interpreter. The case is
+concerning divorce when it fell out that believer and unbeliever were
+married together: the Lord had given general rules about divorce, but no
+particular rule about this case, (it being not incident to the Jews;)
+the apostle, therefore, accommodates the general rule to the particular
+case; he, not the Lord, determined the particular. This sound
+interpreters conceive to be the apostle's meaning: Thus the apostle,
+treating of order in public assemblies, saith, "The prophet and the
+spiritual man must acknowledge the things which I write, to be the
+commandments of the Lord," 1 Cor. xiv. 37. Understand it mediately, as
+being agreeable to the Lord's principles revealed: for otherwise how
+should the prophet know what the Lord immediately revealed to the
+apostle? or why should we think it probable that what Paul here speaks
+of order and decency in church assemblies, was immediately and expressly
+delivered him by speech or revelation from the Lord, seeing these
+particulars have such easy and apparent deduction from general
+principles, and revelations are not unnecessarily multiplied? Yet these
+particular deductions and determinations are here styled the
+commandments of the Lord.
+
+2. Such commands, which are accidental and occasional, whose grounds and
+general principles are also the Lord's; yet determination or deduction
+of particulars can hardly be made, but in such emergent cases and
+occasions accidentally falling out, as necessitate thereunto. As in that
+case, Acts xv., when the synod commands abstinence _from blood, and
+things strangled_, and that necessarily, (though the Levitical law was
+now abrogated,) because the common use thereof by accident grew very
+scandalous: therefore, by the law of charity, the use of Christian
+liberty is to be suspended, when otherwise the scandal of my brother is
+endangered; yet from any ground of equity to have provided such a
+particular rule as this, without such a case occurring, would scarce
+have been possible. Now the synod saith of this determination, "It
+seemed good unto the Holy Ghost, and unto us," Acts xv. And another
+synod, walking by the like light and rule of the Scripture as they did,
+may say of themselves as the apostles said.
+
+
+
+
+PART II.
+
+OF THE NATURE OF THAT CHURCH GOVERNMENT WHICH IS OF DIVINE RIGHT,
+ACCORDING TO SCRIPTURE.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I.
+
+_The Description of Church Government._
+
+
+The nature of that church government which is of divine right according
+to Scripture, comes next to be considered; (having so fully seen what
+the nature of a divine right is, and how many several ways matters in
+religion may be said to be of divine right.) For the fuller and clearer
+unfolding whereof, let us first see how church government may be
+described; and then how that description may be explained and justified
+by the word of God, in the branches of it.
+
+Church government may be thus described:
+
+Church government is a power[13] or authority spiritual,[14] revealed in
+the holy Scriptures,[15] derived from Jesus Christ[16] our Mediator,[17]
+only to his own officers, and by them exercised in dispensing of the
+word,[18] seals,[19] censures,[20] and all other ordinances of
+Christ,[21] for the edifying of the Church of Christ.[22]
+
+This description of church government may be thus explained and proved.
+Three things are principally considerable herein, viz: 1. The thing
+defined, or described, viz. church government. 2. The general nature of
+this government which it hath in common with all other governments, viz.
+power or authority.
+
+3. The special difference whereby it is distinguished from all other
+governments whatsoever. Herein six things are observable. 1. The special
+rule, wherein it is revealed, and whereby it is to be measured, viz. the
+holy Scriptures. 2. The proper author, or fountain, whence this power is
+derived, viz. from Jesus Christ our Mediator, peculiarly. 3. The special
+kind of this power or authority, viz. it is a spiritual power, it is a
+derived power. 4. The several parts or acts wherein this power sets
+forth itself, viz. in dispensing the word, seals, censures, and all
+other ordinances of Christ. 5. The special end or scope of this power,
+viz. the edifying of the Church of Christ. 6. The proper and distinct
+subject or receptacle wherein Christ hath placed and intrusted all this
+power, viz. only his own officers. All these things are comprehended in
+this description, and unto these several heads the whole nature of
+church government may be reduced. So that, these being explained and
+confirmed by the Scriptures, it will easily and fully be discovered,
+what that church government is which is of divine right, and by the will
+and appointment of Jesus Christ, our Mediator.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II.
+
+_Of the Subject Described, viz. Church Government, the terms being
+briefly opened._
+
+
+Touching the thing defined or described, it is church government. Here
+two terms are to be a little explained: 1. What is meant by church? 2.
+What is meant by government?
+
+1. Church is originally derived from a Greek word,[23] which signifies
+to call forth. Hence church properly signifies a company or multitude,
+called forth; and so in this notation of the word, three things are
+implied: 1. The term from which they are called. 2. The term to which
+they are called. 3. The medium or mean by which they are brought from
+one term to another, viz. by calling. And these things thus generally
+laid down, do agree to every company that may properly be called a
+church. Now, this word translated church, never signifies one particular
+person, but many congregated, gathered, or called together; and it hath
+several acceptations or uses in the New Testament: 1. It is used in a
+common and civil sense, for any civil meeting, or concourse of people
+together: thus that tumultuous and riotous assembly is called a church,
+Acts xix. 32, 39, 40. 2. It is used in a special religious sense, for a
+sacred meeting or assembly of God's people together: and thus it
+signifies the Church of God, either, 1. Invisible, comprehending only
+the elect of God, as Heb. xii. 23, "and Church of the first-born," Eph.
+v. 23, &c., "Even as Christ is the head of the Church." 2. Or, visible,
+comprehending the company of those that are called to the visible
+profession of the faith in Christ, and obedience unto Christ, according
+to the gospel, as Acts ii. 47, and v. 11, and viii. 3, and xii. 1, 5; 1
+Cor. xii. 23, and often elsewhere. Now in this description, church is
+not understood of a civil assembly; for such assemblies are governed by
+civil power. Nor of the invisible Church of Christ; for, as the Church
+is invisible, (to speak properly,) it is invisibly governed by Christ
+and his Spirit, Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20. But of the visible Church of
+Christ, for which Christ hath provided a visible polity, a visible
+government, by visible officers and ordinances, for the good both of the
+visible and invisible members thereof, which is that church government
+here spoken of.
+
+2. Government is the translation of a Greek word, which properly
+signifies the government of a ship with chart, &c., by the pilot or
+mariner, and thence metaphorically is used to signify any government,
+political or ecclesiastical. But the word is only once used in all the
+New Testament, viz. 1 Cor. xii. 28: _Governments_, h.e. ruling elders in
+the church; the abstract being put for the concrete, governments for
+governors. But whatever be the terms or names whereby government is
+expressed, government generally considered seems still to signify a
+superiority of office, power, and authority, which one hath and
+exerciseth over another. This is the notion of government in general. So
+that church government, in general, notes that pre-eminence or
+superiority of office, power, and authority, which some have and
+exercise over others in spiritual matters, in church affairs. And here
+we are further to consider, that church government is either, 1.
+Magisterial, lordly, and supreme; and so it is primitively and
+absolutely in God, Matt. xxviii. 18. Dispensatorily and mediatorily in
+Jesus Christ our Mediator only, whom God hath made both Lord and Christ,
+Acts ii. 36; Matt, xxiii. 8, 10; 1 Cor. viii. 6, and to whom God alone
+hath dispensed all authority and power, Matt, xxviii. 18, 19; John v.
+22. Now church government, as settled on Christ only, is monarchical. 2.
+Ministerial, stewardly, and subordinate; and this power Jesus Christ our
+Mediator hath committed to his church guides and officers in his Church,
+2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and church government, as intrusted in the
+hands of church guides, is representative. This ministerial church
+government, committed by Christ to his officers, may be considered
+either, 1. As it was dispensed under the Old Testament, in a Mosaical,
+Levitical polity; in which sense we here speak not of church government;
+(that polity being dissolved and antiquated.) 2. Or, as it is to be
+dispensed now under the New Testament, in an evangelical Christian
+polity, by Christ's New Testament officers; and this is that church
+government which is here described, viz. not the supreme magisterial
+government of Christ, but the subordinate ministerial government of
+Christ's officers; and this not as it was under the Old Testament, but
+as it ought to be now under the New Testament.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III.
+
+_Of the general Nature of Church Government, viz. Power or Authority._
+
+
+Touching the general nature of this government, which it participates in
+common with all other governments, it is power or authority. Here divers
+particulars are to be cleared and proved, viz:
+
+1. What is meant by power or authority? The word chiefly used in the New
+Testament for power or authority is used not only to denote Christ's
+supreme power, as Luke iv. 36; Mark i. 17, with Luke vi. 19; but also
+his officers' derived power, as with 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10. It is
+used to signify divers things: as, 1. Dignity, privilege, prerogative.
+"To them he gave prerogative to be the sons of God," John i. 12. 2.
+Liberty, leave, license; as, 1 Cor. viii. 9, "But so that your liberty
+become not an offence to the weak;" and 1 Cor. ix. 4, 5, "Have not we
+liberty to eat and drink? Have not we liberty to lead about a sister, a
+wife?" 3. But most usually right and authority; as, Matt. xxi. 23, 24,
+27, and xxviii. 18; so 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: in this last sense
+especially it is here to be taken in this description of church
+government.
+
+Power or authority in general is by some[24] thus described: that
+whereby one may claim or challenge any thing to one's self, without the
+injury of any other. Power is exercised either about things, or actions,
+or persons. 1. About things, as when a man disposes of his own goods,
+which he may do without wrong to any. 2. About actions, as when a man
+acts that which offends no law. 3. About persons, as when a man commands
+his children or servants that are under his own power.--Proportionably,
+the power of the Church in government is exercised, 1. About things, as
+when it is to be determined by the word, what the Church may call her
+own of right; as, that all the officers are hers, Eph; iv. 7, 8, 10, 11;
+1 Cor. xii. 28: that all the promises are hers, 2 Pet. i. 4; 1 Tim. iv.
+8: that Jesus Christ, and with Christ all things, are hers, 1 Cor. iii.
+21, 22. The keys of the kingdom of heaven are hers, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18, &c.; John xx. 21, 23, &c.: these things the Church may
+challenge without wrong to any. 2. About actions. As when it is to be
+determined by the word, what the Church of divine right may do, or not
+do: as, the Church may not _bear with them that are evil_, Rev. ii. 2;
+_nor tolerate women to teach_, or false doctrine to be broached, Rev.
+ii. 20, &c. The Church may _warn the unruly_, 1 Thess. v. 14:
+excommunicate the obstinate and incorrigible, Matt, xviii. 17, 18; 1
+Cor. v. 4, 5, 13: receive again penitent persons to the communion of the
+faithful, 2 Cor. ii. 7, 8: make binding decrees in synods, even to the
+restraining of the outward exercise of due Christian liberty for a time,
+for prevention of scandal, Acts xv. 3. About persons. The Church also
+hath a power to be exercised, for calling them to their duty, and
+keeping them in their duty according to the word of God: as, to _rebuke
+them before all_, that sin before all, 1 Tim. v. 20: to prove deacons,
+Acts vi. 2, 3, &c.; 1 Tim. iii. 10: _to ordain elders_, Tit. i. 5; Acts
+xiv. 23: to use the _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, in the dispensing
+of all ordinances, Matt, xviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt,
+xxviii. 18-20: and, in a word, (as the cause shall require,) to judge of
+all them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.
+
+This is the power and authority wherein the nature of church government
+generally doth consist.
+
+2. That all governments in Scripture are styled by the common names of
+power or authority: e.g. the absolute government of God over all things,
+is power, Acts i. 7: the supreme government of Jesus Christ, is power,
+Matt, xxviii. 18; Rev. xii. 10: the political government of the
+magistrate in commonwealths, is power, as John xix. 10; Rom. xiii. 1-3;
+Luke xxiii. 7: the military government of soldiers under superior
+commanders, is power, &c., Matt. viii. 9: the family government that the
+master of a family hath over his household, is power, 1 Tim. iii. 5, "If
+any man know not how to rule his own house." Yea, the very tyrannical
+rule that sin and Satan exercise over carnal men, is styled power, Acts
+xxvi. 18; Col. i. 13. Thus, generally, all sorts of government are
+commonly called power or authority.
+
+3. That thus the Scripture also styles church government, viz. power or
+authority, as 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority" (or power) "which the Lord
+hath given us for your edification." Paul speaks it of this power of
+church government. And again, speaking of the same subject, he saith,
+"Lest being present, I should use sharpness, according to the power
+which the Lord hath given me to edification, and not to destruction." 2
+Cor. xiii. 10.
+
+For further clearing hereof, consider the several sorts or kinds of
+ecclesiastical power, according to this type or scheme of ecclesiastical
+power and authority here subjoined.
+
+Ecclesiastical power is either supreme and magisterial; or subordinate
+and ministerial.
+
+I. Supreme magisterial power, consisting in a lordly dominion and
+sovereignty over the Church; and may come under a double consideration,
+viz:
+
+1. As it is justly attributed to God alone. Thus the absolute
+sovereignty and supreme power (to speak properly) is only his over the
+Church, and all creatures in the whole universe: now this supreme divine
+power is either essential or mediatorial.
+
+1. Essential, viz. that power which belongs to the essence of God, and
+to every person of the Trinity in common, as God. "His kingdom ruleth
+over all," Psal. ciii. 19. "God ruleth in Jacob to the ends of the
+earth," Psal. lix. 13. "The kingdom is the Lord's, and he is the
+Governor among the nations," Psal. xxii. 28.
+
+2. Mediatorial, viz. that magisterial, lordly, and sovereign power or
+dominion, which God hath dispensed, delegated, or committed to Christ as
+Mediator, being both head of the Church, and over all things to the
+Church. This power is peculiar only to Jesus Christ our Mediator. "All
+power is given to me both in heaven and in earth," Matt. xxviii. 18.
+"The Father loveth the Son, and hath given all things into his hand,"
+John iii. 35. "The Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all
+judgment to the Son," John v. 22. "One is your Master, even Christ,"
+Matt. xxiii. 8, 10. "God hath put all things under his feet, and gave
+him to be head over all things to the Church," Eph. i. 20-23.--This
+power of Christ is the only proper fountain whence all ecclesiastical
+power flows to the Church.
+
+II. As it is unjustly arrogated and usurped by man; whether, 1. By the
+pope to himself; who arrogates to himself to be Christ's vicar, the
+supreme visible head on earth of the visible catholic Church of Christ;
+who exalts himself above all that is called God on earth, over
+magistrates, princes, kings, yea, over the souls and consciences of
+men, and the holy Scriptures of God themselves, &c., 2 Thess. ii. 4;
+Rev. xviii. 10-13.
+
+2. By earthly princes to themselves: as, King Henry VIII., who, casting
+off the papal power and primacy, was vested with it himself within his
+own dominions, over the Church, accounting himself the fountain of all
+ecclesiastical power, (it being by statute law annexed to the crown,)
+and assuming to himself that papal title of supreme head of the Church,
+&c., which is sharply taxed by orthodox divines of foreign churches.
+Thus, that most learned Rivet, taxing Bishop Gardiner for extolling the
+king's primacy, saith, "For, he that did as yet nourish the doctrine of
+the papacy, as after it appeared, did erect a new papacy in the person
+of the king."--Andrew Rivet, _Expli. Decalog. Edit._ ii. page 203.
+Judicious Calvin saith thus: "And to this day how many are there in the
+papacy that heap upon kings whatsoever right and power they can
+possibly, so that there may not be any dispute of religion; but should
+this power be in one king, to decree according to his own pleasure
+whatsoever he pleaseth, and that should remain fixed without
+controversy? They that at first so much extolled Henry, king of England,
+(certainly they were inconsiderate men,) gave unto him supreme power of
+all things, and this grievously wounded me always; for they were
+blasphemers, when they called him the supreme head of the Church under
+Christ: certainly this was too much. But let this remain buried, because
+they sinned by an inconsiderate zeal. But when that impostor, (he means
+Bishop Gardiner, as Rivet notes,) which after was chancellor of this
+Proserpina, which there at this day overcometh all the devils, he when
+he was at Ratisbon did not contend with reasons, (I speak of this last
+chancellor, who was Bishop of Winchester,) but as I now began to say, he
+much regarded not scripture testimonies; but said, it was at the
+pleasure of the king to abrogate the statutes, and institute new rites.
+Touching fasting, there the king can enjoin and command the people, that
+this or that day the people may eat flesh: yea, that it is lawful for
+the king to forbid priests to marry; yea, that it is lawful for the king
+to forbid to the people the use of the cup in the Lord's supper; that it
+is lawful for the king to decree this or that in his kingdom. Why?
+Because the king hath the supreme power. It is certain, if kings do
+their duty, they are both patrons of religion, and nurse-fathers of the
+Church, as Isaiah calls them, Isa. xlix. 23. This, therefore, is
+principally required of kings, that they use the sword wherewith they
+are furnished, for the maintaining of God's worship. But in the mean
+time there are inconsiderate men, that make them too spiritual; and this
+fault reigns up and down Germany; yea, spreads too much in
+these countries. And now we perceive what fruits spring from this root,
+viz: that princes, and all that are in place of government, think
+themselves to be so spiritual, that there is no other ecclesiastical
+government. And this sacrilege creeps among us, because they cannot
+measure their office with certain and lawful bounds, but are of opinion
+they cannot reign, unless they abolish all the authority of the Church,
+and become the chief judges both in doctrine, and in the whole spiritual
+government. At the beginning they pretend some zeal; but mere ambition
+drives them, that so solicitously they snatch all things to themselves.
+Therefore there ought to be a temper kept; for this disease hath always
+reigned in princes, to desire to bend religion according to their own
+pleasure and lust, and for their own profits in the mean time. For they
+have respect to their profit, because for the most part they are not
+acted by the Spirit of God, but their ambition carries them." Thus
+Calvin in Amos vii. 13. Oh what exclamations would this holy man have
+poured out, had he lived to see the passages of our days! _Quis talia
+fando temperet a lachrymis!_[25]
+
+II. Subordinate ministerial power, which is either,
+
+1. Indirectly, improperly, and only objectively ecclesiastical or
+spiritual, (so called, because it is exercised about spiritual or
+ecclesiastical objects, though formally in its own nature it be properly
+a mere civil or political power.) This is that power which is allowed to
+the civil magistrate about religion; he is _an overseer of things
+without the Church_, having an external care of religion as a
+_nurse-father_, Isa. xlix. 23; as had Hezekiah, Josiah, Asa,
+Jehoshaphat, &c.; so as, by the law, to restore religion decayed, reform
+the Church corrupted, protect the Church reformed, &c.
+
+2. Directly, properly, and formally ecclesiastical or spiritual, having
+respect properly to matters within the Church. This power only belongs
+to church officers, who are overseers of things within, 1 Cor. iv. 20,
+21; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and this is either, 1. More special and
+peculiar to the office of some church governors only, as the power of
+preaching the gospel, dispensing the sacraments, &c., which is only
+committed to the ministers of the gospel, and which they, as ministers,
+may execute, in virtue of their office. This is called by some the key
+of doctrine, or key of knowledge; by others, the power of order, or of
+special office. See Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Rom. x. 15; 1 Tim. v. 17. 2.
+More general and common to the office of all church governors, as the
+power of censures, &c., wherein ruling elders act with ministers,
+admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the incorrigible, remitting and
+receiving again of the penitent into church communion. Compare Matt,
+xviii. 17, 18; 1 Cor. v. 2, 4, 5, 7, 11-13; 2 Cor. ii. 6-12, with Rom.
+xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and 1 Tim. v. 17. This is called the key of
+discipline, or power of jurisdiction.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV.
+
+_Of the special difference of Church Government from other Governments.
+And first of the Special Rule of Church Government, viz. the Holy
+Scriptures._
+
+
+Touching the special difference, whereby church government is in this
+description distinguished from all other governments whatsoever, it
+consists of many branches, which will require more large explication and
+confirmation; and shall be handled, not according to that order, as they
+are first named in the description, but according to the order of
+nature, as they most conduce to the clearing of one another, every
+branch being distinctly laid down, as followeth:
+
+The rule or standard of church government is only the holy Scriptures.
+Thus in the description, church government is styled a power or
+authority revealed in the holy Scriptures. For clearing hereof, take
+this proposition, viz:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a perfect and
+sufficient rule for the government of his visible Church under the New
+Testament, which all the members of his Church ought to observe and
+submit unto until the end of the world. For clearing this, weigh these
+considerations:
+
+1. The government of the visible Church under the New Testament is as
+needful as ever it was under the Old Testament. What necessity of
+government could be pleaded then, which may not as strongly be pleaded
+now? Is not the visible Church of Christ a mixed body of sound and
+unsound members, of fruitful and barren branches, of tares and wheat, of
+good and bad, of sincere believers and hypocrites, of sheep and goats,
+&c., now as well as it was then? Is there not as great cause to separate
+and distinguish by church power, between the precious and the vile, the
+clean and the unclean, (who are apt to defile, infect, and leaven one
+another,) now as well as then? Ought there not to be as great care over
+the holy ordinances of God, to preserve and guard them from contempt and
+pollution, by a hedge and fence of government, now as well as then? Is
+it not as necessary that by government sin be suppressed, piety
+promoted, and the Church edified, now as well as then? But under the Old
+Testament the Church visible had a perfect rule of church government,
+(as is granted on all sides:) and hath Jesus Christ left his Church now
+under the New Testament in a worse condition?
+
+2. The Lord Jesus Christ (upon whose shoulder God hath laid the
+government, Isa. ix. 6, and unto whom _all power both in heaven and in
+earth is given_ by the Father to that end, Matt. xxviii. 18) _is most
+faithful in all his house_, the Church, fully to discharge all the trust
+committed to him, and completely to supply his Church with all
+necessaries both to her being, and well-being ecclesiastical. Moses was
+faithful in the Old Testament; for, as God gave him a pattern of church
+government in the ceremonial law, so he did all things according to the
+pattern; and shall the Lord Jesus be less faithful as _a son over his
+own house,_ than was Moses as a servant over another's house? "Consider
+the Apostle and High Priest of our profession, Christ Jesus, who was
+faithful to him that appointed him, as also Moses was faithful in all
+his house--and Moses verily was faithful in all his house as a
+servant--but Christ as a son over his own house, whose house are we,"
+Heb. iii. 1, 2, 5, 6. Yea, "Jesus Christ, the same yesterday, and
+to-day, and forever," Heb. xiii. 8, giving a pattern of church
+government to Moses, and the church officers of the Old Testament, (the
+Church being then as a child in nonage and minority, Gal, iv. 1, &c.,)
+can we imagine he hath not as carefully left a pattern of church
+government to his apostles, and the church officers of the New
+Testament, the Church being now as a man come to full age and maturity?
+
+3. The holy Scriptures are now completely and unalterably perfect,
+containing such exact rules for the churches of God in all states and
+ages, both under the Old and New Testament, that not only the people of
+God, of all sorts and degrees, but also the men of God, and officers of
+the Church, of all sorts and ages, may thereby be made perfect,
+thoroughly furnished unto all good works. "The law of the Lord is
+perfect," Psal. xix. 7. "All Scripture is given by inspiration of God,
+and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for
+instruction in righteousness, that the man of God may be perfect,
+thoroughly furnished to every good work," 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17. And in his
+first epistle to Timothy, (which is the Church's directory for divine
+worship, discipline, and government,) he saith, "These things write I
+unto thee--that thou mightest know how thou oughtest to behave thyself
+in the house of God, which is the Church of the living God," (this is
+spoken in reference to matters of church government peculiarly,) 1 Tim.
+iii. 14, 15. And the apostle, having respect to the former matters in
+his epistle, saith to Timothy, and to all Timothies after him, "I give
+thee charge in the sight of God--that thou keep this commandment without
+spot, unrebukable, until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ,"
+(therefore, this charge is intended for all ministers after Timothy to
+the world's end,) 1 Tim. vi. 13, 14, compared with 1 Tim. v. 21, observe
+_these things_. And the perfection of the whole scripture canon is
+sealed up with that testimony in the close of the last book, "If any man
+shall add unto these things, God shall add unto him the plagues that are
+written in this book: and if any man shall take away from the words of
+the book of this prophecy, God shall take away his part out of the book
+of life, and out of the holy city, and from the things which are written
+in this book," Rev. xxii. 18, 19. Now, if the Scriptures be thus
+accurately perfect and complete, they must needs contain a sufficient
+pattern, and rules of church government now under the New Testament;
+which rules are scattered here and there in several books of the word,
+(as flowers grow scattered in the field, as silver is mingled in the
+mine, or as gold is mixed with the sand,) that so God may exercise his
+Church, in sifting and searching them out.
+
+4. All the substantials of church government under the New Testament are
+laid down in the word in particular rules, whether they be touching
+officers, ordinances, censures, assemblies, and the compass of their
+power, as after will appear; and all the circumstantials are laid down
+in the word, under general rules of order, decency, and edification, 1
+Cor, xiv. 40, and ver. 5,12, 26.
+
+Consequently, there is a perfect and sufficient rule for church
+government laid down in the Scriptures, which is obligatory upon all.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V.
+
+_Of the Proper Author or Fountain, whence Church Government and the
+authority thereof is derived by Divine Right, viz. Jesus Christ our
+Mediator._
+
+
+As the Scripture is the rule of church government, so Christ is the sole
+root and fountain whence it originally flows; therefore, it is said in
+the description, church government is a power or authority, derived from
+Jesus Christ our Mediator. Take it in this proposition, viz:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath all authority and power in heaven and in
+earth, for the government of his Church, committed unto him from God the
+Father. This is clearly evident,
+
+1. By plain testimonies of Scripture, declaring that the government of
+the Church is laid upon his shoulder, to which end the Father hath
+invested him with all authority and power. "The government shall be upon
+his shoulder," &c., Isa. ix. 6,7. "All power is given me in heaven and in
+earth: go, disciple ye all nations," &c., Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. "He shall
+be great, and shall be called the Son of the Highest, and the Lord God
+shall give unto him the throne of his father David; and he shall reign
+over the house of Jacob forever, and of his kingdom there shall be no
+end," Luke i. 32, 33. "The Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all
+judgment to the Son; and hath given him authority to execute judgment
+also, because he is the Son of man," John v. 22, 27. "The Father loveth
+the Son, and hath given all things into his hand," John iii. 35. "It is
+he that hath the key of David, that openeth and no man shutteth, and
+shutteth and no man openeth," Rev. iii. 7. "God raised him from the
+dead, and set him at his own right hand in the heavenly places, far
+above all principality, and power, and might, and dominion, and every
+name that is named, not only in this world, but also in that which is to
+come: and hath put all things under his feet, and gave him to be the
+head over all things to the Church, which is his body," Eph. i. 20-23,
+
+2. By eminent princely titles, attributed unto Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, having such authority, power, rule, and government legibly
+engraven upon their foreheads, in reference to his Church.
+
+"A Governor which shall feed" (or rule) "my people Israel," Matt. ii. 6.
+"That great Shepherd of the sheep," Heb. xiii. 20. "That Shepherd and
+Bishop of our souls," 1 Pet. ii. ult. "One is your master, Christ,"
+Matt, xxiii. 8, 10. "Christ as a son over his own house," Heb. iii. 6.
+"The Head of the body the Church," Col. i. 18; Eph. v. 23. "Head over
+all things to the Church," Eph. i. 22. "To us but one Lord Jesus
+Christ," 1 Cor. viii. 6. "Made of God both Lord and Christ," Acts ii.
+36. "Lord of lords," Rev. xix. 16. "He is Lord of all," Acts x. 36.
+"God's King set on his holy hill of Zion," Psal. ii. 6. "David their
+king," Jer. xxx. 9; Ezek. xxxiv. 23, and xxxvii. 24; Hos. iii. 5. "King
+of kings," Rev. xix. 16.
+
+3. By those primitive, fundamental, imperial acts of power, and supreme
+authority in the government of the Church, which are peculiarly ascribed
+to Jesus Christ our Mediator, as appropriate to him alone, above all
+creatures, e.g.
+
+1. The giving of laws to his Church. "The law of Christ," Gal. vi. 2.
+"Gave commandments to the apostles," Acts i. 2. "There is one Lawgiver,
+who is able to save and to destroy," James iv. 12. "The Lord is our
+judge, the Lord is our lawgiver," (or statute-maker,) "the Lord is our
+king," Isa. xxxiii. 22.
+
+2. The constituting of ordinances, whereby his Church shall be edified:
+as _preaching the word_, Matt. x. 7; 1 Cor. i. 17; Matt, xxviii. 18-20;
+Mark xvi. 15. _Administering of the sacraments. Baptism_, John i. 33,
+with Matt. iii. 13, &c., and xxviii. 18, 19. _The Lord's supper_, 1 Cor.
+xi. 20, 23, &c.; Matt. xxvi. 26, &c.; Mark xiv. 22, &c.; Luke xxii. 19,
+20. _Dispensing of censures_, Matt. xvi. 10, with xviii. 15-18, &c.
+
+3. The ordaining and appointing of his own church officers, by whom his
+ordinances shall be dispensed and managed in his Church. "He gave gifts
+to men; and he gave some, apostles; and some, prophets; and some,
+evangelists; and some, pastors and teachers," Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11; compare
+1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Thess. v. 12; Acts xx. 28.
+
+4. The dispensing of Christ's ordinances, not in the name of
+magistrates, ministers, churches, councils, &c., but in Christ's own
+name. The apostles did "speak and teach in the name of Jesus," Acts iv.
+17, 18. "Whatsoever ye ask in my name," John xiv. 13, 14, and xvi. 23.
+"Baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son," Matt,
+xxviii. 18, 19. "They were baptized in the name of the Lord Jesus," Acts
+xix. 5. "In the name--with the power of our Lord Jesus Christ, to
+deliver such a one to Satan," 1 Cor. v. 4. Yea, assemblies of the Church
+are to be in Christ's name: "Where two or three are gathered together in
+my name," Matt, xviii. 20.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI.
+
+_Of the Special Kind, or Peculiar Nature of this Power and Authority._
+
+
+Having viewed what is the rule of this authority, viz. the holy
+Scriptures, and what is the fountain of this authority, viz. Jesus
+Christ our Mediator; now consider the special kind or peculiar nature of
+this authority, which the description lays down in two several
+expressions, viz: 1. It is a spiritual power or authority. 2. It is a
+derived power, &c.
+
+1. The power or authority of church government is a spiritual power.
+Spiritual, not so perfectly and completely as Christ's supreme
+government is spiritual, who alone hath absolute and immediate power and
+authority over the very spirits and consciences of men; ruling them by
+the invisible influence of his Spirit and grace as he pleaseth, John
+iii. 8; Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20: but so purely, properly, and merely
+spiritual is this power, that it really, essentially, and specifically
+differs, and is contradistinct from that power which is properly civil,
+worldly, and political, in the hand of the political magistrate. Now,
+that this power of church government is in this sense properly, purely,
+merely spiritual: and that by divine right may be evidenced many ways
+according to Scripture; forasmuch as the rule, fountain, matter, form,
+subject, object, end, and the all of this power, is only spiritual.
+
+1. Spiritual in the rule, revealing and regulating it, viz. not any
+principles of state policy, parliament rolls, any human statutes, laws,
+ordinances, edicts, decrees, traditions, or precepts of men whatsoever,
+according to which cities, provinces, kingdoms, empires, may be happily
+governed: but the holy Scriptures, that perfect divine canon, wherein
+the Lord Christ hath revealed sufficiently how his own house, his
+Church, shall be ruled, 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15; and all his ordinances,
+word, sacraments, censures, &c., shall therein be dispensed, 2 Tim. iii.
+16, 17. (See chap. IV.) Now this Scripture is divinely breathed, or
+inspired of God--holy men writing not according to the fallible will of
+man, but the infallible acting of the Holy Ghost, 2 Tim. iii. 16, with 2
+Pet. i. 20, 21.
+
+2. Spiritual in the fountain or author of this power, whence it
+originally flows; it being derived, not from any magistrate, prince, or
+potentate in the world, not from any man on earth, or the will of man;
+but only from Jesus Christ our Mediator, himself being the sole or first
+receptacle of all power from the Father, Matt. xxviii. 18; John v. 22:
+and consequently, the very fountain of all power and authority to his
+Church, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, with John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18-20; 2 Cor. x. 8. See this formerly cleared, chap. III. and V.
+
+3. Spiritual in the matter of it, and the several parts of this power:
+therefore called the _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, not the keys of
+the kingdoms of earth, Matt. xvi. 19, (as Christ professed his _kingdom
+was not of this world_, John xviii. 36; and when one requested of
+Christ, that by his authority he would speak to his brother to divide
+the inheritance with him, Christ disclaimed utterly all such worldly,
+earthly power, saying, "Man, who made me a judge or a divider over you?"
+Luke xii. 13, 14.) Consider these heavenly spiritual keys in the kinds
+of them, whether of doctrine or discipline; or in the acts of them,
+whether of binding or loosing, in all which they are spiritual: e.g. the
+doctrine which is preached is not human but divine, revealed in the
+Scriptures by the Spirit of God, and handling most sublime spiritual
+mysteries of religion, 2 Pet. i.; 2 Tim. iii. 16,17. The seals
+administered are not worldly seals, confirming and ratifying any carnal
+privileges, liberties, interests, authority, &c., but spiritual,
+_sealing the righteousness of faith_, Rom. iv. 11; the death and blood
+of Jesus Christ, with all the spiritual virtue and efficacy thereof unto
+his members, Rom. v. 6; Gal. iii.; 1 Cor. x. 16, 17, and xi. 23, 24, &c.
+The censures dispensed are not pecuniary, corporal, or capital, by
+fines, confiscations, imprisonments, whippings, stocking, stigmatizing,
+or taking away of limb or life, (all such things this government meddles
+not withal, but leaves them to such as bear the civil sword,) but
+spiritual, that only concern the soul and conscience; as _admonishing_
+of the unruly and disorderly, Matt, xviii. 18, 19; _casting out the
+incorrigible_ and obstinate from the spiritual fellowship of the saints,
+Matt. xviii. 18, 19; 2 Cor. v. ult.: _receiving again into spiritual
+communion_ of the faithful, such as are penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 6. Thus the
+binding and loosing, which are counted the chief acts of the keys, are
+spiritually by our Saviour interpreted to be the _remitting and
+retaining of sins_; compare Matt, xviii. 18, 19, with John xx. 21, 23.
+
+4. Spiritual in the form and manner, as well as in the matter. For this
+power is to be exercised, not in a natural manner, or in any carnal
+name, of earthly magistrate, court, parliament, prince, or potentate
+whatsoever, as all secular civil power is; no, nor in the name of
+saints, ministers, or the churches: but in a spiritual manner, in the
+name of the Lord Jesus, from whom alone all his officers receive their
+commissions. The word is to be _preached in his name_, Acts xvii. 18:
+seals dispensed in his name, Matt. xxviii. 19; Acts xix. 5: censures
+inflicted in his name, 1 Cor. v. 4, &c. (See chap. V.)
+
+5. Spiritual in the subject intrusted with this power; which is not any
+civil, political, or secular magistrate, (as after will more fully
+appear, in chap. IX.) but spiritual officers, which Christ himself hath
+instituted and bestowed upon his Church, _apostles_, &c., _pastors,
+teachers, elders_, Eph. iv. 7, 8, 10, 11. To these only he hath given
+the _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18,19,
+and xxviii. 18, 19; John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, _authority which the
+Lord hath given us_. These he hath made _governments in his Church_, 1
+Cor. xii. 28. To these he will have _obedience and subjection_
+performed, Heb. xiii. 17, and _double honor_ allowed, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+
+6. Spiritual in respect of the object about which this power is to be
+put forth and exercised, viz. not about things, actions, or persons
+civil, as such; but spiritual and ecclesiastical, as such. Thus
+injurious actions, not as trespasses against any statute or law
+political; but as scandalous to our brethren, or the Church of God,
+Matt, xviii. 18, 19; are considered and punished by this power. Thus the
+incestuous person was cast out, because a wicked person in himself, and
+likely to leaven others by his bad example, 1 Cor. v. 6. Thus the
+persons whom the Church may judge are not the men of the world without
+the Church, but those that are in some sense spiritual, and within the
+Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.
+
+7. Spiritual also is this power in the scope and end of it. This the
+Scripture frequently inculcates: e.g. a brother is to be admonished
+privately, publicly, &c., not for the gaining of our private interests,
+advantages, &c., but for _the gaining of our brother_, that his soul and
+conscience may be gained to God and to his duty, and he be reformed,
+Matt, xviii. 15. The incestuous person is to be "delivered to Satan, for
+the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day of
+our Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5; yea, the whole authority given to church
+guides from the Lord was given to this end, _for the edification, not
+the destruction_ of the Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; all which,
+and such like, are spiritual ends. Thus the power of church government
+here described is wholly and entirely a spiritual power, whether we
+respect the rule, root, matter, form, subject, object, or end thereof.
+So that in this respect it is really and specifically distinct from all
+civil power, and in no respect encroacheth upon, or can be prejudicial
+unto the magistrate's authority, which is properly and only political.
+
+2. The power or authority of church government is a derived power. For
+clearing this, observe, there is a magisterial primitive supreme power,
+which is peculiar to Jesus Christ our Mediator, (as hath been proved,
+chap. III. and V:) and there is a ministerial, derivative, subordinate
+power, which the Scripture declares to be in church guides, Matt. xvi.
+19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 23; Matt, xxviii. 19, 20; 2 Cor. x. 8,
+and xiii. 10, and often elsewhere this is abundantly testified. But
+whence is this power originally derived to them? Here we are carefully
+to consider and distinguish three things, touching this power or
+authority from one another, viz: 1st. The donation of the authority
+itself, and of the offices whereunto this power doth properly belong.
+2d. The designation of particular persons to such offices as are vested
+with such power. 3d. The public protection, countenancing, authorizing,
+defending, and maintaining of such officers in the public exercise of
+such power within such and such realms or dominions. This being
+premised, we may clearly thus resolve, according to scripture warrant,
+viz. the designation or setting apart of particular individual persons
+to those offices in the Church that have power and authority engraven
+upon them, is from the church nominating, electing, and ordaining of
+such persons thereunto, see Acts iii. 1-3; 1 Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22;
+Tit. i. 5; Acts iv. 22. The public protection, defence, maintenance,
+&c., of such officers in the public exercise of the power and authority
+of their office in such or such dominions, is from the civil magistrate,
+as the _nursing-father_ of the Church, Isa. xlix. 23; for it is by his
+authority and sanction that such public places shall be set apart for
+the public ministry, that such maintenance and reward shall be legally
+performed for such a ministry, that all such persons of such and such
+congregations shall be (in case they neglect their duty to such a
+ministry) punished with such political penalties, &c. But the donation
+of the office and spiritual authority annexed thereunto, is only derived
+from Jesus Christ our Mediator. He alone gives all church officers, and
+therefore none may devise or superadd any new officers, Eph. iv. 7, 8,
+10, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28. And he alone commits all authority and power
+spiritual to those officers, for dispensing of word, sacraments,
+censures, and all ordinances, Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18-20; John xx.
+21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: and therefore it is not safe for any
+creature to intrude upon this prerogative royal of Christ to give any
+power to any officer of the Church. None can give what he has not.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII.
+
+_Of the several Parts or Acts of this power of Church Government,
+wherein it puts forth itself in the Church._
+
+
+Thus far of the special kind or peculiar nature of this authority; now
+to the several parts or acts of this power which the description
+comprehends in these expressions, (in dispensing the word, seals,
+censures, and all other ordinances of Christ.) The evangelical
+ordinances which Christ has set up in his church are many; and all of
+them by divine right that Christ sets up. Take both the enumeration of
+ordinances and the divine right thereof severally, as followeth.
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath instituted and appointed these ensuing
+administrations to be standing and perpetual ordinances in his church:
+which ordinances for method sake may be reduced into two heads,
+according to the distribution of the keys formerly laid down, (chap.
+III.,) viz., ordinances appertaining, 1st, To the key of order or of
+doctrine; 2d, To the key of jurisdiction or of discipline.
+
+1. Ordinances appertaining to the key of order or doctrine, viz:
+
+1. Public prayer and thanksgiving are divine ordinances: for 1st, Paul
+writing his first epistle to Timothy, "that he might know how to behave
+himself in the house of God," 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15, among other directions
+in that epistle, gives this for one, "I exhort therefore that first of
+all supplications, prayers, intercessions, and giving of thanks be made
+for all men," 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2, "for this is good and acceptable in the
+sight of God our Saviour," verse 3. 2. The apostle, regulating public
+prayers in the congregation, directing that they should be performed
+with the understanding, takes it for granted that public prayer was an
+ordinance of Christ. "If I pray in an unknown tongue, my spirit prayeth,
+but my understanding is unfruitful. What is it then? I will pray with
+the spirit, and will pray with the understanding also. Else when thou
+shalt bless with the spirit, how shall he that occupieth the room of the
+unlearned, say amen at thy giving of thanks, seeing he understandeth not
+what thou sayest? for thou verily givest thanks well, but the other is
+not edified." 1 Cor. xiv. 14-17. 3. Further, the apostles did account
+public prayer to be of more concern than serving of tables, and
+providing for the necessities of the poor, yea, to be a principal part
+of their ministerial office, and therefore resolve to addict and "give
+themselves to the ministry of the word and to prayer," Acts vi. 4; and
+this was the church's practice in the purest times, Acts i. 13, 14,
+whose pious action is for our imitation. 4. And Jesus Christ hath made
+gracious promises to public prayer, viz., of his presence with those who
+assemble in his name; and of audience of their prayers, Matt, xviii. 19,
+20. Would Christ so crown public prayer were it not his own ordinance?
+
+2. Singing of psalms is a divine ordinance, being,
+
+1. Prescribed; "be filled with the spirit: speaking to yourselves in
+psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs," Eph. v. 18, 19. "Let the word
+of Christ dwell in you richly in all wisdom, teaching and admonishing
+one another in psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs," Col. iii. 16.
+
+2. Regulated; the right performance thereof being laid down, "I will
+sing with the spirit, and I will sing with the understanding also," 1
+Cor. xiv. 15, 16. "Singing with grace in your hearts to the Lord," Col.
+iii. 16. "Singing and making melody in your hearts to the Lord," Eph. v.
+19.
+
+3. The public ministry of the word of God in the congregation is a
+divine ordinance. "We will give ourselves," said the apostles, "to the
+ministry of the word and prayer," Acts vi. 4. The ministry of the word
+is a sacred ordinance, whether read, preached, or catechetically
+propounded.
+
+1. The public reading of the word is a divine ordinance, (though
+exposition of what is read do not always immediately follow.) For, 1.
+God commanded the reading of the word publicly, and never since repealed
+that command, Deut. xxxi. 11-13; Jer. xxxvi. 6; Col. iii. 16. 2. Public
+reading of the scriptures hath been the practice of God's church, both
+before Christ, Exod. xxiv. 7; Neh. viii. 18, and ix. 3, and xiii. 1; and
+after Christ, Acts xiii. 15, 27, and xv. 21; 2 Cor. iii. 14. 3. Public
+reading of the scriptures is as necessary and profitable now as ever it
+was. See Deut. xxxi. 11-13.
+
+2. The public preaching of the word is an eminent ordinance of Christ.
+This is evident many ways, viz:
+
+1. Christ hath commanded that the word shall be preached. "Go ye into
+all the world, and preach the gospel to every creature," Mark xvi. 15.
+"Go ye, therefore, and disciple ye all nations; teaching them to observe
+all things whatsoever I have commanded you," Matt, xxviii. 19, 20. "As
+ye go, preach, saying, The kingdom of heaven is at hand," Matt. x. 7.
+See also Mark iii. 14. "I charge thee," &c. "Preach the word," 2 Tim.
+iv. 1, 2. "Necessity is laid upon me, yea, wo is unto me if I preach not
+the gospel," 1 Cor. ix. 16, 17. "Christ sent me--to preach the gospel,"
+1 Cor. i. 17; with which compare also Acts xx. 28, and 1 Pet. v. 1-4.
+
+2. Christ hath appointed who shall preach the word. "How shall they
+preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15. The qualifications of preaching
+elders see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, and Tit. i. 5-9.
+
+3. Christ hath appointed how the word shall be preached. "Be instant, in
+season, out of season, reprove, rebuke, exhort with all long-suffering
+and doctrine," 2 Tim. iv. 2. "That he may be able by sound doctrine
+both to exhort and convince gainsayers," Tit. i. 9. "He that hath my
+word, let him speak my word faithfully: what is the chaff to the wheat,
+saith the Lord?" Jer. xxiii. 28.
+
+4. Christ hath made many encouraging promises to the preaching of his
+word, which he would not have done, were it not his own ordinance.
+"Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you,
+and lo I am with you every day to the end of the world," Matt, xxviii.
+20. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth, shall be bound in heaven; and
+whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven," Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted
+unto them: and whose soever sins ye retain, they are retained," John xx.
+23. Both these are partly meant of doctrinal binding and loosing,
+remitting and retaining. "Be not afraid, but speak, and hold not thy
+peace: for I am with thee, and no man shall set on thee to hurt thee,
+for I have much people in this city," Acts xviii. 9, 10.
+
+3. The catechetical propounding or expounding of the word, viz. a plain,
+familiar laying down of the first principles of the oracles of God, is
+an ordinance of Christ also. For, 1. This was the apostolical way of
+teaching the churches at the first plantation thereof. "When for the
+time ye ought to be teachers, ye have need that one teach you again
+which be the first principles of the oracles of God, and are become such
+as have need of milk and not of strong meat," Heb. v. 12. "Therefore,
+leaving the word of the beginning of Christ, let us go on unto
+perfection, not laying again the foundation of repentance from dead
+works, and of faith towards God," &c., Heb. vi. 1,2. "And I, brethren,
+could not speak unto you as unto spiritual, but as unto carnal, as unto
+babes in Christ. I have fed you with milk, and not with meat, for
+hitherto ye were not able to bear it, neither yet now are ye able," 1
+Cor. iii. 1, 2. 2. And this is the sense of pastor and people which the
+Holy Ghost useth, setting forth the reciprocal relation and office
+between them, with his own approbation. "Let him that is catechized in
+the word, communicate to him that catechizeth him, in all good things,"
+Gal. vi. 6.
+
+4. The administration of the sacraments is of divine institution.
+
+1. Of baptism. "He that sent me to baptize with water," John i. 33. "Go
+ye therefore, disciple ye all nations, baptizing them into the name of
+the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost," Matt, xxviii. 18-20.
+
+2. Of the Lord's supper, which Christ ordained _the same night in which
+he was betrayed_: which institution is at large described, 1 Cor. xi.
+20, 23, &c.; Matt. xxvi. 26-31; Mark xiv. 22-27; Luke xxii. 19, 20.
+
+2. Ordinances appertaining to the key of jurisdiction or of discipline,
+viz:
+
+1. The ordination of presbyters with imposition of the hands of the
+presbytery, after praying and fasting, is a divine ordinance. "Neglect
+not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by prophecy with the
+laying on of the hands of the presbytery," 1 Tim. iv. 14. Titus was left
+in Crete for this end, "To set in order things that were wanting, and
+ordain presbyters" (or elders) "in every city, as Paul had appointed
+him," Tit. i. 5. Timothy is charged, "Lay hands suddenly on no man,
+neither be partaker of other men's sins; keep thyself pure," 1 Tim. v.
+22. Paul and Barnabas came to Lystra, Iconium, and Antioch, and "when
+they had ordained them presbyters in every church, and had prayed with
+fasting, they commended them to the Lord," &c., Acts xiv. 21, 23.
+
+2. Authoritative discerning, and judging of doctrine according to the
+word of God, is a divine ordinance. As that council at Jerusalem,
+authoritatively (viz. by ministerial authority) judged of both the false
+doctrine and manners of false teachers, branding them for "troublers of
+the Church, subverters of souls," &c. "Forasmuch as we have heard that
+certain, coming forth from u, have troubled you with words, subverting
+your souls, saying, ye ought to be circumcised, and keep the law, to
+whom we gave no such commandment," Acts xv. 24; "it seemed good to the
+Holy Ghost, and to us, to impose upon you no greater burden than these
+necessary things," v. 28; and this was done upon debates from scripture
+grounds, "and to this the words of the prophets agree," Acts xv. 15:
+and afterwards their results and determinations are called "decrees
+ordained by the apostles and elders," Acts xvi. 4.
+
+3. Admonition and public rebuke of sinners is a divine ordinance of
+Christ. "If thy brother trespass against thee, go and tell him his
+fault between thee and him alone: if he will not hear thee, then take
+with thee one or two more--and if he shall neglect to hear them, tell it
+unto the Church," Matt, xviii. 15-17. "Whose soever sins ye bind on
+earth shall be bound in heaven," John xx. 23. One way and degree of
+binding is by authoritative, convincing reproof. "Admonish the unruly,"
+1 Thess. v. 14. "An heretic, after the first and second admonition,
+reject," Tit. iii. 1. "Them that sin, convincingly reprove before all,
+that the rest also may fear," 1 Tim. v. 20. "Rebuke them sharply," (or
+convince them cuttingly,) Tit. iii. 13. "Sufficient to such an one is
+that rebuke, which was from many," 2 Cor. ii. 6.
+
+4. Rejecting, and purging out, or putting away from the communion of the
+Church, wicked and incorrigible persons, is an ordinance of Christ. "And
+if he will not hear them, tell the Church; but if he will not hear the
+Church, let him be unto thee even as a heathen and a publican." "Verily,
+I say unto you, what things soever ye shall bind on earth, they shall be
+bound in heaven," Matt, xviii. 17, 18, compared with Matt. xvi. 19, and
+John xx. 21, 23. "An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject,"
+Tit. iii. 10; i.e. excommunicate, till he repent--_Pisc. in loc._ By
+the lawful judgment of the Church, to deliver the impenitent to
+Satan.--_Beza in loc._ "Of whom is Hymeneus and Alexander, whom I have
+delivered to Satan, that they may learn not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i. 20.
+The apostle's scope in 1 Cor. v. is to press the church of Corinth to
+excommunicate the incestuous person. "Ye are puffed up, and have not
+rather mourned, that he that hath done this deed may be taken from the
+midst of you. For I verily, as absent in body, but present in spirit,
+have already as present judged him that thus wrought this thing. In the
+name of our Lord Jesus Christ, you being gathered together, and my
+spirit with the power of our Lord Jesus Christ, to deliver such an one
+to Satan for the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved
+in the day of our Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 2-5. "Know ye not that a little
+leaven leaveneth the whole lump? Purge out therefore the old leaven,"
+ver. 7. "I wrote to you in an epistle, not to be mingled together with
+fornicators," ver. 9, 11; and explaining what he meant by not being
+_mingled together_, saith, "If any named a brother be a fornicator, or
+covetous, or an idolater, or a reviler, or drunkard, or rapacious, with
+such an one not to eat together," ver. 11. "Therefore take away from
+among yourselves that wicked person," ver. 13.
+
+5. Seasonable remitting, receiving, comforting, and authoritative
+confirming again in the communion of the Church those that are penitent.
+"What things soever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven,"
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose soever sins ye remit, they are
+remitted unto them," John xx. 23. This loosing and remitting is not only
+doctrinal and declarative in the preaching of the word, but also
+juridical and authoritative in the administration of censures. This is
+called, for distinction's sake, absolution. After the church of Corinth
+had excommunicated the incestuous person, and he thereupon had given
+sufficient testimony of his repentance, the apostle directs them to
+receive him into church communion again, saying, "Sufficient to such an
+one is that rebuke inflicted of many; so that contrariwise you should
+rather forgive and comfort him, lest such an one should be swallowed up
+of abundant sorrow. Wherefore I beseech authoritatively to confirm love
+unto him: for to this purpose also I have written unto you, that I may
+know the proof of you, if ye be obedient in all things," 2 Cor. ii. 6-9.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII.
+
+_Of the End and Scope of this Government of the Church._
+
+
+The end or scope intended by Christ in instituting, and to be aimed at
+by Christ's officers in executing of church government in dispensing the
+word, sacrament, censures, and all ordinances of Christ, is (as the
+description expresseth) _the edifying of the Church of Christ_. This end
+is very comprehensive. For the fuller evidencing whereof these two
+things are to be proved:1st, That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under
+the New Testament one general visible Church on earth. 2d. That the
+edification of this Church of Christ is that eminent scope and end why
+Christ gave the power of church government and other ordinances unto the
+Church.
+
+I. For the first, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under the New
+Testament a general visible Church on earth, made up of all particular
+churches, may be cleared by considering well these particulars.
+
+1st. That it is evident by the Scriptures that Jesus Christ hath on
+earth many particular visible churches: (whether churches
+congregational, presbyterial, provincial, or national, needs not here be
+determined.) "Unto the churches of Galatia," Gal. i. 2. "The churches
+of Judea," Gal. i. 22. "Through Syria and Cilicia, confirming the
+churches," Acts xv. 41. "To the seven churches in Asia," Rev. i. 4, 20.
+"The church of Ephesus," Rev. ii. 1. "The church in Smyrna," ver. 8.
+"The church in Pergamus," ver. 12. "The church in Thyatira," ver. 18.
+"The church in Sardis," Rev. iii. 1. "The church in Philadelphia," ver.
+7. And "the church in Laodicea," ver. 14. "The church that is in their
+house," Rom. xvi. 5; and Philem. 2. "Let your women keep silence in the
+church," 1 Cor. xiv. 34. "All the churches of the Gentiles," Rom. xvi.
+4. "So ordain I in all churches," 1 Cor. vii. 17. "As in all churches
+of the saints," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. "The care of all the churches," 2 Cor.
+xi. 28. The New Testament hath many such like expressions.
+
+2d. That how many particular visible churches soever Christ hath on
+earth, yet Scripture counts them all to be but one general visible
+Church of Christ. This is manifest,
+
+1. By divers Scriptures, using the word church in such a full latitude
+and extensive completeness, as properly to signify, not any one single
+congregation, or particular church, but one general visible Church: as,
+"Upon this rock I will build my Church," Matt. xvi. 18. "Give none
+offence, neither to the Jews, nor to the Greeks, nor to the Church of
+God," 1 Cor. x. 32. "God hath set some in the Church, first, apostles;
+secondarily, prophets; thirdly, teachers," &c., 1 Cor. xii. 28. "I
+persecuted the Church of God," 1 Cor. xv. 9; Gal. i. 13. "The Church of
+the living God, the pillar and ground of the truth," 1 Tim. iii. 15.
+"Might be known by the Church the manifold wisdom of God," Eph. iii. 10.
+"In the midst of the Church will I sing praise unto thee," Heb. ii. 12.
+In which, and such like places, we must needs understand, that one
+general visible Church of Christ.
+
+2. By such passages of scripture as evidently compare all visible
+professors and members of Christ throughout the world to one organical
+body, having eyes, ears, hands, feet, &c., viz., several organs,
+instruments, officers, &c., in it, for the benefit of the whole body; as,
+"He gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some evangelists, and
+some pastors and teachers, for the perfecting of the saints, for the
+work of the ministry, for the edifying of the body of Christ," Eph. iv.
+11, 12. "There is one body," Eph. iv. 4. "As we have many members in one
+body, and all members have not the same office; so we being many are one
+body in Christ, and every one members one of another," &c., Rom. xii.
+4-9. "As the body is one, and hath many members, and all the members of
+that one body being many, are one body; so also is Christ," (i.e.,
+Christ considered mystically, not personally,) "for by one Spirit are we
+all baptized into one body, whether we be Jews or Gentiles, whether we
+be bond or free," &c., 1 Cor. xii. 12, to the end of the chapter, which
+context plainly demonstrates all Christ's visible members in the world,
+Jews or Gentiles, &c., to be members of one and the same organical body
+of Christ, which organical body of Christ is the general visible Church
+of Christ; for the invisible church is not organical.
+
+II. That the edification of the Church of Christ is that eminent scope
+and end, why Christ gave church government and all other ordinances of
+the New Testament to his Church. This is frequently testified in
+scripture. 1. The apostle, speaking of this power generally, saith, "Our
+authority which the Lord hath given to us for edification, and not for
+the destruction of you," 2 Cor. x. 8. The like passage he hath again,
+saying, "according to the authority," or power, "which the Lord hath
+given to me for edification, and not for destruction," 2 Cor. xiii. 10;
+in both which places he speaks of the authority of church government in
+a general comprehensive way, declaring the grand and general immediate
+end thereof to be, affirmatively, edification of the church; negatively,
+not the subversion or destruction thereof. 2. In like manner, when
+particular acts of government, and particular ordinances
+are mentioned, the edification of the Church, at least in her members,
+is propounded as the great end of all: e.g. 1. Admonition is for
+edification, that an erring _brother may be gained_, Matt. xviii. 15,
+16, that wavering minds may be sound in the faith. "Rebuke them
+cuttingly, that they may be sound in the faith," Tit. i. 13, that
+beholders and bystanders may fear to fall into like sins. "Them that sin
+rebuke before all, that others also may fear," 1 Tim. v. 20. 2.
+Excommunication is for edification; particularly of the delinquent
+member himself; thus the incestuous person was "delivered to Satan for
+the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit might be saved in the day
+of the Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 4, 5. "Hymeneus and Alexander were
+delivered to Satan, that they might learn not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i.
+20: more generally of the Church; thus the incestuous person was to be
+put away from among them lest the whole lump of the church should be
+leavened by him, 1 Cor. v. 3. Absolution also is for edification, lest
+the penitent party "should be swallowed up of too much sorrow," 2 Cor.
+ii. 7. 4. All the officers of his Church are for edification of the
+Church, (Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11, 12, 16,) together with all the gifts and
+endowments in these officers, whether of prayer, prophecy, tongues, &c.,
+all must be managed to edification. This is the scope of the whole
+chapter. 1 Cor. xii. 7, &c., and 1 Cor. xiv. 3-5, 9, 12, &c., 26; read
+the whole chapter. That passage of Paul is remarkable, "I thank my God,
+I speak with tongues more than you all; yet in the church I had rather
+speak five words with my understanding, that by my voice I might teach
+others also, than ten thousand words in an unknown tongue," verses 18,
+19. Thus church government, and all sorts of ordinances, with the
+particular acts thereof, are to be levelled at this mark of edification.
+Edification is an elegant metaphor from material buildings (perhaps of
+the material and typical temple) to the spiritual; for explanation's
+sake briefly thus take the accommodation: The _architects_, or builders,
+are the _ministers_, 1 Cor. iii. 10. The _foundation_ and _corner-stone_
+that bears up, binds together, and gives strength to the building, is
+Jesus Christ, 1 Cor. iii. 11; 1 Pet. ii. 4, 6. The _stones_ or
+_materials_ are the _faithful_ or _saints_, 2 Cor. i. 1. The _building_,
+or house itself, is the _Church_, that spiritual house, and _temple of
+the living God_, Eph. ii. 21, and iv. 12; 1 Cor. iii. 9, 16, 17. The
+edification of this house is gradually to be perfected more and more
+till the coming of Christ, by laying the foundation of Christianity, in
+bringing men still unto Christ, and carrying on the superstruction in
+perfecting them in Christ in all spiritual growth, till at last the
+top-stone be laid on, the Church completed, and translated _to the house
+not made with hands, eternal in the heavens_.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX.
+
+_Of the proper receptacle and distinct subject of all this power and
+authority of Church Government, which Christ hath peculiarly intrusted
+with the execution thereof according to the Scriptures. And_ 1.
+_Negatively, That the political magistrate is not the proper subject of
+this power._
+
+
+Thus we have taken a brief survey of church government, both in the
+rule, root, kind, branches, and end thereof, all which are comprised in
+the former description, and being less controverted, have been more
+briefly handled. Now, the last thing in the description which comes
+under our consideration, is the proper receptacle of all this power from
+Christ, or the peculiar subject intrusted by Christ with this power and
+the execution thereof, viz. only Christ's own officers. For church
+government is a spiritual power or authority, derived from Jesus Christ
+our Mediator, only to his own officers, and by them exercised in
+dispensing of the word, &c. Now about this subject of the power will be
+the great knot of the controversy, forasmuch as there are many different
+claims thereof made, and urged with vehement importunity: (to omit the
+Romish claim for the pope, and the prelatical claim for the bishop,) the
+politic Erastian pretends that the only proper subject of all church
+government is the political or civil magistrate; the gross Brownists or
+rigid Separatists, that it is the body of the people, or community of
+the faithful in an equal even level; they that are more refined, (who
+style themselves for distinction's sake[26] Independents,) that it is
+the single congregation, or the company of the faithful with their
+presbytery, or church officers; the Presbyterians hold that the proper
+subject wherein Christ hath seated and intrusted all church power, and
+the exercise thereof, is only his own church officers, (as is in the
+description expressed.) Here, therefore, the way will be deeper, and the
+travelling slower; the opposition is much, and therefore the
+disquisition of this matter will unavoidably be the more.
+
+For perspicuity herein, seeing it is said that this power is derived
+from Christ only to his own officers; and by this word (only) all other
+subjects are excluded; the subject of church power may be considered,
+1. Negatively, what it is not. 2. Affirmatively, what it is.
+
+Negatively, the proper subject unto whom Christ hath committed the power
+of church government, and the exercise thereof, is not, 1. The political
+magistrate, as the Erastians imagine. 2. Nor the body of the people,
+either with their presbytery or without it, as the Separatists and
+Independents pretend. Let these negatives first be evinced, and then the
+affirmative will be more clearly evidenced.
+
+Touching the first of these--that the political magistrate is not the
+proper subject unto whom Jesus Christ our Mediator hath committed the
+power of church government, and the exercise of that power; it will be
+cleared by declaring these two things distinctly and severally, viz: 1.
+What power about ecclesiasticals is granted to the civil magistrate. 2.
+What power therein is denied unto him, and why.
+
+
+SECTION 1.
+
+Such power is granted by the reformed churches and orthodox writers to
+the political magistrate, in reference to church affairs. Take it in
+these particulars.
+
+A defensive, protecting, patronizing power to the church, and all the
+members thereof. "Kings shall be thy nursing-fathers," &c., Isa. xlix.
+23. "The magistrate is the minister of God for good to well-doers, as
+well as the avenger, executing wrath upon evil-doers; a terror not to
+good works, but to the evil," Rom. xiii. 3, 4; he is called _an heir,
+or, possessor of restraint, to put men to shame_, Judges xviii. 7. And
+as the church ought to pray for kings and all in authority, so
+consequently all in authority should endeavor to defend it, that the
+church and people of God should lead a quiet and peaceable life, (under
+the wing of their protection,) "in all godliness and honesty," 1 Tim.
+ii. 2; and this is evident from the end and scope of these prayers here
+prescribed, as interpreters unanimously agree. And hereupon are those
+promises to the church, "The sons of strangers shall build up thy walls,
+and their kings shall minister unto thee," Isa. lx. 10; "and thou shalt
+suck the breast of kings," Isa. lx. 16. Now, this nursing, protecting
+care of magistrates towards the church, puts forth itself in these or
+like acts, viz: He,
+
+1. Removes all external impediments of true religion, worship of God,
+&c., by his civil power, whether persons or things, whether
+persecutions, profaneness, heresy, idolatry, superstition, &c., that
+truth and godliness may purely flourish: as did Jehoshaphat, Asa,
+Hezekiah, Josiah. And hereupon it is that God so oft condemns the not
+removing and demolishing of the high places and monuments of idolatry,
+1 Kings xv. 14, with 2 Chron. xv. 17; 1 Kings xxii. 44; 2 Kings xii. 3:
+and highly commends the contrary in Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 8, 16: in
+Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii. 3, 4, 6-10: in Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxxi. 1; 2
+Kings xviii. 4: in Manasseh, 2 Chron. xxxiii. 15: in Josiah, 2 Kings
+xxiii. 8, 13, 19, 20, 24: whereupon the Holy Ghost gives him that
+superlative commendation above all kings before and after him, ver. 25.
+
+2. Countenanceth, advanceth, and encourageth by his authority and
+example the public exercise of all God's ordinances, and duties of
+religion within his dominions, whether in matter of divine worship,
+discipline, and government, maintaining for the Church the fulness of
+spiritual liberties and privileges communicated to her from Christ: as
+did Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 9-16: Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xx. 7-9: Hezekiah, 2
+Chron. xxix., xxx., and xxxi. chapters throughout: Josiah, 2 Chron.
+xxxiv. and xxxv. chapters. And to this end God prescribed in the law
+that the king should still have a copy of the law of God by him, therein
+to read continually, Deut. xvii. 18-20; because he was to be not only a
+practiser, but also a protector thereof, a keeper of both tables.
+
+3. Supplies the Church with all external necessaries, provisions, means,
+and worldly helps in matters of religion: as convenient public places to
+worship in, sufficient maintenance for ministers, (as the Scripture
+requireth, 1 Tim. v. 17, 18; 1 Cor. ix. 6-15; Gal. vi. 6:) schools and
+colleges, for promoting of literature, as nurseries to the prophets,
+&c.; together with the peaceable and effectual enjoyment of all these
+worldly necessaries, for comfortably carrying on of all public
+ordinances of Christ. Thus David prepared materials, but Solomon built
+the temple, 1 Chron. xxii. Hezekiah commanded the people that dwelt in
+Jerusalem, to give the portion of the priests and the Levites, that they
+might be encouraged in the law of the Lord; and Hezekiah himself and his
+princes came and saw it performed, 2 Chron. xxxi. 4, &c., 8: Josiah
+repaired the house of God, 2 Chron. xxxiv.
+
+Nor need the magistrate think scorn, but rather count it his honor to be
+an earthly protector of the Church, which is the _body of Christ, the
+Lamb's wife_, for redeeming of which Christ died, and for gathering and
+perfecting of which the very world is continued.
+
+An ordering, regulating power is also allowed to the magistrate about
+ecclesiastical matters in a political way, so that he warrantably,
+
+1. Reforms the Church, when corrupted in divine worship, discipline, or
+government: as did Moses, Exod. xxxii.; Joshua, Josh. xxiv.; Asa, 2
+Chron. xv.; Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii.; Hezekiah, 2 Kings xviii.;
+Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii.; 2 Chron. xxxiv.
+
+2. Convenes or convocates synods and councils, made up of ecclesiastical
+persons, to consult, advise, and conclude determinatively, according to
+the word, how the church is to be reformed and refined from corruptions,
+and how to be guided and governed when reformed, &c. For, 1. Pious
+magistrates under the Old Testament called the Church together, convened
+councils. David, about bringing back the ark, 1 Chron. xiii. 1, 2, and
+another council when he was old, 1 Chron. xiii. 1; Solomon, 1 Kings
+viii. 1; Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxix. 4; and Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii. 1, 2. 2.
+All ought to be subject to superior powers, who ought to procure the
+public peace and prosperity of the Church, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, &c.; 1 Pet.
+ii. 13, &c., 17; 1 Tim. ii. 2. Therefore superior powers may convocate
+councils. 3. Christian magistrates called the four general councils:
+Constantine the first Nicene council; Theodosius, senior, the first
+council of Constantinople; Theodosius, junior, the first Ephesian
+council; Marcian Emperor, the Chalcedon council; and, 4. Hereunto
+antiquity subscribes, as Dr. Whitaker observes.
+
+3. Supports the laws of God with his secular authority, as a keeper of
+the tables, enjoining and commanding, under civil penalties, all under
+his dominion, strictly and inviolably to observe the same: as "Josiah
+made all that were present in Israel to serve the Lord their God," 2
+Chron. xxxiv. 33. Nehemiah made the sabbath to be sanctified, and
+strange wives to be put away, Neb. xii. 13, &c. Yea, Nebuchadnezzar, a
+heathen king, decreed, that "Whosoever should speak amiss of the God of
+Shadrach," &c., "should be cut in pieces, and their houses made a
+dunghill," Dan. iii. 28, 29. And Darius decreed, "That in every dominion
+of his kingdom men tremble and fear before the God of Daniel," &c., Dan.
+vi. 26, 27.
+
+And as he strengthens the laws and ordinances of God by his civil
+authority, so he ratifies and establishes within his dominions the just
+and necessary decrees of the Church in synods and councils (which are
+agreeable to God's word) by his civil sanction.
+
+4. Judges and determines definitively with a consequent political
+judgment, or judgment of political discretion, concerning the things
+judged and determined antecedently by the Church, in reference to his
+own act. Whether he will approve such ecclesiasticals or not; and in
+what manner he will so approve, or do otherwise by his public authority;
+for he is not a brutish agent, (as papists would have him,) to do
+whatsoever the Church enjoins him unto blind obedience, but is to act
+prudently and knowingly in all his office; and therefore the judgment of
+discerning (which belongs to every Christian, for the well-ordering of
+his own act) cannot be denied to the Christian magistrate, in respect of
+his office.
+
+5. Takes care politically, that even matters and ordinances merely and
+formally ecclesiastical, be duly managed by ecclesiastical persons
+orderly called thereto. Thus Hezekiah commanded the priests and Levites
+to do their duties, 2 Chron. xxix. 5, 24, and the people to do theirs, 2
+Chron. xxx. 1; and for this he is commended, that therein he did cleave
+unto the Lord, and observed his precepts which he had commanded Moses, 2
+Kings xviii. 6. Thus when the king is commanded to observe and do all
+the precepts of the law, the Lord (as orthodox divines do judge)
+intended that he should keep them, not only as a private man, but as a
+king, by using all care and endeavor that all his subjects with him
+perform all duties to God and man, Deut. xvii. 18-20.
+
+6. A compulsive, coactive, punitive, or corrective power, formally
+political, is also granted to the political magistrate in matters of
+religion, in reference to all sorts of persons and things under his
+jurisdiction. He may politically compel the outward man of all persons,
+church officers, or others under his dominions, unto external
+performance of their respective duties, and offices in matters of
+religion, punishing them, if either they neglect to do their duty at
+all, or do it corruptly, not only against equity and sobriety, contrary
+to the second table, but against truth and piety, contrary to the first
+table of the decalogue. We have sufficient intimation of the
+magistrate's punitive power in cases against the second table; as the
+stubborn and rebellious, incorrigible son, that was a glutton and a
+drunkard, sinning against the fifth commandment, was to be stoned to
+death, Deut. xxi. 18-21. The murderer, sinning against the sixth
+commandment, was to be punished with death, Gen. ix. 6; Numb. xxxv.
+30-34; Deut. x. 11-13. The unclean person, sinning against the seventh
+commandment, was to be punished with death, Lev. xx. 11, 12, 14, 17,
+19-25; and before that, see Gen. xxxviii. 24. Yea, Job, who is thought
+to live before Moses, and before this law was made, intimates that
+adultery is a heinous crime, yea, it is an iniquity to be punished by
+the judges, Job xxxi. 9,11. The thief, sinning against the eighth
+commandment, was to be punished by restitution, Exod. xxii. 1, 15, &c.
+The false witness, sinning against the ninth commandment, was to be
+dealt withal as he would have had his brother dealt with, by the law of
+retaliation, Deut. xix. 16, to the end of the chapter, &c. Yea, the
+magistrate's punitive power is extended also to offences against the
+first table; whether these offences be against the first commandment, by
+false prophets teaching lies, errors, and heresies in the name of the
+Lord, endeavoring to seduce people from the true God. "If there arise
+among you a prophet, or a dreamer of dreams, that prophet, or that
+dreamer of dreams shall be put to death, because he hath spoken to turn
+you away from the Lord your God, which brought you out of the land of
+Egypt," &c., Deut. xiii. 1-6. From which place Calvin notably asserts
+the punitive power of magistrates against false prophets and impostors
+that would draw God's people to a defection from the true God, showing
+that this power also belongs to the Christian magistrate in like cases
+now under the gospel.
+
+Yea, in case of such seducement from God, though by nearest allies,
+severe punishment was to be inflicted upon the seducer, Deut. xiii.
+6-12. See also ver. 12, to the end of the chapter, how a city is to be
+punished in the like case. And Mr. Burroughs,[27] in his Irenicum, shows
+that this place of Deut. xiii. 6, &c., belongs even to us under the
+gospel.
+
+Or whether these offences be against the second commandment, the
+magistrate's punitive power reaches them, Deut. xvii. 1-8; Lev. xvii.
+2-8; 2 Chron. xvi. 13, 16. "Maachah, the mother of Asa the king, he
+removed from being queen, because she had made an idol in a grove." Job
+xxxi. 26-28, herewith compare Exod. viii. 25, 26. Or whether the
+offences be against the third commandment, "And thou shalt speak unto
+the children of Israel, saying, Whosoever curseth God shall bear his
+sin: and he that blasphemeth the name of the Lord he shall surely be put
+to death, and all the congregation shall certainly stone him, as well
+the stranger as he that is born in the land, when he blasphemeth the
+name of the Lord shall be put to death," Lev. xxiv. 15, 16. Yea, the
+heathen king Nebuchadnezzar made a notable decree to this purpose,
+against blaspheming God, saying, "I make a decree, that every people,
+nation, and language, who speak any thing amiss against the God of
+Shadrach, Meshech, and Abednego, shall be cut in pieces, and their
+houses shall be made a dunghill," Dan. iii. 29: and the pagan
+magistrate, king Artaxerxes, made a more full decree against all
+contempt of the law of God: "And whosoever will not do the law of thy
+God," saith he to Ezra, "and the law of the king, let judgment be
+executed speedily upon him, whether it be unto death, or to banishment,
+or to confiscation of goods, or to imprisonment:" and Ezra blesses God
+for this, Ezra vii. 26, 27.
+
+Besides all this light of nature, and evidence of the Old Testament, for
+the ruler's political punitive power for offences against God, there are
+divers places in the New Testament showing that a civil punitive power
+rests still in the civil magistrate: witness those general expressions
+in those texts--Rom. xiii. 3, 4: "Rulers are not a terror to good works,
+but to the evil. If thou do that which is evil, be afraid, for he
+beareth not the sword in vain: for he is the minister of God, a revenger
+_to execute_ wrath upon him that doeth evil." 1 Pet. ii. 13, 14: "Submit
+yourselves unto every ordinance of man for the Lord's sake, whether it
+be to the king as to the supreme, or unto governors which are sent for
+the _punishment_ of evil-doers,[28] and the praise of them that do
+well." Now, (as Mr. Burroughs[29] notes,) seeing the Scripture speaks
+thus generally, except the nature of the thing require, why should we
+distinguish where the Scripture doth not? so that these expressions may
+be extended to those sorts of evil-doing against the first as well as
+against the second table; against murdering of souls by heresy, as well
+as murdering of men's bodies with the sword; against the blaspheming of
+the God of heaven, as well as against blaspheming of kings and rulers,
+that are counted gods on earth. That place seems to have much force in
+it to this purpose, Heb. x. 28, 29: "He that despised Moses' law, died
+without mercy under two or three witnesses. Of how much sorer
+punishment, suppose ye, shall he be thought worthy who hath trodden
+under foot the Son of God, and hath counted the blood of the covenant,
+wherewith he was sanctified, an unholy thing, and hath done despite unto
+the Spirit of grace?" Yea, what deserve such as deny the Spirit to be of
+God? Papists exempt their clergy from the judgment of the civil power,
+though they be delinquents against it; and their states, both civil
+and spiritual, from civil taxes, tributes, and penalties, both which we
+deny to ours: for, 1st, This is repugnant to the law of nature, that
+church officers and members, as parts and members of the commonwealth,
+should not be subject to the government of that commonwealth whereof
+they are parts. 2d, Repugnant to the laws and practices of the Old
+Testament, under which we read of no such exemptions. Yea, we have
+instance of Abiathar the high-priest, who, for his partnership with
+Adonijah in his rebellion, was exiled by king Solomon, and so
+consequently deprived of the exercise of his office, 1 Kings ii. 26, 27.
+3d, Inconsistent with our Saviour's example, who, as subject to the law,
+held himself obliged to pay tribute to avoid offence, (Matt. xvii. 26,)
+which was an active scandal; and he confesses Pilate's power to condemn
+or release him was _given him from above_, John xix. 11. 4th, And
+finally, contrary to the apostolical precepts, _enjoining all to be
+subject to superior powers_, Rom. xiii. 1-4; 1 Pet. ii. 13-15.
+
+Now, all the former power that is granted, or may be granted to the
+magistrate about religion, is only cumulative and objective, as divines
+used to express it; thus understand them:--
+
+Cumulative, not privative; adding to, not detracting from any liberties
+or privileges granted her from Christ. The heathen magistrate may be a
+_nurse-father_, Isa. xlix. 23; 1 Tim. ii. 2, may not be a _step-father_:
+may protect the Church, religion, &c., and order many things in a
+political way about religion; may not extirpate or persecute the Church;
+may help her in reformation; may not hinder her in reforming herself,
+convening synods in herself, as in Acts xv., &c., if he will not help
+her therein; otherwise her condition were better without than with a
+magistrate. The Christian magistrate much less ought to hinder her
+therein, otherwise her state were worse under the Christian than under
+the pagan magistrate.
+
+Objective or objectively ecclesiastical, as being exercised about
+objects ecclesiastical, but politically, not ecclesiastically. His
+proper power is _about_, not _in_ religious matters. He may politically,
+outwardly exercise his power about objects or matters spiritual; but not
+spiritually, inwardly, formally act any power in the Church. He may act
+in church affairs as did Asa, Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah; not as did
+Corah, Saul, Uzzah, or Uzziah. He is an overseer of things without, not
+of things within. And in a word, his whole power about church offices
+and religion is merely, properly, and formally civil or political.[30]
+
+Nor is this only our private judgment, or the opinion of some few
+particular persons touching the granting or bounding of the magistrate's
+power about matters of religion; but with us we have the suffrage of
+many reformed churches, who, in their Confessions of Faith published to
+the world, do fully and clearly express themselves to the same effect.
+
+The Helvetian church thus: Since every magistrate is of God, it is
+(unless he would exercise tyranny) his chief duty, all blasphemy being
+repressed, to defend and provide for religion, and to execute this to
+his utmost strength, as the prophet teacheth out of the word; in which
+respect the pure and free preaching of God's word, a right, diligent,
+and well-instituted discipline of youth, citizens and scholars; a just
+and liberal maintenance of the ministers of the church, and a solicitous
+care of the poor, (whereunto all ecclesiastical means belong,) have the
+first place. After this, &c.
+
+The French churches thus: He also therefore committed the sword into the
+magistrates' hands, that they might repress faults committed not only
+against the second table, but also against the first; therefore we
+affirm, that their laws and statutes ought to be obeyed, tribute to be
+paid, and other burdens to be borne, the yoke of subjection voluntarily
+to be undergone, yea, though the magistrates should be infidels, so long
+as the supreme government of God remains perfect and untouched, Matt.
+xxiv.; Acts iv. 17, and v. 19; Jude verse 8.
+
+The church of Scotland thus: Moreover we affirm, that the purging and
+conserving of religion is the first and most especial duty of kings,
+princes, governors, and magistrates. So that they are ordained of God
+not only for civil polity, but also for the conservation of true
+religion, and that all idolatry and superstition may be suppressed: as
+is evident in David, Jehoshaphat, Josiah, Hezekiah, and others, adorned
+with high praises for their singular zeal.
+
+The Belgic church thus: Therefore he hath armed the magistrates with a
+sword, that they may punish the bad and defend the good. Furthermore, it
+is their duty not only to be solicitous about preserving of civil
+polity, but also to give diligence that the sacred ministry may be
+preserved, all idolatry and adulterate worship of God may be taken out
+of the way, the kingdom of antichrist may be pulled down, but Christ's
+kingdom propagated. Finally, it is their part to take course, that the
+holy word of the gospel be preached on every side, that all may freely
+and purely serve and worship God according to the prescript of his word.
+And all men, of whatsoever dignity, condition, or state they be, ought
+to be subject to lawful magistrates, to pay them tribute and subsidies,
+to obey them in all things which are not repugnant to the word of God;
+to pour out prayers for them, that God would vouchsafe to direct them in
+all their actions, _and that we may under them lead a quiet and
+peaceable life in all godliness and honesty_. Wherefore we detest the
+Anabaptists and all turbulent men who cast off superior dominions and
+magistrates, pervert laws and judgments, make all goods common, and
+finally abolish or confound all orders and degrees which God hath
+constituted for honesty's sake among men.
+
+The church in Bohemia thus: They teach also that it is commanded in the
+word of God that _all should be subject to the higher powers_ in all
+things, yet in those things only which are not repugnant to God and his
+word. But as touching those things which concern men's souls, faith, and
+salvation, they teach that men should hearken only to God's word, &c.,
+his ministers, as Christ himself saith, _Render to Cæsar the things
+that are Cæsar's, and to God those things that are God's._ But if any
+would compel them to those things which are against God, and fight and
+strive against his word, which abideth forever; they teach them to make
+use of the apostle's example, who thus answered the magistrate at
+Jerusalem: _It is meet_ (say they) _to obey God rather than men_.
+
+Finally, the church in Saxony hath expressed herself notably in this
+point, saying, among many other passages, God will have all men, yea,
+even unregenerate men, to be ruled and restrained by political
+government. And in this government the wisdom, justice, and goodness of
+God to mankind do shine forth. His wisdom, order declares, which is the
+difference of virtues and vices, and the consociation of men by lawful
+governments and contracts ordained in wonderful wisdom. God's justice
+also is seen in political government, who will have manifest
+wickednesses to be punished by magistrates; and when they that rule
+punish not the guilty, God himself wonderfully draws them to punishment,
+and regularly punishes heinous faults with heinous penalties in this
+life, as it is said, _He that takes the sword shall perish by the
+sword_; and, _Whoremongers and adulterers God will judge_. God will have
+in these punishments the difference of vices and virtues to be seen; and
+will have us learn that God is wise, just, true, chaste. God's goodness
+also to mankind is beheld, because by this means he preserves the
+society of men, and therefore he preserves it that thence the Church may
+be gathered, and will have polities to be the Church's inns. Of these
+divine and immoveable laws, which are testimonies of God, and the chief
+rule of manners, the magistrate is to be keeper in punishing all that
+violate them. For the voice of the law, without punishment and
+execution, is of small avail to bridle and restrain men; therefore it is
+said by Paul, _The power should be a terror to evil works, and an honor
+to the good._ And antiquity rightly said, _The magistrate is the keeper
+of the law, both of the first and second table,_ so far as appertains to
+_good order_. And though many in their governments neglect the glory of
+God, yet this ought to be their chief care, to hear and embrace the true
+doctrine touching the Son of God, and to foster the churches, as the
+psalm saith, _And now understand, ye kings, and be instructed, ye judges
+of the earth._ Again, _Open your gates, ye princes_, i.e., Open your
+empires to the gospel, and afford harbor to the Son of God. And Isa.
+xlix.: _And kings shall be thy nursing-fathers, and queens_, i.e.,
+commonwealths, _shall be thy nursing-mothers_, i.e., of the Church, they
+shall afford lodgings to churches and pious studies. And kings and
+princes themselves shall be members of the Church, and shall rightly
+understand doctrine, shall not help those that establish false doctrine,
+and exercise unjust cruelty, but shall be mindful of this saying, "I
+will glorify them that glorify me." And Daniel exhorteth the king of
+Babylon unto the acknowledgment of God's wrath, and to clemency towards
+the exiled Church, when he saith, "Break off thy sins by righteousness,
+and thine iniquities by showing mercy to the poor." And since they are
+among the chief members of the Church, they should see that judgment be
+rightly exercised in the Church, as Constantine, Theodosius, Arcadius,
+Marcianus, Charles the Great, and many pious kings, took care that the
+judgments of the Church should be rightly exercised, &c.
+
+Thus those of the presbyterian judgment are willing to give to Cæsar
+those things that are Cæsar's, even about matters of religion, that the
+magistrate may see, it is far from their intention in the least degree
+to intrench upon his just power, by asserting the spiritual power, which
+Christ hath seated in his church officers, distinct from the
+magistratical power: but as for them of the independent judgment, and
+their adherents, they divest the magistrate of such power.[31]
+
+
+SECTION II.
+
+II. Some power on the other hand touching religion and church affairs,
+is utterly denied to the civil magistrate, as no way belonging to him at
+all by virtue of his office of magistracy. Take it thus:
+
+Jesus Christ, our Mediator, now under the New Testament, hath committed
+no spiritual power at all, magisterial or ministerial, properly,
+internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical, nor any exercise
+thereof, for the government of his Church, to the political magistrate,
+heathen or Christian, as the subject or receptacle thereof by virtue of
+his magistratical office.
+
+For explication hereof briefly thus: 1. What is meant by
+spiritual power, magisterial and ministerial, is laid down in the
+general nature of the government, Chap. III. And, That all magisterial
+lordly power over the Church, belongs peculiarly and only to Jesus
+Christ our Mediator, Lord of all, is proved, Chap. V. Consequently, the
+civil magistrate can challenge no such power, without usurpation upon
+Christ's prerogative. We hence condemn the Pope as Antichrist, while he
+claims to be Christ's vicar-general over Christ's visible Church on
+earth. So that all the question here will be about the ministerial
+power, whether any such belong to the civil magistrate. 2. What is meant
+by power, properly, internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical?
+Thus conceive: These several terms are purposely used, the more clearly
+and fully to distinguish power purely ecclesiastical, which is denied to
+the magistrate, from power purely political about ecclesiastical
+objects, which is granted to him; which is called ecclesiastical, not
+properly, but improperly; not internally, but externally; not formally,
+but only objectively, as conversant about ecclesiastical objects. Nor
+hath he any such ecclesiastical power in him virtually, i.e. so as to
+convey and give it to any other under him. He may grant and protect the
+public exercise of that power within his dominions; but designation of
+particular persons to the office and power, is from the Church; the
+donation of the office and power only from Christ himself. So that
+magistracy doth not formally nor virtually comprehend in it
+ecclesiastical power for church government; for a magistrate, as a
+magistrate, hath no inward ecclesiastical power at all belonging to him.
+
+For confirmation of this proposition, consider these ensuing arguments.
+
+_Argum_. 1st. The keys of the kingdom of heaven were never given by
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as such: therefore he cannot be the
+proper subject of church government as a magistrate. We may thus reason:
+
+_Major_. No power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven was ever given by
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+_Minor_. But all formal power of church government is at least part of
+the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no formal power of church government was ever
+given by Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+The major proposition is evident.
+
+1. Because when Christ gave the keys of the kingdom of heaven, he makes
+no mention at all of the civil magistrate directly or indirectly,
+expressly or implicitly, as the recipient subject thereof. Compare Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, John ii. 21-23, with Matt. xxvii. 18-20. 2.
+Because, in Christ's giving the keys of the kingdom of heaven, he makes
+express mention of church officers,[32] which are really and essentially
+different from the civil magistrate, viz. of Peter, in name of all the
+rest, Matt. xvi. 18, 19, and of the rest of the apostles as the
+receptacle of the keys with him, Matt. xviii. 18, all the disciples save
+Thomas being together, he gave them the same commission in other words,
+John xx. 20-24, and Matt. xxviii. 18-20. Now if Christ should have given
+the keys, or any power thereof to the magistrate, as a magistrate, he
+must consequently have given them only to the magistrate, and then how
+could he have given them to his apostles, being officers in the Church
+really distinct from the magistrate?
+
+3. Because Jesus Christ, in giving the keys of the kingdom, gave not any
+one sort, act, part, or piece of the keys severally, but the whole power
+of the keys, all the sorts and acts thereof jointly. Therefore it is
+said, _I give the keys of the kingdom_--and _whatsoever thou shalt
+bind--whatsoever thou shalt loose--whose soever sins ye remit--whose
+soever sins ye retain_--Matt. xvi. 19, John xx. 23. So that here is not
+only key, but keys given at once, viz. key of doctrine, and the key of
+discipline; or the key of order, and the key of jurisdiction; not only
+binding or retaining, but loosing or remitting of sins, viz. all acts
+together conferred in the keys. Now if Christ gave the keys to the
+magistrate, then he gave all the sorts of keys and all the acts thereof
+to him: if so, the magistrate may as well preach the word, and dispense
+the sacraments, &c., (as Erastus would have him,) as dispense the
+censures, &c., (for Christ joined all together in the same commission,
+and by what warrant are they disjoined?) and if so, what need of
+pastors, teachers, &c.,, in the Church? Let the civil magistrate do all.
+It is true, the ruling elder (which was after added) is limited only to
+one of the keys, viz. the _key of discipline_, 1 Tim. v. 17; but this
+limitation is by the same authority that ordained his office.
+
+4. Because if Christ gave the keys to the civil magistrate as such, then
+to every magistrate, whether Jewish, heathenish, or Christian: but not
+to the Jewish magistrate; for the sceptre was to depart from him, and
+the Jewish polity to be dissolved, and even then was almost extinct. Not
+to the heathenish magistrate, for then those might be properly and
+formally church governors which were not church members; and if the
+heathen magistrate refused to govern the Church, (when there was no
+other magistrate on earth,) she must be utterly destitute of all
+government, which are grossly absurd. Nor, finally, to the Christian
+magistrate, for Christ gave the keys to officers then in being; but at
+that time no Christian magistrate was in being in the world. Therefore
+the keys were given by Christ to no civil magistrate, as such, at all.
+
+The minor, viz. But all formal power of church government is at least
+part of the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven is clear. If we
+take church government largely, as containing both doctrine, worship,
+and discipline, it is the whole power of the keys; if strictly, as
+restrained only to discipline, it is at least part of the power. For,
+1st, Not only the power of order, but also the power of jurisdiction, is
+contained under the word keys; otherwise it should have been said key,
+not keys; church government therefore is at least part of the power of
+the keys. 2d, The word key, noting a stewardly power, as appears, Isa.
+xxii. 22, (as Erastians themselves will easily grant,) may as justly be
+extended in the nature of it to signify the ruling power by
+jurisdiction, as the teaching power by doctrine; in that the office of a
+steward in the household, who bears the keys, consists in governing,
+ordering, and ruling the household, as well as in feeding it, as that
+passage in Luke xii. 41-49, being well considered, doth very notably
+evidence. For, Christ applying his speech to his disciples, saith, "Who
+then is that faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall make ruler
+of his household?--he will make him ruler over all that he hath," &c.
+3d, Nothing in the text or context appears why we should limit keys and
+the acts thereof only to doctrine, and exclude discipline; and where the
+text restrains not, we are not to restrain. 4th, The most of sound
+interpreters extend the keys and the acts thereof as well to discipline
+as to doctrine; to matters of jurisdiction, as well as to matters of
+order. From all we may conclude,
+
+Therefore no formal power of church government was ever given by Christ
+to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+_Argum_. 2d. There was full power of church government in the church
+when no magistrate was Christian, yea, when all magistrates were
+persecutors of the Church, so far from being her _nursing fathers_, that
+they were her _cruel butchers_; therefore the magistrate is not the
+proper subject of this power. Thus we may argue:
+
+_Major_. No proper power of church government, which was fully exercised
+in the Church of Christ, before any magistrate became Christian, yea,
+when magistrates were persecutors of the Church, was derived from Christ
+to the magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+_Minor_. But all proper power of church government was fully exercised
+in the Church before any magistrate became Christian, yea, when
+magistrates were cruel persecutors of the Church of Christ.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no proper power of church government was derived
+from Christ to the civil magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+The _major_ proposition must be granted. For, 1st, Either then the
+Church, in exercising such full power of church government, should have
+usurped that power which belonged not at all to her, but only to the
+magistrate; for what power belongs to a magistrate, as a magistrate,
+belongs to him only; but dare we think that the apostles, or the
+primitive purest apostolical churches did or durst exercise all their
+power of church government which they exercised, merely by usurpation
+without any right thereunto themselves? 2d, Or if the Church usurped
+not, &c., but exercised the power which Christ gave her, let the
+magistrate show wherein Christ made void the Church's charter, retracted
+this power, and gave it unto him.
+
+The minor proposition cannot be denied. For,
+
+1st. It was about 300 years after Christ before any of the Roman
+emperors (who had subdued the whole world, Luke ii. 1, under their sole
+dominion) became Christian. For Constantine the Great was the first
+emperor that received the faith, procured peace to the Church, and gave
+her respite from her cruel persecutions, which was in Anno 309 (or
+thereabouts) after Christ; before which time the Church was miserably
+wasted and butchered with those ten bloody persecutions, by the tyranny
+of Nero, and other cruel emperors before Constantine.
+
+2d. Yet within the space of this first 309 or 311 years, all proper
+power of church government was fully exercised in the Church of Christ;
+not only the word preached, Acts iv. 2; 1 Tim. iii. 16; and sacraments
+dispensed, Acts xx. 7; 1 Cor. xi. 17, &c.; Acts ii. 4, and viii. 12: but
+also _deacons_ set apart for that office of _deaconship_, Acts vi.:
+_elders_ ordained and sent forth, Acts xiii. 1-3, and xiv. 23; 1 Tim.
+iv.; Tit. i. 5: public _admonition in use_, Tit. iii. 10; 1 Tim. v. 20:
+_excommunication_, 1 Cor. v.; and 1 Tim. i. 20: _absolution_ of the
+penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 6, 7, &c.: synodical conventions and decrees, Acts
+xv. with xvi. 4. So that we may conclude,
+
+Therefore no proper power of church government was derived from Christ
+to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+_Argum_. 3d. The magistratical power really, specifically, and
+essentially differs from the ecclesiastical power; therefore the civil
+magistrate, as a magistrate, cannot be the proper subject of this
+ecclesiastical power. Hence we may thus argue:
+
+_Major_. No power essentially, specifically, and really differing from
+magistratical power, was ever given by Christ to the magistrate as a
+magistrate.
+
+_Minor_. But all proper ecclesiastical power essentially, specifically,
+and really differs from the magistratical power.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no proper ecclesiastical power was ever given by
+Jesus Christ to the civil magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+The major is evident: for how can the magistrate, as a magistrate,
+receive such a power as is really and essentially distinct and different
+from magistracy? Were not that to make the magistratical power both
+really the same with itself, and yet really and essentially different
+from itself? A flat contradiction.
+
+The minor may be clearly evinced many ways: as, 1st, From the real and
+formal distinction between the two societies, viz. the Church and
+commonwealth, wherein ecclesiastical and political power are peculiarly
+seated. 2d. From the co-ordination of the power ecclesiastical and
+political, in reference to one another. 3d. From the different causes of
+these two powers, viz. efficient, material, formal, and final; in all
+which they are truly distinguished from one another.
+
+1st. From the real and formal distinction between the two societies,
+viz. church and commonwealth: for, 1. The society of the Church is only
+Christ's, and not the civil magistrate's: it is his _house_, his
+_spouse_, his _body_, &c., and Christ hath no vicar[33] under him. 2.
+The officers ecclesiastical are Christ's officers, not the magistrate's,
+1 Cor. iv. 1: _Christ gave_ them, Eph. iv. 8, 10, 11: _God set them in
+the Church_, 1 Cor. xii. 28. 3. These ecclesiastical officers are both
+elected and ordained by the Church, without commission from the civil
+magistrate, by virtue of Christ's ordinance, and in his name. Thus the
+apostles appointed officers: _Whom we may appoint_, Acts vi. 3, 4. The
+power of ordination and mission is in the hands of Christ's officers;
+compare Acts xiv. 23; 1 Tim. iv. 14, with Acts xiii. 1-4: and this is
+confessed by the parliament to be an ordinance of Jesus Christ, in their
+ordinance for ordaining of preaching presbyters. 4. The Church, and the
+several presbyteries ecclesiastical, meet not as civil judicatories, for
+civil acts of government, as making civil statutes, inflicting civil
+punishments, &c., but as spiritual assemblies, for spiritual acts of
+government and discipline: as preaching, baptizing, receiving the Lord's
+supper, prayer, admonition of the disorderly, &c. 5. What gross
+absurdities would follow, should not these two societies, viz. church
+and commonwealth, be acknowledged to be really and essentially
+distinct from one another! For then, 1. There can be no commonwealth
+where there is not a Church; but this is contrary to all experience.
+Heathens have commonwealths, yet no Church. 2. Then there may be church
+officers elected where there is no church, seeing there are magistrates
+where there is no church. 3. Then those magistrates, where there is no
+church, are no magistrates; but that is repugnant to Scripture, which
+accounts heathen rulers the servants of God, Isa. xlv. 1; Jer. xxv. 9:
+and calls them kings, Exod. vi. 13; Isa. xxxi. 35. And further, if there
+be no magistrates where there is no church, then the church is the
+formal constituting cause of magistrates. 4. Then the commonwealth, as
+the commonwealth, is the church; and the church, as the church, is the
+commonwealth: then the church and the commonwealth are the same. 5. Then
+all that are members of the commonwealth are, on that account, because
+members of the commonwealth, members of the church. 6. Then the
+commonwealth, being formally the same with the church, is, as a
+commonwealth, the mystical body of Christ. 7. Then the officers of the
+church are the officers of the commonwealth; the power of the keys gives
+them right to the civil sword: and consequently, the ministers of the
+gospel, as ministers, are justices of the peace, judges, parliament-men,
+&c., all which how absurd, let the world judge.
+
+2d. From the co-ordination of the power ecclesiastical and political, in
+reference to one another: (this being a received maxim, that subordinate
+powers are of the same kind; co-ordinate powers are of distinct kinds.)
+Now, that the power of the Church is co-ordinate with the civil power,
+may be evidenced as followeth: 1. The officers of Christ, as officers,
+are not directly and properly subordinate to the civil power, though in
+their persons they are subject thereto: the apostles and pastors may
+preach, and cast out of the church, against the will of the magistrate,
+and yet not truly offend magistracy; thus, in doing the duty they have
+immediately received from God, they must "obey God rather than men,"
+Acts iv. 19, 20. And the apostles and pastors must exercise their office
+(having received a command from Christ) without attending to the command
+or consent of the civil magistrate for the same; _as in casting out the
+incestuous person_, 1 Cor. v. 5: telling the Church, Matt. xviii. 17:
+_rejecting a heretic_, Tit. iii. 10. And, 2. Those acts of power are not
+directly and formally subordinate to the magistrate, which he himself
+cannot do, or which belong not to him. Thus the kings of Israel could
+not burn incense: "It appertaineth not unto thee," 2 Chron. xxvi. 18,
+19. Likewise, none have the power of the keys, but they to whom Christ
+saith, "Go ye into all the world and preach the gospel," Matt. xxviii.
+19: but Christ spake not this to magistrates: so only those that are
+_sent_, Rom. x. 15, and those that are governors, are by Christ placed
+in the Church. 3. The officers of the Church can ecclesiastically
+censure the officers of the state, though not as such, as well as the
+officers of the state can punish civilly the officers of the Church,
+though not as such: the church guides may admonish, excommunicate, &c.,
+the officers of the state as members of the Church, and the officers of
+the state may punish the officers of the Church as the members of the
+state. 4. Those that are not sent of the magistrate as his deputies,
+they are not subordinate in their mission to his power, but the
+ministers are not sent as the magistrate's deputies, but are _set over
+the flock by the Holy Ghost_, Acts xx. 28: they are likewise the
+_ministry of Christ_, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2: they are _over you in the Lord_,
+1 Thess. v. 12: and in his name they exercise their jurisdiction, 1 Cor.
+v. 4, 5. 5. If the last appeal in matters purely ecclesiastical be not
+to the civil power, then there is no subordination; but the last appeal
+properly so taken is not to the magistrate. This appears from these
+considerations: 1. Nothing is appealable to the magistrate but what is
+under the power of the sword; but admonition, excommunication, &c., are
+not under the power of the sword: they are neither matters of dominion
+nor coercion. 2. If it were so, then it follows that the having of the
+sword gives a man a power to the keys. 3. Then it follows that the
+officers of the kingdom of heaven are to be judged as such by the
+officers of the kingdom of this world as such, and then there is no
+difference between the things of Cæsar and the things of God. 4. The
+church of Antioch sent to Jerusalem, Acts xv. 2, and the synod there,
+without the magistrate, came together, ver. 6; and determined the
+controversy, ver. 28, 29. And we read, "The spirits of the prophets are
+subject to the prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 32; not to the civil power as
+prophets. So we must seek knowledge at the priest's lips, not at the
+civil magistrate's, Mal. ii. 7. And we read, that the people came to the
+priests in hard controversies, but never that the priests went to the
+civil power, Deut. xvii. 8-10. 5. It makes the magistrate Christ's
+vicar, and so Christ to have a visible head on earth, and so to be an
+ecclesiastico-civil pope, and consequently there should be as many
+visible heads of Christ's Church as there are magistrates. 6. These
+powers are both immediate; one from God the Father, as _Creator_, Rom.
+xiii. 1, 2; the other from Jesus Christ, as _Mediator_, Matt. xxviii.
+18. Now lay all these together, and there cannot be a subordination of
+powers; and therefore there must be a real distinction.
+
+3d. From the different causes of these two powers, viz. efficient,
+material, formal, and final; in all which they are truly distinguished
+from one another, as may plainly appear by this ensuing parallel:
+
+1. They differ in their efficient cause or author, whence they are
+derived. Magistratical power is from God, the Creator and Governor of
+the world, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 4; and so belongs to all mankind, heathen or
+Christian; ecclesiastical power is peculiarly from Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, Lord of the Church, (who hath all power given him, and the
+government of the Church laid upon his shoulder, as Eph. i. 22; Matt.
+xxviii. 18, compared with Isa. ix. 16.) See Matt. vi. 19, and xviii. 18,
+and xxviii. 19, 20; John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8: and consequently
+belongs properly to the Church, and to them that are within the Church,
+1 Cor. v. 12, 13. Magistratical power in general is the ordinance of
+God, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 4; but magistratical power in particular, whether
+it should be monarchical in a king, aristocratical in states,
+democratical in the people, &c., is of men, called, therefore, a human
+creature, or creation, 1 Pet. ii. 13; but ecclesiastical power, and
+officers in particular, as well as general, are from Christ, Matt. xvi.
+19, and xxviii. 18-20; Tit. iii. 10; 1 Cor. v. 13; 2 Cor. ii. For
+officers, see Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28.
+
+2. They differ in their material cause; whether it be the matter of
+which they consist, in which they are seated, or about which they are
+exercised. 1. In respect of the matter of which they consist, they much
+differ. Ecclesiastical power consists of the keys of the kingdom of
+heaven, which are exercised in the preaching of the word, dispensing the
+sacraments, executing the censures, admonition, excommunication,
+absolution, ordination of presbyters, &c.; but magistratical power
+consists in the secular sword, which puts forth itself in making
+statutes, inflicting fines, imprisonments, confiscations, banishments,
+torments, death. 2. In respect of the matter or object about which they
+are exercised, they much differ: for, the magistratical power is
+exercised politically, about persons and things without the Church, as
+well as within the church; but the ecclesiastical power is exercised
+only upon them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 13. The
+magistratical power in some cases of treason, &c., banishes or otherwise
+punishes even penitent persons: ecclesiastical power punishes no
+penitent persons. The magistratical power punishes not all sorts of
+scandal, but some: the ecclesiastical power punishes (if rightly
+managed) all sorts of scandal.
+
+3. They differ in their formal cause, as doth clearly appear by their
+way or manner of acting: magistratical power takes cognizance of crimes,
+and passes sentence thereupon according to statutes and laws made by
+man: ecclesiastical power takes cognizance of, and passes judgment upon
+crimes according to the word of God, the Holy Scriptures. Magistratical
+power punishes merely with political punishments, as fines,
+imprisonments, &c. Ecclesiastical merely with spiritual punishments, as
+church censures. Magistratical power makes all decrees and laws, and
+executes all authority, commanding or punishing only in its own name, in
+name of the supreme magistrate, as of the king, &c., but ecclesiastical
+power is wholly exercised, not in the name of churches, or officers, but
+only in Christ's name, Matt, xxviii. 19; Acts iv. 17; 1 Cor. v. 4. The
+magistrate can delegate his power to another: church-governors cannot
+delegate their power to others, but must exercise it by themselves. The
+magistrate about ecclesiasticals hath power to command and compel
+politically the church officers to do their duty, as formerly was
+evidenced; but cannot discharge lawfully those duties themselves, but in
+attempting the same, procure divine wrath upon themselves: as Korah,
+Numb. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam. xiii. 9-15; King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi.
+16-22: but church-guides can properly discharge the duties of doctrine,
+worship, and discipline themselves, and ecclesiastically command and
+compel others to do their duty also.
+
+4. Lastly, They differ in their final cause or ends. The magistratical
+power levels at the temporal, corporal, external, political peace,
+tranquillity, order, and good of human society, and of all persons
+within his jurisdiction, &c. The ecclesiastical power intends properly
+the spiritual good and edification of the Church and all the members
+thereof, Matt, xviii. 15; 1 Cor. v. 5, &c.; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii.
+10.[34] May we not from all clearly conclude, Therefore no proper
+ecclesiastical power was ever given by Jesus Christ to the magistrate as
+a magistrate?
+
+_Argum_. 4th. The civil magistrate is no proper church officer, and
+therefore cannot be the proper subject of church power, Hence we may
+argue:
+
+_Major_. All formal power of church government was derived from Jesus
+Christ to his own proper church officers only. To them he gave the _keys
+of the kingdom of heaven_, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21,
+28: to them he gave the _authority for edification of the church_, 2
+Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: but this will after more fully appear in Chap.
+XI. following.
+
+_Minor_. But no civil magistrate, as a magistrate, is any of Christ's
+proper church officers. For, 1. The civil magistrate is never reckoned
+up in the catalogue, list, or roll of Christ's church officers in
+Scripture, Eph. iv. 10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28, &c.; Rom. xii. 6-8; if here,
+or anywhere else, let the magistrate or the Erastians show it. 2. A
+magistrate, as a magistrate, is not a church member, (much less a church
+governor;) for then all magistrates, heathen as well as Christian,
+should be church members and church officers, but this is contrary to
+the very nature of Christ's kingdom, which admits no heathen into it.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no formal power of church government was derived
+from Jesus Christ to the magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+_Argum_. 5th. The civil magistrate, as such, is not properly subordinate
+to Christ's mediatory kingdom; therefore is not the receptacle of church
+power from Christ. Hence thus:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever formal power of church government Christ committed
+to any, he committed it only to those that were properly subordinate to
+his mediatory kingdom. For whatsoever ecclesiastical ordinance, office,
+power, or authority, Christ gave to men, he gave it as Mediator and Head
+of the Church, by virtue of his mediatory office; and for the
+gathering, edifying, and perfecting of his mediatory kingdom, which is
+his Church, Eph. iv. 7, 10-12. Therefore such as are not properly
+subordinate to Christ in this his office, and for this end, can have no
+formal church power from Christ.
+
+_Minor_. But no magistrate, as a magistrate, is subordinate properly to
+Christ's mediatory kingdom. For, 1. Not Christ the Mediator, but God the
+Creator authorizeth the magistrate's office, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 6. 2.
+Magistracy is never styled a ministry of Christ in Scripture, nor
+dispensed in his name. 3. Christ's kingdom is not of this world, John
+xviii. 36; the magistrate's is.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no formal power of Church government is
+committed by Christ to the magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+6th. Finally, divers absurdities unavoidably follow upon the granting of
+a proper formal power of Church government to the civil magistrate:
+therefore he cannot be the proper subject of such power. Hence it may be
+thus argued:
+
+_Major_. No grant of ecclesiastical power, which plainly introduceth
+many absurdities, can be allowed to the political magistrate, as the
+proper subject thereof. For though in matters of religion there be many
+things mysterious, sublime, and above the reach of reason; yet there is
+nothing to be found that is absurd, irrational, &c.
+
+_Minor_. But to grant to the political magistrate, as a magistrate, a
+proper formal power of church government, introduceth plainly many
+absurdities, e.g.: 1. This brings confusion betwixt the office of the
+magistracy and ministry. 2. Confounds the church and commonwealth
+together. 3. Church government may be monarchical in one man; and so,
+not only prelatical but papal; and consequently, antichristian. Which
+absurdities, with many others, were formerly intimated, and neither by
+religion nor reason can be endured. We conclude:
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the grant of a proper formal power of church
+government cannot be allowed to the political magistrate as the proper
+subject thereof, because he is a magistrate.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X.
+
+_That the community of the faithful, or body of the people, are not the
+immediate subject of the power of Church government._
+
+
+Thus we see, that Jesus Christ our Mediator did not commit any proper
+formal ecclesiastical power for church government to the political
+magistrate, as such, as the Erastians conceive. Now, in the next place
+(to come more close) let us consider that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath
+not committed the spiritual power of church government to the body of
+the people, presbyterated, or unpresbyterated (to use their own terms)
+as the first subject thereof, according to the opinion of the
+Separatists or Independents. Take it in this proposition:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not committed the proper formal power or
+authority spiritual, for government of his Church,[35] unto the
+community of the faithful, whole church, or body of the people, as the
+proper immediate receptacle, or first subject thereof.
+
+
+SECTION I.
+
+Some things herein need a little explanation, before we come to the
+confirmation.
+
+1. By _fraternity, community of the faithful, whole church or body of
+the people_, understand a particular company of people, meeting together
+in one assembly or single congregation, to partake of Christ's
+ordinances. This single congregation may be considered as presbyterated,
+i.e., furnished with an eldership; or as unpresbyterated, i.e.,
+destitute of an eldership, having yet no elders or officers erected
+among them. Rigid Brownists or Separatists say, that the fraternity or
+community of the faithful unpresbyterated is the first receptacle of
+proper ecclesiastical power from Christ: unto whom some of independent
+judgment subscribe. Independents thus resolve: First, That the apostles
+of Christ are the first subject of apostolical power. Secondly, That a
+particular congregation of saints, professing the faith, taken
+indefinitely for any church, (one as well as another,) is the first
+subject of all church offices with all their spiritual gifts and power.
+Thirdly, That when the church of a particular congregation walketh
+together in the truth and peace, the brethren of the church are the
+first subjects of church liberty; the elders thereof of church
+authority; and both of them together are the first subject of all church
+power.[36] Which assertions of Brownists and Independents (except the
+first) are denied by them of presbyterian judgment, as being obvious to
+divers material and just exceptions.[37]:
+
+2. By _proper formal power or authority spiritual, for church
+government_, thus conceive. To omit what hath been already laid down
+about the natures and sorts of spiritual power and authority, (part 2,
+chap. III. and VI.,) which are to be remembered, here it may be further
+observed, that there is a proper public, official, authoritative power,
+though but stewardly and ministerial, which is derived from Jesus Christ
+to his church officers, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21-23;
+Matt, xxviii. 18-20; of which power the apostle speaking, saith, "If I
+should somewhat boast of our power which the Lord hath given us to
+edification," 2 Cor. x. 8; so 2 Cor. xiii. 10. The people are indeed
+allowed certain liberties or privileges; as, _To try the spirits_, &c.,
+1 John iv. 1. To prove all doctrines by the word, 1 Thess. v. 21. To
+nominate and elect their own church officers, as their deacons, which
+they did, Acts vi. 3, 5, 6; but this is not a proper power of the keys.
+But the proper, public, official, authoritative power, is quite denied
+to the body of the people, furnished with an eldership or destitute
+thereof.
+
+3. By _proper immediate receptacle, or first subject of power_,
+understand, that subject, seat, or receptacle of power, which first and
+immediately received this power from Jesus Christ; and consequently was
+intrusted and authorized by him, to put forth and exercise that power in
+his Church for the government thereof. And here two things must be
+carefully remembered: 1. That we distinguish betwixt the object and
+subject of this power. The object for which, for whose good and benefit
+all this power is given, is primarily the general visible Church, Ephes.
+iv. 7, 10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom. xii. 5,6, &c. Secondarily, particular
+churches, as they are parts and members of the general. But the subject
+receiving to which the power is derived, is not the Church general or
+particular, but the officers or governors of the Church. 2. That we
+distinguish also betwixt the donation of the power, and the designation
+of particular persons to offices ecclesiastical. This designation of
+persons to the offices of key bearing or ruling may be done first and
+immediately by the Church, in nominating or electing her individual
+officers which is allowed to her; yet is no proper authoritative act of
+power. But the donation of the power itself is not from the Church as
+the fountain, but immediately from Christ himself, 2 Cor. xi. 8, and
+xiii. 10. Nor is it to the Church as the subject, but immediately to the
+individual church officers themselves, who consequently, in all the
+exercise of their power, act as the _ministers and stewards of Christ_,
+1 Cor. iv. 1, putting forth their power immediately received from
+Christ, not as the substitutes or delegates of the Church putting forth
+her power, which from Christ she mediately conveys to them, as
+Independents do imagine, but by us is utterly denied.
+
+
+SECTION II.
+
+For confirmation of this proposition thus explained and stated; consider
+these few arguments:
+
+_Argum_. I. The community of the faithful, or body of the people, have
+no authentic commission or grant of proper spiritual power for church
+government; and therefore they cannot possibly be the first subject or
+the proper immediate receptacle of such power from Christ. We may thus
+argue:
+
+_Major_. Whomsoever Jesus Christ hath made the immediate receptacle or
+first subject of proper formal power for governing of his Church, to
+them this power is conveyed by some authentic grant or commission.
+
+_Minor_. But the community of the faithful, or body of the people, have
+not this power conveyed unto them by any authentic grant or commission.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not made the
+community of the faithful, or body of the people, the immediate
+receptacle or first subject of proper formal power for governing of his
+Church.
+
+The major proposition is evident in itself: For, 1. The power of church
+government in this or that subject is not natural, but positive; and
+cast upon man, not by natural, but by positive law, positive grant: men
+are not bred, but made the first subject of such power; therefore all
+such power claimed or exercised, without such positive grant, is merely
+without any due title, imaginary, usurped, unwarrantable, in very fact
+null and void. 2. All power of church government is radically and
+fundamentally in Christ, Isa. ix. 6; Matt, xxviii. 18; John v. 22. And
+how shall any part of it be derived from Christ to man, but by some fit
+intervening mean betwixt Christ and man? And what mean of conveyance
+betwixt Christ and man can suffice, if it do not amount to an authentic
+grant or commission for such power? 3. This is evidently Christ's way to
+confer power by authentic commission immediately upon his church
+officers, the apostles and their successors, to the world's end. "Thou
+art Peter; and I give to thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven," &c.,
+Matt. xvi. 18, 19. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth," &c., Matt,
+xviii. 19, 20. "As my Father sent me, so send I you; go, disciple ye all
+nations; whose sins ye remit, they are remitted--and lo, I am with you
+always to the end of the world," John xx. 21, 23; Matt, xxviii. 19, 20.
+"Our power, which the Lord hath given us for edification," 2 Cor. x. 8,
+and xiii. 10: so that we may conclude them that have such commission to
+be the first subject and immediate receptacle of power from Christ, as
+will after more fully appear. 4. If no such commission be needful to
+distinguish those that have such power from those that have none, why
+may not all without exception, young and old, wise and foolish, men and
+women, Christian and heathen, &c., equally lay claim to this power of
+church government? If not, what hinders? If so, how absurd!
+
+The minor proposition, viz: But the community of the faithful, or body
+of the people, have not this power conveyed to them by any authentic
+grant or commission, is firm. For whence had they it? When was it given
+to them? What is the power committed to them? Or in what sense is such
+power committed to them?
+
+1. Whence had they it? _From heaven or of men?_ If from men, then it is
+a human ordinance and invention; _a plant which the heavenly Father hath
+not planted_; and therefore _shall he plucked up_. Matt. xv. 13. If from
+heaven, then from Christ; for _all power is given to him_, Matt, xxviii.
+18, &c.; Isa. ix. 6. If it be derived from Christ, then it is derived
+from him by some positive law of Christ as his grant or charter. A
+positive grant of such power to select persons, viz. church officers,
+the Scripture mentions, as was evidenced in the proof of the major
+proposition. But touching any such grant or commission to the community
+of the faithful, the Scripture is silent. And let those that are for the
+popular power produce, if they can, any clear scripture that expressly,
+or by infallible consequence, contains any such commission.
+
+2. When was any such power committed by Christ to the multitude of the
+faithful, either in the first planting and beginning of the Church, or
+in the after establishment and growth of the Church under the apostles'
+ministry? Not the first; for then the apostles themselves should have
+derived their power from the community of the faithful: now this is
+palpably inconsistent with the Scriptures, Which tell us that the
+apostles had both their apostleship itself, and their qualifications
+with gifts and graces for it, yea, and the very designation of all their
+particular persons unto that calling, all of them immediately from
+Christ himself. For the first, see Gal. i. 1: "Paul, an apostle, not of
+men, nor by man, but by Jesus Christ," Matt, xxviii. 18-20. For the
+second, see John xx. 22, 23: "And when he had said this, he breathed on
+them, and saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost; whose soever sins
+ye remit, they are remitted unto them," &c. For the third, see Luke vi.
+13, &c.: "And when it was day he called to him his disciples: and of
+them he chose twelve, whom also he named apostles; Simon--" Matt. x.
+5-7, &c.: "These twelve Jesus sent forth, and commanded them, saying."
+And after his resurrection he enlarges their commission, Mark xvi. 15,
+16: "Go ye into all the world;" and, "As my Father hath sent me, so send
+I you," John xx. 21. See also how the Lord cast the lot upon Matthias,
+Acts i. 24-26. Nor the second; for if such power be committed to the
+community of the faithful after the apostles had established the
+churches, then let those that so think show where Christ committed this
+power first to the apostles, and after to the community of the faithful,
+and by them or with them to their ordinary officers, for execution
+thereof. But no such thing hath any foundation in Scripture; for the
+ordinary Church guides, though they may have a designation to their
+office by the church, yet they have the donation, or derivation of their
+office and its authority only from Christ: their office is from Christ,
+Ephes. iv. 8, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Acts xx. 28, 29. Their power from
+Christ, Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18, 19; John xx. 21, 23. "Our power
+which the Lord hath given us," 2 Cor. viii. 10. They are _Christ's
+ministers, stewards, ambassadors_, 1 Cor. iv. 1; 2 Cor. v. 19, 20. They
+are to act and officiate _in his name_, Matt, xviii. 19; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5;
+and to Christ they _must give an account_. Heb. xiii. 17, 18; Luke xii.
+41, 42. Now if the ordinary officers have (as well as the apostles their
+apostleship) their offices of pastor, teacher, &c., from Christ, and are
+therein the successors of the apostles to continue to the world's end,
+(Matt, xxviii. 18-20,) then they have their power and authority in their
+offices immediately from Christ, as the first receptacles thereof
+themselves, and not from the Church as the first receptacle of it
+herself. A successor hath jurisdiction from him from whom the
+predecessor had his; otherwise he doth not truly succeed him.
+Consequently the Church or community of the faithful cannot possibly be
+the first receptacle of the power of church government from Christ.
+
+3. What power is it that is committed to the body of the Church or
+multitude of the faithful? Either it must be the power of order, or the
+power of jurisdiction. But neither of these is allowed to the multitude
+of the faithful by the Scriptures, (but appointed and appropriated to
+select persons.) Not the power of order; for the whole multitude, and
+everyone therein, neither can nor ought to intermeddle with any branches
+of that power. 1. Not with preaching; all are not _apt to teach_, 1 Tim.
+iii. 2, nor able to exhort and convince gainsayers, Tit. i. 9; all are
+not gifted and duly qualified. Some are expressly prohibited _speaking
+in the church_, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, 1 Tim. ii. 12, Rev. ii. 20, and none
+are _to preach, unless they be sent_, Rom. x. 15, nor _to take such
+honor unto themselves unless they be called_, &c., Heb. v. 4, 5. Are all
+and every one of the multitude of the faithful able to teach, exhort,
+and convince? are they all sent to preach? are they all called of God?
+&c. Nay, hath not Christ laid this task of authoritative preaching only
+upon his own officers? Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. 2. Not with administration
+of the sacraments; this and preaching are by one and the same commission
+given to officers only, Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi. 23. 3. Nor to
+ordain presbyters, or other officers. They may choose; but extraordinary
+officers, or the presbytery of ordinary officers, ordain. Acts vi. 3, 5,
+6: "Look ye out men--whom we may appoint." Compare also Acts xiv. 23; 1
+Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22; Tit. iii. 5. So that the people's bare election
+and approbation is no sufficient Scripture ordination of officers. Nor
+is there one often thousand among the people that is in all points able
+to try and judge of the sufficiency of preaching presbyters, for
+tongues, arts, and soundness of judgment in divinity. Nor is the power
+of jurisdiction in public admonition, excommunication, and absolution,
+&c., allowed to the multitude. For all and every one of the multitude of
+the faithful, 1. Never had any such power given to them from Christ;
+this key as well as the key of knowledge being given to the officers of
+the Church only, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20. _Tell the church_,
+there, must needs be meant of the ruling church only.[38] 2 Cor. viii.
+10; John xx. 21-23. 2. Never acted or executed any such power, that we
+can find in Scripture. As for that which is primarily urged of the
+church of Corinth, that the whole church did excommunicate the
+_incestuous person_, 1 Cor. v. 4, &c., many things may be answered to
+evince the contrary. 1st, The whole multitude could not do it; for
+children could not judge, and women must not speak in the Church. 2d, It
+is not said, _Sufficient to such an one is the rebuke inflicted of all_;
+but _of many_, 2 Cor. ii. 6, viz. of the presbytery, which consisted of
+many officers. 3d, The church of Corinth, wherein this censure was
+inflicted, was not a congregational, but a presbyterial church, having
+divers particular congregations in it, (as is hereafter cleared in Chap.
+XXIII.,) and therefore the whole multitude of the church of Corinth
+could not meet together in one place for this censure, but only the
+presbytery of that great church. Again, never did the whole multitude
+receive from Christ due gifts and qualifications for the exercise of
+church government and jurisdiction; nor any promise from Christ to be
+with them therein, as officers have, Matt, xxviii. 18-20. And the
+absurdities of such popular government are intolerable, as after will
+appear.
+
+4. Finally, in what sense can it be imagined that any such power should
+be committed from Christ to the community of the faithful, the whole
+body of the Church? For this power is given them equally with the
+church-guides, or unequally. If equally, then,.1. The church-guides have
+power and authority, as primarily and immediately committed to them, as
+the Church herself hath; and then they need not derive or borrow any
+power from the body of the faithful, having a power equal to theirs. 2.
+How vainly is that power equally given as to the officers, so to the
+whole multitude, when the whole multitude have no equal gifts and
+abilities to execute the same! If unequally, then this power is derived
+to the church-guides, either more or less than to the multitude of the
+faithful. If less, then how improperly were all those names of rule and
+government imposed upon officers, which nowhere are given by Scripture
+to the multitude! as _Pastors_, Eph. iv. 8, 11. _Elders_, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+_Overseers_, Acts xx. 28. _Guides_, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22. In this last
+verse they are contradistinguished from the saints; church-guides, and
+saints guided, make up a visible organical church. _Rulers in the Lord_,
+1 Thes. v. 12; Rom. xii. 8: and _well-ruling Elders_, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+_Governments_, 1 Cor. xii. 28. _Stewards_, 1 Cor. iv. 1,2; Luke xii. 42,
+&c. And all these titles have power and rule engraven in their very
+foreheads; and they of right belonged rather to the multitude than to
+the officers, if the officers derive their power from the multitude of
+the people. If more, then church-guides, having more power than the
+Church, need not derive any from the Church, being themselves better
+furnished.
+
+Thus, what way soever we look, it cannot be evinced, that the multitude
+and body of the people, with or without eldership, are the first subject
+of power, or have any authoritative public official power at all, from
+any grant, mandate, or commission of Christ. From all which we may
+strongly conclude,
+
+Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not made the community of the
+faithful, or body of the people, the immediate receptacle, or first
+subject of proper formal power for governing of his church.
+
+_Argum_. II. As the multitude of the faithful have no authentic grant or
+commission of such power of the keys in the Church; so they have no
+divine warrant for the actual execution of the power of the said keys
+therein: and therefore cannot be the first receptacle of the power of
+the keys from Christ. For thus we may reason:
+
+_Major_. Whosoever are the first subject, or immediate receptacle of the
+power of the keys from Christ, they have divine warrant actually to
+exercise and put in execution the said power. _Minor_. But the
+multitude or community of the faithful have no divine warrant actually
+to exercise and put in execution the power of the keys.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first
+subject, or immediate receptacle of the power of the keys from Jesus
+Christ.
+
+The major proposition must necessarily be yielded. For, 1. The power of
+the keys contains both authority and exercise; power being given to that
+end that it may be exercised for the benefit of the Church. It is called
+the _power given us for edification_, 2 Cor. viii. 10. Where there is no
+exercise of power there can be no edification by power. 2. Both the
+authority and complete exercise of all that authority, were at once and
+together communicated from Christ to the receptacle of power. "I give
+unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt
+bind on earth," &c., Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "As my Father sent
+me, so send I you--whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted," John
+xx. 21, 23. Here is both power and the exercise thereof joined together
+in the same commission. Yea, so individual and inseparable are power and
+exercise, that under exercise, power and authority is derived: as, "Go,
+disciple ye all nations, baptizing them," &c., Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3.
+How vain, idle, impertinent, and ridiculous is it to fancy and dream of
+such a power as shall never be drawn into act by them that have it!
+
+The minor proposition, viz. But the multitude or communion of the
+faithful have no divine warrant, actually to exercise and put in
+execution the power of the keys, is clear also:
+
+1. By reason: for, the actual execution of this power belongs to them by
+divine warrant, either when they have church officers, or when they want
+church officers. Not while they have officers; for, that were to slight
+Christ's officers: that were to take officers' work out of their hands
+by them that are no officers, and when there were no urgent necessity;
+contrary whereunto, see the proofs, Chap. XI. Section 2, that were to
+prejudice the church, in depriving her of the greater gifts, and
+undoubtedly authorized labors of her officers, &c. Not when they want
+officers in a constituted church: as in case where there are three or
+four elders, the pastor dies, two of the ruling elders fall sick, or the
+like; in such cases the community cannot by divine warrant supply the
+defects of these officers themselves, by exercising their power, or
+executing their offices. For where doth Scripture allow such power to
+the community in such cases? What one church without its eldership can
+be instanced in the New Testament, that in such cases once presumed to
+exercise such power, which might be precedent or example for it to
+other churches? How needless are church officers, if the multitude of
+the faithful may, as members of the church, take up their office, and
+actually discharge it in all the parts of it?
+
+2. By induction of particulars, it is evident, that the community cannot
+execute the power of the keys by any divine warrant. 1. _They may not
+preach_: for, "how shall they preach, except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15;
+but the community cannot he sent, many of them being incapable of the
+office, either by reason of their _sex_, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35; 1 Tim. ii.
+11, 12: or by reason of their _age_; as children, and all or most of
+them by reason of their deficiency in gifts and in scripture
+qualifications, Tit. i. and 1 Tim. iii. For not one member of a thousand
+is so completely furnished, as to be "apt to teach, able to convince
+gainsayers, and to divide the word of truth aright." Besides, they may
+not send themselves, were they capable, for, _no man takes this honor to
+himself_--Yea, _Jesus Christ himself did not glorify himself to be made
+an high-priest_--Heb. v. 4, 5. Now only officers are sent to preach,
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 19, 20; Mark xvi. 15. 2. They may not
+administer the seals, the sacraments, baptize, &c. under the New
+Testament; for who gave the people any such authority? hath not Christ
+conjoined preaching and dispensing of the sacraments in the same
+commission, that the same persons only that do the one, may do the
+other? Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3. They may not ordain officers in the
+church, and authoritatively send them abroad: for, ordinarily the
+community have not sufficient qualifications and abilities for proving
+and examining of men's gifts for the ministry. The community are nowhere
+commanded or allowed so to do in the whole New Testament, but other
+persons distinct from them, 1 Tim. v. 22; 2 Tim. ii. 2; Tit. i. 5, &c.
+Nor did the community ever exercise or assume to themselves any such
+power of ordination or mission, but only officers both in the first
+sending of men to preach, as 1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6: and to be
+deacons, Acts vi. 6, and also in after missions, as Acts xiii. 1-3. 4.
+The community, without officers, may not exercise any act of
+jurisdiction authoritatively and properly; may not admonish,
+excommunicate, or absolve. For we have no precept that they should do
+it; we have no example in all the New Testament that they ever did do
+it; we have both precept and example, that select officers both did and
+ought to do it. "Whatsoever ye bind on earth" (saith Christ to his
+officers) "shall be bound in heaven," &c. Matt. xviii. 18, and xvi. 19.
+"Whose soever sins ye remit," &c., John xx. 21, 23. "An heretic, after
+once or twice admonition, reject," Tit. i. 10. "I have decreed--to
+deliver such an one to Satan," 1 Cor. v. 4. "The rebuke inflicted by
+many," not all, 2 Cor. ii. "Whom I have delivered to Satan," 1 Tim. i.
+_ult_. And the Scriptures nowhere set the community over themselves to
+be their own church-guides and governors; but appoint over them in the
+Lord rulers and officers distinct from the community. Compare these
+places, 1 Thes. v. 12; Acts xx. 28, 29; Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22. "Salute
+all them that have the rule over you, and all the saints." From the
+premises we conclude,
+
+Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first subject, or
+immediate receptacle of the power of the keys from Jesus Christ.
+
+_Argum_. III. Jesus Christ hath not given nor promised to the community
+of the faithful a spirit of ministry, nor those gifts which are
+necessary for the government of the church: therefore the community was
+never intended to be the first subject of church government.
+
+_Major_. Whomsoever Christ makes the first subject of the power of
+church government, to them he promises and gives a spirit of ministry,
+and gifts necessary for that government. For, 1. As there is diversity
+of ecclesiastical administrations (which is the foundation of diversity
+of officers) and diversity of miraculous operations, and both for the
+profit of the Church; so there is conveyed from the Spirit of Christ
+diversity of gifts, free endowments, enabling and qualifying for the
+actual discharge of those administrations and operations. See 1 Cor.
+xii. 4-7, &c. 2. What instance can be given throughout the whole New
+Testament of any persons, whom Christ made the receptacle of church
+government, but withal he gifted them, and made his promises to them, to
+qualify them for such government? As the apostles and their successors:
+"As my Father sent me, even so send I you. And when he had said this, he
+breathed on them, and saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost: whose
+soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them; and whose soever sins
+ye retain, they are retained," John xx. 21-23. And, "Go ye therefore,
+and disciple ye all nations, &c.--And lo, I am with you alway," (or
+every day,) "even to the end of the world," Matt. xxviii. 19, 20. 3.
+Christ being the _wisdom of the Father_, Col. ii. 3, John i. 18, and
+_faithful as was Moses in all his house_; yea, _more faithful_--_Moses
+as a servant_ over another's, he _as a son over his own house_, Heb.
+iii. 2, 5, 6--it cannot stand with his most exact wisdom and fidelity,
+to commit the grand affairs of church government to such as are not duly
+gifted, and sufficiently qualified by himself for the due discharge
+thereof.
+
+_Minor_. But Christ neither promises, nor gives a spirit of ministry,
+nor necessary gifts for church government to the community of the
+faithful. For, 1. The Scriptures teach, that gifts for ministry and
+government are promised and bestowed not on all, but upon some
+particular persons only in the visible body of Christ. "To one is given
+by the Spirit the word of wisdom, to another the word of knowledge,"
+&c., not to all, 1 Cor. xii. 8, 9, &c. "If a man know not how to rule
+his own house, how shall he take care of the church of God?" 1 Tim. iii.
+5. The hypothesis insinuates that all men have not gifts and skill
+rightly to rule their own houses, much less to govern the church. 2.
+Experience tells us, that the multitude of the people are generally
+destitute of such knowledge, wisdom, prudence, learning, and other
+necessary qualifications for the right carrying on of church government.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ makes not the community of the faithful
+the first subject of the power of church government.
+
+_Argum_. IV. The community of the faithful are nowhere in the word
+called or acknowledged to be church governors: therefore they are not
+the first subject of church government.
+
+_Major_. Those persons, who are the first subject and receptacle of
+proper power for church government from Christ, are in the word called
+and acknowledged to be church governors. This is evident, 1. By
+Scripture, which is wont to give to them whom Christ intrusts with his
+government, such names and titles as have rule, authority, and
+government engraven upon them: as _overseers_, Acts xx. 28;
+_governments_, 1 Cor. xii. 28; _rulers_, 1 Tim. v. 17, and Rom. xii. 8;
+with divers others, as after will appear in Chap. XI. 2. By reason,
+which tells us that government and governors are relative terms; and
+therefore to whom government belongs, to them also the denominations of
+governors, rulers, &c., do belong, and not contrariwise.
+
+_Minor_. But the community of the faithful are nowhere in the word
+either called or acknowledged to be church governors. This is clear.
+For, 1. No titles or names are given them by Scripture which imply any
+rule or government in the visible Church of Christ. 2. They are plainly
+set in opposition against, and distinction from, church governors: they
+are called the _flock_; these, _overseers_ set over them by the Holy
+Ghost, Acts xx. 28: they, _the saints_; these _their rulers_, Heb. xiii.
+22: these are _over them in the Lord_; and consequently they are _under
+them in the Lord_, 1 Thes. v. 12. 3. The community of the faithful are
+so far from being the subject of church government themselves, that they
+are expressly charged by the word of Christ to _know, honor, obey_, and
+_submit_, to other governors set over them, and distinct from
+themselves. "Know them who are over you in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12.
+"Let the well-ruling elders be counted worthy of double
+honor; especially," &c., 1 Tim. v. 17. "Obey ye your rulers, and submit,
+for they watch for your souls," Heb. xiii. 17.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first
+subject and receptacle of proper power for church government.
+
+_Argum_. V. This opinion of making the body of the Church, or community
+of the faithful, the first subject and immediate receptacle of the keys
+for the government of the Church, doth inevitably bring along with it
+many intolerable absurdities. Therefore it is not to be granted. Thus we
+may argue:
+
+_Major_. That doctrine or opinion which draws after it unavoidably
+divers intolerable absurdities, is an unsound and unwarrantable opinion.
+
+_Minor_. But this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole community or
+body of the Church to be the first subject and immediate receptacle of
+the keys, draws after it unavoidable divers intolerable absurdities.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole
+community or body of the Church to be the first subject, and immediate
+receptacle of the keys, is an unsound and unwarrantable opinion.
+
+The _Major_ is plain. For, 1. Though matters of religion be above
+reason, yet are they not unreasonable, absurd, and directly contrary to
+right reason. 2. The Scriptures condemn it as a great brand upon men,
+that they are absurd or unreasonable; "Brethren, pray for us--that we
+may be delivered from absurd and evil men," 2 Thes. iii. 2; and
+therefore if absurd men be so culpable, absurdity, and unreasonableness
+itself, which make them such, are much more culpable.
+
+The _Minor_, viz. But this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole
+community or body of the Church to be the first subject and immediate
+receptacle of the keys, draws after it unavoidably divers intolerable
+absurdities, will notably appear by an induction of particulars.
+
+1. Hereby a clear foundation is laid for the rigid Brownist's confused
+democracy, and abhorred anarchy. For, if the whole body of the people be
+the first receptacle of the keys, then all church government and every
+act thereof is in the whole body, and every member of that body a
+governor, consequently every member of that body an officer. But this is
+absurd; for if all be officers, where is the organical body? and if all
+be governors, where are the governed? if all be eyes, where are the
+feet? and if there be none governed, where is the government? it is
+wholly resolved at last into mere democratical anarchy and confusion,
+"but God is not the author of confusion," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. What an
+absurdity were it, if in the body natural _all were an eye_, or _hand_!
+for _where_ then _were the hearing, smelling_, &c.; _or if all were one
+member, where were the body_? 1 Cor. xii. 17,19. So if in the family all
+were masters, where were the household? where were the family
+government? If in a city all were aldermen, where were the citizens?
+where were the city government? If in a kingdom all were kings, where
+were the subjects, the people, the commonalty, the commonwealth, or the
+political government?
+
+2. Hereby the community or whole body of the faithful, even to the
+meanest member, are vested from Christ with full power and authority
+actually to discharge and execute all acts of order and jurisdiction
+without exception: e.g. To preach the word authoritatively, dispense the
+sacraments, ordain their officers, admonish offenders, excommunicate the
+obstinate and incorrigible, and absolve the penitent. For _the keys of
+the kingdom of heaven_ comprehend all these acts jointly, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18-20, with John xx. 21, 23: and to whom Christ in the New
+Testament gives power to execute one of these acts, to them he gives
+power to execute all; they are joined together, Matt, xviii. 19, (except
+in such cases where himself gives a limitation of the power, as in the
+case of the ruling elder, who is limited to ruling as contradistinct to
+_laboring in the word and doctrine_, 1 Tim. v. 17.) Now what gross
+absurdities ensue hereupon! For, 1. Then the weak as well as the strong,
+the ignorant as well as the intelligent, the children as well as the
+parents, yea, and the very women as well as the men, may preach,
+dispense seals, ordain, admonish, excommunicate, absolve
+authoritatively; (for they are all equally members of the body, one as
+well as another, and therefore, as such, have all alike equal share in
+the keys and exercise thereof:) viz. they that are not gifted for these
+offices, shall discharge these offices; they that are not called nor
+sent of God to officiate, (for God sends not all,) shall yet officiate
+in the name of Christ without calling or sending, contrary to Rom. x.,
+Heb. v. 4. They that want the common use of reason and discretion (as
+children) shall have power to join in the highest acts of order and
+jurisdiction: yea, they that are expressly prohibited _speaking in the
+churches_, as the _women_, 1 Cor. xiv., 1 Tim. ii., shall yet have the
+_keys of the kingdom of heaven_ hung at their girdles. 2. Then the
+Church shall be the steward of Christ, and dispenser of the mysteries of
+God authoritatively and properly. But if the whole Church be the
+dispenser of the mysteries of God, what shall be the object of this
+dispensation? Not the Church, for according to this opinion she is the
+first subject dispensing; therefore it must be something distinct from
+the Church, unto which the Church dispenseth; what shall this be? shall
+it be another collateral church? then particular churches collateral may
+take pastoral care one of another reciprocally, and the same churches be
+both over and under one another; or shall it be those that are without
+all churches? then the ordinances of the gospel, and the dispensation of
+them, were not principally bestowed upon the Church and body of Christ
+for the good thereof, (which is directly repugnant to the Scriptures,
+Eph. iv. 8, 11-13;) but rather for them that are without. How shall the
+men, who maintain the principle's of the Independents, clearly help
+themselves out of these perplexing absurdities?
+
+3. Hereby the body of the people (as Mr. Bayly well observes in his
+Dissuasive, chap. ix. page 187) will be extremely unfitted for, and
+unwarrantably taken off from the several duties that lie upon them in
+point of conscience to discharge in their general and particular
+callings, in spiritual and secular matters, on the Lord's days and on
+their own days. For, if the ecclesiastical power be in all the people,
+then all the people are judges, and at least have a negative voice in
+all church matters. They cannot judge in any cause prudently and
+conscientiously, till they have complete knowledge and information of
+both the substantials and circumstantials of all those cases that are
+brought before them; they must not judge blindly, or by an implicit
+faith, &c., but by their own light. For all the people to have such full
+information and knowledge of every cause, cannot but take up abundance
+of time, (many of the people being slow of understanding and extremely
+disposed to puzzle, distract, and confound one another in any business
+to be transacted in common by them all.) If these matters of discipline
+be managed by them on the sabbath day after the dispatch of other public
+ordinances, ministry of the word, prayer, sacraments, &c., what time can
+remain for family duties privately, as repeating sermons, and meditating
+upon the word, searching the Scriptures, whether things preached be so
+indeed, reading the Scriptures, catechizing their children and servants,
+&c.? and how will the life of religion in families, yea, and in churches
+also, languish, if these family exercises be not conscientiously upheld?
+If they be managed on the week days, how can all the people spare so
+much time, as still to be present, when perhaps many of them have much
+ado all the week long to provide food and raiment, and other necessaries
+for their families? and "if any provide not for his own, and specially
+for those of his own house, he hath denied the faith, and is worse than
+an infidel," 1 Tim. v. 8. Let the case of the church of Arnheim[39]
+witness the mischief and absurdity of this popular government once for
+all.
+
+4. Hereby, finally, the community of the faithful (being accounted the
+proper subject of the power of the keys) have authority and power not
+only to elect, but also to ordain their own officers, their pastors and
+teachers. And this they of the independent judgment plainly confess in
+these words:[40] Though the office of a pastor in general be immediately
+from Christ, and the authority from him also, yet the application of
+this office, and of this authority to this elect person, is by the
+church; and therefore the church hath sufficient and just warrant, as to
+elect and call a presbyter unto an office, so to ordain him to it by
+imposition of hands. They that have power to elect a king, have power
+also to depute some in their name to set the crown upon his head. But
+for the whole church or community to ordain presbyters by imposition of
+hands, is very absurd. For, 1. Their women and children, being members
+of the church and of the community, may join in ordaining presbyters by
+imposing of hands, and have as great an influence in appointing them
+that shall actually impose hands, as the rest of the church members
+have, being as properly members as they. 2. Then the community, that
+generally are unable to judge of the fitness and sufficiency of
+presbyters for the pastoral office, in point of necessary gifts of
+learning, &c., shall, without judicious satisfaction herein by previous
+examination, ordain men notwithstanding to the highest ordinary office
+in the church. How ignorantly, how doubtfully, how irregularly, how
+unwarrantably, let the reader judge. 3. Then the community of the
+faithful may assume to themselves power to execute this ordinary act of
+ordination of officers, without all precept of Christ or his apostles,
+and without all warrant of the apostolical churches. But how absurd
+these things be, each moderate capacity may conceive. Further
+absurdities hereupon are declared by Mr. Bain,[41] and after him by Mr.
+Ball.[42]
+
+Whence we may justly conclude,
+
+Therefore this doctrine or opinion, that makes the whole community or
+body of the church to be the first subject and immediate receptacle of
+the keys, is an unsound and unwarrantable opinion.
+
+The middle-way men, (that profess to go between the authoritative
+presbyterial, and the rigid Brownistical way,) seeing these and such
+like absurdities, upon which the Brownists inevitably dash themselves,
+think to salve all by their new-coined distinction of the keys; viz. 1.
+There is a key of faith or knowledge, Luke xi. 52. The first subject of
+this key is every believer, whether joined to any particular church or
+not. 2. There is a key of order, Col. ii. 5, which is either, 1. A key
+of interest, power, or liberty, Gal. v. 13, which key is of a more large
+nature; 2. A key of rule and authority, which is of more strict nature,
+Matt. xvi. 19, John xx. 23. Hence, upon this distinction premised, they
+thus infer, 1. A particular congregation of saints is the first subject
+of all the church offices with all their spiritual gifts and power, 1
+Cor. iii. 22. 2. The apostles of Christ were the first subject of
+apostolical power. 3. The brethren of a particular congregation are the
+first subjects of church liberty. 4. The elders of a particular church
+are the first subjects of church authority. 5. Both the elders and
+brethren, walking and joining together in truth and peace, are the first
+subjects of all church power needful to be exercised in their own body.
+
+_Answer_. A rotten foundation, and a tottering superstruction, which
+tumbles down upon the builders' own heads: for,
+
+1. This distribution of the keys is infirm in divers respects: e.g. 1.
+In that the key of knowledge (as it stands here distinguished from the
+key of order, comprehending the key of power and authority) is left
+utterly devoid of all power. Now no key of the kingdom of heaven is to
+be left without all power, Independents themselves being judges. 2. In
+that the key of power is left as utterly void of all authority, (being
+contradistinguished from the key of authority,) as the key of knowledge
+is left void of power. Now, power and authority, in matters of
+government, seem to be both one; and the word in the original signifies
+the one as well as the other. 3. The key of liberty or interest is a new
+key, lately forged by some new locksmiths in Separation-shop, to be a
+pick-lock of the power of church officers, and to open the door for
+popular government; no ordinance of Christ, but a mere human invention,
+(as will after appear upon examination of that scripture upon which it
+is grounded,) and therefore this limb of the distribution is redundant,
+a superfluous excrescence. 4. The texts of Scripture upon which this
+distribution of the keys is grounded, are divers of them abused, or at
+least grossly mistaken; for, Luke xi. 52, key of knowledge is
+interpreted only the key of saving faith. But knowledge, in strict
+speaking, is one thing, and faith another; there may be knowledge where
+there is no faith; and knowledge, in a sort, is a key to faith, as the
+inlet thereof. And the key of knowledge, viz. true doctrine and pure
+preaching of the word, is a distinct thing from knowledge itself. This
+key the lawyers had taken away by not interpreting, or misinterpreting
+of the law; but they could not take away the people's faith, or
+knowledge itself. Touching Col. ii. 5, 6, _your order_, it will be hard
+to prove this was only or chiefly intended of the keys delivered to
+Peter: doth it not rather denote the people's moral orderly walking,
+according to the rule of faith and life, as in other duties, so in
+submitting themselves to Christ's order of government, as is elsewhere
+required, Heb. xiii. 17? And as for Gal. v. 13, produced to prove the
+key of liberty, _Brethren, you have been called unto liberty_, there is
+too much liberty taken in wresting this text; for the apostle here
+speaks not of liberty as a church power, of choosing officers, joining
+in censures, &c., but as a gospel privilege, consisting in freedom from
+the ceremonial law, that yoke of bondage, which false teachers would
+have imposed upon them, after Christ had broken it off; as will further
+appear, if you please with this text to compare Gal. v. 1, 11, 15, 10,
+and well consider the current of the whole context.
+
+2. The inferences upon this distribution of the keys premised, are very
+strange and untheological. For it may be accepted in general, that it is
+a groundless fancy to make several first subjects of the keys, according
+to the several distributions of the keys; for, had all the members of
+the distribution been good, yet this inference thereupon is naught,
+inasmuch as the Scripture tells us plainly, that all the keys together
+and at once were promised to Peter, Matt. xvi. 19, and given to the
+apostles, Matt, xviii. 18, 19, with xxviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21-23;
+so that originally the apostles and their successors were the only first
+subject and immediate receptacle of all the keys from Christ. And though
+since, for assistance and case of the pastor, they are divided into more
+hands--viz. of the ruling elder, Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v.
+17--yet originally the subject was but one. Further, here is just ground
+for many particular exceptions: as, 1. That every believer, whether
+joined to any particular church or not, is made the first subject of the
+key of knowledge, which seems to be extremely absurd: for then every
+particular believer, gifted or ungifted, strong or weak, man, woman, or
+child, hath power to preach, (taking the key of knowledge here for the
+key of doctrine, as it ought to be taken, or else it is no
+ecclesiastical key at all,) which is one of the highest offices, and
+which the great apostle said, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2
+Cor. ii. 16. How unscriptural and irrational this is, all may judge.
+Then also some of the keys may be committed to such as are without the
+Church. Then finally, it is possible to be a believer, and yet in no
+visible church; (for Independents hold there is no church but a
+particular congregation, which is their only church:) but a man is no
+sooner a true believer, but he is a member of the invisible Church: he
+is no sooner a professed believer, but he is a member of the general
+visible Church, though he be joined to no particular congregation. 2.
+That a particular congregation of saints is made the first subject of
+all the church offices, with all their spiritual gifts and power, 1 Cor.
+iii. 22. But is the word subject used here properly, for the first
+subject recipient of all church offices, with all their gifts and power?
+Then the congregation of saints are either officers themselves formally,
+and can execute the function of all sorts of officers, and have all
+gifts to that end; what need then is there of any select officers? for
+they can make officers virtually, and furnish those officers with gifts
+and power to that end; but who gave them any such authority? Or what
+apostolical church ever assumed to themselves any such thing? Officers,
+not churches, are the first subject of such gifts and power. Is the word
+subject here used improperly, for object, whose good all offices with
+their gifts and power are given? Then not any particular congregation,
+but the whole general visible Church is the object for which all offices
+and officers with their gifts and power are primarily given, 1 Cor. xii.
+28; Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12. As for that place, 1 Cor. iii. 22, "All is
+yours," &c., it points not out the particular privilege of any one
+single congregation, (nor was the church of Corinth such, but
+presbyterial, see chap. XIII.,) but the general privilege of all true
+saints, and of the invisible mystical Church: for were Paul and Cephas
+apostles given peculiarly to the church of Corinth only? Or was the
+_world, life, death, things present and to come_, given to the wicked in
+the church of Corinth? 3. That the apostles are made the first subject
+of all apostolical power. But then, how doth this contradict the former
+assertion, that a particular congregation is the first subject of all
+offices with their gifts and power? Are there two first subjects of the
+same adjuncts? Or is apostleship no office? Are apostolical gifts no
+gifts, or power no power? or have apostles all from the Church?
+Doubtless apostles were before all Christian churches, and had the keys
+given them before the churches had their being. 4. That the brethren of
+a particular congregation are made the first subjects of church liberty.
+But, if that liberty be power and authority, then this evidently
+contradicts the former, that a particular congregation is the first
+subject of all offices and power; for brethren here are distinct from
+elders, and both do but make up a particular congregation. If liberty
+here be not power, then it is none of Christ's keys, but a new forged
+pick-lock. 5. That the elders of a particular church are made the first
+subject of church authority; but then here is a contradiction to the
+former position, that made the particular congregation the first subject
+of all power. And though apostles and elders be the first subject of
+authority, yet, when the keys were first committed to them, they were
+not in relation to any particular church, but to the general. 6.
+Finally, that both elders and brethren, walking and joining together in
+truth and peace, are the first subjects of all church power, is liable
+also to exception. For this joins the brethren (who indeed have no
+authoritative power at all) with the elders, as the joint subject of all
+power. And this but allowed to them walking and joining together in
+truth and peace: but what if the major part of the Church prove
+heretical, and so walk not in truth; or schismatical, and so walk not in
+peace, shall the elders and the non-offending party lose all their
+power? Where then shall that independent church find healing? for
+appeals to presbyteries and synods are counted apocryphal by them. But
+enough hath been said to detect the vanity of these new dreams and
+notions; it is a bad sore that must be wrapped in so many clouts.[43]
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI.
+
+_Of the proper Receptacle, or immediate subject of the Power of Church
+Government: affirmatively, what it is, viz. Christ's own Officers._
+
+
+Thus the proper receptacle or subject of ecclesiastical power hath been
+considered negatively, what it is not, viz: not the political
+magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, with or without their eldership. Now this receptacle of power
+comes to be evidenced affirmatively, what it is, viz. (according to the
+express words of the description of government,) Christ's own officers.
+This is the last branch of the description, the divine right whereof
+remains to be cleared; which may most satisfactorily be done by
+evidencing these three things, viz: 1. That Jesus Christ our Mediator
+hath certain peculiar church guides and officers which he hath erected
+in his Church. 2. That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath especially
+intrusted his own officers with the government of his Church. 3. How, or
+in what sense the ruling officers are intrusted with this government,
+severally or jointly?
+
+
+SECTION I.
+
+1. _Of the Divine Right of Christ's Church Officers, viz. Pastors and
+Teachers, with Ruling Elders._
+
+Touching the first, that Christ hath certain peculiar church guides and
+officers, which he hath erected in his Church. Take it thus:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath ordained and set in his Church (besides
+the apostles and other extraordinary officers that are now ceased)
+pastors and teachers, as also ruling elders, as the subject of the keys
+for all ordinary ecclesiastical administrations. The divine right of
+these ordinary church officers may appear as followeth:
+
+I. Pastors and teachers are the ordinance of Jesus Christ. This is
+generally granted on all sides; and therefore these few particulars may
+suffice for the demonstration of it, viz:
+
+1. They are enumerated in the list or catalogue of those church officers
+which are of divine institution. "God hath set" (or put, constituted)
+"some in the Church, first, apostles; secondarily, prophets; thirdly,
+teachers," 1 Cor. xii. 28. These are some of the triumphant gifts and
+trophies of Christ's ascension: "Ascending up on high, he led captivity
+captive, and gave gifts to men: and he gave some apostles, and some
+prophets, and some evangelists, and some pastors and teachers," Eph. iv.
+8, 11. Thus in that exact roll of ordinary officers: "Having, therefore,
+gifts different according to the grace given unto us; whether prophecy,
+let us prophesy according to the proportion of faith; or ministry, let
+us wait on our ministry;" (here is the general distribution of all
+ordinary officers under two heads, _prophecy_ and _ministry_:) "or he
+that teacheth, on teaching; or he that exhorteth, on exhortation," (here
+is the teacher and the pastor, that come under the first head of
+prophecy,) Rom. xii. 6-8. "Take heed to yourselves, and to all the
+flock, over which the Holy Ghost hath made" (or set) "you overseers,"
+Acts xx. 28. Note--God hath set in the Church; Christ hath given for his
+body; the Holy Ghost hath made overseers over the flock, these pastors
+and teachers: and are not pastors and teachers church officers by divine
+right, having the authority of God, Christ, and of the Holy Ghost?
+
+2. They are to be thus and thus qualified according to divine direction.
+The qualifications of these pastors and teachers, (called presbyters and
+overseers,) see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, "An overseer," or bishop, "must be
+blameless," &c.; and Tit. i. 5-10, "To ordain presbyters," or elders,
+"in every city--If any be blameless," &c. Now, where God lays down
+qualifications for pastors and teachers, there he approves such officers
+to be his own ordinance.
+
+3. They have manifold church employments committed to them from Christ,
+as ministers of Christ and stewards of the mysteries of God, (1 Cor. iv.
+1, 2,) they being intrusted in whole or in part with the managing of
+most if not all the ordinances forementioned in part 2, chap. VII., as
+there by the texts alleged is evident. Matters of order and special
+office are committed to them only _divisim_: matters of jurisdiction are
+committed to them with ruling elders _conjunctim_. If Christ hath
+intrusted them thus with church ordinances, and the dispensing of them,
+sure they are Christ's church officers.
+
+4. The very names and titles given them in Scripture proclaim them to be
+Christ's own ordinance; among many take these: "Ministers of Christ," 1
+Cor. iv. 1; "Stewards of the mysteries of God," 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+"Ambassadors for Christ," 2 Cor. v. 20; "Laborers thrust forth into his
+harvest by the Lord of the harvest," Matt. ix. 38; "Ruling over you in
+the Lord,"[44] 1 Thess. v. 12.
+
+5. The Lord Christ charges their flock and people with many duties to be
+performed to their pastors and teachers, because of their office; as to
+know them, love them, obey them, submit unto them, honor them, maintain
+them, &c., which he would not do were they not his own ordinance. "But
+we beseech you, brethren, to know them that labor among you, and rule
+over you in the Lord, and esteem them very highly in love for their
+work's sake," 1 Thess. v. 12, 13. "Obey your rulers, and submit; for
+they watch for your souls as those that must give an account," Heb.
+xiii. 17. "The elders that rule well count worthy of double honor;
+especially them that labor in the word and doctrine; _for the Scripture
+saith_, Thou shalt not muzzle the mouth of the ox that treadeth out the
+corn, and the laborer is worthy of his hire," 1 Tim. v. 17, 18; compared
+With 1 Cor. ix. 6-15. "Let him that is catechized, communicate to him
+that catechizeth him in all good things," Gal. vi. 6-8.
+
+Thus much for the present may suffice to have been spoken touching the
+divine right of pastors and teachers, the ordinary standing ministers of
+Christ under the New Testament. But forasmuch as we observe that in
+these days some rigid Erastians and Seekers oppose and deny the very
+office of the ministry now under the gospel, and others profess that the
+ministry of the church of England is false and antichristian; we
+intend, (by God's assistance,) as soon as we can rid our hands from
+other pressing employments, to endeavor the asserting and vindicating of
+the divine right of the ministers of the New Testament in general, and
+of the truth of the ministry of the church of England in particular.
+
+II. Ruling elders, distinct from all preaching elders and deacons, are a
+divine ordinance in the Church of God now under the New Testament.
+
+The divine right of this church officer, the mere ruling elder, is much
+questioned and doubted by some, because they find not the Scriptures
+speaking so fully and clearly of the ruling elder as of the preaching
+elder and of the deacon. By others it is flatly denied and opposed, as
+by divers that adhere too tenaciously to the Erastian and prelatical
+principles: who yet are willing to account the assistance of the ruling
+elder in matter of church government to be a very prudential way. But if
+mere prudence be counted once a sufficient foundation for a distinct
+kind of church officer, we shall open a door for invention of church
+officers at pleasure; then welcome commissioners and committee men, &c.;
+yea, then let us return to the vomit, and resume prelates, deans,
+archdeacons, chancellors, officials, &c., for church officers. And where
+shall we stop? who but Christ Jesus himself can establish new officers
+in his church? Is it not the fruit of his ascension, &c.? Eph. iv. 7,
+11, 12. Certainly if the Scriptures lay not before us grounds more than
+prudential for the ruling elder, it were better never to have mere
+ruling elders in the church. Both the Presbyterians and Independents[45]
+acknowledge the divine right of the ruling elder. For satisfaction of
+doubting unprejudiced minds, (to omit divers considerations that might
+be produced,) the divine right of the ruling elder may be evinced by
+these ensuing arguments.
+
+_Argum_. I. The first argument for the divine right of the ruling elder
+in the Church of Christ, shall be drawn from Rom. xii. 6-8: "Having,
+then, gifts differing according to the grace that is given to us,
+whether prophecy, let us prophesy according to the proportion of faith;
+or ministry, _let us wait_ on our ministering; or he that teacheth, on
+teaching; or he that exhorteth, on exhortation; he that giveth, _let him
+do it_ with simplicity; he that ruleth, with diligence," &c. Let the
+scope and context of this chapter be a little viewed, and it will make
+way for the more clear arguing from this place. Briefly thus: The
+apostle having finished the principal part of his epistle, which was
+problematical, wherein he disputed--1. About justification, chap,
+i.-vi.; 2. Sanctification, chap. vi. 7, 8; and, 3. Predestination, chap.
+ix. 10, 11, he comes to the next branch, which is more practical, about
+good works, chap. xii.-xvi. This twelfth chapter is wholly in the way of
+exhortation, and he herein exhorts to divers duties. 1. More generally
+that we should even consecrate ourselves wholly to the service of God,
+ver. 1; that we should not conform to the world, ver. 2. More specially
+he descends to particular duties, which are of two sorts, viz: 1. Such
+as concern ecclesiastical officers as officers, ver. 3-9; 2. Such as
+concern all Christians in common as Christians, both towards one another
+and towards their very enemies, verse 9, to the end of the chapter.
+Touching ecclesiastical officers, the apostle's evident scope is to urge
+them not to be proud of their spiritual gifts, (which in those days
+abounded,) but to think soberly, self-denyingly of themselves, and to
+use all their gifts well. This he presseth upon them, 1. From the nature
+of the Church, which is as a natural organical body, wherein are many
+members, having their several offices for the good of the whole body; so
+the members of Christ's body being many, have their several gifts and
+offices for the good of the whole, that the superior should not despise
+the inferior, nor the inferior envy their superior, ver. 3-5. 2. From
+the distribution or enumeration of the several kinds of ordinary
+standing officers in this organical body, the Church, who are severally
+exhorted duly to discharge those duties that are specially required of
+them in their several functions, ver. 6-8. These officers are reduced
+first to two general heads, viz: Prophecy (understand not the
+extraordinary gift of foretelling future things, &c., but the ordinary,
+in the right understanding and interpreting of Scripture) and ministry;
+and the general duties thereof are annexed, ver. 6, 7. Then these
+generals are subdivided into the special offices contained under them,
+the special duty of every officer being severally pressed upon them.
+Under prophecy are contained, 1. _He that teacheth_, i.e., the doctor or
+teacher; 2. _He that exhorteth_, i.e., the pastor, ver. 7, 8. Under
+ministry are comprised, 1. _He that giveth_, i.e., the deacon; 2. _He
+that ruleth_, i.e., the ruling elder. The current of our best
+interpreters to this effect resolve this context. So that here we have a
+very excellent and perfect enumeration of all the ordinary standing
+officers in the Church of Christ distinctly laid down. This premised,
+the argument for the divine right of the ruling elder may be thus
+propounded:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever members of Christ's organical body have an ordinary
+office of ruling therein given them of God, distinct from all other
+ordinary standing officers in the church, together with directions from
+God how they are to rule; they are the ruling elders we seek, and that
+by divine right.
+
+_Minor_. But _he that ruleth_, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is a member of
+Christ's organical body, having an ordinary office of ruling therein
+given him of God, distinct from all other standing officers in the
+church, together with direction how he is to rule.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is the
+ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.
+
+The major proposition is clear. For in the particulars of it, well
+compared together, are observable both a plain delineation or
+description of the ruling elder's office; and also a firm foundation for
+the divine right of that office. The ruling elder's office is described
+and delineated by these several clauses, which set out so many
+requisites for the making up of a ruling elder, viz: 1. He must be a
+member of Christ's organical body. Such as are without, pagans,
+heathens, infidels, &c., out of the Church, they are not fit objects for
+church government, to have it exercised by the Church upon them; the
+Church only judges them that are within, (1 Cor. v. 12, 13,) much less
+can they be fit subjects of church government to exercise it themselves
+within the Church. How shall they be officers in the Church that are not
+so much as members of the Church? Besides, such as are only members of
+the invisible body of Christ, as the glorified saints in heaven, they
+cannot be officers in the Church; for not the Church invisible, but only
+the Church or body of Christ visible is organical. So that every church
+officer must first be a Church member, a member of the visible organical
+body: consequently a ruling elder must be such a member. 2. He must have
+an office of ruling in this body of Christ. Membership is not enough,
+unless that power of rule be superadded thereto; for the whole office of
+the ruling elder is contained in the matter of rule; take away rule, you
+destroy the very office. Now, rule belongs not to every member: "Salute
+all them that have the rule over you, and all the saints," Heb. xiii.
+24, where rulers and saints are made contradistinct to one another. In
+the body natural all the members are not eyes, hands, &c., governing the
+body, some are rather governed; so in the body of Christ, 1 Cor. xii. 3.
+This his office of ruling must be an ordinary office; apostles had some
+power that was extraordinary, as their apostleship was extraordinary;
+but when we seek for this ruling elder, we seek for a fixed, standing,
+ordinary officer ruling in the church. 4. All that is not enough, that
+he be a member of the church, that he have an office of rule in the
+church, and that office also be ordinary; but besides all these it is
+necessary that he be also distinct from all other standing officers in
+the church, viz. from pastors, teachers, deacons; else all the former
+will not make up a peculiar kind of officer, if in all points he fully
+agree with any of the said three. But if there can be found such an
+officer in whom all these four requisites do meet, viz: That, 1. Is a
+member of Christ's organical body; 2. Hath an office of rule therein; 3,
+That office is ordinary; and, 4. That ordinary office is distinct from
+all other ordinary standing offices in the church; this must unavoidably
+be that very ruling elder which we inquire after. By this it is evident,
+that in this proposition here is a plain and clear delineation of the
+ruling elder's office. Now, in the next place, touching the foundation
+for the divine right of this office; it also is notably expressed in the
+same proposition, while it presupposeth, 1. That God is the giver of
+this office; 2. That God is the guider of this office. For whatsoever
+office or officer God gives for his Church, and having given it, guides
+and directs to the right discharge thereof, that must needs be of divine
+right beyond all contradiction. Thus this proposition is firm and
+cogent. Now let us assume:
+
+_Minor_. But _he that ruleth_, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is a member of
+Christ's organical body, having an ordinary office of ruling therein,
+given him of God, distinct from all other ordinary standing officers in
+the church, together with direction from God how he is to rule.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition (whereon the main stress of the
+argument doth lie) may be thus evidenced by parts, from this context:
+
+_He that ruleth_ is a member of Christ's organical body. For, 1. The
+Church of Christ is here compared to a body, _We being many are one body
+in Christ_, ver. 5. 2. This body is declared to be organical, i.e.
+consisting of several members, that have their several offices in the
+body, some of teaching, some of exhorting, and some of ruling, &c. "For
+as we have many members in one body, and all members have not the same
+office, so we being many are one body in Christ, and every one members
+one of another," &c., ver. 4-6, &c. 3. Among the rest of the members of
+this body, _he that ruleth_ is reckoned up for one, ver. 5-8; this is
+palpably evident.
+
+_He that ruleth_ hath an office of ruling in this body of Christ. For,
+1. This word (translated) _he that ruleth_, in the proper signification
+and use of it, both in the Scriptures and in other Greek authors, doth
+signify one that ruleth authoritatively over another, (as hereafter is
+manifested in the 3d argument, § 2.) 2. Our best interpreters and
+commentators do render and expound the word generally to this effect:
+e.g. He that is over[46]--one set over[47]--he that stands in the head
+or front[48]--as a captain or commander in the army, to which this
+phrase seems to allude--_he that ruleth_. 3. This word, wherever it is
+used in a genuine proper sense, in all the New Testament, notes rule, or
+government. It is used metaphorically for taking care (as one set over
+any business) of good works, only in two places, Tit. iii. 8, and iii.
+14. Properly for government which superiors have over inferiors; and
+that either domestical, in private families, so it is used in 1 Tim.
+iii. 4, 5, 12, or ecclesiastical, in the church, which is the public
+family of God; in this sense it is used, 1 Thes. v. 12, 1 Tim. v. 17,
+and here, Rom. xii. 8, and these are all the places where this word is
+found used in all the New Testament.
+
+3. _He that ruleth_ here, hath an ordinary, not an extraordinary office
+of rule in the church. For he is ranked and reckoned up in the list of
+Christ's ordinary standing officers, that are constantly to continue in
+the church, viz. pastors, teachers, deacons. Commonly this place is
+interpreted to speak of the ordinary church officers, and none other;
+consequently he that ruleth is such a one.
+
+4. _He that ruleth_ here, is an officer distinct from all other ordinary
+officers in the Church of Christ. For in this place we have a full
+enumeration of all Christ's ordinary officers, and he that ruleth is a
+distinct officer among them all. 1. Distinct in name, he only is called
+_he that ruleth_, the rest have every one of them their several distinct
+name, ver. 7, 8. 2. Distinct in his work here appropriated to him; the
+doctor teacheth; the pastor exhorteth; the deacon giveth; this elder
+_ruleth_, as the very name signifieth, ver. 8. Compare 1 Tim. v. 17, 1
+Cor. xii. 28. As the elder ruleth, so he is distinct from the deacon
+that hath no rule in the church; and as he only rules, so he is distinct
+from both pastor and teacher, that both teach, exhort, and rule; they
+both have power of order and jurisdiction, the ruling elder hath only
+power of jurisdiction. 3. Finally, he is distinct among and from them
+all in the particular direction here given these officers about the
+right discharge of their functions. The teacher must be exercised _in
+teaching_; the pastor _in exhortation_; the deacon must _give with
+singleness_; and the elder, he must _rule with diligence, studiousness_,
+&c. Now what other solid reason can be imagined, why _he that ruleth_
+should here have a distinct name, distinct work and employment, and
+distinct direction how to manage this work, than this, that the Holy
+Ghost might set him out unto us as an ordinary officer in the church,
+distinct from all the other standing officers here enumerated?
+
+5. God himself is the author and giver of this office of him that
+ruleth, as well as of all the other offices here mentioned. For, 1. All
+gifts and endowments in the church in general, and in every member in
+particular; they are from God, it is he that gives and divides them as
+he will, _as God hath dealt to every one the measure of faith_, Rom.
+xii. 3. 2. All the special offices, and gifts for these offices in
+special, are also from the same God, _we having therefore gifts
+according to the grace given unto us, differing; whether prophecy_, &c.,
+Rom, xii. 6, 7, &c. Here it is plain that he distinguished betwixt grace
+and gifts. By grace here we are to understand that holy office or charge
+in the church, which is given to any man by the grace and favor of God.
+And in this sense the apostle in this very chapter, ver. 3, useth the
+word _grace: For I say through the grace given to me_, i.e. through the
+authority of my apostleship, which by grace I have received, &c. By
+gifts, we are to understand those endowments wherewith God hath freely
+furnished his officers in the church for their several offices. Now both
+these gifts and this grace, both the endowments and the office, are
+originally from God, his grace is the fountain of them; and both the
+grace of each office, and the gifts for such office, relate to all these
+ordinary offices here enumerated, as is evident by the current and
+connection of the whole context, see ver. 6-8; consequently the grace,
+i.e. the office of ruling, which is of divine grace, and the gifts for
+that office, arise from the same fountain, God himself.
+
+6. Finally, God himself is the guider and director of him that ruleth,
+here prescribing to him how he is to rule, viz. _with diligence, with
+studiousness_, &c., ver. 8. Now we may receive this as a maxim, That of
+divine right may be done, for which God gives his divine rule how it is
+to be done: and that office must needs be of divine right, which God
+himself so far approves as to direct in his word how it shall be
+discharged.
+
+Now, to sum up all, he that ruleth here, 1. Is a member of Christ's
+organical body. 2. Hath an office of ruling in this body. 3. This his
+office is not extraordinary but ordinary, standing, and perpetual. 4. He
+is an officer distinct from all other ordinary officers in the Church.
+5. God himself is the giver and author of this office. 6. And God
+himself is the guider and director of this office: and then see if we
+may not clearly conclude,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore, he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is
+the ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.
+
+The adversaries of ruling elders muster up divers exceptions against the
+alleging of Rom. xii. 8, for proof of the divine right of their office,
+the weakness of which is to be discovered ere we pass to another
+argument. _Except_. 1. This is an arguing from a general to a special
+affirmatively. It doth not follow, because the apostle here in general
+mentioneth him that ruleth, therefore in special it must be the ruling
+elder.[49]
+
+_Ans_. This exception is the same with first exception against the
+second argument hereafter laid down. There see. For the same answer
+appositely and satisfactorily is applicable to both.
+
+_Except_. 2. But the apostle here speaks of them that rule, but we have
+nowhere received that such elders have rule over the church--and he
+speaks of all that rule in the church, who therefore would wrest this
+place only to elders? One cannot rightly attribute that word translated
+_he that ruleth_ to elders only, which is common unto more. If these
+elders he here meant, neither pastors nor teachers ought to rule, for
+this word agrees no otherwise to him that ruleth, than the word of
+exhorting to him that exhorteth.[50]
+
+_Ans_. 1. That such elders rule in the church is evident, both by Rom.
+xii. 8, where this word implies rule as hath been showed, and he that
+ruleth is reckoned up amongst ordinary church officers, as hath been
+said, therefore he rules in the church: these the apostle also calls
+ruling elders, 1 Tim. v. 17, viz. officers in the church, and distinct
+from them that labor in the word and doctrine; as in the third argument
+will appear: yea, they are governments set of God in the church,
+distinct from other officers, 1 Cor. xii. 28, as in the second argument
+shall be evidenced: there see; therefore these elders have rule.
+
+2. Though in this term the apostle speaks of him that ruleth, yet he
+speaks not of every one that ruleth. For, 1. He speaks singularly, he
+that ruleth, as of one kind of ruling officer; not plurally, they that
+rule, as if he had indefinitely or universally meant all the ruling
+officers in the church. 2. He reckons up here distinct kinds of ordinary
+officers, pastors, teachers, elders, and deacons; and pastors and
+teachers, besides laboring in the word, have power of rule, 1 Thes. v.
+12, Heb. xiii. 7-17, and he that ruleth, here, is distinct from them
+both; and therefore this term cannot mean all church rulers, but only
+one kind, viz. the ruling elder.
+
+3. Though this name, _he that ruleth_, be common unto more rulers in the
+church, than to the mere ruling elder; yet it doth not therefore
+necessarily follow, that it cannot here particularly point out only the
+mere ruling elder, inasmuch, as _he that ruleth_, is not here set
+alone, (for then this objection might have had some color,) but is
+enumerated with other officers as distinct from them.
+
+4. Though the ruling elder here be called _he that ruleth_, yet this
+doth not exclude the pastor from ruling, no more than when the ordinary
+ministers are called pastors and teachers, the apostles and evangelists
+are excluded from feeding and teaching, in Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii.
+28. This elder is called, _he that ruleth_, not that there is no other
+ruler than he, but because he doth no other thing but rule, others rule
+and preach also.
+
+_Except_. 3. If this were meant of such elders, then these elders were
+as necessary to the church as pastors, being given to the church by the
+like reason. Consequently where these elders are not, there is no
+church; as there is no church where the word and sacraments are not.[51]
+
+_Ans_. 1. According to this argument deacons are as necessary as either
+pastors, teachers, or elders, and without deacons there should be no
+church; for they are all enumerated here alike, Rom. xii. 7, 8, and in 1
+Cor. xii. 28; but this would be absurd, and against experience. 2.
+Though both pastors and ruling elders belong to the church by divine
+right, yet doth it not follow that the ruling elder is equally as
+necessary as the pastor. The ruling elder only rules, the pastor both
+rules and preaches, therefore he is more necessary to the church. There
+are degrees of necessity; some things are absolutely necessary to the
+being of a church, as matter and form, viz. visible saints, and a due
+profession of faith, and obedience to Christ, according to the gospel.
+Thus it is possible a church may be, and yet want both deacons, elders,
+and pastors too, yea, and word and sacraments for a time: some things
+are only respectively necessary to the well-being of a church; thus
+officers are necessary, yet some more than others, without which the
+church is lame, defective, and miserably imperfect.
+
+_Except_. 4. Should ruling elders here be meant, then deacons that obey,
+should be preferred before the elders that rule.[52]
+
+_Ans_. Priority of order is no infallible argument of priority of worth
+and dignity; as is evidenced in answer to the third exception against
+Arg. II.--there see; we find Priscilla a woman named before Aquila a
+man, and her husband, Acts xviii. 18; Rom. xvi. 3; 1 Tim. iv. 19; is
+therefore the woman preferred before the man? the wife before the
+husband? And again, Aquila is set before Priscilla, Acts xviii. 2, 26, 1
+Cor. xvi. 19, to let us see that the Holy Ghost indifferently speaks
+of superior and inferior before one another.
+
+_Except_. 5. But here the apostle speaketh of divers gifts and graces,
+for so _differing gifts_ do import, not of divers offices: for then they
+might not concur in one man, and consequently neither might the prophet
+teach, nor exhort, nor the deacon distribute, nor show mercy. Many gifts
+may be common in one man, many offices cannot;--which of these gifts in
+the apostles' times was not common as well to the people as to the
+pastors; and to women as well as to men? &c.[53]
+
+_Ans_. Divers considerations may be propounded to discover the vanity of
+this exception: chiefly take these three.
+
+1. There is no sufficient reason in this exception, proving the apostle
+here to speak only of divers gifts and graces, and not of divers offices
+also. For, 1. This is not proved by that expression, _differing gifts_,
+ver. 6, for these differing gifts are not here spoken of abstractly and
+absolutely, without reference to their subjects, but relatively with
+reference to their subjects wherein they are, viz. in the several
+officers, ver. 7, 8, and therefore, as the apostle mentions the
+_differing gifts_, so here he tells us in the same sixth verse, that we
+have these "different gifts, according to the grace given unto us," i.e.
+according to the office given unto us of God's grace, (as hath been
+manifested,) after which immediately is subjoined an enumeration of
+offices. 2. Nor is this proved by the inference made, upon the granting
+that divers offices are here meant, viz. [Then they might not concur in
+one man, the prophet might not teach nor exhort, &c.; many gifts may be
+common in one man, many offices cannot.] For who is so little versed in
+the Scriptures, but he knows that apostles, pastors, elders, deacons,
+are distinct officers one from another; yet all the inferior offices are
+virtually comprehended in the superior, and may be discharged by them:
+elders may distribute as well as deacons; and beyond them, rule: pastors
+may distribute and rule as well as deacons and elders, and beyond both
+preach, dispense sacraments, and ordain ministers. Apostles may do there
+all, and many things besides extraordinary. Much more may the prophet
+teach and exhort, and the deacon distribute and show mercy; these being
+the proper acts of their office. 3. Nor, finally, is this proved by that
+suggestion, that all these gifts in the apostles' times were common to
+all sorts and sexes, women as well as men; as he after takes much pains
+to prove, but to very little purpose. For not only in the apostles'
+times, but in our times also, all Christians may teach, exhort,
+distribute, show mercy, &c., privately, occasionally, by bond of
+charity, and law of fraternity towards one another mutually: but may not
+teach, exhort, rule, distribute, &c., authoritatively by virtue of their
+office, so as to give themselves wholly to such employments, which is
+the thing here intended; yet it is worth observing how far Bilson was
+transported against ruling elders, that rather than yield to their
+office, he will make all these gifts common to all sorts and sexes, men
+and women. This is new divinity; all sorts and sexes may both preach and
+rule. Let Bilson have the credit of symbolizing with the Separatists, if
+not of transcending them.
+
+2. Here is good ground in the context to make us think that the apostle
+here spoke of distinct church officers, and not only of distinct gifts.
+For, 1. In the similitude of a natural body (whereunto here the church
+is compared) he speaks of distinct members, having distinct offices,
+ver. 4. "For as we have many members in one body, and all members have
+not the same office." 2. In his accommodation of this similitude, he
+speaks not only of gifts, but also of offices according to which these
+gifts are given, which he calls _grace_, ver. 6, (as was noted.). This
+grace given, or this office given of grace, is branched out, first, into
+two general heads, viz. _prophecy_ and _ministry_, ver. 6, 7. Then these
+generals are subdivided into the special offices contained under them,
+viz.: Under prophecy the teacher, _he that teacheth_; and the pastor,
+_he that exhorteth_; under ministry the deacon, _he that distributeth_;
+and the ruling elder, _he that ruleth_. Now there is in the text just
+ground for this resolution of the text, in making prophecy and ministry
+generals, and all the rest special kinds of officers; forasmuch as
+prophecy and ministry are expressed abstractly, _whether prophecy_,
+(not, whether we are prophets;) _whether ministry_, (not, whether we are
+deacons, ministers:) and both prophecy and ministry are put in the
+accusative case; and both of them have relation, and are joined unto the
+participle of the plural number _having_, intimating that divers do
+share in prophecy, pastor and teacher; divers in ministry, deacon and
+ruling elder. But all the other are expressed concretely, and in the
+nominative case, and in the singular number, and to every of them the
+single article is prefixed, translated He--_He that teacheth--He that
+exhorteth--He that giveth--He that ruleth_. Hence we have great cause to
+count prophecy and ministry as generals; all the rest as special offices
+under them.
+
+_Argum_. II. The second argument for the divine right of the ruling
+elder shall be grounded upon 1 Cor. xii. 28: "And God hath set some in
+the church, first, apostles, secondly, prophets, thirdly, teachers,
+afterwards powers, then gifts of healing, helps, governments, kinds of
+tongue." God, in the first founding of Christianity and of the primitive
+churches, bestowed many eminent gifts upon divers Christians; the church
+of Corinth greatly excelled in such gifts, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Hence their
+members gifted, grew spiritually proud, and despised their brethren; to
+correct which abuse of gifts, and direct them to the right use thereof
+for the common profit of all, is the chief scope of this chapter, see
+verse 7, "The manifestation of the Spirit is given to every man to
+profit withal." For, 1. All their gifts flow from one and the same
+fountain, the Spirit of God, therefore should be improved for the common
+good of all, especially considering no one man hath all gifts, but
+several men have several gifts, that all might be beholden to one
+another, ver. 8-11. 2. The whole Church of Christ throughout all the
+world is but one body, and that body organical, having several members
+therein placed for several uses, as eyes, hands, &c., wherein the
+meanest members are useful and necessary to the highest: therefore all
+members should harmoniously lay out their gifts for the good of the
+whole body, without jars or divisions, ver. 12-28. 3. All the several
+officers, whether extraordinary or ordinary, though furnished with
+several gifts and several administrations, yet are placed by one and the
+same God, in one and the same general Church; and therefore should all
+level at the benefit of the whole church, without pride, animosities,
+divisions, &c., ver. 28, to the end. These things being briefly premised
+for the clearing the context and scope of the chapter, we may thus argue
+from ver. 28:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever officers God himself, now under the New Testament,
+hath set in the Church as governors therein, distinct from all other
+church governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary; they are the ruling
+elders we inquire after, and that by divine right.
+
+This proposition is so clear and evident of itself, that much needs not
+to be said for any further demonstration of it. For what can be further
+desired for proof that there are such distinct officers as ruling elders
+in the Church of Christ, and that of divine right, than to evince, 1.
+That there are certain officers set of God in the Church as governors
+therein. 2. That those officers so set of God in the Church, are set in
+the Church under the New Testament, which immediately concerns us, and
+not under the Old Testament. 3. That these officers set of God as
+governors in the Church of the New Testament, are distinct from all
+other church governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary? For, by the
+third of these, we have a distinct church officer delineated and
+particularized: by the second we have this distinct church officer
+limited to the time and state of the Church only under the New
+Testament, which is our case: and by the first of these, we have this
+distinct New Testament officer's ruling power in the Church, and the
+divine right thereof evidently demonstrated, by God's act in setting him
+there in this capacity; (see Part 1. Chap. VI.;) so that by all put
+together, the consequence of this major proposition seems to be strong
+and unquestionable.
+
+_Minor_. But the governments named in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are officers which
+God himself now under the New Testament hath set in the Church as
+governors therein, distinct from all other church governors, whether
+extraordinary or ordinary.
+
+This minor or assumption is wholly grounded upon, and plainly contained
+in this text, and may thus be evidenced by parts.
+
+1. The church here spoken of [_in the church_] is the Church of Christ
+now under the New Testament: for, 1. The church here mentioned, ver. 28,
+is the same with that ONE BODY mentioned, ver. 12, 13, of this chapter,
+as the whole context and coherence of the chapter evinceth; but that ONE
+BODY denotes not the Church of God under the Old Testament, but only the
+Church of Christ under the New Testament; partly, inasmuch as it is
+counted the Church of Christ, yea, (so intimate is the union between
+head and members,) it is called CHRIST, _so also is_ CHRIST, ver. 12,
+(viz. not Christ personally considered, but Christ mystically
+considered, as comprehending head and body;) now this denomination of
+the Church, viz. Christ, or the Church of Christ, &c., is peculiar to
+the Church under the New Testament: for where in all the Scripture is
+the Church of God under the Old Testament called the Church of Christ,
+&c.? and partly, inasmuch as all, both Jews and Gentiles, are
+incorporated jointly into this ONE BODY, and coalesce into one Church:
+"For by one Spirit are we all baptized into one body, whether Jews or
+Gentiles, whether bond or free," 1 Cor. xii. 13. Now this union or
+conjunction of Jews and Gentiles into one body, one Church, is only done
+under the New Testament; see Eph. ii. 11, to the end of the chapter. 2.
+The officers here mentioned to be set in this Church, are only the New
+Testament officers, ver. 28. 3. The scope of the whole chapter is to
+redress abuses of spiritual gifts in the church of Corinth, which was a
+church under the New Testament; and therefore it would have been too
+remote for the apostle to have argued from the several distributions of
+gifts peculiar to the officers or members of the Church under the Old
+Testament.
+
+2. The governments here mentioned are officers set in this church as
+governors, or rulers therein: "Hath set some in the Church, first,
+apostles--governments." For clearing of this, consider the enumeration
+here made; the denomination of these officers, governments; and the
+constitution or placing of these governments in the Church. 1. The
+enumeration here made is evidently an enumeration of several sorts of
+church officers, some extraordinary, to endure but for a time, some
+ordinary, to continue constantly in the Church; to this the current of
+interpreters doth easily subscribe: and this the text itself plainly
+speaks; partly, if we look at the matter, viz. the several officers
+enumerated, which are either extraordinary, these five, viz. apostles,
+prophets, powers, or miracles, gifts of healing, and kinds of tongues:
+these continued but for a season, during the first founding of Christian
+churches: (the proper and peculiar work of these extraordinary officers,
+what it was, is not here to be disputed.) Or ordinary, these three, viz.
+_teachers_, (there is the preaching elder,) _governments_, (there is the
+ruling elder,) _helps_, (there is the deacon;) these are the officers
+enumerated; and however there be some other officers elsewhere
+mentioned, whence some conceive this enumeration not to be so absolutely
+perfect, yet this is undoubtedly evident, that it is an enumeration of
+officers in the church: partly, this is evident, if we look at the
+manner of the apostle's speech, which is in an enumerating form, viz.
+first, secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then: and partly, it is evident
+that he intended to reckon up those officers that were distinct from all
+other parts of the mystical body of Christ, by his recapitulation, "Are
+all apostles, are all prophets?" &c., ver. 29, 30, i.e. not all, but
+only some members of the body are set apart by God to bear these offices
+in the church. Now, if there be here a distinct enumeration of distinct
+officers in the church, as is evident; then consequently _governments_
+must needs be one of these distinct church officers, being reckoned up
+among the rest; and this is one step, that governments are in the roll
+of church officers enumerated. 2. The denomination of these officers,
+_governments_, evidenceth that they are governing officers, vested with
+rule in the Church. This word (as hath been noted in chap. II.) is a
+metaphor from pilots or shipmasters governing of their ships by their
+compass, helm, &c., James iii. 4, (who is hence called _governor_, viz.
+of the ship, Acts xxvii. 11; Rev. xviii. 17,) and it notes such officers
+as sit at the stern of the vessel of the Church, to govern and guide it
+in spirituals according to the will and mind of Christ: governments--the
+abstract is put for governors, the concrete: this name of governments
+hath engraven upon it an evident character of power for governing. But
+this will be easily granted by all. All the doubt will be, whom the
+apostle intended by these governments? Thus conceive, negatively, these
+cannot be meant, viz. not governors in general, for, besides that a
+general exists not but in the particular kinds or individuals thereof, a
+member of a body in general exists not but in this or that particular
+member, eye, hand, foot, &c.: besides this, it is evident that Christ
+hath not only in general appointed governors in his Church, and left
+particulars to the church or magistrate's determination, but hath
+himself descended to the particular determination of the several kinds
+of officers which he will have in his Church; compare these places
+together, Eph. iv. 7, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom. xii. 7, 8: though in
+the ordinance of magistracy God hath only settled the general, but for
+the particular kinds of it, whether it should be monarchical, &c., that
+is left to the prudence of the several commonwealths to determine what
+is fittest for themselves. (See Part 2, chap. IX.) 2. Not masters of
+families: for all families are not in the Church, pagan families are
+without. No family as a family is either a church or any part of a
+church, (in the notion that church is here spoken of;) and though
+masters of families be governors in their own houses, yet their power is
+not ecclesiastical but economical or domestical, common to heathens as
+well as Christians. Not the political magistrate,[54] for the reasons
+hinted, (Part 1, chap. I.; see also Part 2, chap. IX.,) and for divers
+other arguments that might be propounded. 4. Not the prelatical bishops,
+pretending to be an order above preaching presbyters, and to have the
+reins of all church government in their hands only; for, in Scripture
+language, bishop and presbyter are all one order, (these words being
+only names of the same officer;) this is evident by comparing Tit. i. 5,
+with ver. 7. Hereunto also the judgment of antiquity evidently
+subscribeth, accounting a bishop and a presbyter to be one and the same
+officer in the church; as appears particularly in Ambrose, Theodoret,
+Hierom, and others. Now, if there be no such order as prelatical
+bishops, consequently they cannot be governments in the church. 5. Not
+the same with _helps_, as the former corrupt impressions of our Bibles
+seemed to intimate, which had it thus, _helps in governments_, which
+some moderns seem to favor; but this is contrary to the original Greek,
+which signifies _helps, governments_; contrary to the ancient Syriac
+version, which hath it thus, (as Tremel. renders it,) _and helpers, and
+governments_: and therefore this gross corruption is well amended in our
+late printed Bible. _Helps, governments_, are here generally taken by
+interpreters for two distinct officers. 6. Nor, finally, can the
+teaching elder here be meant; for that were to make a needless and
+absurd tautology, the teacher being formerly mentioned in this same
+verse. Consequently, by _governments_ here, what can be intended, but
+such a kind of officer in the church as hath rule and government
+therein, distinct from all governors forementioned? And doth not this
+lead us plainly to the ruling elder?
+
+3. These governments thus set in the Church, as rulers therein, are set
+therein by God himself; God hath set some in the Church, _first,
+apostles--governments--God hath set, put, made, constituted_, &c., (as
+the word imports,) _in the Church_. What hath God set in the Church?
+viz. apostles and--governments, as well as apostles themselves. The
+verb, _hath set_, equally relates to all the sorts of officers
+enumerated. And is not that officer IA the Church of divine right, which
+God himself, by his own act and authority, sets therein? Then doubtless
+these governments are of divine right.
+
+4. Finally, these governments set in the Church under the New Testament
+as governors therein, and that by God himself, are distinct from not
+only all governing officers without the Church, (as hath been showed,)
+but also from all other governing officers within the church. For here
+the apostles make a notable enumeration of the several sorts of church
+officers, both extraordinary and ordinary, viz. eight in all. Five of
+these being extraordinary, and to continue but for a season, for the
+more effectual spreading and propagating of the gospel of Christ at
+first, and planting of Christian churches, viz. apostles, prophets,
+powers, gifts of healings, kinds of tongues: three of these being
+ordinary, and to be perpetuated in the Church, as of continual use and
+necessity therein, viz. teachers, governments, [i.e. ruling elders,] and
+helps, [i.e. deacons, who are to help and relieve the poor and
+afflicted.] This is the enumeration. It is not contended, that it is
+absolutely and completely perfect, for that some officers seem to be
+omitted and left out, which elsewhere are reckoned up, Eph. iv. 11; Rom.
+xii. 7, 8. Evangelists are omitted in the list of extraordinary
+officers, and pastors are left out of the roll of the ordinary officers;
+and yet some conceive that pastors and teachers point not out two
+distinct sorts of officers, but rather two distinct acts of the same
+officers; and if this will hold, then pastors are sufficiently comprised
+under the word teachers; yea, some think that both evangelists and
+pastors are comprehended under the word teacher.[55] But, however, be
+that as it will, these two things are evident, 1. That this enumeration
+(though evangelists and pastors be left out) is the fullest and
+completest enumeration of church officers which in any place is to be
+found throughout all the New Testament. 2. That though we should grant
+this defect in the enumeration, yet this is no way prejudicial to the
+present argument, that governments here mentioned are ruling officers in
+the Church, distinct from all other church officers that have rule; for
+they are plainly and distinctly recited as distinct kinds of officers,
+distinct from apostles, from prophets, from teachers, from all here
+mentioned. And thus interpreters[56] commonly expound this place, taking
+governments for a distinct kind of church officer from all the rest here
+enumerated.
+
+Now to sum up all that hath been said for the proof of the assumption;
+it is evident, 1. That the church here spoken of is the Church of Christ
+now under the New Testament. 2. That the governments here mentioned, are
+officers set in this church, (not out of the church,) as rulers
+governing therein. 3. That these governments set as rulers or governors
+in this church, are set there not by man, but by God himself; _God hath
+set in the Church--governments_. 4. And, finally, That these governments
+thus set in the Church, are distinct, not only from all governors out of
+the Church, but also from all governing officers within the Church. And
+if all this laid together will not clearly evince the divine right of
+the ruling elder, what will? Hence we may strongly conclude,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore these governments in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are the
+ruling elders we inquire after, and that of divine right.
+
+Now against the urging of 1 Cor. xii. 28, for the proof of the divine
+right of the ruling elders, divers exceptions are made, which are to be
+answered before we pass to the third argument.
+
+_Except_. 1. The allegation of this place is too weak to prove the thing
+in question. For will any man that knoweth what it is to reason, reason
+from the general to the particular and special affirmatively? or will
+ever any man of common sense be persuaded that this consequence is good:
+There were governors in the primitive church mentioned by the
+Apostles--therefore they were lay governors? Surely I think not.[57]
+
+_Ans_. This exception hath a confident flourish of words, but they are
+but words. It may be replied, 1. By way of concession, that to argue
+indeed from a general to a special, is no solid reasoning; as, This is a
+kingdom, therefore it is England; this is a city, therefore it is
+London; the apostle mentions government in the primitive Church,
+therefore they are ruling elders: this were an absurd kind of reasoning.
+2. By way of negation. Our reasoning from this text for the ruling
+elder, is not from the general to a special affirmatively--there are
+governments in the Church, therefore ruling elders: but this is our
+arguing--these governments here mentioned in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are a
+special kind of governing officers, set of God in the Church of Christ
+now under the New Testament, and distinct from all other church
+officers, whether extraordinary or ordinary: and therefore they are the
+ruling elders which we seek after, and that by divine right. So that we
+argue from the enumeration of several kinds of church officers
+affirmatively: here is an enumeration or roll of divers kinds of church
+officers of divine right; governments are one kind in the roll, distinct
+from the rest; therefore governments are of divine right, consequently
+ruling elders; for none but they can be these governments, as hath been
+proved in the assumption. If the apostle had here mentioned governments
+only, and none other kind of officers with them, there had been some
+color for this exception, and some probability that the apostle had
+meant governors in general and not in special: but when the apostle sets
+himself to enumerate so many special kinds of officers, apostles,
+prophets, teachers, &c., how far from reason is it to think that in the
+midst of all these specials, governments only should be a general. 3. As
+for Dr. Field's scoffing term of lay governors or lay elders, which he
+seems in scorn to give to ruling elders; it seems to be grounded upon
+that groundless distinction of the ministry and people into clergy and
+laity; which is justly rejected by sound orthodox writers[58], as not
+only without but against the warrant of Scripture, clergy being nowhere
+appropriated to the ministry only, but commonly attributed to the whole
+church, 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. The Scripture term given to these officers is
+_ruling elders_, 1 Tim. v. 17; and so far as such, (though they be
+elected from among the people,) they are ecclesiastical officers.
+
+_Except_. 2. But it is not said here governors in the concrete, as
+apostles, prophets, teachers are mentioned concretely, which are
+distinct officers: but it is said governments, in the abstract, to note
+faculties, not persons. The text may be thus resolved: The apostle first
+sets down three distinct orders, apostles, prophets, and teachers: then
+he reckons up those common gifts of the Holy Ghost (and among the rest
+the gift of governing) which were common to all three. So that we need
+not here make distinct orders in the Church, but only distinct gifts
+which might be in one man.[59]
+
+_Ans_. 1. As the apostles, prophets, and teachers are here set down
+concretely, and not abstractly, and are confessed to be three distinct
+orders enumerated: so all the other five, though set down abstractly,
+are (by a metonymy of the adjunct for the subject) to be understood
+concretely, helps for helpers; governments for governors, &c.; otherwise
+we shall here charge the apostle with a needless impertinent tautology
+in this chapter, for he had formerly spoken of these gifts abstractly,
+ver. 8-10, as being _all given to profit_ the Church _withal_, ver. 7;
+but here, ver. 28-30, he speaks of these gifts as they are in several
+distinct subjects, for the benefit of the organical body the church;
+else what saith he here, more than he said before? 2. That all these
+eight here enumerated, one as well as another, do denote, not distinct
+offices or acts of the same officer, but distinct officers, having
+distinct administrations, and distinct gifts for those administrations,
+is evident, partly by the apostle's form of enumeration, _first,
+secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then_ or _furthermore_: if he had
+intended only three sorts of officers, he would have stopped at thirdly,
+but he goes on in an enumerating way, to show us those that follow are
+distinct officers as well as those that go before; partly, by the
+apostle's recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, which plainly points out
+different officers, persons not gifts, besides those three: _Are all
+apostles? are all prophets? are all teachers?_ (and here he stops not,
+but reckons on) _are all workers of miracles? have all the gifts of
+healing?_ &c. If it should be replied, But he doth not add, Are all
+helps? are all governments? therefore these are not to be accounted
+distinct officers from the rest; otherwise why should the apostle thus
+have omitted them, had there been any such distinct officers in the
+Church in his time? It may be replied, These two officers, helps and
+governments, are omitted in the recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, not that
+the Church then had no such officers, for why then should they have been
+distinctly mentioned in the enumeration of church officers, ver. 28? But
+either, 1. For that helps and governments were more inferior ordinary
+officers, and not furnished with such extraordinary, or at least,
+eminent gifts, as the other had, (which they abused greatly to pride,
+contention, schism, and contempt of one another, the evils which the
+apostle here labors so much to cure,) and so there was no such danger
+that these helps and governments should run into the same distempers
+that the other did. Or, 2. For that he would instruct these helps and
+governments to be content with their own stations and offices, (without
+strife and emulation,) though they be neither apostles, nor prophets,
+nor teachers, nor any of the other enumerated, which were so ambitiously
+coveted after; and the last verse seems much to favor this
+consideration, _but covet earnestly the best gifts_, viz. which made
+most for edification, not for ostentation.[60]
+
+_Except_. 3. But helps here are placed before governments, therefore it
+is not likely that governments were the ruling elders; Helps, i.e.
+deacons, which is an inferior office, seeming here to be preferred
+before them.[61]
+
+_Ans_. This follows not. Priority of order is not always an argument of
+priority of worth, dignity, or authority. Scripture doth not always
+observe exactness of order, to put that first which is of most
+excellency: sometimes the pastor is put before the teacher, as Ephes.
+iv. 11, sometimes the teacher before the pastor, as Rom. xii. 7, 8.
+Peter is first named of all the apostles, both in Matt. x. 2, and in
+Acts i. 13, but we shall hardly grant the Papist's arguing thence to be
+solid--Peter is first named, therefore he is the chief and head of all
+the apostles; no more can we account this any good consequence--helps
+are set before governments, therefore governments are officers inferior
+to helps, consequently they cannot be ruling elders: this were bad
+logic.
+
+_Except_. 4. But the word governments is general, and may signify either
+Christian magistrates, or ecclesiastical officers, as archbishops,
+bishops, or whatsoever other by lawful authority are appointed in the
+Church.[62] And some of the semi-Erastians of our times, by governments
+understand the Christian magistracy, holding the Christian magistracy to
+be an ecclesiastical administration.[63]
+
+_Ans_. 1. Governments, i.e. governors, (though in itself and singly
+mentioned, it be a general, yet) here being enumerated among so many
+specials, is special, and notes the special kind of ruling elders, as
+hath been proved. 2. As for archbishops and diocesan bishops, they are
+notoriously known to be, as such, no officers set in the Church by God,
+but merely by the invention of man; therefore they have no part nor lot
+in this business, nor can here be meant. And if by others, by lawful
+authority appointed in the Church, they mean those officers that God
+appoints well: if those whom man sets there without God, as chancellors,
+commissioners, &c., such have as much power of government in the Church,
+as they are such, as archbishops and bishops, viz. just none at all by
+any divine warrant. 3. Nor can the civil Christian magistrate here be
+implied. 1. Partly, because this is quite beside the whole intent and
+scope of this chapter, treating merely upon spiritual church-matters,
+not at all of secular civil matters, viz: of spiritual gifts for the
+Church's profit, ver. 1 to 12; of the Church herself as one organical
+body, ver. 12 to 28; and of the officers which God hath set in this
+organical body, ver. 28, &c. Now here to crowd in the Christian
+magistrate, which is a mere political governor, into the midst of these
+spiritual matters, and into the roll of these merely ecclesiastical
+officers, how absurd is it! 2. Partly, because the magistrate, as such,
+is not set of God in the Church either as a church officer, or as a
+church member, (as hath been demonstrated formerly, chap. IX.;) and
+though he become a Christian, that adds nothing to the authority of his
+magistracy, being the privilege only of his person, not of his office.
+3. Partly, because when this was written to the Corinthians, the apostle
+writes of such governments as had at that time their present actual
+being and existence in the Church: and neither then, nor divers hundreds
+of years after, were there any magistrates Christian, as hath been
+evidenced, chap. IX.[64]
+
+_Except_. 5. Teachers are here expressed, but pastors omitted; and
+therefore well might governors be mentioned instead of pastors.[65]
+
+_Answ_. 1. Then, according to his judgment, pastors were a distinct kind
+of officers from teachers; otherwise the naming of teachers would have
+sufficiently implied pastors, without the addition of the word
+governors, one act or function of the office being put for the whole
+office. But prelates did not love to hear of such a distinction.
+However, it is the judgment of many others no less learned or pious than
+they, that in the same congregation where there are several ministers,
+he that excels in exposition of scriptures, teaching sound doctrine, and
+convincing gainsayers, may be designed hereunto, and called a teacher or
+doctor: he that excels in application, and designed thereunto, may be
+called a pastor; but where there is only one minister in one particular
+congregation, he is to perform, as far as he is able, the whole work of
+the ministry. 2. If pastors are to be understood by this term governors,
+as contradistinct from teachers, formerly enumerated in the text; doth
+not this seem to devolve the matter of government so wholly upon the
+pastor, as that the teacher hath nothing to do with it? and hereby both
+pastor and teacher are wronged at once: the teacher, while power of
+governing is denied him, which belongs to him as well as to the pastor;
+the teacher being a minister of the word, hath power of administration
+of the sacraments and discipline, as well as the pastor: the pastor,
+while he consequently is deprived of the necessary and comfortable
+assistance of the teacher in point of government. Therefore the pastor
+cannot here be intended by governors. 3. Bilson himself was not very
+confident of this gloss, and therefore he immediately adds, "If this
+content you not, I then deny they are all ecclesiastical functions that
+are there specified," &c. What then doth he make them? viz. he makes
+divers of them, and governments among the rest, to be but several gifts,
+whereof one and the same officer might be capable. And a little after he
+ingenuously confesses he cannot tell what these governors were, saying,
+"I could easily presume, I cannot easily prove what they were. The
+manner and order of those wonderful gifts of' God's Spirit, after so
+many hundreds may be conjectured, cannot be demonstrated--governors they
+were, or rather governments, (for so the apostle speaketh,) i.e. gifts
+of wisdom, discretion, and judgment, to direct and govern the whole
+church, and every particular member thereof, in the manifold dangers and
+distresses which those days did not want. Governors also they might be
+called, that were appointed in every congregation to hear and appease
+the private strifes and quarrels that grew betwixt man and man, lest the
+Christians, to the shame of themselves, and slander of the gospel,
+should pursue each other for things of this life before the magistrates,
+who then were infidels; of these St. Paul speaketh, 1 Cor. vi. 1-7.
+These governors and moderators of their brethren's quarrels and
+contentions I find, others I find not in the apostle's writings, but
+such as withal were watchmen and feeders of the flock." Thus
+inconsistent he is with himself: one while these governors must be
+pastors; another while arbitrators or daysmen about private differences;
+another while gifts, not officers; another while he cannot easily prove
+what they were. But they have been proved to be ruling elders, and the
+proof still stands good, notwithstanding all his or others' exceptions.
+
+_Argum_. III. The third argument for the divine right of the mere ruling
+elder shall be drawn from 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the elders that rule well,
+be counted worthy of double honor, especially they that labor in the
+word and doctrine." From which words we may thus argue for the divine
+right of the ruling elder:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever officers in the Church are, according to the word of
+Christ, styled elders, invested with rule in the Church, approved of God
+in their rule, and yet distinct from all them that labor in the word and
+doctrine; they are the ruling elders in the Church which we inquire
+after, and that by divine right.
+
+This proposition seems clear and unquestionable. For, 1. If there be a
+certain kind of church officer which Christ in his word calls an elder,
+2. Declares to have rule in his church, 3. Approves in this his rule,
+and, 4. Distinguished from him that labors in the word and doctrine;
+this is plainly the ruling elder, and here is evidently the divine right
+of his office. Such a divine approbation of his office, testified in
+Scripture, implies no less than a divine institution thereof.
+
+_Minor_. But the officers mentioned in 1 Tim. v. 17, are, according to
+the word of Christ, styled elders, invested with rule in the church:
+approved of God in their rule, and yet distinct from all them that labor
+in the word and doctrine. This assumption may be thus evidenced by
+parts.
+
+1. The officers mentioned here in this word of Christ, are styled
+elders. This Greek word translated _elder_, is used in the New Testament
+chiefly in three several senses: 1. For men of ancient time, not now
+living; and so it is opposed to modern: Tradition of elders, Matt. xv.
+2, i.e. of them of old time, see Matt. v. 21. 2. For elders in age now
+living; so it is opposed to younger, 1 Tim. v. 1; 1 Pet. v. 5. 3. For
+elders in function or office, opposed to private men not in office, as
+Acts xiv. 23; and in this last sense it is to be taken in this place, an
+office of ruling being here ascribed to these elders. They are called
+elders, say some, because for the most part they were chosen out of the
+elder sort of men: others better, from the maturity of knowledge,
+wisdom, gifts, gravity, piety, &c., which ought to be in them. This name
+elder seems to have rule and authority written upon it, when applied to
+any church officer; and it is by the Septuagint often ascribed to rulers
+political, _elders in the gate_, Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 1 Sam.
+v. 3; 1 Chron. xi. 3. In this place (as it is well noted by some[66])
+the word elders is a genus, a general attribute, agreeing both to them
+that rule well, and also to those that labor in the word and doctrine:
+the one sort only rule; the other sort both rule and preach; but both
+sorts are elders.
+
+2. The officers here mentioned are not only styled elders, but invested
+with rule in the church. For it is plain both by the text and context
+duly considered, and the apostle's scope in writing of this epistle, 1
+Tim. iii. 15, that these elders are officers in the Church. And that in
+the church they are vested with rule appears not only by their name of
+elders, which when applied to officers, imports rule, authority, &c., as
+hath been said; but also by the adjunct participle _that rule_, or
+_ruling_, annexed to elders--_Let the elders ruling well_. So that here
+we have not only the office, the thing, but the very name of ruling
+elders. The word seems to be a military term, for captains and
+commanders in an army, _foremost slanders_, (as the word imports,) that
+lead on and command all the rest that follow them: hence metaphorically
+used for the foremost-standers, rulers, governors in the church. It
+noteth not only those that go before others by doctrine, or good
+example: but that govern and rule others by authority. For, 1. Thus the
+word is used in Scripture: "One that ruleth well his own house, having
+his children in subjection with all gravity," 1 Tim. iii. 4: where it
+plainly notes an authoritative ruling. Again, "If a man know not how to
+rule his own house," 1 Tim. iii. 5. And again, "Ruling their children
+and their own houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12. And can any man be so absurd
+as to think that a master of a family hath not a proper authoritative
+rule over his own children and family, but rules them only by doctrine
+and example?
+
+2. Thus learned divines[67] and accurate Grecians[68] use the word to
+denote authority: so that the Holy Ghost here calling them ruling
+elders, implies they are vested with rule: and those that deny this
+place to hold out two sorts of elders, yet confess it holds out two
+sorts of acts, ruling and preaching.
+
+3. These ruling elders are here approved of God in their rule; and that
+two ways, viz: 1. In that God's Spirit here commends their ruling, being
+duly discharged, _ruling well, excellently_, &c. Did no rule in the
+Church belong to them for matter, God would never command or approve
+them for the matter. He cannot be accounted with God to do any thing
+well, that hath no right to do it at all. 2. In that God's Spirit here
+commands their well ruling to be honorably rewarded. _Let them be
+counted worthy of double honor:_ or, _Let them be dignified with double
+honor_. Here is not only reward, but an eminent reward appointed them,
+and that urged from Scripture, ver. 18. Where God thus appoints rewards,
+he approves that for which he rewards; and what God thus approves is of
+divine right. See part 1, chap. V.
+
+4. Yet, finally, These elders, vested with rule in the Church, and
+divinely approved in their rule, are distinct from all them that labor
+in the word and doctrine. This may thus he evidenced from the text, as
+some[69] have well observed: For, 1. Here is a general, under which the
+several kinds of officers here spoken of are comprehended, _elders_; all
+here mentioned are elders. 2. Here are two distinct kinds of elders,
+viz: _those that rule well_, there is one kind; and _they that labor in
+the word_ (as the pastors) _and doctrine_, (as the doctors and
+teachers,) here is the other kind. 3. Here are two participles
+expressing these two species or kinds of elders--_ruling_, and
+_laboring_: those only rule, that is all their work, and therefore
+here are called ruling elders; not because _they_ alone rule, but
+because their only work is to rule: but these not only rule, but, over
+and besides, _they_ labor in the word and doctrine. 4. Here are two
+distinct articles distinctly annexed to these two participles--_they
+that rule; they that labor_. 5. Finally, here is an eminent disjunctive
+particle set betwixt these two kinds of elders, these two participles,
+these two articles, evidently distinguishing one from the other, viz.
+especially _they that labor in the word_, &c., intimating, that as there
+were some ruling elders that did labor in the word and doctrine, so
+there were others that did rule, and not labor in the word: both were
+worthy of double honor, but especially they that both ruled and labored
+in the word also. And wheresoever this word, here translated
+_especially_, is used in all the New Testament, it is used to
+distinguish thing from thing, person from person, that are spoken of;
+as, "Let us do good to all, but especially to those of the household of
+faith," Gal. vi. 10: therefore there were some of the household of
+faith, and some that were not; and accordingly we must put a difference
+in doing good to them. "All the saints salute you, especially those of
+Cæsar's household;" some saints not of his household: all saluted them,
+but especially those of Cæsar's household. "He that provides not for
+his own, especially for them of his own house, he hath denied the
+faith," 1 Tim. v. 8. A believer is to provide for his friends and
+kindred, but especially _for those of his own house_, wife and children.
+See also 1 Tim. iv. 10; Tit. i. 11; 2 Tim. iv. 13; 2 Pet. ii. 10; Acts
+xx. 38, and xxvi. 3; in all which places the word _especially_ is used
+as a disjunctive particle, to distinguish one thing from another,
+without which distinction we shall but make nonsense in interpreting
+those places. And generally the best interpreters[70] do from this text
+conclude, that there were two sorts of elders, viz: the ruling elder,
+that only ruled; the preaching elder, that besides his ruling, labored
+in the word and doctrine also.
+
+Now, therefore, seeing the officers here mentioned are, 1. According to
+the word of Christ, (for this is the word of Christ,) styled elders; 2.
+Vested with rule; 3. Approved of God in their rule; and yet, 4. Distinct
+from all that labor in the word and doctrine, as hath been particularly
+proved; we may conclude, that,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the officers here mentioned are the ruling
+elders in the Church which we inquire after, and that by divine right.
+
+But against this place of 1 Tim. i. 17, and the argument from it, divers
+cavils and exceptions are made; let them have a brief solution.
+
+_Except_. 1. There were two sorts of elders, some laboring in the word
+and doctrine, some taking care of the poor, viz. deacons; both were
+worthy of double honor, especially they that labored in the word,
+&c.[71]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This is a new distinction of elders without warrant of
+Scripture. Deacons are nowhere in all the New Testament styled
+elders;[72] nay, they are contradistinguished from elders, both teaching
+and ruling. "He that giveth _let him do it_ with simplicity: he that
+ruleth, with diligence," Rom. xii. 8. "Helps, governments," 1 Cor. xii.
+28. Compare also Tit. i. 5, 6, &c., 1 Tim. iii. 2, &c., with 1 Tim. iii.
+8, &c. 2. As deacons are not elders, so deacons have no rule in the
+church. It is true, they are to "rule their children and their own
+houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12; this is only family rule: but as for the
+church, their office therein is to be _helps_, 1 Cor. xii. 28; _to
+distribute_, Rom. xii. 8; _to serve tables_, Acts vi. 2, 3; but no rule
+is ascribed to them.
+
+_Except_. 2. But by ruling well, some understand living well, leading a
+holy, exemplary life. The apostle would have ministers not only to live
+well themselves, but also to feed others by the word and doctrine; they
+that live well are to be double honored, especially they who labor in
+the word, &c., as 1 Thess. v. 12, 13.[73]
+
+_Ans_. 1. The apostle here speaks rather of officers than of acts of
+office: of persons rather than of duties, if his phrase be observed. 2.
+Living well is not ruling well here in the apostle's sense, who intends
+the rule of elders over others; he that lives well rules well over
+himself; not over others: else all that live well were church rulers;
+they conduct by example, do not govern by authority, Altar. Damasc. c.
+xii. 8. If well ruling be well living, then double honor, double
+maintenance from the church is due for well living, (1 Tim. v. 17, 18,)
+consequently all that live well deserve this double honor. 4. This seems
+to intimate that ministers deserve double honor for living well, though
+they preach not. _How absurd_! 5. D. Downham, once pleased with this
+gloss, after confessed it was not safe.
+
+_Except_. 3. Those that rule well may be meant of aged, infirm,
+superannuated bishops, who cannot labor in the word and doctrine.[74]
+
+_Ans_. 1. Here is no speech of prelatical bishops, but of ruling and
+preaching elders in this text. 2. How shall old, decrepit bishops rule
+well, when they cannot labor in the word and doctrine? 3. By this gloss,
+the preaching elders that labor in the word and doctrine, should be
+preferred before the most ancient bishop in double honor; such doctrine
+would not long since have been very odious and apocryphal to our late
+prelates. 4. Those preachers that have faithfully and constantly spent
+their strength, and worn out themselves with ministerial labor, that
+they cannot rule nor preach any longer, are yet worthy of double honor
+for all their former travels in the service of Christ and his Church.
+
+_Except_. 4. Among ministers some did preach, others only administered
+the sacraments; so Paul showeth that he preached and "labored more than
+all the apostles," 1 Cor. xv. 10; but baptized few or none, 1 Cor i. 14,
+leaving that to be performed by others; and when Paul and Barnabas were
+companions, and their travels were equal, yet Paul is noted to have been
+the chief speaker, (Acts xiv. 12:) all were worthy of double honor, but
+especially they who labored in the word and doctrine.[75]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This gloss imagineth such a ministry in the apostles' times as
+the prelates had erected of late in their days, viz: many dumb dogs that
+could not bark nor preach at all, yet could administer the sacraments by
+the old service-book. But the apostles, as Cartwright[76] observes,
+allowed no such ministers, will have every bishop or preaching elder to
+be both "apt to teach, _and_ able to convince," 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i.
+9. So that it was far from Paul to countenance a non-preaching or
+seldom-preaching ministry, by allowing any honor at all, much less a
+double honor, to such. Sure, preaching is one part, yea, a most
+principal part or duty of the minister's office, (as hath been evidenced
+before, Part 2, Chap. VII.,) and shall he be counted worthy of double
+honor that neglects a principal duty of his office? Nay, he deserves not
+the very name of such an officer in the church: why should he be called
+a pastor that doth not feed? or a teacher, that doth not teach his
+flock? &c., saith Chrysost. Hom. xv. in 1 Timothy. 2. Why should Paul's
+laboring be restrained here to his preaching only? when Paul speaks of
+his own labor elsewhere, he speaks of it in another sense, 2 Cor. xi.
+17, "in labor and weariness"--compare it with the context; and in this
+place judicious Calvin seems rather to interpret it of other manner of
+labor, and Pareus extends it, besides preaching, to divers other labors
+which Paul did undergo. 3. What warrant doth this exception hold out for
+two sorts of ministers here pretended, some _preaching_, others _only
+administering the sacraments_? Thus, _Paul preached much, baptised but
+few_: therefore, _there were some that only administered the
+sacraments_: well concluded. Yet Paul baptized some, 1 Cor. i. 14, 16,
+distributed the Lord's supper to some, Acts xx. 7, 11; so that he both
+preached and dispensed the sacraments. Let any show where any person
+dispensed the sacraments that was not a preacher. Again, _Paul and
+Barnabas equally travelled together, but Paul was chief speaker_: what
+then? therefore _some labored in the word, others in the sacraments
+only_. This is woful logic. 4. To whomsoever the power of dispensing the
+sacraments was given by Christ, to them also the power of preaching was
+given; dispensing the word and sacraments are joined in the same
+commission, Matt, xxviii. 18-20: what Christ joins together let not man
+put asunder. 5. Touching the preaching elder there is mentioned only one
+act peculiar to his office, viz. _laboring in the word_, &c.; but,
+taking a part for the whole, we may understand his dispensing the
+sacraments also, and what else is peculiar to the preaching elder's
+office, though for brevity's sake it be not here named.[77]
+
+_Except_. 5. By elders that rule well may be meant certain governors, or
+inferior magistrates, chosen to compose controversies or civil strifes.
+Suitable hereunto is the late Erastian gloss, that by elders ruling well
+may be meant kings, parliament-men, and all civil governors.[78]
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is well known that in the primitive times there was no
+Christian magistrate in the Church, and for the Church to choose heathen
+judges or magistrates to be arbitrators or daysmen in civil
+controversies, is a thing utterly condemned by the apostle, 1 Cor. vi.
+1, &c. 2. The apostle speaks here of ecclesiastical, not of civil
+officers, as the latter phrase intimates. The main scope of this epistle
+was to instruct Timothy how to behave himself, not in the commonwealth,
+but in the Church of God, (1 Tim. iii. 15,) and here he speaks of such
+officers as were in being in the Church at that time. 3. If kings,
+parliament-men, and all civil governors be these ruling elders, then
+ministers have not only an equal share with them in government by this
+text, which the Erastians will not like well; but also are to have a
+superior honor or maintenance to kings, parliament-men, and all civil
+governors. Certainly the magistrates will never triumph in this gloss,
+nor thank them that devised it. 4. Sutlive seems to be against this
+opinion, (though no great friend to ruling elders,) saying Beza bestows
+many words to prove that the judges in 1 Cor. vi. were not of the number
+of presbyters: which truly I myself should easily grant him. For there
+were none such ever constituted. 5. This is a novel interpretation, as
+some observe,[79] unknown among ancient writers.
+
+_Except_. 6. Those words [_especially they who labor in the word and
+doctrine_] are added to the former explanatively, to teach us who they
+are that rule well, viz. _they who labor much in the word and doctrine_,
+and not to distinguish them that labor in the word, from elders ruling
+well; as if Paul had said, "Let the elders that rule well be counted
+worthy of double honor, greatly laboring in the word," &c. For the word
+translated _especially_ here more aptly signifies _much, greatly_, than
+especially. For though with the adversative _but_ along with it, it
+signifieth especially, yet alone (as it is here) it signifies _much,
+greatly_.[80]
+
+_Ans_. 1. If this sentence [_especially they who labor_, &c.] were added
+only to explain who are well-ruling elders, viz. such as greatly labor
+in the word, &c., then few of the prelatical bishops were to be counted
+well-ruling elders, for very few, if any of them, were guilty of
+laboring greatly in the word and doctrine. 2. Then also the apostle
+would have said, either who especially labor, or simply without the
+article, especially laboring; then especially, they who labor, as here
+he doth, carrying his speech rather to distinct persons and officers,
+than to distinct duties or actions. 3. This word translated
+_especially_, hath been already in the minor proposition proved to be
+rather disjunctive, than explanatory; a term of distinction to point out
+a several sort of elders from only ruling elders, rather than a term of
+explication, signifying who are to be reputed these well-ruling elders.
+4. The word _especially_ is used for a term of distinction, even in
+those places where the adversative _but_ is not joined to it, as in Tit.
+i. 10, "For there are many unruly and vain talkers and deceivers,
+especially they of the circumcision:" where _especially_ distinguishes
+_them of the circumcision_, from all other _vain talkers, and
+deceivers_; and in 1 Tim. iv. 10, "Who is the Saviour of all men,
+especially of them that believe;" here _especially_ without _but_
+distinguishes them that believe from all other men, as capable of a
+special salvation from God; if here it were not a note of distinction,
+according to this gloss, we should thus read the place, "Who is the
+Saviour of all men, greatly believing;" but this were cold comfort to
+weak Christians of little faith. So here _especially_, though _but_ be
+wanting, distinguished them that labor in the word and doctrine, from
+them that labor not therein, and yet rule well.
+
+_Except_. 7. It is one thing to preach, another thing to labor in the
+word and doctrine. If there be here any distinction of elders it is
+between those that labor more abundantly and painfully, and between
+those that labor not so much. This objection takes much with some.[81]
+B. Bilson much presses this objection from the emphasis of the word
+_laboring_; signifying endeavoring any thing with greater striving and
+contention, &c., to this sense, "Let the elders that rule well be
+counted worthy of double honor, especially they who labor and sweat,
+&c., in the word--who give themselves even to be tired and broken with
+labors;" and this, saith he, is the genuine signification of the word
+translated laboring, when it is borrowed from the labor of the body, to
+denote the contention or striving of the mind, &c.[82]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This gloss takes it for granted, that this text speaks only of
+preaching, or the ministry of the word, and therein of the lesser or
+greater pains taken: which (besides that it begs the thing in question)
+makes the ministry of the word common to both sorts here distinctly
+spoken of, whereas rather the plain current of the text makes ruling
+common to both, over and beyond which the preaching elder _labors in the
+word_. 2. Doth not this interpretation allow a double honor to ministers
+that labor not so much as others in the word? And can we think that the
+laborious Paul intended to dignify, patronize, or encourage idle drones,
+lazy, sluggish, seldom preachers? Ministers must be exceeding instant
+and laborious in their ministry, 2 Tim. iv. 1-3. If this were the sense
+only to prefer the greater before the less labor in the ministry, the
+apostle would have used this order of words, "Let the elders that rule
+well be counted worthy of double honor, especially they who labor," &c.,
+take upon themselves more weighty cares. For those words (in the word
+and doctrine) should either have been quite omitted, as now was
+expressed, or should have been inserted immediately after them that rule
+well, and before the word especially, to this effect, "Let the elders
+that rule well and preach the word and doctrine well, be counted worthy
+of double honor; but especially those who labor much in well ruling and
+in well preaching:" in such an expression the case had been very clear
+and evident. 4. Should this comment stand, that they who labor more in
+the ministry than others should have more honor, more maintenance, than
+others, how many emulations and contentions were this likely to procure?
+Who shall undertake to proportion the honor and reward, according to
+the proportion of every minister's labor? 5. As for the criticism of the
+word _laboring_, which Bilson lays so much stress upon, these things are
+evident, 1. That here _laboring_, signifies emphatically nothing else
+but that labor, care, diligence, solicitude, &c., which the nature of
+the pastoral office requires in every faithful pastor; as is implied 1
+Thess. v., 12, 13, "Know them which labor among you, and are over you in
+the Lord;" and the apostle saith that every minister "shall receive a
+reward according to his own labor," 1 Cor. iii. 8. Such labor and
+diligence also is required in them that rule, whilst they are charged to
+rule _with diligence_, Rom. xii. 8, which is as much as _with labor_:
+yea, the common charity of Christians hath its labor; and this very word
+_labor_ is ascribed thereunto, _labor of love_, 1 Thess. i. 3; Heb. vi.
+10. 2. That if the apostle had here intended the extraordinary labor of
+some ministers above others, not ordinarily required of all, he would
+have taken a more emphatical word to have set it out, as he is wont to
+do in some other cases, as in 2 Cor. xi. 27, "In labor and weariness." 1
+Thess. ii. 9, "For ye remembered, brethren, our labor and weariness." 6.
+Finally, "If there be but one kind of church officers here designed,
+then," as saith the learned Cartwright, "the words (_especially those
+that labor_) do not cause the apostle's speech to rise, but to fall; not
+to go forward, but to go backward; for to teach worthily and singularly
+is more than to teach painfully; for the first doth set forth all that
+which may be required in a worthy teacher, where the latter noteth one
+virtue only of pains taking."
+
+_Except_. 8. Though it could be evinced, that here the apostle speaks of
+some other elders, besides the ministers of the word, yet what advantage
+can this be for the proof of ruling elders? For the apostle being to
+prove that the ministers of the word ought to be honored, i.e.
+maintained; why might he not use this general proposition, that all
+rulers, whether public or domestic, whether civil or ecclesiastical, are
+to be honored? And when the apostle speaketh of the qualifications of
+deacons, he requires them to be such as have ruled their own houses
+well.[83]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This slight gloss might have appeared more tolerable and
+plausible, were it not, partly, that the grand scope of the apostle in
+this chapter and epistle is to direct about church officers and church
+affairs, as both the context, and 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15, clearly evidence;
+and partly, had the word rulers been expressed alone in the text, and
+the word elders left out: but seeing that the apostle speaks not
+generally of them that rule well, but particularly of the elders that
+rule well in the Church; here is no place for this poor faint gloss. 2.
+Had the apostle here intended such a lax and general proposition for all
+sorts of rulers, then had he also meant that an honorable maintenance is
+due from the Church to domestic as well as public, yea, to civil as well
+as ecclesiastical rulers: then the Church should have charge enough:
+yea, and then should ministers of the word (according to this
+interpretation) have more honor and maintenance than any other rulers,
+domestic or public, civil or ecclesiastical. Magistrates will never
+thank him for this gloss. 3. Though some kind of skill to rule and
+govern be required in deacons, yet that is no public rule in the Church,
+but a private rule in their own houses only, which the apostle mentions,
+1 Tim. iii. 12.
+
+_Except_. 9. But these Well-ruling presbyters may be referred to these
+pastors and teachers which were resident in every church, who therefore
+are properly said to have care and inspection of the faithful, as being
+affixed to that place for that end; but the word _laboring_, or _they
+that labor_, may be referred to them who travelled up and down for the
+visiting and confirming of the churches.[84] "There were some that
+remained in some certain places, for the guiding and governing of such
+as were already won by the preaching of the gospel: others that
+travelled with great labor and pains from place to place to spread the
+knowledge of God into all parts, and to preach Christ crucified to such
+as never heard of him before. Both these were worthy of double honor,
+but the latter that builded not upon another man's foundation, more
+especially than the former, that did but keep that which others had
+gotten, and govern those that others have gained."[85]
+
+_Ans_. 1. If this be the sense, that there were some ministers fixed,
+and limited to particular places and churches; others unfixed, having an
+unlimited commission, and these are to be especially honored: then the
+meaning is, that the apostles and evangelists who were unfixed, and had
+unlimited commissions, and laid the foundation, were to be especially
+honored above pastors and teachers that were fixed and limited, and only
+built upon their foundation. But how should this be the meaning? For
+this seems a needless exhortation; what church would not readily yield
+an especial honor to apostles and evangelists above pastors and
+teachers? This would savor too much of self-seeking in the apostle, and
+providing for his own honor. This implies that the text hath reference
+to apostles and evangelists, whereas it evidently speaks only of
+ordinary ruling and preaching presbyters.
+
+2. If this be the sense of Dr. Field and Bilson, that some mere
+ordinary presbyters travelled laboriously to lay the foundation of
+Christianity, others were fixed to certain places to build upon that
+foundation: this seems to be false; for we read that mere ordinary
+presbyters were ordained for several cities and places as their peculiar
+charges, whom they were to feed, and with whom they were to remain, as
+Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5; herewith compare Acts xx. 28; 1 Pet. v. 2; 1
+Thess. v. 12. But that mere ordinary presbyters were ordained and
+employed in the Church without limitation of commission, where can it be
+evidenced in all the Scriptures? Wandering presbyters are nowhere
+commended; wandering stars are condemned, Jude, ver. 13.
+
+3. To refer the word _laboring_ to them that travelled from place to
+place for visiting and confirming of the churches, is very weak and
+unjustifiable in this place; for this clashes with Dr. Field's former
+gloss, (mentioned Except. 4, limiting _laboring_ to preaching.) But any
+thing for a present shift. This word is sometimes given to the apostle,
+as 1 Cor. xv. 10; 2 Cor. xi. 27: but where are apostles and evangelists
+called _laboring_, merely in respect of their travelling from place to
+place, to lay the foundation of Christianity, thereby to distinguish
+them from ordinary pastors and teachers? Nay, the apostle himself makes
+_them that rule_, and _them that labor_, the same, 1 Thess. v. 12, 13.
+So here in 1 Tim. v. 17, _they that rule_--_and they that labor_--are
+the same, i.e. both of them ordinary presbyters, both of them ruling,
+only to one of them the office of _laboring_ in the word and doctrine is
+superadded; yea, the very women that _were_ godly were said _to labor in
+the Lord_, Rom. xvi. 6, 12, not for their far travels up and down
+several countries to propagate the gospel, for where are Mary and Persis
+reported to have done this? Yet doubtless such good women privately
+labored much to bring in others, especially of their own sex, to hear
+the apostles, and entertain the gospel; and if the women may be said to
+_labor much in the Lord_, in respect of their private endeavors, how
+much more may labor be ascribed to presbyters in respect of both their
+private and public employments! So that this word _laboring_, which is
+applied in Scripture not only to ordinary presbyters, but also to women,
+cannot (without violence) be drawn peculiarly to signify apostles and
+evangelists, as this exception intends.
+
+_Except_. 10. Seeing in every minister of the word three things are
+requisite, unblamableness of life, dexterity of governing, and integrity
+of doctrine; the two first are commended here, but especially the labor
+in doctrine above them both; therefore here are set down not a two-fold
+order of presbyters, but only two parts of the pastoral office,
+preaching and governing; both which the apostle joins in the office of
+pastors, 1 Thes. v. 2-13.[86] "The guides of the church are worthy of
+double honor, both in respect of governing and teaching, but especially
+for their pains in teaching; so noting two parts or duties of
+presbyterial offices, not two sorts of presbyters."[87]
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is true, pastors have the power both of ruling and
+preaching belonging to their office, as is intimated, 1 Thes. v. 12, 13,
+and Heb. xiii. 7, and in other places; but doth it therefore follow,
+that none have the power of ruling, but those that have the power of
+preaching? or that this text, or 1 Tim. v. 17, intends only those rulers
+that preach? 2. Bilson, in this exception, confesseth that _laboring_
+belongs to ordinary fixed pastors, and therefore contradicts himself in
+his former objection, wherein he would have appropriated it to unfixed
+apostles and evangelists; yea, by this gloss it is granted, that
+preaching presbyters are to be more honored than non-preaching ruling
+prelates. These are miserable shifts and evasions, whereby they are
+necessitated thus to wound their own friends, and to cross their own
+principles. 3. According to this gloss, this should be the sense, "Let
+the ministers that rule well by good life, and skilful government, be
+counted worthy of double honor, especially they who labor in the word
+and doctrine." Now doth not this tacitly insinuate, that some ministers
+may rule well, and be worthy of double honor, though they labor not in
+the word and doctrine? and how absurd were this? But if the text be
+interpreted not of several acts of the same office, but of several sorts
+of officers, this absurdity is prevented, _Let ruling elders be doubly
+honored, especially those that both rule and preach_. 4. The text
+evidently speaks not of duties, but of persons; not of acts, but of
+agents; not of offices, but of officers; for it is not said, "Let the
+elders be counted worthy of double honor, for well ruling; especially
+for laboring"--but, _Let the elders that rule well, especially they that
+labor in the word, &c._ So that this gloss is vain, and against the
+plain letter of the text.
+
+_Except_. 11. Though the emphasis of the word, _they that labor_, be not
+to be neglected, yet the difference betwixt presbyters is not put by
+that word, but by those (_in the word and doctrine_.) This does not
+signify two kinds of presbyters, but two offices of ministers and
+pastors; one general, to _rule well_; another special, _to labor in the
+word and doctrine_. To rule well, saith Hierom, is to fulfil his office;
+or, as the Syriac interpreter expounds it, "to behave themselves well in
+their place;" or as the Scripture speaks, _To go in and out before God's
+people as becomes them, going before them in good works in their
+private conversations, and also in their public administrations_; whence
+the apostle makes here a comparison betwixt the duties of ministers
+thus, "All presbyters that generally discharge their office well are
+worthy of double honor; especially they who labor in the word, which is
+a primary part of their office."[88]
+
+_Ans_. 1. For substance this objection is the same with objection 10,
+already answered, therefore much more needs not to be added. 2. It is to
+be noted, that the apostle saith not, "Let the presbyters that rule well
+be counted worthy of double honor, especially because they labor in the
+word--for then he should have pointed at the distinct offices of
+ministers;" but he saith, _especially they that labor_, which clearly
+carries the sense to the distinction of elders themselves, who have
+distinct employments. 3. If preaching presbyters only should here be
+meant, and under that phrase (_that rule well_) their whole office in
+general, and the right managing thereof, should be contained, whereas
+_laboring in the word and doctrine_ (as this exception implies) is but
+one part thereof, then hence it would inevitably follow, that a minister
+deserves more honor for the well administration of one part of his
+office only, than for the well managing of the whole, which is absurd!
+Here therefore the apostle doth not compare one primary part of the
+pastor's office, with the whole office and all the parts thereof; but
+one sort of presbyters with another, distinguishing the mere ruling
+presbyter from the ruling and preaching presbyter, as the acute and
+learned Whitaker hath well observed.
+
+_Except_. 12. It is evident in the text itself, that all these elders
+here meant were worthy of double honor, whether they labored or
+governed; which by St. Paul's proofs, presently following, and by the
+consent of all old and new writers, is meant of their maintenance at the
+charges of the Church.[89] Now that lay-judges and censors of manners
+were in the apostle's time found at the expense of the Church, or by
+God's law ought to have their maintenance at the people's hands, till I
+see it justly proved, I cannot believe it: which yet must be proved
+before this construction can be admitted.[90]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This word _honor_ signifies (after the custom of the Hebrews,
+Exod. xx. 12) all pious offices and relief. This phrase (_double honor_)
+interpreters expound either absolutely or comparatively. Absolutely
+thus: _double honor_, i.e. great honor, so some; maintenance in this
+life, happiness in the life to come, so others; honor of reverence to
+their persons, and of maintenance for their labors, so Chrysostom, of
+which saith Calvin, "That Chrysostom interprets double honor to be
+maintenance and reverence, I impugn not." Comparatively thus: _double
+honor_ here seems to relate to what was before spoken, ver. 3, "Honor
+widows that are widows indeed." Now here he intimates, that though
+widows are to be honored, yet these should be much more honored; they
+should have single, these double honor. In this last sense, which seems
+most genuine, it seems most likely that the apostle here intended
+principally, if not only, the honor of maintenance; partly because the
+honor appointed for widows, ver. 3, &c., was only maintenance; partly
+because the reason of this charge to honor, &c., refers only to
+maintenance, ver. 18. Thus far we grant, that the text speaks of
+maintenance. 2. It may be further yielded that all the presbyters here
+spoken of are to be counted worthy of double honor, of honorable,
+liberal maintenance; even they that rule well (if need require) are to
+be thus honored, but the principal care of maintenance ought to be of
+them that labor in the word and doctrine, because the apostle saith
+_especially they that labor, &c._: the like injunction, see Gal. vi. 6,
+"Let him that is catechized, communicate to him that catechizeth him in
+all good things;" and thus much this text plainly evidenceth. 3. What
+then can be inferred hereupon by the adversaries of ruling elders?
+"Therefore the ruling elders (in the reformed churches) that take no
+maintenance of the church, are not the elders that rule well here
+mentioned?" This follows not: the apostle Paul took no wages of the
+church of Corinth, 2 Cor. xi. 7-9, and xii. 12, 13, &c., was he
+therefore not an apostle to them, as to other churches of whom he took
+maintenance? Divers among us in these days labor in the word and
+doctrine, and are not sufficiently maintained by their churches, but
+forced to spend of their own estates to do others service; are they
+therefore no ministers? _Forgive them this wrong_. Most churches are not
+able (or at least not willing) to maintain their very preaching
+presbyters and their families comfortably and sufficiently, as the
+gospel requireth: if therefore in prudence, that the Church be not
+needlessly burdened, those ruling elders are chosen generally that need
+no maintenance, doth their not taking maintenance of the church make
+their office null and void? Or if the church do not give them
+maintenance (when they neither need it, nor desire it, nor is the church
+able to do it) is the church therefore defective in her duty, or an ill
+observer of the apostolical precepts? Sure maintenance is not
+essentially and inseparably necessary to the calling of either ruling
+or preaching elder. There may be cases when not only the preaching, but
+the ruling elders ought to be maintained, and there may be cases when
+not only the ruling but also the preaching presbyter (as it was with
+Paul) should not expect to be maintained by the church. 4. It is as
+observable that the apostle here saith, let them be counted worthy of
+double honor, though the reformed churches do not actually give double
+maintenance to elders that rule well, yet they count them worthy of
+double maintenance, though the elders do not take it, though the
+churches cannot give it.
+
+Finally, unto these testimonies and arguments from Scripture, many
+testimonies of ancient and modern writers (of no small repute in the
+Church of God) may be usefully annexed, speaking for ruling elders in
+the Church of Christ from time to time: some speaking of such sort of
+elders, presbyters, or church-governors, as that ruling elders may very
+well be implied in their expressions; some plainly declaring that the
+Church of Christ _in fact_ had such officers for government thereof; and
+some testifying that of right such officers ought to be in the Church of
+Christ now under the New Testament for the well guiding thereof; by
+which it may notably appear, that in asserting the office of the ruling
+elder in the Church, we take not upon us to maintain any singular
+paradox of our own devising, or to hold forth some new light in this old
+opinionative age: and that the ruling elder is not a church officer
+first coined at Geneva, and a stranger to the Church of Christ for the
+first 1500 years, (as the adversaries of ruling elders scornfully
+pretend,) but hath been owned by the Church of Christ as well in former
+as in later times.[91]
+
+
+_An Appendix touching the Divine Right of Deacons._
+
+Though we cannot find in Scripture that the power of the keys is
+committed by Christ unto deacons, with the other church governors, but
+conceive that deacons, as other members of the church, are to be
+governed, and are not to govern; yet forasmuch as deacons are ordinary
+officers in the Church of God, of which she will have constant use in
+all ages, and which at first were divinely appointed, and after
+frequently mentioned in the New Testament; it will not be thought unfit,
+before we conclude this section, touching the divine right of Christ's
+church-officers, briefly to assert the divine right of deacons, as
+followeth.
+
+Deacons in the church are an ordinance of Jesus Christ. For,
+
+1. They are found in Christ's catalogue of church officers, distinct
+from all other officers, both extraordinary and ordinary. _Helps_, 1
+Cor. xii. 28. The Greek word in the natural acceptation properly
+signifies, to lift over against one in taking up some burden or weight;
+metaphorically, it here is used for deacons, whose office it is to
+_help_ and _succor the poor and sick, to lend them a hand to lift them
+up_, &c., and this office is here distinctly laid down from all other
+ordinary and extraordinary offices in the text. So they are
+distinguished from all ordinary officers reckoned up, Rom. xii. 7, 8:
+under _prophecy_, there is the _teacher_ and _pastor_; under _ministry_,
+the _ruling elder_, and the _deacon_, verse 8. This officer was so well
+known, and usual in the primitive churches, that when the apostle writes
+to the church at Philippi, he directs his epistle not only to the
+saints, but to the officers, viz. _to the overseers, and deacons_,
+Philip, i. 1. The occasion of the first institution of this office, see
+in Acts vi. 1, 2, &c. At the first planting of the Christian Church, the
+apostles themselves took care to receive the churches' goods, and to
+distribute to every one of their members _as they had need_, Acts iv.
+34, 35; but in the increase of the church, the burden of this care of
+distributing alms increasing also, upon some complaints of the Greeks,
+_that their widows were neglected_, the office of deacons was erected,
+for better provision for the poor, Acts vi. 1-7; and because the
+churches are never like to want poor and afflicted persons, there will
+be constant need of this officer. The pastor and deacon under the New
+Testament seem to answer the priests and Levites under the Old
+Testament.
+
+2. The qualifications of deacons are laid down by Christ in the New
+Testament, at large: 1 Tim. iii. 8-14, _Deacons also must be grave, not
+double-tongued_, &c., and Acts vi. 3, 5.
+
+3. The manner also of deacons' vocation or calling unto their office is
+delineated, viz: 1. They must be chosen by the church; "Look ye out
+among you seven men of honest report," &c., "and they chose Stephen,"
+&c., Acts vi. 3, 5. 2. They must first be proved and tried by the
+officers of the church, before they may officiate as deacons; "and let
+these also first be proved, then let them use the office of a deacon,
+being blameless," 1 Tim. iii. 10. 3. They must be appointed by the
+officers of the church to their office, and set apart with prayer, Acts
+vi. 3, 6: "Look ye out men--whom we may appoint over this business--whom
+they set before the apostles, and when they had prayed, they laid their
+hands on them."
+
+4. Deacons have by Scripture their work and employment appointed them.
+Their work is, _to serve tables_, (hence the name deacon seems derived,)
+Acts vi. 2, 3. To be an help, no hinderance in the church; called
+_helps_, 1 Cor. xii. 18.
+
+5. Deacons have a divine approbation and commendation in Scripture, if
+they execute their office well. "For they that have used the office of a
+deacon well, purchase to themselves a good degree, and great boldness in
+the faith which is in Christ Jesus," 1 Tim. iii. 13. Here the well
+administration of deaconship is commended as producing two good effects
+to such deacons, viz: 1. _A good degree_, i.e. great honor, dignity, and
+reputation, both to themselves and to their office; they adorn, grace,
+and credit their office in the church; not that they purchase to
+themselves by desert a higher office in the church, that from deacons
+they should be advanced to be presbyters, as some would interpret this
+text. 2. _Much boldness in the faith which is in Christ Jesus._ For
+nothing makes a man more bold than a good conscience in the upright and
+faithful discharge of our duties in our callings; innocency and
+integrity make brave spirits; such with great confidence and boldness
+serve Christ and the church, being men that may be trusted to the
+uttermost. Now where God thus approves or commends the well managing of
+an office, he also divinely approves and allows the office itself, and
+the officer that executes the same.[92]
+
+
+SECTION II.
+
+2. _Of the first receptacle, or subject of the power of church
+government from Christ, viz. Christ's own officers._
+
+Touching the second, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath peculiarly
+intrusted his own officers with the power of church government: take it
+thus--
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator did immediately commit the proper, formal,
+ministerial, or stewardly authority and power for governing of his
+church to his own church guides as the proper immediate receptacle or
+first subject thereof.
+
+For explication of this proposition, four things are to be opened.
+
+1. What is meant by proper, formal, ministerial or stewardly authority
+and power for church government? See this already discussed, Part 2,
+chapters III., V., and IX., in the beginning of Section 2, so that here
+there needs no further addition, as to this point.
+
+2. What is meant by church guides? By church guides here understand,
+negatively, 1. Not the political magistrate. For though he be the
+_nurse-father_ of the church, Isa. xlix. 23, _the keeper and avenger of
+both the tables_; and _have an outward care of religion_, and _may
+exercise a political power about sacred things_, as did Asa,
+Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah, &c., yet hath he no proper, inward,
+formal power in sacred things, nor is it lawful for him to exercise the
+same; as Korah, Num. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam. xiii. 9-15; Uzzah, 2 Sam.
+vi. 6-8, 1 Chron. xiii. 9, 10; and King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16-22,
+did to the provoking of God, and to their own destruction. (But see what
+power is granted, and what denied to the civil magistrate in matters of
+religion, and why, Part 2, Chap. IX. Sect. 1.) 2. Not any officer of
+man's mere invention and setting up in the church, whether papal, as
+cardinals, &c., prelatical, as deans, archdeacons, chancellors,
+officials, &c., or political, as committees, commissioners, &c. For who
+can create and institute a new kind of offices in the church, but Jesus
+Christ only, who alone hath the lordly magisterial power as Mediator
+appropriated to him? Eph. iv. 8, 11; Rom. xii. 5-8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and
+therefore how can such acts be sufficiently excused from bold usurpation
+upon Christ's own prerogative? 3. Nor the deacons themselves, (though
+officers of Christ's appointment, as was formerly proved;) for their
+office is not to rule and govern, but _to serve tables_, &c., Acts vi.
+2, 3. None of these are the church guides which Christ hath committed
+his proper power unto. But affirmatively understand all these church
+guides extraordinary and ordinary, which Christ hath erected in his
+Church, vesting them with power and authority therein, viz. apostles,
+prophets, evangelists, pastors and teachers, governments, or ruling
+elders, mentioned together in Eph. iv. 8, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v.
+17; Rom. xii. 6-8. These are Christ's own church officers, these Christ
+hath made the immediate receptacle and first subject of the keys, or of
+ecclesiastical power derived from himself.
+
+3. What is meant by Christ's committing this stewardly power first and
+immediately to the church guides? _Ans_. There is, 1. A priority and
+immediateness of the donation of the power of the keys: thus Christ
+first and immediately gave keys to his own officers, whom Scripture,
+therefore, calls _the ministers of Christ_, (not of the Church,) 1 Cor.
+iv. 1, not first and immediately to the community of the faithful, or
+Church, and then by the Church secondarily and mediately to the
+officers, as her substitutes and delegates, acting for her, and not in
+virtue of their own power from Christ. 2. A priority and immediateness
+of designation of particular individual persons to the office of
+key-bearing, and this is done by the mediate intervening act of the
+church officers in separating of particular persons to the office which
+Christ instituted; though it is not denied but that the church or
+company of the faithful may lawfully nominate or elect individual
+persons to be officers in the congregation, which yet is no act of
+authority or power.
+
+4. How hath Christ committed this power of the keys to his church
+guides, that thereby they become the most proper receptacle thereof?
+_Ans_. Thus briefly. All absolute lordly power is in God originally: all
+lordly magisterial mediatory power is in Christ dispensatorily: all
+official, stewardly power is by delegation from Christ only in the
+church guides[93] ministerially, as the only proper subject thereof that
+may exercise the same lawfully in Christ's name: yet all power, both
+magisterial in Christ, and ministerial in Christ's officers, is for the
+Church of Christ and her edification objectively and finally.
+
+These things thus explained and stated, we come now to the confirmation
+of the proposition. Consider these arguments:
+
+1. Jesus Christ committed immediately ecclesiastical power and the
+exercise thereof to his church guides. Thus we may argue:
+
+_Major_. All those that have ecclesiastical power, and the exercise
+thereof, immediately committed to them from Jesus Christ, are the
+immediate subject or receptacle of that power.
+
+For what makes any persons the immediate subject of power, but the
+immediate derivation and commission of power to them from Jesus Christ,
+who is the fountain of all power?
+
+_Minor_. But the church guides have the ecclesiastical power and the
+exercise thereof immediately committed to them from Jesus Christ. This
+may be evinced many ways by Scriptures. 1. It is said expressly, "Of
+our authority which the Lord hath given us for your edification," 2 Cor.
+10, 8: by _us_ here we are to understand church guides, for here they
+are set in opposition to the church members (_for edification_,) not
+destruction of (you.) Here are edifiers and edified. Now these church
+guides have authority given them, and that from the Lord, i.e. Christ;
+here is their commission or power, not from the Church or any creature,
+but from Christ; hence the apostle calls church guides, "Your rulers or
+guides in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12; _in the Lord_, i.e. by the Lord's
+authority and commission. So that church officers are _rulers in the
+Lord_, and the churches ruled by them; yea, ruling elders being one sort
+of church guides, have such an undoubted power of governing in the
+Church divinely committed to them, that of them it is said, "God hath
+set in the church governments", 1 Cor. xii. 28, i.e. governors, the
+abstract being put for the concrete. If _God have set governors in the
+Church_, then God vested those governors with a power of governing,
+whence they have their name of governments.
+
+2. The keys of the kingdom of heaven, with all their acts, were
+immediately committed to the church guides, viz. to the apostles and
+their successors to the end of the world; compare these testimonies,
+Matt. xvi. 16, 19, and xviii. 18-20; John xx. 21-23; with Matt, xxviii.
+18-20: therefore consequently ecclesiastical power was committed
+immediately unto them as the subject thereof. For, _By the kingdom of
+heaven_ here we are to understand (according to the full latitude of the
+phrase) both the kingdom of grace in this world, and of glory in the
+world to come; _binding and loosing both in earth and in heaven_, upon
+the right use of the keys, being here the privileges promised to church
+guides; and _by kingdom of heaven_--on earth, understand the whole
+visible Church of Christ in the earth, not only some single
+congregation. By _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, thus apprehend, Christ
+promiseth and giveth not the sword _of the kingdom_, any secular power;
+nor the sceptre _of the kingdom_, any sovereign, lordly, magisterial
+power over the Church. But the _keys_, &c. i.e. a stewardly, ministerial
+power, and their acts, _binding and loosing_, i.e. _retaining and
+remitting sins on earth_, (as in John it is explained;) opening and
+shutting are proper acts of keys; binding and loosing but metaphorical,
+viz. a speech borrowed from bonds or chains wherewith men's bodies are
+bound in prison or in captivity, or from which the body is loosed: we
+are naturally all under sin, Rom. v. 12, and therefore liable to death,
+Rom. vi. 23. Now sins are to the soul as bonds and cords, Prov. v. 22.
+_The bond of iniquity_, Acts viii. 23; and death with the pains thereof,
+are as chains, 2 Pet. ii. 4, Jude 6; in hell as in a prison, 1 Pet.
+iii. 10: the remission or retaining of these sins, is the loosing or the
+binding of the soul under these cords and chains. So that the keys
+themselves are not material but metaphorical; a metaphor from stewards
+in great men's houses, kings' houses, &c., into whose hands the whole
+trust and ordering of household affairs is committed, who take in and
+cast out servants, open and shut doors, &c., do all without control of
+any in the family save the master of the family. Such, in the Hebrew
+phrase, are said to be _over the house_, Gen. xliii. 18; Isa. xxii. 15;
+2 Kings xviii. 18: and the keys of the house are committed to them as a
+badge of their power. So that when God threatens to put Shebna out of
+his office in the king's house, and to place Eliakim, son of Hilkiah, in
+his room, he saith, "I will commit thy government into his hand--and the
+key of the house of David will I lay upon his shoulder," Isa. xxii. 21,
+22, parallel of that phrase, "and the government shall be upon his
+shoulder," Isa. ix. 6. Hence, as key is in the Old Testament used for
+stewardly power and government, Isa. xxii. 21, 22; (only twice properly,
+Judges iii. 25; 1 Chron. ix. 27;) so in the New Testament, _key_ is
+always used, metaphorically, to denote power, and that about
+ecclesiasticals or spirituals, viz. in Matt. xvi. 19; Luke xi. 52; Rev.
+i. 18, and iii. 7, and ix. 1, and xx. 1. So that _keys_, &c., are
+metaphorically the ordinances which Christ hath instituted, to be
+dispensed in his church, preaching the word, administrations of the
+seals and censures: for it is not said _key_, but _keys_, which
+comprehendeth them all: by the right use of which both the gates of the
+Church here, and of heaven hereafter, are opened or shut to believers or
+unbelievers; and Christ promising or giving these _keys_ to Peter and
+the apostles, and their successors _to the end of the world_, Matt.
+xxviii. 20, doth intrust and invest them with power and authority of
+dispensing these ordinances for this end, and so makes them _stewards_
+in his house _of the mysteries of God_, 1 Cor. iv. 1, so that we may
+conclude:
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the church guides are the immediate subject and
+receptacle of that ecclesiastical power, and of the exercise thereof.
+
+_Argum_. II. Jesus Christ our Mediator did institute ecclesiastical
+offices for church government under the New Testament before any
+Christian Church under the New Testament was gathered or constituted.
+Therefore those persons that were intrusted with those offices must
+needs be the first and immediate receptacle or subject of the power of
+the keys. Thus we may argue:
+
+_Major_. All those whose ecclesiastical offices for church government,
+under the New Testament, were instituted by Christ, before any formal
+visible Christian Church was gathered or constituted, are the first and
+immediate receptacle or subject of the power of the keys from Jesus
+Christ.
+
+_Minor_. But the ecclesiastical offices of Christ's own officers for
+governing of the Church, now under the New Testament, were instituted by
+Christ before any formal visible Christian Church was gathered or
+constituted.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ's own officers for governing of the
+Church now under the New Testament are the first and immediate
+receptacle or subject of the keys from Jesus Christ.
+
+The major proposition cannot reasonably be denied, and may be further
+cleared by these considerations, viz: 1. That the Church offices for
+church government under the New Testament are in their own nature
+intrinsically offices of power. The apostle styles it _power_, or
+_authority_, which is _given_ to these officers by _the Lord_, 2 Cor. x.
+8, and xiii. 10. _The keys of the kingdom of heaven_ are committed to
+them, Matt. xvi. 19, and _keys_ import a stewardly power: compare Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, John xx. 21, 23, with Isa. xxii. 21, 22.
+Materially, the acts and exercise of these officers are acts of power,
+as _binding, loosing_, &c., Matt, xviii. 18; not only _preaching_, &c.,
+but _excommunicating_, is an act of power, 1 Cor. v. 4. Absolving the
+penitent, and confirming him again in the Church's love, is an act of
+power:--_to confirm love unto him_, i.e. authoritatively to confirm,
+&c., as the word signifies, 2 Cor. ii. 8. Formally, these acts are to be
+done as acts of power, in Christ's name, and by his authority, Matt.
+xxviii. 19; 1 Cor. v. 4. Now if these offices be in their own nature
+offices of power, consequently they that have such offices conferred
+upon them by Christ, before the Christian Church had being or existence,
+they must needs be the first and immediate recipient subject of the
+power of the keys from Christ. 2. Either those church officers, whose
+offices were instituted before the Christian Church was constituted,
+must be the first subject of the power, &c., or some others. If any
+other, then, 1. Either heathens, or heathen magistrates, who are out of
+the Church: but both these were absurd to grant; for then they that are
+not so much as church members should be church governors, and the Church
+be ecclesiastically judged by them that are without. 2. Or the first
+subject of this power was the Christian Church itself before it had
+existence; but that were notoriously absurd; and besides these, no other
+can be imagined, but the church officers; therefore they must needs be
+the first subject of the power of the keys.
+
+The minor proposition (viz. But the ecclesiastical offices of Christ's
+own officers for governing of the Church now under the New Testament,
+were instituted by Christ before any formal visible Christian Church
+was gathered or constituted) is so evident in the current of the New
+Testament, that it needs little confirmation. For, 1. The church offices
+under the New Testament, as apostleship, pastorship, &c., were
+instituted by Christ either before his death--compare these places
+together, Mark iii. 13, 14, &c.; Luke ix. 1, &c., and x. 1, 2, &c.; John
+xx. 21-23; Matt, xxviii. 18-20--or presently upon his ascension, Eph.
+iv. 8, 11, 12, &c.; Acts ii.; 1 Cor. xiii. 28. Now no formal Christian
+Church was constituted and gathered till the feast of Pentecost and
+afterwards. Then, after the apostles had received the gifts of the Holy
+Ghost, &c., Acts ii., great multitudes of Jews and Gentiles were
+converted to Christ, and being converted, incorporated and associated
+themselves into churches, as the history of the Acts, chap, ii., and
+forward, evidenceth abundantly. 2. Church officers, under the New
+Testament, are for the calling and gathering men unto Christ, and to his
+body mystical; and for admitting of those that believe into that one
+body, Matt, xxviii. 18, 19; 1 Cor. xii. 28. And is not he that calleth,
+before them that are called by them; they that baptize, before the
+baptized; and they that gather the churches, before those churches which
+they gather? May we not hence conclude, _Therefore_, &c.
+
+_Argum_. III. The names, titles, and other denominations purposely and
+peculiarly given to the church guides in Scripture, generally do bear
+power and authority engraven upon their foreheads. _Therefore_, they are
+the proper, immediate, and only subjects of ecclesiastical power. Thus
+we may argue:
+
+_Major_. All those persons in the Church, that have such names, titles,
+or denominations given to them peculiarly in the Scriptures by the
+Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and power engraven upon
+them in reference to the Church, are the immediate and only proper
+subjects of ecclesiastical power.
+
+_Minor_. But Christ's officers in the Church have such names, titles, or
+denominations given to them peculiarly in the Scriptures by the Spirit
+of Christ, as generally have authority and power engraven upon them in
+reference to the Church.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church are the
+proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of ecclesiastical
+power.
+
+This major proposition must be granted. For, 1. Is not this the Holy
+Ghost's familiar and ordinary manner in Scripture, to give titles and
+denominations, which are apt, pertinent, significative and instructing
+both to others and themselves that have such denominations conferred
+upon them? As in the family, the husband is called _the head of the
+wife_, 1 Cor. xi., because he is to govern, she is to be subject: the
+wife is called _an help-meet_, &c., Gen. ii.: to teach the wife her
+duty, to help his good and comfort every way, to hinder it no way. So in
+the commonwealth, magistrates are called _heirs of restraint, to put men
+to shame_, Judges xviii. 7, because they are to restrain disorders,
+shame evil-doers: higher powers, to teach others subjection to them,
+Rom. xiii. 1. "An ordinance of man or human creation," 1 Pet. ii. 13:
+because, though magistracy in general be an ordinance of God, yet this
+or that special kind of magistracy, whether monarchical, aristocratical,
+&c., is of man. Thus in the Church: the Church is called _Christ's
+body_, Ephes. iv. 12, to show Christ's headship, the Church's subjection
+to Christ, and their near union to one another. Christians are called
+_members_, Rom. xii.; 1 Cor. xii., to teach them mutual love, care, and
+serviceableness to one another. Ministers are called _ambassadors of
+Christ_, 2 Cor. v. _Angels of the churches_, Rev. ii., to teach them to
+be faithful in their offices, and others to respect them for their
+offices. _Salt of the earth_, Matt. v. 13, because they are to season
+others spiritually. _Stars_, Rev. i., because they are to shine forth
+for the enlightening and guiding of others, &c. 2. If this proposition
+be denied, then to what end are such names and denominations, importing
+authority, generally given by the Spirit of God to some sort of persons
+only, and not to others? Is it for no end? That would be a dangerous
+charge upon the Spirit of Christ. Is it for any end? Then what other can
+be imagined, than to signify, hold forth, and instruct both themselves
+and others in their duties, and to distinguish them that are vested with
+authority in the Church, from them that are not?
+
+The _major proposition_ (viz. But Christ's own officers in the Church
+have such names, titles, or denominations given to them peculiarly in
+the Scriptures by the Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and
+power engraven upon them in reference to the Church) may be evinced, 1.
+By induction of particular names attributed to Christ's officers. 2. By
+a denial of them, or the like, to any other members of the Church.
+
+1. By induction of particular titles or denominations attributed to
+Christ's officers, which generally have power and authority palpably
+engraven upon them: (yea, the self-same names are given to them, by
+which not only heathen writers, but also the Greek version of the Old
+Testament by the Septuagint, and the very original of the New Testament
+are wont to give to political officers, to express their political
+authority, power, and government,) as, for instance:
+
+1. _Presbyter or elder_, is ascribed often to Christ's church officers,
+as in Acts xiv. 23, and xv. 2, 4, and xx. 17; 1 Tim. v. 17; Tit. v.; 1
+Pet. v. 1. This same word is ascribed to _rulers political_, to _elders
+in the gate_, by the Septuagint, in Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 2
+Sam. v. 3; 1 Chron. vi. 3.
+
+2. _Overseer_ or _bishop_, noting authority and power in having the
+charge and oversight of the flock, is ascribed to church officers in
+Acts xx. 28; Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i. 7. This same word is
+used by the Septuagint, to denote the power of the civil magistrate, to
+whom the care and oversight of the commonwealth is committed, Numb.
+xxxi. 14; Judges ix. 28; 2 Kings xi. 15.
+
+3. _Guide, leader, conductor, captain, governor_, signifies them all,
+and is given to church officers, as contradistinct from the _church_ and
+_saints_, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 24. It is also attributed to civil rulers to
+set forth their power, in Deut. i. 13; Micah iii. 9, 11; 2 Chron. v. 1;
+Ezek. xliv. 3, and xlv. 7; Dan. iii. 2; Acts vii. 10. This very word
+_governor_, is attributed to Christ himself, _out of thee shall come
+forth a governor, that shall rule_ (or _feed_) _my people Israel_, Matt.
+ii. 6.
+
+4. _Steward, dispenser_. "Stewards of the mysteries of God," is the
+title given to ministers, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. "Steward of God," Tit. i. 7.
+"That faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall make ruler over his
+household," &c., Luke xii. 42. This also is a title of power given to
+them that are set over families, as Gal. iv. 2, "he is under tutors and
+stewards." And to them that are set over cities--as Rom. xvi. 23,
+"Erastus the steward" (or as we render it, _the chamberlain_) "of the
+city saluteth you."
+
+5. _Pastor_ is ascribed to Christ's officers; Eph. iv. 11, "and some
+pastors and teachers." They govern the Church as the shepherd his flock,
+feeding, ruling them as well with the shepherd's staff, as with food.
+This term is sometimes given to civil magistrates, Isa. xliv. 28; Micah
+v. 5: sometimes to Christ the great shepherd of the sheep, 1 Pet. v. 4;
+noting his authority, Matt. xxvi. 31; John x. 2, 11, 14, 16; Heb. xiii.
+20; 1 Pet. ii. 25: sometimes to God himself the supreme Ruler of the
+world, Ps. lxxx. 1.
+
+6. _Governments_, a denomination given to _ruling elders_, 1 Cor. xii.
+28, as hath been proved Sect. 1 of this Chapter. A metaphor from
+mariners or pilots, that steer and govern the ship: translated thence,
+to signify the power and authority of church governors, spiritual
+pilots, steering the ship or ark of Christ's Church. This word is used
+also by heathen authors, to signify political governors.[94]
+
+_Ruler_. 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the elders that rule well"--and,
+
+"He that ruleth," Rom. xii. 8, and "Your rulers in the Lord," 1 Thes.
+v. 12, viz. not only in the fear of the Lord,[95] nor only in those
+things that appertain to God's worship,[96] but also in the Lord; i.e.
+who are over you, to rule according to the will of the Lord,[97] even by
+the Lord Christ's power and authority derived to them. Now these names
+are among heathen authors ascribed to rulers of cities, armies, and
+kingdoms.[98]
+
+By these among other titles given to Christ's officers in Scripture, he
+that runs may read a plain authority and power enstamped on them in
+reference to the Church; and consequently on them that are thus
+denominated, unless they be applied to them improperly, unfitly,
+abusively; which we suppose no sober intelligent reader dare affirm.
+
+2. By a denial of these and like titles to the whole Church of Christ,
+or to any other members of the Church whatsoever, besides church
+officers. For where can it be showed in all the book of God, that in
+this sense, either the whole Church or any members thereof besides
+officers, are ever styled _presbyters, bishops, governors, stewards of
+God, or of the mysteries of God, pastors, governments, or rulers_? The
+greatest factors for popular government must let this alone forever.
+Thus, from all that hath been said, we need not fear to conclude:
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church are the
+proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of ecclesiastical
+power.
+
+_Argum_. IV. The relations which Christ's officers have unto his Church,
+imply and comprehend in themselves authority and power in reference to
+the Church, and therefore they are the proper subjects of ecclesiastical
+power. Thus we reason:
+
+_Major_. Whosoever they are that peculiarly stand in such relations to
+the Church of Christ, as imply and comprehend in themselves authority
+and power for governing of the Church, they are the only subject of
+ecclesiastical power.
+
+This proposition is evident; for, otherwise, to what end are those
+peculiar relations to the Church which comprehend government in them,
+unless such as are so peculiarly related be the only subjects of
+government? Shall all those relations be mere names and shadows? or
+shall others in the church be counted the subject of this authority and
+power for church government, that have no such relations to the Church
+at all implying any such power?
+
+_Minor_. But the officers of Christ peculiarly stand in such relations
+to the Church of Christ as imply and comprehend in themselves authority
+and power for the government of the church.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition will be evident by a due induction
+of some of their particular relations that have such power enstamped on
+them; as for instance, Christ's officers stand in these relations of
+power to the Church and people of God.
+
+1. _They are pastors_, Eph. iv. 11. The church is the _flock_, John x.
+16; 1 Cor. ix. 7; _flock_, Acts xx. 28, 29; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. Hath not the
+_pastor_ power to rule and govern his _flock_?
+
+2. They are _stewards_. "Who is that faithful and wise steward?" Luke
+xii. 42. "Stewards of the mysteries of God," 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. "Stewards
+of God," Tit. i. 7. The Church and people of God are the Lord's
+_household_, over which these stewards are set, &c., Luke xii. 42.
+_God's house_, 1 Tim. iii. 15; Heb. iii. 6. Have not stewards power to
+govern and order those _families_ over which they are set, and wherewith
+they are intrusted? Gal. iv. 1.
+
+3. They are _bishops_ or _overseers_, Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i.
+7. The Church and people of God are that _charge_ which the Lord hath
+committed to their inspection. "Over which the Holy Ghost hath made you
+overseers," Acts xx. 28. Have not _overseers_ power over that which is
+_committed to their inspection_?
+
+4. They are _catechizers_ and _teachers_, Rom. xii. 7, 8; Eph. iv. 11.
+The Church and people are _catechized_, Gal. vi. 6; _taught_. Hath not
+he that _catechizeth_ power for government of him that is _catechized_?
+He that _teacheth_ of him that is _taught_?
+
+5. They are _co-workers_ with God, 1 Cor. iii. 9; 2 Cor. vi. 1.
+_Architects, builders_, &c., 1 Cor. iii. 10; some of them _laying the
+foundation, others building thereupon_. The Church and people of God are
+God's building. "Ye are God's building," 1 Cor. iii. 9. Have not
+_builders_ power of disposing and ordering affairs appertaining to the
+_building_?
+
+6. Finally, to add no more, the officers of Christ in the Church are not
+only as _nurses_; "We _were_ gentle among you, even as a nurse
+cherisheth her children," 1 Thess. ii. 7: and as _mothers_; "My little
+children, of whom I travail in birth again," Gal. iv. 19: but also as
+_fathers_, 1 Thess. ii. 11; 1 Cor. iv. 15, spiritual fathers in Christ:
+and the Church and people of God, they are the _sons_ and _daughters_,
+the spiritual _babes_ and _children_, begotten, brought forth, and
+nursed up by them, 1 Thess. ii. 7, 11; Gal. iv. 19: and have fathers no
+authority nor power of government over their children? See Eph. vi. 1-3;
+1 Tim. iii. 4.
+
+Thus Christ's officers stand in such relation to the Church as do
+evidently carry power of government along with them; but where are any
+other members of the church besides officers, stated in such relation of
+_pastors, stewards, overseers, catechizers, builders, husbandmen,
+nurses, mothers_, and _fathers_ to the Church of God and members of
+Christ, that can be evidenced by the Scriptures? Why may we not then
+clearly conclude,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the officers of Christ are the only subjects of
+ecclesiastical power.
+
+_Argum_. V. The many divine commands and impositions of duties of
+obedience, submission, subjection, &c., upon the Church and people of
+God, to be performed by them to Christ's officers, and that in reference
+to their office, do plainly proclaim the officers of Christ to be the
+proper receptacle and subject of authority and power from Christ for the
+government of his Church. Thus it may be argued:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever persons they are to whom the Church and people of
+God are peculiarly bound by the commands of Christ, to perform duties of
+obedience and subjection, and that in reference to their office in the
+church, they are the only subjects of authority from Christ for the
+government of his Church.
+
+This proposition needs no proof, unless we will be so absurd as to say
+that the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged by Christ's
+command to obey and be subject to them, that yet have no peculiar
+authority nor power over them, and that in reference to their office in
+the church.
+
+_Minor_. But the officers of Christ are those to whom the Church and
+people of God are peculiarly bound by the commands of Christ to perform
+duties of obedience and subjection, and that in reference to their
+office in the church.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition may be evidenced, 1. Partly by
+induction of some particular instances of Christ's commands, whereby the
+Church and people of God are bound to perform duties of obedience and
+subjection to the officers of Christ, in reference to their office in
+the church. 2. Partly by a denial of the like commands in reference to
+all others in the church, except the officers of the church only.
+
+Touching the first, viz. the instances of such commands, consider these
+following. The Church and people of God are commanded,
+
+1. To know their rulers. "We beseech you, brethren, to know them that
+labor among you, and are over you in the Lord," 1 Thess. v. 12. _To
+know_, i.e., not simply and merely to know, but to acknowledge, accept,
+and approve of them as such rulers over you in the Lord. This teaches
+subjection to the office of ruling.
+
+2. To love them exceedingly for their work's sake. "Esteem them
+superabundantly in love for their work's sake," 1 Thess. v. 13. For what
+work? viz. both laboring and ruling, mentioned verse 12. If they must
+love them so exceedingly for ruling over them, must they not much more
+be obedient to this rule?
+
+3. To count them worthy of double honor in reference to their
+well-ruling. "Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of double
+honor, especially--," 1 Tim. v. 17: whether we take _double honor_ here
+for reverence or maintenance, or both; yet how can we esteem the _elders
+ruling well worthy of double honor_ without some submission to their
+rule?
+
+4. To obey them that are their rulers and governors. _Obey ye your
+rulers, or governors_, Heb. xiii. 17; where the words _obey ye_ doth not
+(as some dream) signify a persuasion, but obedience, and in this sense
+it is commonly used, not only in profane authors, but also in the Holy
+Scriptures, as James iii. 3, Gal. iii. 1.
+
+5. Finally, to submit and be subordinate unto them. The Church and
+people of God are charged to submit unto them. "Obey your governors and
+submit ye," Heb. xiii. 17. The word properly notes a submissive yielding
+without opposition or resistance; yea, it signifies intense obedience.
+They must not only yield, but yield with subjection and submission,
+which relates to authority. They are also charged to be subordinate to
+them. "Likewise, ye younger, submit yourselves to the elders," 1 Pet. v.
+5; i.e., _be ye subordinate_, (it is a military term,) viz: be ordered,
+ranked, guided, governed, disciplined by them, as soldiers are by their
+commanders. The word _elders_ here is by some taken only for elders in
+age, and not in office. But it seems better to interpret it of elders in
+office; and the context well agrees with this; for the apostle having
+immediately before charged the ruling preaching presbyters with their
+duties towards their flock, ver. 1-4, here he seems to enjoin the ruled
+flock (which commonly were younger in age and gifts) to look to their
+duties of subjection to their elders in office.
+
+Touching the second, viz. the denial of like commands, and upon like
+grounds to all others in the church, except to the church officers only:
+where can it be evidenced in all the Scriptures that the people of God
+are commanded to know, to esteem very highly in love, to count worthy of
+double honor, to obey, and submit themselves to any persons in the
+church but to the ruling officers thereof in reference to their office,
+and the due execution thereof?
+
+Now, seeing the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged, by so
+many commands of Christ, to perform such duties of subjection and
+obedience to the officers of Christ, may it not be concluded,
+
+Therefore the officers of Christ are the only subjects of authority from
+Christ for the government of his Church?
+
+_Argum_. VI. Finally, the directions touching rule and government in the
+Church; the encouragements to well-ruling by commendations, promises,
+rewards, together with the contrary deterring discouragements from
+ill-ruling, by discommendations, threats, &c., being specially applied
+and appropriated by the word of Christ unto Christ's officers, very
+notably discover to us that Christ's officers are the only subjects of
+power from Christ for the government of his Church. Thus it may be
+argued:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever persons in the Church have directions for church
+government, encouragements to well-ruling, and discouragements from
+ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly applied unto them by the word of
+Christ; they are the only subjects of power from Christ for the
+government of his Church:
+
+This proposition is evident: For, 1. How should it be consistent with
+the infinite wisdom of God peculiarly to apply unto them directions
+about ruling and governing the church that are not the only subjects in
+whom the power of government is intrusted by Jesus Christ? 2. How can it
+stand with the justice of God to encourage them only unto well-ruling,
+by commendations, promises, rewards, &c., or to deter them from
+ill-governing by dispraises, threats, &c., &c., to whom the power of
+government doth not appertain, as to the only subjects thereof? 3. What
+strange apprehensions and distractions would this breed in the hearts of
+Christ's officers and others, should those that have not the power of
+church government committed to them by Christ, be yet directed by his
+word how to govern, encouraged in governing well, and deterred from
+governing ill?
+
+_Minor_. But the officers of Christ in the church have directions for
+church government, encouragements to well-ruling, and discouragements
+from ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly applied unto them by the
+word of God.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition may be cleared by divers Scriptures
+according to the particular branches thereof, viz:
+
+1. Directions for church government are particularly applied by the word
+of Christ to his own officers: as for instance, they are directed to
+_bind and loose_--to _remit_ and _retain sins on earth_, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 23. _To judge them that are within the_
+Church, _not without_, 1 Cor. v. 12. _Not to lord it, domineer_, or
+_overrule the flock of Christ_, 1 Pet. v. To _rule well_, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+To rule _with diligence_, Rom. xii. 8. To _lay hands suddenly on no man,
+neither to be partakers of other men's sins, but to keep themselves
+pure_, 1 Tim. v. 22. _Not to prefer one before another, nor do anything
+by partiality_, 1 Tim. v. 21. _To rebuke them that sin before all, that
+others also may fear_, 1 Tim. v. 20. _To reject a heretic after once or
+twice admonition_, Tit. iii. 10. To use the _authority that is given
+them from the Lord to the edification, not to the destruction_ of the
+Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; with divers such like rules specially
+directed to Christ's officers.
+
+2. Encouragements to well-ruling are peculiarly directed to Christ's
+officers. For, 1. They are the persons specially commended in that
+respect; _well-ruling_, 1 Tim. v. 17. _Good and faithful steward_, Luke
+xii. 42. The angels of the churches are praised for their good
+government, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6, and ver. 18, 19. 2. They are the persons
+to whom the promises, in reference to good government, are directed, as
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20; John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xxviii. 19, 20;
+Luke xii. 42-44; 1 Pet. v. 4. 3. They are the persons whom the Lord will
+have peculiarly rewarded, now with _double honor_, 1 Tim. v. 17;
+hereafter with _endless glory_, 1 Pet. v. 4.
+
+3. Discouragements, deterring from ill-governing, are also specially
+applied to Christ's officers, whether by way of dispraise or threats,
+&c., Rev. ii. 12, 14-16, and ver. 18, 20.
+
+Now if, 1. Rules for church government, 2. Encouragements in reference
+to well ruling, and, 3. Discouragements in reference to ill-ruling, be
+so peculiarly directed by the word of Christ to his own officers, we may
+conclude,
+
+Therefore the officers of Christ in the Church are the only subjects of
+power from Christ for the government of his Church.
+
+_Object_. But the church[99] of a particular congregation fully
+furnished with officers, and rightly walking in judgment and peace, is
+the first subject of all church authority, as appears from the example
+of the church of Corinth in the excommunication of the incestuous
+Corinthian, 1 Cor. v. 1-5; wherein it appears that the presbytery alone
+did not put forth this power, but the brethren also concurred in this
+sentence with some act of power, (viz. a negative power:) for, 1. The
+reproof, for not proceeding to sentence sooner, is directed to the whole
+Church, as well as to the presbytery. They are all blamed for not
+mourning, &c., 1 Cor. v. 2. 2. The command is directed to them all, when
+they are gathered together, (_and what is that but to a church
+meeting?_) to proceed against him, 1 Cor. v. 4, 13. 3. He declareth this
+act of theirs, in putting him out, to be a judicial act, ver. 12. 4.
+Upon his repentance the apostle speaketh to the brethren, as well as to
+their elders, to forgive him, 2 Cor. ii. 4-10. Consequently, Christ's
+church officers are not the peculiar, immediate, or only subject of the
+power of the keys, as hath been asserted.
+
+_Ans_. I. As for the main proposition asserted in this objection,
+something hath been formerly laid down to show the unsoundness of it.
+(See chap. X. near the end.) Whereunto thus much may be superadded. 1.
+What necessity is there that a particular congregation should be fully
+furnished with officers, to make it the subject of all church authority?
+For deacons are one sort of officers, yet what authority is added to the
+Church by the addition of deacons, whose office it is only to serve
+tables, Acts vi., not to rule the Church? or if the Church have no
+deacons, as once it had not, Acts i. 2, and before that, all the time
+from Christ, wherein is she maimed or defective in her authority? 2. If
+the Church, fully furnished with officers, yet walk not in judgment and
+peace, then in such case it is granted, that a particular congregation
+is not the first subject of all church authority. Then a congregation
+that walks in error or heresy, or passion, or profaneness, all which are
+contrary to judgment; and that walks in divisions, schisms, contentions,
+&c., which are contrary to peace, loseth her authority. Stick but close
+to this principle, and you will quickly lay the church authority of most
+independent congregations in the dust. But who shall determine whether
+they walk in judgment and peace, or not? Not themselves; for that were
+to make parties judges in their own case, and would produce a very
+partial sentence. Not sister churches; for all particular churches,
+according to them, have equal authority, and none may usurp one over
+another. Not a presbyterial church, for such they do not acknowledge.
+Then it must be left undetermined, yea undeterminable, (according to
+their principles;) consequently, who can tell when they have any
+authority at all? 3. Suppose the congregation had all her officers, and
+walked in judgment and peace also, yet is she not the first subject of
+all authority; for there is a synodal authority, beyond a congregational
+authority, as confessed by Mr. Cotton.[100]
+
+II. As for the proofs of this proposition asserted here, they seem
+extremely invalid and unsatisfying. For,
+
+The instance of the church of Corinth excommunicating the incestuous
+person, will not prove the congregation to be the first subject of all
+church authority: 1. Partly, because the church of Corinth was a
+presbyterial church, having several congregations in it, (as hereafter
+is evidenced, chap. XIII.;) now to argue from the authority of a
+presbyterial church, to the authority of a congregational,
+affirmatively, is not cogent. 2. Partly, because here were but two acts
+of power mentioned in this instance, viz. casting out and receiving
+again of the incestuous person: suppose the community had joined the
+presbytery in these two acts, (which yet is not proved,) will it follow
+therefore they are the first subject of all church authority? Are not
+ordination of presbyters, determination in case of appeals, of schism,
+of heresy, &c., acts of authority above the sphere of a single
+congregation? What one congregation can be instanced in the New
+Testament that did ever execute any of these acts of authority?
+
+The reasons brought, prove not that the brethren did concur with the
+presbytery in this sentence with some act of power, as will appear
+plainly, if they be considered severally.
+
+1. Not the reproof, 1 Cor. v. 2, "And ye are puffed up, and have not
+rather mourned, that he that hath done this deed might be taken away
+from among you." Here they are blamed, that they no more laid to heart
+so vile a scandal, which should have been matter of mourning to the
+whole congregation; that they instead of mourning were puffed up,
+gloried in their shame; and that they sluggishly neglected to endeavor,
+in their sphere, his casting out. And all this blame might justly be
+charged upon the whole church, the fraternity as well as the presbytery:
+the scandal of one member should be the grief of the whole body of the
+church. What then? Hath therefore the fraternity, as well as the
+presbytery, power to cast him out? That were a miserable consequence
+indeed: the people should not only have mourned for the sin, but have
+urged the presbytery to have proceeded to sentence, and after sentence
+have withdrawn from him, in obedience to the sentence; but none of all
+these can amount to a proper act of church authority in them.
+
+2. Nor doth the apostle's command prove the people's concurrence in any
+act of power with the presbytery, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, "In the name of our
+Lord Jesus Christ, when ye are gathered together, to deliver such an one
+unto Satan," &c.: ver. 7, "Purge out therefore the old leaven," &c.: and
+ver. 13, "Therefore put away from among yourselves that wicked person."
+In which passages it is supposed the apostle directs his injunction to
+them all (as well as to their presbytery) when they come together in
+their church meeting to proceed to sentence.
+
+But against this reason, well ponder upon these considerations, viz: 1.
+It is certain beyond all controversy, that the apostle did not direct
+these commands to the whole church of Corinth absolutely, and
+universally, without all exception and limitation to any members at all:
+for by his own rule, "Women must be silent in their churches, it being a
+shame for a woman to speak in the church," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, and
+children or fools were not able to judge. Hence it is evident that a
+church absolutely and universally taken, cannot possibly be the
+ministerial ruling church which hath the authority. 2. It is evident to
+any man that is but moderately acquainted with the Scriptures, that God
+useth to direct his commands, reproofs, and other speeches to a people
+indifferently, and as it were collectively and generally, which yet he
+intends should be particularly applied and appropriated; not to all, but
+to this or that person or persons, only among such a people
+distributively and respectively; according to their respective callings,
+interests, relations, &c., as in the Old Testament God directs a command
+to the people of Israel indefinitely, and as it were collectively, to
+kill enticers to idolatry, false prophets, Deut. xiii. 9; but intended
+that the judge should sentence him, finding him guilty by witnesses. The
+Lord also directs his command to all the people, as it were
+collectively, to put out of the camp "every one that was a leper, and
+had an issue, or was defiled by the dead," Numb. v. 2; but intended that
+the priest should peculiarly take and apply this command to himself, who
+was to judge in these cases. See Lev. xiii. and elsewhere. So in the New
+Testament the apostle praised the Corinthians indefinitely, and as it
+were collectively, for "remembering him in all things, and keeping the
+ordinances as he delivered them to them," 1 Cor. xi. 2; wherein he
+intended only to commend the virtuous; and after he discommends them
+indefinitely for "coming together not for better, but for worse," 1 Cor.
+xi. 17; intending only their dispraise that were herein particularly
+delinquent among them. Again, he speaks indefinitely, and as it were
+collectively and generally, "Ye may all prophesy one by one," 1 Cor.
+xiv. 31; but he intended it only to the prophets respectively, not to
+all the members; for he saith elsewhere, "Are all prophets?" 1 Cor. xii.
+29. And writing to the churches of Galatia, Gal. i. 2, against false
+teachers he speaks thus to all those churches collectively, "A little
+leaven leaveneth the whole lump," Gal. v. 9. And, "I would they were
+even cut off who trouble you," ver. 12. Now every one of these churches
+were to apply this to themselves respectively, Independents themselves
+being judges. So here in this present case of the church of Corinth, the
+apostle directs his commands to them, as it were collectively, about
+putting away the incestuous person, which commands were particularly to
+be put in execution by the presbytery in that church in whose hands the
+church authority was.[101]
+
+Thus taking these commands, 1 Cor. v. 4, 7, 13, though directed
+indefinitely, and as it were collectively to the whole church, yet
+intended respectively to be put in execution by the presbytery in that
+church, they hold forth no concurrence of the people in any act of power
+at all with the church officers or presbytery. And it is a good note
+which Cameron[102] hath upon this place, "These things that are written
+in this epistle are so to be taken of the presbytery and of the people,
+that every one both of the presbyters and of the people, should
+interpret the command according to the reason of his office." 3. When
+the apostle reciteth the proceedings of the church in this very case of
+the incestuous person, in his 2d epistle, he saith, "Sufficient to such
+a man is this punishment" (or censure) "which was inflicted of many," 2
+Cor. ii. 6. It is very observable, he saith not, _of all_; nor _of
+many_, but _of the chief ones_, viz. the church officers, who had the
+rule and government of the church committed to them: (the article _the_
+being emphatical;) for this word translated _many_ may as well be
+translated chief, denoting worth, &c., as many, denoting number. And in
+this sense the Holy Ghost ofttimes useth this word in the New Testament;
+as for instance, "Is not the life better than meat?" Matt. vi. 25.
+"Behold, a greater than Jonah is here," Matt. xii. 41. "And behold, a
+greater than Solomon is here," Matt. xii. 41. "To love him with all the
+heart," &c., "is more than all whole burnt-offerings and sacrifices,"
+Mark xii. 33. And again, ver. 43, "This poor widow hath cast more than
+all they," &c. And thus it is frequently used to signify quality, worth,
+greatness, dignity, eminency, &c., and so it may be conveniently
+interpreted in this of the Corinthians. 4. Though all proper acts of
+authority appertain only to the church officers, yet we are not against
+the people's fraternal concurrence therewith. People may incite the
+presbytery to the acts of their office; people may be present at the
+administration of censures, &c., by the elders, as Cyprian of old would
+dispatch all public acts, the people being present; people may judge
+with a judgment of discretion, acclamation, and approbation, &c., as the
+elders judge with a judgment of power; and people afterwards may, yea
+must, withdraw from delinquents sentenced, that the sentence may attain
+its proposed end. But none of these are properly any acts of power.
+
+3. Nor doth the apostle's expression, verse 12, "Do you not judge them
+that are within?" prove that the people concur with any authoritative
+act in the elders' sentence. For, 1. This being spoken to them
+indefinitely, was to be applied distributively and respectively, only to
+them to whom it properly appertained, viz. the elders, as hath been
+showed. They only have authority to judge. 2. Such a judgment is allowed
+to the saints in church censures, as shall be allowed to them when the
+saints shall judge the world, yea angels, 1 Cor. vi. 1-3, viz. in both a
+judgment of acclamation, approbation, &c., as assessors, as people judge
+at the assizes; not in either a judgment of authority, which the judge
+and jury only do pronounce.
+
+4. Nor, finally, doth the apostle's direction to forgive the incestuous,
+being penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 4-10, which seems to be given to all, prove
+the people's concurrence with the elders in any act of power. For the
+authoritative forgiving and receiving him again, belonged only to the
+elders; the charitable forgiving, receiving, and comforting of him,
+belonged also to the people. As the judge and jury at an assizes, acquit
+by judgment of authority, the people only by judgment of discretion and
+acclamation.
+
+Thus it appears how little strength is in this instance of the church of
+Corinth, (though supposed to be the strongest ground the Independents
+have,) for the propping up of their popular government, and
+authoritative suffrage of the people.
+
+
+SECTION III.
+
+III. Having thus considered the subject of authority and power for
+church government: 1. Negatively, what it is not, viz. neither the
+political magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or whole
+body of the people, Chap. IX. and X. 2. Positively, what it is, viz.
+Christ's own officers in his church, as hath been explained and
+evidenced, Sect. 2, of this Chap. 3. Now, in the third and last place,
+we are to insist a little further upon this subject of the power, by way
+of explanation: and to inquire, seeing Christ's officers are found to be
+the subject of this power, in what sense or notion they are the subject
+and receptacle of this authority and power from Christ, whether jointly
+or severally; as solitarily and single from one another, or associated
+and incorporated into assemblies with one another; or in both respects?
+
+For resolution herein we must remember that distribution of the keys, or
+of proper ecclesiastical power, (which was briefly mentioned before in
+Part 2, Chap. III.) into that which is,
+
+1. More special and peculiar to the office of some church governors,
+which by virtue of their office they are to execute and discharge: thus
+it is peculiar to the minister's office, 1. To preach the word; compare
+these places together, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, John xx. 21-23, Rom. x. 15,
+1 Tim. v. 17, Heb. xiii. 7, 2 Tim. iv. 1, 2, &c. 2. _To dispense the
+sacraments_, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25. The word and
+sacraments were joined together in the same commission to the same
+officers, viz. the preaching presbyters, &c., as is evident in that of
+Matt. xxviii. 19.
+
+2. More general and common to the office of all church governors, as the
+power of censures, viz. admonishing, excommunicating, and absolving, and
+of such other acts as necessarily depend thereupon; wherein not only the
+preaching, but also the ruling elders are to join and contribute their
+best assistance; as may be collected from these several testimonies of
+Scripture, Matt. xviii. 17, 18, _Tell the Church_,[103] 1 Cor. v. 2-13,
+2 Cor. ii. 6-12, compared with Rom. xii. 8, 1 Cor. xii. 28, and 1 Tim.
+v. 17.
+
+Now these officers of Christ, viz. they that labor in the word and
+doctrine, and the ruling elders, are the subject of this power of
+jurisdiction as they are united in one body, hence called a Church,
+Matth. xviii. 18, viz. the governing or ruling church; for no other can
+there be meant; and presbytery,[104] i.e. a society or assembly of
+presbyters together, 1 Tim. iv. 14.
+
+The presbyters, elderships, or assemblies wherein these officers are
+united and associated, are of two sorts, viz: 1. The lesser assemblies,
+consisting of the ministers and ruling elders in each single
+congregation; which, for distinction's sake, is styled the
+congregational eldership. 2. The greater assemblies, consisting of
+church governors sent from several churches and united into one body,
+for governing of all these churches within their own bounds, whence
+their members were sent. These greater assemblies are either
+presbyterial or synodal. 1. Presbyterial, consisting of the ministers
+and elders of several adjacent or neighboring single congregations, or
+parish churches, ruling those several congregations in common; this kind
+of assembly is commonly called the presbytery, or, for distinction's
+sake, the classical presbytery, i.e. the presbytery of such a rank of
+churches. 2. Synodal, consisting of ministers and elders, sent from
+presbyterial assemblies, to consult and conclude about matters of common
+and great concernment to the church within their limits. Such was that
+assembly mentioned, Acts xv. These synodal assemblies are either, 1. Of
+ministers and elders from several presbyteries within one province,
+called provincial. 2. Or of ministers and elders from several provinces
+within one nation, called therefore national. Or, 3. Of ministers and
+elders from the several nations within the whole Christian world,
+therefore called ecumenical: for all which assemblies, congregational,
+presbyterial, and synodal, and the subordination of the lesser to the
+greater assemblies respectively, there seems to be good ground and
+divine warrant in the word of God, as (God willing) shall be evinced in
+the xii., xiii., xiv., and xv. chapters following.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII.
+
+_Of the Divine Right of Congregational Elderships or Kirk Sessions, for
+the government of the Church._
+
+
+Touching congregational elderships, consisting of the ministers and
+ruling elders of the several single congregations, which are called the
+lesser assemblies, or smaller presbyteries, and which are to manage and
+order all ecclesiastical matters within themselves, which are of more
+immediate, private, particular concernment to their own congregations
+respectively; and consequently, of more easy dispatch, and of more daily
+use and necessity. Concerning these congregational presbyteries, we
+shall not now take into consideration either, 1. What are the members
+constituting and making up these elderships; whether ruling elders by
+divine warrant may be superadded to the pastors and teachers, and so be
+associated for the government of the congregation. For the divine right
+of the ruling elders, distinct from the preaching elder for the
+government of the church, hath been evidenced at large, Chapter XI.,
+Section 1, foregoing. And if any acts of government in the church belong
+to the ruling elder at all, sure those acts of common jurisdiction, to
+be dispatched in these least assemblies, cannot of all other be denied
+unto him. 2. Nor shall it here be discussed, what the power of
+congregational elderships is, whether it be universally extensive to all
+acts of government ecclesiastical whatsoever, without exception or
+limitation; and that independently, without subordination to the greater
+assemblies, and without all liberty of appeal thereunto in any cases
+whatsoever, though of greatest and most common concernment. Which things
+are well stated and handled by others;[105] and will in some measure be
+considered afterwards in Chapter XV.
+
+3. But the thing for the present to be insisted upon, against the
+Erastian and prelatical party, is, the divine right of authority and
+power for church government, which is in congregational presbyteries or
+elderships, in reference to their respective congregations. Take it
+thus:
+
+Elderships of single congregations vested and furnished with
+ecclesiastical authority and power to exercise and dispense acts of
+government in and over those respective congregations whereunto they do
+belong, are by divine right warrantable.
+
+For confirmation hereof the light of nature, the institution of Christ,
+the apostolical practice, and the law of necessity, seem to speak
+sufficiently unto us.
+
+1. The common light of nature thus far directeth all sorts of smaller
+societies, whether political or ecclesiastical, to compose all
+particular and more private differences and offences within themselves;
+and to decide and determine small, common, easy causes and matters, by
+smaller courts and judicatories appointed for that end: a vain thing to
+trouble more and greater assemblies with those matters, that may as well
+be determined by the lesser. It was wise and grave counsel which Jethro,
+Moses' father-in-law, gave to Moses, that he should set up over the
+people certain judges inferior to himself, who themselves might judge
+all smaller matters, but all _great and hard matters to be brought to
+Moses_, Exod. xviii. 22, 26. And our Saviour seems to insinuate, that
+the Jews had their inferior courts for inferior causes, superior
+judicatories for greater, in that gradation of his, Matt. v. 22.
+Likewise they had lesser and greater ecclesiastical assemblies, (as
+after will appear.) Now, to what use are greater and lesser
+judicatories, civil or ecclesiastical, but that the lesser and lighter
+causes may be judged in the inferior, harder and greater in the
+superior?
+
+2. The institution of Christ recorded Matt. xviii. 15-21, seems to hold
+forth notably both single congregational elderships, and their power.
+And this, whether we consider the Jewish form, unto which our Saviour
+seems to refer; or whether we observe the matter of his discourse.
+
+1. As for the Jewish form of church government (unto which our Saviour
+here seems to allude) we may observe it was managed by two, if not three
+sorts of ecclesiastical courts, viz: By the Sanhedrin, presbytery, and
+synagogue, (much like to the evangelical synod, presbytery, and
+congregational eldership since Christ.) 1. They had their
+ecclesiastical,[106] as well as their civil Sanhedrin, for high and
+difficult affairs of the church; which seems first to be constituted,
+Exod. xxiv. 1, and after decay thereof, it was restored by King
+Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xix. 8; and from this court that national church's
+reformation proceeded, Neh. vi. 13. 2. Again, it is very probable they
+had between their Sanhedrin and their synagogue a middle ecclesiastical
+court called _The Presbytery_, Luke xxii. 66, and Acts xxii. 5, _and the
+whole presbytery_. Let such as are expert in Jewish antiquities and
+their polity, consider and judge. 3. Finally, they had their lesser
+judicatories in their synagogues, or congregational meetings: for, their
+synagogues were not only for prayer, and the ministry of the word, in
+reading and expounding the Scriptures, but also for public censures,
+correcting of offences, &c., as that phrase seems to import, "And I
+punished them oft in every synagogue," Acts xxvi. 11. His facts and
+proceedings, it is true, were cruel, unjust, impious. But why inflicted
+_in every synagogue_, rather than in other places, and that by virtue of
+the _high priest's letters_, Acts ix. 1, 2; but there the Jews had
+judicatories, that inflicted public punishments upon persons
+ecclesiastically offending? Besides, we read often in the New Testament
+of the _rulers of the synagogue_, as Mark v. 35, 36, 38; Luke viii. 41,
+and xiii. 14; and of Crispus and Sosthenes the chief _rulers of the
+synagogue_, Acts xviii. 8, 17; whence is intimated to us, that these
+synagogues had their rule and government in themselves; and that this
+rule was not in one person, but in divers together; for if there were
+chief rulers, there were also inferiors subordinate unto them: but this
+is put out of doubt, in Acts xiii. 15, where after the lecture of the
+law and the prophets, _the rulers of the synagogue sent unto
+them_--_synagogue_ in the singular number, and rulers in the plural.
+Thus analogically there should be ecclesiastical rulers and governors in
+every single congregation, for the well guiding thereof. But if this
+satisfy not, add hereunto the material passages in our Saviour's speech.
+
+2. Now touching the matter of our Saviour's discourse, it makes this
+very clear to us; for by a gradation he leadeth us from admonition
+private and personal, to admonition before two or three witnesses, and
+from admonition before two or three witnesses, to the representative
+body of one church, (as the phrase _tell the church_ must here
+necessarily be interpreted,) if there the difference can be composed,
+the offence removed, or the cause ended; rather than unnecessarily
+render the offence, and so our brother's shame, more public and
+notorious. And that the presbytery or eldership of a particular
+congregation, vested with power to hear and determine such cases as
+shall be brought before them, is partly, though not only here intended,
+seems evident in the words following, which are added for the
+strengthening and confirming of what went before in ver. 17: "Verily, I
+say unto you, whatsoever ye shall bind on earth shall be bound in
+heaven; and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in
+heaven. Again, I say unto you, that if two of you shall agree on earth
+as touching any thing that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of
+my Father which is in heaven. For where two or three are gathered
+together in my name, there am I in the midst of them," Matt. xviii.
+18-20. In which passages these things are to be noted: 1. That this
+church to which the complaint is to be made, is invested with power of
+_binding_ and _loosing_, and that so authoritatively that what by this
+church shall be bound or loosed on earth shall also be bound or loosed
+in heaven, according to Christ's promise. 2. That these acts of
+_binding_ or _loosing_, may be the acts but of two or three, and
+therefore consequently of the eldership of a particular congregation;
+for where such a juridical act was dispatched by a classical presbytery,
+it is said to be done of _many_, 2 Cor. ii. 6, because that in such
+greater presbyteries there are always more than _two or three_. And
+though some do pretend, that the faults here spoken of by our Saviour in
+this place, were injuries, not scandals; and that the church here
+mentioned was not any ecclesiastical consistory, or court, but the civil
+Sanhedrin, a court of civil judicature; and yet most absurdly they
+interpret the binding and loosing here spoken of, to be doctrinal and
+declarative; not juridical and authoritative; as if the doctrinal
+binding and loosing were in the power of the civil Sanhedrin:[107] yet
+all these are but vain, groundless pretences and subterfuges, without
+substance or solidity, as the learned and diligent reader may easily
+find demonstrated by consulting these judicious authors mentioned in the
+foot note,[108] to whom for brevity's sake he is referred for
+satisfaction in these and divers such like particulars.
+
+3. The consideration of the apostolical practice, and state of the
+Church of God in those times, may serve further to clear this matter to
+us. For, 1. We sometimes read of single congregations; and as the Holy
+Ghost doth call the whole body of Christ _the Church_, Matt. xvi. 18, 1
+Cor. xii. 28, and often elsewhere; and the larger particular members of
+that body of Christ (partaking the nature of the whole, as a drop of
+water is as true water as the whole ocean) churches; as, _the church of
+Jerusalem_, Acts viii. 1; _the church of Antioch_, Acts xiii. 1; _the
+church of Ephesus_, Rev. ii. 1; _the church of Corinth_, 2 Cor. i. 1;
+(these being the greater presbyterial churches, as after will appear,
+Chap. XIII.;) so the same holy Spirit of Christ is pleased to style
+single congregations, _churches_, "Let women keep silence in the
+churches," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, i.e. in the single congregations of this one
+church of Corinth: and often mention is made of the church that is in
+such or such an _house_, as Rom. xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19; Col. iv. 15;
+Philem. 2; whether this be interpreted of the church made up only of the
+members of that family, or of the church that ordinarily did meet in
+such houses, it implies a single congregation. Now shall single
+congregations have the name and nature of churches, and shall we imagine
+they had not in them the ordinary standing church officers, viz. pastors
+and teachers, governments, or elders _ruling well_, and helps or
+deacons? or is it probable they were furnished with these officers, and
+yet the officers furnished with no power for the government of these
+single congregations at all? 2. We find that the apostles being crowned
+with such success in their ministry, as to be instruments of converting
+such multitudes to the faith as were sufficient to make up many several
+churches from time to time, did diligently take care to ordain them
+presbyters, or elders _in every church_, Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5. Now
+can it be clearly evidenced by any, that these were not ruling as well
+as preaching presbyters; especially when it appears by other places that
+the primitive churches had both? Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28;
+
+1 Tim. v. 17. Or can we think that the apostles were not as careful to
+erect elderships in several congregations, as to appoint elders?
+otherwise how could the apostles have answered it to their Lord and
+Master Jesus Christ, in leaving them without that necessary provision of
+government, which Christ himself had allowed to them, at least, in some
+cases, as hath been evidenced?
+
+4. Finally, necessity (which is a strong and cogent law) plainly and
+forcibly pleads for elderships in particular congregations endowed with
+authority and power from Christ for government within themselves. For,
+1. How wearisome a thing would it be to all congregations, should every
+one of their members be bound to attend upon synods and greater
+presbyteries, (which in the country are at a great distance from them,)
+in all ecclesiastical matters of judicature, if they had no relief in
+their own congregations? How impossible would it be for the greater
+presbyteries, not only to hear and determine all hard and weighty, but
+also all small and easy causes that would be brought before them? And
+what should become of such a congregation as either voluntarily
+transplants itself, or is accidentally cast among heathens or pagans in
+far countries, where there are no Christians or churches to join and
+associate withal, if they be denied an authoritative presbytery within
+themselves, for preventing and healing of scandals, and preserving
+themselves from destruction and ruin, which anarchy would unavoidably
+bring upon them?
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII.
+
+_Of the Divine Right of Presbyteries, (for distinction's sake called
+Classical Presbyteries,) for the government of the Church._
+
+
+Having spoken of the lesser, viz. congregational elderships, we come now
+to the greater ruling assemblies, which are either presbyterial or
+synodal. And first, of the presbyterial assembly, or classical
+presbytery, viz. an assembly made up of the presbyters of divers
+neighboring single congregations, for governing of all those respective
+congregations in common, whereunto they belong, in all matters of common
+concernment and greater difficulty in the Church. The divine warrant and
+right of this presbytery, and of the power thereof for church
+government, may principally be evidenced, 1. By the light of nature. 2.
+By the light of Scripture, which light of Scripture was followed by the
+Church in the ages after the apostolical times.
+
+I. The light of nature and right reason may discover to us (though more
+dimly) the divine warrant of the greater presbyteries, and of their
+power for the governing of the church. For,
+
+1. There are many ecclesiastical matters which are of common concernment
+to many single congregations, as trial of church officers, ordination
+and deposition of ministers, dispensation of censures, judicial
+determination of controversies, resolution in difficult cases of
+conscience, ordering of things indifferent, &c.; here the rule holds
+well, that which concerns many congregations, is not to be considered
+and determined upon only by one, but those many concerned and interested
+therein.
+
+2. Single congregational elderships stand in need of all mutual help and
+assistance one of another in the Lord, being, 1. Inwardly weak in
+themselves; too prone to be turned out of the way, Heb. xii. 13, Gal. v.
+15, and too feeble for divers great tasks: as examination and ordination
+of ministers, &c., which weakness is healed by association with others
+assisting them. 2. Outwardly opposed by many dangerous and subtle
+adversaries: men as grievous wolves, &c., Acts xx. 28-30; 2 Pet. ii. 1;
+Phil. iii. 2; 1 Tim. iv. 1-7; Eph. iv. 14; devils, 1 Pet. v. 8. In such
+cases two are better than one: "Wo to them that are alone; if they fall,
+who shall take them up?"
+
+3. Such intricate cases may fall out as cannot be determined and settled
+by the eldership of a single congregation. As for instance, some member
+in the congregation may conceive himself so wronged by the eldership
+thereof, that he cannot submit to their unjust sentence; shall he not in
+such case have liberty of appeal from them? If not, then he is left
+without a remedy, (which is the calamity of the Independent government.)
+If he may, whether shall he appeal regularly but to an associated
+presbytery? therefore there must be such a presbytery to appeal unto.
+Again, there may be a controversy betwixt the whole congregation, and
+their presbytery; yea, the presbytery itself may be equally divided
+against itself; yea, one single congregation may have a great and
+weighty contest with another sister congregation, (all single
+congregations being equal in power and authority, none superior, none
+inferior to others.) Now, in these and such like cases, suppose both
+parties be resolute and wilful, and will not yield to any bare moral
+suasion or advice without some superior authority, what healing is left
+in such cases, without the assistance of an authoritative presbytery,
+wherein the whole hath power to regulate all the parts?
+
+4. Single congregations, joined in vicinity and neighborhood to one
+another, should avoid divisions, (which are destructive to all
+societies, as well ecclesiastical as civil,) and maintain peace and
+unity among themselves, (which is conservative to all societies;)
+neither of which, without associated presbyteries, can be firmly and
+durably effected. Both which ought with all diligence to be endeavored.
+For, 1. Peace and unity in the Church are in themselves amiable, and
+ought to be promoted, Psal. cxxxiii. 1, &c.; Eph. iv. 3, 13; 1 Cor. i.
+10. 2. Schisms and divisions are simply evil, and all appearance, cause,
+and occasion thereof, ought carefully to be avoided, 1 Cor. xii. 25;
+Rom. xvi. 17; 1 Thes. iv. 22. 3. All congregations are but as so many
+branches, members, parts of that one church, one body, one family, one
+commonwealth, one kingdom, whereof Christ is Head, Lord, and King; and
+therefore they should communicate together, and harmoniously incorporate
+and associate with one another, (so far as may be,) for the common good,
+peace, unity, and edification of all. See 1 Cor. xii. 12-29; Eph. ii.
+12-16, and iv. 12-14, and v. 23-25.
+
+II. The light of Scripture will hold forth the divine warrant of greater
+presbyteries and their power for church government, far more clearly
+than the light of nature. Forasmuch as we find in the Scriptures a
+pattern of these greater presbyteries, and of their presbyterial
+government over divers single congregations in common in the primitive
+apostolical churches. For the greater evidence and perspicuity hereof,
+take this proposition:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern of
+presbyterial government in common over divers single congregations in
+one Church, for a rule to his Church in all after ages. For confirmation
+hereof, there are chiefly these three positions to make good, which are
+comprised in this proposition, viz: 1. That there is in the word a
+pattern of divers single congregations in one church. 2. That there is
+in the word a pattern of one presbyterial government in common over
+divers single congregations in one church. 3. Finally, that the pattern
+of the said presbyterial government, is for a rule to the churches of
+Christ in all after ages.
+
+
+POSITION I.
+
+That there is in the word a pattern of divers single congregations in
+one church, may be plentifully evinced by four instances of churches,
+(to mention no more,) viz. the churches of Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus,
+and Corinth. Touching which four these two things are clear in the
+Scripture, viz: 1. That every of them was one church. 2. That in every
+one of these churches there were more congregations than one. Both which
+will fully evince a pattern of divers single congregations in one church
+held forth in the word.
+
+1. The former of these, viz. That every one of these was one church,
+may be proved by induction of particulars. 1. All the believers in
+Jerusalem were one church; hence they are often comprised under the word
+church, of the singular number:--"Against the church which was at
+Jerusalem," Acts viii. 1. "Then tidings of these things came unto the
+ears of the church which was in Jerusalem," Acts ii. 22. "And when they
+were come to Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the
+apostles and elders," Acts xv. 4. 2. All the believers in Antioch were
+one church. "Now there were in the church that was at Antioch, certain
+prophets," Acts xiii. 1. "And when he had found him, he brought him to
+Antioch. And it came to pass, that a whole year they assembled
+themselves with the church, and taught much people, and the disciples
+were first called Christians in Antioch," Acts xi. 26. 3. All the
+believers in Ephesus were one church: "And from Miletus he sent to
+Ephesus, and called the elders of the church," Acts xx. 17. And after he
+gives them this charge, "Take heed therefore to yourselves, and to all
+the flock, over which the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed
+the church of God," ver. 28; all were but _one flock, one church_. "Unto
+the angel of the church of Ephesus, write," Rev. ii. 1. 4. All the
+believers in Corinth were one church, and comprised under that singular
+word, church: "Unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 1 Cor. i. 2.
+"Paul, an apostle of Jesus Christ, by the will of God, and Timothy our
+brother, unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 2 Cor. i. 1. Thus
+in all these four instances it is clear beyond all contradiction, that
+they were every of them respectively one church.
+
+The latter of these, viz. that these primitive apostolical churches of
+Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, were not every of them
+severally and respectively only one single congregation, (as some
+imagine,) but consisted every of them of more congregations than one.
+This shall be manifested in these four churches severally, as followeth:
+
+The church of Jerusalem in Judea contained in it more congregations than
+one. This may be convincingly evidenced divers ways, particularly from,
+1. The multitude of believers in that church. 2. The multitude of church
+officers there. 3. The variety of languages there. 4. The manner of the
+Christians' public meetings in those primitive times, both in the church
+of Jerusalem, and in other churches.
+
+1. From the multitude of believers in the church of Jerusalem. For it is
+palpably evident to any impartial reader that will not wilfully shut his
+eyes, and subject his reason unto the groundless dictates of men,
+against the clear light of the Scripture, that there were more believers
+in the church of Jerusalem, than could ordinarily meet in one
+congregation, to partake of all the ordinances of Christ.
+
+And this may fully appear by these many instances following. 1. Christ
+after his resurrection, and before his ascension, "was seen of above
+five hundred brethren at once," 1 Cor. xv. 6. 2. "After that of James,
+then of all the apostles," ver. 7. 3. At the election of Matthias, and
+before Christ's ascension, there were disciples together, the "company
+of their names together was as it were one hundred and twenty," Acts i.
+15. 4. At Peter's sermon, "they that gladly received his word, were
+baptized. And that day were added about three thousand souls," Acts ii.
+1, 4. 5. And "The Lord added to the Church daily such as should be
+saved," ver. 27. 6. Afterwards at another of Peter's sermons, "Many of
+them that heard the word believed; and the number of the men was about
+five thousand," Acts iv. 4. 7. After that, "Believers were the more
+added to the Lord, multitudes both of men and women," Acts v. 14. 8.
+Furthermore, the disciples multiplying, and the work of the ministry
+thereupon much increasing, the apostles were necessitated to appoint
+seven deacons for serving of tables, that they might wholly "give
+themselves to the ministry of the word and prayer," Acts vi. 1 to 7;
+whence some have thought, that there were seven congregations in
+Jerusalem, a deacon for every one. Certainly there were rather more than
+fewer, (saith the author of the Assertion of the Government of the
+Church of Scotland,[109]) though we cannot determine how many. However
+this, the Holy Ghost clearly testifieth that "The word of God increased,
+and the number of the disciples in Jerusalem multiplied greatly." 9.
+"And a great company of the priests became obedient to the faith," Acts
+vi. 7; and probably the example of the priests drew on multitudes to the
+Gospel. All these forementioned were in a short time converted, and
+became members of this one church of Jerusalem, and that before the
+dispersion occasioned by the persecution of the Church, Acts viii. 1.
+Now should we put all these together, viz. both the number of believers
+expressed in particular, which is 8,620, and the multitudes so often
+expressed in the general, (which, for aught we know, might be many more
+than the former,) what a vast multitude of believers was there in
+Jerusalem! and how impossible was it for them to meet all together in
+one congregation, to partake of all the ordinances of Jesus Christ! 10.
+In like manner, after the dispersion forementioned, the word so
+prospered, and the disciples brought into the faith by it, so
+multiplied, that it was still far more impossible for all the believers
+in the church of Jerusalem to meet in one congregation to partake of
+all the ordinances of Christ, than before. For it is said, "Then had the
+churches rest throughout all Judea" (and the church of Jerusalem in
+Judea was doubtless one of those churches) "and Galilee and Samaria, and
+were edified; and walking in the fear of the Lord, and comfort of the
+Holy Ghost, were multiplied." 11. Again, "the word of the Lord increased
+and multiplied," Acts xii. 24. 12. Furthermore, when Paul, with other
+disciples, his fellow-travellers, came to Jerusalem, and "declared to
+James and the elders, what things God had wrought by his ministry among
+the Gentiles--They glorified the Lord, and said unto him, Thou seest,
+brother, how many" myriads (or ten thousands) "of believing Jews there
+are, and they are all zealous of the law"--Acts xxi. 20. Our translation
+seems herein very defective, rendering it how many thousands; whereas it
+should be, according to the Greek, how many ten thousands: and these
+myriads seem to be in the church of Jerusalem, seeing it is said of
+them, ver. 22, "The multitude must needs come together, for they will
+hear that thou art come." Now considering this emphatical expression,
+not only _thousands_, but _ten thousand_: not _only ten thousand_ in the
+singular number, but _ten thousands, myriads_, in the plural number: nor
+only _myriads, ten thousands_, in the plural number, but _how many ten
+thousands_; we cannot in reason imagine but there were at least three
+ten thousands, viz: thirty thousand believers, and how all they should
+meet together in one congregation for all ordinances, let the reader
+judge. Thus far of the proof, from the multitude of believers in the
+church of Jerusalem.
+
+_Except_. But the five thousand mentioned Acts iv. 4, are no new number
+added to the three thousand, but the three thousand included in the five
+thousand, as Calvin and Beza think.
+
+_Ans_. 1. Then it is granted that five thousand one hundred and twenty,
+besides an innumerable addition of converts, were in Jerusalem; which if
+such a number, and multitudes besides, could for edification meet in one
+place, to partake of all the ordinances, let the reader judge.
+
+2. Though Calvin and Beza think the three thousand formerly converted to
+be included in this number of five thousand, Acts iv. 4, yet divers both
+ancient and modern interpreters are of another mind, as Augustine. There
+came unto the body of the Lord in number three thousand faithful men;
+also by another miracle wrought, there came other five thousand.[110]
+These five thousand are altogether diverse from the three thousand
+converted at the first sermon: so Lorinus, Aretius, and divers others.
+
+3. Besides a great number of testimonies, there are reasons to induce us
+to believe, that the three thousand are not included in the five
+thousand, viz: 1. As the three thousand mentioned in Acts ii. 41, did
+not comprehend the one hundred and twenty mentioned Acts i. 15, so it
+holds in proportion that the three thousand mentioned there, are not
+comprehended here in Acts iv. 4. Besides, 2. This sermon was not by
+intention to the church, or numbers already converted, but by occasion
+of the multitude flocking together to behold the miracle Peter and John
+wrought on the "man that was lame from his mother's womb;" as Acts iii.
+10-12; so that 'tis more than probable that the five thousand mentioned
+Acts iv. 4, are a number superadded besides the three thousand already
+converted.
+
+_Except_. But suppose such a number as three thousand, and afterwards
+five thousand were converted in Jerusalem, yet these remained not
+constant members of that Church, for the three thousand were not
+dwellers at Jerusalem, but strangers who came out of all countries to
+keep the feast of Pentecost: yea, Acts ii. 9, they are said expressly to
+be "dwellers of Mesopotamia, Cappadocia," &c., and so might erect
+churches where they came.
+
+_Ans_. 1. 'Tis said, Acts ii. 14, "Peter standing" (when he began to
+preach this sermon wherein the three thousand were converted) "said, Ye
+men of Judea, and all ye that dwell at Jerusalem, hearken to my voice;"
+intimating that these he preached to dwelt at Jerusalem.
+
+But grant that some of these men that heard Peter's sermon were formerly
+dwellers in Mesopotamia and Cappadocia, what hinders but that they might
+be now dwellers at Jerusalem?
+
+3. The occasion of their coming up to Jerusalem at this time was not
+only the observation of the feast of Pentecost, (which lasted but a
+day,) but also the great expectation that the people of the Jews then
+had of the appearance of the Messiah in his kingdom, as we may collect
+from Luke xix. 11, where it is said, "They thought the kingdom of God
+should immediately appear;" so that now they might choose to take up
+their dwellings at Jerusalem, and not return, as they had been wont, at
+the end of their usual feasts.
+
+4. The Holy Ghost makes mention that in the particular places mentioned,
+ver. 9, 10, that of all those nations there were some that dwelt at
+Jerusalem; read Acts ii. 5, "There were dwelling at Jerusalem Jews,
+devout men out of every nation under heaven;" if out of every nation,
+then out of those nations there specified; and even there dwelling at
+Jerusalem. 5. Those who were scattered by reason of persecution into
+Judea and Samaria, and other parts of the world, did not erect new
+churches, but were still members of that one church in Jerusalem; so
+saith the Scripture expressly, that "they" (of the church of Jerusalem)
+"were all scattered abroad throughout the region of Judea and Samaria,"
+Acts viii. 1.
+
+_Except_. Although it should be granted that before the dispersion
+mentioned Acts viii. 1, 2, the number was so great that they could not
+meet together in one place, yet the persecution so wasted and scattered
+them all, that there were no more left than might meet in one
+congregation?
+
+_Ans_. After the dispersion there were more believers in Jerusalem than
+could meet together in one place for all acts of worship, as appears by
+Acts ix. 31, "The churches had rest throughout all Judea," &c., "and
+were multiplied;" Acts xii. 24, "The word of God grew and multiplied;"
+and Acts xxi. 20, James saith of the believers of this church, "how many
+thousands of the Jews there are which believe, and are zealous of the
+law;" or, as it is in the Greek, thou seest how many _ten thousands_
+there are of the Jews which believe; this text will evince, that there
+were many thousands in the church of Jerusalem after the dispersion, as
+hath been observed: and if this number were not more after the
+dispersion than could meet together to partake of all ordinances, let
+the reader judge.
+
+_Except_. But the text saith expressly, all were scattered except the
+apostles.
+
+_Ans_. _All_ must be understood either of all the believers, or all the
+teachers and church officers in the church of Jerusalem, except
+believers; but it cannot be understood of all the believers that they
+were scattered: and therefore it must be understood that all the
+teachers and church officers were scattered, except the apostles. That
+all the believers were not scattered will easily appear: For, 1. 'Tis
+said that Paul broke into houses, "haling men and women, committed them
+to prison," ver. 3, and this he did in Jerusalem, Acts xxvi. 10;
+therefore all could not be scattered. 2. "They that were scattered,
+preached the word," ver. 4, which all the members, men and women, could
+not do; therefore by all that were scattered must of necessity be meant,
+not the body of believers in the church, but only the officers of the
+church. 3. If all the believers were scattered, to what end did the
+apostles tarry at Jerusalem--to preach to the walls? this we cannot
+imagine.
+
+_Except_. But can any think the teachers were scattered, and the
+ordinary believers were not, except we suppose the people more
+courageous to stay by it than their teachers?
+
+_Ans_. It is hard to say, that those that are scattered in a
+persecution, are less courageous than those that stay and suffer. In the
+time of the bishops' tyranny, many of the Independent ministers did
+leave this kingdom, while others of their brethren did abide by it,
+endured the heat and burden of the day, "had trial of cruel mockings,
+bonds and imprisonments:" now the Independent ministers that left us,
+would think we did them wrong, should we say that they were less
+courageous than those that stayed behind, enduring the hot brunt of
+persecution.
+
+II. From the multitude of church officers in Jerusalem, it may further
+appear, that there were more congregations than one in the church of
+Jerusalem. For there were many apostles, prophets, and elders in this
+church of Jerusalem, as is plain, if we consider these following
+passages in the Acts of the Apostles. After Christ's ascension, "the
+eleven apostles returned to Jerusalem, and continued in prayer and
+supplication," Acts i. 12-14. Matthias chosen by lot, was also "numbered
+with the eleven apostles," Acts i. 26. "And when the day of Pentecost
+was fully come, they were all with one accord in one place," Acts ii. 1.
+"Peter standing up with the eleven, lift up his voice and said," Acts
+ii. 14. "They were pricked in their heart, and said to Peter and to the
+rest of the apostles, Men and brethren, what shall we do?" Acts ii. 37.
+"And the same day there were added about three thousand souls, and they
+continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine and fellowship, and in
+breaking of bread, and in prayers," Acts ii. 42. "And with great power
+gave the apostles witness of the resurrection of the Lord Jesus," Acts
+iv. 33. "As many as were possessors of lands or houses, sold them, and
+brought the prices of the things that were sold, and laid them down at
+the apostles' feet," Acts iv. 34, 35, 37. "Then the twelve called the
+multitude of the disciples to them," Acts vi. 2. "Now, when the apostles
+which were at Jerusalem," Acts viii. 14. "They determined that Paul and
+Barnabas and certain other of them should go up to Jerusalem unto the
+apostles and elders about this question. And when they were come to
+Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the apostles and
+elders; and the apostles and elders came together," Acts xv. 2, 4, 6,
+22, 23; xi. 30. And "in those days came prophets from Jerusalem unto
+Antioch," Acts xi. 27. In all which places, the multitude of apostles,
+elders, and prophets in this church of Jerusalem is evident. And it is
+further observable, that the apostles devolved the serving of tables
+upon the seven deacons, that they might wholly "give themselves to
+prayer and the ministry of the word," Acts vi, 2; which needed not, nor
+would there have been full employment for the apostles, if there had
+not been divers congregations in that one church of Jerusalem.
+
+_Except_. 'Tis true, the apostles were for a time in Jerusalem, yet when
+in Judea or elsewhere any received the gospel, the apostles went abroad
+to erect other churches.
+
+_Ans_. Touching the apostles going abroad, there can be given but one
+instance, Acts viii. 14, where the whole twelve went not forth, but only
+two were sent, viz. Peter and John: but suppose it were granted, that
+upon some special occasions the apostles went out from Jerusalem, can it
+be imagined that the apostles' ordinary abode would be at Jerusalem, to
+attend only one single congregation, as if that would fill all their
+hands with work?
+
+_Except_. The apostles were well employed when they met in an upper
+room, and had but one hundred and twenty for their flock, and this for
+forty days together; now if they stayed in Jerusalem when they had but
+one hundred and twenty, and yet had their hands filled with work, the
+presence of the apostles argues not more congregations in Jerusalem than
+could meet in one place for all acts of worship.
+
+_Ans_. 1. From Christ's ascension (immediately after which they went up
+to the upper chamber) to the feast of Pentecost, there were but ten
+days, not forty; so that there is one mistake.
+
+2. During that time betwixt Christ's ascension and the feast of
+Pentecost, (whether ten or forty days is not very material,) the
+apostles were especially taken up in prayer and supplication, waiting
+for the promise of the Spirit to qualify them for the work of the
+ministry: now, because the twelve apostles, before they had received the
+extraordinary gifts of the Spirit, did continue for a short time in
+Jerusalem with a small number in prayer, will it therefore follow that
+after they had received these extraordinary gifts, that they were bound
+up within the limits of one single congregation?
+
+_Except_. The argument that there were many teachers in Jerusalem,
+proves not that there were more congregations in Jerusalem than one,
+because there were then many gifted men, which were not officers, which
+yet occasionally instructed others, as Aquila did Apollos; therefore it
+seems they were only gifted persons, not officers.
+
+_Ans_. 1. Grant that in those times there were many gifted men, not in
+office, which might occasionally instruct others, as Aquila did Apollos;
+yet it is further to be noted, that,
+
+2. This instructing must be either private, or public; if private only,
+then the objection is of no force, (because these teachers instructed
+publicly;) if in public, then if this objection were of force, it would
+follow, that women might instruct publicly, because Priscilla, as well
+as Aquila, instructed Apollos.
+
+3. The current of expositors say, that the seventy disciples were at
+Jerusalem among the one hundred and twenty, Acts i. 16, who were
+teachers by office.
+
+III. From the variety of languages among the disciples at Jerusalem, it
+is evident there were more congregations than one in that one church:
+the diversity of languages among them is plainly mentioned in divers
+places, "And there were dwelling at Jerusalem, Jews, devout men out of
+every nation under heaven. Now every man heard them speak in his own
+language," &c., Acts ii. 5, 8-12. Now, of those that heard this variety
+of languages, and Peter's sermon thereupon, "They that gladly received
+his word, were baptized, and the same day there were added about three
+thousand souls," Acts ii. 41, which diversity of languages necessitated
+those members of the church of Jerusalem to enjoy the ordinances in
+divers distinct congregations in their own language. And that they might
+so do, the Spirit furnished the apostles, &c., with diversity of
+languages, which diversity of languages were as well for edification of
+them within the Church, as for a sign to them that were without.
+
+_Except_. Though the Jews being dispersed were come in from other
+countries, yet they were all generally learned, and understood the
+Hebrew tongue, the language of their own nation, so that diversity of
+tongues proves not, that of necessity there must be distinct places to
+meet in.
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is easier said than proved, that the Jews were so generally
+skilled in the Hebrew tongue, when, while they were scattered in Media
+and Parthia, and other places, they had no universities or schools of
+learning. Besides, it is not to be forgotten, that the proper language
+or dialect in those days in use among the Jews was Syriac; as appears by
+divers instances of Syriac words in the New Testament, as of the Jews'
+own terms: Acts i. 19, which "in their proper tongue, is called
+Aceldama;" John xix. 13. 17, _Gabbatha, Golgotha_, &c.; Mark xv. 34,
+_Eloi, Eloi, lama-sabachthani_; with divers other pure Syriac terms.
+Grant they did; yet,
+
+2. There were in Jerusalem proselytes also, Romans, Cappadocians,
+Cretians, and Arabians, Acts ii. 10, 11; how could they be edified in
+the faith, if only one congregation, where nothing but Hebrew was
+spoken, met in Jerusalem; if so be there were not other congregations
+for men of other languages, that understood not the Hebrew tongue?
+
+IV. From the manner of Christians' public meetings in those primitive
+times, both in the church of Jerusalem and in other churches. It is
+plain that the multitudes of Christians in Jerusalem, and other
+churches, could not possibly meet all together in one single
+congregation, inasmuch as they had no public temples, or capacious
+places for worship and partaking of all ordinances, (as we now have,)
+but private places, _houses, chambers_, or _upper rooms_, (as the
+unsettled state of the Church and troublesomeness of those times would
+permit,) which in all probability were of no great extent, nor any way
+able to contain in them so many thousand believers at once, as there
+were: "They met from house to house, to break bread," Acts ii. 46. "In
+an upper room the apostles with the women and brethren continued in
+prayer and supplication," Acts i. 12-14. We read of their meetings in
+the _house of Mary_, Acts xii. 12. In the school _of one Tyrannus_, Acts
+xix. 9. In an _upper chamber at Troas_, Acts xx. 8. In _Paul's own hired
+house_ at Rome, Acts xxviii. 30, 31. In the _house of Aquila and
+Priscilla_, where the church met, therefore called the _church in his
+house_, Rom. xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19. In the _house of Nimphas_, Col. iv.
+15, and in the _house of Archippus_, Philem. 2. This was their manner of
+public meetings in the apostles' times: which also continued in the next
+ages, as saith Eusebius,[111] till, by indulgence of succeeding
+emperors, they had large churches, houses of public meeting erected for
+them.
+
+To sum up all: 1. There were in the church at Jerusalem greater numbers
+of believers than could possibly meet at once to partake of all Christ's
+ordinances. 2. There were more church officers than one single
+congregation could need, or than could be fully employed therein, unless
+we will say, that they preached but seldom. 3. There was such diversity
+of languages among them, that they must needs rank themselves into
+several congregations, according to their languages, else he that spoke
+in one language to hearers of many several languages, would be a
+barbarian to them, and they to him. 4. Finally, their places of ordinary
+meeting were private, of small extent, incapable of containing so many
+thousands at once as there were believers; and by all these, how evident
+is it, that there must needs be granted that there were more
+congregations than one in this one church of Jerusalem!
+
+II. The church of Antioch, in Syria, consisted also of more
+congregations than one. This appears,
+
+1. From the multitude of believers at Antioch. For, 1. After the
+dispersion upon Saul's persecution, _the Lord Jesus was preached at
+Antioch, and a great number believed_, &c., Acts xi. 21. 2. Upon
+_Barnabas's_ preaching there, _much people was added to the Lord_, Acts
+xi. 24. 3. _Barnabas_ and _Saul_ for a year together taught much people
+there, and disciples there so mightily multiplied, that there Christ's
+disciples first received the eminent and famous denomination of
+CHRISTIANS, and so were and still are called throughout the whole world,
+Acts xi. 25, 26.
+
+2. From the multitudes of prophets and preachers that ministered at
+Antioch. For, 1. Upon the dispersion of the Jews at Jerusalem, _divers
+of them (being men of Cyprus and Cyrene) preached the Lord Jesus at
+Antioch_, Acts xi. 20; here must be three or four preachers at least,
+otherwise they would not be _men of Cyprus and Cyrene_. 2. After this
+_Barnabas_ was sent to preach at Antioch; there is a fifth, Acts xi.
+22-24. 3. _Barnabas_ finds so much work at _Antioch_, that he goes to
+Tarsus to bring _Saul_ thither to help him; there is a sixth, ver. 25,
+26. 4. Besides these, _there came prophets from Jerusalem to Antioch in
+those days_; there are at least two more, viz. eight in all, Acts xi.
+27, 28. 4. Further, besides _Barnabas_ and _Saul_, three more teachers
+are named, viz. _Simon called Niger, Lucius of Cyrene, and Manaen_, Acts
+xii. 1-3. 6. Yea, "Paul and Barnabas continued in Antioch, teaching and
+preaching the word of the Lord, with many others also," Acts xv. 35. Now
+sum up all, what a multitude of believers, and what a college of
+preachers were here at Antioch! How is it possible that all these
+preachers should bustle themselves about one congregation (and doubtless
+they abhorred idleness) in dispensing the ordinances of Christ to them
+only? or how could so many members meet in one single congregation at
+once, ordinarily to partake of all ordinances?
+
+III. The church of Ephesus (_in Asia Minor_, Acts xix. 22) had in it
+more congregations than one: For,
+
+1. The number of prophets and preachers at Ephesus were many. _Paul_
+continued there _two years and three months_, Acts xix. 8, 10; and
+_Paul_ settled there about twelve _disciples who prophesied_, Acts xix.
+1, 6, 7. And how should these thirteen ministers be employed, if there
+were not many congregations? Compare also Acts xx. 17, 28, 36, 37, where
+it is said of the bishops of Ephesus, that "Paul kneeled down and prayed
+with them all, and they all wept sore." Here is a good number implied.
+
+2. The gift of tongues also was given unto all these twelve prophets,
+Acts xix. 6, 7. To what end, if they had not several congregations of
+several languages, to speak in these several tongues unto them?
+
+3. The multitude of believers must needs be great at Ephesus: For, 1.
+Why should _Paul_, who had universal commission to plant churches in all
+the world, stay _above two years together_ at Ephesus if no more had
+been converted there than to make up one single congregation? Acts xix.
+8, 10. 2. During this space, "all that dwelt in Asia," usually meeting
+at Ephesus for worship, "heard the word of the Lord, both Jews and
+Greeks," Acts xix. 10. 3. At the knowledge of _Paul's_ miracles, "fear
+fell upon all the Jews and Greeks dwelling at Ephesus, and the name of
+the Lord Jesus was magnified," Acts xix. 17. 4. _Many_ of the believers
+_came and confessed, and showed their deeds_, ver. 18, whereby is
+intimated that more did believe than did thus. 5. "Many also of them
+that used curious arts brought their books together, and burned them
+before all men, and they counted the price of them, and found it fifty
+thousand pieces of silver," (this they would never have done publicly if
+the major part, or at least a very great and considerable part of the
+city, had not embraced the faith, that city being so furiously zealous
+in their superstition and idolatry,) "so mightily grew the word of God,
+and prevailed," Acts xix. 19, 20. 6. _Paul_ testifies that at Ephesus _a
+great door and effectual was open unto him_, viz. a most advantageous
+opportunity of bringing in a mighty harvest of souls to Christ, 1 Cor.
+xvi. 8, 9. Put all together, 1. The number of prophets and preachers; 2.
+The gifts of tongues conferred upon those prophets; and, 3. The
+multitude of believers which so abounded at Ephesus: how is it possible
+to imagine, upon any solid ground, that there was no more but one single
+congregation in the church of Ephesus?
+
+IV. The church of Corinth in Græcia comprised in it also more
+congregations than one, as may be justly concluded from, 1. The
+multitude of believers. 2. The plenty of ministers. 3. The diversity of
+tongues and languages. 4. And the plurality of churches at Corinth. Let
+all these be well compared together.
+
+1. From the multitude of believers. There appears to be a greater number
+of believers at Corinth than could all at once meet together to partake
+of all the ordinances of Christ: For, 1. At Paul's first coming to
+Corinth, and at his first sermon preached in the house of Justus, it is
+said, "And Crispus, the chief ruler of the synagogue, believed on the
+Lord, and all his house, and many of the Corinthians hearing, believed
+and were baptized," Acts xviii. 1, 7, 8. Here is Crispus and all his
+house, (which probably was very great, he being the chief ruler of the
+synagogue,) and _many of the Corinthians, believing_; an excellent
+first-fruits; for who can justly say but Paul at his first sermon
+converted so many as might be sufficient to make up one single
+congregation? 2. Immediately after this (Paul having shook his raiment
+against the Jews, who, contrary to his doctrine, opposed themselves and
+blasphemed; and having said unto them, "Your blood be upon your own
+heads, I am clean: from henceforth I will go unto the Gentiles," Acts
+xviii. 6) the Lord comforts Paul against the obstinacy of the Jews by
+the success his ministry should have among the Gentiles in the city of
+Corinth: "Then spake the Lord to Paul in the night by a vision, Be not
+afraid, but speak, and hold not thy peace: for I am with thee, and no
+man shall set on thee to hurt thee: for I have much people in this
+city," Acts xviii. 9, 10. _Much people_ belonging to God, according to
+his secret predestination, over and besides those that already were
+actually his by effectual vocation. And _much people_, in respect of the
+Jews that opposed and blasphemed, (who were exceeding many,) otherwise
+it would have been but small comfort to Paul if by _much people_ should
+be meant no more than could meet at once in one small single
+congregation. 3. Paul himself continued at Corinth "a year and six
+months teaching the word of God among them," Acts xviii. 11. To what end
+should Paul the apostle of the Gentiles stay so long in one place, if he
+had not seen the Lord's blessing upon his ministry, to bring into the
+faith many more souls than would make up one congregation, having so
+much work to do far and near? 4. "They that believed at Corinth were
+baptized," Acts xviii. 8. (Baptism admitted them into that one body of
+the Church, 1 Cor. xii. 13.) Some were baptized by Paul, (though but few
+in comparison of the number of believers among them: compare Acts xviii.
+8, with 1 Cor. 14-17,) the generality consequently were baptized by
+other ministers there, and that in other congregations wherein Paul
+preached not, as well as in such wherein Paul preached; it being
+unreasonable to deny the being of divers congregations for the word and
+sacraments to be dispensed in, himself dispensing the sacrament of
+baptism to so few.
+
+2. From the plenty of ministers and preachers in the church of Corinth,
+it is evident it was a presbyterial church, and not only a single
+congregation; for to what end should there be many laborers in a little
+harvest, many teachers over one single congregation? &c. That there were
+many preachers at Corinth is plain: For, 1. Paul himself was the
+master-builder there that laid the foundation of that church, 1 Cor.
+iii. 10, their spiritual father; "In Christ Jesus I have begotten you
+through the gospel," 1 Cor. iv. 15. And he stayed with them _one year
+and a half_, Acts xviii. II. 2. While the apostle sharply taxeth them as
+guilty of schism and division for their carnal crying up of their
+several teachers: some doting upon one, some upon another, some upon a
+third, &c. "Every one of you saith, I am of Paul, and I of Apollos, and
+I of Cephas, and I of Christ," 1 Cor. i. 12. Doth not this intimate that
+they had plenty of preachers, and these preachers had their several
+followers, so prizing some of them as to undervalue the rest? and was
+this likely to be without several congregations into which they were
+divided? 3. When the apostle saith, "Though ye have ten thousand
+instructors in Christ, yet have ye not many fathers," 1 Cor. v. 15;
+though his words be hyperbolical, yet they imply that they had great
+store of teachers and preachers. 4. We have mention of many prophets in
+the church of Corinth: "Let the prophets speak two or three, and let the
+other judge--And the spirits of the prophets are subject to the
+prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 20, 31. Here are _prophets_ speaking _two or
+three_; and prophets judging of their doctrine, which sure were more
+than they that were judged; it being unreasonable for the minor part to
+pass judgement upon the major part. And though these prophets had
+extraordinary gifts, (as the church of Corinth excelled all other
+churches in gifts, 1 Cor. i. 7,) and were able to preach in an
+extraordinary singular way; yet were they the ordinary pastors and
+ministers of that church of Corinth, as the whole current of this
+fourteenth chapter evidenceth, wherein so many rules and directions,
+aptly agreeing to ordinary pastors, are imposed upon them for the well
+ordering of their ministerial exercises. Now, where there were so many
+pastors, were there not several congregations for them to feed? Or were
+they idle, neglecting the exercise and improvement of their talents?
+
+3. From the diversity of tongues and languages, wherein the church did
+eminently excel. "In every thing ye are enriched by him, in all
+utterance, and in all knowledge--So that you come behind in no gift,"
+&c., i.e., ye excel in every gift, more being intended than is
+expressed, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Among other gifts some of them excelled in
+tongues which they spake, the right use of which gift of tongues the
+apostle doth at large lay down, 1 Cor. xiv. 2, 4-6, 13, 14, 18, 19, 23,
+26, 27. "If any speak in _an unknown_ tongue let it be by two, or at the
+most by three, and that by course, and let one interpret." So that there
+were many endued with gifts of tongues in that church. To what end? Not
+only for a _sign to unbelievers_, ver. 22, but also for edification of
+divers congregations, of divers tongues and languages within that church
+of Corinth.
+
+4. From the plurality of churches mentioned in reference to this church
+of Corinth. For the apostle regulating their public assemblies and their
+worship there, saith to the church of Corinth, "Let your women keep
+silence in the churches." It is not said, in the _church_, in the
+singular number; but in the _churches_, in the plural; and this of the
+_churches in Corinth_, for it is said, _Let your women_, &c., not
+indefinitely, _Let women_, &c. So that according to the plain letter of
+the words, here are churches in the church of Corinth, viz. a plurality
+of single congregations in this one presbyterial church. And this
+plurality of churches in the church of Corinth is the more confirmed if
+we take the church of Cenchrea (which is a harbor or seaport to
+Corinth) to be comprised within the church of Corinth, as some learned
+authors do conceive it may.[112]
+
+
+POSITION II.
+
+That there is in the word of Christ a pattern of one presbyterial
+government in common over divers single congregations in one church.
+This may be evidenced by these following considerations: For,
+
+1. Divers single congregations are called one church, as hath at large
+been proved in the second position immediately foregoing; inasmuch as
+all the believers in Jerusalem are counted one church: yet those
+believers are more in number than could meet for all ordinances in any
+one single congregation. And why are divers congregations styled one
+church? 1. Not in regard of that oneness of heart and soul which was
+among them, "having all things common," &c., Acts iv. 32. For these
+affections and actions of kindness belonged to them by the law of
+brotherhood and Christian charity to one another, (especially
+considering the then present condition of believers,) rather than by any
+special ecclesiastical obligation, because they were members of such a
+church. 2. Not in regard of any explicit church covenant, knitting them
+in one body. For we find neither name nor thing, print nor footstep of
+any such thing as a church covenant in the church of Jerusalem, nor in
+any other primitive apostolical church in all the New Testament; and to
+impose an explicit church covenant upon the saints as a necessary
+constituting form of a true visible Church of Christ, and without which
+it is no Church, is a mere human invention, without all solid warrant
+from the word of God. 3. Not in regard of the ministration of the word,
+sacraments, prayers, &c. For these ordinances were dispensed in their
+single congregations severally, it being impossible that such multitudes
+of believers should meet all in one congregation, to partake of them
+jointly, (as hath been evidenced.) 4. But in regard of one joint
+administration of church government among them, by one common
+presbytery, or college of elders, associated for that end. From this one
+way of church government, by one presbytery in common, all the believers
+in Jerusalem, and so in other cities respectively, were counted but one
+church. 2. In every such presbyterial church made up of divers single
+congregations, there were ecclesiastical ruling officers, which are
+counted or called the officers of that church, but never counted or
+called governors, elders, &c., of any one single congregation therein;
+as in the church of Jerusalem, Acts xi. 27, 30, and xv. 2: of Antioch,
+compare Acts xiii. 1-3, with xv. 35: of Ephesus, Acts xx. 17, 28: and of
+the church of Corinth, 1 Cor. i. 12, and iv. 15, and xiv. 29.
+
+3. The officers of such presbyterial churches met together for acts of
+church government: as, to take charge of the church's goods, and of the
+due distribution thereof, Acts iv. 35, 37, and xi. 30: to ordain,
+appoint, and send forth church officers, Acts vi. 2, 3, 6, and xiii. 1,
+3: to excommunicate notorious offenders, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, 7, 13, compared
+with 2 Cor. ii. 6: and to restore again penitent persons to church
+communion, 2 Cor. ii. 7-9.
+
+_Except_. Receiving of alms is no act of government.
+
+_Ans_. True, the bare receiving of alms is no act of government, but the
+ordering and appointing how it shall be best improved and disposed of,
+cannot be denied to be an act of government, and for this did the elders
+meet together, Acts xi. 30.
+
+4. The apostles themselves, in their joint acts of government in such
+churches, acted as ordinary officers, viz. as presbyters or elders. This
+is much to be observed, and may be evidenced as followeth: for, 1. None
+of their acts of church government can at all be exemplary or obligatory
+upon us, if they were not presbyterial, but merely apostolical; if they
+acted therein not as ordinary presbyters, but as extraordinary apostles.
+For what acts they dispatched merely as apostles, none may meddle withal
+but only apostles. 2. As they were apostles, so they were presbyters,
+and so they style themselves, "The elder to the elect lady," 2 John i.
+"The elders which are among you I exhort," saith Peter, "who am also an
+elder," (i.e. who am a fellow-elder, or co-presbyter,) 1 Pet. v. 1;
+wherein he ranks himself among ordinary presbyters, which had been
+improper, unless he had discharged the offices and acts of an ordinary
+presbyter. 3. Their acts were such, for substance, as ordinary
+presbyters do perform, as preaching and prayer, Acts vi. 4: ordaining of
+officers, Acts vi. 6, and xiv. 23: dispensing of the sacraments, 1 Cor.
+i. 14; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7: and of church censures, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5,
+compared with 1 Tim. v. ver. 1, ult.: which acts of government, and such
+like, were committed by Christ to them, and to ordinary presbyters
+(their successors) to the end of the world; compare Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 17, 18, to the end, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt. xxviii.
+18-20. 4. They acted not only as ordinary elders, but also they acted
+jointly with other elders, being associated with them in the same
+assembly, as in that eminent synod at Jerusalem, Acts xv. 6, 22, 23, and
+xvi. 4, "And as they went through cities, they delivered them the
+decrees for to keep, that were ordained of the apostles and elders which
+were at Jerusalem." 5. And, finally, they took in the church's consent
+with themselves, wherein it was needful, as in the election and
+appointment of deacons, Acts vi. 2, 3. 6. The deacons being specially to
+be trusted with the church's goods, and the disposal thereof, according
+to the direction of the presbytery, for the good of the church, &c.
+
+Let all these considerations be impartially balanced in the scales of
+indifferent unprejudiced judgments; and how plainly do they delineate in
+the word, a pattern of one presbyterial government in common over divers
+single congregations within one church!
+
+_Except_. The apostles' power over many congregations was founded upon
+their power over all churches; and so cannot be a pattern for the power
+of elders over many.
+
+_Ans_. 1. The apostles' power over many congregations as one church, to
+govern them all as one church jointly and in common, was not founded
+upon their power over all churches, but upon the union of those
+congregations into one church; which union lays a foundation for the
+power of elders governing many congregations.
+
+2. Besides, the apostles, though extraordinary officers, are called
+elders, 1 Pet. v. 1, to intimate to us, that in ordinary acts of church
+government, they did act as elders for a pattern to us in like
+administrations.
+
+_Except_. The apostles, it is true, were elders virtually, that is,
+their apostleship contained all offices in it, but they were not elders
+formally.
+
+_Ans_. 1. If by formally be meant, that they were not elders really,
+then it is false; for the Scripture saith Peter was an elder, 1 Peter v.
+1. If by formally be meant that they were not elders only, that is
+granted; they were so elders, as they were still apostles, and so
+apostles as they were yet elders: their eldership did not exclude their
+apostleship, nor their apostleship swallow up their eldership.
+
+2. Besides, two distinct offices may be formally in one and the same
+person; as Melchisedec was formally a king and priest, and David
+formally a king and prophet; and why then might not Peter or John, or
+any of the twelve, be formally apostles and elders? And ministers are
+formally pastors and ruling elders.
+
+_Except_. 'Tis true, the apostles acted together with elders, because
+it so fell out they met together; but that they should meet jointly to
+give a pattern for an eldership, is not easy to prove; one apostle might
+have done that alone, which all here did.
+
+_Ans_. 1. 'Tis true, the apostles as apostles had power to act singly
+what they did jointly; yet, when they acted jointly, their acts might
+have more authority in the Church: upon which ground they of Antioch may
+be conceived to have sent to the whole college of apostles and elders at
+Jerusalem, (rather than to any one singly;) why was this, but to add
+more authority to their acts and determinations?
+
+2. Why should not their meeting together be a pattern of a presbytery,
+as well as their meeting together when they took in the consent of the
+people, Acts vi., in the choice of the deacons, to be a pattern or
+warrant that the people have a power in the choice of their officers?
+(as those of contrary judgment argue:) if one be taken in as an
+inimitable practice, why not the other?
+
+3. If the apostles joining with elders, acted nothing as elders, then we
+can bring nothing of theirs into imitation; and by this we should cut
+the sinews, and raze the foundation of church government, as if there
+were no footsteps thereof in the holy Scriptures.
+
+
+POSITION III.
+
+Finally, That the pattern of the said presbytery and presbyterial
+government is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all after ages,
+may appear as followeth:
+
+1. The first churches were immediately planted and governed by Christ's
+own apostles and disciples; 1. Who immediately received the keys of the
+kingdom of heaven from Christ himself in person, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 17,18; John xx. 21, 23. 2. Who immediately had the promise of
+Christ's perpetual presence with them in their ministry, Matt, xxviii.
+18-20; and of the plentiful donation of the Spirit of Christ to lead
+them into all truth, John xiv. 16, and xvi. 13-15; Acts i. 4, 5, 8 3.
+Who immediately received from Christ, after his resurrection and before
+his ascension, "commandments by the Holy Ghost,"--"Christ being seen of
+them forty days, and speaking of the things pertaining to the kingdom of
+God," Acts i. 2, 3; and, 4. Who were first and immediately _baptized by
+the Holy Ghost_, extraordinarily, Acts ii. 1-5. Now, who can imagine
+that the apostles and disciples were not actuated by the Spirit of
+Christ bestowed upon them? or did not discharge Christ's commandments,
+touching his kingdom imposed upon them? or did not duly use those keys
+of Christ's kingdom committed to them in the ordering and governing of
+the primitive churches? And if so, then the pattern of their practices
+must be a rule for all the succeeding churches, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil, iv.
+9.
+
+2. To what end hath the Holy Ghost so carefully recorded a pattern of
+the state and government of the primitive churches in the first and
+purest times, but for the imitation of successive churches in after
+times? "For whatsoever things wore written aforetime, were written for
+our learning," or instruction. But what do such records instruct us?
+Only _in fact_, that such things were done by the first churches? or _of
+right_ also, that such things should be done by the after churches?
+Surely, this is more proper and profitable for us.
+
+3. If such patterns of Christ's apostles, disciples, and primitive
+churches in matters of the government will not amount to an obligatory
+rule for all following churches, how shall we justify sundry other acts
+of religion commonly received in the best reformed churches, and founded
+only or chiefly upon the foundation of the practice of Christ's apostles
+and the apostolical churches? As the receiving of the Lord's supper on
+the Lord's days, Acts xx. 7, &c.; which notwithstanding are generally
+embraced without any considerable opposition or contradiction, and that
+most deservedly.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV.
+
+_Of the Divine Right of Synods, or Synodal Assemblies._
+
+
+Thus far of the ruling assemblies, which are styled presbyterial; next
+come into consideration those greater assemblies, which are usually
+called synodal, or synods, or councils. They are so called from their
+convening, or coming together: or rather from their calling together.
+Both names, viz. synod and council, are of such latitude of
+signification, as that they may be applied to any public convention of
+people: but in the common ordinary use of these words, they are
+appropriated to large ecclesiastical assemblies, above classical
+presbyteries in number and power. These synodal assemblies are made up,
+(as occasion and the necessity of the church shall require.) 1. Either
+of presbyters, sent from the several classical presbyteries within a
+province, hence called provincial synods: 2. Or of presbyters, sent from
+the several provincial synods within a nation, hence called national
+synods: 3. Or of presbyters, delegated or sent from the several
+national churches throughout the Christian world, hence called
+ecumenical synods, or universal and general councils.
+
+Touching the divine warrant of synods, and their power in church
+affairs, much need not be said, seeing divers learned authors have so
+fully stated and handled this matter.[113] Yet, that the reader may have
+a short view hereof, and not be left wholly unsatisfied, these two
+things shall briefly be opened and insisted upon, viz: 1. Certain
+considerations shall be propounded, tending to clear the state of the
+question about the divine right of synods, and their power. 2. The
+proposition itself, with some few arguments adduced, for the proof
+thereof.
+
+For the former, viz: The true stating of this question about the divine
+right of synods, and of their power, well weigh these few
+considerations.
+
+1. Synods differ in some respects from classical presbyteries, handled
+in Chap. XIII., though the nature and kind of their power be the same
+for substance. For, 1. Synods are more large extensive assemblies than
+classical presbyteries, the members of presbyteries being sent only from
+several single congregations, the members of synods being delegated from
+several presbyteries, and proportionably their power is extended also.
+2. The exercise of government by presbyteries, is the common ordinary
+way of government held forth in Scripture. By synods it is more rare and
+extraordinary, at least in great part, as in case of extraordinary
+causes that fall out: as, for choosing an apostle, Acts i., healing of
+scandals, &c., Acts xv.
+
+2. All synods are of the same nature and kind, whether provincial,
+national, or ecumenical, though they differ as lesser and greater, in
+respect of extent, from one another, (the provincial having as full
+power within their bounds, as the national or ecumenical within theirs.)
+So that the proving of the divine right of synods indefinitely and in
+general, doth prove also the divine right of provincial, national, and
+ecumenical synods in particular: for, greater and lesser do not vary the
+species or kind. What is true of ecclesiastical synods in general,
+agrees to every such synod in particular.
+
+_Object_. But why hath not the Scripture determined these assemblies in
+particular?
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is not necessary the Scripture should in every case descend
+to particulars. In things of one and the same kind, general rules may
+serve for all particulars; especially seeing particulars are so
+innumerable, what volumes would have contained all particulars? 2. All
+churches and seasons are not capable of synods provincial or national:
+for, in an island there may be no more Christians than to make up one
+single congregation, or one classical presbytery. Or in a nation, the
+Christian congregations may be so few, or so dispersed, or so involved
+in persecution, that they cannot convene in synods, &c.
+
+3. The power of synods contended for, is, 1. Not civil; they have no
+power to take cognizance of civil causes, as such; not to inflict any
+civil punishments; as fines, imprisonments, confiscations, banishments,
+death, (these being proper to the civil magistrate:) but merely
+spiritual; they judge only in ecclesiastical causes, in a spiritual
+manner, by spiritual censures, to spiritual ends, as did that synod,
+Acts xv. 2. Not corruptive, privative, or destructive to the power of
+classical presbyteries, or single congregations; but rather perfective
+and conservative thereunto. As suppose a single congregation should
+elect a minister unsound in judgment, or scandalous in conversation, the
+synod may annul and make void that election, and direct them to make a
+better choice, or appoint them a minister themselves; hereby this
+liberty of election is not at all infringed or violated, but for their
+own advantage regulated, &c. 3. Not absolute, and infallible; but
+limited and fallible: any synod or council may err, being constituted of
+men that are weak, frail, ignorant in part, &c., and therefore all their
+decrees and determinations are to be examined by the touchstone of the
+Scriptures, nor are they further to be embraced, or counted obligatory,
+than they are consonant thereunto, Isa. viii. 20. Hence there is liberty
+of appeal, as from congregational elderships to the classical
+presbytery, and from thence to the provincial synod, so from the
+provincial to the national assembly, &c. 4. Finally, the power of synods
+is not only persuasive and consultative, (as some think,) able to give
+grave advice, and to use forcible persuasions in any case, which if
+accepted and followed, well; if rejected and declined, there is no
+further remedy, but a new non-communion instead of a divine church
+censure: but it is a proper authoritative juridical power, which all
+within their bounds are obliged reverently to esteem, and dutifully to
+submit unto, so far as agreeable to the word of Christ.
+
+4. Finally, this authoritative juridical power of synods is threefold,
+viz. _doctrinal, regulating, and censuring_. 1. _Doctrinal_, in
+reference to matters of faith, and divine worship; not to coin new
+articles of faith, or devise new acts of divine worship: but to explain
+and apply those articles of faith and rules of worship which are laid
+down in the word, and declare the contrary errors, heresies,
+corruptions. Hence the Church is styled, _the pillar and ground of
+truth_, 1 Tim. iii. 15. Thus to the Jewish Church _were committed of
+trust the oracles of God_, Rom. iii. 2. 2. _Regulating_, in reference to
+external order and polity, in matters prudential and circumstantial,
+which are determinate according to the true light of nature, and the
+general rules of Scripture, such as are in 1 Cor. x. 31, 32; Rom. xiv.;
+1 Cor. xiv. 26, 40, &c.; not according to any arbitrary power of men. 3.
+_Censuring_ power, in reference to error, heresy, schism, obstinacy,
+contempt, or scandal, and the repressing thereof; which power is put
+forth merely in spiritual censures, as admonition, excommunication,
+deposition, &c. And these censures exercised, not in a lordly,
+domineering, prelatical way: but in an humble, sober, grave, yet
+authoritative way, necessary both for preservation of soundness of
+doctrine, and incorruptness of conversation; and for extirpation of the
+contrary. This is the power which belongs to synods. Thus much for
+clearing the right state of this question.
+
+II. For the second thing, viz. the proposition itself, and the
+confirmation thereof, take it briefly in these terms.
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word sufficient ground
+and warrant for juridical synods, and their authority, for governing of
+his Church now under the New Testament. Many arguments might be produced
+for proof of this proposition: as, 1. From the light of nature. 2. From
+the words of the law, Deut. xvii. 8, 12, compared with 2 Chron. xix. 8,
+11; Ps. cxxii. 4, 5, holding forth an ecclesiastical Sanhedrin in the
+Church of the Jews, superior to other courts. 3. From the words of
+Christ, Matt, xviii. 15-21. 4. From the unity of the visible Church of
+Christ now under the New Testament. 5. From the primitive apostolical
+pattern laid down, Acts xv., &c., and from divers other considerations;
+but for brevity's sake, only the two last arguments shall be a little
+insisted upon.
+
+_Argum_. I. The unity or oneness of the visible Church of Christ now
+under the New Testament, laid down in Scripture, gives us a notable
+foundation for church government by juridical synods. For, 1. That Jesus
+Christ our Mediator hath one general, visible Church on earth now under
+the New Testament, hath been already proved, Part 2, Chap. VIII. 2. That
+in this Church there is a government settled by divine right, is
+evidenced, Part 1, Chap. I. 3. That all Christ's ordinances, and
+particularly church government, primarily belong to the whole general
+Church visible, for her edification, (secondarily to particular churches
+and single congregations, as parts or members of the whole,) hath been
+manifested, Part 2, Chap. VIII. Now, there being one general visible
+Church, having a government set in it of divine right, and that
+government belonging primarily to the whole body of Christ; secondarily,
+to the parts or members thereof; must it not necessarily follow, that
+the more generally and extensively Christ's ordinance of church
+government is managed in greater and more general assemblies, the more
+fully the perfection and end of the government, viz. the edification of
+the whole body of Christ, is attained; and on the contrary, the more
+particularly and singly church government is exercised, as in
+presbyteries, or single congregational elderships, the more imperfect it
+is, and the less it attains to the principal end: consequently, if there
+be a divine warrant for church government by single congregational
+elderships, is it not much more for church government by presbyteries,
+and synods, or councils, wherein more complete provision is made for the
+edification of the general Church or body of Jesus Christ?
+
+_Argum_. II. The primitive apostolical practice in the first and purest
+ages of the Church after Christ, may further evidence with great
+strength the divine warrant for church government by juridical synods or
+councils. Let this be the position:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern of a
+juridical synod, consisting of governing officers of divers presbyterial
+churches, for a rule to the Church of Christ in all succeeding ages.
+
+For proof hereof take these two assertions: 1. That Jesus Christ hath
+laid down in his word a pattern of a juridical synod. 2. That this
+juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all
+succeeding ages.
+
+
+ASSERTION I.
+
+That Jesus Christ hath laid down in his word a pattern of a synod, yea,
+of a juridical synod, consisting of governing officers of divers
+presbyterial churches, is manifest, Acts xv. and xvi., where are plainly
+set forth: 1. The occasion of the synod. 2. The proper members of the
+synod. 3. The equal power and authority exercised by all those members.
+4. The way and method of ordinary synodal proceeding. 5. The juridical
+acts of power put forth by the synod; with the issue and consequent of
+all upon the churches.
+
+First, Here was a proper ground and occasion for a juridical synod. For
+thus the text expressly declareth, that "certain men which came down
+from Judea, taught the brethren, and said, Except ye be circumcised
+after the manner of Moses, ye cannot be saved; when therefore Paul and
+Barnabas had no small dissension and disputation with them, they
+determined that Paul and Barnabas, and certain other of them, should go
+up to Jerusalem to the apostles and elders about this question," Acts
+xv. 1, 2, compared with ver. 5--"But there rose up certain of the sect
+of the Pharisees, which believed, saying, that it was needful to
+circumcise them, and to command them to keep the law of Moses;" and with
+ver. 23, 24--"The apostles, and elders, and brethren send greeting unto
+the brethren which are of the Gentiles, in Antioch, and Syria, and
+Cilicia: Forasmuch as we have heard, that certain which went out from
+us, have troubled you with words, subverting your souls, saying, Ye must
+be circumcised and keep the law." In which passages these things are
+evident:
+
+1. That false doctrine, destructive to the doctrine of Christ in his
+gospel, did arise in the Church, viz: That circumcision and keeping of
+the ceremonial law of Moses was necessary to salvation, ver. 1, 5, 24;
+and this false doctrine promoted with lying, as if the apostles and
+elders of Jerusalem had sent forth the false teachers with directions to
+preach so, as their apology ("to whom we gave no such commandment," ver.
+24) seems to import. Here is corruption both in doctrine and manners fit
+for a synod to take cognizance of.
+
+2. That this corrupt doctrine was vented by certain that came down from
+Judea. It is evident, it was by certain of the sect of the Pharisees
+that believed; as Paul and Barnabas make the narrative to the church at
+Jerusalem, ver. 5, therefore the false teachers coming from Judea (where
+the Churches of Christ were first of all planted, and whence the church
+plantation spread) published their doctrines with more credit to their
+errors and danger to the churches; and so both the churches of Judea
+whence they came, and of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, whither they came,
+were interested in the business.
+
+3. That the said false teachers by the leaven of their doctrine troubled
+them with words, subverting the souls of the brethren, both at Antioch,
+Syria, and Cilicia, ver. 23, 24; here was the disturbance and scandal of
+divers churches: compare ver. 39 with 41.
+
+4. That Paul and Barnabas at Antioch had no small dissension and dispute
+against the false teachers, ver. 1, 2, that so (if possible) they might
+be convinced, and the Church's peace preserved, without craving further
+assistance in a solemn synod.
+
+5. That after these disputes, and for the better settling of all the
+churches about this matter, (which these disputes could not effect,)
+_they decreed_ (or ordained) _that Paul and Barnabas, and some others of
+themselves, should go up to the apostles and elders at Jerusalem about
+this question, ver_. 2. Here was an authoritative mission of delegated
+officers from the presbyterial church at Antioch, and from other
+churches of Syria and Cilicia also, ver. 23, 41, to a synodal assembly
+with the presbyterial church at Jerusalem.
+
+Secondly, Here were proper members of a synod convened to consider of
+this question, viz. the officers and delegates of divers presbyterial
+churches: of the presbyterial church at Jerusalem, the apostles and
+elders, Acts xv. 6: of the presbyterial church at Antioch, Paul,
+Barnabas, and others; compare verse 2 and 12. And besides these, there
+were brethren from other churches, present as members of the synod; as
+may appear by these two considerations, viz:
+
+1. Partly, because it is called "The whole multitude," ver. 12; "The
+apostles and elders with the whole church," ver. 22; "The apostles, and
+elders, and brethren," ver. 23. This whole multitude, whole church, and
+brethren, distinct from the apostles and elders which were at Jerusalem,
+cannot be _the company of all the faithful at Jerusalem_, for (as hath
+been evidenced, Chap. XIV., Position 2,) they were too many to meet in
+one house. But it was the synodal multitude, the synodal church,
+consisting of apostles, and elders, and brethren; which brethren seem to
+be such as were sent from several churches, as Judas and Silas, ver. 24,
+who were assistants to the apostles and evangelists--Judas, Acts xv. 22,
+32; Silas, Acts xv. 32, 40, and xvi. 19, and xvii. 4, 14, 15, and xviii.
+5. Some think Titus was of this synod also.
+
+2. Partly because the brethren of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, were
+troubled with this question, ver. 23, 24. Therefore it cannot be
+reasonably imagined, but all those places sought out for a remedy; and
+to that end, severally and respectively sent their delegates to the
+synod at Jerusalem: else they had been very regardless of their own
+church peace and welfare. And the epistle of the synod was directed to
+them all by name, ver. 23; and so did formally bind them all, having men
+of their own members of the synod, which decrees did but materially, and
+from the nature of the thing, bind the other churches at Lystra and
+Iconium, Acts xvi. 4. Now, if there were delegates but from two
+presbyterial churches, they were sufficient to constitute a synod; and
+this justifies delegates from ten or twenty churches, proportionably,
+when there shall be like just and necessary occasion.
+
+Thirdly, Here all the members of the synod, as they were convened by
+like ordinary authority, so they acted by like ordinary and equal power
+in the whole business laid before them; which shows it was an ordinary,
+not an extraordinary synod. For though apostles and evangelists, who had
+power over all churches, were members of the synod, as well as ordinary
+elders; yet they acted not in this synod by a transcendent, infallible,
+apostolical power, but by an ordinary power, as elders. This is evident,
+
+1. Because the Apostle Paul, and Barnabas his colleague, (called a
+prophet and teacher, Acts xiii. 1, 2, and an apostle, Acts xiv. 14,)
+were sent as members to this synod, by order and determination of the
+church of Antioch, and they submitted themselves to that determination,
+Acts xv. 2, 3; which they could not have submitted unto as apostles, but
+as ordinary elders and members of the presbytery at Antioch: they that
+send, being greater than those that are sent by them. Upon which ground
+it is a good argument which is urged against Peter's primacy over the
+rest of the apostles, because the college of apostles at Jerusalem sent
+Peter and John to Samaria, having received the faith, Acts viii. 14.
+
+2. Because the manner of proceeding in this synod convened, was not
+extraordinary and apostolical, as when they acted by an immediate
+infallible inspiration of the Spirit, in penning the Holy Scriptures,
+(without all disputing, examining, or judging of the matter that they
+wrote, so far as we can read,) 2 Tim. iii. 16,17; 2 Pet. i. 20, 21; but
+ordinary, presbyterial, and synodal; by ordinary helps and means, (as
+afterwards shall appear more fully;) stating the question, proving and
+evidencing from Scripture what was _the good and acceptable will of God_
+concerning the present controversy, and upon evidence of Scripture
+concluding, _It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us_, Acts xv. 28;
+which words, any assembly, having like clear evidence of Scripture for
+their determination, may without presumption use, as well as this synod
+did.[114]
+
+3. Because the elders and brethren (who are as authoritatively members
+of the synod as the apostles) did in all points as authoritatively act
+as the apostles themselves. For, 1. Certain other of the church of
+Antioch, as well as _Paul_ and _Barnabas_, were sent as delegates from
+the church of _Antioch_, Acts xv. 2. 2. They were all sent as well to
+the _elders_, as to the _apostles_ at _Jerusalem_, about this matter,
+ver. 2. 3. They were received at _Jerusalem_, as well by the _elders_,
+as the _apostles_, and reported their case to them both, ver. 4. 4. The
+_elders_, as well as the _apostles_, met together to consider thereof,
+ver. 6. 5. The letters containing the synodal decrees and
+determinations, were written in the name of the _elders and brethren_,
+as well as in the name of the _apostles_, ver. 23. 6. The _elders and
+brethren_, as well as the _apostles_, blame the false teachers for
+troubling of the Church, _subverting of souls_; declaring, that they
+gave the false teachers _no such commandment_ to preach any such
+doctrine, ver. 24. 7. The _elders and brethren_, as well as the
+_apostles_, say, "It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us," ver. 28.
+8. The _elders_ and _brethren_, as well as the _apostles_, did impose
+upon the churches "no other burden than these necessary things," ver.
+28. 9. The _elders_, as well as the _apostles_, being assembled,
+"thought good to send chosen men of themselves," viz. _Judas_ and
+_Silas_, with _Paul_ and _Barnabas_, to _Antioch_, to deliver the
+synodal decrees to them, and to tell them the same things by mouth, ver.
+22, 25, 27. 10. And the decrees are said to be ordained as well by the
+_elders_, as by the _apostles at Jerusalem_, Acts xvi. 4. So that
+through this whole synodal transaction, the elders are declared in the
+text to go on in a full authoritative course of judgment with the
+apostles, from point to point. And therefore in this synod, the apostles
+acted as ordinary elders, not as extraordinary officers.
+
+Fourthly. Here was the ordinary way and method of synodal proceedings by
+the apostles, elders, and brethren, when they were convened unanimously,
+ver. 25. For,
+
+1. They proceeded deliberatively, by discourses and disputes,
+deliberating about the true state of the question, and the remedy of the
+scandal. This is laid down, 1. More generally, "and when there had been
+much disputing," ver. 7. 2. More particularly, how they proceeded when
+they drew towards a synodal determination, Peter speaks of the Gentiles'
+conversion, and clears the doctrine of justification "by faith without
+the works of the law," ver. 7-12. Then Barnabas and Paul confirm the
+conversion of the Gentiles, "declaring the signs and wonders wrought by
+them among the Gentiles," ver. 12. After them James speaks, approving
+what Peter had spoken touching the conversion of the Gentiles,
+confirming it by Scripture; and further adds (which Peter did but hint,
+ver. 10, and Paul and Barnabas did not so much as touch upon) a remedy
+against the present scandal, ver. 13-22. Here is now an ordinary way of
+proceeding by debates, disputes, allegations of Scripture, and mutual
+suffrages. What needed all this, if this had been a transcendent,
+extraordinary, and not an ordinary synod?
+
+2. They proceeded after all their deliberative inquiries and disputes
+decisively to conclude and determine the matter, ver. 20-30. The result
+of the synod (as there is evident) is threefold. 1. To set down in
+writing their decrees and determinations. 2. To signify those decrees in
+an epistle to the brethren at Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia. 3. To send
+these letters by some from among themselves, viz. Judas and Silas,
+together with Paul and Barnabas, to all the churches that were offended
+or endangered, that both by written decrees and word of mouth, the
+churches might be established in faith and peace.
+
+Fifthly, Here were several authoritative and juridical acts of power,
+put forth in this synod, according to the exigency of the present
+distempers of the churches. This appears plainly,
+
+1. By the proceedings of the synod in accommodating a suitable and
+proportionable remedy to every malady at that time distempering the
+Church, viz. a triple medicine for a threefold disease.
+
+1. Against the heresy broached, viz. that they must be circumcised and
+keep the ceremonial "law of Moses, or else they could not be saved,"
+Acts xv. 2. The synod put forth a doctrinal power, in confutation of the
+heresy, and clear vindication of the truth, about the great point of
+"justification by faith without the works of the law," Acts xv. 7-23;
+and (Independents themselves being judges) a doctrinal decision of
+matters of faith by a lawful synod, far surpasseth the doctrinal
+determination of any single teacher, or of the presbytery of any single
+congregation; and is to be reverently received of the churches as a
+binding ordinance of Christ.
+
+2. Against the schism, occasioned by the doctrine of the false teachers
+that troubled the Church, Acts xv. 1, 2, the synod put forth a censuring
+power, stigmatizing the false teachers with the infamous brands of
+troubling the Church with words, subverting of souls, and (tacitly, as
+some conceive from that expression, "Unto whom we gave no such
+commandment," ver. 24) of belying the apostles and elders of Jerusalem,
+as if they had sent them abroad to preach this doctrine.
+
+_Object_. But the synod proceeded not properly to censure the false
+teachers by any ecclesiastical admonition, or excommunication; therefore
+the power exercised in the synod was only doctrinal, and not properly
+juridical.
+
+_Ans_. 1. They censured them in some degree, and that with a mark of
+infamy, ver. 24, as was manifested. And this was not only a warning and
+hint to the churches, to note such false teachers, avoid them, and
+withdraw from them, compare Rom. xvi. 17, 18, with 1 Tim. vi. 3-5; but
+also was a virtual admonition to the false teachers themselves, while
+their doctrines and ways were so expressly condemned. 2. They proceeded
+not to present excommunication, it is granted; nor was it at first dash
+seasonable, prudent, or needful. But the synod knew well, that if these
+false teachers, after this synodal mark of disgrace set upon them,
+should still persist in their course, incurably and incorrigibly
+obstinate, they might in due time be excommunicated by course; it being
+a clear case in itself that such heretics or schismatics, as otherwise
+cannot be reduced, are not to be suffered, but to be cast out of the
+churches. "An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject," Tit.
+iii. 10, 11; see Rev. ii. 2, 14, 20.
+
+3. Against the scandal of the weak Jews, and their heart-estrangement
+from the Gentiles, who neglected their ceremonial observances, as also
+against the scandal of the Gentiles, who were much troubled and offended
+at the urging of circumcision, and the keeping of the law as necessary
+to salvation, ver. 1, 2, 19, 24, the synod put forth an ordering or
+regulating power, framing practical rules or constitutions for the
+healing of the scandal, and for prevention of the spreading of it,
+commanding the brethren of the several churches to abstain from divers
+things that might any way occasion the same: "It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost, and to us, to impose" (or lay) "upon you no further burden than
+these necessary things," Acts xv. 28, 29. Here is _burden_ and
+_necessary things_, (so judged to be necessary for those times, and that
+state of the Church,) and imposing of these upon the churches: will not
+this amount to a plain ordering power and authority? Especially
+considering that the word _to impose_, or _lay on_, when it is used of
+the judgment, act, or sentence of an assembly, ordinarily signifies an
+authoritative judgment, or decree, as, "Why tempt ye God, to lay, or
+impose, a yoke upon the neck of the disciples?" Acts xv. 10. Thus some in
+the synod endeavored to carry the synod with themselves, authoritatively
+to have imposed the ceremonies upon the churches; whom Peter thus
+withstands. So, "They bind heavy burdens, and hard to be borne, and
+impose them upon men's shoulders," Matt, xxiii. 4: and this laying on of
+burdens by the Pharisees, was not by a bare doctrinal declaring, but by
+an authoritative commanding, as seems by that, "teaching for doctrines
+the commandments of men," Matt. xv. 9.
+
+2. By the title or denomination given to the synodal results contained
+in their letters sent to the brethren. They are styled, "The decrees
+ordained, or judged," Acts xvi. 4. Here are plainly juridical
+authoritative constitutions. For it is very observable,
+
+That wheresoever the words translated _decree_ or _decrees_ are found in
+the New Testament, thereby are denoted, laws, statutes, or decrees: as
+"Decrees of Cæsar," Acts xvii. 7: "A decree from Cæsar," Luke ii. 1:
+Moses' ceremonial law, "The hand-writing to ordinances," Col. ii. 14:
+"The law of commandments in ordinances," Eph. ii. 15: and this word is
+found used only in these five places in the whole New Testament: and the
+Septuagint interpreters often use the word in the Old Testament to this
+purpose; for _laws_, Dan. vi. 8; for _decrees_, Dan. ii. 13, and iii.
+10, 29, and iv. 3, and vi. 9.
+
+And the other word translated _ordained_, when applied to an assembly by
+the Septuagint, is used for a judgment of authority, as, "And what was
+decreed against her," Esth. ii. 1; and so a word derived from it,
+signifies a _decree_, Dan. iv. 14, 21.
+
+In this sense also the word is sometimes used in the New Testament, when
+applied to assemblies; as, "Take ye him, and judge him according to your
+law," John xviii. 31; "Whom we laid hold upon, and would have judged
+according to our law," Acts xxiv. 6.
+
+Now, if there be so much power and authority engraven upon these two
+words severally, how strongly do they hold forth authority, when they
+are applied to any thing jointly, as here to the synodal decisions!
+
+3. By the consequent of these synodal proceedings, viz. the cheerful
+submission of the churches thereunto. This appears both in the church of
+Antioch, where the troubles first were raised by the false teachers;
+where, "when the epistle" of the synod "was read, they rejoiced for the
+consolation," Acts xv. 30, 31; and Judas and Silas exhorted and
+confirmed the brethren by word of mouth, according to the synod's
+direction, ver. 32; and in other churches, to which Paul and Timothy
+delivered the "decrees ordained by the apostles and elders which were at
+Jerusalem; and so were the churches confirmed in the faith, and abounded
+in number daily," Acts xvi. 4, 5; whence we have these evidences of the
+churches' submission to the synodal decrees: 1. The decrees are counted
+by the churches a consolation. 2. They were so welcome to them, that
+they _rejoiced for the consolation_. 3. They were hereby notably
+_confirmed in the faith_, against the false doctrines broached among
+them. 4. The churches _abounded in number daily_, the scandal and
+stumbling-blocks that troubled the Church being removed out of the way.
+How should such effects so quickly have followed upon the publication of
+the synodal decrees, in the several churches, had not the churches
+looked upon that synod as vested with juridical power and authority for
+composing and imposing of these their determinations?
+
+
+ASSERTION II.
+
+That this juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all
+succeeding ages, there need no new considerations for proof hereof;
+only let the reader please to look back to Position iv. of the last
+chapter, where the substance of those considerations which urge the
+pattern of presbyteries and presbyterial government for a rule to
+succeeding churches, is applicable (by change of terms) to the pattern
+of juridical synods.[115]
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV.
+
+_Of the subordination of particular churches to greater assemblies for
+their authoritative and judicial determination of causes ecclesiastical,
+and the divine right thereof._
+
+
+The divine right of ecclesiastical assemblies, congregational,
+classical, and synodal, and of their power for church government, being
+thus evidenced by the Scriptures, now in the last place take a few words
+briefly touching the subordination of the lesser to the greater
+assemblies, and the divine warrant thereof. In asserting the
+subordination of particular churches to higher assemblies, whether
+classical or synodal,
+
+1. It is not denied, but particular churches have within themselves
+power of discipline entirely, so far as any cause in debate particularly
+and peculiarly concerneth themselves, and not others.
+
+2. It is granted, that where there is no consociation, or neighborhood
+of single churches, whereby they may mutually aid one another, there a
+single congregation must not be denied entire jurisdiction; but this
+falls not within the compass of ordinary rules of church government left
+us by Christ. If there be but one congregation in a kingdom or province,
+that particular congregation may do much by itself alone, which it ought
+not to do where there are neighboring and adjacent churches that might
+associate therewith for mutual assistance.
+
+3. It is granted, that every single congregation hath equal power, one
+as much as another, and that there is no subordination of one to
+another; according to that common and known axiom, An equal hath no
+power or rule over an equal. Subordination prelatical, which is of one
+or more parishes to the prelate and his cathedral, is denied; all
+particular churches being collateral, and of the same authority.
+
+4. It is granted, that classical or synodal authority cannot be by
+Scripture introduced over a particular church in a privative or
+destructive way to that power which God hath bestowed upon it; but
+contrarily it is affirmed, that all the power of assemblies, which are
+above particular congregations, is cumulative and perfective to the
+power of those inferior congregations.
+
+5. It is granted, that the highest ecclesiastical assembly in the world
+cannot require from the lowest a subordination absolute, and at their
+own mere will and pleasure, but only in some respect; subordination
+absolute being only to the law of God laid down in Scripture. We detest
+popish tyranny, which claims a power of giving their will for a law.
+'Tis subjection in the Lord that is pleaded for: the straightest rule in
+the world, unless the holy Scripture, we affirm to be a rule to be
+regulated; peace being only in walking according to Scripture canon,
+Gal. vi. ver. 16.
+
+6. Nor is it the question whether friendly, consultative, fraternal,
+Christian advice or direction, be either to be desired or bestowed by
+neighboring churches, either apart or in their synodal meetings, for the
+mutual benefit of one another, by reason of that holy profession in
+which they are all conjoined and knit together: for this will be granted
+on all hands, though when it is obtained, it will not amount to a
+sufficient remedy in many cases.
+
+But this is that which we maintain, viz. that the law of God holdeth
+forth a subordination of a particular church to greater assemblies,
+consisting of divers choice members, taken out of several single
+congregations: which assemblies have authoritative power and
+ecclesiastical jurisdiction over that particular church, by way of
+giving sentence in and deciding of causes ecclesiastical. For
+confirmation of this assertion, thus:
+
+_Argum_. I. The light of nature may be alleged to prove, that there
+ought to be this subordination: this is warranted not only by God's
+positive law, but even by nature's law. The church is a company of
+people who are not outlawed by nature. The visible church being an
+ecclesiastical polity, and the perfection of all polity, doth comprehend
+in it whatsoever is excellent in all other bodies political. The church
+must resemble the commonwealth's government in things common to both,
+and which have the same use in both. The law of nature directs unto
+diversities of courts in the commonwealth, and the greater to have
+authority over the lesser. The church is not only to be considered as
+employed in holy services, or as having assemblies exercised in
+spiritual things, and after a spiritual manner, but it is also to be
+considered as consisting of companies and societies of men to be
+regularly ordered, and so far nature agreeth to it, that it should have
+divers sorts of assemblies, and the lower subordinate to the higher.
+That particular parts should be subject to the whole for the good of the
+whole, is found necessary both in bodies natural and politic. Is the
+foot to be lanced? though it have a particular use of its own, and a
+peculiar employment, yet it is to be ordered by the eye, the hand, and
+the rest. Kingdoms have their several cities and towns, which all have
+their governments apart by themselves; yet for the preservation of the
+whole, all join together in the Parliament. Armies and navies have their
+several companies and ships, yet in any danger every particular company
+and ship is ordered by the counsels and directions of the officers and
+guides of the whole army or navy. The Church is spiritual, but yet a
+kingdom, a body, an army, &c. D. Ames himself affirms that the light of
+nature requires that particular churches ought to combine in synods for
+things of greater moment. The God of nature and reason hath not left in
+his word a government against the light of nature and right reason.
+Appeals are of divine and natural right, and certainly very necessary in
+every society, because of the iniquity and ignorance of judges. That
+they are so, the practices of all ages and nations sufficiently testify.
+
+_Argum_. II. The Jewish church government affords a second argument. If
+in that they had synagogues in every city, which were subordinate to the
+supreme ecclesiastical court at Jerusalem, then there ought to be a
+subordination of particular churches among us to higher assemblies; but
+so it was among them: therefore,
+
+That the subordination was among them of the particular synagogues to
+the assembly at Jerusalem, is clear--Deut. xvii. 8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8,
+11; Exod. xviii. 22, 26.
+
+That therefore it ought to be so among us, is as plain: for the dangers
+and difficulties that they were involved in without a government, and
+for which God caused that government to be set up among them, are as
+great if not greater among us, and therefore why should we want the same
+means of prevention and cure? Are not we in greater danger of heresies
+now in the time of the New Testament, the churches therein being thereby
+to be exercised by way of trial, as the apostle foretells, 1 Cor. xi.
+19? Doth not ungodliness in these last times abound, according to the
+same apostle's prediction? Is there not now a more free and permitted
+intercourse of society with infidels than in those times?
+
+Nor are the exceptions against this argument of any strength: as, 1.
+That arguments for the form of church government must yet be fetched
+from the Jewish Church; the government of the Jews was ceremonial and
+typical, and Christians must not Judaize, nor use that Judaical compound
+of subordination of churches: the Mosaical polity is abrogated now under
+the New Testament. Not to tell those that make this exception, 1. That
+none argue so much from the Jewish government as themselves for the
+power of congregations, both in ordination and excommunication, because
+the people of Israel laid hands on the Levites, and all Israel were to
+remove the unclean; 2. We answer, the laws of the Jewish church, whether
+ceremonial or judicial, so far are in force, even at this day, as they
+were grounded upon common equity, the principles of reason and nature,
+and were serving to the maintenance of the moral law. 'Tis of especial
+right, that the party unjustly aggrieved should have redress, that the
+adverse party should not be sole judge and party too, that judgment
+ought not to be rashly or partially passed upon any. The Jewish polity
+is only abrogated in regard of what was in it of particular right, not
+of common right: so far as there was in their laws either a typicalness
+proper to their church, or a peculiarness of respect to their state in
+that land of promise given unto them. Whatsoever was in their laws of
+moral concernment or general equity, is still obliging; whatsoever the
+Jewish Church had not as Jewish, but as it was a political church, or an
+ecclesiastical republic, (among which is the subordination of
+ecclesiastical courts to be reckoned,) doth belong to the Christian
+Church: that all judgments were to be determined by an high-priest, was
+typical of Christ's supremacy in judicature; but that there were gradual
+judicatories for the ease of an oppressed or grieved party, there can be
+no ceremony or type in this. This was not learned by Moses in the
+pattern of the Mount, but was taught by the light of nature to Jethro,
+Exod. xviii. 22, and by him given in advice to Moses. This did not
+belong unto the peculiar dispensation of the Jews, but unto the good
+order of the church.
+
+To conclude our answer to this exception, if the benefit of appeals be
+not as free to us as to the Jews, the yoke of the gospel should be more
+intolerable than the yoke of the law; the poor afflicted Christian might
+groan and cry under an unjust and tyrannical eldership, and no
+ecclesiastical judicatory to relieve him; whereas the poor oppressed Jew
+might appeal to the Sanhedrin: certainly this is contrary to that
+prophecy of Christ, Psal. lxxii. 12, 14.
+
+_Argum_. III. A third argument to prove the subordination of particular
+congregations, is taken from the institution of our Saviour Christ, of
+gradual appeals, Matt, xviii. 17, 18, where our Saviour hath appointed a
+particular member of a church (if scandalous) to be gradually dealt
+withal; first to be reproved in private, then to be admonished before
+two or three witnesses, and last of all to be complained of to the
+church: whence we thus argue:
+
+If Christ hath instituted that the offence of an obstinate brother
+should be complained of to the church; then much more is it intended
+that the obstinacy of a great number, suppose of a whole church, should
+be brought before a higher assembly: but the former is true, therefore
+the latter. The consequence, wherein the strength of the argument lies,
+is proved several ways.
+
+1. From the rule of proportion: by what proportion one or two are
+subject to a particular church, by the same proportion is that church
+subject to a provincial or a national assembly; and by the same
+proportion that one congregation is governed by the particular eldership
+representing it, by the same proportion are ten or twelve congregations
+governed by a classical presbytery representing them all.
+
+2. From the sufficiency of that remedy that Christ here prescribes for
+those emergent exigencies under which the Church may lie; since,
+therefore, offences may as well arise between two persons in the same
+congregation, Christ hath appointed that particular congregations, as
+well as members, shall have liberty to complain and appeal to a more
+general judgment for redress: the salve here prescribed by Christ is
+equal to the sore; if the sore of scandal may overspread whole churches,
+as well as particular persons, then certainly the salve of appeals and
+subordination is here also appointed. If a man be scandalized by the
+neighbor-church, to whom shall he complain? The church offending must
+not be both judge and party.
+
+3. From that ecclesiastical communion that is between churches and
+churches in one and the same province or nation, whereby churches are
+joined and united together in doctrine and discipline into one body, as
+well as divers particular persons in a particular congregation; since,
+therefore, scandals may be committed among them that are in that holy
+communion one with another, most unworthy of and destructive to that
+sacred league, certainly those scandals should be redressed by a
+superior judicatory, as well as offences between brother and brother.
+
+4. He that careth for a part of a church must much more care for the
+whole; he whose love extends itself to regard the conversion of one, is
+certainly very careful of the spiritual welfare of many, the edification
+of a whole church; the influence of Christ's love being poured upon the
+whole body, bride and spouse, by order of nature, before it redound to
+the benefit of a finger or toe, viz. some one single person or other.
+Nor are the exceptions against this institution of gradual appeals of
+any moment.
+
+The grand one, and that makes directly against our position is, that our
+Saviour would have the controversy between brother and brother to be
+terminated in a peculiar church, and that its judgment should be
+ultimately requested, he saith, _Tell the church_, not churches. The
+subordination here appointed by Christ is of fewer to more, but still
+within the same church, not without it. To which we answer, our Saviour
+means not by church only one single particular congregation, but also
+several, combined in their officers, as appears by these following
+reasons.
+
+1. A particular church in sundry cases cannot decide the difference, or
+heal the distemper our Saviour prescribes against; as when a particular
+church is divided into two parts, both in opposition one to the other;
+or when one church is at variance with another; if Christ here limits
+only to a particular church, how shall such distempers be remedied?
+
+2. When Christ bids _tell the church_, he speaks in allusion to the
+Jewish Church, which was represented not only by parts in the single
+synagogue or congregation, but wholly in their sanhedrin, consisting of
+select persons, appointed by God, for deciding controversies incident to
+their particular congregations, and their members. So that we may thus
+reason: the subordination here established by Christ is so far to be
+extended in the Christian Church, as in the Church of the Jews, for
+Christ alludeth to the Jewish practice; but in the Jewish Church there
+was a subordination of fewer to more, not only within the same synagogue
+or congregation, but within the whole nation, for all synagogues were
+under the great council at Jerusalem. Now that Christ gives here the
+same rule that was of old given to the Jews for church government, is
+clear, 1. From the censure of the obstinate, who was to be reputed a
+heathen and a publican; wherein is a manifest allusion to the present
+estate of the Church of the Jews; and, 2. From the familiarity and
+plainness of Christ's speech, _Tell the church_, which church could not
+have been understood by the disciples had not Christ spoken of the
+Jewish judicatory; besides which they knew none for such offences as
+Christ spake of to them, there being no particular church which had
+given its name to Christ: as also, 3. From his citing the words of that
+text, Deut. xix. 15, where the witnesses and offenders were, by way of
+further appeal, to stand before the Lord, before the priests for
+judgment, ver. 17.
+
+3. It is plain that our Saviour intended a liberty of going beyond a
+particular congregation for determining cases of controversy, from the
+reason of that subordination which Christ enjoins, of one to two or
+three, and of them to the church. The reason of that gradual progress
+there set down, was because in the increase of numbers and greatness of
+assemblies, more wisdom, judgment, and gravity is supposed to be, than
+in the admonitions of a few and smaller number; now, then, this power of
+right admonition increaseth with the number of admonishers, as well
+without as within the same congregation; if ten go beyond two in wisdom
+and gravity, forty will go beyond ten, and be more likely to win upon
+the offender, and regain him.
+
+_Argum_. IV. A fourth argument is taken from the pattern of the
+apostolical churches, Acts xv.
+
+The church of Antioch (though presbyterial, as was proved Chapter XIII.,
+Position II.) was subordinate to the synod at Jerusalem; therefore a
+particular church is subordinate to higher assemblies, &c.
+
+If a synodal decree did bind them in those times, then may it bind
+particular churches now, and these ought even still to be subject to
+synods.
+
+The consequence is undeniable, unless we hold that what the synod there
+imposed was unjust, or that we have now less need of those remedies than
+they had; nay, since the apostles (who were assisted with an
+extraordinary spirit of inspiration) would nevertheless in a doubtful
+business have synodal conventions for determining of controversies, much
+more ought we to do so whose gifts are far inferior to theirs; and
+unless it had been in their determination to leave us their example of a
+synodal way of church government for our pattern, they had not wanted
+the meeting together of so many with them for decision of the doubt,
+whose doctrine was infallible, and of itself, without an assembly, to be
+believed.
+
+The exceptions against this pattern of church polity are of no validity,
+e.g.
+
+1. This was no synod. First, that it was no synod appears, in that we
+read of no word of a synod. Secondly, no commissioners from Syria and
+Cilicia, which churches should have sent their delegates, had they been
+a synod, and had their decrees been to have bound in a synodal way.
+Thirdly, all the believers had voices here.
+
+2. If it were a synod, yet it is no pattern for us, in regard it was
+consisting of members guided by an infallible and apostolical spirit.
+
+We answer, 1. Here is the thing synod, though not the word, which is a
+meeting consisting of the deputies of many single churches.
+
+2. That Jerusalem and Antioch had their commissioners there, is evident;
+and by consequence many single churches had their commissioners, for
+there were many single congregations at Jerusalem and Antioch, as hath
+been proved, Chapter XIII., Position II.; that these met together, the
+word used, verse 6, _they came together_, evidenceth, and verse 25. For
+the churches of Syria and Cilicia not sending their commissioners, it
+follows not that because _they are not named_, therefore _they were not
+there_; and if _they were not there_, therefore _they ought not to have
+been_: but it is rather thought Syria and Cilicia had commissioners
+there, in regard the synodal decrees are directed to them as well as
+others, and the decrees bound them, which they could not do as formal
+Scripture; for the words, _it seemeth good to us_, and their submitting
+the matter to disputation, argue the contrary; therefore as synodal
+decrees, which inasmuch as they bound those churches, they either were
+present, or were obliged to be present by their commissioners.
+
+3. To that exception, that the multitude of believers had voices there,
+and therefore it is not one of our synods, ver. 22--
+
+We answer, it can nowise be proved that every particular believer had a
+suffrage in the assembly.
+
+Eminent divines[116] understand by _multitude_ and _church_, the
+multitude and whole church of apostles and elders, who are said to be
+_gathered together_, verse 6, _to consider of the matter_; besides which
+no other multitude is said to be gathered together, while the matter was
+in debate; yet we shall not deny even to other members the liberty of
+their consent and approbation, and freedom to examine all determinations
+by the rule of God's word: but the ordaining and forming those decrees
+is here evinced to be by the apostles and elders, when as they are
+called _their decrees_, Acts xvi. 4,6.
+
+3. Those only had definitive votes, who met together synodically to
+consider of the question; but they were only the apostles and elders,
+Acts xv. 6. That the epistle is sent in the name of all, is granted;
+because it was sent by common consent, and withal thereby was added some
+more weight to the message.
+
+4. Further, if the believers of Jerusalem voted in that assembly, by
+what authority was it? How could they _impose a burden_ upon, and
+command decrees unto the churches of Syria and Cilicia, and other
+churches, who, according to our brethren's opinion, were not only absent
+in their commissioners, but independent in their power?
+
+To the exception, that other synods may not pretend to the privileges of
+that, since its decrees were indited by the Holy Ghost; and therefore no
+pattern for our imitation--
+
+_Ans_. The decrees of this assembly did oblige, as synodal decrees, not
+as apostolical and canonical Scripture: this appears several ways:
+
+1. The apostles, in framing these canons, did proceed in a way synodal
+and ecclesiastical, and far different from that which they used in
+dictating of Scripture, and publishing divine truths; their decrees were
+brought forth by much disputation, human disquisition, but divine
+oracles are published without human reasonings, from the immediate
+inditing of the Spirit, 2 Pet. i. 2.
+
+2. Besides the apostles, there were here commissioned elders and other
+brethren, men of ordinary rank, not divinely and infallibly inspired.
+The apostles in the penning of Scripture consult not with elders and
+brethren, (as our opposites here say they did:) our brethren make
+mandates of ordinary believers divine and canonical Scripture.
+
+3. Divine writ is published only in the name of the Lord; but these in
+the name of man also, "It seemed good to the Holy Ghost and to us," Acts
+xv. 28.
+
+4. Canonical and apostolical writing of new Scripture shall not continue
+till Christ's coming, because the canon is complete, Rev. xxii. 18, 19,
+&c.; but thus to decree through the assistance of the Holy Ghost, who
+remaineth with the Church to the end, and to be directed by Scripture,
+shall still continue. Therefore this decreeing is not as the inditing of
+the Holy Scripture. The minor is clear both from Christ's promise,
+"Where two or three are met together," Matt. xvii. 18-20; Matt. viii.
+20; as also by the Spirit's inspiring those councils of Nice of old, and
+Dort of late: Therefore the apostles here laid aside their apostolical
+extraordinary power, descending to the places of ordinary pastors, to
+give them examples in future ages.
+
+To conclude, it is plain, that all the essentials in this assembly were
+synodal, as whether we consider: 1. The occasion of the meeting, a
+controversy; 2. The deputation of commissioners from particular
+churches, for the deciding of that controversy; or 3. The convention of
+those that were deputed; or 4. The discussion of the question, they
+being so convened; or 5. The determination of the question so discussed;
+or 6. The imposition of the thing so determined; or 7. The subjection to
+the thing so imposed.
+
+1 Tim. i. 17
+
+TO THE IMMORTAL GOD ALONE BE GLORY FOR EVER AND EVER.
+
+
+
+
+FOOTNOTES:
+
+[Footnote 1: This truth, that Jesus Christ is a king, and hath a kingdom
+and government in his Church distinct from the kingdoms of this world,
+and from the civil government, hath this commendation and character
+above all other truths, that Christ himself suffered to the death for
+it, and sealed it with his blood. For it may he observed from the story
+of his passion, this was the only point of his accusation, which was
+confessed and avouched by himself, Luke xxiii. 3; John xviii. 33, 36,
+37; was most aggravated, prosecuted, and driven home by the Jews, Luke
+xxiii. 2; John xix. 22, 23; was prevalent with Pilate as the cause of
+condemning him to die, John xix. 12, 13, and was mentioned also in his
+superscription upon his cross, John xix. 19; and although in reference
+to God, and in respect of satisfaction to the Divine justice for our
+sins, his death was [Greek: lytron] a price of redemption; yet in
+reference to men who did persecute, accuse, and condemn him, his death
+was [Greek: martyrion] a martyr's testimony to seal such a truth.--Mr.
+_G. Gillespie, in his Aaron's Rod Blossoming, &c., Epist. to the
+Reader_.]
+
+[Footnote 2: _Cent. I. lib. 2, cap._ 7, _p._ 407 _ad_ 418, _Edit. Basil.
+An._ 1624. De rebus ad Gubernationem Ecclesiae pertinentibus, Apostoli
+certos quosdam, Canones tradiderunt: quos ordine subjiciemus, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 3: Directions of the Lords and Commons, &c. Aug. 19, 1645, p.
+10]
+
+[Footnote 4: (1) The ancient discipline of the Bohemian Brethren,
+published in Latin, in octavo, _Anno_ 1633, pages 99, 100.
+
+(2) The discipline of Geneva, _Anno_ 1576, in _Art._ 1, 22, 57, 86, and
+87.
+
+(3) The discipline of the French church at Frankfort, _Edit._ 2, in
+octavo, _Anno_ 1555, _in cap. de Disciplina et Excom.,_ p. 75, and the
+Ecclesiast. Discipline of the reformed churches of France, printed at
+London, _Anno_ 1642, _Art._ 15, 16, and 24, p. 44. (1) The Synodal
+Constitution of the Dutch churches in England, chap. 4, _Art._ 13, and
+_Tit._ 1, _Art._ 2; and the Dutch churches in Belgia, (see _Harmonia
+Synodorum Belgicarum_,) _cap._ 14, _Art._ 7, 11, and 15, p. 160. (5) The
+reformed churches at Nassau, in Germany, as _Zeoper_ testifies, _De
+Politei Eccles.,_ printed _Herborne, Anno_ 1607, in octavo, _Tit. de
+Censuris Ecclesiast., Part_ 4, _Art._ 64, p. 813. (6) The discipline in
+the churches constituted by the labor of _Joannes â Lasco_, entitled
+_Forma ac ratio tota Ecclesiastici Miniterii, &c._, _author Joannes â
+Lasco Poloniae Barone, Anno_ 1555, p. 291. (7) The discipline agreed
+upon by the English exiles that fled from the _Marian_ persecution to
+Frankfort, thence to Geneva, allowed by _Calvin_; entitled _Ratio ac
+forma publicè orandi Deum, &c., Genevae_, 1556, _Tit. de Disciplina_, p.
+68. (8) The Order of Excommunication and Public Repentance used in the
+Church of Scotland, _Anno_ 1571, _Tit._ The offences that deserve public
+repentance, &c., pp. 87, 88.]
+
+[Footnote 5: See more in chap. 10, sect. 1.]
+
+[Footnote 6: R. Park, de Polit. Eccl. 1. 2, cap. 42.]
+
+[Footnote 7: Malcolm. Com. in loco.]
+
+[Footnote 8: Calvin in loco.]
+
+[Footnote 9: Chrys. wisheth--"But, O that there had not wanted one that
+would have delivered diligently unto us the history of the apostles, not
+only what they wrote, or what they spake, but how they behaved
+themselves throughout their whole life, both what they did eat, and when
+they did eat, when they sat, and whither they went, and what they did
+every day, in what parts they lived, and into what house they entered,
+and whither they sailed, and that would accurately have expounded all
+things; so full of manifold utility are all things of theirs."--Chrys.,
+Argum. in Epist. ad Philem. And elsewhere he affirmeth,--"Nor hath the
+grace of the Holy Ghost without cause left unto us these histories
+written, but that he may stir us up to the imitation and emulation of
+such unspeakable men. For when we hear of this man's patience, of that
+man's soberness, of another man's readiness to entertain strangers, and
+the manifold virtue of every one, and how every one of them did shine
+and become illustrious, we are stirred up to the like zeal." Chrys. in
+Gen. xxx. 25. Homil. 57, in initio.]
+
+[Footnote 10: "For this cause, therefore, the conversation of these most
+excellent men is accurately related, that by imitation of them our life
+may be rightly led on to that which is good."--Greg. Nyssen, lib. de
+Vita Mosis, tom. i. p. 170, vid. tot. lib.]
+
+[Footnote 11: Perkins on Matth. vi. 16. See him also on Heb. xi. 6, p.
+28, in fol. col. 2, B, C, &c., and on Heb. xi. 22, p. 131, col. 2, D,
+and notably on Heb. xii. 1, p. 200, col. 2, C, D, &c., and on Rev. ii.
+19, p. 313, col. 1, B, and his Art of Prophesying, p. 663, col. 1 and 2.
+Vide Pet. Martyr in lib. Jud. p. 2, col. 1, and in Rom. iv. 23, 24. And
+Calvin in Heb. xii. 1; and in Rom. iv. 23, 24, and in 1. Pet. i. 21,
+&c.]
+
+[Footnote 12: Park. de Pol. Eccl. 1. 2, c. 42.]
+
+[Footnote 13: 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 14: Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 15-18; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5; 2 Cor. x.
+8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 15: 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17; 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15, with all places
+that mention any thing of government.]
+
+[Footnote 16: Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Matt. xxviii. 18-20;
+John xx. 21-23; Matt. xvi. 19; 2 Cor. x. 8.]
+
+[Footnote 17: Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 19; John xx. 21, 23; 2 Cor. x.
+8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 18: Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Acts vi. 4; 2 Tim. iv. 2.]
+
+[Footnote 19: Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi. 24.]
+
+[Footnote 20: Matt, xviii. 15-17; Tit. iii. 19; 1 Tim. v. 20; 1 Cor. v.
+4, 5, 13; 2 Cor. ii. 6: 1 Tim. i. 20; 2 Cor. ii 7, 8, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 21: 1 Cor. iv. 1.]
+
+[Footnote 22: 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 23: [Greek: Ekklaesia], Acts xix. 32, 39, 40; Eph. v. 23; 1
+Cor. xii. 98.]
+
+[Footnote 24: Cameron. Praelect de Eccles. in fol. pp. 296-298.]
+
+[Footnote 25: Who in relating such things can refrain from weeping?]
+
+[Footnote 26: See Mr. Edwards's Antapologia, page 201, printed in anno
+1644, proving this out of their own books. Especially see a little book
+in 12mo. printed in anno 1646, styled a collection of certain matters,
+which almost in every page pleads for Independency and Independents by
+name: from which most of the Independent principles seem to be derived.]
+
+[Footnote 27: Let not any man put off this Scripture, saying, This is in
+the Old Testament, but we find no such thing in the gospel; for we find
+the same thing, almost the same words used in a prophecy of the times of
+the gospel, Zech. xiii. 3. In the latter end of the xii. chapter, it is
+prophesied that those who pierced Christ, should _look upon him and
+mourn_, &c., having a _spirit of grace and supplication_ poured upon
+them, chap. xiii. 1. "There shall now be opened a fountain for sin, and
+for uncleanness," ver. 3. "It shall come to pass that he that takes upon
+him to prophesy, that his father and mother that begat him, shall say
+unto him, Thou shalt not live, for thou speakest lies in the name of the
+Lord: and his father and his mother that begat him, shall thrust him
+through, when he prophesieth." You must understand this by that in
+Deuteronomy. The meaning is not that his father or mother should
+presently run a knife into him, but that though they begat him, yet they
+should be the means to bring him to condign punishment, even the taking
+away his life; these who were the instruments of his life, should now be
+the instruments of his death.--Mr. Jer. Burroughs in ills Irenicum,
+chap. v., Pages 19, 20, printed 1646.]
+
+[Footnote 28: But schismatics and heretics are called evil-workers,
+Phil. iii. 2; and heresy is classed among the works of the flesh, Gal.
+v. 20.]
+
+[Footnote 29: Mr. Burroughs in his _Irenicum_, c.v. page 25; printed
+1646.]
+
+[Footnote 30: See this evidenced upon divers grounds in _Appollon. jus
+Majest._, pp. 25, 26.]
+
+[Footnote 31: See M.S. to A.S., pages 55-60.]
+
+[Footnote 32: The civil magistrate is no proper church officer, as was
+intimated, Part 1 c. 1., and will be further evidenced in this chapter.]
+
+[Footnote 33: That the civil magistrate is not the vicar of Christ our
+Mediator, see abundantly proved by Mr. S. Rutherford, in his Divine
+Right of Church Government, &c., Ch. 27, Quest. 23, pages 595 to 647.]
+
+[Footnote 34: The formal difference or distinction betwixt these two
+powers, is fully and clearly asserted by that learned bishop, Usher, in
+these words: "God, for the better settling of piety and honesty among
+men, and the repressing of profaneness and other vices, hath established
+two distinct powers upon earth: the one of the keys, committed to the
+Church; the other of the sword, committed to the civil magistrate. That
+of the keys, is ordained to work upon the inward man; having immediate
+relation to the remitting or retaining of sins, John xx. 23. That of the
+sword is appointed to work upon the outward man; yielding protection to
+the obedient, and inflicting external punishment upon the rebellious and
+disobedient. By the former, the spiritual officers of the Church of
+Christ are inclinable to govern well, 1 Tim. v. 17. To _speak_, and
+_exhort_, and _rebuke_ with all _authority_, Tit. ii. 15. To loose such
+as are penitent, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. To commit others to the
+Lord's prison, until their amendment, or to bind them over to the
+judgment of the great day, if they shall persist in their wilfulness and
+obstinacy. By the other, princes have an imperious power assigned by God
+unto them, for the defence of such as do well, and executing revenge and
+wrath, Rom. xiii. 4, upon such as do evil, whether by death, or
+banishment, or confiscation of goods, or imprisonment, Ezra vii. 26,
+according to the quality of the offence.
+
+"When St. Peter, that had the keys committed unto him, made bold to draw
+the sword, he was commanded to put it up, Matt. xxvi. 52, as a weapon
+that he had no authority to meddle withal. And on the other side, when
+Uzziah the king would venture upon the execution of the priest's office,
+it was said unto him, 'It pertaineth not unto thee, Uzziah, to burn
+incense unto the Lord, but to the priests, the sons of Aaron, that are
+consecrated to burn incense,' 2 Chron. xxvi. 18. Let this therefore be
+our second conclusion: That the power of the sword, and of the keys, are
+two distinct ordinances of God; and that the prince hath no more
+authority to enter upon the execution of any part of the priest's
+function, than the priest hath to intrude upon any part of the office of
+the prince." In his speech delivered in the Castle-chamber at Dublin,
+&c., concerning the oath of supremacy, pages 3, 4, 5. Further
+differences betwixt these two powers, see in Gillespie's Aaron's Rod,
+Book 2, Chap. 4.]
+
+[Footnote 35: See this proposition for substance fully and clearly
+asserted by that acute and pious author, Mr. P. Bains, in his Diocesan's
+Trial, quest. 3, pages 83, 84, conclus. 3.]
+
+[Footnote 36: See Cotton's Keys, &c., pp. 31-33, and Mr. Thomas Goodwin,
+and Mr. Philip Nye, in their epistle prefixed thereunto, do own this
+book as being for substance their own judgment.]
+
+[Footnote 37: See that judicious treatise, Vindiciae Clavium, chap. III.
+IV. V., pp. 33-52.]
+
+[Footnote 38: John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt, xviii. 15, p. 149-151, in
+fol, and Baine's Diocesan's Trial, the third quest, pp. 79, 80, and D.
+Parcus in Matt. xviii. 15. This is fully discussed and proved by Mr.
+Rutherford in his Peaceable Plea, Chap. viii. p. 85, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 39: A difference arose betwixt two gentlemen in that church
+about singing of hymns: the second gentleman was complained of to the
+church by the first, and upon hearing of the whole business, and all the
+words that passed between them, this second gentleman was censured by
+the church, and Mr. Nye _charged sin upon him_ (that was the phrase) in
+many particulars, and still at the end of every charge Mr. Nye repeated,
+"this was your sin." After this censure, so solemnly done, the gentleman
+censured brings in accusations against Mr. Nye, in several articles,
+charging him with pride, want of charity, &c., in the manner of the
+censure; and this being brought before the church, continued in debate
+about half a year, three or four days in a week, and sometimes more,
+before all the congregation. Divers of the members having callings to
+follow, they desired to have leave to be absent. Mr. Goodwin oft
+professed publicly upon these differences, If this were their church
+fellowship, he would lay down his eldership; and nothing was more
+commonly spoke among the members, than that certainly for matter of
+discipline they were not in the right way, for that there was no way of
+bringing things to an end. At last, after more than half a year's
+debate, not being able to bring these differences to an end, and being
+come into England, they had their last meeting about it, to agree not to
+publish it abroad when they came into England, &c. Mr. Edwards's
+Antapolog., pp. 36, 37.]
+
+[Footnote 40: Mr. J. Cotton, in his Way of the Churches of Christ in New
+England, chap, ii. sect. 7, p. 43.]
+
+[Footnote 41: Were the power in the church, the church should not only
+call them, but make them out of virtue and power received into herself;
+then should the church have a true lordlike power in regard of her
+ministers. Besides, there are many in the community of Christians
+incapable of this power regularly, as women and children. Mr. P. Bain in
+his Diocesan's Trial, quest. 3, conclus. 3, page 84, printed 1621.]
+
+[Footnote 42: If spiritual and ecclesiastical power be in the church or
+community of the faithful, the church doth not only call, but make
+officers out of virtue and power received into herself, and then should
+the church have a true lordlike power in regard of her ministers. For,
+as he that will derive authority to the church, maketh himself lord of
+the church, so, if the church derive authority to the ministers of
+Christ, she maketh herself lady or mistress over them, in the exercise
+of that lordlike authority; for, as all men know, it is the property of
+the lord and master to impart authority. Did the church give power to
+the pastors and teachers, she might make the sacrament and preaching
+which one doth in order, no sacrament, no preaching; for it is the order
+instituted of God that giveth being and efficacy to these ordinances;
+and if the power of ruling, feeding, and dispensing the holy things of
+God do reside in the faithful, the word and sacrament, in respect of
+dispensation and efficacy, shall depend upon the order and institution
+of the society. If the power of the keys be derived from the community
+of the faithful, then are all officers immediately and formally servants
+to the church, and must do every thing in the name of the church, rule,
+feed, bind, loose, remit, and retain sins, preach and administer the
+sacraments; then they must perform their office according to the
+direction of the church, more or less, seldom or frequent, remiss or
+diligent; for from whom are they to receive direction how to carry
+themselves in their offices, but from him or them of whom they receive
+their office, whose work they are to do, and from whom they must expect
+reward? If their office and power be of God immediately, they must do
+the duties of their place according to his designment, and unto him they
+must give account; but if their power and function be from the church,
+the church must give account to God, and the officers to the church,
+whom she doth take to be her helpers, &c. Mr. John Ball, in his Trial of
+the grounds tending to separation, chap. xii. pages 252, 253, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 43: See Vindiciae Clavium, judiciously unmasking these new
+notions.]
+
+[Footnote 44: Here understand by this phrase, (_over you in the Lord_,)
+viz: Not only in the fear of the Lord, nor only in those things that
+appertain to God's worship, but also according to the will, and by the
+authority of the Lord Christ derived to them.]
+
+[Footnote 45: See the Apologetical narration by the five Independents,
+page 8; and Mr. Jo. Cotton, at large, asserts the divine institution of
+the ruling elder. Way of the Churches of Christ, &c., chap. 2, sect. 2,
+page 13-35.]
+
+[Footnote 46: Calvin, Beza, Pareus, Pagnin.]
+
+[Footnote 47: Arias Montan.]
+
+[Footnote 48: Tremel. out of the Syriac; so the old Geneva translation,
+and our new translation.]
+
+[Footnote 49: Field, of the Church, book 5, chap. 26.]
+
+[Footnote 50: Sutlive, who afterwards declared, that he was sorry with
+all his heart, that ever he put pen to paper to write against Beza as he
+had done, in behalf of the proud domineering prelates; and he spoke this
+with great indignation.]
+
+[Footnote 51: Mat. Sutliv. de Presbyterio, cap. 12, p. 87, edit. 1591.]
+
+[Footnote 52: Ibid. pages 72 and 87, edit. 1591.]
+
+[Footnote 53: Bilson's perpetual Government of Christ's Church, c. 10,
+p. 136, 137, 138, printed in Ann. 1610.]
+
+[Footnote 54: That the magistrate cannot be here meant, see fully
+evidenced in Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, &c., book ii. chap. 6, pages
+218-224, and also chap. 9, p. 284.]
+
+[Footnote 55: Pareas in 1 Cor. xii. 28.]
+
+[Footnote 56: D. Field, Of the Church, book v. chap. xxvi.]
+
+[Footnote 57: Peter Martyr, Beza, Piscator, and Calvin.]
+
+[Footnote 58: Calvin in 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. _Vid. etiam Jacob. Laurent.
+Comment, in_ 1 Pet. v. 2, 3, _ubi fusius de hac distinctione disserit_,
+p. 322, ad. 325.]
+
+[Footnote 59: Mat. Sutliv. De Presbyterio, cap. 12, page 72 and 87:
+edit. Lond., an. 1591. Bilson's Perpetual Government of Christ's Church,
+chap. 10, page 141; in 4to. printed in anno 1610.]
+
+[Footnote 60: _Vide_ Calv. in loc.]
+
+[Footnote 61: Sutlive.]
+
+[Footnote 62: Whitgift.]
+
+[Footnote 63: Coleman.]
+
+[Footnote 64: Who desire more full satisfaction touching this poor and
+empty gloss, that the civil magistrate should be meant by these
+governments, let them consult Mr. Gillespie's elaborate treatise, called
+Aaron's Rod Blossoming, book 2, chap, 6, pp. 218 to 224.]
+
+[Footnote 65: Bilson.]
+
+[Footnote 66: Mr. Rutherford in his Due Right of Presbyteries, p. 145.]
+
+[Footnote 67: Calvin, Beza, &c. on this place.]
+
+[Footnote 68: See Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, book 2, chap. 9.]
+
+[Footnote 69: Mr. Rutherford in his Due Rights of Presbyteries, chap. 7,
+sec. 7, pages 145-147.]
+
+[Footnote 70: Beza, Piscata, Calvin, on this verse.]
+
+[Footnote 71: Bilson's Perpetual Government of Christ's Church, chap. x.
+pages 130, 131.]
+
+[Footnote 72: Altar. Damas. cap. xii., page 918 and page 920.]
+
+[Footnote 73: B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii., Bilson in his
+Perpetual Government of Christ's Church, c. x. page 132, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 74: B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii., page 40.]
+
+[Footnote 75: B. Whitgift in his Defence against Cartwright's first
+Reply. This is one of D. Field's three glosses. Field, Of the Church,
+lib v., chap. 26.]
+
+[Footnote 76: Bishops that have no tolerable gift of teaching, are like
+idols, their cases, or rather coffins, set up in the church's choice.
+Cartwright Testam. _Annot_., in 1 Tim. v. 17.]
+
+[Footnote 77: Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page 919.]
+
+[Footnote 78: Bridge, Hussey.]
+
+[Footnote 79: Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page 919.]
+
+[Footnote 80: Sutlive.]
+
+[Footnote 81: Sutlive, De Presbyterio, cap. 12, pages 72, 73.]
+
+[Footnote 82: Bilson's Government of the Church, page 133.]
+
+[Footnote 83: Sutlive, De Presbyterio, c. 12, pages 72, 73.]
+
+[Footnote 84: Bilson, page 135.]
+
+[Footnote 85: Field, Book v.]
+
+[Footnote 86: Bilson, page 133.]
+
+[Footnote 87: Field, Book v.]
+
+[Footnote 88: D. Downham. See Altar. Damasc. c. xii. page 924.]
+
+[Footnote 89: Chrysost. Homil. 15, in 1 Tim. 5, Hier. in 1 Tim. cap. 5,
+Ambr. in 1 Tim. cap., Calv. in 1 Tim. cap. 5, Bullinger in 1 Tim. cap.
+5, Beza in 1 Tim. 5.]
+
+[Footnote 90: Bilson, Sutlive, and Downham.]
+
+[Footnote 91: The London ministers have here inserted the testimonies of
+these ancient writers in favor of the divine right of the office of the
+ruling elder, viz. Ignatius, Purpurius, Tertullian, Origen, Cyprian,
+Optatus, Ambrose, Augustine, and Isidorus; and of these three late ones,
+viz. Whitaker, Thorndike, and Rivet. The amount of their testimony, when
+taken together, appears to be simply this, that there have been ruling
+elders, as distinct from preaching elders, in the Church of Christ from
+the beginning. It is therefore judged unnecessary to give the quotations
+from these authors at large.--_Editor_.]
+
+[Footnote 92: Against the office of deacons, and the divine right
+thereof, fourteen objections are answered by Mr. S. Rutherford in his
+Due Right of Presbyteries, chap. 7, pages 159 to 175. To which the
+reader that shall make any scruple about the deacon's office, is
+referred for his further satisfaction.]
+
+[Footnote 93: Some of our brethren in New England, observing what
+confusion necessarily depends upon the government which hath been
+practised there, have been forced much to search into it within this
+four years, and incline to acknowledge the presbyters to be the subject
+of the power without dependence upon the people. "We judge, upon mature
+deliberation, that the ordinary exercise of government must be so in the
+presbyters, as not to depend upon the express votes and suffrages of the
+people. There hath been a convent or meeting of the ministers of these
+parts, about this question at Cambridge in the Bay, and there we have
+proposed our arguments, and answered theirs, and they proposed theirs,
+and answered ours; and so the point is left to consideration." Mr.
+Thomas Parker in his letter written from Newbury in New England,
+December 17, 1643, printed 1644.]
+
+[Footnote 94: Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. L. Graec. in verb.]
+
+[Footnote 95: Piscator.]
+
+[Footnote 96: Beza.]
+
+[Footnote 97: Zanch. in loco.]
+
+[Footnote 98: Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. ad verb.]
+
+[Footnote 99: Mr. Jo. Cotton's Keys of the Kingdom of Heaven, chap. vii.
+in propos. 3, pages 44-46.]
+
+[Footnote 100: See Mr. Cotton's own words in chap. XIV. at the end, in
+the margin.]
+
+[Footnote 101: See John Calvin, in 1 Cor. v. 4.]
+
+[Footnote 102: Cameron, in Matt. xviii. 15.]
+
+[Footnote 103: Thus Mr. Bayne remarkably expounds this text, Matt.
+xviii., saying: Where first mark, that Christ doth presuppose the
+authority of every particular church taken indistinctly. For it is such
+a church as any brother offended may presently complain to. Therefore no
+universal, or provincial, or diocesan church gathered in a council. 2.
+It is not any particular church that he doth send all Christians to, for
+then all Christians in the world should come to one particular church,
+were it possible. He doth therefore presuppose indistinctly the very
+particular church where the brother offending and offended are members.
+And if they be not both of one church, the plaintiff must make his
+denunciation to the church where the defendant is. 3. As Christ doth
+speak it of any ordinary particular church indistinctly, so he doth by
+the name of church not understand essentially all the congregation. For
+then Christ should give not some, but all the members of the church to
+be governors of it. 4. Christ speaketh it of such a church to whom we
+may ordinarily and orderly complain; now this we cannot to the whole
+multitude. 5. This church he speaketh of then doth presuppose it, as the
+ordinary executioner of all discipline and censure. But the multitude
+have not this execution ordinary, as all but Morelius, and such
+democratical spirits, do affirm. And the reason ratifying the sentence
+of the church, doth show that often the number of it is but small, "For
+where two or three are gathered together in my name;" whereas the church
+or congregations essentially taken for teachers and people, are
+incomparably great. Neither doth Christ mean by church the chief pastor,
+who is virtually as the whole church.--Mr. Bayne's Diocesan's Trial.]
+
+[Footnote 104: Timothy received grace by the laying on of the hands of
+the presbytery. For that persons must be understood here, is apparent by
+the like place, when it is said, by the laying on of my hands, he noteth
+a person, and so here a presbytery. 2. To take presbytery to signify the
+order of priesthood, is against all lexicons, and the nature of the
+Greek termination. 3. Timothy never received that order of a presbyter,
+as before we have proved. 4. It cannot signify, as Greek expositors take
+it, a company of bishops; for neither was that canon of three bishops
+and the Metropolitan, or all the bishops in a province, in the apostle's
+time; neither were these who were now called bishops, then called
+presbyters, as they say, but apostles, men that had received apostolic
+grace, angels, &c. Finally, it is very absurd to think of companies of
+other presbyters in churches that Paul planted, but presbyteries of such
+presbyters as are now distinguished from bishops, which is the grant of
+our adversaries.--Bayne's Diocesan's Trial, page 82.]
+
+[Footnote 105: See Assertion of the Government of the Church of
+Scotland, Part I. Chap. 2, p. 122, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 106: Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod Blossoming, book i. chap.
+iii. pages 8-38.]
+
+[Footnote 107: Vid. Joannis Seldeni de Anno Civili, and Calendario, &c.
+Dissertationem in Praefat., page 8. See also Mr. John Lightfoot's
+Commentary upon the Acts, c. x. 28, pages 235-239.]
+
+[Footnote 108: John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt. xviii. 15, page 143 ad
+162, and Mr. G. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod Blossoming, &c., book i., chap.
+3, page 8, &c., and book ii., chap. 9, page 294-297; and book iii.,
+chapters 2-6, handling this elaborately, pages 350-423.]
+
+[Footnote 109: Assertion, &c., part 2, chap. 3, p. 139.]
+
+[Footnote 110: Basilius in Psal. cxv. Oecumenius in loc. Jerom.
+Chrysostome, hom. 33, in Matt. Irenaeus, lib. 1, chap. 11. Salmeron.]
+
+[Footnote 111: Euseb. Hist. Eccles. 1. 8 c. 1.]
+
+[Footnote 112: If Cenchrea be comprehended under the church of Corinth
+in this epistle, and the apostle writing to the Corinthians, wrote also
+to this church, called, Rom. xvi. 1, _the church of Cenchrea_, then have
+we more congregations than one at Corinth. Now, Cenchrea was a seaport
+or harbor of the Corinthians. It was a place near to Corinth, on the
+east of the Egean Sea. Rutherford, in his Due Right of Presbyteries,
+page 462.]
+
+[Footnote 113: Paget, Gillespie, and the four Leyden professors, unto
+whose judicious and elaborate treatises, the reader is referred for more
+full satisfaction against the usual cavils and exceptions that are made
+against synods, and their power.]
+
+[Footnote 114: This is the judgment of the learned Whitaker upon these
+words: other lawful councils may in like manner assert "their decrees to
+be the decrees of the Holy Ghost, if they shall be like to this council,
+and shall keep the same rule, which in this council the apostles did
+keep and follow. For if they shall decree and determine nothing but from
+Scripture, (which was done in this council.) and if they shall examine
+all questions by the Scripture, and shall follow the voice of the
+Scriptures in all their decrees, then they may assert, that the Holy
+Ghost so decreed," &c. Whitaker, Cont. page 610.]
+
+[Footnote 115: That there is an authoritative, juridical synod; and that
+this synod, Acts xv., was such a one; and that this synod is a pattern
+to us;--all this is most ingenuously acknowledged and asserted by that
+learned Independent, Mr. John Cotton, in these words, viz:
+
+"IV. Proposition, in case a particular church be disturbed with errors
+of scandal, and the same maintained by a faction among them. Now a synod
+of churches, or of their messengers, is the first subject of that power
+and authority, whereby error is judicially convinced and condemned, the
+truth searched out and determined; and the way of truth and peace
+declared and imposed upon the churches.
+
+"The truth of this proposition may appear by two arguments
+
+"_Argum_. 1. From the want of power in such a particular church, to pass
+a binding sentence where error or scandal is maintained by a faction;
+for the promise of binding and loosing which is made to a particular
+church, Matt, xviii. 18, is not given to the church when it is leavened
+with error and variance. And the ground----If then the church, or a
+considerable part of it, fall into error through ignorance, or into
+faction; by variance, they cannot expect the presence of Christ with
+them according to his promise, to pass a blind sentence. And then as
+they fall under the conviction and admonition of any other sister
+church, in a way of brotherly love, by virtue of communion of churches;
+so their errors and variance, and whatsoever scandals else do accompany
+the same, they are justly subject to the condemnation of a synod of
+churches.
+
+"2. A second argument to prove that a synod is the first subject of
+power, to determine and judge errors and variances in particular
+churches, is taken from the pattern set before us in that case, Acts xv.
+1-28: when certain false teachers having taught in the church of Antioch
+a necessity of circumcision to salvation, and having gotten a faction to
+take part with them, (as appeareth by the dissension and disputation of
+Paul and Barnabas against them,) the church did not determine the case
+themselves, but referred the whole matter to the _apostles and elders at
+Jerusalem_, Acts xv. 1, 2. Not to the apostles alone, but to the
+apostles and elders. The apostles were as the elders and rulers of all
+churches; and the elders there were not a few, the believers in
+Jerusalem being many thousands. Neither did the apostles determine the
+matter (as hath been said) by apostolical authority from immediate
+revelation: but they assembled together with the elders, _to consider of
+the matter_, ver. 6, and a _multitude of brethren_ together with them,
+ver. 12, 22, 23; and after searching out the cause by an ordinary means
+of disputation, ver. 7, Peter cleared it by the witness Of the Spirit to
+his ministry in Cornelius's family; Paul and Barnabas by the like effect
+of their ministry among the Gentiles: James confirmed the same by the
+testimony of the prophets, wherewith the whole synod being satisfied,
+they determine of a JUDICIAL SENTENCE, and of a way to publish it by
+letters and messengers; in which they CENSURE the false teachers as
+troublers of their church, and subverters of their souls; they reject
+the imposition of circumcision as a yoke which neither they nor their
+fathers were able to bear; they IMPOSE upon the Church none but some
+necessary observations, and them by way of THAT AUTHORITY which the Lord
+had given them, ver. 28: which PATTERN clearly showeth us to whom the
+key of authority is committed, when there groweth offence and difference
+in a church. Look as in the case of the offence of a faithful brother
+persisted in, the matter is at last judged and determined in a church:
+so in the offence of the church or congregation, the matter is at last
+judged in a congregation of churches, a church of churches; for what is
+a synod else but a church of churches?"--Keys of the Kingdom of Heaven,
+pages 47-49.]
+
+[Footnote 116: Junius, Beza, Calvin, and Piscator.]
+
+
+
+
+APPENDIX.
+
+NO. 1.[117]
+
+_Of the Scriptural Qualifications and Duties of Church Members._
+
+
+_Quest_. What persons have a right in the sight of God to be actual
+members of the Church of Christ?
+
+_Ans_. Only regenerated and converted persons, such as are married to,
+and have put on Christ; such as are savingly and powerfully enlightened,
+quickened, and convinced of sin, righteousness, and judgment;[118] such
+as have chosen Christ for their Lord and Saviour, and resigned and made
+over themselves to him, and received him upon his own terms;[119] such
+only as are reconciled unto, and are in favor with God; as are justified
+by faith, sanctified by the Spirit, and set apart for holiness, and unto
+a living to God, and no more unto themselves:[120] such as are the
+beloved of God, called effectually to be saints, and have really and
+sincerely taken upon them the yoke of Christ Jesus, I say such persons,
+and only such, doth Jesus Christ account worthy of this privilege and
+dignity.[121] Although men do not certainly know those that are such,
+and by reason of their darkness and fallible judgments they may and do
+admit others into the Church, and unto her privileges, yet in truth
+these have no right unto them, and ought not to be there; for these
+spiritual holy things are for, and only for, spiritual and holy persons.
+Christ prepares men by his grace, word, and Spirit to make them fit
+materials, and then he calls them to join together and become a
+spiritual house, for his delight, service, and glory.[F] And therefore
+holy persons, and such only, ought to be full members of the Church of
+Christ.
+
+This will appear by these following particulars:
+
+1. Because God often declares his detestation and abhorrence of others
+being there, and manifests his indignation against them. As to the man
+that came to the marriage supper without the wedding-garment, Matt.
+xxii. 11-13; and the five foolish virgins, chap. xxv.; and the dreadful
+end of the tares, chap. xiii. 38-44, which were the hypocrites, that by
+the devil's instigation had crept into the Church. It is true that such
+were, and will be, in the best of churches, although their guides may do
+all they can to prevent it, because they cannot make an infallible
+judgment of persons' states; yet it is as certain these are usurpers and
+ought not to be there. For, although they are in God's providence
+permitted to creep in, yet we may be sure they are not there with his
+approbation:--they are not all Israel that are of Israel; for, saith God
+to all uncircumcised, What have you to do to take my covenant into your
+mouth, seeing you hate instruction and cast my words behind your back,
+(as all hypocrites do,) Ps. l. 16, 17. And Christ says, that such as
+will not have him to reign over him (and to be sure hypocrites will not)
+shall be destroyed, Luke xix. 27. Now, as hypocrites are most loathsome
+and abominable persons in the sight of God, as may be seen at large in
+Matt, xxiii. 13-35, they have no right unto the spiritual privileges of
+the Church of Christ, because, in the sight of God, the gospel Church
+should consist only of new creatures and real members of Jesus Christ.
+
+II. That all church members ought to be sincere-hearted believers
+appears by the high titles which the Lord Jesus gives unto them in
+Scripture: they are described to be like the king's daughter, all
+glorious within. They are called saints, holy brethren, and beloved,
+elect, dear children of God, the spouse of Christ, a holy temple of God,
+lively stones, built up a spiritual house, a holy priesthood, and the
+Lord's sealed ones. Now such honorable titles belong not unto mere
+formal professors, but only unto the real members of Christ: not unto
+those that have a name only; but to such as are so indeed and in truth.
+
+III. A third reason is taken from the ends of God in instituting and
+appointing churches. They are said to be built by the Spirit for God,
+i.e. for God to dwell and walk in them, to repose himself in them, as in
+his holy garden, house, and temple. They are designed for promoting his
+glory in the world, to distinguish his people from others; that they
+should be to the praise of his glorious grace, and be the living
+witnesses to his name, truths, and ways; that they should be the
+habitations of beauty and glory, of fame and renown in the world, and be
+the light thereof; and that with one heart and mouth they should glorify
+God. Believers are united into a church capacity for their spiritual
+profit and advantage, that God may there give them his love, and
+communicate his grace, truths, and counsels to them, as to his avowed
+household and family Christ walks there, and God the Father dwells
+there, and the Holy Spirit speaks to them in a special and frequent
+manner to distribute liberally of their love and fulness. They are
+formed and set up by Jesus Christ to be the only seats and subjects of
+his laws, ordinances, power, and authority, that they might receive,
+obey, and observe his laws, declare before the world their owning of him
+for their Lord, by their open and public profession of, and subjection
+unto him, as such; and that, by their regular and distinct following of
+him in their united church state, they might manifest to all men, that
+they are his subjects and disciples, that they have chosen him for their
+Lord and King, and his law for the rule of their faith and obedience;
+that they are not their own, but his; and that they have reposed
+themselves in him, as their happiness and eternal blessedness; that they
+are called out of the world and set apart by his grace for himself, to
+live unto him; and that they have taken upon themselves his holy yoke,
+and the observation of all his laws. God has united believers into
+churches, that by his Spirit and ministers he may feed and nourish them
+there as his flock, water them as his garden, support them as his house,
+and order and govern them as his family and household.
+
+IV. The Church of Christ should consist of new creatures and
+sincere-hearted believers, because they only can and will answer and
+prosecute the foresaid, and such like holy ends of God, in and by his
+Church. They are fitted and framed, moulded and polished, by the Holy
+Ghost, for their growing up into a holy temple in the Lord; and so, by
+the constant and promised guidance and conduct of their living head
+Jesus Christ, with their spiritual qualifications, they are enabled to
+answer and perform the great ends of God, in erecting and building them
+up in a church state. But unregenerate persons cannot do this, because
+they are strangers in heart to Jesus Christ, and to the power of
+godliness; nor would they if they could, because they have not the
+saving knowledge of Christ in them, but are full of obstinacy against
+God.
+
+V. Because all the laws, ordinances, and works of church members are
+holy, spiritual, and heavenly. They are such as the natural man
+understands not, and cannot discern what they are, because they are
+spiritual and holy; and therefore they that are not taught of God
+savingly to form a proper judgment of them, do think and judge of them
+carnally and vainly. But believers have them written in their hearts
+beforehand. Yet they have them not without book, I mean they have the
+same laws of Christ written in the books of their hearts which they find
+in the Bible, by which they are in some measure enabled to understand,
+receive, love, and rightly to obey, the laws and ordinances of Christ
+without. Their laws are holy and spiritual, and their works in a church
+state are so likewise. They have a holy God, who is a Spirit, to serve
+and worship; a spiritual Head to believe in and obey; holy and spiritual
+work to do; and therefore they need to be holy and spiritual persons,
+not only externally in profession, but also internally, in truth. Almost
+all the laws and ordinances of Christ are committed unto them, and God
+expects his principal and choicest worship from his Church; and these
+are all above and beyond the reach of carnal minds.
+
+VI. The Church ought to be composed of believers and regenerated
+persons, because they are called to continue and stand fast in all
+storms and tempests; and to hold out unto the end, as being built upon
+the rock Jesus Christ. For whatever church is built upon the sand, and
+not upon the Lord Jesus, and by the authority of his word and Spirit,
+will not stand long, because it wants a foundation to bear up its
+weight. They must all be built upon the rock and chief corner-stone, the
+sure foundation that God hath laid. The Lord Jesus tells us, Matt. xvi.
+18, that upon this rock (i.e. himself and the truths that Peter had
+confessed) will I build my Church, and the gates of hell shall not
+prevail against it. But it is certain that hypocrites are not built upon
+Christ by faith, but fix their vain hopes on a sandy foundation.
+Therefore, if their persons are not built upon Christ, their church
+state cannot; but upon the sand. Hence then it follows that only true
+believers are built on Christ, and so they are the only persons that
+Christ wishes to have built up into holy temples; because the churches
+that Christ builds shall be built upon himself, that they may stand
+impregnable against all opposition: and therefore they should only be
+composed of such as are united to him by faith, and have chosen him for
+their only rock and foundation, and not of such as do secretly reject
+him.
+
+_Quest_. What qualifications should believers find in themselves for
+their own satisfaction, before they enter into full communion with the
+visible Church of Christ?
+
+_Ans_. They should be able to answer the following questions in the
+affirmative.
+
+I. Can you say indeed that you do seriously and heartily desire to see,
+and to be more deeply and powerfully convinced of your own vileness and
+sinfulness, of your own weakness and wretchedness, and of your wants and
+unworthiness? and that, in order to your deep and spiritual humiliation
+and self-debasing, that you may be more vile in your own eyes, and Jesus
+Christ and free grace more precious and excellent, more high and
+honorable, and more sweet and desirable, that your hearts may be melted
+into godly sorrow, and that you may be moved thereby to abhor
+yourselves, and to repent in dust and ashes? Job xlii. 5, 6.
+
+II. Can you say that you do seriously and heartily desire and endeavor
+to believe in Christ, and to receive and accept of him in the gospel
+way, such as you find in Mark viii. 34; Luke xiv. 26-28, and elsewhere?
+Do you thus desire and choose to have him with his yoke and cross? Matt.
+xi. 28, 29. And do you so deny yourselves, and your sinful self,
+righteous self, worldly self, supposed able, powerful self, and every
+other carnal and spiritual self, that Christ only may be exalted, that
+you may be nothing in your justification and salvation, but that Jesus
+Christ and free grace may be all, and in all things? Col. iii. 11; Phil.
+iii. 7, 8. Do you desire, choose, and endeavor to have Christ on the
+hardest terms; and do you desire, that all may go for Christ's person,
+blood, and righteousness, his grace, love, life, and Spirit, for the
+pardon of your sins, and the justification of your persons, that you may
+be found in him, not having your own righteousness, but the
+righteousness of Christ by faith? Phil. iii. 9. And do you go and
+present yourselves as destitute condemned sinners to him, and to God the
+Father in and by him, that you may be clothed with the righteousness of
+Christ, and that God may pardon, justify, and accept you for his sake
+only?
+
+III. Do you seriously and heartily desire and choose to have Christ
+Jesus for your Lord and Ruler too, Col. ii. 6; that he may rule in you,
+and over you, and that your lusts and yourselves, your interests, and
+your all, may be subject unto him, and be wholly at his command and
+disposal continually? Is Christ the Lord as acceptable to you as Christ
+Jesus the Saviour? and are you willing to obey him, and to be subject to
+his authority and dominion, as well as to be saved by him? Would you
+have him to destroy your lusts, to make an end of sin, and to bring all
+under his obedience?
+
+IV. Do you seriously and heartily desire and endeavor never to sin more;
+but to walk with God unto all well-pleasing continually? Col. i. 10. And
+do you pray earnestly that God would work in you that which is
+well-pleasing in his sight, Heb. xiii. 21, that you may in all your ways
+honor and glorify him, as the end of your living in this world? 2 Cor.
+v. 15. Would you indeed live to the praise of his glorious grace, be an
+ornament unto his name and gospel, and be fruitful in every good word
+and work? Are these things the scope, aim, and intent of your hearts and
+souls (in some good measure and degree) daily, in duties and ordinances,
+and at other times?
+
+V. Do you seriously and heartily choose and desire communion with
+Christ, and in truth endeavor to obtain and keep it? Do you so seek for
+it in the way of gospel obedience, and in observing your duty in keeping
+Christ's commandments? And do you prefer it to all earthly, carnal
+things? Do your hearts breathe and pant after it, and are you willing to
+deny self, and all self-interests to get it? Are you glad when you find
+it, and sad when by your own carelessness you lose it? Doth it when
+obtained quicken your love to and zeal for Christ? Doth it warm your
+hearts, and cause them for a time to run your race in gospel obedience
+cheerfully? Doth it lead you unto, and cause your hearts to centre in
+Christ? and doth it oblige and bind them faster unto him and stir you up
+to thankfulness?
+
+VI. Do you sincerely and heartily desire, seriously choose, and
+earnestly endeavor, to be filled with gospel sincerity towards God and
+man, and would you rather be true-hearted towards God than seem to be so
+towards man? Would you much rather have the praise of God, and be
+approved of by him, than the praise of men, and be extolled by them? Is
+it the great thing you aim at, in your profession and practice, to
+attain sincerity and uprightness in heart? Is all hypocrisy hateful and
+abominable unto you? Are you afraid of it, and do you watch and strive
+against it, as against an enemy to God and your own souls, and are you
+grieved indeed when you find it in you?
+
+VII. Do you desire and choose Jesus Christ for the great object of your
+love, delight, and joy? and do you find him to be so in some measure? Do
+you desire and endeavor to make him the object of your warmest
+affections, and to love him sincerely, heartily, spiritually, fervently,
+and constantly; and do you express your love to him by keeping his
+commandments? Are you grieved in spirit, because you can love him no
+more? and do you earnestly pray unto him to shed abroad his love into
+your hearts by the Holy Ghost, that you may love him as ye ought? Rom.
+v. 5. Doth his love and loveliness attract your hearts to him, and cause
+you to yield the obedience of faith to his holy laws?
+
+VIII. Is it the desire, choice, and endeavor of your souls to have all
+sins purged out of them, and to have them filled with Christ's grace,
+truth, and holiness; and do you hate your sin, watch and fight against
+it, and endeavor to keep it under? Do you indeed aim at, desire, labor,
+and strive, to be holy in heart and life, and conformable unto Jesus
+Christ in all things possible? Are your lusts your heaviest burdens and
+your greatest afflictions, and do you intend and endeavor their utter
+ruin and destruction? Will no degree of grace satisfy you until you be
+perfect to the utmost as Christ is? Are you so much concerned for
+Christ's honor, and your soul's holiness and happiness, that you dare
+not knowingly sin against them for a world; or do, in word or deed, by
+omission or commission, that which may dishonor, grieve, or wound them?
+Are these things so indeed?
+
+IX. Have you a measure of spiritual knowledge and discerning of
+spiritual things? Do you understand the nature and concerns of the house
+of God, and the work and duties, the privileges and enjoyments thereof,
+and what you have to do there; together with the ends of God in
+instituting and erecting gospel churches?
+
+X. Do you intend and resolve, in the light, life, and power of Christ,
+to seek for, and endeavor unfeignedly to obtain, and prosecute the ends
+of church fellowship, when you shall he accepted among them? and do you
+desire and aim at the holy ends appointed by God in desiring communion
+with them? as, 1. To enjoy God and communion with him in all his
+ordinances. 2. To worship God there in spirit and truth, and to give him
+your homage and service in his house. 3. To show your subjection and
+obedience to him, and to make a public and open profession of him, and
+of his truths before men. 4. To receive of his grace, to enrich your
+souls with his fulness, and to be sealed by his Spirit unto the day of
+your redemption. 5. That you may walk orderly and beautifully, and shine
+as lights in the Church, and in the world, before saints and sinners. 6.
+That you may be established in the truth, live under the watch and care
+of Christ's ministers, and of fellow-members; that by their inspection
+and faithful dealings with you you may be kept, or brought back from sin
+to God, by their wise reproofs and holy instructions. 7. That you may
+yield up yourselves in holy obedience to Christ, and do all things
+whatsoever he commands you, that you may have the right use and
+enjoyment of all your purchased privileges, and be secured against the
+gates of hell. Are these and such like ends in your hearts and minds, in
+your walk and in church fellowship, and can you find the forementioned
+signs of grace in you in some suitable measure, though not so clearly
+and fully as you would wish? Then I may venture to assure you, that you
+are qualified for being actual members of the Church of Christ, that you
+are called and invited into his house, and that you are indispensably
+bound to answer to the call of God, and to enter into his holy temple.
+
+I say that church privileges are yours, the doors of God's house stand
+open for you, Christ stands at the door and waits for you, he invites
+you to come in and to sit down at his table, and you shall be most
+freely and heartily welcome to your Lord, and to his people.
+
+_Quest_. What are those qualifications, which the rulers of a church,
+for their own satisfaction, should look for, and find in such persons,
+as they admit into full communion with the Church of Christ?
+
+_Ans_. It is certain that all that profess the name of Christ and his
+ways, ought not, and may not be admitted into the Lord's holy temple,
+because many, if not the most of them, are very ignorant of Christ and
+his ways, and notoriously scandalous in their lives, as sad and woful
+experience shows. If church rulers should admit known hypocrites, they
+betray their trust, and defile Christ's holy temple, by taking in such
+persons as they know, or ought to know, he would not have there: and
+that they ought to try and prove persons, that they may know their
+fitness, before they admit them in, is clear in Acts ix. 26, 27, and
+because Christ hath committed the keys of his house to take in and
+exclude according to his will and appointment.
+
+As to satisfying qualifications in persons desiring admission into the
+church, when they appear to be real sound-hearted believers, according
+to the judgment of charity, by the rules of the word, the church ought
+to receive them in the Lord.
+
+I. If they can satisfy the church, by giving Scripture evidence of their
+regeneration, conversion, repentance, and faith in Christ; of their
+knowledge of Christ, his laws and ordinances; of their lost and
+perishing state by reason of sin, and of their sincere desires and
+resolutions to become the Lord's, and to walk with him unto all
+well-pleasing in all his ways.
+
+II. If they are sound in the faith of the gospel; I mean in the chief
+and principal doctrines thereof, although they may be ignorant of, or
+mistaken in matters of less importance. If they have some distinct
+knowledge and faith concerning these, and other such truths and matters
+contained in the word of God; as of the state and condition in which man
+was at first created; how he lost that holy and blessed estate, and the
+misery into which he brought himself and all his posterity thereby.
+Concerning themselves, that they are by nature children of wrath, dead
+in trespasses and sins, and condemned to eternal death; that they are
+enemies to, and at enmity with, God; that they have neither will nor
+power by nature to will and to do that which they ought, and which is
+well-pleasing to God; that they have forsaken God, and are under the
+curse of the law; and that they are the children, subjects, and servants
+of the devil, the world, and their own lusts; that God left not all men
+in this lost state and condition, but provided an all-sufficient remedy,
+namely, Jesus Christ, and that by an everlasting covenant, entered into
+with him, in the behalf of men, before the foundation of the world, Tit.
+i. 2; 2 Tim. i. 9; Prov. viii.: and that, in pursuance thereof, he
+elected and gave some to Christ, that he might save them out of his mere
+grace and love. John vi. 37, 40:--That God the Father gave and sent his
+Son, the second person of the Trinity, to mediate peace between God
+and man, and to reconcile them to God, by his active and passive
+obedience;--that Jesus Christ gave himself, and became a propitiation
+for their sins;--that he assumed our nature into a personal union with
+himself, whereby there are two natures in one person, by which he was
+made capable of his mediatorship;--that he, being God and man in one
+person, took upon himself our guilt and punishment, obeyed the whole law
+of God, that men had broke, and did always the things that pleased
+God;--that, when he had finished his active obedience, he became
+obedient unto the death of the cross, to the wrath of God, and to the
+curse of the law, Gal. iii. 13; Phil. ii. 8;--that he really died and
+was buried, lay in the grave, and rose again the third day; and after
+forty days he ascended into heaven, and sat down at the right hand of
+God; and that he will come again to judge the quick and the dead;--that
+he is king, priest, and prophet; a king to give laws unto men, and to
+command their obedience to him, to rule and govern his subjects, and to
+reward the obedient, and to punish the disobedient;--that all power in
+heaven and earth is committed unto him; and that he is coequally and
+coeternally God with the Father and Holy Spirit;--that as a High Priest
+he died and made atonement for the sins of his people, and sits in
+heaven to make intercession, and to appear in the presence of God for
+them, Heb. vii. 25, and ix. 24;--that there are three persons in the
+Godhead, yet but one God;--that the Holy Ghost is eternally God, was
+sent into the world, and came from the Father and Son, for the elect's
+sake;--that it is he that regenerates persons, works effectually in
+their hearts, applies Jesus Christ and all his benefits to men, and
+savingly convinces his elect of sin, righteousness, and judgment. That
+all that rightly believe in Christ shall be saved, but those that
+believe not shall be damned; and that all that believe in him must be
+careful to perform good works. That believers are made righteous,
+through the righteousness of Jesus Christ, and that they have none of
+their own to commend them unto God. That God hath made Jesus Christ unto
+his chosen, wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption; and
+that they are made the righteousness of God in him. That God imputed
+their sins to Christ, and imputes the blood and righteousness of Christ
+to them; and that they are justified thereby, and not by inherent
+holiness and righteousness. That God loves, pardons, justifies, and
+saves men _freely_, without any respect unto their good works, as any
+cause thereof; but that all the moving cause (without himself) is Jesus
+Christ in his mediation. That the ground and reason of their obedience,
+in performing good works, is the revealed will and pleasure of Christ
+commanding them, and the ends of them are to express their thankfulness
+to God for his grace and love, to please and honor him, to meet with
+God, and to enjoy communion with him, to receive of his grace and the
+good of many promises; to shine as lights in the world, and to be useful
+unto men; to declare whose and what they are, and to lay up a reward in
+another world; to keep their lusts under, and their graces in use and
+exercise; and to manifest their respect and subjection to Jesus Christ,
+his authority, and law. That the law, for the matter of it, as in the
+hand of Christ, is the rule of all obedience; and that all are bound to
+yield subjection to it. That there shall be a resurrection of the just
+and unjust. That regeneration is absolutely necessary to salvation, and
+that without it none can enter into the kingdom of heaven. That the
+Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments contain, and exhibit unto men,
+the whole revealed will of God, and are sufficient to make the man of
+God perfect, thoroughly furnished unto every good work; and that
+whatsoever they are to believe and do is contained therein; and that it
+is the ground of their faith, hope, and practice. That Jesus Christ hath
+instituted and appointed many ordinances of worship, for his own glory
+and his people's good, and that all are bound to observe and to wait on
+God in them. That all persons are indispensably bound to mind, and
+carefully to observe the principal manner and end of all their duties,
+and to see that they be right, holy, and spiritual indeed, and not to
+please themselves with the matter of them alone. That no man can serve
+God, or do any work acceptable unto him, until he be regenerated, and
+brought into a state of grace.
+
+These are some of the matters of faith that they should in some measure
+be acquainted with and believe, that are admitted into full communion
+with the Church of Christ. And these and other truths must not be known
+and believed in a general, notional, light, and speculative manner; but
+heartily, powerfully, and particularly: not for others, but for
+themselves; otherwise their faith and knowledge will no way profit their
+souls to salvation.
+
+III. They must be qualified also with a blameless conversation. Their
+conversation must be as becometh the gospel, otherwise they are not meet
+for communion with the gospel church. Carnal walking will not suit
+spiritual temples: for they will greatly pollute and defile them, and
+stain and obscure their beauty and glory. Therefore they must not be
+brawlers and contentious persons, covetous and worldly-minded, vain and
+frothy. They must not be froward and peevish, nor defraud others of
+their right. Nor must they neglect the worship of God in their families,
+nor be careless in governing and educating them in good manners, and in
+the things of God. They must not be such as are known to omit the
+duties and ordinances of religion in their proper seasons, or to have
+vicious families through their neglect: nor to have any other kind of
+conversation hateful to God and to his people. And therefore, whatever
+their profession be, they may not be admitted into the Church of God,
+until they have repented of these, or any other scandal in their life
+and conduct.
+
+IV. They ought to be such as have chosen the Lord Jesus Christ for their
+king and head, and dedicated and devoted themselves to him, to live in
+him and for him: such as have singled him out, and set him apart, (as it
+were,) to be the object of their love, trust, and delight, of their
+service and obedience. They must have chosen and closed with him upon
+his own terms, (i.e. _freely_,) renouncing and rejecting all their own
+righteousness, worthiness, interest, and sufficiency, and choosing and
+appropriating him to themselves, for their righteousness, worthiness,
+portion, and sufficiency, under a sight and conviction of their own
+emptiness and deformity; and with a heart-satisfied persuasion of the
+loveliness and fulness of Christ.
+
+V. All this must be done seriously, humbly, and heartily, so far as men
+can judge. If persons declare their knowledge of God and faith in Christ
+in such a manner, and apparently by such a spirit as evidences some
+sense and feeling of what they do declare, church rulers may be much
+helped in forming a right judgment of them, that they are fitted by God
+for church-membership. If they do seriously profess, that what they do
+is in obedience to the will, and, as they judge, to the call of Christ
+as their indispensable duty;--that they join in church fellowship to
+meet with and enjoy God, to receive out of his fulness to enable them to
+perform all duties, and to conform their hearts and lives in his will to
+all things;--such persons may undoubtedly be accounted worthy members,
+and admitted as such.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of church members towards one another?
+
+_Ans_. I. The greatest is love; love and spiritual affections are the
+holy cords which tie the hearts, souls, and judgments of believers
+together. This is that which, together with the fear of God, makes them
+avoid all things that may give just offence or grief to one another, and
+that which provokes them to follow after the things that make for peace
+and edification. Love is the bond of peace. It is that which, together
+with divine light and truth, causes church members to draw together as
+in one yoke, and unanimously as with one heart and soul to design, aim
+at, and carry on mutual and common good in the church. Without this they
+cannot, they will not cement, nor long abide and live together as a
+church, in peace and unity, nor promote any good work among themselves.
+Without heart-uniting love they will receive and entertain jealousies
+and suspicions one of another, and put the worst construction on
+whatever is said or done; and they cannot walk together comfortably and
+profitably when these are entertained. Therefore it is absolutely
+necessary for all church members to be firmly united in cordial love and
+charity, which is the bond of perfectness to and in all other duties.
+God highly commends and strictly commands this love one to another, and
+puts it into the heart of his peculiar people, that they may do what he
+commands.
+
+1. God highly commends it wherever he finds it in act and exercise; 1
+Thess. iv. 10, "and indeed," says he, "ye do it towards all the
+brethren." To this duty, and to manifest his high approbation of it, God
+hath promised a great reward, Heb. vi. 10.
+
+2. God commands it and vehemently exhorts to it often in the gospel. Oh
+how importunately did the Lord Jesus enjoin it, and frequently press it
+on his disciples when he was on earth! John xiii. 34, "A new commandment
+give I unto you." What is that new commandment? Why, "That ye love one
+another, as I have loved you, that ye also love one another." And in
+John xv. 12, 17, "This is my commandment, that ye love one another, as I
+have loved you;" i.e. Take the pattern of my love to you for your
+pattern in loving one another. I have loved and will love you--1. With
+_great_ love, John xv. 13: so do you likewise. 2. My love to you is
+_free_, without any desert in you: let yours be free, without carnal
+respects one to another also. 3. My love to you is _real, hearty_, and
+_unfeigned_: so let yours be one to another, 1 Pet. i. 22. 4. My love to
+you is an exceeding _fruitful love_. I loved you so, as to labor, toil,
+sweat, and die for you: so must you love one another with a fruitful,
+profiting love. 5. My love to you is a _pitying, sparing, and forgiving
+love; a forbearing and tender-hearted love_: so must you be to one
+another, Col. iii. 12, 13. 6. I love you with a _warm and fervent love_:
+so do you love one another. 7. I love with a _holy, spiritual love_, as
+new men who have my image stamped on, and my holy nature in you, and as
+you are made perfect by the comeliness and beauty I have put on you: so
+do you love one another, because you are a lovely and holy people unto
+me. 8. I love you with a _constant and unchangeable love_;
+notwithstanding of all your weaknesses, yea, unkindness too, and
+unworthy walkings before me: thus you are bound to love one another.
+
+O that church members and all other Christians would seriously,
+sincerely, diligently, and constantly mind and practise this grand and
+indispensable duty to one another, in all their ways and actions, and
+not lay it aside as a little, useless, or indifferent matter, which they
+may neglect at their own will and pleasure.
+
+2. As we are indispensably bound to love one another; so we are as
+absolutely and perfectly bound to walk in a loving and encouraging
+manner towards one another. Our behavior ought to be such in all things,
+as to invite all to love us, as holy, humble, and blameless saints, and
+brethren in Christ. The Lord Jesus expects church members to walk
+lovingly towards one another, as well as to love one another. They
+ought, therefore, as much as possible, to provoke and encourage each
+other, and to remove out of the way of love all such stumbling-blocks as
+may any way hinder it, as we cannot love a sour, peevish, contentious,
+and cross-grained professor, with as much complacency as a meek, quiet,
+humble, affable, and courteous one.
+
+3. Christ hath charged and strictly commanded all church members to live
+in peace: to be at peace among themselves; to follow peace with all men,
+and as much as in them lieth to live peaceably with all men. O how
+often, and with what vehemency doth the Holy Ghost press and enjoin this
+duty, especially among church members, in the Holy Scriptures! See Psal.
+xxxiv. 14; 1 Pet. iii. 11; Rom xiv. 19; 2 Cor. xiii. 11; 1 Thess. v. 13;
+Heb. xii. 14; Eph. v. 3. The apostle Paul earnestly warns church members
+against all debates, strifes, and contentions one with another,
+especially in their church meetings, Phil. ii. 3. David tells us, that
+it is a most pleasant and lovely thing for brethren to dwell together in
+unity, Psal. cxxxiii. 1, 2. Then how much more pleasant and lovely is it
+for spiritual brethren to love and worship God in this manner together
+Christ came into the world and lived here a peace-maker, and pronounces
+them blessed that are so, Matt. v. 9. He is a lover of peace and
+concord, especially in his Church; but he is an implacable hater of
+strife and discord, and will not endure it therein: much less will he
+wink at such as are the first sowers of these seeds. The truth is,
+strivers and disputers in a church are the devil's agents, do a great
+deal of mischief to it, and are real plagues in it. They greatly hinder
+edification, and spoil the order, beauty, and harmony there: they are
+the proud, self-conceited men, who are vainly puffed up with high
+thoughts of themselves, and their own abilities, because they have got
+some speculative knowledge into their heads, with a volubility of
+speech, while they are destitute of spiritual wisdom and humility in
+their hearts; and therefore they conceive that they are wiser than the
+church, and more able to manage and order church affairs than their
+rulers. Their pride and self-conceit make them slight and contemn their
+teachers, and rise up in a rebellious contention with, and opposition
+unto them; as the prophet complains, Hos. iv. 4, _This people are they
+that strive with the priests_. Take heed then of strife and contention,
+and follow peace one with another, especially in your assembling
+together about the work of the church. Endeavor to get humble hearts,
+and then you will not be contentious, but quiet and peaceable.
+
+4. Church members ought to sympathize with, and to help to bear one
+another's burdens as need requires, Rom. xii. 15, 16; Gal. vi. 2. They
+ought to make their brethren's crosses, losses, temptations, and
+afflictions their own. And, when they need the helping hand of
+fellow-members to support or lift them up, when fallen, they must give
+it to them freely, readily, and cheerfully, and not turn a deaf ear to,
+nor hide their eyes from, them and their cries. And, if they are cruel
+to, or careless of, one another in affliction, our Lord Jesus will
+require it at their hands, and lake it as done to himself. Therefore,
+seeing it is the will of God, and our indispensable duty to one another,
+who are members of the church, let us put on bowels of mercies and
+kindness, Col. iii. 12, and be tender-hearted, pitiful, and courteous to
+each other, Eph. iv. 32; 1 Pet. iii. 8.
+
+5. Church members ought to exhort and comfort one another, for so is the
+will of God concerning them. This is not only their teacher's duty and
+work, but theirs also to each other, Heb. x. 24, 25; Heb. iii. 13; 1
+Thess. v. 14. Christians stand in continual need of one another's
+exhortations and consolations; and if they manage this work well they
+may be very useful and profitable to one another, and may help to
+awaken, quicken, and provoke one another, to the love and practice of
+holiness.
+
+6. It is the will of the Lord Jesus Christ, the Church's head, that her
+members should be each other's keepers; that they should watch over one
+another, and admonish and reprove one another, as need requires. It is
+not meant, that they should pry into one another's secrets, or be
+busybodies in other men's matters, but that they should watch over one
+another's life and conversation, that if they do well they may be
+encouraged; if ill, that they may, by counsel, reproof, instruction, and
+exhortation, be brought to a real sight and sense of their misconduct,
+and to unfeigned repentance. By which good work, you will do them, the
+church, yea, Christ himself, good and acceptable service. Church members
+should carefully observe, if all do keep close to their duty in the
+church, or are remiss and negligent;--if they conduct themselves in a
+holy, righteous, and sober way; or if, on the contrary, they are frothy,
+vain, proud, extravagant, unjust, idle, careless, or any way scandalous.
+They should strictly observe if there be any tattlers, backbiters, or
+sowers of discord; or such as speak contemptibly of their brethren,
+especially of their elders, (ruling or preaching,) and of their
+administrations: as also, if there be any such as combine together, and
+make parties in the church, or endeavor to obstruct any good work which
+their elders are carrying on, for promoting the glory of Christ and the
+good of his people, and deal with them accordingly. They ought carefully
+to observe if any be fallen under sin or temptation in any case, and
+presently to set their hands to help, to relieve, and to restore them,
+Rev. vi. 1. They must watch, and endeavor to gain a sinning member, 1.
+By their private admonition, in case the offence be private; and if that
+will not do, to take one or two more to see what effect that will have.
+2. But if that will not answer the end, then they are bound to bring it
+to the church representative, that they may deal with the offending
+brother, and proceed against him as commanded: This is another great and
+indispensable duty required of church members, that they be not
+partakers of other men's sins.
+
+7. Church members ought to forbear and forgive one another; for this is
+another commanded duty, Eph. iv. 2, 32; Col. iii. 13. When a brother
+offends or does another any injury, the offended brother should tell him
+of it, examine the matter and search out the circumstances of it, and
+see whether he did it unadvisedly, through weakness or ignorance; or
+whether he did it wilfully and knowingly. If upon an impartial search he
+is found to have wronged his brother through ignorance or weakness, he
+must judge charitably of him, and not be harsh and severe towards him,
+in his carriage or censure. But if it clearly appear, upon impartial
+inquiry, that he did the injury knowingly and wilfully, then the
+offended brother must deal with him as a wilful transgressor. He must
+lay his sin before him, and show him what laws he hath transgressed;
+what evil he hath done him, what wrong to his own soul, and what offence
+he hath done to Christ, by breaking his holy laws. He must admonish him
+again and again of his sin, and reprove him, but not too severely, until
+he find him obstinate and stubborn. And if God convince him of his sin,
+and give him repentance unto life, he must readily forgive him. And, if
+he be once truly convinced of, and humbled for, his sin, he will most
+fully confess it to his brother, as well as to God, and endeavor to make
+him amends, and give him all possible satisfaction for the injury he
+hath done him, most freely and willingly: for it is a certain sign that
+a person is not powerfully and savingly convinced of, and humbled for,
+his sin, while he bears off, and must be sought after to make
+satisfaction to such as he hath wronged; because were his heart really
+melted into the will of God, he could not be quiet, until he have given
+all possible satisfaction to his brother whom he has injured, Luke xix.
+8. But in case he remain obstinate, and will not hearken to reproof,
+then the offended brother should take one or two more and deal with him;
+and if that will not do, he ought to bring it to the church
+representative, i.e. the elders of the church, that they may see what
+they can do with him. But if they cannot prevail on him to repent and to
+make satisfaction, then he ought to be cast out of the communion of the
+church, Matt, xviii. 17.
+
+8. It is the indispensable duty of church members to hearken to and
+receive instruction, admonition, and reproof from one another. For if
+some are indispensably bound at certain times to give them, surely
+others who need them are as much bound to receive them, Prov. viii. 33,
+x. 17, and xxix. 1. These are bound to hearken to their brethren's
+reproofs, counsels, and admonitions, with all humility, patience, and
+freedom of spirit, with all love, meekness, and thankfulness to God, and
+to the givers of them: for they are great mercies to such as need them,
+and they are their real and profitable friends, who seek their good, and
+endeavor to prevent their destruction. Let it therefore never be said
+justly of any of you that are church members, that you were reproved and
+admonished of any known sin by a brother, and that you refused and
+slighted their counsel or reproof, justified yourselves in your sins,
+and were displeased with or angry at such as admonished you, and did
+their indispensable duty to you, under your sin, for your salvation.
+
+9. Church members ought to pray for one another, and that with a real
+love, fervency, and importunity, as they do for themselves, James v. 16.
+O with what serious minds and strong affections should all church
+members pray for one another! They should be much in building up one
+another, and praying in the Holy Ghost one for another, Jude 20. They
+should carry one another in their hearts at the throne of grace,
+especially such as are under affliction, the whole Church in general,
+and her teachers in particular, Heb. xiii. 18, and wrestle with God for
+them; for they have the spirit of prayer given them, and audience and
+interest in heaven, for others, as well as for themselves.
+
+10. Church members should often meet together for prayer and holy
+conversation, by two or three or more, as they may have opportunity.
+This was wont to be the commendable practice of our forefathers, when
+Christ, duty, heaven, and religion lay warmer on their hearts than now
+they do; and this is still the practice of some, that are now alive. God
+hath promised his glorious teaching, and his warming, strengthening,
+sanctifying, and comforting presence to such as do so, Matt, xviii. 20.
+Church members find time enough to visit one another, and meet together
+to tell some idle stories, to tattle about other men's matters, which
+do not concern them, and perhaps to _backbite_ some of their brethren,
+and to prejudice the minds of persons against their teachers and their
+work, if they do not please them. And will not such meetings have
+bitterness in the end? Is it not great iniquity for Christians to tempt
+one another to sin, and to wrong their own souls, by misspending that
+precious time which they might have employed in the service of God, and
+one another's spiritual profit. Men and women were wont to discourse
+often of the things of God and their experiences one to another, Mal.
+iii. 16. But, alas! few persons are now to be found, who can find time
+and inclination for such an exercise. And the reason seems to be, that
+most are great strangers to God and to themselves, and are so much
+intoxicated with the things of this world, that they will not attend
+with any pleasure unto the spiritual duties of religion.
+
+11. Church members ought to encourage one another by their example, to
+attend regularly on the public ordinances of God's worship in his
+church. Whenever the church meets for the celebration of the worship of
+God, all her members are bound to meet together at the appointed time,
+except in extraordinary cases; otherwise good order cannot be kept, and
+the public duties performed, for the glory of God, and the edification
+of the church. By church members wilfully or carelessly absenting
+themselves at the time of meeting, they give an evil example to others,
+tempt them to do the like, and cast a stumbling-block in the way of
+their duty, Heb. x. 25.
+
+12. Church members must be charitable to the poor that are among them,
+and freely contribute to them according to their ability and _their_
+necessity. They are indispensably bound to impart their help and
+assistance to the poor, and to give them a little of their estates. It
+is a debt which they owe to God, and a duty to them. They will comfort
+them thereby; but they will much more profit themselves than them. It is
+a more blessed thing to give than to receive. Wealthy persons are
+stewards for the poor, and a part of what God hath given those was
+designed for these, 1 Pet. iv. 10, and therefore, says God, Deut. xv. 7,
+8, "Thou shalt not shut thine hand from thy poor brother, but shalt open
+it wide unto him." The rich must not only give to keep the poor alive in
+misery, but make comfortable provisions for them, that they may have
+enough to keep them from the temptations of poverty and pressing wants,
+and to fit them for, and encourage them in, their work and duty, to God
+and man.
+
+13. Church members ought carefully, watchfully, diligently, and
+conscientiously to beware of and avoid whatever may give any just
+offence or scandal to one another. For we are charged to "give none
+offence neither to Jew nor Gentile, nor to the Church of God," 1 Cor. x.
+32. And our Saviour tells us, that "wo to them by whom the offence
+cometh," Matt, xviii. 7.
+
+You must take heed of such evils as the following, and avoid them,
+because they all carry scandal in their nature to your own and others'
+souls: as, 1. Proud, disdainful, and haughty words conduct, and
+conversation; for these are grievous and provoking evils, which will
+justly offend all the observers of them. 2. Sullen, sour, and churlish
+language and behavior, which is offensive unto all sorts of persons; for
+this is an evil altogether unbecoming the followers of Jesus Christ. 3.
+A cross, captious, and contradictive spirit and conduct, delighting in
+opposition to the judgment of the church and her rulers. This is very
+scandalous to the brethren, and very reproachful unto themselves. 4.
+Speaking evil of one another behind their backs; backbiting or
+publishing their real or supposed evils, before they have been spoken to
+in secret. 5. Speaking lightly or contemptibly of one another, either to
+themselves or to others in their absence, as few men can bear patiently
+to be despised by the slighting carriages of their brethren. 6. Vain,
+foolish, and frothy discourses, which are very offensive to gracious
+saints. 7. Earthly-mindedness and greedy pursuits after worldly things;
+for as these are offensive to God, and hurtful to the soul, so they are
+offensive to saints. 8. Strife and contention among brethren, and
+grudging or envying one another's prosperity; as these produce many evil
+and wicked fruits, and cast blame upon the providence of God, who
+bestows his mercies as he will. 9. Defrauding and breaking promises.
+Contracting debts and unduly delaying or refusing to pay them, and
+disappointing men of their just expectations in virtue of promises made
+to them. Those also are scandalous, and cause the name of God to be evil
+spoken of. 10. Entering into a marriage relation with such as are
+apparently in an unbelieving, carnal, and unconverted state and
+condition; for this also is very offensive to holy serious men, although
+many make very light of it. 11. Idleness and slothfulness in your
+external calling, neglecting to provide for your own house, as that will
+prove a scandalous sin to others and to yourselves too. 12. Taking up a
+report rashly against one another of a scandalous nature, giving ear
+unto tattlers, and busybodies; or being busybodies in other men's
+matters yourselves, as this will give great offence.
+
+
+
+
+NO. II.[122]
+
+
+_Quest_. Who have a right to preach the gospel and dispense the public
+ordinances of religion?
+
+_Ans_. Without some proper furniture, it is absurd to imagine any should
+be sent of God to the ministerial work. When the ascended Jesus gave to
+the church apostles, evangelists; pastors and teachers, he gave gifts to
+men. _Who_, saith he, _goeth at, any time a warfare on his own charges?_
+What is the furniture, the qualifications prerequisite, according to the
+Holy Scriptures? A blameless conversation, a good report; experience of
+the self-debasing work of the Spirit of God; compassion to the souls of
+men; a fixedness in the Christian doctrines; a disposition faithfully to
+perform his vows; an aptness to teach the ignorant, and convince
+gainsayers. Knowledge of languages, knowledge of the history and
+sciences of this world, are useful handmaids to assist us in the study
+of divine things. To preach from the oracles of God, without capacity to
+peruse the original, especially if versant in romances and plays, we
+abhor and detest. This aptness to teach, however, consists not chiefly
+in any of these, but in a capacity to conceive spiritual things, and
+with some distinctness to express their conceptions to the edification
+of others, in that energy and life, whereby one, as affected himself,
+declares the truths of God, in a simple, serious, bold, and
+conscience-touching manner. The difference of this, from human
+eloquence, loud bawling, and theatrical action, is evident. These may
+touch the passions, and not affect the conscience: they may procure
+esteem to the preacher, none to Christ. These are the product of natural
+art: this the distinguished gift of God, without which, in a certain
+degree, none can have evidence that he was divinely sent to minister the
+gospel of Christ.
+
+No appearance of furniture, real or pretended, can warrant a man's
+exercising of the ministry, unless he have a regular call. That _all may
+prophesy one by one_ is indeed hinted in the sacred records: but there
+it is evident inspiration treats of what pertains to extraordinary
+officers in the church; hence there is mentioned _the gift of tongues_,
+extraordinary _psalms, revelations_: the _all_ that might prophesy are,
+therefore, not _all_ the members of the church; not _women_, who are
+forbid to speak in the church; but _all_ the extraordinary officers
+called prophets, 1 Cor. xiv. 31. The _all_ that were scattered abroad
+from Jerusalem, and _went about preaching the gospel_, Acts viii. 2,
+could not be _all_ the believers; for there remained at Jerusalem a
+church of believers for Saul to make havoc of. It must therefore have
+been _all_ the preachers, besides the apostles. To strengthen this, let
+it be observed, that the word here rendered _preaching_ is nowhere in
+Scripture referred to one out of office: that every one of this
+dispersion, we afterward hear of, are represented as evangelists,
+pastors, or teachers, Acts ix. 1, 11, 19, and xiii. 1. Parents and
+masters convey the same instruction that ministers do; but with a
+different authority: not as ministers of Christ, or officers in his
+Church. If other gifts or saintship entitled to preach the gospel, wo
+would be unto every gifted person, every saint, that did not preach it.
+If our adored Redeemer refused the work of a civil judge because not
+humanly vested with such power, will he allow his followers to exercise
+an office far more important, without any regular call? His oracles
+distinguish between the mission of persons, and their gifts, sometimes
+called a receiving of the Holy Ghost, John xx. 21, 23.
+
+To render the point incontestably evident, he demands, how men shall
+preach _except they be sent_? declares, that _no man_ rightly _taketh
+this honor to himself but he that is called of God, as was Aaron_. "I
+sent them not, therefore they shall not profit this people at all, saith
+the Lord." The characters divinely affixed to ministers, preachers, or
+heralds, ambassadors, stewards, watchmen, angels, messengers, brightly
+mark their call and commission to their work. The inspired rules for the
+qualifications, the election, the ordination of ministers, are divinely
+charged to be kept till _the day_, the second coming _of Jesus Christ_.
+For intermeddling with the sacred business without a regular call, has
+the Almighty severely punished numbers of men. Witness the destruction
+of Korah and his company; the rejection of Saul; and the death of Uzza;
+the leprosy of Uriah; the disaster of the sons of Sceva, &c., Num. xvi.;
+1 Sam. xiii.; 1 Chron. xiii.; 2 Chron. xxvi.; Acts xix.
+
+To rush into it, if gifted, or to imagine we are so, at our own hand,
+introduces the wildest disorder, and the most shocking errors: it did so
+at Antioch, and the places adjacent, where some falsely pretended a
+mission from the apostles. This, too, was its effect with the German
+anabaptists, and with the sectaries of England. Aversion at manual work,
+pride of abilities, a disturbed imagination, a carnal project to promote
+self, prompts the man to be preacher. Such ultroneous rushing is
+inconsistent with the deep impression of the charge, and the care to
+manifest their mission, everywhere in Scripture obvious in the ministers
+of Christ. However sound his doctrine, great his abilities, warm his
+address, where is the promise of God's especial presence, protection,
+or success, to the ultroneous preacher? Where is his conduct commanded,
+commended, or unmarked with wrath, exemplified in the sacred words? How
+then can the preaching, or our hearing, of such, be in faith? How can it
+be acceptable to God, or profitable to ourselves? For _whatsoever is not
+of faith is sin_. Falsely this preacher pretends a mission from Christ:
+wickedly, he usurps an authority over his Church: rebelliously he
+deserts his own calling, and attempts to make void the office his
+Saviour has appointed; to frustrate the dispensation of the gospel
+committed to his faithful ambassadors. For how can they fulfil their
+ministry, if others take the work out of their hand? How can they
+_commit it to faithful men_, if, not waiting their commission, men rush
+into it at pleasure?
+
+In vain pleads the ultroneous preacher, that a particular mission to the
+office of preaching and dispensing the sacraments was only necessary,
+when the gospel was preached to the heathen. From age to age, it is _as
+new_, to children _as new_, to such as never heard it. Nor, when hinting
+the necessity of a mission, does the inspiring Spirit make any
+distinction, whether the gospel be newly dispensed or not. _What
+therefore God hath joined together, let no man put asunder_. In vain he
+pleads an immediate commission from God: in his infallible statutes,
+having fixed standing rules of vocation to the ministry, by the
+mediation of men, God gives us no command, no encouragement, to hope for
+an immediate call, till the end of time. Absurdly then we allow any to
+have such a call, till we see _the signs of an apostle wrought in him_.
+It is not sufficient he be sound in his doctrine, exemplarily holy in
+his life, active in his labors, disinterested in his aims, seeking not
+his own, but the honor of Christ, not his own carnal profit, but the
+spiritual welfare of men: every ordinary preacher is, or ought to be so.
+But, to this claimant of a mission uncommon, working of miracles, or
+such extraordinary credentials, must demonstrate he hath not run unsent.
+
+In vain the ultroneous preacher boasts of his feelings; his success; his
+moving his audience; his reforming their lives; as if these demonstrated
+his call from God. On earth, was ever delusion carried on without
+pretence to, or without appearances of these? Let them, who know the
+history of Popery, of Mahometanism, Quakerism, &c., say if they were.
+Who knows not, that the Pharisaic sect pretended far more strictness,
+far more devotion, than the family of Christ? Who knows not, that Satan
+may, and has oft _transformed_ himself _into an angel of light_; his
+ministers into the form of inspired apostles; and his influences, almost
+indiscernibly similar to those of the Spirit of Jesus Christ? Who knows
+not, how oft vain-glory, proud and falsely extolling of himself and
+party, in their number, their spiritual experience and high advances in
+holiness, mark the distinguished impostor? How oft his sermons are
+larded with these!
+
+No more tell us, if the sermon be good, you do not regard who preach it.
+If God has prescribed a method of call, has stated the qualifications of
+the candidate, has warned against preachers unsent, has oft marked their
+guilt with visible strokes of his wrath, be ashamed to talk at so
+arrogant, so careless a rate. Lay it not in the power of the
+Mesopotamian wizard! Lies it not in the power of a Romish Jesuit, nay,
+if permitted, of Beelzebub, for a time to preach to you many truths of
+the gospel, in the warmest strain, the loftiest language? Would you
+acknowledge the _three_ for honored ambassadors of Christ? Tell us not
+your preacher is wonderfully pious and good: perhaps you have only his
+own attestation; when better known he may be a drunkard, a swearer, a
+villain, for you. Suppose he were pious, so was Uzziah; yet it pertained
+not to him to execute the priest's office. Say not he is wonderfully
+gifted--speaks like _never man_: perhaps so was Korah, a man famous and
+of renown: such perhaps were the vagabond sons of Sceva. Say not his
+earnestness in his work marks his heavenly call: no, such were the
+Satanic exorcists just mentioned; such was Mahomet, the vilest impostor.
+To abolish the idolatry, and various other abominations of his country,
+he exposed himself to cruel reproach, to manifold hardship and hazard of
+life; about fourteen years almost unsuccessful he persevered in this
+difficult, but delusive attempt. What hunger, what cold, what torment
+and death have some Jesuitic and other antichristian missionaries
+undergone, to propagate the most ruining delusions of hell; all under
+the pretence of earnestness to gain sinners to Christ and his church.
+The Scripture, however, nowhere saith, how shall they preach except they
+be gracious? except they be gifted? except they be in earnest? But, _how
+shall they preach except they be sent_?
+
+
+
+
+NO. III.[123]
+
+_On the same subject--Who have a right to preach the gospel_?
+
+
+It is expressly enjoined in the word of God that we should earnestly
+contend for the faith once delivered to the saints. This faith includes
+all the ordinances, as well as all the doctrines of Christ; and it is no
+less our duty to contend for the former than for the latter. They have
+been equally opposed, and there is the same necessity why we should
+contend for both. Among the ordinances of Christ, the preaching of the
+gospel holds a principal place, and it hath accordingly, in all ages,
+met with considerable opposition. Like other ordinances, it hath been
+often grievously abused, and perverted to the most unworthy purposes. By
+many who would be esteemed the wise of the world, it is counted unworthy
+the attention of any but the vulgar: it has been called the foolishness
+of preaching. The infidels of our time, and some who, by attachment to
+the Arian and Socinian system, are in a progress to infidelity, cry it
+down as a human device or piece of craft. This need not, however,
+occasion any great surprise: the spirit of the world savoreth not the
+things that be of God, and the enemies of the truth naturally wish to
+have full scope to propagate their delusions. But it is matter of regret
+that the preaching of the gospel is, by many who attend upon it, too
+little regarded as an ordinance of Christ. And some of the professed
+friends of gospel doctrine so far mistake the nature and institution of
+preaching, as to engage in it without any other call than their own
+abundant zeal, and even to plead that all should do so who find
+themselves qualified. To show that such a sentiment and practice have no
+warrant from the word of God, the following observations are offered.
+
+I. The preaching of the gospel is an ordinance that Christ hath
+appointed for the gathering and edification of his Church; and, being a
+matter of positive institution, all that belongs to the administration
+of it can be learned only from the rules and approved examples recorded
+in the New Testament. It is not like those duties that are incumbent
+upon all, according to the opportunities they have in providence for the
+performance of them, and which, without any express commandment, could
+be urged upon Christians by the common principles of moral obligation,
+such as to teach and admonish one another. And because the obligation to
+such moral duties depends not upon positive institution, it must equally
+extend to all, and no person whatever can be free from it. But it is
+otherwise as to the preaching of the gospel, which is a positive
+institution of Christ; for it is a duty enjoined upon some only; yea,
+some are even absolutely prohibited from intermeddling in it, 1 Cor.
+xiv. 34; 1 Tim. ii. 12: and this could not be the case if it were a
+matter of common moral obligation. All arguments therefore taken from
+general principles, to prove the obligation that Christians are under to
+exert themselves for promoting the cause of religion, are to no purpose
+here, as they do not prove that the preaching of the gospel is one of
+those means that all are warranted to use.
+
+II. There is an instituted ministry of the ordinances of Christ unto his
+Church, by such ministers and office-bearers as he hath appointed. And
+the preaching of the gospel is frequently referred to as a principal
+part of that ministry. We read of a ministry of the word, Acts vi. 4; a
+ministry received of the Lord Jesus to testify the gospel of the grace
+of God, Acts xx. 24; a ministry of reconciliation, 2 Cor. v. 18; and a
+ministry into which some are put by the Lord Christ, 1 Tim. i. 12. This
+ministry is not left open to all the members of the church, in such a
+manner as that everyone who finds himself disposed, of supposes himself
+to be qualified, may engage in it as he finds opportunity; but
+office-bearers are appointed for it by the Lord Christ, Eph. iv. 11,12:
+"And he gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some evangelists, and
+some pastors and teachers, for the perfecting of the saints, for the
+work of the ministry, and for the edifying of the body of Christ." Some
+of these officers were extraordinary and temporary; they had an
+extraordinary call, and were endued with miraculous powers, which are
+now ceased: but the work of the ministry, and particularly the preaching
+of the gospel, is to continue to the end of the world, as appears from
+the promise given for the encouragement of those that are employed in
+it, Matt, xxviii. 20. There are accordingly ordinary officers, pastors,
+and teachers, appointed for the continued exercise of that ministry.
+
+To these instituted office-bearers is this ministry exclusively
+committed, Mark xvi., Matt, xxviii. The gospel of Christ, in respect of
+the public ministry thereof by preaching, is frequently mentioned as a
+special and peculiar _trust_ committed unto them, 2 Cor. v. 18-20; 1
+Tim. i. 11, and vi. 20. In all the passages of Scripture where we have
+any mention of a charge or commission to preach the gospel, it would be
+easy to show that it is directed only to persons in office; and a
+variety of names are given to those that are employed in a ministry of
+the word, all of which are expressive of their peculiar office. They are
+called ministers, 1 Cor. iii. 6; officers and stewards, 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+ambassadors for Christ, 2 Cor. v. 20; heralds (so the word preacher
+signifies) and teachers, 2 Tim. i. 11.
+
+There is no room to plead here, that though a constant ministry of the
+word, in a pastoral charge, belongs only to persons in office, yet all
+may occasionally exercise their gifts in preaching the gospel. The word
+of God acknowledges no such distinction as that between a constant and
+an occasional ministry of the gospel. It enjoins upon those who are
+called to the work of the ministry, not an occasional, but a constant
+exercise of that ministry; so that whether they be paid pastors, or
+itinerant preachers, they are not to entangle themselves with the
+affairs of this life, but must be devoted wholly to the work of the
+gospel, 1 Tim. iv. 13-16; 2 Tim. ii. 4, and iv. 2. And because they must
+thus devote their time and attention to this work, the word of God also
+enjoins that a maintenance be given them by those to whom they exercise
+their ministry, 1 Cor. ix. 7-14; Gal. vi. 6; 1 Tim. v. 17. This is a
+farther evidence that the ministry of the word is restricted to persons
+in office, and that they are to devote their time and attention to it,
+not entangling themselves in the prosecution of a secular business.
+
+III. Those only can be warrantably employed in a ministry of the
+ordinances of Christ, and particularly in preaching the gospel, who are
+thereunto called by him, and admitted according to the rule laid down in
+the word. And none can be warrantably acknowledged and received as
+office-bearers, to whom that ministry is committed without some proper
+evidence of their being called and sent by Christ. "How shall they
+preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15. How, without this, can they do
+it warrantably or profitably? And, without some evidence of this, what
+ground have we to expect a blessing in waiting upon their ministry? It
+is not a mere providential sending that is here meant, as if there were
+no more necessity than abilities, and an opportunity of exercising them;
+for so the ministers of Satan may be sent, and a lying spirit was thus
+sent among the prophets of Ahab. But this sending means the call of
+Christ, intimated in such a way as to warrant the preacher, and with
+such evidence as may satisfy the conscience of the hearers, in receiving
+his ministry as the ordinance of Christ. A zeal for God, a strong desire
+of being useful to souls, and even a persuasion of having the call of
+Christ, cannot be sufficient warrant to the preacher; far less can the
+hearers, in receiving him, proceed upon grounds so uncertain.
+
+The apostles, and some other ministers in the beginning of the Christian
+dispensation, had an extraordinary call and immediate mission by Christ,
+and this was evidenced to all by the miraculous powers bestowed on them.
+These powers are now ceased, and it is vain to plead any such immediate
+call. The ordinary call of Christ to the work of the ministry is
+intimated by or through the church, judging thereof by the rules laid
+down in the word; and according to these rules, they that are found
+qualified and called, are to be admitted to the ministry by them who are
+already invested with it. The charge is given to the office-bearers of
+the church, to commit that ministry which they have received "to
+faithful men, who shall be able to teach others also," 2 Tim. ii. 2;
+Tit. i. 5. And for their direction in this matter, the qualifications
+necessary, both as to character and abilities, are laid down in the
+Word, particularly in 1 Tim. iii.; of these qualifications they are
+required to make an impartial and deliberate examination, so as to _lay
+hands suddenly on no man_, 1 Tim. iv. 22, but to admit to the office of
+the ministry those only, who, by this trial, they have reason to judge
+are called and sent by Christ.
+
+It is vain to distinguish here between a pastor of a congregation and an
+itinerant preacher; as if the call of the church was necessary only to
+the former and not to the latter. If by the call of the church is meant
+only the choice and call of the people, it is admitted, that this is
+only necessary to fix a pastoral relation to that part of the flock; but
+a regular admission to the work of the ministry, by the office-bearers
+of the church, is equally necessary in the case of all that are employed
+in it, whether they have a fixed charge or not. Timothy, who had no
+fixed charge, and though pointed out by prophecy as designed for the
+ministry, was ordained and admitted to it by the presbytery. And though
+Paul and Barnabas had an extraordinary call, yet the prophets and
+teachers of the church at Antioch are directed to separate and send them
+out, according to the call of the Holy Ghost, to preach the gospel unto
+the Gentiles, Acts xiii. A principal design of this seems to have been,
+to set an example of procedure to the church in after times.
+
+It appears, then, that the preaching of the gospel is an ordinance or
+institution of Christ--that the ministry of that and other ordinances
+belongs only to those office-bearers whom he hath appointed and
+commissioned for that end--and that in ordinary cases, none can be
+acknowledged as sent by him, but such as are admitted to the ministry in
+the way above mentioned. These observations would have admitted a much
+larger illustration; but as they are, they may assist an attentive
+reader to consult his Bible for further satisfaction. It is necessary,
+however, to take some notice of the arguments urged in support of the
+opposite sentiment, and of the attempt to prove that every man who is
+qualified has a right to preach the gospel, without any regular call and
+admission by the church. And,
+
+1st. It is pretended that this is enjoined upon all that are qualified
+for it, because Christians are called to teach, exhort, and admonish one
+another. But even supposing that this were to be understood of
+preaching, or a public ministry of the word, such directions, though
+expressed generally, would not apply to all, but to those only who are
+called to the ministry, according to the limitation and restriction that
+is laid down in other places of Scripture. There is, however, no
+necessity of understanding these directions in that sense. The
+Scripture evidently distinguishes the preaching of the gospel, or that
+public teaching which belongs to an instituted ministry, from that
+private teaching which is competent to, and obligatory on, all
+Christians by the law of love; the latter is enjoined upon some to whom
+the former is absolutely prohibited: compare 1 Tim. ii. 12, with Tit.
+ii. 3, 4. Christians in a private station have abundant opportunity, and
+ordinarily much more than they improve, to exercise their talents in
+teaching their families, friends, and neighbors, without interfering
+with that public ministry of the word which is committed to those who
+are especially called thereto.
+
+2d. Some passages of Scripture are urged, wherein it is supposed all
+Christians are enjoined to exercise their qualifications in public
+teaching or preaching: particularly Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11.
+These Scriptures, on the contrary, restrict the public ministry of the
+word to those invested with an office, and it is that ministry which
+belongs to their office that is spoken of. In Rom. xii. persons in
+office are exhorted to apply themselves faithfully and diligently to
+that ministry to which they are called, whether it be a ministry of the
+word, and of spiritual things, or a ministry of temporal things, and
+that without envying others who have a different office and ministry.
+And, to enforce this exhortation, the apostle compares the Church to the
+natural body, ver. 4, in which all members have not the same office, but
+one member is appointed to one office, and another member to a different
+office: and so it is in the Church of Christ, ver. 5. The same allusion
+is applied more largely, 1 Cor. xii. 27, 28, to illustrate this very
+point. The other passage, 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11, is of the very same import:
+those in office are called to exercise their ministry faithfully,
+whether it be in spiritual or temporal things, and are addressed as
+stewards, ver. 10; "As every man hath received the gift, even so
+minister the same one to another as good stewards of the manifold grace
+of God." Some are led to mistake the meaning of these Scriptures, by
+misunderstanding the word _gift_, as if it meant only talents or
+qualifications; whereas, in these and many other passages, it means a
+certain office and ministry to which one is appointed. Eph. iv. 8, 11:
+He gave gifts unto men; he gave some apostles, some prophets, &c. 1 Tim.
+iv. 14: "Neglect not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by
+prophecy, with the laying on of the hands of the presbytery." Timothy
+was ordained to the office of the ministry in consequence of special
+direction of the spirit of prophecy. See 1 Tim. i. 18.
+
+3d. It is also supposed and much insisted on by some, that both precept
+and example for the preaching of the gospel, by what they call every
+gifted brother, may be found in 1 Cor. xiv. 31, which is particularly
+urged in support of their opinion: "For ye may _all_ prophesy, one by
+one, that _all_ may learn, and _all_ may be comforted." But universal
+terms, such as are here used, are limited or extended according to the
+subject; and that even in the same verse, as in chap. xv. 22. In like
+manner here, the _all_ that may prophesy are not the same _all_ that may
+learn and be comforted. The latter may extend to all the members of the
+church, and even to strangers who might come into their assemblies; the
+former could apply only to a few. Some members of the church are
+expressly prohibited from public teaching, ver. 34. Besides, all were
+not prophets, chap. xii. 29, and therefore all could neither prophesy,
+nor could warrantably attempt it. The state of matters referred to in
+that chapter seems to have been this: The church at Corinth was
+numerous, and had many ministers, of whom the most, if not all, were
+endowed with some miraculous power, such as that of prophecy, of
+speaking strange languages, and the like; they were proud of these
+gifts, and forward to show them, ver. 26, which occasioned disorder in
+their assemblies for worship; those that had the gift of tongues
+prevented the prophets, and did not modestly give place to one another.
+These disorders the apostle reproves, and exhorts them to exercise their
+gifts in a more regular and decent manner, for the edification of the
+church. This being the case, it is strange to plead this passage as a
+warrant for the preaching of the gospel by those who are in no office,
+and who neither have any miraculous power to prove their immediate call
+by Christ to the work of the ministry, nor are admitted thereto by the
+call of the church.
+
+4th. Further, we are referred to Acts viii. 1-4, for an example of the
+preaching of the gospel by persons not in office. We are told, ver. 1,
+that "there was a great persecution against the church which was at
+Jerusalem, and they were all scattered abroad--_except the apostles_."
+And it is said, ver. 4, "_they_, that were scattered abroad, went
+everywhere _preaching the word_." From this it is argued, that _the
+Church in general_ proclaimed the gospel of the Lord Jesus. But why
+mention the Church in general, when the method of reasoning used would
+equally prove that the Church universally did so; and the absurdity of
+such reasoning must be evident upon a very little consideration of the
+subject. How absurd to suppose that _all_ mentioned in ver. 1, refers to
+and comprehends all the members of that church, and that all the
+thousands and ten thousands belonging to it were all scattered abroad,
+or that they all, men, women, and children, went _everywhere preaching_
+the word! Are we not told, ver. 3, that some of them, probably many of
+them, both men and women, were haled and committed to prison? Or, had
+all the members of the church been driven from Jerusalem, how were the
+apostles to be employed? Did they only tarry to gather a new church?
+When it is said, ver. 3, that Saul entered into every house, how absurd
+would it be to suppose that it is meant every house in Jerusalem, or
+even every house in which there was a Christian! The expression, also,
+_everywhere_, ver. 4, must be limited. It would therefore be
+unreasonable to object against a proper limitation of the word _all_,
+ver. 1. And about the just limitation of it we need be at no loss. They
+were all scattered abroad--except the apostles. What reason can there be
+for mentioning only the apostles as excepted, while there were so many
+other members of that church still remaining at Jerusalem, but this,
+that the persons referred to were of the same description in general
+with the apostles, persons in office, ministers of the church? Others
+might also be scattered, but these are here spoken of; and Philip, an
+evangelist, and endowed with miraculous powers, is mentioned as one of
+them.
+
+5th. As to the case of Apollos, which some urge as affording
+irresistible evidence to prove that all who are qualified may preach the
+gospel, a few words may suffice. He spoke boldly in the synagogue, the
+practice of which is no rule to the Christian Church. He was not yet
+acquainted with some important doctrines of the New Testament Church,
+much less could he be acquainted with the ordinances of it. Two
+intelligent Christians instructed him more perfectly in the way of God.
+He was recommended by the brethren to the church at Corinth, and there
+he labored successfully in the work of the ministry. And what is all
+this to the purpose for which his example is urged? We have no
+information, indeed, of what time, nor in what manner, he was called and
+admitted to the work of the ministry, more than we have about many
+others mentioned in Scripture: but he is expressly called a minister,
+and is, once and again, classed with the chiefest of the apostles, 1
+Cor. i. 12, iii. 5, 22.
+
+Lest these and the like arguments should be found insufficient, recourse
+is had by some to the plea of pure motives and good designs, with a kind
+of appeal to the judgment of the great day, and profession of trust,
+that they are such as will not then be condemned. It is a great
+satisfaction to have the testimony of conscience to the purity of
+motives in every part of conduct that is warranted by the word of God,
+and also to know that the judgment of the saints at the great day will
+be a judgment of mercy. But every part of the truth of Christ will be
+determined at that day in exact conformity to what is now declared in
+the word. And the purest motives and most noble designs are no rule of
+conduct to any; much less can they give satisfaction to others.
+
+These observations concerning the institution of a gospel ministry, the
+writer is persuaded, are agreeable to the word of God: if they be not,
+it would be idle to appeal to his motives in support of them. But he can
+freely say that they are here offered to the public, not from a desire
+of controversy, but from a conviction, that at this time it is
+necessary, on different accounts, to call people's attention to the mind
+and will of Christ, as revealed in the word concerning this subject. Let
+not such of the friends of religion, as may be of different sentiments
+from what are here expressed, be offended at an attempt, in the spirit
+of meekness, to remove their mistakes: nor let them impute it to envy,
+pride, or selfish principles. In a perfect consistency with all that he
+hath advanced, the writer can say, "Would to God that all the Lord's
+people were prophets."
+
+It is a necessary consequence of what is advanced on this subject, that
+all should be careful that the ministry of the ordinances they attend
+upon be such as is warranted in the word. If none can warrantably preach
+except they be sent, we cannot warrantably attend on the ministry of any
+but those who we have reason to believe have Christ's call and mission.
+And if it be an objection against a pastor of a congregation, that he is
+imposed upon the flock without their choice, it is no less an objection
+against a preacher, if he be not admitted to the ministry of the word by
+those whose office it is to examine his qualifications, and judge of his
+call. It must, however, be acknowledged, that to have gone through the
+ordinary forms of admission is no sufficient evidence of one's having
+the call of Christ. The outward forms may be observed, while the spirit
+and design of them is neglected, and the rule of the word transgressed.
+Nor can any be acknowledged as sent by Christ, unless their character
+correspond with that pointed out and required in the word, and unless
+the doctrine they teach be the gospel of Christ. None can be supposed to
+have a mission from Christ, who do not bring his message, 2 John ver.
+10: "If there come any unto you and bring not this doctrine, receive him
+not into your house, neither bid him God speed." But when we are favored
+with the pure gospel, and an administration of it agreeable to the word,
+let us wait upon it diligently; regarding the preaching of the gospel as
+an ordinance of Christ, and depending on his promised blessing to make
+it effectual: for when "the world by wisdom knew not God, it pleased
+God, by the foolishness of preaching, to save them that believe," 1 Cor.
+i. 21.
+
+Both parts of this number are recommended to the serious consideration
+of what are called _lay-preachers_, and of such as favor that scheme.
+And let all intruders upon the office of the holy ministry, with their
+deluded votaries, beware lest it should be said to them, _Who hath
+required this at your hands_?
+
+
+
+
+NO. IV.
+
+
+_Quest_. Have not the people a divine right to choose their own pastors
+and other church officers?
+
+_Ans_. In those divinely qualified for the ministry, there are
+diversities of gifts, though but one spirit. As the same food, though
+abundantly wholesome and nourishing, is not equally suited to the taste,
+appetite, and constitutions of different persons and nations; so the
+same gifts in a candidate for the gospel ministry are not equally
+adapted to every person and place. To secure edification there must
+therefore be a choice of the gifts most suitable. And who fitter to make
+it than those who are to enjoy the use thereof, if their senses be
+exercised to discern good and evil? Can any man pretend to know better
+what gifts suit the case of my soul than I do myself?
+
+Those ignorant of the fundamental truths of Christianity; those
+scandalous, profane deniers of the divine original of the Old and New
+Testaments, or of any truth therein plainly revealed; those neglecters
+of the public, private, and secret worship of God; those given to
+cursing, swearing, Sabbath profanation, drunkenness, whoredom, or other
+scandalous courses, are destitute of capacity and right to choose a
+gospel minister. The ignorant are utterly incapable to judge of either
+the preacher's matter or method. The openly wicked have their hatred of
+Christ, and a faithful minister, marked in their forehead; neither are
+such qualified to be visible members of the Christian Church. To admit
+them therefore to choose a Christian pastor would be a method,
+introducing ruin and we; a method equally absurd as for unfreemen to
+choose the magistrates of a burgh: rather, equally absurd as if ignorant
+babes, and our enemies the French, should be sustained electors of our
+members of parliament and privy council.
+
+Whether visible believers, adults, and having a life and conversation
+becoming the gospel, have a right from God to choose their pastors and
+other church officers, must now be examined.
+
+All along from the Reformation it has been the avowed principle of
+Scotch Presbyterians, that they have a divine warrant to choose their
+own pastors and other ecclesiastic officers. The first book of
+discipline, published A.D. 1560, declares the lawful calling of the
+ministry to consist in the election of the people, the examination of
+the ministry, and administration by both, and that no pastor should be
+intruded on any particular kirk without their consent. Their second book
+of discipline declares that the people's liberty of choosing church
+officers continued till the Church was corrupted by antichrist: that
+patronage flowed from the Pope's canon law, and is inconsistent with the
+order prescribed in God's word. From various documents the assembly of
+1736 declared it obvious, that from the Reformation it had been the
+fixed principle of this church that no minister ought to be intruded
+into any church contrary to the will of the congregation. They seriously
+recommended a due regard hereunto in planting the vacancies, as
+judicatories would study the glory of God, the honor of God, and the
+edification of men. It is the law of heaven, however, the book of the
+Lord, that here and everywhere we intend to build our faith upon.
+
+That of Matthias is the first instance of an election of an officer in
+the Christian Church. No doubt, then, it is marked in the sacred history
+as a pattern for the ages to come. Being an officer extraordinary, his
+call was in part immediately divine, by the determination of the lot.
+Being a church officer, he was chosen by the Church as far as consistent
+with his extraordinary office. The disciples about Jerusalem (120) were
+gathered together. Peter represented the necessity of filling up Judas's
+place in the apostolate with one who could be a meet witness of Jesus'
+doctrines, miracles, death, and resurrection. The one hundred and twenty
+disciples chose, appointed, or presented to whom they judged proper for
+that work. The office being extraordinary, and perhaps the votes equal,
+the decision which of these two was referred to the divine determination
+of the lot. After prayer for a perfect _one_, it fell upon Matthias, and
+he was, by suffrages, or votes, added to the number of the apostles.
+
+Had the next election of a church officer entirely excluded the
+Christian people, one had been tempted to suspect that Matthias's
+extraordinary case was never designed for a pattern. Instead hereof, the
+choice being of an ordinary officer, is entirely deposited in their
+hands. Never were men better qualified for such an election than the
+inspired, the spirit-discerning apostles; yet when restrained by
+laborious attendance to their principal work, the ministry of the word
+and of prayer, from sufficient leisure to distribute their multiplied
+alms to their now numerous poor, and directed by the Holy Ghost, they
+ordered the Christian people _to look out_, choose seven of their
+number, _men of honest report, full of the Holy Ghost and of wisdom_,
+who might be ordained to the office of deacons. Judging of the mentioned
+qualifications, the Christian multitude, entirely of their own accord,
+chose Stephen, Philip, Prochorus, Nicanor, Timon, Parmenas, and
+Nicolas. These they presented to the apostles, who immediately ordained
+them by prayer, and imposition of hands, Acts vi. 1-6. Here, by inspired
+appointment, the people had the whole power of electing their deacons.
+If they have the power of electing one ordinary officer, why not of all?
+If in the case of deacons they can judge of the qualifications of
+_honest report, full of the Holy Ghost and of wisdom_, what hinders them
+to judge of these and the like of ministers? If Jesus and his apostles
+argued from the less to the greater, Matt. vi. 30,1 Cor. ix. 10, who can
+forbid us to argue so? If it be right and equal for the Christian people
+to choose deacons who take care of their sacred alms, is it not much
+more right and equal that they have the choice of their pastors, who
+take the oversight of their souls?
+
+A third instance of the Christian people electing their ecclesiastical
+officers, relates to the joint travels of Paul and Barnabas at Lystra
+and places around, Acts xiv. 23. These two divinely directed messengers
+of Christ, having ordained (or, as properly translated from the Greek,
+_through suffrages or votes constituted) them elders_ (presbyters) _in
+every city, and prayed with fasting, commended them to the Lord_. Here
+it is plainly marked that these elders, _presbyters_, were chosen by
+_suffrages (votes)_ in order to ordination. This the Greek word in our
+version, by the fraud of the English bishops rendered _had ordained_,
+plainly imports. The root of this word is borrowed from the custom of
+giving votes at Athens and elsewhere in Greece, by lifting up of the
+hand. Wherever it is used in the Greek Testament, and for anything we
+know in every Greek author, not posterior to Luke, the writer of the
+Acts, it constantly implies _to give vote or suffrage_. In the text
+before us it agrees with Paul and Barnabas; because they presided in the
+choice, and finished the design of it by ordination. Here, moreover, it
+is evident that the persons chosen for elders _(presbyters)_ were set
+apart to their office, not by a hurried prayer and riotous banquet, but
+_by prayer and fasting:_ and this manner of choice and ordination was
+used in every church. The very performance of the work of ordination in
+public conjunction with the church tacitly infers their consent.
+
+Christ's commanding his people _to try the spirits_, to try false
+prophets, and to flee from them, 1 John iv. 1, 2, necessarily imports a
+right to choose the worthy, and reject the vile; to choose what suits
+our edification, and to reject what doth not; for, if we must receive
+whoever is imposed, there is no occasion for trial, we can have no
+other. The privilege of trial here allowed to his people by Christ
+plainly supposes their having some ability for it; and, by a diligent
+perusal of his word, and consulting his ministers, they may become more
+capable. Has our adored Redeemer thus intrusted to his adult members the
+election of their pastors? at what peril or guilt do any ministers or
+laics concur to bereave them thereof, thrusting men into the evangelic
+office by another way; thus constituting them spiritual _thieves_ and
+_robbers_? Instead of being _gentle_ to church members, as a _nurse
+cherisheth her children_; instead of _condescending to men of low
+degree_, and _doing all things to the glory of God_ and the _edification
+of souls_, is not this to set at naught their brethren; exercise lordly
+dominion over the members of Christ; and rule them with rigor?
+
+In the oracles of God, where is the hint, that the choice of pastors for
+the Christian people is lodged in any but themselves?--Since men
+apostolic and inspired put the choice from themselves to the Christian
+people; who can believe that it belongs to the clergy? Acts i. and vi.
+When Christ avers _his kingdom is not of this world_; when he threatens
+judgment without mercy to such as in his worshipping assemblies more
+readily give a seat to the rich, with his gold ring and gay clothing,
+than to the poor; can it be imagined that he has intrusted the choice of
+his ambassadors to men, for their greatness?
+
+There is indeed a haughty objection often stated against the people's
+choice: Shall a cottager, poor and unlearned, who pays not one farthing
+of the stipend, and at next term will perhaps remove from the
+congregation, have an equal choice of a minister with his master, a
+gentleman, a nobleman, of liberal education, of distinguished abilities,
+who is head of a large family, has a fixed property and residence in the
+parish, and furnishes almost the whole benefice? Will you fly in the
+face of our civil law? Will you plead for the method of choosing church
+officers, which already has produced so much strife, bloody squabbling,
+or riot? If Christ's _kingdom_, as himself when dying attested, _is not
+of this world_, how can outward learning, riches, settled abode, or any
+worldly thing, constitute one a member thereof? These do not make one a
+better Christian. No. _Not many wise men after the flesh, not many
+mighty, not many noble, are called_ with a holy calling. How ordinarily
+do rich men oppress the saints, draw them before judgment-seats, and
+blaspheme Jesus' worthy name, by which they are called! If worldly
+privileges and endowments cannot make one a subject of the Mediator's
+spiritual kingdom, how can they entitle any to, or raise him above his
+brethren in, the privileges thereof? If by the Son of God the poor
+cottager has been made free indeed; has been taught to profit; is rich
+in faith; is a king and priest unto God; and hath received a kingdom
+that cannot be moved; in the view of the Omniscient and his angels, and
+every man wise to salvation, how little is he inferior to his rich,
+perhaps his graceless, master? Your rich man has college education,
+understands philosophy, history, law, agriculture; but will that infer
+that he understands his Bible, understands Christian principles,
+spiritual experiences, and what spiritual gifts best correspond
+therewith, better than his cottager, who daily searches the Scriptures,
+and has heard and learned of the Father? How oft are the great things of
+God hid from the wise and prudent, and revealed unto babes! Christ
+crucified was to the learned Greeks foolishness; but to the poorest
+believer the power of God and the wisdom of God. "The natural man,"
+however learned, "receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God, neither
+can he know them; for they are spiritually discerned," 1 Cor. ii. 14.
+How easy to find the herdman, or the silly woman, who will endure a
+trial on Christian principles to far better purpose than many of your
+rich, your great men!--Your great man is the head of a numerous family,
+and has great influence in the corner. That, no doubt, is a strong
+motive for him, if he is a Christian, to be exceeding wary in his
+choice: if he is so, no doubt his Christian judgment, as far as is
+consistent with spiritual liberty, is to have its own weight. But while
+Christ's _kingdom is not of this world_; while in him there is _neither
+male nor female, bond nor free_; headship over a family can found no
+claim to a spiritual privilege. Thousands of heads of families are
+plainly _aliens from the commonwealth of Israel_, without God, and
+without hope in the world. Many are heads of families who, by neglect of
+the daily worship of God, of religious instruction, and by other
+unchristian conduct, ruin the same.
+
+Boast not of the great man's settled abode, boast not of to-morrow, for
+thou knowest not what a day may bring forth; how suddenly may disaster
+and death pluck him up by the roots! The rich fathers, where are they?
+Do the nobles live forever? Shall their dwelling continue to all
+generations? How often, in a few years, the rich inheritance changes its
+master, while the race of the poor hovers about the same spot for many
+generations! What if the cottager attend more to gospel ministrations,
+in one year, than the rich in forty! what if, removing at next term, he
+carry his beloved pastor in his heart, and by effectual fervent prayers,
+availing much, by multiplied groanings that cannot be uttered, he bring
+manifold blessings on the parish and ministry which he leaves; while
+your rich man, if wicked, if of the too common stamp, continues in it,
+for no better purpose than to distress the faithful pastor, corrupt the
+people, bring down a curse, and cumber the ground! The great man bears
+the load of the stipend no more than the poorest cottager. He purchased
+his estate with this burden upon it, and on that account had its price
+proportionally abated. Suppose it were otherwise, might not a poor
+widow's _two mites_ be more in Jesus' account than all he gives? Will
+we, with the Samaritan sorcerer, indulge the thought that the _gifts of
+God_, the spiritual privileges of his Church, _are to be purchased with
+money_? For money to erect the church or defray the benefice we must
+not, with the infamous traitor, betray the Son of God in his church--his
+ordinance, his ministry, into the hands of sinners to be crucified.
+
+It is in vain to mention the civil law: the very worst statute thereof,
+relative to the point in hand, indirectly supposes the consent of the
+congregation. It leaves to the presbytery the full power to judge
+whether the presentee is fit for that charge. If the congregation
+generally oppose, with what candor do the presbytery, in Jesus' name,
+determine that he is fit? The last statute relative hereto declared the
+presentation void, unless accepted. Nor is there in being any, but the
+_law of sin and death_ within them, the law of itch after worldly gain,
+that obliges candidates to accept. How unmanly, how disingenuous, to
+blame the civil law with the present course of intrusions!--Since the
+resurrection of Christ, we think we may almost defy any to produce an
+instance of bloody squabbling, or like outrageous contention, in the
+choice of a pastor, where none but the visible members of Christ's
+mystical body, adult, and blameless in their lives, were admitted to act
+in the choice. But if at any called popular elections, the power was
+sinfully betrayed into the hands of such baptized persons, as in
+ignorance and loose practice equalled, if not transcended, _heathen men
+and publicans_; into the hand of those who, to please a superior, to
+obtain a paltry bribe, or a flagon of wine, were readily determined in
+their vote for a minister; let the prostitutes of Jesus' ordinance
+answer for the unhappy consequences of their conduct. If they so
+enormously broke through the hedge of the divine law, no wonder a
+serpent bit them. But who has forgot what angry contentions, what
+necessity of a military guard at ordinations, the lodging of the power
+of elections in patrons or heritors, _as such_, has of late occasioned?
+
+To deprive the Christian people of their privilege in choosing their
+pastor, and give it to others upon worldly accounts, is the grossest
+absurdity. It overturns the nature of Christ's spiritual kingdom,
+founding a claim to her privileges on worldly character and property. It
+gives those blessed lips the lie, which said, _"My kingdom is not of
+this world."_ It counteracts the nature of the church, as a voluntary
+society; thrusting men into a momentous relation to her, without, nay
+contrary to, her consent. It settles the ministerial office upon a very
+rotten foundation: for how hard is it to believe the man is a minister
+of a Christian congregation, who never consented to his being such! to
+believe he has a pastoral mission from Christ, for whom providence would
+never open a regular door of entrance to the office; but he was obliged
+to be thrust in by the window, _as a thief and a robber_! If he comes
+unsent, how can I expect edification by his ministry, when God has
+declared, _such shall not profit his people at all_? It implies the most
+unnatural cruelty. If the law of nature allow me the choice of my
+physician, my servant, my guide, my master, how absurd to deny me the
+choice of a physician, a servant, a guide, to my soul; and to give it to
+another, merely because he has some more money, has a certain _piece of
+ground_, which I have not! How do these qualify him, or entitle him to
+provide, what the eternal salvation of my soul is so nearly connected
+with, better than myself, if taught of God?
+
+By patronage how oft the honor of Christ and the souls of men are
+betrayed into the hands of their declared enemies! If the patron is
+unholy, profane, how readily the candidate he prefers is too like
+himself! If a candidate be faithful, be holy, how readily, like Ahab in
+the case of Micaiah, he hates, he sends not for him! The complaisant
+chaplain, who almost never disturbed the family with the worship of God;
+who along with the children or others took off his cheerful glass; sung
+his wanton song; attended the licentious ball, or play-house; connived
+at, or swore a profane oath; took a hand at cards; or ridiculed the
+mysteries, the experiences, the circumspect professor of the Christian
+faith, is almost certain to have the presentation: perhaps he covenanted
+for it as part of his wages. For what simony, sacrilege, and deceitful
+perjury, with respect to ordination vows, patronage opens a door, he
+that runs may read. Shocked with the view, let us forbear!
+
+ * * * * *
+
+N.B. The London ministers in the preceding treatise have a large note
+respecting the election of ministers, which does not fully invest this
+right in the people. The editor, therefore, omitted that note
+altogether, and has inserted this number, extracted from Brown's
+Letters, in the place of it, as better adapted to the nature of the
+gospel church, and to that liberty wherewith Christ has made his people
+free.
+
+
+
+
+NO. V.[124]
+
+_Of the Ordination and Duty of Ministers._
+
+
+That the ordination of pastors is an ordinance of Christ, the sacred
+volumes clearly prove. Through election by suffrages (or votes) Paul and
+Barnabas ordained _elders_ (presbyters) _in every church_, Acts xiv. 23.
+By Paul's inspired orders Titus was left at Crete to ordain elders
+(presbyters) in every city, Tit. i. 5. By the laying on of the hands of
+the presbytery was Timothy himself ordained: he was apostolically
+authorized and directed to ordain others; and informed that these
+directions are to be observed, _till the day of Jesus Christ_, 1 Tim.
+iv. 14, 15.
+
+That not election, but ordination, confers the sacred office is no less
+evident. Election marks out the person to be ordained; ordination fixes
+the relation of a candidate to a particular congregation, upon receiving
+a regular call; while at the same time it constitutes him a minister of
+the whole catholic Church. Ordination made men _presbyters_ and
+_deacons_, which were not so before. If a person be destitute of the
+distinguishing ministerial gift, or any other essential qualification,
+ten thousand elections or ordinations cannot render him a minister of
+Christ. But solemnly tried and found qualified, he is to be set apart to
+the ministry, by prayer, fasting, and laying on of the hands of the
+presbytery.
+
+Nowhere in the heavenly volume do we find either precept or example that
+Christian people have a whit more right to ordain their pastor, than
+midwives have to baptize the children they assist to bring forth.
+Ordination appears to have been performed by apostles, by evangelists,
+and by a presbytery, Acts vi. 6, and xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5; 1 Tim. v. 22,
+and iv. 14: but never by private Christians. Could these ordain their
+pastors or other ecclesiastic officers, to what purpose did Paul leave
+Titus at Crete to _ordain elders in every city_? or why did he write
+never a word about ordination to the people, in any of his epistles, but
+to their rulers?
+
+Thus regularly ordained, the Christian pastor must enter upon his
+important work. Endowed with spiritual wisdom and understanding;
+possessed of inward experience of the power of divine truth; inflamed
+with zeal for the glory of God, love to his work, and compassion to the
+perishing souls of men, he is to endeavor to acquaint himself with the
+spiritual state of his flock; and to feed them, not with heathenish and
+Arminian harangues, but with the gospel of Christ, the sincere milk of
+the word, diligently preaching and rightly dividing it, according to
+their diversified state and condition, 1 Pet. v. 3; 2 Cor. v. 11; 1 Cor.
+ix. 16. Assiduously growing in the knowledge and love of divine things,
+he is to instruct and confirm his hearers therein. Every divine truth he
+is to publish and apply, as opportunity calls for: chiefly such as are
+most important, or, though once openly confessed, are in his time
+attacked and denied, 1 Tim. vi. 20, iii. 15. Painfully is he to
+catechize his people, and in Jesus' name to visit and teach them from
+house to house. To awaken their conscience, to promote the conversion of
+sinners, to direct and comfort the cast down, perplexed, tempted, and
+deserted; to ponder the Scripture, and his own and others' experience,
+to qualify him for this work, must be his earnest care. Faithfully is he
+to administer the sacraments to such (only) as are duly prepared; and in
+the simple manner prescribed by Christ. Tenderly is he to take care of
+the poor; to sympathize with the afflicted; impartially to visit the
+sick; to deal plainly with their consciences, and to exhort and pray
+over them in the name of the Lord. With impartiality, zeal, meekness,
+and prudence, he is to rule and govern the church, to admonish the
+unruly, to rebuke offenders, to excommunicate the incorrigible, and to
+absolve the penitent. Habitually is he to give himself to effectual
+fervent prayer, for his flock, and for the Church of God, travailing as
+in birth till Jesus be formed in the souls of men. Be a man's parts,
+diligence, and apparent piety what they will, negligence in this will
+blast his ministrations, and too clearly mark, that he is therein
+chiefly influenced by some carnal motive of honor or gain. Finally, he
+is constantly to walk before his flock a distinguished pattern of
+sobriety, righteousness, holiness, humility, heavenliness, temperance,
+charity, brotherly kindness, and every good word and work. Without this
+his ministrations appear but a solemn farce of deceit, 2 Tim. ii. 4; 1
+Tim. iv. 15; 2 Tim. iv. 2.
+
+Can ministers' reading of sermons consist with the dignity of their
+office? Did Jesus or his apostles ever show them an example of this? No.
+At Nazareth, when he read his text in the book of Esaias, he _closed his
+book_, and discoursed to the people. On the mount _he opened his mouth,
+and taught_: we hear not that he took out his papers and read. Peter, in
+his sermon at Pentecost, _lifted up his voice, and said_: his papers and
+reading we hear nothing of. After reading of the law and the prophets,
+the rulers of the synagogue of Antioch in Pisidia, desired Paul and
+Barnabas, not to _read_, but to _say on_. Our adored Saviour knew well
+enough how to direct his ambassadors; yet he ordered them to _go and
+preach_, not _read_, the gospel to every creature, Luke iv. 20, 21;
+Matt. v. 2; Acts ii. 14, and xiii. 15. How hard to believe, that he who
+gives gifts to men, for the edifying of his body, would send the
+sermonist, whose memory and judgment are so insufficient, that from
+neither he can produce an half hour's discourse without reading it! How
+dull and insipid the manner! How absurdly it hinders the Spirit's
+assistance, as to matter during the discourse! How shameful! Shall the
+bookless lawyer warmly and sensibly plead almost insignificant trifles,
+and shall the ambassador of Christ, deprived of his papers, be incapable
+to plead so short a space in favor of his Master, and of the souls of
+men?
+
+
+
+
+NO. VI.[125]
+
+_Of Ruling Elders._
+
+
+The rule and government of the Church, or the execution of the authority
+of Christ therein, is in the hand of the elders. All elders in office
+have rule, and none have rule in the church but elders: _as such_, rule
+doth belong unto them. The apostles by virtue of their special office
+were intrusted with all church power; but therefore they were elders
+also, 1 Pet. v. 1; 3 John i.: see Acts xxi. 17; 1 Tim. i. 17. They are
+some of them on other accounts called bishops, pastors, teachers,
+ministers, guides; but what belongs to any of them in point of rule, or
+what interest they have therein, it belongs unto them as elders, and not
+otherwise, Acts xx. 17, 18. The Scriptures affirm, 1st, That there is a
+work and duty of rule in the Church, distinct from the work and duty of
+pastoral feeding, by the preaching of the word and administration of the
+sacraments, Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v. 17; 2
+Tim. iv. 5; Heb. xiii. 7, 17; Rev. ii. 3.
+
+2d. Different and distinct gifts are required unto the discharge of
+these distinct works and duties. This belongs unto the harmony of the
+dispensation of the gospel. Gifts are bestowed to answer all duties
+prescribed. Hence they are the first foundation of all power, work, and
+duty in the church. Unto every one of us is given grace according to the
+measure of the gift of Christ, that is, ability for duty, according to
+the measure wherein Christ is pleased to grant it; Eph. iv. 7: see also
+1 Cor. xii. 4, 7, 8-10; Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet. iv. 10: wherefore
+different gifts are the first foundation of different offices and
+duties.
+
+3d. That different gifts are required unto the different works of
+pastoral teaching on the one hand, and practical rule on the other, is
+evident, 1st, From the light of reason, and the nature of the works
+themselves being so different. And, 2d, From experience; some men are
+fitted by gifts for the dispensation of the word and doctrine in a way
+of pastoral feeding, who have no useful ability in the work of rule; and
+some are fitted for rule, who have no gifts for the discharge of the
+pastoral work in preaching, Yea, it is very seldom that both these sort
+of gifts do concur in any eminent degree in the same persons, or without
+some notable defect.
+
+4th. The work of rule, as distinct from teaching, is in general to watch
+over the walk or conversation of the members of the church with
+authority, exhorting, comforting, admonishing, reproving, encouraging,
+and directing of them, as occasion shall require. The gifts necessary
+hereunto are diligence, wisdom, courage, and gravity; as we shall see
+afterwards. The pastoral work is principally to reveal the whole counsel
+of God, to divide the word aright, or to labor in the word and doctrine,
+both as unto the general dispensation and particular application of it,
+in all seasons and on all occasions. Hereunto spiritual wisdom,
+knowledge, sound judgment, experience, and utterance are required; all
+to be improved by continual study of the word and prayer. But this
+difference of gifts unto these distinct works doth not of itself
+constitute distinct offices, because the same persons may be suitably
+furnished with those of both sorts.
+
+5th. Yet distinct works and duties, though some were furnished with
+gifts for both, were a ground in the wisdom of the Holy Ghost, for
+distinct offices in the church, where one sort of them were as much as
+those of one office could, ordinarily attend unto, Acts vi. 2-4.
+Ministration unto the poor of the church, for the supply of their
+temporal necessities, is an ordinance of Christ, instituted that the
+apostles might give a more diligent attendance unto the word and prayer.
+
+6th. The work of the ministry in prayer, and preaching of the word, or
+labor in the word and doctrine, whereunto the administration of the
+seals of the covenant is annexed, with all the duties that belong unto
+the special application of these things before insisted on unto the
+flock, are ordinarily sufficient to take up the whole man, and the
+utmost of their endowments who are called unto the pastoral office in
+the church. The very nature of the work in itself is such, as that the
+apostle giving a short description of it adds, as an intimation of its
+greatness and excellency, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2 Cor.
+ii. 16. And the manner of its performance adds unto its weight. For not
+to mention that intenseness of mind in the exercise of faith, love,
+zeal, and compassion, which is required of them in the discharge of
+their whole office; the diligent consideration of the state of the
+flock, so as to provide spiritual food for them; with a constant
+attendance unto the issues and effects of the word in the consciences
+and lives of men; is enough for the most part to take up their whole
+time and strength. It is gross ignorance or negligence that causeth any
+to be otherwise minded. As the work of the ministry is generally
+discharged, consisting only in a weekly provision of sermons, and the
+performance of some stated offices by reading, men have time and liberty
+enough to attend unto other occasions. But in such persons we are not at
+present concerned. Our rule is plain, 1 Tim. iv. 12-17.
+
+7th. It doth not hence follow, that those who are called unto the
+ministry of the word, as pastors and teachers, who are elders also, are
+divested of their right to rule in the church, or discharged from the
+exercise of it, because others, not called unto their office, are
+appointed to be assistant unto them, that is, _helps in the government_.
+For the right and duty of rule is inseparable from the office of elders,
+which all bishops and pastors are. The right is still in them, and the
+exercise of it, consistent with their more excellent work, is required
+of them. The apostles in the constitution of elders in every church
+derogated nothing from their own authority, nor discharged themselves of
+their care. So when they appointed deacons to take care of supplies for
+the poor, they did not forego their own right, nor the exercise of their
+duty as their other work would permit them, Gal. ii. 9, 10. And in
+particular the apostle Paul manifested his concernment herein, in the
+care he took about _collection for the poor_ in all churches.
+
+8th. As we observed at the entrance of this chapter, the whole work of
+the church, as unto authoritative teaching and rule, is committed unto
+the elders. For authoritative teaching and ruling, is teaching and
+ruling by virtue of office: and this office whereunto they do belong is
+that of elders, as is undeniably attested, Acts xx. 17, &c. All that
+belongs unto the care, inspection, oversight, rule, fend instruction of
+the church, is committed unto the _elders_ of it expressly. For _elders_
+is a name derived from the Jews, denoting them that have _authority_ in
+the church.
+
+9th. To the complete constitution of any church, or to the perfection of
+its organical state, it is required that there be _many elders_ in it;
+at least more than one. I do not determine what their number ought to
+be; but it is to be proportioned to the work and end designed. Where the
+churches are small, the number of elders must be so also. So many are
+necessary in each office as are able to discharge the work which is
+allotted unto them. But that church, be it small or great, is defective,
+which hath not more elders than one; so many as are sufficient for their
+work. The pattern of the first churches constituted by the apostles,
+which it is our duty to imitate and follow as our rule, plainly
+declares, that many elders were appointed by them in every church, Acts
+xi. 30, xiv. 23, xv. 2, 4, 6, 22, xvi. 4, xx. 17; 1 Tim. v. 17; Phil. i.
+1; Tit. i. 5; 1 Pet. v. 1.
+
+10th. We shall now make application of these things unto our present
+purpose. I say then, 1st, Whereas there is a work of rule in the Church,
+distinct from that of pastoral feeding: 2d, Whereas this work is to be
+attended unto with diligence, which includes the whole duty of him that
+attends unto it: 3d, That the ministry of the word and prayer, with all
+those duties that accompany it, is a full employment for any man, and so
+consequently his principal and proper work, which it is unlawful for him
+to be remiss in, by attending on another with diligence: 4th, That, in
+the wisdom of the Holy Ghost, distinct works did require distinct
+offices for their discharge: and, 5th, Whereas there ought to be many
+elders in every church, that both the works of _teaching_ and _ruling_
+may be constantly attended unto; all which we have proved already: our
+inquiry herein is, whether the same Holy Spirit hath not distinguished
+this office of elders into those two sorts, namely, those who are called
+unto teaching and rule also, and those who are called unto rule only,
+which we affirm.
+
+The testimonies whereby the truth of this assertion is confirmed are
+generally known and pleaded. I shall insist on some of them only,
+beginning with that which is of uncontrollable evidence, if it had any
+thing to conflict with but prejudices and interest, and this is 1 Tim.
+v. 17, the meaning of which is, the elders or presbyters in office,
+elders of the church _that rule well_ or discharge their presidency for
+rule in due manner, are worthy, or ought to be reputed worthy, _of
+double honor_; especially those of them who labor, or are engaged in the
+great labor and travail of the word and doctrine.
+
+According to this sense the words of the text have a plain and obvious
+signification, which at first view presents itself unto the common sense
+and understanding of all men. On the first proposal of this text, that
+the elders that rule well are worthy of double honor, especially those
+who labor in the word and doctrine, a rational man, who is unprejudiced,
+and never heard of the controversy about ruling elders, can hardly avoid
+an apprehension that there are _two sorts of elders_, some that labor in
+the word and doctrine, and some who do not. This is the substance of the
+truth in the text. There are elders in the Church; there are or ought to
+be so in every church. With these elders the whole rule of the Church is
+intrusted; all these, and only these, do rule in it. Of these elders
+there are two sorts; for a description is given of one sort distinct
+from the other, and comparative with it. The first sort doth rule, and
+also labor in the word and doctrine. That these works are distinct and
+different was before declared: yet by the institution of Christ the
+right of rule is inseparable from the office of pastors or teachers. For
+all that are rightly called thereunto are elders also, which gives them
+an interest in rule. But there are elders which are not pastors or
+teachers. For there are some who rule well, but labor not in the word
+and doctrine; that is, who are not pastors or teachers.
+
+Elders which rule well, but labor not in the word and doctrine, are
+ruling elders only; for he who says, The elders who rule well are worthy
+of double honor, especially they who labor in the word and doctrine,
+saith that there are, or may be elders who rule well, who do not labor
+in the word and doctrine; that is, who are not obliged to do so.
+
+The argument from these words may be otherwise framed, but this contains
+the plain sense of this testimony.
+
+Our next testimony is from the same apostle, Rom. xii. 6, 7, _He that
+ruleth with diligence_. Our argument from hence is this: there is in the
+Church one that ruleth with authority by virtue of his office. For the
+discharge of this office there is a differing peculiar gift bestowed on
+some, ver. 7, and there is the special manner prescribed for the
+discharge of this special office, by virtue of that special gift; it is
+to be done with peculiar _diligence_. And this ruler is distinguished
+from him that exhorteth, and him that teacheth, with whose special work,
+as such, he hath nothing to do; even as they are distinguished from
+those who give and show mercy; that is, there is an elder by office in
+the Church, whose work and duty it is to _rule_, not to exhort or teach
+ministerially, which is our ruling elder. He that ruleth is a distinct
+officer, and is expressly distinguished from all others. Rule is the
+principal part of him that ruleth; for he is to attend unto it with
+_diligence_; that is, such as is peculiar unto _rule_, in
+contradistinction unto what is principally required in other
+administrations.
+
+There is the same evidence given unto the truth argued for in another
+testimony of the same apostle, 1 Cor. xii. 28: that there is here an
+enumeration of offices and officers in the Church, both extraordinary
+for that season, and ordinary for continuance, is beyond exception. Unto
+them is added the present exercise of some extraordinary gifts, as
+miracles, healing, tongues. That by _helps_ the deacons of the Church
+are intended most do agree, because their original institution was as
+helpers in the affairs of the Church. _Governments_ are governors or
+rulers; that is, such as are distinct from teachers; such hath God
+placed in the Church, and such there ought to be. It is said that
+_gifts_, not _offices_, are intended; the gift of government, or the
+gift for government. If God hath given gifts for government to abide in
+the Church, distinct from those given unto _teachers_, and unto other
+persons than the teachers, then there is a distinct office of rule or
+government in the Church, which is all we plead for.
+
+
+_Of the Duties of Ruling Elders._
+
+1st. To watch diligently over the ways, walk, and conversation of all
+the members of the church, to see that it be blameless, without offence,
+useful, exemplary, and in all things answering the holiness of the
+commands of Christ, the honor of the gospel, and the profession thereof
+which they make in the world. And upon the observation which they make
+in the watch wherein they are placed, to instruct, admonish, charge,
+exhort, encourage, or comfort as they see cause. And this they are to
+attend unto, with courage and diligence.
+
+2d. To endeavor to prevent every thing that is contrary unto that love
+which the Lord Christ requireth in a peculiar and eminent manner to be
+found among his disciples. This he calls his own _new command_, with
+respect unto his authority requiring it, his example first illustrating
+it in the world, and the peculiar fruits and effects of it which he
+revealed and taught. Wherefore, the due observance of this law of love
+in itself and all its fruits, with the prevention, removal, or
+condemnation of all that is contrary unto it, is that in which the _rule
+of the church_ doth in a great measure consist. And considering the
+weakness, the passions, the temptations of men, the mutual provocations
+and differences that are apt to fall out even among the best, the
+influence that earthly objects are apt to have upon their minds, the
+frowardness sometimes of men's natural tempers; the attendance unto
+this one duty, or part of rule, requires the utmost diligence of them
+that are called unto it.
+
+3d. To warn all the members of the church of their special church
+duties, that they be not found negligent or wanting in them. These are
+special duties required respectively of all church members, according
+unto the distinct talents which they have received, whether in things
+spiritual or temporal. Some are rich and some are poor; some old and
+some young; some in peace and some in trouble; some have received more
+spiritual gifts than others, and have more opportunity for their
+exercise: therefore it belongs unto the rule of the church, that all be
+admonished, instructed, and exhorted to attend unto their respective
+duties, by those in _rule_, according to the observation which they make
+of people's diligence or negligence in them.
+
+4th. To watch against the beginning of any church disorders, such as
+those that infested the church of Corinth, or any of the like sort; and
+to see that the members of the church attend regularly upon the
+ordinances of the gospel, as by slothfulness in this, decays in faith,
+love, and order have insensibly prevailed in many, to the dishonor of
+Christ, and the danger of their own souls.
+
+5th. It belongs unto them also to visit the sick, and especially such as
+their inward or outward conditions do expose them unto more than
+ordinary trials in their sickness; that is, the poor, the afflicted, the
+tempted in any kind. This in general is a moral duty, a work of mercy;
+but it is moreover a peculiar church duty by virtue of divine
+institution, ordaining, that the disciples of Christ may have all that
+spiritual and temporal relief, which is necessary for them, and useful
+to them, in their troubles and distresses.
+
+6th. To assist the pastor in watching over and directing the flock, and
+to advise with the deacons concerning the relief of the poor. According
+to the advantage which they have by their peculiar inspection of the
+conversation of all the members of the church, they ought to acquaint
+the teaching elders with the state of the flock, as to their knowledge,
+conditions, and temptations, which may be of singular use unto them, for
+their direction in the exercise of their ministry. The liberal
+contributions at Antioch for the brethren which dwelt in Judea, were
+sent by the hands of Barnabas and Saul unto the elders in Judea, Acts
+xi. 27, 30.
+
+7th. To unite with teaching elders in admitting members into the
+fellowship of the church, upon a visible evidence of their being
+qualified as the Scriptures direct. Unto them God bath given the keys of
+the kingdom of heaven, to open the door of admission unto those whom God
+hath received, Matt. xvi. 19.
+
+8th. To meet and consult with the teaching elders about such things of
+importance as are to be proposed to the members of the church for their
+consent. Hence nothing rash or indigested, nothing unsuited to the duty
+of the church, will at any time be proposed therein, so as to give
+occasion for contests, janglings, or disputes, contrary to order or
+decency, but all things may be preserved in a due regard unto the
+gravity and authority of the rulers.
+
+9th. To sit in judgment upon offenders, to take the proof, to weigh the
+evidence and determine accordingly, justifying the innocent, and
+ordaining censure to be inflicted on the convicted brother, according to
+the nature of the offence, Matt. xviii. 15, 17, 18.
+
+10th. Whereas there is generally but one teaching elder in a church,
+upon his death or removal, it is the work and duty of the ruling elders
+to preserve the church in peace and unity, to take care of the
+continuation of its public ordinances, to prevent irregularities in any
+persons or parties among them, and to give all necessary aid and advice
+in the choice and call of some other meet person to be their pastor, in
+the room of the deceased or removed.
+
+
+
+
+CONCLUSION.
+
+_A Summary of the preceding Treatise on Church Government,_
+
+BY QUESTION AND ANSWER.
+
+
+_Quest_. What is meant by church government?
+
+_Ans_. That particular form and order, which Christ has fixed in his
+Church, for the proper management thereof.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that there is a particular form of
+government appointed in the New Testament Church?
+
+_Ans_. As there is as great, if not greater, need of a government, in
+the New Testament Church, than there was in the Old, all the ordinances
+of which were most minutely described. Satan is now more experienced in
+deceiving, and his agents are still alive, and very actively employed,
+in attempting to waste and destroy this sacred vineyard, if without its
+proper hedge. Her members are still a mixture of tares and wheat; of
+sheep and goats: so that there is still a necessity of discerning
+between the precious and the vile; of trying and censuring false
+teachers; and of guarding divine ordinances from contempt and pollution.
+As Jesus gives the New Testament Church the peculiar title of the
+_kingdom of heaven_, he could not, in a consistency with his wisdom,
+leave it without any particular laws or form of government, except the
+changeable inclinations of men. As he was faithful in his New Testament
+house, he must fix a particular form of government for her, such as
+tends to her peace, order, and spiritual edification. And, amidst the
+prophet's vision of the New Testament Church, he is directed to teach
+his people _the form of the house, the laws of the house_, &c., Ezek.
+xliii. 11.
+
+_Quest_. When may a particular form of church government be said to be
+of divine right?
+
+_Ans_. When all the parts thereof are agreeable to Scripture precepts;
+to approved Scripture examples; or are deducible by fair Scripture
+consequences.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear, that Scripture consequences are to be
+admitted to prove any particular truth or doctrine?
+
+_Ans_. Because God has formed man a rational intelligent creature,
+capable of searching out the plain meaning and import, and also the
+necessary consequences of his express declarations. We find Christ
+reasoning by a deduction of consequences, when he showed that the
+doctrine of the resurrection was revealed to Moses at the burning bush;
+that the sixth commandment forbids angry words; and the seventh
+lascivious looks, Luke xx. 37, 38; Matt. v. 21, 28. And a great part of
+the inspired epistles to the Romans, Galatians, and Hebrews consists in
+such a deduction of consequences. And as all Scripture is said to be
+profitable "for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, and for
+instruction in righteousness," 2 Tim. iii. 16, without a rational
+deduction of consequences, every portion of Scripture cannot answer each
+of these valuable ends.
+
+_Quest_. What particular form of church government may lay the only
+proper claim to a divine right, according to the Holy Scriptures?
+
+_Ans_. The true presbyterian form, without that lordly dominion and
+tyrannical power, which has too often been exercised by courts, bearing
+this name. This government claimeth no power over men's bodies or
+estates. It does not inflict civil pains or corporal punishments. But it
+is a government purely spiritual, dealing with the consciences of men,
+and exercising the keys of the kingdom of heaven, doing all things
+according to the word of God.
+
+_Quest_. What are the parts of presbyterial church government?
+
+_Ans_. It consists of a people, having the qualifications which the
+Scriptures require; of certain rulers, who are to perform the duties of
+their respective offices; and of certain courts, in which these rulers
+sit and act in matters of judgment.
+
+_Quest_. What are the qualifications of persons who constitute the
+private members of the visible church?
+
+_Ans_. They ought to be true believers in Christ, to have a competent
+knowledge of the doctrines of the gospel, to make a sound profession of
+their faith, and to maintain a holy conversation.
+
+_Quest_. What rulers are there in the presbyterian church?
+
+_Ans_. Preaching elders, ruling elders, and deacons.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for the preaching elder?
+
+_Ans_. In the Holy Scriptures we find that God hath set some in the
+Church, TEACHERS: that our ascended Redeemer hath given her PASTORS and
+TEACHERS: that the Holy Ghost had made some BISHOPS, OVERSEERS, to feed
+her; and qualifies some for _prophecy, ministry, teaching, exhortation_,
+1 Cor. xii. 28; Eph. iv. 11; Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 6-8.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of preaching elders?
+
+_Ans_. To preach the word; to dispense the ordinances of baptism and the
+Lord's Supper; to administer church discipline; and to rule and govern
+the church, 2 Tim. iv. 2; Matt. xxviii. 19; 1 Cor. xi. 23-29; 1 Tim. v.
+20; Tit. ii. 15, and iii. 10; Heb. xiii. 17; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. _Quest_.
+Is the office of the gospel minister instituted by God to continue to
+the end of time?
+
+_Ans_. Yes; the ends of it are of a permanent nature, the converting and
+confirming of the elect, and the silencing of gain-savers, Acts xxvi.
+18; Tit. i. 9, 11.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for the office of the ruling elder?
+
+_Ans_. From the three following passages of sacred Scripture: 1. From
+Rom. xii. 5 to 8: "We being many are one body in Christ, and members one
+of another. Having then gifts, differing according to the grace that is
+given to us, whether prophecy, let us prophesy according to the
+proportion of faith; or ministry, let us wait on our ministering; or he
+that teacheth, on teaching; or he that exhorteth, on exhortation; he
+that giveth, let him do it with simplicity; he that ruleth, with
+diligence," &c. Here we have a list of the ordinary officers of Christ,
+one body, the church. Here is the teacher: _he that teacheth_. Here is
+the pastor: _he that exhorteth_. Here is the deacon: _he that giveth_.
+And here is another officer distinct from all them, _he that ruleth_.
+His description attests, that _ruling_ is, if not his only, yet his
+principal work. He that _ruleth_ is here marked by a distinct character,
+as having a different _gift_, and a distinct work from his
+fellow-officers. This office therefore must be _distinct_. 2. From 1
+Cor. xii. 28, where the _Spirit of God_ informs us, that God hath set
+some in the Church, GOVERNMENTS. These must be understood of
+_governors_, as _miracles_ are afterwards explained of _workers of
+miracles_. These governments and governors are said to be _set_ in the
+church, not in the state; by God, not by men: they are declared to be
+distinct officers by themselves. Their title, government, implies, that
+_ruling_ is their principal work. 3. From 1 Tim. v. 17, where the divine
+warrant for ruling elders shines with more peculiar brightness than
+anywhere in the book of God: "Let the elders that rule well be counted
+worthy of double honor; especially they who labor in the word and
+doctrine." The ruling elders here mentioned necessarily pertain to the
+church. Two sorts of ruling elders are here plainly distinguished: some
+that only rule well; others that also labor in word and doctrine. There
+is not one place in the New Testament, nor perhaps in any Greek author,
+where the word here translated ESPECIALLY does not distinguish between
+different persons or things, Gal. vi. 10; Phil. iv. 22; 1 Tim. iv. 10; 2
+Tim. iv. 13; and it would be absurd to suppose, that it does not
+distinguish here also. Therefore this single text shows the divine right
+of both the teaching and ruling elder.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of ruling elders?
+
+_Ans_. To exercise ecclesiastical rule in church courts with the same
+authority as the preaching elder; to watch over the flock; impartially
+to receive or exclude members; to warn and censure the unruly; and to
+visit and pray with the sick.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for deacons?
+
+_Ans_. From Acts vi., where we are informed of the original and design
+of their office; and from 1 Tim. iii. 8-12, where the inspired apostle
+describes their necessary qualifications.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of deacons?
+
+_Ans_. To look into the state and to serve the tables of the poor, by
+distributing the funds of the church, according to the respective
+necessities of the saints, 1 Tim. iii. 12.
+
+_Quest_. What are the courts in which presbyterian rulers meet?
+
+_Ans_. Congregational sessions, presbyteries, and synods.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for congregational sessions?
+
+_Ans_. From Matt, xviii. 15-18, where, in the Christian form of church
+discipline prescribed by the Church's Head, the concluding expression,
+"Let him be unto thee as a heathen man and publican," plainly alludes to
+the Jewish form of procedure in scandals. They had rulers, and
+consequently courts in every synagogue, or worshipping congregation,
+Mark v. 35-39. By virtue of letters from the high-priest to these, Saul
+had free access to punish the Christians in every synagogue, Acts ix. 1,
+2. To these congregational courts it pertained to cast out of the
+synagogue, and to order transgressors to be held for heathen men and
+publicans, John ix. 22. Now Jesus, in alluding to these, intimates that
+similar courts should be in every Christian congregation. In this form
+of discipline our divine Saviour shows his utmost aversion against
+private offences being unnecessarily published abroad: and therefore the
+church, to which the offence is to be told, after private admonition is
+fruitless, must be understood in the most private sense of the word. The
+following context evidences that it is a _church_, which may consist
+only of _two or three_ met together in Christ's name; yet,
+notwithstanding, a church having power to bind and loose from censure;
+that is, a church having the keys of the kingdom of heaven. It cannot
+then be the whole congregation or body of the people, as they are in
+general far too numerous to conceal offences, and to them Christ has
+given no formal judicial power, Matt. xviii. 18-21.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for a presbytery?
+
+_Ans_. Timothy is expressly said to be ordained by the laying on of the
+hands of the PRESBYTERY, 1 Tim. iv. 14. And the number of different
+Christian congregations governed by one presbytery, as at Jerusalem,
+Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, proves the divine right of this court. It
+is shown in the xiii. chapter of the preceding treatise, that in each
+of these places there were more Christians than could meet in one
+worshipping congregation, for the enjoying of public ordinances: and yet
+all these different congregations, at Jerusalem, are expressly said to
+have been one church, Acts viii. 1: so those at Antioch, Acts xiii. 1:
+so those at Ephesus, Acts xx. 17: and those also at Corinth, 1 Cor. i.
+2. Now the question is, How were the different congregations in each of
+these places ONE CHURCH? Not merely in union to Christ and mutual
+affection one to another; for in this respect all the saints are ONE,
+whether in heaven or in earth. And therefore they are one church in
+virtue of conjunct government under ONE PRESBYTERY. And in difficult
+cases, or where a single congregation is so divided into parties that it
+cannot act impartially; where the difference is between the pastor and
+the people, a superior court is necessary to obtain material justice.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for an ecclesiastical synod?
+
+_Ans_. In Acts xv. and xvi., where we have a cause referred; the proper
+members of a synod convened; the ordinary and equal power exercised by
+all those members; the ordinary method of procedure in such courts; and
+the judicial decrees given by the synod; together with the effect which
+their judgment, in this matter, had upon the churches.
+
+_Quest_. What was the cause referred to this synod?
+
+_Ans_. False doctrine propagated by some Judaizing teachers, who had
+gone down from Jerusalem to Antioch, and maintained that circumcision
+and the observance of other branches of the ceremonial law continued
+necessary for salvation, whereby they subverted some, and troubled other
+members of the churches there. After much unsuccessful disputing, Paul,
+Barnabas, and others were delegated to go up to Jerusalem to the
+apostles and elders about this matter.
+
+_Quest_. Who were the proper members of the synod convened here?
+
+_Ans_. The apostles and elders at Jerusalem; Paul, Barnabas, and others,
+from Antioch; and other commissioners from the troubled churches to whom
+the decrees were sent.
+
+_Quest_. Are not the brethren, the church, the whole church, mentioned
+here as well as the apostles and elders?
+
+_Ans_. But none of these expressions can mean, that all the members of
+the church of Jerusalem either were present or judged in that synod; for
+women, real members of the church, of the whole church, are expressly
+forbid to speak in the church, 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Church sometimes
+signifies only a small part of the church, either as delegates or
+commissioners, and in this sense it is used in verse 3, where the
+commissioners from Antioch are said to be brought on their way by the
+_church_; and in chap. xviii. 22, it is said that Paul saluted the
+_church_ at Jerusalem. Now, it is not credible that all the Christian
+professors at Antioch would attend their commissioners a part of the way
+to Jerusalem; or that Paul saluted the many ten thousand Christians at
+Jerusalem, Acts xxi. 20. And the _whole church_ does not necessarily
+mean the whole individual members of the church, more than the _whole
+world_ mentioned, 1 John ii. 2, means every individual in the world. If
+any, to support a favorite opinion, will still insist that the whole
+members of the church actually met and judged of this affair equally
+with the apostles and elders, they may inform us where they obtained a
+proper place for so many judges to reason and determine with
+distinctness or order. That the brethren who joined in judgment with the
+apostles and elders were not private persons, but rather delegates from
+the troubled churches around, appears from Judas and Silas, two of them
+being preachers, v. 22.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that the power of all the members was
+ordinary and equal?
+
+_Ans_. As every member, inspired or not, acted equally in the whole
+business laid before them. Paul and Barnabas were delegated by the
+church of Antioch: and the elders, who convened, had the same power as
+the apostles. To the elders, teaching or ruling, as well as to the
+apostles, was the matter referred: both met to consider of it: both were
+equally concerned in the decision, saying, _It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost and to us_. Elders, as well as apostles, imposed the necessary
+things upon the churches, and authoritatively determined the decrees. In
+the name of the elders, as well as of the apostles, the letters of the
+meeting, containing their decision, were written to the churches. And
+the only reason why the inspired members put themselves on an equality
+with others was to exhibit a pattern to after ages.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear, that this synod followed the ordinary
+method of procedure in such courts?
+
+_Ans_. As they examined the cause by much reasoning and dispute. In
+consequence of mature deliberation they determined the question, and
+sent letters, containing their decrees, by proper messengers, to the
+churches concerned. In their disputation they reasoned from the oracles
+of God: on these they founded their decision; and hence therein they
+say, _It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us_. And if this had not
+been to have given a pattern to succeeding ages, all this was
+unnecessary: how absurd for inspired men to reason and dispute on the
+subject, when the sentence of one inspired was sufficient for decision!
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that there were judicial decrees given by
+this synod?
+
+_Ans_. In opposition to the false doctrine taught, they, by a judicial
+decision, plainly declared, that obedience to the ceremonies of the law
+of Moses was no longer necessary: and by a decree for promoting decency
+and good order, they enacted, that to avoid offence, the believing
+Gentiles should abstain from fornication, from things strangled, and
+from blood, verse 24-29.
+
+_Quest_. What effect had the decision of this synod upon the churches?
+
+_Ans_. They cheerfully submitted to these _decrees_, and were by them
+conformed in the faith, comforted in heart, and increased in number
+daily, Acts xv. 31, and xvi. 4, 5.
+
+_Quest_. But might not this be a meeting merely for consultation, and
+their decision a mere advice?
+
+_Ans_. No: for every word here used imports authority. The word
+translated _lay upon_, commonly signifies an authoritative imposition,
+Matt. xxiii. 4. The decision is expressly called a _necessary burden_,
+and _decrees ordained_, which imply power and authority, Acts xv. 16,
+xvii. 7.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that inferior courts are subordinate to
+those that are superior; sessions to presbyteries, and presbyteries to
+synods?
+
+_Ans_. The true light of nature (which is proved, chap, iii., to be one
+of those ways, whereby a thing is of divine right) teacheth us, that, if
+we be injured by an inferior court, we may appeal to a higher court for
+redress, if there be one. As in the Jewish church there was evidently a
+subordination of judicatories, so that those injured in the synagogue
+might appeal to the Sanhedrin, Deut. xvii. 8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8, 11;
+Exod. xviii. 22, 26; Ps. cxxii. 5: therefore as our dangers,
+difficulties, and necessities are as great as theirs, by reason of false
+teachers and corrupt doctrines, which were foretold should appear in the
+last times, 1 Tim. iv. 1; 2 Pet. ii. 1; we cannot, without dishonor to
+Christ, suppose that he would deprive us of a proper remedy for
+redressing our grievances, which was afforded unto them:--the gradual
+advance in managing offences prescribed by Christ himself, Matt. xviii.
+19, as his care for the whole church cannot be less than for a single
+member. If then an inferior judicatory offend or injure us, we ought to
+carry the matter to another that has more influence and authority. If
+the offending judicatory neglect to hear this, we ought to tell the
+offence to the church in the highest sense, that redress may be
+obtained--the apostle Paul declaring, _that the spirits of the prophets
+are subject to the prophets_. But the right of reference or appeal from
+an inferior to a superior court is most clearly evinced from the case
+of the presbytery of Antioch, respecting circumcision, being referred
+for decision to the synod of Jerusalem, and their readily submitting to
+its determination, Acts xv.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that no power of authority is lodged in the
+body of the people, the private members of the church?
+
+_Ans_. Although every church member has a right to all the spiritual
+privileges purchased with the Saviour's blood, and given to the church,
+as need requires; although he has a right to try the spirits, and to
+prove all things by the word of God; a power to choose the church
+officers who are immediately to rule over him; yet the Holy Scriptures
+allow the exercise of no official power to the private members of the
+church. Not the Christian people, but their pastors have power to preach
+the gospel, Rom. x. 15; and to administer the sacraments, those
+mysteries of God, which are connected with preaching, 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+Matt. xxviii. 19. Not the people, but their rulers, are divinely
+warranted. Timothy was ordained, not by the people, but by the
+presbytery: elders, not by the people, but by Paul and Barnabas: and
+deacons, not by the people, but by the apostles, 1 Tim. iv. 14; Acts
+xiv. 23, and vi. 3, 6. Not the people, but their rulers are to censure
+the scandalous, and to absolve the penitent, Matt. xviii. 18; 1 Cor. v.
+The Scripture nowhere ascribes to the people any such characters as
+imply authority lodged in them; but the contrary. Instead of being
+styled pastors, they are called the _flock_, watched over and fed;
+instead of overseers, the family overseen; instead of _rulers, guides,
+governors_, they are called the _body_ governed, the persons subject in
+the Lord, and they are solemnly charged to know, honor, obey, and submit
+to those that are over them.
+
+_Quest_. What is the proper method of dealing with persons that fall
+into scandal?
+
+_Ans_. If the offence be known only to one or to a few, the offender is
+to be told his fault secretly, with Christian meekness, plainness, and
+love. If he profess his sorrow and resolution to amend, the whole matter
+ought to be carefully concealed; and those offended ought to be well
+pleased that their offending brother is gained. If, after one or more
+secret reproofs, he continue impenitent, defending his fault, one or two
+more Christian brethren, grave, judicious, and meek, are to be taken
+along, and the offender to be dealt with by them, and in their presence.
+If now he appear to repent, the several persons concerned in his reproof
+are, with care and in love, to conceal his offence, lest, by divulging
+it, they be reproached as wicked calumniators. If the offender contemn
+one or more such private admonitions or reproofs, or if his scandal be
+of such a nature that it will necessarily become public, the affair is
+to be told to the church court, to which he is most immediately subject.
+And, to bring him to a due sense of his fault, he is to be there dealt
+with in a prudent, affectionate, plain, and convincing manner. If this
+prove a means of bringing him to a sense of his offence, the censures of
+the church are to be executed upon him according to the laws of Christ's
+house, and the nature of his crime, and he is to be restored to the
+privileges of the church. But if, after due pains taken by the
+judicatories, he remain obstinate, he is then to be cast out of the
+church, and held as a heathen man and publican, Matt. xviii. 15 to 18.
+
+THE END.
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS.
+
+
+ PAGE.
+PREFACE 7
+
+PART I.
+
+CHAP. I.--That there is a Government in the Church of divine
+right now under the New Testament 19
+
+CHAP. II.--Of the nature of a divine right in general 22
+
+CHAP. III.--Of a divine right in particular, which is five ways;
+first, by the true light of Nature 24
+
+CHAP. IV.--Of a divine right, second, by obligatory Scripture 27
+examples
+
+CHAP. V.--Of a divine right, third, by God's approbation 37
+
+CHAP. VI.--Of a divine right, fourth, by divine acts 39
+
+CHAP. VII.--Of a divine right, fifth, by divine precepts 40
+
+
+PART II.
+
+CHAP. I.--A description of church government 45
+
+CHAP. II.--The subject described, and the terms church government
+briefly defined 46
+
+CHAP. III.--The general nature of church government, viz., power or
+authority 48
+
+CHAP. IV.--The special difference of church government from other
+governments, as to the special rule of it, viz., the Holy 53
+Scriptures
+
+CHAP. V.--The proper fountain from which church government is
+derived, so as to constitute it of divine authority, viz., Jesus
+Christ our Mediator 55
+
+CHAP. VI.--The peculiar nature of this power and authority 57
+
+CHAP. VII.--The several acts about which this power and authority
+is exercised, viz., doctrine and discipline 61
+
+CHAP. VIII.--The end and design of this government of the church 67
+
+CHAP. IX.--The peculiar subject intrusted by Christ with this
+power, and the execution thereof according to the Scriptures 70
+
+SECT. I.--The power granted to the civil magistrate about the 92
+Church
+
+SECT. II.--The power utterly refused him in church affairs 94
+
+CHAP. X.--That the community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, are not the immediate subject of the power of church 97
+government
+
+CHAP. XI.--That Christ's own officers are the immediate subject of
+it; pastors and ruling elders 111
+
+The divine right of the ruling elder at large 114
+
+The divine right of the deacon 149
+
+CHAP. XII.--The divine right of congregational elderships, or kirk
+sessions, for the government of the Church 172
+
+CHAP. XIII.--The divine right of presbyteries, consisting of rulers
+from different neighboring congregations 177
+
+CHAP. XIV.--The divine right of synods 197
+
+CHAP. XV.--The subordination of particular congregations to greater
+assemblies, for their judicial determination of ecclesiastical
+causes, proved to be of divine right 210
+
+
+APPENDIX.
+
+No. I.--Of the qualifications and duties of church members 219
+
+No. II.--Who have a right to preach the Gospel 237
+
+No. III.--On the same subject 240
+
+No. IV.--On the people's right to choose their own pastors 249
+
+No. V.--On the ordination and duty of ministers 256
+
+No. VI.--Of ruling elders, from Dr. Owen 258
+
+Conclusion 266
+
+
+
+
+FOOTNOTES:
+
+[Footnote 117: The substance of this Number is extracted from Ford's
+Gospel Church, printed 1675.]
+
+[Footnote 118: John xvi. 8, 9; 2 Cor. v. 5; Eph. ii. 1, 5.]
+
+[Footnote 119: Col. ii. 6; 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.]
+
+[Footnote 120: Col. i. 12.]
+
+[Footnote 121: 1 Pet. ii. 5.]
+
+[Footnote 122: From Brown's Letters.]
+
+[Footnote 123: Extracted from the Christian Magazine for Sept. 1797--a
+periodical publication well worth the perusal of the friends of
+evangelical doctrine.]
+
+[Footnote 124: From Brown's Letters.]
+
+[Footnote 125: This number is a summary of Dr. Owen's arguments in favor
+of the divine right of the ruling elder, with an abstract of the duties
+which he ought to perform. Although the Doctor was a professed
+Independent, yet he was entirely different, both in doctrine and church
+government, from any in Scotland that bear that name, as all who are
+acquainted with his works will easily observe. The writer of his life
+asserts that he heard him say, "He could readily join with presbytery as
+it was exercised in Scotland." And indeed it appears very probable that
+the difference between the consultative synod which he allows, and the
+authoritative synod contended for by true Presbyterians, is not so far
+different as many apprehend, because the decisions of either bind the
+conscience only as they are agreeable to the Holy Ghost speaking in the
+Scriptures.]
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Divine Right of Church Government
+by Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 13941 ***
diff --git a/13941-h/13941-h.htm b/13941-h/13941-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..ca2b8fb
--- /dev/null
+++ b/13941-h/13941-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,12530 @@
+<!DOCTYPE HTML PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01 Transitional//EN">
+<html lang="en">
+<head>
+<meta name="generator" content=
+"HTML Tidy for Windows (vers 1st March 2004), see www.w3.org">
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content=
+"text/html; charset=UTF-8">
+<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Divine Right of Church
+Goverment, by Sundry Ministers of London</title>
+
+<style type="text/css">
+ <!--
+ body { margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%; }
+ p { text-indent: 1em;
+ margin-top: .75em;
+ font-size: 100%;
+ text-align: justify;
+ margin-bottom: .75em; }
+ h1,h2,h3,h4,h5,h6 { text-align: center; }
+ hr { width: 50%; }
+ hr.full { width: 100%; }
+ .foot { margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; text-align: justify; text-indent: -3em; font-size: 85%; }
+ .poem { margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; margin-bottom: 1em; text-align: left; }
+ .poem .stanza { margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em; }
+ .poem p { margin: 0; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em; }
+ .poem p.i2 { margin-left: 1em; }
+ .poem p.i4 { margin-left: 2em; }
+ .poem p.i6 { margin-left: 3em; }
+ .poem p.i8 { margin-left: 4em; }
+ .poem p.i10 { margin-left: 5em; }
+ .toc { margin-left: 15%; font-size: 80%; margin-bottom: 0em;}
+ .toc2 { margin-left: 17%; font-size: 80%; margin-bottom: 0em;}
+ .toc3 { margin-left: 19%; font-size: 80%; margin-bottom: 0em;}
+ center { padding: 0.8em;}
+ td {border-top: 1px solid black}
+ table {border: 1px solid black}
+ // -->
+</style>
+</head>
+<body>
+<div>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 13941 ***</div>
+
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<center>THE</center>
+<h1>DIVINE RIGHT</h1>
+<center>OF</center>
+<h1>CHURCH GOVERNMENT:</h1>
+<h5>WHEREIN IT IS PROVED</h5>
+<h5>THAT THE PRESBYTERIAN GOVERNMENT, BY PREACHING AND RULING<br>
+ELDERS, IN SESSIONAL, PRESBYTERIAL, AND SYNODICAL<br>
+ASSEMBLIES, MAY LAY THE ONLY LAWFUL CLAIM TO A<br>
+DIVINE RIGHT, ACCORDING TO THE HOLY SCRIPTURES.</h5>
+<center>A NEW EDITION, CORRECTED AND AMENDED.</center>
+<hr>
+<center><b>BY SUNDRY MINISTERS OF CHRIST WITHIN THE<br>
+CITY OF LONDON.</b></center>
+<hr>
+<h5>TO WHICH IS ADDED</h5>
+<h3>AN APPENDIX,</h3>
+<h5>CONTAINING</h5>
+<h5>EXTRACTS FROM SOME OF THE BEST AUTHORS WHO HAVE WRITTEN<br>
+ON CHURCH GOVERNMENT,</h5>
+<h6>CONCERNING THE SCRIPTURAL QUALIFICATIONS AND DUTIES OF CHURCH
+MEMBERS;<br>
+THE SOLE RIGHT OF GOSPEL MINISTERS TO PREACH THE GOSPEL; THE<br>
+PEOPLE'S DIVINE RIGHT TO CHOOSE THEIR OWN PASTORS;</h6>
+<h6>TOGETHER WITH</h6>
+<h5>AN ABSTRACT OF THE ARGUMENTS OF THE GREAT DR. OWEN<br>
+(THOUGH A PROFESSED INDEPENDENT)<br>
+IN FAVOUR OF THE DIVINE RIGHT OF THE OFFICE OF THE RULING
+ELDER.</h5>
+<hr>
+<h4>NEW YORK:<br>
+R. MARTIN &amp; CO., 26 JOHN-STREET.</h4>
+<hr>
+<center>M.DCCC.XLIV.<br>
+(1844)</center>
+<hr>
+<h2>CONTENTS.</h2>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_4_0001">THE EDITOR TO THE
+READER.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_PREF">PREFACE</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_4_0003">THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH
+GOVERNMENT.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#H_PART1">PART I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0001">CHAPTER I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0002">CHAPTER II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0003">CHAPTER III.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0004">CHAPTER IV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0005">CHAPTER V.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0006">CHAPTER VI.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0007">CHAPTER VII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#H_PART2">PART II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0008">CHAPTER I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0009">CHAPTER II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0010">CHAPTER III.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0011">CHAPTER IV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0012">CHAPTER V.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0013">CHAPTER VI.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0014">CHAPTER VII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0015">CHAPTER VIII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0016">CHAPTER IX.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTI-I">SECTION I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTI-II">SECTION II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0017">CHAPTER X.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTII-I">SECTION I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTII-II">SECTION II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0018">CHAPTER XI.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTIII-II">SECTION II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTIII-III">SECTION III.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0019">CHAPTER XII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0020">CHAPTER XIII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0021">CHAPTER XIV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0022">CHAPTER XV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#H_FOOT1">FOOTNOTES</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_APPE">APPENDICES</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_APPE">NO. I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0036">NO. II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0037">NO. III.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0038">NO. IV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0039">NO. V.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0040">NO. VI.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_CONC">CONCLUSION.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#H_FOOT2">FOOTNOTES</a></p>
+<a name="2H_4_0001"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>THE EDITOR TO THE READER.</h2>
+<hr>
+<p>After what the authors of the following Treatise have said in
+their preface, the Editor judges it unnecessary for him to detain
+the reader long with any observations of his upon the subject. He,
+however, could sincerely wish that the friends of Christ would pay
+that attention to the government and discipline of his Church which
+it justly deserves. Although this subject should not be placed
+among the things essential to the being of a Christian; yet if it
+be found among the things that Christ has commanded, it is at our
+peril if we continue wilfully ignorant of, or despise it. He has
+expressly declared, that he who breaks one of the <i>least</i> of
+his commandments, and teacheth men to do so, shall be called least
+in the kingdom of heaven. It is an opinion too common, that if we
+believe the <i>essentials</i> of religion, there is no occasion for
+so much preciseness about the forms of church government, which are
+only <i>circumstantials</i>, as there will be no inquiry made about
+these at the tribunal of Christ. But whatever relative importance
+the things of religion may have, when compared with one another, we
+ought to reckon nothing which God hath appointed, nothing which
+Jesus hath ratified with his blood, nothing which the Holy Spirit
+hath indited, so <i>circumstantial</i>, as to be unworthy of our
+serious regard. It is at least very rash, if not presumptuous, to
+say, that nothing about the circumstantials of religion will be
+inquired into at the tribunal of Christ. God has expressly said,
+that every work, good or evil, every idle word, and every deed done
+in the body, shall be brought into judgment; and false worshippers
+will, perhaps, find that their form of worship consisted in
+something worse than idle words, or sinful words either, even in
+sinful deeds, for which they will be accountable at the judgment.
+As Christ laid down his life for his people, has instructed them,
+and has set a hedge about all that they have, it would be most
+ungrateful to requite him with pouring the highest contempt on his
+kingly honor and authority; and when his worship is polluted, his
+truth perverted, and the walls of his New Testament Zion broken
+down, to care for none of those things. Government and discipline
+are the hedge of his garden, the Church; and how will what men call
+the essentials of religion remain in their glory, when this is
+broken down, the present state of affairs can sufficiently attest,
+when the most damnable errors are propagated with impunity.</p>
+<p>In our times the enemies of the scriptural order of the house of
+God are very numerous and very active, exerting all their power to
+break down the carved work of God's sanctuary. The present spirit
+for novelty and innovation, together with the rage for infidelity
+so prevalent, strongly favors the opposition made to every thing
+which has a tendency to bind men closely to God, to his truths, to
+the purity of his worship and ordinances, or to one another by a
+holy profession. The design, therefore, of republishing this
+Treatise is to assist Presbyterians of all denominations in the
+understanding of those passages of Scripture upon which their wall
+is built, that they be not led aside by the cunning speeches of
+false teachers, whereby they deceive and draw aside the hearts of
+the simple.</p>
+<p>This work was first published at London, at the time when the
+controversy between the Presbyterians and ancient Independents ran
+very high, and every intelligent and unprejudiced reader will see,
+that the Holy Scriptures have been carefully perused, accurately
+compared, wisely collected, and judiciously explained, in order to
+evince that the Presbyterian government has the only lawful claim
+to a divine right, and is the only form appointed by Christ in his
+Church. It is, therefore, to be wished, that all his people would
+endeavor, in the strength of Divine grace, to observe the laws of
+his house, and to walk in all his ordinances and commandments
+blameless.</p>
+<p>Considerable pains have been taken to make this edition more
+easily understood by common readers than the former, and yet
+several difficult and hard words have passed unnoticed. The Latin
+quotations from the Fathers have been omitted, because they contain
+nothing materially different from what is in the body of the work,
+and modern Independents pay little regard to any human authorities
+but their own. It was proposed to have added a few extracts from
+Messrs. Rutherford and Gillespie, but upon looking into their works
+nothing of consequence was observed, that tended to cast any new
+light upon the subject. It is hoped, however, that the Appendix is
+filled up with extracts from other authors upon subjects of
+considerable importance, and very necessary for these times,
+concerning the scriptural qualifications and duties of church
+members; the divine right of the gospel ministry; the people's
+divine right to choose their own pastors; with an abstract of Dr.
+Owen's arguments in favor of the divine right of the ruling elder:
+and as there are many serious Christians who have not a capacity to
+take up and retain a long chain of reasoning, a summary of the
+whole Treatise is given by way of question and answer as a
+conclusion.</p>
+<p>The Editor is not to be understood as approving of, or
+vindicating every single sentiment, or mode of expression, used in
+this Treatise: at the same time, next to the Holy Scriptures, he
+recommends it as one of the best defences of presbytery which he
+has seen.</p>
+<p>That it may be blessed of God for informing the ignorant,
+settling the wavering, and establishing the believers of <i>the
+present Truth</i>, is the earnest desire of,</p>
+
+<p>Christian reader,</p>
+<p>Your humble servant in the Gospel, </p>
+<p>T.H.</p>
+<p><i>Paisley, 28th February, 1799.</i></p>
+<a name="2H_PREF"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>PREFACE</h2>
+<h3>TO THE PIOUS AND JUDICIOUS READER.</h3>
+<p>CHRISTIAN READER:</p>
+<p>Thou hast in the ensuing treatise, 1st, a brief delineation of
+the nature of a divine right, wherein it consists, and how many
+ways a thing may be accounted of divine right, according to the
+Scriptures; as also, 2d, a plain and familiar description of that
+church government which seems to have the clearest divine right for
+it, and (of all other contended for) to be the most consonant and
+agreeable to the word of Christ; which description (comprehending
+in itself the whole frame and system of the government) is in the
+several branches thereof explained and confirmed by testimonies or
+arguments from Scripture; more briefly, in particulars which are
+easily granted; more largely, in particulars which are commonly
+controverted; yet as perspicuously and concisely in both as the
+nature of this unusual and comprehensive subject insisted upon
+would permit. Things are handled rather by way of positive
+assertion, than of polemical dissertation, (which too commonly
+degenerates into verbal strifes, 1 Tim. vi. 3, 4; 2 Tim. ii. 23;
+and vain-jangling, 1 Tim. i. 6,) and where any dissenting opinions
+or objections are refuted, we hope it is with that sobriety,
+meekness, and moderation of spirit, that any unprejudiced judgment
+may perceive, that we had rather gain than grieve those who dissent
+from us; that we endeavor rather to heal up than to tear open the
+rent; and that we contend more for truth than for victory.</p>
+<p>To the publication hereof we have been inclinable (after much
+importunity) principally upon deliberate and serious consideration
+of, 1st, the necessity of a treatise of this kind; 2d, the
+advantage likely to accrue thereupon; and, 3d, the seasonable
+opportunity of sending it abroad at such a time as this is.</p>
+<p>I. The necessity of a treatise of this nature, is evident and
+urgent. For,</p>
+<p>1. We hold ourselves obliged, not only by the common duty of our
+ministerial calling, but also by the special bond of our solemn
+covenant with God, especially in Art. 1, to bend all our best
+endeavors to help forward a reformation of religion according to
+the word of God, which can never be effected without a due
+establishment of the scripture-government and discipline in the
+Church of God. And to make known what this government is from the
+law and testimony, by preaching or writing, comes properly and
+peculiarly within the sphere of our place and vocation.</p>
+<p>2. A cloud of darkness and prejudice, in reference to this
+matter of church government, too generally rests upon the judgments
+and apprehensions of men (yea of God's own people) among us,
+either, 1st, through the difficulty or uncommonness of this matter
+of church government, (though ancient and familiar in other
+reformed churches, yet new and strange to us;) or, 2d, through the
+strange misrepresentations that are made hereof, by those that are
+small friends to the true presbyterial government, or that are
+enemies to all church government whatsoever; or, 3d, through the
+different opinions about church government, which are to be found
+among pious people and ministers: by all which the weak and
+unstable minds of many are cast into a maze of many confused
+thoughts and irresolutions.</p>
+<p>3. Though many learned treatises have been published, some
+whereof have positively asserted, others have polemically
+vindicated divers parts of church government, and the divine right
+thereof, yet hitherto no treatise of this nature is extant,
+positively laying open the nature of a divine right, what it is,
+and a system of that government, which is so, and proving both by
+the Scriptures; without which, how shall the judgments and
+consciences of men be satisfied, that this is that church
+government, according to the word of God, which they have
+covenanted to endeavor to promote, and whereto they are obliged to
+submit? And since it is our lot to travel in an unbeaten path, we,
+therefore, promise to ourselves, from all sober and judicious
+readers, the greater candor and ingenuity in their measuring of our
+steps and progress herein.</p>
+<p>II. The advantage which may probably accrue hereupon, we hope
+shall be manifold: For, 1. Who can tell but that some of them, that
+in some things are misled and contrary-minded, may be convinced and
+regained? and it will be no small reward of our labors if but one
+erring brother may be brought back. 2. Some satisfaction may
+redound to such as are of doubtful, unresolved minds, by removing
+of their doubts and scruples, and ripening of their resolutions, to
+settle more safely in point of church government. 3. Those that as
+yet are unseen in the matter of church government, or that want
+money to buy, or leisure to read many books upon this subject, may
+here have much in a little, and competently inform themselves of
+the whole body of the government. 4. Consequently upon the
+attaining of the former ends, the work of reformation will be much
+facilitated and smoothed, the hearts of the people being prepared
+for the Lord and his ordinances. 5. The present attempt (if it
+reach not to that completeness and satisfactoriness which is
+desired) may yet incite some of our brethren of more acute and
+polished judgments to embark themselves in some further discoveries
+for the public benefit of the Church. 6. But though it should fall
+out that in all the former we should be utterly disappointed, we
+shall have this peace and comfort upon our own spirits, that we
+have not hid our talent in the earth, nor neglected to bear witness
+to this part of Christ's truth, touching the government of his
+Church, by his kingly power, wherein Christ was opposed so much in
+all ages, Psalm ii. 1, 2, 3; Luke xix. 14, 27; Acts iv., and for
+which Christ did suffer so much in a special and immediate manner,
+as<a href="#note-1"><small>1</small></a> some have observed. For
+this end Christ came into the world, (and for this end we came into
+the ministerial calling,) to bear witness to the truth.</p>
+<p>III. Finally, the present opportunity of publishing a treatise
+on this subject doth much incite and encourage us therein. For at
+this time we are beginning, in this province of London, (and we
+hope the whole kingdom will, with all convenient speed, and due
+caution, second us,) to put that covenanted church government into
+actual execution, which we have a long time intended in our
+deliberate resolutions. So that generally we shall be engaged in
+the government one way or other, either as acting in it as the
+church officers, or as submitting to it as church members: now, how
+shall any truly conscientious person, either act in it, or conform
+and submit unto it with faith, judgment, and alacrity, till he be
+in some competent measure satisfied of the divine right
+thereof?</p>
+<p>Will mere prudence, without a divine right, be a sufficient
+basis to erect the whole frame of church government upon, as some
+conceive? Prudentials, according to general rules of Scripture, may
+be of use in circumstantials, but will bare prudentials in
+substantials also satisfy either our God, our covenant, our
+consciences, or our end in this great work of reformation? What
+conscientious person durst have a hand in acting as a ruling elder,
+did he not apprehend the word of God holds forth a divine right for
+the ruling elder? Who durst have a hand in the censures of
+admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the scandalous and
+obstinate, and of restoring the penitent, were there not a divine
+right hereof revealed in the Scripture, &amp;c. Now, therefore,
+that ruling elders, and the rest of the people, may begin this
+happy work conscientiously, judiciously, cheerfully, in some
+measure perceiving the divine right of the whole government,
+wherein they engage themselves, cleared by Scripture, we hope, by
+God's blessing, that this small tract will afford some seasonable
+assistance, which will be unto us a very acceptable recompense.</p>
+<p>Thus far of the nature of this treatise, and the grounds of our
+publishing thereof. In the next place, a few doubts or scruples
+touching church government here asserted, being succinctly
+resolved, we shall preface no further.</p>
+<p><i>Doubt</i> 1. Many scruple, and much question the divine right
+of the whole frame of church government; as, 1. Whether there be
+any particular church government of divine right? 2. What that
+government is? 3. What church officers or members of elderships are
+of divine right? 4. Whether parochial or congregational elderships
+be of divine right? 5. Whether classical presbyteries be of divine
+right? 6. Whether provincial, national, and ecumenical assemblies
+be of divine right? 7. Whether appeals from congregational to
+classical, provincial, national, and ecumenical assemblies, and
+their power to determine upon such appeals, be of divine right? 8.
+Whether the power of censures in the congregational eldership, or
+any other assembly, be of divine right? 9. Whether there be any
+particular rules in the Scripture directing persons or assemblies
+in the exercise of their power? 10. Whether the civil magistrates,
+or their committees' and commissioners' execution of church
+censures be contrary to that way of government which Christ hath
+appointed in his Church?</p>
+<p><i>Resol</i>. To all or most of these doubts some competent
+satisfaction may be had from this treatise ensuing, if seriously
+considered. For, 1. That there is a church government of divine
+right, now under the New Testament, declared in Scripture, is
+proved, Part I. 2. What that government is in particular, is
+evidenced both by the description of church government, and the
+confirmation of the parts thereof by Scripture, Part. II. chap. 1,
+and so to the end of the book: whereby it is cleared that the
+presbyterial government is that particular government which is of
+divine right, according to the word of God. 3. What ordinary church
+officers, (members of the several elderships,) are of divine right,
+is proved, Part II, chap. 11, sect. 1, viz. pastors and teachers,
+with ruling elders. 4. That parochial or congregational elderships,
+consisting of preaching and ruling elders, are of divine right, is
+manifested, Part II. chap. 12. 5. That classical presbyteries, or
+assemblies, and their power in church government, are of divine
+right, is demonstrated, Part II. chap. 13. 6. That synodical
+assemblies, or councils in general, (consequently provincial,
+national, or ecumenical councils in particular,) and their power in
+church government, are of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap.
+14. 7. That appeals from congregational elderships, to classical
+and synodical assemblies, from lesser to greater assemblies
+associated, and power in those assemblies to determine
+authoritatively in such, appeals, are of divine right, is proved,
+Part II. chap. 15. 8. That the power of church censures is in
+Christ's own church officers only as the first subject and proper
+receptacle there of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap. 11,
+sect. 2, which officers of Christ have and execute the said power
+respectively, in all the ruling assemblies, congregational,
+classical, or synodical. See section 3, and chap. 12, 13, 14, 15.
+9. That the Scriptures hold forth, touching church government, not
+only general, but also many particular rules, sufficiently
+directing both persons and assemblies how they should duly put in
+execution their power of church, government. This is made good,
+Part II. chap. 4; and those that desire to know which are these
+rules in particular, may consult those learned<a href=
+"#note-2"><small>2</small></a> centuriators of Magdeburg, who have
+collected and methodically digested, in the very words of the
+Scripture, a system of canons or rules, touching church government,
+as in the preface to those rules they do profess, saying, touching
+things pertaining to the government of the Church, the apostles
+delivered certain canons, which we will add in order, &amp;c., the
+very heads of which would be too prolix to recite. 10. Finally,
+that neither the supreme civil magistrate, as such, nor
+consequently any commissioner or committees whatsoever, devised and
+erected by his authority, are the proper subject of the formal
+power of church government, nor may lawfully, by any virtue of the
+magistratical office, dispense any ecclesiastical censures or
+ordinances: but that such undertakings are inconsistent with that
+way of government which Christ hath appointed in his Church, is
+evidenced, Part II. chap. 9, well compared with chap. 11.</p>
+<p><i>Doubt</i> 2. But this presbyterial government is likely to be
+an arbitrary and tyrannical government, forasmuch as the presbyters
+of the assembly of divines and others (who, Diotrephes-like,
+generally affect domineering) have desired an unlimited power,
+according to their own judgments and prudence, in excommunicating
+men from the ordinances in cases of scandal.</p>
+<p><i>Resol</i>. A heinous charge, could it be proved against the
+presbyterial government. Now for wiping off this black aspersion,
+consider two things, viz: I. The imputation itself, which is unjust
+and groundless; II. The pretended ground hereof, which is false or
+frivolous.</p>
+<p>I. The imputation itself is, that the presbyterial government is
+likely to be an arbitrary and tyrannical government. <i>Ans</i>.
+How unjust this aspersion! I. What likelihood of arbitrary conduct
+in this government, that is, that it should be managed and carried
+on according to men's mere will and pleasure? For, 1. The
+presbyterial government (truly so called) is not in the nature of
+it any invention of man, but an ordinance of Christ; nor in the
+execution of it to be stated by the will of man, but only by the
+sure word of prophecy, the sacred Scriptures. This government
+allows not of one church officer at all; nor of one ruling assembly
+made up of those officers; nor of one censure or act of power to be
+done by any officer or assembly; nor of one ordinance to be managed
+in the Church of God, but what are grounded upon, and warranted by
+the word of God. This government allows no execution of any part
+thereof, neither in substantials, nor circumstantials, but
+according to the particular, or at least, the general rules of
+Scripture respectively. And can that be arbitrary, which is not at
+all according to man's will, but only according to Christ's rule,
+limiting and ordering man's will? Or is not the Scripture a better
+and safer provision against all arbitrary government in the Church,
+than all the ordinances, decrees, statutes, or whatsoever municipal
+laws in the world of man's devising, can be against all arbitrary
+government in the commonwealth? Let not men put out their own eyes,
+though others would cast a mist before them. 2. Who can justly
+challenge the reformed presbyterial churches for arbitrary
+proceedings in matters of church government, practised in some of
+them for above these fourscore years? Or where are their accusers?
+3. Why should the presbyterial government, to be erected in
+England, be prejudged as arbitrary, before the government be put in
+execution? When arbitrary conduct appears, let the adversaries
+complain. 4. If any arbitrary conduct hath been discovered in any
+reformed church, or shall fall out in ours, it is or shall be more
+justly reputed the infirmity and fault of the governors, than of
+the government itself.</p>
+<p>II. What probability or possibility of tyranny in the
+presbyterial government? For, 1. Who should tyrannize, what
+persons, what ruling assemblies? Not the ministers; for, hitherto
+they have given no just cause of any suspicion, since this
+government was in hand: and they are counterpoised in all
+assemblies with a plurality of ruling elders, it being already
+studiously<a href="#note-3"><small>3</small></a> provided that
+there be always two ruling elders to one minister: if there be
+still two to one, how should they tyrannize if they would? Neither
+ministers nor ruling elders are likely to tyrannize, if due care be
+taken by them, whom it doth concern, to elect, place, and appoint,
+conscientious, prudent, and gracious ministers and ruling elders
+over all congregations. Nor yet the ruling assemblies, lesser or
+greater; for in the presbyterial government all lesser ruling
+assemblies (though now at first, perhaps, some of them consisting
+of more weak and less experienced members) are subordinate to the
+greater authoritatively; and persons aggrieved by any
+mal-administrations have liberty to appeal from inferior to
+superior: and the very national assembly itself, though not
+properly subordinate, yet is it to be responsible to the supreme
+political magistracy in all their proceedings so far as subjects
+and members of the commonwealth.</p>
+<p>III. How can they tyrannize over any? Or in what respects? Not
+over their estates: for they claim no secular power at all over
+men's estates, by fines, penalties, forfeitures, or confiscations.
+Not over their bodies, for they inflict no corporal punishment, by
+banishment, imprisonment, branding, slitting, cropping, striking,
+whipping, dismembering, or killing. Not over their souls; for, them
+they desire by this government to gain, Matth. xviii. 15; to edify,
+2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and to save, 1 Cor. v. 5. Only this
+government ought to be impartial and severe against sin, that the
+flesh may be destroyed, 1 Cor. v. 5. It is only destructive to
+corruption, which is deadly and destructive to the soul. Thus the
+imputation itself of arbitrary conduct and tyranny to the
+presbyterial government is unjust and groundless.</p>
+<p>II. The pretended ground of this aspersion is false and
+frivolous. The presbyters of the Assembly of Divines, and others
+(<i>Diotrephes</i>-like, affecting pre-eminence) have desired an
+unlimited power, according to their own prudence and judgment, in
+keeping men from the ordinances in cases of scandal not enumerated.
+<i>Ans</i>. 1. The presbyters of the Assembly and others, are so
+far from the domineering humor of Diotrephes, that they could
+gladly and heartily have quitted all intermeddling in church
+government, if Jesus Christ had not by office engaged them thereto;
+only to have dispensed the word and sacraments would have procured
+them less hatred, and more case. 2. They desired liberty to keep
+from the ordinances, not only persons guilty of the scandals
+enumerated, but of all such like scandals, (and to judge which are
+those scandals, not according to their minds unlimitedly, but
+according to the mind of Christ in his word, more sure than all
+ordinances or acts of Parliament in the world.) And was this so
+hideous a desire? This liberty was desired, not for themselves, but
+for well-constituted elderships. As great power was granted by the
+very service-book to every single curate; (see the Rubric before
+the communion.) A perfect enumeration and description of scandals
+can be made in no book but in the Scriptures; and when all is done,
+must we not refer thither? All scandals are punishable, as well as
+any, and to inflict penalties on some, and not on others as bad or
+worse, is inexcusable partiality. Why should not presbyteries duly
+constituted, especially the greater, be accounted, at least, as
+faithful, intelligent, prudent, and every way as competent judges
+of what is scandal, and what not, according to the Scriptures, and
+that without arbitrary conduct and tyranny, as any civil court,
+committees, or commissioners whatsoever? Ruling church assemblies
+are intrusted with the whole government in the church, consequently
+with this, and every part. The best reformed churches allow to
+their presbyteries power to keep from the ordinances scandalous
+persons, not only for scandals enumerated, but for scandals of like
+nature not enumerated, with some general clause or other, as may
+appear in eight several churches, according to the allegations here
+in the foot-note;<a href="#note-4"><small>4</small></a> and,
+therefore, no new thing is desired, but what is commonly practised
+in the reformed churches, whom we should imitate so far as they
+lead us on towards purity and perfection.</p>
+<p><i>Doubt</i> 3. But the independent government seems to be a far
+more excellent way, and it is embraced by many godly and precious
+people and ministers.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. What true excellency is there at all in the whole
+independent government, save only in those particulars wherein it
+agrees with the presbyterial government; and only so far as it is
+presbyterial? Therefore, the presbyterial government is equally,
+yea, primarily and principally excellent. Wherein is the excellency
+of the independent way of government? 1st. Have they only those
+officers which Christ himself hath appointed, pastors and teachers,
+ruling elders and deacons? So the Presbyterians. 2d. Have they
+those spiritual censures, of admonishing, excommunicating, and
+receiving again into communion, which Christ ordained in his
+Church, for guarding his ordinances, and well guiding of the flock?
+So the Presbyterians. 3d. Have they congregational presbyteries
+duly elected, and constituted for the exercise of all acts of
+government, proper and necessary for their respective
+congregations? So the Presbyterians. 4th. Have they liberty of
+electing their own<a href="#note-5"><small>5</small></a> officers,
+pastors, elders, and deacons? So the Presbyterians. 5th. Have they
+power to keep the whole lump of the Church from being leavened, and
+purely to preserve the ordinances of Christ, from pollution and
+profanation, &amp;c.? So the Presbyterians, &amp;c. So that
+whereinsoever the independent government is truly excellent, the
+presbyterial government stands in a full equipage and equality of
+excellence.</p>
+<p>II. What one true excellence is there in the whole independent
+government in any one point, wherein it really differs from the
+presbyterial government? Take for instance a few points of
+difference.</p>
+<table summary=
+"Differences between Independent and Presbyterial forms of government"
+cellspacing="0">
+<tr>
+<th><i>In the independent government.</i></th>
+<th><i>In the presbyterial government.</i></th>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>No other visible Church of Christ is acknowledged, but only a
+single congregational meeting in one place to partake of all
+ordinances.</td>
+<td>One general visible Church of Christ on earth is acknowledged,
+and all particular churches; and single congregations are but as
+similar parts of that whole.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>The matter of their visible Church must be to their utmost
+judgment of discerning such as have true grace, real saints.</td>
+<td>The matter of the Church invisible are only true believers, but
+of the Church visible persons professing true faith in Christ, and
+obedience to him according to the rules of the Gospel.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>Their churches are gathered out of other true visible churches
+of Christ, without any leave or consent of pastor or flock; yea,
+against their wills, receiving such as tender themselves, yea, too
+often by themselves or others, directly or indirectly seducing
+disciples after them.</td>
+<td>Parochial churches are received as true visible churches of
+Christ, and most convenient for mutual edification. Gathering
+churches out of churches, hath no footsteps in Scripture; is
+contrary to apostolical practice; is the scattering of churches,
+the daughter of schism, the mother of confusion, but the stepmother
+to edification.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>Preaching elders are only elected, not ordained.</td>
+<td>Preaching elders are both elected and ordained.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>Ruling elders also preach.</td>
+<td>Ruling elders only rule, preach not, 1 Tim. v. 17.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>The subject of church government is the community of the
+faithful.</td>
+<td>The subject of church government is only Christ's own church
+officers.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>The church officers act immediately as the servants of the
+church, and deputed thereby.</td>
+<td>The church governors act immediately as the servants of Christ,
+and as appointed by him.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>All censures and acts of government are dispensed in single
+congregations ultimately, independently, without all liberty of
+appeal from them to any superior church assembly; so the parties
+grieved are left without remedy.</td>
+<td>All censures and acts of government are dispensed in
+congregational presbyteries subordinately, dependently, with
+liberty of appeal in all cases to presbyterial or synodal
+assemblies; where parties grieved have sufficient remedy.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>There are acknowledged no authoritative classes or synods, in
+common, great, difficult cases, and in matters of appeals, but only
+suasive and consultative; and in case advice be not followed, they
+proceed only to a non-communion.</td>
+<td>There are acknowledged, and with happy success used, not only
+suasive and consultative; but also authoritative classes and
+synods, in cases of great importance, difficulty, common
+concernment, or appeals; which have power to dispense all church
+censures, as need shall require.</td>
+</tr>
+</table>
+<p>Let these and such like particulars in the independent way,
+differing from the presbyterial, be duly pondered, and then let the
+impartial and indifferent reader judge, whether they be not the
+deformities, at least the infirmities of that way.</p>
+<p>III. How many true excellences are there in the way of the
+presbyterial government, wherein it utterly surpasses the
+independent government! Read but the particulars of the former
+parallel in the presbyterial government, and then consider how far
+this transcends, yea, how the independent government is indeed no
+government at all, to the presbyterial government; wherein is to be
+found such ample provision, and that according to the word of God,
+for comely order against confusion; for peace and unity of the
+Church against schism and division; for truth of the faith against
+all error and heresy; for piety and unblamableness against all
+impiety and scandal of conversation; for equity and right against
+all mal-administrations, whether ignorant, arbitrary, or
+tyrannical; for the honor and purity of all Christ's ordinances
+against all contempt, pollution, and profanation; for comfort,
+quickening, and encouragement of the saints in all the ways of
+Christ; and consequently for the honor of God and our Lord Jesus
+Christ in all the mysterious services of his spiritual sanctuary:
+all which rich advantages, how impossible is it they should ever be
+found in the independent government so long as it continues
+independent? And what though some pious minister and people embrace
+the independent way! This dazzles not the eyes of the intelligent,
+but of the infirm; we are to be regulated by Scripture warrant, not
+by human examples. The best of saints have failed in the
+ecclesiastical affairs; what a sharp contention was there between
+Paul and Barnabas, Acts xv. 39, &amp;c.; what a dangerous
+dissimulation was there in Peter, the Jews, and Barnabas! Gal. ii.
+11, 12, 13, &amp;c.; and, therefore, it is not safe, prudent, or
+conscientious, to imitate all the examples of the best, and yet how
+few are those that have engaged themselves in the independent way,
+in comparison to the multitude of precious ministers and people,
+inferior to them neither in parts, learning, piety, nor any other
+spiritual gift, who are for the presbyterial way of church
+government! Notwithstanding, let all the true Israel of God
+constantly follow, not the doubtful practices of unglorified
+saints, but the written pleasure of the most glorious King of
+saints; and as many as walk according to this rule, peace shall be
+on them, and upon the Israel of God.</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0003"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH GOVERNMENT.</h2>
+<a name="H_PART1"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>PART I.</h2>
+<h3>OF THE NATURE OF A DIVINE RIGHT: AND HOW MANY WAYS A THING MAY
+BE OF DIVINE RIGHT.</h3>
+<a name="2HCH0001"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER I.</h2>
+<h3><i>That there is a Government in the Church of</i> DIVINE RIGHT
+<i>now under the New Testament.</i></h3>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath <i>the government</i> (both of
+the Church, and of all things for the Church) laid <i>upon his
+shoulder</i>, Isa. ix. 6, and to that end hath <i>all power in
+heaven and earth given to him</i>, Matth. xxviii. 18, John v. 22,
+Ephes. i. 22. But lapsed man (being full of pride, Psal. x. 2, 4,
+and enmity against the law of God, Rom. viii. 7) is most impatient
+of all government of God and of Christ, Ps. ii. 1, 2, 3, with Luke
+xix. 14, 27; whence it comes to pass, that the <i>governing</i> and
+<i>kingly power</i> of Christ hath been opposed in all ages, and
+especially in this of ours, by quarrelsome queries, wrangling
+disputes, plausible pretences, subtle policies, strong
+self-interests, and mere violent wilfulness of many in England,
+even after they are brought under the <i>oath of God to reform
+church government according to the word of God</i>. Yet it will be
+easily granted <i>that there should be a government in the Church
+of God</i>, otherwise the Church would become a mere <i>Babel</i>
+and <i>chaos</i> of confusion, and be in a far worse condition than
+all human societies in the whole world: and <i>that some one church
+government is much to be preferred before another, yea, before all
+other</i>; as being most desirable in itself, and most suitable to
+this state; otherwise, why is the <i>Prelatical</i> government
+rejected, that another and a better may be erected instead thereof?
+But the pinch lies in this, <i>Whether there be any government in
+the Church visible of divine right?</i> And, if so, <i>which of
+those church governments</i> (which lay claim to a divine right for
+their foundation) <i>may be most clearly evinced by the Scriptures
+to be of</i> divine right <i>indeed?</i> If the former be
+convincingly affirmed, the fancy of the <i>Erastians</i> and
+<i>semi-Erastians</i> of these things will vanish, that deny all
+government to the Church distinct from that of the civil
+magistrate. If the latter be solidly proved by Scripture, it will
+appear, whether the <i>monarchical government</i> of the pope and
+prelates; or the <i>mere democratical government</i> of all the
+people in an equal level of authority, as among the Brownists; or
+the <i>mixed democratical government</i> of both elders and people
+within their own single congregation only, without all
+subordination of Assemblies, and benefit of appeals, as among the
+Independents; or rather the <i>pure representative government</i>
+of the presbytery or church rulers only, chosen by the people, in
+subordination to superior synodical assemblies, and with appeals
+thereto, as it is among the Presbyterians, be that peculiar
+government which Jesus Christ hath left unto his church, by divine
+right, and in comparison of which all others are to be
+rejected.</p>
+<p>To draw things therefore to a clear and speedy issue about the
+divine right of church government, let this general proposition be
+laid down&mdash;</p>
+<p><i>The Scriptures declare, That there is a government of</i>
+DIVINE RIGHT <i>in the visible Church of Christ now under the New
+Testament.</i></p>
+<p>This is evident, 1 Cor. xii. 28, <i>God hath set some in the
+Church, first, Apostles, secondly, Prophets, thirdly,
+Teachers&mdash;Helps, Governments;</i> in which place these things
+are plain: 1. That here the Apostle speaks of the visible Church:
+for he had formerly spoken of visible gifts and <i>manifestations
+of the Spirit given to profit this</i> Church <i>withal</i>, ver. 7
+to 12. He also compares this Church of God to a visible organical
+body, consisting of many visible members, ver. 12, 13, &amp;c. And
+in this 28th verse he enumerates the visible officers of this
+Church. 2. That here the Apostle speaks of one general visible
+Church; for he saith not <i>churches</i>, but <i>church</i>, in the
+singular number, that is, of one; besides, he speaks here of the
+Church in such a latitude as to comprehend in itself all gifts of
+the Spirit, all members, and all officers, both extraordinary and
+ordinary, which cannot be meant of the church of Corinth, or any
+one particular church, but only of that one general Church on
+earth. 3. That this general visible Church here meant, is the
+Church of Christ now under the New Testament, and not under the Old
+Testament; for he mentions here the New Testament officers only,
+ver. 28. 4. That in the visible Church now under the New Testament,
+there is a government settled; for besides <i>Apostles,
+Prophets</i>, and <i>Teachers</i>, here is mention of another sort
+of officer distinct from them all, called, in the abstract,
+<i>Governments</i>, a metaphor from pilots, mariners, or
+shipmasters, who by their helm, card, or compass, cables, and other
+tacklings, guide, and order, turn and twine the ship as necessity
+shall require; so these officers called <i>Governments</i>, have a
+power of governing and steering the spiritual vessel of the Church;
+thus, Beza on this place, says he declares the order of Presbyters,
+<i>who are keepers of discipline and church polity</i>. For how
+improperly should these, or any officers be styled <i>Governments
+in the Church</i>, if they had not a power of government in the
+Church settled upon them? Nor can this be interpreted of the civil
+magistrate; for, when the Apostle wrote this, the Church had her
+government, when yet she had no civil magistrate to protect her;
+and when did God ever take this power from the Church and settle it
+upon the civil magistrate? Besides, all the other officers here
+enumerated are purely ecclesiastical officers; how groundless then
+and inconsistent is it under this name of <i>Governments</i> to
+introduce a foreign power, viz. the political magistrate, into the
+list and roll of mere church officers? Finally, the civil
+magistrate, as a magistrate, is not so much as a member of the
+visible Church, (for then all Pagan magistrates should be members
+of the Church,) much less a governor in the Church of Christ. 5.
+That this government settled in the Church is of divine right; for,
+of those <i>Governments</i>, as well as of <i>Apostles,
+Prophets</i>, and <i>Teachers</i>, it is said, <i>God hath set</i>
+them <i>in the Church. God hath set</i> them, <i>hath put,
+set</i>&mdash;Tremellius out of the Syriac. Hath <i>constituted,
+ordained</i>&mdash;Beza out of the Greek. Now, if they be set in
+the Church and God hath set them there, here is a plain divine
+right for government in the Church.</p>
+<p>Add hereto, 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority, which the Lord hath
+given to us for the edification, and not for the destruction of
+you." Here are mentioned&mdash;1. Church power or authority for
+government in the Church. 2. The end of this
+power&mdash;positively, for the edification; negatively, not for
+the destruction of the Church. 3. The Author or Fountain of this
+authority&mdash;the Lord Christ hath given it, dispensed it; there
+is the divine right. 4. The proper subjects intrusted with this
+authority, viz: the church guides, our authority, which he hath
+given to us. They are the receptacle of power for the Church, and
+the government thereof. Compare also 1 Thes. v. 12, Matth. xvi. 19,
+20, with xviii. 11, and John xx. 21, 22, 23. In which and divers
+like places the divine right of church government is apparently
+vouched by the Scripture, as will hereafter more fully appear; but
+this may suffice in general for the confirmation of this general
+proposition.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0002"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER II.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Nature of a</i> DIVINE RIGHT <i>in general.</i></h3>
+<p>Now touching this divine right of church government, two things
+are yet more particularly to be opened and proved, for the more
+satisfactory clearing thereof unto sober minds, to unprejudiced and
+unpre-engaged judgments, viz:&mdash;1. What the nature of a divine
+right is, and how many ways a thing may be said to be of divine
+right, and that by warrant of Scripture. 2. What the nature of the
+government of the Church under the New Testament is, which is
+vouched by the Scripture to be of divine right.</p>
+<p>For the first&mdash;viz. What the nature of a divine right
+is&mdash;consider both what a divine right is in general, and how
+many ways a thing may be said by Scripture warrant to be of divine
+right in particular.</p>
+<p><i>Right</i> is that which is most proper, just, or equal; or
+that which is prescribed or commanded by some statute law, and is
+just to be received in virtue of said law.</p>
+<p><i>Divine</i> sometimes points out a divine warrant or authority
+from God, engraven or enstamped upon any thing, whereby it is
+exalted above all human or created authority and power. And thus,
+all Scripture is styled divinely breathed or inspired of God. Hence
+is the divine authority of Scripture asserted, 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17;
+and in this sense divine right is here spoken of, in reference to
+church government, as it signifies a divine warrant and authority
+from God himself, engraven upon that church government and
+discipline, (hereafter to be handled,) and revealed to us in his
+holy Scriptures, the infallible and perfect oracles. So that divine
+right, according to this interpretation of the terms, is that which
+is either just, meet, and equal; or commanded and enjoined by any
+divine warrant or authority. And generally, a thing may be said to
+be of divine right, which is any way divinely just, equal, &amp;c.;
+or divinely commanded by any law of God, or by that which is
+equivalent to a divine law. And whatsoever matters in church
+government can be proved by Scripture to have this stamp of divine
+warrant and authority set upon them, they may properly be said to
+be of divine right, and that by the will and appointment of Jesus
+Christ, to whom God hath delegated all power and authority for the
+government of his Church, Matth. xxviii. 18, 19, 20, Isa. ix. 6,
+John v. 22, Eph. i. 22. In this sense, if church government, or any
+part of it, be found to be of divine right, then
+consequently&mdash;1. It is above all mere human power and created
+authority in the world whatsoever, and that supereminently.A divine
+right is the highest and best tenure whereby the Church can hold of
+Christ any doctrine, worship, or government; only God can stamp
+such a divine right upon any of these things, whereby conscience
+shall be obliged. All human inventions herein, whether devised of
+our own hearts, or derived as traditions from others, are
+incompatible and inconsistent herewith; vain in themselves, and to
+all that use them, and condemned of God. See 1 Kings xii. 32, 33,
+Isa. xxix. 4, Matth. xv. 6, 7, 8, 9. 2. It is beyond all just,
+human, or created power, to abolish or oppose the same, or the due
+execution thereof in the Church of Christ; for what is of divine
+right, is held of God, and not of man; and to oppose that, were to
+fight against God. The supreme magistrates in such cases should be
+nurse-fathers, Isa. xlix. 23, not step-fathers to the Church; their
+power being cumulative and perfective, not privative and
+destructive unto her; for she both had and exercised a power in
+church government, long before there was any Christian magistrate
+in the world; and it cannot be proved that ever Christ took away
+that power from his Church, or translated it to the political
+magistrate, when he became Christian. 3. It is so obligatory upon
+all churches in the whole Christian world, that they ought
+uniformly to submit themselves unto it; for a divine right is
+equally obligatory on one church as well as on another. And it is
+so obligatory on all persons, states, and degrees, that none ought
+to be exempted from that church government which is of divine
+right, nor to be <i>tolerated</i> in another church government,
+which is but of human invention; nor ought any Christian to seek
+after, or content himself with any such exemption or
+<i>toleration</i>; for in so doing, the inventions of men should be
+preferred before the ordinances of God; our own wisdom, will, and
+authority, before the wisdom, will, and authority of Christ: and we
+should in effect say, <i>We will not have this man to reign over
+us</i>, Luke xix. 27. <i>Let us break their bands asunder, and cast
+their cords away from us</i>, Psalm ii. 3.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0003"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER III.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Nature of a</i> DIVINE RIGHT <i>in particular. How
+many ways a thing may be of</i> DIVINE RIGHT. <i>And first, of
+a</i> DIVINE RIGHT <i>by the true light of nature.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus we see in general what a divine right is: now in particular
+let us come to consider how many ways a thing may be said to be of
+divine right by scripture-warrant, keeping still our eye upon this
+subject of church government, at which all particulars are to be
+levelled for the clearing of it.</p>
+<p>A thing may be said to be of divine right, or (which is the same
+for substance) of divine institution, divers ways. 1. <i>By the
+true light of nature.</i> 2. <i>By obligatory scripture
+examples.</i> 3. <i>By divine approbation.</i> 4. <i>By divine
+acts.</i> 5. <i>By divine precepts or mandates.</i> All may be
+reduced to these five heads, ascending by degrees from the lowest
+to the highest divine right.</p>
+<p>I. <i>By light of nature.</i> That which is evident by, and
+consonant to the true light of nature, or natural reason, is to be
+accounted of divine right in matters of religion. Hence two things
+are to be made out by Scripture. 1. What is meant by the true light
+of nature. 2. How it may be proved, that what things in religion
+are evident by, or consonant to this true light of nature, are of
+divine right.</p>
+<p>1. For the first, What is meant by the true light of nature, or
+natural reason? Thus conceive. The light of nature may be
+considered two ways. 1. As it was in man before the fall, and so it
+was that image and similitude of God, in which man was at first
+created, Gen. i. 26, 27, or at least part of that image; which
+image of God, and light of nature, was con-created with man, and
+was perfect: viz. so perfect as the sphere of humanity and state of
+innocency did require; there was no sinful darkness, crookedness,
+or imperfection in it; and whatsoever was evident by, or consonant
+to this pure and perfect light of nature, in respect either of
+theory or practice, was doubtless of divine right, because
+correspondent to that divine law of God's image naturally engraved
+in Adam's heart. But man being lapsed, this will not be now our
+question, as it is not our case. 2. As it is now in man after the
+fall. The light of nature and image of God in man is not totally
+abolished and utterly razed by the fall; there remain still some
+relics and fragments thereof, some glimmerings, dawnings, and
+common principles of light, both touching piety to God, equity to
+man, and sobriety to a man's self, &amp;c., as is evident by
+comparing these places, Psal. xix. 1, 2, &amp;c., Acts xiv. 17, and
+xvii. 27, 28; Rom. i. 18-21, and ii. 12, 14, 15; 2 Cor. v. 1: in
+which places it is plain, 1. That the book of the creature is able
+(without the scriptures, or divine revelations) to make known to
+man much of God, his invisible Godhead and attributes, Psalm xix.
+1, 2, &amp;c.; Acts xiv. 17, and xvii. 27, 28; yea, so far as to
+leave them without excuse, Rom. i. 18-21. 2. That there remained so
+much natural light in the minds even of the heathens, as to render
+them capable of instruction by the creature in the invisible things
+of God; yea, and that they actually in some measure did know God,
+and because they walked not up to this knowledge, were plagued,
+Rom. i. 18-21, 24, &amp;c. 3. That the work of the law (though not
+the right ground, manner, and end of that work, which is the
+blessing of the new covenant, Jer. xxxi. 33; Heb. viii. 10) was
+materially written in some measure in their hearts. Partly because
+they did by nature without the law the things contained in the law,
+so being a law to themselves, Rom. ii. 14, 15; partly, because they
+by nature forbore some of those sins which were forbidden in the
+law, and were practised by some that had the law, as 2 Cor. v. 1;
+and partly, because according to the good and bad they did,
+&amp;c., their conscience did accuse or excuse, Rom. ii. 15. Now
+conscience doth not accuse or excuse but according to some rule,
+principle, or law of God, (which is above the conscience,) or at
+least so supposed to be. And they had no law but the imperfect
+characters thereof in their own hearts, which were not quite
+obliterated by the fall. Now so far as this light of nature after
+the fall, is a true relic of the light of nature before the fall,
+that which is according to this light may be counted of divine
+right in matters of religion, which is the next thing to be
+proved.</p>
+<p>For the second, how it may be proved that what things in
+religion are evident by, or consonant to this true light of nature,
+are of divine right. Thus briefly,</p>
+<p>1. Because that knowledge which by the light of nature Gentiles
+have of the invisible things of God, is a beam of divine light, as
+the apostle, speaking of the Gentiles' light of nature, saith, That
+which may be known of God is manifest in them&mdash;for God hath
+showed it to them. For the invisible things, &amp;c., Rom. i. 19,
+20. God himself is the Fountain and Author of the true light of
+nature; hence some not unfitly call it the divine light of nature,
+not only because it hath God for its object, but also God for its
+principle; now that which is according to God's manifestation, must
+needs be of divine right.</p>
+<p>2. Because the Spirit of God and of Christ in the New Testament
+is pleased often to argue from the light of nature in condemning of
+sin, in commending and urging of duty, as in the case of the
+incestuous Corinthian; "It is reported commonly, that there is
+fornication among you, and such fornication as is not so much as
+named among the Gentiles," (who had only the light of nature to
+guide them,) 1 Cor. v. 1. In case of the habits of men and women in
+their public church assemblies, that women's heads should be
+covered, men's uncovered in praying or prophesying. "Judge in
+yourselves, is it comely that a woman pray unto God uncovered? Doth
+not even nature itself teach you, that if a man hath long hair, it
+is a shame to him? but if a woman have long hair it is a glory to
+her," &amp;c., 1 Cor. xi. 13-15. Here the apostle appeals plainly
+to the very light of nature for the regulating and directing of
+their habits in church assemblies; and thus, in case of praying or
+prophesying in the congregation in an unknown tongue, (unless some
+do interpret,) he strongly argues against it from the light of
+nature, 1 Cor. xiv. 7-11, and afterwards urges that women be silent
+in their churches, from the natural uncomeliness of their speaking
+there, for it is a shame for women to speak in the church, 1 Cor.
+xiv. 34, 35.</p>
+<p>Now, if the Spirit of God condemn things as vicious, and commend
+things as virtuous from the light of nature, is there not divine
+right in the light of nature? May we not say, that which is
+repugnant to the light of nature in matters of religion, is
+condemned by divine right; and what is correspondent to the light
+of nature, is prescribed by divine right? And if not, where is the
+strength or force of this kind of arguing from the light of
+nature?</p>
+<p>Consequently, in the present case of church government, that
+which is agreeable to the true light of nature, must needs be
+confessed to be of divine right. Though the light of nature be but
+dim, yet it will lend some help in this particular: e.g. the light
+of nature teaches, 1. That as every society in the world hath a
+distinct government of its own within itself, without which it
+could not subsist, so must the Church, which is a society, have its
+own distinct government within itself, without which it cannot
+subsist more than any other society. 2. That in all matters of
+difference the lesser number in every society should give way to,
+and the matters controverted be determined and concluded by the
+major part; else there would never be an end: and why not so in the
+Church? 3. That in every ill administration in inferior societies
+the parties aggrieved should have liberty to appeal from them to
+superior societies, that equity may take place; and why not from
+inferior to superior church assemblies?</p>
+<a name="2HCH0004"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER IV.</h2>
+<h3>II. <i>Of a Divine Right by obligatory Scripture
+Examples.</i></h3>
+<p>II. By obligatory scripture examples (which God's people are
+bound to follow and imitate) matters of religion become of divine
+right, and by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ, by whose
+Spirit those examples were recorded in Scripture, and propounded
+for imitation to the saints. The light of nature in this case helps
+something; but the light of obligatory scripture examples helps
+much more, as being more clear, distinct, and particular. We say
+scripture examples; for only these examples are held forth to us by
+an infallible, impartial, divine hand, and those scripture examples
+obligatory, or binding; for there are many sorts of scripture
+examples that oblige not us to imitation of them, being written for
+other uses and purposes.</p>
+<p>Great use is to be made of such examples in matters of religion,
+and particularly in matters of church government, for the clearing
+of the divine right thereof; and great opposition is made by some
+against the binding force of examples, especially by men of
+perverse spirits, (as too many of the Erastian party are;)
+therefore it will be of great consequence to unfold and clear this
+matter of scripture examples, and the obliging power thereof, that
+we may see how far examples are to be a law and rule for us by
+divine right. In general, this proposition seems to be
+unquestionable, that whatsoever matter or act of religion Jesus
+Christ makes known to his Church and people, by or under any
+binding scripture example, that matter or act of religion so made
+known, is of divine right, and by the will and appointment of Jesus
+Christ: But to evince this more satisfactorily, these several
+particulars are to be distinctly made good and manifested: 1. That
+some scripture examples are obligatory and binding on Christians in
+matters of religion. 2. Which are those obligatory scripture
+examples? These things being made out, we shall see with what
+strength scripture examples hold forth a divine right to us in the
+mysteries of religion, and particularly in church government.</p>
+<p>I. That some scripture examples in matters of religion are
+obligatory on Christians, as patterns and rules, which they are
+bound in conscience to follow and imitate, is evident,</p>
+<p>1. By the divine intention of the Spirit of God, in recording
+and propounding of examples in Scripture: for he records and
+propounds them for this very end, that they may be imitated. Thus
+Christ's humility, in washing the feet of his disciples, was
+intentionally propounded as an obligatory example, binding both the
+disciples, and us after them, to perform the meanest offices of
+love in humility to one another. "If I then, your Lord and Master,
+have washed your feet, ye ought also to wash one another's feet.
+For I have given you an example, that ye should do as I have done
+to you," John xiii. 4, &amp;c., 13-15. Thus Christ's suffering with
+innocence and unprovoked patience, not reviling again, &amp;c., is
+purposely propounded for all Christians to imitate, and they are
+bound in conscience as well as they can to follow it&mdash;"Christ
+suffered for us, leaving us an example, that ye should follow his
+steps," &amp;c., 1 Pet. ii. 21-23. Hence, the apostle so urges the
+example of Christ for the Corinthians to follow in their bounty to
+the poor saints, yea, though to their own impoverishing, "For you
+know the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, that though he was rich,
+yet for your sakes he became poor, that ye through his poverty
+might be rich," 2 Cor. viii. 9. Nor was the example of Christ only
+written for our imitation; but the examples of the apostles also in
+the primitive churches were intentionally left upon record for this
+end, that they might be binding patterns for us to follow in like
+cases in after ages. And in particular, this seems to be one
+singular ground, scope, and intention of Christ's Spirit in writing
+the history of the Acts of the Apostles, that the apostles' acts in
+the primitive churches might be our rules in successive churches.
+For, 1. Though this book contain in it many things dogmatical, that
+is, divers doctrines of the apostles, yet it is not styled the book
+of the doctrine, but of the Acts of the Apostles, that we may learn
+to act as they acted. This being one main difference between
+profane and sacred histories; those are for speculation, these also
+for admonition and imitation, 1 Cor. x. 11. The history, therefore,
+of the Acts propounds examples admonitory and obligatory upon us,
+that we should express like acts in like cases. 2. Luke (the penman
+of the Acts) makes such a transition from his history of Christ, to
+this history of Christ's apostles, as to unite and knit them into
+one volume, Acts i. 1; whence we are given to understand, that if
+the Church wanted this history of the apostles, she should want
+that perfect direction which the Spirit intended for her: as also
+that this book is useful and needful to her as well as the other.
+3. In the very front of the Acts it is said, that <i>Christ after
+his resurrection</i> (and before his ascension) <i>gave
+commandments to the apostles&mdash;and spake of the things
+pertaining to the kingdom of God</i>, Acts i. 2, 3; viz. of the
+polity of the Church, say some.<a href=
+"#note-6"><small>6</small></a>
+Of the kingdom of grace, say others.<a href=
+"#note-7"><small>7</small></a> Judicious Calvin<a href=
+"#note-8"><small>8</small></a> interprets it partly of church
+government, saying, Luke admonisheth us, that Christ did not so
+depart out of the world, as to cast off all care of us: for by this
+doctrine he shows that he hath constituted a perpetual government
+in his Church. Therefore Luke signifies, that Christ departed not,
+before he had provided for his Church's government. Now those
+expressions are set in the frontispiece, to stamp the greater
+authority and obligatory power upon the acts after recorded, being
+done according to Christ's commandments; Christ intending their
+acts in the first founding of his kingdom and polity ecclesiastic
+to be the rule for after churches. For what Christ spoke of his
+kingdom to the apostles is like that, "What I say to you, I say to
+all," Matt. xiii. 37, as what was said to the apostles touching
+preaching and baptizing, remitting and retaining of sins, was said
+to all the apostles' successors, "to the end of the world," John
+xx. 21, 23, with Matt, xxviii. 18-20.</p>
+<p>2. By God's approving and commending such as were followers not
+only of the doctrine, but also of the examples of the Lord, his
+apostles, and primitive churches; "And ye became followers" (or
+imitators) "of us and of the Lord," 1 Thess. i. 6, 7; and again,
+"Ye, brethren, became followers" (or imitators) "of the churches of
+God, which in Judea are in Christ Jesus: for ye also have suffered
+like things of your own countrymen, even as they have of the Jews,"
+1 Thess. ii. 14. In which places the Holy Ghost recites the
+Thessalonians imitating of the Lord, of the apostles, and of the
+churches, to the praise of the Thessalonians, by which they are
+given to understand that they did well, and discharged their duty
+in such imitations: for God's condemning or commending any thing,
+is virtually a prohibiting or prescribing thereof.</p>
+<p>3. By the Lord's commanding some examples to be imitated.
+Commands of this nature are frequent. In general, "Beloved, imitate
+not that which is evil, but that which is good," 3 John 11. In
+particular, 1. Imitating of God and Christ; "Be ye, therefore,
+followers of God as dear children: and walk in love, as Christ also
+hath loved us," Eph. v. 1, 2, with Eph. iv. 32. "He that saith he
+abideth in him, ought himself also to walk, even as he walked," 1
+John ii. 6. 2. Imitating the apostles and other saints of God. "I
+beseech you, be ye imitators of me: for this cause have I sent unto
+you Timothy&mdash;who shall bring you into remembrance of my ways
+which be in Christ," 1 Cor. iv. 16, 17. "Be ye imitators of me,
+even as I also am of Christ," 1 Cor. xi. 1.</p>
+<p>"Those things which you have both learned, and received, and
+heard, and seen in me, do: and the God of peace shall be with you,"
+Phil. iv. 9. "Be not slothful, but imitators of them who through
+faith and patience inherit the promises," Heb. vi. 12. "Whose faith
+imitate, considering the end of their conversation," Heb. xiii. 7.
+"Take, my brethren, the prophets, who have spoken in the name of
+the Lord, for an example" (or pattern) "of suffering affliction,
+and of patience," James v. 10. These and like divine commands
+infallibly evidence that many scripture examples are obligatory,
+and do bind our consciences to the imitation of them.</p>
+<p>4. By consent of orthodox and learned writers, both ancient and
+modern, acknowledging an obligatory force in some scripture
+examples, as being left upon record for our imitation. As among
+others Chrysostom,<a href="#note-9"><small>9</small></a> and Greg.
+Nyssen<a href="#note-10"><small>10</small></a> well observe.</p>
+<p>Among modern writers, Mr. Perkins excellently observes, This is
+a rule in divinity, that the ordinary examples of the godly
+approved in Scripture, being against no general precept, have the
+force of a general rule, and are to be followed. See also Pet.
+Martyr, Calvin, and others.<a href=
+"#note-11"><small>11</small></a></p>
+<p>II. Thus, it is clear that some scripture examples are
+obligatory. Now (to come closer to the matter) consider which
+scripture examples are obligatory. 1. How many sorts of binding
+examples are propounded to us in Scripture. 2. What rules we may
+walk by for finding out the obligatory force of such examples.</p>
+<p>How many sorts of binding examples are propounded unto us in
+Scripture, and which are those examples? Ans. There are principally
+three sorts, viz: Examples of God, of Christ, of Christians.</p>
+<p>I. Of God. The example of God is propounded in Scripture as
+obligatory on us in all moral excellencies and actions: e.g. Matt.
+v. 44, 45, 48; Eph. v. 1; 1 Pet. i. 14-16; 1 John iv. 10, 11.</p>
+<p>II. Of Christ. That the example of Christ is obligatory, and a
+binding rule to us for imitation, is evident by these and like
+testimonies of Scripture, Matt. xi. 29; 1 Cor. xi. 11; Eph. v. 2,
+3, 25, &amp;c.; 1 John ii. 6; 1 Pet. ii. 21-23. "If I then, your
+Lord and Master, have washed your feet, ye ought also to wash one
+another's feet. For I have given you an example, that ye should do
+as I have done to you," John xiii. 14, 15. In this place we must
+follow the reason of the example, rather than the individual act,
+viz: after Christ's example, we must be ready to perform the lowest
+and meanest offices of love and service to one another.</p>
+<p>But which of Christ's examples are obligatory on Christians,
+will better appear, by distinguishing the several sorts of Christ's
+actions. Christ's actions were of several kinds; and to imitate
+them all is neither needful, nor possible, nor warrantable.
+Orthodox writers thus rank Christ's actions:</p>
+<p>1. Some of Christ's actions were of divine power and virtue; as
+his miracles, turning water into wine, John ii. 7, &amp;c.; walking
+on the sea, Mark vi. 48, 49; dispossessing of devils by his word,
+Mark i. 27; Luke iv. 36; curing one born blind with clay and
+spittle, John ix.; healing the sick by his word or touch, John iv.
+50; Mark vi. 56; raising the dead to life again, as John xii. 1;
+Matt. xi. 5; Luke vii. 22.</p>
+<p>2. Some were acts of divine prerogative, as sending for the ass
+and colt, without first asking the owner's leave, Matt. xxi. 2,
+&amp;c.</p>
+<p>3. Some mediatory, done by him as Mediator, Prophet, Priest, and
+King of his Church: e.g. inditing the Scripture, called therefore
+the word of Christ, Col. iii. 16; laying down his life <i>for the
+sheep</i>, John x. 15, &amp;c.; giving of the Spirit, John xx. 22;
+Acts ii.; appointing of his own officers, and giving them
+commissions, Eph. iv. 7, 10, 11; Matt. x. and xxviii. 18-20;
+instituting of new, and thereby abrogating of old ordinances, Matt.
+xxviii. 18, 19; 1 Cor. xi. 23, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>4. Some accidental, occasional, incidental, or circumstantial,
+as in the case of his celebrating his supper, that it was at night,
+not in the morning; after supper, not before; with none but men,
+none but ministers; with unleavened, not with leavened bread,
+&amp;c.; these circumstantials were accidentally occasioned by the
+passover, nature of his family, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>5. Some acts of Christ were moral, as Matt. xi. 29; Eph. v. 2,
+3, 25, &amp;c.; or at least founded upon a moral reason and
+foundation, as John xiii. 14,15.</p>
+<p>To imitate Christ in his three first sort of acts, is utterly
+unlawful, and in part impossible. To imitate him in his
+circumstantial acts from necessity, were to make accidentals
+necessary, and happily to border upon superstition; for, to urge
+any thing above what is appointed, as absolutely necessary, is to
+urge superstition; and to yield to any thing above what is
+appointed, as simply necessary, were to yield to superstition. But
+to imitate Christ in his moral acts, or acts grounded upon a moral
+reason, is our duty: such acts of Christ ought to be the
+Christian's rules.</p>
+<p>III. Of prophets, apostles, saints, or primitive churches. That
+their examples are obligatory, is evident by these places, 1 Cor.
+xi. 1; Phil. iv. 8, 9; 1 Pet. iii. 4, 5, 6; 1 Thess. i. 6, and ii.
+14; Heb. xiii. 7; James v. 10, 11; 3 John 11.</p>
+<p>Which of their examples are obligatory, may be thus resolved, by
+distinguishing of their actions.</p>
+<p>1. Some were sinful; written for our caution and admonition, not
+for our imitation: as 1 Cor. x. 5, 6, 10, 12. That neither the just
+be lifted up into pride by security, nor the unjust be hardened
+against the medicine through despair. See the fourth rule
+following.</p>
+<p>2. Some were heroical; done by singular instinct and instigation
+of the Spirit of God; as divers acts may be presumed to be, (though
+we read not the instinct clearly recorded:) as, Elias's calling for
+fire from heaven, 2 Kings i. 10; which the very apostles might not
+imitate, not having his spirit, Luke ix. 54, 55; Phinehas's killing
+the adulterer and adulteress, Numb. xxv. 7, 8; Samson's avenging
+himself upon his enemies by his own death, Judges xvi. 30, of
+which, saith Bernard, if it be defended not to have been his sin,
+it is undoubtedly to be believed he had private counsel, viz. from
+God, for his fact; David's fighting with Goliath of Gath the giant,
+hand to hand, 1 Sam. xvii. 32, &amp;c., which is no warrant for
+private duels and quarrels. Such heroic acts are not imitable but
+by men furnished with like heroic spirit, and instinct divine.</p>
+<p>3. Some were by special calling, and singular extraordinary
+dispensation: as Abraham's call to leave his own country for
+pilgrimage in Canaan, Gen. xii. 1, 4, which is no warrant for
+popish pilgrimages to the holy land, &amp;c.; Abraham's attempts,
+upon God's special trying commands, to kill and sacrifice his son,
+Gen. xxii. 10, no warrant for parents to kill or sacrifice their
+children; the Israelites borrowing of, and robbing the Egyptians,
+Exod. xii. 35, no warrant for cozenage, stealing, or for borrowing
+with intent not to pay again: compare Rom. xiii. 8; 1 Thess. iv. 6;
+Psal. xxxvii. 21; the Israelites taking usury of the Canaanitish
+strangers, (who were destined to ruin both in their states and
+persons, Deut. xx. 15-17,) Deut. xxiii. 20, which justifies neither
+their nor our taking usury of our brethren, Lev. xxv. 36, 37; Deut.
+xxiii. 19, 20; Neh. v. 7, 10; Psal. xv. 5; Prov. xxviii. 8; Ezek.
+xviii. 8, 13, 17, and xxii. 12; John Baptist's living in the
+desert, Mat. iii., no protection for popish hermitage, or proof
+that it is a state of greater perfection, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>4. Some were only accidental or occasional, occasioned by
+special necessity of times and seasons, or some present appearance
+of scandal, or some such accidental emergency. Thus primitive
+Christians had all things common, Acts iv. 32, but that is no
+ground for anabaptistical community. Paul wrought at his trade of
+tent-making, made his hands <i>minister to his necessities</i>,
+Acts xx. 34; would not take wages for preaching to the church of
+Corinth, 2 Cor. xi. 7-9; but this lays no necessity on ministers to
+preach the gospel <i>gratis</i>, and maintain themselves by their
+own manual labors, except when cases and seasons are alike, Gal.
+vi. 6-8; 1 Cor. ix. 6-13; 1 Tim. v. 17, 18.</p>
+<p>5. Some were of a moral nature, and upon moral grounds, wherein
+they followed Christ, and we are to follow them, 1 Cor. xi. 1;
+Phil. iv. 8, 9, and other places forementioned; for, whatsoever
+actions were done then, upon such grounds as are of a moral,
+perpetual, and common concernment to one person as well as another,
+to one church as well as another, in one age as well as another,
+those actions are obligatory on all, and a rule to after
+generations. Thus the baptizing of women in the primitive churches,
+Acts viii. 12, and xvi. 15, though only the males were circumcised
+under the Old Testament, is a rule for our baptizing of women as
+well as men, they being <i>all one in Christ,</i> Gal. iii. 28. So
+the admitting of infants to the first initiating sacrament of the
+Old Testament, circumcision, because they with their parents' were
+accounted within the covenant of grace by God, Gen. xvii., is a
+rule for us now to admit infants to the first initiating sacrament
+of the New Testament, baptism, because infants are federally holy,
+and within the covenant with their believing parents now, as well
+as then, Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor. vii. 14; Col. ii. 11, 12. Thus the
+baptizing of divers persons formerly, though into no particular
+congregation, nor as members of any particular congregation, as the
+eunuch, Acts viii.; Lydia, Acts xvi.; the jailer, Acts xvi.;
+because it was sufficient they were baptized into that one general
+visible body of Christ, 1 Cor. xii. 12, 13, is a rule for us what
+to do in like cases upon the same common ground. Thus the Church's
+practice of preaching the word, and breaking bread on the first day
+of the week, Acts xx. 7, &amp;c., is our rule for sanctifying the
+Lord's day, by celebrating the word, sacraments, and other holy
+ordinances, at these times. And in like manner, the primitive
+practices of ordaining preaching presbyters, by laying on of hands,
+1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6; Acts xiii. 3; of governing all the
+congregations of a city by one common presbytery, in which respect
+they are all called by the name of one church, as the church of
+Jerusalem, Acts viii. 1, and xv. 4; the church of Antioch, Acts
+xiii. 1, and xi. 25, 26; the church of Corinth, 1 Cor. i. 2, 2 Cor.
+i. 1; which had churches in it, 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Of healing common
+scandals and errors, troubling divers presbyterial churches by the
+authoritative decrees of a synod, made up of members from divers
+presbyterial churches, as Acts xv., and such like, are our rules in
+like particulars, which the Lord hath left for our direction, the
+same grounds of such actions reaching us as well as them.</p>
+<p>Now this last kind of examples are those which we are, by divers
+divine commands, especially enjoined to follow; and therefore such
+examples amount to a divine right or institution; and what we ought
+to do by virtue of such binding examples is of divine right, and by
+the will and appointment of Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p>What discriminatory notes or rules may we walk by, for finding
+out the obligatory force of scripture examples; and what manner of
+examples those be? For discovery hereof, take these ensuing general
+rules:</p>
+<p>1. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ
+commands us to imitate, are undoubtedly obligatory. Such are the
+moral examples of God, Christ, apostles, prophets, saints, and
+churches, recorded in Scripture, with command to follow them, Eph.
+iv. 32, and v. 1, 2; 1 John ii. 6; 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil. iv. 6; Heb.
+vi. 12, and xiii. 7; James v. 10; 3 John 11.</p>
+<p>2. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ
+commends and praises, are obligatory; his commendings are virtual
+commandings; and we ought to follow whatsoever is praiseworthy,
+especially in God's account, Phil. iv. 8, 9; 2 Cor. x. 18. Now the
+Spirit of Christ commends many examples to us: as, <i>Enoch's
+walking with God</i>, Gen. v. 24; <i>Noah's uprightness,</i> Gen.
+vi.; <i>Abraham's faith</i>, Rom. iv., <i>and obedience</i>, Gen.
+xxii.; <i>Lot's zeal against Sodom's sins</i>, 2 Pet. ii. 9;
+<i>Job's patience</i>, James v. 10, 11. And in a word, all the
+examples of the saints, which the Lord approves and speaks well of;
+as Heb. xi.; 1 Pet. iii. 5, 6: together with all such examples,
+whose imitation by others is commended in Scripture; as, 1 Thess.
+i. 6, 7, and ii. 14.</p>
+<p>3. Those examples in Scripture are obligatory, whose ground,
+reason, scope, or end, are obligatory, and of a moral nature, and
+as much concern one Christian as another, one church as another,
+one time as another, &amp;c., whether they be the examples under
+the Old or New Testament. Thus the example of the church of
+Corinth, in excommunicating the incestuous person, because he was a
+wicked person&mdash;and lest he should <i>leaven the whole
+lump;</i> and that they might keep the evangelical passover
+sincerely, and for that they had power <i>to judge them within</i>;
+and that his "flesh might be destroyed, and his spirit saved in the
+day of the Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5-8, 11-13: which grounds and
+ends being moral, oblige us to use the like remedy against all
+wicked and scandalous persons.</p>
+<p>4. Those acts which are propounded in Scripture as patterns or
+examples, that we should act the like good, or avoid the like ill,
+are an obligatory law to us. There is an example of caution, and an
+example of imitation.</p>
+<p>Thus in reference to well-doing, or suffering for well-doing,
+the examples of Christ, his apostles, and other saints, are
+propounded as patterns to write after, as John xiii. 14, 15; Heb.
+xi. tot. with Heb. xii. 1, <i>with such a cloud of witnesses</i>.
+This verse is as the epilogue of the former chapter, (saith the
+learned Calvin,) showing to what end the catalogue of saints was
+reckoned up, who under the law excelled in faith, viz: that every
+one may fit himself to imitate them. Another adds,<a href=
+"#note-12"><small>12</small></a> He calls them a cloud, whereby we
+may be directed; in allusion to that cloud that went before Israel
+in the wilderness, to conduct them to the land of Canaan. See also 1
+Pet. ii. 21-23; James v. 10.</p>
+<p>Thus also, in reference to ill-doing, that it may be avoided by
+us, the bad examples of saints and others are laid before us as
+warnings and cautions to us, binding us to eschew like evils, 1
+Cor. x. 5, 6, 11. "Now these things were our examples, to the
+intent we should not lust after evil things, as they also lusted.
+Now all these things happened unto them for examples," &amp;c.,
+Jude 7.</p>
+<p>5. Those acts of saints or Christians, which were done by them
+as saints and Christians, are obligatory upon, and to be followed
+by all Christians; but those acts which are done by magistrates,
+prophets, apostles, ministers, &amp;c., only as such, are only
+obligatory on such as have like offices, not on all; according to
+the maxim, that which agrees to any thing as such, agrees to every
+thing that is such. Thus James urges the example of Elias in
+praying, James v. 17. Paul presses the example of Abraham in being
+justified by believing, Rom. iv. 23,24. Peter prescribes, as a
+pattern to wives, the example of Sarah, and other holy women of
+old, for "adorning themselves with a meek and quiet
+spirit,&mdash;being in subjection to their own husbands," 1 Pet.
+iii. 4-6.</p>
+<p>6. Those acts that were commonly and ordinarily done, are
+ordinarily to be imitated; as, baptizing <i>in water only</i>, and
+not in any other element, was the ordinary practice of the New
+Testament, Matt. iii. 11, 16; Mark i. 6, 10; Luke iii. 16; John i.
+26, 31, 33; Acts i. 5, and viii. 36, 38, and x. 47, and xi. 16; and
+by that practice we are obliged to baptize in water only. Joining
+of many Christians together in receiving the Lord's supper was an
+ordinary practice, Matt. xxvi. 20, 26, 27; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7,
+&amp;c.; 1 Cor. xi. 20, and by us ordinarily to be imitated; how
+else is it a communion? 1 Cor. x. 16, 17.</p>
+<p>But such acts as were done only upon special causes or singular
+reasons, are only to be imitated in like cases. Thus Christ argues
+from a like special cause, that he was not to do miracles at
+Nazareth without a call, as he did in other places where he had a
+call of God; from the particular example of Elijah and Elisha, who
+only went to them to whom God called them, Luke ix. 25-27; so he
+proves that in like case of necessity it was lawful for his
+disciples on the sabbath-day to rub ears of corn and eat them,
+&amp;c., from David's example of eating show-bread when he had
+need, Matt. xii. 1-5.</p>
+<p>7. Those acts that were done from extraordinary calling and
+gifts, are to be imitated (in regard of their special way of
+acting) only by those that have such extraordinary calling and
+gifts. Christ therefore blames his apostles for desiring to imitate
+Elijah's extraordinary act in calling for fire from heaven,
+&amp;c., when they had not his spirit, Luke ix. 54, 55. Papists are
+blameworthy for imitating the extraordinary forty days' and nights'
+fast of Moses, Elijah, and Christ, in their Lent fast. Prelates
+argue corruptly for bishops' prelacy over their brethren the
+ministers, from the superiority of the apostles over
+presbyters.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0005"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER V.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of a Divine Right by Divine Approbation.</i></h3>
+<p>III. By divine approbation of the Spirit of Jesus Christ in his
+word. Whatsoever in matters of religion hath the divine approbation
+of the Spirit of Christ in the Scriptures, that is of divine right,
+and by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ. God's approving or
+allowing of any thing, plainly implies that it is according to his
+will and pleasure, and so is equivalent to a divine institution or
+appointment; for what is a divine institution or law but the
+publishing of the divine will of the legislator, touching things to
+be acted or omitted? and God cannot approve any thing that is
+against his will. Contrariwise, God's disallowing of any thing,
+plainly implies that it is against his will, and so of divine right
+prohibited, and unlawful. God allows or disallows things not
+because they are good or evil; but things are, therefore, good or
+evil, because he approves or disallows them.</p>
+<p>Now God approves or disallows things divers ways:</p>
+<p>1. By commending or discommending. God commended king Josiah for
+his zeal and impartiality in completing of the reformation of
+religion, 1 Kings xiii. 25. This is a rule for all princes and
+magistrates how they should reform. The angel of the church of
+Ephesus is commended, for not bearing of those that were evil, for
+trying and detecting the false apostles, and for hating the works
+of the Nicolaitans, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6. The angel of the church of
+Pergamus is praised, for holding fast Christ's name, and not
+denying his faith in places of danger, and days of deepest
+persecution, Rev. ii. 13: a rule for all pastors and churches, how
+in all such cases they should carry themselves. God's commendings
+are divine commandings. On the contrary, God dispraises Ephesus,
+for falling from her first love, Rev. ii. 4. Pergamus, for holding
+the doctrine of Balaam, and the doctrine of the Nicolaitans, Rev.
+ii. 14, 15. Thyatira, for tolerating the false prophetess Jezebel,
+to teach and seduce his servants, &amp;c., Rev. ii. 20. Laodicea,
+because she was neither hot nor cold, but lukewarm, Rev. iii. 15.
+The church of Corinth, for coming together in public assemblies,
+not for better but for worse, by reason of schisms, scandals, and
+other disorders about the Lord's supper, 1 Cor. xi. 17, &amp;c. In
+these and all such divine discommendings of the churches for their
+corruptions, all succeeding churches are strongly forbidden the
+like corruptions: God's dispraises are divine prohibitions. Thus
+good church elders are commended in this notion, that they are
+<i>elders ruling well</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17; therefore, that elders in
+the church should rule, and rule well, is by this commendation of
+divine right.</p>
+<p>2. By promising and threatening. What promise did God ever make
+to any act or performance, which was not a duty? or what
+threatening against any act which was not a sin? He promises to
+them that forsake all for Christ, a "hundred-fold now in this time,
+and in the world to come eternal life," Mark x. 29, 30; therefore
+it is our duty to forsake all for Christ. He promised to ratify in
+heaven his disciples' sentences of <i>building or loosing on
+earth</i>; and to <i>be with them</i> whensoever <i>two or three of
+them were met together</i> for that end, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii.
+18-20, and John xx. 23. Therefore binding and loosing, remitting
+and retaining of sins, and meeting together for that end, belong to
+them by divine right. He promised to be with them that baptize,
+preach, remit, and retain sins in his name, &amp;c., <i>always, to
+the end of the world</i>, John xx. 23; with Matt, xxviii. 18-20,
+which promise shows, that these works and employments belong to all
+succeeding ministers to the world's end, as well as to the apostles
+by divine right. On the contrary, the Lord threatens Ephesus for
+decay of first love, Rev. ii. 4, 5; Pergamus, for holding false
+doctrine, Rev. ii. 14, 15; Thyatira, for tolerating of Jezebel and
+her false teaching, &amp;c., Rev. ii. 21, 21, 23; and Laodicea, for
+lukewarmness, Rev. iii. 15, 16. Therefore, all these were their
+sins, and we are bound, even by this divine threatening, to avoid
+the like by a divine warrant.</p>
+<p>3. By remunerating or rewarding; whether he reward with
+blessings or with judgments. With blessings God rewarded the Hebrew
+midwives, because they preserved the male children of Israel,
+contrary to Pharaoh's bloody command; <i>God made them houses</i>,
+Exod. i. 17, 20, 21. He will have the elders that rule well
+<i>counted worthy of double honor</i>, &amp;c.; i.e. rewarded with
+a bountiful, plentiful maintenance, 1 Tim. v. 17. Therefore, their
+ruling in the church is of divine right, for which God appoints
+such a good reward. Contrariwise, with judgments God rewarded king
+Saul, for offering a burnt-offering himself, 1 Sam. xiii. 12-14;
+Uzzah, for touching the ark, though it was ready to fall, 2 Sam.
+vi. 6, 7; and king Uzziah, for going into the temple to burn
+incense, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16. None of these being priests, yet
+presuming to meddle with the priest's office. A rule for all
+persons, being not church officers, yea, though they be princes or
+supreme magistrates, that they are hereby warned by the divine law,
+not to usurp church authority or offices to themselves. God
+rewarded the Corinthians with the judgments of weakness, sickness,
+and death, for unworthy receiving of the Lord's supper, 1 Cor. xi.
+30. So that this is a divine warning for all after churches against
+unworthy communicating.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0006"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VI.</h2>
+<h3>IV. <i>Of a Divine Right by Divine Acts.</i></h3>
+<p>IV. By divine acts. Whatsoever matters of religion were erected
+in, or conferred upon the Church of God, by God, or any person of
+the blessed Trinity, and are left recorded in the Scripture, they
+are of divine right, by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ.
+Shall divine approbation, yea, shall the saints' binding example
+hold forth to us a divine right, and shall not the divine actions
+of God, Christ, and the Spirit, do it much more? Take some
+instances: the Lord's-day sabbath, under the New Testament, was it
+not instituted (the seventh day being changed to the first day of
+the week) by the acts of Christ, having now perfected the spiritual
+creation of the new world? viz: by his resurrection and apparitions
+to his disciples on that day, and miraculous blessing and
+sanctifying of that day, by pouring forth the gifts of the Holy
+Ghost, Acts ii., all which were seconded with the apostolical
+practice in the primitive churches, Acts xx. 7, &amp;c.; 1 Cor.
+xvi. 1, 2. And do not the churches of Christ generally conclude
+upon these grounds, that the Lord's-day sabbath is of divine
+warrant? Thus circumcision is abrogated of divine right, by
+Christ's act, instituting baptism instead thereof, Col. ii. 11, 12.
+The passover is abolished of divine right, by Christ himself, our
+true passover, <i>being sacrificed for us</i>, 1 Cor. v. 7; and the
+Lord's supper being instituted a memorial of Christ's death instead
+of it, Matt, xxvi., Mark xiv., Luke xxii. And the whole ceremonial
+law is antiquated and made void by Christ's death, accomplishing
+all those dark types; therefore Christ, immediately before his
+yielding up the ghost, cried, <i>It is finished</i>, John xix. 30.
+See Col. ii. 14; Eph. ii. 14, 15; <i>abolishing the law of
+commandments in ordinances</i>, Heb. viii. 13, and x. 4, 5, &amp;c.
+Thus by Christ's act of giving the keys of the kingdom of heaven to
+Peter and the apostles, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, 19, the keys
+belong to the officers of the church by divine right. By God's act
+of <i>setting in the Church some, first apostles</i>, &amp;c., 1
+Cor. xii. 28, all those officers belong to the general visible
+Church by divine right. By Christ's act of bounty upon his
+triumphant ascension into heaven, <i>in giving gifts to men</i>,
+Eph. iv. 7, 11, 12; all those church officers being Christ's gifts,
+are of divine right. Finally, by the Holy Ghost's act, in setting
+elders, overseers over the flock, Acts xx. 28, elders are such
+overseers by divine right.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0007"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VII.</h2>
+<h3>V. <i>Of a Divine Right by Divine Precepts.</i></h3>
+<p>V. Finally, and primarily, by divine precepts, whatsoever in
+matters of religion is commanded or forbidden by God in his word,
+that is accordingly a duty or sin, by divine right: as, the duties
+of the whole moral law, the ten words, commanded of God, Exod. xx.;
+Deut. v. Believing in Christ, commanded of God, 1 John iii. 23. The
+plentiful and honorable maintenance of ministers, commanded of God,
+1 Tim. v. 17, 18; 1 Cor. ix. 9-11, 13, 14; Gal. vi. 6. The people's
+esteeming, loving, and obeying their pastors and teachers,
+commanded of God, 1 Thess. v. 12; Heb. xiii. 7, 17. Ministers'
+diligence and faithfulness, in feeding and watching over their
+flocks, commanded of God, Acts xx. 28; 2 Tim. iv. 1-3; 1 Pet. iv.
+1-3; with innumerable commands and precepts of all sorts: now all
+things so commanded are evidently of divine right, and without
+gainsaying, granted on all hands, even by Erastians themselves. But
+the question will be, how far we shall extend this head of
+<i>divine commands</i>. For clearness' sake, thus distinguish, thus
+resolve:</p>
+<p>God's commands are either immediate or mediate.</p>
+<p>1. Immediate divine commands: as those which God propounds and
+urges; as the ten commandments, Exod. xx., Deut. v., and all other
+injunctions of his in his word positively laid down. Of such
+commands, the apostle saith, "I command, yet not I, but the Lord,"
+1 Cor. vii. 10.</p>
+<p>Now these immediate commands of God, in regard of their manner
+of publishing and propounding, are either explicit or implicit.</p>
+<p>1. Explicit: which are expressly and in plain terms laid down,
+as the letter of the commandments of the decalogue, Exod. xx. The
+commands of Christ, "Feed my lambs, feed my sheep," John xxi.; "Go,
+disciple ye all nations," &amp;c., Matt, xxviii. 19; "Do this in
+remembrance of me," Matt, xxvi; 1 Cor. xi. 23, 24, &amp;c. Now
+whatsoever is expressly commanded of God in plain, evident terms,
+that is of divine right, without all color of controversy. Only
+take this caution, the divine right of things enjoined by God's
+express command, is to be interpreted according to the nature of
+the thing commanded, and the end or scope of the Lord in
+commanding: e.g. 1. Some things God commands morally, to be of
+perpetual use; as to honor father and mother, &amp;c.; these are of
+divine right forever. 2. Some things he commands but positively, to
+be of use for a certain season; as the ceremonial administrations
+till Christ should come, for the Jewish church, and the judicial
+observances for their Jewish polity; and all these positive laws
+were of divine right till Christ abrogated them. 3. Some things he
+commands only by way of trial, not with intention that the things
+commanded should be done, but that his people's fear, love, and
+obedience may be proved, tried, &amp;c. Thus God commanded Abraham
+to offer up his son Isaac for a burnt-offering, Gen. xxii.: such
+things are of divine right only in such cases of special infallible
+command. 4. Some things he commands extraordinarily in certain
+select and special cases: as, <i>Israel to borrow jewels of the
+Egyptians to rob them</i>, without intention ever to restore them,
+Exod. xi. 2, &amp;c. The disciples to <i>go preach</i>&mdash;yet to
+<i>provide neither gold nor silver</i>, &amp;c. Matt. x. 7-10. The
+elders of the church (while miracles were of use in the church)
+<i>to anoint the sick with oil in the name of the Lord</i>, for
+their recovery, James v. 14. These and like extraordinary commands
+were only of force by divine right, in these extraordinary select
+cases, when they were propounded.</p>
+<p>1. Implicit, or implied: which are either comprehensively
+contained in or under the express terms and letter of the command;
+or, consequentially, are deducible from the express command.</p>
+<p>Comprehensively, many things are contained in a command, that
+are not expressed in the very letter of the command. Thus sound
+interpreters of the decalogue generally confess, that all precepts
+thereof include the whole parts under the general term, and God
+wills many things by them more than the bare words signify: e.g. in
+negative commands, forbidding sin, we are to understand the
+positive precepts prescribing the contrary duties; and so, on the
+contrary, under affirmative commands, we are to understand the
+negative thereof: thus Christ expounds the sixth commandment, Matt.
+v. 21-27, and ver. 43, to the end of the chapter. So when any evil
+is forbidden, not only the outward gross acts, but all inward acts
+and degrees thereof, with all causes and occasions, all fruits and
+effects thereof, are forbidden likewise: as, under killing,
+provoking terms, rash anger, Matt. v. 21, 22; under adultery,
+wanton looks, lustful thoughts, &amp;c., Matt. v. 27-30. Now all
+things comprehended in a command (though not expressed) are of
+divine right.</p>
+<p>Consequentially, many things are clearly deducible from express
+commands in Scripture, by clear, unforced, infallible, and
+undeniable consequence. Now what things are commanded by necessary
+consequence, they are of divine right, as well as things in express
+terms prescribed: e.g. in the case of baptism, have the ordinary
+ministers of the New Testament any punctual express command to
+baptize? yet, by consequence, it is evident infallibly, the
+apostles are commanded to baptize, and the promise is made to them
+by Christ, that he <i>will be with them always to the end of the
+world</i>, Matt, xxviii. 18-20, which cannot be interpreted of the
+apostles' persons only; for they were not to live till the world's
+end, but are dead and gone long ago; but of the apostles and their
+successors, the ministers of the gospel to the world's end; now to
+whom the promise of Christ's presence is here to be applied, to
+them the precept of baptizing and teaching is intended by clear
+consequence and deduction. So, infants of Christian parents under
+the New Testament are commanded to be baptized by consequence; for
+that the infants of God's people under the Old Testament were
+commanded to be circumcised, Gen. xvii.; for, the privileges of
+believers under the New Testament are as large as the privileges of
+believers under the Old Testament: and the children of believers
+under the New Testament are federally holy, and within the covenant
+of God, as well as the children of believers under the Old
+Testament, Gen. xvii., compared with Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor. vii. 14:
+and what objections can be made from infants' incapacity now,
+against their baptism, might as well then have been made against
+their being circumcised: and why children should once be admitted
+to the initiating sacrament, and not still be admitted to the like
+initiating sacrament, (the Lord of the covenant and sacrament
+nowhere forbidding them,) there can be no just ground. And baptism
+succeeds in the room of circumcision, Col. ii. 11, 12. <i>Thus in
+case of the Lord's supper</i>, apostles were commanded to dispense
+it, and men commanded to receive it. "Do ye this in remembrance of
+me," Matt, xxvi., 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25; yet by consequence, the
+ministers of the gospel succeeding the apostles, being stewards of
+the mysteries of God, have the same charge laid upon them; and
+women as well as men are enjoined to keep that sacrament, whole
+families communicating in the passover, the forerunner of the
+Lord's supper, Exod. xiv., and male and female being <i>all one in
+Christ</i>, Gal. iii. 28. <i>Thus in case of the maintenance of
+ministers under the New Testament</i>: the apostle proves it by
+consequence to be commanded, God hath ordained, &amp;c., from God's
+command of not <i>muzzling the ox that treads out the corn</i>, and
+of maintaining the priests under the Old Testament, 1 Cor. ix. 14,
+&amp;c.; l Tim. v. 17, 18. And thus, in case of church polity, the
+Hebrews are commanded to obey and be subordinate to their rulers in
+the Lord, Heb. xiii. 17; consequently, other churches are commanded
+not only to have rulers, but to obey and submit to their rule and
+government. Timothy is commanded to lay hands <i>suddenly on
+none</i>, &amp;c., in ordaining of preaching elders, 1 Tim. v. 21,
+22; consequently, such as succeed Timothy in ordaining of preaching
+elders are enjoined therein to do nothing suddenly, hastily,
+&amp;c., but upon mature deliberation. The apostle commands, that
+men must <i>first be proved, and found blameless, before they
+execute the deacon's office</i>, 1 Tim. iii. 10; by consequence, it
+is much more necessarily commanded, that ruling elders should first
+be proved, and be found blameless, before they exercise rule; and
+that ministers be examined, and found blameless, before they be
+ordained to or execute the ministerial function, for these offices
+are of greater and higher concernment than the deacon's office.</p>
+<p>2. Mediate divine commands, which are mediately from God, but
+immediately from men; and these come under a double consideration,
+being either,</p>
+<p>1. Such commands whose general principles are immediately the
+Lord's, yet accommodations and determinations of particulars are
+from men, by apparent deductions from those grounds. Of such the
+apostle saith, "But to the rest speak I, not the Lord," 1 Cor. vii.
+12; not that Paul delivered any commands merely of his own head,
+(for he had "obtained mercy of the Lord to be faithful," ver. 25,
+and did <i>think that he had the Spirit of the Lord</i>, ver. 40,)
+but grounded his commands upon the word of God, whereof the apostle
+was the interpreter. The case is concerning divorce when it fell
+out that believer and unbeliever were married together: the Lord
+had given general rules about divorce, but no particular rule about
+this case, (it being not incident to the Jews;) the apostle,
+therefore, accommodates the general rule to the particular case;
+he, not the Lord, determined the particular. This sound
+interpreters conceive to be the apostle's meaning: Thus the
+apostle, treating of order in public assemblies, saith, "The
+prophet and the spiritual man must acknowledge the things which I
+write, to be the commandments of the Lord," 1 Cor. xiv. 37.
+Understand it mediately, as being agreeable to the Lord's
+principles revealed: for otherwise how should the prophet know what
+the Lord immediately revealed to the apostle? or why should we
+think it probable that what Paul here speaks of order and decency
+in church assemblies, was immediately and expressly delivered him
+by speech or revelation from the Lord, seeing these particulars
+have such easy and apparent deduction from general principles, and
+revelations are not unnecessarily multiplied? Yet these particular
+deductions and determinations are here styled the commandments of
+the Lord.</p>
+<p>2. Such commands, which are accidental and occasional, whose
+grounds and general principles are also the Lord's; yet
+determination or deduction of particulars can hardly be made, but
+in such emergent cases and occasions accidentally falling out, as
+necessitate thereunto. As in that case, Acts xv., when the synod
+commands abstinence <i>from blood, and things strangled</i>, and
+that necessarily, (though the Levitical law was now abrogated,)
+because the common use thereof by accident grew very scandalous:
+therefore, by the law of charity, the use of Christian liberty is
+to be suspended, when otherwise the scandal of my brother is
+endangered; yet from any ground of equity to have provided such a
+particular rule as this, without such a case occurring, would
+scarce have been possible. Now the synod saith of this
+determination, "It seemed good unto the Holy Ghost, and unto us,"
+Acts xv. And another synod, walking by the like light and rule of
+the Scripture as they did, may say of themselves as the apostles
+said.</p>
+<a name="H_PART2"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>PART II.</h2>
+<h3>OF THE NATURE OF THAT CHURCH GOVERNMENT WHICH IS OF DIVINE
+RIGHT, ACCORDING TO SCRIPTURE.</h3>
+<a name="2HCH0008"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER I.</h2>
+<h3><i>The Description of Church Government.</i></h3>
+<p>The nature of that church government which is of divine right
+according to Scripture, comes next to be considered; (having so
+fully seen what the nature of a divine right is, and how many
+several ways matters in religion may be said to be of divine
+right.) For the fuller and clearer unfolding whereof, let us first
+see how church government may be described; and then how that
+description may be explained and justified by the word of God, in
+the branches of it.</p>
+<p>Church government may be thus described:</p>
+<p>Church government is a power<a href=
+"#note-13"><small>13</small></a> or authority spiritual,<a href=
+"#note-14"><small>14</small></a> revealed in the holy
+Scriptures,<a href="#note-15"><small>15</small></a> derived from
+Jesus Christ<a href="#note-16"><small>16</small></a> our
+Mediator,<a href="#note-17"><small>17</small></a> only to his own
+officers, and by them exercised in dispensing of the word,<a href=
+"#note-18"><small>18</small></a> seals,<a href=
+"#note-19"><small>19</small></a> censures,<a href=
+"#note-20"><small>20</small></a> and all other ordinances of
+Christ,<a href="#note-21"><small>21</small></a> for the edifying of
+the Church of Christ.<a href="#note-22"><small>22</small></a></p>
+<p>This description of church government may be thus explained and
+proved. Three things are principally considerable herein, viz: 1.
+The thing defined, or described, viz. church government. 2. The
+general nature of this government which it hath in common with all
+other governments, viz. power or authority.</p>
+<p>3. The special difference whereby it is distinguished from all
+other governments whatsoever. Herein six things are observable. 1.
+The special rule, wherein it is revealed, and whereby it is to be
+measured, viz. the holy Scriptures. 2. The proper author, or
+fountain, whence this power is derived, viz. from Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, peculiarly. 3. The special kind of this power or
+authority, viz. it is a spiritual power, it is a derived power. 4.
+The several parts or acts wherein this power sets forth itself,
+viz. in dispensing the word, seals, censures, and all other
+ordinances of Christ. 5. The special end or scope of this power,
+viz. the edifying of the Church of Christ. 6. The proper and
+distinct subject or receptacle wherein Christ hath placed and
+intrusted all this power, viz. only his own officers. All these
+things are comprehended in this description, and unto these several
+heads the whole nature of church government may be reduced. So
+that, these being explained and confirmed by the Scriptures, it
+will easily and fully be discovered, what that church government is
+which is of divine right, and by the will and appointment of Jesus
+Christ, our Mediator.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0009"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER II.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Subject Described, viz. Church Government, the terms
+being briefly opened.</i></h3>
+<p>Touching the thing defined or described, it is church
+government. Here two terms are to be a little explained: 1. What is
+meant by church? 2. What is meant by government?</p>
+<p>1. Church is originally derived from a Greek word,<a href=
+"#note-23"><small>23</small></a> which signifies to call forth.
+Hence church properly signifies a company or multitude, called
+forth; and so in this notation of the word, three things are
+implied: 1. The term from which they are called. 2. The term to
+which they are called. 3. The medium or mean by which they are
+brought from one term to another, viz. by calling. And these things
+thus generally laid down, do agree to every company that may
+properly be called a church. Now, this word translated church,
+never signifies one particular person, but many congregated,
+gathered, or called together; and it hath several acceptations or
+uses in the New Testament: 1. It is used in a common and civil
+sense, for any civil meeting, or concourse of people together: thus
+that tumultuous and riotous assembly is called a church, Acts xix.
+32, 39, 40. 2. It is used in a special religious sense, for a
+sacred meeting or assembly of God's people together: and thus it
+signifies the Church of God, either, 1. Invisible, comprehending
+only the elect of God, as Heb. xii. 23, "and Church of the
+first-born," Eph. v. 23, &amp;c., "Even as Christ is the head of
+the Church." 2. Or, visible, comprehending the company of those
+that are called to the visible profession of the faith in Christ,
+and obedience unto Christ, according to the gospel, as Acts ii. 47,
+and v. 11, and viii. 3, and xii. 1, 5; 1 Cor. xii. 23, and often
+elsewhere. Now in this description, church is not understood of a
+civil assembly; for such assemblies are governed by civil power.
+Nor of the invisible Church of Christ; for, as the Church is
+invisible, (to speak properly,) it is invisibly governed by Christ
+and his Spirit, Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20. But of the visible
+Church of Christ, for which Christ hath provided a visible polity,
+a visible government, by visible officers and ordinances, for the
+good both of the visible and invisible members thereof, which is
+that church government here spoken of.</p>
+<p>2. Government is the translation of a Greek word, which properly
+signifies the government of a ship with chart, &amp;c., by the
+pilot or mariner, and thence metaphorically is used to signify any
+government, political or ecclesiastical. But the word is only once
+used in all the New Testament, viz. 1 Cor. xii. 28:
+<i>Governments</i>, h.e. ruling elders in the church; the abstract
+being put for the concrete, governments for governors. But whatever
+be the terms or names whereby government is expressed, government
+generally considered seems still to signify a superiority of
+office, power, and authority, which one hath and exerciseth over
+another. This is the notion of government in general. So that
+church government, in general, notes that pre-eminence or
+superiority of office, power, and authority, which some have and
+exercise over others in spiritual matters, in church affairs. And
+here we are further to consider, that church government is either,
+1. Magisterial, lordly, and supreme; and so it is primitively and
+absolutely in God, Matt. xxviii. 18. Dispensatorily and mediatorily
+in Jesus Christ our Mediator only, whom God hath made both Lord and
+Christ, Acts ii. 36; Matt, xxiii. 8, 10; 1 Cor. viii. 6, and to
+whom God alone hath dispensed all authority and power, Matt,
+xxviii. 18, 19; John v. 22. Now church government, as settled on
+Christ only, is monarchical. 2. Ministerial, stewardly, and
+subordinate; and this power Jesus Christ our Mediator hath
+committed to his church guides and officers in his Church, 2 Cor.
+x. 8, and xiii. 10; and church government, as intrusted in the
+hands of church guides, is representative. This ministerial church
+government, committed by Christ to his officers, may be considered
+either, 1. As it was dispensed under the Old Testament, in a
+Mosaical, Levitical polity; in which sense we here speak not of
+church government; (that polity being dissolved and antiquated.) 2.
+Or, as it is to be dispensed now under the New Testament, in an
+evangelical Christian polity, by Christ's New Testament officers;
+and this is that church government which is here described, viz.
+not the supreme magisterial government of Christ, but the
+subordinate ministerial government of Christ's officers; and this
+not as it was under the Old Testament, but as it ought to be now
+under the New Testament.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0010"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER III.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the general Nature of Church Government, viz. Power or
+Authority.</i></h3>
+<p>Touching the general nature of this government, which it
+participates in common with all other governments, it is power or
+authority. Here divers particulars are to be cleared and proved,
+viz:</p>
+<p>1. What is meant by power or authority? The word chiefly used in
+the New Testament for power or authority is used not only to denote
+Christ's supreme power, as Luke iv. 36; Mark i. 17, with Luke vi.
+19; but also his officers' derived power, as with 2 Cor. x. 8, and
+xiii. 10. It is used to signify divers things: as, 1. Dignity,
+privilege, prerogative. "To them he gave prerogative to be the sons
+of God," John i. 12. 2. Liberty, leave, license; as, 1 Cor. viii.
+9, "But so that your liberty become not an offence to the weak;"
+and 1 Cor. ix. 4, 5, "Have not we liberty to eat and drink? Have
+not we liberty to lead about a sister, a wife?" 3. But most usually
+right and authority; as, Matt. xxi. 23, 24, 27, and xxviii. 18; so
+2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: in this last sense especially it is here
+to be taken in this description of church government.</p>
+<p>Power or authority in general is by some<a href=
+"#note-24"><small>24</small></a> thus described: that whereby one
+may claim or challenge any thing to one's self, without the injury
+of any other. Power is exercised either about things, or actions,
+or persons. 1. About things, as when a man disposes of his own
+goods, which he may do without wrong to any. 2. About actions, as
+when a man acts that which offends no law. 3. About persons, as
+when a man commands his children or servants that are under his own
+power.&mdash;Proportionably, the power of the Church in government
+is exercised, 1. About things, as when it is to be determined by
+the word, what the Church may call her own of right; as, that all
+the officers are hers, Eph; iv. 7, 8, 10, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28: that
+all the promises are hers, 2 Pet. i. 4; 1 Tim. iv. 8: that Jesus
+Christ, and with Christ all things, are hers, 1 Cor. iii. 21, 22.
+The keys of the kingdom of heaven are hers, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18, &amp;c.; John xx. 21, 23, &amp;c.: these things the
+Church may challenge without wrong to any. 2. About actions. As
+when it is to be determined by the word, what the Church of divine
+right may do, or not do: as, the Church may not <i>bear with them
+that are evil</i>, Rev. ii. 2; <i>nor tolerate women to teach</i>,
+or false doctrine to be broached, Rev. ii. 20, &amp;c. The Church
+may <i>warn the unruly</i>, 1 Thess. v. 14: excommunicate the
+obstinate and incorrigible, Matt, xviii. 17, 18; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5,
+13: receive again penitent persons to the communion of the
+faithful, 2 Cor. ii. 7, 8: make binding decrees in synods, even to
+the restraining of the outward exercise of due Christian liberty
+for a time, for prevention of scandal, Acts xv. 3. About persons.
+The Church also hath a power to be exercised, for calling them to
+their duty, and keeping them in their duty according to the word of
+God: as, to <i>rebuke them before all</i>, that sin before all, 1
+Tim. v. 20: to prove deacons, Acts vi. 2, 3, &amp;c.; 1 Tim. iii.
+10: <i>to ordain elders</i>, Tit. i. 5; Acts xiv. 23: to use the
+<i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>, in the dispensing of all
+ordinances, Matt, xviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt,
+xxviii. 18-20: and, in a word, (as the cause shall require,) to
+judge of all them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.</p>
+<p>This is the power and authority wherein the nature of church
+government generally doth consist.</p>
+<p>2. That all governments in Scripture are styled by the common
+names of power or authority: e.g. the absolute government of God
+over all things, is power, Acts i. 7: the supreme government of
+Jesus Christ, is power, Matt, xxviii. 18; Rev. xii. 10: the
+political government of the magistrate in commonwealths, is power,
+as John xix. 10; Rom. xiii. 1-3; Luke xxiii. 7: the military
+government of soldiers under superior commanders, is power,
+&amp;c., Matt. viii. 9: the family government that the master of a
+family hath over his household, is power, 1 Tim. iii. 5, "If any
+man know not how to rule his own house." Yea, the very tyrannical
+rule that sin and Satan exercise over carnal men, is styled power,
+Acts xxvi. 18; Col. i. 13. Thus, generally, all sorts of government
+are commonly called power or authority.</p>
+<p>3. That thus the Scripture also styles church government, viz.
+power or authority, as 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority" (or power)
+"which the Lord hath given us for your edification." Paul speaks it
+of this power of church government. And again, speaking of the same
+subject, he saith, "Lest being present, I should use sharpness,
+according to the power which the Lord hath given me to edification,
+and not to destruction." 2 Cor. xiii. 10.</p>
+<p>For further clearing hereof, consider the several sorts or kinds
+of ecclesiastical power, according to this type or scheme of
+ecclesiastical power and authority here subjoined.</p>
+<p>Ecclesiastical power is either supreme and magisterial; or
+subordinate and ministerial.</p>
+<p>I. Supreme magisterial power, consisting in a lordly dominion
+and sovereignty over the Church; and may come under a double
+consideration, viz:</p>
+<p>1. As it is justly attributed to God alone. Thus the absolute
+sovereignty and supreme power (to speak properly) is only his over
+the Church, and all creatures in the whole universe: now this
+supreme divine power is either essential or mediatorial.</p>
+<p>1. Essential, viz. that power which belongs to the essence of
+God, and to every person of the Trinity in common, as God. "His
+kingdom ruleth over all," Psal. ciii. 19. "God ruleth in Jacob to
+the ends of the earth," Psal. lix. 13. "The kingdom is the Lord's,
+and he is the Governor among the nations," Psal. xxii. 28.</p>
+<p>2. Mediatorial, viz. that magisterial, lordly, and sovereign
+power or dominion, which God hath dispensed, delegated, or
+committed to Christ as Mediator, being both head of the Church, and
+over all things to the Church. This power is peculiar only to Jesus
+Christ our Mediator. "All power is given to me both in heaven and
+in earth," Matt. xxviii. 18. "The Father loveth the Son, and hath
+given all things into his hand," John iii. 35. "The Father judgeth
+no man, but hath committed all judgment to the Son," John v. 22.
+"One is your Master, even Christ," Matt. xxiii. 8, 10. "God hath
+put all things under his feet, and gave him to be head over all
+things to the Church," Eph. i. 20-23.&mdash;This power of Christ is
+the only proper fountain whence all ecclesiastical power flows to
+the Church.</p>
+<p>II. As it is unjustly arrogated and usurped by man; whether, 1.
+By the pope to himself; who arrogates to himself to be Christ's
+vicar, the supreme visible head on earth of the visible catholic
+Church of Christ; who exalts himself above all that is called God
+on earth, over magistrates, princes, kings, yea, over the souls and
+consciences of men, and the holy Scriptures of God themselves,
+&amp;c., 2 Thess. ii. 4; Rev. xviii. 10-13.</p>
+<p>2. By earthly princes to themselves: as, King Henry VIII., who,
+casting off the papal power and primacy, was vested with it himself
+within his own dominions, over the Church, accounting himself the
+fountain of all ecclesiastical power, (it being by statute law
+annexed to the crown,) and assuming to himself that papal title of
+supreme head of the Church, &amp;c., which is sharply taxed by
+orthodox divines of foreign churches. Thus, that most learned
+Rivet, taxing Bishop Gardiner for extolling the king's primacy,
+saith, "For, he that did as yet nourish the doctrine of the papacy,
+as after it appeared, did erect a new papacy in the person of the
+king."&mdash;Andrew Rivet, <i>Expli. Decalog. Edit.</i> ii. page
+203. Judicious Calvin saith thus: "And to this day how many are
+there in the papacy that heap upon kings whatsoever right and power
+they can possibly, so that there may not be any dispute of
+religion; but should this power be in one king, to decree according
+to his own pleasure whatsoever he pleaseth, and that should remain
+fixed without controversy? They that at first so much extolled
+Henry, king of England, (certainly they were inconsiderate men,)
+gave unto him supreme power of all things, and this grievously
+wounded me always; for they were blasphemers, when they called him
+the supreme head of the Church under Christ: certainly this was too
+much. But let this remain buried, because they sinned by an
+inconsiderate zeal. But when that impostor, (he means Bishop
+Gardiner, as Rivet notes,) which after was chancellor of this
+Proserpina, which there at this day overcometh all the devils, he
+when he was at Ratisbon did not contend with reasons, (I speak of
+this last chancellor, who was Bishop of Winchester,) but as I now
+began to say, he much regarded not scripture testimonies; but said,
+it was at the pleasure of the king to abrogate the statutes, and
+institute new rites. Touching fasting, there the king can enjoin
+and command the people, that this or that day the people may eat
+flesh: yea, that it is lawful for the king to forbid priests to
+marry; yea, that it is lawful for the king to forbid to the people
+the use of the cup in the Lord's supper; that it is lawful for the
+king to decree this or that in his kingdom. Why? Because the king
+hath the supreme power. It is certain, if kings do their duty, they
+are both patrons of religion, and nurse-fathers of the Church, as
+Isaiah calls them, Isa. xlix. 23. This, therefore, is principally
+required of kings, that they use the sword wherewith they are
+furnished, for the maintaining of God's worship. But in the mean
+time there are inconsiderate men, that make them too spiritual; and
+this fault reigns up and down Germany; yea, spreads too much in
+these countries. And now we perceive what fruits spring from this
+root, viz: that princes, and all that are in place of government,
+think themselves to be so spiritual, that there is no other
+ecclesiastical government. And this sacrilege creeps among us,
+because they cannot measure their office with certain and lawful
+bounds, but are of opinion they cannot reign, unless they abolish
+all the authority of the Church, and become the chief judges both
+in doctrine, and in the whole spiritual government. At the
+beginning they pretend some zeal; but mere ambition drives them,
+that so solicitously they snatch all things to themselves.
+Therefore there ought to be a temper kept; for this disease hath
+always reigned in princes, to desire to bend religion according to
+their own pleasure and lust, and for their own profits in the mean
+time. For they have respect to their profit, because for the most
+part they are not acted by the Spirit of God, but their ambition
+carries them." Thus Calvin in Amos vii. 13. Oh what exclamations
+would this holy man have poured out, had he lived to see the
+passages of our days! <i>Quis talia fando temperet a
+lachrymis!</i><a href="#note-25"><small>25</small></a></p>
+<p>II. Subordinate ministerial power, which is either,</p>
+<p>1. Indirectly, improperly, and only objectively ecclesiastical
+or spiritual, (so called, because it is exercised about spiritual
+or ecclesiastical objects, though formally in its own nature it be
+properly a mere civil or political power.) This is that power which
+is allowed to the civil magistrate about religion; he is <i>an
+overseer of things without the Church</i>, having an external care
+of religion as a <i>nurse-father</i>, Isa. xlix. 23; as had
+Hezekiah, Josiah, Asa, Jehoshaphat, &amp;c.; so as, by the law, to
+restore religion decayed, reform the Church corrupted, protect the
+Church reformed, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>2. Directly, properly, and formally ecclesiastical or spiritual,
+having respect properly to matters within the Church. This power
+only belongs to church officers, who are overseers of things
+within, 1 Cor. iv. 20, 21; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and this is
+either, 1. More special and peculiar to the office of some church
+governors only, as the power of preaching the gospel, dispensing
+the sacraments, &amp;c., which is only committed to the ministers
+of the gospel, and which they, as ministers, may execute, in virtue
+of their office. This is called by some the key of doctrine, or key
+of knowledge; by others, the power of order, or of special office.
+See Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Rom. x. 15; 1 Tim. v. 17. 2. More general
+and common to the office of all church governors, as the power of
+censures, &amp;c., wherein ruling elders act with ministers,
+admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the incorrigible, remitting
+and receiving again of the penitent into church communion. Compare
+Matt, xviii. 17, 18; 1 Cor. v. 2, 4, 5, 7, 11-13; 2 Cor. ii. 6-12,
+with Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and 1 Tim. v. 17. This is called
+the key of discipline, or power of jurisdiction.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0011"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER IV.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the special difference of Church Government from other
+Governments. And first of the Special Rule of Church Government,
+viz. the Holy Scriptures.</i></h3>
+<p>Touching the special difference, whereby church government is in
+this description distinguished from all other governments
+whatsoever, it consists of many branches, which will require more
+large explication and confirmation; and shall be handled, not
+according to that order, as they are first named in the
+description, but according to the order of nature, as they most
+conduce to the clearing of one another, every branch being
+distinctly laid down, as followeth:</p>
+<p>The rule or standard of church government is only the holy
+Scriptures. Thus in the description, church government is styled a
+power or authority revealed in the holy Scriptures. For clearing
+hereof, take this proposition, viz:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a perfect
+and sufficient rule for the government of his visible Church under
+the New Testament, which all the members of his Church ought to
+observe and submit unto until the end of the world. For clearing
+this, weigh these considerations:</p>
+<p>1. The government of the visible Church under the New Testament
+is as needful as ever it was under the Old Testament. What
+necessity of government could be pleaded then, which may not as
+strongly be pleaded now? Is not the visible Church of Christ a
+mixed body of sound and unsound members, of fruitful and barren
+branches, of tares and wheat, of good and bad, of sincere believers
+and hypocrites, of sheep and goats, &amp;c., now as well as it was
+then? Is there not as great cause to separate and distinguish by
+church power, between the precious and the vile, the clean and the
+unclean, (who are apt to defile, infect, and leaven one another,)
+now as well as then? Ought there not to be as great care over the
+holy ordinances of God, to preserve and guard them from contempt
+and pollution, by a hedge and fence of government, now as well as
+then? Is it not as necessary that by government sin be suppressed,
+piety promoted, and the Church edified, now as well as then? But
+under the Old Testament the Church visible had a perfect rule of
+church government, (as is granted on all sides:) and hath Jesus
+Christ left his Church now under the New Testament in a worse
+condition?</p>
+<p>2. The Lord Jesus Christ (upon whose shoulder God hath laid the
+government, Isa. ix. 6, and unto whom <i>all power both in heaven
+and in earth is given</i> by the Father to that end, Matt. xxviii.
+18) <i>is most faithful in all his house</i>, the Church, fully to
+discharge all the trust committed to him, and completely to supply
+his Church with all necessaries both to her being, and well-being
+ecclesiastical. Moses was faithful in the Old Testament; for, as
+God gave him a pattern of church government in the ceremonial law,
+so he did all things according to the pattern; and shall the Lord
+Jesus be less faithful as <i>a son over his own house,</i> than was
+Moses as a servant over another's house? "Consider the Apostle and
+High Priest of our profession, Christ Jesus, who was faithful to
+him that appointed him, as also Moses was faithful in all his
+house&mdash;and Moses verily was faithful in all his house as a
+servant&mdash;but Christ as a son over his own house, whose house
+are we," Heb. iii. 1, 2, 5, 6. Yea, "Jesus Christ, the same
+yesterday, and to-day, and forever," Heb. xiii. 8, giving a pattern
+of church government to Moses, and the church officers of the Old
+Testament, (the Church being then as a child in nonage and
+minority, Gal, iv. 1, &amp;c.,) can we imagine he hath not as
+carefully left a pattern of church government to his apostles, and
+the church officers of the New Testament, the Church being now as a
+man come to full age and maturity?</p>
+<p>3. The holy Scriptures are now completely and unalterably
+perfect, containing such exact rules for the churches of God in all
+states and ages, both under the Old and New Testament, that not
+only the people of God, of all sorts and degrees, but also the men
+of God, and officers of the Church, of all sorts and ages, may
+thereby be made perfect, thoroughly furnished unto all good works.
+"The law of the Lord is perfect," Psal. xix. 7. "All Scripture is
+given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for
+reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteousness, that the
+man of God may be perfect, thoroughly furnished to every good
+work," 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17. And in his first epistle to Timothy,
+(which is the Church's directory for divine worship, discipline,
+and government,) he saith, "These things write I unto
+thee&mdash;that thou mightest know how thou oughtest to behave
+thyself in the house of God, which is the Church of the living
+God," (this is spoken in reference to matters of church government
+peculiarly,) 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15. And the apostle, having respect to
+the former matters in his epistle, saith to Timothy, and to all
+Timothies after him, "I give thee charge in the sight of
+God&mdash;that thou keep this commandment without spot,
+unrebukable, until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ,"
+(therefore, this charge is intended for all ministers after Timothy
+to the world's end,) 1 Tim. vi. 13, 14, compared with 1 Tim. v. 21,
+observe <i>these things</i>. And the perfection of the whole
+scripture canon is sealed up with that testimony in the close of
+the last book, "If any man shall add unto these things, God shall
+add unto him the plagues that are written in this book: and if any
+man shall take away from the words of the book of this prophecy,
+God shall take away his part out of the book of life, and out of
+the holy city, and from the things which are written in this book,"
+Rev. xxii. 18, 19. Now, if the Scriptures be thus accurately
+perfect and complete, they must needs contain a sufficient pattern,
+and rules of church government now under the New Testament; which
+rules are scattered here and there in several books of the word,
+(as flowers grow scattered in the field, as silver is mingled in
+the mine, or as gold is mixed with the sand,) that so God may
+exercise his Church, in sifting and searching them out.</p>
+<p>4. All the substantials of church government under the New
+Testament are laid down in the word in particular rules, whether
+they be touching officers, ordinances, censures, assemblies, and
+the compass of their power, as after will appear; and all the
+circumstantials are laid down in the word, under general rules of
+order, decency, and edification, 1 Cor, xiv. 40, and ver. 5,12,
+26.</p>
+<p>Consequently, there is a perfect and sufficient rule for church
+government laid down in the Scriptures, which is obligatory upon
+all.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0012"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER V.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Proper Author or Fountain, whence Church Government
+and the authority thereof is derived by Divine Right, viz. Jesus
+Christ our Mediator.</i></h3>
+<p>As the Scripture is the rule of church government, so Christ is
+the sole root and fountain whence it originally flows; therefore,
+it is said in the description, church government is a power or
+authority, derived from Jesus Christ our Mediator. Take it in this
+proposition, viz:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath all authority and power in heaven
+and in earth, for the government of his Church, committed unto him
+from God the Father. This is clearly evident,</p>
+<p>1. By plain testimonies of Scripture, declaring that the
+government of the Church is laid upon his shoulder, to which end
+the Father hath invested him with all authority and power. "The
+government shall be upon his shoulder," &amp;c., Isa. ix. 6,7. "All
+power is given me in heaven and in earth: go, disciple ye all
+nations," &amp;c., Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. "He shall be great, and
+shall be called the Son of the Highest, and the Lord God shall give
+unto him the throne of his father David; and he shall reign over
+the house of Jacob forever, and of his kingdom there shall be no
+end," Luke i. 32, 33. "The Father judgeth no man, but hath
+committed all judgment to the Son; and hath given him authority to
+execute judgment also, because he is the Son of man," John v. 22,
+27. "The Father loveth the Son, and hath given all things into his
+hand," John iii. 35. "It is he that hath the key of David, that
+openeth and no man shutteth, and shutteth and no man openeth," Rev.
+iii. 7. "God raised him from the dead, and set him at his own right
+hand in the heavenly places, far above all principality, and power,
+and might, and dominion, and every name that is named, not only in
+this world, but also in that which is to come: and hath put all
+things under his feet, and gave him to be the head over all things
+to the Church, which is his body," Eph. i. 20-23,</p>
+<p>2. By eminent princely titles, attributed unto Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, having such authority, power, rule, and government
+legibly engraven upon their foreheads, in reference to his
+Church.</p>
+<p>"A Governor which shall feed" (or rule) "my people Israel,"
+Matt. ii. 6. "That great Shepherd of the sheep," Heb. xiii. 20.
+"That Shepherd and Bishop of our souls," 1 Pet. ii. ult. "One is
+your master, Christ," Matt, xxiii. 8, 10. "Christ as a son over his
+own house," Heb. iii. 6. "The Head of the body the Church," Col. i.
+18; Eph. v. 23. "Head over all things to the Church," Eph. i. 22.
+"To us but one Lord Jesus Christ," 1 Cor. viii. 6. "Made of God
+both Lord and Christ," Acts ii. 36. "Lord of lords," Rev. xix. 16.
+"He is Lord of all," Acts x. 36. "God's King set on his holy hill
+of Zion," Psal. ii. 6. "David their king," Jer. xxx. 9; Ezek.
+xxxiv. 23, and xxxvii. 24; Hos. iii. 5. "King of kings," Rev. xix.
+16.</p>
+<p>3. By those primitive, fundamental, imperial acts of power, and
+supreme authority in the government of the Church, which are
+peculiarly ascribed to Jesus Christ our Mediator, as appropriate to
+him alone, above all creatures, e.g.</p>
+<p>1. The giving of laws to his Church. "The law of Christ," Gal.
+vi. 2. "Gave commandments to the apostles," Acts i. 2. "There is
+one Lawgiver, who is able to save and to destroy," James iv. 12.
+"The Lord is our judge, the Lord is our lawgiver," (or
+statute-maker,) "the Lord is our king," Isa. xxxiii. 22.</p>
+<p>2. The constituting of ordinances, whereby his Church shall be
+edified: as <i>preaching the word</i>, Matt. x. 7; 1 Cor. i. 17;
+Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Mark xvi. 15. <i>Administering of the
+sacraments. Baptism</i>, John i. 33, with Matt. iii. 13, &amp;c.,
+and xxviii. 18, 19. <i>The Lord's supper</i>, 1 Cor. xi. 20, 23,
+&amp;c.; Matt. xxvi. 26, &amp;c.; Mark xiv. 22, &amp;c.; Luke xxii.
+19, 20. <i>Dispensing of censures</i>, Matt. xvi. 10, with xviii.
+15-18, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>3. The ordaining and appointing of his own church officers, by
+whom his ordinances shall be dispensed and managed in his Church.
+"He gave gifts to men; and he gave some, apostles; and some,
+prophets; and some, evangelists; and some, pastors and teachers,"
+Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11; compare 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Thess. v. 12; Acts xx.
+28.</p>
+<p>4. The dispensing of Christ's ordinances, not in the name of
+magistrates, ministers, churches, councils, &amp;c., but in
+Christ's own name. The apostles did "speak and teach in the name of
+Jesus," Acts iv. 17, 18. "Whatsoever ye ask in my name," John xiv.
+13, 14, and xvi. 23. "Baptizing them in the name of the Father, and
+of the Son," Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. "They were baptized in the name
+of the Lord Jesus," Acts xix. 5. "In the name&mdash;with the power
+of our Lord Jesus Christ, to deliver such a one to Satan," 1 Cor.
+v. 4. Yea, assemblies of the Church are to be in Christ's name:
+"Where two or three are gathered together in my name," Matt, xviii.
+20.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0013"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VI.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Special Kind, or Peculiar Nature of this Power and
+Authority.</i></h3>
+<p>Having viewed what is the rule of this authority, viz. the holy
+Scriptures, and what is the fountain of this authority, viz. Jesus
+Christ our Mediator; now consider the special kind or peculiar
+nature of this authority, which the description lays down in two
+several expressions, viz: 1. It is a spiritual power or authority.
+2. It is a derived power, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>1. The power or authority of church government is a spiritual
+power. Spiritual, not so perfectly and completely as Christ's
+supreme government is spiritual, who alone hath absolute and
+immediate power and authority over the very spirits and consciences
+of men; ruling them by the invisible influence of his Spirit and
+grace as he pleaseth, John iii. 8; Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20: but
+so purely, properly, and merely spiritual is this power, that it
+really, essentially, and specifically differs, and is
+contradistinct from that power which is properly civil, worldly,
+and political, in the hand of the political magistrate. Now, that
+this power of church government is in this sense properly, purely,
+merely spiritual: and that by divine right may be evidenced many
+ways according to Scripture; forasmuch as the rule, fountain,
+matter, form, subject, object, end, and the all of this power, is
+only spiritual.</p>
+<p>1. Spiritual in the rule, revealing and regulating it, viz. not
+any principles of state policy, parliament rolls, any human
+statutes, laws, ordinances, edicts, decrees, traditions, or
+precepts of men whatsoever, according to which cities, provinces,
+kingdoms, empires, may be happily governed: but the holy
+Scriptures, that perfect divine canon, wherein the Lord Christ hath
+revealed sufficiently how his own house, his Church, shall be
+ruled, 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15; and all his ordinances, word,
+sacraments, censures, &amp;c., shall therein be dispensed, 2 Tim.
+iii. 16, 17. (See chap. IV.) Now this Scripture is divinely
+breathed, or inspired of God&mdash;holy men writing not according
+to the fallible will of man, but the infallible acting of the Holy
+Ghost, 2 Tim. iii. 16, with 2 Pet. i. 20, 21.</p>
+<p>2. Spiritual in the fountain or author of this power, whence it
+originally flows; it being derived, not from any magistrate,
+prince, or potentate in the world, not from any man on earth, or
+the will of man; but only from Jesus Christ our Mediator, himself
+being the sole or first receptacle of all power from the Father,
+Matt. xxviii. 18; John v. 22: and consequently, the very fountain
+of all power and authority to his Church, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, with
+John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20; 2 Cor. x. 8. See
+this formerly cleared, chap. III. and V.</p>
+<p>3. Spiritual in the matter of it, and the several parts of this
+power: therefore called the <i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>,
+not the keys of the kingdoms of earth, Matt. xvi. 19, (as Christ
+professed his <i>kingdom was not of this world</i>, John xviii. 36;
+and when one requested of Christ, that by his authority he would
+speak to his brother to divide the inheritance with him, Christ
+disclaimed utterly all such worldly, earthly power, saying, "Man,
+who made me a judge or a divider over you?" Luke xii. 13, 14.)
+Consider these heavenly spiritual keys in the kinds of them,
+whether of doctrine or discipline; or in the acts of them, whether
+of binding or loosing, in all which they are spiritual: e.g. the
+doctrine which is preached is not human but divine, revealed in the
+Scriptures by the Spirit of God, and handling most sublime
+spiritual mysteries of religion, 2 Pet. i.; 2 Tim. iii. 16,17. The
+seals administered are not worldly seals, confirming and ratifying
+any carnal privileges, liberties, interests, authority, &amp;c.,
+but spiritual, <i>sealing the righteousness of faith</i>, Rom. iv.
+11; the death and blood of Jesus Christ, with all the spiritual
+virtue and efficacy thereof unto his members, Rom. v. 6; Gal. iii.;
+1 Cor. x. 16, 17, and xi. 23, 24, &amp;c. The censures dispensed
+are not pecuniary, corporal, or capital, by fines, confiscations,
+imprisonments, whippings, stocking, stigmatizing, or taking away of
+limb or life, (all such things this government meddles not withal,
+but leaves them to such as bear the civil sword,) but spiritual,
+that only concern the soul and conscience; as <i>admonishing</i> of
+the unruly and disorderly, Matt, xviii. 18, 19; <i>casting out the
+incorrigible</i> and obstinate from the spiritual fellowship of the
+saints, Matt. xviii. 18, 19; 2 Cor. v. ult.: <i>receiving again
+into spiritual communion</i> of the faithful, such as are penitent,
+2 Cor. ii. 6. Thus the binding and loosing, which are counted the
+chief acts of the keys, are spiritually by our Saviour interpreted
+to be the <i>remitting and retaining of sins</i>; compare Matt,
+xviii. 18, 19, with John xx. 21, 23.</p>
+<p>4. Spiritual in the form and manner, as well as in the matter.
+For this power is to be exercised, not in a natural manner, or in
+any carnal name, of earthly magistrate, court, parliament, prince,
+or potentate whatsoever, as all secular civil power is; no, nor in
+the name of saints, ministers, or the churches: but in a spiritual
+manner, in the name of the Lord Jesus, from whom alone all his
+officers receive their commissions. The word is to be <i>preached
+in his name</i>, Acts xvii. 18: seals dispensed in his name, Matt.
+xxviii. 19; Acts xix. 5: censures inflicted in his name, 1 Cor. v.
+4, &amp;c. (See chap. V.)</p>
+<p>5. Spiritual in the subject intrusted with this power; which is
+not any civil, political, or secular magistrate, (as after will
+more fully appear, in chap. IX.) but spiritual officers, which
+Christ himself hath instituted and bestowed upon his Church,
+<i>apostles</i>, &amp;c., <i>pastors, teachers, elders</i>, Eph.
+iv. 7, 8, 10, 11. To these only he hath given the <i>keys of the
+kingdom of heaven</i>, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18,19, and xxviii.
+18, 19; John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, <i>authority which the Lord
+hath given us</i>. These he hath made <i>governments in his
+Church</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28. To these he will have <i>obedience and
+subjection</i> performed, Heb. xiii. 17, and <i>double honor</i>
+allowed, 1 Tim. v. 17.</p>
+<p>6. Spiritual in respect of the object about which this power is
+to be put forth and exercised, viz. not about things, actions, or
+persons civil, as such; but spiritual and ecclesiastical, as such.
+Thus injurious actions, not as trespasses against any statute or
+law political; but as scandalous to our brethren, or the Church of
+God, Matt, xviii. 18, 19; are considered and punished by this
+power. Thus the incestuous person was cast out, because a wicked
+person in himself, and likely to leaven others by his bad example,
+1 Cor. v. 6. Thus the persons whom the Church may judge are not the
+men of the world without the Church, but those that are in some
+sense spiritual, and within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.</p>
+<p>7. Spiritual also is this power in the scope and end of it. This
+the Scripture frequently inculcates: e.g. a brother is to be
+admonished privately, publicly, &amp;c., not for the gaining of our
+private interests, advantages, &amp;c., but for <i>the gaining of
+our brother</i>, that his soul and conscience may be gained to God
+and to his duty, and he be reformed, Matt, xviii. 15. The
+incestuous person is to be "delivered to Satan, for the destruction
+of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day of our Lord
+Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5; yea, the whole authority given to church
+guides from the Lord was given to this end, <i>for the edification,
+not the destruction</i> of the Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10;
+all which, and such like, are spiritual ends. Thus the power of
+church government here described is wholly and entirely a spiritual
+power, whether we respect the rule, root, matter, form, subject,
+object, or end thereof. So that in this respect it is really and
+specifically distinct from all civil power, and in no respect
+encroacheth upon, or can be prejudicial unto the magistrate's
+authority, which is properly and only political.</p>
+<p>2. The power or authority of church government is a derived
+power. For clearing this, observe, there is a magisterial primitive
+supreme power, which is peculiar to Jesus Christ our Mediator, (as
+hath been proved, chap. III. and V:) and there is a ministerial,
+derivative, subordinate power, which the Scripture declares to be
+in church guides, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 23;
+Matt, xxviii. 19, 20; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10, and often
+elsewhere this is abundantly testified. But whence is this power
+originally derived to them? Here we are carefully to consider and
+distinguish three things, touching this power or authority from one
+another, viz: 1st. The donation of the authority itself, and of the
+offices whereunto this power doth properly belong. 2d. The
+designation of particular persons to such offices as are vested
+with such power. 3d. The public protection, countenancing,
+authorizing, defending, and maintaining of such officers in the
+public exercise of such power within such and such realms or
+dominions. This being premised, we may clearly thus resolve,
+according to scripture warrant, viz. the designation or setting
+apart of particular individual persons to those offices in the
+Church that have power and authority engraven upon them, is from
+the church nominating, electing, and ordaining of such persons
+thereunto, see Acts iii. 1-3; 1 Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22; Tit. i. 5;
+Acts iv. 22. The public protection, defence, maintenance, &amp;c.,
+of such officers in the public exercise of the power and authority
+of their office in such or such dominions, is from the civil
+magistrate, as the <i>nursing-father</i> of the Church, Isa. xlix.
+23; for it is by his authority and sanction that such public places
+shall be set apart for the public ministry, that such maintenance
+and reward shall be legally performed for such a ministry, that all
+such persons of such and such congregations shall be (in case they
+neglect their duty to such a ministry) punished with such political
+penalties, &amp;c. But the donation of the office and spiritual
+authority annexed thereunto, is only derived from Jesus Christ our
+Mediator. He alone gives all church officers, and therefore none
+may devise or superadd any new officers, Eph. iv. 7, 8, 10, 11; 1
+Cor. xii. 28. And he alone commits all authority and power
+spiritual to those officers, for dispensing of word, sacraments,
+censures, and all ordinances, Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18-20;
+John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: and therefore it is not
+safe for any creature to intrude upon this prerogative royal of
+Christ to give any power to any officer of the Church. None can
+give what he has not.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0014"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VII.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the several Parts or Acts of this power of Church
+Government, wherein it puts forth itself in the Church.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus far of the special kind or peculiar nature of this
+authority; now to the several parts or acts of this power which the
+description comprehends in these expressions, (in dispensing the
+word, seals, censures, and all other ordinances of Christ.) The
+evangelical ordinances which Christ has set up in his church are
+many; and all of them by divine right that Christ sets up. Take
+both the enumeration of ordinances and the divine right thereof
+severally, as followeth.</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath instituted and appointed these
+ensuing administrations to be standing and perpetual ordinances in
+his church: which ordinances for method sake may be reduced into
+two heads, according to the distribution of the keys formerly laid
+down, (chap. III.,) viz., ordinances appertaining, 1st, To the key
+of order or of doctrine; 2d, To the key of jurisdiction or of
+discipline.</p>
+<p>1. Ordinances appertaining to the key of order or doctrine,
+viz:</p>
+<p>1. Public prayer and thanksgiving are divine ordinances: for
+1st, Paul writing his first epistle to Timothy, "that he might know
+how to behave himself in the house of God," 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15,
+among other directions in that epistle, gives this for one, "I
+exhort therefore that first of all supplications, prayers,
+intercessions, and giving of thanks be made for all men," 1 Tim.
+ii. 1, 2, "for this is good and acceptable in the sight of God our
+Saviour," verse 3. 2. The apostle, regulating public prayers in the
+congregation, directing that they should be performed with the
+understanding, takes it for granted that public prayer was an
+ordinance of Christ. "If I pray in an unknown tongue, my spirit
+prayeth, but my understanding is unfruitful. What is it then? I
+will pray with the spirit, and will pray with the understanding
+also. Else when thou shalt bless with the spirit, how shall he that
+occupieth the room of the unlearned, say amen at thy giving of
+thanks, seeing he understandeth not what thou sayest? for thou
+verily givest thanks well, but the other is not edified." 1 Cor.
+xiv. 14-17. 3. Further, the apostles did account public prayer to
+be of more concern than serving of tables, and providing for the
+necessities of the poor, yea, to be a principal part of their
+ministerial office, and therefore resolve to addict and "give
+themselves to the ministry of the word and to prayer," Acts vi. 4;
+and this was the church's practice in the purest times, Acts i. 13,
+14, whose pious action is for our imitation. 4. And Jesus Christ
+hath made gracious promises to public prayer, viz., of his presence
+with those who assemble in his name; and of audience of their
+prayers, Matt, xviii. 19, 20. Would Christ so crown public prayer
+were it not his own ordinance?</p>
+<p>2. Singing of psalms is a divine ordinance, being,</p>
+<p>1. Prescribed; "be filled with the spirit: speaking to
+yourselves in psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs," Eph. v. 18,
+19. "Let the word of Christ dwell in you richly in all wisdom,
+teaching and admonishing one another in psalms, and hymns, and
+spiritual songs," Col. iii. 16.</p>
+<p>2. Regulated; the right performance thereof being laid down, "I
+will sing with the spirit, and I will sing with the understanding
+also," 1 Cor. xiv. 15, 16. "Singing with grace in your hearts to
+the Lord," Col. iii. 16. "Singing and making melody in your hearts
+to the Lord," Eph. v. 19.</p>
+<p>3. The public ministry of the word of God in the congregation is
+a divine ordinance. "We will give ourselves," said the apostles,
+"to the ministry of the word and prayer," Acts vi. 4. The ministry
+of the word is a sacred ordinance, whether read, preached, or
+catechetically propounded.</p>
+<p>1. The public reading of the word is a divine ordinance, (though
+exposition of what is read do not always immediately follow.) For,
+1. God commanded the reading of the word publicly, and never since
+repealed that command, Deut. xxxi. 11-13; Jer. xxxvi. 6; Col. iii.
+16. 2. Public reading of the scriptures hath been the practice of
+God's church, both before Christ, Exod. xxiv. 7; Neh. viii. 18, and
+ix. 3, and xiii. 1; and after Christ, Acts xiii. 15, 27, and xv.
+21; 2 Cor. iii. 14. 3. Public reading of the scriptures is as
+necessary and profitable now as ever it was. See Deut. xxxi.
+11-13.</p>
+<p>2. The public preaching of the word is an eminent ordinance of
+Christ. This is evident many ways, viz:</p>
+<p>1. Christ hath commanded that the word shall be preached. "Go ye
+into all the world, and preach the gospel to every creature," Mark
+xvi. 15. "Go ye, therefore, and disciple ye all nations; teaching
+them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you," Matt,
+xxviii. 19, 20. "As ye go, preach, saying, The kingdom of heaven is
+at hand," Matt. x. 7. See also Mark iii. 14. "I charge thee,"
+&amp;c. "Preach the word," 2 Tim. iv. 1, 2. "Necessity is laid upon
+me, yea, wo is unto me if I preach not the gospel," 1 Cor. ix. 16,
+17. "Christ sent me&mdash;to preach the gospel," 1 Cor. i. 17; with
+which compare also Acts xx. 28, and 1 Pet. v. 1-4.</p>
+<p>2. Christ hath appointed who shall preach the word. "How shall
+they preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15. The qualifications of
+preaching elders see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, and Tit. i. 5-9.</p>
+<p>3. Christ hath appointed how the word shall be preached. "Be
+instant, in season, out of season, reprove, rebuke, exhort with all
+long-suffering and doctrine," 2 Tim. iv. 2. "That he may be able by
+sound doctrine both to exhort and convince gainsayers," Tit. i. 9.
+"He that hath my word, let him speak my word faithfully: what is
+the chaff to the wheat, saith the Lord?" Jer. xxiii. 28.</p>
+<p>4. Christ hath made many encouraging promises to the preaching
+of his word, which he would not have done, were it not his own
+ordinance. "Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have
+commanded you, and lo I am with you every day to the end of the
+world," Matt, xxviii. 20. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth, shall
+be bound in heaven; and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be
+loosed in heaven," Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose soever sins
+ye remit, they are remitted unto them: and whose soever sins ye
+retain, they are retained," John xx. 23. Both these are partly
+meant of doctrinal binding and loosing, remitting and retaining.
+"Be not afraid, but speak, and hold not thy peace: for I am with
+thee, and no man shall set on thee to hurt thee, for I have much
+people in this city," Acts xviii. 9, 10.</p>
+<p>3. The catechetical propounding or expounding of the word, viz.
+a plain, familiar laying down of the first principles of the
+oracles of God, is an ordinance of Christ also. For, 1. This was
+the apostolical way of teaching the churches at the first
+plantation thereof. "When for the time ye ought to be teachers, ye
+have need that one teach you again which be the first principles of
+the oracles of God, and are become such as have need of milk and
+not of strong meat," Heb. v. 12. "Therefore, leaving the word of
+the beginning of Christ, let us go on unto perfection, not laying
+again the foundation of repentance from dead works, and of faith
+towards God," &amp;c., Heb. vi. 1,2. "And I, brethren, could not
+speak unto you as unto spiritual, but as unto carnal, as unto babes
+in Christ. I have fed you with milk, and not with meat, for
+hitherto ye were not able to bear it, neither yet now are ye able,"
+1 Cor. iii. 1, 2. 2. And this is the sense of pastor and people
+which the Holy Ghost useth, setting forth the reciprocal relation
+and office between them, with his own approbation. "Let him that is
+catechized in the word, communicate to him that catechizeth him, in
+all good things," Gal. vi. 6.</p>
+<p>4. The administration of the sacraments is of divine
+institution.</p>
+<p>1. Of baptism. "He that sent me to baptize with water," John i.
+33. "Go ye therefore, disciple ye all nations, baptizing them into
+the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost,"
+Matt, xxviii. 18-20.</p>
+<p>2. Of the Lord's supper, which Christ ordained <i>the same night
+in which he was betrayed</i>: which institution is at large
+described, 1 Cor. xi. 20, 23, &amp;c.; Matt. xxvi. 26-31; Mark xiv.
+22-27; Luke xxii. 19, 20.</p>
+<p>2. Ordinances appertaining to the key of jurisdiction or of
+discipline, viz:</p>
+<p>1. The ordination of presbyters with imposition of the hands of
+the presbytery, after praying and fasting, is a divine ordinance.
+"Neglect not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by
+prophecy with the laying on of the hands of the presbytery," 1 Tim.
+iv. 14. Titus was left in Crete for this end, "To set in order
+things that were wanting, and ordain presbyters" (or elders) "in
+every city, as Paul had appointed him," Tit. i. 5. Timothy is
+charged, "Lay hands suddenly on no man, neither be partaker of
+other men's sins; keep thyself pure," 1 Tim. v. 22. Paul and
+Barnabas came to Lystra, Iconium, and Antioch, and "when they had
+ordained them presbyters in every church, and had prayed with
+fasting, they commended them to the Lord," &amp;c., Acts xiv. 21,
+23.</p>
+<p>2. Authoritative discerning, and judging of doctrine according
+to the word of God, is a divine ordinance. As that council at
+Jerusalem, authoritatively (viz. by ministerial authority) judged
+of both the false doctrine and manners of false teachers, branding
+them for "troublers of the Church, subverters of souls," &amp;c.
+"Forasmuch as we have heard that certain, coming forth from u, have
+troubled you with words, subverting your souls, saying, ye ought to
+be circumcised, and keep the law, to whom we gave no such
+commandment," Acts xv. 24; "it seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and
+to us, to impose upon you no greater burden than these necessary
+things," v. 28; and this was done upon debates from scripture
+grounds, "and to this the words of the prophets agree," Acts xv.
+15: and afterwards their results and determinations are called
+"decrees ordained by the apostles and elders," Acts xvi. 4.</p>
+<p>3. Admonition and public rebuke of sinners is a divine ordinance
+of Christ. "If thy brother trespass against thee, go and tell him
+his fault between thee and him alone: if he will not hear thee,
+then take with thee one or two more&mdash;and if he shall neglect
+to hear them, tell it unto the Church," Matt, xviii. 15-17. "Whose
+soever sins ye bind on earth shall be bound in heaven," John xx.
+23. One way and degree of binding is by authoritative, convincing
+reproof. "Admonish the unruly," 1 Thess. v. 14. "An heretic, after
+the first and second admonition, reject," Tit. iii. 1. "Them that
+sin, convincingly reprove before all, that the rest also may fear,"
+1 Tim. v. 20. "Rebuke them sharply," (or convince them cuttingly,)
+Tit. iii. 13. "Sufficient to such an one is that rebuke, which was
+from many," 2 Cor. ii. 6.</p>
+<p>4. Rejecting, and purging out, or putting away from the
+communion of the Church, wicked and incorrigible persons, is an
+ordinance of Christ. "And if he will not hear them, tell the
+Church; but if he will not hear the Church, let him be unto thee
+even as a heathen and a publican." "Verily, I say unto you, what
+things soever ye shall bind on earth, they shall be bound in
+heaven," Matt, xviii. 17, 18, compared with Matt. xvi. 19, and John
+xx. 21, 23. "An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject,"
+Tit. iii. 10; i.e. excommunicate, till he repent&mdash;<i>Pisc. in
+loc.</i> By the lawful judgment of the Church, to deliver the
+impenitent to Satan.&mdash;<i>Beza in loc.</i> "Of whom is Hymeneus
+and Alexander, whom I have delivered to Satan, that they may learn
+not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i. 20. The apostle's scope in 1 Cor. v.
+is to press the church of Corinth to excommunicate the incestuous
+person. "Ye are puffed up, and have not rather mourned, that he
+that hath done this deed may be taken from the midst of you. For I
+verily, as absent in body, but present in spirit, have already as
+present judged him that thus wrought this thing. In the name of our
+Lord Jesus Christ, you being gathered together, and my spirit with
+the power of our Lord Jesus Christ, to deliver such an one to Satan
+for the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in
+the day of our Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 2-5. "Know ye not that a
+little leaven leaveneth the whole lump? Purge out therefore the old
+leaven," ver. 7. "I wrote to you in an epistle, not to be mingled
+together with fornicators," ver. 9, 11; and explaining what he
+meant by not being <i>mingled together</i>, saith, "If any named a
+brother be a fornicator, or covetous, or an idolater, or a reviler,
+or drunkard, or rapacious, with such an one not to eat together,"
+ver. 11. "Therefore take away from among yourselves that wicked
+person," ver. 13.</p>
+<p>5. Seasonable remitting, receiving, comforting, and
+authoritative confirming again in the communion of the Church those
+that are penitent. "What things soever ye shall loose on earth
+shall be loosed in heaven," Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose
+soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them," John xx. 23.
+This loosing and remitting is not only doctrinal and declarative in
+the preaching of the word, but also juridical and authoritative in
+the administration of censures. This is called, for distinction's
+sake, absolution. After the church of Corinth had excommunicated
+the incestuous person, and he thereupon had given sufficient
+testimony of his repentance, the apostle directs them to receive
+him into church communion again, saying, "Sufficient to such an one
+is that rebuke inflicted of many; so that contrariwise you should
+rather forgive and comfort him, lest such an one should be
+swallowed up of abundant sorrow. Wherefore I beseech
+authoritatively to confirm love unto him: for to this purpose also
+I have written unto you, that I may know the proof of you, if ye be
+obedient in all things," 2 Cor. ii. 6-9.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0015"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VIII.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the End and Scope of this Government of the
+Church.</i></h3>
+<p>The end or scope intended by Christ in instituting, and to be
+aimed at by Christ's officers in executing of church government in
+dispensing the word, sacrament, censures, and all ordinances of
+Christ, is (as the description expresseth) <i>the edifying of the
+Church of Christ</i>. This end is very comprehensive. For the
+fuller evidencing whereof these two things are to be proved:1st,
+That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under the New Testament one
+general visible Church on earth. 2d. That the edification of this
+Church of Christ is that eminent scope and end why Christ gave the
+power of church government and other ordinances unto the
+Church.</p>
+<p>I. For the first, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under the
+New Testament a general visible Church on earth, made up of all
+particular churches, may be cleared by considering well these
+particulars.</p>
+<p>1st. That it is evident by the Scriptures that Jesus Christ hath
+on earth many particular visible churches: (whether churches
+congregational, presbyterial, provincial, or national, needs not
+here be determined.) "Unto the churches of Galatia," Gal. i. 2.
+"The churches of Judea," Gal. i. 22. "Through Syria and Cilicia,
+confirming the churches," Acts xv. 41. "To the seven churches in
+Asia," Rev. i. 4, 20. "The church of Ephesus," Rev. ii. 1. "The
+church in Smyrna," ver. 8. "The church in Pergamus," ver. 12. "The
+church in Thyatira," ver. 18. "The church in Sardis," Rev. iii. 1.
+"The church in Philadelphia," ver. 7. And "the church in Laodicea,"
+ver. 14. "The church that is in their house," Rom. xvi. 5; and
+Philem. 2. "Let your women keep silence in the church," 1 Cor. xiv.
+34. "All the churches of the Gentiles," Rom. xvi. 4. "So ordain I
+in all churches," 1 Cor. vii. 17. "As in all churches of the
+saints," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. "The care of all the churches," 2 Cor. xi.
+28. The New Testament hath many such like expressions.</p>
+<p>2d. That how many particular visible churches soever Christ hath
+on earth, yet Scripture counts them all to be but one general
+visible Church of Christ. This is manifest,</p>
+<p>1. By divers Scriptures, using the word church in such a full
+latitude and extensive completeness, as properly to signify, not
+any one single congregation, or particular church, but one general
+visible Church: as, "Upon this rock I will build my Church," Matt.
+xvi. 18. "Give none offence, neither to the Jews, nor to the
+Greeks, nor to the Church of God," 1 Cor. x. 32. "God hath set some
+in the Church, first, apostles; secondarily, prophets; thirdly,
+teachers," &amp;c., 1 Cor. xii. 28. "I persecuted the Church of
+God," 1 Cor. xv. 9; Gal. i. 13. "The Church of the living God, the
+pillar and ground of the truth," 1 Tim. iii. 15. "Might be known by
+the Church the manifold wisdom of God," Eph. iii. 10. "In the midst
+of the Church will I sing praise unto thee," Heb. ii. 12. In which,
+and such like places, we must needs understand, that one general
+visible Church of Christ.</p>
+<p>2. By such passages of scripture as evidently compare all
+visible professors and members of Christ throughout the world to
+one organical body, having eyes, ears, hands, feet, &amp;c., viz.,
+several organs, instruments, officers, &amp;c., in it, for the
+benefit of the whole body; as, "He gave some apostles, and some
+prophets, and some evangelists, and some pastors and teachers, for
+the perfecting of the saints, for the work of the ministry, for the
+edifying of the body of Christ," Eph. iv. 11, 12. "There is one
+body," Eph. iv. 4. "As we have many members in one body, and all
+members have not the same office; so we being many are one body in
+Christ, and every one members one of another," &amp;c., Rom. xii.
+4-9. "As the body is one, and hath many members, and all the
+members of that one body being many, are one body; so also is
+Christ," (i.e., Christ considered mystically, not personally,) "for
+by one Spirit are we all baptized into one body, whether we be Jews
+or Gentiles, whether we be bond or free," &amp;c., 1 Cor. xii. 12,
+to the end of the chapter, which context plainly demonstrates all
+Christ's visible members in the world, Jews or Gentiles, &amp;c.,
+to be members of one and the same organical body of Christ, which
+organical body of Christ is the general visible Church of Christ;
+for the invisible church is not organical.</p>
+<p>II. That the edification of the Church of Christ is that eminent
+scope and end, why Christ gave church government and all other
+ordinances of the New Testament to his Church. This is frequently
+testified in scripture. 1. The apostle, speaking of this power
+generally, saith, "Our authority which the Lord hath given to us
+for edification, and not for the destruction of you," 2 Cor. x. 8.
+The like passage he hath again, saying, "according to the
+authority," or power, "which the Lord hath given to me for
+edification, and not for destruction," 2 Cor. xiii. 10; in both
+which places he speaks of the authority of church government in a
+general comprehensive way, declaring the grand and general
+immediate end thereof to be, affirmatively, edification of the
+church; negatively, not the subversion or destruction thereof. 2.
+In like manner, when particular acts of government, and particular
+ordinances are mentioned, the edification of the Church, at least
+in her members, is propounded as the great end of all: e.g. 1.
+Admonition is for edification, that an erring <i>brother may be
+gained</i>, Matt. xviii. 15, 16, that wavering minds may be sound
+in the faith. "Rebuke them cuttingly, that they may be sound in the
+faith," Tit. i. 13, that beholders and bystanders may fear to fall
+into like sins. "Them that sin rebuke before all, that others also
+may fear," 1 Tim. v. 20. 2. Excommunication is for edification;
+particularly of the delinquent member himself; thus the incestuous
+person was "delivered to Satan for the destruction of the flesh,
+that the spirit might be saved in the day of the Lord Jesus," 1
+Cor. v. 4, 5. "Hymeneus and Alexander were delivered to Satan, that
+they might learn not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i. 20: more generally of
+the Church; thus the incestuous person was to be put away from
+among them lest the whole lump of the church should be leavened by
+him, 1 Cor. v. 3. Absolution also is for edification, lest the
+penitent party "should be swallowed up of too much sorrow," 2 Cor.
+ii. 7. 4. All the officers of his Church are for edification of the
+Church, (Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11, 12, 16,) together with all the gifts
+and endowments in these officers, whether of prayer, prophecy,
+tongues, &amp;c., all must be managed to edification. This is the
+scope of the whole chapter. 1 Cor. xii. 7, &amp;c., and 1 Cor. xiv.
+3-5, 9, 12, &amp;c., 26; read the whole chapter. That passage of
+Paul is remarkable, "I thank my God, I speak with tongues more than
+you all; yet in the church I had rather speak five words with my
+understanding, that by my voice I might teach others also, than ten
+thousand words in an unknown tongue," verses 18, 19. Thus church
+government, and all sorts of ordinances, with the particular acts
+thereof, are to be levelled at this mark of edification.
+Edification is an elegant metaphor from material buildings (perhaps
+of the material and typical temple) to the spiritual; for
+explanation's sake briefly thus take the accommodation: The
+<i>architects</i>, or builders, are the <i>ministers</i>, 1 Cor.
+iii. 10. The <i>foundation</i> and <i>corner-stone</i> that bears
+up, binds together, and gives strength to the building, is Jesus
+Christ, 1 Cor. iii. 11; 1 Pet. ii. 4, 6. The <i>stones</i> or
+<i>materials</i> are the <i>faithful</i> or <i>saints</i>, 2 Cor.
+i. 1. The <i>building</i>, or house itself, is the <i>Church</i>,
+that spiritual house, and <i>temple of the living God</i>, Eph. ii.
+21, and iv. 12; 1 Cor. iii. 9, 16, 17. The edification of this
+house is gradually to be perfected more and more till the coming of
+Christ, by laying the foundation of Christianity, in bringing men
+still unto Christ, and carrying on the superstruction in perfecting
+them in Christ in all spiritual growth, till at last the top-stone
+be laid on, the Church completed, and translated <i>to the house
+not made with hands, eternal in the heavens</i>.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0016"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER IX.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the proper receptacle and distinct subject of all this
+power and authority of Church Government, which Christ hath
+peculiarly intrusted with the execution thereof according to the
+Scriptures. And</i> 1. <i>Negatively, That the political magistrate
+is not the proper subject of this power.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus we have taken a brief survey of church government, both in
+the rule, root, kind, branches, and end thereof, all which are
+comprised in the former description, and being less controverted,
+have been more briefly handled. Now, the last thing in the
+description which comes under our consideration, is the proper
+receptacle of all this power from Christ, or the peculiar subject
+intrusted by Christ with this power and the execution thereof, viz.
+only Christ's own officers. For church government is a spiritual
+power or authority, derived from Jesus Christ our Mediator, only to
+his own officers, and by them exercised in dispensing of the word,
+&amp;c. Now about this subject of the power will be the great knot
+of the controversy, forasmuch as there are many different claims
+thereof made, and urged with vehement importunity: (to omit the
+Romish claim for the pope, and the prelatical claim for the
+bishop,) the politic Erastian pretends that the only proper subject
+of all church government is the political or civil magistrate; the
+gross Brownists or rigid Separatists, that it is the body of the
+people, or community of the faithful in an equal even level; they
+that are more refined, (who style themselves for distinction's
+sake<a href="#note-26"><small>26</small></a> Independents,) that it
+is the single congregation, or the company of the faithful with
+their presbytery, or church officers; the Presbyterians hold that
+the proper subject wherein Christ hath seated and intrusted all
+church power, and the exercise thereof, is only his own church
+officers, (as is in the description expressed.) Here, therefore,
+the way will be deeper, and the travelling slower; the opposition
+is much, and therefore the disquisition of this matter will
+unavoidably be the more.</p>
+<p>For perspicuity herein, seeing it is said that this power is
+derived from Christ only to his own officers; and by this word
+(only) all other subjects are excluded; the subject of church power
+may be considered, 1. Negatively, what it is not. 2. Affirmatively,
+what it is.</p>
+<p>Negatively, the proper subject unto whom Christ hath committed
+the power of church government, and the exercise thereof, is not,
+1. The political magistrate, as the Erastians imagine. 2. Nor the
+body of the people, either with their presbytery or without it, as
+the Separatists and Independents pretend. Let these negatives first
+be evinced, and then the affirmative will be more clearly
+evidenced.</p>
+<p>Touching the first of these&mdash;that the political magistrate
+is not the proper subject unto whom Jesus Christ our Mediator hath
+committed the power of church government, and the exercise of that
+power; it will be cleared by declaring these two things distinctly
+and severally, viz: 1. What power about ecclesiasticals is granted
+to the civil magistrate. 2. What power therein is denied unto him,
+and why.</p>
+<a name="H_SECTI-I"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION I.</h3>
+<p>Such power is granted by the reformed churches and orthodox
+writers to the political magistrate, in reference to church
+affairs. Take it in these particulars.</p>
+<p>A defensive, protecting, patronizing power to the church, and
+all the members thereof. "Kings shall be thy nursing-fathers,"
+&amp;c., Isa. xlix. 23. "The magistrate is the minister of God for
+good to well-doers, as well as the avenger, executing wrath upon
+evil-doers; a terror not to good works, but to the evil," Rom.
+xiii. 3, 4; he is called <i>an heir, or, possessor of restraint, to
+put men to shame</i>, Judges xviii. 7. And as the church ought to
+pray for kings and all in authority, so consequently all in
+authority should endeavor to defend it, that the church and people
+of God should lead a quiet and peaceable life, (under the wing of
+their protection,) "in all godliness and honesty," 1 Tim. ii. 2;
+and this is evident from the end and scope of these prayers here
+prescribed, as interpreters unanimously agree. And hereupon are
+those promises to the church, "The sons of strangers shall build up
+thy walls, and their kings shall minister unto thee," Isa. lx. 10;
+"and thou shalt suck the breast of kings," Isa. lx. 16. Now, this
+nursing, protecting care of magistrates towards the church, puts
+forth itself in these or like acts, viz: He,</p>
+<p>1. Removes all external impediments of true religion, worship of
+God, &amp;c., by his civil power, whether persons or things,
+whether persecutions, profaneness, heresy, idolatry, superstition,
+&amp;c., that truth and godliness may purely flourish: as did
+Jehoshaphat, Asa, Hezekiah, Josiah. And hereupon it is that God so
+oft condemns the not removing and demolishing of the high places
+and monuments of idolatry, 1 Kings xv. 14, with 2 Chron. xv. 17; 1
+Kings xxii. 44; 2 Kings xii. 3: and highly commends the contrary in
+Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 8, 16: in Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii. 3, 4, 6-10:
+in Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxxi. 1; 2 Kings xviii. 4: in Manasseh, 2
+Chron. xxxiii. 15: in Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii. 8, 13, 19, 20, 24:
+whereupon the Holy Ghost gives him that superlative commendation
+above all kings before and after him, ver. 25.</p>
+<p>2. Countenanceth, advanceth, and encourageth by his authority
+and example the public exercise of all God's ordinances, and duties
+of religion within his dominions, whether in matter of divine
+worship, discipline, and government, maintaining for the Church the
+fulness of spiritual liberties and privileges communicated to her
+from Christ: as did Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 9-16: Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron.
+xx. 7-9: Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxix., xxx., and xxxi. chapters
+throughout: Josiah, 2 Chron. xxxiv. and xxxv. chapters. And to this
+end God prescribed in the law that the king should still have a
+copy of the law of God by him, therein to read continually, Deut.
+xvii. 18-20; because he was to be not only a practiser, but also a
+protector thereof, a keeper of both tables.</p>
+<p>3. Supplies the Church with all external necessaries,
+provisions, means, and worldly helps in matters of religion: as
+convenient public places to worship in, sufficient maintenance for
+ministers, (as the Scripture requireth, 1 Tim. v. 17, 18; 1 Cor.
+ix. 6-15; Gal. vi. 6:) schools and colleges, for promoting of
+literature, as nurseries to the prophets, &amp;c.; together with
+the peaceable and effectual enjoyment of all these worldly
+necessaries, for comfortably carrying on of all public ordinances
+of Christ. Thus David prepared materials, but Solomon built the
+temple, 1 Chron. xxii. Hezekiah commanded the people that dwelt in
+Jerusalem, to give the portion of the priests and the Levites, that
+they might be encouraged in the law of the Lord; and Hezekiah
+himself and his princes came and saw it performed, 2 Chron. xxxi.
+4, &amp;c., 8: Josiah repaired the house of God, 2 Chron.
+xxxiv.</p>
+<p>Nor need the magistrate think scorn, but rather count it his
+honor to be an earthly protector of the Church, which is the
+<i>body of Christ, the Lamb's wife</i>, for redeeming of which
+Christ died, and for gathering and perfecting of which the very
+world is continued.</p>
+<p>An ordering, regulating power is also allowed to the magistrate
+about ecclesiastical matters in a political way, so that he
+warrantably,</p>
+<p>1. Reforms the Church, when corrupted in divine worship,
+discipline, or government: as did Moses, Exod. xxxii.; Joshua,
+Josh. xxiv.; Asa, 2 Chron. xv.; Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii.;
+Hezekiah, 2 Kings xviii.; Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii.; 2 Chron.
+xxxiv.</p>
+<p>2. Convenes or convocates synods and councils, made up of
+ecclesiastical persons, to consult, advise, and conclude
+determinatively, according to the word, how the church is to be
+reformed and refined from corruptions, and how to be guided and
+governed when reformed, &amp;c. For, 1. Pious magistrates under the
+Old Testament called the Church together, convened councils. David,
+about bringing back the ark, 1 Chron. xiii. 1, 2, and another
+council when he was old, 1 Chron. xiii. 1; Solomon, 1 Kings viii.
+1; Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxix. 4; and Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii. 1, 2. 2.
+All ought to be subject to superior powers, who ought to procure
+the public peace and prosperity of the Church, Rom. xiii. 1, 2,
+&amp;c.; 1 Pet. ii. 13, &amp;c., 17; 1 Tim. ii. 2. Therefore
+superior powers may convocate councils. 3. Christian magistrates
+called the four general councils: Constantine the first Nicene
+council; Theodosius, senior, the first council of Constantinople;
+Theodosius, junior, the first Ephesian council; Marcian Emperor,
+the Chalcedon council; and, 4. Hereunto antiquity subscribes, as
+Dr. Whitaker observes.</p>
+<p>3. Supports the laws of God with his secular authority, as a
+keeper of the tables, enjoining and commanding, under civil
+penalties, all under his dominion, strictly and inviolably to
+observe the same: as "Josiah made all that were present in Israel
+to serve the Lord their God," 2 Chron. xxxiv. 33. Nehemiah made the
+sabbath to be sanctified, and strange wives to be put away, Neb.
+xii. 13, &amp;c. Yea, Nebuchadnezzar, a heathen king, decreed, that
+"Whosoever should speak amiss of the God of Shadrach," &amp;c.,
+"should be cut in pieces, and their houses made a dunghill," Dan.
+iii. 28, 29. And Darius decreed, "That in every dominion of his
+kingdom men tremble and fear before the God of Daniel," &amp;c.,
+Dan. vi. 26, 27.</p>
+<p>And as he strengthens the laws and ordinances of God by his
+civil authority, so he ratifies and establishes within his
+dominions the just and necessary decrees of the Church in synods
+and councils (which are agreeable to God's word) by his civil
+sanction.</p>
+<p>4. Judges and determines definitively with a consequent
+political judgment, or judgment of political discretion, concerning
+the things judged and determined antecedently by the Church, in
+reference to his own act. Whether he will approve such
+ecclesiasticals or not; and in what manner he will so approve, or
+do otherwise by his public authority; for he is not a brutish
+agent, (as papists would have him,) to do whatsoever the Church
+enjoins him unto blind obedience, but is to act prudently and
+knowingly in all his office; and therefore the judgment of
+discerning (which belongs to every Christian, for the well-ordering
+of his own act) cannot be denied to the Christian magistrate, in
+respect of his office.</p>
+<p>5. Takes care politically, that even matters and ordinances
+merely and formally ecclesiastical, be duly managed by
+ecclesiastical persons orderly called thereto. Thus Hezekiah
+commanded the priests and Levites to do their duties, 2 Chron.
+xxix. 5, 24, and the people to do theirs, 2 Chron. xxx. 1; and for
+this he is commended, that therein he did cleave unto the Lord, and
+observed his precepts which he had commanded Moses, 2 Kings xviii.
+6. Thus when the king is commanded to observe and do all the
+precepts of the law, the Lord (as orthodox divines do judge)
+intended that he should keep them, not only as a private man, but
+as a king, by using all care and endeavor that all his subjects
+with him perform all duties to God and man, Deut. xvii. 18-20.</p>
+<p>6. A compulsive, coactive, punitive, or corrective power,
+formally political, is also granted to the political magistrate in
+matters of religion, in reference to all sorts of persons and
+things under his jurisdiction. He may politically compel the
+outward man of all persons, church officers, or others under his
+dominions, unto external performance of their respective duties,
+and offices in matters of religion, punishing them, if either they
+neglect to do their duty at all, or do it corruptly, not only
+against equity and sobriety, contrary to the second table, but
+against truth and piety, contrary to the first table of the
+decalogue. We have sufficient intimation of the magistrate's
+punitive power in cases against the second table; as the stubborn
+and rebellious, incorrigible son, that was a glutton and a
+drunkard, sinning against the fifth commandment, was to be stoned
+to death, Deut. xxi. 18-21. The murderer, sinning against the sixth
+commandment, was to be punished with death, Gen. ix. 6; Numb. xxxv.
+30-34; Deut. x. 11-13. The unclean person, sinning against the
+seventh commandment, was to be punished with death, Lev. xx. 11,
+12, 14, 17, 19-25; and before that, see Gen. xxxviii. 24. Yea, Job,
+who is thought to live before Moses, and before this law was made,
+intimates that adultery is a heinous crime, yea, it is an iniquity
+to be punished by the judges, Job xxxi. 9,11. The thief, sinning
+against the eighth commandment, was to be punished by restitution,
+Exod. xxii. 1, 15, &amp;c. The false witness, sinning against the
+ninth commandment, was to be dealt withal as he would have had his
+brother dealt with, by the law of retaliation, Deut. xix. 16, to
+the end of the chapter, &amp;c. Yea, the magistrate's punitive
+power is extended also to offences against the first table; whether
+these offences be against the first commandment, by false prophets
+teaching lies, errors, and heresies in the name of the Lord,
+endeavoring to seduce people from the true God. "If there arise
+among you a prophet, or a dreamer of dreams, that prophet, or that
+dreamer of dreams shall be put to death, because he hath spoken to
+turn you away from the Lord your God, which brought you out of the
+land of Egypt," &amp;c., Deut. xiii. 1-6. From which place Calvin
+notably asserts the punitive power of magistrates against false
+prophets and impostors that would draw God's people to a defection
+from the true God, showing that this power also belongs to the
+Christian magistrate in like cases now under the gospel.</p>
+<p>Yea, in case of such seducement from God, though by nearest
+allies, severe punishment was to be inflicted upon the seducer,
+Deut. xiii. 6-12. See also ver. 12, to the end of the chapter, how
+a city is to be punished in the like case. And Mr.
+Burroughs,<a href="#note-27"><small>27</small></a> in his Irenicum,
+shows that this place of Deut. xiii. 6, &amp;c., belongs even to us
+under the gospel.</p>
+<p>Or whether these offences be against the second commandment, the
+magistrate's punitive power reaches them, Deut. xvii. 1-8; Lev.
+xvii. 2-8; 2 Chron. xvi. 13, 16. "Maachah, the mother of Asa the
+king, he removed from being queen, because she had made an idol in
+a grove." Job xxxi. 26-28, herewith compare Exod. viii. 25, 26. Or
+whether the offences be against the third commandment, "And thou
+shalt speak unto the children of Israel, saying, Whosoever curseth
+God shall bear his sin: and he that blasphemeth the name of the
+Lord he shall surely be put to death, and all the congregation
+shall certainly stone him, as well the stranger as he that is born
+in the land, when he blasphemeth the name of the Lord shall be put
+to death," Lev. xxiv. 15, 16. Yea, the heathen king Nebuchadnezzar
+made a notable decree to this purpose, against blaspheming God,
+saying, "I make a decree, that every people, nation, and language,
+who speak any thing amiss against the God of Shadrach, Meshech, and
+Abednego, shall be cut in pieces, and their houses shall be made a
+dunghill," Dan. iii. 29: and the pagan magistrate, king Artaxerxes,
+made a more full decree against all contempt of the law of God:
+"And whosoever will not do the law of thy God," saith he to Ezra,
+"and the law of the king, let judgment be executed speedily upon
+him, whether it be unto death, or to banishment, or to confiscation
+of goods, or to imprisonment:" and Ezra blesses God for this, Ezra
+vii. 26, 27.</p>
+<p>Besides all this light of nature, and evidence of the Old
+Testament, for the ruler's political punitive power for offences
+against God, there are divers places in the New Testament showing
+that a civil punitive power rests still in the civil magistrate:
+witness those general expressions in those texts&mdash;Rom. xiii.
+3, 4: "Rulers are not a terror to good works, but to the evil. If
+thou do that which is evil, be afraid, for he beareth not the sword
+in vain: for he is the minister of God, a revenger <i>to
+execute</i> wrath upon him that doeth evil." 1 Pet. ii. 13, 14:
+"Submit yourselves unto every ordinance of man for the Lord's sake,
+whether it be to the king as to the supreme, or unto governors
+which are sent for the <i>punishment</i> of evil-doers,<a href=
+"#note-28"><small>28</small></a> and the praise of them that do
+well." Now, (as Mr. Burroughs<a href=
+"#note-29"><small>29</small></a> notes,) seeing the Scripture
+speaks thus generally, except the nature of the thing require, why
+should we distinguish where the Scripture doth not? so that these
+expressions may be extended to those sorts of evil-doing against
+the first as well as against the second table; against murdering of
+souls by heresy, as well as murdering of men's bodies with the
+sword; against the blaspheming of the God of heaven, as well as
+against blaspheming of kings and rulers, that are counted gods on
+earth. That place seems to have much force in it to this purpose,
+Heb. x. 28, 29: "He that despised Moses' law, died without mercy
+under two or three witnesses. Of how much sorer punishment, suppose
+ye, shall he be thought worthy who hath trodden under foot the Son
+of God, and hath counted the blood of the covenant, wherewith he
+was sanctified, an unholy thing, and hath done despite unto the
+Spirit of grace?" Yea, what deserve such as deny the Spirit to be
+of God? Papists exempt their clergy from the judgment of the civil
+power, though they be delinquents against it; and their states,
+both civil and spiritual, from civil taxes, tributes, and
+penalties, both which we deny to ours: for, 1st, This is repugnant
+to the law of nature, that church officers and members, as parts
+and members of the commonwealth, should not be subject to the
+government of that commonwealth whereof they are parts. 2d,
+Repugnant to the laws and practices of the Old Testament, under
+which we read of no such exemptions. Yea, we have instance of
+Abiathar the high-priest, who, for his partnership with Adonijah in
+his rebellion, was exiled by king Solomon, and so consequently
+deprived of the exercise of his office, 1 Kings ii. 26, 27. 3d,
+Inconsistent with our Saviour's example, who, as subject to the
+law, held himself obliged to pay tribute to avoid offence, (Matt.
+xvii. 26,) which was an active scandal; and he confesses Pilate's
+power to condemn or release him was <i>given him from above</i>,
+John xix. 11. 4th, And finally, contrary to the apostolical
+precepts, <i>enjoining all to be subject to superior powers</i>,
+Rom. xiii. 1-4; 1 Pet. ii. 13-15.</p>
+<p>Now, all the former power that is granted, or may be granted to
+the magistrate about religion, is only cumulative and objective, as
+divines used to express it; thus understand them:&mdash;</p>
+<p>Cumulative, not privative; adding to, not detracting from any
+liberties or privileges granted her from Christ. The heathen
+magistrate may be a <i>nurse-father</i>, Isa. xlix. 23; 1 Tim. ii.
+2, may not be a <i>step-father</i>: may protect the Church,
+religion, &amp;c., and order many things in a political way about
+religion; may not extirpate or persecute the Church; may help her
+in reformation; may not hinder her in reforming herself, convening
+synods in herself, as in Acts xv., &amp;c., if he will not help her
+therein; otherwise her condition were better without than with a
+magistrate. The Christian magistrate much less ought to hinder her
+therein, otherwise her state were worse under the Christian than
+under the pagan magistrate.</p>
+<p>Objective or objectively ecclesiastical, as being exercised
+about objects ecclesiastical, but politically, not
+ecclesiastically. His proper power is <i>about</i>, not <i>in</i>
+religious matters. He may politically, outwardly exercise his power
+about objects or matters spiritual; but not spiritually, inwardly,
+formally act any power in the Church. He may act in church affairs
+as did Asa, Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah; not as did Corah, Saul,
+Uzzah, or Uzziah. He is an overseer of things without, not of
+things within. And in a word, his whole power about church offices
+and religion is merely, properly, and formally civil or
+political.<a href="#note-30"><small>30</small></a></p>
+<p>Nor is this only our private judgment, or the opinion of some
+few particular persons touching the granting or bounding of the
+magistrate's power about matters of religion; but with us we have
+the suffrage of many reformed churches, who, in their Confessions
+of Faith published to the world, do fully and clearly express
+themselves to the same effect.</p>
+<p>The Helvetian church thus: Since every magistrate is of God, it
+is (unless he would exercise tyranny) his chief duty, all blasphemy
+being repressed, to defend and provide for religion, and to execute
+this to his utmost strength, as the prophet teacheth out of the
+word; in which respect the pure and free preaching of God's word, a
+right, diligent, and well-instituted discipline of youth, citizens
+and scholars; a just and liberal maintenance of the ministers of
+the church, and a solicitous care of the poor, (whereunto all
+ecclesiastical means belong,) have the first place. After this,
+&amp;c.</p>
+<p>The French churches thus: He also therefore committed the sword
+into the magistrates' hands, that they might repress faults
+committed not only against the second table, but also against the
+first; therefore we affirm, that their laws and statutes ought to
+be obeyed, tribute to be paid, and other burdens to be borne, the
+yoke of subjection voluntarily to be undergone, yea, though the
+magistrates should be infidels, so long as the supreme government
+of God remains perfect and untouched, Matt. xxiv.; Acts iv. 17, and
+v. 19; Jude verse 8.</p>
+<p>The church of Scotland thus: Moreover we affirm, that the
+purging and conserving of religion is the first and most especial
+duty of kings, princes, governors, and magistrates. So that they
+are ordained of God not only for civil polity, but also for the
+conservation of true religion, and that all idolatry and
+superstition may be suppressed: as is evident in David,
+Jehoshaphat, Josiah, Hezekiah, and others, adorned with high
+praises for their singular zeal.</p>
+<p>The Belgic church thus: Therefore he hath armed the magistrates
+with a sword, that they may punish the bad and defend the good.
+Furthermore, it is their duty not only to be solicitous about
+preserving of civil polity, but also to give diligence that the
+sacred ministry may be preserved, all idolatry and adulterate
+worship of God may be taken out of the way, the kingdom of
+antichrist may be pulled down, but Christ's kingdom propagated.
+Finally, it is their part to take course, that the holy word of the
+gospel be preached on every side, that all may freely and purely
+serve and worship God according to the prescript of his word. And
+all men, of whatsoever dignity, condition, or state they be, ought
+to be subject to lawful magistrates, to pay them tribute and
+subsidies, to obey them in all things which are not repugnant to
+the word of God; to pour out prayers for them, that God would
+vouchsafe to direct them in all their actions, <i>and that we may
+under them lead a quiet and peaceable life in all godliness and
+honesty</i>. Wherefore we detest the Anabaptists and all turbulent
+men who cast off superior dominions and magistrates, pervert laws
+and judgments, make all goods common, and finally abolish or
+confound all orders and degrees which God hath constituted for
+honesty's sake among men.</p>
+<p>The church in Bohemia thus: They teach also that it is commanded
+in the word of God that <i>all should be subject to the higher
+powers</i> in all things, yet in those things only which are not
+repugnant to God and his word. But as touching those things which
+concern men's souls, faith, and salvation, they teach that men
+should hearken only to God's word, &amp;c., his ministers, as
+Christ himself saith, <i>Render to C&aelig;sar the things that are
+C&aelig;sar's, and to God those things that are God's.</i> But if any
+would compel them to those things which are against God, and fight
+and strive against his word, which abideth forever; they teach them
+to make use of the apostle's example, who thus answered the
+magistrate at Jerusalem: <i>It is meet</i> (say they) <i>to obey
+God rather than men</i>.</p>
+<p>Finally, the church in Saxony hath expressed herself notably in
+this point, saying, among many other passages, God will have all
+men, yea, even unregenerate men, to be ruled and restrained by
+political government. And in this government the wisdom, justice,
+and goodness of God to mankind do shine forth. His wisdom, order
+declares, which is the difference of virtues and vices, and the
+consociation of men by lawful governments and contracts ordained in
+wonderful wisdom. God's justice also is seen in political
+government, who will have manifest wickednesses to be punished by
+magistrates; and when they that rule punish not the guilty, God
+himself wonderfully draws them to punishment, and regularly
+punishes heinous faults with heinous penalties in this life, as it
+is said, <i>He that takes the sword shall perish by the sword</i>;
+and, <i>Whoremongers and adulterers God will judge</i>. God will
+have in these punishments the difference of vices and virtues to be
+seen; and will have us learn that God is wise, just, true, chaste.
+God's goodness also to mankind is beheld, because by this means he
+preserves the society of men, and therefore he preserves it that
+thence the Church may be gathered, and will have polities to be the
+Church's inns. Of these divine and immoveable laws, which are
+testimonies of God, and the chief rule of manners, the magistrate
+is to be keeper in punishing all that violate them. For the voice
+of the law, without punishment and execution, is of small avail to
+bridle and restrain men; therefore it is said by Paul, <i>The power
+should be a terror to evil works, and an honor to the good.</i> And
+antiquity rightly said, <i>The magistrate is the keeper of the law,
+both of the first and second table,</i> so far as appertains to
+<i>good order</i>. And though many in their governments neglect the
+glory of God, yet this ought to be their chief care, to hear and
+embrace the true doctrine touching the Son of God, and to foster
+the churches, as the psalm saith, <i>And now understand, ye kings,
+and be instructed, ye judges of the earth.</i> Again, <i>Open your
+gates, ye princes</i>, i.e., Open your empires to the gospel, and
+afford harbor to the Son of God. And Isa. xlix.: <i>And kings shall
+be thy nursing-fathers, and queens</i>, i.e., commonwealths,
+<i>shall be thy nursing-mothers</i>, i.e., of the Church, they
+shall afford lodgings to churches and pious studies. And kings and
+princes themselves shall be members of the Church, and shall
+rightly understand doctrine, shall not help those that establish
+false doctrine, and exercise unjust cruelty, but shall be mindful
+of this saying, "I will glorify them that glorify me." And Daniel
+exhorteth the king of Babylon unto the acknowledgment of God's
+wrath, and to clemency towards the exiled Church, when he saith,
+"Break off thy sins by righteousness, and thine iniquities by
+showing mercy to the poor." And since they are among the chief
+members of the Church, they should see that judgment be rightly
+exercised in the Church, as Constantine, Theodosius, Arcadius,
+Marcianus, Charles the Great, and many pious kings, took care that
+the judgments of the Church should be rightly exercised,
+&amp;c.</p>
+<p>Thus those of the presbyterian judgment are willing to give to
+C&aelig;sar those things that are C&aelig;sar's, even about matters of
+religion, that the magistrate may see, it is far from their
+intention in the least degree to intrench upon his just power, by
+asserting the spiritual power, which Christ hath seated in his
+church officers, distinct from the magistratical power: but as for
+them of the independent judgment, and their adherents, they divest
+the magistrate of such power.<a href=
+"#note-31"><small>31</small></a></p>
+<a name="H_SECTI-II"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION II.</h3>
+<p>II. Some power on the other hand touching religion and church
+affairs, is utterly denied to the civil magistrate, as no way
+belonging to him at all by virtue of his office of magistracy. Take
+it thus:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ, our Mediator, now under the New Testament, hath
+committed no spiritual power at all, magisterial or ministerial,
+properly, internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical, nor
+any exercise thereof, for the government of his Church, to the
+political magistrate, heathen or Christian, as the subject or
+receptacle thereof by virtue of his magistratical office.</p>
+<p>For explication hereof briefly thus: 1. What is meant by
+spiritual power, magisterial and ministerial, is laid down in the
+general nature of the government, Chap. III. And, That all
+magisterial lordly power over the Church, belongs peculiarly and
+only to Jesus Christ our Mediator, Lord of all, is proved, Chap. V.
+Consequently, the civil magistrate can challenge no such power,
+without usurpation upon Christ's prerogative. We hence condemn the
+Pope as Antichrist, while he claims to be Christ's vicar-general
+over Christ's visible Church on earth. So that all the question
+here will be about the ministerial power, whether any such belong
+to the civil magistrate. 2. What is meant by power, properly,
+internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical? Thus conceive:
+These several terms are purposely used, the more clearly and fully
+to distinguish power purely ecclesiastical, which is denied to the
+magistrate, from power purely political about ecclesiastical
+objects, which is granted to him; which is called ecclesiastical,
+not properly, but improperly; not internally, but externally; not
+formally, but only objectively, as conversant about ecclesiastical
+objects. Nor hath he any such ecclesiastical power in him
+virtually, i.e. so as to convey and give it to any other under him.
+He may grant and protect the public exercise of that power within
+his dominions; but designation of particular persons to the office
+and power, is from the Church; the donation of the office and power
+only from Christ himself. So that magistracy doth not formally nor
+virtually comprehend in it ecclesiastical power for church
+government; for a magistrate, as a magistrate, hath no inward
+ecclesiastical power at all belonging to him.</p>
+<p>For confirmation of this proposition, consider these ensuing
+arguments.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 1st. The keys of the kingdom of heaven were never
+given by Christ to the civil magistrate, as such: therefore he
+cannot be the proper subject of church government as a magistrate.
+We may thus reason:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. No power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven was
+ever given by Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But all formal power of church government is at
+least part of the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no formal power of church
+government was ever given by Christ to the civil magistrate, as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p>The major proposition is evident.</p>
+<p>1. Because when Christ gave the keys of the kingdom of heaven,
+he makes no mention at all of the civil magistrate directly or
+indirectly, expressly or implicitly, as the recipient subject
+thereof. Compare Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, John ii. 21-23, with
+Matt. xxvii. 18-20. 2. Because, in Christ's giving the keys of the
+kingdom of heaven, he makes express mention of church
+officers,<a href="#note-32"><small>32</small></a> which are really
+and essentially different from the civil magistrate, viz. of Peter,
+in name of all the rest, Matt. xvi. 18, 19, and of the rest of the
+apostles as the receptacle of the keys with him, Matt. xviii. 18,
+all the disciples save Thomas being together, he gave them the same
+commission in other words, John xx. 20-24, and Matt. xxviii. 18-20.
+Now if Christ should have given the keys, or any power thereof to
+the magistrate, as a magistrate, he must consequently have given
+them only to the magistrate, and then how could he have given them
+to his apostles, being officers in the Church really distinct from
+the magistrate?</p>
+<p>3. Because Jesus Christ, in giving the keys of the kingdom, gave
+not any one sort, act, part, or piece of the keys severally, but
+the whole power of the keys, all the sorts and acts thereof
+jointly. Therefore it is said, <i>I give the keys of the
+kingdom</i>&mdash;and <i>whatsoever thou shalt
+bind&mdash;whatsoever thou shalt loose&mdash;whose soever sins ye
+remit&mdash;whose soever sins ye retain</i>&mdash;Matt. xvi. 19,
+John xx. 23. So that here is not only key, but keys given at once,
+viz. key of doctrine, and the key of discipline; or the key of
+order, and the key of jurisdiction; not only binding or retaining,
+but loosing or remitting of sins, viz. all acts together conferred
+in the keys. Now if Christ gave the keys to the magistrate, then he
+gave all the sorts of keys and all the acts thereof to him: if so,
+the magistrate may as well preach the word, and dispense the
+sacraments, &amp;c., (as Erastus would have him,) as dispense the
+censures, &amp;c., (for Christ joined all together in the same
+commission, and by what warrant are they disjoined?) and if so,
+what need of pastors, teachers, &amp;c.,, in the Church? Let the
+civil magistrate do all. It is true, the ruling elder (which was
+after added) is limited only to one of the keys, viz. the <i>key of
+discipline</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17; but this limitation is by the same
+authority that ordained his office.</p>
+<p>4. Because if Christ gave the keys to the civil magistrate as
+such, then to every magistrate, whether Jewish, heathenish, or
+Christian: but not to the Jewish magistrate; for the sceptre was to
+depart from him, and the Jewish polity to be dissolved, and even
+then was almost extinct. Not to the heathenish magistrate, for then
+those might be properly and formally church governors which were
+not church members; and if the heathen magistrate refused to govern
+the Church, (when there was no other magistrate on earth,) she must
+be utterly destitute of all government, which are grossly absurd.
+Nor, finally, to the Christian magistrate, for Christ gave the keys
+to officers then in being; but at that time no Christian magistrate
+was in being in the world. Therefore the keys were given by Christ
+to no civil magistrate, as such, at all.</p>
+<p>The minor, viz. But all formal power of church government is at
+least part of the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven is
+clear. If we take church government largely, as containing both
+doctrine, worship, and discipline, it is the whole power of the
+keys; if strictly, as restrained only to discipline, it is at least
+part of the power. For, 1st, Not only the power of order, but also
+the power of jurisdiction, is contained under the word keys;
+otherwise it should have been said key, not keys; church government
+therefore is at least part of the power of the keys. 2d, The word
+key, noting a stewardly power, as appears, Isa. xxii. 22, (as
+Erastians themselves will easily grant,) may as justly be extended
+in the nature of it to signify the ruling power by jurisdiction, as
+the teaching power by doctrine; in that the office of a steward in
+the household, who bears the keys, consists in governing, ordering,
+and ruling the household, as well as in feeding it, as that passage
+in Luke xii. 41-49, being well considered, doth very notably
+evidence. For, Christ applying his speech to his disciples, saith,
+"Who then is that faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall
+make ruler of his household?&mdash;he will make him ruler over all
+that he hath," &amp;c. 3d, Nothing in the text or context appears
+why we should limit keys and the acts thereof only to doctrine, and
+exclude discipline; and where the text restrains not, we are not to
+restrain. 4th, The most of sound interpreters extend the keys and
+the acts thereof as well to discipline as to doctrine; to matters
+of jurisdiction, as well as to matters of order. From all we may
+conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore no formal power of church government was ever given by
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 2d. There was full power of church government in
+the church when no magistrate was Christian, yea, when all
+magistrates were persecutors of the Church, so far from being her
+<i>nursing fathers</i>, that they were her <i>cruel butchers</i>;
+therefore the magistrate is not the proper subject of this power.
+Thus we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. No proper power of church government, which was
+fully exercised in the Church of Christ, before any magistrate
+became Christian, yea, when magistrates were persecutors of the
+Church, was derived from Christ to the magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But all proper power of church government was
+fully exercised in the Church before any magistrate became
+Christian, yea, when magistrates were cruel persecutors of the
+Church of Christ.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no proper power of church
+government was derived from Christ to the civil magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p>The <i>major</i> proposition must be granted. For, 1st, Either
+then the Church, in exercising such full power of church
+government, should have usurped that power which belonged not at
+all to her, but only to the magistrate; for what power belongs to a
+magistrate, as a magistrate, belongs to him only; but dare we think
+that the apostles, or the primitive purest apostolical churches did
+or durst exercise all their power of church government which they
+exercised, merely by usurpation without any right thereunto
+themselves? 2d, Or if the Church usurped not, &amp;c., but
+exercised the power which Christ gave her, let the magistrate show
+wherein Christ made void the Church's charter, retracted this
+power, and gave it unto him.</p>
+<p>The minor proposition cannot be denied. For,</p>
+<p>1st. It was about 300 years after Christ before any of the Roman
+emperors (who had subdued the whole world, Luke ii. 1, under their
+sole dominion) became Christian. For Constantine the Great was the
+first emperor that received the faith, procured peace to the
+Church, and gave her respite from her cruel persecutions, which was
+in Anno 309 (or thereabouts) after Christ; before which time the
+Church was miserably wasted and butchered with those ten bloody
+persecutions, by the tyranny of Nero, and other cruel emperors
+before Constantine.</p>
+<p>2d. Yet within the space of this first 309 or 311 years, all
+proper power of church government was fully exercised in the Church
+of Christ; not only the word preached, Acts iv. 2; 1 Tim. iii. 16;
+and sacraments dispensed, Acts xx. 7; 1 Cor. xi. 17, &amp;c.; Acts
+ii. 4, and viii. 12: but also <i>deacons</i> set apart for that
+office of <i>deaconship</i>, Acts vi.: <i>elders</i> ordained and
+sent forth, Acts xiii. 1-3, and xiv. 23; 1 Tim. iv.; Tit. i. 5:
+public <i>admonition in use</i>, Tit. iii. 10; 1 Tim. v. 20:
+<i>excommunication</i>, 1 Cor. v.; and 1 Tim. i. 20:
+<i>absolution</i> of the penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 6, 7, &amp;c.:
+synodical conventions and decrees, Acts xv. with xvi. 4. So that we
+may conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore no proper power of church government was derived from
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 3d. The magistratical power really, specifically,
+and essentially differs from the ecclesiastical power; therefore
+the civil magistrate, as a magistrate, cannot be the proper subject
+of this ecclesiastical power. Hence we may thus argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. No power essentially, specifically, and really
+differing from magistratical power, was ever given by Christ to the
+magistrate as a magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But all proper ecclesiastical power essentially,
+specifically, and really differs from the magistratical power.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no proper ecclesiastical power was
+ever given by Jesus Christ to the civil magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p>The major is evident: for how can the magistrate, as a
+magistrate, receive such a power as is really and essentially
+distinct and different from magistracy? Were not that to make the
+magistratical power both really the same with itself, and yet
+really and essentially different from itself? A flat
+contradiction.</p>
+<p>The minor may be clearly evinced many ways: as, 1st, From the
+real and formal distinction between the two societies, viz. the
+Church and commonwealth, wherein ecclesiastical and political power
+are peculiarly seated. 2d. From the co-ordination of the power
+ecclesiastical and political, in reference to one another. 3d. From
+the different causes of these two powers, viz. efficient, material,
+formal, and final; in all which they are truly distinguished from
+one another.</p>
+<p>1st. From the real and formal distinction between the two
+societies, viz. church and commonwealth: for, 1. The society of the
+Church is only Christ's, and not the civil magistrate's: it is his
+<i>house</i>, his <i>spouse</i>, his <i>body</i>, &amp;c., and
+Christ hath no vicar<a href="#note-33"><small>33</small></a> under
+him. 2. The officers ecclesiastical are Christ's officers, not the
+magistrate's, 1 Cor. iv. 1: <i>Christ gave</i> them, Eph. iv. 8,
+10, 11: <i>God set them in the Church</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28. 3. These
+ecclesiastical officers are both elected and ordained by the
+Church, without commission from the civil magistrate, by virtue of
+Christ's ordinance, and in his name. Thus the apostles appointed
+officers: <i>Whom we may appoint</i>, Acts vi. 3, 4. The power of
+ordination and mission is in the hands of Christ's officers;
+compare Acts xiv. 23; 1 Tim. iv. 14, with Acts xiii. 1-4: and this
+is confessed by the parliament to be an ordinance of Jesus Christ,
+in their ordinance for ordaining of preaching presbyters. 4. The
+Church, and the several presbyteries ecclesiastical, meet not as
+civil judicatories, for civil acts of government, as making civil
+statutes, inflicting civil punishments, &amp;c., but as spiritual
+assemblies, for spiritual acts of government and discipline: as
+preaching, baptizing, receiving the Lord's supper, prayer,
+admonition of the disorderly, &amp;c. 5. What gross absurdities
+would follow, should not these two societies, viz. church and
+commonwealth, be acknowledged to be really and essentially distinct
+from one another! For then, 1. There can be no commonwealth where
+there is not a Church; but this is contrary to all experience.
+Heathens have commonwealths, yet no Church. 2. Then there may be
+church officers elected where there is no church, seeing there are
+magistrates where there is no church. 3. Then those magistrates,
+where there is no church, are no magistrates; but that is repugnant
+to Scripture, which accounts heathen rulers the servants of God,
+Isa. xlv. 1; Jer. xxv. 9: and calls them kings, Exod. vi. 13; Isa.
+xxxi. 35. And further, if there be no magistrates where there is no
+church, then the church is the formal constituting cause of
+magistrates. 4. Then the commonwealth, as the commonwealth, is the
+church; and the church, as the church, is the commonwealth: then
+the church and the commonwealth are the same. 5. Then all that are
+members of the commonwealth are, on that account, because members
+of the commonwealth, members of the church. 6. Then the
+commonwealth, being formally the same with the church, is, as a
+commonwealth, the mystical body of Christ. 7. Then the officers of
+the church are the officers of the commonwealth; the power of the
+keys gives them right to the civil sword: and consequently, the
+ministers of the gospel, as ministers, are justices of the peace,
+judges, parliament-men, &amp;c., all which how absurd, let the
+world judge.</p>
+<p>2d. From the co-ordination of the power ecclesiastical and
+political, in reference to one another: (this being a received
+maxim, that subordinate powers are of the same kind; co-ordinate
+powers are of distinct kinds.) Now, that the power of the Church is
+co-ordinate with the civil power, may be evidenced as followeth: 1.
+The officers of Christ, as officers, are not directly and properly
+subordinate to the civil power, though in their persons they are
+subject thereto: the apostles and pastors may preach, and cast out
+of the church, against the will of the magistrate, and yet not
+truly offend magistracy; thus, in doing the duty they have
+immediately received from God, they must "obey God rather than
+men," Acts iv. 19, 20. And the apostles and pastors must exercise
+their office (having received a command from Christ) without
+attending to the command or consent of the civil magistrate for the
+same; <i>as in casting out the incestuous person</i>, 1 Cor. v. 5:
+telling the Church, Matt. xviii. 17: <i>rejecting a heretic</i>,
+Tit. iii. 10. And, 2. Those acts of power are not directly and
+formally subordinate to the magistrate, which he himself cannot do,
+or which belong not to him. Thus the kings of Israel could not burn
+incense: "It appertaineth not unto thee," 2 Chron. xxvi. 18, 19.
+Likewise, none have the power of the keys, but they to whom Christ
+saith, "Go ye into all the world and preach the gospel," Matt.
+xxviii. 19: but Christ spake not this to magistrates: so only those
+that are <i>sent</i>, Rom. x. 15, and those that are governors, are
+by Christ placed in the Church. 3. The officers of the Church can
+ecclesiastically censure the officers of the state, though not as
+such, as well as the officers of the state can punish civilly the
+officers of the Church, though not as such: the church guides may
+admonish, excommunicate, &amp;c., the officers of the state as
+members of the Church, and the officers of the state may punish the
+officers of the Church as the members of the state. 4. Those that
+are not sent of the magistrate as his deputies, they are not
+subordinate in their mission to his power, but the ministers are
+not sent as the magistrate's deputies, but are <i>set over the
+flock by the Holy Ghost</i>, Acts xx. 28: they are likewise the
+<i>ministry of Christ</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2: they are <i>over you in
+the Lord</i>, 1 Thess. v. 12: and in his name they exercise their
+jurisdiction, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5. 5. If the last appeal in matters
+purely ecclesiastical be not to the civil power, then there is no
+subordination; but the last appeal properly so taken is not to the
+magistrate. This appears from these considerations: 1. Nothing is
+appealable to the magistrate but what is under the power of the
+sword; but admonition, excommunication, &amp;c., are not under the
+power of the sword: they are neither matters of dominion nor
+coercion. 2. If it were so, then it follows that the having of the
+sword gives a man a power to the keys. 3. Then it follows that the
+officers of the kingdom of heaven are to be judged as such by the
+officers of the kingdom of this world as such, and then there is no
+difference between the things of C&aelig;sar and the things of God. 4.
+The church of Antioch sent to Jerusalem, Acts xv. 2, and the synod
+there, without the magistrate, came together, ver. 6; and
+determined the controversy, ver. 28, 29. And we read, "The spirits
+of the prophets are subject to the prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 32; not
+to the civil power as prophets. So we must seek knowledge at the
+priest's lips, not at the civil magistrate's, Mal. ii. 7. And we
+read, that the people came to the priests in hard controversies,
+but never that the priests went to the civil power, Deut. xvii.
+8-10. 5. It makes the magistrate Christ's vicar, and so Christ to
+have a visible head on earth, and so to be an ecclesiastico-civil
+pope, and consequently there should be as many visible heads of
+Christ's Church as there are magistrates. 6. These powers are both
+immediate; one from God the Father, as <i>Creator</i>, Rom. xiii.
+1, 2; the other from Jesus Christ, as <i>Mediator</i>, Matt.
+xxviii. 18. Now lay all these together, and there cannot be a
+subordination of powers; and therefore there must be a real
+distinction.</p>
+<p>3d. From the different causes of these two powers, viz.
+efficient, material, formal, and final; in all which they are truly
+distinguished from one another, as may plainly appear by this
+ensuing parallel:</p>
+<p>1. They differ in their efficient cause or author, whence they
+are derived. Magistratical power is from God, the Creator and
+Governor of the world, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 4; and so belongs to all
+mankind, heathen or Christian; ecclesiastical power is peculiarly
+from Jesus Christ our Mediator, Lord of the Church, (who hath all
+power given him, and the government of the Church laid upon his
+shoulder, as Eph. i. 22; Matt. xxviii. 18, compared with Isa. ix.
+16.) See Matt. vi. 19, and xviii. 18, and xxviii. 19, 20; John xx.
+21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8: and consequently belongs properly to the
+Church, and to them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 12, 13.
+Magistratical power in general is the ordinance of God, Rom. xiii.
+1, 2, 4; but magistratical power in particular, whether it should
+be monarchical in a king, aristocratical in states, democratical in
+the people, &amp;c., is of men, called, therefore, a human
+creature, or creation, 1 Pet. ii. 13; but ecclesiastical power, and
+officers in particular, as well as general, are from Christ, Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18-20; Tit. iii. 10; 1 Cor. v. 13; 2 Cor. ii.
+For officers, see Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28.</p>
+<p>2. They differ in their material cause; whether it be the matter
+of which they consist, in which they are seated, or about which
+they are exercised. 1. In respect of the matter of which they
+consist, they much differ. Ecclesiastical power consists of the
+keys of the kingdom of heaven, which are exercised in the preaching
+of the word, dispensing the sacraments, executing the censures,
+admonition, excommunication, absolution, ordination of presbyters,
+&amp;c.; but magistratical power consists in the secular sword,
+which puts forth itself in making statutes, inflicting fines,
+imprisonments, confiscations, banishments, torments, death. 2. In
+respect of the matter or object about which they are exercised,
+they much differ: for, the magistratical power is exercised
+politically, about persons and things without the Church, as well
+as within the church; but the ecclesiastical power is exercised
+only upon them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 13. The
+magistratical power in some cases of treason, &amp;c., banishes or
+otherwise punishes even penitent persons: ecclesiastical power
+punishes no penitent persons. The magistratical power punishes not
+all sorts of scandal, but some: the ecclesiastical power punishes
+(if rightly managed) all sorts of scandal.</p>
+<p>3. They differ in their formal cause, as doth clearly appear by
+their way or manner of acting: magistratical power takes cognizance
+of crimes, and passes sentence thereupon according to statutes and
+laws made by man: ecclesiastical power takes cognizance of, and
+passes judgment upon crimes according to the word of God, the Holy
+Scriptures. Magistratical power punishes merely with political
+punishments, as fines, imprisonments, &amp;c. Ecclesiastical merely
+with spiritual punishments, as church censures. Magistratical power
+makes all decrees and laws, and executes all authority, commanding
+or punishing only in its own name, in name of the supreme
+magistrate, as of the king, &amp;c., but ecclesiastical power is
+wholly exercised, not in the name of churches, or officers, but
+only in Christ's name, Matt, xxviii. 19; Acts iv. 17; 1 Cor. v. 4.
+The magistrate can delegate his power to another: church-governors
+cannot delegate their power to others, but must exercise it by
+themselves. The magistrate about ecclesiasticals hath power to
+command and compel politically the church officers to do their
+duty, as formerly was evidenced; but cannot discharge lawfully
+those duties themselves, but in attempting the same, procure divine
+wrath upon themselves: as Korah, Numb. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam.
+xiii. 9-15; King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16-22: but church-guides
+can properly discharge the duties of doctrine, worship, and
+discipline themselves, and ecclesiastically command and compel
+others to do their duty also.</p>
+<p>4. Lastly, They differ in their final cause or ends. The
+magistratical power levels at the temporal, corporal, external,
+political peace, tranquillity, order, and good of human society,
+and of all persons within his jurisdiction, &amp;c. The
+ecclesiastical power intends properly the spiritual good and
+edification of the Church and all the members thereof, Matt, xviii.
+15; 1 Cor. v. 5, &amp;c.; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.<a href=
+"#note-34"><small>34</small></a> May we not from all clearly
+conclude, Therefore no proper ecclesiastical power was ever given
+by Jesus Christ to the magistrate as a magistrate?</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 4th. The civil magistrate is no proper church
+officer, and therefore cannot be the proper subject of church
+power, Hence we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. All formal power of church government was derived
+from Jesus Christ to his own proper church officers only. To them
+he gave the <i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 28: to them he gave the <i>authority
+for edification of the church</i>, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: but
+this will after more fully appear in Chap. XI. following.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But no civil magistrate, as a magistrate, is any
+of Christ's proper church officers. For, 1. The civil magistrate is
+never reckoned up in the catalogue, list, or roll of Christ's
+church officers in Scripture, Eph. iv. 10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28,
+&amp;c.; Rom. xii. 6-8; if here, or anywhere else, let the
+magistrate or the Erastians show it. 2. A magistrate, as a
+magistrate, is not a church member, (much less a church governor;)
+for then all magistrates, heathen as well as Christian, should be
+church members and church officers, but this is contrary to the
+very nature of Christ's kingdom, which admits no heathen into
+it.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no formal power of church
+government was derived from Jesus Christ to the magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 5th. The civil magistrate, as such, is not
+properly subordinate to Christ's mediatory kingdom; therefore is
+not the receptacle of church power from Christ. Hence thus:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever formal power of church government
+Christ committed to any, he committed it only to those that were
+properly subordinate to his mediatory kingdom. For whatsoever
+ecclesiastical ordinance, office, power, or authority, Christ gave
+to men, he gave it as Mediator and Head of the Church, by virtue of
+his mediatory office; and for the gathering, edifying, and
+perfecting of his mediatory kingdom, which is his Church, Eph. iv.
+7, 10-12. Therefore such as are not properly subordinate to Christ
+in this his office, and for this end, can have no formal church
+power from Christ.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But no magistrate, as a magistrate, is subordinate
+properly to Christ's mediatory kingdom. For, 1. Not Christ the
+Mediator, but God the Creator authorizeth the magistrate's office,
+Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 6. 2. Magistracy is never styled a ministry of
+Christ in Scripture, nor dispensed in his name. 3. Christ's kingdom
+is not of this world, John xviii. 36; the magistrate's is.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no formal power of Church
+government is committed by Christ to the magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p>6th. Finally, divers absurdities unavoidably follow upon the
+granting of a proper formal power of Church government to the civil
+magistrate: therefore he cannot be the proper subject of such
+power. Hence it may be thus argued:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. No grant of ecclesiastical power, which plainly
+introduceth many absurdities, can be allowed to the political
+magistrate, as the proper subject thereof. For though in matters of
+religion there be many things mysterious, sublime, and above the
+reach of reason; yet there is nothing to be found that is absurd,
+irrational, &amp;c.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But to grant to the political magistrate, as a
+magistrate, a proper formal power of church government, introduceth
+plainly many absurdities, e.g.: 1. This brings confusion betwixt
+the office of the magistracy and ministry. 2. Confounds the church
+and commonwealth together. 3. Church government may be monarchical
+in one man; and so, not only prelatical but papal; and
+consequently, antichristian. Which absurdities, with many others,
+were formerly intimated, and neither by religion nor reason can be
+endured. We conclude:</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the grant of a proper formal power
+of church government cannot be allowed to the political magistrate
+as the proper subject thereof, because he is a magistrate.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0017"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER X.</h2>
+<h3><i>That the community of the faithful, or body of the people,
+are not the immediate subject of the power of Church
+government.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus we see, that Jesus Christ our Mediator did not commit any
+proper formal ecclesiastical power for church government to the
+political magistrate, as such, as the Erastians conceive. Now, in
+the next place (to come more close) let us consider that Jesus
+Christ our Mediator hath not committed the spiritual power of
+church government to the body of the people, presbyterated, or
+unpresbyterated (to use their own terms) as the first subject
+thereof, according to the opinion of the Separatists or
+Independents. Take it in this proposition:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not committed the proper formal
+power or authority spiritual, for government of his Church,<a href=
+"#note-35"><small>35</small></a> unto the community of the
+faithful, whole church, or body of the people, as the proper
+immediate receptacle, or first subject thereof.</p>
+<a name="H_SECTII-I"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION I.</h3>
+<p>Some things herein need a little explanation, before we come to
+the confirmation.</p>
+<p>1. By <i>fraternity, community of the faithful, whole church or
+body of the people</i>, understand a particular company of people,
+meeting together in one assembly or single congregation, to partake
+of Christ's ordinances. This single congregation may be considered
+as presbyterated, i.e., furnished with an eldership; or as
+unpresbyterated, i.e., destitute of an eldership, having yet no
+elders or officers erected among them. Rigid Brownists or
+Separatists say, that the fraternity or community of the faithful
+unpresbyterated is the first receptacle of proper ecclesiastical
+power from Christ: unto whom some of independent judgment
+subscribe. Independents thus resolve: First, That the apostles of
+Christ are the first subject of apostolical power. Secondly, That a
+particular congregation of saints, professing the faith, taken
+indefinitely for any church, (one as well as another,) is the first
+subject of all church offices with all their spiritual gifts and
+power. Thirdly, That when the church of a particular congregation
+walketh together in the truth and peace, the brethren of the church
+are the first subjects of church liberty; the elders thereof of
+church authority; and both of them together are the first subject
+of all church power.<a href="#note-36"><small>36</small></a> Which
+assertions of Brownists and Independents (except the first) are
+denied by them of presbyterian judgment, as being obvious to divers
+material and just exceptions.<a href=
+"#note-37"><small>37</small></a>:</p>
+<p>2. By <i>proper formal power or authority spiritual, for
+church</i> <i>government</i>, thus conceive. To omit what hath been
+already laid down about the natures and sorts of spiritual power
+and authority, (part 2, chap. III. and VI.,) which are to be
+remembered, here it may be further observed, that there is a proper
+public, official, authoritative power, though but stewardly and
+ministerial, which is derived from Jesus Christ to his church
+officers, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21-23; Matt,
+xxviii. 18-20; of which power the apostle speaking, saith, "If I
+should somewhat boast of our power which the Lord hath given us to
+edification," 2 Cor. x. 8; so 2 Cor. xiii. 10. The people are
+indeed allowed certain liberties or privileges; as, <i>To try the
+spirits</i>, &amp;c., 1 John iv. 1. To prove all doctrines by the
+word, 1 Thess. v. 21. To nominate and elect their own church
+officers, as their deacons, which they did, Acts vi. 3, 5, 6; but
+this is not a proper power of the keys. But the proper, public,
+official, authoritative power, is quite denied to the body of the
+people, furnished with an eldership or destitute thereof.</p>
+<p>3. By <i>proper immediate receptacle, or first subject of
+power</i>, understand, that subject, seat, or receptacle of power,
+which first and immediately received this power from Jesus Christ;
+and consequently was intrusted and authorized by him, to put forth
+and exercise that power in his Church for the government thereof.
+And here two things must be carefully remembered: 1. That we
+distinguish betwixt the object and subject of this power. The
+object for which, for whose good and benefit all this power is
+given, is primarily the general visible Church, Ephes. iv. 7,
+10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom. xii. 5,6, &amp;c. Secondarily,
+particular churches, as they are parts and members of the general.
+But the subject receiving to which the power is derived, is not the
+Church general or particular, but the officers or governors of the
+Church. 2. That we distinguish also betwixt the donation of the
+power, and the designation of particular persons to offices
+ecclesiastical. This designation of persons to the offices of key
+bearing or ruling may be done first and immediately by the Church,
+in nominating or electing her individual officers which is allowed
+to her; yet is no proper authoritative act of power. But the
+donation of the power itself is not from the Church as the
+fountain, but immediately from Christ himself, 2 Cor. xi. 8, and
+xiii. 10. Nor is it to the Church as the subject, but immediately
+to the individual church officers themselves, who consequently, in
+all the exercise of their power, act as the <i>ministers and
+stewards of Christ</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1, putting forth their power
+immediately received from Christ, not as the substitutes or
+delegates of the Church putting forth her power, which from Christ
+she mediately conveys to them, as Independents do imagine, but by
+us is utterly denied.</p>
+<a name="H_SECTII-II"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION II.</h3>
+<p>For confirmation of this proposition thus explained and stated;
+consider these few arguments:</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. I. The community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, have no authentic commission or grant of proper spiritual
+power for church government; and therefore they cannot possibly be
+the first subject or the proper immediate receptacle of such power
+from Christ. We may thus argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whomsoever Jesus Christ hath made the immediate
+receptacle or first subject of proper formal power for governing of
+his Church, to them this power is conveyed by some authentic grant
+or commission.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, have not this power conveyed unto them by any authentic
+grant or commission.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not
+made the community of the faithful, or body of the people, the
+immediate receptacle or first subject of proper formal power for
+governing of his Church.</p>
+<p>The major proposition is evident in itself: For, 1. The power of
+church government in this or that subject is not natural, but
+positive; and cast upon man, not by natural, but by positive law,
+positive grant: men are not bred, but made the first subject of
+such power; therefore all such power claimed or exercised, without
+such positive grant, is merely without any due title, imaginary,
+usurped, unwarrantable, in very fact null and void. 2. All power of
+church government is radically and fundamentally in Christ, Isa.
+ix. 6; Matt, xxviii. 18; John v. 22. And how shall any part of it
+be derived from Christ to man, but by some fit intervening mean
+betwixt Christ and man? And what mean of conveyance betwixt Christ
+and man can suffice, if it do not amount to an authentic grant or
+commission for such power? 3. This is evidently Christ's way to
+confer power by authentic commission immediately upon his church
+officers, the apostles and their successors, to the world's end.
+"Thou art Peter; and I give to thee the keys of the kingdom of
+heaven," &amp;c., Matt. xvi. 18, 19. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on
+earth," &amp;c., Matt, xviii. 19, 20. "As my Father sent me, so
+send I you; go, disciple ye all nations; whose sins ye remit, they
+are remitted&mdash;and lo, I am with you always to the end of the
+world," John xx. 21, 23; Matt, xxviii. 19, 20. "Our power, which
+the Lord hath given us for edification," 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10:
+so that we may conclude them that have such commission to be the
+first subject and immediate receptacle of power from Christ, as
+will after more fully appear. 4. If no such commission be needful
+to distinguish those that have such power from those that have
+none, why may not all without exception, young and old, wise and
+foolish, men and women, Christian and heathen, &amp;c., equally lay
+claim to this power of church government? If not, what hinders? If
+so, how absurd!</p>
+<p>The minor proposition, viz: But the community of the faithful,
+or body of the people, have not this power conveyed to them by any
+authentic grant or commission, is firm. For whence had they it?
+When was it given to them? What is the power committed to them? Or
+in what sense is such power committed to them?</p>
+<p>1. Whence had they it? <i>From heaven or of men?</i> If from
+men, then it is a human ordinance and invention; <i>a plant which
+the heavenly Father hath not planted</i>; and therefore <i>shall he
+plucked up</i>. Matt. xv. 13. If from heaven, then from Christ; for
+<i>all power is given to him</i>, Matt, xxviii. 18, &amp;c.; Isa.
+ix. 6. If it be derived from Christ, then it is derived from him by
+some positive law of Christ as his grant or charter. A positive
+grant of such power to select persons, viz. church officers, the
+Scripture mentions, as was evidenced in the proof of the major
+proposition. But touching any such grant or commission to the
+community of the faithful, the Scripture is silent. And let those
+that are for the popular power produce, if they can, any clear
+scripture that expressly, or by infallible consequence, contains
+any such commission.</p>
+<p>2. When was any such power committed by Christ to the multitude
+of the faithful, either in the first planting and beginning of the
+Church, or in the after establishment and growth of the Church
+under the apostles' ministry? Not the first; for then the apostles
+themselves should have derived their power from the community of
+the faithful: now this is palpably inconsistent with the
+Scriptures, Which tell us that the apostles had both their
+apostleship itself, and their qualifications with gifts and graces
+for it, yea, and the very designation of all their particular
+persons unto that calling, all of them immediately from Christ
+himself. For the first, see Gal. i. 1: "Paul, an apostle, not of
+men, nor by man, but by Jesus Christ," Matt, xxviii. 18-20. For the
+second, see John xx. 22, 23: "And when he had said this, he
+breathed on them, and saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost;
+whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them," &amp;c.
+For the third, see Luke vi. 13, &amp;c.: "And when it was day he
+called to him his disciples: and of them he chose twelve, whom also
+he named apostles; Simon&mdash;" Matt. x. 5-7, &amp;c.: "These
+twelve Jesus sent forth, and commanded them, saying." And after his
+resurrection he enlarges their commission, Mark xvi. 15, 16: "Go ye
+into all the world;" and, "As my Father hath sent me, so send I
+you," John xx. 21. See also how the Lord cast the lot upon
+Matthias, Acts i. 24-26. Nor the second; for if such power be
+committed to the community of the faithful after the apostles had
+established the churches, then let those that so think show where
+Christ committed this power first to the apostles, and after to the
+community of the faithful, and by them or with them to their
+ordinary officers, for execution thereof. But no such thing hath
+any foundation in Scripture; for the ordinary Church guides, though
+they may have a designation to their office by the church, yet they
+have the donation, or derivation of their office and its authority
+only from Christ: their office is from Christ, Ephes. iv. 8, 11; 1
+Cor. xii. 28; Acts xx. 28, 29. Their power from Christ, Matt. xvi.
+19, and xxviii. 18, 19; John xx. 21, 23. "Our power which the Lord
+hath given us," 2 Cor. viii. 10. They are <i>Christ's ministers,
+stewards, ambassadors</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1; 2 Cor. v. 19, 20. They are
+to act and officiate <i>in his name</i>, Matt, xviii. 19; 1 Cor. v.
+4, 5; and to Christ they <i>must give an account</i>. Heb. xiii.
+17, 18; Luke xii. 41, 42. Now if the ordinary officers have (as
+well as the apostles their apostleship) their offices of pastor,
+teacher, &amp;c., from Christ, and are therein the successors of
+the apostles to continue to the world's end, (Matt, xxviii. 18-20,)
+then they have their power and authority in their offices
+immediately from Christ, as the first receptacles thereof
+themselves, and not from the Church as the first receptacle of it
+herself. A successor hath jurisdiction from him from whom the
+predecessor had his; otherwise he doth not truly succeed him.
+Consequently the Church or community of the faithful cannot
+possibly be the first receptacle of the power of church government
+from Christ.</p>
+<p>3. What power is it that is committed to the body of the Church
+or multitude of the faithful? Either it must be the power of order,
+or the power of jurisdiction. But neither of these is allowed to
+the multitude of the faithful by the Scriptures, (but appointed and
+appropriated to select persons.) Not the power of order; for the
+whole multitude, and everyone therein, neither can nor ought to
+intermeddle with any branches of that power. 1. Not with preaching;
+all are not <i>apt to teach</i>, 1 Tim. iii. 2, nor able to exhort
+and convince gainsayers, Tit. i. 9; all are not gifted and duly
+qualified. Some are expressly prohibited <i>speaking in the
+church</i>, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, 1 Tim. ii. 12, Rev. ii. 20, and
+none are <i>to preach, unless they be sent</i>, Rom. x. 15, nor
+<i>to take such honor unto themselves unless they be called</i>,
+&amp;c., Heb. v. 4, 5. Are all and every one of the multitude of
+the faithful able to teach, exhort, and convince? are they all sent
+to preach? are they all called of God? &amp;c. Nay, hath not Christ
+laid this task of authoritative preaching only upon his own
+officers? Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. 2. Not with administration of the
+sacraments; this and preaching are by one and the same commission
+given to officers only, Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi. 23. 3. Nor
+to ordain presbyters, or other officers. They may choose; but
+extraordinary officers, or the presbytery of ordinary officers,
+ordain. Acts vi. 3, 5, 6: "Look ye out men&mdash;whom we may
+appoint." Compare also Acts xiv. 23; 1 Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22; Tit.
+iii. 5. So that the people's bare election and approbation is no
+sufficient Scripture ordination of officers. Nor is there one often
+thousand among the people that is in all points able to try and
+judge of the sufficiency of preaching presbyters, for tongues,
+arts, and soundness of judgment in divinity. Nor is the power of
+jurisdiction in public admonition, excommunication, and absolution,
+&amp;c., allowed to the multitude. For all and every one of the
+multitude of the faithful, 1. Never had any such power given to
+them from Christ; this key as well as the key of knowledge being
+given to the officers of the Church only, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii.
+18-20. <i>Tell the church</i>, there, must needs be meant of the
+ruling church only.<a href="#note-38"><small>38</small></a> 2 Cor.
+viii. 10; John xx. 21-23. 2. Never acted or executed any such
+power, that we can find in Scripture. As for that which is
+primarily urged of the church of Corinth, that the whole church did
+excommunicate the <i>incestuous person</i>, 1 Cor. v. 4, &amp;c.,
+many things may be answered to evince the contrary. 1st, The whole
+multitude could not do it; for children could not judge, and women
+must not speak in the Church. 2d, It is not said, <i>Sufficient to
+such an one is the rebuke inflicted of all</i>; but <i>of many</i>,
+2 Cor. ii. 6, viz. of the presbytery, which consisted of many
+officers. 3d, The church of Corinth, wherein this censure was
+inflicted, was not a congregational, but a presbyterial church,
+having divers particular congregations in it, (as is hereafter
+cleared in Chap. XXIII.,) and therefore the whole multitude of the
+church of Corinth could not meet together in one place for this
+censure, but only the presbytery of that great church. Again, never
+did the whole multitude receive from Christ due gifts and
+qualifications for the exercise of church government and
+jurisdiction; nor any promise from Christ to be with them therein,
+as officers have, Matt, xxviii. 18-20. And the absurdities of such
+popular government are intolerable, as after will appear.</p>
+<p>4. Finally, in what sense can it be imagined that any such power
+should be committed from Christ to the community of the faithful,
+the whole body of the Church? For this power is given them equally
+with the church-guides, or unequally. If equally, then,.1. The
+church-guides have power and authority, as primarily and
+immediately committed to them, as the Church herself hath; and then
+they need not derive or borrow any power from the body of the
+faithful, having a power equal to theirs. 2. How vainly is that
+power equally given as to the officers, so to the whole multitude,
+when the whole multitude have no equal gifts and abilities to
+execute the same! If unequally, then this power is derived to the
+church-guides, either more or less than to the multitude of the
+faithful. If less, then how improperly were all those names of rule
+and government imposed upon officers, which nowhere are given by
+Scripture to the multitude! as <i>Pastors</i>, Eph. iv. 8, 11.
+<i>Elders</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17. <i>Overseers</i>, Acts xx. 28.
+<i>Guides</i>, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22. In this last verse they are
+contradistinguished from the saints; church-guides, and saints
+guided, make up a visible organical church. <i>Rulers in the
+Lord</i>, 1 Thes. v. 12; Rom. xii. 8: and <i>well-ruling
+Elders</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17. <i>Governments</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28.
+<i>Stewards</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1,2; Luke xii. 42, &amp;c. And all
+these titles have power and rule engraven in their very foreheads;
+and they of right belonged rather to the multitude than to the
+officers, if the officers derive their power from the multitude of
+the people. If more, then church-guides, having more power than the
+Church, need not derive any from the Church, being themselves
+better furnished.</p>
+<p>Thus, what way soever we look, it cannot be evinced, that the
+multitude and body of the people, with or without eldership, are
+the first subject of power, or have any authoritative public
+official power at all, from any grant, mandate, or commission of
+Christ. From all which we may strongly conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not made the community
+of the faithful, or body of the people, the immediate receptacle,
+or first subject of proper formal power for governing of his
+church.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. As the multitude of the faithful have no
+authentic grant or commission of such power of the keys in the
+Church; so they have no divine warrant for the actual execution of
+the power of the said keys therein: and therefore cannot be the
+first receptacle of the power of the keys from Christ. For thus we
+may reason:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whosoever are the first subject, or immediate
+receptacle of the power of the keys from Christ, they have divine
+warrant actually to exercise and put in execution the said power.
+<i>Minor</i>. But the multitude or community of the faithful have
+no divine warrant actually to exercise and put in execution the
+power of the keys.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the community of the faithful are
+not the first subject, or immediate receptacle of the power of the
+keys from Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p>The major proposition must necessarily be yielded. For, 1. The
+power of the keys contains both authority and exercise; power being
+given to that end that it may be exercised for the benefit of the
+Church. It is called the <i>power given us for edification</i>, 2
+Cor. viii. 10. Where there is no exercise of power there can be no
+edification by power. 2. Both the authority and complete exercise
+of all that authority, were at once and together communicated from
+Christ to the receptacle of power. "I give unto thee the keys of
+the kingdom of heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth,"
+&amp;c., Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "As my Father sent me, so
+send I you&mdash;whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted,"
+John xx. 21, 23. Here is both power and the exercise thereof joined
+together in the same commission. Yea, so individual and inseparable
+are power and exercise, that under exercise, power and authority is
+derived: as, "Go, disciple ye all nations, baptizing them,"
+&amp;c., Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3. How vain, idle, impertinent, and
+ridiculous is it to fancy and dream of such a power as shall never
+be drawn into act by them that have it!</p>
+<p>The minor proposition, viz. But the multitude or communion of
+the faithful have no divine warrant, actually to exercise and put
+in execution the power of the keys, is clear also:</p>
+<p>1. By reason: for, the actual execution of this power belongs to
+them by divine warrant, either when they have church officers, or
+when they want church officers. Not while they have officers; for,
+that were to slight Christ's officers: that were to take officers'
+work out of their hands by them that are no officers, and when
+there were no urgent necessity; contrary whereunto, see the proofs,
+Chap. XI. Section 2, that were to prejudice the church, in
+depriving her of the greater gifts, and undoubtedly authorized
+labors of her officers, &amp;c. Not when they want officers in a
+constituted church: as in case where there are three or four
+elders, the pastor dies, two of the ruling elders fall sick, or the
+like; in such cases the community cannot by divine warrant supply
+the defects of these officers themselves, by exercising their
+power, or executing their offices. For where doth Scripture allow
+such power to the community in such cases? What one church without
+its eldership can be instanced in the New Testament, that in such
+cases once presumed to exercise such power, which might be
+precedent or example for it to other churches? How needless are
+church officers, if the multitude of the faithful may, as members
+of the church, take up their office, and actually discharge it in
+all the parts of it?</p>
+<p>2. By induction of particulars, it is evident, that the
+community cannot execute the power of the keys by any divine
+warrant. 1. <i>They may not preach</i>: for, "how shall they
+preach, except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15; but the community cannot
+he sent, many of them being incapable of the office, either by
+reason of their <i>sex</i>, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35; 1 Tim. ii. 11, 12:
+or by reason of their <i>age</i>; as children, and all or most of
+them by reason of their deficiency in gifts and in scripture
+qualifications, Tit. i. and 1 Tim. iii. For not one member of a
+thousand is so completely furnished, as to be "apt to teach, able
+to convince gainsayers, and to divide the word of truth aright."
+Besides, they may not send themselves, were they capable, for,
+<i>no man takes this honor to himself</i>&mdash;Yea, <i>Jesus
+Christ himself did not glorify himself to be made an
+high-priest</i>&mdash;Heb. v. 4, 5. Now only officers are sent to
+preach, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 19, 20; Mark xvi. 15. 2. They may
+not administer the seals, the sacraments, baptize, &amp;c. under
+the New Testament; for who gave the people any such authority? hath
+not Christ conjoined preaching and dispensing of the sacraments in
+the same commission, that the same persons only that do the one,
+may do the other? Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3. They may not ordain
+officers in the church, and authoritatively send them abroad: for,
+ordinarily the community have not sufficient qualifications and
+abilities for proving and examining of men's gifts for the
+ministry. The community are nowhere commanded or allowed so to do
+in the whole New Testament, but other persons distinct from them, 1
+Tim. v. 22; 2 Tim. ii. 2; Tit. i. 5, &amp;c. Nor did the community
+ever exercise or assume to themselves any such power of ordination
+or mission, but only officers both in the first sending of men to
+preach, as 1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6: and to be deacons, Acts vi.
+6, and also in after missions, as Acts xiii. 1-3. 4. The community,
+without officers, may not exercise any act of jurisdiction
+authoritatively and properly; may not admonish, excommunicate, or
+absolve. For we have no precept that they should do it; we have no
+example in all the New Testament that they ever did do it; we have
+both precept and example, that select officers both did and ought
+to do it. "Whatsoever ye bind on earth" (saith Christ to his
+officers) "shall be bound in heaven," &amp;c. Matt. xviii. 18, and
+xvi. 19. "Whose soever sins ye remit," &amp;c., John xx. 21, 23.
+"An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject," Tit. i. 10.
+"I have decreed&mdash;to deliver such an one to Satan," 1 Cor. v.
+4. "The rebuke inflicted by many," not all, 2 Cor. ii. "Whom I have
+delivered to Satan," 1 Tim. i. <i>ult</i>. And the Scriptures
+nowhere set the community over themselves to be their own
+church-guides and governors; but appoint over them in the Lord
+rulers and officers distinct from the community. Compare these
+places, 1 Thes. v. 12; Acts xx. 28, 29; Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22.
+"Salute all them that have the rule over you, and all the saints."
+From the premises we conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first
+subject, or immediate receptacle of the power of the keys from
+Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. III. Jesus Christ hath not given nor promised to
+the community of the faithful a spirit of ministry, nor those gifts
+which are necessary for the government of the church: therefore the
+community was never intended to be the first subject of church
+government.</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whomsoever Christ makes the first subject of the
+power of church government, to them he promises and gives a spirit
+of ministry, and gifts necessary for that government. For, 1. As
+there is diversity of ecclesiastical administrations (which is the
+foundation of diversity of officers) and diversity of miraculous
+operations, and both for the profit of the Church; so there is
+conveyed from the Spirit of Christ diversity of gifts, free
+endowments, enabling and qualifying for the actual discharge of
+those administrations and operations. See 1 Cor. xii. 4-7, &amp;c.
+2. What instance can be given throughout the whole New Testament of
+any persons, whom Christ made the receptacle of church government,
+but withal he gifted them, and made his promises to them, to
+qualify them for such government? As the apostles and their
+successors: "As my Father sent me, even so send I you. And when he
+had said this, he breathed on them, and saith unto them, Receive ye
+the Holy Ghost: whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto
+them; and whose soever sins ye retain, they are retained," John xx.
+21-23. And, "Go ye therefore, and disciple ye all nations,
+&amp;c.&mdash;And lo, I am with you alway," (or every day,) "even
+to the end of the world," Matt. xxviii. 19, 20. 3. Christ being the
+<i>wisdom of the Father</i>, Col. ii. 3, John i. 18, and
+<i>faithful as was Moses in all his house</i>; yea, <i>more
+faithful</i>&mdash;<i>Moses as a servant</i> over another's, he
+<i>as a son over his own house</i>, Heb. iii. 2, 5, 6&mdash;it
+cannot stand with his most exact wisdom and fidelity, to commit the
+grand affairs of church government to such as are not duly gifted,
+and sufficiently qualified by himself for the due discharge
+thereof.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But Christ neither promises, nor gives a spirit of
+ministry, nor necessary gifts for church government to the
+community of the faithful. For, 1. The Scriptures teach, that gifts
+for ministry and government are promised and bestowed not on all,
+but upon some particular persons only in the visible body of
+Christ. "To one is given by the Spirit the word of wisdom, to
+another the word of knowledge," &amp;c., not to all, 1 Cor. xii. 8,
+9, &amp;c. "If a man know not how to rule his own house, how shall
+he take care of the church of God?" 1 Tim. iii. 5. The hypothesis
+insinuates that all men have not gifts and skill rightly to rule
+their own houses, much less to govern the church. 2. Experience
+tells us, that the multitude of the people are generally destitute
+of such knowledge, wisdom, prudence, learning, and other necessary
+qualifications for the right carrying on of church government.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Christ makes not the community of
+the faithful the first subject of the power of church
+government.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. IV. The community of the faithful are nowhere in
+the word called or acknowledged to be church governors: therefore
+they are not the first subject of church government.</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Those persons, who are the first subject and
+receptacle of proper power for church government from Christ, are
+in the word called and acknowledged to be church governors. This is
+evident, 1. By Scripture, which is wont to give to them whom Christ
+intrusts with his government, such names and titles as have rule,
+authority, and government engraven upon them: as <i>overseers</i>,
+Acts xx. 28; <i>governments</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28; <i>rulers</i>, 1
+Tim. v. 17, and Rom. xii. 8; with divers others, as after will
+appear in Chap. XI. 2. By reason, which tells us that government
+and governors are relative terms; and therefore to whom government
+belongs, to them also the denominations of governors, rulers,
+&amp;c., do belong, and not contrariwise.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the community of the faithful are nowhere in
+the word either called or acknowledged to be church governors. This
+is clear. For, 1. No titles or names are given them by Scripture
+which imply any rule or government in the visible Church of Christ.
+2. They are plainly set in opposition against, and distinction
+from, church governors: they are called the <i>flock</i>; these,
+<i>overseers</i> set over them by the Holy Ghost, Acts xx. 28:
+they, <i>the saints</i>; these <i>their rulers</i>, Heb. xiii. 22:
+these are <i>over them in the Lord</i>; and consequently they are
+<i>under them in the Lord</i>, 1 Thes. v. 12. 3. The community of
+the faithful are so far from being the subject of church government
+themselves, that they are expressly charged by the word of Christ
+to <i>know, honor, obey</i>, and <i>submit</i>, to other governors
+set over them, and distinct from themselves. "Know them who are
+over you in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12. "Let the well-ruling elders
+be counted worthy of double honor; especially," &amp;c., 1 Tim. v.
+17. "Obey ye your rulers, and submit, for they watch for your
+souls," Heb. xiii. 17.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the community of the faithful are
+not the first subject and receptacle of proper power for church
+government.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. V. This opinion of making the body of the Church,
+or community of the faithful, the first subject and immediate
+receptacle of the keys for the government of the Church, doth
+inevitably bring along with it many intolerable absurdities.
+Therefore it is not to be granted. Thus we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. That doctrine or opinion which draws after it
+unavoidably divers intolerable absurdities, is an unsound and
+unwarrantable opinion.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole
+community or body of the Church to be the first subject and
+immediate receptacle of the keys, draws after it unavoidable divers
+intolerable absurdities.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore this doctrine or opinion that makes
+the whole community or body of the Church to be the first subject,
+and immediate receptacle of the keys, is an unsound and
+unwarrantable opinion.</p>
+<p>The <i>Major</i> is plain. For, 1. Though matters of religion be
+above reason, yet are they not unreasonable, absurd, and directly
+contrary to right reason. 2. The Scriptures condemn it as a great
+brand upon men, that they are absurd or unreasonable; "Brethren,
+pray for us&mdash;that we may be delivered from absurd and evil
+men," 2 Thes. iii. 2; and therefore if absurd men be so culpable,
+absurdity, and unreasonableness itself, which make them such, are
+much more culpable.</p>
+<p>The <i>Minor</i>, viz. But this doctrine or opinion that makes
+the whole community or body of the Church to be the first subject
+and immediate receptacle of the keys, draws after it unavoidably
+divers intolerable absurdities, will notably appear by an induction
+of particulars.</p>
+<p>1. Hereby a clear foundation is laid for the rigid Brownist's
+confused democracy, and abhorred anarchy. For, if the whole body of
+the people be the first receptacle of the keys, then all church
+government and every act thereof is in the whole body, and every
+member of that body a governor, consequently every member of that
+body an officer. But this is absurd; for if all be officers, where
+is the organical body? and if all be governors, where are the
+governed? if all be eyes, where are the feet? and if there be none
+governed, where is the government? it is wholly resolved at last
+into mere democratical anarchy and confusion, "but God is not the
+author of confusion," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. What an absurdity were it, if
+in the body natural <i>all were an eye</i>, or <i>hand</i>! for
+<i>where</i> then <i>were the hearing, smelling</i>, &amp;c.; <i>or
+if all were one member, where were the body</i>? 1 Cor. xii. 17,19.
+So if in the family all were masters, where were the household?
+where were the family government? If in a city all were aldermen,
+where were the citizens? where were the city government? If in a
+kingdom all were kings, where were the subjects, the people, the
+commonalty, the commonwealth, or the political government?</p>
+<p>2. Hereby the community or whole body of the faithful, even to
+the meanest member, are vested from Christ with full power and
+authority actually to discharge and execute all acts of order and
+jurisdiction without exception: e.g. To preach the word
+authoritatively, dispense the sacraments, ordain their officers,
+admonish offenders, excommunicate the obstinate and incorrigible,
+and absolve the penitent. For <i>the keys of the kingdom of
+heaven</i> comprehend all these acts jointly, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18-20, with John xx. 21, 23: and to whom Christ in the New
+Testament gives power to execute one of these acts, to them he
+gives power to execute all; they are joined together, Matt, xviii.
+19, (except in such cases where himself gives a limitation of the
+power, as in the case of the ruling elder, who is limited to ruling
+as contradistinct to <i>laboring in the word and doctrine</i>, 1
+Tim. v. 17.) Now what gross absurdities ensue hereupon! For, 1.
+Then the weak as well as the strong, the ignorant as well as the
+intelligent, the children as well as the parents, yea, and the very
+women as well as the men, may preach, dispense seals, ordain,
+admonish, excommunicate, absolve authoritatively; (for they are all
+equally members of the body, one as well as another, and therefore,
+as such, have all alike equal share in the keys and exercise
+thereof:) viz. they that are not gifted for these offices, shall
+discharge these offices; they that are not called nor sent of God
+to officiate, (for God sends not all,) shall yet officiate in the
+name of Christ without calling or sending, contrary to Rom. x.,
+Heb. v. 4. They that want the common use of reason and discretion
+(as children) shall have power to join in the highest acts of order
+and jurisdiction: yea, they that are expressly prohibited
+<i>speaking in the churches</i>, as the <i>women</i>, 1 Cor. xiv.,
+1 Tim. ii., shall yet have the <i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>
+hung at their girdles. 2. Then the Church shall be the steward of
+Christ, and dispenser of the mysteries of God authoritatively and
+properly. But if the whole Church be the dispenser of the mysteries
+of God, what shall be the object of this dispensation? Not the
+Church, for according to this opinion she is the first subject
+dispensing; therefore it must be something distinct from the
+Church, unto which the Church dispenseth; what shall this be? shall
+it be another collateral church? then particular churches
+collateral may take pastoral care one of another reciprocally, and
+the same churches be both over and under one another; or shall it
+be those that are without all churches? then the ordinances of the
+gospel, and the dispensation of them, were not principally bestowed
+upon the Church and body of Christ for the good thereof, (which is
+directly repugnant to the Scriptures, Eph. iv. 8, 11-13;) but
+rather for them that are without. How shall the men, who maintain
+the principle's of the Independents, clearly help themselves out of
+these perplexing absurdities?</p>
+<p>3. Hereby the body of the people (as Mr. Bayly well observes in
+his Dissuasive, chap. ix. page 187) will be extremely unfitted for,
+and unwarrantably taken off from the several duties that lie upon
+them in point of conscience to discharge in their general and
+particular callings, in spiritual and secular matters, on the
+Lord's days and on their own days. For, if the ecclesiastical power
+be in all the people, then all the people are judges, and at least
+have a negative voice in all church matters. They cannot judge in
+any cause prudently and conscientiously, till they have complete
+knowledge and information of both the substantials and
+circumstantials of all those cases that are brought before them;
+they must not judge blindly, or by an implicit faith, &amp;c., but
+by their own light. For all the people to have such full
+information and knowledge of every cause, cannot but take up
+abundance of time, (many of the people being slow of understanding
+and extremely disposed to puzzle, distract, and confound one
+another in any business to be transacted in common by them all.) If
+these matters of discipline be managed by them on the sabbath day
+after the dispatch of other public ordinances, ministry of the
+word, prayer, sacraments, &amp;c., what time can remain for family
+duties privately, as repeating sermons, and meditating upon the
+word, searching the Scriptures, whether things preached be so
+indeed, reading the Scriptures, catechizing their children and
+servants, &amp;c.? and how will the life of religion in families,
+yea, and in churches also, languish, if these family exercises be
+not conscientiously upheld? If they be managed on the week days,
+how can all the people spare so much time, as still to be present,
+when perhaps many of them have much ado all the week long to
+provide food and raiment, and other necessaries for their families?
+and "if any provide not for his own, and specially for those of his
+own house, he hath denied the faith, and is worse than an infidel,"
+1 Tim. v. 8. Let the case of the church of Arnheim<a href=
+"#note-39"><small>39</small></a> witness the mischief and absurdity
+of this popular government once for all.</p>
+<p>4. Hereby, finally, the community of the faithful (being
+accounted the proper subject of the power of the keys) have
+authority and power not only to elect, but also to ordain their own
+officers, their pastors and teachers. And this they of the
+independent judgment plainly confess in these words:<a href=
+"#note-40"><small>40</small></a> Though the office of a pastor in
+general be immediately from Christ, and the authority from him
+also, yet the application of this office, and of this authority to
+this elect person, is by the church; and therefore the church hath
+sufficient and just warrant, as to elect and call a presbyter unto
+an office, so to ordain him to it by imposition of hands. They that
+have power to elect a king, have power also to depute some in their
+name to set the crown upon his head. But for the whole church or
+community to ordain presbyters by imposition of hands, is very
+absurd. For, 1. Their women and children, being members of the
+church and of the community, may join in ordaining presbyters by
+imposing of hands, and have as great an influence in appointing
+them that shall actually impose hands, as the rest of the church
+members have, being as properly members as they. 2. Then the
+community, that generally are unable to judge of the fitness and
+sufficiency of presbyters for the pastoral office, in point of
+necessary gifts of learning, &amp;c., shall, without judicious
+satisfaction herein by previous examination, ordain men
+notwithstanding to the highest ordinary office in the church. How
+ignorantly, how doubtfully, how irregularly, how unwarrantably, let
+the reader judge. 3. Then the community of the faithful may assume
+to themselves power to execute this ordinary act of ordination of
+officers, without all precept of Christ or his apostles, and
+without all warrant of the apostolical churches. But how absurd
+these things be, each moderate capacity may conceive. Further
+absurdities hereupon are declared by Mr. Bain,<a href=
+"#note-41"><small>41</small></a> and after him by Mr. Ball.<a href=
+"#note-42"><small>42</small></a></p>
+<p>Whence we may justly conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore this doctrine or opinion, that makes the whole
+community or body of the church to be the first subject and
+immediate receptacle of the keys, is an unsound and unwarrantable
+opinion.</p>
+<p>The middle-way men, (that profess to go between the
+authoritative presbyterial, and the rigid Brownistical way,) seeing
+these and such like absurdities, upon which the Brownists
+inevitably dash themselves, think to salve all by their new-coined
+distinction of the keys; viz. 1. There is a key of faith or
+knowledge,
+Luke xi. 52. The first subject of this key is every believer,
+whether joined to any particular church or not. 2. There is a key
+of order, Col. ii. 5, which is either, 1. A key of interest, power,
+or liberty, Gal. v. 13, which key is of a more large nature; 2. A
+key of rule and authority, which is of more strict nature, Matt.
+xvi. 19, John xx. 23. Hence, upon this distinction premised, they
+thus infer, 1. A particular congregation of saints is the first
+subject of all the church offices with all their spiritual gifts
+and power, 1 Cor. iii. 22. 2. The apostles of Christ were the first
+subject of apostolical power. 3. The brethren of a particular
+congregation are the first subjects of church liberty. 4. The
+elders of a particular church are the first subjects of church
+authority. 5. Both the elders and brethren, walking and joining
+together in truth and peace, are the first subjects of all church
+power needful to be exercised in their own body.</p>
+<p><i>Answer</i>. A rotten foundation, and a tottering
+superstruction, which tumbles down upon the builders' own heads:
+for,</p>
+<p>1. This distribution of the keys is infirm in divers respects:
+e.g. 1. In that the key of knowledge (as it stands here
+distinguished from the key of order, comprehending the key of power
+and authority) is left utterly devoid of all power. Now no key of
+the kingdom of heaven is to be left without all power, Independents
+themselves being judges. 2. In that the key of power is left as
+utterly void of all authority, (being contradistinguished from the
+key of authority,) as the key of knowledge is left void of power.
+Now, power and authority, in matters of government, seem to be both
+one; and the word in the original signifies the one as well as the
+other. 3. The key of liberty or interest is a new key, lately
+forged by some new locksmiths in Separation-shop, to be a pick-lock
+of the power of church officers, and to open the door for popular
+government; no ordinance of Christ, but a mere human invention, (as
+will after appear upon examination of that scripture upon which it
+is grounded,) and therefore this limb of the distribution is
+redundant, a superfluous excrescence. 4. The texts of Scripture
+upon which this distribution of the keys is grounded, are divers of
+them abused, or at least grossly mistaken; for, Luke xi. 52, key of
+knowledge is interpreted only the key of saving faith. But
+knowledge, in strict speaking, is one thing, and faith another;
+there may be knowledge where there is no faith; and knowledge, in a
+sort, is a key to faith, as the inlet thereof. And the key of
+knowledge, viz. true doctrine and pure preaching of the word, is a
+distinct thing from knowledge itself. This key the lawyers had
+taken away by not interpreting, or misinterpreting of the law; but
+they could not take away the people's faith, or knowledge itself.
+Touching Col. ii. 5, 6, <i>your order</i>, it will be hard to prove
+this was only or chiefly intended of the keys delivered to Peter:
+doth it not rather denote the people's moral orderly walking,
+according to the rule of faith and life, as in other duties, so in
+submitting themselves to Christ's order of government, as is
+elsewhere required, Heb. xiii. 17? And as for Gal. v. 13, produced
+to prove the key of liberty, <i>Brethren, you have been called unto
+liberty</i>, there is too much liberty taken in wresting this text;
+for the apostle here speaks not of liberty as a church power, of
+choosing officers, joining in censures, &amp;c., but as a gospel
+privilege, consisting in freedom from the ceremonial law, that yoke
+of bondage, which false teachers would have imposed upon them,
+after Christ had broken it off; as will further appear, if you
+please with this text to compare Gal. v. 1, 11, 15, 10, and well
+consider the current of the whole context.</p>
+<p>2. The inferences upon this distribution of the keys premised,
+are very strange and untheological. For it may be accepted in
+general, that it is a groundless fancy to make several first
+subjects of the keys, according to the several distributions of the
+keys; for, had all the members of the distribution been good, yet
+this inference thereupon is naught, inasmuch as the Scripture tells
+us plainly, that all the keys together and at once were promised to
+Peter, Matt. xvi. 19, and given to the apostles, Matt, xviii. 18,
+19, with xxviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21-23; so that originally the
+apostles and their successors were the only first subject and
+immediate receptacle of all the keys from Christ. And though since,
+for assistance and case of the pastor, they are divided into more
+hands&mdash;viz. of the ruling elder, Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28;
+1 Tim. v. 17&mdash;yet originally the subject was but one. Further,
+here is just ground for many particular exceptions: as, 1. That
+every believer, whether joined to any particular church or not, is
+made the first subject of the key of knowledge, which seems to be
+extremely absurd: for then every particular believer, gifted or
+ungifted, strong or weak, man, woman, or child, hath power to
+preach, (taking the key of knowledge here for the key of doctrine,
+as it ought to be taken, or else it is no ecclesiastical key at
+all,) which is one of the highest offices, and which the great
+apostle said, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2 Cor. ii. 16.
+How unscriptural and irrational this is, all may judge. Then also
+some of the keys may be committed to such as are without the
+Church. Then finally, it is possible to be a believer, and yet in
+no visible church; (for Independents hold there is no church but a
+particular congregation, which is their only church:) but a man is
+no sooner a true believer, but he is a member of the invisible
+Church: he is no sooner a professed believer, but he is a member of
+the general visible Church, though he be joined to no particular
+congregation. 2. That a particular congregation of saints is made
+the first subject of all the church offices, with all their
+spiritual gifts and power, 1 Cor. iii. 22. But is the word subject
+used here properly, for the first subject recipient of all church
+offices, with all their gifts and power? Then the congregation of
+saints are either officers themselves formally, and can execute the
+function of all sorts of officers, and have all gifts to that end;
+what need then is there of any select officers? for they can make
+officers virtually, and furnish those officers with gifts and power
+to that end; but who gave them any such authority? Or what
+apostolical church ever assumed to themselves any such thing?
+Officers, not churches, are the first subject of such gifts and
+power. Is the word subject here used improperly, for object, whose
+good all offices with their gifts and power are given? Then not any
+particular congregation, but the whole general visible Church is
+the object for which all offices and officers with their gifts and
+power are primarily given, 1 Cor. xii. 28; Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12. As
+for that place, 1 Cor. iii. 22, "All is yours," &amp;c., it points
+not out the particular privilege of any one single congregation,
+(nor was the church of Corinth such, but presbyterial, see chap.
+XIII.,) but the general privilege of all true saints, and of the
+invisible mystical Church: for were Paul and Cephas apostles given
+peculiarly to the church of Corinth only? Or was the <i>world,
+life, death, things present and to come</i>, given to the wicked in
+the church of Corinth? 3. That the apostles are made the first
+subject of all apostolical power. But then, how doth this
+contradict the former assertion, that a particular congregation is
+the first subject of all offices with their gifts and power? Are
+there two first subjects of the same adjuncts? Or is apostleship no
+office? Are apostolical gifts no gifts, or power no power? or have
+apostles all from the Church? Doubtless apostles were before all
+Christian churches, and had the keys given them before the churches
+had their being. 4. That the brethren of a particular congregation
+are made the first subjects of church liberty. But, if that liberty
+be power and authority, then this evidently contradicts the former,
+that a particular congregation is the first subject of all offices
+and power; for brethren here are distinct from elders, and both do
+but make up a particular congregation. If liberty here be not
+power, then it is none of Christ's keys, but a new forged
+pick-lock. 5. That the elders of a particular church are made the
+first subject of church authority; but then here is a contradiction
+to the former position, that made the particular congregation the
+first subject of all power. And though apostles and elders be the
+first subject of authority, yet, when the keys were first committed
+to them, they were not in relation to any particular church, but to
+the general. 6. Finally, that both elders and brethren, walking and
+joining together in truth and peace, are the first subjects of all
+church power, is liable also to exception. For this joins the
+brethren (who indeed have no authoritative power at all) with the
+elders, as the joint subject of all power. And this but allowed to
+them walking and joining together in truth and peace: but what if
+the major part of the Church prove heretical, and so walk not in
+truth; or schismatical, and so walk not in peace, shall the elders
+and the non-offending party lose all their power? Where then shall
+that independent church find healing? for appeals to presbyteries
+and synods are counted apocryphal by them. But enough hath been
+said to detect the vanity of these new dreams and notions; it is a
+bad sore that must be wrapped in so many clouts.<a href=
+"#note-43"><small>43</small></a></p>
+<a name="2HCH0018"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XI.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the proper Receptacle, or immediate subject of the Power
+of Church Government: affirmatively, what it is, viz. Christ's own
+Officers.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus the proper receptacle or subject of ecclesiastical power
+hath been considered negatively, what it is not, viz: not the
+political magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or
+body of the people, with or without their eldership. Now this
+receptacle of power comes to be evidenced affirmatively, what it
+is, viz. (according to the express words of the description of
+government,) Christ's own officers. This is the last branch of the
+description, the divine right whereof remains to be cleared; which
+may most satisfactorily be done by evidencing these three things,
+viz: 1. That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath certain peculiar church
+guides and officers which he hath erected in his Church. 2. That
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath especially intrusted his own
+officers with the government of his Church. 3. How, or in what
+sense the ruling officers are intrusted with this government,
+severally or jointly?</p>
+
+<h3>SECTION I.</h3>
+<p>1. <i>Of the Divine Right of Christ's Church Officers, viz.
+Pastors and Teachers, with Ruling Elders.</i></p>
+<p>Touching the first, that Christ hath certain peculiar church
+guides and officers, which he hath erected in his Church. Take it
+thus:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath ordained and set in his Church
+(besides the apostles and other extraordinary officers that are now
+ceased) pastors and teachers, as also ruling elders, as the subject
+of the keys for all ordinary ecclesiastical administrations. The
+divine right of these ordinary church officers may appear as
+followeth:</p>
+<p>I. Pastors and teachers are the ordinance of Jesus Christ. This
+is generally granted on all sides; and therefore these few
+particulars may suffice for the demonstration of it, viz:</p>
+<p>1. They are enumerated in the list or catalogue of those church
+officers which are of divine institution. "God hath set" (or put,
+constituted) "some in the Church, first, apostles; secondarily,
+prophets; thirdly, teachers," 1 Cor. xii. 28. These are some of the
+triumphant gifts and trophies of Christ's ascension: "Ascending up
+on high, he led captivity captive, and gave gifts to men: and he
+gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some evangelists, and
+some pastors and teachers," Eph. iv. 8, 11. Thus in that exact roll
+of ordinary officers: "Having, therefore, gifts different according
+to the grace given unto us; whether prophecy, let us prophesy
+according to the proportion of faith; or ministry, let us wait on
+our ministry;" (here is the general distribution of all ordinary
+officers under two heads, <i>prophecy</i> and <i>ministry</i>:) "or
+he that teacheth, on teaching; or he that exhorteth, on
+exhortation," (here is the teacher and the pastor, that come under
+the first head of prophecy,) Rom. xii. 6-8. "Take heed to
+yourselves, and to all the flock, over which the Holy Ghost hath
+made" (or set) "you overseers," Acts xx. 28. Note&mdash;God hath
+set in the Church; Christ hath given for his body; the Holy Ghost
+hath made overseers over the flock, these pastors and teachers: and
+are not pastors and teachers church officers by divine right,
+having the authority of God, Christ, and of the Holy Ghost?</p>
+<p>2. They are to be thus and thus qualified according to divine
+direction. The qualifications of these pastors and teachers,
+(called presbyters and overseers,) see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, "An
+overseer," or bishop, "must be blameless," &amp;c.; and Tit. i.
+5-10, "To ordain presbyters," or elders, "in every city&mdash;If
+any be blameless," &amp;c. Now, where God lays down qualifications
+for pastors and teachers, there he approves such officers to be his
+own ordinance.</p>
+<p>3. They have manifold church employments committed to them from
+Christ, as ministers of Christ and stewards of the mysteries of
+God, (1 Cor. iv. 1, 2,) they being intrusted in whole or in part
+with the managing of most if not all the ordinances forementioned
+in part 2, chap. VII., as there by the texts alleged is evident.
+Matters of order and special office are committed to them only
+<i>divisim</i>: matters of jurisdiction are committed to them with
+ruling elders <i>conjunctim</i>. If Christ hath intrusted them thus
+with church ordinances, and the dispensing of them, sure they are
+Christ's church officers.</p>
+<p>4. The very names and titles given them in Scripture proclaim
+them to be Christ's own ordinance; among many take these:
+"Ministers of Christ," 1 Cor. iv. 1; "Stewards of the mysteries of
+God," 1 Cor. iv. 1; "Ambassadors for Christ," 2 Cor. v. 20;
+"Laborers thrust forth into his harvest by the Lord of the
+harvest," Matt. ix. 38; "Ruling over you in the Lord,"<a href=
+"#note-44"><small>44</small></a> 1 Thess. v. 12.</p>
+<p>5. The Lord Christ charges their flock and people with many
+duties to be performed to their pastors and teachers, because of
+their office; as to know them, love them, obey them, submit unto
+them, honor them, maintain them, &amp;c., which he would not do
+were they not his own ordinance. "But we beseech you, brethren, to
+know them that labor among you, and rule over you in the Lord, and
+esteem them very highly in love for their work's sake," 1 Thess. v.
+12, 13. "Obey your rulers, and submit; for they watch for your
+souls as those that must give an account," Heb. xiii. 17. "The
+elders that rule well count worthy of double honor; especially them
+that labor in the word and doctrine; <i>for the Scripture
+saith</i>, Thou shalt not muzzle the mouth of the ox that treadeth
+out the corn, and the laborer is worthy of his hire," 1 Tim. v. 17,
+18; compared With 1 Cor. ix. 6-15. "Let him that is catechized,
+communicate to him that catechizeth him in all good things," Gal.
+vi. 6-8.</p>
+<p>Thus much for the present may suffice to have been spoken
+touching the divine right of pastors and teachers, the ordinary
+standing ministers of Christ under the New Testament. But forasmuch
+as we observe that in these days some rigid Erastians and Seekers
+oppose and deny the very office of the ministry now under the
+gospel, and others profess that the ministry of the church of
+England is false and antichristian; we intend, (by God's
+assistance,) as soon as we can rid our hands from other pressing
+employments, to endeavor the asserting and vindicating of the
+divine right of the ministers of the New Testament in general, and
+of the truth of the ministry of the church of England in
+particular.</p>
+<p>II. Ruling elders, distinct from all preaching elders and
+deacons, are a divine ordinance in the Church of God now under the
+New Testament.</p>
+<p>The divine right of this church officer, the mere ruling elder,
+is much questioned and doubted by some, because they find not the
+Scriptures speaking so fully and clearly of the ruling elder as of
+the preaching elder and of the deacon. By others it is flatly
+denied and opposed, as by divers that adhere too tenaciously to the
+Erastian and prelatical principles: who yet are willing to account
+the assistance of the ruling elder in matter of church government
+to be a very prudential way. But if mere prudence be counted once a
+sufficient foundation for a distinct kind of church officer, we
+shall open a door for invention of church officers at pleasure;
+then welcome commissioners and committee men, &amp;c.; yea, then
+let us return to the vomit, and resume prelates, deans,
+archdeacons, chancellors, officials, &amp;c., for church officers.
+And where shall we stop? who but Christ Jesus himself can establish
+new officers in his church? Is it not the fruit of his ascension,
+&amp;c.? Eph. iv. 7, 11, 12. Certainly if the Scriptures lay not
+before us grounds more than prudential for the ruling elder, it
+were better never to have mere ruling elders in the church. Both
+the Presbyterians and Independents<a href=
+"#note-45"><small>45</small></a> acknowledge the divine right of
+the ruling elder. For satisfaction of doubting unprejudiced minds,
+(to omit divers considerations that might be produced,) the divine
+right of the ruling elder may be evinced by these ensuing
+arguments.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. I. The first argument for the divine right of the
+ruling elder in the Church of Christ, shall be drawn from Rom. xii.
+6-8: "Having, then, gifts differing according to the grace that is
+given to us, whether prophecy, let us prophesy according to the
+proportion of faith; or ministry, <i>let us wait</i> on our
+ministering; or he that teacheth, on teaching; or he that
+exhorteth, on exhortation; he that giveth, <i>let him do it</i>
+with simplicity; he that ruleth, with diligence," &amp;c. Let the
+scope and context of this chapter be a little viewed, and it will
+make way for the more clear arguing from this place. Briefly thus:
+The apostle having finished the principal part of his epistle,
+which was problematical, wherein he disputed&mdash;1. About
+justification, chap, i.-vi.; 2. Sanctification, chap. vi. 7, 8;
+and, 3. Predestination, chap. ix. 10, 11, he comes to the next
+branch, which is more practical, about good works, chap. xii.-xvi.
+This twelfth chapter is wholly in the way of exhortation, and he
+herein exhorts to divers duties. 1. More generally that we should
+even consecrate ourselves wholly to the service of God, ver. 1;
+that we should not conform to the world, ver. 2. More specially he
+descends to particular duties, which are of two sorts, viz: 1. Such
+as concern ecclesiastical officers as officers, ver. 3-9; 2. Such
+as concern all Christians in common as Christians, both towards one
+another and towards their very enemies, verse 9, to the end of the
+chapter. Touching ecclesiastical officers, the apostle's evident
+scope is to urge them not to be proud of their spiritual gifts,
+(which in those days abounded,) but to think soberly,
+self-denyingly of themselves, and to use all their gifts well. This
+he presseth upon them, 1. From the nature of the Church, which is
+as a natural organical body, wherein are many members, having their
+several offices for the good of the whole body; so the members of
+Christ's body being many, have their several gifts and offices for
+the good of the whole, that the superior should not despise the
+inferior, nor the inferior envy their superior, ver. 3-5. 2. From
+the distribution or enumeration of the several kinds of ordinary
+standing officers in this organical body, the Church, who are
+severally exhorted duly to discharge those duties that are
+specially required of them in their several functions, ver. 6-8.
+These officers are reduced first to two general heads, viz:
+Prophecy (understand not the extraordinary gift of foretelling
+future things, &amp;c., but the ordinary, in the right
+understanding and interpreting of Scripture) and ministry; and the
+general duties thereof are annexed, ver. 6, 7. Then these generals
+are subdivided into the special offices contained under them, the
+special duty of every officer being severally pressed upon them.
+Under prophecy are contained, 1. <i>He that teacheth</i>, i.e., the
+doctor or teacher; 2. <i>He that exhorteth</i>, i.e., the pastor,
+ver. 7, 8. Under ministry are comprised, 1. <i>He that giveth</i>,
+i.e., the deacon; 2. <i>He that ruleth</i>, i.e., the ruling elder.
+The current of our best interpreters to this effect resolve this
+context. So that here we have a very excellent and perfect
+enumeration of all the ordinary standing officers in the Church of
+Christ distinctly laid down. This premised, the argument for the
+divine right of the ruling elder may be thus propounded:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever members of Christ's organical body have
+an ordinary office of ruling therein given them of God, distinct
+from all other ordinary standing officers in the church, together
+with directions from God how they are to rule; they are the ruling
+elders we seek, and that by divine right.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But <i>he that ruleth</i>, mentioned in Rom. xii.
+8, is a member of Christ's organical body, having an ordinary
+office of ruling therein given him of God, distinct from all other
+standing officers in the church, together with direction how he is
+to rule.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom.
+xii. 8, is the ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.</p>
+<p>The major proposition is clear. For in the particulars of it,
+well compared together, are observable both a plain delineation or
+description of the ruling elder's office; and also a firm
+foundation for the divine right of that office. The ruling elder's
+office is described and delineated by these several clauses, which
+set out so many requisites for the making up of a ruling elder,
+viz: 1. He must be a member of Christ's organical body. Such as are
+without, pagans, heathens, infidels, &amp;c., out of the Church,
+they are not fit objects for church government, to have it
+exercised by the Church upon them; the Church only judges them that
+are within, (1 Cor. v. 12, 13,) much less can they be fit subjects
+of church government to exercise it themselves within the Church.
+How shall they be officers in the Church that are not so much as
+members of the Church? Besides, such as are only members of the
+invisible body of Christ, as the glorified saints in heaven, they
+cannot be officers in the Church; for not the Church invisible, but
+only the Church or body of Christ visible is organical. So that
+every church officer must first be a Church member, a member of the
+visible organical body: consequently a ruling elder must be such a
+member. 2. He must have an office of ruling in this body of Christ.
+Membership is not enough, unless that power of rule be superadded
+thereto; for the whole office of the ruling elder is contained in
+the matter of rule; take away rule, you destroy the very office.
+Now, rule belongs not to every member: "Salute all them that have
+the rule over you, and all the saints," Heb. xiii. 24, where rulers
+and saints are made contradistinct to one another. In the body
+natural all the members are not eyes, hands, &amp;c., governing the
+body, some are rather governed; so in the body of Christ, 1 Cor.
+xii. 3. This his office of ruling must be an ordinary office;
+apostles had some power that was extraordinary, as their
+apostleship was extraordinary; but when we seek for this ruling
+elder, we seek for a fixed, standing, ordinary officer ruling in
+the church. 4. All that is not enough, that he be a member of the
+church, that he have an office of rule in the church, and that
+office also be ordinary; but besides all these it is necessary that
+he be also distinct from all other standing officers in the church,
+viz. from pastors, teachers, deacons; else all the former will not
+make up a peculiar kind of officer, if in all points he fully agree
+with any of the said three. But if there can be found such an
+officer in whom all these four requisites do meet, viz: That, 1. Is
+a member of Christ's organical body; 2. Hath an office of rule
+therein; 3, That office is ordinary; and, 4. That ordinary office
+is distinct from all other ordinary standing offices in the church;
+this must unavoidably be that very ruling elder which we inquire
+after. By this it is evident, that in this proposition here is a
+plain and clear delineation of the ruling elder's office. Now, in
+the next place, touching the foundation for the divine right of
+this office; it also is notably expressed in the same proposition,
+while it presupposeth, 1. That God is the giver of this office; 2.
+That God is the guider of this office. For whatsoever office or
+officer God gives for his Church, and having given it, guides and
+directs to the right discharge thereof, that must needs be of
+divine right beyond all contradiction. Thus this proposition is
+firm and cogent. Now let us assume:</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But <i>he that ruleth</i>, mentioned in Rom. xii.
+8, is a member of Christ's organical body, having an ordinary
+office of ruling therein, given him of God, distinct from all other
+ordinary standing officers in the church, together with direction
+from God how he is to rule.</p>
+<p>This assumption or minor proposition (whereon the main stress of
+the argument doth lie) may be thus evidenced by parts, from this
+context:</p>
+<p><i>He that ruleth</i> is a member of Christ's organical body.
+For, 1. The Church of Christ is here compared to a body, <i>We
+being many are one body in Christ</i>, ver. 5. 2. This body is
+declared to be organical, i.e. consisting of several members, that
+have their several offices in the body, some of teaching, some of
+exhorting, and some of ruling, &amp;c. "For as we have many members
+in one body, and all members have not the same office, so we being
+many are one body in Christ, and every one members one of another,"
+&amp;c., ver. 4-6, &amp;c. 3. Among the rest of the members of this
+body, <i>he that ruleth</i> is reckoned up for one, ver. 5-8; this
+is palpably evident.</p>
+<p><i>He that ruleth</i> hath an office of ruling in this body of
+Christ. For, 1. This word (translated) <i>he that ruleth</i>, in
+the proper signification and use of it, both in the Scriptures and
+in other Greek authors, doth signify one that ruleth
+authoritatively over another, (as hereafter is manifested in the 3d
+argument, &sect; 2.) 2. Our best interpreters and commentators do
+render and expound the word generally to this effect: e.g. He that
+is over<a href="#note-46"><small>46</small></a>&mdash;one set
+over<a href="#note-47"><small>47</small></a>&mdash;he that stands
+in the head or front<a href=
+"#note-48"><small>48</small></a>&mdash;as a captain or commander in
+the army, to which this phrase seems to allude&mdash;<i>he that
+ruleth</i>. 3. This word, wherever it is used in a genuine proper
+sense, in all the New Testament, notes rule, or government. It is
+used metaphorically for taking care (as one set over any business)
+of good works, only in two places, Tit. iii. 8, and iii. 14.
+Properly for government which superiors have over inferiors; and
+that either domestical, in private families, so it is used in 1
+Tim. iii. 4, 5, 12, or ecclesiastical, in the church, which is the
+public family of God; in this sense it is used, 1 Thes. v. 12, 1
+Tim. v. 17, and here, Rom. xii. 8, and these are all the places
+where this word is found used in all the New Testament.</p>
+<p>3. <i>He that ruleth</i> here, hath an ordinary, not an
+extraordinary office of rule in the church. For he is ranked and
+reckoned up in the list of Christ's ordinary standing officers,
+that are constantly to continue in the church, viz. pastors,
+teachers, deacons. Commonly this place is interpreted to speak of
+the ordinary church officers, and none other; consequently he that
+ruleth is such a one.</p>
+<p>4. <i>He that ruleth</i> here, is an officer distinct from all
+other ordinary officers in the Church of Christ. For in this place
+we have a full enumeration of all Christ's ordinary officers, and
+he that ruleth is a distinct officer among them all. 1. Distinct in
+name, he only is called <i>he that ruleth</i>, the rest have every
+one of them their several distinct name, ver. 7, 8. 2. Distinct in
+his work here appropriated to him; the doctor teacheth; the pastor
+exhorteth; the deacon giveth; this elder <i>ruleth</i>, as the very
+name signifieth, ver. 8. Compare 1 Tim. v. 17, 1 Cor. xii. 28. As
+the elder ruleth, so he is distinct from the deacon that hath no
+rule in the church; and as he only rules, so he is distinct from
+both pastor and teacher, that both teach, exhort, and rule; they
+both have power of order and jurisdiction, the ruling elder hath
+only power of jurisdiction. 3. Finally, he is distinct among and
+from them all in the particular direction here given these officers
+about the right discharge of their functions. The teacher must be
+exercised <i>in teaching</i>; the pastor <i>in exhortation</i>; the
+deacon must <i>give with singleness</i>; and the elder, he must
+<i>rule with diligence, studiousness</i>, &amp;c. Now what other
+solid reason can be imagined, why <i>he that ruleth</i> should here
+have a distinct name, distinct work and employment, and distinct
+direction how to manage this work, than this, that the Holy Ghost
+might set him out unto us as an ordinary officer in the church,
+distinct from all the other standing officers here enumerated?</p>
+<p>5. God himself is the author and giver of this office of him
+that ruleth, as well as of all the other offices here mentioned.
+For, 1. All gifts and endowments in the church in general, and in
+every member in particular; they are from God, it is he that gives
+and divides them as he will, <i>as God hath dealt to every one the
+measure of faith</i>, Rom. xii. 3. 2. All the special offices, and
+gifts for these offices in special, are also from the same God,
+<i>we having therefore gifts according to the grace given unto us,
+differing; whether prophecy</i>, &amp;c., Rom, xii. 6, 7, &amp;c.
+Here it is plain that he distinguished betwixt grace and gifts. By
+grace here we are to understand that holy office or charge in the
+church, which is given to any man by the grace and favor of God.
+And in this sense the apostle in this very chapter, ver. 3, useth
+the word <i>grace: For I say through the grace given to me</i>,
+i.e. through the authority of my apostleship, which by grace I have
+received, &amp;c. By gifts, we are to understand those endowments
+wherewith God hath freely furnished his officers in the church for
+their several offices. Now both these gifts and this grace, both
+the endowments and the office, are originally from God, his grace
+is the fountain of them; and both the grace of each office, and the
+gifts for such office, relate to all these ordinary offices here
+enumerated, as is evident by the current and connection of the
+whole context, see ver. 6-8; consequently the grace, i.e. the
+office of ruling, which is of divine grace, and the gifts for that
+office, arise from the same fountain, God himself.</p>
+<p>6. Finally, God himself is the guider and director of him that
+ruleth, here prescribing to him how he is to rule, viz. <i>with
+diligence, with studiousness</i>, &amp;c., ver. 8. Now we may
+receive this as a maxim, That of divine right may be done, for
+which God gives his divine rule how it is to be done: and that
+office must needs be of divine right, which God himself so far
+approves as to direct in his word how it shall be discharged.</p>
+<p>Now, to sum up all, he that ruleth here, 1. Is a member of
+Christ's organical body. 2. Hath an office of ruling in this body.
+3. This his office is not extraordinary but ordinary, standing, and
+perpetual. 4. He is an officer distinct from all other ordinary
+officers in the Church. 5. God himself is the giver and author of
+this office. 6. And God himself is the guider and director of this
+office: and then see if we may not clearly conclude,</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore, he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom.
+xii. 8, is the ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.</p>
+<p>The adversaries of ruling elders muster up divers exceptions
+against the alleging of Rom. xii. 8, for proof of the divine right
+of their office, the weakness of which is to be discovered ere we
+pass to another argument. <i>Except</i>. 1. This is an arguing from
+a general to a special affirmatively. It doth not follow, because
+the apostle here in general mentioneth him that ruleth, therefore
+in special it must be the ruling elder.<a href=
+"#note-49"><small>49</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. This exception is the same with first exception
+against the second argument hereafter laid down. There see. For the
+same answer appositely and satisfactorily is applicable to
+both.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 2. But the apostle here speaks of them that rule,
+but we have nowhere received that such elders have rule over the
+church&mdash;and he speaks of all that rule in the church, who
+therefore would wrest this place only to elders? One cannot rightly
+attribute that word translated <i>he that ruleth</i> to elders
+only, which is common unto more. If these elders he here meant,
+neither pastors nor teachers ought to rule, for this word agrees no
+otherwise to him that ruleth, than the word of exhorting to him
+that exhorteth.<a href="#note-50"><small>50</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. That such elders rule in the church is evident,
+both by Rom. xii. 8, where this word implies rule as hath been
+showed, and he that ruleth is reckoned up amongst ordinary church
+officers, as hath been said, therefore he rules in the church:
+these the apostle also calls ruling elders, 1 Tim. v. 17, viz.
+officers in the church, and distinct from them that labor in the
+word and doctrine; as in the third argument will appear: yea, they
+are governments set of God in the church, distinct from other
+officers, 1 Cor. xii. 28, as in the second argument shall be
+evidenced: there see; therefore these elders have rule.</p>
+<p>2. Though in this term the apostle speaks of him that ruleth,
+yet he speaks not of every one that ruleth. For, 1. He speaks
+singularly, he that ruleth, as of one kind of ruling officer; not
+plurally, they that rule, as if he had indefinitely or universally
+meant all the ruling officers in the church. 2. He reckons up here
+distinct kinds of ordinary officers, pastors, teachers, elders, and
+deacons; and pastors and teachers, besides laboring in the word,
+have power of rule, 1 Thes. v. 12, Heb. xiii. 7-17, and he that
+ruleth, here, is distinct from them both; and therefore this term
+cannot mean all church rulers, but only one kind, viz. the ruling
+elder.</p>
+<p>3. Though this name, <i>he that ruleth</i>, be common unto more
+rulers in the church, than to the mere ruling elder; yet it doth
+not therefore necessarily follow, that it cannot here particularly
+point out only the mere ruling elder, inasmuch, as <i>he that
+ruleth</i>, is not here set alone, (for then this objection might
+have had some color,) but is enumerated with other officers as
+distinct from them.</p>
+<p>4. Though the ruling elder here be called <i>he that ruleth</i>,
+yet this doth not exclude the pastor from ruling, no more than when
+the ordinary ministers are called pastors and teachers, the
+apostles and evangelists are excluded from feeding and teaching, in
+Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28. This elder is called, <i>he that
+ruleth</i>, not that there is no other ruler than he, but because
+he doth no other thing but rule, others rule and preach also.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 3. If this were meant of such elders, then these
+elders were as necessary to the church as pastors, being given to
+the church by the like reason. Consequently where these elders are
+not, there is no church; as there is no church where the word and
+sacraments are not.<a href="#note-51"><small>51</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. According to this argument deacons are as
+necessary as either pastors, teachers, or elders, and without
+deacons there should be no church; for they are all enumerated here
+alike, Rom. xii. 7, 8, and in 1 Cor. xii. 28; but this would be
+absurd, and against experience. 2. Though both pastors and ruling
+elders belong to the church by divine right, yet doth it not follow
+that the ruling elder is equally as necessary as the pastor. The
+ruling elder only rules, the pastor both rules and preaches,
+therefore he is more necessary to the church. There are degrees of
+necessity; some things are absolutely necessary to the being of a
+church, as matter and form, viz. visible saints, and a due
+profession of faith, and obedience to Christ, according to the
+gospel. Thus it is possible a church may be, and yet want both
+deacons, elders, and pastors too, yea, and word and sacraments for
+a time: some things are only respectively necessary to the
+well-being of a church; thus officers are necessary, yet some more
+than others, without which the church is lame, defective, and
+miserably imperfect.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 4. Should ruling elders here be meant, then
+deacons that obey, should be preferred before the elders that
+rule.<a href="#note-52"><small>52</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Priority of order is no infallible argument of
+priority of worth and dignity; as is evidenced in answer to the
+third exception against Arg. II.&mdash;there see; we find Priscilla
+a woman named before Aquila a man, and her husband, Acts xviii. 18;
+Rom. xvi. 3; 1 Tim. iv. 19; is therefore the woman preferred before
+the man? the wife before the husband? And again, Aquila is set
+before Priscilla, Acts xviii. 2, 26, 1 Cor. xvi. 19, to let us see
+that the Holy Ghost indifferently speaks of superior and inferior
+before one another.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 5. But here the apostle speaketh of divers gifts
+and graces, for so <i>differing gifts</i> do import, not of divers
+offices: for then they might not concur in one man, and
+consequently neither might the prophet teach, nor exhort, nor the
+deacon distribute, nor show mercy. Many gifts may be common in one
+man, many offices cannot;&mdash;which of these gifts in the
+apostles' times was not common as well to the people as to the
+pastors; and to women as well as to men? &amp;c.<a href=
+"#note-53"><small>53</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Divers considerations may be propounded to discover
+the vanity of this exception: chiefly take these three.</p>
+<p>1. There is no sufficient reason in this exception, proving the
+apostle here to speak only of divers gifts and graces, and not of
+divers offices also. For, 1. This is not proved by that expression,
+<i>differing gifts</i>, ver. 6, for these differing gifts are not
+here spoken of abstractly and absolutely, without reference to
+their subjects, but relatively with reference to their subjects
+wherein they are, viz. in the several officers, ver. 7, 8, and
+therefore, as the apostle mentions the <i>differing gifts</i>, so
+here he tells us in the same sixth verse, that we have these
+"different gifts, according to the grace given unto us," i.e.
+according to the office given unto us of God's grace, (as hath been
+manifested,) after which immediately is subjoined an enumeration of
+offices. 2. Nor is this proved by the inference made, upon the
+granting that divers offices are here meant, viz. [Then they might
+not concur in one man, the prophet might not teach nor exhort,
+&amp;c.; many gifts may be common in one man, many offices cannot.]
+For who is so little versed in the Scriptures, but he knows that
+apostles, pastors, elders, deacons, are distinct officers one from
+another; yet all the inferior offices are virtually comprehended in
+the superior, and may be discharged by them: elders may distribute
+as well as deacons; and beyond them, rule: pastors may distribute
+and rule as well as deacons and elders, and beyond both preach,
+dispense sacraments, and ordain ministers. Apostles may do there
+all, and many things besides extraordinary. Much more may the
+prophet teach and exhort, and the deacon distribute and show mercy;
+these being the proper acts of their office. 3. Nor, finally, is
+this proved by that suggestion, that all these gifts in the
+apostles' times were common to all sorts and sexes, women as well
+as men; as he after takes much pains to prove, but to very little
+purpose. For not only in the apostles' times, but in our times
+also, all Christians may teach, exhort, distribute, show mercy,
+&amp;c., privately, occasionally, by bond of charity, and law of
+fraternity towards one another mutually: but may not teach, exhort,
+rule, distribute, &amp;c., authoritatively by virtue of their
+office, so as to give themselves wholly to such employments, which
+is the thing here intended; yet it is worth observing how far
+Bilson was transported against ruling elders, that rather than
+yield to their office, he will make all these gifts common to all
+sorts and sexes, men and women. This is new divinity; all sorts and
+sexes may both preach and rule. Let Bilson have the credit of
+symbolizing with the Separatists, if not of transcending them.</p>
+<p>2. Here is good ground in the context to make us think that the
+apostle here spoke of distinct church officers, and not only of
+distinct gifts. For, 1. In the similitude of a natural body
+(whereunto here the church is compared) he speaks of distinct
+members, having distinct offices, ver. 4. "For as we have many
+members in one body, and all members have not the same office." 2.
+In his accommodation of this similitude, he speaks not only of
+gifts, but also of offices according to which these gifts are
+given, which he calls <i>grace</i>, ver. 6, (as was noted.). This
+grace given, or this office given of grace, is branched out, first,
+into two general heads, viz. <i>prophecy</i> and <i>ministry</i>,
+ver. 6, 7. Then these generals are subdivided into the special
+offices contained under them, viz.: Under prophecy the teacher,
+<i>he that teacheth</i>; and the pastor, <i>he that exhorteth</i>;
+under ministry the deacon, <i>he that distributeth</i>; and the
+ruling elder, <i>he that ruleth</i>. Now there is in the text just
+ground for this resolution of the text, in making prophecy and
+ministry generals, and all the rest special kinds of officers;
+forasmuch as prophecy and ministry are expressed abstractly,
+<i>whether prophecy</i>, (not, whether we are prophets;) <i>whether
+ministry</i>, (not, whether we are deacons, ministers:) and both
+prophecy and ministry are put in the accusative case; and both of
+them have relation, and are joined unto the participle of the
+plural number <i>having</i>, intimating that divers do share in
+prophecy, pastor and teacher; divers in ministry, deacon and ruling
+elder. But all the other are expressed concretely, and in the
+nominative case, and in the singular number, and to every of them
+the single article is prefixed, translated He&mdash;<i>He that
+teacheth&mdash;He that exhorteth&mdash;He that giveth&mdash;He that
+ruleth</i>. Hence we have great cause to count prophecy and
+ministry as generals; all the rest as special offices under
+them.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. The second argument for the divine right of
+the ruling elder shall be grounded upon 1 Cor. xii. 28: "And God
+hath set some in the church, first, apostles, secondly, prophets,
+thirdly, teachers, afterwards powers, then gifts of healing, helps,
+governments, kinds of tongue." God, in the first founding of
+Christianity and of the primitive churches, bestowed many eminent
+gifts upon divers Christians; the church of Corinth greatly
+excelled in such gifts, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Hence their members gifted,
+grew spiritually proud, and despised their brethren; to correct
+which abuse of gifts, and direct them to the right use thereof for
+the common profit of all, is the chief scope of this chapter, see
+verse 7, "The manifestation of the Spirit is given to every man to
+profit withal." For, 1. All their gifts flow from one and the same
+fountain, the Spirit of God, therefore should be improved for the
+common good of all, especially considering no one man hath all
+gifts, but several men have several gifts, that all might be
+beholden to one another, ver. 8-11. 2. The whole Church of Christ
+throughout all the world is but one body, and that body organical,
+having several members therein placed for several uses, as eyes,
+hands, &amp;c., wherein the meanest members are useful and
+necessary to the highest: therefore all members should harmoniously
+lay out their gifts for the good of the whole body, without jars or
+divisions, ver. 12-28. 3. All the several officers, whether
+extraordinary or ordinary, though furnished with several gifts and
+several administrations, yet are placed by one and the same God, in
+one and the same general Church; and therefore should all level at
+the benefit of the whole church, without pride, animosities,
+divisions, &amp;c., ver. 28, to the end. These things being briefly
+premised for the clearing the context and scope of the chapter, we
+may thus argue from ver. 28:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever officers God himself, now under the New
+Testament, hath set in the Church as governors therein, distinct
+from all other church governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary;
+they are the ruling elders we inquire after, and that by divine
+right.</p>
+<p>This proposition is so clear and evident of itself, that much
+needs not to be said for any further demonstration of it. For what
+can be further desired for proof that there are such distinct
+officers as ruling elders in the Church of Christ, and that of
+divine right, than to evince, 1. That there are certain officers
+set of God in the Church as governors therein. 2. That those
+officers so set of God in the Church, are set in the Church under
+the New Testament, which immediately concerns us, and not under the
+Old Testament. 3. That these officers set of God as governors in
+the Church of the New Testament, are distinct from all other church
+governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary? For, by the third of
+these, we have a distinct church officer delineated and
+particularized: by the second we have this distinct church officer
+limited to the time and state of the Church only under the New
+Testament, which is our case: and by the first of these, we have
+this distinct New Testament officer's ruling power in the Church,
+and the divine right thereof evidently demonstrated, by God's act
+in setting him there in this capacity; (see Part 1. Chap. VI.;) so
+that by all put together, the consequence of this major proposition
+seems to be strong and unquestionable.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the governments named in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are
+officers which God himself now under the New Testament hath set in
+the Church as governors therein, distinct from all other church
+governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary.</p>
+<p>This minor or assumption is wholly grounded upon, and plainly
+contained in this text, and may thus be evidenced by parts.</p>
+<p>1. The church here spoken of [<i>in the church</i>] is the
+Church of Christ now under the New Testament: for, 1. The church
+here mentioned, ver. 28, is the same with that ONE BODY mentioned,
+ver. 12, 13, of this chapter, as the whole context and coherence of
+the chapter evinceth; but that ONE BODY denotes not the Church of
+God under the Old Testament, but only the Church of Christ under
+the New Testament; partly, inasmuch as it is counted the Church of
+Christ, yea, (so intimate is the union between head and members,)
+it is called CHRIST, <i>so also is</i> CHRIST, ver. 12, (viz. not
+Christ personally considered, but Christ mystically considered, as
+comprehending head and body;) now this denomination of the Church,
+viz. Christ, or the Church of Christ, &amp;c., is peculiar to the
+Church under the New Testament: for where in all the Scripture is
+the Church of God under the Old Testament called the Church of
+Christ, &amp;c.? and partly, inasmuch as all, both Jews and
+Gentiles, are incorporated jointly into this ONE BODY, and coalesce
+into one Church: "For by one Spirit are we all baptized into one
+body, whether Jews or Gentiles, whether bond or free," 1 Cor. xii.
+13. Now this union or conjunction of Jews and Gentiles into one
+body, one Church, is only done under the New Testament; see Eph.
+ii. 11, to the end of the chapter. 2. The officers here mentioned
+to be set in this Church, are only the New Testament officers, ver.
+28. 3. The scope of the whole chapter is to redress abuses of
+spiritual gifts in the church of Corinth, which was a church under
+the New Testament; and therefore it would have been too remote for
+the apostle to have argued from the several distributions of gifts
+peculiar to the officers or members of the Church under the Old
+Testament.</p>
+<p>2. The governments here mentioned are officers set in this
+church as governors, or rulers therein: "Hath set some in the
+Church, first, apostles&mdash;governments." For clearing of this,
+consider the enumeration here made; the denomination of these
+officers, governments; and the constitution or placing of these
+governments in the Church. 1. The enumeration here made is
+evidently an enumeration of several sorts of church officers, some
+extraordinary, to endure but for a time, some ordinary, to continue
+constantly in the Church; to this the current of interpreters doth
+easily subscribe: and this the text itself plainly speaks; partly,
+if we look at the matter, viz. the several officers enumerated,
+which are either extraordinary, these five, viz. apostles,
+prophets, powers, or miracles, gifts of healing, and kinds of
+tongues: these continued but for a season, during the first
+founding of Christian churches: (the proper and peculiar work of
+these extraordinary officers, what it was, is not here to be
+disputed.) Or ordinary, these three, viz. <i>teachers</i>, (there
+is the preaching elder,) <i>governments</i>, (there is the ruling
+elder,) <i>helps</i>, (there is the deacon;) these are the officers
+enumerated; and however there be some other officers elsewhere
+mentioned, whence some conceive this enumeration not to be so
+absolutely perfect, yet this is undoubtedly evident, that it is an
+enumeration of officers in the church: partly, this is evident, if
+we look at the manner of the apostle's speech, which is in an
+enumerating form, viz. first, secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then:
+and partly, it is evident that he intended to reckon up those
+officers that were distinct from all other parts of the mystical
+body of Christ, by his recapitulation, "Are all apostles, are all
+prophets?" &amp;c., ver. 29, 30, i.e. not all, but only some
+members of the body are set apart by God to bear these offices in
+the church. Now, if there be here a distinct enumeration of
+distinct officers in the church, as is evident; then consequently
+<i>governments</i> must needs be one of these distinct church
+officers, being reckoned up among the rest; and this is one step,
+that governments are in the roll of church officers enumerated. 2.
+The denomination of these officers, <i>governments</i>, evidenceth
+that they are governing officers, vested with rule in the Church.
+This word (as hath been noted in chap. II.) is a metaphor from
+pilots or shipmasters governing of their ships by their compass,
+helm, &amp;c., James iii. 4, (who is hence called <i>governor</i>,
+viz. of the ship, Acts xxvii. 11; Rev. xviii. 17,) and it notes
+such officers as sit at the stern of the vessel of the Church, to
+govern and guide it in spirituals according to the will and mind of
+Christ: governments&mdash;the abstract is put for governors, the
+concrete: this name of governments hath engraven upon it an evident
+character of power for governing. But this will be easily granted
+by all. All the doubt will be, whom the apostle intended by these
+governments? Thus conceive, negatively, these cannot be meant, viz.
+not governors in general, for, besides that a general exists not
+but in the particular kinds or individuals thereof, a member of a
+body in general exists not but in this or that particular member,
+eye, hand, foot, &amp;c.: besides this, it is evident that Christ
+hath not only in general appointed governors in his Church, and
+left particulars to the church or magistrate's determination, but
+hath himself descended to the particular determination of the
+several kinds of officers which he will have in his Church; compare
+these places together, Eph. iv. 7, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom.
+xii. 7, 8: though in the ordinance of magistracy God hath only
+settled the general, but for the particular kinds of it, whether it
+should be monarchical, &amp;c., that is left to the prudence of the
+several commonwealths to determine what is fittest for themselves.
+(See Part 2, chap. IX.) 2. Not masters of families: for all
+families are not in the Church, pagan families are without. No
+family as a family is either a church or any part of a church, (in
+the notion that church is here spoken of;) and though masters of
+families be governors in their own houses, yet their power is not
+ecclesiastical but economical or domestical, common to heathens as
+well as Christians. Not the political magistrate,<a href=
+"#note-54"><small>54</small></a> for the reasons hinted, (Part 1,
+chap. I.; see also Part 2, chap. IX.,) and for divers other
+arguments that might be propounded. 4. Not the prelatical bishops,
+pretending to be an order above preaching presbyters, and to have
+the reins of all church government in their hands only; for, in
+Scripture language, bishop and presbyter are all one order, (these
+words being only names of the same officer;) this is evident by
+comparing Tit. i. 5, with ver. 7. Hereunto also the judgment of
+antiquity evidently subscribeth, accounting a bishop and a
+presbyter to be one and the same officer in the church; as appears
+particularly in Ambrose, Theodoret, Hierom, and others. Now, if
+there be no such order as prelatical bishops, consequently they
+cannot be governments in the church. 5. Not the same with
+<i>helps</i>, as the former corrupt impressions of our Bibles
+seemed to intimate, which had it thus, <i>helps in governments</i>,
+which some moderns seem to favor; but this is contrary to the
+original Greek, which signifies <i>helps, governments</i>; contrary
+to the ancient Syriac version, which hath it thus, (as Tremel.
+renders it,) <i>and helpers, and governments</i>: and therefore
+this gross corruption is well amended in our late printed Bible.
+<i>Helps, governments</i>, are here generally taken by interpreters
+for two distinct officers. 6. Nor, finally, can the teaching elder
+here be meant; for that were to make a needless and absurd
+tautology, the teacher being formerly mentioned in this same verse.
+Consequently, by <i>governments</i> here, what can be intended, but
+such a kind of officer in the church as hath rule and government
+therein, distinct from all governors forementioned? And doth not
+this lead us plainly to the ruling elder?</p>
+<p>3. These governments thus set in the Church, as rulers therein,
+are set therein by God himself; God hath set some in the Church,
+<i>first, apostles&mdash;governments&mdash;God hath set, put, made,
+constituted</i>, &amp;c., (as the word imports,) <i>in the
+Church</i>. What hath God set in the Church? viz. apostles
+and&mdash;governments, as well as apostles themselves. The verb,
+<i>hath set</i>, equally relates to all the sorts of officers
+enumerated. And is not that officer IA the Church of divine right,
+which God himself, by his own act and authority, sets therein? Then
+doubtless these governments are of divine right.</p>
+<p>4. Finally, these governments set in the Church under the New
+Testament as governors therein, and that by God himself, are
+distinct from not only all governing officers without the Church,
+(as hath been showed,) but also from all other governing officers
+within the church. For here the apostles make a notable enumeration
+of the several sorts of church officers, both extraordinary and
+ordinary, viz. eight in all. Five of these being extraordinary, and
+to continue but for a season, for the more effectual spreading and
+propagating of the gospel of Christ at first, and planting of
+Christian churches, viz. apostles, prophets, powers, gifts of
+healings, kinds of tongues: three of these being ordinary, and to
+be perpetuated in the Church, as of continual use and necessity
+therein, viz. teachers, governments, [i.e. ruling elders,] and
+helps, [i.e. deacons, who are to help and relieve the poor and
+afflicted.] This is the enumeration. It is not contended, that it
+is absolutely and completely perfect, for that some officers seem
+to be omitted and left out, which elsewhere are reckoned up, Eph.
+iv. 11; Rom. xii. 7, 8. Evangelists are omitted in the list of
+extraordinary officers, and pastors are left out of the roll of the
+ordinary officers; and yet some conceive that pastors and teachers
+point not out two distinct sorts of officers, but rather two
+distinct acts of the same officers; and if this will hold, then
+pastors are sufficiently comprised under the word teachers; yea,
+some think that both evangelists and pastors are comprehended under
+the word teacher.<a href="#note-55"><small>55</small></a> But,
+however, be that as it will, these two things are evident, 1. That
+this enumeration (though evangelists and pastors be left out) is
+the fullest and completest enumeration of church officers which in
+any place is to be found throughout all the New Testament. 2. That
+though we should grant this defect in the enumeration, yet this is
+no way prejudicial to the present argument, that governments here
+mentioned are ruling officers in the Church, distinct from all
+other church officers that have rule; for they are plainly and
+distinctly recited as distinct kinds of officers, distinct from
+apostles, from prophets, from teachers, from all here mentioned.
+And thus interpreters<a href="#note-56"><small>56</small></a>
+commonly expound this place, taking governments for a distinct kind
+of church officer from all the rest here enumerated.</p>
+<p>Now to sum up all that hath been said for the proof of the
+assumption; it is evident, 1. That the church here spoken of is the
+Church of Christ now under the New Testament. 2. That the
+governments here mentioned, are officers set in this church, (not
+out of the church,) as rulers governing therein. 3. That these
+governments set as rulers or governors in this church, are set
+there not by man, but by God himself; <i>God hath set in the
+Church&mdash;governments</i>. 4. And, finally, That these
+governments thus set in the Church, are distinct, not only from all
+governors out of the Church, but also from all governing officers
+within the Church. And if all this laid together will not clearly
+evince the divine right of the ruling elder, what will? Hence we
+may strongly conclude,</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore these governments in 1 Cor. xii.
+28, are the ruling elders we inquire after, and that of divine
+right.</p>
+<p>Now against the urging of 1 Cor. xii. 28, for the proof of the
+divine right of the ruling elders, divers exceptions are made,
+which are to be answered before we pass to the third argument.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 1. The allegation of this place is too weak to
+prove the thing in question. For will any man that knoweth what it
+is to reason, reason from the general to the particular and special
+affirmatively? or will ever any man of common sense be persuaded
+that this consequence is good: There were governors in the
+primitive church mentioned by the Apostles&mdash;therefore they
+were lay governors? Surely I think not.<a href=
+"#note-57"><small>57</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. This exception hath a confident flourish of words,
+but they are but words. It may be replied, 1. By way of concession,
+that to argue indeed from a general to a special, is no solid
+reasoning; as, This is a kingdom, therefore it is England; this is
+a city, therefore it is London; the apostle mentions government in
+the primitive Church, therefore they are ruling elders: this were
+an absurd kind of reasoning. 2. By way of negation. Our reasoning
+from this text for the ruling elder, is not from the general to a
+special affirmatively&mdash;there are governments in the Church,
+therefore ruling elders: but this is our arguing&mdash;these
+governments here mentioned in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are a special kind of
+governing officers, set of God in the Church of Christ now under
+the New Testament, and distinct from all other church officers,
+whether extraordinary or ordinary: and therefore they are the
+ruling elders which we seek after, and that by divine right. So
+that we argue from the enumeration of several kinds of church
+officers affirmatively: here is an enumeration or roll of divers
+kinds of church officers of divine right; governments are one kind
+in the roll, distinct from the rest; therefore governments are of
+divine right, consequently ruling elders; for none but they can be
+these governments, as hath been proved in the assumption. If the
+apostle had here mentioned governments only, and none other kind of
+officers with them, there had been some color for this exception,
+and some probability that the apostle had meant governors in
+general and not in special: but when the apostle sets himself to
+enumerate so many special kinds of officers, apostles, prophets,
+teachers, &amp;c., how far from reason is it to think that in the
+midst of all these specials, governments only should be a general.
+3. As for Dr. Field's scoffing term of lay governors or lay elders,
+which he seems in scorn to give to ruling elders; it seems to be
+grounded upon that groundless distinction of the ministry and
+people into clergy and laity; which is justly rejected by sound
+orthodox writers<a href="#note-58"><small>58</small></a>, as not
+only without but against the warrant of Scripture, clergy being
+nowhere appropriated to the ministry only, but commonly attributed
+to the whole church, 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. The Scripture term given to
+these officers is <i>ruling elders</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17; and so far as
+such, (though they be elected from among the people,) they are
+ecclesiastical officers.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 2. But it is not said here governors in the
+concrete, as apostles, prophets, teachers are mentioned concretely,
+which are distinct officers: but it is said governments, in the
+abstract, to note faculties, not persons. The text may be thus
+resolved: The apostle first sets down three distinct orders,
+apostles, prophets, and teachers: then he reckons up those common
+gifts of the Holy Ghost (and among the rest the gift of governing)
+which were common to all three. So that we need not here make
+distinct orders in the Church, but only distinct gifts which might
+be in one man.<a href="#note-59"><small>59</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. As the apostles, prophets, and teachers are here
+set down concretely, and not abstractly, and are confessed to be
+three distinct orders enumerated: so all the other five, though set
+down abstractly, are (by a metonymy of the adjunct for the subject)
+to be understood concretely, helps for helpers; governments for
+governors, &amp;c.; otherwise we shall here charge the apostle with
+a needless impertinent tautology in this chapter, for he had
+formerly spoken of these gifts abstractly, ver. 8-10, as being
+<i>all given to profit</i> the Church <i>withal</i>, ver. 7; but
+here, ver. 28-30, he speaks of these gifts as they are in several
+distinct subjects, for the benefit of the organical body the
+church; else what saith he here, more than he said before? 2. That
+all these eight here enumerated, one as well as another, do denote,
+not distinct offices or acts of the same officer, but distinct
+officers, having distinct administrations, and distinct gifts for
+those administrations, is evident, partly by the apostle's form of
+enumeration, <i>first, secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then</i> or
+<i>furthermore</i>: if he had intended only three sorts of
+officers, he would have stopped at thirdly, but he goes on in an
+enumerating way, to show us those that follow are distinct officers
+as well as those that go before; partly, by the apostle's
+recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, which plainly points out different
+officers, persons not gifts, besides those three: <i>Are all
+apostles? are all prophets? are all teachers?</i> (and here he
+stops not, but reckons on) <i>are all workers of miracles? have all
+the gifts of healing?</i> &amp;c. If it should be replied, But he
+doth not add, Are all helps? are all governments? therefore these
+are not to be accounted distinct officers from the rest; otherwise
+why should the apostle thus have omitted them, had there been any
+such distinct officers in the Church in his time? It may be
+replied, These two officers, helps and governments, are omitted in
+the recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, not that the Church then had no
+such officers, for why then should they have been distinctly
+mentioned in the enumeration of church officers, ver. 28? But
+either, 1. For that helps and governments were more inferior
+ordinary officers, and not furnished with such extraordinary, or at
+least, eminent gifts, as the other had, (which they abused greatly
+to pride, contention, schism, and contempt of one another, the
+evils which the apostle here labors so much to cure,) and so there
+was no such danger that these helps and governments should run into
+the same distempers that the other did. Or, 2. For that he would
+instruct these helps and governments to be content with their own
+stations and offices, (without strife and emulation,) though they
+be neither apostles, nor prophets, nor teachers, nor any of the
+other enumerated, which were so ambitiously coveted after; and the
+last verse seems much to favor this consideration, <i>but covet
+earnestly the best gifts</i>, viz. which made most for edification,
+not for ostentation.<a href="#note-60"><small>60</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 3. But helps here are placed before governments,
+therefore it is not likely that governments were the ruling elders;
+Helps, i.e. deacons, which is an inferior office, seeming here to
+be preferred before them.<a href=
+"#note-61"><small>61</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. This follows not. Priority of order is not always an
+argument of priority of worth, dignity, or authority. Scripture
+doth not always observe exactness of order, to put that first which
+is of most excellency: sometimes the pastor is put before the
+teacher, as Ephes. iv. 11, sometimes the teacher before the pastor,
+as Rom. xii. 7, 8. Peter is first named of all the apostles, both
+in Matt. x. 2, and in Acts i. 13, but we shall hardly grant the
+Papist's arguing thence to be solid&mdash;Peter is first named,
+therefore he is the chief and head of all the apostles; no more can
+we account this any good consequence&mdash;helps are set before
+governments, therefore governments are officers inferior to helps,
+consequently they cannot be ruling elders: this were bad logic.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 4. But the word governments is general, and may
+signify either Christian magistrates, or ecclesiastical officers,
+as archbishops, bishops, or whatsoever other by lawful authority
+are appointed in the Church.<a href=
+"#note-62"><small>62</small></a> And some of the semi-Erastians of
+our times, by governments understand the Christian magistracy,
+holding the Christian magistracy to be an ecclesiastical
+administration.<a href="#note-63"><small>63</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. Governments, i.e. governors, (though in itself
+and singly mentioned, it be a general, yet) here being enumerated
+among so many specials, is special, and notes the special kind of
+ruling elders, as hath been proved. 2. As for archbishops and
+diocesan bishops, they are notoriously known to be, as such, no
+officers set in the Church by God, but merely by the invention of
+man; therefore they have no part nor lot in this business, nor can
+here be meant. And if by others, by lawful authority appointed in
+the Church, they mean those officers that God appoints well: if
+those whom man sets there without God, as chancellors,
+commissioners, &amp;c., such have as much power of government in
+the Church, as they are such, as archbishops and bishops, viz. just
+none at all by any divine warrant. 3. Nor can the civil Christian
+magistrate here be implied. 1. Partly, because this is quite beside
+the whole intent and scope of this chapter, treating merely upon
+spiritual church-matters, not at all of secular civil matters, viz:
+of spiritual gifts for the Church's profit, ver. 1 to 12; of the
+Church herself as one organical body, ver. 12 to 28; and of the
+officers which God hath set in this organical body, ver. 28,
+&amp;c. Now here to crowd in the Christian magistrate, which is a
+mere political governor, into the midst of these spiritual matters,
+and into the roll of these merely ecclesiastical officers, how
+absurd is it! 2. Partly, because the magistrate, as such, is not
+set of God in the Church either as a church officer, or as a church
+member, (as hath been demonstrated formerly, chap. IX.;) and though
+he become a Christian, that adds nothing to the authority of his
+magistracy, being the privilege only of his person, not of his
+office. 3. Partly, because when this was written to the
+Corinthians, the apostle writes of such governments as had at that
+time their present actual being and existence in the Church: and
+neither then, nor divers hundreds of years after, were there any
+magistrates Christian, as hath been evidenced, chap. IX.<a href=
+"#note-64"><small>64</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 5. Teachers are here expressed, but pastors
+omitted; and therefore well might governors be mentioned instead of
+pastors.<a href="#note-65"><small>65</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Answ</i>. 1. Then, according to his judgment, pastors were a
+distinct kind of officers from teachers; otherwise the naming of
+teachers would have sufficiently implied pastors, without the
+addition of the word governors, one act or function of the office
+being put for the whole office. But prelates did not love to hear
+of such a distinction. However, it is the judgment of many others
+no less learned or pious than they, that in the same congregation
+where there are several ministers, he that excels in exposition of
+scriptures, teaching sound doctrine, and convincing gainsayers, may
+be designed hereunto, and called a teacher or doctor: he that
+excels in application, and designed thereunto, may be called a
+pastor; but where there is only one minister in one particular
+congregation, he is to perform, as far as he is able, the whole
+work of the ministry. 2. If pastors are to be understood by this
+term governors, as contradistinct from teachers, formerly
+enumerated in the text; doth not this seem to devolve the matter of
+government so wholly upon the pastor, as that the teacher hath
+nothing to do with it? and hereby both pastor and teacher are
+wronged at once: the teacher, while power of governing is denied
+him, which belongs to him as well as to the pastor; the teacher
+being a minister of the word, hath power of administration of the
+sacraments and discipline, as well as the pastor: the pastor, while
+he consequently is deprived of the necessary and comfortable
+assistance of the teacher in point of government. Therefore the
+pastor cannot here be intended by governors. 3. Bilson himself was
+not very confident of this gloss, and therefore he immediately
+adds, "If this content you not, I then deny they are all
+ecclesiastical functions that are there specified," &amp;c. What
+then doth he make them? viz. he makes divers of them, and
+governments among the rest, to be but several gifts, whereof one
+and the same officer might be capable. And a little after he
+ingenuously confesses he cannot tell what these governors were,
+saying, "I could easily presume, I cannot easily prove what they
+were. The manner and order of those wonderful gifts of' God's
+Spirit, after so many hundreds may be conjectured, cannot be
+demonstrated&mdash;governors they were, or rather governments, (for
+so the apostle speaketh,) i.e. gifts of wisdom, discretion, and
+judgment, to direct and govern the whole church, and every
+particular member thereof, in the manifold dangers and distresses
+which those days did not want. Governors also they might be called,
+that were appointed in every congregation to hear and appease the
+private strifes and quarrels that grew betwixt man and man, lest
+the Christians, to the shame of themselves, and slander of the
+gospel, should pursue each other for things of this life before the
+magistrates, who then were infidels; of these St. Paul speaketh, 1
+Cor. vi. 1-7. These governors and moderators of their brethren's
+quarrels and contentions I find, others I find not in the apostle's
+writings, but such as withal were watchmen and feeders of the
+flock." Thus inconsistent he is with himself: one while these
+governors must be pastors; another while arbitrators or daysmen
+about private differences; another while gifts, not officers;
+another while he cannot easily prove what they were. But they have
+been proved to be ruling elders, and the proof still stands good,
+notwithstanding all his or others' exceptions.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. III. The third argument for the divine right of
+the mere ruling elder shall be drawn from 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the
+elders that rule well, be counted worthy of double honor,
+especially they that labor in the word and doctrine." From which
+words we may thus argue for the divine right of the ruling
+elder:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever officers in the Church are, according
+to the word of Christ, styled elders, invested with rule in the
+Church, approved of God in their rule, and yet distinct from all
+them that labor in the word and doctrine; they are the ruling
+elders in the Church which we inquire after, and that by divine
+right.</p>
+<p>This proposition seems clear and unquestionable. For, 1. If
+there be a certain kind of church officer which Christ in his word
+calls an elder, 2. Declares to have rule in his church, 3. Approves
+in this his rule, and, 4. Distinguished from him that labors in the
+word and doctrine; this is plainly the ruling elder, and here is
+evidently the divine right of his office. Such a divine approbation
+of his office, testified in Scripture, implies no less than a
+divine institution thereof.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the officers mentioned in 1 Tim. v. 17, are,
+according to the word of Christ, styled elders, invested with rule
+in the church: approved of God in their rule, and yet distinct from
+all them that labor in the word and doctrine. This assumption may
+be thus evidenced by parts.</p>
+<p>1. The officers mentioned here in this word of Christ, are
+styled elders. This Greek word translated <i>elder</i>, is used in
+the New Testament chiefly in three several senses: 1. For men of
+ancient time, not now living; and so it is opposed to modern:
+Tradition of elders, Matt. xv. 2, i.e. of them of old time, see
+Matt. v. 21. 2. For elders in age now living; so it is opposed to
+younger, 1 Tim. v. 1; 1 Pet. v. 5. 3. For elders in function or
+office, opposed to private men not in office, as Acts xiv. 23; and
+in this last sense it is to be taken in this place, an office of
+ruling being here ascribed to these elders. They are called elders,
+say some, because for the most part they were chosen out of the
+elder sort of men: others better, from the maturity of knowledge,
+wisdom, gifts, gravity, piety, &amp;c., which ought to be in them.
+This name elder seems to have rule and authority written upon it,
+when applied to any church officer; and it is by the Septuagint
+often ascribed to rulers political, <i>elders in the gate</i>,
+Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 1 Sam. v. 3; 1 Chron. xi. 3. In
+this place (as it is well noted by some<a href=
+"#note-66"><small>66</small></a>) the word elders is a genus, a
+general attribute, agreeing both to them that rule well, and also
+to those that labor in the word and doctrine: the one sort only
+rule; the other sort both rule and preach; but both sorts are
+elders.</p>
+<p>2. The officers here mentioned are not only styled elders, but
+invested with rule in the church. For it is plain both by the text
+and context duly considered, and the apostle's scope in writing of
+this epistle, 1 Tim. iii. 15, that these elders are officers in the
+Church. And that in the church they are vested with rule appears
+not only by their name of elders, which when applied to officers,
+imports rule, authority, &amp;c., as hath been said; but also by
+the adjunct participle <i>that rule</i>, or <i>ruling</i>, annexed
+to elders&mdash;<i>Let the elders ruling well</i>. So that here we
+have not only the office, the thing, but the very name of ruling
+elders. The word seems to be a military term, for captains and
+commanders in an army, <i>foremost slanders</i>, (as the word
+imports,) that lead on and command all the rest that follow them:
+hence metaphorically used for the foremost-standers, rulers,
+governors in the church. It noteth not only those that go before
+others by doctrine, or good example: but that govern and rule
+others by authority. For, 1. Thus the word is used in Scripture:
+"One that ruleth well his own house, having his children in
+subjection with all gravity," 1 Tim. iii. 4: where it plainly notes
+an authoritative ruling. Again, "If a man know not how to rule his
+own house," 1 Tim. iii. 5. And again, "Ruling their children and
+their own houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12. And can any man be so
+absurd as to think that a master of a family hath not a proper
+authoritative rule over his own children and family, but rules them
+only by doctrine and example?</p>
+<p>2. Thus learned divines<a href="#note-67"><small>67</small></a>
+and accurate Grecians<a href="#note-8"><small>68</small></a> use
+the word to denote authority: so that the Holy Ghost here calling
+them ruling elders, implies they are vested with rule: and those
+that deny this place to hold out two sorts of elders, yet confess
+it holds out two sorts of acts, ruling and preaching.</p>
+<p>3. These ruling elders are here approved of God in their rule;
+and that two ways, viz: 1. In that God's Spirit here commends their
+ruling, being duly discharged, <i>ruling well, excellently</i>,
+&amp;c. Did no rule in the Church belong to them for matter, God
+would never command or approve them for the matter. He cannot be
+accounted with God to do any thing well, that hath no right to do
+it at all. 2. In that God's Spirit here commands their well ruling
+to be honorably rewarded. <i>Let them be counted worthy of double
+honor:</i> or, <i>Let them be dignified with double honor</i>. Here
+is not only reward, but an eminent reward appointed them, and that
+urged from Scripture, ver. 18. Where God thus appoints rewards, he
+approves that for which he rewards; and what God thus approves is
+of divine right. See part 1, chap. V.</p>
+<p>4. Yet, finally, These elders, vested with rule in the Church,
+and divinely approved in their rule, are distinct from all them
+that labor in the word and doctrine. This may thus he evidenced
+from the text, as some<a href="#note-69"><small>69</small></a> have
+well observed: For, 1. Here is a general, under which the several
+kinds of officers here spoken of are comprehended, <i>elders</i>;
+all here mentioned are elders. 2. Here are two distinct kinds of
+elders, viz: <i>those that rule well</i>, there is one kind; and
+<i>they that labor in the word</i> (as the pastors) <i>and
+doctrine</i>, (as the doctors and teachers,) here is the other
+kind. 3. Here are two participles expressing these two species or
+kinds of elders&mdash;<i>ruling</i>, and <i>laboring</i>: those
+only rule, that is all their work, and therefore here are called
+ruling elders; not because <i>they</i> alone rule, but because
+their only work is to rule: but these not only rule, but, over and
+besides, <i>they</i> labor in the word and doctrine. 4. Here are
+two distinct articles distinctly annexed to these two
+participles&mdash;<i>they that rule; they that labor</i>. 5.
+Finally, here is an eminent disjunctive particle set betwixt these
+two kinds of elders, these two participles, these two articles,
+evidently distinguishing one from the other, viz. especially
+<i>they that labor in the word</i>, &amp;c., intimating, that as
+there were some ruling elders that did labor in the word and
+doctrine, so there were others that did rule, and not labor in the
+word: both were worthy of double honor, but especially they that
+both ruled and labored in the word also. And wheresoever this word,
+here translated <i>especially</i>, is used in all the New
+Testament, it is used to distinguish thing from thing, person from
+person, that are spoken of; as, "Let us do good to all, but
+especially to those of the household of faith," Gal. vi. 10:
+therefore there were some of the household of faith, and some that
+were not; and accordingly we must put a difference in doing good to
+them. "All the saints salute you, especially those of C&aelig;sar's
+household;" some saints not of his household: all saluted them, but
+especially those of C&aelig;sar's household. "He that provides not for
+his own, especially for them of his own house, he hath denied the
+faith," 1 Tim. v. 8. A believer is to provide for his friends and
+kindred, but especially <i>for those of his own house</i>, wife and
+children. See also 1 Tim. iv. 10; Tit. i. 11; 2 Tim. iv. 13; 2 Pet.
+ii. 10; Acts xx. 38, and xxvi. 3; in all which places the word
+<i>especially</i> is used as a disjunctive particle, to distinguish
+one thing from another, without which distinction we shall but make
+nonsense in interpreting those places. And generally the best
+interpreters<a href="#note-70"><small>70</small></a> do from this
+text conclude, that there were two sorts of elders, viz: the ruling
+elder, that only ruled; the preaching elder, that besides his
+ruling, labored in the word and doctrine also.</p>
+<p>Now, therefore, seeing the officers here mentioned are, 1.
+According to the word of Christ, (for this is the word of Christ,)
+styled elders; 2. Vested with rule; 3. Approved of God in their
+rule; and yet, 4. Distinct from all that labor in the word and
+doctrine, as hath been particularly proved; we may conclude,
+that,</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the officers here mentioned are the
+ruling elders in the Church which we inquire after, and that by
+divine right.</p>
+<p>But against this place of 1 Tim. i. 17, and the argument from
+it, divers cavils and exceptions are made; let them have a brief
+solution.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 1. There were two sorts of elders, some laboring
+in the word and doctrine, some taking care of the poor, viz.
+deacons; both were worthy of double honor, especially they that
+labored in the word, &amp;c.<a href=
+"#note-71"><small>71</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This is a new distinction of elders without
+warrant of Scripture. Deacons are nowhere in all the New Testament
+styled elders;<a href="#note-72"><small>72</small></a> nay, they
+are contradistinguished from elders, both teaching and ruling. "He
+that giveth <i>let him do it</i> with simplicity: he that ruleth,
+with diligence," Rom. xii. 8. "Helps, governments," 1 Cor. xii. 28.
+Compare also Tit. i. 5, 6, &amp;c., 1 Tim. iii. 2, &amp;c., with 1
+Tim. iii. 8, &amp;c. 2. As deacons are not elders, so deacons have
+no rule in the church. It is true, they are to "rule their children
+and their own houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12; this is only family
+rule: but as for the church, their office therein is to be
+<i>helps</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28; <i>to distribute</i>, Rom. xii. 8;
+<i>to serve tables</i>, Acts vi. 2, 3; but no rule is ascribed to
+them.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 2. But by ruling well, some understand living
+well, leading a holy, exemplary life. The apostle would have
+ministers not only to live well themselves, but also to feed others
+by the word and doctrine; they that live well are to be double
+honored, especially they who labor in the word, &amp;c., as 1
+Thess. v. 12, 13.<a href="#note-73"><small>73</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. The apostle here speaks rather of officers than
+of acts of office: of persons rather than of duties, if his phrase
+be observed. 2. Living well is not ruling well here in the
+apostle's sense, who intends the rule of elders over others; he
+that lives well rules well over himself; not over others: else all
+that live well were church rulers; they conduct by example, do not
+govern by authority, Altar. Damasc. c. xii. 8. If well ruling be
+well living, then double honor, double maintenance from the church
+is due for well living, (1 Tim. v. 17, 18,) consequently all that
+live well deserve this double honor. 4. This seems to intimate that
+ministers deserve double honor for living well, though they preach
+not. <i>How absurd</i>! 5. D. Downham, once pleased with this
+gloss, after confessed it was not safe.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 3. Those that rule well may be meant of aged,
+infirm, superannuated bishops, who cannot labor in the word and
+doctrine.<a href="#note-74"><small>74</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. Here is no speech of prelatical bishops, but of
+ruling and preaching elders in this text. 2. How shall old,
+decrepit bishops rule well, when they cannot labor in the word and
+doctrine? 3. By this gloss, the preaching elders that labor in the
+word and doctrine, should be preferred before the most ancient
+bishop in double honor; such doctrine would not long since have
+been very odious and apocryphal to our late prelates. 4. Those
+preachers that have faithfully and constantly spent their strength,
+and worn out themselves with ministerial labor, that they cannot
+rule nor preach any longer, are yet worthy of double honor for all
+their former travels in the service of Christ and his Church.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 4. Among ministers some did preach, others only
+administered the sacraments; so Paul showeth that he preached and
+"labored more than all the apostles," 1 Cor. xv. 10; but baptized
+few or none, 1 Cor i. 14, leaving that to be performed by others;
+and when Paul and Barnabas were companions, and their travels were
+equal, yet Paul is noted to have been the chief speaker, (Acts xiv.
+12:) all were worthy of double honor, but especially they who
+labored in the word and doctrine.<a href=
+"#note-75"><small>75</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This gloss imagineth such a ministry in the
+apostles' times as the prelates had erected of late in their days,
+viz: many dumb dogs that could not bark nor preach at all, yet
+could administer the sacraments by the old service-book. But the
+apostles, as Cartwright<a href="#note-76"><small>76</small></a>
+observes, allowed no such ministers, will have every bishop or
+preaching elder to be both "apt to teach, <i>and</i> able to
+convince," 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i. 9. So that it was far from Paul
+to countenance a non-preaching or seldom-preaching ministry, by
+allowing any honor at all, much less a double honor, to such. Sure,
+preaching is one part, yea, a most principal part or duty of the
+minister's office, (as hath been evidenced before, Part 2, Chap.
+VII.,) and shall he be counted worthy of double honor that neglects
+a principal duty of his office? Nay, he deserves not the very name
+of such an officer in the church: why should he be called a pastor
+that doth not feed? or a teacher, that doth not teach his flock?
+&amp;c., saith Chrysost. Hom. xv. in 1 Timothy. 2. Why should
+Paul's laboring be restrained here to his preaching only? when Paul
+speaks of his own labor elsewhere, he speaks of it in another
+sense, 2 Cor. xi. 17, "in labor and weariness"&mdash;compare it
+with the context; and in this place judicious Calvin seems rather
+to interpret it of other manner of labor, and Pareus extends it,
+besides preaching, to divers other labors which Paul did undergo.
+3. What warrant doth this exception hold out for two sorts of
+ministers here pretended, some <i>preaching</i>, others <i>only
+administering the sacraments</i>? Thus, <i>Paul preached much,
+baptised but few</i>: therefore, <i>there were some that only
+administered the sacraments</i>: well concluded. Yet Paul baptized
+some, 1 Cor. i. 14, 16, distributed the Lord's supper to some, Acts
+xx. 7, 11; so that he both preached and dispensed the sacraments.
+Let any show where any person dispensed the sacraments that was not
+a preacher. Again, <i>Paul and Barnabas equally travelled together,
+but Paul was chief speaker</i>: what then? therefore <i>some
+labored in the word, others in the sacraments only</i>. This is
+woful logic. 4. To whomsoever the power of dispensing the
+sacraments was given by Christ, to them also the power of preaching
+was given; dispensing the word and sacraments are joined in the
+same commission, Matt, xxviii. 18-20: what Christ joins together
+let not man put asunder. 5. Touching the preaching elder there is
+mentioned only one act peculiar to his office, viz. <i>laboring in
+the word</i>, &amp;c.; but, taking a part for the whole, we may
+understand his dispensing the sacraments also, and what else is
+peculiar to the preaching elder's office, though for brevity's sake
+it be not here named.<a href="#note-77"><small>77</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 5. By elders that rule well may be meant certain
+governors, or inferior magistrates, chosen to compose controversies
+or civil strifes. Suitable hereunto is the late Erastian gloss,
+that by elders ruling well may be meant kings, parliament-men, and
+all civil governors.<a href="#note-78"><small>78</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. It is well known that in the primitive times
+there was no Christian magistrate in the Church, and for the Church
+to choose heathen judges or magistrates to be arbitrators or
+daysmen in civil controversies, is a thing utterly condemned by the
+apostle, 1 Cor. vi. 1, &amp;c. 2. The apostle speaks here of
+ecclesiastical, not of civil officers, as the latter phrase
+intimates. The main scope of this epistle was to instruct Timothy
+how to behave himself, not in the commonwealth, but in the Church
+of God, (1 Tim. iii. 15,) and here he speaks of such officers as
+were in being in the Church at that time. 3. If kings,
+parliament-men, and all civil governors be these ruling elders,
+then ministers have not only an equal share with them in government
+by this text, which the Erastians will not like well; but also are
+to have a superior honor or maintenance to kings, parliament-men,
+and all civil governors. Certainly the magistrates will never
+triumph in this gloss, nor thank them that devised it. 4. Sutlive
+seems to be against this opinion, (though no great friend to ruling
+elders,) saying Beza bestows many words to prove that the judges in
+1 Cor. vi. were not of the number of presbyters: which truly I
+myself should easily grant him. For there were none such ever
+constituted. 5. This is a novel interpretation, as some
+observe,<a href="#note-79"><small>79</small></a> unknown among
+ancient writers.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 6. Those words [<i>especially they who labor in
+the word and doctrine</i>] are added to the former explanatively,
+to teach us who they are that rule well, viz. <i>they who labor
+much in the word and doctrine</i>, and not to distinguish them that
+labor in the word, from elders ruling well; as if Paul had said,
+"Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of double honor,
+greatly laboring in the word," &amp;c. For the word translated
+<i>especially</i> here more aptly signifies <i>much, greatly</i>,
+than especially. For though with the adversative <i>but</i> along
+with it, it signifieth especially, yet alone (as it is here) it
+signifies <i>much, greatly</i>.<a href=
+"#note-80"><small>80</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. If this sentence [<i>especially they who
+labor</i>, &amp;c.] were added only to explain who are well-ruling
+elders, viz. such as greatly labor in the word, &amp;c., then few
+of the prelatical bishops were to be counted well-ruling elders,
+for very few, if any of them, were guilty of laboring greatly in
+the word and doctrine. 2. Then also the apostle would have said,
+either who especially labor, or simply without the article,
+especially laboring; then especially, they who labor, as here he
+doth, carrying his speech rather to distinct persons and officers,
+than to distinct duties or actions. 3. This word translated
+<i>especially</i>, hath been already in the minor proposition
+proved to be rather disjunctive, than explanatory; a term of
+distinction to point out a several sort of elders from only ruling
+elders, rather than a term of explication, signifying who are to be
+reputed these well-ruling elders. 4. The word <i>especially</i> is
+used for a term of distinction, even in those places where the
+adversative <i>but</i> is not joined to it, as in Tit. i. 10, "For
+there are many unruly and vain talkers and deceivers, especially
+they of the circumcision:" where <i>especially</i> distinguishes
+<i>them of the circumcision</i>, from all other <i>vain talkers,
+and deceivers</i>; and in 1 Tim. iv. 10, "Who is the Saviour of all
+men, especially of them that believe;" here <i>especially</i>
+without <i>but</i> distinguishes them that believe from all other
+men, as capable of a special salvation from God; if here it were
+not a note of distinction, according to this gloss, we should thus
+read the place, "Who is the Saviour of all men, greatly believing;"
+but this were cold comfort to weak Christians of little faith. So
+here <i>especially</i>, though <i>but</i> be wanting, distinguished
+them that labor in the word and doctrine, from them that labor not
+therein, and yet rule well.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 7. It is one thing to preach, another thing to
+labor in the word and doctrine. If there be here any distinction of
+elders it is between those that labor more abundantly and
+painfully, and between those that labor not so much. This objection
+takes much with some.<a href="#note-81"><small>81</small></a> B.
+Bilson much presses this objection from the emphasis of the word
+<i>laboring</i>; signifying endeavoring any thing with greater
+striving and contention, &amp;c., to this sense, "Let the elders
+that rule well be counted worthy of double honor, especially they
+who labor and sweat, &amp;c., in the word&mdash;who give themselves
+even to be tired and broken with labors;" and this, saith he, is
+the genuine signification of the word translated laboring, when it
+is borrowed from the labor of the body, to denote the contention or
+striving of the mind, &amp;c.<a href=
+"#note-82"><small>82</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This gloss takes it for granted, that this text
+speaks only of preaching, or the ministry of the word, and therein
+of the lesser or greater pains taken: which (besides that it begs
+the thing in question) makes the ministry of the word common to
+both sorts here distinctly spoken of, whereas rather the plain
+current of the text makes ruling common to both, over and beyond
+which the preaching elder <i>labors in the word</i>. 2. Doth not
+this interpretation allow a double honor to ministers that labor
+not so much as others in the word? And can we think that the
+laborious Paul intended to dignify, patronize, or encourage idle
+drones, lazy, sluggish, seldom preachers? Ministers must be
+exceeding instant and laborious in their ministry, 2 Tim. iv. 1-3.
+If this were the sense only to prefer the greater before the less
+labor in the ministry, the apostle would have used this order of
+words, "Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of double
+honor, especially they who labor," &amp;c., take upon themselves
+more weighty cares. For those words (in the word and doctrine)
+should either have been quite omitted, as now was expressed, or
+should have been inserted immediately after them that rule well,
+and before the word especially, to this effect, "Let the elders
+that rule well and preach the word and doctrine well, be counted
+worthy of double honor; but especially those who labor much in well
+ruling and in well preaching:" in such an expression the case had
+been very clear and evident. 4. Should this comment stand, that
+they who labor more in the ministry than others should have more
+honor, more maintenance, than others, how many emulations and
+contentions were this likely to procure? Who shall undertake to
+proportion the honor and reward, according to the proportion of
+every minister's labor? 5. As for the criticism of the word
+<i>laboring</i>, which Bilson lays so much stress upon, these
+things are evident, 1. That here <i>laboring</i>, signifies
+emphatically nothing else but that labor, care, diligence,
+solicitude, &amp;c., which the nature of the pastoral office
+requires in every faithful pastor; as is implied 1 Thess. v., 12,
+13, "Know them which labor among you, and are over you in the
+Lord;" and the apostle saith that every minister "shall receive a
+reward according to his own labor," 1 Cor. iii. 8. Such labor and
+diligence also is required in them that rule, whilst they are
+charged to rule <i>with diligence</i>, Rom. xii. 8, which is as
+much as <i>with labor</i>: yea, the common charity of Christians
+hath its labor; and this very word <i>labor</i> is ascribed
+thereunto, <i>labor of love</i>, 1 Thess. i. 3; Heb. vi. 10. 2.
+That if the apostle had here intended the extraordinary labor of
+some ministers above others, not ordinarily required of all, he
+would have taken a more emphatical word to have set it out, as he
+is wont to do in some other cases, as in 2 Cor. xi. 27, "In labor
+and weariness." 1 Thess. ii. 9, "For ye remembered, brethren, our
+labor and weariness." 6. Finally, "If there be but one kind of
+church officers here designed, then," as saith the learned
+Cartwright, "the words (<i>especially those that labor</i>) do not
+cause the apostle's speech to rise, but to fall; not to go forward,
+but to go backward; for to teach worthily and singularly is more
+than to teach painfully; for the first doth set forth all that
+which may be required in a worthy teacher, where the latter noteth
+one virtue only of pains taking."</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 8. Though it could be evinced, that here the
+apostle speaks of some other elders, besides the ministers of the
+word, yet what advantage can this be for the proof of ruling
+elders? For the apostle being to prove that the ministers of the
+word ought to be honored, i.e. maintained; why might he not use
+this general proposition, that all rulers, whether public or
+domestic, whether civil or ecclesiastical, are to be honored? And
+when the apostle speaketh of the qualifications of deacons, he
+requires them to be such as have ruled their own houses
+well.<a href="#note-83"><small>83</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This slight gloss might have appeared more
+tolerable and plausible, were it not, partly, that the grand scope
+of the apostle in this chapter and epistle is to direct about
+church officers and church affairs, as both the context, and 1 Tim.
+iii. 14, 15, clearly evidence; and partly, had the word rulers been
+expressed alone in the text, and the word elders left out: but
+seeing that the apostle speaks not generally of them that rule
+well, but particularly of the elders that rule well in the Church;
+here is no place for this poor faint gloss. 2. Had the apostle here
+intended such a lax and general proposition for all sorts of
+rulers, then had he also meant that an honorable maintenance is due
+from the Church to domestic as well as public, yea, to civil as
+well as ecclesiastical rulers: then the Church should have charge
+enough: yea, and then should ministers of the word (according to
+this interpretation) have more honor and maintenance than any other
+rulers, domestic or public, civil or ecclesiastical. Magistrates
+will never thank him for this gloss. 3. Though some kind of skill
+to rule and govern be required in deacons, yet that is no public
+rule in the Church, but a private rule in their own houses only,
+which the apostle mentions, 1 Tim. iii. 12.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 9. But these Well-ruling presbyters may be
+referred to these pastors and teachers which were resident in every
+church, who therefore are properly said to have care and inspection
+of the faithful, as being affixed to that place for that end; but
+the word <i>laboring</i>, or <i>they that labor</i>, may be
+referred to them who travelled up and down for the visiting and
+confirming of the churches.<a href="#note-84"><small>84</small></a>
+"There were some that remained in some certain places, for the
+guiding and governing of such as were already won by the preaching
+of the gospel: others that travelled with great labor and pains
+from place to place to spread the knowledge of God into all parts,
+and to preach Christ crucified to such as never heard of him
+before. Both these were worthy of double honor, but the latter that
+builded not upon another man's foundation, more especially than the
+former, that did but keep that which others had gotten, and govern
+those that others have gained."<a href=
+"#note-85"><small>85</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. If this be the sense, that there were some
+ministers fixed, and limited to particular places and churches;
+others unfixed, having an unlimited commission, and these are to be
+especially honored: then the meaning is, that the apostles and
+evangelists who were unfixed, and had unlimited commissions, and
+laid the foundation, were to be especially honored above pastors
+and teachers that were fixed and limited, and only built upon their
+foundation. But how should this be the meaning? For this seems a
+needless exhortation; what church would not readily yield an
+especial honor to apostles and evangelists above pastors and
+teachers? This would savor too much of self-seeking in the apostle,
+and providing for his own honor. This implies that the text hath
+reference to apostles and evangelists, whereas it evidently speaks
+only of ordinary ruling and preaching presbyters.</p>
+<p>2. If this be the sense of Dr. Field and Bilson, that some mere
+ordinary presbyters travelled laboriously to lay the foundation of
+Christianity, others were fixed to certain places to build upon
+that foundation: this seems to be false; for we read that mere
+ordinary presbyters were ordained for several cities and places as
+their peculiar charges, whom they were to feed, and with whom they
+were to remain, as Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5; herewith compare Acts
+xx. 28; 1 Pet. v. 2; 1 Thess. v. 12. But that mere ordinary
+presbyters were ordained and employed in the Church without
+limitation of commission, where can it be evidenced in all the
+Scriptures? Wandering presbyters are nowhere commended; wandering
+stars are condemned, Jude, ver. 13.</p>
+<p>3. To refer the word <i>laboring</i> to them that travelled from
+place to place for visiting and confirming of the churches, is very
+weak and unjustifiable in this place; for this clashes with Dr.
+Field's former gloss, (mentioned Except. 4, limiting
+<i>laboring</i> to preaching.) But any thing for a present shift.
+This word is sometimes given to the apostle, as 1 Cor. xv. 10; 2
+Cor. xi. 27: but where are apostles and evangelists called
+<i>laboring</i>, merely in respect of their travelling from place
+to place, to lay the foundation of Christianity, thereby to
+distinguish them from ordinary pastors and teachers? Nay, the
+apostle himself makes <i>them that rule</i>, and <i>them that
+labor</i>, the same, 1 Thess. v. 12, 13. So here in 1 Tim. v. 17,
+<i>they that rule</i>&mdash;<i>and they that labor</i>&mdash;are
+the same, i.e. both of them ordinary presbyters, both of them
+ruling, only to one of them the office of <i>laboring</i> in the
+word and doctrine is superadded; yea, the very women that
+<i>were</i> godly were said <i>to labor in the Lord</i>, Rom. xvi.
+6, 12, not for their far travels up and down several countries to
+propagate the gospel, for where are Mary and Persis reported to
+have done this? Yet doubtless such good women privately labored
+much to bring in others, especially of their own sex, to hear the
+apostles, and entertain the gospel; and if the women may be said to
+<i>labor much in the Lord</i>, in respect of their private
+endeavors, how much more may labor be ascribed to presbyters in
+respect of both their private and public employments! So that this
+word <i>laboring</i>, which is applied in Scripture not only to
+ordinary presbyters, but also to women, cannot (without violence)
+be drawn peculiarly to signify apostles and evangelists, as this
+exception intends.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 10. Seeing in every minister of the word three
+things are requisite, unblamableness of life, dexterity of
+governing, and integrity of doctrine; the two first are commended
+here, but especially the labor in doctrine above them both;
+therefore here are set down not a two-fold order of presbyters, but
+only two parts of the pastoral office, preaching and governing;
+both which the apostle joins in the office of pastors, 1 Thes. v.
+2-13.<a href="#note-86"><small>86</small></a> "The guides of the
+church are worthy of double honor, both in respect of governing and
+teaching, but especially for their pains in teaching; so noting two
+parts or duties of presbyterial offices, not two sorts of
+presbyters."<a href="#note-87"><small>87</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. It is true, pastors have the power both of ruling
+and preaching belonging to their office, as is intimated, 1 Thes.
+v. 12, 13, and Heb. xiii. 7, and in other places; but doth it
+therefore follow, that none have the power of ruling, but those
+that have the power of preaching? or that this text, or 1 Tim. v.
+17, intends only those rulers that preach? 2. Bilson, in this
+exception, confesseth that <i>laboring</i> belongs to ordinary
+fixed pastors, and therefore contradicts himself in his former
+objection, wherein he would have appropriated it to unfixed
+apostles and evangelists; yea, by this gloss it is granted, that
+preaching presbyters are to be more honored than non-preaching
+ruling prelates. These are miserable shifts and evasions, whereby
+they are necessitated thus to wound their own friends, and to cross
+their own principles. 3. According to this gloss, this should be
+the sense, "Let the ministers that rule well by good life, and
+skilful government, be counted worthy of double honor, especially
+they who labor in the word and doctrine." Now doth not this
+tacitly insinuate, that some ministers may rule well, and be worthy
+of double honor, though they labor not in the word and doctrine?
+and how absurd were this? But if the text be interpreted not of
+several acts of the same office, but of several sorts of officers,
+this absurdity is prevented, <i>Let ruling elders be doubly
+honored, especially those that both rule and preach</i>. 4. The
+text evidently speaks not of duties, but of persons; not of acts,
+but of agents; not of offices, but of officers; for it is not said,
+"Let the elders be counted worthy of double honor, for well ruling;
+especially for laboring"&mdash;but, <i>Let the elders that rule
+well, especially they that labor in the word, &amp;c.</i> So that
+this gloss is vain, and against the plain letter of the text.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 11. Though the emphasis of the word, <i>they that
+labor</i>, be not to be neglected, yet the difference betwixt
+presbyters is not put by that word, but by those (<i>in the word
+and doctrine</i>.) This does not signify two kinds of presbyters,
+but two offices of ministers and pastors; one general, to <i>rule
+well</i>; another special, <i>to labor in the word and
+doctrine</i>. To rule well, saith Hierom, is to fulfil his office;
+or, as the Syriac interpreter expounds it, "to behave themselves
+well in their place;" or as the Scripture speaks, <i>To go in and
+out before God's people as becomes them, going before them in good
+works in their private conversations, and also in their public
+administrations</i>; whence the apostle makes here a comparison
+betwixt the duties of ministers thus, "All presbyters that
+generally discharge their office well are worthy of double honor;
+especially they who labor in the word, which is a primary part of
+their office."<a href="#note-88"><small>88</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. For substance this objection is the same with
+objection 10, already answered, therefore much more needs not to be
+added. 2. It is to be noted, that the apostle saith not, "Let the
+presbyters that rule well be counted worthy of double honor,
+especially because they labor in the word&mdash;for then he should
+have pointed at the distinct offices of ministers;" but he saith,
+<i>especially they that labor</i>, which clearly carries the sense
+to the distinction of elders themselves, who have distinct
+employments. 3. If preaching presbyters only should here be meant,
+and under that phrase (<i>that rule well</i>) their whole office in
+general, and the right managing thereof, should be contained,
+whereas <i>laboring in the word and doctrine</i> (as this exception
+implies) is but one part thereof, then hence it would inevitably
+follow, that a minister deserves more honor for the well
+administration of one part of his office only, than for the well
+managing of the whole, which is absurd! Here therefore the apostle
+doth not compare one primary part of the pastor's office, with the
+whole office and all the parts thereof; but one sort of presbyters
+with another, distinguishing the mere ruling presbyter from the
+ruling and preaching presbyter, as the acute and learned Whitaker
+hath well observed.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 12. It is evident in the text itself, that all
+these elders here meant were worthy of double honor, whether they
+labored or governed; which by St. Paul's proofs, presently
+following, and by the consent of all old and new writers, is meant
+of their maintenance at the charges of the Church.<a href=
+"#note-89"><small>89</small></a> Now that lay-judges and censors of
+manners were in the apostle's time found at the expense of the
+Church, or by God's law ought to have their maintenance at the
+people's hands, till I see it justly proved, I cannot believe it:
+which yet must be proved before this construction can be
+admitted.<a href="#note-90"><small>90</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This word <i>honor</i> signifies (after the
+custom of the Hebrews, Exod. xx. 12) all pious offices and relief.
+This phrase (<i>double honor</i>) interpreters expound either
+absolutely or comparatively. Absolutely thus: <i>double honor</i>,
+i.e. great honor, so some; maintenance in this life, happiness in
+the life to come, so others; honor of reverence to their persons,
+and of maintenance for their labors, so Chrysostom, of which saith
+Calvin, "That Chrysostom interprets double honor to be maintenance
+and reverence, I impugn not." Comparatively thus: <i>double
+honor</i> here seems to relate to what was before spoken, ver. 3,
+"Honor widows that are widows indeed." Now here he intimates, that
+though widows are to be honored, yet these should be much more
+honored; they should have single, these double honor. In this last
+sense, which seems most genuine, it seems most likely that the
+apostle here intended principally, if not only, the honor of
+maintenance; partly because the honor appointed for widows, ver. 3,
+&amp;c., was only maintenance; partly because the reason of this
+charge to honor, &amp;c., refers only to maintenance, ver. 18. Thus
+far we grant, that the text speaks of maintenance. 2. It may be
+further yielded that all the presbyters here spoken of are to be
+counted worthy of double honor, of honorable, liberal maintenance;
+even they that rule well (if need require) are to be thus honored,
+but the principal care of maintenance ought to be of them that
+labor in the word and doctrine, because the apostle saith
+<i>especially they that labor, &amp;c.</i>: the like injunction,
+see Gal. vi. 6, "Let him that is catechized, communicate to him
+that catechizeth him in all good things;" and thus much this text
+plainly evidenceth. 3. What then can be inferred hereupon by the
+adversaries of ruling elders? "Therefore the ruling elders (in the
+reformed churches) that take no maintenance of the church, are not
+the elders that rule well here mentioned?" This follows not: the
+apostle Paul took no wages of the church of Corinth, 2 Cor. xi.
+7-9, and xii. 12, 13, &amp;c., was he therefore not an apostle to
+them, as to other churches of whom he took maintenance? Divers
+among us in these days labor in the word and doctrine, and are not
+sufficiently maintained by their churches, but forced to spend of
+their own estates to do others service; are they therefore no
+ministers? <i>Forgive them this wrong</i>. Most churches are not
+able (or at least not willing) to maintain their very preaching
+presbyters and their families comfortably and sufficiently, as the
+gospel requireth: if therefore in prudence, that the Church be not
+needlessly burdened, those ruling elders are chosen generally that
+need no maintenance, doth their not taking maintenance of the
+church make their office null and void? Or if the church do not
+give them maintenance (when they neither need it, nor desire it,
+nor is the church able to do it) is the church therefore defective
+in her duty, or an ill observer of the apostolical precepts? Sure
+maintenance is not essentially and inseparably necessary to the
+calling of either ruling or preaching elder. There may be cases
+when not only the preaching, but the ruling elders ought to be
+maintained, and there may be cases when not only the ruling but
+also the preaching presbyter (as it was with Paul) should not
+expect to be maintained by the church. 4. It is as observable that
+the apostle here saith, let them be counted worthy of double honor,
+though the reformed churches do not actually give double
+maintenance to elders that rule well, yet they count them worthy of
+double maintenance, though the elders do not take it, though the
+churches cannot give it.</p>
+<p>Finally, unto these testimonies and arguments from Scripture,
+many testimonies of ancient and modern writers (of no small repute
+in the Church of God) may be usefully annexed, speaking for ruling
+elders in the Church of Christ from time to time: some speaking of
+such sort of elders, presbyters, or church-governors, as that
+ruling elders may very well be implied in their expressions; some
+plainly declaring that the Church of Christ <i>in fact</i> had such
+officers for government thereof; and some testifying that of right
+such officers ought to be in the Church of Christ now under the New
+Testament for the well guiding thereof; by which it may notably
+appear, that in asserting the office of the ruling elder in the
+Church, we take not upon us to maintain any singular paradox of our
+own devising, or to hold forth some new light in this old
+opinionative age: and that the ruling elder is not a church officer
+first coined at Geneva, and a stranger to the Church of Christ for
+the first 1500 years, (as the adversaries of ruling elders
+scornfully pretend,) but hath been owned by the Church of Christ as
+well in former as in later times.<a href=
+"#note-91"><small>91</small></a></p>
+<h3><i>An Appendix touching the Divine Right of Deacons.</i></h3>
+<p>Though we cannot find in Scripture that the power of the keys is
+committed by Christ unto deacons, with the other church governors,
+but conceive that deacons, as other members of the church, are to
+be governed, and are not to govern; yet forasmuch as deacons are
+ordinary officers in the Church of God, of which she will have
+constant use in all ages, and which at first were divinely
+appointed, and after frequently mentioned in the New Testament; it
+will not be thought unfit, before we conclude this section,
+touching the divine right of Christ's church-officers, briefly to
+assert the divine right of deacons, as followeth.</p>
+<p>Deacons in the church are an ordinance of Jesus Christ. For,</p>
+<p>1. They are found in Christ's catalogue of church officers,
+distinct from all other officers, both extraordinary and ordinary.
+<i>Helps</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28. The Greek word in the natural
+acceptation properly signifies, to lift over against one in taking
+up some burden or weight; metaphorically, it here is used for
+deacons, whose office it is to <i>help</i> and <i>succor the poor
+and sick, to lend them a hand to lift them up</i>, &amp;c., and
+this office is here distinctly laid down from all other ordinary
+and extraordinary offices in the text. So they are distinguished
+from all ordinary officers reckoned up, Rom. xii. 7, 8: under
+<i>prophecy</i>, there is the <i>teacher</i> and <i>pastor</i>;
+under <i>ministry</i>, the <i>ruling elder</i>, and the
+<i>deacon</i>, verse 8. This officer was so well known, and usual
+in the primitive churches, that when the apostle writes to the
+church at Philippi, he directs his epistle not only to the saints,
+but to the officers, viz. <i>to the overseers, and deacons</i>,
+Philip, i. 1. The occasion of the first institution of this office,
+see in Acts vi. 1, 2, &amp;c. At the first planting of the
+Christian Church, the apostles themselves took care to receive the
+churches' goods, and to distribute to every one of their members
+<i>as they had need</i>, Acts iv. 34, 35; but in the increase of
+the church, the burden of this care of distributing alms increasing
+also, upon some complaints of the Greeks, <i>that their widows were
+neglected</i>, the office of deacons was erected, for better
+provision for the poor, Acts vi. 1-7; and because the churches are
+never like to want poor and afflicted persons, there will be
+constant need of this officer. The pastor and deacon under the New
+Testament seem to answer the priests and Levites under the Old
+Testament.</p>
+<p>2. The qualifications of deacons are laid down by Christ in the
+New Testament, at large: 1 Tim. iii. 8-14, <i>Deacons also must be
+grave, not double-tongued</i>, &amp;c., and Acts vi. 3, 5.</p>
+<p>3. The manner also of deacons' vocation or calling unto their
+office is delineated, viz: 1. They must be chosen by the church;
+"Look ye out among you seven men of honest report," &amp;c., "and
+they chose Stephen," &amp;c., Acts vi. 3, 5. 2. They must first be
+proved and tried by the officers of the church, before they may
+officiate as deacons; "and let these also first be proved, then let
+them use the office of a deacon, being blameless," 1 Tim. iii. 10.
+3. They must be appointed by the officers of the church to their
+office, and set apart with prayer, Acts vi. 3, 6: "Look ye out
+men&mdash;whom we may appoint over this business&mdash;whom they
+set before the apostles, and when they had prayed, they laid their
+hands on them."</p>
+<p>4. Deacons have by Scripture their work and employment appointed
+them. Their work is, <i>to serve tables</i>, (hence the name deacon
+seems derived,) Acts vi. 2, 3. To be an help, no hinderance in the
+church; called <i>helps</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 18.</p>
+<p>5. Deacons have a divine approbation and commendation in
+Scripture, if they execute their office well. "For they that have
+used the office of a deacon well, purchase to themselves a good
+degree, and great boldness in the faith which is in Christ Jesus,"
+1 Tim. iii. 13. Here the well administration of deaconship is
+commended as producing two good effects to such deacons, viz: 1.
+<i>A good degree</i>, i.e. great honor, dignity, and reputation,
+both to themselves and to their office; they adorn, grace, and
+credit their office in the church; not that they purchase to
+themselves by desert a higher office in the church, that from
+deacons they should be advanced to be presbyters, as some would
+interpret this text. 2. <i>Much boldness in the faith which is in
+Christ Jesus.</i> For nothing makes a man more bold than a good
+conscience in the upright and faithful discharge of our duties in
+our callings; innocency and integrity make brave spirits; such with
+great confidence and boldness serve Christ and the church, being
+men that may be trusted to the uttermost. Now where God thus
+approves or commends the well managing of an office, he also
+divinely approves and allows the office itself, and the officer
+that executes the same.<a href="#note-92"><small>92</small></a></p>
+<a name="H_SECTIII-II"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION II.</h3>
+<p>2. <i>Of the first receptacle, or subject of the power of church
+government from Christ, viz. Christ's own officers.</i></p>
+<p>Touching the second, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath
+peculiarly intrusted his own officers with the power of church
+government: take it thus&mdash;</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator did immediately commit the proper,
+formal, ministerial, or stewardly authority and power for governing
+of his church to his own church guides as the proper immediate
+receptacle or first subject thereof.</p>
+<p>For explication of this proposition, four things are to be
+opened.</p>
+<p>1. What is meant by proper, formal, ministerial or stewardly
+authority and power for church government? See this already
+discussed, Part 2, chapters III., V., and IX., in the beginning of
+Section 2, so that here there needs no further addition, as to this
+point.</p>
+<p>2. What is meant by church guides? By church guides here
+understand, negatively, 1. Not the political magistrate. For though
+he be the <i>nurse-father</i> of the church, Isa. xlix. 23, <i>the
+keeper and avenger of both the tables</i>; and <i>have an outward
+care of religion</i>, and <i>may exercise a political power about
+sacred things</i>, as did Asa, Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah,
+&amp;c., yet hath he no proper, inward, formal power in sacred
+things, nor is it lawful for him to exercise the same; as Korah,
+Num. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam. xiii. 9-15; Uzzah, 2 Sam. vi. 6-8, 1
+Chron. xiii. 9, 10; and King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16-22, did to
+the provoking of God, and to their own destruction. (But see what
+power is granted, and what denied to the civil magistrate in
+matters of religion, and why, Part 2, Chap. IX. Sect. 1.) 2. Not
+any officer of man's mere invention and setting up in the church,
+whether papal, as cardinals, &amp;c., prelatical, as deans,
+archdeacons, chancellors, officials, &amp;c., or political, as
+committees, commissioners, &amp;c. For who can create and institute
+a new kind of offices in the church, but Jesus Christ only, who
+alone hath the lordly magisterial power as Mediator appropriated to
+him? Eph. iv. 8, 11; Rom. xii. 5-8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and therefore
+how can such acts be sufficiently excused from bold usurpation upon
+Christ's own prerogative? 3. Nor the deacons themselves, (though
+officers of Christ's appointment, as was formerly proved;) for
+their office is not to rule and govern, but <i>to serve tables</i>,
+&amp;c., Acts vi. 2, 3. None of these are the church guides which
+Christ hath committed his proper power unto. But affirmatively
+understand all these church guides extraordinary and ordinary,
+which Christ hath erected in his Church, vesting them with power
+and authority therein, viz. apostles, prophets, evangelists,
+pastors and teachers, governments, or ruling elders, mentioned
+together in Eph. iv. 8, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v. 17; Rom. xii.
+6-8. These are Christ's own church officers, these Christ hath made
+the immediate receptacle and first subject of the keys, or of
+ecclesiastical power derived from himself.</p>
+<p>3. What is meant by Christ's committing this stewardly power
+first and immediately to the church guides? <i>Ans</i>. There is,
+1. A priority and immediateness of the donation of the power of the
+keys: thus Christ first and immediately gave keys to his own
+officers, whom Scripture, therefore, calls <i>the ministers of
+Christ</i>, (not of the Church,) 1 Cor. iv. 1, not first and
+immediately to the community of the faithful, or Church, and then
+by the Church secondarily and mediately to the officers, as her
+substitutes and delegates, acting for her, and not in virtue of
+their own power from Christ. 2. A priority and immediateness of
+designation of particular individual persons to the office of
+key-bearing, and this is done by the mediate intervening act of the
+church officers in separating of particular persons to the office
+which Christ instituted; though it is not denied but that the
+church or company of the faithful may lawfully nominate or elect
+individual persons to be officers in the congregation, which yet is
+no act of authority or power.</p>
+<p>4. How hath Christ committed this power of the keys to his
+church guides, that thereby they become the most proper receptacle
+thereof? <i>Ans</i>. Thus briefly. All absolute lordly power is in
+God originally: all lordly magisterial mediatory power is in Christ
+dispensatorily: all official, stewardly power is by delegation from
+Christ only in the church guides<a href=
+"#note-93"><small>93</small></a> ministerially, as the only proper
+subject thereof that may exercise the same lawfully in Christ's
+name: yet all power, both magisterial in Christ, and ministerial in
+Christ's officers, is for the Church of Christ and her edification
+objectively and finally.</p>
+<p>These things thus explained and stated, we come now to the
+confirmation of the proposition. Consider these arguments:</p>
+<p>1. Jesus Christ committed immediately ecclesiastical power and
+the exercise thereof to his church guides. Thus we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. All those that have ecclesiastical power, and the
+exercise thereof, immediately committed to them from Jesus Christ,
+are the immediate subject or receptacle of that power.</p>
+<p>For what makes any persons the immediate subject of power, but
+the immediate derivation and commission of power to them from Jesus
+Christ, who is the fountain of all power?</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the church guides have the ecclesiastical
+power and the exercise thereof immediately committed to them from
+Jesus Christ. This may be evinced many ways by Scriptures. 1. It is
+said expressly, "Of our authority which the Lord hath given us for
+your edification," 2 Cor. 10, 8: by <i>us</i> here we are to
+understand church guides, for here they are set in opposition to
+the church members (<i>for edification</i>,) not destruction of
+(you.) Here are edifiers and edified. Now these church guides have
+authority given them, and that from the Lord, i.e. Christ; here is
+their commission or power, not from the Church or any creature, but
+from Christ; hence the apostle calls church guides, "Your rulers or
+guides in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12; <i>in the Lord</i>, i.e. by the
+Lord's authority and commission. So that church officers are
+<i>rulers in the Lord</i>, and the churches ruled by them; yea,
+ruling elders being one sort of church guides, have such an
+undoubted power of governing in the Church divinely committed to
+them, that of them it is said, "God hath set in the church
+governments", 1 Cor. xii. 28, i.e. governors, the abstract being
+put for the concrete. If <i>God have set governors in the
+Church</i>, then God vested those governors with a power of
+governing, whence they have their name of governments.</p>
+<p>2. The keys of the kingdom of heaven, with all their acts, were
+immediately committed to the church guides, viz. to the apostles
+and their successors to the end of the world; compare these
+testimonies, Matt. xvi. 16, 19, and xviii. 18-20; John xx. 21-23;
+with Matt, xxviii. 18-20: therefore consequently ecclesiastical
+power was committed immediately unto them as the subject thereof.
+For, <i>By the kingdom of heaven</i> here we are to understand
+(according to the full latitude of the phrase) both the kingdom of
+grace in this world, and of glory in the world to come; <i>binding
+and loosing both in earth and in heaven</i>, upon the right use of
+the keys, being here the privileges promised to church guides; and
+<i>by kingdom of heaven</i>&mdash;on earth, understand the whole
+visible Church of Christ in the earth, not only some single
+congregation. By <i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>, thus
+apprehend, Christ promiseth and giveth not the sword <i>of the
+kingdom</i>, any secular power; nor the sceptre <i>of the
+kingdom</i>, any sovereign, lordly, magisterial power over the
+Church. But the <i>keys</i>, &amp;c. i.e. a stewardly, ministerial
+power, and their acts, <i>binding and loosing</i>, i.e.
+<i>retaining and remitting sins on earth</i>, (as in John it is
+explained;) opening and shutting are proper acts of keys; binding
+and loosing but metaphorical, viz. a speech borrowed from bonds or
+chains wherewith men's bodies are bound in prison or in captivity,
+or from which the body is loosed: we are naturally all under sin,
+Rom. v. 12, and therefore liable to death, Rom. vi. 23. Now sins
+are to the soul as bonds and cords, Prov. v. 22. <i>The bond of
+iniquity</i>, Acts viii. 23; and death with the pains thereof, are
+as chains, 2 Pet. ii. 4, Jude 6; in hell as in a prison,
+1 Pet. iii. 10: the remission or retaining of these sins, is the
+loosing or the binding of the soul under these cords and chains. So
+that the keys themselves are not material but metaphorical; a
+metaphor from stewards in great men's houses, kings' houses,
+&amp;c., into whose hands the whole trust and ordering of household
+affairs is committed, who take in and cast out servants, open and
+shut doors, &amp;c., do all without control of any in the family
+save the master of the family. Such, in the Hebrew phrase, are said
+to be <i>over the house</i>, Gen. xliii. 18; Isa. xxii. 15; 2 Kings
+xviii. 18: and the keys of the house are committed to them as a
+badge of their power. So that when God threatens to put Shebna out
+of his office in the king's house, and to place Eliakim, son of
+Hilkiah, in his room, he saith, "I will commit thy government into
+his hand&mdash;and the key of the house of David will I lay upon
+his shoulder," Isa. xxii. 21, 22, parallel of that phrase, "and the
+government shall be upon his shoulder," Isa. ix. 6. Hence, as key
+is in the Old Testament used for stewardly power and government,
+Isa. xxii. 21, 22; (only twice properly, Judges iii. 25; 1 Chron.
+ix. 27;) so in the New Testament, <i>key</i> is always used,
+metaphorically, to denote power, and that about ecclesiasticals or
+spirituals, viz. in Matt. xvi. 19; Luke xi. 52; Rev. i. 18, and
+iii. 7, and ix. 1, and xx. 1. So that <i>keys</i>, &amp;c., are
+metaphorically the ordinances which Christ hath instituted, to be
+dispensed in his church, preaching the word, administrations of the
+seals and censures: for it is not said <i>key</i>, but <i>keys</i>,
+which comprehendeth them all: by the right use of which both the
+gates of the Church here, and of heaven hereafter, are opened or
+shut to believers or unbelievers; and Christ promising or giving
+these <i>keys</i> to Peter and the apostles, and their successors
+<i>to the end of the world</i>, Matt. xxviii. 20, doth intrust and
+invest them with power and authority of dispensing these ordinances
+for this end, and so makes them <i>stewards</i> in his house <i>of
+the mysteries of God</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1, so that we may
+conclude:</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the church guides are the immediate
+subject and receptacle of that ecclesiastical power, and of the
+exercise thereof.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. Jesus Christ our Mediator did institute
+ecclesiastical offices for church government under the New
+Testament before any Christian Church under the New Testament was
+gathered or constituted. Therefore those persons that were
+intrusted with those offices must needs be the first and immediate
+receptacle or subject of the power of the keys. Thus we may
+argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. All those whose ecclesiastical offices for church
+government, under the New Testament, were instituted by Christ,
+before any formal visible Christian Church was gathered or
+constituted, are the first and immediate receptacle or subject of
+the power of the keys from Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the ecclesiastical offices of Christ's own
+officers for governing of the Church, now under the New Testament,
+were instituted by Christ before any formal visible Christian
+Church was gathered or constituted.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Christ's own officers for governing
+of the Church now under the New Testament are the first and
+immediate receptacle or subject of the keys from Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p>The major proposition cannot reasonably be denied, and may be
+further cleared by these considerations, viz: 1. That the Church
+offices for church government under the New Testament are in their
+own nature intrinsically offices of power. The apostle styles it
+<i>power</i>, or <i>authority</i>, which is <i>given</i> to these
+officers by <i>the Lord</i>, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10. <i>The keys
+of the kingdom of heaven</i> are committed to them, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and <i>keys</i> import a stewardly power: compare Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18, John xx. 21, 23, with Isa. xxii. 21, 22. Materially,
+the acts and exercise of these officers are acts of power, as
+<i>binding, loosing</i>, &amp;c., Matt, xviii. 18; not only
+<i>preaching</i>, &amp;c., but <i>excommunicating</i>, is an act of
+power, 1 Cor. v. 4. Absolving the penitent, and confirming him
+again in the Church's love, is an act of power:&mdash;<i>to confirm
+love unto him</i>, i.e. authoritatively to confirm, &amp;c., as the
+word signifies, 2 Cor. ii. 8. Formally, these acts are to be done
+as acts of power, in Christ's name, and by his authority, Matt.
+xxviii. 19; 1 Cor. v. 4. Now if these offices be in their own
+nature offices of power, consequently they that have such offices
+conferred upon them by Christ, before the Christian Church had
+being or existence, they must needs be the first and immediate
+recipient subject of the power of the keys from Christ. 2. Either
+those church officers, whose offices were instituted before the
+Christian Church was constituted, must be the first subject of the
+power, &amp;c., or some others. If any other, then, 1. Either
+heathens, or heathen magistrates, who are out of the Church: but
+both these were absurd to grant; for then they that are not so much
+as church members should be church governors, and the Church be
+ecclesiastically judged by them that are without. 2. Or the first
+subject of this power was the Christian Church itself before it had
+existence; but that were notoriously absurd; and besides these, no
+other can be imagined, but the church officers; therefore they must
+needs be the first subject of the power of the keys.</p>
+<p>The minor proposition (viz. But the ecclesiastical offices of
+Christ's own officers for governing of the Church now under the New
+Testament, were instituted by Christ before any formal visible
+Christian Church was gathered or constituted) is so evident in the
+current of the New Testament, that it needs little confirmation.
+For, 1. The church offices under the New Testament, as apostleship,
+pastorship, &amp;c., were instituted by Christ either before his
+death&mdash;compare these places together, Mark iii. 13, 14,
+&amp;c.; Luke ix. 1, &amp;c., and x. 1, 2, &amp;c.; John xx. 21-23;
+Matt, xxviii. 18-20&mdash;or presently upon his ascension, Eph. iv.
+8, 11, 12, &amp;c.; Acts ii.; 1 Cor. xiii. 28. Now no formal
+Christian Church was constituted and gathered till the feast of
+Pentecost and afterwards. Then, after the apostles had received the
+gifts of the Holy Ghost, &amp;c., Acts ii., great multitudes of
+Jews and Gentiles were converted to Christ, and being converted,
+incorporated and associated themselves into churches, as the
+history of the Acts, chap, ii., and forward, evidenceth abundantly.
+2. Church officers, under the New Testament, are for the calling
+and gathering men unto Christ, and to his body mystical; and for
+admitting of those that believe into that one body, Matt, xxviii.
+18, 19; 1 Cor. xii. 28. And is not he that calleth, before them
+that are called by them; they that baptize, before the baptized;
+and they that gather the churches, before those churches which they
+gather? May we not hence conclude, <i>Therefore</i>, &amp;c.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. III. The names, titles, and other denominations
+purposely and peculiarly given to the church guides in Scripture,
+generally do bear power and authority engraven upon their
+foreheads. <i>Therefore</i>, they are the proper, immediate, and
+only subjects of ecclesiastical power. Thus we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. All those persons in the Church, that have such
+names, titles, or denominations given to them peculiarly in the
+Scriptures by the Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and
+power engraven upon them in reference to the Church, are the
+immediate and only proper subjects of ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But Christ's officers in the Church have such
+names, titles, or denominations given to them peculiarly in the
+Scriptures by the Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and
+power engraven upon them in reference to the Church.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church
+are the proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of
+ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p>This major proposition must be granted. For, 1. Is not this the
+Holy Ghost's familiar and ordinary manner in Scripture, to give
+titles and denominations, which are apt, pertinent, significative
+and instructing both to others and themselves that have such
+denominations conferred upon them? As in the family, the husband is
+called <i>the head of the wife</i>, 1 Cor. xi., because he is to
+govern, she is to be subject: the wife is called <i>an
+help-meet</i>, &amp;c., Gen. ii.: to teach the wife her duty, to
+help his good and comfort every way, to hinder it no way. So in the
+commonwealth, magistrates are called <i>heirs of restraint, to put
+men to shame</i>, Judges xviii. 7, because they are to restrain
+disorders, shame evil-doers: higher powers, to teach others
+subjection to them, Rom. xiii. 1. "An ordinance of man or human
+creation," 1 Pet. ii. 13: because, though magistracy in general be
+an ordinance of God, yet this or that special kind of magistracy,
+whether monarchical, aristocratical, &amp;c., is of man. Thus in
+the Church: the Church is called <i>Christ's body</i>, Ephes. iv.
+12, to show Christ's headship, the Church's subjection to Christ,
+and their near union to one another. Christians are called
+<i>members</i>, Rom. xii.; 1 Cor. xii., to teach them mutual love,
+care, and serviceableness to one another. Ministers are called
+<i>ambassadors of Christ</i>, 2 Cor. v. <i>Angels of the
+churches</i>, Rev. ii., to teach them to be faithful in their
+offices, and others to respect them for their offices. <i>Salt of
+the earth</i>, Matt. v. 13, because they are to season others
+spiritually. <i>Stars</i>, Rev. i., because they are to shine forth
+for the enlightening and guiding of others, &amp;c. 2. If this
+proposition be denied, then to what end are such names and
+denominations, importing authority, generally given by the Spirit
+of God to some sort of persons only, and not to others? Is it for
+no end? That would be a dangerous charge upon the Spirit of Christ.
+Is it for any end? Then what other can be imagined, than to
+signify, hold forth, and instruct both themselves and others in
+their duties, and to distinguish them that are vested with
+authority in the Church, from them that are not?</p>
+<p>The <i>major proposition</i> (viz. But Christ's own officers in
+the Church have such names, titles, or denominations given to them
+peculiarly in the Scriptures by the Spirit of Christ, as generally
+have authority and power engraven upon them in reference to the
+Church) may be evinced, 1. By induction of particular names
+attributed to Christ's officers. 2. By a denial of them, or the
+like, to any other members of the Church.</p>
+<p>1. By induction of particular titles or denominations attributed
+to Christ's officers, which generally have power and authority
+palpably engraven upon them: (yea, the self-same names are given to
+them, by which not only heathen writers, but also the Greek version
+of the Old Testament by the Septuagint, and the very original of
+the New Testament are wont to give to political officers, to
+express their political authority, power, and government,) as, for
+instance:</p>
+<p>1. <i>Presbyter or elder</i>, is ascribed often to Christ's
+church officers, as in Acts xiv. 23, and xv. 2, 4, and xx. 17; 1
+Tim. v. 17; Tit. v.; 1 Pet. v. 1. This same word is ascribed to
+<i>rulers political</i>, to <i>elders in the gate</i>, by the
+Septuagint, in Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 2 Sam. v. 3; 1
+Chron. vi. 3.</p>
+<p>2. <i>Overseer</i> or <i>bishop</i>, noting authority and power
+in having the charge and oversight of the flock, is ascribed to
+church officers in Acts xx. 28; Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i.
+7. This same word is used by the Septuagint, to denote the power of
+the civil magistrate, to whom the care and oversight of the
+commonwealth is committed, Numb. xxxi. 14; Judges ix. 28; 2 Kings
+xi. 15.</p>
+<p>3. <i>Guide, leader, conductor, captain, governor</i>, signifies
+them all, and is given to church officers, as contradistinct from
+the <i>church</i> and <i>saints</i>, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 24. It is
+also attributed to civil rulers to set forth their power, in Deut.
+i. 13; Micah iii. 9, 11; 2 Chron. v. 1; Ezek. xliv. 3, and xlv. 7;
+Dan. iii. 2; Acts vii. 10. This very word <i>governor</i>, is
+attributed to Christ himself, <i>out of thee shall come forth a
+governor, that shall rule</i> (or <i>feed</i>) <i>my people
+Israel</i>, Matt. ii. 6.</p>
+<p>4. <i>Steward, dispenser</i>. "Stewards of the mysteries of
+God," is the title given to ministers, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. "Steward of
+God," Tit. i. 7. "That faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord
+shall make ruler over his household," &amp;c., Luke xii. 42. This
+also is a title of power given to them that are set over families,
+as Gal. iv. 2, "he is under tutors and stewards." And to them that
+are set over cities&mdash;as Rom. xvi. 23, "Erastus the steward"
+(or as we render it, <i>the chamberlain</i>) "of the city saluteth
+you."</p>
+<p>5. <i>Pastor</i> is ascribed to Christ's officers; Eph. iv. 11,
+"and some pastors and teachers." They govern the Church as the
+shepherd his flock, feeding, ruling them as well with the
+shepherd's staff, as with food. This term is sometimes given to
+civil magistrates, Isa. xliv. 28; Micah v. 5: sometimes to Christ
+the great shepherd of the sheep, 1 Pet. v. 4; noting his authority,
+Matt. xxvi. 31; John x. 2, 11, 14, 16; Heb. xiii. 20; 1 Pet. ii.
+25: sometimes to God himself the supreme Ruler of the world, Ps.
+lxxx. 1.</p>
+<p>6. <i>Governments</i>, a denomination given to <i>ruling
+elders</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28, as hath been proved Sect. 1 of this
+Chapter. A metaphor from mariners or pilots, that steer and govern
+the ship: translated thence, to signify the power and authority of
+church governors, spiritual pilots, steering the ship or ark of
+Christ's Church. This word is used also by heathen authors, to
+signify political governors.<a href=
+"#note-94"><small>94</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ruler</i>. 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the elders that rule
+well"&mdash;and,</p>
+<p>"He that ruleth," Rom. xii. 8, and "Your rulers in the Lord," 1
+Thes. v. 12, viz. not only in the fear of the Lord,<a href=
+"#note-95"><small>95</small></a> nor only in those things that
+appertain to God's worship,<a href="#note-96"><small>96</small></a>
+but also in the Lord; i.e. who are over you, to rule according to
+the will of the Lord,<a href="#note-97"><small>97</small></a> even
+by the Lord Christ's power and authority derived to them. Now these
+names are among heathen authors ascribed to rulers of cities,
+armies, and kingdoms.<a href="#note-98"><small>98</small></a></p>
+<p>By these among other titles given to Christ's officers in
+Scripture, he that runs may read a plain authority and power
+enstamped on them in reference to the Church; and consequently on
+them that are thus denominated, unless they be applied to them
+improperly, unfitly, abusively; which we suppose no sober
+intelligent reader dare affirm.</p>
+<p>2. By a denial of these and like titles to the whole Church of
+Christ, or to any other members of the Church whatsoever, besides
+church officers. For where can it be showed in all the book of God,
+that in this sense, either the whole Church or any members thereof
+besides officers, are ever styled <i>presbyters, bishops,
+governors, stewards of God, or of the mysteries of God, pastors,
+governments, or rulers</i>? The greatest factors for popular
+government must let this alone forever. Thus, from all that hath
+been said, we need not fear to conclude:</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church
+are the proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of
+ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. IV. The relations which Christ's officers have
+unto his Church, imply and comprehend in themselves authority and
+power in reference to the Church, and therefore they are the proper
+subjects of ecclesiastical power. Thus we reason:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whosoever they are that peculiarly stand in such
+relations to the Church of Christ, as imply and comprehend in
+themselves authority and power for governing of the Church, they
+are the only subject of ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p>This proposition is evident; for, otherwise, to what end are
+those peculiar relations to the Church which comprehend government
+in them, unless such as are so peculiarly related be the only
+subjects of government? Shall all those relations be mere names and
+shadows? or shall others in the church be counted the subject of
+this authority and power for church government, that have no such
+relations to the Church at all implying any such power?</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the officers of Christ peculiarly stand in
+such relations to the Church of Christ as imply and comprehend in
+themselves authority and power for the government of the
+church.</p>
+<p>This assumption or minor proposition will be evident by a due
+induction of some of their particular relations that have such
+power enstamped on them; as for instance, Christ's officers stand
+in these relations of power to the Church and people of God.</p>
+<p>1. <i>They are pastors</i>, Eph. iv. 11. The church is the
+<i>flock</i>, John x. 16; 1 Cor. ix. 7; <i>flock</i>, Acts xx. 28,
+29; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. Hath not the <i>pastor</i> power to rule and
+govern his <i>flock</i>?</p>
+<p>2. They are <i>stewards</i>. "Who is that faithful and wise
+steward?" Luke xii. 42. "Stewards of the mysteries of God," 1 Cor.
+iv. 1, 2. "Stewards of God," Tit. i. 7. The Church and people of
+God are the Lord's <i>household</i>, over which these stewards are
+set, &amp;c., Luke xii. 42. <i>God's house</i>, 1 Tim. iii. 15;
+Heb. iii. 6. Have not stewards power to govern and order those
+<i>families</i> over which they are set, and wherewith they are
+intrusted? Gal. iv. 1.</p>
+<p>3. They are <i>bishops</i> or <i>overseers</i>, Phil. i. 1; 1
+Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i. 7. The Church and people of God are that
+<i>charge</i> which the Lord hath committed to their inspection.
+"Over which the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers," Acts xx. 28.
+Have not <i>overseers</i> power over that which is <i>committed to
+their inspection</i>?</p>
+<p>4. They are <i>catechizers</i> and <i>teachers</i>, Rom. xii. 7,
+8; Eph. iv. 11. The Church and people are <i>catechized</i>, Gal.
+vi. 6; <i>taught</i>. Hath not he that <i>catechizeth</i> power for
+government of him that is <i>catechized</i>? He that
+<i>teacheth</i> of him that is <i>taught</i>?</p>
+<p>5. They are <i>co-workers</i> with God, 1 Cor. iii. 9; 2 Cor.
+vi. 1. <i>Architects, builders</i>, &amp;c., 1 Cor. iii. 10; some
+of them <i>laying the foundation, others building thereupon</i>.
+The Church and people of God are God's building. "Ye are God's
+building," 1 Cor. iii. 9. Have not <i>builders</i> power of
+disposing and ordering affairs appertaining to the
+<i>building</i>?</p>
+<p>6. Finally, to add no more, the officers of Christ in the Church
+are not only as <i>nurses</i>; "We <i>were</i> gentle among you,
+even as a nurse cherisheth her children," 1 Thess. ii. 7: and as
+<i>mothers</i>; "My little children, of whom I travail in birth
+again," Gal. iv. 19: but also as <i>fathers</i>, 1 Thess. ii. 11; 1
+Cor. iv. 15, spiritual fathers in Christ: and the Church and people
+of God, they are the <i>sons</i> and <i>daughters</i>, the
+spiritual <i>babes</i> and <i>children</i>, begotten, brought
+forth, and nursed up by them, 1 Thess. ii. 7, 11; Gal. iv. 19: and
+have fathers no authority nor power of government over their
+children? See Eph. vi. 1-3; 1 Tim. iii. 4.</p>
+<p>Thus Christ's officers stand in such relation to the Church as
+do evidently carry power of government along with them; but where
+are any other members of the church besides officers, stated in
+such relation of <i>pastors, stewards, overseers, catechizers,
+builders, husbandmen, nurses, mothers</i>, and <i>fathers</i> to
+the Church of God and members of Christ, that can be evidenced by
+the Scriptures? Why may we not then clearly conclude,</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the officers of Christ are the only
+subjects of ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. V. The many divine commands and impositions of
+duties of obedience, submission, subjection, &amp;c., upon the
+Church and people of God, to be performed by them to Christ's
+officers, and that in reference to their office, do plainly
+proclaim the officers of Christ to be the proper receptacle and
+subject of authority and power from Christ for the government of
+his Church. Thus it may be argued:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever persons they are to whom the Church and
+people of God are peculiarly bound by the commands of Christ, to
+perform duties of obedience and subjection, and that in reference
+to their office in the church, they are the only subjects of
+authority from Christ for the government of his Church.</p>
+<p>This proposition needs no proof, unless we will be so absurd as
+to say that the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged by
+Christ's command to obey and be subject to them, that yet have no
+peculiar authority nor power over them, and that in reference to
+their office in the church.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the officers of Christ are those to whom the
+Church and people of God are peculiarly bound by the commands of
+Christ to perform duties of obedience and subjection, and that in
+reference to their office in the church.</p>
+<p>This assumption or minor proposition may be evidenced, 1. Partly
+by induction of some particular instances of Christ's commands,
+whereby the Church and people of God are bound to perform duties of
+obedience and subjection to the officers of Christ, in reference to
+their office in the church. 2. Partly by a denial of the like
+commands in reference to all others in the church, except the
+officers of the church only.</p>
+<p>Touching the first, viz. the instances of such commands,
+consider these following. The Church and people of God are
+commanded,</p>
+<p>1. To know their rulers. "We beseech you, brethren, to know them
+that labor among you, and are over you in the Lord," 1 Thess. v.
+12. <i>To know</i>, i.e., not simply and merely to know, but to
+acknowledge, accept, and approve of them as such rulers over you in
+the Lord. This teaches subjection to the office of ruling.</p>
+<p>2. To love them exceedingly for their work's sake. "Esteem them
+superabundantly in love for their work's sake," 1 Thess. v. 13. For
+what work? viz. both laboring and ruling, mentioned verse 12. If
+they must love them so exceedingly for ruling over them, must they
+not much more be obedient to this rule?</p>
+<p>3. To count them worthy of double honor in reference to their
+well-ruling. "Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of
+double honor, especially&mdash;," 1 Tim. v. 17: whether we take
+<i>double honor</i> here for reverence or maintenance, or both; yet
+how can we esteem the <i>elders ruling well worthy of double
+honor</i> without some submission to their rule?</p>
+<p>4. To obey them that are their rulers and governors. <i>Obey ye
+your rulers, or governors</i>, Heb. xiii. 17; where the words
+<i>obey ye</i> doth not (as some dream) signify a persuasion, but
+obedience, and in this sense it is commonly used, not only in
+profane authors, but also in the Holy Scriptures, as James iii. 3,
+Gal. iii. 1.</p>
+<p>5. Finally, to submit and be subordinate unto them. The Church
+and people of God are charged to submit unto them. "Obey your
+governors and submit ye," Heb. xiii. 17. The word properly notes a
+submissive yielding without opposition or resistance; yea, it
+signifies intense obedience. They must not only yield, but yield
+with subjection and submission, which relates to authority. They
+are also charged to be subordinate to them. "Likewise, ye younger,
+submit yourselves to the elders," 1 Pet. v. 5; i.e., <i>be ye
+subordinate</i>, (it is a military term,) viz: be ordered, ranked,
+guided, governed, disciplined by them, as soldiers are by their
+commanders. The word <i>elders</i> here is by some taken only for
+elders in age, and not in office. But it seems better to interpret
+it of elders in office; and the context well agrees with this; for
+the apostle having immediately before charged the ruling preaching
+presbyters with their duties towards their flock, ver. 1-4, here he
+seems to enjoin the ruled flock (which commonly were younger in age
+and gifts) to look to their duties of subjection to their elders in
+office.</p>
+<p>Touching the second, viz. the denial of like commands, and upon
+like grounds to all others in the church, except to the church
+officers only: where can it be evidenced in all the Scriptures that
+the people of God are commanded to know, to esteem very highly in
+love, to count worthy of double honor, to obey, and submit
+themselves to any persons in the church but to the ruling officers
+thereof in reference to their office, and the due execution
+thereof?</p>
+<p>Now, seeing the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged,
+by so many commands of Christ, to perform such duties of subjection
+and obedience to the officers of Christ, may it not be
+concluded,</p>
+<p>Therefore the officers of Christ are the only subjects of
+authority from Christ for the government of his Church?</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. VI. Finally, the directions touching rule and
+government in the Church; the encouragements to well-ruling by
+commendations, promises, rewards, together with the contrary
+deterring discouragements from ill-ruling, by discommendations,
+threats, &amp;c., being specially applied and appropriated by the
+word of Christ unto Christ's officers, very notably discover to us
+that Christ's officers are the only subjects of power from Christ
+for the government of his Church. Thus it may be argued:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever persons in the Church have directions
+for church government, encouragements to well-ruling, and
+discouragements from ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly
+applied unto them by the word of Christ; they are the only subjects
+of power from Christ for the government of his Church:</p>
+<p>This proposition is evident: For, 1. How should it be consistent
+with the infinite wisdom of God peculiarly to apply unto them
+directions about ruling and governing the church that are not the
+only subjects in whom the power of government is intrusted by Jesus
+Christ? 2. How can it stand with the justice of God to encourage
+them only unto well-ruling, by commendations, promises, rewards,
+&amp;c., or to deter them from ill-governing by dispraises,
+threats, &amp;c., &amp;c., to whom the power of government doth not
+appertain, as to the only subjects thereof? 3. What strange
+apprehensions and distractions would this breed in the hearts of
+Christ's officers and others, should those that have not the power
+of church government committed to them by Christ, be yet directed
+by his word how to govern, encouraged in governing well, and
+deterred from governing ill?</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the officers of Christ in the church have
+directions for church government, encouragements to well-ruling,
+and discouragements from ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly
+applied unto them by the word of God.</p>
+<p>This assumption or minor proposition may be cleared by divers
+Scriptures according to the particular branches thereof, viz:</p>
+<p>1. Directions for church government are particularly applied by
+the word of Christ to his own officers: as for instance, they are
+directed to <i>bind and loose</i>&mdash;to <i>remit</i> and
+<i>retain sins on earth</i>, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx.
+21, 23. <i>To judge them that are within the</i> Church, <i>not
+without</i>, 1 Cor. v. 12. <i>Not to lord it, domineer</i>, or
+<i>overrule the flock of Christ</i>, 1 Pet. v. To <i>rule well</i>,
+1 Tim. v. 17. To rule <i>with diligence</i>, Rom. xii. 8. To <i>lay
+hands suddenly on no man, neither to be partakers of other men's
+sins, but to keep themselves pure</i>, 1 Tim. v. 22. <i>Not to
+prefer one before another, nor do anything by partiality</i>, 1
+Tim. v. 21. <i>To rebuke them that sin before all, that others also
+may fear</i>, 1 Tim. v. 20. <i>To reject a heretic after once or
+twice admonition</i>, Tit. iii. 10. To use the <i>authority that is
+given them from the Lord to the edification, not to the
+destruction</i> of the Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; with
+divers such like rules specially directed to Christ's officers.</p>
+<p>2. Encouragements to well-ruling are peculiarly directed to
+Christ's officers. For, 1. They are the persons specially commended
+in that respect; <i>well-ruling</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17. <i>Good and
+faithful steward</i>, Luke xii. 42. The angels of the churches are
+praised for their good government, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6, and ver. 18,
+19. 2. They are the persons to whom the promises, in reference to
+good government, are directed, as Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20;
+John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xxviii. 19, 20; Luke xii. 42-44; 1 Pet. v.
+4. 3. They are the persons whom the Lord will have peculiarly
+rewarded, now with <i>double honor</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17; hereafter
+with <i>endless glory</i>, 1 Pet. v. 4.</p>
+<p>3. Discouragements, deterring from ill-governing, are also
+specially applied to Christ's officers, whether by way of dispraise
+or threats, &amp;c., Rev. ii. 12, 14-16, and ver. 18, 20.</p>
+<p>Now if, 1. Rules for church government, 2. Encouragements in
+reference to well ruling, and, 3. Discouragements in reference to
+ill-ruling, be so peculiarly directed by the word of Christ to his
+own officers, we may conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore the officers of Christ in the Church are the only
+subjects of power from Christ for the government of his Church.</p>
+<p><i>Object</i>. But the church<a href=
+"#note-99"><small>99</small></a> of a particular congregation fully
+furnished with officers, and rightly walking in judgment and peace,
+is the first subject of all church authority, as appears from the
+example of the church of Corinth in the excommunication of the
+incestuous Corinthian, 1 Cor. v. 1-5; wherein it appears that the
+presbytery alone did not put forth this power, but the brethren
+also concurred in this sentence with some act of power, (viz. a
+negative power:) for, 1. The reproof, for not proceeding to
+sentence sooner, is directed to the whole Church, as well as to the
+presbytery. They are all blamed for not mourning, &amp;c., 1 Cor.
+v. 2. 2. The command is directed to them all, when they are
+gathered together, (<i>and what is that but to a church
+meeting?</i>) to proceed against him, 1 Cor. v. 4, 13. 3. He
+declareth this act of theirs, in putting him out, to be a judicial
+act, ver. 12. 4. Upon his repentance the apostle speaketh to the
+brethren, as well as to their elders, to forgive him, 2 Cor. ii.
+4-10. Consequently, Christ's church officers are not the peculiar,
+immediate, or only subject of the power of the keys, as hath been
+asserted.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. I. As for the main proposition asserted in this
+objection, something hath been formerly laid down to show the
+unsoundness of it. (See chap. X. near the end.) Whereunto thus much
+may be superadded. 1. What necessity is there that a particular
+congregation should be fully furnished with officers, to make it
+the subject of all church authority? For deacons are one sort of
+officers, yet what authority is added to the Church by the addition
+of deacons, whose office it is only to serve tables, Acts vi., not
+to rule the Church? or if the Church have no deacons, as once it
+had not, Acts i. 2, and before that, all the time from Christ,
+wherein is she maimed or defective in her authority? 2. If the
+Church, fully furnished with officers, yet walk not in judgment and
+peace, then in such case it is granted, that a particular
+congregation is not the first subject of all church authority. Then
+a congregation that walks in error or heresy, or passion, or
+profaneness, all which are contrary to judgment; and that walks in
+divisions, schisms, contentions, &amp;c., which are contrary to
+peace, loseth her authority. Stick but close to this principle, and
+you will quickly lay the church authority of most independent
+congregations in the dust. But who shall determine whether they
+walk in judgment and peace, or not? Not themselves; for that were
+to make parties judges in their own case, and would produce a very
+partial sentence. Not sister churches; for all particular churches,
+according to them, have equal authority, and none may usurp one
+over another. Not a presbyterial church, for such they do not
+acknowledge. Then it must be left undetermined, yea undeterminable,
+(according to their principles;) consequently, who can tell when
+they have any authority at all? 3. Suppose the congregation had all
+her officers, and walked in judgment and peace also, yet is she not
+the first subject of all authority; for there is a synodal
+authority, beyond a congregational authority, as confessed by Mr.
+Cotton.<a href="#note-100"><small>100</small></a></p>
+<p>II. As for the proofs of this proposition asserted here, they
+seem extremely invalid and unsatisfying. For,</p>
+<p>The instance of the church of Corinth excommunicating the
+incestuous person, will not prove the congregation to be the first
+subject of all church authority: 1. Partly, because the church of
+Corinth was a presbyterial church, having several congregations in
+it, (as hereafter is evidenced, chap. XIII.;) now to argue from the
+authority of a presbyterial church, to the authority of a
+congregational, affirmatively, is not cogent. 2. Partly, because
+here were but two acts of power mentioned in this instance, viz.
+casting out and receiving again of the incestuous person: suppose
+the community had joined the presbytery in these two acts, (which
+yet is not proved,) will it follow therefore they are the first
+subject of all church authority? Are not ordination of presbyters,
+determination in case of appeals, of schism, of heresy, &amp;c.,
+acts of authority above the sphere of a single congregation? What
+one congregation can be instanced in the New Testament that did
+ever execute any of these acts of authority?</p>
+<p>The reasons brought, prove not that the brethren did concur with
+the presbytery in this sentence with some act of power, as will
+appear plainly, if they be considered severally.</p>
+<p>1. Not the reproof, 1 Cor. v. 2, "And ye are puffed up, and have
+not rather mourned, that he that hath done this deed might be taken
+away from among you." Here they are blamed, that they no more laid
+to heart so vile a scandal, which should have been matter of
+mourning to the whole congregation; that they instead of mourning
+were puffed up, gloried in their shame; and that they sluggishly
+neglected to endeavor, in their sphere, his casting out. And all
+this blame might justly be charged upon the whole church, the
+fraternity as well as the presbytery: the scandal of one member
+should be the grief of the whole body of the church. What then?
+Hath therefore the fraternity, as well as the presbytery, power to
+cast him out? That were a miserable consequence indeed: the people
+should not only have mourned for the sin, but have urged the
+presbytery to have proceeded to sentence, and after sentence have
+withdrawn from him, in obedience to the sentence; but none of all
+these can amount to a proper act of church authority in them.</p>
+<p>2. Nor doth the apostle's command prove the people's concurrence
+in any act of power with the presbytery, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, "In the
+name of our Lord Jesus Christ, when ye are gathered together, to
+deliver such an one unto Satan," &amp;c.: ver. 7, "Purge out
+therefore the old leaven," &amp;c.: and ver. 13, "Therefore put
+away from among yourselves that wicked person." In which passages
+it is supposed the apostle directs his injunction to them all (as
+well as to their presbytery) when they come together in their
+church meeting to proceed to sentence.</p>
+<p>But against this reason, well ponder upon these considerations,
+viz: 1. It is certain beyond all controversy, that the apostle did
+not direct these commands to the whole church of Corinth
+absolutely, and universally, without all exception and limitation
+to any members at all: for by his own rule, "Women must be silent
+in their churches, it being a shame for a woman to speak in the
+church," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, and children or fools were not able to
+judge. Hence it is evident that a church absolutely and universally
+taken, cannot possibly be the ministerial ruling church which hath
+the authority. 2. It is evident to any man that is but moderately
+acquainted with the Scriptures, that God useth to direct his
+commands, reproofs, and other speeches to a people indifferently,
+and as it were collectively and generally, which yet he intends
+should be particularly applied and appropriated; not to all, but to
+this or that person or persons, only among such a people
+distributively and respectively; according to their respective
+callings, interests, relations, &amp;c., as in the Old Testament
+God directs a command to the people of Israel indefinitely, and as
+it were collectively, to kill enticers to idolatry, false prophets,
+Deut. xiii. 9; but intended that the judge should sentence him,
+finding him guilty by witnesses. The Lord also directs his command
+to all the people, as it were collectively, to put out of the camp
+"every one that was a leper, and had an issue, or was defiled by
+the dead," Numb. v. 2; but intended that the priest should
+peculiarly take and apply this command to himself, who was to judge
+in these cases. See Lev. xiii. and elsewhere. So in the New
+Testament the apostle praised the Corinthians indefinitely, and as
+it were collectively, for "remembering him in all things, and
+keeping the ordinances as he delivered them to them," 1 Cor. xi. 2;
+wherein he intended only to commend the virtuous; and after he
+discommends them indefinitely for "coming together not for better,
+but for worse," 1 Cor. xi. 17; intending only their dispraise that
+were herein particularly delinquent among them. Again, he speaks
+indefinitely, and as it were collectively and generally, "Ye may
+all prophesy one by one," 1 Cor. xiv. 31; but he intended it only
+to the prophets respectively, not to all the members; for he saith
+elsewhere, "Are all prophets?" 1 Cor. xii. 29. And writing to the
+churches of Galatia, Gal. i. 2, against false teachers he speaks
+thus to all those churches collectively, "A little leaven leaveneth
+the whole lump," Gal. v. 9. And, "I would they were even cut off
+who trouble you," ver. 12. Now every one of these churches were to
+apply this to themselves respectively, Independents themselves
+being judges. So here in this present case of the church of
+Corinth, the apostle directs his commands to them, as it were
+collectively, about putting away the incestuous person, which
+commands were particularly to be put in execution by the presbytery
+in that church in whose hands the church authority was.<a href=
+"#note-101"><small>101</small></a></p>
+<p>Thus taking these commands, 1 Cor. v. 4, 7, 13, though directed
+indefinitely, and as it were collectively to the whole church, yet
+intended respectively to be put in execution by the presbytery in
+that church, they hold forth no concurrence of the people in any
+act of power at all with the church officers or presbytery. And it
+is a good note which Cameron<a href=
+"#note-102"><small>102</small></a> hath upon this place, "These
+things that are written in this epistle are so to be taken of the
+presbytery and of the people, that every one both of the presbyters
+and of the people, should interpret the command according to the
+reason of his office." 3. When the apostle reciteth the proceedings
+of the church in this very case of the incestuous person, in his 2d
+epistle, he saith, "Sufficient to such a man is this punishment"
+(or censure) "which was inflicted of many," 2 Cor. ii. 6. It is
+very observable, he saith not, <i>of all</i>; nor <i>of many</i>,
+but <i>of the chief ones</i>, viz. the church officers, who had the
+rule and government of the church committed to them: (the article
+<i>the</i> being emphatical;) for this word translated <i>many</i>
+may as well be translated chief, denoting worth, &amp;c., as many,
+denoting number. And in this sense the Holy Ghost ofttimes useth
+this word in the New Testament; as for instance, "Is not the life
+better than meat?" Matt. vi. 25. "Behold, a greater than Jonah is
+here," Matt. xii. 41. "And behold, a greater than Solomon is here,"
+Matt. xii. 41. "To love him with all the heart," &amp;c., "is more
+than all whole burnt-offerings and sacrifices," Mark xii. 33. And
+again, ver. 43, "This poor widow hath cast more than all they,"
+&amp;c. And thus it is frequently used to signify quality, worth,
+greatness, dignity, eminency, &amp;c., and so it may be
+conveniently interpreted in this of the Corinthians. 4. Though all
+proper acts of authority appertain only to the church officers, yet
+we are not against the people's fraternal concurrence therewith.
+People may incite the presbytery to the acts of their office;
+people may be present at the administration of censures, &amp;c.,
+by the elders, as Cyprian of old would dispatch all public acts,
+the people being present; people may judge with a judgment of
+discretion, acclamation, and approbation, &amp;c., as the elders
+judge with a judgment of power; and people afterwards may, yea
+must, withdraw from delinquents sentenced, that the sentence may
+attain its proposed end. But none of these are properly any acts of
+power.</p>
+<p>3. Nor doth the apostle's expression, verse 12, "Do you not
+judge them that are within?" prove that the people concur with any
+authoritative act in the elders' sentence. For, 1. This being
+spoken to them indefinitely, was to be applied distributively and
+respectively, only to them to whom it properly appertained, viz.
+the elders, as hath been showed. They only have authority to judge.
+2. Such a judgment is allowed to the saints in church censures, as
+shall be allowed to them when the saints shall judge the world, yea
+angels, 1 Cor. vi. 1-3, viz. in both a judgment of acclamation,
+approbation, &amp;c., as assessors, as people judge at the assizes;
+not in either a judgment of authority, which the judge and jury
+only do pronounce.</p>
+<p>4. Nor, finally, doth the apostle's direction to forgive the
+incestuous, being penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 4-10, which seems to be
+given to all, prove the people's concurrence with the elders in any
+act of power. For the authoritative forgiving and receiving him
+again, belonged only to the elders; the charitable forgiving,
+receiving, and comforting of him, belonged also to the people. As
+the judge and jury at an assizes, acquit by judgment of authority,
+the people only by judgment of discretion and acclamation.</p>
+<p>Thus it appears how little strength is in this instance of the
+church of Corinth, (though supposed to be the strongest ground the
+Independents have,) for the propping up of their popular
+government, and authoritative suffrage of the people.</p>
+<a name="H_SECTIII-III"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION III.</h3>
+<p>III. Having thus considered the subject of authority and power
+for church government: 1. Negatively, what it is not, viz. neither
+the political magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or
+whole body of the people, Chap. IX. and X. 2. Positively, what it
+is, viz. Christ's own officers in his church, as hath been
+explained and evidenced, Sect. 2, of this Chap. 3. Now, in the
+third and last place, we are to insist a little further upon this
+subject of the power, by way of explanation: and to inquire, seeing
+Christ's officers are found to be the subject of this power, in
+what sense or notion they are the subject and receptacle of this
+authority and power from Christ, whether jointly or severally; as
+solitarily and single from one another, or associated and
+incorporated into assemblies with one another; or in both
+respects?</p>
+<p>For resolution herein we must remember that distribution of the
+keys, or of proper ecclesiastical power, (which was briefly
+mentioned before in Part 2, Chap. III.) into that which is,</p>
+<p>1. More special and peculiar to the office of some church
+governors, which by virtue of their office they are to execute and
+discharge: thus it is peculiar to the minister's office, 1. To
+preach the word; compare these places together, Matt. xxviii.
+18-20, John xx. 21-23, Rom. x. 15, 1 Tim. v. 17, Heb. xiii. 7, 2
+Tim. iv. 1, 2, &amp;c. 2. <i>To dispense the sacraments</i>, Matt.
+xxviii. 18-20, 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25. The word and sacraments were
+joined together in the same commission to the same officers, viz.
+the preaching presbyters, &amp;c., as is evident in that of Matt.
+xxviii. 19.</p>
+<p>2. More general and common to the office of all church
+governors, as the power of censures, viz. admonishing,
+excommunicating, and absolving, and of such other acts as
+necessarily depend thereupon; wherein not only the preaching, but
+also the ruling elders are to join and contribute their best
+assistance; as may be collected from these several testimonies of
+Scripture, Matt. xviii. 17, 18, <i>Tell the Church</i>,<a href=
+"#note-103"><small>103</small></a> 1 Cor. v. 2-13, 2 Cor. ii. 6-12,
+compared with Rom. xii. 8, 1 Cor. xii. 28, and 1 Tim. v. 17.</p>
+<p>Now these officers of Christ, viz. they that labor in the word
+and doctrine, and the ruling elders, are the subject of this power
+of jurisdiction as they are united in one body, hence called a
+Church, Matth. xviii. 18, viz. the governing or ruling church; for
+no other can there be meant; and presbytery,<a href=
+"#note-104"><small>104</small></a> i.e. a society or assembly of
+presbyters together, 1 Tim. iv. 14.</p>
+<p>The presbyters, elderships, or assemblies wherein these officers
+are united and associated, are of two sorts, viz: 1. The lesser
+assemblies, consisting of the ministers and ruling elders in each
+single congregation; which, for distinction's sake, is styled the
+congregational eldership. 2. The greater assemblies, consisting of
+church governors sent from several churches and united into one
+body, for governing of all these churches within their own bounds,
+whence their members were sent. These greater assemblies are either
+presbyterial or synodal. 1. Presbyterial, consisting of the
+ministers and elders of several adjacent or neighboring single
+congregations, or parish churches, ruling those several
+congregations in common; this kind of assembly is commonly called
+the presbytery, or, for distinction's sake, the classical
+presbytery, i.e. the presbytery of such a rank of churches. 2.
+Synodal, consisting of ministers and elders, sent from presbyterial
+assemblies, to consult and conclude about matters of common and
+great concernment to the church within their limits. Such was that
+assembly mentioned, Acts xv. These synodal assemblies are either,
+1. Of ministers and elders from several presbyteries within one
+province, called provincial. 2. Or of ministers and elders from
+several provinces within one nation, called therefore national. Or,
+3. Of ministers and elders from the several nations within the
+whole Christian world, therefore called ecumenical: for all which
+assemblies, congregational, presbyterial, and synodal, and the
+subordination of the lesser to the greater assemblies respectively,
+there seems to be good ground and divine warrant in the word of
+God, as (God willing) shall be evinced in the xii., xiii., xiv.,
+and xv. chapters following.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0019"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XII.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Divine Right of Congregational Elderships or Kirk
+Sessions, for the government of the Church.</i></h3>
+<p>Touching congregational elderships, consisting of the ministers
+and ruling elders of the several single congregations, which are
+called the lesser assemblies, or smaller presbyteries, and which
+are to manage and order all ecclesiastical matters within
+themselves, which are of more immediate, private, particular
+concernment to their own congregations respectively; and
+consequently, of more easy dispatch, and of more daily use and
+necessity. Concerning these congregational presbyteries, we shall
+not now take into consideration either, 1. What are the members
+constituting and making up these elderships; whether ruling elders
+by divine warrant may be superadded to the pastors and teachers,
+and so be associated for the government of the congregation. For
+the divine right of the ruling elders, distinct from the preaching
+elder for the government of the church, hath been evidenced at
+large, Chapter XI., Section 1, foregoing. And if any acts of
+government in the church belong to the ruling elder at all, sure
+those acts of common jurisdiction, to be dispatched in these least
+assemblies, cannot of all other be denied unto him. 2. Nor shall it
+here be discussed, what the power of congregational elderships is,
+whether it be universally extensive to all acts of government
+ecclesiastical whatsoever, without exception or limitation; and
+that independently, without subordination to the greater
+assemblies, and without all liberty of appeal thereunto in any
+cases whatsoever, though of greatest and most common concernment.
+Which things are well stated and handled by others;<a href=
+"#note-105"><small>105</small></a> and will in some measure be
+considered afterwards in Chapter XV.</p>
+<p>3. But the thing for the present to be insisted upon, against
+the Erastian and prelatical party, is, the divine right of
+authority and power for church government, which is in
+congregational presbyteries or elderships, in reference to their
+respective congregations. Take it thus:</p>
+<p>Elderships of single congregations vested and furnished with
+ecclesiastical authority and power to exercise and dispense acts of
+government in and over those respective congregations whereunto
+they do belong, are by divine right warrantable.</p>
+<p>For confirmation hereof the light of nature, the institution of
+Christ, the apostolical practice, and the law of necessity, seem to
+speak sufficiently unto us.</p>
+<p>1. The common light of nature thus far directeth all sorts of
+smaller societies, whether political or ecclesiastical, to compose
+all particular and more private differences and offences within
+themselves; and to decide and determine small, common, easy causes
+and matters, by smaller courts and judicatories appointed for that
+end: a vain thing to trouble more and greater assemblies with those
+matters, that may as well be determined by the lesser. It was wise
+and grave counsel which Jethro, Moses' father-in-law, gave to
+Moses, that he should set up over the people certain judges
+inferior to himself, who themselves might judge all smaller
+matters, but all <i>great and hard matters to be brought to
+Moses</i>, Exod. xviii. 22, 26. And our Saviour seems to insinuate,
+that the Jews had their inferior courts for inferior causes,
+superior judicatories for greater, in that gradation of his, Matt.
+v. 22. Likewise they had lesser and greater ecclesiastical
+assemblies, (as after will appear.) Now, to what use are greater
+and lesser judicatories, civil or ecclesiastical, but that the
+lesser and lighter causes may be judged in the inferior, harder and
+greater in the superior?</p>
+<p>2. The institution of Christ recorded Matt. xviii. 15-21, seems
+to hold forth notably both single congregational elderships, and
+their power. And this, whether we consider the Jewish form, unto
+which our Saviour seems to refer; or whether we observe the matter
+of his discourse.</p>
+<p>1. As for the Jewish form of church government (unto which our
+Saviour here seems to allude) we may observe it was managed by two,
+if not three sorts of ecclesiastical courts, viz: By the Sanhedrin,
+presbytery, and synagogue, (much like to the evangelical synod,
+presbytery, and congregational eldership since Christ.) 1. They had
+their ecclesiastical,<a href="#note-106"><small>106</small></a> as
+well as their civil Sanhedrin, for high and difficult affairs of
+the church; which seems first to be constituted, Exod. xxiv. 1, and
+after decay thereof, it was restored by King Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron.
+xix. 8; and from this court that national church's reformation
+proceeded, Neh. vi. 13. 2. Again, it is very probable they had
+between their Sanhedrin and their synagogue a middle ecclesiastical
+court called <i>The Presbytery</i>, Luke xxii. 66, and Acts xxii.
+5, <i>and the whole presbytery</i>. Let such as are expert in
+Jewish antiquities and their polity, consider and judge. 3.
+Finally, they had their lesser judicatories in their synagogues, or
+congregational meetings: for, their synagogues were not only for
+prayer, and the ministry of the word, in reading and expounding the
+Scriptures, but also for public censures, correcting of offences,
+&amp;c., as that phrase seems to import, "And I punished them oft
+in every synagogue," Acts xxvi. 11. His facts and proceedings, it
+is true, were cruel, unjust, impious. But why inflicted <i>in every
+synagogue</i>, rather than in other places, and that by virtue of
+the <i>high priest's letters</i>, Acts ix. 1, 2; but there the Jews
+had judicatories, that inflicted public punishments upon persons
+ecclesiastically offending? Besides, we read often in the New
+Testament of the <i>rulers of the synagogue</i>, as Mark v. 35, 36,
+38; Luke viii. 41, and xiii. 14; and of Crispus and Sosthenes the
+chief <i>rulers of the synagogue</i>, Acts xviii. 8, 17; whence is
+intimated to us, that these synagogues had their rule and
+government in themselves; and that this rule was not in one person,
+but in divers together; for if there were chief rulers, there were
+also inferiors subordinate unto them: but this is put out of doubt,
+in Acts xiii. 15, where after the lecture of the law and the
+prophets, <i>the rulers of the synagogue sent unto
+them</i>&mdash;<i>synagogue</i> in the singular number, and rulers
+in the plural. Thus analogically there should be ecclesiastical
+rulers and governors in every single congregation, for the well
+guiding thereof. But if this satisfy not, add hereunto the material
+passages in our Saviour's speech.</p>
+<p>2. Now touching the matter of our Saviour's discourse, it makes
+this very clear to us; for by a gradation he leadeth us from
+admonition private and personal, to admonition before two or three
+witnesses, and from admonition before two or three witnesses, to
+the representative body of one church, (as the phrase <i>tell the
+church</i> must here necessarily be interpreted,) if there the
+difference can be composed, the offence removed, or the cause
+ended; rather than unnecessarily render the offence, and so our
+brother's shame, more public and notorious. And that the presbytery
+or eldership of a particular congregation, vested with power to
+hear and determine such cases as shall be brought before them, is
+partly, though not only here intended, seems evident in the words
+following, which are added for the strengthening and confirming of
+what went before in ver. 17: "Verily, I say unto you, whatsoever ye
+shall bind on earth shall be bound in heaven; and whatsoever ye
+shall loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven. Again, I say unto
+you, that if two of you shall agree on earth as touching any thing
+that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of my Father which
+is in heaven. For where two or three are gathered together in my
+name, there am I in the midst of them," Matt. xviii. 18-20. In
+which passages these things are to be noted: 1. That this church to
+which the complaint is to be made, is invested with power of
+<i>binding</i> and <i>loosing</i>, and that so authoritatively that
+what by this church shall be bound or loosed on earth shall also be
+bound or loosed in heaven, according to Christ's promise. 2. That
+these acts of <i>binding</i> or <i>loosing</i>, may be the acts but
+of two or three, and therefore consequently of the eldership of a
+particular congregation; for where such a juridical act was
+dispatched by a classical presbytery, it is said to be done of
+<i>many</i>, 2 Cor. ii. 6, because that in such greater
+presbyteries there are always more than <i>two or three</i>. And
+though some do pretend, that the faults here spoken of by our
+Saviour in this place, were injuries, not scandals; and that the
+church here mentioned was not any ecclesiastical consistory, or
+court, but the civil Sanhedrin, a court of civil judicature; and
+yet most absurdly they interpret the binding and loosing here
+spoken of, to be doctrinal and declarative; not juridical and
+authoritative; as if the doctrinal binding and loosing were in the
+power of the civil Sanhedrin:<a href=
+"#note-107"><small>107</small></a> yet all these are but vain,
+groundless pretences and subterfuges, without substance or
+solidity, as the learned and diligent reader may easily find
+demonstrated by consulting these judicious authors mentioned in the
+foot note,<a href="#note-108"><small>108</small></a> to whom for
+brevity's sake he is referred for satisfaction in these and divers
+such like particulars.</p>
+<p>3. The consideration of the apostolical practice, and state of
+the Church of God in those times, may serve further to clear this
+matter to us. For, 1. We sometimes read of single congregations;
+and as the Holy Ghost doth call the whole body of Christ <i>the
+Church</i>, Matt. xvi. 18, 1 Cor. xii. 28, and often elsewhere; and
+the larger particular members of that body of Christ (partaking the
+nature of the whole, as a drop of water is as true water as the
+whole ocean) churches; as, <i>the church of Jerusalem</i>, Acts
+viii. 1; <i>the church of Antioch</i>, Acts xiii. 1; <i>the church
+of Ephesus</i>, Rev. ii. 1; <i>the church of Corinth</i>, 2 Cor. i.
+1; (these being the greater presbyterial churches, as after will
+appear, Chap. XIII.;) so the same holy Spirit of Christ is pleased
+to style single congregations, <i>churches</i>, "Let women keep
+silence in the churches," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, i.e. in the single
+congregations of this one church of Corinth: and often mention is
+made of the church that is in such or such an <i>house</i>, as Rom.
+xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19; Col. iv. 15; Philem. 2; whether this be
+interpreted of the church made up only of the members of that
+family, or of the church that ordinarily did meet in such houses,
+it implies a single congregation. Now shall single congregations
+have the name and nature of churches, and shall we imagine they had
+not in them the ordinary standing church officers, viz. pastors and
+teachers, governments, or elders <i>ruling well</i>, and helps or
+deacons? or is it probable they were furnished with these officers,
+and yet the officers furnished with no power for the government of
+these single congregations at all? 2. We find that the apostles
+being crowned with such success in their ministry, as to be
+instruments of converting such multitudes to the faith as were
+sufficient to make up many several churches from time to time, did
+diligently take care to ordain them presbyters, or elders <i>in
+every church</i>, Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5. Now can it be clearly
+evidenced by any, that these were not ruling as well as preaching
+presbyters; especially when it appears by other places that the
+primitive churches had both? Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28;</p>
+<p>1 Tim. v. 17. Or can we think that the apostles were not as
+careful to erect elderships in several congregations, as to appoint
+elders? otherwise how could the apostles have answered it to their
+Lord and Master Jesus Christ, in leaving them without that
+necessary provision of government, which Christ himself had allowed
+to them, at least, in some cases, as hath been evidenced?</p>
+<p>4. Finally, necessity (which is a strong and cogent law) plainly
+and forcibly pleads for elderships in particular congregations
+endowed with authority and power from Christ for government within
+themselves. For, 1. How wearisome a thing would it be to all
+congregations, should every one of their members be bound to attend
+upon synods and greater presbyteries, (which in the country are at
+a great distance from them,) in all ecclesiastical matters of
+judicature, if they had no relief in their own congregations? How
+impossible would it be for the greater presbyteries, not only to
+hear and determine all hard and weighty, but also all small and
+easy causes that would be brought before them? And what should
+become of such a congregation as either voluntarily transplants
+itself, or is accidentally cast among heathens or pagans in far
+countries, where there are no Christians or churches to join and
+associate withal, if they be denied an authoritative presbytery
+within themselves, for preventing and healing of scandals, and
+preserving themselves from destruction and ruin, which anarchy
+would unavoidably bring upon them?</p>
+<a name="2HCH0020"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIII.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Divine Right of Presbyteries, (for distinction's sake
+called Classical Presbyteries,) for the government of the
+Church.</i></h3>
+<p>Having spoken of the lesser, viz. congregational elderships, we
+come now to the greater ruling assemblies, which are either
+presbyterial or synodal. And first, of the presbyterial assembly,
+or classical presbytery, viz. an assembly made up of the presbyters
+of divers neighboring single congregations, for governing of all
+those respective congregations in common, whereunto they belong, in
+all matters of common concernment and greater difficulty in the
+Church. The divine warrant and right of this presbytery, and of the
+power thereof for church government, may principally be evidenced,
+1. By the light of nature. 2. By the light of Scripture, which
+light of Scripture was followed by the Church in the ages after the
+apostolical times.</p>
+<p>I. The light of nature and right reason may discover to us
+(though more dimly) the divine warrant of the greater presbyteries,
+and of their power for the governing of the church. For,</p>
+<p>1. There are many ecclesiastical matters which are of common
+concernment to many single congregations, as trial of church
+officers, ordination and deposition of ministers, dispensation of
+censures, judicial determination of controversies, resolution in
+difficult cases of conscience, ordering of things indifferent,
+&amp;c.; here the rule holds well, that which concerns many
+congregations, is not to be considered and determined upon only by
+one, but those many concerned and interested therein.</p>
+<p>2. Single congregational elderships stand in need of all mutual
+help and assistance one of another in the Lord, being, 1. Inwardly
+weak in themselves; too prone to be turned out of the way, Heb.
+xii. 13, Gal. v. 15, and too feeble for divers great tasks: as
+examination and ordination of ministers, &amp;c., which weakness is
+healed by association with others assisting them. 2. Outwardly
+opposed by many dangerous and subtle adversaries: men as grievous
+wolves, &amp;c., Acts xx. 28-30; 2 Pet. ii. 1; Phil. iii. 2; 1 Tim.
+iv. 1-7; Eph. iv. 14; devils, 1 Pet. v. 8. In such cases two are
+better than one: "Wo to them that are alone; if they fall, who
+shall take them up?"</p>
+<p>3. Such intricate cases may fall out as cannot be determined and
+settled by the eldership of a single congregation. As for instance,
+some member in the congregation may conceive himself so wronged by
+the eldership thereof, that he cannot submit to their unjust
+sentence; shall he not in such case have liberty of appeal from
+them? If not, then he is left without a remedy, (which is the
+calamity of the Independent government.) If he may, whether shall
+he appeal regularly but to an associated presbytery? therefore
+there must be such a presbytery to appeal unto. Again, there may be
+a controversy betwixt the whole congregation, and their presbytery;
+yea, the presbytery itself may be equally divided against itself;
+yea, one single congregation may have a great and weighty contest
+with another sister congregation, (all single congregations being
+equal in power and authority, none superior, none inferior to
+others.) Now, in these and such like cases, suppose both parties be
+resolute and wilful, and will not yield to any bare moral suasion
+or advice without some superior authority, what healing is left in
+such cases, without the assistance of an authoritative presbytery,
+wherein the whole hath power to regulate all the parts?</p>
+<p>4. Single congregations, joined in vicinity and neighborhood to
+one another, should avoid divisions, (which are destructive to all
+societies, as well ecclesiastical as civil,) and maintain peace and
+unity among themselves, (which is conservative to all societies;)
+neither of which, without associated presbyteries, can be firmly
+and durably effected. Both which ought with all diligence to be
+endeavored. For, 1. Peace and unity in the Church are in themselves
+amiable, and ought to be promoted, Psal. cxxxiii. 1, &amp;c.; Eph.
+iv. 3, 13; 1 Cor. i. 10. 2. Schisms and divisions are simply evil,
+and all appearance, cause, and occasion thereof, ought carefully to
+be avoided, 1 Cor. xii. 25; Rom. xvi. 17; 1 Thes. iv. 22. 3. All
+congregations are but as so many branches, members, parts of that
+one church, one body, one family, one commonwealth, one kingdom,
+whereof Christ is Head, Lord, and King; and therefore they should
+communicate together, and harmoniously incorporate and associate
+with one another, (so far as may be,) for the common good, peace,
+unity, and edification of all. See 1 Cor. xii. 12-29; Eph. ii.
+12-16, and iv. 12-14, and v. 23-25.</p>
+<p>II. The light of Scripture will hold forth the divine warrant of
+greater presbyteries and their power for church government, far
+more clearly than the light of nature. Forasmuch as we find in the
+Scriptures a pattern of these greater presbyteries, and of their
+presbyterial government over divers single congregations in common
+in the primitive apostolical churches. For the greater evidence and
+perspicuity hereof, take this proposition:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern
+of presbyterial government in common over divers single
+congregations in one Church, for a rule to his Church in all after
+ages. For confirmation hereof, there are chiefly these three
+positions to make good, which are comprised in this proposition,
+viz: 1. That there is in the word a pattern of divers single
+congregations in one church. 2. That there is in the word a pattern
+of one presbyterial government in common over divers single
+congregations in one church. 3. Finally, that the pattern of the
+said presbyterial government, is for a rule to the churches of
+Christ in all after ages.</p>
+<center>POSITION I.</center>
+<p>That there is in the word a pattern of divers single
+congregations in one church, may be plentifully evinced by four
+instances of churches, (to mention no more,) viz. the churches of
+Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth. Touching which four these
+two things are clear in the Scripture, viz: 1. That every of them
+was one church. 2. That in every one of these churches there were
+more congregations than one. Both which will fully evince a pattern
+of divers single congregations in one church held forth in the
+word.</p>
+<p>1. The former of these, viz. That every one of these was one
+church, may be proved by induction of particulars. 1. All the
+believers in Jerusalem were one church; hence they are often
+comprised under the word church, of the singular
+number:&mdash;"Against the church which was at Jerusalem," Acts
+viii. 1. "Then tidings of these things came unto the ears of the
+church which was in Jerusalem," Acts ii. 22. "And when they were
+come to Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the
+apostles and elders," Acts xv. 4. 2. All the believers in Antioch
+were one church. "Now there were in the church that was at Antioch,
+certain prophets," Acts xiii. 1. "And when he had found him, he
+brought him to Antioch. And it came to pass, that a whole year they
+assembled themselves with the church, and taught much people, and
+the disciples were first called Christians in Antioch," Acts xi.
+26. 3. All the believers in Ephesus were one church: "And from
+Miletus he sent to Ephesus, and called the elders of the church,"
+Acts xx. 17. And after he gives them this charge, "Take heed
+therefore to yourselves, and to all the flock, over which the Holy
+Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed the church of God," ver. 28;
+all were but <i>one flock, one church</i>. "Unto the angel of the
+church of Ephesus, write," Rev. ii. 1. 4. All the believers in
+Corinth were one church, and comprised under that singular word,
+church: "Unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 1 Cor. i. 2.
+"Paul, an apostle of Jesus Christ, by the will of God, and Timothy
+our brother, unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 2 Cor. i.
+1. Thus in all these four instances it is clear beyond all
+contradiction, that they were every of them respectively one
+church.</p>
+<p>The latter of these, viz. that these primitive apostolical
+churches of Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, were not
+every of them severally and respectively only one single
+congregation, (as some imagine,) but consisted every of them of
+more congregations than one. This shall be manifested in these four
+churches severally, as followeth:</p>
+<p>The church of Jerusalem in Judea contained in it more
+congregations than one. This may be convincingly evidenced divers
+ways, particularly from, 1. The multitude of believers in that
+church. 2. The multitude of church officers there. 3. The variety
+of languages there. 4. The manner of the Christians' public
+meetings in those primitive times, both in the church of Jerusalem,
+and in other churches.</p>
+<p>1. From the multitude of believers in the church of Jerusalem.
+For it is palpably evident to any impartial reader that will not
+wilfully shut his eyes, and subject his reason unto the groundless
+dictates of men, against the clear light of the Scripture, that
+there were more believers in the church of Jerusalem, than could
+ordinarily meet in one congregation, to partake of all the
+ordinances of Christ.</p>
+<p>And this may fully appear by these many instances following. 1.
+Christ after his resurrection, and before his ascension, "was seen
+of above five hundred brethren at once," 1 Cor. xv. 6. 2. "After
+that of James, then of all the apostles," ver. 7. 3. At the
+election of Matthias, and before Christ's ascension, there were
+disciples together, the "company of their names together was as it
+were one hundred and twenty," Acts i. 15. 4. At Peter's sermon,
+"they that gladly received his word, were baptized. And that day
+were added about three thousand souls," Acts ii. 1, 4. 5. And "The
+Lord added to the Church daily such as should be saved," ver. 27.
+6. Afterwards at another of Peter's sermons, "Many of them that
+heard the word believed; and the number of the men was about five
+thousand," Acts iv. 4. 7. After that, "Believers were the more
+added to the Lord, multitudes both of men and women," Acts v. 14.
+8. Furthermore, the disciples multiplying, and the work of the
+ministry thereupon much increasing, the apostles were necessitated
+to appoint seven deacons for serving of tables, that they might
+wholly "give themselves to the ministry of the word and prayer,"
+Acts vi. 1 to 7; whence some have thought, that there were seven
+congregations in Jerusalem, a deacon for every one. Certainly there
+were rather more than fewer, (saith the author of the Assertion of
+the Government of the Church of Scotland,<a href=
+"#note-109"><small>109</small></a>) though we cannot determine how
+many. However this, the Holy Ghost clearly testifieth that "The
+word of God increased, and the number of the disciples in Jerusalem
+multiplied greatly." 9. "And a great company of the priests became
+obedient to the faith," Acts vi. 7; and probably the example of the
+priests drew on multitudes to the Gospel. All these forementioned
+were in a short time converted, and became members of this one
+church of Jerusalem, and that before the dispersion occasioned by
+the persecution of the Church, Acts viii. 1. Now should we put all
+these together, viz. both the number of believers expressed in
+particular, which is 8,620, and the multitudes so often expressed
+in the general, (which, for aught we know, might be many more than
+the former,) what a vast multitude of believers was there in
+Jerusalem! and how impossible was it for them to meet all together
+in one congregation, to partake of all the ordinances of Jesus
+Christ! 10. In like manner, after the dispersion forementioned, the
+word so prospered, and the disciples brought into the faith by it,
+so multiplied, that it was still far more impossible for all the
+believers in the church of Jerusalem to meet in one congregation to
+partake of all the ordinances of Christ, than before. For it is
+said, "Then had the churches rest throughout all Judea" (and the
+church of Jerusalem in Judea was doubtless one of those churches)
+"and Galilee and Samaria, and were edified; and walking in the fear
+of the Lord, and comfort of the Holy Ghost, were multiplied." 11.
+Again, "the word of the Lord increased and multiplied," Acts xii.
+24. 12. Furthermore, when Paul, with other disciples, his
+fellow-travellers, came to Jerusalem, and "declared to James and
+the elders, what things God had wrought by his ministry among the
+Gentiles&mdash;They glorified the Lord, and said unto him, Thou
+seest, brother, how many" myriads (or ten thousands) "of believing
+Jews there are, and they are all zealous of the law"&mdash;Acts
+xxi. 20. Our translation seems herein very defective, rendering it
+how many thousands; whereas it should be, according to the Greek,
+how many ten thousands: and these myriads seem to be in the church
+of Jerusalem, seeing it is said of them, ver. 22, "The multitude
+must needs come together, for they will hear that thou art come."
+Now considering this emphatical expression, not only
+<i>thousands</i>, but <i>ten thousand</i>: not <i>only ten
+thousand</i> in the singular number, but <i>ten thousands,
+myriads</i>, in the plural number: nor only <i>myriads, ten
+thousands</i>, in the plural number, but <i>how many ten
+thousands</i>; we cannot in reason imagine but there were at least
+three ten thousands, viz: thirty thousand believers, and how all
+they should meet together in one congregation for all ordinances,
+let the reader judge. Thus far of the proof, from the multitude of
+believers in the church of Jerusalem.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. But the five thousand mentioned Acts iv. 4, are
+no new number added to the three thousand, but the three thousand
+included in the five thousand, as Calvin and Beza think.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. Then it is granted that five thousand one hundred
+and twenty, besides an innumerable addition of converts, were in
+Jerusalem; which if such a number, and multitudes besides, could
+for edification meet in one place, to partake of all the
+ordinances, let the reader judge.</p>
+<p>2. Though Calvin and Beza think the three thousand formerly
+converted to be included in this number of five thousand, Acts iv.
+4, yet divers both ancient and modern interpreters are of another
+mind, as Augustine. There came unto the body of the Lord in number
+three thousand faithful men; also by another miracle wrought, there
+came other five thousand.<a href="#note-110"><small>110</small></a>
+These five thousand are altogether diverse from the three thousand
+converted at the first sermon: so Lorinus, Aretius, and divers
+others.</p>
+<p>3. Besides a great number of testimonies, there are reasons to
+induce us to believe, that the three thousand are not included in
+the five thousand, viz: 1. As the three thousand mentioned in Acts
+ii. 41, did not comprehend the one hundred and twenty mentioned
+Acts i. 15, so it holds in proportion that the three thousand
+mentioned there, are not comprehended here in Acts iv. 4. Besides,
+2. This sermon was not by intention to the church, or numbers
+already converted, but by occasion of the multitude flocking
+together to behold the miracle Peter and John wrought on the "man
+that was lame from his mother's womb;" as Acts iii. 10-12; so that
+'tis more than probable that the five thousand mentioned Acts iv.
+4, are a number superadded besides the three thousand already
+converted.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. But suppose such a number as three thousand, and
+afterwards five thousand were converted in Jerusalem, yet these
+remained not constant members of that Church, for the three
+thousand were not dwellers at Jerusalem, but strangers who came out
+of all countries to keep the feast of Pentecost: yea, Acts ii. 9,
+they are said expressly to be "dwellers of Mesopotamia,
+Cappadocia," &amp;c., and so might erect churches where they
+came.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. 'Tis said, Acts ii. 14, "Peter standing" (when he
+began to preach this sermon wherein the three thousand were
+converted) "said, Ye men of Judea, and all ye that dwell at
+Jerusalem, hearken to my voice;" intimating that these he preached
+to dwelt at Jerusalem.</p>
+<p>But grant that some of these men that heard Peter's sermon were
+formerly dwellers in Mesopotamia and Cappadocia, what hinders but
+that they might be now dwellers at Jerusalem?</p>
+<p>3. The occasion of their coming up to Jerusalem at this time was
+not only the observation of the feast of Pentecost, (which lasted
+but a day,) but also the great expectation that the people of the
+Jews then had of the appearance of the Messiah in his kingdom, as
+we may collect from Luke xix. 11, where it is said, "They thought
+the kingdom of God should immediately appear;" so that now they
+might choose to take up their dwellings at Jerusalem, and not
+return, as they had been wont, at the end of their usual
+feasts.</p>
+<p>4. The Holy Ghost makes mention that in the particular places
+mentioned, ver. 9, 10, that of all those nations there were some
+that dwelt at Jerusalem; read Acts ii. 5, "There were dwelling at
+Jerusalem Jews, devout men out of every nation under heaven;" if
+out of every nation, then out of those nations there specified; and
+even there dwelling at Jerusalem. 5. Those who were scattered by
+reason of persecution into Judea and Samaria, and other parts of
+the world, did not erect new churches, but were still members of
+that one church in Jerusalem; so saith the Scripture expressly,
+that "they" (of the church of Jerusalem) "were all scattered abroad
+throughout the region of Judea and Samaria," Acts viii. 1.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. Although it should be granted that before the
+dispersion mentioned Acts viii. 1, 2, the number was so great that
+they could not meet together in one place, yet the persecution so
+wasted and scattered them all, that there were no more left than
+might meet in one congregation?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. After the dispersion there were more believers in
+Jerusalem than could meet together in one place for all acts of
+worship, as appears by Acts ix. 31, "The churches had rest
+throughout all Judea," &amp;c., "and were multiplied;" Acts xii.
+24, "The word of God grew and multiplied;" and Acts xxi. 20, James
+saith of the believers of this church, "how many thousands of the
+Jews there are which believe, and are zealous of the law;" or, as
+it is in the Greek, thou seest how many <i>ten thousands</i> there
+are of the Jews which believe; this text will evince, that there
+were many thousands in the church of Jerusalem after the
+dispersion, as hath been observed: and if this number were not more
+after the dispersion than could meet together to partake of all
+ordinances, let the reader judge.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. But the text saith expressly, all were scattered
+except the apostles.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. <i>All</i> must be understood either of all the
+believers, or all the teachers and church officers in the church of
+Jerusalem, except believers; but it cannot be understood of all the
+believers that they were scattered: and therefore it must be
+understood that all the teachers and church officers were
+scattered, except the apostles. That all the believers were not
+scattered will easily appear: For, 1. 'Tis said that Paul broke
+into houses, "haling men and women, committed them to prison," ver.
+3, and this he did in Jerusalem, Acts xxvi. 10; therefore all could
+not be scattered. 2. "They that were scattered, preached the word,"
+ver. 4, which all the members, men and women, could not do;
+therefore by all that were scattered must of necessity be meant,
+not the body of believers in the church, but only the officers of
+the church. 3. If all the believers were scattered, to what end did
+the apostles tarry at Jerusalem&mdash;to preach to the walls? this
+we cannot imagine.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. But can any think the teachers were scattered,
+and the ordinary believers were not, except we suppose the people
+more courageous to stay by it than their teachers?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. It is hard to say, that those that are scattered in
+a persecution, are less courageous than those that stay and suffer.
+In the time of the bishops' tyranny, many of the Independent
+ministers did leave this kingdom, while others of their brethren
+did abide by it, endured the heat and burden of the day, "had trial
+of cruel mockings, bonds and imprisonments:" now the Independent
+ministers that left us, would think we did them wrong, should we
+say that they were less courageous than those that stayed behind,
+enduring the hot brunt of persecution.</p>
+<p>II. From the multitude of church officers in Jerusalem, it may
+further appear, that there were more congregations than one in the
+church of Jerusalem. For there were many apostles, prophets, and
+elders in this church of Jerusalem, as is plain, if we consider
+these following passages in the Acts of the Apostles. After
+Christ's ascension, "the eleven apostles returned to Jerusalem, and
+continued in prayer and supplication," Acts i. 12-14. Matthias
+chosen by lot, was also "numbered with the eleven apostles," Acts
+i. 26. "And when the day of Pentecost was fully come, they were all
+with one accord in one place," Acts ii. 1. "Peter standing up with
+the eleven, lift up his voice and said," Acts ii. 14. "They were
+pricked in their heart, and said to Peter and to the rest of the
+apostles, Men and brethren, what shall we do?" Acts ii. 37. "And
+the same day there were added about three thousand souls, and they
+continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine and fellowship, and
+in breaking of bread, and in prayers," Acts ii. 42. "And with great
+power gave the apostles witness of the resurrection of the Lord
+Jesus," Acts iv. 33. "As many as were possessors of lands or
+houses, sold them, and brought the prices of the things that were
+sold, and laid them down at the apostles' feet," Acts iv. 34, 35,
+37. "Then the twelve called the multitude of the disciples to
+them," Acts vi. 2. "Now, when the apostles which were at
+Jerusalem," Acts viii. 14. "They determined that Paul and Barnabas
+and certain other of them should go up to Jerusalem unto the
+apostles and elders about this question. And when they were come to
+Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the apostles
+and elders; and the apostles and elders came together," Acts xv. 2,
+4, 6, 22, 23; xi. 30. And "in those days came prophets from
+Jerusalem unto Antioch," Acts xi. 27. In all which places, the
+multitude of apostles, elders, and prophets in this church of
+Jerusalem is evident. And it is further observable, that the
+apostles devolved the serving of tables upon the seven deacons,
+that they might wholly "give themselves to prayer and the ministry
+of the word," Acts vi, 2; which needed not, nor would there have
+been full employment for the apostles, if there had not been divers
+congregations in that one church of Jerusalem.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 'Tis true, the apostles were for a time in
+Jerusalem, yet when in Judea or elsewhere any received the gospel,
+the apostles went abroad to erect other churches.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Touching the apostles going abroad, there can be
+given but one instance, Acts viii. 14, where the whole twelve went
+not forth, but only two were sent, viz. Peter and John: but suppose
+it were granted, that upon some special occasions the apostles went
+out from Jerusalem, can it be imagined that the apostles' ordinary
+abode would be at Jerusalem, to attend only one single
+congregation, as if that would fill all their hands with work?</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. The apostles were well employed when they met in
+an upper room, and had but one hundred and twenty for their flock,
+and this for forty days together; now if they stayed in Jerusalem
+when they had but one hundred and twenty, and yet had their hands
+filled with work, the presence of the apostles argues not more
+congregations in Jerusalem than could meet in one place for all
+acts of worship.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. From Christ's ascension (immediately after which
+they went up to the upper chamber) to the feast of Pentecost, there
+were but ten days, not forty; so that there is one mistake.</p>
+<p>2. During that time betwixt Christ's ascension and the feast of
+Pentecost, (whether ten or forty days is not very material,) the
+apostles were especially taken up in prayer and supplication,
+waiting for the promise of the Spirit to qualify them for the work
+of the ministry: now, because the twelve apostles, before they had
+received the extraordinary gifts of the Spirit, did continue for a
+short time in Jerusalem with a small number in prayer, will it
+therefore follow that after they had received these extraordinary
+gifts, that they were bound up within the limits of one single
+congregation?</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. The argument that there were many teachers in
+Jerusalem, proves not that there were more congregations in
+Jerusalem than one, because there were then many gifted men, which
+were not officers, which yet occasionally instructed others, as
+Aquila did Apollos; therefore it seems they were only gifted
+persons, not officers.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. Grant that in those times there were many gifted
+men, not in office, which might occasionally instruct others, as
+Aquila did Apollos; yet it is further to be noted, that,</p>
+<p>2. This instructing must be either private, or public; if
+private only, then the objection is of no force, (because these
+teachers instructed publicly;) if in public, then if this objection
+were of force, it would follow, that women might instruct publicly,
+because Priscilla, as well as Aquila, instructed Apollos.</p>
+<p>3. The current of expositors say, that the seventy disciples
+were at Jerusalem among the one hundred and twenty, Acts i. 16, who
+were teachers by office.</p>
+<p>III. From the variety of languages among the disciples at
+Jerusalem, it is evident there were more congregations than one in
+that one church: the diversity of languages among them is plainly
+mentioned in divers places, "And there were dwelling at Jerusalem,
+Jews, devout men out of every nation under heaven. Now every man
+heard them speak in his own language," &amp;c., Acts ii. 5, 8-12.
+Now, of those that heard this variety of languages, and Peter's
+sermon thereupon, "They that gladly received his word, were
+baptized, and the same day there were added about three thousand
+souls," Acts ii. 41, which diversity of languages necessitated
+those members of the church of Jerusalem to enjoy the ordinances in
+divers distinct congregations in their own language. And that they
+might so do, the Spirit furnished the apostles, &amp;c., with
+diversity of languages, which diversity of languages were as well
+for edification of them within the Church, as for a sign to them
+that were without.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. Though the Jews being dispersed were come in from
+other countries, yet they were all generally learned, and
+understood the Hebrew tongue, the language of their own nation, so
+that diversity of tongues proves not, that of necessity there must
+be distinct places to meet in.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. It is easier said than proved, that the Jews were
+so generally skilled in the Hebrew tongue, when, while they were
+scattered in Media and Parthia, and other places, they had no
+universities or schools of learning. Besides, it is not to be
+forgotten, that the proper language or dialect in those days in use
+among the Jews was Syriac; as appears by divers instances of Syriac
+words in the New Testament, as of the Jews' own terms: Acts i. 19,
+which "in their proper tongue, is called Aceldama;" John xix. 13.
+17, <i>Gabbatha, Golgotha</i>, &amp;c.; Mark xv. 34, <i>Eloi, Eloi,
+lama-sabachthani</i>; with divers other pure Syriac terms. Grant
+they did; yet,</p>
+<p>2. There were in Jerusalem proselytes also, Romans,
+Cappadocians, Cretians, and Arabians, Acts ii. 10, 11; how could
+they be edified in the faith, if only one congregation, where
+nothing but Hebrew was spoken, met in Jerusalem; if so be there
+were not other congregations for men of other languages, that
+understood not the Hebrew tongue?</p>
+<p>IV. From the manner of Christians' public meetings in those
+primitive times, both in the church of Jerusalem and in other
+churches. It is plain that the multitudes of Christians in
+Jerusalem, and other churches, could not possibly meet all together
+in one single congregation, inasmuch as they had no public temples,
+or capacious places for worship and partaking of all ordinances,
+(as we now have,) but private places, <i>houses, chambers</i>, or
+<i>upper rooms</i>, (as the unsettled state of the Church and
+troublesomeness of those times would permit,) which in all
+probability were of no great extent, nor any way able to contain in
+them so many thousand believers at once, as there were: "They met
+from house to house, to break bread," Acts ii. 46. "In an upper
+room the apostles with the women and brethren continued in prayer
+and supplication," Acts i. 12-14. We read of their meetings in the
+<i>house of Mary</i>, Acts xii. 12. In the school <i>of one
+Tyrannus</i>, Acts xix. 9. In an <i>upper chamber at Troas</i>,
+Acts xx. 8. In <i>Paul's own hired house</i> at Rome, Acts xxviii.
+30, 31. In the <i>house of Aquila and Priscilla</i>, where the
+church met, therefore called the <i>church in his house</i>, Rom.
+xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19. In the <i>house of Nimphas</i>, Col. iv.
+15, and in the <i>house of Archippus</i>, Philem. 2. This was their
+manner of public meetings in the apostles' times: which also
+continued in the next ages, as saith Eusebius,<a href=
+"#note-111"><small>111</small></a> till, by indulgence of
+succeeding emperors, they had large churches, houses of public
+meeting erected for them.</p>
+<p>To sum up all: 1. There were in the church at Jerusalem greater
+numbers of believers than could possibly meet at once to partake of
+all Christ's ordinances. 2. There were more church officers than
+one single congregation could need, or than could be fully employed
+therein, unless we will say, that they preached but seldom. 3.
+There was such diversity of languages among them, that they must
+needs rank themselves into several congregations, according to
+their languages, else he that spoke in one language to hearers of
+many several languages, would be a barbarian to them, and they to
+him. 4. Finally, their places of ordinary meeting were private, of
+small extent, incapable of containing so many thousands at once as
+there were believers; and by all these, how evident is it, that
+there must needs be granted that there were more congregations than
+one in this one church of Jerusalem!</p>
+<p>II. The church of Antioch, in Syria, consisted also of more
+congregations than one. This appears,</p>
+<p>1. From the multitude of believers at Antioch. For, 1. After the
+dispersion upon Saul's persecution, <i>the Lord Jesus was preached
+at Antioch, and a great number believed</i>, &amp;c., Acts xi. 21.
+2. Upon <i>Barnabas's</i> preaching there, <i>much people was added
+to the Lord</i>, Acts xi. 24. 3. <i>Barnabas</i> and <i>Saul</i>
+for a year together taught much people there, and disciples there
+so mightily multiplied, that there Christ's disciples first
+received the eminent and famous denomination of CHRISTIANS, and so
+were and still are called throughout the whole world, Acts xi. 25,
+26.</p>
+<p>2. From the multitudes of prophets and preachers that ministered
+at Antioch. For, 1. Upon the dispersion of the Jews at Jerusalem,
+<i>divers of them (being men of Cyprus and Cyrene) preached the
+Lord Jesus at Antioch</i>, Acts xi. 20; here must be three or four
+preachers at least, otherwise they would not be <i>men of Cyprus
+and Cyrene</i>. 2. After this <i>Barnabas</i> was sent to preach at
+Antioch; there is a fifth, Acts xi. 22-24. 3. <i>Barnabas</i> finds
+so much work at <i>Antioch</i>, that he goes to Tarsus to bring
+<i>Saul</i> thither to help him; there is a sixth, ver. 25, 26. 4.
+Besides these, <i>there came prophets from Jerusalem to Antioch in
+those days</i>; there are at least two more, viz. eight in all,
+Acts xi. 27, 28. 4. Further, besides <i>Barnabas</i> and
+<i>Saul</i>, three more teachers are named, viz. <i>Simon called
+Niger, Lucius of Cyrene, and Manaen</i>, Acts xii. 1-3. 6. Yea,
+"Paul and Barnabas continued in Antioch, teaching and preaching the
+word of the Lord, with many others also," Acts xv. 35. Now sum up
+all, what a multitude of believers, and what a college of preachers
+were here at Antioch! How is it possible that all these preachers
+should bustle themselves about one congregation (and doubtless they
+abhorred idleness) in dispensing the ordinances of Christ to them
+only? or how could so many members meet in one single congregation
+at once, ordinarily to partake of all ordinances?</p>
+<p>III. The church of Ephesus (<i>in Asia Minor</i>, Acts xix. 22)
+had in it more congregations than one: For,</p>
+<p>1. The number of prophets and preachers at Ephesus were many.
+<i>Paul</i> continued there <i>two years and three months</i>, Acts
+xix. 8, 10; and <i>Paul</i> settled there about twelve <i>disciples
+who prophesied</i>, Acts xix. 1, 6, 7. And how should these
+thirteen ministers be employed, if there were not many
+congregations? Compare also Acts xx. 17, 28, 36, 37, where it is
+said of the bishops of Ephesus, that "Paul kneeled down and prayed
+with them all, and they all wept sore." Here is a good number
+implied.</p>
+<p>2. The gift of tongues also was given unto all these twelve
+prophets, Acts xix. 6, 7. To what end, if they had not several
+congregations of several languages, to speak in these several
+tongues unto them?</p>
+<p>3. The multitude of believers must needs be great at Ephesus:
+For, 1. Why should <i>Paul</i>, who had universal commission to
+plant churches in all the world, stay <i>above two years
+together</i> at Ephesus if no more had been converted there than to
+make up one single congregation? Acts xix. 8, 10. 2. During this
+space, "all that dwelt in Asia," usually meeting at Ephesus for
+worship, "heard the word of the Lord, both Jews and Greeks," Acts
+xix. 10. 3. At the knowledge of <i>Paul's</i> miracles, "fear fell
+upon all the Jews and Greeks dwelling at Ephesus, and the name of
+the Lord Jesus was magnified," Acts xix. 17. 4. <i>Many</i> of the
+believers <i>came and confessed, and showed their deeds</i>, ver.
+18, whereby is intimated that more did believe than did thus. 5.
+"Many also of them that used curious arts brought their books
+together, and burned them before all men, and they counted the
+price of them, and found it fifty thousand pieces of silver," (this
+they would never have done publicly if the major part, or at least
+a very great and considerable part of the city, had not embraced
+the faith, that city being so furiously zealous in their
+superstition and idolatry,) "so mightily grew the word of God, and
+prevailed," Acts xix. 19, 20. 6. <i>Paul</i> testifies that at
+Ephesus <i>a great door and effectual was open unto him</i>, viz. a
+most advantageous opportunity of bringing in a mighty harvest of
+souls to Christ, 1 Cor. xvi. 8, 9. Put all together, 1. The number
+of prophets and preachers; 2. The gifts of tongues conferred upon
+those prophets; and, 3. The multitude of believers which so
+abounded at Ephesus: how is it possible to imagine, upon any solid
+ground, that there was no more but one single congregation in the
+church of Ephesus?</p>
+<p>IV. The church of Corinth in Gr&aelig;cia comprised in it also more
+congregations than one, as may be justly concluded from, 1. The
+multitude of believers. 2. The plenty of ministers. 3. The
+diversity of tongues and languages. 4. And the plurality of
+churches at Corinth. Let all these be well compared together.</p>
+<p>1. From the multitude of believers. There appears to be a
+greater number of believers at Corinth than could all at once meet
+together to partake of all the ordinances of Christ: For, 1. At
+Paul's first coming to Corinth, and at his first sermon preached in
+the house of Justus, it is said, "And Crispus, the chief ruler of
+the synagogue, believed on the Lord, and all his house, and many of
+the Corinthians hearing, believed and were baptized," Acts xviii.
+1, 7, 8. Here is Crispus and all his house, (which probably was
+very great, he being the chief ruler of the synagogue,) and <i>many
+of the Corinthians, believing</i>; an excellent first-fruits; for
+who can justly say but Paul at his first sermon converted so many
+as might be sufficient to make up one single congregation? 2.
+Immediately after this (Paul having shook his raiment against the
+Jews, who, contrary to his doctrine, opposed themselves and
+blasphemed; and having said unto them, "Your blood be upon your own
+heads, I am clean: from henceforth I will go unto the Gentiles,"
+Acts xviii. 6) the Lord comforts Paul against the obstinacy of the
+Jews by the success his ministry should have among the Gentiles in
+the city of Corinth: "Then spake the Lord to Paul in the night by a
+vision, Be not afraid, but speak, and hold not thy peace: for I am
+with thee, and no man shall set on thee to hurt thee: for I have
+much people in this city," Acts xviii. 9, 10. <i>Much people</i>
+belonging to God, according to his secret predestination, over and
+besides those that already were actually his by effectual vocation.
+And <i>much people</i>, in respect of the Jews that opposed and
+blasphemed, (who were exceeding many,) otherwise it would have been
+but small comfort to Paul if by <i>much people</i> should be meant
+no more than could meet at once in one small single congregation.
+3. Paul himself continued at Corinth "a year and six months
+teaching the word of God among them," Acts xviii. 11. To what end
+should Paul the apostle of the Gentiles stay so long in one place,
+if he had not seen the Lord's blessing upon his ministry, to bring
+into the faith many more souls than would make up one congregation,
+having so much work to do far and near? 4. "They that believed at
+Corinth were baptized," Acts xviii. 8. (Baptism admitted them into
+that one body of the Church, 1 Cor. xii. 13.) Some were baptized by
+Paul, (though but few in comparison of the number of believers
+among them: compare Acts xviii. 8, with 1 Cor. 14-17,) the
+generality consequently were baptized by other ministers there, and
+that in other congregations wherein Paul preached not, as well as
+in such wherein Paul preached; it being unreasonable to deny the
+being of divers congregations for the word and sacraments to be
+dispensed in, himself dispensing the sacrament of baptism to so
+few.</p>
+<p>2. From the plenty of ministers and preachers in the church of
+Corinth, it is evident it was a presbyterial church, and not only a
+single congregation; for to what end should there be many laborers
+in a little harvest, many teachers over one single congregation?
+&amp;c. That there were many preachers at Corinth is plain: For, 1.
+Paul himself was the master-builder there that laid the foundation
+of that church, 1 Cor. iii. 10, their spiritual father; "In Christ
+Jesus I have begotten you through the gospel," 1 Cor. iv. 15. And
+he stayed with them <i>one year and a half</i>, Acts xviii. II. 2.
+While the apostle sharply taxeth them as guilty of schism and
+division for their carnal crying up of their several teachers: some
+doting upon one, some upon another, some upon a third, &amp;c.
+"Every one of you saith, I am of Paul, and I of Apollos, and I of
+Cephas, and I of Christ," 1 Cor. i. 12. Doth not this intimate that
+they had plenty of preachers, and these preachers had their several
+followers, so prizing some of them as to undervalue the rest? and
+was this likely to be without several congregations into which they
+were divided? 3. When the apostle saith, "Though ye have ten
+thousand instructors in Christ, yet have ye not many fathers," 1
+Cor. v. 15; though his words be hyperbolical, yet they imply that
+they had great store of teachers and preachers. 4. We have mention
+of many prophets in the church of Corinth: "Let the prophets speak
+two or three, and let the other judge&mdash;And the spirits of the
+prophets are subject to the prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 20, 31. Here are
+<i>prophets</i> speaking <i>two or three</i>; and prophets judging
+of their doctrine, which sure were more than they that were judged;
+it being unreasonable for the minor part to pass judgement upon the
+major part. And though these prophets had extraordinary gifts, (as
+the church of Corinth excelled all other churches in gifts, 1 Cor.
+i. 7,) and were able to preach in an extraordinary singular way;
+yet were they the ordinary pastors and ministers of that church of
+Corinth, as the whole current of this fourteenth chapter
+evidenceth, wherein so many rules and directions, aptly agreeing to
+ordinary pastors, are imposed upon them for the well ordering of
+their ministerial exercises. Now, where there were so many pastors,
+were there not several congregations for them to feed? Or were they
+idle, neglecting the exercise and improvement of their talents?</p>
+<p>3. From the diversity of tongues and languages, wherein the
+church did eminently excel. "In every thing ye are enriched by him,
+in all utterance, and in all knowledge&mdash;So that you come
+behind in no gift," &amp;c., i.e., ye excel in every gift, more
+being intended than is expressed, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Among other gifts
+some of them excelled in tongues which they spake, the right use of
+which gift of tongues the apostle doth at large lay down, 1 Cor.
+xiv. 2, 4-6, 13, 14, 18, 19, 23, 26, 27. "If any speak in <i>an
+unknown</i> tongue let it be by two, or at the most by three, and
+that by course, and let one interpret." So that there were many
+endued with gifts of tongues in that church. To what end? Not only
+for a <i>sign to unbelievers</i>, ver. 22, but also for edification
+of divers congregations, of divers tongues and languages within
+that church of Corinth.</p>
+<p>4. From the plurality of churches mentioned in reference to this
+church of Corinth. For the apostle regulating their public
+assemblies and their worship there, saith to the church of Corinth,
+"Let your women keep silence in the churches." It is not said, in
+the <i>church</i>, in the singular number; but in the
+<i>churches</i>, in the plural; and this of the <i>churches in
+Corinth</i>, for it is said, <i>Let your women</i>, &amp;c., not
+indefinitely, <i>Let women</i>, &amp;c. So that according to the
+plain letter of the words, here are churches in the church of
+Corinth, viz. a plurality of single congregations in this one
+presbyterial church. And this plurality of churches in the church
+of Corinth is the more confirmed if we take the church of Cenchrea
+(which is a harbor or seaport to Corinth) to be comprised within
+the church of Corinth, as some learned authors do conceive it
+may.<a href="#note-112"><small>112</small></a></p>
+<center>POSITION II.</center>
+<p>That there is in the word of Christ a pattern of one
+presbyterial government in common over divers single congregations
+in one church. This may be evidenced by these following
+considerations: For,</p>
+<p>1. Divers single congregations are called one church, as hath at
+large been proved in the second position immediately foregoing;
+inasmuch as all the believers in Jerusalem are counted one church:
+yet those believers are more in number than could meet for all
+ordinances in any one single congregation. And why are divers
+congregations styled one church? 1. Not in regard of that oneness
+of heart and soul which was among them, "having all things common,"
+&amp;c., Acts iv. 32. For these affections and actions of kindness
+belonged to them by the law of brotherhood and Christian charity to
+one another, (especially considering the then present condition of
+believers,) rather than by any special ecclesiastical obligation,
+because they were members of such a church. 2. Not in regard of any
+explicit church covenant, knitting them in one body. For we find
+neither name nor thing, print nor footstep of any such thing as a
+church covenant in the church of Jerusalem, nor in any other
+primitive apostolical church in all the New Testament; and to
+impose an explicit church covenant upon the saints as a necessary
+constituting form of a true visible Church of Christ, and without
+which it is no Church, is a mere human invention, without all solid
+warrant from the word of God. 3. Not in regard of the ministration
+of the word, sacraments, prayers, &amp;c. For these ordinances were
+dispensed in their single congregations severally, it being
+impossible that such multitudes of believers should meet all in one
+congregation, to partake of them jointly, (as hath been evidenced.)
+4. But in regard of one joint administration of church government
+among them, by one common presbytery, or college of elders,
+associated for that end. From this one way of church government, by
+one presbytery in common, all the believers in Jerusalem, and so in
+other cities respectively, were counted but one church. 2. In every
+such presbyterial church made up of divers single congregations,
+there were ecclesiastical ruling officers, which are counted or
+called the officers of that church, but never counted or called
+governors, elders, &amp;c., of any one single congregation therein;
+as in the church of Jerusalem, Acts xi. 27, 30, and xv. 2: of
+Antioch, compare Acts xiii. 1-3, with xv. 35: of Ephesus, Acts xx.
+17, 28: and of the church of Corinth, 1 Cor. i. 12, and iv. 15, and
+xiv. 29.</p>
+<p>3. The officers of such presbyterial churches met together for
+acts of church government: as, to take charge of the church's
+goods, and of the due distribution thereof, Acts iv. 35, 37, and
+xi. 30: to ordain, appoint, and send forth church officers, Acts
+vi. 2, 3, 6, and xiii. 1, 3: to excommunicate notorious offenders,
+1 Cor. v. 4, 5, 7, 13, compared with 2 Cor. ii. 6: and to restore
+again penitent persons to church communion, 2 Cor. ii. 7-9.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. Receiving of alms is no act of government.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. True, the bare receiving of alms is no act of
+government, but the ordering and appointing how it shall be best
+improved and disposed of, cannot be denied to be an act of
+government, and for this did the elders meet together, Acts xi.
+30.</p>
+<p>4. The apostles themselves, in their joint acts of government in
+such churches, acted as ordinary officers, viz. as presbyters or
+elders. This is much to be observed, and may be evidenced as
+followeth: for, 1. None of their acts of church government can at
+all be exemplary or obligatory upon us, if they were not
+presbyterial, but merely apostolical; if they acted therein not as
+ordinary presbyters, but as extraordinary apostles. For what acts
+they dispatched merely as apostles, none may meddle withal but only
+apostles. 2. As they were apostles, so they were presbyters, and so
+they style themselves, "The elder to the elect lady," 2 John i.
+"The elders which are among you I exhort," saith Peter, "who am
+also an elder," (i.e. who am a fellow-elder, or co-presbyter,) 1
+Pet. v. 1; wherein he ranks himself among ordinary presbyters,
+which had been improper, unless he had discharged the offices and
+acts of an ordinary presbyter. 3. Their acts were such, for
+substance, as ordinary presbyters do perform, as preaching and
+prayer, Acts vi. 4: ordaining of officers, Acts vi. 6, and xiv. 23:
+dispensing of the sacraments, 1 Cor. i. 14; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7:
+and of church censures, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, compared with 1 Tim. v.
+ver. 1, ult.: which acts of government, and such like, were
+committed by Christ to them, and to ordinary presbyters (their
+successors) to the end of the world; compare Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 17, 18, to the end, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt. xxviii.
+18-20. 4. They acted not only as ordinary elders, but also they
+acted jointly with other elders, being associated with them in the
+same assembly, as in that eminent synod at Jerusalem, Acts xv. 6,
+22, 23, and xvi. 4, "And as they went through cities, they
+delivered them the decrees for to keep, that were ordained of the
+apostles and elders which were at Jerusalem." 5. And, finally, they
+took in the church's consent with themselves, wherein it was
+needful, as in the election and appointment of deacons, Acts vi. 2,
+3. 6. The deacons being specially to be trusted with the church's
+goods, and the disposal thereof, according to the direction of the
+presbytery, for the good of the church, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>Let all these considerations be impartially balanced in the
+scales of indifferent unprejudiced judgments; and how plainly do
+they delineate in the word, a pattern of one presbyterial
+government in common over divers single congregations within one
+church!</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. The apostles' power over many congregations was
+founded upon their power over all churches; and so cannot be a
+pattern for the power of elders over many.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. The apostles' power over many congregations as
+one church, to govern them all as one church jointly and in common,
+was not founded upon their power over all churches, but upon the
+union of those congregations into one church; which union lays a
+foundation for the power of elders governing many
+congregations.</p>
+<p>2. Besides, the apostles, though extraordinary officers, are
+called elders, 1 Pet. v. 1, to intimate to us, that in ordinary
+acts of church government, they did act as elders for a pattern to
+us in like administrations.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. The apostles, it is true, were elders virtually,
+that is, their apostleship contained all offices in it, but they
+were not elders formally.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. If by formally be meant, that they were not
+elders really, then it is false; for the Scripture saith Peter was
+an elder, 1 Peter v. 1. If by formally be meant that they were not
+elders only, that is granted; they were so elders, as they were
+still apostles, and so apostles as they were yet elders: their
+eldership did not exclude their apostleship, nor their apostleship
+swallow up their eldership.</p>
+<p>2. Besides, two distinct offices may be formally in one and the
+same person; as Melchisedec was formally a king and priest, and
+David formally a king and prophet; and why then might not Peter or
+John, or any of the twelve, be formally apostles and elders? And
+ministers are formally pastors and ruling elders.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 'Tis true, the apostles acted together with
+elders, because it so fell out they met together; but that they
+should meet jointly to give a pattern for an eldership, is not easy
+to prove; one apostle might have done that alone, which all here
+did.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. 'Tis true, the apostles as apostles had power to
+act singly what they did jointly; yet, when they acted jointly,
+their acts might have more authority in the Church: upon which
+ground they of Antioch may be conceived to have sent to the whole
+college of apostles and elders at Jerusalem, (rather than to any
+one singly;) why was this, but to add more authority to their acts
+and determinations?</p>
+<p>2. Why should not their meeting together be a pattern of a
+presbytery, as well as their meeting together when they took in the
+consent of the people, Acts vi., in the choice of the deacons, to
+be a pattern or warrant that the people have a power in the choice
+of their officers? (as those of contrary judgment argue:) if one be
+taken in as an inimitable practice, why not the other?</p>
+<p>3. If the apostles joining with elders, acted nothing as elders,
+then we can bring nothing of theirs into imitation; and by this we
+should cut the sinews, and raze the foundation of church
+government, as if there were no footsteps thereof in the holy
+Scriptures.</p>
+<center>POSITION III.</center>
+<p>Finally, That the pattern of the said presbytery and
+presbyterial government is for a rule to the churches of Christ in
+all after ages, may appear as followeth:</p>
+<p>1. The first churches were immediately planted and governed by
+Christ's own apostles and disciples; 1. Who immediately received
+the keys of the kingdom of heaven from Christ himself in person,
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 17,18; John xx. 21, 23. 2. Who
+immediately had the promise of Christ's perpetual presence with
+them in their ministry, Matt, xxviii. 18-20; and of the plentiful
+donation of the Spirit of Christ to lead them into all truth, John
+xiv. 16, and xvi. 13-15; Acts i. 4, 5, 8 3. Who immediately
+received from Christ, after his resurrection and before his
+ascension, "commandments by the Holy Ghost,"&mdash;"Christ being
+seen of them forty days, and speaking of the things pertaining to
+the kingdom of God," Acts i. 2, 3; and, 4. Who were first and
+immediately <i>baptized by the Holy Ghost</i>, extraordinarily,
+Acts ii. 1-5. Now, who can imagine that the apostles and disciples
+were not actuated by the Spirit of Christ bestowed upon them? or
+did not discharge Christ's commandments, touching his kingdom
+imposed upon them? or did not duly use those keys of Christ's
+kingdom committed to them in the ordering and governing of the
+primitive churches? And if so, then the pattern of their practices
+must be a rule for all the succeeding churches, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil,
+iv. 9.</p>
+<p>2. To what end hath the Holy Ghost so carefully recorded a
+pattern of the state and government of the primitive churches in
+the first and purest times, but for the imitation of successive
+churches in after times? "For whatsoever things wore written
+aforetime, were written for our learning," or instruction. But what
+do such records instruct us? Only <i>in fact</i>, that such things
+were done by the first churches? or <i>of right</i> also, that such
+things should be done by the after churches? Surely, this is more
+proper and profitable for us.</p>
+<p>3. If such patterns of Christ's apostles, disciples, and
+primitive churches in matters of the government will not amount to
+an obligatory rule for all following churches, how shall we justify
+sundry other acts of religion commonly received in the best
+reformed churches, and founded only or chiefly upon the foundation
+of the practice of Christ's apostles and the apostolical churches?
+As the receiving of the Lord's supper on the Lord's days, Acts xx.
+7, &amp;c.; which notwithstanding are generally embraced without
+any considerable opposition or contradiction, and that most
+deservedly.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0021"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIV.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Divine Right of Synods, or Synodal
+Assemblies.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus far of the ruling assemblies, which are styled
+presbyterial; next come into consideration those greater
+assemblies, which are usually called synodal, or synods, or
+councils. They are so called from their convening, or coming
+together: or rather from their calling together. Both names, viz.
+synod and council, are of such latitude of signification, as that
+they may be applied to any public convention of people: but in the
+common ordinary use of these words, they are appropriated to large
+ecclesiastical assemblies, above classical presbyteries in number
+and power. These synodal assemblies are made up, (as occasion and
+the necessity of the church shall require.) 1. Either of
+presbyters, sent from the several classical presbyteries within a
+province, hence called provincial synods: 2. Or of presbyters, sent
+from the several provincial synods within a nation, hence called
+national synods: 3. Or of presbyters, delegated or sent from the
+several national churches throughout the Christian world, hence
+called ecumenical synods, or universal and general councils.</p>
+<p>Touching the divine warrant of synods, and their power in church
+affairs, much need not be said, seeing divers learned authors have
+so fully stated and handled this matter.<a href=
+"#note-113"><small>113</small></a> Yet, that the reader may have a
+short view hereof, and not be left wholly unsatisfied, these two
+things shall briefly be opened and insisted upon, viz: 1. Certain
+considerations shall be propounded, tending to clear the state of
+the question about the divine right of synods, and their power. 2.
+The proposition itself, with some few arguments adduced, for the
+proof thereof.</p>
+<p>For the former, viz: The true stating of this question about the
+divine right of synods, and of their power, well weigh these few
+considerations.</p>
+<p>1. Synods differ in some respects from classical presbyteries,
+handled in Chap. XIII., though the nature and kind of their power
+be the same for substance. For, 1. Synods are more large extensive
+assemblies than classical presbyteries, the members of presbyteries
+being sent only from several single congregations, the members of
+synods being delegated from several presbyteries, and
+proportionably their power is extended also. 2. The exercise of
+government by presbyteries, is the common ordinary way of
+government held forth in Scripture. By synods it is more rare and
+extraordinary, at least in great part, as in case of extraordinary
+causes that fall out: as, for choosing an apostle, Acts i., healing
+of scandals, &amp;c., Acts xv.</p>
+<p>2. All synods are of the same nature and kind, whether
+provincial, national, or ecumenical, though they differ as lesser
+and greater, in respect of extent, from one another, (the
+provincial having as full power within their bounds, as the
+national or ecumenical within theirs.) So that the proving of the
+divine right of synods indefinitely and in general, doth prove also
+the divine right of provincial, national, and ecumenical synods in
+particular: for, greater and lesser do not vary the species or
+kind. What is true of ecclesiastical synods in general, agrees to
+every such synod in particular.</p>
+<p><i>Object</i>. But why hath not the Scripture determined these
+assemblies in particular?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. It is not necessary the Scripture should in every
+case descend to particulars. In things of one and the same kind,
+general rules may serve for all particulars; especially seeing
+particulars are so innumerable, what volumes would have contained
+all particulars? 2. All churches and seasons are not capable of
+synods provincial or national: for, in an island there may be no
+more Christians than to make up one single congregation, or one
+classical presbytery. Or in a nation, the Christian congregations
+may be so few, or so dispersed, or so involved in persecution, that
+they cannot convene in synods, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>3. The power of synods contended for, is, 1. Not civil; they
+have no power to take cognizance of civil causes, as such; not to
+inflict any civil punishments; as fines, imprisonments,
+confiscations, banishments, death, (these being proper to the civil
+magistrate:) but merely spiritual; they judge only in
+ecclesiastical causes, in a spiritual manner, by spiritual
+censures, to spiritual ends, as did that synod, Acts xv. 2. Not
+corruptive, privative, or destructive to the power of classical
+presbyteries, or single congregations; but rather perfective and
+conservative thereunto. As suppose a single congregation should
+elect a minister unsound in judgment, or scandalous in
+conversation, the synod may annul and make void that election, and
+direct them to make a better choice, or appoint them a minister
+themselves; hereby this liberty of election is not at all infringed
+or violated, but for their own advantage regulated, &amp;c. 3. Not
+absolute, and infallible; but limited and fallible: any synod or
+council may err, being constituted of men that are weak, frail,
+ignorant in part, &amp;c., and therefore all their decrees and
+determinations are to be examined by the touchstone of the
+Scriptures, nor are they further to be embraced, or counted
+obligatory, than they are consonant thereunto, Isa. viii. 20. Hence
+there is liberty of appeal, as from congregational elderships to
+the classical presbytery, and from thence to the provincial synod,
+so from the provincial to the national assembly, &amp;c. 4.
+Finally, the power of synods is not only persuasive and
+consultative, (as some think,) able to give grave advice, and to
+use forcible persuasions in any case, which if accepted and
+followed, well; if rejected and declined, there is no further
+remedy, but a new non-communion instead of a divine church censure:
+but it is a proper authoritative juridical power, which all within
+their bounds are obliged reverently to esteem, and dutifully to
+submit unto, so far as agreeable to the word of Christ.</p>
+<p>4. Finally, this authoritative juridical power of synods is
+threefold, viz. <i>doctrinal, regulating, and censuring</i>. 1.
+<i>Doctrinal</i>, in reference to matters of faith, and divine
+worship; not to coin new articles of faith, or devise new acts of
+divine worship: but to explain and apply those articles of faith
+and rules of worship which are laid down in the word, and declare
+the contrary errors, heresies, corruptions. Hence the Church is
+styled, <i>the pillar and ground of truth</i>, 1 Tim. iii. 15. Thus
+to the Jewish Church <i>were committed of trust the oracles of
+God</i>, Rom. iii. 2. 2. <i>Regulating</i>, in reference to
+external order and polity, in matters prudential and
+circumstantial, which are determinate according to the true light
+of nature, and the general rules of Scripture, such as are in 1
+Cor. x. 31, 32; Rom. xiv.; 1 Cor. xiv. 26, 40, &amp;c.; not
+according to any arbitrary power of men. 3. <i>Censuring</i> power,
+in reference to error, heresy, schism, obstinacy, contempt, or
+scandal, and the repressing thereof; which power is put forth
+merely in spiritual censures, as admonition, excommunication,
+deposition, &amp;c. And these censures exercised, not in a lordly,
+domineering, prelatical way: but in an humble, sober, grave, yet
+authoritative way, necessary both for preservation of soundness of
+doctrine, and incorruptness of conversation; and for extirpation of
+the contrary. This is the power which belongs to synods. Thus much
+for clearing the right state of this question.</p>
+<p>II. For the second thing, viz. the proposition itself, and the
+confirmation thereof, take it briefly in these terms.</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word sufficient
+ground and warrant for juridical synods, and their authority, for
+governing of his Church now under the New Testament. Many arguments
+might be produced for proof of this proposition: as, 1. From the
+light of nature. 2. From the words of the law, Deut. xvii. 8, 12,
+compared with 2 Chron. xix. 8, 11; Ps. cxxii. 4, 5, holding forth
+an ecclesiastical Sanhedrin in the Church of the Jews, superior to
+other courts. 3. From the words of Christ, Matt, xviii. 15-21. 4.
+From the unity of the visible Church of Christ now under the New
+Testament. 5. From the primitive apostolical pattern laid down,
+Acts xv., &amp;c., and from divers other considerations; but for
+brevity's sake, only the two last arguments shall be a little
+insisted upon.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. I. The unity or oneness of the visible Church of
+Christ now under the New Testament, laid down in Scripture, gives
+us a notable foundation for church government by juridical synods.
+For, 1. That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath one general, visible
+Church on earth now under the New Testament, hath been already
+proved, Part 2, Chap. VIII. 2. That in this Church there is a
+government settled by divine right, is evidenced, Part 1, Chap. I.
+3. That all Christ's ordinances, and particularly church
+government, primarily belong to the whole general Church visible,
+for her edification, (secondarily to particular churches and single
+congregations, as parts or members of the whole,) hath been
+manifested, Part 2, Chap. VIII. Now, there being one general
+visible Church, having a government set in it of divine right, and
+that government belonging primarily to the whole body of Christ;
+secondarily, to the parts or members thereof; must it not
+necessarily follow, that the more generally and extensively
+Christ's ordinance of church government is managed in greater and
+more general assemblies, the more fully the perfection and end of
+the government, viz. the edification of the whole body of Christ,
+is attained; and on the contrary, the more particularly and singly
+church government is exercised, as in presbyteries, or single
+congregational elderships, the more imperfect it is, and the less
+it attains to the principal end: consequently, if there be a divine
+warrant for church government by single congregational elderships,
+is it not much more for church government by presbyteries, and
+synods, or councils, wherein more complete provision is made for
+the edification of the general Church or body of Jesus Christ?</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. The primitive apostolical practice in the
+first and purest ages of the Church after Christ, may further
+evidence with great strength the divine warrant for church
+government by juridical synods or councils. Let this be the
+position:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern
+of a juridical synod, consisting of governing officers of divers
+presbyterial churches, for a rule to the Church of Christ in all
+succeeding ages.</p>
+<p>For proof hereof take these two assertions: 1. That Jesus Christ
+hath laid down in his word a pattern of a juridical synod. 2. That
+this juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all
+succeeding ages.</p>
+<center>ASSERTION I.</center>
+<p>That Jesus Christ hath laid down in his word a pattern of a
+synod, yea, of a juridical synod, consisting of governing officers
+of divers presbyterial churches, is manifest, Acts xv. and xvi.,
+where are plainly set forth: 1. The occasion of the synod. 2. The
+proper members of the synod. 3. The equal power and authority
+exercised by all those members. 4. The way and method of ordinary
+synodal proceeding. 5. The juridical acts of power put forth by the
+synod; with the issue and consequent of all upon the churches.</p>
+<p>First, Here was a proper ground and occasion for a juridical
+synod. For thus the text expressly declareth, that "certain men
+which came down from Judea, taught the brethren, and said, Except
+ye be circumcised after the manner of Moses, ye cannot be saved;
+when therefore Paul and Barnabas had no small dissension and
+disputation with them, they determined that Paul and Barnabas, and
+certain other of them, should go up to Jerusalem to the apostles
+and elders about this question," Acts xv. 1, 2, compared with ver.
+5&mdash;"But there rose up certain of the sect of the Pharisees,
+which believed, saying, that it was needful to circumcise them, and
+to command them to keep the law of Moses;" and with ver. 23,
+24&mdash;"The apostles, and elders, and brethren send greeting unto
+the brethren which are of the Gentiles, in Antioch, and Syria, and
+Cilicia: Forasmuch as we have heard, that certain which went out
+from us, have troubled you with words, subverting your souls,
+saying, Ye must be circumcised and keep the law." In which passages
+these things are evident:</p>
+<p>1. That false doctrine, destructive to the doctrine of Christ in
+his gospel, did arise in the Church, viz: That circumcision and
+keeping of the ceremonial law of Moses was necessary to salvation,
+ver. 1, 5, 24; and this false doctrine promoted with lying, as if
+the apostles and elders of Jerusalem had sent forth the false
+teachers with directions to preach so, as their apology ("to whom
+we gave no such commandment," ver. 24) seems to import. Here is
+corruption both in doctrine and manners fit for a synod to take
+cognizance of.</p>
+<p>2. That this corrupt doctrine was vented by certain that came
+down from Judea. It is evident, it was by certain of the sect of
+the Pharisees that believed; as Paul and Barnabas make the
+narrative to the church at Jerusalem, ver. 5, therefore the false
+teachers coming from Judea (where the Churches of Christ were first
+of all planted, and whence the church plantation spread) published
+their doctrines with more credit to their errors and danger to the
+churches; and so both the churches of Judea whence they came, and
+of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, whither they came, were interested
+in the business.</p>
+<p>3. That the said false teachers by the leaven of their doctrine
+troubled them with words, subverting the souls of the brethren,
+both at Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, ver. 23, 24; here was the
+disturbance and scandal of divers churches: compare ver. 39 with
+41.</p>
+<p>4. That Paul and Barnabas at Antioch had no small dissension and
+dispute against the false teachers, ver. 1, 2, that so (if
+possible) they might be convinced, and the Church's peace
+preserved, without craving further assistance in a solemn
+synod.</p>
+<p>5. That after these disputes, and for the better settling of all
+the churches about this matter, (which these disputes could not
+effect,) <i>they decreed</i> (or ordained) <i>that Paul and
+Barnabas, and some others of themselves, should go up to the
+apostles and elders at Jerusalem about this question, ver</i>. 2.
+Here was an authoritative mission of delegated officers from the
+presbyterial church at Antioch, and from other churches of Syria
+and Cilicia also, ver. 23, 41, to a synodal assembly with the
+presbyterial church at Jerusalem.</p>
+<p>Secondly, Here were proper members of a synod convened to
+consider of this question, viz. the officers and delegates of
+divers presbyterial churches: of the presbyterial church at
+Jerusalem, the apostles and elders, Acts xv. 6: of the presbyterial
+church at Antioch, Paul, Barnabas, and others; compare verse 2 and
+12. And besides these, there were brethren from other churches,
+present as members of the synod; as may appear by these two
+considerations, viz:</p>
+<p>1. Partly, because it is called "The whole multitude," ver. 12;
+"The apostles and elders with the whole church," ver. 22; "The
+apostles, and elders, and brethren," ver. 23. This whole multitude,
+whole church, and brethren, distinct from the apostles and elders
+which were at Jerusalem, cannot be <i>the company of all the
+faithful at Jerusalem</i>, for (as hath been evidenced, Chap. XIV.,
+Position 2,) they were too many to meet in one house. But it was
+the synodal multitude, the synodal church, consisting of apostles,
+and elders, and brethren; which brethren seem to be such as were
+sent from several churches, as Judas and Silas, ver. 24, who were
+assistants to the apostles and evangelists&mdash;Judas, Acts xv.
+22, 32; Silas, Acts xv. 32, 40, and xvi. 19, and xvii. 4, 14, 15,
+and xviii. 5. Some think Titus was of this synod also.</p>
+<p>2. Partly because the brethren of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia,
+were troubled with this question, ver. 23, 24. Therefore it cannot
+be reasonably imagined, but all those places sought out for a
+remedy; and to that end, severally and respectively sent their
+delegates to the synod at Jerusalem: else they had been very
+regardless of their own church peace and welfare. And the epistle
+of the synod was directed to them all by name, ver. 23; and so did
+formally bind them all, having men of their own members of the
+synod, which decrees did but materially, and from the nature of the
+thing, bind the other churches at Lystra and Iconium, Acts xvi. 4.
+Now, if there were delegates but from two presbyterial churches,
+they were sufficient to constitute a synod; and this justifies
+delegates from ten or twenty churches, proportionably, when there
+shall be like just and necessary occasion.</p>
+<p>Thirdly, Here all the members of the synod, as they were
+convened by like ordinary authority, so they acted by like ordinary
+and equal power in the whole business laid before them; which shows
+it was an ordinary, not an extraordinary synod. For though apostles
+and evangelists, who had power over all churches, were members of
+the synod, as well as ordinary elders; yet they acted not in this
+synod by a transcendent, infallible, apostolical power, but by an
+ordinary power, as elders. This is evident,</p>
+<p>1. Because the Apostle Paul, and Barnabas his colleague, (called
+a prophet and teacher, Acts xiii. 1, 2, and an apostle, Acts xiv.
+14,) were sent as members to this synod, by order and determination
+of the church of Antioch, and they submitted themselves to that
+determination, Acts xv. 2, 3; which they could not have submitted
+unto as apostles, but as ordinary elders and members of the
+presbytery at Antioch: they that send, being greater than those
+that are sent by them. Upon which ground it is a good argument
+which is urged against Peter's primacy over the rest of the
+apostles, because the college of apostles at Jerusalem sent Peter
+and John to Samaria, having received the faith, Acts viii. 14.</p>
+<p>2. Because the manner of proceeding in this synod convened, was
+not extraordinary and apostolical, as when they acted by an
+immediate infallible inspiration of the Spirit, in penning the Holy
+Scriptures, (without all disputing, examining, or judging of the
+matter that they wrote, so far as we can read,) 2 Tim. iii. 16,17;
+2 Pet. i. 20, 21; but ordinary, presbyterial, and synodal; by
+ordinary helps and means, (as afterwards shall appear more fully;)
+stating the question, proving and evidencing from Scripture what
+was <i>the good and acceptable will of God</i> concerning the
+present controversy, and upon evidence of Scripture concluding,
+<i>It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us</i>, Acts xv. 28;
+which words, any assembly, having like clear evidence of Scripture
+for their determination, may without presumption use, as well as
+this synod did.<a href="#note-114"><small>114</small></a></p>
+<p>3. Because the elders and brethren (who are as authoritatively
+members of the synod as the apostles) did in all points as
+authoritatively act as the apostles themselves. For, 1. Certain
+other of the church of Antioch, as well as <i>Paul</i> and
+<i>Barnabas</i>, were sent as delegates from the church of
+<i>Antioch</i>, Acts xv. 2. 2. They were all sent as well to the
+<i>elders</i>, as to the <i>apostles</i> at <i>Jerusalem</i>, about
+this matter, ver. 2. 3. They were received at <i>Jerusalem</i>, as
+well by the <i>elders</i>, as the <i>apostles</i>, and reported
+their case to them both, ver. 4. 4. The <i>elders</i>, as well as
+the <i>apostles</i>, met together to consider thereof, ver. 6. 5.
+The letters containing the synodal decrees and determinations, were
+written in the name of the <i>elders and brethren</i>, as well as
+in the name of the <i>apostles</i>, ver. 23. 6. The <i>elders and
+brethren</i>, as well as the <i>apostles</i>, blame the false
+teachers for troubling of the Church, <i>subverting of souls</i>;
+declaring, that they gave the false teachers <i>no such
+commandment</i> to preach any such doctrine, ver. 24. 7. The
+<i>elders and brethren</i>, as well as the <i>apostles</i>, say,
+"It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us," ver. 28. 8. The
+<i>elders</i> and <i>brethren</i>, as well as the <i>apostles</i>,
+did impose upon the churches "no other burden than these necessary
+things," ver. 28. 9. The <i>elders</i>, as well as the
+<i>apostles</i>, being assembled, "thought good to send chosen men
+of themselves," viz. <i>Judas</i> and <i>Silas</i>, with
+<i>Paul</i> and <i>Barnabas</i>, to <i>Antioch</i>, to deliver the
+synodal decrees to them, and to tell them the same things by mouth,
+ver. 22, 25, 27. 10. And the decrees are said to be ordained as
+well by the <i>elders</i>, as by the <i>apostles at Jerusalem</i>,
+Acts xvi. 4. So that through this whole synodal transaction, the
+elders are declared in the text to go on in a full authoritative
+course of judgment with the apostles, from point to point. And
+therefore in this synod, the apostles acted as ordinary elders, not
+as extraordinary officers.</p>
+<p>Fourthly. Here was the ordinary way and method of synodal
+proceedings by the apostles, elders, and brethren, when they were
+convened unanimously, ver. 25. For,</p>
+<p>1. They proceeded deliberatively, by discourses and disputes,
+deliberating about the true state of the question, and the remedy
+of the scandal. This is laid down, 1. More generally, "and when
+there had been much disputing," ver. 7. 2. More particularly, how
+they proceeded when they drew towards a synodal determination,
+Peter speaks of the Gentiles' conversion, and clears the doctrine
+of justification "by faith without the works of the law," ver.
+7-12. Then Barnabas and Paul confirm the conversion of the
+Gentiles, "declaring the signs and wonders wrought by them among
+the Gentiles," ver. 12. After them James speaks, approving what
+Peter had spoken touching the conversion of the Gentiles,
+confirming it by Scripture; and further adds (which Peter did but
+hint, ver. 10, and Paul and Barnabas did not so much as touch upon)
+a remedy against the present scandal, ver. 13-22. Here is now an
+ordinary way of proceeding by debates, disputes, allegations of
+Scripture, and mutual suffrages. What needed all this, if this had
+been a transcendent, extraordinary, and not an ordinary synod?</p>
+<p>2. They proceeded after all their deliberative inquiries and
+disputes decisively to conclude and determine the matter, ver.
+20-30. The result of the synod (as there is evident) is threefold.
+1. To set down in writing their decrees and determinations. 2. To
+signify those decrees in an epistle to the brethren at Antioch,
+Syria, and Cilicia. 3. To send these letters by some from among
+themselves, viz. Judas and Silas, together with Paul and Barnabas,
+to all the churches that were offended or endangered, that both by
+written decrees and word of mouth, the churches might be
+established in faith and peace.</p>
+<p>Fifthly, Here were several authoritative and juridical acts of
+power, put forth in this synod, according to the exigency of the
+present distempers of the churches. This appears plainly,</p>
+<p>1. By the proceedings of the synod in accommodating a suitable
+and proportionable remedy to every malady at that time distempering
+the Church, viz. a triple medicine for a threefold disease.</p>
+<p>1. Against the heresy broached, viz. that they must be
+circumcised and keep the ceremonial "law of Moses, or else they
+could not be saved," Acts xv. 2. The synod put forth a doctrinal
+power, in confutation of the heresy, and clear vindication of the
+truth, about the great point of "justification by faith without the
+works of the law," Acts xv. 7-23; and (Independents themselves
+being judges) a doctrinal decision of matters of faith by a lawful
+synod, far surpasseth the doctrinal determination of any single
+teacher, or of the presbytery of any single congregation; and is to
+be reverently received of the churches as a binding ordinance of
+Christ.</p>
+<p>2. Against the schism, occasioned by the doctrine of the false
+teachers that troubled the Church, Acts xv. 1, 2, the synod put
+forth a censuring power, stigmatizing the false teachers with the
+infamous brands of troubling the Church with words, subverting of
+souls, and (tacitly, as some conceive from that expression, "Unto
+whom we gave no such commandment," ver. 24) of belying the apostles
+and elders of Jerusalem, as if they had sent them abroad to preach
+this doctrine.</p>
+<p><i>Object</i>. But the synod proceeded not properly to censure
+the false teachers by any ecclesiastical admonition, or
+excommunication; therefore the power exercised in the synod was
+only doctrinal, and not properly juridical.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. They censured them in some degree, and that with
+a mark of infamy, ver. 24, as was manifested. And this was not only
+a warning and hint to the churches, to note such false teachers,
+avoid them, and withdraw from them, compare Rom. xvi. 17, 18, with
+1 Tim. vi. 3-5; but also was a virtual admonition to the false
+teachers themselves, while their doctrines and ways were so
+expressly condemned. 2. They proceeded not to present
+excommunication, it is granted; nor was it at first dash
+seasonable, prudent, or needful. But the synod knew well, that if
+these false teachers, after this synodal mark of disgrace set upon
+them, should still persist in their course, incurably and
+incorrigibly obstinate, they might in due time be excommunicated by
+course; it being a clear case in itself that such heretics or
+schismatics, as otherwise cannot be reduced, are not to be
+suffered, but to be cast out of the churches. "An heretic, after
+once or twice admonition, reject," Tit. iii. 10, 11; see Rev. ii.
+2, 14, 20.</p>
+<p>3. Against the scandal of the weak Jews, and their
+heart-estrangement from the Gentiles, who neglected their
+ceremonial observances, as also against the scandal of the
+Gentiles, who were much troubled and offended at the urging of
+circumcision, and the keeping of the law as necessary to salvation,
+ver. 1, 2, 19, 24, the synod put forth an ordering or regulating
+power, framing practical rules or constitutions for the healing of
+the scandal, and for prevention of the spreading of it, commanding
+the brethren of the several churches to abstain from divers things
+that might any way occasion the same: "It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost, and to us, to impose" (or lay) "upon you no further burden
+than these necessary things," Acts xv. 28, 29. Here is
+<i>burden</i> and <i>necessary things</i>, (so judged to be
+necessary for those times, and that state of the Church,) and
+imposing of these upon the churches: will not this amount to a
+plain ordering power and authority? Especially considering that the
+word <i>to impose</i>, or <i>lay on</i>, when it is used of the
+judgment, act, or sentence of an assembly, ordinarily signifies an
+authoritative judgment, or decree, as, "Why tempt ye God, to lay,
+or impose, a yoke upon the neck of the disciples?" Acts xv. 10. Thus
+some in the synod endeavored to carry the synod with themselves,
+authoritatively to have imposed the ceremonies upon the churches;
+whom Peter thus withstands. So, "They bind heavy burdens, and hard
+to be borne, and impose them upon men's shoulders," Matt, xxiii. 4:
+and this laying on of burdens by the Pharisees, was not by a bare
+doctrinal declaring, but by an authoritative commanding, as seems
+by that, "teaching for doctrines the commandments of men," Matt.
+xv. 9.</p>
+<p>2. By the title or denomination given to the synodal results
+contained in their letters sent to the brethren. They are styled,
+"The decrees ordained, or judged," Acts xvi. 4. Here are plainly
+juridical authoritative constitutions. For it is very
+observable,</p>
+<p>That wheresoever the words translated <i>decree</i> or
+<i>decrees</i> are found in the New Testament, thereby are denoted,
+laws, statutes, or decrees: as "Decrees of C&aelig;sar," Acts xvii. 7:
+"A decree from C&aelig;sar," Luke ii. 1: Moses' ceremonial law, "The
+hand-writing to ordinances," Col. ii. 14: "The law of commandments
+in ordinances," Eph. ii. 15: and this word is found used only in
+these five places in the whole New Testament: and the Septuagint
+interpreters often use the word in the Old Testament to this
+purpose; for <i>laws</i>, Dan. vi. 8; for <i>decrees</i>, Dan. ii.
+13, and iii. 10, 29, and iv. 3, and vi. 9.</p>
+<p>And the other word translated <i>ordained</i>, when applied to
+an assembly by the Septuagint, is used for a judgment of authority,
+as, "And what was decreed against her," Esth. ii. 1; and so a word
+derived from it, signifies a <i>decree</i>, Dan. iv. 14, 21.</p>
+<p>In this sense also the word is sometimes used in the New
+Testament, when applied to assemblies; as, "Take ye him, and judge
+him according to your law," John xviii. 31; "Whom we laid hold
+upon, and would have judged according to our law," Acts xxiv.
+6.</p>
+<p>Now, if there be so much power and authority engraven upon these
+two words severally, how strongly do they hold forth authority,
+when they are applied to any thing jointly, as here to the synodal
+decisions!</p>
+<p>3. By the consequent of these synodal proceedings, viz. the
+cheerful submission of the churches thereunto. This appears both in
+the church of Antioch, where the troubles first were raised by the
+false teachers; where, "when the epistle" of the synod "was read,
+they rejoiced for the consolation," Acts xv. 30, 31; and Judas and
+Silas exhorted and confirmed the brethren by word of mouth,
+according to the synod's direction, ver. 32; and in other churches,
+to which Paul and Timothy delivered the "decrees ordained by the
+apostles and elders which were at Jerusalem; and so were the
+churches confirmed in the faith, and abounded in number daily,"
+Acts xvi. 4, 5; whence we have these evidences of the churches'
+submission to the synodal decrees: 1. The decrees are counted by
+the churches a consolation. 2. They were so welcome to them, that
+they <i>rejoiced for the consolation</i>. 3. They were hereby
+notably <i>confirmed in the faith</i>, against the false doctrines
+broached among them. 4. The churches <i>abounded in number
+daily</i>, the scandal and stumbling-blocks that troubled the
+Church being removed out of the way. How should such effects so
+quickly have followed upon the publication of the synodal decrees,
+in the several churches, had not the churches looked upon that
+synod as vested with juridical power and authority for composing
+and imposing of these their determinations?</p>
+<center>ASSERTION II.</center>
+<p>That this juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of
+Christ in all succeeding ages, there need no new considerations for
+proof hereof; only let the reader please to look back to Position
+iv. of the last chapter, where the substance of those
+considerations which urge the pattern of presbyteries and
+presbyterial government for a rule to succeeding churches, is
+applicable (by change of terms) to the pattern of juridical
+synods.<a href="#note-115"><small>115</small></a></p>
+<a name="2HCH0022"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XV.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the subordination of particular churches to greater
+assemblies for their authoritative and judicial determination of
+causes ecclesiastical, and the divine right thereof.</i></h3>
+<p>The divine right of ecclesiastical assemblies, congregational,
+classical, and synodal, and of their power for church government,
+being thus evidenced by the Scriptures, now in the last place take
+a few words briefly touching the subordination of the lesser to the
+greater assemblies, and the divine warrant thereof. In asserting
+the subordination of particular churches to higher assemblies,
+whether classical or synodal,</p>
+<p>1. It is not denied, but particular churches have within
+themselves power of discipline entirely, so far as any cause in
+debate particularly and peculiarly concerneth themselves, and not
+others.</p>
+<p>2. It is granted, that where there is no consociation, or
+neighborhood of single churches, whereby they may mutually aid one
+another, there a single congregation must not be denied entire
+jurisdiction; but this falls not within the compass of ordinary
+rules of church government left us by Christ. If there be but one
+congregation in a kingdom or province, that particular congregation
+may do much by itself alone, which it ought not to do where there
+are neighboring and adjacent churches that might associate
+therewith for mutual assistance.</p>
+<p>3. It is granted, that every single congregation hath equal
+power, one as much as another, and that there is no subordination
+of one to another; according to that common and known axiom, An
+equal hath no power or rule over an equal. Subordination
+prelatical, which is of one or more parishes to the prelate and his
+cathedral, is denied; all particular churches being collateral, and
+of the same authority.</p>
+<p>4. It is granted, that classical or synodal authority cannot be
+by Scripture introduced over a particular church in a privative or
+destructive way to that power which God hath bestowed upon it; but
+contrarily it is affirmed, that all the power of assemblies, which
+are above particular congregations, is cumulative and perfective to
+the power of those inferior congregations.</p>
+<p>5. It is granted, that the highest ecclesiastical assembly in
+the world cannot require from the lowest a subordination absolute,
+and at their own mere will and pleasure, but only in some respect;
+subordination absolute being only to the law of God laid down in
+Scripture. We detest popish tyranny, which claims a power of giving
+their will for a law. 'Tis subjection in the Lord that is pleaded
+for: the straightest rule in the world, unless the holy Scripture,
+we affirm to be a rule to be regulated; peace being only in walking
+according to Scripture canon, Gal. vi. ver. 16.</p>
+<p>6. Nor is it the question whether friendly, consultative,
+fraternal, Christian advice or direction, be either to be desired
+or bestowed by neighboring churches, either apart or in their
+synodal meetings, for the mutual benefit of one another, by reason
+of that holy profession in which they are all conjoined and knit
+together: for this will be granted on all hands, though when it is
+obtained, it will not amount to a sufficient remedy in many
+cases.</p>
+<p>But this is that which we maintain, viz. that the law of God
+holdeth forth a subordination of a particular church to greater
+assemblies, consisting of divers choice members, taken out of
+several single congregations: which assemblies have authoritative
+power and ecclesiastical jurisdiction over that particular church,
+by way of giving sentence in and deciding of causes ecclesiastical.
+For confirmation of this assertion, thus:</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. I. The light of nature may be alleged to prove,
+that there ought to be this subordination: this is warranted not
+only by God's positive law, but even by nature's law. The church is
+a company of people who are not outlawed by nature. The visible
+church being an ecclesiastical polity, and the perfection of all
+polity, doth comprehend in it whatsoever is excellent in all other
+bodies political. The church must resemble the commonwealth's
+government in things common to both, and which have the same use in
+both. The law of nature directs unto diversities of courts in the
+commonwealth, and the greater to have authority over the lesser.
+The church is not only to be considered as employed in holy
+services, or as having assemblies exercised in spiritual things,
+and after a spiritual manner, but it is also to be considered as
+consisting of companies and societies of men to be regularly
+ordered, and so far nature agreeth to it, that it should have
+divers sorts of assemblies, and the lower subordinate to the
+higher. That particular parts should be subject to the whole for
+the good of the whole, is found necessary both in bodies natural
+and politic. Is the foot to be lanced? though it have a particular
+use of its own, and a peculiar employment, yet it is to be ordered
+by the eye, the hand, and the rest. Kingdoms have their several
+cities and towns, which all have their governments apart by
+themselves; yet for the preservation of the whole, all join
+together in the Parliament. Armies and navies have their several
+companies and ships, yet in any danger every particular company and
+ship is ordered by the counsels and directions of the officers and
+guides of the whole army or navy. The Church is spiritual, but yet
+a kingdom, a body, an army, &amp;c. D. Ames himself affirms that
+the light of nature requires that particular churches ought to
+combine in synods for things of greater moment. The God of nature
+and reason hath not left in his word a government against the light
+of nature and right reason. Appeals are of divine and natural
+right, and certainly very necessary in every society, because of
+the iniquity and ignorance of judges. That they are so, the
+practices of all ages and nations sufficiently testify.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. The Jewish church government affords a second
+argument. If in that they had synagogues in every city, which were
+subordinate to the supreme ecclesiastical court at Jerusalem, then
+there ought to be a subordination of particular churches among us
+to higher assemblies; but so it was among them: therefore,</p>
+<p>That the subordination was among them of the particular
+synagogues to the assembly at Jerusalem, is clear&mdash;Deut. xvii.
+8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8, 11; Exod. xviii. 22, 26.</p>
+<p>That therefore it ought to be so among us, is as plain: for the
+dangers and difficulties that they were involved in without a
+government, and for which God caused that government to be set up
+among them, are as great if not greater among us, and therefore why
+should we want the same means of prevention and cure? Are not we in
+greater danger of heresies now in the time of the New Testament,
+the churches therein being thereby to be exercised by way of trial,
+as the apostle foretells, 1 Cor. xi. 19? Doth not ungodliness in
+these last times abound, according to the same apostle's
+prediction? Is there not now a more free and permitted intercourse
+of society with infidels than in those times?</p>
+<p>Nor are the exceptions against this argument of any strength:
+as, 1. That arguments for the form of church government must yet be
+fetched from the Jewish Church; the government of the Jews was
+ceremonial and typical, and Christians must not Judaize, nor use
+that Judaical compound of subordination of churches: the Mosaical
+polity is abrogated now under the New Testament. Not to tell those
+that make this exception, 1. That none argue so much from the
+Jewish government as themselves for the power of congregations,
+both in ordination and excommunication, because the people of
+Israel laid hands on the Levites, and all Israel were to remove the
+unclean; 2. We answer, the laws of the Jewish church, whether
+ceremonial or judicial, so far are in force, even at this day, as
+they were grounded upon common equity, the principles of reason and
+nature, and were serving to the maintenance of the moral law. 'Tis
+of especial right, that the party unjustly aggrieved should have
+redress, that the adverse party should not be sole judge and party
+too, that judgment ought not to be rashly or partially passed upon
+any. The Jewish polity is only abrogated in regard of what was in
+it of particular right, not of common right: so far as there was in
+their laws either a typicalness proper to their church, or a
+peculiarness of respect to their state in that land of promise
+given unto them. Whatsoever was in their laws of moral concernment
+or general equity, is still obliging; whatsoever the Jewish Church
+had not as Jewish, but as it was a political church, or an
+ecclesiastical republic, (among which is the subordination of
+ecclesiastical courts to be reckoned,) doth belong to the Christian
+Church: that all judgments were to be determined by an high-priest,
+was typical of Christ's supremacy in judicature; but that there
+were gradual judicatories for the ease of an oppressed or grieved
+party, there can be no ceremony or type in this. This was not
+learned by Moses in the pattern of the Mount, but was taught by the
+light of nature to Jethro, Exod. xviii. 22, and by him given in
+advice to Moses. This did not belong unto the peculiar dispensation
+of the Jews, but unto the good order of the church.</p>
+<p>To conclude our answer to this exception, if the benefit of
+appeals be not as free to us as to the Jews, the yoke of the gospel
+should be more intolerable than the yoke of the law; the poor
+afflicted Christian might groan and cry under an unjust and
+tyrannical eldership, and no ecclesiastical judicatory to relieve
+him; whereas the poor oppressed Jew might appeal to the Sanhedrin:
+certainly this is contrary to that prophecy of Christ, Psal. lxxii.
+12, 14.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. III. A third argument to prove the subordination
+of particular congregations, is taken from the institution of our
+Saviour Christ, of gradual appeals, Matt, xviii. 17, 18, where our
+Saviour hath appointed a particular member of a church (if
+scandalous) to be gradually dealt withal; first to be reproved in
+private, then to be admonished before two or three witnesses, and
+last of all to be complained of to the church: whence we thus
+argue:</p>
+<p>If Christ hath instituted that the offence of an obstinate
+brother should be complained of to the church; then much more is it
+intended that the obstinacy of a great number, suppose of a whole
+church, should be brought before a higher assembly: but the former
+is true, therefore the latter. The consequence, wherein the
+strength of the argument lies, is proved several ways.</p>
+<p>1. From the rule of proportion: by what proportion one or two
+are subject to a particular church, by the same proportion is that
+church subject to a provincial or a national assembly; and by the
+same proportion that one congregation is governed by the particular
+eldership representing it, by the same proportion are ten or twelve
+congregations governed by a classical presbytery representing them
+all.</p>
+<p>2. From the sufficiency of that remedy that Christ here
+prescribes for those emergent exigencies under which the Church may
+lie; since, therefore, offences may as well arise between two
+persons in the same congregation, Christ hath appointed that
+particular congregations, as well as members, shall have liberty to
+complain and appeal to a more general judgment for redress: the
+salve here prescribed by Christ is equal to the sore; if the sore
+of scandal may overspread whole churches, as well as particular
+persons, then certainly the salve of appeals and subordination is
+here also appointed. If a man be scandalized by the
+neighbor-church, to whom shall he complain? The church offending
+must not be both judge and party.</p>
+<p>3. From that ecclesiastical communion that is between churches
+and churches in one and the same province or nation, whereby
+churches are joined and united together in doctrine and discipline
+into one body, as well as divers particular persons in a particular
+congregation; since, therefore, scandals may be committed among
+them that are in that holy communion one with another, most
+unworthy of and destructive to that sacred league, certainly those
+scandals should be redressed by a superior judicatory, as well as
+offences between brother and brother.</p>
+<p>4. He that careth for a part of a church must much more care for
+the whole; he whose love extends itself to regard the conversion of
+one, is certainly very careful of the spiritual welfare of many,
+the edification of a whole church; the influence of Christ's love
+being poured upon the whole body, bride and spouse, by order of
+nature, before it redound to the benefit of a finger or toe, viz.
+some one single person or other. Nor are the exceptions against
+this institution of gradual appeals of any moment.</p>
+<p>The grand one, and that makes directly against our position is,
+that our Saviour would have the controversy between brother and
+brother to be terminated in a peculiar church, and that its
+judgment should be ultimately requested, he saith, <i>Tell the
+church</i>, not churches. The subordination here appointed by
+Christ is of fewer to more, but still within the same church, not
+without it. To which we answer, our Saviour means not by church
+only one single particular congregation, but also several, combined
+in their officers, as appears by these following reasons.</p>
+<p>1. A particular church in sundry cases cannot decide the
+difference, or heal the distemper our Saviour prescribes against;
+as when a particular church is divided into two parts, both in
+opposition one to the other; or when one church is at variance with
+another; if Christ here limits only to a particular church, how
+shall such distempers be remedied?</p>
+<p>2. When Christ bids <i>tell the church</i>, he speaks in
+allusion to the Jewish Church, which was represented not only by
+parts in the single synagogue or congregation, but wholly in their
+sanhedrin, consisting of select persons, appointed by God, for
+deciding controversies incident to their particular congregations,
+and their members. So that we may thus reason: the subordination
+here established by Christ is so far to be extended in the
+Christian Church, as in the Church of the Jews, for Christ alludeth
+to the Jewish practice; but in the Jewish Church there was a
+subordination of fewer to more, not only within the same synagogue
+or congregation, but within the whole nation, for all synagogues
+were under the great council at Jerusalem. Now that Christ gives
+here the same rule that was of old given to the Jews for church
+government, is clear, 1. From the censure of the obstinate, who was
+to be reputed a heathen and a publican; wherein is a manifest
+allusion to the present estate of the Church of the Jews; and, 2.
+From the familiarity and plainness of Christ's speech, <i>Tell the
+church</i>, which church could not have been understood by the
+disciples had not Christ spoken of the Jewish judicatory; besides
+which they knew none for such offences as Christ spake of to them,
+there being no particular church which had given its name to
+Christ: as also, 3. From his citing the words of that text, Deut.
+xix. 15, where the witnesses and offenders were, by way of further
+appeal, to stand before the Lord, before the priests for judgment,
+ver. 17.</p>
+<p>3. It is plain that our Saviour intended a liberty of going
+beyond a particular congregation for determining cases of
+controversy, from the reason of that subordination which Christ
+enjoins, of one to two or three, and of them to the church. The
+reason of that gradual progress there set down, was because in the
+increase of numbers and greatness of assemblies, more wisdom,
+judgment, and gravity is supposed to be, than in the admonitions of
+a few and smaller number; now, then, this power of right admonition
+increaseth with the number of admonishers, as well without as
+within the same congregation; if ten go beyond two in wisdom and
+gravity, forty will go beyond ten, and be more likely to win upon
+the offender, and regain him.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. IV. A fourth argument is taken from the pattern of
+the apostolical churches, Acts xv.</p>
+<p>The church of Antioch (though presbyterial, as was proved
+Chapter XIII., Position II.) was subordinate to the synod at
+Jerusalem; therefore a particular church is subordinate to higher
+assemblies, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>If a synodal decree did bind them in those times, then may it
+bind particular churches now, and these ought even still to be
+subject to synods.</p>
+<p>The consequence is undeniable, unless we hold that what the
+synod there imposed was unjust, or that we have now less need of
+those remedies than they had; nay, since the apostles (who were
+assisted with an extraordinary spirit of inspiration) would
+nevertheless in a doubtful business have synodal conventions for
+determining of controversies, much more ought we to do so whose
+gifts are far inferior to theirs; and unless it had been in their
+determination to leave us their example of a synodal way of church
+government for our pattern, they had not wanted the meeting
+together of so many with them for decision of the doubt, whose
+doctrine was infallible, and of itself, without an assembly, to be
+believed.</p>
+<p>The exceptions against this pattern of church polity are of no
+validity, e.g.</p>
+<p>1. This was no synod. First, that it was no synod appears, in
+that we read of no word of a synod. Secondly, no commissioners from
+Syria and Cilicia, which churches should have sent their delegates,
+had they been a synod, and had their decrees been to have bound in
+a synodal way. Thirdly, all the believers had voices here.</p>
+<p>2. If it were a synod, yet it is no pattern for us, in regard it
+was consisting of members guided by an infallible and apostolical
+spirit.</p>
+<p>We answer, 1. Here is the thing synod, though not the word,
+which is a meeting consisting of the deputies of many single
+churches.</p>
+<p>2. That Jerusalem and Antioch had their commissioners there, is
+evident; and by consequence many single churches had their
+commissioners, for there were many single congregations at
+Jerusalem and Antioch, as hath been proved, Chapter XIII., Position
+II.; that these met together, the word used, verse 6, <i>they came
+together</i>, evidenceth, and verse 25. For the churches of Syria
+and Cilicia not sending their commissioners, it follows not that
+because <i>they are not named</i>, therefore <i>they were not
+there</i>; and if <i>they were not there</i>, therefore <i>they
+ought not to have been</i>: but it is rather thought Syria and
+Cilicia had commissioners there, in regard the synodal decrees are
+directed to them as well as others, and the decrees bound them,
+which they could not do as formal Scripture; for the words, <i>it
+seemeth good to us</i>, and their submitting the matter to
+disputation, argue the contrary; therefore as synodal decrees,
+which inasmuch as they bound those churches, they either were
+present, or were obliged to be present by their commissioners.</p>
+<p>3. To that exception, that the multitude of believers had voices
+there, and therefore it is not one of our synods, ver.
+22&mdash;</p>
+<p>We answer, it can nowise be proved that every particular
+believer had a suffrage in the assembly.</p>
+<p>Eminent divines<a href="#note-116"><small>116</small></a>
+understand by <i>multitude</i> and <i>church</i>, the multitude and
+whole church of apostles and elders, who are said to be <i>gathered
+together</i>, verse 6, <i>to consider of the matter</i>; besides
+which no other multitude is said to be gathered together, while the
+matter was in debate; yet we shall not deny even to other members
+the liberty of their consent and approbation, and freedom to
+examine all determinations by the rule of God's word: but the
+ordaining and forming those decrees is here evinced to be by the
+apostles and elders, when as they are called <i>their decrees</i>,
+Acts xvi. 4,6.</p>
+<p>3. Those only had definitive votes, who met together synodically
+to consider of the question; but they were only the apostles and
+elders, Acts xv. 6. That the epistle is sent in the name of all, is
+granted; because it was sent by common consent, and withal thereby
+was added some more weight to the message.</p>
+<p>4. Further, if the believers of Jerusalem voted in that
+assembly, by what authority was it? How could they <i>impose a
+burden</i> upon, and command decrees unto the churches of Syria and
+Cilicia, and other churches, who, according to our brethren's
+opinion, were not only absent in their commissioners, but
+independent in their power?</p>
+<p>To the exception, that other synods may not pretend to the
+privileges of that, since its decrees were indited by the Holy
+Ghost; and therefore no pattern for our imitation&mdash;</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. The decrees of this assembly did oblige, as synodal
+decrees, not as apostolical and canonical Scripture: this appears
+several ways:</p>
+<p>1. The apostles, in framing these canons, did proceed in a way
+synodal and ecclesiastical, and far different from that which they
+used in dictating of Scripture, and publishing divine truths; their
+decrees were brought forth by much disputation, human disquisition,
+but divine oracles are published without human reasonings, from the
+immediate inditing of the Spirit, 2 Pet. i. 2.</p>
+<p>2. Besides the apostles, there were here commissioned elders and
+other brethren, men of ordinary rank, not divinely and infallibly
+inspired. The apostles in the penning of Scripture consult not with
+elders and brethren, (as our opposites here say they did:) our
+brethren make mandates of ordinary believers divine and canonical
+Scripture.</p>
+<p>3. Divine writ is published only in the name of the Lord; but
+these in the name of man also, "It seemed good to the Holy Ghost
+and to us," Acts xv. 28.</p>
+<p>4. Canonical and apostolical writing of new Scripture shall not
+continue till Christ's coming, because the canon is complete, Rev.
+xxii. 18, 19, &amp;c.; but thus to decree through the assistance of
+the Holy Ghost, who remaineth with the Church to the end, and to be
+directed by Scripture, shall still continue. Therefore this
+decreeing is not as the inditing of the Holy Scripture. The minor
+is clear both from Christ's promise, "Where two or three are met
+together," Matt. xvii. 18-20; Matt. viii. 20; as also by the
+Spirit's inspiring those councils of Nice of old, and Dort of late:
+Therefore the apostles here laid aside their apostolical
+extraordinary power, descending to the places of ordinary pastors,
+to give them examples in future ages.</p>
+<p>To conclude, it is plain, that all the essentials in this
+assembly were synodal, as whether we consider: 1. The occasion of
+the meeting, a controversy; 2. The deputation of commissioners from
+particular churches, for the deciding of that controversy; or 3.
+The convention of those that were deputed; or 4. The discussion of
+the question, they being so convened; or 5. The determination of
+the question so discussed; or 6. The imposition of the thing so
+determined; or 7. The subjection to the thing so imposed.</p>
+<p>1 Tim. i. 17</p>
+<p>TO THE IMMORTAL GOD ALONE BE GLORY FOR EVER AND EVER.</p>
+<a name="H_FOOT1"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>FOOTNOTES:</h2>
+<a name="note-1"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>1</u> [ This truth, that Jesus Christ is a king,
+and hath a kingdom and government in his Church distinct from the
+kingdoms of this world, and from the civil government, hath this
+commendation and character above all other truths, that Christ
+himself suffered to the death for it, and sealed it with his blood.
+For it may he observed from the story of his passion, this was the
+only point of his accusation, which was confessed and avouched by
+himself, Luke xxiii. 3; John xviii. 33, 36, 37; was most
+aggravated, prosecuted, and driven home by the Jews, Luke xxiii. 2;
+John xix. 22, 23; was prevalent with Pilate as the cause of
+condemning him to die, John xix. 12, 13, and was mentioned also in
+his superscription upon his cross, John xix. 19; and although in
+reference to God, and in respect of satisfaction to the Divine
+justice for our sins, his death was [Greek: lytron] a price of
+redemption; yet in reference to men who did persecute, accuse, and
+condemn him, his death was [Greek: martyrion] a martyr's testimony
+to seal such a truth.&mdash;Mr. <i>G. Gillespie, in his Aaron's Rod
+Blossoming, &amp;c., Epist. to the Reader</i>.]</p>
+<a name="note-2"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>2</u> [ <i>Cent. I. lib. 2, cap.</i> 7,
+<i>p.</i> 407 <i>ad</i> 418, <i>Edit. Basil. An.</i> 1624. De rebus
+ad Gubernationem Ecclesiae pertinentibus, Apostoli certos quosdam,
+Canones tradiderunt: quos ordine subjiciemus, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-3"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>3</u> [ Directions of the Lords and Commons,
+&amp;c. Aug. 19, 1645, p. 10]</p>
+<a name="note-4"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>4</u> [ (1) The ancient discipline of the
+Bohemian Brethren, published in Latin, in octavo, <i>Anno</i> 1633,
+pages 99, 100.</p>
+<p class="foot">(2) The discipline of Geneva, <i>Anno</i> 1576, in
+<i>Art.</i> 1, 22, 57, 86, and 87.</p>
+<p class="foot">(3) The discipline of the French church at
+Frankfort, <i>Edit.</i> 2, in octavo, <i>Anno</i> 1555, <i>in cap.
+de Disciplina et Excom.,</i> p. 75, and the Ecclesiast. Discipline
+of the reformed churches of France, printed at London, <i>Anno</i>
+1642, <i>Art.</i> 15, 16, and 24, p. 44. (1) The Synodal
+Constitution of the Dutch churches in England, chap. 4, <i>Art.</i>
+13, and <i>Tit.</i> 1, <i>Art.</i> 2; and the Dutch churches in
+Belgia, (see <i>Harmonia Synodorum Belgicarum</i>,) <i>cap.</i> 14,
+<i>Art.</i> 7, 11, and 15, p. 160. (5) The reformed churches at
+Nassau, in Germany, as <i>Zeoper</i> testifies, <i>De Politei
+Eccles.,</i> printed <i>Herborne, Anno</i> 1607, in octavo, <i>Tit.
+de Censuris Ecclesiast., Part</i> 4, <i>Art.</i> 64, p. 813. (6)
+The discipline in the churches constituted by the labor of
+<i>Joannes &acirc; Lasco</i>, entitled <i>Forma ac ratio tota
+Ecclesiastici Miniterii, &amp;c.</i>, <i>author Joannes &acirc;
+Lasco Poloniae Barone, Anno</i> 1555, p. 291. (7) The discipline
+agreed upon by the English exiles that fled from the <i>Marian</i>
+persecution to Frankfort, thence to Geneva, allowed by
+<i>Calvin</i>; entitled <i>Ratio ac forma public&egrave; orandi
+Deum, &amp;c., Genevae</i>, 1556, <i>Tit. de Disciplina</i>, p. 68.
+(8) The Order of Excommunication and Public Repentance used in the
+Church of Scotland, <i>Anno</i> 1571, <i>Tit.</i> The offences that
+deserve public repentance, &amp;c., pp. 87, 88.]</p>
+<a name="note-5"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>5</u> [ See more in chap. 10, sect. 1.]</p>
+<a name="note-6"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>6</u> [ R. Park, de Polit. Eccl. 1. 2, cap.
+42.]</p>
+<a name="note-7"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>7</u> [ Malcolm. Com. in loco.]</p>
+<a name="note-8"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>8</u> [ Calvin in loco.]</p>
+<a name="note-9"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>9</u> [ Chrys. wisheth&mdash;"But, O that there
+had not wanted one that would have delivered diligently unto us the
+history of the apostles, not only what they wrote, or what they
+spake, but how they behaved themselves throughout their whole life,
+both what they did eat, and when they did eat, when they sat, and
+whither they went, and what they did every day, in what parts they
+lived, and into what house they entered, and whither they sailed,
+and that would accurately have expounded all things; so full of
+manifold utility are all things of theirs."&mdash;Chrys., Argum. in
+Epist. ad Philem. And elsewhere he affirmeth,&mdash;"Nor hath the
+grace of the Holy Ghost without cause left unto us these histories
+written, but that he may stir us up to the imitation and emulation
+of such unspeakable men. For when we hear of this man's patience,
+of that man's soberness, of another man's readiness to entertain
+strangers, and the manifold virtue of every one, and how every one
+of them did shine and become illustrious, we are stirred up to the
+like zeal." Chrys. in Gen. xxx. 25. Homil. 57, in initio.]</p>
+<a name="note-10"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>10</u> [ "For this cause, therefore, the
+conversation of these most excellent men is accurately related,
+that by imitation of them our life may be rightly led on to that
+which is good."&mdash;Greg. Nyssen, lib. de Vita Mosis, tom. i. p.
+170, vid. tot. lib.]</p>
+<a name="note-11"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>11</u> [ Perkins on Matth. vi. 16. See him also
+on Heb. xi. 6, p. 28, in fol. col. 2, B, C, &amp;c., and on Heb.
+xi. 22, p. 131, col. 2, D, and notably on Heb. xii. 1, p. 200, col.
+2, C, D, &amp;c., and on Rev. ii. 19, p. 313, col. 1, B, and his
+Art of Prophesying, p. 663, col. 1 and 2. Vide Pet. Martyr in lib.
+Jud. p. 2, col. 1, and in Rom. iv. 23, 24. And Calvin in Heb. xii.
+1; and in Rom. iv. 23, 24, and in 1. Pet. i. 21, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-12"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>12</u> [ Park. de Pol. Eccl. 1. 2, c. 42.]</p>
+<a name="note-13"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>13</u> [ 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]</p>
+<a name="note-14"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>14</u> [ Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 15-18; 1 Cor.
+v. 4, 5; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]</p>
+<a name="note-15"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>15</u> [ 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17; 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15,
+with all places that mention any thing of government.]</p>
+<a name="note-16"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>16</u> [ Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28;
+Matt. xxviii. 18-20; John xx. 21-23; Matt. xvi. 19; 2 Cor. x.
+8.]</p>
+<a name="note-17"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>17</u> [ Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 19; John xx.
+21, 23; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]</p>
+<a name="note-18"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>18</u> [ Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Acts vi. 4; 2 Tim.
+iv. 2.]</p>
+<a name="note-19"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>19</u> [ Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi.
+24.]</p>
+<a name="note-20"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>20</u> [ Matt, xviii. 15-17; Tit. iii. 19; 1
+Tim. v. 20; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, 13; 2 Cor. ii. 6: 1 Tim. i. 20; 2 Cor.
+ii 7, 8, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-21"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>21</u> [ 1 Cor. iv. 1.]</p>
+<a name="note-22"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>22</u> [ 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]</p>
+<a name="note-23"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>23</u> [ [Greek: Ekklaesia], Acts xix. 32, 39,
+40; Eph. v. 23; 1 Cor. xii. 98.]</p>
+<a name="note-24"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>24</u> [ Cameron. Praelect de Eccles. in fol.
+pp. 296-298.]</p>
+<a name="note-25"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>25</u> [ Who in relating such things can refrain
+from weeping?]</p>
+<a name="note-26"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>26</u> [ See Mr. Edwards's Antapologia, page
+201, printed in anno 1644, proving this out of their own books.
+Especially see a little book in 12mo. printed in anno 1646, styled
+a collection of certain matters, which almost in every page pleads
+for Independency and Independents by name: from which most of the
+Independent principles seem to be derived.]</p>
+<a name="note-27"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>27</u> [ Let not any man put off this Scripture,
+saying, This is in the Old Testament, but we find no such thing in
+the gospel; for we find the same thing, almost the same words used
+in a prophecy of the times of the gospel, Zech. xiii. 3. In the
+latter end of the xii. chapter, it is prophesied that those who
+pierced Christ, should <i>look upon him and mourn</i>, &amp;c.,
+having a <i>spirit of grace and supplication</i> poured upon them,
+chap. xiii. 1. "There shall now be opened a fountain for sin, and
+for uncleanness," ver. 3. "It shall come to pass that he that takes
+upon him to prophesy, that his father and mother that begat him,
+shall say unto him, Thou shalt not live, for thou speakest lies in
+the name of the Lord: and his father and his mother that begat him,
+shall thrust him through, when he prophesieth." You must understand
+this by that in Deuteronomy. The meaning is not that his father or
+mother should presently run a knife into him, but that though they
+begat him, yet they should be the means to bring him to condign
+punishment, even the taking away his life; these who were the
+instruments of his life, should now be the instruments of his
+death.&mdash;Mr. Jer. Burroughs in ills Irenicum, chap. v., Pages
+19, 20, printed 1646.]</p>
+<a name="note-28"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>28</u> [ But schismatics and heretics are called
+evil-workers, Phil. iii. 2; and heresy is classed among the works
+of the flesh, Gal. v. 20.]</p>
+<a name="note-29"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>29</u> [ Mr. Burroughs in his <i>Irenicum</i>,
+c.v. page 25; printed 1646.]</p>
+<a name="note-30"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>30</u> [ See this evidenced upon divers grounds
+in <i>Appollon. jus Majest.</i>, pp. 25, 26.]</p>
+<a name="note-31"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>31</u> [ See M.S. to A.S., pages 55-60.]</p>
+<a name="note-32"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>32</u> [ The civil magistrate is no proper
+church officer, as was intimated, Part 1 c. 1., and will be further
+evidenced in this chapter.]</p>
+<a name="note-33"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>33</u> [ That the civil magistrate is not the
+vicar of Christ our Mediator, see abundantly proved by Mr. S.
+Rutherford, in his Divine Right of Church Government, &amp;c., Ch.
+27, Quest. 23, pages 595 to 647.]</p>
+<a name="note-34"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>34</u> [ The formal difference or distinction
+betwixt these two powers, is fully and clearly asserted by that
+learned bishop, Usher, in these words: "God, for the better
+settling of piety and honesty among men, and the repressing of
+profaneness and other vices, hath established two distinct powers
+upon earth: the one of the keys, committed to the Church; the other
+of the sword, committed to the civil magistrate. That of the keys,
+is ordained to work upon the inward man; having immediate relation
+to the remitting or retaining of sins, John xx. 23. That of the
+sword is appointed to work upon the outward man; yielding
+protection to the obedient, and inflicting external punishment upon
+the rebellious and disobedient. By the former, the spiritual
+officers of the Church of Christ are inclinable to govern well, 1
+Tim. v. 17. To <i>speak</i>, and <i>exhort</i>, and <i>rebuke</i>
+with all <i>authority</i>, Tit. ii. 15. To loose such as are
+penitent, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. To commit others to the
+Lord's prison, until their amendment, or to bind them over to the
+judgment of the great day, if they shall persist in their
+wilfulness and obstinacy. By the other, princes have an imperious
+power assigned by God unto them, for the defence of such as do
+well, and executing revenge and wrath, Rom. xiii. 4, upon such as
+do evil, whether by death, or banishment, or confiscation of goods,
+or imprisonment, Ezra vii. 26, according to the quality of the
+offence.</p>
+<p class="foot">"When St. Peter, that had the keys committed unto
+him, made bold to draw the sword, he was commanded to put it up,
+Matt. xxvi. 52, as a weapon that he had no authority to meddle
+withal. And on the other side, when Uzziah the king would venture
+upon the execution of the priest's office, it was said unto him,
+'It pertaineth not unto thee, Uzziah, to burn incense unto the
+Lord, but to the priests, the sons of Aaron, that are consecrated
+to burn incense,' 2 Chron. xxvi. 18. Let this therefore be our
+second conclusion: That the power of the sword, and of the keys,
+are two distinct ordinances of God; and that the prince hath no
+more authority to enter upon the execution of any part of the
+priest's function, than the priest hath to intrude upon any part of
+the office of the prince." In his speech delivered in the
+Castle-chamber at Dublin, &amp;c., concerning the oath of
+supremacy, pages 3, 4, 5. Further differences betwixt these two
+powers, see in Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, Book 2, Chap. 4.]</p>
+<a name="note-35"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>35</u> [ See this proposition for substance
+fully and clearly asserted by that acute and pious author, Mr. P.
+Bains, in his Diocesan's Trial, quest. 3, pages 83, 84, conclus.
+3.]</p>
+<a name="note-36"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>36</u> [ See Cotton's Keys, &amp;c., pp. 31-33,
+and Mr. Thomas Goodwin, and Mr. Philip Nye, in their epistle
+prefixed thereunto, do own this book as being for substance their
+own judgment.]</p>
+<a name="note-37"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>37</u> [ See that judicious treatise, Vindiciae
+Clavium, chap. III. IV. V., pp. 33-52.]</p>
+<a name="note-38"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>38</u> [ John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt, xviii.
+15, p. 149-151, in fol, and Baine's Diocesan's Trial, the third
+quest, pp. 79, 80, and D. Parcus in Matt. xviii. 15. This is fully
+discussed and proved by Mr. Rutherford in his Peaceable Plea, Chap.
+viii. p. 85, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-39"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>39</u> [ A difference arose betwixt two
+gentlemen in that church about singing of hymns: the second
+gentleman was complained of to the church by the first, and upon
+hearing of the whole business, and all the words that passed
+between them, this second gentleman was censured by the church, and
+Mr. Nye <i>charged sin upon him</i> (that was the phrase) in many
+particulars, and still at the end of every charge Mr. Nye repeated,
+"this was your sin." After this censure, so solemnly done, the
+gentleman censured brings in accusations against Mr. Nye, in
+several articles, charging him with pride, want of charity,
+&amp;c., in the manner of the censure; and this being brought
+before the church, continued in debate about half a year, three or
+four days in a week, and sometimes more, before all the
+congregation. Divers of the members having callings to follow, they
+desired to have leave to be absent. Mr. Goodwin oft professed
+publicly upon these differences, If this were their church
+fellowship, he would lay down his eldership; and nothing was more
+commonly spoke among the members, than that certainly for matter of
+discipline they were not in the right way, for that there was no
+way of bringing things to an end. At last, after more than half a
+year's debate, not being able to bring these differences to an end,
+and being come into England, they had their last meeting about it,
+to agree not to publish it abroad when they came into England,
+&amp;c. Mr. Edwards's Antapolog., pp. 36, 37.]</p>
+<a name="note-40"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>40</u> [ Mr. J. Cotton, in his Way of the
+Churches of Christ in New England, chap, ii. sect. 7, p. 43.]</p>
+<a name="note-41"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>41</u> [ Were the power in the church, the
+church should not only call them, but make them out of virtue and
+power received into herself; then should the church have a true
+lordlike power in regard of her ministers. Besides, there are many
+in the community of Christians incapable of this power regularly,
+as women and children. Mr. P. Bain in his Diocesan's Trial, quest.
+3, conclus. 3, page 84, printed 1621.]</p>
+<a name="note-42"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>42</u> [ If spiritual and ecclesiastical power
+be in the church or community of the faithful, the church doth not
+only call, but make officers out of virtue and power received into
+herself, and then should the church have a true lordlike power in
+regard of her ministers. For, as he that will derive authority to
+the church, maketh himself lord of the church, so, if the church
+derive authority to the ministers of Christ, she maketh herself
+lady or mistress over them, in the exercise of that lordlike
+authority; for, as all men know, it is the property of the lord and
+master to impart authority. Did the church give power to the
+pastors and teachers, she might make the sacrament and preaching
+which one doth in order, no sacrament, no preaching; for it is the
+order instituted of God that giveth being and efficacy to these
+ordinances; and if the power of ruling, feeding, and dispensing the
+holy things of God do reside in the faithful, the word and
+sacrament, in respect of dispensation and efficacy, shall depend
+upon the order and institution of the society. If the power of the
+keys be derived from the community of the faithful, then are all
+officers immediately and formally servants to the church, and must
+do every thing in the name of the church, rule, feed, bind, loose,
+remit, and retain sins, preach and administer the sacraments; then
+they must perform their office according to the direction of the
+church, more or less, seldom or frequent, remiss or diligent; for
+from whom are they to receive direction how to carry themselves in
+their offices, but from him or them of whom they receive their
+office, whose work they are to do, and from whom they must expect
+reward? If their office and power be of God immediately, they must
+do the duties of their place according to his designment, and unto
+him they must give account; but if their power and function be from
+the church, the church must give account to God, and the officers
+to the church, whom she doth take to be her helpers, &amp;c. Mr.
+John Ball, in his Trial of the grounds tending to separation, chap.
+xii. pages 252, 253, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-43"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>43</u> [ See Vindiciae Clavium, judiciously
+unmasking these new notions.]</p>
+<a name="note-44"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>44</u> [ Here understand by this phrase,
+(<i>over you in the Lord</i>,) viz: Not only in the fear of the
+Lord, nor only in those things that appertain to God's worship, but
+also according to the will, and by the authority of the Lord Christ
+derived to them.]</p>
+<a name="note-45"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>45</u> [ See the Apologetical narration by the
+five Independents, page 8; and Mr. Jo. Cotton, at large, asserts
+the divine institution of the ruling elder. Way of the Churches of
+Christ, &amp;c., chap. 2, sect. 2, page 13-35.]</p>
+<a name="note-46"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>46</u> [ Calvin, Beza, Pareus, Pagnin.]</p>
+<a name="note-47"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>47</u> [ Arias Montan.]</p>
+<a name="note-48"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>48</u> [ Tremel. out of the Syriac; so the old
+Geneva translation, and our new translation.]</p>
+<a name="note-49"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>49</u> [ Field, of the Church, book 5, chap.
+26.]</p>
+<a name="note-50"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>50</u> [ Sutlive, who afterwards declared, that
+he was sorry with all his heart, that ever he put pen to paper to
+write against Beza as he had done, in behalf of the proud
+domineering prelates; and he spoke this with great
+indignation.]</p>
+<a name="note-51"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>51</u> [ Mat. Sutliv. de Presbyterio, cap. 12,
+p. 87, edit. 1591.]</p>
+<a name="note-52"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>52</u> [ Ibid. pages 72 and 87, edit. 1591.]</p>
+<a name="note-53"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>53</u> [ Bilson's perpetual Government of
+Christ's Church, c. 10, p. 136, 137, 138, printed in Ann.
+1610.]</p>
+<a name="note-54"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>54</u> [ That the magistrate cannot be here
+meant, see fully evidenced in Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, &amp;c.,
+book ii. chap. 6, pages 218-224, and also chap. 9, p. 284.]</p>
+<a name="note-55"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>55</u> [ Pareas in 1 Cor. xii. 28.]</p>
+<a name="note-56"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>56</u> [ D. Field, Of the Church, book v. chap.
+xxvi.]</p>
+<a name="note-57"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>57</u> [ Peter Martyr, Beza, Piscator, and
+Calvin.]</p>
+<a name="note-58"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>58</u> [ Calvin in 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. <i>Vid. etiam
+Jacob. Laurent. Comment, in</i> 1 Pet. v. 2, 3, <i>ubi fusius de
+hac distinctione disserit</i>, p. 322, ad. 325.]</p>
+<a name="note-59"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>59</u> [ Mat. Sutliv. De Presbyterio, cap. 12,
+page 72 and 87: edit. Lond., an. 1591. Bilson's Perpetual
+Government of Christ's Church, chap. 10, page 141; in 4to. printed
+in anno 1610.]</p>
+<a name="note-60"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>60</u> [ <i>Vide</i> Calv. in loc.]</p>
+<a name="note-61"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>61</u> [ Sutlive.]</p>
+<a name="note-62"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>62</u> [ Whitgift.]</p>
+<a name="note-63"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>63</u> [ Coleman.]</p>
+<a name="note-64"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>64</u> [ Who desire more full satisfaction
+touching this poor and empty gloss, that the civil magistrate
+should be meant by these governments, let them consult Mr.
+Gillespie's elaborate treatise, called Aaron's Rod Blossoming, book
+2, chap, 6, pp. 218 to 224.]</p>
+<a name="note-65"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>65</u> [ Bilson.]</p>
+<a name="note-66"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>66</u> [ Mr. Rutherford in his Due Right of
+Presbyteries, p. 145.]</p>
+<a name="note-67"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>67</u> [ Calvin, Beza, &amp;c. on this
+place.]</p>
+<a name="note-68"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>68</u> [ See Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, book 2,
+chap. 9.]</p>
+<a name="note-69"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>69</u> [ Mr. Rutherford in his Due Rights of
+Presbyteries, chap. 7, sec. 7, pages 145-147.]</p>
+<a name="note-70"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>70</u> [ Beza, Piscata, Calvin, on this
+verse.]</p>
+<a name="note-71"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>71</u> [ Bilson's Perpetual Government of
+Christ's Church, chap. x. pages 130, 131.]</p>
+<a name="note-72"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>72</u> [ Altar. Damas. cap. xii., page 918 and
+page 920.]</p>
+<a name="note-73"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>73</u> [ B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii.,
+Bilson in his Perpetual Government of Christ's Church, c. x. page
+132, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-74"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>74</u> [ B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii.,
+page 40.]</p>
+<a name="note-75"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>75</u> [ B. Whitgift in his Defence against
+Cartwright's first Reply. This is one of D. Field's three glosses.
+Field, Of the Church, lib v., chap. 26.]</p>
+<a name="note-76"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>76</u> [ Bishops that have no tolerable gift of
+teaching, are like idols, their cases, or rather coffins, set up in
+the church's choice. Cartwright Testam. <i>Annot</i>., in 1 Tim. v.
+17.]</p>
+<a name="note-77"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>77</u> [ Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page
+919.]</p>
+<a name="note-78"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>78</u> [ Bridge, Hussey.]</p>
+<a name="note-79"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>79</u> [ Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page
+919.]</p>
+<a name="note-80"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>80</u> [ Sutlive.]</p>
+<a name="note-81"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>81</u> [ Sutlive, De Presbyterio, cap. 12, pages
+72, 73.]</p>
+<a name="note-82"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>82</u> [ Bilson's Government of the Church, page
+133.]</p>
+<a name="note-83"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>83</u> [ Sutlive, De Presbyterio, c. 12, pages
+72, 73.]</p>
+<a name="note-84"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>84</u> [ Bilson, page 135.]</p>
+<a name="note-85"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>85</u> [ Field, Book v.]</p>
+<a name="note-86"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>86</u> [ Bilson, page 133.]</p>
+<a name="note-87"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>87</u> [ Field, book v.]</p>
+<a name="note-88"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>88</u> [ D. Downham. See Altar. Damasc. c. xii.
+page 924.]</p>
+<a name="note-89"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>89</u> [ Chrysost. Homil. 15, in 1 Tim. 5, Hier.
+in 1 Tim. cap. 5, Ambr. in 1 Tim. cap., Calv. in 1 Tim. cap. 5,
+Bullinger in 1 Tim. cap. 5, Beza in 1 Tim. 5.]</p>
+<a name="note-90"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>90</u> [ Bilson, Sutlive, and Downham.]</p>
+<a name="note-91"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>91</u> [ The London ministers have here inserted
+the testimonies of these ancient writers in favor of the divine
+right of the office of the ruling elder, viz. Ignatius, Purpurius,
+Tertullian, Origen, Cyprian, Optatus, Ambrose, Augustine, and
+Isidorus; and of these three late ones, viz. Whitaker, Thorndike,
+and Rivet. The amount of their testimony, when taken together,
+appears to be simply this, that there have been ruling elders, as
+distinct from preaching elders, in the Church of Christ from the
+beginning. It is therefore judged unnecessary to give the
+quotations from these authors at large.&mdash;<i>Editor</i>.]</p>
+<a name="note-92"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>92</u> [ Against the office of deacons, and the
+divine right thereof, fourteen objections are answered by Mr. S.
+Rutherford in his Due Right of Presbyteries, chap. 7, pages 159 to
+175. To which the reader that shall make any scruple about the
+deacon's office, is referred for his further satisfaction.]</p>
+<a name="note-93"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>93</u> [ Some of our brethren in New England,
+observing what confusion necessarily depends upon the government
+which hath been practised there, have been forced much to search
+into it within this four years, and incline to acknowledge the
+presbyters to be the subject of the power without dependence upon
+the people. "We judge, upon mature deliberation, that the ordinary
+exercise of government must be so in the presbyters, as not to
+depend upon the express votes and suffrages of the people. There
+hath been a convent or meeting of the ministers of these parts,
+about this question at Cambridge in the Bay, and there we have
+proposed our arguments, and answered theirs, and they proposed
+theirs, and answered ours; and so the point is left to
+consideration." Mr. Thomas Parker in his letter written from
+Newbury in New England, December 17, 1643, printed 1644.]</p>
+<a name="note-94"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>94</u> [ Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. L. Graec. in
+verb.]</p>
+<a name="note-95"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>95</u> [ Piscator.]</p>
+<a name="note-96"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>96</u> [ Beza.]</p>
+<a name="note-97"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>97</u> [ Zanch. in loco.]</p>
+<a name="note-98"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>98</u> [ Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. ad verb.]</p>
+<a name="note-99"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>99</u> [ Mr. Jo. Cotton's Keys of the Kingdom of
+Heaven, chap. vii. in propos. 3, pages 44-46.]</p>
+<a name="note-100"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>100</u> [ See Mr. Cotton's own words in chap.
+XIV. at the end, in the margin.]</p>
+<a name="note-101"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>101</u> [ See John Calvin, in 1 Cor. v. 4.]</p>
+<a name="note-102"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>102</u> [ Cameron, in Matt. xviii. 15.]</p>
+<a name="note-103"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>103</u> [ Thus Mr. Bayne remarkably expounds
+this text, Matt. xviii., saying: Where first mark, that Christ doth
+presuppose the authority of every particular church taken
+indistinctly. For it is such a church as any brother offended may
+presently complain to. Therefore no universal, or provincial, or
+diocesan church gathered in a council. 2. It is not any particular
+church that he doth send all Christians to, for then all Christians
+in the world should come to one particular church, were it
+possible. He doth therefore presuppose indistinctly the very
+particular church where the brother offending and offended are
+members. And if they be not both of one church, the plaintiff must
+make his denunciation to the church where the defendant is. 3. As
+Christ doth speak it of any ordinary particular church
+indistinctly, so he doth by the name of church not understand
+essentially all the congregation. For then Christ should give not
+some, but all the members of the church to be governors of it. 4.
+Christ speaketh it of such a church to whom we may ordinarily and
+orderly complain; now this we cannot to the whole multitude. 5.
+This church he speaketh of then doth presuppose it, as the ordinary
+executioner of all discipline and censure. But the multitude have
+not this execution ordinary, as all but Morelius, and such
+democratical spirits, do affirm. And the reason ratifying the
+sentence of the church, doth show that often the number of it is
+but small, "For where two or three are gathered together in my
+name;" whereas the church or congregations essentially taken for
+teachers and people, are incomparably great. Neither doth Christ
+mean by church the chief pastor, who is virtually as the whole
+church.&mdash;Mr. Bayne's Diocesan's Trial.]</p>
+<a name="note-104"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>104</u> [ Timothy received grace by the laying
+on of the hands of the presbytery. For that persons must be
+understood here, is apparent by the like place, when it is said, by
+the laying on of my hands, he noteth a person, and so here a
+presbytery. 2. To take presbytery to signify the order of
+priesthood, is against all lexicons, and the nature of the Greek
+termination. 3. Timothy never received that order of a presbyter,
+as before we have proved. 4. It cannot signify, as Greek expositors
+take it, a company of bishops; for neither was that canon of three
+bishops and the Metropolitan, or all the bishops in a province, in
+the apostle's time; neither were these who were now called bishops,
+then called presbyters, as they say, but apostles, men that had
+received apostolic grace, angels, &amp;c. Finally, it is very
+absurd to think of companies of other presbyters in churches that
+Paul planted, but presbyteries of such presbyters as are now
+distinguished from bishops, which is the grant of our
+adversaries.&mdash;Bayne's Diocesan's Trial, page 82.]</p>
+<a name="note-105"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>105</u> [ See Assertion of the Government of the
+Church of Scotland, Part I. Chap. 2, p. 122, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-106"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>106</u> [ Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod
+Blossoming, book i. chap. iii. pages 8-38.]</p>
+<a name="note-107"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>107</u> [ Vid. Joannis Seldeni de Anno Civili,
+and Calendario, &amp;c. Dissertationem in Praefat., page 8. See
+also Mr. John Lightfoot's Commentary upon the Acts, c. x. 28, pages
+235-239.]</p>
+<a name="note-108"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>108</u> [ John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt.
+xviii. 15, page 143 ad 162, and Mr. G. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod
+Blossoming, &amp;c., book i., chap. 3, page 8, &amp;c., and book
+ii., chap. 9, page 294-297; and book iii., chapters 2-6, handling
+this elaborately, pages 350-423.]</p>
+<a name="note-109"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>109</u> [ Assertion, &amp;c., part 2, chap. 3,
+p. 139.]</p>
+<a name="note-110"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>110</u> [ Basilius in Psal. cxv. Oecumenius in
+loc. Jerom. Chrysostome, hom. 33, in Matt. Irenaeus, lib. 1, chap.
+11. Salmeron.]</p>
+<a name="note-111"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>111</u> [ Euseb. Hist. Eccles. 1. 8 c. 1.]</p>
+<a name="note-112"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>112</u> [ If Cenchrea be comprehended under the
+church of Corinth in this epistle, and the apostle writing to the
+Corinthians, wrote also to this church, called, Rom. xvi. 1, <i>the
+church of Cenchrea</i>, then have we more congregations than one at
+Corinth. Now, Cenchrea was a seaport or harbor of the Corinthians.
+It was a place near to Corinth, on the east of the Egean Sea.
+Rutherford, in his Due Right of Presbyteries, page 462.]</p>
+<a name="note-113"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>113</u> [ Paget, Gillespie, and the four Leyden
+professors, unto whose judicious and elaborate treatises, the
+reader is referred for more full satisfaction against the usual
+cavils and exceptions that are made against synods, and their
+power.]</p>
+<a name="note-114"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>114</u> [ This is the judgment of the learned
+Whitaker upon these words: other lawful councils may in like manner
+assert "their decrees to be the decrees of the Holy Ghost, if they
+shall be like to this council, and shall keep the same rule, which
+in this council the apostles did keep and follow. For if they shall
+decree and determine nothing but from Scripture, (which was done in
+this council.) and if they shall examine all questions by the
+Scripture, and shall follow the voice of the Scriptures in all
+their decrees, then they may assert, that the Holy Ghost so
+decreed," &amp;c. Whitaker, Cont. page 610.]</p>
+<a name="note-115"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>115</u> [ That there is an authoritative,
+juridical synod; and that this synod, Acts xv., was such a one; and
+that this synod is a pattern to us;&mdash;all this is most
+ingenuously acknowledged and asserted by that learned Independent,
+Mr. John Cotton, in these words, viz:</p>
+<p class="foot">"IV. Proposition, in case a particular church be
+disturbed with errors of scandal, and the same maintained by a
+faction among them. Now a synod of churches, or of their
+messengers, is the first subject of that power and authority,
+whereby error is judicially convinced and condemned, the truth
+searched out and determined; and the way of truth and peace
+declared and imposed upon the churches.</p>
+<p class="foot">"The truth of this proposition may appear by two
+arguments</p>
+<p class="foot">"<i>Argum</i>. 1. From the want of power in such a
+particular church, to pass a binding sentence where error or
+scandal is maintained by a faction; for the promise of binding and
+loosing which is made to a particular church, Matt, xviii. 18, is
+not given to the church when it is leavened with error and
+variance. And the ground&mdash;&mdash;If then the church, or a
+considerable part of it, fall into error through ignorance, or into
+faction; by variance, they cannot expect the presence of Christ
+with them according to his promise, to pass a blind sentence. And
+then as they fall under the conviction and admonition of any other
+sister church, in a way of brotherly love, by virtue of communion
+of churches; so their errors and variance, and whatsoever scandals
+else do accompany the same, they are justly subject to the
+condemnation of a synod of churches.</p>
+<p class="foot">"2. A second argument to prove that a synod is the
+first subject of power, to determine and judge errors and variances
+in particular churches, is taken from the pattern set before us in
+that case, Acts xv. 1-28: when certain false teachers having taught
+in the church of Antioch a necessity of circumcision to salvation,
+and having gotten a faction to take part with them, (as appeareth
+by the dissension and disputation of Paul and Barnabas against
+them,) the church did not determine the case themselves, but
+referred the whole matter to the <i>apostles and elders at
+Jerusalem</i>, Acts xv. 1, 2. Not to the apostles alone, but to the
+apostles and elders. The apostles were as the elders and rulers of
+all churches; and the elders there were not a few, the believers in
+Jerusalem being many thousands. Neither did the apostles determine
+the matter (as hath been said) by apostolical authority from
+immediate revelation: but they assembled together with the elders,
+<i>to consider of the matter</i>, ver. 6, and a <i>multitude of
+brethren</i> together with them, ver. 12, 22, 23; and after
+searching out the cause by an ordinary means of disputation, ver.
+7, Peter cleared it by the witness Of the Spirit to his ministry in
+Cornelius's family; Paul and Barnabas by the like effect of their
+ministry among the Gentiles: James confirmed the same by the
+testimony of the prophets, wherewith the whole synod being
+satisfied, they determine of a JUDICIAL SENTENCE, and of a way to
+publish it by letters and messengers; in which they CENSURE the
+false teachers as troublers of their church, and subverters of
+their souls; they reject the imposition of circumcision as a yoke
+which neither they nor their fathers were able to bear; they IMPOSE
+upon the Church none but some necessary observations, and them by
+way of THAT AUTHORITY which the Lord had given them, ver. 28: which
+PATTERN clearly showeth us to whom the key of authority is
+committed, when there groweth offence and difference in a church.
+Look as in the case of the offence of a faithful brother persisted
+in, the matter is at last judged and determined in a church: so in
+the offence of the church or congregation, the matter is at last
+judged in a congregation of churches, a church of churches; for
+what is a synod else but a church of churches?"&mdash;Keys of the
+Kingdom of Heaven, pages 47-49.]</p>
+<a name="note-116"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>116</u> [ Junius, Beza, Calvin, and
+Piscator.]</p>
+<a name="2H_APPE"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>APPENDIX.</h2>
+<h3>NO. 1.<a href="#note-117"><small>117</small></a></h3>
+<h4><i>Of the Scriptural Qualifications and Duties of Church
+Members.</i></h4>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What persons have a right in the sight of God to
+be actual members of the Church of Christ?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Only regenerated and converted persons, such as are
+married to, and have put on Christ; such as are savingly and
+powerfully enlightened, quickened, and convinced of sin,
+righteousness, and judgment;<a href=
+"#note-118"><small>118</small></a> such as have chosen Christ for
+their Lord and Saviour, and resigned and made over themselves to
+him, and received him upon his own terms;<a href=
+"#note-119"><small>119</small></a> such only as are reconciled
+unto, and are in favor with God; as are justified by faith,
+sanctified by the Spirit, and set apart for holiness, and unto a
+living to God, and no more unto themselves:<a href=
+"#note-120"><small>120</small></a> such as are the beloved of God,
+called effectually to be saints, and have really and sincerely
+taken upon them the yoke of Christ Jesus, I say such persons, and
+only such, doth Jesus Christ account worthy of this privilege and
+dignity.<a href="#note-121"><small>121</small></a> Although men do
+not certainly know those that are such, and by reason of their
+darkness and fallible judgments they may and do admit others into
+the Church, and unto her privileges, yet in truth these have no
+right unto them, and ought not to be there; for these spiritual
+holy things are for, and only for, spiritual and holy persons.
+Christ prepares men by his grace, word, and Spirit to make them fit
+materials, and then he calls them to join together and become a
+spiritual house, for his delight, service, and glory.[F] And
+therefore holy persons, and such only, ought to be full members of
+the Church of Christ.</p>
+<p>This will appear by these following particulars:</p>
+<p>1. Because God often declares his detestation and abhorrence of
+others being there, and manifests his indignation against them. As
+to the man that came to the marriage supper without the
+wedding-garment, Matt. xxii. 11-13; and the five foolish virgins,
+chap. xxv.; and the dreadful end of the tares, chap. xiii. 38-44,
+which were the hypocrites, that by the devil's instigation had
+crept into the Church. It is true that such were, and will be, in
+the best of churches, although their guides may do all they can to
+prevent it, because they cannot make an infallible judgment of
+persons' states; yet it is as certain these are usurpers and ought
+not to be there. For, although they are in God's providence
+permitted to creep in, yet we may be sure they are not there with
+his approbation:&mdash;they are not all Israel that are of Israel;
+for, saith God to all uncircumcised, What have you to do to take my
+covenant into your mouth, seeing you hate instruction and cast my
+words behind your back, (as all hypocrites do,) Ps. l. 16, 17. And
+Christ says, that such as will not have him to reign over him (and
+to be sure hypocrites will not) shall be destroyed, Luke xix. 27.
+Now, as hypocrites are most loathsome and abominable persons in the
+sight of God, as may be seen at large in Matt, xxiii. 13-35, they
+have no right unto the spiritual privileges of the Church of
+Christ, because, in the sight of God, the gospel Church should
+consist only of new creatures and real members of Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p>II. That all church members ought to be sincere-hearted
+believers appears by the high titles which the Lord Jesus gives
+unto them in Scripture: they are described to be like the king's
+daughter, all glorious within. They are called saints, holy
+brethren, and beloved, elect, dear children of God, the spouse of
+Christ, a holy temple of God, lively stones, built up a spiritual
+house, a holy priesthood, and the Lord's sealed ones. Now such
+honorable titles belong not unto mere formal professors, but only
+unto the real members of Christ: not unto those that have a name
+only; but to such as are so indeed and in truth.</p>
+<p>III. A third reason is taken from the ends of God in instituting
+and appointing churches. They are said to be built by the Spirit
+for God, i.e. for God to dwell and walk in them, to repose himself
+in them, as in his holy garden, house, and temple. They are
+designed for promoting his glory in the world, to distinguish his
+people from others; that they should be to the praise of his
+glorious grace, and be the living witnesses to his name, truths,
+and ways; that they should be the habitations of beauty and glory,
+of fame and renown in the world, and be the light thereof; and that
+with one heart and mouth they should glorify God. Believers are
+united into a church capacity for their spiritual profit and
+advantage, that God may there give them his love, and communicate
+his grace, truths, and counsels to them, as to his avowed household
+and family Christ walks there, and God the Father dwells there, and
+the Holy Spirit speaks to them in a special and frequent manner to
+distribute liberally of their love and fulness. They are formed and
+set up by Jesus Christ to be the only seats and subjects of his
+laws, ordinances, power, and authority, that they might receive,
+obey, and observe his laws, declare before the world their owning
+of him for their Lord, by their open and public profession of, and
+subjection unto him, as such; and that, by their regular and
+distinct following of him in their united church state, they might
+manifest to all men, that they are his subjects and disciples, that
+they have chosen him for their Lord and King, and his law for the
+rule of their faith and obedience; that they are not their own, but
+his; and that they have reposed themselves in him, as their
+happiness and eternal blessedness; that they are called out of the
+world and set apart by his grace for himself, to live unto him; and
+that they have taken upon themselves his holy yoke, and the
+observation of all his laws. God has united believers into
+churches, that by his Spirit and ministers he may feed and nourish
+them there as his flock, water them as his garden, support them as
+his house, and order and govern them as his family and
+household.</p>
+<p>IV. The Church of Christ should consist of new creatures and
+sincere-hearted believers, because they only can and will answer
+and prosecute the foresaid, and such like holy ends of God, in and
+by his Church. They are fitted and framed, moulded and polished, by
+the Holy Ghost, for their growing up into a holy temple in the
+Lord; and so, by the constant and promised guidance and conduct of
+their living head Jesus Christ, with their spiritual
+qualifications, they are enabled to answer and perform the great
+ends of God, in erecting and building them up in a church state.
+But unregenerate persons cannot do this, because they are strangers
+in heart to Jesus Christ, and to the power of godliness; nor would
+they if they could, because they have not the saving knowledge of
+Christ in them, but are full of obstinacy against God.</p>
+<p>V. Because all the laws, ordinances, and works of church members
+are holy, spiritual, and heavenly. They are such as the natural man
+understands not, and cannot discern what they are, because they are
+spiritual and holy; and therefore they that are not taught of God
+savingly to form a proper judgment of them, do think and judge of
+them carnally and vainly. But believers have them written in their
+hearts beforehand. Yet they have them not without book, I mean they
+have the same laws of Christ written in the books of their hearts
+which they find in the Bible, by which they are in some measure
+enabled to understand, receive, love, and rightly to obey, the laws
+and ordinances of Christ without. Their laws are holy and
+spiritual, and their works in a church state are so likewise. They
+have a holy God, who is a Spirit, to serve and worship; a spiritual
+Head to believe in and obey; holy and spiritual work to do; and
+therefore they need to be holy and spiritual persons, not only
+externally in profession, but also internally, in truth. Almost all
+the laws and ordinances of Christ are committed unto them, and God
+expects his principal and choicest worship from his Church; and
+these are all above and beyond the reach of carnal minds.</p>
+<p>VI. The Church ought to be composed of believers and regenerated
+persons, because they are called to continue and stand fast in all
+storms and tempests; and to hold out unto the end, as being built
+upon the rock Jesus Christ. For whatever church is built upon the
+sand, and not upon the Lord Jesus, and by the authority of his word
+and Spirit, will not stand long, because it wants a foundation to
+bear up its weight. They must all be built upon the rock and chief
+corner-stone, the sure foundation that God hath laid. The Lord
+Jesus tells us, Matt. xvi. 18, that upon this rock (i.e. himself
+and the truths that Peter had confessed) will I build my Church,
+and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it. But it is
+certain that hypocrites are not built upon Christ by faith, but fix
+their vain hopes on a sandy foundation. Therefore, if their persons
+are not built upon Christ, their church state cannot; but upon the
+sand. Hence then it follows that only true believers are built on
+Christ, and so they are the only persons that Christ wishes to have
+built up into holy temples; because the churches that Christ builds
+shall be built upon himself, that they may stand impregnable
+against all opposition: and therefore they should only be composed
+of such as are united to him by faith, and have chosen him for
+their only rock and foundation, and not of such as do secretly
+reject him.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What qualifications should believers find in
+themselves for their own satisfaction, before they enter into full
+communion with the visible Church of Christ?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. They should be able to answer the following
+questions in the affirmative.</p>
+<p>I. Can you say indeed that you do seriously and heartily desire
+to see, and to be more deeply and powerfully convinced of your own
+vileness and sinfulness, of your own weakness and wretchedness, and
+of your wants and unworthiness? and that, in order to your deep and
+spiritual humiliation and self-debasing, that you may be more vile
+in your own eyes, and Jesus Christ and free grace more precious and
+excellent, more high and honorable, and more sweet and desirable,
+that your hearts may be melted into godly sorrow, and that you may
+be moved thereby to abhor yourselves, and to repent in dust and
+ashes? Job xlii. 5, 6.</p>
+<p>II. Can you say that you do seriously and heartily desire and
+endeavor to believe in Christ, and to receive and accept of him in
+the gospel way, such as you find in Mark viii. 34; Luke xiv. 26-28,
+and elsewhere? Do you thus desire and choose to have him with his
+yoke and cross? Matt. xi. 28, 29. And do you so deny yourselves,
+and your sinful self, righteous self, worldly self, supposed able,
+powerful self, and every other carnal and spiritual self, that
+Christ only may be exalted, that you may be nothing in your
+justification and salvation, but that Jesus Christ and free grace
+may be all, and in all things? Col. iii. 11; Phil. iii. 7, 8. Do
+you desire, choose, and endeavor to have Christ on the hardest
+terms; and do you desire, that all may go for Christ's person,
+blood, and righteousness, his grace, love, life, and Spirit, for
+the pardon of your sins, and the justification of your persons,
+that you may be found in him, not having your own righteousness,
+but the righteousness of Christ by faith? Phil. iii. 9. And do you
+go and present yourselves as destitute condemned sinners to him,
+and to God the Father in and by him, that you may be clothed with
+the righteousness of Christ, and that God may pardon, justify, and
+accept you for his sake only?</p>
+<p>III. Do you seriously and heartily desire and choose to have
+Christ Jesus for your Lord and Ruler too, Col. ii. 6; that he may
+rule in you, and over you, and that your lusts and yourselves, your
+interests, and your all, may be subject unto him, and be wholly at
+his command and disposal continually? Is Christ the Lord as
+acceptable to you as Christ Jesus the Saviour? and are you willing
+to obey him, and to be subject to his authority and dominion, as
+well as to be saved by him? Would you have him to destroy your
+lusts, to make an end of sin, and to bring all under his
+obedience?</p>
+<p>IV. Do you seriously and heartily desire and endeavor never to
+sin more; but to walk with God unto all well-pleasing continually?
+Col. i. 10. And do you pray earnestly that God would work in you
+that which is well-pleasing in his sight, Heb. xiii. 21, that you
+may in all your ways honor and glorify him, as the end of your
+living in this world? 2 Cor. v. 15. Would you indeed live to the
+praise of his glorious grace, be an ornament unto his name and
+gospel, and be fruitful in every good word and work? Are these
+things the scope, aim, and intent of your hearts and souls (in some
+good measure and degree) daily, in duties and ordinances, and at
+other times?</p>
+<p>V. Do you seriously and heartily choose and desire communion
+with Christ, and in truth endeavor to obtain and keep it? Do you so
+seek for it in the way of gospel obedience, and in observing your
+duty in keeping Christ's commandments? And do you prefer it to all
+earthly, carnal things? Do your hearts breathe and pant after it,
+and are you willing to deny self, and all self-interests to get it?
+Are you glad when you find it, and sad when by your own
+carelessness you lose it? Doth it when obtained quicken your love
+to and zeal for Christ? Doth it warm your hearts, and cause them
+for a time to run your race in gospel obedience cheerfully? Doth it
+lead you unto, and cause your hearts to centre in Christ? and doth
+it oblige and bind them faster unto him and stir you up to
+thankfulness?</p>
+<p>VI. Do you sincerely and heartily desire, seriously choose, and
+earnestly endeavor, to be filled with gospel sincerity towards God
+and man, and would you rather be true-hearted towards God than seem
+to be so towards man? Would you much rather have the praise of God,
+and be approved of by him, than the praise of men, and be extolled
+by them? Is it the great thing you aim at, in your profession and
+practice, to attain sincerity and uprightness in heart? Is all
+hypocrisy hateful and abominable unto you? Are you afraid of it,
+and do you watch and strive against it, as against an enemy to God
+and your own souls, and are you grieved indeed when you find it in
+you?</p>
+<p>VII. Do you desire and choose Jesus Christ for the great object
+of your love, delight, and joy? and do you find him to be so in
+some measure? Do you desire and endeavor to make him the object of
+your warmest affections, and to love him sincerely, heartily,
+spiritually, fervently, and constantly; and do you express your
+love to him by keeping his commandments? Are you grieved in spirit,
+because you can love him no more? and do you earnestly pray unto
+him to shed abroad his love into your hearts by the Holy Ghost,
+that you may love him as ye ought? Rom. v. 5. Doth his love and
+loveliness attract your hearts to him, and cause you to yield the
+obedience of faith to his holy laws?</p>
+<p>VIII. Is it the desire, choice, and endeavor of your souls to
+have all sins purged out of them, and to have them filled with
+Christ's grace, truth, and holiness; and do you hate your sin,
+watch and fight against it, and endeavor to keep it under? Do you
+indeed aim at, desire, labor, and strive, to be holy in heart and
+life, and conformable unto Jesus Christ in all things possible? Are
+your lusts your heaviest burdens and your greatest afflictions, and
+do you intend and endeavor their utter ruin and destruction? Will
+no degree of grace satisfy you until you be perfect to the utmost
+as Christ is? Are you so much concerned for Christ's honor, and
+your soul's holiness and happiness, that you dare not knowingly sin
+against them for a world; or do, in word or deed, by omission or
+commission, that which may dishonor, grieve, or wound them? Are
+these things so indeed?</p>
+<p>IX. Have you a measure of spiritual knowledge and discerning of
+spiritual things? Do you understand the nature and concerns of the
+house of God, and the work and duties, the privileges and
+enjoyments thereof, and what you have to do there; together with
+the ends of God in instituting and erecting gospel churches?</p>
+<p>X. Do you intend and resolve, in the light, life, and power of
+Christ, to seek for, and endeavor unfeignedly to obtain, and
+prosecute the ends of church fellowship, when you shall he accepted
+among them? and do you desire and aim at the holy ends appointed by
+God in desiring communion with them? as, 1. To enjoy God and
+communion with him in all his ordinances. 2. To worship God there
+in spirit and truth, and to give him your homage and service in his
+house. 3. To show your subjection and obedience to him, and to make
+a public and open profession of him, and of his truths before men.
+4. To receive of his grace, to enrich your souls with his fulness,
+and to be sealed by his Spirit unto the day of your redemption. 5.
+That you may walk orderly and beautifully, and shine as lights in
+the Church, and in the world, before saints and sinners. 6. That
+you may be established in the truth, live under the watch and care
+of Christ's ministers, and of fellow-members; that by their
+inspection and faithful dealings with you you may be kept, or
+brought back from sin to God, by their wise reproofs and holy
+instructions. 7. That you may yield up yourselves in holy obedience
+to Christ, and do all things whatsoever he commands you, that you
+may have the right use and enjoyment of all your purchased
+privileges, and be secured against the gates of hell. Are these and
+such like ends in your hearts and minds, in your walk and in church
+fellowship, and can you find the forementioned signs of grace in
+you in some suitable measure, though not so clearly and fully as
+you would wish? Then I may venture to assure you, that you are
+qualified for being actual members of the Church of Christ, that
+you are called and invited into his house, and that you are
+indispensably bound to answer to the call of God, and to enter into
+his holy temple.</p>
+<p>I say that church privileges are yours, the doors of God's house
+stand open for you, Christ stands at the door and waits for you, he
+invites you to come in and to sit down at his table, and you shall
+be most freely and heartily welcome to your Lord, and to his
+people.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are those qualifications, which the rulers of
+a church, for their own satisfaction, should look for, and find in
+such persons, as they admit into full communion with the Church of
+Christ?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. It is certain that all that profess the name of
+Christ and his ways, ought not, and may not be admitted into the
+Lord's holy temple, because many, if not the most of them, are very
+ignorant of Christ and his ways, and notoriously scandalous in
+their lives, as sad and woful experience shows. If church rulers
+should admit known hypocrites, they betray their trust, and defile
+Christ's holy temple, by taking in such persons as they know, or
+ought to know, he would not have there: and that they ought to try
+and prove persons, that they may know their fitness, before they
+admit them in, is clear in Acts ix. 26, 27, and because Christ hath
+committed the keys of his house to take in and exclude according to
+his will and appointment.</p>
+<p>As to satisfying qualifications in persons desiring admission
+into the church, when they appear to be real sound-hearted
+believers, according to the judgment of charity, by the rules of
+the word, the church ought to receive them in the Lord.</p>
+<p>I. If they can satisfy the church, by giving Scripture evidence
+of their regeneration, conversion, repentance, and faith in Christ;
+of their knowledge of Christ, his laws and ordinances; of their
+lost and perishing state by reason of sin, and of their sincere
+desires and resolutions to become the Lord's, and to walk with him
+unto all well-pleasing in all his ways.</p>
+<p>II. If they are sound in the faith of the gospel; I mean in the
+chief and principal doctrines thereof, although they may be
+ignorant of, or mistaken in matters of less importance. If they
+have some distinct knowledge and faith concerning these, and other
+such truths and matters contained in the word of God; as of the
+state and condition in which man was at first created; how he lost
+that holy and blessed estate, and the misery into which he brought
+himself and all his posterity thereby. Concerning themselves, that
+they are by nature children of wrath, dead in trespasses and sins,
+and condemned to eternal death; that they are enemies to, and at
+enmity with, God; that they have neither will nor power by nature
+to will and to do that which they ought, and which is well-pleasing
+to God; that they have forsaken God, and are under the curse of the
+law; and that they are the children, subjects, and servants of the
+devil, the world, and their own lusts; that God left not all men in
+this lost state and condition, but provided an all-sufficient
+remedy, namely, Jesus Christ, and that by an everlasting covenant,
+entered into with him, in the behalf of men, before the foundation
+of the world, Tit. i. 2; 2 Tim. i. 9; Prov. viii.: and that, in
+pursuance thereof, he elected and gave some to Christ, that he
+might save them out of his mere grace and love. John vi. 37,
+40:&mdash;That God the Father gave and sent his Son, the second
+person of the Trinity, to mediate peace between God and man, and to
+reconcile them to God, by his active and passive
+obedience;&mdash;that Jesus Christ gave himself, and became a
+propitiation for their sins;&mdash;that he assumed our nature into
+a personal union with himself, whereby there are two natures in one
+person, by which he was made capable of his
+mediatorship;&mdash;that he, being God and man in one person, took
+upon himself our guilt and punishment, obeyed the whole law of God,
+that men had broke, and did always the things that pleased
+God;&mdash;that, when he had finished his active obedience, he
+became obedient unto the death of the cross, to the wrath of God,
+and to the curse of the law, Gal. iii. 13; Phil. ii. 8;&mdash;that
+he really died and was buried, lay in the grave, and rose again the
+third day; and after forty days he ascended into heaven, and sat
+down at the right hand of God; and that he will come again to judge
+the quick and the dead;&mdash;that he is king, priest, and prophet;
+a king to give laws unto men, and to command their obedience to
+him, to rule and govern his subjects, and to reward the obedient,
+and to punish the disobedient;&mdash;that all power in heaven and
+earth is committed unto him; and that he is coequally and
+coeternally God with the Father and Holy Spirit;&mdash;that as a
+High Priest he died and made atonement for the sins of his people,
+and sits in heaven to make intercession, and to appear in the
+presence of God for them, Heb. vii. 25, and ix. 24;&mdash;that
+there are three persons in the Godhead, yet but one God;&mdash;that
+the Holy Ghost is eternally God, was sent into the world, and came
+from the Father and Son, for the elect's sake;&mdash;that it is he
+that regenerates persons, works effectually in their hearts,
+applies Jesus Christ and all his benefits to men, and savingly
+convinces his elect of sin, righteousness, and judgment. That all
+that rightly believe in Christ shall be saved, but those that
+believe not shall be damned; and that all that believe in him must
+be careful to perform good works. That believers are made
+righteous, through the righteousness of Jesus Christ, and that they
+have none of their own to commend them unto God. That God hath made
+Jesus Christ unto his chosen, wisdom, righteousness,
+sanctification, and redemption; and that they are made the
+righteousness of God in him. That God imputed their sins to Christ,
+and imputes the blood and righteousness of Christ to them; and that
+they are justified thereby, and not by inherent holiness and
+righteousness. That God loves, pardons, justifies, and saves men
+<i>freely</i>, without any respect unto their good works, as any
+cause thereof; but that all the moving cause (without himself) is
+Jesus Christ in his mediation. That the ground and reason of their
+obedience, in performing good works, is the revealed will and
+pleasure of Christ commanding them, and the ends of them are to
+express their thankfulness to God for his grace and love, to please
+and honor him, to meet with God, and to enjoy communion with him,
+to receive of his grace and the good of many promises; to shine as
+lights in the world, and to be useful unto men; to declare whose
+and what they are, and to lay up a reward in another world; to keep
+their lusts under, and their graces in use and exercise; and to
+manifest their respect and subjection to Jesus Christ, his
+authority, and law. That the law, for the matter of it, as in the
+hand of Christ, is the rule of all obedience; and that all are
+bound to yield subjection to it. That there shall be a resurrection
+of the just and unjust. That regeneration is absolutely necessary
+to salvation, and that without it none can enter into the kingdom
+of heaven. That the Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments
+contain, and exhibit unto men, the whole revealed will of God, and
+are sufficient to make the man of God perfect, thoroughly furnished
+unto every good work; and that whatsoever they are to believe and
+do is contained therein; and that it is the ground of their faith,
+hope, and practice. That Jesus Christ hath instituted and appointed
+many ordinances of worship, for his own glory and his people's
+good, and that all are bound to observe and to wait on God in them.
+That all persons are indispensably bound to mind, and carefully to
+observe the principal manner and end of all their duties, and to
+see that they be right, holy, and spiritual indeed, and not to
+please themselves with the matter of them alone. That no man can
+serve God, or do any work acceptable unto him, until he be
+regenerated, and brought into a state of grace.</p>
+<p>These are some of the matters of faith that they should in some
+measure be acquainted with and believe, that are admitted into full
+communion with the Church of Christ. And these and other truths
+must not be known and believed in a general, notional, light, and
+speculative manner; but heartily, powerfully, and particularly: not
+for others, but for themselves; otherwise their faith and knowledge
+will no way profit their souls to salvation.</p>
+<p>III. They must be qualified also with a blameless conversation.
+Their conversation must be as becometh the gospel, otherwise they
+are not meet for communion with the gospel church. Carnal walking
+will not suit spiritual temples: for they will greatly pollute and
+defile them, and stain and obscure their beauty and glory.
+Therefore they must not be brawlers and contentious persons,
+covetous and worldly-minded, vain and frothy. They must not be
+froward and peevish, nor defraud others of their right. Nor must
+they neglect the worship of God in their families, nor be careless
+in governing and educating them in good manners, and in the things
+of God. They must not be such as are known to omit the duties and
+ordinances of religion in their proper seasons, or to have vicious
+families through their neglect: nor to have any other kind of
+conversation hateful to God and to his people. And therefore,
+whatever their profession be, they may not be admitted into the
+Church of God, until they have repented of these, or any other
+scandal in their life and conduct.</p>
+<p>IV. They ought to be such as have chosen the Lord Jesus Christ
+for their king and head, and dedicated and devoted themselves to
+him, to live in him and for him: such as have singled him out, and
+set him apart, (as it were,) to be the object of their love, trust,
+and delight, of their service and obedience. They must have chosen
+and closed with him upon his own terms, (i.e. <i>freely</i>,)
+renouncing and rejecting all their own righteousness, worthiness,
+interest, and sufficiency, and choosing and appropriating him to
+themselves, for their righteousness, worthiness, portion, and
+sufficiency, under a sight and conviction of their own emptiness
+and deformity; and with a heart-satisfied persuasion of the
+loveliness and fulness of Christ.</p>
+<p>V. All this must be done seriously, humbly, and heartily, so far
+as men can judge. If persons declare their knowledge of God and
+faith in Christ in such a manner, and apparently by such a spirit
+as evidences some sense and feeling of what they do declare, church
+rulers may be much helped in forming a right judgment of them, that
+they are fitted by God for church-membership. If they do seriously
+profess, that what they do is in obedience to the will, and, as
+they judge, to the call of Christ as their indispensable
+duty;&mdash;that they join in church fellowship to meet with and
+enjoy God, to receive out of his fulness to enable them to perform
+all duties, and to conform their hearts and lives in his will to
+all things;&mdash;such persons may undoubtedly be accounted worthy
+members, and admitted as such.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the duties of church members towards one
+another?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. I. The greatest is love; love and spiritual
+affections are the holy cords which tie the hearts, souls, and
+judgments of believers together. This is that which, together with
+the fear of God, makes them avoid all things that may give just
+offence or grief to one another, and that which provokes them to
+follow after the things that make for peace and edification. Love
+is the bond of peace. It is that which, together with divine light
+and truth, causes church members to draw together as in one yoke,
+and unanimously as with one heart and soul to design, aim at, and
+carry on mutual and common good in the church. Without this they
+cannot, they will not cement, nor long abide and live together as a
+church, in peace and unity, nor promote any good work among
+themselves. Without heart-uniting love they will receive and
+entertain jealousies and suspicions one of another, and put the
+worst construction on whatever is said or done; and they cannot
+walk together comfortably and profitably when these are
+entertained. Therefore it is absolutely necessary for all church
+members to be firmly united in cordial love and charity, which is
+the bond of perfectness to and in all other duties. God highly
+commends and strictly commands this love one to another, and puts
+it into the heart of his peculiar people, that they may do what he
+commands.</p>
+<p>1. God highly commends it wherever he finds it in act and
+exercise; 1 Thess. iv. 10, "and indeed," says he, "ye do it towards
+all the brethren." To this duty, and to manifest his high
+approbation of it, God hath promised a great reward, Heb. vi.
+10.</p>
+<p>2. God commands it and vehemently exhorts to it often in the
+gospel. Oh how importunately did the Lord Jesus enjoin it, and
+frequently press it on his disciples when he was on earth! John
+xiii. 34, "A new commandment give I unto you." What is that new
+commandment? Why, "That ye love one another, as I have loved you,
+that ye also love one another." And in John xv. 12, 17, "This is my
+commandment, that ye love one another, as I have loved you;" i.e.
+Take the pattern of my love to you for your pattern in loving one
+another. I have loved and will love you&mdash;1. With <i>great</i>
+love, John xv. 13: so do you likewise. 2. My love to you is
+<i>free</i>, without any desert in you: let yours be free, without
+carnal respects one to another also. 3. My love to you is <i>real,
+hearty</i>, and <i>unfeigned</i>: so let yours be one to another, 1
+Pet. i. 22. 4. My love to you is an exceeding <i>fruitful love</i>.
+I loved you so, as to labor, toil, sweat, and die for you: so must
+you love one another with a fruitful, profiting love. 5. My love to
+you is a <i>pitying, sparing, and forgiving love; a forbearing and
+tender-hearted love</i>: so must you be to one another, Col. iii.
+12, 13. 6. I love you with a <i>warm and fervent love</i>: so do
+you love one another. 7. I love with a <i>holy, spiritual love</i>,
+as new men who have my image stamped on, and my holy nature in you,
+and as you are made perfect by the comeliness and beauty I have put
+on you: so do you love one another, because you are a lovely and
+holy people unto me. 8. I love you with a <i>constant and
+unchangeable love</i>; notwithstanding of all your weaknesses, yea,
+unkindness too, and unworthy walkings before me: thus you are bound
+to love one another.</p>
+<p>O that church members and all other Christians would seriously,
+sincerely, diligently, and constantly mind and practise this grand
+and indispensable duty to one another, in all their ways and
+actions, and not lay it aside as a little, useless, or indifferent
+matter, which they may neglect at their own will and pleasure.</p>
+<p>2. As we are indispensably bound to love one another; so we are
+as absolutely and perfectly bound to walk in a loving and
+encouraging manner towards one another. Our behavior ought to be
+such in all things, as to invite all to love us, as holy, humble,
+and blameless saints, and brethren in Christ. The Lord Jesus
+expects church members to walk lovingly towards one another, as
+well as to love one another. They ought, therefore, as much as
+possible, to provoke and encourage each other, and to remove out of
+the way of love all such stumbling-blocks as may any way hinder it,
+as we cannot love a sour, peevish, contentious, and cross-grained
+professor, with as much complacency as a meek, quiet, humble,
+affable, and courteous one.</p>
+<p>3. Christ hath charged and strictly commanded all church members
+to live in peace: to be at peace among themselves; to follow peace
+with all men, and as much as in them lieth to live peaceably with
+all men. O how often, and with what vehemency doth the Holy Ghost
+press and enjoin this duty, especially among church members, in the
+Holy Scriptures! See Psal. xxxiv. 14; 1 Pet. iii. 11; Rom xiv. 19;
+2 Cor. xiii. 11; 1 Thess. v. 13; Heb. xii. 14; Eph. v. 3. The
+apostle Paul earnestly warns church members against all debates,
+strifes, and contentions one with another, especially in their
+church meetings, Phil. ii. 3. David tells us, that it is a most
+pleasant and lovely thing for brethren to dwell together in unity,
+Psal. cxxxiii. 1, 2. Then how much more pleasant and lovely is it
+for spiritual brethren to love and worship God in this manner
+together Christ came into the world and lived here a peace-maker,
+and pronounces them blessed that are so, Matt. v. 9. He is a lover
+of peace and concord, especially in his Church; but he is an
+implacable hater of strife and discord, and will not endure it
+therein: much less will he wink at such as are the first sowers of
+these seeds. The truth is, strivers and disputers in a church are
+the devil's agents, do a great deal of mischief to it, and are real
+plagues in it. They greatly hinder edification, and spoil the
+order, beauty, and harmony there: they are the proud,
+self-conceited men, who are vainly puffed up with high thoughts of
+themselves, and their own abilities, because they have got some
+speculative knowledge into their heads, with a volubility of
+speech, while they are destitute of spiritual wisdom and humility
+in their hearts; and therefore they conceive that they are wiser
+than the church, and more able to manage and order church affairs
+than their rulers. Their pride and self-conceit make them slight
+and contemn their teachers, and rise up in a rebellious contention
+with, and opposition unto them; as the prophet complains, Hos. iv.
+4, <i>This people are they that strive with the priests</i>. Take
+heed then of strife and contention, and follow peace one with
+another, especially in your assembling together about the work of
+the church. Endeavor to get humble hearts, and then you will not be
+contentious, but quiet and peaceable.</p>
+<p>4. Church members ought to sympathize with, and to help to bear
+one another's burdens as need requires, Rom. xii. 15, 16; Gal. vi.
+2. They ought to make their brethren's crosses, losses,
+temptations, and afflictions their own. And, when they need the
+helping hand of fellow-members to support or lift them up, when
+fallen, they must give it to them freely, readily, and cheerfully,
+and not turn a deaf ear to, nor hide their eyes from, them and
+their cries. And, if they are cruel to, or careless of, one another
+in affliction, our Lord Jesus will require it at their hands, and
+lake it as done to himself. Therefore, seeing it is the will of
+God, and our indispensable duty to one another, who are members of
+the church, let us put on bowels of mercies and kindness, Col. iii.
+12, and be tender-hearted, pitiful, and courteous to each other,
+Eph. iv. 32; 1 Pet. iii. 8.</p>
+<p>5. Church members ought to exhort and comfort one another, for
+so is the will of God concerning them. This is not only their
+teacher's duty and work, but theirs also to each other, Heb. x. 24,
+25; Heb. iii. 13; 1 Thess. v. 14. Christians stand in continual
+need of one another's exhortations and consolations; and if they
+manage this work well they may be very useful and profitable to one
+another, and may help to awaken, quicken, and provoke one another,
+to the love and practice of holiness.</p>
+<p>6. It is the will of the Lord Jesus Christ, the Church's head,
+that her members should be each other's keepers; that they should
+watch over one another, and admonish and reprove one another, as
+need requires. It is not meant, that they should pry into one
+another's secrets, or be busybodies in other men's matters, but
+that they should watch over one another's life and conversation,
+that if they do well they may be encouraged; if ill, that they may,
+by counsel, reproof, instruction, and exhortation, be brought to a
+real sight and sense of their misconduct, and to unfeigned
+repentance. By which good work, you will do them, the church, yea,
+Christ himself, good and acceptable service. Church members should
+carefully observe, if all do keep close to their duty in the
+church, or are remiss and negligent;&mdash;if they conduct
+themselves in a holy, righteous, and sober way; or if, on the
+contrary, they are frothy, vain, proud, extravagant, unjust, idle,
+careless, or any way scandalous. They should strictly observe if
+there be any tattlers, backbiters, or sowers of discord; or such as
+speak contemptibly of their brethren, especially of their elders,
+(ruling or preaching,) and of their administrations: as also, if
+there be any such as combine together, and make parties in the
+church, or endeavor to obstruct any good work which their elders
+are carrying on, for promoting the glory of Christ and the good of
+his people, and deal with them accordingly. They ought carefully to
+observe if any be fallen under sin or temptation in any case, and
+presently to set their hands to help, to relieve, and to restore
+them, Rev. vi. 1. They must watch, and endeavor to gain a sinning
+member, 1. By their private admonition, in case the offence be
+private; and if that will not do, to take one or two more to see
+what effect that will have. 2. But if that will not answer the end,
+then they are bound to bring it to the church representative, that
+they may deal with the offending brother, and proceed against him
+as commanded: This is another great and indispensable duty required
+of church members, that they be not partakers of other men's
+sins.</p>
+<p>7. Church members ought to forbear and forgive one another; for
+this is another commanded duty, Eph. iv. 2, 32; Col. iii. 13. When
+a brother offends or does another any injury, the offended brother
+should tell him of it, examine the matter and search out the
+circumstances of it, and see whether he did it unadvisedly, through
+weakness or ignorance; or whether he did it wilfully and knowingly.
+If upon an impartial search he is found to have wronged his brother
+through ignorance or weakness, he must judge charitably of him, and
+not be harsh and severe towards him, in his carriage or censure.
+But if it clearly appear, upon impartial inquiry, that he did the
+injury knowingly and wilfully, then the offended brother must deal
+with him as a wilful transgressor. He must lay his sin before him,
+and show him what laws he hath transgressed; what evil he hath done
+him, what wrong to his own soul, and what offence he hath done to
+Christ, by breaking his holy laws. He must admonish him again and
+again of his sin, and reprove him, but not too severely, until he
+find him obstinate and stubborn. And if God convince him of his
+sin, and give him repentance unto life, he must readily forgive
+him. And, if he be once truly convinced of, and humbled for, his
+sin, he will most fully confess it to his brother, as well as to
+God, and endeavor to make him amends, and give him all possible
+satisfaction for the injury he hath done him, most freely and
+willingly: for it is a certain sign that a person is not powerfully
+and savingly convinced of, and humbled for, his sin, while he bears
+off, and must be sought after to make satisfaction to such as he
+hath wronged; because were his heart really melted into the will of
+God, he could not be quiet, until he have given all possible
+satisfaction to his brother whom he has injured, Luke xix. 8. But
+in case he remain obstinate, and will not hearken to reproof, then
+the offended brother should take one or two more and deal with him;
+and if that will not do, he ought to bring it to the church
+representative, i.e. the elders of the church, that they may see
+what they can do with him. But if they cannot prevail on him to
+repent and to make satisfaction, then he ought to be cast out of
+the communion of the church, Matt, xviii. 17.</p>
+<p>8. It is the indispensable duty of church members to hearken to
+and receive instruction, admonition, and reproof from one another.
+For if some are indispensably bound at certain times to give them,
+surely others who need them are as much bound to receive them,
+Prov. viii. 33, x. 17, and xxix. 1. These are bound to hearken to
+their brethren's reproofs, counsels, and admonitions, with all
+humility, patience, and freedom of spirit, with all love, meekness,
+and thankfulness to God, and to the givers of them: for they are
+great mercies to such as need them, and they are their real and
+profitable friends, who seek their good, and endeavor to prevent
+their destruction. Let it therefore never be said justly of any of
+you that are church members, that you were reproved and admonished
+of any known sin by a brother, and that you refused and slighted
+their counsel or reproof, justified yourselves in your sins, and
+were displeased with or angry at such as admonished you, and did
+their indispensable duty to you, under your sin, for your
+salvation.</p>
+<p>9. Church members ought to pray for one another, and that with a
+real love, fervency, and importunity, as they do for themselves,
+James v. 16. O with what serious minds and strong affections should
+all church members pray for one another! They should be much in
+building up one another, and praying in the Holy Ghost one for
+another, Jude 20. They should carry one another in their hearts at
+the throne of grace, especially such as are under affliction, the
+whole Church in general, and her teachers in particular, Heb. xiii.
+18, and wrestle with God for them; for they have the spirit of
+prayer given them, and audience and interest in heaven, for others,
+as well as for themselves.</p>
+<p>10. Church members should often meet together for prayer and
+holy conversation, by two or three or more, as they may have
+opportunity. This was wont to be the commendable practice of our
+forefathers, when Christ, duty, heaven, and religion lay warmer on
+their hearts than now they do; and this is still the practice of
+some, that are now alive. God hath promised his glorious teaching,
+and his warming, strengthening, sanctifying, and comforting
+presence to such as do so, Matt, xviii. 20. Church members find
+time enough to visit one another, and meet together to tell some
+idle stories, to tattle about other men's matters, which do not
+concern them, and perhaps to <i>backbite</i> some of their
+brethren, and to prejudice the minds of persons against their
+teachers and their work, if they do not please them. And will not
+such meetings have bitterness in the end? Is it not great iniquity
+for Christians to tempt one another to sin, and to wrong their own
+souls, by misspending that precious time which they might have
+employed in the service of God, and one another's spiritual profit.
+Men and women were wont to discourse often of the things of God and
+their experiences one to another, Mal. iii. 16. But, alas! few
+persons are now to be found, who can find time and inclination for
+such an exercise. And the reason seems to be, that most are great
+strangers to God and to themselves, and are so much intoxicated
+with the things of this world, that they will not attend with any
+pleasure unto the spiritual duties of religion.</p>
+<p>11. Church members ought to encourage one another by their
+example, to attend regularly on the public ordinances of God's
+worship in his church. Whenever the church meets for the
+celebration of the worship of God, all her members are bound to
+meet together at the appointed time, except in extraordinary cases;
+otherwise good order cannot be kept, and the public duties
+performed, for the glory of God, and the edification of the church.
+By church members wilfully or carelessly absenting themselves at
+the time of meeting, they give an evil example to others, tempt
+them to do the like, and cast a stumbling-block in the way of their
+duty, Heb. x. 25.</p>
+<p>12. Church members must be charitable to the poor that are among
+them, and freely contribute to them according to their ability and
+<i>their</i> necessity. They are indispensably bound to impart
+their help and assistance to the poor, and to give them a little of
+their estates. It is a debt which they owe to God, and a duty to
+them. They will comfort them thereby; but they will much more
+profit themselves than them. It is a more blessed thing to give
+than to receive. Wealthy persons are stewards for the poor, and a
+part of what God hath given those was designed for these, 1 Pet.
+iv. 10, and therefore, says God, Deut. xv. 7, 8, "Thou shalt not
+shut thine hand from thy poor brother, but shalt open it wide unto
+him." The rich must not only give to keep the poor alive in misery,
+but make comfortable provisions for them, that they may have enough
+to keep them from the temptations of poverty and pressing wants,
+and to fit them for, and encourage them in, their work and duty, to
+God and man.</p>
+<p>13. Church members ought carefully, watchfully, diligently, and
+conscientiously to beware of and avoid whatever may give any just
+offence or scandal to one another. For we are charged to "give none
+offence neither to Jew nor Gentile, nor to the Church of God," 1
+Cor. x. 32. And our Saviour tells us, that "wo to them by whom the
+offence cometh," Matt, xviii. 7.</p>
+<p>You must take heed of such evils as the following, and avoid
+them, because they all carry scandal in their nature to your own
+and others' souls: as, 1. Proud, disdainful, and haughty words
+conduct, and conversation; for these are grievous and provoking
+evils, which will justly offend all the observers of them. 2.
+Sullen, sour, and churlish language and behavior, which is
+offensive unto all sorts of persons; for this is an evil altogether
+unbecoming the followers of Jesus Christ. 3. A cross, captious, and
+contradictive spirit and conduct, delighting in opposition to the
+judgment of the church and her rulers. This is very scandalous to
+the brethren, and very reproachful unto themselves. 4. Speaking
+evil of one another behind their backs; backbiting or publishing
+their real or supposed evils, before they have been spoken to in
+secret. 5. Speaking lightly or contemptibly of one another, either
+to themselves or to others in their absence, as few men can bear
+patiently to be despised by the slighting carriages of their
+brethren. 6. Vain, foolish, and frothy discourses, which are very
+offensive to gracious saints. 7. Earthly-mindedness and greedy
+pursuits after worldly things; for as these are offensive to God,
+and hurtful to the soul, so they are offensive to saints. 8. Strife
+and contention among brethren, and grudging or envying one
+another's prosperity; as these produce many evil and wicked fruits,
+and cast blame upon the providence of God, who bestows his mercies
+as he will. 9. Defrauding and breaking promises. Contracting debts
+and unduly delaying or refusing to pay them, and disappointing men
+of their just expectations in virtue of promises made to them.
+Those also are scandalous, and cause the name of God to be evil
+spoken of. 10. Entering into a marriage relation with such as are
+apparently in an unbelieving, carnal, and unconverted state and
+condition; for this also is very offensive to holy serious men,
+although many make very light of it. 11. Idleness and slothfulness
+in your external calling, neglecting to provide for your own house,
+as that will prove a scandalous sin to others and to yourselves
+too. 12. Taking up a report rashly against one another of a
+scandalous nature, giving ear unto tattlers, and busybodies; or
+being busybodies in other men's matters yourselves, as this will
+give great offence.</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0036"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. II.<a href="#note-122"><small>122</small></a></h2>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Who have a right to preach the gospel and dispense
+the public ordinances of religion?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Without some proper furniture, it is absurd to
+imagine any should be sent of God to the ministerial work. When the
+ascended Jesus gave to the church apostles, evangelists; pastors
+and teachers, he gave gifts to men. <i>Who</i>, saith he, <i>goeth
+at, any time a warfare on his own charges?</i> What is the
+furniture, the qualifications prerequisite, according to the Holy
+Scriptures? A blameless conversation, a good report; experience of
+the self-debasing work of the Spirit of God; compassion to the
+souls of men; a fixedness in the Christian doctrines; a disposition
+faithfully to perform his vows; an aptness to teach the ignorant,
+and convince gainsayers. Knowledge of languages, knowledge of the
+history and sciences of this world, are useful handmaids to assist
+us in the study of divine things. To preach from the oracles of
+God, without capacity to peruse the original, especially if versant
+in romances and plays, we abhor and detest. This aptness to teach,
+however, consists not chiefly in any of these, but in a capacity to
+conceive spiritual things, and with some distinctness to express
+their conceptions to the edification of others, in that energy and
+life, whereby one, as affected himself, declares the truths of God,
+in a simple, serious, bold, and conscience-touching manner. The
+difference of this, from human eloquence, loud bawling, and
+theatrical action, is evident. These may touch the passions, and
+not affect the conscience: they may procure esteem to the preacher,
+none to Christ. These are the product of natural art: this the
+distinguished gift of God, without which, in a certain degree, none
+can have evidence that he was divinely sent to minister the gospel
+of Christ.</p>
+<p>No appearance of furniture, real or pretended, can warrant a
+man's exercising of the ministry, unless he have a regular call.
+That <i>all may prophesy one by one</i> is indeed hinted in the
+sacred records: but there it is evident inspiration treats of what
+pertains to extraordinary officers in the church; hence there is
+mentioned <i>the gift of tongues</i>, extraordinary <i>psalms,
+revelations</i>: the <i>all</i> that might prophesy are, therefore,
+not <i>all</i> the members of the church; not <i>women</i>, who are
+forbid to speak in the church; but <i>all</i> the extraordinary
+officers called prophets, 1 Cor. xiv. 31. The <i>all</i> that were
+scattered abroad from Jerusalem, and <i>went about preaching
+the gospel</i>, Acts viii. 2, could not be <i>all</i> the
+believers; for there remained at Jerusalem a church of believers
+for Saul to make havoc of. It must therefore have been <i>all</i>
+the preachers, besides the apostles. To strengthen this, let it be
+observed, that the word here rendered <i>preaching</i> is nowhere
+in Scripture referred to one out of office: that every one of this
+dispersion, we afterward hear of, are represented as evangelists,
+pastors, or teachers, Acts ix. 1, 11, 19, and xiii. 1. Parents and
+masters convey the same instruction that ministers do; but with a
+different authority: not as ministers of Christ, or officers in his
+Church. If other gifts or saintship entitled to preach the gospel,
+wo would be unto every gifted person, every saint, that did not
+preach it. If our adored Redeemer refused the work of a civil judge
+because not humanly vested with such power, will he allow his
+followers to exercise an office far more important, without any
+regular call? His oracles distinguish between the mission of
+persons, and their gifts, sometimes called a receiving of the Holy
+Ghost, John xx. 21, 23.</p>
+<p>To render the point incontestably evident, he demands, how men
+shall preach <i>except they be sent</i>? declares, that <i>no
+man</i> rightly <i>taketh this honor to himself but he that is
+called of God, as was Aaron</i>. "I sent them not, therefore they
+shall not profit this people at all, saith the Lord." The
+characters divinely affixed to ministers, preachers, or heralds,
+ambassadors, stewards, watchmen, angels, messengers, brightly mark
+their call and commission to their work. The inspired rules for the
+qualifications, the election, the ordination of ministers, are
+divinely charged to be kept till <i>the day</i>, the second coming
+<i>of Jesus Christ</i>. For intermeddling with the sacred business
+without a regular call, has the Almighty severely punished numbers
+of men. Witness the destruction of Korah and his company; the
+rejection of Saul; and the death of Uzza; the leprosy of Uriah; the
+disaster of the sons of Sceva, &amp;c., Num. xvi.; 1 Sam. xiii.; 1
+Chron. xiii.; 2 Chron. xxvi.; Acts xix.</p>
+<p>To rush into it, if gifted, or to imagine we are so, at our own
+hand, introduces the wildest disorder, and the most shocking
+errors: it did so at Antioch, and the places adjacent, where some
+falsely pretended a mission from the apostles. This, too, was its
+effect with the German anabaptists, and with the sectaries of
+England. Aversion at manual work, pride of abilities, a disturbed
+imagination, a carnal project to promote self, prompts the man to
+be preacher. Such ultroneous rushing is inconsistent with the deep
+impression of the charge, and the care to manifest their mission,
+everywhere in Scripture obvious in the ministers of Christ. However
+sound his doctrine, great his abilities, warm his address, where is
+the promise of God's especial presence, protection, or success, to
+the ultroneous preacher? Where is his conduct commanded, commended,
+or unmarked with wrath, exemplified in the sacred words? How then
+can the preaching, or our hearing, of such, be in faith? How can it
+be acceptable to God, or profitable to ourselves? For <i>whatsoever
+is not of faith is sin</i>. Falsely this preacher pretends a
+mission from Christ: wickedly, he usurps an authority over his
+Church: rebelliously he deserts his own calling, and attempts to
+make void the office his Saviour has appointed; to frustrate the
+dispensation of the gospel committed to his faithful ambassadors.
+For how can they fulfil their ministry, if others take the work out
+of their hand? How can they <i>commit it to faithful men</i>, if,
+not waiting their commission, men rush into it at pleasure?</p>
+<p>In vain pleads the ultroneous preacher, that a particular
+mission to the office of preaching and dispensing the sacraments
+was only necessary, when the gospel was preached to the heathen.
+From age to age, it is <i>as new</i>, to children <i>as new</i>, to
+such as never heard it. Nor, when hinting the necessity of a
+mission, does the inspiring Spirit make any distinction, whether
+the gospel be newly dispensed or not. <i>What therefore God hath
+joined together, let no man put asunder</i>. In vain he pleads an
+immediate commission from God: in his infallible statutes, having
+fixed standing rules of vocation to the ministry, by the mediation
+of men, God gives us no command, no encouragement, to hope for an
+immediate call, till the end of time. Absurdly then we allow any to
+have such a call, till we see <i>the signs of an apostle wrought in
+him</i>. It is not sufficient he be sound in his doctrine,
+exemplarily holy in his life, active in his labors, disinterested
+in his aims, seeking not his own, but the honor of Christ, not his
+own carnal profit, but the spiritual welfare of men: every ordinary
+preacher is, or ought to be so. But, to this claimant of a mission
+uncommon, working of miracles, or such extraordinary credentials,
+must demonstrate he hath not run unsent.</p>
+<p>In vain the ultroneous preacher boasts of his feelings; his
+success; his moving his audience; his reforming their lives; as if
+these demonstrated his call from God. On earth, was ever delusion
+carried on without pretence to, or without appearances of these?
+Let them, who know the history of Popery, of Mahometanism,
+Quakerism, &amp;c., say if they were. Who knows not, that the
+Pharisaic sect pretended far more strictness, far more devotion,
+than the family of Christ? Who knows not, that Satan may, and has
+oft <i>transformed</i> himself <i>into an angel of light</i>; his
+ministers into the form of inspired apostles; and his influences,
+almost indiscernibly similar to those of the Spirit of Jesus
+Christ? Who knows not, how oft vain-glory, proud and falsely
+extolling of himself and party, in their number, their spiritual
+experience and high advances in holiness, mark the distinguished
+impostor? How oft his sermons are larded with these!</p>
+<p>No more tell us, if the sermon be good, you do not regard who
+preach it. If God has prescribed a method of call, has stated the
+qualifications of the candidate, has warned against preachers
+unsent, has oft marked their guilt with visible strokes of his
+wrath, be ashamed to talk at so arrogant, so careless a rate. Lay
+it not in the power of the Mesopotamian wizard! Lies it not in the
+power of a Romish Jesuit, nay, if permitted, of Beelzebub, for a
+time to preach to you many truths of the gospel, in the warmest
+strain, the loftiest language? Would you acknowledge the
+<i>three</i> for honored ambassadors of Christ? Tell us not your
+preacher is wonderfully pious and good: perhaps you have only his
+own attestation; when better known he may be a drunkard, a swearer,
+a villain, for you. Suppose he were pious, so was Uzziah; yet it
+pertained not to him to execute the priest's office. Say not he is
+wonderfully gifted&mdash;speaks like <i>never man</i>: perhaps so
+was Korah, a man famous and of renown: such perhaps were the
+vagabond sons of Sceva. Say not his earnestness in his work marks
+his heavenly call: no, such were the Satanic exorcists just
+mentioned; such was Mahomet, the vilest impostor. To abolish the
+idolatry, and various other abominations of his country, he exposed
+himself to cruel reproach, to manifold hardship and hazard of life;
+about fourteen years almost unsuccessful he persevered in this
+difficult, but delusive attempt. What hunger, what cold, what
+torment and death have some Jesuitic and other antichristian
+missionaries undergone, to propagate the most ruining delusions of
+hell; all under the pretence of earnestness to gain sinners to
+Christ and his church. The Scripture, however, nowhere saith, how
+shall they preach except they be gracious? except they be gifted?
+except they be in earnest? But, <i>how shall they preach except
+they be sent</i>?</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0037"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. III.<a href="#note-123"><small>123</small></a></h2>
+<h3><i>On the same subject&mdash;Who have a right to preach the
+gospel</i>?</h3>
+<p>It is expressly enjoined in the word of God that we should
+earnestly contend for the faith once delivered to the saints. This
+faith includes all the ordinances, as well as all the doctrines of
+Christ; and it is no less our duty to contend for the former than
+for the latter. They have been equally opposed, and there is the
+same necessity why we should contend for both. Among the ordinances
+of Christ, the preaching of the gospel holds a principal place, and
+it hath accordingly, in all ages, met with considerable opposition.
+Like other ordinances, it hath been often grievously abused, and
+perverted to the most unworthy purposes. By many who would be
+esteemed the wise of the world, it is counted unworthy the
+attention of any but the vulgar: it has been called the foolishness
+of preaching. The infidels of our time, and some who, by attachment
+to the Arian and Socinian system, are in a progress to infidelity,
+cry it down as a human device or piece of craft. This need not,
+however, occasion any great surprise: the spirit of the world
+savoreth not the things that be of God, and the enemies of the
+truth naturally wish to have full scope to propagate their
+delusions. But it is matter of regret that the preaching of the
+gospel is, by many who attend upon it, too little regarded as an
+ordinance of Christ. And some of the professed friends of gospel
+doctrine so far mistake the nature and institution of preaching, as
+to engage in it without any other call than their own abundant
+zeal, and even to plead that all should do so who find themselves
+qualified. To show that such a sentiment and practice have no
+warrant from the word of God, the following observations are
+offered.</p>
+<p>I. The preaching of the gospel is an ordinance that Christ hath
+appointed for the gathering and edification of his Church; and,
+being a matter of positive institution, all that belongs to the
+administration of it can be learned only from the rules and
+approved examples recorded in the New Testament. It is not like
+those duties that are incumbent upon all, according to the
+opportunities they have in providence for the performance of them,
+and which, without any express commandment, could be urged upon
+Christians by the common principles of moral obligation, such as to
+teach and admonish one another. And because the obligation to such
+moral duties depends not upon positive institution, it must equally
+extend to all, and no person whatever can be free from it. But it
+is otherwise as to the preaching of the gospel, which is a positive
+institution of Christ; for it is a duty enjoined upon some only;
+yea, some are even absolutely prohibited from intermeddling in it,
+1 Cor. xiv. 34; 1 Tim. ii. 12: and this could not be the case if it
+were a matter of common moral obligation. All arguments therefore
+taken from general principles, to prove the obligation that
+Christians are under to exert themselves for promoting the cause of
+religion, are to no purpose here, as they do not prove that the
+preaching of the gospel is one of those means that all are
+warranted to use.</p>
+<p>II. There is an instituted ministry of the ordinances of Christ
+unto his Church, by such ministers and office-bearers as he hath
+appointed. And the preaching of the gospel is frequently referred
+to as a principal part of that ministry. We read of a ministry of
+the word, Acts vi. 4; a ministry received of the Lord Jesus to
+testify the gospel of the grace of God, Acts xx. 24; a ministry of
+reconciliation, 2 Cor. v. 18; and a ministry into which some are
+put by the Lord Christ, 1 Tim. i. 12. This ministry is not left
+open to all the members of the church, in such a manner as that
+everyone who finds himself disposed, of supposes himself to be
+qualified, may engage in it as he finds opportunity; but
+office-bearers are appointed for it by the Lord Christ, Eph. iv.
+11,12: "And he gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some
+evangelists, and some pastors and teachers, for the perfecting of
+the saints, for the work of the ministry, and for the edifying of
+the body of Christ." Some of these officers were extraordinary and
+temporary; they had an extraordinary call, and were endued with
+miraculous powers, which are now ceased: but the work of the
+ministry, and particularly the preaching of the gospel, is to
+continue to the end of the world, as appears from the promise given
+for the encouragement of those that are employed in it, Matt,
+xxviii. 20. There are accordingly ordinary officers, pastors, and
+teachers, appointed for the continued exercise of that
+ministry.</p>
+<p>To these instituted office-bearers is this ministry exclusively
+committed, Mark xvi., Matt, xxviii. The gospel of Christ, in
+respect of the public ministry thereof by preaching, is frequently
+mentioned as a special and peculiar <i>trust</i> committed unto
+them, 2 Cor. v. 18-20; 1 Tim. i. 11, and vi. 20. In all the
+passages of Scripture where we have any mention of a charge or
+commission to preach the gospel, it would be easy to show that it
+is directed only to persons in office; and a variety of names are
+given to those that are employed in a ministry of the word, all of
+which are expressive of their peculiar office. They are called
+ministers, 1 Cor. iii. 6; officers and stewards, 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+ambassadors for Christ, 2 Cor. v. 20; heralds (so the word preacher
+signifies) and teachers, 2 Tim. i. 11.</p>
+<p>There is no room to plead here, that though a constant ministry
+of the word, in a pastoral charge, belongs only to persons in
+office, yet all may occasionally exercise their gifts in preaching
+the gospel. The word of God acknowledges no such distinction as
+that between a constant and an occasional ministry of the gospel.
+It enjoins upon those who are called to the work of the ministry,
+not an occasional, but a constant exercise of that ministry; so
+that whether they be paid pastors, or itinerant preachers, they are
+not to entangle themselves with the affairs of this life, but must
+be devoted wholly to the work of the gospel, 1 Tim. iv. 13-16; 2
+Tim. ii. 4, and iv. 2. And because they must thus devote their time
+and attention to this work, the word of God also enjoins that a
+maintenance be given them by those to whom they exercise their
+ministry, 1 Cor. ix. 7-14; Gal. vi. 6; 1 Tim. v. 17. This is a
+farther evidence that the ministry of the word is restricted to
+persons in office, and that they are to devote their time and
+attention to it, not entangling themselves in the prosecution of a
+secular business.</p>
+<p>III. Those only can be warrantably employed in a ministry of the
+ordinances of Christ, and particularly in preaching the gospel, who
+are thereunto called by him, and admitted according to the rule
+laid down in the word. And none can be warrantably acknowledged and
+received as office-bearers, to whom that ministry is committed
+without some proper evidence of their being called and sent by
+Christ. "How shall they preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15.
+How, without this, can they do it warrantably or profitably? And,
+without some evidence of this, what ground have we to expect a
+blessing in waiting upon their ministry? It is not a mere
+providential sending that is here meant, as if there were no more
+necessity than abilities, and an opportunity of exercising them;
+for so the ministers of Satan may be sent, and a lying spirit was
+thus sent among the prophets of Ahab. But this sending means the
+call of Christ, intimated in such a way as to warrant the preacher,
+and with such evidence as may satisfy the conscience of the
+hearers, in receiving his ministry as the ordinance of Christ. A
+zeal for God, a strong desire of being useful to souls, and even a
+persuasion of having the call of Christ, cannot be sufficient
+warrant to the preacher; far less can the hearers, in receiving
+him, proceed upon grounds so uncertain.</p>
+<p>The apostles, and some other ministers in the beginning of the
+Christian dispensation, had an extraordinary call and immediate
+mission by Christ, and this was evidenced to all by the miraculous
+powers bestowed on them. These powers are now ceased, and it is
+vain to plead any such immediate call. The ordinary call of Christ
+to the work of the ministry is intimated by or through the church,
+judging thereof by the rules laid down in the word; and according
+to these rules, they that are found qualified and called, are to be
+admitted to the ministry by them who are already invested with it.
+The charge is given to the office-bearers of the church, to commit
+that ministry which they have received "to faithful men, who shall
+be able to teach others also," 2 Tim. ii. 2; Tit. i. 5. And for
+their direction in this matter, the qualifications necessary, both
+as to character and abilities, are laid down in the Word,
+particularly in 1 Tim. iii.; of these qualifications they are
+required to make an impartial and deliberate examination, so as to
+<i>lay hands suddenly on no man</i>, 1 Tim. iv. 22, but to admit to
+the office of the ministry those only, who, by this trial, they
+have reason to judge are called and sent by Christ.</p>
+<p>It is vain to distinguish here between a pastor of a
+congregation and an itinerant preacher; as if the call of the
+church was necessary only to the former and not to the latter. If
+by the call of the church is meant only the choice and call of the
+people, it is admitted, that this is only necessary to fix a
+pastoral relation to that part of the flock; but a regular
+admission to the work of the ministry, by the office-bearers of the
+church, is equally necessary in the case of all that are employed
+in it, whether they have a fixed charge or not. Timothy, who had no
+fixed charge, and though pointed out by prophecy as designed for
+the ministry, was ordained and admitted to it by the presbytery.
+And though Paul and Barnabas had an extraordinary call, yet the
+prophets and teachers of the church at Antioch are directed to
+separate and send them out, according to the call of the Holy
+Ghost, to preach the gospel unto the Gentiles, Acts xiii. A
+principal design of this seems to have been, to set an example of
+procedure to the church in after times.</p>
+<p>It appears, then, that the preaching of the gospel is an
+ordinance or institution of Christ&mdash;that the ministry of that
+and other ordinances belongs only to those office-bearers whom he
+hath appointed and commissioned for that end&mdash;and that in
+ordinary cases, none can be acknowledged as sent by him, but such
+as are admitted to the ministry in the way above mentioned. These
+observations would have admitted a much larger illustration; but as
+they are, they may assist an attentive reader to consult his Bible
+for further satisfaction. It is necessary, however, to take some
+notice of the arguments urged in support of the opposite sentiment,
+and of the attempt to prove that every man who is qualified has a
+right to preach the gospel, without any regular call and admission
+by the church. And,</p>
+<p>1st. It is pretended that this is enjoined upon all that are
+qualified for it, because Christians are called to teach, exhort,
+and admonish one another. But even supposing that this were to be
+understood of preaching, or a public ministry of the word, such
+directions, though expressed generally, would not apply to all, but
+to those only who are called to the ministry, according to the
+limitation and restriction that is laid down in other places of
+Scripture. There is, however, no necessity of understanding these
+directions in that sense. The Scripture evidently distinguishes the
+preaching of the gospel, or that public teaching which belongs to
+an instituted ministry, from that private teaching which is
+competent to, and obligatory on, all Christians by the law of love;
+the latter is enjoined upon some to whom the former is absolutely
+prohibited: compare 1 Tim. ii. 12, with Tit. ii. 3, 4. Christians
+in a private station have abundant opportunity, and ordinarily much
+more than they improve, to exercise their talents in teaching their
+families, friends, and neighbors, without interfering with that
+public ministry of the word which is committed to those who are
+especially called thereto.</p>
+<p>2d. Some passages of Scripture are urged, wherein it is supposed
+all Christians are enjoined to exercise their qualifications in
+public teaching or preaching: particularly Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet.
+iv. 10, 11. These Scriptures, on the contrary, restrict the public
+ministry of the word to those invested with an office, and it is
+that ministry which belongs to their office that is spoken of. In
+Rom. xii. persons in office are exhorted to apply themselves
+faithfully and diligently to that ministry to which they are
+called, whether it be a ministry of the word, and of spiritual
+things, or a ministry of temporal things, and that without envying
+others who have a different office and ministry. And, to enforce
+this exhortation, the apostle compares the Church to the natural
+body, ver. 4, in which all members have not the same office, but
+one member is appointed to one office, and another member to a
+different office: and so it is in the Church of Christ, ver. 5. The
+same allusion is applied more largely, 1 Cor. xii. 27, 28, to
+illustrate this very point. The other passage, 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11,
+is of the very same import: those in office are called to exercise
+their ministry faithfully, whether it be in spiritual or temporal
+things, and are addressed as stewards, ver. 10; "As every man hath
+received the gift, even so minister the same one to another as good
+stewards of the manifold grace of God." Some are led to mistake the
+meaning of these Scriptures, by misunderstanding the word
+<i>gift</i>, as if it meant only talents or qualifications;
+whereas, in these and many other passages, it means a certain
+office and ministry to which one is appointed. Eph. iv. 8, 11: He
+gave gifts unto men; he gave some apostles, some prophets, &amp;c.
+1 Tim. iv. 14: "Neglect not the gift that is in thee, which was
+given thee by prophecy, with the laying on of the hands of the
+presbytery." Timothy was ordained to the office of the ministry in
+consequence of special direction of the spirit of prophecy. See 1
+Tim. i. 18.</p>
+<p>3d. It is also supposed and much insisted on by some, that both
+precept and example for the preaching of the gospel, by what they
+call every gifted brother, may be found in 1 Cor. xiv. 31, which is
+particularly urged in support of their opinion: "For ye may
+<i>all</i> prophesy, one by one, that <i>all</i> may learn, and
+<i>all</i> may be comforted." But universal terms, such as are here
+used, are limited or extended according to the subject; and that
+even in the same verse, as in chap. xv. 22. In like manner here,
+the <i>all</i> that may prophesy are not the same <i>all</i> that
+may learn and be comforted. The latter may extend to all the
+members of the church, and even to strangers who might come into
+their assemblies; the former could apply only to a few. Some
+members of the church are expressly prohibited from public
+teaching, ver. 34. Besides, all were not prophets, chap. xii. 29,
+and therefore all could neither prophesy, nor could warrantably
+attempt it. The state of matters referred to in that chapter seems
+to have been this: The church at Corinth was numerous, and had many
+ministers, of whom the most, if not all, were endowed with some
+miraculous power, such as that of prophecy, of speaking strange
+languages, and the like; they were proud of these gifts, and
+forward to show them, ver. 26, which occasioned disorder in their
+assemblies for worship; those that had the gift of tongues
+prevented the prophets, and did not modestly give place to one
+another. These disorders the apostle reproves, and exhorts them to
+exercise their gifts in a more regular and decent manner, for the
+edification of the church. This being the case, it is strange to
+plead this passage as a warrant for the preaching of the gospel by
+those who are in no office, and who neither have any miraculous
+power to prove their immediate call by Christ to the work of the
+ministry, nor are admitted thereto by the call of the church.</p>
+<p>4th. Further, we are referred to Acts viii. 1-4, for an example
+of the preaching of the gospel by persons not in office. We are
+told, ver. 1, that "there was a great persecution against the
+church which was at Jerusalem, and they were all scattered
+abroad&mdash;<i>except the apostles</i>." And it is said, ver. 4,
+"<i>they</i>, that were scattered abroad, went everywhere
+<i>preaching the word</i>." From this it is argued, that <i>the
+Church in general</i> proclaimed the gospel of the Lord Jesus. But
+why mention the Church in general, when the method of reasoning
+used would equally prove that the Church universally did so; and
+the absurdity of such reasoning must be evident upon a very little
+consideration of the subject. How absurd to suppose that <i>all</i>
+mentioned in ver. 1, refers to and comprehends all the members of
+that church, and that all the thousands and ten thousands belonging
+to it were all scattered abroad, or that they all, men, women, and
+children, went <i>everywhere preaching</i> the word! Are we not
+told, ver. 3, that some of them, probably many of them, both men
+and women, were haled and committed to prison? Or, had all the
+members of the church been driven from Jerusalem, how were the
+apostles to be employed? Did they only tarry to gather a new
+church? When it is said, ver. 3, that Saul entered into every
+house, how absurd would it be to suppose that it is meant every
+house in Jerusalem, or even every house in which there was a
+Christian! The expression, also, <i>everywhere</i>, ver. 4, must be
+limited. It would therefore be unreasonable to object against a
+proper limitation of the word <i>all</i>, ver. 1. And about the
+just limitation of it we need be at no loss. They were all
+scattered abroad&mdash;except the apostles. What reason can there
+be for mentioning only the apostles as excepted, while there were
+so many other members of that church still remaining at Jerusalem,
+but this, that the persons referred to were of the same description
+in general with the apostles, persons in office, ministers of the
+church? Others might also be scattered, but these are here spoken
+of; and Philip, an evangelist, and endowed with miraculous powers,
+is mentioned as one of them.</p>
+<p>5th. As to the case of Apollos, which some urge as affording
+irresistible evidence to prove that all who are qualified may
+preach the gospel, a few words may suffice. He spoke boldly in the
+synagogue, the practice of which is no rule to the Christian
+Church. He was not yet acquainted with some important doctrines of
+the New Testament Church, much less could he be acquainted with the
+ordinances of it. Two intelligent Christians instructed him more
+perfectly in the way of God. He was recommended by the brethren to
+the church at Corinth, and there he labored successfully in the
+work of the ministry. And what is all this to the purpose for which
+his example is urged? We have no information, indeed, of what time,
+nor in what manner, he was called and admitted to the work of the
+ministry, more than we have about many others mentioned in
+Scripture: but he is expressly called a minister, and is, once and
+again, classed with the chiefest of the apostles, 1 Cor. i. 12,
+iii. 5, 22.</p>
+<p>Lest these and the like arguments should be found insufficient,
+recourse is had by some to the plea of pure motives and good
+designs, with a kind of appeal to the judgment of the great day,
+and profession of trust, that they are such as will not then be
+condemned. It is a great satisfaction to have the testimony of
+conscience to the purity of motives in every part of conduct that
+is warranted by the word of God, and also to know that the judgment
+of the saints at the great day will be a judgment of mercy. But
+every part of the truth of Christ will be determined at that day in
+exact conformity to what is now declared in the word. And the
+purest motives and most noble designs are no rule of conduct to
+any; much less can they give satisfaction to others.</p>
+<p>These observations concerning the institution of a gospel
+ministry, the writer is persuaded, are agreeable to the word of
+God: if they be not, it would be idle to appeal to his motives in
+support of them. But he can freely say that they are here offered
+to the public, not from a desire of controversy, but from a
+conviction, that at this time it is necessary, on different
+accounts, to call people's attention to the mind and will of
+Christ, as revealed in the word concerning this subject. Let not
+such of the friends of religion, as may be of different sentiments
+from what are here expressed, be offended at an attempt, in the
+spirit of meekness, to remove their mistakes: nor let them impute
+it to envy, pride, or selfish principles. In a perfect consistency
+with all that he hath advanced, the writer can say, "Would to God
+that all the Lord's people were prophets."</p>
+<p>It is a necessary consequence of what is advanced on this
+subject, that all should be careful that the ministry of the
+ordinances they attend upon be such as is warranted in the word. If
+none can warrantably preach except they be sent, we cannot
+warrantably attend on the ministry of any but those who we have
+reason to believe have Christ's call and mission. And if it be an
+objection against a pastor of a congregation, that he is imposed
+upon the flock without their choice, it is no less an objection
+against a preacher, if he be not admitted to the ministry of the
+word by those whose office it is to examine his qualifications, and
+judge of his call. It must, however, be acknowledged, that to have
+gone through the ordinary forms of admission is no sufficient
+evidence of one's having the call of Christ. The outward forms may
+be observed, while the spirit and design of them is neglected, and
+the rule of the word transgressed. Nor can any be acknowledged as
+sent by Christ, unless their character correspond with that pointed
+out and required in the word, and unless the doctrine they teach be
+the gospel of Christ. None can be supposed to have a mission from
+Christ, who do not bring his message, 2 John ver. 10: "If there
+come any unto you and bring not this doctrine, receive him not into
+your house, neither bid him God speed." But when we are favored
+with the pure gospel, and an administration of it agreeable to the
+word, let us wait upon it diligently; regarding the preaching of
+the gospel as an ordinance of Christ, and depending on his promised
+blessing to make it effectual: for when "the world by wisdom knew
+not God, it pleased God, by the foolishness of preaching, to save
+them that believe," 1 Cor. i. 21.</p>
+<p>Both parts of this number are recommended to the serious
+consideration of what are called <i>lay-preachers</i>, and of such
+as favor that scheme. And let all intruders upon the office of the
+holy ministry, with their deluded votaries, beware lest it should
+be said to them, <i>Who hath required this at your hands</i>?</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0038"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. IV.</h2>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Have not the people a divine right to choose their
+own pastors and other church officers?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. In those divinely qualified for the ministry, there
+are diversities of gifts, though but one spirit. As the same food,
+though abundantly wholesome and nourishing, is not equally suited
+to the taste, appetite, and constitutions of different persons and
+nations; so the same gifts in a candidate for the gospel ministry
+are not equally adapted to every person and place. To secure
+edification there must therefore be a choice of the gifts most
+suitable. And who fitter to make it than those who are to enjoy the
+use thereof, if their senses be exercised to discern good and evil?
+Can any man pretend to know better what gifts suit the case of my
+soul than I do myself?</p>
+<p>Those ignorant of the fundamental truths of Christianity; those
+scandalous, profane deniers of the divine original of the Old and
+New Testaments, or of any truth therein plainly revealed; those
+neglecters of the public, private, and secret worship of God; those
+given to cursing, swearing, Sabbath profanation, drunkenness,
+whoredom, or other scandalous courses, are destitute of capacity
+and right to choose a gospel minister. The ignorant are utterly
+incapable to judge of either the preacher's matter or method. The
+openly wicked have their hatred of Christ, and a faithful minister,
+marked in their forehead; neither are such qualified to be visible
+members of the Christian Church. To admit them therefore to choose
+a Christian pastor would be a method, introducing ruin and we; a
+method equally absurd as for unfreemen to choose the magistrates of
+a burgh: rather, equally absurd as if ignorant babes, and our
+enemies the French, should be sustained electors of our members of
+parliament and privy council.</p>
+<p>Whether visible believers, adults, and having a life and
+conversation becoming the gospel, have a right from God to choose
+their pastors and other church officers, must now be examined.</p>
+<p>All along from the Reformation it has been the avowed principle
+of Scotch Presbyterians, that they have a divine warrant to choose
+their own pastors and other ecclesiastic officers. The first book
+of discipline, published A.D. 1560, declares the lawful calling of
+the ministry to consist in the election of the people, the
+examination of the ministry, and administration by both, and that
+no pastor should be intruded on any particular kirk without their
+consent. Their second book of discipline declares that the people's
+liberty of choosing church officers continued till the Church was
+corrupted by antichrist: that patronage flowed from the Pope's
+canon law, and is inconsistent with the order prescribed in God's
+word. From various documents the assembly of 1736 declared it
+obvious, that from the Reformation it had been the fixed principle
+of this church that no minister ought to be intruded into any
+church contrary to the will of the congregation. They seriously
+recommended a due regard hereunto in planting the vacancies, as
+judicatories would study the glory of God, the honor of God, and
+the edification of men. It is the law of heaven, however, the book
+of the Lord, that here and everywhere we intend to build our faith
+upon.</p>
+<p>That of Matthias is the first instance of an election of an
+officer in the Christian Church. No doubt, then, it is marked in
+the sacred history as a pattern for the ages to come. Being an
+officer extraordinary, his call was in part immediately divine, by
+the determination of the lot. Being a church officer, he was chosen
+by the Church as far as consistent with his extraordinary office.
+The disciples about Jerusalem (120) were gathered together. Peter
+represented the necessity of filling up Judas's place in the
+apostolate with one who could be a meet witness of Jesus'
+doctrines, miracles, death, and resurrection. The one hundred and
+twenty disciples chose, appointed, or presented to whom they judged
+proper for that work. The office being extraordinary, and perhaps
+the votes equal, the decision which of these two was referred to
+the divine determination of the lot. After prayer for a perfect
+<i>one</i>, it fell upon Matthias, and he was, by suffrages, or
+votes, added to the number of the apostles.</p>
+<p>Had the next election of a church officer entirely excluded the
+Christian people, one had been tempted to suspect that Matthias's
+extraordinary case was never designed for a pattern. Instead
+hereof, the choice being of an ordinary officer, is entirely
+deposited in their hands. Never were men better qualified for such
+an election than the inspired, the spirit-discerning apostles; yet
+when restrained by laborious attendance to their principal work,
+the ministry of the word and of prayer, from sufficient leisure to
+distribute their multiplied alms to their now numerous poor, and
+directed by the Holy Ghost, they ordered the Christian people <i>to
+look out</i>, choose seven of their number, <i>men of honest
+report, full of the Holy Ghost and of wisdom</i>, who might be
+ordained to the office of deacons. Judging of the mentioned
+qualifications, the Christian multitude, entirely of their own
+accord, chose Stephen, Philip, Prochorus, Nicanor, Timon, Parmenas,
+and Nicolas. These they presented to the apostles, who immediately
+ordained them by prayer, and imposition of hands, Acts vi. 1-6.
+Here, by inspired appointment, the people had the whole power of
+electing their deacons. If they have the power of electing one
+ordinary officer, why not of all? If in the case of deacons they
+can judge of the qualifications of <i>honest report, full of the
+Holy Ghost and of wisdom</i>, what hinders them to judge of these
+and the like of ministers? If Jesus and his apostles argued from
+the less to the greater, Matt. vi. 30,1 Cor. ix. 10, who can forbid
+us to argue so? If it be right and equal for the Christian people
+to choose deacons who take care of their sacred alms, is it not
+much more right and equal that they have the choice of their
+pastors, who take the oversight of their souls?</p>
+<p>A third instance of the Christian people electing their
+ecclesiastical officers, relates to the joint travels of Paul and
+Barnabas at Lystra and places around, Acts xiv. 23. These two
+divinely directed messengers of Christ, having ordained (or, as
+properly translated from the Greek, <i>through suffrages or votes
+constituted) them elders</i> (presbyters) <i>in every city, and
+prayed with fasting, commended them to the Lord</i>. Here it is
+plainly marked that these elders, <i>presbyters</i>, were chosen by
+<i>suffrages (votes)</i> in order to ordination. This the Greek
+word in our version, by the fraud of the English bishops rendered
+<i>had ordained</i>, plainly imports. The root of this word is
+borrowed from the custom of giving votes at Athens and elsewhere in
+Greece, by lifting up of the hand. Wherever it is used in the Greek
+Testament, and for anything we know in every Greek author, not
+posterior to Luke, the writer of the Acts, it constantly implies
+<i>to give vote or suffrage</i>. In the text before us it agrees
+with Paul and Barnabas; because they presided in the choice, and
+finished the design of it by ordination. Here, moreover, it is
+evident that the persons chosen for elders <i>(presbyters)</i> were
+set apart to their office, not by a hurried prayer and riotous
+banquet, but <i>by prayer and fasting:</i> and this manner of
+choice and ordination was used in every church. The very
+performance of the work of ordination in public conjunction with
+the church tacitly infers their consent.</p>
+<p>Christ's commanding his people <i>to try the spirits</i>, to try
+false prophets, and to flee from them, 1 John iv. 1, 2, necessarily
+imports a right to choose the worthy, and reject the vile; to
+choose what suits our edification, and to reject what doth not;
+for, if we must receive whoever is imposed, there is no occasion
+for trial, we can have no other. The privilege of trial here
+allowed to his people by Christ plainly supposes their having some
+ability for it; and, by a diligent perusal of his word, and
+consulting his ministers, they may become more capable. Has our
+adored Redeemer thus intrusted to his adult members the election of
+their pastors? at what peril or guilt do any ministers or laics
+concur to bereave them thereof, thrusting men into the evangelic
+office by another way; thus constituting them spiritual
+<i>thieves</i> and <i>robbers</i>? Instead of being <i>gentle</i>
+to church members, as a <i>nurse cherisheth her children</i>;
+instead of <i>condescending to men of low degree</i>, and <i>doing
+all things to the glory of God</i> and the <i>edification of
+souls</i>, is not this to set at naught their brethren; exercise
+lordly dominion over the members of Christ; and rule them with
+rigor?</p>
+<p>In the oracles of God, where is the hint, that the choice of
+pastors for the Christian people is lodged in any but
+themselves?&mdash;Since men apostolic and inspired put the choice
+from themselves to the Christian people; who can believe that it
+belongs to the clergy? Acts i. and vi. When Christ avers <i>his
+kingdom is not of this world</i>; when he threatens judgment
+without mercy to such as in his worshipping assemblies more readily
+give a seat to the rich, with his gold ring and gay clothing, than
+to the poor; can it be imagined that he has intrusted the choice of
+his ambassadors to men, for their greatness?</p>
+<p>There is indeed a haughty objection often stated against the
+people's choice: Shall a cottager, poor and unlearned, who pays not
+one farthing of the stipend, and at next term will perhaps remove
+from the congregation, have an equal choice of a minister with his
+master, a gentleman, a nobleman, of liberal education, of
+distinguished abilities, who is head of a large family, has a fixed
+property and residence in the parish, and furnishes almost the
+whole benefice? Will you fly in the face of our civil law? Will you
+plead for the method of choosing church officers, which already has
+produced so much strife, bloody squabbling, or riot? If Christ's
+<i>kingdom</i>, as himself when dying attested, <i>is not of this
+world</i>, how can outward learning, riches, settled abode, or any
+worldly thing, constitute one a member thereof? These do not make
+one a better Christian. No. <i>Not many wise men after the flesh,
+not many mighty, not many noble, are called</i> with a holy
+calling. How ordinarily do rich men oppress the saints, draw them
+before judgment-seats, and blaspheme Jesus' worthy name, by which
+they are called! If worldly privileges and endowments cannot make
+one a subject of the Mediator's spiritual kingdom, how can they
+entitle any to, or raise him above his brethren in, the privileges
+thereof? If by the Son of God the poor cottager has been made free
+indeed; has been taught to profit; is rich in faith; is a king and
+priest unto God; and hath received a kingdom that cannot be moved;
+in the view of the Omniscient and his angels, and every man wise to
+salvation, how little is he inferior to his rich, perhaps his
+graceless, master? Your rich man has college education, understands
+philosophy, history, law, agriculture; but will that infer that he
+understands his Bible, understands Christian principles, spiritual
+experiences, and what spiritual gifts best correspond therewith,
+better than his cottager, who daily searches the Scriptures, and
+has heard and learned of the Father? How oft are the great things
+of God hid from the wise and prudent, and revealed unto babes!
+Christ crucified was to the learned Greeks foolishness; but to the
+poorest believer the power of God and the wisdom of God. "The
+natural man," however learned, "receiveth not the things of the
+Spirit of God, neither can he know them; for they are spiritually
+discerned," 1 Cor. ii. 14. How easy to find the herdman, or the
+silly woman, who will endure a trial on Christian principles to far
+better purpose than many of your rich, your great men!&mdash;Your
+great man is the head of a numerous family, and has great influence
+in the corner. That, no doubt, is a strong motive for him, if he is
+a Christian, to be exceeding wary in his choice: if he is so, no
+doubt his Christian judgment, as far as is consistent with
+spiritual liberty, is to have its own weight. But while Christ's
+<i>kingdom is not of this world</i>; while in him there is
+<i>neither male nor female, bond nor free</i>; headship over a
+family can found no claim to a spiritual privilege. Thousands of
+heads of families are plainly <i>aliens from the commonwealth of
+Israel</i>, without God, and without hope in the world. Many are
+heads of families who, by neglect of the daily worship of God, of
+religious instruction, and by other unchristian conduct, ruin the
+same.</p>
+<p>Boast not of the great man's settled abode, boast not of
+to-morrow, for thou knowest not what a day may bring forth; how
+suddenly may disaster and death pluck him up by the roots! The rich
+fathers, where are they? Do the nobles live forever? Shall their
+dwelling continue to all generations? How often, in a few years,
+the rich inheritance changes its master, while the race of the poor
+hovers about the same spot for many generations! What if the
+cottager attend more to gospel ministrations, in one year, than the
+rich in forty! what if, removing at next term, he carry his beloved
+pastor in his heart, and by effectual fervent prayers, availing
+much, by multiplied groanings that cannot be uttered, he bring
+manifold blessings on the parish and ministry which he leaves;
+while your rich man, if wicked, if of the too common stamp,
+continues in it, for no better purpose than to distress the
+faithful pastor, corrupt the people, bring down a curse, and cumber
+the ground! The great man bears the load of the stipend no more
+than the poorest cottager. He purchased his estate with this burden
+upon it, and on that account had its price proportionally abated.
+Suppose it were otherwise, might not a poor widow's <i>two
+mites</i> be more in Jesus' account than all he gives? Will we,
+with the Samaritan sorcerer, indulge the thought that the <i>gifts
+of God</i>, the spiritual privileges of his Church, <i>are to be
+purchased with money</i>? For money to erect the church or defray
+the benefice we must not, with the infamous traitor, betray the Son
+of God in his church&mdash;his ordinance, his ministry, into the
+hands of sinners to be crucified.</p>
+<p>It is in vain to mention the civil law: the very worst statute
+thereof, relative to the point in hand, indirectly supposes the
+consent of the congregation. It leaves to the presbytery the full
+power to judge whether the presentee is fit for that charge. If the
+congregation generally oppose, with what candor do the presbytery,
+in Jesus' name, determine that he is fit? The last statute relative
+hereto declared the presentation void, unless accepted. Nor is
+there in being any, but the <i>law of sin and death</i> within
+them, the law of itch after worldly gain, that obliges candidates
+to accept. How unmanly, how disingenuous, to blame the civil law
+with the present course of intrusions!&mdash;Since the resurrection
+of Christ, we think we may almost defy any to produce an instance
+of bloody squabbling, or like outrageous contention, in the choice
+of a pastor, where none but the visible members of Christ's
+mystical body, adult, and blameless in their lives, were admitted
+to act in the choice. But if at any called popular elections, the
+power was sinfully betrayed into the hands of such baptized
+persons, as in ignorance and loose practice equalled, if not
+transcended, <i>heathen men and publicans</i>; into the hand of
+those who, to please a superior, to obtain a paltry bribe, or a
+flagon of wine, were readily determined in their vote for a
+minister; let the prostitutes of Jesus' ordinance answer for the
+unhappy consequences of their conduct. If they so enormously broke
+through the hedge of the divine law, no wonder a serpent bit them.
+But who has forgot what angry contentions, what necessity of a
+military guard at ordinations, the lodging of the power of
+elections in patrons or heritors, <i>as such</i>, has of late
+occasioned?</p>
+<p>To deprive the Christian people of their privilege in choosing
+their pastor, and give it to others upon worldly accounts, is the
+grossest absurdity. It overturns the nature of Christ's spiritual
+kingdom, founding a claim to her privileges on worldly character
+and property. It gives those blessed lips the lie, which said,
+<i>"My kingdom is not of this world."</i> It counteracts the nature
+of the church, as a voluntary society; thrusting men into a
+momentous relation to her, without, nay contrary to, her consent.
+It settles the ministerial office upon a very rotten foundation:
+for how hard is it to believe the man is a minister of a Christian
+congregation, who never consented to his being such! to believe he
+has a pastoral mission from Christ, for whom providence would never
+open a regular door of entrance to the office; but he was obliged
+to be thrust in by the window, <i>as a thief and a robber</i>! If
+he comes unsent, how can I expect edification by his ministry, when
+God has declared, <i>such shall not profit his people at all</i>?
+It implies the most unnatural cruelty. If the law of nature allow
+me the choice of my physician, my servant, my guide, my master, how
+absurd to deny me the choice of a physician, a servant, a guide, to
+my soul; and to give it to another, merely because he has some more
+money, has a certain <i>piece of ground</i>, which I have not! How
+do these qualify him, or entitle him to provide, what the eternal
+salvation of my soul is so nearly connected with, better than
+myself, if taught of God?</p>
+<p>By patronage how oft the honor of Christ and the souls of men
+are betrayed into the hands of their declared enemies! If the
+patron is unholy, profane, how readily the candidate he prefers is
+too like himself! If a candidate be faithful, be holy, how readily,
+like Ahab in the case of Micaiah, he hates, he sends not for him!
+The complaisant chaplain, who almost never disturbed the family
+with the worship of God; who along with the children or others took
+off his cheerful glass; sung his wanton song; attended the
+licentious ball, or play-house; connived at, or swore a profane
+oath; took a hand at cards; or ridiculed the mysteries, the
+experiences, the circumspect professor of the Christian faith, is
+almost certain to have the presentation: perhaps he covenanted for
+it as part of his wages. For what simony, sacrilege, and deceitful
+perjury, with respect to ordination vows, patronage opens a door,
+he that runs may read. Shocked with the view, let us forbear!</p>
+
+<hr>
+
+<p>N.B. The London ministers in the preceding treatise have a large
+note respecting the election of ministers, which does not fully
+invest this right in the people. The editor, therefore, omitted
+that note altogether, and has inserted this number, extracted from
+Brown's Letters, in the place of it, as better adapted to the
+nature of the gospel church, and to that liberty wherewith Christ
+has made his people free.</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0039"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. V.<a href="#note-124"><small>124</small></a></h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Ordination and Duty of Ministers.</i></h3>
+<p>That the ordination of pastors is an ordinance of Christ, the
+sacred volumes clearly prove. Through election by suffrages (or
+votes) Paul and Barnabas ordained <i>elders</i> (presbyters) <i>in
+every church</i>, Acts xiv. 23. By Paul's inspired orders Titus was
+left at Crete to ordain elders (presbyters) in every city, Tit. i.
+5. By the laying on of the hands of the presbytery was Timothy
+himself ordained: he was apostolically authorized and directed to
+ordain others; and informed that these directions are to be
+observed, <i>till the day of Jesus Christ</i>, 1 Tim. iv. 14,
+15.</p>
+<p>That not election, but ordination, confers the sacred office is
+no less evident. Election marks out the person to be ordained;
+ordination fixes the relation of a candidate to a particular
+congregation, upon receiving a regular call; while at the same time
+it constitutes him a minister of the whole catholic Church.
+Ordination made men <i>presbyters</i> and <i>deacons</i>, which
+were not so before. If a person be destitute of the distinguishing
+ministerial gift, or any other essential qualification, ten
+thousand elections or ordinations cannot render him a minister of
+Christ. But solemnly tried and found qualified, he is to be set
+apart to the ministry, by prayer, fasting, and laying on of the
+hands of the presbytery.</p>
+<p>Nowhere in the heavenly volume do we find either precept or
+example that Christian people have a whit more right to ordain
+their pastor, than midwives have to baptize the children they
+assist to bring forth. Ordination appears to have been performed by
+apostles, by evangelists, and by a presbytery, Acts vi. 6, and xiv.
+23; Tit. i. 5; 1 Tim. v. 22, and iv. 14: but never by private
+Christians. Could these ordain their pastors or other ecclesiastic
+officers, to what purpose did Paul leave Titus at Crete to
+<i>ordain elders in every city</i>? or why did he write never a
+word about ordination to the people, in any of his epistles, but to
+their rulers?</p>
+<p>Thus regularly ordained, the Christian pastor must enter upon
+his important work. Endowed with spiritual wisdom and
+understanding; possessed of inward experience of the power of
+divine truth; inflamed with zeal for the glory of God, love to his
+work, and compassion to the perishing souls of men, he is to
+endeavor to acquaint himself with the spiritual state of his flock;
+and to feed them, not with heathenish and Arminian harangues, but
+with the gospel of Christ, the sincere milk of the word, diligently
+preaching and rightly dividing it, according to their diversified
+state and condition, 1 Pet. v. 3; 2 Cor. v. 11; 1 Cor. ix. 16.
+Assiduously growing in the knowledge and love of divine things, he
+is to instruct and confirm his hearers therein. Every divine truth
+he is to publish and apply, as opportunity calls for: chiefly such
+as are most important, or, though once openly confessed, are in his
+time attacked and denied, 1 Tim. vi. 20, iii. 15. Painfully is he
+to catechize his people, and in Jesus' name to visit and teach them
+from house to house. To awaken their conscience, to promote the
+conversion of sinners, to direct and comfort the cast down,
+perplexed, tempted, and deserted; to ponder the Scripture, and his
+own and others' experience, to qualify him for this work, must be
+his earnest care. Faithfully is he to administer the sacraments to
+such (only) as are duly prepared; and in the simple manner
+prescribed by Christ. Tenderly is he to take care of the poor; to
+sympathize with the afflicted; impartially to visit the sick; to
+deal plainly with their consciences, and to exhort and pray over
+them in the name of the Lord. With impartiality, zeal, meekness,
+and prudence, he is to rule and govern the church, to admonish the
+unruly, to rebuke offenders, to excommunicate the incorrigible, and
+to absolve the penitent. Habitually is he to give himself to
+effectual fervent prayer, for his flock, and for the Church of God,
+travailing as in birth till Jesus be formed in the souls of men. Be
+a man's parts, diligence, and apparent piety what they will,
+negligence in this will blast his ministrations, and too clearly
+mark, that he is therein chiefly influenced by some carnal motive
+of honor or gain. Finally, he is constantly to walk before his
+flock a distinguished pattern of sobriety, righteousness, holiness,
+humility, heavenliness, temperance, charity, brotherly kindness,
+and every good word and work. Without this his ministrations appear
+but a solemn farce of deceit, 2 Tim. ii. 4; 1 Tim. iv. 15; 2 Tim.
+iv. 2.</p>
+<p>Can ministers' reading of sermons consist with the dignity of
+their office? Did Jesus or his apostles ever show them an example
+of this? No. At Nazareth, when he read his text in the book of
+Esaias, he <i>closed his book</i>, and discoursed to the people. On
+the mount <i>he opened his mouth, and taught</i>: we hear not that
+he took out his papers and read. Peter, in his sermon at Pentecost,
+<i>lifted up his voice, and said</i>: his papers and reading we
+hear nothing of. After reading of the law and the prophets, the
+rulers of the synagogue of Antioch in Pisidia, desired Paul and
+Barnabas, not to <i>read</i>, but to <i>say on</i>. Our adored
+Saviour knew well enough how to direct his ambassadors; yet he
+ordered them to <i>go and preach</i>, not <i>read</i>, the gospel
+to every creature, Luke iv. 20, 21; Matt. v. 2; Acts ii. 14, and
+xiii. 15. How hard to believe, that he who gives gifts to men, for
+the edifying of his body, would send the sermonist, whose memory
+and judgment are so insufficient, that from neither he can produce
+an half hour's discourse without reading it! How dull and insipid
+the manner! How absurdly it hinders the Spirit's assistance, as to
+matter during the discourse! How shameful! Shall the bookless
+lawyer warmly and sensibly plead almost insignificant trifles, and
+shall the ambassador of Christ, deprived of his papers, be
+incapable to plead so short a space in favor of his Master, and of
+the souls of men?</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0040"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. VI.<a href="#note-125"><small>125</small></a></h2>
+<h3><i>Of Ruling Elders.</i></h3>
+<p>The rule and government of the Church, or the execution of the
+authority of Christ therein, is in the hand of the elders. All
+elders in office have rule, and none have rule in the church but
+elders: <i>as such</i>, rule doth belong unto them. The apostles by
+virtue of their special office were intrusted with all church
+power; but therefore they were elders also, 1 Pet. v. 1; 3 John i.:
+see Acts xxi. 17; 1 Tim. i. 17. They are some of them on other
+accounts called bishops, pastors, teachers, ministers, guides; but
+what belongs to any of them in point of rule, or what interest they
+have therein, it belongs unto them as elders, and not otherwise,
+Acts xx. 17, 18. The Scriptures affirm, 1st, That there is a work
+and duty of rule in the Church, distinct from the work and duty of
+pastoral feeding, by the preaching of the word and administration
+of the sacraments, Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim.
+v. 17; 2 Tim. iv. 5; Heb. xiii. 7, 17; Rev. ii. 3.</p>
+<p>2d. Different and distinct gifts are required unto the discharge
+of these distinct works and duties. This belongs unto the harmony
+of the dispensation of the gospel. Gifts are bestowed to answer all
+duties prescribed. Hence they are the first foundation of all
+power, work, and duty in the church. Unto every one of us is given
+grace according to the measure of the gift of Christ, that is,
+ability for duty, according to the measure wherein Christ is
+pleased to grant it; Eph. iv. 7: see also 1 Cor. xii. 4, 7, 8-10;
+Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet. iv. 10: wherefore different gifts are the
+first foundation of different offices and duties.</p>
+<p>3d. That different gifts are required unto the different works
+of pastoral teaching on the one hand, and practical rule on the
+other, is evident, 1st, From the light of reason, and the nature of
+the works themselves being so different. And, 2d, From experience;
+some men are fitted by gifts for the dispensation of the word and
+doctrine in a way of pastoral feeding, who have no useful ability
+in the work of rule; and some are fitted for rule, who have no
+gifts for the discharge of the pastoral work in preaching, Yea, it
+is very seldom that both these sort of gifts do concur in any
+eminent degree in the same persons, or without some notable
+defect.</p>
+<p>4th. The work of rule, as distinct from teaching, is in general
+to watch over the walk or conversation of the members of the church
+with authority, exhorting, comforting, admonishing, reproving,
+encouraging, and directing of them, as occasion shall require. The
+gifts necessary hereunto are diligence, wisdom, courage, and
+gravity; as we shall see afterwards. The pastoral work is
+principally to reveal the whole counsel of God, to divide the word
+aright, or to labor in the word and doctrine, both as unto the
+general dispensation and particular application of it, in all
+seasons and on all occasions. Hereunto spiritual wisdom, knowledge,
+sound judgment, experience, and utterance are required; all to be
+improved by continual study of the word and prayer. But this
+difference of gifts unto these distinct works doth not of itself
+constitute distinct offices, because the same persons may be
+suitably furnished with those of both sorts.</p>
+<p>5th. Yet distinct works and duties, though some were furnished
+with gifts for both, were a ground in the wisdom of the Holy Ghost,
+for distinct offices in the church, where one sort of them were as
+much as those of one office could, ordinarily attend unto, Acts vi.
+2-4. Ministration unto the poor of the church, for the supply of
+their temporal necessities, is an ordinance of Christ, instituted
+that the apostles might give a more diligent attendance unto the
+word and prayer.</p>
+<p>6th. The work of the ministry in prayer, and preaching of the
+word, or labor in the word and doctrine, whereunto the
+administration of the seals of the covenant is annexed, with all
+the duties that belong unto the special application of these things
+before insisted on unto the flock, are ordinarily sufficient to
+take up the whole man, and the utmost of their endowments who are
+called unto the pastoral office in the church. The very nature of
+the work in itself is such, as that the apostle giving a short
+description of it adds, as an intimation of its greatness and
+excellency, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2 Cor. ii. 16.
+And the manner of its performance adds unto its weight. For not to
+mention that intenseness of mind in the exercise of faith, love,
+zeal, and compassion, which is required of them in the discharge of
+their whole office; the diligent consideration of the state of the
+flock, so as to provide spiritual food for them; with a constant
+attendance unto the issues and effects of the word in the
+consciences and lives of men; is enough for the most part to take
+up their whole time and strength. It is gross ignorance or
+negligence that causeth any to be otherwise minded. As the work of
+the ministry is generally discharged, consisting only in a weekly
+provision of sermons, and the performance of some stated offices by
+reading, men have time and liberty enough to attend unto other
+occasions. But in such persons we are not at present concerned. Our
+rule is plain, 1 Tim. iv. 12-17.</p>
+<p>7th. It doth not hence follow, that those who are called unto
+the ministry of the word, as pastors and teachers, who are elders
+also, are divested of their right to rule in the church, or
+discharged from the exercise of it, because others, not called unto
+their office, are appointed to be assistant unto them, that is,
+<i>helps in the government</i>. For the right and duty of rule is
+inseparable from the office of elders, which all bishops and
+pastors are. The right is still in them, and the exercise of it,
+consistent with their more excellent work, is required of them. The
+apostles in the constitution of elders in every church derogated
+nothing from their own authority, nor discharged themselves of
+their care. So when they appointed deacons to take care of supplies
+for the poor, they did not forego their own right, nor the exercise
+of their duty as their other work would permit them, Gal. ii. 9,
+10. And in particular the apostle Paul manifested his concernment
+herein, in the care he took about <i>collection for the poor</i> in
+all churches.</p>
+<p>8th. As we observed at the entrance of this chapter, the whole
+work of the church, as unto authoritative teaching and rule, is
+committed unto the elders. For authoritative teaching and ruling,
+is teaching and ruling by virtue of office: and this office
+whereunto they do belong is that of elders, as is undeniably
+attested, Acts xx. 17, &amp;c. All that belongs unto the care,
+inspection, oversight, rule, fend instruction of the church, is
+committed unto the <i>elders</i> of it expressly. For <i>elders</i>
+is a name derived from the Jews, denoting them that have
+<i>authority</i> in the church.</p>
+<p>9th. To the complete constitution of any church, or to the
+perfection of its organical state, it is required that there be
+<i>many elders</i> in it; at least more than one. I do not
+determine what their number ought to be; but it is to be
+proportioned to the work and end designed. Where the churches are
+small, the number of elders must be so also. So many are necessary
+in each office as are able to discharge the work which is allotted
+unto them. But that church, be it small or great, is defective,
+which hath not more elders than one; so many as are sufficient for
+their work. The pattern of the first churches constituted by the
+apostles, which it is our duty to imitate and follow as our rule,
+plainly declares, that many elders were appointed by them in every
+church, Acts xi. 30, xiv. 23, xv. 2, 4, 6, 22, xvi. 4, xx. 17; 1
+Tim. v. 17; Phil. i. 1; Tit. i. 5; 1 Pet. v. 1.</p>
+<p>10th. We shall now make application of these things unto our
+present purpose. I say then, 1st, Whereas there is a work of rule
+in the Church, distinct from that of pastoral feeding: 2d, Whereas
+this work is to be attended unto with diligence, which includes the
+whole duty of him that attends unto it: 3d, That the ministry of
+the word and prayer, with all those duties that accompany it, is a
+full employment for any man, and so consequently his principal and
+proper work, which it is unlawful for him to be remiss in, by
+attending on another with diligence: 4th, That, in the wisdom of
+the Holy Ghost, distinct works did require distinct offices for
+their discharge: and, 5th, Whereas there ought to be many elders in
+every church, that both the works of <i>teaching</i> and
+<i>ruling</i> may be constantly attended unto; all which we have
+proved already: our inquiry herein is, whether the same Holy Spirit
+hath not distinguished this office of elders into those two sorts,
+namely, those who are called unto teaching and rule also, and those
+who are called unto rule only, which we affirm.</p>
+<p>The testimonies whereby the truth of this assertion is confirmed
+are generally known and pleaded. I shall insist on some of them
+only, beginning with that which is of uncontrollable evidence, if
+it had any thing to conflict with but prejudices and interest, and
+this is 1 Tim. v. 17, the meaning of which is, the elders or
+presbyters in office, elders of the church <i>that rule well</i> or
+discharge their presidency for rule in due manner, are worthy, or
+ought to be reputed worthy, <i>of double honor</i>; especially
+those of them who labor, or are engaged in the great labor and
+travail of the word and doctrine.</p>
+<p>According to this sense the words of the text have a plain and
+obvious signification, which at first view presents itself unto the
+common sense and understanding of all men. On the first proposal of
+this text, that the elders that rule well are worthy of double
+honor, especially those who labor in the word and doctrine, a
+rational man, who is unprejudiced, and never heard of the
+controversy about ruling elders, can hardly avoid an apprehension
+that there are <i>two sorts of elders</i>, some that labor in the
+word and doctrine, and some who do not. This is the substance of
+the truth in the text. There are elders in the Church; there are or
+ought to be so in every church. With these elders the whole rule of
+the Church is intrusted; all these, and only these, do rule in it.
+Of these elders there are two sorts; for a description is given of
+one sort distinct from the other, and comparative with it. The
+first sort doth rule, and also labor in the word and doctrine. That
+these works are distinct and different was before declared: yet by
+the institution of Christ the right of rule is inseparable from the
+office of pastors or teachers. For all that are rightly called
+thereunto are elders also, which gives them an interest in rule.
+But there are elders which are not pastors or teachers. For there
+are some who rule well, but labor not in the word and doctrine;
+that is, who are not pastors or teachers.</p>
+<p>Elders which rule well, but labor not in the word and doctrine,
+are ruling elders only; for he who says, The elders who rule well
+are worthy of double honor, especially they who labor in the word
+and doctrine, saith that there are, or may be elders who rule well,
+who do not labor in the word and doctrine; that is, who are not
+obliged to do so.</p>
+<p>The argument from these words may be otherwise framed, but this
+contains the plain sense of this testimony.</p>
+<p>Our next testimony is from the same apostle, Rom. xii. 6, 7,
+<i>He that ruleth with diligence</i>. Our argument from hence is
+this: there is in the Church one that ruleth with authority by
+virtue of his office. For the discharge of this office there is a
+differing peculiar gift bestowed on some, ver. 7, and there is the
+special manner prescribed for the discharge of this special office,
+by virtue of that special gift; it is to be done with peculiar
+<i>diligence</i>. And this ruler is distinguished from him that
+exhorteth, and him that teacheth, with whose special work, as such,
+he hath nothing to do; even as they are distinguished from those
+who give and show mercy; that is, there is an elder by office in
+the Church, whose work and duty it is to <i>rule</i>, not to exhort
+or teach ministerially, which is our ruling elder. He that ruleth
+is a distinct officer, and is expressly distinguished from all
+others. Rule is the principal part of him that ruleth; for he is to
+attend unto it with <i>diligence</i>; that is, such as is peculiar
+unto <i>rule</i>, in contradistinction unto what is principally
+required in other administrations.</p>
+<p>There is the same evidence given unto the truth argued for in
+another testimony of the same apostle, 1 Cor. xii. 28: that there
+is here an enumeration of offices and officers in the Church, both
+extraordinary for that season, and ordinary for continuance, is
+beyond exception. Unto them is added the present exercise of some
+extraordinary gifts, as miracles, healing, tongues. That by
+<i>helps</i> the deacons of the Church are intended most do agree,
+because their original institution was as helpers in the affairs of
+the Church. <i>Governments</i> are governors or rulers; that is,
+such as are distinct from teachers; such hath God placed in the
+Church, and such there ought to be. It is said that <i>gifts</i>,
+not <i>offices</i>, are intended; the gift of government, or the
+gift for government. If God hath given gifts for government to
+abide in the Church, distinct from those given unto
+<i>teachers</i>, and unto other persons than the teachers, then
+there is a distinct office of rule or government in the Church,
+which is all we plead for.</p>
+<p><i>Of the Duties of Ruling Elders.</i></p>
+<p>1st. To watch diligently over the ways, walk, and conversation
+of all the members of the church, to see that it be blameless,
+without offence, useful, exemplary, and in all things answering the
+holiness of the commands of Christ, the honor of the gospel, and
+the profession thereof which they make in the world. And upon the
+observation which they make in the watch wherein they are placed,
+to instruct, admonish, charge, exhort, encourage, or comfort as
+they see cause. And this they are to attend unto, with courage and
+diligence.</p>
+<p>2d. To endeavor to prevent every thing that is contrary unto
+that love which the Lord Christ requireth in a peculiar and eminent
+manner to be found among his disciples. This he calls his own
+<i>new command</i>, with respect unto his authority requiring it,
+his example first illustrating it in the world, and the peculiar
+fruits and effects of it which he revealed and taught. Wherefore,
+the due observance of this law of love in itself and all its
+fruits, with the prevention, removal, or condemnation of all that
+is contrary unto it, is that in which the <i>rule of the church</i>
+doth in a great measure consist. And considering the weakness, the
+passions, the temptations of men, the mutual provocations and
+differences that are apt to fall out even among the best, the
+influence that earthly objects are apt to have upon their minds,
+the frowardness sometimes of men's natural tempers; the attendance
+unto this one duty, or part of rule, requires the utmost diligence
+of them that are called unto it.</p>
+<p>3d. To warn all the members of the church of their special
+church duties, that they be not found negligent or wanting in them.
+These are special duties required respectively of all church
+members, according unto the distinct talents which they have
+received, whether in things spiritual or temporal. Some are rich
+and some are poor; some old and some young; some in peace and some
+in trouble; some have received more spiritual gifts than others,
+and have more opportunity for their exercise: therefore it belongs
+unto the rule of the church, that all be admonished, instructed,
+and exhorted to attend unto their respective duties, by those in
+<i>rule</i>, according to the observation which they make of
+people's diligence or negligence in them.</p>
+<p>4th. To watch against the beginning of any church disorders,
+such as those that infested the church of Corinth, or any of the
+like sort; and to see that the members of the church attend
+regularly upon the ordinances of the gospel, as by slothfulness in
+this, decays in faith, love, and order have insensibly prevailed in
+many, to the dishonor of Christ, and the danger of their own
+souls.</p>
+<p>5th. It belongs unto them also to visit the sick, and especially
+such as their inward or outward conditions do expose them unto more
+than ordinary trials in their sickness; that is, the poor, the
+afflicted, the tempted in any kind. This in general is a moral
+duty, a work of mercy; but it is moreover a peculiar church duty by
+virtue of divine institution, ordaining, that the disciples of
+Christ may have all that spiritual and temporal relief, which is
+necessary for them, and useful to them, in their troubles and
+distresses.</p>
+<p>6th. To assist the pastor in watching over and directing the
+flock, and to advise with the deacons concerning the relief of the
+poor. According to the advantage which they have by their peculiar
+inspection of the conversation of all the members of the church,
+they ought to acquaint the teaching elders with the state of the
+flock, as to their knowledge, conditions, and temptations, which
+may be of singular use unto them, for their direction in the
+exercise of their ministry. The liberal contributions at Antioch
+for the brethren which dwelt in Judea, were sent by the hands of
+Barnabas and Saul unto the elders in Judea, Acts xi. 27, 30.</p>
+<p>7th. To unite with teaching elders in admitting members into the
+fellowship of the church, upon a visible evidence of their being
+qualified as the Scriptures direct. Unto them God bath given the
+keys of the kingdom of heaven, to open the door of admission unto
+those whom God hath received, Matt. xvi. 19.</p>
+<p>8th. To meet and consult with the teaching elders about such
+things of importance as are to be proposed to the members of the
+church for their consent. Hence nothing rash or indigested, nothing
+unsuited to the duty of the church, will at any time be proposed
+therein, so as to give occasion for contests, janglings, or
+disputes, contrary to order or decency, but all things may be
+preserved in a due regard unto the gravity and authority of the
+rulers.</p>
+<p>9th. To sit in judgment upon offenders, to take the proof, to
+weigh the evidence and determine accordingly, justifying the
+innocent, and ordaining censure to be inflicted on the convicted
+brother, according to the nature of the offence, Matt. xviii. 15,
+17, 18.</p>
+<p>10th. Whereas there is generally but one teaching elder in a
+church, upon his death or removal, it is the work and duty of the
+ruling elders to preserve the church in peace and unity, to take
+care of the continuation of its public ordinances, to prevent
+irregularities in any persons or parties among them, and to give
+all necessary aid and advice in the choice and call of some other
+meet person to be their pastor, in the room of the deceased or
+removed.</p>
+<a name="2H_CONC"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CONCLUSION.</h2>
+<h3><i>A Summary of the preceding Treatise on Church
+Government,</i></h3>
+<h4>BY QUESTION AND ANSWER.</h4>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What is meant by church government?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. That particular form and order, which Christ has
+fixed in his Church, for the proper management thereof.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear that there is a particular form
+of government appointed in the New Testament Church?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. As there is as great, if not greater, need of a
+government, in the New Testament Church, than there was in the Old,
+all the ordinances of which were most minutely described. Satan is
+now more experienced in deceiving, and his agents are still alive,
+and very actively employed, in attempting to waste and destroy this
+sacred vineyard, if without its proper hedge. Her members are still
+a mixture of tares and wheat; of sheep and goats: so that there is
+still a necessity of discerning between the precious and the vile;
+of trying and censuring false teachers; and of guarding divine
+ordinances from contempt and pollution. As Jesus gives the New
+Testament Church the peculiar title of the <i>kingdom of
+heaven</i>, he could not, in a consistency with his wisdom, leave
+it without any particular laws or form of government, except the
+changeable inclinations of men. As he was faithful in his New
+Testament house, he must fix a particular form of government for
+her, such as tends to her peace, order, and spiritual edification.
+And, amidst the prophet's vision of the New Testament Church, he is
+directed to teach his people <i>the form of the house, the laws of
+the house</i>, &amp;c., Ezek. xliii. 11.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. When may a particular form of church government be
+said to be of divine right?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. When all the parts thereof are agreeable to
+Scripture precepts; to approved Scripture examples; or are
+deducible by fair Scripture consequences.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear, that Scripture consequences
+are to be admitted to prove any particular truth or doctrine?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Because God has formed man a rational intelligent
+creature, capable of searching out the plain meaning and import,
+and also the necessary consequences of his express declarations. We
+find Christ reasoning by a deduction of consequences, when he
+showed that the doctrine of the resurrection was revealed to Moses
+at the burning bush; that the sixth commandment forbids angry
+words; and the seventh lascivious looks, Luke xx. 37, 38; Matt. v.
+21, 28. And a great part of the inspired epistles to the Romans,
+Galatians, and Hebrews consists in such a deduction of
+consequences. And as all Scripture is said to be profitable "for
+doctrine, for reproof, for correction, and for instruction in
+righteousness," 2 Tim. iii. 16, without a rational deduction of
+consequences, every portion of Scripture cannot answer each of
+these valuable ends.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What particular form of church government may lay
+the only proper claim to a divine right, according to the Holy
+Scriptures?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. The true presbyterian form, without that lordly
+dominion and tyrannical power, which has too often been exercised
+by courts, bearing this name. This government claimeth no power
+over men's bodies or estates. It does not inflict civil pains or
+corporal punishments. But it is a government purely spiritual,
+dealing with the consciences of men, and exercising the keys of the
+kingdom of heaven, doing all things according to the word of
+God.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the parts of presbyterial church
+government?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. It consists of a people, having the qualifications
+which the Scriptures require; of certain rulers, who are to perform
+the duties of their respective offices; and of certain courts, in
+which these rulers sit and act in matters of judgment.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the qualifications of persons who
+constitute the private members of the visible church?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. They ought to be true believers in Christ, to have a
+competent knowledge of the doctrines of the gospel, to make a sound
+profession of their faith, and to maintain a holy conversation.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What rulers are there in the presbyterian
+church?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Preaching elders, ruling elders, and deacons.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for the preaching
+elder?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. In the Holy Scriptures we find that God hath set
+some in the Church, TEACHERS: that our ascended Redeemer hath given
+her PASTORS and TEACHERS: that the Holy Ghost had made some
+BISHOPS, OVERSEERS, to feed her; and qualifies some for
+<i>prophecy, ministry, teaching, exhortation</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28;
+Eph. iv. 11; Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 6-8.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the duties of preaching elders?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. To preach the word; to dispense the ordinances of
+baptism and the Lord's Supper; to administer church discipline; and
+to rule and govern the church, 2 Tim. iv. 2; Matt. xxviii. 19; 1
+Cor. xi. 23-29; 1 Tim. v. 20; Tit. ii. 15, and iii. 10; Heb. xiii.
+17; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. <i>Quest</i>. Is the office of the gospel
+minister instituted by God to continue to the end of time?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Yes; the ends of it are of a permanent nature, the
+converting and confirming of the elect, and the silencing of
+gain-savers, Acts xxvi. 18; Tit. i. 9, 11.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for the office of the
+ruling elder?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. From the three following passages of sacred
+Scripture: 1. From Rom. xii. 5 to 8: "We being many are one body in
+Christ, and members one of another. Having then gifts, differing
+according to the grace that is given to us, whether prophecy, let
+us prophesy according to the proportion of faith; or ministry, let
+us wait on our ministering; or he that teacheth, on teaching; or he
+that exhorteth, on exhortation; he that giveth, let him do it with
+simplicity; he that ruleth, with diligence," &amp;c. Here we have a
+list of the ordinary officers of Christ, one body, the church. Here
+is the teacher: <i>he that teacheth</i>. Here is the pastor: <i>he
+that exhorteth</i>. Here is the deacon: <i>he that giveth</i>. And
+here is another officer distinct from all them, <i>he that
+ruleth</i>. His description attests, that <i>ruling</i> is, if not
+his only, yet his principal work. He that <i>ruleth</i> is here
+marked by a distinct character, as having a different <i>gift</i>,
+and a distinct work from his fellow-officers. This office therefore
+must be <i>distinct</i>. 2. From 1 Cor. xii. 28, where the
+<i>Spirit of God</i> informs us, that God hath set some in the
+Church, GOVERNMENTS. These must be understood of <i>governors</i>,
+as <i>miracles</i> are afterwards explained of <i>workers of
+miracles</i>. These governments and governors are said to be
+<i>set</i> in the church, not in the state; by God, not by men:
+they are declared to be distinct officers by themselves. Their
+title, government, implies, that <i>ruling</i> is their principal
+work. 3. From 1 Tim. v. 17, where the divine warrant for ruling
+elders shines with more peculiar brightness than anywhere in the
+book of God: "Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of
+double honor; especially they who labor in the word and doctrine."
+The ruling elders here mentioned necessarily pertain to the church.
+Two sorts of ruling elders are here plainly distinguished: some
+that only rule well; others that also labor in word and doctrine.
+There is not one place in the New Testament, nor perhaps in any
+Greek author, where the word here translated ESPECIALLY does not
+distinguish between different persons or things, Gal. vi. 10; Phil.
+iv. 22; 1 Tim. iv. 10; 2 Tim. iv. 13; and it would be absurd to
+suppose, that it does not distinguish here also. Therefore this
+single text shows the divine right of both the teaching and ruling
+elder.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the duties of ruling elders?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. To exercise ecclesiastical rule in church courts
+with the same authority as the preaching elder; to watch over the
+flock; impartially to receive or exclude members; to warn and
+censure the unruly; and to visit and pray with the sick.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for deacons?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. From Acts vi., where we are informed of the original
+and design of their office; and from 1 Tim. iii. 8-12, where the
+inspired apostle describes their necessary qualifications.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the duties of deacons?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. To look into the state and to serve the tables of
+the poor, by distributing the funds of the church, according to the
+respective necessities of the saints, 1 Tim. iii. 12.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the courts in which presbyterian rulers
+meet?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Congregational sessions, presbyteries, and
+synods.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for congregational
+sessions?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. From Matt, xviii. 15-18, where, in the Christian
+form of church discipline prescribed by the Church's Head, the
+concluding expression, "Let him be unto thee as a heathen man and
+publican," plainly alludes to the Jewish form of procedure in
+scandals. They had rulers, and consequently courts in every
+synagogue, or worshipping congregation, Mark v. 35-39. By virtue of
+letters from the high-priest to these, Saul had free access to
+punish the Christians in every synagogue, Acts ix. 1, 2. To these
+congregational courts it pertained to cast out of the synagogue,
+and to order transgressors to be held for heathen men and
+publicans, John ix. 22. Now Jesus, in alluding to these, intimates
+that similar courts should be in every Christian congregation. In
+this form of discipline our divine Saviour shows his utmost
+aversion against private offences being unnecessarily published
+abroad: and therefore the church, to which the offence is to be
+told, after private admonition is fruitless, must be understood in
+the most private sense of the word. The following context evidences
+that it is a <i>church</i>, which may consist only of <i>two or
+three</i> met together in Christ's name; yet, notwithstanding, a
+church having power to bind and loose from censure; that is, a
+church having the keys of the kingdom of heaven. It cannot then be
+the whole congregation or body of the people, as they are in
+general far too numerous to conceal offences, and to them Christ
+has given no formal judicial power, Matt. xviii. 18-21.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for a presbytery?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Timothy is expressly said to be ordained by the
+laying on of the hands of the PRESBYTERY, 1 Tim. iv. 14. And the
+number of different Christian congregations governed by one
+presbytery, as at Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, proves
+the divine right of this court. It is shown in the xiii. chapter of
+the preceding treatise, that in each of these places there were
+more Christians than could meet in one worshipping congregation,
+for the enjoying of public ordinances: and yet all these different
+congregations, at Jerusalem, are expressly said to have been one
+church, Acts viii. 1: so those at Antioch, Acts xiii. 1: so those
+at Ephesus, Acts xx. 17: and those also at Corinth, 1 Cor. i. 2.
+Now the question is, How were the different congregations in each
+of these places ONE CHURCH? Not merely in union to Christ and
+mutual affection one to another; for in this respect all the saints
+are ONE, whether in heaven or in earth. And therefore they are one
+church in virtue of conjunct government under ONE PRESBYTERY. And
+in difficult cases, or where a single congregation is so divided
+into parties that it cannot act impartially; where the difference
+is between the pastor and the people, a superior court is necessary
+to obtain material justice.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for an ecclesiastical
+synod?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. In Acts xv. and xvi., where we have a cause
+referred; the proper members of a synod convened; the ordinary and
+equal power exercised by all those members; the ordinary method of
+procedure in such courts; and the judicial decrees given by the
+synod; together with the effect which their judgment, in this
+matter, had upon the churches.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What was the cause referred to this synod?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. False doctrine propagated by some Judaizing
+teachers, who had gone down from Jerusalem to Antioch, and
+maintained that circumcision and the observance of other branches
+of the ceremonial law continued necessary for salvation, whereby
+they subverted some, and troubled other members of the churches
+there. After much unsuccessful disputing, Paul, Barnabas, and
+others were delegated to go up to Jerusalem to the apostles and
+elders about this matter.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Who were the proper members of the synod convened
+here?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. The apostles and elders at Jerusalem; Paul,
+Barnabas, and others, from Antioch; and other commissioners from
+the troubled churches to whom the decrees were sent.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Are not the brethren, the church, the whole
+church, mentioned here as well as the apostles and elders?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. But none of these expressions can mean, that all the
+members of the church of Jerusalem either were present or judged in
+that synod; for women, real members of the church, of the whole
+church, are expressly forbid to speak in the church, 1 Cor. xiv.
+34. Church sometimes signifies only a small part of the church,
+either as delegates or commissioners, and in this sense it is used
+in verse 3, where the commissioners from Antioch are said to be
+brought on their way by the <i>church</i>; and in chap. xviii. 22,
+it is said that Paul saluted the <i>church</i> at Jerusalem. Now,
+it is not credible that all the Christian professors at Antioch
+would attend their commissioners a part of the way to Jerusalem; or
+that Paul saluted the many ten thousand Christians at Jerusalem,
+Acts xxi. 20. And the <i>whole church</i> does not necessarily mean
+the whole individual members of the church, more than the <i>whole
+world</i> mentioned, 1 John ii. 2, means every individual in the
+world. If any, to support a favorite opinion, will still insist
+that the whole members of the church actually met and judged of
+this affair equally with the apostles and elders, they may inform
+us where they obtained a proper place for so many judges to reason
+and determine with distinctness or order. That the brethren who
+joined in judgment with the apostles and elders were not private
+persons, but rather delegates from the troubled churches around,
+appears from Judas and Silas, two of them being preachers, v.
+22.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear that the power of all the
+members was ordinary and equal?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. As every member, inspired or not, acted equally in
+the whole business laid before them. Paul and Barnabas were
+delegated by the church of Antioch: and the elders, who convened,
+had the same power as the apostles. To the elders, teaching or
+ruling, as well as to the apostles, was the matter referred: both
+met to consider of it: both were equally concerned in the decision,
+saying, <i>It seemed good to the Holy Ghost and to us</i>. Elders,
+as well as apostles, imposed the necessary things upon the
+churches, and authoritatively determined the decrees. In the name
+of the elders, as well as of the apostles, the letters of the
+meeting, containing their decision, were written to the churches.
+And the only reason why the inspired members put themselves on an
+equality with others was to exhibit a pattern to after ages.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear, that this synod followed the
+ordinary method of procedure in such courts?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. As they examined the cause by much reasoning and
+dispute. In consequence of mature deliberation they determined the
+question, and sent letters, containing their decrees, by proper
+messengers, to the churches concerned. In their disputation they
+reasoned from the oracles of God: on these they founded their
+decision; and hence therein they say, <i>It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost, and to us</i>. And if this had not been to have given a
+pattern to succeeding ages, all this was unnecessary: how absurd
+for inspired men to reason and dispute on the subject, when the
+sentence of one inspired was sufficient for decision!</p>
+
+<p><i>Quest</i>.
+How does it appear that there were judicial decrees given by this
+synod?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. In opposition to the false doctrine taught, they, by
+a judicial decision, plainly declared, that obedience to the
+ceremonies of the law of Moses was no longer necessary: and by a
+decree for promoting decency and good order, they enacted, that to
+avoid offence, the believing Gentiles should abstain from
+fornication, from things strangled, and from blood, verse
+24-29.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What effect had the decision of this synod upon
+the churches?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. They cheerfully submitted to these <i>decrees</i>,
+and were by them conformed in the faith, comforted in heart, and
+increased in number daily, Acts xv. 31, and xvi. 4, 5.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. But might not this be a meeting merely for
+consultation, and their decision a mere advice?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. No: for every word here used imports authority. The
+word translated <i>lay upon</i>, commonly signifies an
+authoritative imposition, Matt. xxiii. 4. The decision is expressly
+called a <i>necessary burden</i>, and <i>decrees ordained</i>,
+which imply power and authority, Acts xv. 16, xvii. 7.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear that inferior courts are
+subordinate to those that are superior; sessions to presbyteries,
+and presbyteries to synods?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. The true light of nature (which is proved, chap,
+iii., to be one of those ways, whereby a thing is of divine right)
+teacheth us, that, if we be injured by an inferior court, we may
+appeal to a higher court for redress, if there be one. As in the
+Jewish church there was evidently a subordination of judicatories,
+so that those injured in the synagogue might appeal to the
+Sanhedrin, Deut. xvii. 8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8, 11; Exod. xviii. 22,
+26; Ps. cxxii. 5: therefore as our dangers, difficulties, and
+necessities are as great as theirs, by reason of false teachers and
+corrupt doctrines, which were foretold should appear in the last
+times, 1 Tim. iv. 1; 2 Pet. ii. 1; we cannot, without dishonor to
+Christ, suppose that he would deprive us of a proper remedy for
+redressing our grievances, which was afforded unto them:&mdash;the
+gradual advance in managing offences prescribed by Christ himself,
+Matt. xviii. 19, as his care for the whole church cannot be less
+than for a single member. If then an inferior judicatory offend or
+injure us, we ought to carry the matter to another that has more
+influence and authority. If the offending judicatory neglect to
+hear this, we ought to tell the offence to the church in the
+highest sense, that redress may be obtained&mdash;the apostle Paul
+declaring, <i>that the spirits of the prophets are subject to the
+prophets</i>. But the right of reference or appeal from an inferior
+to a superior court is most clearly evinced from the case of the
+presbytery of Antioch, respecting circumcision, being referred for
+decision to the synod of Jerusalem, and their readily submitting to
+its determination, Acts xv.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear that no power of authority is
+lodged in the body of the people, the private members of the
+church?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Although every church member has a right to all the
+spiritual privileges purchased with the Saviour's blood, and given
+to the church, as need requires; although he has a right to try the
+spirits, and to prove all things by the word of God; a power to
+choose the church officers who are immediately to rule over him;
+yet the Holy Scriptures allow the exercise of no official power to
+the private members of the church. Not the Christian people, but
+their pastors have power to preach the gospel, Rom. x. 15; and to
+administer the sacraments, those mysteries of God, which are
+connected with preaching, 1 Cor. iv. 1; Matt. xxviii. 19. Not the
+people, but their rulers, are divinely warranted. Timothy was
+ordained, not by the people, but by the presbytery: elders, not by
+the people, but by Paul and Barnabas: and deacons, not by the
+people, but by the apostles, 1 Tim. iv. 14; Acts xiv. 23, and vi.
+3, 6. Not the people, but their rulers are to censure the
+scandalous, and to absolve the penitent, Matt. xviii. 18; 1 Cor. v.
+The Scripture nowhere ascribes to the people any such characters as
+imply authority lodged in them; but the contrary. Instead of being
+styled pastors, they are called the <i>flock</i>, watched over and
+fed; instead of overseers, the family overseen; instead of
+<i>rulers, guides, governors</i>, they are called the <i>body</i>
+governed, the persons subject in the Lord, and they are solemnly
+charged to know, honor, obey, and submit to those that are over
+them.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What is the proper method of dealing with persons
+that fall into scandal?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. If the offence be known only to one or to a few, the
+offender is to be told his fault secretly, with Christian meekness,
+plainness, and love. If he profess his sorrow and resolution to
+amend, the whole matter ought to be carefully concealed; and those
+offended ought to be well pleased that their offending brother is
+gained. If, after one or more secret reproofs, he continue
+impenitent, defending his fault, one or two more Christian
+brethren, grave, judicious, and meek, are to be taken along, and
+the offender to be dealt with by them, and in their presence. If
+now he appear to repent, the several persons concerned in his
+reproof are, with care and in love, to conceal his offence, lest,
+by divulging it, they be reproached as wicked calumniators. If the
+offender contemn one or more such private admonitions or reproofs,
+or if his scandal be of such a nature that it will necessarily
+become public, the affair is to be told to the church court, to
+which he is most immediately subject. And, to bring him to a due
+sense of his fault, he is to be there dealt with in a prudent,
+affectionate, plain, and convincing manner. If this prove a means
+of bringing him to a sense of his offence, the censures of the
+church are to be executed upon him according to the laws of
+Christ's house, and the nature of his crime, and he is to be
+restored to the privileges of the church. But if, after due pains
+taken by the judicatories, he remain obstinate, he is then to be
+cast out of the church, and held as a heathen man and publican,
+Matt. xviii. 15 to 18.</p>
+<center>THE END.</center>
+<hr>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<a name="H_FOOT2"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>FOOTNOTES:</h2>
+<a name="note-117"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>117</u> [ The substance of this Number is
+extracted from Ford's Gospel Church, printed 1675.]</p>
+<a name="note-118"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>118</u> [ John xvi. 8, 9; 2 Cor. v. 5; Eph. ii.
+1, 5.]</p>
+<a name="note-119"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>119</u> [ Col. ii. 6; 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.]</p>
+<a name="note-120"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>120</u> [ Col. i. 12.]</p>
+<a name="note-121"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>121</u> [ 1 Pet. ii. 5.]</p>
+<a name="note-122"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>122</u> [ From Brown's Letters.]</p>
+<a name="note-123"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>123</u> [ Extracted from the Christian Magazine
+for Sept. 1797&mdash;a periodical publication well worth the
+perusal of the friends of evangelical doctrine.]</p>
+<a name="note-124"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>124</u> [ From Brown's Letters.]</p>
+<a name="note-125"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>125</u> [ This number is a summary of Dr. Owen's
+arguments in favor of the divine right of the ruling elder, with an
+abstract of the duties which he ought to perform. Although the
+Doctor was a professed Independent, yet he was entirely different,
+both in doctrine and church government, from any in Scotland that
+bear that name, as all who are acquainted with his works will
+easily observe. The writer of his life asserts that he heard him
+say, "He could readily join with presbytery as it was exercised in
+Scotland." And indeed it appears very probable that the difference
+between the consultative synod which he allows, and the
+authoritative synod contended for by true Presbyterians, is not so
+far different as many apprehend, because the decisions of either
+bind the conscience only as they are agreeable to the Holy Ghost
+speaking in the Scriptures.]</p>
+<div style="height: 6em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+
+<div>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 13941 ***</div>
+</body>
+</html>
+
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c4f0a0e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #13941 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/13941)
diff --git a/old/13941-8.txt b/old/13941-8.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..7617520
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/13941-8.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,12707 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Divine Right of Church Government
+by Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Divine Right of Church Government
+
+Author: Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+Release Date: November 3, 2004 [EBook #13941]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Jordan Dohms and the PG Online Distributed Proofreading Team.
+
+
+
+
+THE
+
+DIVINE RIGHT
+
+OF
+
+CHURCH GOVERNMENT:
+
+WHEREIN IT IS PROVED
+
+THAT THE PRESBYTERIAN GOVERNMENT, BY PREACHING AND RULING ELDERS, IN
+SESSIONAL, PRESBYTERIAL, AND SYNODICAL ASSEMBLIES, MAY LAY THE ONLY
+LAWFUL CLAIM TO A DIVINE RIGHT, ACCORDING TO THE HOLY SCRIPTURES.
+
+A NEW EDITION, CORRECTED AND AMENDED.
+
+ * * * * *
+BY SUNDRY MINISTERS OF CHRIST WITHIN THE
+CITY OF LONDON.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+TO WHICH IS ADDED
+
+AN APPENDIX,
+
+CONTAINING
+
+EXTRACTS FROM SOME OF THE BEST AUTHORS WHO HAVE WRITTEN ON CHURCH
+GOVERNMENT,
+
+CONCERNING THE SCRIPTURAL QUALIFICATIONS AND DUTIES OF CHURCH MEMBERS;
+THE SOLE RIGHT OF GOSPEL MINISTERS TO PREACH THE GOSPEL; THE PEOPLE'S
+DIVINE RIGHT TO CHOOSE THEIR OWN PASTORS;
+
+TOGETHER WITH
+
+AN ABSTRACT OF THE ARGUMENTS OF THE GREAT DR. OWEN (THOUGH A PROFESSED
+INDEPENDENT) IN FAVOUR OF THE DIVINE RIGHT OF THE OFFICE OF THE RULING
+ELDER.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+NEW YORK: R. MARTIN & CO., 26 JOHN-STREET.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+M.DCCC.XLIV.
+
+
+
+
+THE EDITOR TO THE READER.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+After what the authors of the following Treatise have said in their
+preface, the Editor judges it unnecessary for him to detain the reader
+long with any observations of his upon the subject. He, however, could
+sincerely wish that the friends of Christ would pay that attention to
+the government and discipline of his Church which it justly deserves.
+Although this subject should not be placed among the things essential to
+the being of a Christian; yet if it be found among the things that
+Christ has commanded, it is at our peril if we continue wilfully
+ignorant of, or despise it. He has expressly declared, that he who
+breaks one of the _least_ of his commandments, and teacheth men to do
+so, shall be called least in the kingdom of heaven. It is an opinion too
+common, that if we believe the _essentials_ of religion, there is no
+occasion for so much preciseness about the forms of church government,
+which are only _circumstantials_, as there will be no inquiry made about
+these at the tribunal of Christ. But whatever relative importance the
+things of religion may have, when compared with one another, we ought to
+reckon nothing which God hath appointed, nothing which Jesus hath
+ratified with his blood, nothing which the Holy Spirit hath indited, so
+_circumstantial_, as to be unworthy of our serious regard. It is at
+least very rash, if not presumptuous, to say, that nothing about the
+circumstantials of religion will be inquired into at the tribunal of
+Christ. God has expressly said, that every work, good or evil, every
+idle word, and every deed done in the body, shall be brought into
+judgment; and false worshippers will, perhaps, find that their form of
+worship consisted in something worse than idle words, or sinful words
+either, even in sinful deeds, for which they will be accountable at the
+judgment. As Christ laid down his life for his people, has instructed
+them, and has set a hedge about all that they have, it would be most
+ungrateful to requite him with pouring the highest contempt on his
+kingly honor and authority; and when his worship is polluted, his truth
+perverted, and the walls of his New Testament Zion broken down, to care
+for none of those things. Government and discipline are the hedge of his
+garden, the Church; and how will what men call the essentials of
+religion remain in their glory, when this is broken down, the present
+state of affairs can sufficiently attest, when the most damnable errors
+are propagated with impunity.
+
+In our times the enemies of the scriptural order of the house of God are
+very numerous and very active, exerting all their power to break down
+the carved work of God's sanctuary. The present spirit for novelty and
+innovation, together with the rage for infidelity so prevalent, strongly
+favors the opposition made to every thing which has a tendency to bind
+men closely to God, to his truths, to the purity of his worship and
+ordinances, or to one another by a holy profession. The design,
+therefore, of republishing this Treatise is to assist Presbyterians of
+all denominations in the understanding of those passages of Scripture
+upon which their wall is built, that they be not led aside by the
+cunning speeches of false teachers, whereby they deceive and draw aside
+the hearts of the simple.
+
+This work was first published at London, at the time when the
+controversy between the Presbyterians and ancient Independents ran very
+high, and every intelligent and unprejudiced reader will see, that the
+Holy Scriptures have been carefully perused, accurately compared, wisely
+collected, and judiciously explained, in order to evince that the
+Presbyterian government has the only lawful claim to a divine right, and
+is the only form appointed by Christ in his Church. It is, therefore, to
+be wished, that all his people would endeavor, in the strength of Divine
+grace, to observe the laws of his house, and to walk in all his
+ordinances and commandments blameless.
+
+Considerable pains have been taken to make this edition more easily
+understood by common readers than the former, and yet several difficult
+and hard words have passed unnoticed. The Latin quotations from the
+Fathers have been omitted, because they contain nothing materially
+different from what is in the body of the work, and modern Independents
+pay little regard to any human authorities but their own. It was
+proposed to have added a few extracts from Messrs. Rutherford and
+Gillespie, but upon looking into their works nothing of consequence was
+observed, that tended to cast any new light upon the subject. It is
+hoped, however, that the Appendix is filled up with extracts from other
+authors upon subjects of considerable importance, and very necessary for
+these times, concerning the scriptural qualifications and duties of
+church members; the divine right of the gospel ministry; the people's
+divine right to choose their own pastors; with an abstract of Dr. Owen's
+arguments in favor of the divine right of the ruling elder: and as there
+are many serious Christians who have not a capacity to take up and
+retain a long chain of reasoning, a summary of the whole Treatise is
+given by way of question and answer as a conclusion.
+
+The Editor is not to be understood as approving of, or vindicating every
+single sentiment, or mode of expression, used in this Treatise: at the
+same time, next to the Holy Scriptures, he recommends it as one of the
+best defences of presbytery which he has seen.
+
+That it may be blessed of God for informing the ignorant, settling the
+wavering, and establishing the believers of _the present Truth_, is the
+earnest desire of,
+
+Christian reader,
+
+Your humble servant in the Gospel,
+
+T.H.
+
+_Paisley, 28th February, 1799._
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE
+
+TO THE PIOUS AND JUDICIOUS READER.
+
+
+CHRISTIAN READER:
+
+Thou hast in the ensuing treatise, 1st, a brief delineation of the
+nature of a divine right, wherein it consists, and how many ways a thing
+may be accounted of divine right, according to the Scriptures; as also,
+2d, a plain and familiar description of that church government which
+seems to have the clearest divine right for it, and (of all other
+contended for) to be the most consonant and agreeable to the word of
+Christ; which description (comprehending in itself the whole frame and
+system of the government) is in the several branches thereof explained
+and confirmed by testimonies or arguments from Scripture; more briefly,
+in particulars which are easily granted; more largely, in particulars
+which are commonly controverted; yet as perspicuously and concisely in
+both as the nature of this unusual and comprehensive subject insisted
+upon would permit. Things are handled rather by way of positive
+assertion, than of polemical dissertation, (which too commonly
+degenerates into verbal strifes, 1 Tim. vi. 3, 4; 2 Tim. ii. 23; and
+vain-jangling, 1 Tim. i. 6,) and where any dissenting opinions or
+objections are refuted, we hope it is with that sobriety, meekness, and
+moderation of spirit, that any unprejudiced judgment may perceive, that
+we had rather gain than grieve those who dissent from us; that we
+endeavor rather to heal up than to tear open the rent; and that we
+contend more for truth than for victory.
+
+To the publication hereof we have been inclinable (after much
+importunity) principally upon deliberate and serious consideration of,
+1st, the necessity of a treatise of this kind; 2d, the advantage likely
+to accrue thereupon; and, 3d, the seasonable opportunity of sending it
+abroad at such a time as this is.
+
+I. The necessity of a treatise of this nature, is evident and urgent.
+For,
+
+1. We hold ourselves obliged, not only by the common duty of our
+ministerial calling, but also by the special bond of our solemn
+covenant with God, especially in Art. 1, to bend all our best endeavors
+to help forward a reformation of religion according to the word of God,
+which can never be effected without a due establishment of the
+scripture-government and discipline in the Church of God. And to make
+known what this government is from the law and testimony, by preaching
+or writing, comes properly and peculiarly within the sphere of our place
+and vocation.
+
+2. A cloud of darkness and prejudice, in reference to this matter of
+church government, too generally rests upon the judgments and
+apprehensions of men (yea of God's own people) among us, either, 1st,
+through the difficulty or uncommonness of this matter of church
+government, (though ancient and familiar in other reformed churches, yet
+new and strange to us;) or, 2d, through the strange misrepresentations
+that are made hereof, by those that are small friends to the true
+presbyterial government, or that are enemies to all church government
+whatsoever; or, 3d, through the different opinions about church
+government, which are to be found among pious people and ministers: by
+all which the weak and unstable minds of many are cast into a maze of
+many confused thoughts and irresolutions.
+
+3. Though many learned treatises have been published, some whereof have
+positively asserted, others have polemically vindicated divers parts of
+church government, and the divine right thereof, yet hitherto no
+treatise of this nature is extant, positively laying open the nature of
+a divine right, what it is, and a system of that government, which is
+so, and proving both by the Scriptures; without which, how shall the
+judgments and consciences of men be satisfied, that this is that church
+government, according to the word of God, which they have covenanted to
+endeavor to promote, and whereto they are obliged to submit? And since
+it is our lot to travel in an unbeaten path, we, therefore, promise to
+ourselves, from all sober and judicious readers, the greater candor and
+ingenuity in their measuring of our steps and progress herein.
+
+II. The advantage which may probably accrue hereupon, we hope shall be
+manifold: For, 1. Who can tell but that some of them, that in some
+things are misled and contrary-minded, may be convinced and regained?
+and it will be no small reward of our labors if but one erring brother
+may be brought back. 2. Some satisfaction may redound to such as are of
+doubtful, unresolved minds, by removing of their doubts and scruples,
+and ripening of their resolutions, to settle more safely in point of
+church government. 3. Those that as yet are unseen in the matter of
+church government, or that want money to buy, or leisure to read many
+books upon this subject, may here have much in a little, and
+competently inform themselves of the whole body of the government. 4.
+Consequently upon the attaining of the former ends, the work of
+reformation will be much facilitated and smoothed, the hearts of the
+people being prepared for the Lord and his ordinances. 5. The present
+attempt (if it reach not to that completeness and satisfactoriness which
+is desired) may yet incite some of our brethren of more acute and
+polished judgments to embark themselves in some further discoveries for
+the public benefit of the Church. 6. But though it should fall out that
+in all the former we should be utterly disappointed, we shall have this
+peace and comfort upon our own spirits, that we have not hid our talent
+in the earth, nor neglected to bear witness to this part of Christ's
+truth, touching the government of his Church, by his kingly power,
+wherein Christ was opposed so much in all ages, Psalm ii. 1, 2, 3; Luke
+xix. 14, 27; Acts iv., and for which Christ did suffer so much in a
+special and immediate manner, as[1] some have observed. For this end
+Christ came into the world, (and for this end we came into the
+ministerial calling,) to bear witness to the truth.
+
+III. Finally, the present opportunity of publishing a treatise on this
+subject doth much incite and encourage us therein. For at this time we
+are beginning, in this province of London, (and we hope the whole
+kingdom will, with all convenient speed, and due caution, second us,) to
+put that covenanted church government into actual execution, which we
+have a long time intended in our deliberate resolutions. So that
+generally we shall be engaged in the government one way or other, either
+as acting in it as the church officers, or as submitting to it as church
+members: now, how shall any truly conscientious person, either act in
+it, or conform and submit unto it with faith, judgment, and alacrity,
+till he be in some competent measure satisfied of the divine right
+thereof?
+
+Will mere prudence, without a divine right, be a sufficient basis to
+erect the whole frame of church government upon, as some conceive?
+Prudentials, according to general rules of Scripture, may be of use in
+circumstantials, but will bare prudentials in substantials also satisfy
+either our God, our covenant, our consciences, or our end in this great
+work of reformation? What conscientious person durst have a hand in
+acting as a ruling elder, did he not apprehend the word of God holds
+forth a divine right for the ruling elder? Who durst have a hand in the
+censures of admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the scandalous and
+obstinate, and of restoring the penitent, were there not a divine right
+hereof revealed in the Scripture, &c. Now, therefore, that ruling
+elders, and the rest of the people, may begin this happy work
+conscientiously, judiciously, cheerfully, in some measure perceiving the
+divine right of the whole government, wherein they engage themselves,
+cleared by Scripture, we hope, by God's blessing, that this small tract
+will afford some seasonable assistance, which will be unto us a very
+acceptable recompense.
+
+Thus far of the nature of this treatise, and the grounds of our
+publishing thereof. In the next place, a few doubts or scruples touching
+church government here asserted, being succinctly resolved, we shall
+preface no further.
+
+_Doubt_ 1. Many scruple, and much question the divine right of the whole
+frame of church government; as, 1. Whether there be any particular
+church government of divine right? 2. What that government is? 3. What
+church officers or members of elderships are of divine right? 4. Whether
+parochial or congregational elderships be of divine right? 5. Whether
+classical presbyteries be of divine right? 6. Whether provincial,
+national, and ecumenical assemblies be of divine right? 7. Whether
+appeals from congregational to classical, provincial, national, and
+ecumenical assemblies, and their power to determine upon such appeals,
+be of divine right? 8. Whether the power of censures in the
+congregational eldership, or any other assembly, be of divine right? 9.
+Whether there be any particular rules in the Scripture directing persons
+or assemblies in the exercise of their power? 10. Whether the civil
+magistrates, or their committees' and commissioners' execution of church
+censures be contrary to that way of government which Christ hath
+appointed in his Church?
+
+_Resol_. To all or most of these doubts some competent satisfaction may
+be had from this treatise ensuing, if seriously considered. For, 1. That
+there is a church government of divine right, now under the New
+Testament, declared in Scripture, is proved, Part I. 2. What that
+government is in particular, is evidenced both by the description of
+church government, and the confirmation of the parts thereof by
+Scripture, Part. II. chap. 1, and so to the end of the book: whereby it
+is cleared that the presbyterial government is that particular
+government which is of divine right, according to the word of God. 3.
+What ordinary church officers, (members of the several elderships,) are
+of divine right, is proved, Part II, chap. 11, sect. 1, viz. pastors and
+teachers, with ruling elders. 4. That parochial or congregational
+elderships, consisting of preaching and ruling elders, are of divine
+right, is manifested, Part II. chap. 12. 5. That classical presbyteries,
+or assemblies, and their power in church government, are of divine
+right, is demonstrated, Part II. chap. 13. 6. That synodical assemblies,
+or councils in general, (consequently provincial, national, or
+ecumenical councils in particular,) and their power in church
+government, are of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap. 14. 7. That
+appeals from congregational elderships, to classical and synodical
+assemblies, from lesser to greater assemblies associated, and power in
+those assemblies to determine authoritatively in such, appeals, are of
+divine right, is proved, Part II. chap. 15. 8. That the power of church
+censures is in Christ's own church officers only as the first subject
+and proper receptacle there of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap.
+11, sect. 2, which officers of Christ have and execute the said power
+respectively, in all the ruling assemblies, congregational, classical,
+or synodical. See section 3, and chap. 12, 13, 14, 15. 9. That the
+Scriptures hold forth, touching church government, not only general, but
+also many particular rules, sufficiently directing both persons and
+assemblies how they should duly put in execution their power of church,
+government. This is made good, Part II. chap. 4; and those that desire
+to know which are these rules in particular, may consult those
+learned[2] centuriators of Magdeburg, who have collected and
+methodically digested, in the very words of the Scripture, a system of
+canons or rules, touching church government, as in the preface to those
+rules they do profess, saying, touching things pertaining to the
+government of the Church, the apostles delivered certain canons, which
+we will add in order, &c., the very heads of which would be too prolix
+to recite. 10. Finally, that neither the supreme civil magistrate, as
+such, nor consequently any commissioner or committees whatsoever,
+devised and erected by his authority, are the proper subject of the
+formal power of church government, nor may lawfully, by any virtue of
+the magistratical office, dispense any ecclesiastical censures or
+ordinances: but that such undertakings are inconsistent with that way of
+government which Christ hath appointed in his Church, is evidenced, Part
+II. chap. 9, well compared with chap. 11.
+
+_Doubt_ 2. But this presbyterial government is likely to be an arbitrary
+and tyrannical government, forasmuch as the presbyters of the assembly
+of divines and others (who, Diotrephes-like, generally affect
+domineering) have desired an unlimited power, according to their own
+judgments and prudence, in excommunicating men from the ordinances in
+cases of scandal.
+
+_Resol_. A heinous charge, could it be proved against the presbyterial
+government. Now for wiping off this black aspersion, consider two
+things, viz: I. The imputation itself, which is unjust and groundless;
+II. The pretended ground hereof, which is false or frivolous.
+
+I. The imputation itself is, that the presbyterial government is likely
+to be an arbitrary and tyrannical government. _Ans_. How unjust this
+aspersion! I. What likelihood of arbitrary conduct in this government,
+that is, that it should be managed and carried on according to men's
+mere will and pleasure? For, 1. The presbyterial government (truly so
+called) is not in the nature of it any invention of man, but an
+ordinance of Christ; nor in the execution of it to be stated by the will
+of man, but only by the sure word of prophecy, the sacred Scriptures.
+This government allows not of one church officer at all; nor of one
+ruling assembly made up of those officers; nor of one censure or act of
+power to be done by any officer or assembly; nor of one ordinance to be
+managed in the Church of God, but what are grounded upon, and warranted
+by the word of God. This government allows no execution of any part
+thereof, neither in substantials, nor circumstantials, but according to
+the particular, or at least, the general rules of Scripture
+respectively. And can that be arbitrary, which is not at all according
+to man's will, but only according to Christ's rule, limiting and
+ordering man's will? Or is not the Scripture a better and safer
+provision against all arbitrary government in the Church, than all the
+ordinances, decrees, statutes, or whatsoever municipal laws in the world
+of man's devising, can be against all arbitrary government in the
+commonwealth? Let not men put out their own eyes, though others would
+cast a mist before them. 2. Who can justly challenge the reformed
+presbyterial churches for arbitrary proceedings in matters of church
+government, practised in some of them for above these fourscore years?
+Or where are their accusers? 3. Why should the presbyterial
+government, to be erected in England, be prejudged as arbitrary, before
+the government be put in execution? When arbitrary conduct appears, let
+the adversaries complain. 4. If any arbitrary conduct hath been
+discovered in any reformed church, or shall fall out in ours, it is or
+shall be more justly reputed the infirmity and fault of the governors,
+than of the government itself.
+
+II. What probability or possibility of tyranny in the presbyterial
+government? For, 1. Who should tyrannize, what persons, what ruling
+assemblies? Not the ministers; for, hitherto they have given no just
+cause of any suspicion, since this government was in hand: and they are
+counterpoised in all assemblies with a plurality of ruling elders, it
+being already studiously[3] provided that there be always two ruling
+elders to one minister: if there be still two to one, how should they
+tyrannize if they would? Neither ministers nor ruling elders are likely
+to tyrannize, if due care be taken by them, whom it doth concern, to
+elect, place, and appoint, conscientious, prudent, and gracious
+ministers and ruling elders over all congregations. Nor yet the ruling
+assemblies, lesser or greater; for in the presbyterial government all
+lesser ruling assemblies (though now at first, perhaps, some of them
+consisting of more weak and less experienced members) are subordinate to
+the greater authoritatively; and persons aggrieved by any
+mal-administrations have liberty to appeal from inferior to superior:
+and the very national assembly itself, though not properly subordinate,
+yet is it to be responsible to the supreme political magistracy in all
+their proceedings so far as subjects and members of the commonwealth.
+
+III. How can they tyrannize over any? Or in what respects? Not over
+their estates: for they claim no secular power at all over men's
+estates, by fines, penalties, forfeitures, or confiscations. Not over
+their bodies, for they inflict no corporal punishment, by banishment,
+imprisonment, branding, slitting, cropping, striking, whipping,
+dismembering, or killing. Not over their souls; for, them they desire by
+this government to gain, Matth. xviii. 15; to edify, 2 Cor. x. 8, and
+xiii. 10; and to save, 1 Cor. v. 5. Only this government ought to be
+impartial and severe against sin, that the flesh may be destroyed, 1
+Cor. v. 5. It is only destructive to corruption, which is deadly and
+destructive to the soul. Thus the imputation itself of arbitrary conduct
+and tyranny to the presbyterial government is unjust and groundless.
+
+II. The pretended ground of this aspersion is false and frivolous. The
+presbyters of the Assembly of Divines, and others (_Diotrephes_-like,
+affecting pre-eminence) have desired an unlimited power, according to
+their own prudence and judgment, in keeping men from the ordinances in
+cases of scandal not enumerated. _Ans_. 1. The presbyters of the
+Assembly and others, are so far from the domineering humor of
+Diotrephes, that they could gladly and heartily have quitted all
+intermeddling in church government, if Jesus Christ had not by office
+engaged them thereto; only to have dispensed the word and sacraments
+would have procured them less hatred, and more case. 2. They desired
+liberty to keep from the ordinances, not only persons guilty of the
+scandals enumerated, but of all such like scandals, (and to judge which
+are those scandals, not according to their minds unlimitedly, but
+according to the mind of Christ in his word, more sure than all
+ordinances or acts of Parliament in the world.) And was this so hideous
+a desire? This liberty was desired, not for themselves, but for
+well-constituted elderships. As great power was granted by the very
+service-book to every single curate; (see the Rubric before the
+communion.) A perfect enumeration and description of scandals can be
+made in no book but in the Scriptures; and when all is done, must we not
+refer thither? All scandals are punishable, as well as any, and to
+inflict penalties on some, and not on others as bad or worse, is
+inexcusable partiality. Why should not presbyteries duly constituted,
+especially the greater, be accounted, at least, as faithful,
+intelligent, prudent, and every way as competent judges of what is
+scandal, and what not, according to the Scriptures, and that without
+arbitrary conduct and tyranny, as any civil court, committees, or
+commissioners whatsoever? Ruling church assemblies are intrusted with
+the whole government in the church, consequently with this, and every
+part. The best reformed churches allow to their presbyteries power to
+keep from the ordinances scandalous persons, not only for scandals
+enumerated, but for scandals of like nature not enumerated, with some
+general clause or other, as may appear in eight several churches,
+according to the allegations here in the foot-note;[4] and, therefore,
+no new thing is desired, but what is commonly practised in the reformed
+churches, whom we should imitate so far as they lead us on towards
+purity and perfection.
+
+_Doubt_ 3. But the independent government seems to be a far more
+excellent way, and it is embraced by many godly and precious people and
+ministers.
+
+_Ans_. 1. What true excellency is there at all in the whole independent
+government, save only in those particulars wherein it agrees with the
+presbyterial government; and only so far as it is presbyterial?
+Therefore, the presbyterial government is equally, yea, primarily and
+principally excellent. Wherein is the excellency of the independent way
+of government? 1st. Have they only those officers which Christ himself
+hath appointed, pastors and teachers, ruling elders and deacons? So the
+Presbyterians. 2d. Have they those spiritual censures, of admonishing,
+excommunicating, and receiving again into communion, which Christ
+ordained in his Church, for guarding his ordinances, and well guiding of
+the flock? So the Presbyterians. 3d. Have they congregational
+presbyteries duly elected, and constituted for the exercise of all acts
+of government, proper and necessary for their respective congregations?
+So the Presbyterians. 4th. Have they liberty of electing their own[5]
+officers, pastors, elders, and deacons? So the Presbyterians. 5th. Have
+they power to keep the whole lump of the Church from being leavened, and
+purely to preserve the ordinances of Christ, from pollution and
+profanation, &c.? So the Presbyterians, &c. So that whereinsoever the
+independent government is truly excellent, the presbyterial government
+stands in a full equipage and equality of excellence.
+
+II. What one true excellence is there in the whole independent
+government in any one point, wherein it really differs from the
+presbyterial government? Take for instance a few points of difference.
+
+_In the independent government._
+
+ No other visible Church of Christ is acknowledged, but only a single
+ congregational meeting in one place to partake of all ordinances.
+
+ The matter of their visible Church must be to their utmost judgment
+ of discerning such as have true grace, real saints.
+
+ Their churches are gathered out of other true visible churches of
+ Christ, without any leave or consent of pastor or flock; yea,
+ against their wills, receiving such as tender themselves, yea, too
+ often by themselves or others, directly or indirectly seducing
+ disciples after them.
+
+ Preaching elders are only elected, not ordained.
+
+ Ruling elders also preach.
+
+ The subject of church government is the community of the faithful.
+
+ The church officers act immediately as the servants of the church,
+ and deputed thereby.
+
+ All censures and acts of government are dispensed in single
+ congregations ultimately, independently, without all liberty of
+ appeal from them to any superior church assembly; so the parties
+ grieved are left without remedy.
+
+ There are acknowledged no authoritative classes or synods, in
+ common, great, difficult cases, and in matters of appeals, but only
+ suasive and consultative; and in case advice be not followed, they
+ proceed only to a non-communion.
+
+
+_In the presbyterial government._
+
+ One general visible Church of Christ on earth is acknowledged, and
+ all particular churches; and single congregations are but as similar
+ parts of that whole.
+
+ The matter of the Church invisible are only true believers, but of
+ the Church visible persons professing true faith in Christ, and
+ obedience to him according to the rules of the Gospel.
+
+ Parochial churches are received as true visible churches of Christ,
+ and most convenient for mutual edification. Gathering churches out
+ of churches, hath no footsteps in Scripture; is contrary to
+ apostolical practice; is the scattering of churches, the daughter of
+ schism, the mother of confusion, but the stepmother to edification.
+
+ Preaching elders are both elected and ordained.
+
+ Ruling elders only rule, preach not, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+
+ The subject of church government is only Christ's own church
+ officers.
+
+ The church governors act immediately as the servants of Christ, and
+ as appointed by him.
+
+ All censures and acts of government are dispensed in congregational
+ presbyteries subordinately, dependently, with liberty of appeal in
+ all cases to presbyterial or synodal assemblies; where parties
+ grieved have sufficient remedy.
+
+ There are acknowledged, and with happy success used, not only
+ suasive and consultative; but also authoritative classes and synods,
+ in cases of great importance, difficulty, common concernment, or
+ appeals; which have power to dispense all church censures, as need
+ shall require.
+
+Let these and such like particulars in the independent way, differing
+from the presbyterial, be duly pondered, and then let the impartial and
+indifferent reader judge, whether they be not the deformities, at least
+the infirmities of that way.
+
+III. How many true excellences are there in the way of the presbyterial
+government, wherein it utterly surpasses the independent government!
+Read but the particulars of the former parallel in the presbyterial
+government, and then consider how far this transcends, yea, how the
+independent government is indeed no government at all, to the
+presbyterial government; wherein is to be found such ample provision,
+and that according to the word of God, for comely order against
+confusion; for peace and unity of the Church against schism and
+division; for truth of the faith against all error and heresy; for piety
+and unblamableness against all impiety and scandal of conversation; for
+equity and right against all mal-administrations, whether ignorant,
+arbitrary, or tyrannical; for the honor and purity of all Christ's
+ordinances against all contempt, pollution, and profanation; for
+comfort, quickening, and encouragement of the saints in all the ways of
+Christ; and consequently for the honor of God and our Lord Jesus Christ
+in all the mysterious services of his spiritual sanctuary: all which
+rich advantages, how impossible is it they should ever be found in the
+independent government so long as it continues independent? And what
+though some pious minister and people embrace the independent way! This
+dazzles not the eyes of the intelligent, but of the infirm; we are to be
+regulated by Scripture warrant, not by human examples. The best of
+saints have failed in the ecclesiastical affairs; what a sharp
+contention was there between Paul and Barnabas, Acts xv. 39, &c.; what a
+dangerous dissimulation was there in Peter, the Jews, and Barnabas! Gal.
+ii. 11, 12, 13, &c.; and, therefore, it is not safe, prudent, or
+conscientious, to imitate all the examples of the best, and yet how few
+are those that have engaged themselves in the independent way, in
+comparison to the multitude of precious ministers and people, inferior
+to them neither in parts, learning, piety, nor any other spiritual gift,
+who are for the presbyterial way of church government! Notwithstanding,
+let all the true Israel of God constantly follow, not the doubtful
+practices of unglorified saints, but the written pleasure of the most
+glorious King of saints; and as many as walk according to this rule,
+peace shall be on them, and upon the Israel of God.
+
+
+
+
+THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH GOVERNMENT.
+
+PART I.
+
+OF THE NATURE OF A DIVINE RIGHT: AND HOW MANY WAYS A THING MAY BE OF
+DIVINE RIGHT.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I.
+
+_That there is a Government in the Church of_ DIVINE RIGHT _now under
+the New Testament._
+
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath _the government_ (both of the Church, and
+of all things for the Church) laid _upon his shoulder_, Isa. ix. 6, and
+to that end hath _all power in heaven and earth given to him_, Matth.
+xxviii. 18, John v. 22, Ephes. i. 22. But lapsed man (being full of
+pride, Psal. x. 2, 4, and enmity against the law of God, Rom. viii. 7)
+is most impatient of all government of God and of Christ, Ps. ii. 1, 2,
+3, with Luke xix. 14, 27; whence it comes to pass, that the _governing_
+and _kingly power_ of Christ hath been opposed in all ages, and
+especially in this of ours, by quarrelsome queries, wrangling disputes,
+plausible pretences, subtle policies, strong self-interests, and mere
+violent wilfulness of many in England, even after they are brought under
+the _oath of God to reform church government according to the word of
+God_. Yet it will be easily granted _that there should be a government
+in the Church of God_, otherwise the Church would become a mere _Babel_
+and _chaos_ of confusion, and be in a far worse condition than all human
+societies in the whole world: and _that some one church government is
+much to be preferred before another, yea, before all other_; as being
+most desirable in itself, and most suitable to this state; otherwise,
+why is the _Prelatical_ government rejected, that another and a better
+may be erected instead thereof? But the pinch lies in this, _Whether
+there be any government in the Church visible of divine right?_ And, if
+so, _which of those church governments_ (which lay claim to a divine
+right for their foundation) _may be most clearly evinced by the
+Scriptures to be of_ divine right _indeed?_ If the former be
+convincingly affirmed, the fancy of the _Erastians_ and _semi-Erastians_
+of these things will vanish, that deny all government to the Church
+distinct from that of the civil magistrate. If the latter be solidly
+proved by Scripture, it will appear, whether the _monarchical
+government_ of the pope and prelates; or the _mere democratical
+government_ of all the people in an equal level of authority, as among
+the Brownists; or the _mixed democratical government_ of both elders and
+people within their own single congregation only, without all
+subordination of Assemblies, and benefit of appeals, as among the
+Independents; or rather the _pure representative government_ of the
+presbytery or church rulers only, chosen by the people, in subordination
+to superior synodical assemblies, and with appeals thereto, as it is
+among the Presbyterians, be that peculiar government which Jesus Christ
+hath left unto his church, by divine right, and in comparison of which
+all others are to be rejected.
+
+To draw things therefore to a clear and speedy issue about the divine
+right of church government, let this general proposition be laid down--
+
+_The Scriptures declare, That there is a government of_ DIVINE RIGHT _in
+the visible Church of Christ now under the New Testament._
+
+This is evident, 1 Cor. xii. 28, _God hath set some in the Church,
+first, Apostles, secondly, Prophets, thirdly, Teachers--Helps,
+Governments;_ in which place these things are plain: 1. That here the
+Apostle speaks of the visible Church: for he had formerly spoken of
+visible gifts and _manifestations of the Spirit given to profit this_
+Church _withal_, ver. 7 to 12. He also compares this Church of God to a
+visible organical body, consisting of many visible members, ver. 12, 13,
+&c. And in this 28th verse he enumerates the visible officers of this
+Church. 2. That here the Apostle speaks of one general visible Church;
+for he saith not _churches_, but _church_, in the singular number, that
+is, of one; besides, he speaks here of the Church in such a latitude as
+to comprehend in itself all gifts of the Spirit, all members, and all
+officers, both extraordinary and ordinary, which cannot be meant of the
+church of Corinth, or any one particular church, but only of that one
+general Church on earth. 3. That this general visible Church here meant,
+is the Church of Christ now under the New Testament, and not under the
+Old Testament; for he mentions here the New Testament officers only,
+ver. 28. 4. That in the visible Church now under the New Testament,
+there is a government settled; for besides _Apostles, Prophets_, and
+_Teachers_, here is mention of another sort of officer distinct from
+them all, called, in the abstract, _Governments_, a metaphor from
+pilots, mariners, or shipmasters, who by their helm, card, or compass,
+cables, and other tacklings, guide, and order, turn and twine the ship
+as necessity shall require; so these officers called _Governments_, have
+a power of governing and steering the spiritual vessel of the Church;
+thus, Beza on this place, says he declares the order of Presbyters, _who
+are keepers of discipline and church polity_. For how improperly should
+these, or any officers be styled _Governments in the Church_, if they
+had not a power of government in the Church settled upon them? Nor can
+this be interpreted of the civil magistrate; for, when the Apostle wrote
+this, the Church had her government, when yet she had no civil
+magistrate to protect her; and when did God ever take this power from
+the Church and settle it upon the civil magistrate? Besides, all the
+other officers here enumerated are purely ecclesiastical officers; how
+groundless then and inconsistent is it under this name of _Governments_
+to introduce a foreign power, viz. the political magistrate, into the
+list and roll of mere church officers? Finally, the civil magistrate, as
+a magistrate, is not so much as a member of the visible Church, (for
+then all Pagan magistrates should be members of the Church,) much less a
+governor in the Church of Christ. 5. That this government settled in the
+Church is of divine right; for, of those _Governments_, as well as of
+_Apostles, Prophets_, and _Teachers_, it is said, _God hath set_ them
+_in the Church. God hath set_ them, _hath put, set_--Tremellius out of
+the Syriac. Hath _constituted, ordained_--Beza out of the Greek. Now, if
+they be set in the Church and God hath set them there, here is a plain
+divine right for government in the Church.
+
+Add hereto, 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority, which the Lord hath given to
+us for the edification, and not for the destruction of you." Here are
+mentioned--1. Church power or authority for government in the Church. 2.
+The end of this power--positively, for the edification; negatively, not
+for the destruction of the Church. 3. The Author or Fountain of this
+authority--the Lord Christ hath given it, dispensed it; there is the
+divine right. 4. The proper subjects intrusted with this authority, viz:
+the church guides, our authority, which he hath given to us. They are
+the receptacle of power for the Church, and the government thereof.
+Compare also 1 Thes. v. 12, Matth. xvi. 19, 20, with xviii. 11, and John
+xx. 21, 22, 23. In which and divers like places the divine right of
+church government is apparently vouched by the Scripture, as will
+hereafter more fully appear; but this may suffice in general for the
+confirmation of this general proposition.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II.
+
+_Of the Nature of a_ DIVINE RIGHT _in general._
+
+
+Now touching this divine right of church government, two things are yet
+more particularly to be opened and proved, for the more satisfactory
+clearing thereof unto sober minds, to unprejudiced and unpre-engaged
+judgments, viz:--1. What the nature of a divine right is, and how many
+ways a thing may be said to be of divine right, and that by warrant of
+Scripture. 2. What the nature of the government of the Church under the
+New Testament is, which is vouched by the Scripture to be of divine
+right.
+
+For the first--viz. What the nature of a divine right is--consider both
+what a divine right is in general, and how many ways a thing may be said
+by Scripture warrant to be of divine right in particular.
+
+_Right_ is that which is most proper, just, or equal; or that which is
+prescribed or commanded by some statute law, and is just to be received
+in virtue of said law.
+
+_Divine_ sometimes points out a divine warrant or authority from God,
+engraven or enstamped upon any thing, whereby it is exalted above all
+human or created authority and power. And thus, all Scripture is styled
+divinely breathed or inspired of God. Hence is the divine authority of
+Scripture asserted, 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17; and in this sense divine right
+is here spoken of, in reference to church government, as it signifies a
+divine warrant and authority from God himself, engraven upon that church
+government and discipline, (hereafter to be handled,) and revealed to us
+in his holy Scriptures, the infallible and perfect oracles. So that
+divine right, according to this interpretation of the terms, is that
+which is either just, meet, and equal; or commanded and enjoined by any
+divine warrant or authority. And generally, a thing may be said to be of
+divine right, which is any way divinely just, equal, &c.; or divinely
+commanded by any law of God, or by that which is equivalent to a divine
+law. And whatsoever matters in church government can be proved by
+Scripture to have this stamp of divine warrant and authority set upon
+them, they may properly be said to be of divine right, and that by the
+will and appointment of Jesus Christ, to whom God hath delegated all
+power and authority for the government of his Church, Matth. xxviii. 18,
+19, 20, Isa. ix. 6, John v. 22, Eph. i. 22. In this sense, if church
+government, or any part of it, be found to be of divine right, then
+consequently--1. It is above all mere human power and created authority
+in the world whatsoever, and that supereminently. A divine
+right is the highest and best tenure whereby the Church can hold of
+Christ any doctrine, worship, or government; only God can stamp such a
+divine right upon any of these things, whereby conscience shall be
+obliged. All human inventions herein, whether devised of our own hearts,
+or derived as traditions from others, are incompatible and inconsistent
+herewith; vain in themselves, and to all that use them, and condemned of
+God. See 1 Kings xii. 32, 33, Isa. xxix. 4, Matth. xv. 6, 7, 8, 9. 2. It
+is beyond all just, human, or created power, to abolish or oppose the
+same, or the due execution thereof in the Church of Christ; for what is
+of divine right, is held of God, and not of man; and to oppose that,
+were to fight against God. The supreme magistrates in such cases should
+be nurse-fathers, Isa. xlix. 23, not step-fathers to the Church; their
+power being cumulative and perfective, not privative and destructive
+unto her; for she both had and exercised a power in church government,
+long before there was any Christian magistrate in the world; and it
+cannot be proved that ever Christ took away that power from his Church,
+or translated it to the political magistrate, when he became Christian.
+3. It is so obligatory upon all churches in the whole Christian world,
+that they ought uniformly to submit themselves unto it; for a divine
+right is equally obligatory on one church as well as on another. And it
+is so obligatory on all persons, states, and degrees, that none ought to
+be exempted from that church government which is of divine right, nor to
+be _tolerated_ in another church government, which is but of human
+invention; nor ought any Christian to seek after, or content himself
+with any such exemption or _toleration_; for in so doing, the inventions
+of men should be preferred before the ordinances of God; our own wisdom,
+will, and authority, before the wisdom, will, and authority of Christ:
+and we should in effect say, _We will not have this man to reign over
+us_, Luke xix. 27. _Let us break their bands asunder, and cast their
+cords away from us_, Psalm ii. 3.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III.
+
+_Of the Nature of a_ DIVINE RIGHT _in particular. How many ways a thing
+may be of_ DIVINE RIGHT. _And first, of a_ DIVINE RIGHT _by the true
+light of nature._
+
+
+Thus we see in general what a divine right is: now in particular let us
+come to consider how many ways a thing may be said to be of divine right
+by scripture-warrant, keeping still our eye upon this subject of church
+government, at which all particulars are to be levelled for the clearing
+of it.
+
+A thing may be said to be of divine right, or (which is the same for
+substance) of divine institution, divers ways. 1. _By the true light of
+nature._ 2. _By obligatory scripture examples._ 3. _By divine
+approbation._ 4. _By divine acts._ 5. _By divine precepts or mandates._
+All may be reduced to these five heads, ascending by degrees from the
+lowest to the highest divine right.
+
+I. _By light of nature._ That which is evident by, and consonant to the
+true light of nature, or natural reason, is to be accounted of divine
+right in matters of religion. Hence two things are to be made out by
+Scripture. 1. What is meant by the true light of nature. 2. How it may
+be proved, that what things in religion are evident by, or consonant to
+this true light of nature, are of divine right.
+
+1. For the first, What is meant by the true light of nature, or natural
+reason? Thus conceive. The light of nature may be considered two ways.
+1. As it was in man before the fall, and so it was that image and
+similitude of God, in which man was at first created, Gen. i. 26, 27, or
+at least part of that image; which image of God, and light of nature,
+was con-created with man, and was perfect: viz. so perfect as the sphere
+of humanity and state of innocency did require; there was no sinful
+darkness, crookedness, or imperfection in it; and whatsoever was evident
+by, or consonant to this pure and perfect light of nature, in respect
+either of theory or practice, was doubtless of divine right, because
+correspondent to that divine law of God's image naturally engraved in
+Adam's heart. But man being lapsed, this will not be now our question,
+as it is not our case. 2. As it is now in man after the fall. The light
+of nature and image of God in man is not totally abolished and utterly
+razed by the fall; there remain still some relics and fragments thereof,
+some glimmerings, dawnings, and common principles of light, both
+touching piety to God, equity to man, and sobriety to a man's self, &c.,
+as is evident by comparing these places, Psal. xix. 1, 2, &c., Acts
+xiv. 17, and xvii. 27, 28; Rom. i. 18-21, and ii. 12, 14, 15; 2 Cor. v.
+1: in which places it is plain, 1. That the book of the creature is able
+(without the scriptures, or divine revelations) to make known to man
+much of God, his invisible Godhead and attributes, Psalm xix. 1, 2, &c.;
+Acts xiv. 17, and xvii. 27, 28; yea, so far as to leave them without
+excuse, Rom. i. 18-21. 2. That there remained so much natural light in
+the minds even of the heathens, as to render them capable of instruction
+by the creature in the invisible things of God; yea, and that they
+actually in some measure did know God, and because they walked not up to
+this knowledge, were plagued, Rom. i. 18-21, 24, &c. 3. That the work of
+the law (though not the right ground, manner, and end of that work,
+which is the blessing of the new covenant, Jer. xxxi. 33; Heb. viii. 10)
+was materially written in some measure in their hearts. Partly because
+they did by nature without the law the things contained in the law, so
+being a law to themselves, Rom. ii. 14, 15; partly, because they by
+nature forbore some of those sins which were forbidden in the law, and
+were practised by some that had the law, as 2 Cor. v. 1; and partly,
+because according to the good and bad they did, &c., their conscience
+did accuse or excuse, Rom. ii. 15. Now conscience doth not accuse or
+excuse but according to some rule, principle, or law of God, (which is
+above the conscience,) or at least so supposed to be. And they had no
+law but the imperfect characters thereof in their own hearts, which were
+not quite obliterated by the fall. Now so far as this light of nature
+after the fall, is a true relic of the light of nature before the fall,
+that which is according to this light may be counted of divine right in
+matters of religion, which is the next thing to be proved.
+
+For the second, how it may be proved that what things in religion are
+evident by, or consonant to this true light of nature, are of divine
+right. Thus briefly,
+
+1. Because that knowledge which by the light of nature Gentiles have of
+the invisible things of God, is a beam of divine light, as the apostle,
+speaking of the Gentiles' light of nature, saith, That which may be
+known of God is manifest in them--for God hath showed it to them. For
+the invisible things, &c., Rom. i. 19, 20. God himself is the Fountain
+and Author of the true light of nature; hence some not unfitly call it
+the divine light of nature, not only because it hath God for its object,
+but also God for its principle; now that which is according to God's
+manifestation, must needs be of divine right.
+
+2. Because the Spirit of God and of Christ in the New Testament is
+pleased often to argue from the light of nature in condemning of sin, in
+commending and urging of duty, as in the case of the incestuous
+Corinthian; "It is reported commonly, that there is fornication among
+you, and such fornication as is not so much as named among the
+Gentiles," (who had only the light of nature to guide them,) 1 Cor. v.
+1. In case of the habits of men and women in their public church
+assemblies, that women's heads should be covered, men's uncovered in
+praying or prophesying. "Judge in yourselves, is it comely that a woman
+pray unto God uncovered? Doth not even nature itself teach you, that if
+a man hath long hair, it is a shame to him? but if a woman have long
+hair it is a glory to her," &c., 1 Cor. xi. 13-15. Here the apostle
+appeals plainly to the very light of nature for the regulating and
+directing of their habits in church assemblies; and thus, in case of
+praying or prophesying in the congregation in an unknown tongue, (unless
+some do interpret,) he strongly argues against it from the light of
+nature, 1 Cor. xiv. 7-11, and afterwards urges that women be silent in
+their churches, from the natural uncomeliness of their speaking there,
+for it is a shame for women to speak in the church, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35.
+
+Now, if the Spirit of God condemn things as vicious, and commend things
+as virtuous from the light of nature, is there not divine right in the
+light of nature? May we not say, that which is repugnant to the light of
+nature in matters of religion, is condemned by divine right; and what is
+correspondent to the light of nature, is prescribed by divine right? And
+if not, where is the strength or force of this kind of arguing from the
+light of nature?
+
+Consequently, in the present case of church government, that which is
+agreeable to the true light of nature, must needs be confessed to be of
+divine right. Though the light of nature be but dim, yet it will lend
+some help in this particular: e.g. the light of nature teaches, 1. That
+as every society in the world hath a distinct government of its own
+within itself, without which it could not subsist, so must the Church,
+which is a society, have its own distinct government within itself,
+without which it cannot subsist more than any other society. 2. That in
+all matters of difference the lesser number in every society should give
+way to, and the matters controverted be determined and concluded by the
+major part; else there would never be an end: and why not so in the
+Church? 3. That in every ill administration in inferior societies the
+parties aggrieved should have liberty to appeal from them to superior
+societies, that equity may take place; and why not from inferior to
+superior church assemblies?
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV.
+
+II. _Of a Divine Right by obligatory Scripture Examples._
+
+
+II. By obligatory scripture examples (which God's people are bound to
+follow and imitate) matters of religion become of divine right, and by
+the will and appointment of Jesus Christ, by whose Spirit those examples
+were recorded in Scripture, and propounded for imitation to the saints.
+The light of nature in this case helps something; but the light of
+obligatory scripture examples helps much more, as being more clear,
+distinct, and particular. We say scripture examples; for only these
+examples are held forth to us by an infallible, impartial, divine hand,
+and those scripture examples obligatory, or binding; for there are many
+sorts of scripture examples that oblige not us to imitation of them,
+being written for other uses and purposes.
+
+Great use is to be made of such examples in matters of religion, and
+particularly in matters of church government, for the clearing of the
+divine right thereof; and great opposition is made by some against the
+binding force of examples, especially by men of perverse spirits, (as
+too many of the Erastian party are;) therefore it will be of great
+consequence to unfold and clear this matter of scripture examples, and
+the obliging power thereof, that we may see how far examples are to be a
+law and rule for us by divine right. In general, this proposition seems
+to be unquestionable, that whatsoever matter or act of religion Jesus
+Christ makes known to his Church and people, by or under any binding
+scripture example, that matter or act of religion so made known, is of
+divine right, and by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ: But to
+evince this more satisfactorily, these several particulars are to be
+distinctly made good and manifested: 1. That some scripture examples are
+obligatory and binding on Christians in matters of religion. 2. Which
+are those obligatory scripture examples? These things being made out, we
+shall see with what strength scripture examples hold forth a divine
+right to us in the mysteries of religion, and particularly in church
+government.
+
+I. That some scripture examples in matters of religion are obligatory on
+Christians, as patterns and rules, which they are bound in conscience to
+follow and imitate, is evident,
+
+1. By the divine intention of the Spirit of God, in recording and
+propounding of examples in Scripture: for he records and propounds them
+for this very end, that they may be imitated. Thus Christ's humility,
+in washing the feet of his disciples, was intentionally propounded as an
+obligatory example, binding both the disciples, and us after them, to
+perform the meanest offices of love in humility to one another. "If I
+then, your Lord and Master, have washed your feet, ye ought also to wash
+one another's feet. For I have given you an example, that ye should do
+as I have done to you," John xiii. 4, &c., 13-15. Thus Christ's
+suffering with innocence and unprovoked patience, not reviling again,
+&c., is purposely propounded for all Christians to imitate, and they are
+bound in conscience as well as they can to follow it--"Christ suffered
+for us, leaving us an example, that ye should follow his steps," &c., 1
+Pet. ii. 21-23. Hence, the apostle so urges the example of Christ for
+the Corinthians to follow in their bounty to the poor saints, yea,
+though to their own impoverishing, "For you know the grace of our Lord
+Jesus Christ, that though he was rich, yet for your sakes he became
+poor, that ye through his poverty might be rich," 2 Cor. viii. 9. Nor
+was the example of Christ only written for our imitation; but the
+examples of the apostles also in the primitive churches were
+intentionally left upon record for this end, that they might be binding
+patterns for us to follow in like cases in after ages. And in
+particular, this seems to be one singular ground, scope, and intention
+of Christ's Spirit in writing the history of the Acts of the Apostles,
+that the apostles' acts in the primitive churches might be our rules in
+successive churches. For, 1. Though this book contain in it many things
+dogmatical, that is, divers doctrines of the apostles, yet it is not
+styled the book of the doctrine, but of the Acts of the Apostles, that
+we may learn to act as they acted. This being one main difference
+between profane and sacred histories; those are for speculation, these
+also for admonition and imitation, 1 Cor. x. 11. The history, therefore,
+of the Acts propounds examples admonitory and obligatory upon us, that
+we should express like acts in like cases. 2. Luke (the penman of the
+Acts) makes such a transition from his history of Christ, to this
+history of Christ's apostles, as to unite and knit them into one volume,
+Acts i. 1; whence we are given to understand, that if the Church wanted
+this history of the apostles, she should want that perfect direction
+which the Spirit intended for her: as also that this book is useful and
+needful to her as well as the other. 3. In the very front of the Acts it
+is said, that _Christ after his resurrection_ (and before his ascension)
+_gave commandments to the apostles--and spake of the things pertaining
+to the kingdom of God_, Acts i. 2, 3; viz. of the polity of the Church,
+say some.[6] Of the kingdom of grace, say others.[7] Judicious
+Calvin[8] interprets it partly of church government, saying, Luke
+admonisheth us, that Christ did not so depart out of the world, as to
+cast off all care of us: for by this doctrine he shows that he hath
+constituted a perpetual government in his Church. Therefore Luke
+signifies, that Christ departed not, before he had provided for his
+Church's government. Now those expressions are set in the frontispiece,
+to stamp the greater authority and obligatory power upon the acts after
+recorded, being done according to Christ's commandments; Christ
+intending their acts in the first founding of his kingdom and polity
+ecclesiastic to be the rule for after churches. For what Christ spoke of
+his kingdom to the apostles is like that, "What I say to you, I say to
+all," Matt. xiii. 37, as what was said to the apostles touching
+preaching and baptizing, remitting and retaining of sins, was said to
+all the apostles' successors, "to the end of the world," John xx. 21,
+23, with Matt, xxviii. 18-20.
+
+2. By God's approving and commending such as were followers not only of
+the doctrine, but also of the examples of the Lord, his apostles, and
+primitive churches; "And ye became followers" (or imitators) "of us and
+of the Lord," 1 Thess. i. 6, 7; and again, "Ye, brethren, became
+followers" (or imitators) "of the churches of God, which in Judea are in
+Christ Jesus: for ye also have suffered like things of your own
+countrymen, even as they have of the Jews," 1 Thess. ii. 14. In which
+places the Holy Ghost recites the Thessalonians imitating of the Lord,
+of the apostles, and of the churches, to the praise of the
+Thessalonians, by which they are given to understand that they did well,
+and discharged their duty in such imitations: for God's condemning or
+commending any thing, is virtually a prohibiting or prescribing thereof.
+
+3. By the Lord's commanding some examples to be imitated. Commands of
+this nature are frequent. In general, "Beloved, imitate not that which
+is evil, but that which is good," 3 John 11. In particular, 1. Imitating
+of God and Christ; "Be ye, therefore, followers of God as dear children:
+and walk in love, as Christ also hath loved us," Eph. v. 1, 2, with Eph.
+iv. 32. "He that saith he abideth in him, ought himself also to walk,
+even as he walked," 1 John ii. 6. 2. Imitating the apostles and other
+saints of God. "I beseech you, be ye imitators of me: for this cause
+have I sent unto you Timothy--who shall bring you into remembrance of my
+ways which be in Christ," 1 Cor. iv. 16, 17. "Be ye imitators of me,
+even as I also am of Christ," 1 Cor. xi. 1.
+
+"Those things which you have both learned, and received, and heard, and
+seen in me, do: and the God of peace shall be with you," Phil. iv. 9.
+"Be not slothful, but imitators of them who through faith and patience
+inherit the promises," Heb. vi. 12. "Whose faith imitate, considering
+the end of their conversation," Heb. xiii. 7. "Take, my brethren, the
+prophets, who have spoken in the name of the Lord, for an example" (or
+pattern) "of suffering affliction, and of patience," James v. 10. These
+and like divine commands infallibly evidence that many scripture
+examples are obligatory, and do bind our consciences to the imitation of
+them.
+
+4. By consent of orthodox and learned writers, both ancient and modern,
+acknowledging an obligatory force in some scripture examples, as being
+left upon record for our imitation. As among others Chrysostom,[9] and
+Greg. Nyssen[10] well observe.
+
+Among modern writers, Mr. Perkins excellently observes, This is a rule
+in divinity, that the ordinary examples of the godly approved in
+Scripture, being against no general precept, have the force of a general
+rule, and are to be followed. See also Pet. Martyr, Calvin, and
+others.[11]
+
+II. Thus, it is clear that some scripture examples are obligatory. Now
+(to come closer to the matter) consider which scripture examples are
+obligatory. 1. How many sorts of binding examples are propounded to us
+in Scripture. 2. What rules we may walk by for finding out the
+obligatory force of such examples.
+
+How many sorts of binding examples are propounded unto us in Scripture,
+and which are those examples? Ans. There are principally three sorts,
+viz: Examples of God, of Christ, of Christians.
+
+I. Of God. The example of God is propounded in Scripture as obligatory
+on us in all moral excellencies and actions: e.g. Matt. v. 44, 45, 48;
+Eph. v. 1; 1 Pet. i. 14-16; 1 John iv. 10, 11.
+
+II. Of Christ. That the example of Christ is obligatory, and a binding
+rule to us for imitation, is evident by these and like testimonies of
+Scripture, Matt. xi. 29; 1 Cor. xi. 11; Eph. v. 2, 3, 25, &c.; 1 John
+ii. 6; 1 Pet. ii. 21-23. "If I then, your Lord and Master, have washed
+your feet, ye ought also to wash one another's feet. For I have given
+you an example, that ye should do as I have done to you," John xiii. 14,
+15. In this place we must follow the reason of the example, rather than
+the individual act, viz: after Christ's example, we must be ready to
+perform the lowest and meanest offices of love and service to one
+another.
+
+But which of Christ's examples are obligatory on Christians, will better
+appear, by distinguishing the several sorts of Christ's actions.
+Christ's actions were of several kinds; and to imitate them all is
+neither needful, nor possible, nor warrantable. Orthodox writers thus
+rank Christ's actions:
+
+1. Some of Christ's actions were of divine power and virtue; as his
+miracles, turning water into wine, John ii. 7, &c.; walking on the sea,
+Mark vi. 48, 49; dispossessing of devils by his word, Mark i. 27; Luke
+iv. 36; curing one born blind with clay and spittle, John ix.; healing
+the sick by his word or touch, John iv. 50; Mark vi. 56; raising the
+dead to life again, as John xii. 1; Matt. xi. 5; Luke vii. 22.
+
+2. Some were acts of divine prerogative, as sending for the ass and
+colt, without first asking the owner's leave, Matt. xxi. 2, &c.
+
+3. Some mediatory, done by him as Mediator, Prophet, Priest, and King of
+his Church: e.g. inditing the Scripture, called therefore the word of
+Christ, Col. iii. 16; laying down his life _for the sheep_, John x. 15,
+&c.; giving of the Spirit, John xx. 22; Acts ii.; appointing of his own
+officers, and giving them commissions, Eph. iv. 7, 10, 11; Matt. x. and
+xxviii. 18-20; instituting of new, and thereby abrogating of old
+ordinances, Matt. xxviii. 18, 19; 1 Cor. xi. 23, &c.
+
+4. Some accidental, occasional, incidental, or circumstantial, as in
+the case of his celebrating his supper, that it was at night, not in the
+morning; after supper, not before; with none but men, none but
+ministers; with unleavened, not with leavened bread, &c.; these
+circumstantials were accidentally occasioned by the passover, nature of
+his family, &c.
+
+5. Some acts of Christ were moral, as Matt. xi. 29; Eph. v. 2, 3, 25,
+&c.; or at least founded upon a moral reason and foundation, as John
+xiii. 14,15.
+
+To imitate Christ in his three first sort of acts, is utterly unlawful,
+and in part impossible. To imitate him in his circumstantial acts from
+necessity, were to make accidentals necessary, and happily to border
+upon superstition; for, to urge any thing above what is appointed, as
+absolutely necessary, is to urge superstition; and to yield to any thing
+above what is appointed, as simply necessary, were to yield to
+superstition. But to imitate Christ in his moral acts, or acts grounded
+upon a moral reason, is our duty: such acts of Christ ought to be the
+Christian's rules.
+
+III. Of prophets, apostles, saints, or primitive churches. That their
+examples are obligatory, is evident by these places, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil.
+iv. 8, 9; 1 Pet. iii. 4, 5, 6; 1 Thess. i. 6, and ii. 14; Heb. xiii. 7;
+James v. 10, 11; 3 John 11.
+
+Which of their examples are obligatory, may be thus resolved, by
+distinguishing of their actions.
+
+1. Some were sinful; written for our caution and admonition, not for our
+imitation: as 1 Cor. x. 5, 6, 10, 12. That neither the just be lifted up
+into pride by security, nor the unjust be hardened against the medicine
+through despair. See the fourth rule following.
+
+2. Some were heroical; done by singular instinct and instigation of the
+Spirit of God; as divers acts may be presumed to be, (though we read not
+the instinct clearly recorded:) as, Elias's calling for fire from
+heaven, 2 Kings i. 10; which the very apostles might not imitate, not
+having his spirit, Luke ix. 54, 55; Phinehas's killing the adulterer and
+adulteress, Numb. xxv. 7, 8; Samson's avenging himself upon his enemies
+by his own death, Judges xvi. 30, of which, saith Bernard, if it be
+defended not to have been his sin, it is undoubtedly to be believed he
+had private counsel, viz. from God, for his fact; David's fighting with
+Goliath of Gath the giant, hand to hand, 1 Sam. xvii. 32, &c., which is
+no warrant for private duels and quarrels. Such heroic acts are not
+imitable but by men furnished with like heroic spirit, and instinct
+divine.
+
+3. Some were by special calling, and singular extraordinary
+dispensation: as Abraham's call to leave his own country for pilgrimage
+in Canaan, Gen. xii. 1, 4, which is no warrant for popish pilgrimages
+to the holy land, &c.; Abraham's attempts, upon God's special trying
+commands, to kill and sacrifice his son, Gen. xxii. 10, no warrant for
+parents to kill or sacrifice their children; the Israelites borrowing
+of, and robbing the Egyptians, Exod. xii. 35, no warrant for cozenage,
+stealing, or for borrowing with intent not to pay again: compare Rom.
+xiii. 8; 1 Thess. iv. 6; Psal. xxxvii. 21; the Israelites taking usury
+of the Canaanitish strangers, (who were destined to ruin both in their
+states and persons, Deut. xx. 15-17,) Deut. xxiii. 20, which justifies
+neither their nor our taking usury of our brethren, Lev. xxv. 36, 37;
+Deut. xxiii. 19, 20; Neh. v. 7, 10; Psal. xv. 5; Prov. xxviii. 8; Ezek.
+xviii. 8, 13, 17, and xxii. 12; John Baptist's living in the desert,
+Mat. iii., no protection for popish hermitage, or proof that it is a
+state of greater perfection, &c.
+
+4. Some were only accidental or occasional, occasioned by special
+necessity of times and seasons, or some present appearance of scandal,
+or some such accidental emergency. Thus primitive Christians had all
+things common, Acts iv. 32, but that is no ground for anabaptistical
+community. Paul wrought at his trade of tent-making, made his hands
+_minister to his necessities_, Acts xx. 34; would not take wages for
+preaching to the church of Corinth, 2 Cor. xi. 7-9; but this lays no
+necessity on ministers to preach the gospel _gratis_, and maintain
+themselves by their own manual labors, except when cases and seasons are
+alike, Gal. vi. 6-8; 1 Cor. ix. 6-13; 1 Tim. v. 17, 18.
+
+5. Some were of a moral nature, and upon moral grounds, wherein they
+followed Christ, and we are to follow them, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil. iv. 8,
+9, and other places forementioned; for, whatsoever actions were done
+then, upon such grounds as are of a moral, perpetual, and common
+concernment to one person as well as another, to one church as well as
+another, in one age as well as another, those actions are obligatory on
+all, and a rule to after generations. Thus the baptizing of women in the
+primitive churches, Acts viii. 12, and xvi. 15, though only the males
+were circumcised under the Old Testament, is a rule for our baptizing of
+women as well as men, they being _all one in Christ,_ Gal. iii. 28. So
+the admitting of infants to the first initiating sacrament of the Old
+Testament, circumcision, because they with their parents' were accounted
+within the covenant of grace by God, Gen. xvii., is a rule for us now to
+admit infants to the first initiating sacrament of the New Testament,
+baptism, because infants are federally holy, and within the covenant
+with their believing parents now, as well as then, Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor.
+vii. 14; Col. ii. 11, 12. Thus the baptizing of divers persons formerly,
+though into no particular congregation, nor as members of any
+particular congregation, as the eunuch, Acts viii.; Lydia, Acts xvi.;
+the jailer, Acts xvi.; because it was sufficient they were baptized into
+that one general visible body of Christ, 1 Cor. xii. 12, 13, is a rule
+for us what to do in like cases upon the same common ground. Thus the
+Church's practice of preaching the word, and breaking bread on the first
+day of the week, Acts xx. 7, &c., is our rule for sanctifying the Lord's
+day, by celebrating the word, sacraments, and other holy ordinances, at
+these times. And in like manner, the primitive practices of ordaining
+preaching presbyters, by laying on of hands, 1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6;
+Acts xiii. 3; of governing all the congregations of a city by one common
+presbytery, in which respect they are all called by the name of one
+church, as the church of Jerusalem, Acts viii. 1, and xv. 4; the church
+of Antioch, Acts xiii. 1, and xi. 25, 26; the church of Corinth, 1 Cor.
+i. 2, 2 Cor. i. 1; which had churches in it, 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Of healing
+common scandals and errors, troubling divers presbyterial churches by
+the authoritative decrees of a synod, made up of members from divers
+presbyterial churches, as Acts xv., and such like, are our rules in like
+particulars, which the Lord hath left for our direction, the same
+grounds of such actions reaching us as well as them.
+
+Now this last kind of examples are those which we are, by divers divine
+commands, especially enjoined to follow; and therefore such examples
+amount to a divine right or institution; and what we ought to do by
+virtue of such binding examples is of divine right, and by the will and
+appointment of Jesus Christ.
+
+What discriminatory notes or rules may we walk by, for finding out the
+obligatory force of scripture examples; and what manner of examples
+those be? For discovery hereof, take these ensuing general rules:
+
+1. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ commands us
+to imitate, are undoubtedly obligatory. Such are the moral examples of
+God, Christ, apostles, prophets, saints, and churches, recorded in
+Scripture, with command to follow them, Eph. iv. 32, and v. 1, 2; 1 John
+ii. 6; 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil. iv. 6; Heb. vi. 12, and xiii. 7; James v. 10;
+3 John 11.
+
+2. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ commends and
+praises, are obligatory; his commendings are virtual commandings; and we
+ought to follow whatsoever is praiseworthy, especially in God's account,
+Phil. iv. 8, 9; 2 Cor. x. 18. Now the Spirit of Christ commends many
+examples to us: as, _Enoch's walking with God_, Gen. v. 24; _Noah's
+uprightness,_ Gen. vi.; _Abraham's faith_, Rom. iv., _and obedience_,
+Gen. xxii.; _Lot's zeal against Sodom's sins_, 2 Pet. ii. 9; _Job's
+patience_, James v. 10, 11. And in a word, all the examples of the
+saints, which the Lord approves and speaks well of; as Heb. xi.; 1 Pet.
+iii. 5, 6: together with all such examples, whose imitation by others is
+commended in Scripture; as, 1 Thess. i. 6, 7, and ii. 14.
+
+3. Those examples in Scripture are obligatory, whose ground, reason,
+scope, or end, are obligatory, and of a moral nature, and as much
+concern one Christian as another, one church as another, one time as
+another, &c., whether they be the examples under the Old or New
+Testament. Thus the example of the church of Corinth, in excommunicating
+the incestuous person, because he was a wicked person--and lest he
+should _leaven the whole lump;_ and that they might keep the
+evangelical passover sincerely, and for that they had power _to judge
+them within_; and that his "flesh might be destroyed, and his spirit
+saved in the day of the Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5-8, 11-13: which grounds
+and ends being moral, oblige us to use the like remedy against all
+wicked and scandalous persons.
+
+4. Those acts which are propounded in Scripture as patterns or examples,
+that we should act the like good, or avoid the like ill, are an
+obligatory law to us. There is an example of caution, and an example of
+imitation.
+
+Thus in reference to well-doing, or suffering for well-doing, the
+examples of Christ, his apostles, and other saints, are propounded as
+patterns to write after, as John xiii. 14, 15; Heb. xi. tot. with Heb.
+xii. 1, _with such a cloud of witnesses_. This verse is as the epilogue
+of the former chapter, (saith the learned Calvin,) showing to what end
+the catalogue of saints was reckoned up, who under the law excelled in
+faith, viz: that every one may fit himself to imitate them. Another
+adds,[12] He calls them a cloud, whereby we may be directed; in allusion
+to that cloud that went before Israel in the wilderness, to conduct them
+to the land of Canaan. See also 1 Pet. ii. 21-23; James v. 10.
+
+Thus also, in reference to ill-doing, that it may be avoided by us, the
+bad examples of saints and others are laid before us as warnings and
+cautions to us, binding us to eschew like evils, 1 Cor. x. 5, 6, 11.
+"Now these things were our examples, to the intent we should not lust
+after evil things, as they also lusted. Now all these things happened
+unto them for examples," &c., Jude 7.
+
+5. Those acts of saints or Christians, which were done by them as saints
+and Christians, are obligatory upon, and to be followed by all
+Christians; but those acts which are done by magistrates, prophets,
+apostles, ministers, &c., only as such, are only obligatory on such as
+have like offices, not on all; according to the maxim, that which agrees
+to any thing as such, agrees to every thing that is such. Thus James
+urges the example of Elias in praying, James v. 17. Paul presses the
+example of Abraham in being justified by believing, Rom. iv. 23,24.
+Peter prescribes, as a pattern to wives, the example of Sarah, and other
+holy women of old, for "adorning themselves with a meek and quiet
+spirit,--being in subjection to their own husbands," 1 Pet. iii. 4-6.
+
+6. Those acts that were commonly and ordinarily done, are ordinarily to
+be imitated; as, baptizing _in water only_, and not in any other
+element, was the ordinary practice of the New Testament, Matt. iii. 11,
+16; Mark i. 6, 10; Luke iii. 16; John i. 26, 31, 33; Acts i. 5, and
+viii. 36, 38, and x. 47, and xi. 16; and by that practice we are obliged
+to baptize in water only. Joining of many Christians together in
+receiving the Lord's supper was an ordinary practice, Matt. xxvi. 20,
+26, 27; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7, &c.; 1 Cor. xi. 20, and by us ordinarily
+to be imitated; how else is it a communion? 1 Cor. x. 16, 17.
+
+But such acts as were done only upon special causes or singular reasons,
+are only to be imitated in like cases. Thus Christ argues from a like
+special cause, that he was not to do miracles at Nazareth without a
+call, as he did in other places where he had a call of God; from the
+particular example of Elijah and Elisha, who only went to them to whom
+God called them, Luke ix. 25-27; so he proves that in like case of
+necessity it was lawful for his disciples on the sabbath-day to rub ears
+of corn and eat them, &c., from David's example of eating show-bread when
+he had need, Matt. xii. 1-5.
+
+7. Those acts that were done from extraordinary calling and gifts, are
+to be imitated (in regard of their special way of acting) only by those
+that have such extraordinary calling and gifts. Christ therefore blames
+his apostles for desiring to imitate Elijah's extraordinary act in
+calling for fire from heaven, &c., when they had not his spirit, Luke ix.
+54, 55. Papists are blameworthy for imitating the extraordinary forty
+days' and nights' fast of Moses, Elijah, and Christ, in their Lent fast.
+Prelates argue corruptly for bishops' prelacy over their brethren the
+ministers, from the superiority of the apostles over presbyters.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V.
+
+_Of a Divine Right by Divine Approbation._
+
+
+III. By divine approbation of the Spirit of Jesus Christ in his word.
+Whatsoever in matters of religion hath the divine approbation of the
+Spirit of Christ in the Scriptures, that is of divine right, and by the
+will and appointment of Jesus Christ. God's approving or allowing of any
+thing, plainly implies that it is according to his will and pleasure,
+and so is equivalent to a divine institution or appointment; for what is
+a divine institution or law but the publishing of the divine will of the
+legislator, touching things to be acted or omitted? and God cannot
+approve any thing that is against his will. Contrariwise, God's
+disallowing of any thing, plainly implies that it is against his will,
+and so of divine right prohibited, and unlawful. God allows or disallows
+things not because they are good or evil; but things are, therefore,
+good or evil, because he approves or disallows them.
+
+Now God approves or disallows things divers ways:
+
+1. By commending or discommending. God commended king Josiah for his
+zeal and impartiality in completing of the reformation of religion, 1
+Kings xiii. 25. This is a rule for all princes and magistrates how they
+should reform. The angel of the church of Ephesus is commended, for not
+bearing of those that were evil, for trying and detecting the false
+apostles, and for hating the works of the Nicolaitans, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6.
+The angel of the church of Pergamus is praised, for holding fast
+Christ's name, and not denying his faith in places of danger, and days
+of deepest persecution, Rev. ii. 13: a rule for all pastors and
+churches, how in all such cases they should carry themselves. God's
+commendings are divine commandings. On the contrary, God dispraises
+Ephesus, for falling from her first love, Rev. ii. 4. Pergamus, for
+holding the doctrine of Balaam, and the doctrine of the Nicolaitans,
+Rev. ii. 14, 15. Thyatira, for tolerating the false prophetess Jezebel,
+to teach and seduce his servants, &c., Rev. ii. 20. Laodicea, because
+she was neither hot nor cold, but lukewarm, Rev. iii. 15. The church of
+Corinth, for coming together in public assemblies, not for better but
+for worse, by reason of schisms, scandals, and other disorders about the
+Lord's supper, 1 Cor. xi. 17, &c. In these and all such divine
+discommendings of the churches for their corruptions, all succeeding
+churches are strongly forbidden the like corruptions: God's dispraises
+are divine prohibitions. Thus good church elders are commended in this
+notion, that they are _elders ruling well_, 1 Tim. v. 17; therefore,
+that elders in the church should rule, and rule well, is by this
+commendation of divine right.
+
+2. By promising and threatening. What promise did God ever make to any
+act or performance, which was not a duty? or what threatening against
+any act which was not a sin? He promises to them that forsake all for
+Christ, a "hundred-fold now in this time, and in the world to come
+eternal life," Mark x. 29, 30; therefore it is our duty to forsake all
+for Christ. He promised to ratify in heaven his disciples' sentences of
+_building or loosing on earth_; and to _be with them_ whensoever _two or
+three of them were met together_ for that end, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii.
+18-20, and John xx. 23. Therefore binding and loosing, remitting and
+retaining of sins, and meeting together for that end, belong to them by
+divine right. He promised to be with them that baptize, preach, remit,
+and retain sins in his name, &c., _always, to the end of the world_,
+John xx. 23; with Matt, xxviii. 18-20, which promise shows, that these
+works and employments belong to all succeeding ministers to the world's
+end, as well as to the apostles by divine right. On the contrary, the
+Lord threatens Ephesus for decay of first love, Rev. ii. 4, 5; Pergamus,
+for holding false doctrine, Rev. ii. 14, 15; Thyatira, for tolerating of
+Jezebel and her false teaching, &c., Rev. ii. 21, 21, 23; and Laodicea,
+for lukewarmness, Rev. iii. 15, 16. Therefore, all these were their
+sins, and we are bound, even by this divine threatening, to avoid the
+like by a divine warrant.
+
+3. By remunerating or rewarding; whether he reward with blessings or
+with judgments. With blessings God rewarded the Hebrew midwives, because
+they preserved the male children of Israel, contrary to Pharaoh's bloody
+command; _God made them houses_, Exod. i. 17, 20, 21. He will have the
+elders that rule well _counted worthy of double honor_, &c.; i.e.
+rewarded with a bountiful, plentiful maintenance, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+Therefore, their ruling in the church is of divine right, for which God
+appoints such a good reward. Contrariwise, with judgments God rewarded
+king Saul, for offering a burnt-offering himself, 1 Sam. xiii. 12-14;
+Uzzah, for touching the ark, though it was ready to fall, 2 Sam. vi. 6,
+7; and king Uzziah, for going into the temple to burn incense, 2 Chron.
+xxvi. 16. None of these being priests, yet presuming to meddle with the
+priest's office. A rule for all persons, being not church officers, yea,
+though they be princes or supreme magistrates, that they are hereby
+warned by the divine law, not to usurp church authority or offices to
+themselves. God rewarded the Corinthians with the judgments of
+weakness, sickness, and death, for unworthy receiving of the Lord's
+supper, 1 Cor. xi. 30. So that this is a divine warning for all after
+churches against unworthy communicating.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI.
+
+IV. _Of a Divine Right by Divine Acts._
+
+
+IV. By divine acts. Whatsoever matters of religion were erected in, or
+conferred upon the Church of God, by God, or any person of the blessed
+Trinity, and are left recorded in the Scripture, they are of divine
+right, by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ. Shall divine
+approbation, yea, shall the saints' binding example hold forth to us a
+divine right, and shall not the divine actions of God, Christ, and the
+Spirit, do it much more? Take some instances: the Lord's-day sabbath,
+under the New Testament, was it not instituted (the seventh day being
+changed to the first day of the week) by the acts of Christ, having now
+perfected the spiritual creation of the new world? viz: by his
+resurrection and apparitions to his disciples on that day, and
+miraculous blessing and sanctifying of that day, by pouring forth the
+gifts of the Holy Ghost, Acts ii., all which were seconded with the
+apostolical practice in the primitive churches, Acts xx. 7, &c.; 1 Cor.
+xvi. 1, 2. And do not the churches of Christ generally conclude upon
+these grounds, that the Lord's-day sabbath is of divine warrant? Thus
+circumcision is abrogated of divine right, by Christ's act, instituting
+baptism instead thereof, Col. ii. 11, 12. The passover is abolished of
+divine right, by Christ himself, our true passover, _being sacrificed
+for us_, 1 Cor. v. 7; and the Lord's supper being instituted a memorial
+of Christ's death instead of it, Matt, xxvi., Mark xiv., Luke xxii. And
+the whole ceremonial law is antiquated and made void by Christ's death,
+accomplishing all those dark types; therefore Christ, immediately before
+his yielding up the ghost, cried, _It is finished_, John xix. 30. See
+Col. ii. 14; Eph. ii. 14, 15; _abolishing the law of commandments in
+ordinances_, Heb. viii. 13, and x. 4, 5, &c. Thus by Christ's act of
+giving the keys of the kingdom of heaven to Peter and the apostles,
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, 19, the keys belong to the officers of the
+church by divine right. By God's act of _setting in the Church some,
+first apostles_, &c., 1 Cor. xii. 28, all those officers belong to the
+general visible Church by divine right. By Christ's act of bounty upon
+his triumphant ascension into heaven, _in giving gifts to men_, Eph.
+iv. 7, 11, 12; all those church officers being Christ's gifts, are of
+divine right. Finally, by the Holy Ghost's act, in setting elders,
+overseers over the flock, Acts xx. 28, elders are such overseers by
+divine right.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII.
+
+V. _Of a Divine Right by Divine Precepts._
+
+
+V. Finally, and primarily, by divine precepts, whatsoever in matters of
+religion is commanded or forbidden by God in his word, that is
+accordingly a duty or sin, by divine right: as, the duties of the whole
+moral law, the ten words, commanded of God, Exod. xx.; Deut. v.
+Believing in Christ, commanded of God, 1 John iii. 23. The plentiful and
+honorable maintenance of ministers, commanded of God, 1 Tim. v. 17, 18;
+1 Cor. ix. 9-11, 13, 14; Gal. vi. 6. The people's esteeming, loving, and
+obeying their pastors and teachers, commanded of God, 1 Thess. v. 12;
+Heb. xiii. 7, 17. Ministers' diligence and faithfulness, in feeding and
+watching over their flocks, commanded of God, Acts xx. 28; 2 Tim. iv.
+1-3; 1 Pet. iv. 1-3; with innumerable commands and precepts of all
+sorts: now all things so commanded are evidently of divine right, and
+without gainsaying, granted on all hands, even by Erastians themselves.
+But the question will be, how far we shall extend this head of _divine
+commands_. For clearness' sake, thus distinguish, thus resolve:
+
+God's commands are either immediate or mediate.
+
+1. Immediate divine commands: as those which God propounds and urges; as
+the ten commandments, Exod. xx., Deut. v., and all other injunctions of
+his in his word positively laid down. Of such commands, the apostle
+saith, "I command, yet not I, but the Lord," 1 Cor. vii. 10.
+
+Now these immediate commands of God, in regard of their manner of
+publishing and propounding, are either explicit or implicit.
+
+1. Explicit: which are expressly and in plain terms laid down, as the
+letter of the commandments of the decalogue, Exod. xx. The commands of
+Christ, "Feed my lambs, feed my sheep," John xxi.; "Go, disciple ye all
+nations," &c., Matt, xxviii. 19; "Do this in remembrance of me," Matt,
+xxvi; 1 Cor. xi. 23, 24, &c. Now whatsoever is expressly commanded of
+God in plain, evident terms, that is of divine right, without all color
+of controversy. Only take this caution, the divine right of things
+enjoined by God's express command, is to be interpreted according to the
+nature of the thing commanded, and the end or scope of the Lord in
+commanding: e.g. 1. Some things God commands morally, to be of perpetual
+use; as to honor father and mother, &c.; these are of divine right
+forever. 2. Some things he commands but positively, to be of use for a
+certain season; as the ceremonial administrations till Christ should
+come, for the Jewish church, and the judicial observances for their
+Jewish polity; and all these positive laws were of divine right till
+Christ abrogated them. 3. Some things he commands only by way of trial,
+not with intention that the things commanded should be done, but that
+his people's fear, love, and obedience may be proved, tried, &c. Thus
+God commanded Abraham to offer up his son Isaac for a burnt-offering,
+Gen. xxii.: such things are of divine right only in such cases of
+special infallible command. 4. Some things he commands extraordinarily
+in certain select and special cases: as, _Israel to borrow jewels of the
+Egyptians to rob them_, without intention ever to restore them, Exod.
+xi. 2, &c. The disciples to _go preach_--yet to _provide neither gold
+nor silver_, &c. Matt. x. 7-10. The elders of the church (while miracles
+were of use in the church) _to anoint the sick with oil in the name of
+the Lord_, for their recovery, James v. 14. These and like extraordinary
+commands were only of force by divine right, in these extraordinary
+select cases, when they were propounded.
+
+1. Implicit, or implied: which are either comprehensively contained in
+or under the express terms and letter of the command; or,
+consequentially, are deducible from the express command.
+
+Comprehensively, many things are contained in a command, that are not
+expressed in the very letter of the command. Thus sound interpreters of
+the decalogue generally confess, that all precepts thereof include the
+whole parts under the general term, and God wills many things by them
+more than the bare words signify: e.g. in negative commands, forbidding
+sin, we are to understand the positive precepts prescribing the contrary
+duties; and so, on the contrary, under affirmative commands, we are to
+understand the negative thereof: thus Christ expounds the sixth
+commandment, Matt. v. 21-27, and ver. 43, to the end of the chapter. So
+when any evil is forbidden, not only the outward gross acts, but all
+inward acts and degrees thereof, with all causes and occasions, all
+fruits and effects thereof, are forbidden likewise: as, under killing,
+provoking terms, rash anger, Matt. v. 21, 22; under adultery, wanton
+looks, lustful thoughts, &c., Matt. v. 27-30. Now all things
+comprehended in a command (though not expressed) are of divine right.
+
+Consequentially, many things are clearly deducible from express commands
+in Scripture, by clear, unforced, infallible, and undeniable
+consequence. Now what things are commanded by necessary consequence,
+they are of divine right, as well as things in express terms prescribed:
+e.g. in the case of baptism, have the ordinary ministers of the New
+Testament any punctual express command to baptize? yet, by consequence,
+it is evident infallibly, the apostles are commanded to baptize, and the
+promise is made to them by Christ, that he _will be with them always to
+the end of the world_, Matt, xxviii. 18-20, which cannot be interpreted
+of the apostles' persons only; for they were not to live till the
+world's end, but are dead and gone long ago; but of the apostles and
+their successors, the ministers of the gospel to the world's end; now to
+whom the promise of Christ's presence is here to be applied, to them the
+precept of baptizing and teaching is intended by clear consequence and
+deduction. So, infants of Christian parents under the New Testament are
+commanded to be baptized by consequence; for that the infants of God's
+people under the Old Testament were commanded to be circumcised, Gen.
+xvii.; for, the privileges of believers under the New Testament are as
+large as the privileges of believers under the Old Testament: and the
+children of believers under the New Testament are federally holy, and
+within the covenant of God, as well as the children of believers under
+the Old Testament, Gen. xvii., compared with Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor. vii.
+14: and what objections can be made from infants' incapacity now,
+against their baptism, might as well then have been made against their
+being circumcised: and why children should once be admitted to the
+initiating sacrament, and not still be admitted to the like initiating
+sacrament, (the Lord of the covenant and sacrament nowhere forbidding
+them,) there can be no just ground. And baptism succeeds in the room of
+circumcision, Col. ii. 11, 12. _Thus in case of the Lord's supper_,
+apostles were commanded to dispense it, and men commanded to receive it.
+"Do ye this in remembrance of me," Matt, xxvi., 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25; yet
+by consequence, the ministers of the gospel succeeding the apostles,
+being stewards of the mysteries of God, have the same charge laid upon
+them; and women as well as men are enjoined to keep that sacrament,
+whole families communicating in the passover, the forerunner of the
+Lord's supper, Exod. xiv., and male and female being _all one in
+Christ_, Gal. iii. 28. _Thus in case of the maintenance of ministers
+under the New Testament_: the apostle proves it by consequence to be
+commanded, God hath ordained, &c., from God's command of not _muzzling
+the ox that treads out the corn_, and of maintaining the priests under
+the Old Testament, 1 Cor. ix. 14, &c.; l Tim. v. 17, 18. And thus, in
+case of church polity, the Hebrews are commanded to obey and be
+subordinate to their rulers in the Lord, Heb. xiii. 17; consequently,
+other churches are commanded not only to have rulers, but to obey and
+submit to their rule and government. Timothy is commanded to lay hands
+_suddenly on none_, &c., in ordaining of preaching elders, 1 Tim. v. 21,
+22; consequently, such as succeed Timothy in ordaining of preaching
+elders are enjoined therein to do nothing suddenly, hastily, &c., but
+upon mature deliberation. The apostle commands, that men must _first be
+proved, and found blameless, before they execute the deacon's office_, 1
+Tim. iii. 10; by consequence, it is much more necessarily commanded,
+that ruling elders should first be proved, and be found blameless,
+before they exercise rule; and that ministers be examined, and found
+blameless, before they be ordained to or execute the ministerial
+function, for these offices are of greater and higher concernment than
+the deacon's office.
+
+2. Mediate divine commands, which are mediately from God, but
+immediately from men; and these come under a double consideration, being
+either,
+
+1. Such commands whose general principles are immediately the Lord's,
+yet accommodations and determinations of particulars are from men, by
+apparent deductions from those grounds. Of such the apostle saith, "But
+to the rest speak I, not the Lord," 1 Cor. vii. 12; not that Paul
+delivered any commands merely of his own head, (for he had "obtained
+mercy of the Lord to be faithful," ver. 25, and did _think that he had
+the Spirit of the Lord_, ver. 40,) but grounded his commands upon the
+word of God, whereof the apostle was the interpreter. The case is
+concerning divorce when it fell out that believer and unbeliever were
+married together: the Lord had given general rules about divorce, but no
+particular rule about this case, (it being not incident to the Jews;)
+the apostle, therefore, accommodates the general rule to the particular
+case; he, not the Lord, determined the particular. This sound
+interpreters conceive to be the apostle's meaning: Thus the apostle,
+treating of order in public assemblies, saith, "The prophet and the
+spiritual man must acknowledge the things which I write, to be the
+commandments of the Lord," 1 Cor. xiv. 37. Understand it mediately, as
+being agreeable to the Lord's principles revealed: for otherwise how
+should the prophet know what the Lord immediately revealed to the
+apostle? or why should we think it probable that what Paul here speaks
+of order and decency in church assemblies, was immediately and expressly
+delivered him by speech or revelation from the Lord, seeing these
+particulars have such easy and apparent deduction from general
+principles, and revelations are not unnecessarily multiplied? Yet these
+particular deductions and determinations are here styled the
+commandments of the Lord.
+
+2. Such commands, which are accidental and occasional, whose grounds and
+general principles are also the Lord's; yet determination or deduction
+of particulars can hardly be made, but in such emergent cases and
+occasions accidentally falling out, as necessitate thereunto. As in that
+case, Acts xv., when the synod commands abstinence _from blood, and
+things strangled_, and that necessarily, (though the Levitical law was
+now abrogated,) because the common use thereof by accident grew very
+scandalous: therefore, by the law of charity, the use of Christian
+liberty is to be suspended, when otherwise the scandal of my brother is
+endangered; yet from any ground of equity to have provided such a
+particular rule as this, without such a case occurring, would scarce
+have been possible. Now the synod saith of this determination, "It
+seemed good unto the Holy Ghost, and unto us," Acts xv. And another
+synod, walking by the like light and rule of the Scripture as they did,
+may say of themselves as the apostles said.
+
+
+
+
+PART II.
+
+OF THE NATURE OF THAT CHURCH GOVERNMENT WHICH IS OF DIVINE RIGHT,
+ACCORDING TO SCRIPTURE.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I.
+
+_The Description of Church Government._
+
+
+The nature of that church government which is of divine right according
+to Scripture, comes next to be considered; (having so fully seen what
+the nature of a divine right is, and how many several ways matters in
+religion may be said to be of divine right.) For the fuller and clearer
+unfolding whereof, let us first see how church government may be
+described; and then how that description may be explained and justified
+by the word of God, in the branches of it.
+
+Church government may be thus described:
+
+Church government is a power[13] or authority spiritual,[14] revealed in
+the holy Scriptures,[15] derived from Jesus Christ[16] our Mediator,[17]
+only to his own officers, and by them exercised in dispensing of the
+word,[18] seals,[19] censures,[20] and all other ordinances of
+Christ,[21] for the edifying of the Church of Christ.[22]
+
+This description of church government may be thus explained and proved.
+Three things are principally considerable herein, viz: 1. The thing
+defined, or described, viz. church government. 2. The general nature of
+this government which it hath in common with all other governments, viz.
+power or authority.
+
+3. The special difference whereby it is distinguished from all other
+governments whatsoever. Herein six things are observable. 1. The special
+rule, wherein it is revealed, and whereby it is to be measured, viz. the
+holy Scriptures. 2. The proper author, or fountain, whence this power is
+derived, viz. from Jesus Christ our Mediator, peculiarly. 3. The special
+kind of this power or authority, viz. it is a spiritual power, it is a
+derived power. 4. The several parts or acts wherein this power sets
+forth itself, viz. in dispensing the word, seals, censures, and all
+other ordinances of Christ. 5. The special end or scope of this power,
+viz. the edifying of the Church of Christ. 6. The proper and distinct
+subject or receptacle wherein Christ hath placed and intrusted all this
+power, viz. only his own officers. All these things are comprehended in
+this description, and unto these several heads the whole nature of
+church government may be reduced. So that, these being explained and
+confirmed by the Scriptures, it will easily and fully be discovered,
+what that church government is which is of divine right, and by the will
+and appointment of Jesus Christ, our Mediator.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II.
+
+_Of the Subject Described, viz. Church Government, the terms being
+briefly opened._
+
+
+Touching the thing defined or described, it is church government. Here
+two terms are to be a little explained: 1. What is meant by church? 2.
+What is meant by government?
+
+1. Church is originally derived from a Greek word,[23] which signifies
+to call forth. Hence church properly signifies a company or multitude,
+called forth; and so in this notation of the word, three things are
+implied: 1. The term from which they are called. 2. The term to which
+they are called. 3. The medium or mean by which they are brought from
+one term to another, viz. by calling. And these things thus generally
+laid down, do agree to every company that may properly be called a
+church. Now, this word translated church, never signifies one particular
+person, but many congregated, gathered, or called together; and it hath
+several acceptations or uses in the New Testament: 1. It is used in a
+common and civil sense, for any civil meeting, or concourse of people
+together: thus that tumultuous and riotous assembly is called a church,
+Acts xix. 32, 39, 40. 2. It is used in a special religious sense, for a
+sacred meeting or assembly of God's people together: and thus it
+signifies the Church of God, either, 1. Invisible, comprehending only
+the elect of God, as Heb. xii. 23, "and Church of the first-born," Eph.
+v. 23, &c., "Even as Christ is the head of the Church." 2. Or, visible,
+comprehending the company of those that are called to the visible
+profession of the faith in Christ, and obedience unto Christ, according
+to the gospel, as Acts ii. 47, and v. 11, and viii. 3, and xii. 1, 5; 1
+Cor. xii. 23, and often elsewhere. Now in this description, church is
+not understood of a civil assembly; for such assemblies are governed by
+civil power. Nor of the invisible Church of Christ; for, as the Church
+is invisible, (to speak properly,) it is invisibly governed by Christ
+and his Spirit, Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20. But of the visible Church of
+Christ, for which Christ hath provided a visible polity, a visible
+government, by visible officers and ordinances, for the good both of the
+visible and invisible members thereof, which is that church government
+here spoken of.
+
+2. Government is the translation of a Greek word, which properly
+signifies the government of a ship with chart, &c., by the pilot or
+mariner, and thence metaphorically is used to signify any government,
+political or ecclesiastical. But the word is only once used in all the
+New Testament, viz. 1 Cor. xii. 28: _Governments_, h.e. ruling elders in
+the church; the abstract being put for the concrete, governments for
+governors. But whatever be the terms or names whereby government is
+expressed, government generally considered seems still to signify a
+superiority of office, power, and authority, which one hath and
+exerciseth over another. This is the notion of government in general. So
+that church government, in general, notes that pre-eminence or
+superiority of office, power, and authority, which some have and
+exercise over others in spiritual matters, in church affairs. And here
+we are further to consider, that church government is either, 1.
+Magisterial, lordly, and supreme; and so it is primitively and
+absolutely in God, Matt. xxviii. 18. Dispensatorily and mediatorily in
+Jesus Christ our Mediator only, whom God hath made both Lord and Christ,
+Acts ii. 36; Matt, xxiii. 8, 10; 1 Cor. viii. 6, and to whom God alone
+hath dispensed all authority and power, Matt, xxviii. 18, 19; John v.
+22. Now church government, as settled on Christ only, is monarchical. 2.
+Ministerial, stewardly, and subordinate; and this power Jesus Christ our
+Mediator hath committed to his church guides and officers in his Church,
+2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and church government, as intrusted in the
+hands of church guides, is representative. This ministerial church
+government, committed by Christ to his officers, may be considered
+either, 1. As it was dispensed under the Old Testament, in a Mosaical,
+Levitical polity; in which sense we here speak not of church government;
+(that polity being dissolved and antiquated.) 2. Or, as it is to be
+dispensed now under the New Testament, in an evangelical Christian
+polity, by Christ's New Testament officers; and this is that church
+government which is here described, viz. not the supreme magisterial
+government of Christ, but the subordinate ministerial government of
+Christ's officers; and this not as it was under the Old Testament, but
+as it ought to be now under the New Testament.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III.
+
+_Of the general Nature of Church Government, viz. Power or Authority._
+
+
+Touching the general nature of this government, which it participates in
+common with all other governments, it is power or authority. Here divers
+particulars are to be cleared and proved, viz:
+
+1. What is meant by power or authority? The word chiefly used in the New
+Testament for power or authority is used not only to denote Christ's
+supreme power, as Luke iv. 36; Mark i. 17, with Luke vi. 19; but also
+his officers' derived power, as with 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10. It is
+used to signify divers things: as, 1. Dignity, privilege, prerogative.
+"To them he gave prerogative to be the sons of God," John i. 12. 2.
+Liberty, leave, license; as, 1 Cor. viii. 9, "But so that your liberty
+become not an offence to the weak;" and 1 Cor. ix. 4, 5, "Have not we
+liberty to eat and drink? Have not we liberty to lead about a sister, a
+wife?" 3. But most usually right and authority; as, Matt. xxi. 23, 24,
+27, and xxviii. 18; so 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: in this last sense
+especially it is here to be taken in this description of church
+government.
+
+Power or authority in general is by some[24] thus described: that
+whereby one may claim or challenge any thing to one's self, without the
+injury of any other. Power is exercised either about things, or actions,
+or persons. 1. About things, as when a man disposes of his own goods,
+which he may do without wrong to any. 2. About actions, as when a man
+acts that which offends no law. 3. About persons, as when a man commands
+his children or servants that are under his own power.--Proportionably,
+the power of the Church in government is exercised, 1. About things, as
+when it is to be determined by the word, what the Church may call her
+own of right; as, that all the officers are hers, Eph; iv. 7, 8, 10, 11;
+1 Cor. xii. 28: that all the promises are hers, 2 Pet. i. 4; 1 Tim. iv.
+8: that Jesus Christ, and with Christ all things, are hers, 1 Cor. iii.
+21, 22. The keys of the kingdom of heaven are hers, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18, &c.; John xx. 21, 23, &c.: these things the Church may
+challenge without wrong to any. 2. About actions. As when it is to be
+determined by the word, what the Church of divine right may do, or not
+do: as, the Church may not _bear with them that are evil_, Rev. ii. 2;
+_nor tolerate women to teach_, or false doctrine to be broached, Rev.
+ii. 20, &c. The Church may _warn the unruly_, 1 Thess. v. 14:
+excommunicate the obstinate and incorrigible, Matt, xviii. 17, 18; 1
+Cor. v. 4, 5, 13: receive again penitent persons to the communion of the
+faithful, 2 Cor. ii. 7, 8: make binding decrees in synods, even to the
+restraining of the outward exercise of due Christian liberty for a time,
+for prevention of scandal, Acts xv. 3. About persons. The Church also
+hath a power to be exercised, for calling them to their duty, and
+keeping them in their duty according to the word of God: as, to _rebuke
+them before all_, that sin before all, 1 Tim. v. 20: to prove deacons,
+Acts vi. 2, 3, &c.; 1 Tim. iii. 10: _to ordain elders_, Tit. i. 5; Acts
+xiv. 23: to use the _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, in the dispensing
+of all ordinances, Matt, xviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt,
+xxviii. 18-20: and, in a word, (as the cause shall require,) to judge of
+all them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.
+
+This is the power and authority wherein the nature of church government
+generally doth consist.
+
+2. That all governments in Scripture are styled by the common names of
+power or authority: e.g. the absolute government of God over all things,
+is power, Acts i. 7: the supreme government of Jesus Christ, is power,
+Matt, xxviii. 18; Rev. xii. 10: the political government of the
+magistrate in commonwealths, is power, as John xix. 10; Rom. xiii. 1-3;
+Luke xxiii. 7: the military government of soldiers under superior
+commanders, is power, &c., Matt. viii. 9: the family government that the
+master of a family hath over his household, is power, 1 Tim. iii. 5, "If
+any man know not how to rule his own house." Yea, the very tyrannical
+rule that sin and Satan exercise over carnal men, is styled power, Acts
+xxvi. 18; Col. i. 13. Thus, generally, all sorts of government are
+commonly called power or authority.
+
+3. That thus the Scripture also styles church government, viz. power or
+authority, as 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority" (or power) "which the Lord
+hath given us for your edification." Paul speaks it of this power of
+church government. And again, speaking of the same subject, he saith,
+"Lest being present, I should use sharpness, according to the power
+which the Lord hath given me to edification, and not to destruction." 2
+Cor. xiii. 10.
+
+For further clearing hereof, consider the several sorts or kinds of
+ecclesiastical power, according to this type or scheme of ecclesiastical
+power and authority here subjoined.
+
+Ecclesiastical power is either supreme and magisterial; or subordinate
+and ministerial.
+
+I. Supreme magisterial power, consisting in a lordly dominion and
+sovereignty over the Church; and may come under a double consideration,
+viz:
+
+1. As it is justly attributed to God alone. Thus the absolute
+sovereignty and supreme power (to speak properly) is only his over the
+Church, and all creatures in the whole universe: now this supreme divine
+power is either essential or mediatorial.
+
+1. Essential, viz. that power which belongs to the essence of God, and
+to every person of the Trinity in common, as God. "His kingdom ruleth
+over all," Psal. ciii. 19. "God ruleth in Jacob to the ends of the
+earth," Psal. lix. 13. "The kingdom is the Lord's, and he is the
+Governor among the nations," Psal. xxii. 28.
+
+2. Mediatorial, viz. that magisterial, lordly, and sovereign power or
+dominion, which God hath dispensed, delegated, or committed to Christ as
+Mediator, being both head of the Church, and over all things to the
+Church. This power is peculiar only to Jesus Christ our Mediator. "All
+power is given to me both in heaven and in earth," Matt. xxviii. 18.
+"The Father loveth the Son, and hath given all things into his hand,"
+John iii. 35. "The Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all
+judgment to the Son," John v. 22. "One is your Master, even Christ,"
+Matt. xxiii. 8, 10. "God hath put all things under his feet, and gave
+him to be head over all things to the Church," Eph. i. 20-23.--This
+power of Christ is the only proper fountain whence all ecclesiastical
+power flows to the Church.
+
+II. As it is unjustly arrogated and usurped by man; whether, 1. By the
+pope to himself; who arrogates to himself to be Christ's vicar, the
+supreme visible head on earth of the visible catholic Church of Christ;
+who exalts himself above all that is called God on earth, over
+magistrates, princes, kings, yea, over the souls and consciences of
+men, and the holy Scriptures of God themselves, &c., 2 Thess. ii. 4;
+Rev. xviii. 10-13.
+
+2. By earthly princes to themselves: as, King Henry VIII., who, casting
+off the papal power and primacy, was vested with it himself within his
+own dominions, over the Church, accounting himself the fountain of all
+ecclesiastical power, (it being by statute law annexed to the crown,)
+and assuming to himself that papal title of supreme head of the Church,
+&c., which is sharply taxed by orthodox divines of foreign churches.
+Thus, that most learned Rivet, taxing Bishop Gardiner for extolling the
+king's primacy, saith, "For, he that did as yet nourish the doctrine of
+the papacy, as after it appeared, did erect a new papacy in the person
+of the king."--Andrew Rivet, _Expli. Decalog. Edit._ ii. page 203.
+Judicious Calvin saith thus: "And to this day how many are there in the
+papacy that heap upon kings whatsoever right and power they can
+possibly, so that there may not be any dispute of religion; but should
+this power be in one king, to decree according to his own pleasure
+whatsoever he pleaseth, and that should remain fixed without
+controversy? They that at first so much extolled Henry, king of England,
+(certainly they were inconsiderate men,) gave unto him supreme power of
+all things, and this grievously wounded me always; for they were
+blasphemers, when they called him the supreme head of the Church under
+Christ: certainly this was too much. But let this remain buried, because
+they sinned by an inconsiderate zeal. But when that impostor, (he means
+Bishop Gardiner, as Rivet notes,) which after was chancellor of this
+Proserpina, which there at this day overcometh all the devils, he when
+he was at Ratisbon did not contend with reasons, (I speak of this last
+chancellor, who was Bishop of Winchester,) but as I now began to say, he
+much regarded not scripture testimonies; but said, it was at the
+pleasure of the king to abrogate the statutes, and institute new rites.
+Touching fasting, there the king can enjoin and command the people, that
+this or that day the people may eat flesh: yea, that it is lawful for
+the king to forbid priests to marry; yea, that it is lawful for the king
+to forbid to the people the use of the cup in the Lord's supper; that it
+is lawful for the king to decree this or that in his kingdom. Why?
+Because the king hath the supreme power. It is certain, if kings do
+their duty, they are both patrons of religion, and nurse-fathers of the
+Church, as Isaiah calls them, Isa. xlix. 23. This, therefore, is
+principally required of kings, that they use the sword wherewith they
+are furnished, for the maintaining of God's worship. But in the mean
+time there are inconsiderate men, that make them too spiritual; and this
+fault reigns up and down Germany; yea, spreads too much in
+these countries. And now we perceive what fruits spring from this root,
+viz: that princes, and all that are in place of government, think
+themselves to be so spiritual, that there is no other ecclesiastical
+government. And this sacrilege creeps among us, because they cannot
+measure their office with certain and lawful bounds, but are of opinion
+they cannot reign, unless they abolish all the authority of the Church,
+and become the chief judges both in doctrine, and in the whole spiritual
+government. At the beginning they pretend some zeal; but mere ambition
+drives them, that so solicitously they snatch all things to themselves.
+Therefore there ought to be a temper kept; for this disease hath always
+reigned in princes, to desire to bend religion according to their own
+pleasure and lust, and for their own profits in the mean time. For they
+have respect to their profit, because for the most part they are not
+acted by the Spirit of God, but their ambition carries them." Thus
+Calvin in Amos vii. 13. Oh what exclamations would this holy man have
+poured out, had he lived to see the passages of our days! _Quis talia
+fando temperet a lachrymis!_[25]
+
+II. Subordinate ministerial power, which is either,
+
+1. Indirectly, improperly, and only objectively ecclesiastical or
+spiritual, (so called, because it is exercised about spiritual or
+ecclesiastical objects, though formally in its own nature it be properly
+a mere civil or political power.) This is that power which is allowed to
+the civil magistrate about religion; he is _an overseer of things
+without the Church_, having an external care of religion as a
+_nurse-father_, Isa. xlix. 23; as had Hezekiah, Josiah, Asa,
+Jehoshaphat, &c.; so as, by the law, to restore religion decayed, reform
+the Church corrupted, protect the Church reformed, &c.
+
+2. Directly, properly, and formally ecclesiastical or spiritual, having
+respect properly to matters within the Church. This power only belongs
+to church officers, who are overseers of things within, 1 Cor. iv. 20,
+21; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and this is either, 1. More special and
+peculiar to the office of some church governors only, as the power of
+preaching the gospel, dispensing the sacraments, &c., which is only
+committed to the ministers of the gospel, and which they, as ministers,
+may execute, in virtue of their office. This is called by some the key
+of doctrine, or key of knowledge; by others, the power of order, or of
+special office. See Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Rom. x. 15; 1 Tim. v. 17. 2.
+More general and common to the office of all church governors, as the
+power of censures, &c., wherein ruling elders act with ministers,
+admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the incorrigible, remitting and
+receiving again of the penitent into church communion. Compare Matt,
+xviii. 17, 18; 1 Cor. v. 2, 4, 5, 7, 11-13; 2 Cor. ii. 6-12, with Rom.
+xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and 1 Tim. v. 17. This is called the key of
+discipline, or power of jurisdiction.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV.
+
+_Of the special difference of Church Government from other Governments.
+And first of the Special Rule of Church Government, viz. the Holy
+Scriptures._
+
+
+Touching the special difference, whereby church government is in this
+description distinguished from all other governments whatsoever, it
+consists of many branches, which will require more large explication and
+confirmation; and shall be handled, not according to that order, as they
+are first named in the description, but according to the order of
+nature, as they most conduce to the clearing of one another, every
+branch being distinctly laid down, as followeth:
+
+The rule or standard of church government is only the holy Scriptures.
+Thus in the description, church government is styled a power or
+authority revealed in the holy Scriptures. For clearing hereof, take
+this proposition, viz:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a perfect and
+sufficient rule for the government of his visible Church under the New
+Testament, which all the members of his Church ought to observe and
+submit unto until the end of the world. For clearing this, weigh these
+considerations:
+
+1. The government of the visible Church under the New Testament is as
+needful as ever it was under the Old Testament. What necessity of
+government could be pleaded then, which may not as strongly be pleaded
+now? Is not the visible Church of Christ a mixed body of sound and
+unsound members, of fruitful and barren branches, of tares and wheat, of
+good and bad, of sincere believers and hypocrites, of sheep and goats,
+&c., now as well as it was then? Is there not as great cause to separate
+and distinguish by church power, between the precious and the vile, the
+clean and the unclean, (who are apt to defile, infect, and leaven one
+another,) now as well as then? Ought there not to be as great care over
+the holy ordinances of God, to preserve and guard them from contempt and
+pollution, by a hedge and fence of government, now as well as then? Is
+it not as necessary that by government sin be suppressed, piety
+promoted, and the Church edified, now as well as then? But under the Old
+Testament the Church visible had a perfect rule of church government,
+(as is granted on all sides:) and hath Jesus Christ left his Church now
+under the New Testament in a worse condition?
+
+2. The Lord Jesus Christ (upon whose shoulder God hath laid the
+government, Isa. ix. 6, and unto whom _all power both in heaven and in
+earth is given_ by the Father to that end, Matt. xxviii. 18) _is most
+faithful in all his house_, the Church, fully to discharge all the trust
+committed to him, and completely to supply his Church with all
+necessaries both to her being, and well-being ecclesiastical. Moses was
+faithful in the Old Testament; for, as God gave him a pattern of church
+government in the ceremonial law, so he did all things according to the
+pattern; and shall the Lord Jesus be less faithful as _a son over his
+own house,_ than was Moses as a servant over another's house? "Consider
+the Apostle and High Priest of our profession, Christ Jesus, who was
+faithful to him that appointed him, as also Moses was faithful in all
+his house--and Moses verily was faithful in all his house as a
+servant--but Christ as a son over his own house, whose house are we,"
+Heb. iii. 1, 2, 5, 6. Yea, "Jesus Christ, the same yesterday, and
+to-day, and forever," Heb. xiii. 8, giving a pattern of church
+government to Moses, and the church officers of the Old Testament, (the
+Church being then as a child in nonage and minority, Gal, iv. 1, &c.,)
+can we imagine he hath not as carefully left a pattern of church
+government to his apostles, and the church officers of the New
+Testament, the Church being now as a man come to full age and maturity?
+
+3. The holy Scriptures are now completely and unalterably perfect,
+containing such exact rules for the churches of God in all states and
+ages, both under the Old and New Testament, that not only the people of
+God, of all sorts and degrees, but also the men of God, and officers of
+the Church, of all sorts and ages, may thereby be made perfect,
+thoroughly furnished unto all good works. "The law of the Lord is
+perfect," Psal. xix. 7. "All Scripture is given by inspiration of God,
+and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for
+instruction in righteousness, that the man of God may be perfect,
+thoroughly furnished to every good work," 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17. And in his
+first epistle to Timothy, (which is the Church's directory for divine
+worship, discipline, and government,) he saith, "These things write I
+unto thee--that thou mightest know how thou oughtest to behave thyself
+in the house of God, which is the Church of the living God," (this is
+spoken in reference to matters of church government peculiarly,) 1 Tim.
+iii. 14, 15. And the apostle, having respect to the former matters in
+his epistle, saith to Timothy, and to all Timothies after him, "I give
+thee charge in the sight of God--that thou keep this commandment without
+spot, unrebukable, until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ,"
+(therefore, this charge is intended for all ministers after Timothy to
+the world's end,) 1 Tim. vi. 13, 14, compared with 1 Tim. v. 21, observe
+_these things_. And the perfection of the whole scripture canon is
+sealed up with that testimony in the close of the last book, "If any man
+shall add unto these things, God shall add unto him the plagues that are
+written in this book: and if any man shall take away from the words of
+the book of this prophecy, God shall take away his part out of the book
+of life, and out of the holy city, and from the things which are written
+in this book," Rev. xxii. 18, 19. Now, if the Scriptures be thus
+accurately perfect and complete, they must needs contain a sufficient
+pattern, and rules of church government now under the New Testament;
+which rules are scattered here and there in several books of the word,
+(as flowers grow scattered in the field, as silver is mingled in the
+mine, or as gold is mixed with the sand,) that so God may exercise his
+Church, in sifting and searching them out.
+
+4. All the substantials of church government under the New Testament are
+laid down in the word in particular rules, whether they be touching
+officers, ordinances, censures, assemblies, and the compass of their
+power, as after will appear; and all the circumstantials are laid down
+in the word, under general rules of order, decency, and edification, 1
+Cor, xiv. 40, and ver. 5,12, 26.
+
+Consequently, there is a perfect and sufficient rule for church
+government laid down in the Scriptures, which is obligatory upon all.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V.
+
+_Of the Proper Author or Fountain, whence Church Government and the
+authority thereof is derived by Divine Right, viz. Jesus Christ our
+Mediator._
+
+
+As the Scripture is the rule of church government, so Christ is the sole
+root and fountain whence it originally flows; therefore, it is said in
+the description, church government is a power or authority, derived from
+Jesus Christ our Mediator. Take it in this proposition, viz:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath all authority and power in heaven and in
+earth, for the government of his Church, committed unto him from God the
+Father. This is clearly evident,
+
+1. By plain testimonies of Scripture, declaring that the government of
+the Church is laid upon his shoulder, to which end the Father hath
+invested him with all authority and power. "The government shall be upon
+his shoulder," &c., Isa. ix. 6,7. "All power is given me in heaven and in
+earth: go, disciple ye all nations," &c., Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. "He shall
+be great, and shall be called the Son of the Highest, and the Lord God
+shall give unto him the throne of his father David; and he shall reign
+over the house of Jacob forever, and of his kingdom there shall be no
+end," Luke i. 32, 33. "The Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all
+judgment to the Son; and hath given him authority to execute judgment
+also, because he is the Son of man," John v. 22, 27. "The Father loveth
+the Son, and hath given all things into his hand," John iii. 35. "It is
+he that hath the key of David, that openeth and no man shutteth, and
+shutteth and no man openeth," Rev. iii. 7. "God raised him from the
+dead, and set him at his own right hand in the heavenly places, far
+above all principality, and power, and might, and dominion, and every
+name that is named, not only in this world, but also in that which is to
+come: and hath put all things under his feet, and gave him to be the
+head over all things to the Church, which is his body," Eph. i. 20-23,
+
+2. By eminent princely titles, attributed unto Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, having such authority, power, rule, and government legibly
+engraven upon their foreheads, in reference to his Church.
+
+"A Governor which shall feed" (or rule) "my people Israel," Matt. ii. 6.
+"That great Shepherd of the sheep," Heb. xiii. 20. "That Shepherd and
+Bishop of our souls," 1 Pet. ii. ult. "One is your master, Christ,"
+Matt, xxiii. 8, 10. "Christ as a son over his own house," Heb. iii. 6.
+"The Head of the body the Church," Col. i. 18; Eph. v. 23. "Head over
+all things to the Church," Eph. i. 22. "To us but one Lord Jesus
+Christ," 1 Cor. viii. 6. "Made of God both Lord and Christ," Acts ii.
+36. "Lord of lords," Rev. xix. 16. "He is Lord of all," Acts x. 36.
+"God's King set on his holy hill of Zion," Psal. ii. 6. "David their
+king," Jer. xxx. 9; Ezek. xxxiv. 23, and xxxvii. 24; Hos. iii. 5. "King
+of kings," Rev. xix. 16.
+
+3. By those primitive, fundamental, imperial acts of power, and supreme
+authority in the government of the Church, which are peculiarly ascribed
+to Jesus Christ our Mediator, as appropriate to him alone, above all
+creatures, e.g.
+
+1. The giving of laws to his Church. "The law of Christ," Gal. vi. 2.
+"Gave commandments to the apostles," Acts i. 2. "There is one Lawgiver,
+who is able to save and to destroy," James iv. 12. "The Lord is our
+judge, the Lord is our lawgiver," (or statute-maker,) "the Lord is our
+king," Isa. xxxiii. 22.
+
+2. The constituting of ordinances, whereby his Church shall be edified:
+as _preaching the word_, Matt. x. 7; 1 Cor. i. 17; Matt, xxviii. 18-20;
+Mark xvi. 15. _Administering of the sacraments. Baptism_, John i. 33,
+with Matt. iii. 13, &c., and xxviii. 18, 19. _The Lord's supper_, 1 Cor.
+xi. 20, 23, &c.; Matt. xxvi. 26, &c.; Mark xiv. 22, &c.; Luke xxii. 19,
+20. _Dispensing of censures_, Matt. xvi. 10, with xviii. 15-18, &c.
+
+3. The ordaining and appointing of his own church officers, by whom his
+ordinances shall be dispensed and managed in his Church. "He gave gifts
+to men; and he gave some, apostles; and some, prophets; and some,
+evangelists; and some, pastors and teachers," Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11; compare
+1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Thess. v. 12; Acts xx. 28.
+
+4. The dispensing of Christ's ordinances, not in the name of
+magistrates, ministers, churches, councils, &c., but in Christ's own
+name. The apostles did "speak and teach in the name of Jesus," Acts iv.
+17, 18. "Whatsoever ye ask in my name," John xiv. 13, 14, and xvi. 23.
+"Baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son," Matt,
+xxviii. 18, 19. "They were baptized in the name of the Lord Jesus," Acts
+xix. 5. "In the name--with the power of our Lord Jesus Christ, to
+deliver such a one to Satan," 1 Cor. v. 4. Yea, assemblies of the Church
+are to be in Christ's name: "Where two or three are gathered together in
+my name," Matt, xviii. 20.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI.
+
+_Of the Special Kind, or Peculiar Nature of this Power and Authority._
+
+
+Having viewed what is the rule of this authority, viz. the holy
+Scriptures, and what is the fountain of this authority, viz. Jesus
+Christ our Mediator; now consider the special kind or peculiar nature of
+this authority, which the description lays down in two several
+expressions, viz: 1. It is a spiritual power or authority. 2. It is a
+derived power, &c.
+
+1. The power or authority of church government is a spiritual power.
+Spiritual, not so perfectly and completely as Christ's supreme
+government is spiritual, who alone hath absolute and immediate power and
+authority over the very spirits and consciences of men; ruling them by
+the invisible influence of his Spirit and grace as he pleaseth, John
+iii. 8; Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20: but so purely, properly, and merely
+spiritual is this power, that it really, essentially, and specifically
+differs, and is contradistinct from that power which is properly civil,
+worldly, and political, in the hand of the political magistrate. Now,
+that this power of church government is in this sense properly, purely,
+merely spiritual: and that by divine right may be evidenced many ways
+according to Scripture; forasmuch as the rule, fountain, matter, form,
+subject, object, end, and the all of this power, is only spiritual.
+
+1. Spiritual in the rule, revealing and regulating it, viz. not any
+principles of state policy, parliament rolls, any human statutes, laws,
+ordinances, edicts, decrees, traditions, or precepts of men whatsoever,
+according to which cities, provinces, kingdoms, empires, may be happily
+governed: but the holy Scriptures, that perfect divine canon, wherein
+the Lord Christ hath revealed sufficiently how his own house, his
+Church, shall be ruled, 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15; and all his ordinances,
+word, sacraments, censures, &c., shall therein be dispensed, 2 Tim. iii.
+16, 17. (See chap. IV.) Now this Scripture is divinely breathed, or
+inspired of God--holy men writing not according to the fallible will of
+man, but the infallible acting of the Holy Ghost, 2 Tim. iii. 16, with 2
+Pet. i. 20, 21.
+
+2. Spiritual in the fountain or author of this power, whence it
+originally flows; it being derived, not from any magistrate, prince, or
+potentate in the world, not from any man on earth, or the will of man;
+but only from Jesus Christ our Mediator, himself being the sole or first
+receptacle of all power from the Father, Matt. xxviii. 18; John v. 22:
+and consequently, the very fountain of all power and authority to his
+Church, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, with John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18-20; 2 Cor. x. 8. See this formerly cleared, chap. III. and V.
+
+3. Spiritual in the matter of it, and the several parts of this power:
+therefore called the _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, not the keys of
+the kingdoms of earth, Matt. xvi. 19, (as Christ professed his _kingdom
+was not of this world_, John xviii. 36; and when one requested of
+Christ, that by his authority he would speak to his brother to divide
+the inheritance with him, Christ disclaimed utterly all such worldly,
+earthly power, saying, "Man, who made me a judge or a divider over you?"
+Luke xii. 13, 14.) Consider these heavenly spiritual keys in the kinds
+of them, whether of doctrine or discipline; or in the acts of them,
+whether of binding or loosing, in all which they are spiritual: e.g. the
+doctrine which is preached is not human but divine, revealed in the
+Scriptures by the Spirit of God, and handling most sublime spiritual
+mysteries of religion, 2 Pet. i.; 2 Tim. iii. 16,17. The seals
+administered are not worldly seals, confirming and ratifying any carnal
+privileges, liberties, interests, authority, &c., but spiritual,
+_sealing the righteousness of faith_, Rom. iv. 11; the death and blood
+of Jesus Christ, with all the spiritual virtue and efficacy thereof unto
+his members, Rom. v. 6; Gal. iii.; 1 Cor. x. 16, 17, and xi. 23, 24, &c.
+The censures dispensed are not pecuniary, corporal, or capital, by
+fines, confiscations, imprisonments, whippings, stocking, stigmatizing,
+or taking away of limb or life, (all such things this government meddles
+not withal, but leaves them to such as bear the civil sword,) but
+spiritual, that only concern the soul and conscience; as _admonishing_
+of the unruly and disorderly, Matt, xviii. 18, 19; _casting out the
+incorrigible_ and obstinate from the spiritual fellowship of the saints,
+Matt. xviii. 18, 19; 2 Cor. v. ult.: _receiving again into spiritual
+communion_ of the faithful, such as are penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 6. Thus the
+binding and loosing, which are counted the chief acts of the keys, are
+spiritually by our Saviour interpreted to be the _remitting and
+retaining of sins_; compare Matt, xviii. 18, 19, with John xx. 21, 23.
+
+4. Spiritual in the form and manner, as well as in the matter. For this
+power is to be exercised, not in a natural manner, or in any carnal
+name, of earthly magistrate, court, parliament, prince, or potentate
+whatsoever, as all secular civil power is; no, nor in the name of
+saints, ministers, or the churches: but in a spiritual manner, in the
+name of the Lord Jesus, from whom alone all his officers receive their
+commissions. The word is to be _preached in his name_, Acts xvii. 18:
+seals dispensed in his name, Matt. xxviii. 19; Acts xix. 5: censures
+inflicted in his name, 1 Cor. v. 4, &c. (See chap. V.)
+
+5. Spiritual in the subject intrusted with this power; which is not any
+civil, political, or secular magistrate, (as after will more fully
+appear, in chap. IX.) but spiritual officers, which Christ himself hath
+instituted and bestowed upon his Church, _apostles_, &c., _pastors,
+teachers, elders_, Eph. iv. 7, 8, 10, 11. To these only he hath given
+the _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18,19,
+and xxviii. 18, 19; John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, _authority which the
+Lord hath given us_. These he hath made _governments in his Church_, 1
+Cor. xii. 28. To these he will have _obedience and subjection_
+performed, Heb. xiii. 17, and _double honor_ allowed, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+
+6. Spiritual in respect of the object about which this power is to be
+put forth and exercised, viz. not about things, actions, or persons
+civil, as such; but spiritual and ecclesiastical, as such. Thus
+injurious actions, not as trespasses against any statute or law
+political; but as scandalous to our brethren, or the Church of God,
+Matt, xviii. 18, 19; are considered and punished by this power. Thus the
+incestuous person was cast out, because a wicked person in himself, and
+likely to leaven others by his bad example, 1 Cor. v. 6. Thus the
+persons whom the Church may judge are not the men of the world without
+the Church, but those that are in some sense spiritual, and within the
+Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.
+
+7. Spiritual also is this power in the scope and end of it. This the
+Scripture frequently inculcates: e.g. a brother is to be admonished
+privately, publicly, &c., not for the gaining of our private interests,
+advantages, &c., but for _the gaining of our brother_, that his soul and
+conscience may be gained to God and to his duty, and he be reformed,
+Matt, xviii. 15. The incestuous person is to be "delivered to Satan, for
+the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day of
+our Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5; yea, the whole authority given to church
+guides from the Lord was given to this end, _for the edification, not
+the destruction_ of the Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; all which,
+and such like, are spiritual ends. Thus the power of church government
+here described is wholly and entirely a spiritual power, whether we
+respect the rule, root, matter, form, subject, object, or end thereof.
+So that in this respect it is really and specifically distinct from all
+civil power, and in no respect encroacheth upon, or can be prejudicial
+unto the magistrate's authority, which is properly and only political.
+
+2. The power or authority of church government is a derived power. For
+clearing this, observe, there is a magisterial primitive supreme power,
+which is peculiar to Jesus Christ our Mediator, (as hath been proved,
+chap. III. and V:) and there is a ministerial, derivative, subordinate
+power, which the Scripture declares to be in church guides, Matt. xvi.
+19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 23; Matt, xxviii. 19, 20; 2 Cor. x. 8,
+and xiii. 10, and often elsewhere this is abundantly testified. But
+whence is this power originally derived to them? Here we are carefully
+to consider and distinguish three things, touching this power or
+authority from one another, viz: 1st. The donation of the authority
+itself, and of the offices whereunto this power doth properly belong.
+2d. The designation of particular persons to such offices as are vested
+with such power. 3d. The public protection, countenancing, authorizing,
+defending, and maintaining of such officers in the public exercise of
+such power within such and such realms or dominions. This being
+premised, we may clearly thus resolve, according to scripture warrant,
+viz. the designation or setting apart of particular individual persons
+to those offices in the Church that have power and authority engraven
+upon them, is from the church nominating, electing, and ordaining of
+such persons thereunto, see Acts iii. 1-3; 1 Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22;
+Tit. i. 5; Acts iv. 22. The public protection, defence, maintenance,
+&c., of such officers in the public exercise of the power and authority
+of their office in such or such dominions, is from the civil magistrate,
+as the _nursing-father_ of the Church, Isa. xlix. 23; for it is by his
+authority and sanction that such public places shall be set apart for
+the public ministry, that such maintenance and reward shall be legally
+performed for such a ministry, that all such persons of such and such
+congregations shall be (in case they neglect their duty to such a
+ministry) punished with such political penalties, &c. But the donation
+of the office and spiritual authority annexed thereunto, is only derived
+from Jesus Christ our Mediator. He alone gives all church officers, and
+therefore none may devise or superadd any new officers, Eph. iv. 7, 8,
+10, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28. And he alone commits all authority and power
+spiritual to those officers, for dispensing of word, sacraments,
+censures, and all ordinances, Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18-20; John xx.
+21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: and therefore it is not safe for any
+creature to intrude upon this prerogative royal of Christ to give any
+power to any officer of the Church. None can give what he has not.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII.
+
+_Of the several Parts or Acts of this power of Church Government,
+wherein it puts forth itself in the Church._
+
+
+Thus far of the special kind or peculiar nature of this authority; now
+to the several parts or acts of this power which the description
+comprehends in these expressions, (in dispensing the word, seals,
+censures, and all other ordinances of Christ.) The evangelical
+ordinances which Christ has set up in his church are many; and all of
+them by divine right that Christ sets up. Take both the enumeration of
+ordinances and the divine right thereof severally, as followeth.
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath instituted and appointed these ensuing
+administrations to be standing and perpetual ordinances in his church:
+which ordinances for method sake may be reduced into two heads,
+according to the distribution of the keys formerly laid down, (chap.
+III.,) viz., ordinances appertaining, 1st, To the key of order or of
+doctrine; 2d, To the key of jurisdiction or of discipline.
+
+1. Ordinances appertaining to the key of order or doctrine, viz:
+
+1. Public prayer and thanksgiving are divine ordinances: for 1st, Paul
+writing his first epistle to Timothy, "that he might know how to behave
+himself in the house of God," 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15, among other directions
+in that epistle, gives this for one, "I exhort therefore that first of
+all supplications, prayers, intercessions, and giving of thanks be made
+for all men," 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2, "for this is good and acceptable in the
+sight of God our Saviour," verse 3. 2. The apostle, regulating public
+prayers in the congregation, directing that they should be performed
+with the understanding, takes it for granted that public prayer was an
+ordinance of Christ. "If I pray in an unknown tongue, my spirit prayeth,
+but my understanding is unfruitful. What is it then? I will pray with
+the spirit, and will pray with the understanding also. Else when thou
+shalt bless with the spirit, how shall he that occupieth the room of the
+unlearned, say amen at thy giving of thanks, seeing he understandeth not
+what thou sayest? for thou verily givest thanks well, but the other is
+not edified." 1 Cor. xiv. 14-17. 3. Further, the apostles did account
+public prayer to be of more concern than serving of tables, and
+providing for the necessities of the poor, yea, to be a principal part
+of their ministerial office, and therefore resolve to addict and "give
+themselves to the ministry of the word and to prayer," Acts vi. 4; and
+this was the church's practice in the purest times, Acts i. 13, 14,
+whose pious action is for our imitation. 4. And Jesus Christ hath made
+gracious promises to public prayer, viz., of his presence with those who
+assemble in his name; and of audience of their prayers, Matt, xviii. 19,
+20. Would Christ so crown public prayer were it not his own ordinance?
+
+2. Singing of psalms is a divine ordinance, being,
+
+1. Prescribed; "be filled with the spirit: speaking to yourselves in
+psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs," Eph. v. 18, 19. "Let the word
+of Christ dwell in you richly in all wisdom, teaching and admonishing
+one another in psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs," Col. iii. 16.
+
+2. Regulated; the right performance thereof being laid down, "I will
+sing with the spirit, and I will sing with the understanding also," 1
+Cor. xiv. 15, 16. "Singing with grace in your hearts to the Lord," Col.
+iii. 16. "Singing and making melody in your hearts to the Lord," Eph. v.
+19.
+
+3. The public ministry of the word of God in the congregation is a
+divine ordinance. "We will give ourselves," said the apostles, "to the
+ministry of the word and prayer," Acts vi. 4. The ministry of the word
+is a sacred ordinance, whether read, preached, or catechetically
+propounded.
+
+1. The public reading of the word is a divine ordinance, (though
+exposition of what is read do not always immediately follow.) For, 1.
+God commanded the reading of the word publicly, and never since repealed
+that command, Deut. xxxi. 11-13; Jer. xxxvi. 6; Col. iii. 16. 2. Public
+reading of the scriptures hath been the practice of God's church, both
+before Christ, Exod. xxiv. 7; Neh. viii. 18, and ix. 3, and xiii. 1; and
+after Christ, Acts xiii. 15, 27, and xv. 21; 2 Cor. iii. 14. 3. Public
+reading of the scriptures is as necessary and profitable now as ever it
+was. See Deut. xxxi. 11-13.
+
+2. The public preaching of the word is an eminent ordinance of Christ.
+This is evident many ways, viz:
+
+1. Christ hath commanded that the word shall be preached. "Go ye into
+all the world, and preach the gospel to every creature," Mark xvi. 15.
+"Go ye, therefore, and disciple ye all nations; teaching them to observe
+all things whatsoever I have commanded you," Matt, xxviii. 19, 20. "As
+ye go, preach, saying, The kingdom of heaven is at hand," Matt. x. 7.
+See also Mark iii. 14. "I charge thee," &c. "Preach the word," 2 Tim.
+iv. 1, 2. "Necessity is laid upon me, yea, wo is unto me if I preach not
+the gospel," 1 Cor. ix. 16, 17. "Christ sent me--to preach the gospel,"
+1 Cor. i. 17; with which compare also Acts xx. 28, and 1 Pet. v. 1-4.
+
+2. Christ hath appointed who shall preach the word. "How shall they
+preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15. The qualifications of preaching
+elders see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, and Tit. i. 5-9.
+
+3. Christ hath appointed how the word shall be preached. "Be instant, in
+season, out of season, reprove, rebuke, exhort with all long-suffering
+and doctrine," 2 Tim. iv. 2. "That he may be able by sound doctrine
+both to exhort and convince gainsayers," Tit. i. 9. "He that hath my
+word, let him speak my word faithfully: what is the chaff to the wheat,
+saith the Lord?" Jer. xxiii. 28.
+
+4. Christ hath made many encouraging promises to the preaching of his
+word, which he would not have done, were it not his own ordinance.
+"Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you,
+and lo I am with you every day to the end of the world," Matt, xxviii.
+20. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth, shall be bound in heaven; and
+whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven," Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted
+unto them: and whose soever sins ye retain, they are retained," John xx.
+23. Both these are partly meant of doctrinal binding and loosing,
+remitting and retaining. "Be not afraid, but speak, and hold not thy
+peace: for I am with thee, and no man shall set on thee to hurt thee,
+for I have much people in this city," Acts xviii. 9, 10.
+
+3. The catechetical propounding or expounding of the word, viz. a plain,
+familiar laying down of the first principles of the oracles of God, is
+an ordinance of Christ also. For, 1. This was the apostolical way of
+teaching the churches at the first plantation thereof. "When for the
+time ye ought to be teachers, ye have need that one teach you again
+which be the first principles of the oracles of God, and are become such
+as have need of milk and not of strong meat," Heb. v. 12. "Therefore,
+leaving the word of the beginning of Christ, let us go on unto
+perfection, not laying again the foundation of repentance from dead
+works, and of faith towards God," &c., Heb. vi. 1,2. "And I, brethren,
+could not speak unto you as unto spiritual, but as unto carnal, as unto
+babes in Christ. I have fed you with milk, and not with meat, for
+hitherto ye were not able to bear it, neither yet now are ye able," 1
+Cor. iii. 1, 2. 2. And this is the sense of pastor and people which the
+Holy Ghost useth, setting forth the reciprocal relation and office
+between them, with his own approbation. "Let him that is catechized in
+the word, communicate to him that catechizeth him, in all good things,"
+Gal. vi. 6.
+
+4. The administration of the sacraments is of divine institution.
+
+1. Of baptism. "He that sent me to baptize with water," John i. 33. "Go
+ye therefore, disciple ye all nations, baptizing them into the name of
+the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost," Matt, xxviii. 18-20.
+
+2. Of the Lord's supper, which Christ ordained _the same night in which
+he was betrayed_: which institution is at large described, 1 Cor. xi.
+20, 23, &c.; Matt. xxvi. 26-31; Mark xiv. 22-27; Luke xxii. 19, 20.
+
+2. Ordinances appertaining to the key of jurisdiction or of discipline,
+viz:
+
+1. The ordination of presbyters with imposition of the hands of the
+presbytery, after praying and fasting, is a divine ordinance. "Neglect
+not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by prophecy with the
+laying on of the hands of the presbytery," 1 Tim. iv. 14. Titus was left
+in Crete for this end, "To set in order things that were wanting, and
+ordain presbyters" (or elders) "in every city, as Paul had appointed
+him," Tit. i. 5. Timothy is charged, "Lay hands suddenly on no man,
+neither be partaker of other men's sins; keep thyself pure," 1 Tim. v.
+22. Paul and Barnabas came to Lystra, Iconium, and Antioch, and "when
+they had ordained them presbyters in every church, and had prayed with
+fasting, they commended them to the Lord," &c., Acts xiv. 21, 23.
+
+2. Authoritative discerning, and judging of doctrine according to the
+word of God, is a divine ordinance. As that council at Jerusalem,
+authoritatively (viz. by ministerial authority) judged of both the false
+doctrine and manners of false teachers, branding them for "troublers of
+the Church, subverters of souls," &c. "Forasmuch as we have heard that
+certain, coming forth from u, have troubled you with words, subverting
+your souls, saying, ye ought to be circumcised, and keep the law, to
+whom we gave no such commandment," Acts xv. 24; "it seemed good to the
+Holy Ghost, and to us, to impose upon you no greater burden than these
+necessary things," v. 28; and this was done upon debates from scripture
+grounds, "and to this the words of the prophets agree," Acts xv. 15:
+and afterwards their results and determinations are called "decrees
+ordained by the apostles and elders," Acts xvi. 4.
+
+3. Admonition and public rebuke of sinners is a divine ordinance of
+Christ. "If thy brother trespass against thee, go and tell him his
+fault between thee and him alone: if he will not hear thee, then take
+with thee one or two more--and if he shall neglect to hear them, tell it
+unto the Church," Matt, xviii. 15-17. "Whose soever sins ye bind on
+earth shall be bound in heaven," John xx. 23. One way and degree of
+binding is by authoritative, convincing reproof. "Admonish the unruly,"
+1 Thess. v. 14. "An heretic, after the first and second admonition,
+reject," Tit. iii. 1. "Them that sin, convincingly reprove before all,
+that the rest also may fear," 1 Tim. v. 20. "Rebuke them sharply," (or
+convince them cuttingly,) Tit. iii. 13. "Sufficient to such an one is
+that rebuke, which was from many," 2 Cor. ii. 6.
+
+4. Rejecting, and purging out, or putting away from the communion of the
+Church, wicked and incorrigible persons, is an ordinance of Christ. "And
+if he will not hear them, tell the Church; but if he will not hear the
+Church, let him be unto thee even as a heathen and a publican." "Verily,
+I say unto you, what things soever ye shall bind on earth, they shall be
+bound in heaven," Matt, xviii. 17, 18, compared with Matt. xvi. 19, and
+John xx. 21, 23. "An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject,"
+Tit. iii. 10; i.e. excommunicate, till he repent--_Pisc. in loc._ By
+the lawful judgment of the Church, to deliver the impenitent to
+Satan.--_Beza in loc._ "Of whom is Hymeneus and Alexander, whom I have
+delivered to Satan, that they may learn not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i. 20.
+The apostle's scope in 1 Cor. v. is to press the church of Corinth to
+excommunicate the incestuous person. "Ye are puffed up, and have not
+rather mourned, that he that hath done this deed may be taken from the
+midst of you. For I verily, as absent in body, but present in spirit,
+have already as present judged him that thus wrought this thing. In the
+name of our Lord Jesus Christ, you being gathered together, and my
+spirit with the power of our Lord Jesus Christ, to deliver such an one
+to Satan for the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved
+in the day of our Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 2-5. "Know ye not that a little
+leaven leaveneth the whole lump? Purge out therefore the old leaven,"
+ver. 7. "I wrote to you in an epistle, not to be mingled together with
+fornicators," ver. 9, 11; and explaining what he meant by not being
+_mingled together_, saith, "If any named a brother be a fornicator, or
+covetous, or an idolater, or a reviler, or drunkard, or rapacious, with
+such an one not to eat together," ver. 11. "Therefore take away from
+among yourselves that wicked person," ver. 13.
+
+5. Seasonable remitting, receiving, comforting, and authoritative
+confirming again in the communion of the Church those that are penitent.
+"What things soever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven,"
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose soever sins ye remit, they are
+remitted unto them," John xx. 23. This loosing and remitting is not only
+doctrinal and declarative in the preaching of the word, but also
+juridical and authoritative in the administration of censures. This is
+called, for distinction's sake, absolution. After the church of Corinth
+had excommunicated the incestuous person, and he thereupon had given
+sufficient testimony of his repentance, the apostle directs them to
+receive him into church communion again, saying, "Sufficient to such an
+one is that rebuke inflicted of many; so that contrariwise you should
+rather forgive and comfort him, lest such an one should be swallowed up
+of abundant sorrow. Wherefore I beseech authoritatively to confirm love
+unto him: for to this purpose also I have written unto you, that I may
+know the proof of you, if ye be obedient in all things," 2 Cor. ii. 6-9.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII.
+
+_Of the End and Scope of this Government of the Church._
+
+
+The end or scope intended by Christ in instituting, and to be aimed at
+by Christ's officers in executing of church government in dispensing the
+word, sacrament, censures, and all ordinances of Christ, is (as the
+description expresseth) _the edifying of the Church of Christ_. This end
+is very comprehensive. For the fuller evidencing whereof these two
+things are to be proved:1st, That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under
+the New Testament one general visible Church on earth. 2d. That the
+edification of this Church of Christ is that eminent scope and end why
+Christ gave the power of church government and other ordinances unto the
+Church.
+
+I. For the first, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under the New
+Testament a general visible Church on earth, made up of all particular
+churches, may be cleared by considering well these particulars.
+
+1st. That it is evident by the Scriptures that Jesus Christ hath on
+earth many particular visible churches: (whether churches
+congregational, presbyterial, provincial, or national, needs not here be
+determined.) "Unto the churches of Galatia," Gal. i. 2. "The churches
+of Judea," Gal. i. 22. "Through Syria and Cilicia, confirming the
+churches," Acts xv. 41. "To the seven churches in Asia," Rev. i. 4, 20.
+"The church of Ephesus," Rev. ii. 1. "The church in Smyrna," ver. 8.
+"The church in Pergamus," ver. 12. "The church in Thyatira," ver. 18.
+"The church in Sardis," Rev. iii. 1. "The church in Philadelphia," ver.
+7. And "the church in Laodicea," ver. 14. "The church that is in their
+house," Rom. xvi. 5; and Philem. 2. "Let your women keep silence in the
+church," 1 Cor. xiv. 34. "All the churches of the Gentiles," Rom. xvi.
+4. "So ordain I in all churches," 1 Cor. vii. 17. "As in all churches
+of the saints," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. "The care of all the churches," 2 Cor.
+xi. 28. The New Testament hath many such like expressions.
+
+2d. That how many particular visible churches soever Christ hath on
+earth, yet Scripture counts them all to be but one general visible
+Church of Christ. This is manifest,
+
+1. By divers Scriptures, using the word church in such a full latitude
+and extensive completeness, as properly to signify, not any one single
+congregation, or particular church, but one general visible Church: as,
+"Upon this rock I will build my Church," Matt. xvi. 18. "Give none
+offence, neither to the Jews, nor to the Greeks, nor to the Church of
+God," 1 Cor. x. 32. "God hath set some in the Church, first, apostles;
+secondarily, prophets; thirdly, teachers," &c., 1 Cor. xii. 28. "I
+persecuted the Church of God," 1 Cor. xv. 9; Gal. i. 13. "The Church of
+the living God, the pillar and ground of the truth," 1 Tim. iii. 15.
+"Might be known by the Church the manifold wisdom of God," Eph. iii. 10.
+"In the midst of the Church will I sing praise unto thee," Heb. ii. 12.
+In which, and such like places, we must needs understand, that one
+general visible Church of Christ.
+
+2. By such passages of scripture as evidently compare all visible
+professors and members of Christ throughout the world to one organical
+body, having eyes, ears, hands, feet, &c., viz., several organs,
+instruments, officers, &c., in it, for the benefit of the whole body; as,
+"He gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some evangelists, and
+some pastors and teachers, for the perfecting of the saints, for the
+work of the ministry, for the edifying of the body of Christ," Eph. iv.
+11, 12. "There is one body," Eph. iv. 4. "As we have many members in one
+body, and all members have not the same office; so we being many are one
+body in Christ, and every one members one of another," &c., Rom. xii.
+4-9. "As the body is one, and hath many members, and all the members of
+that one body being many, are one body; so also is Christ," (i.e.,
+Christ considered mystically, not personally,) "for by one Spirit are we
+all baptized into one body, whether we be Jews or Gentiles, whether we
+be bond or free," &c., 1 Cor. xii. 12, to the end of the chapter, which
+context plainly demonstrates all Christ's visible members in the world,
+Jews or Gentiles, &c., to be members of one and the same organical body
+of Christ, which organical body of Christ is the general visible Church
+of Christ; for the invisible church is not organical.
+
+II. That the edification of the Church of Christ is that eminent scope
+and end, why Christ gave church government and all other ordinances of
+the New Testament to his Church. This is frequently testified in
+scripture. 1. The apostle, speaking of this power generally, saith, "Our
+authority which the Lord hath given to us for edification, and not for
+the destruction of you," 2 Cor. x. 8. The like passage he hath again,
+saying, "according to the authority," or power, "which the Lord hath
+given to me for edification, and not for destruction," 2 Cor. xiii. 10;
+in both which places he speaks of the authority of church government in
+a general comprehensive way, declaring the grand and general immediate
+end thereof to be, affirmatively, edification of the church; negatively,
+not the subversion or destruction thereof. 2. In like manner, when
+particular acts of government, and particular ordinances
+are mentioned, the edification of the Church, at least in her members,
+is propounded as the great end of all: e.g. 1. Admonition is for
+edification, that an erring _brother may be gained_, Matt. xviii. 15,
+16, that wavering minds may be sound in the faith. "Rebuke them
+cuttingly, that they may be sound in the faith," Tit. i. 13, that
+beholders and bystanders may fear to fall into like sins. "Them that sin
+rebuke before all, that others also may fear," 1 Tim. v. 20. 2.
+Excommunication is for edification; particularly of the delinquent
+member himself; thus the incestuous person was "delivered to Satan for
+the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit might be saved in the day
+of the Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 4, 5. "Hymeneus and Alexander were
+delivered to Satan, that they might learn not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i.
+20: more generally of the Church; thus the incestuous person was to be
+put away from among them lest the whole lump of the church should be
+leavened by him, 1 Cor. v. 3. Absolution also is for edification, lest
+the penitent party "should be swallowed up of too much sorrow," 2 Cor.
+ii. 7. 4. All the officers of his Church are for edification of the
+Church, (Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11, 12, 16,) together with all the gifts and
+endowments in these officers, whether of prayer, prophecy, tongues, &c.,
+all must be managed to edification. This is the scope of the whole
+chapter. 1 Cor. xii. 7, &c., and 1 Cor. xiv. 3-5, 9, 12, &c., 26; read
+the whole chapter. That passage of Paul is remarkable, "I thank my God,
+I speak with tongues more than you all; yet in the church I had rather
+speak five words with my understanding, that by my voice I might teach
+others also, than ten thousand words in an unknown tongue," verses 18,
+19. Thus church government, and all sorts of ordinances, with the
+particular acts thereof, are to be levelled at this mark of edification.
+Edification is an elegant metaphor from material buildings (perhaps of
+the material and typical temple) to the spiritual; for explanation's
+sake briefly thus take the accommodation: The _architects_, or builders,
+are the _ministers_, 1 Cor. iii. 10. The _foundation_ and _corner-stone_
+that bears up, binds together, and gives strength to the building, is
+Jesus Christ, 1 Cor. iii. 11; 1 Pet. ii. 4, 6. The _stones_ or
+_materials_ are the _faithful_ or _saints_, 2 Cor. i. 1. The _building_,
+or house itself, is the _Church_, that spiritual house, and _temple of
+the living God_, Eph. ii. 21, and iv. 12; 1 Cor. iii. 9, 16, 17. The
+edification of this house is gradually to be perfected more and more
+till the coming of Christ, by laying the foundation of Christianity, in
+bringing men still unto Christ, and carrying on the superstruction in
+perfecting them in Christ in all spiritual growth, till at last the
+top-stone be laid on, the Church completed, and translated _to the house
+not made with hands, eternal in the heavens_.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX.
+
+_Of the proper receptacle and distinct subject of all this power and
+authority of Church Government, which Christ hath peculiarly intrusted
+with the execution thereof according to the Scriptures. And_ 1.
+_Negatively, That the political magistrate is not the proper subject of
+this power._
+
+
+Thus we have taken a brief survey of church government, both in the
+rule, root, kind, branches, and end thereof, all which are comprised in
+the former description, and being less controverted, have been more
+briefly handled. Now, the last thing in the description which comes
+under our consideration, is the proper receptacle of all this power from
+Christ, or the peculiar subject intrusted by Christ with this power and
+the execution thereof, viz. only Christ's own officers. For church
+government is a spiritual power or authority, derived from Jesus Christ
+our Mediator, only to his own officers, and by them exercised in
+dispensing of the word, &c. Now about this subject of the power will be
+the great knot of the controversy, forasmuch as there are many different
+claims thereof made, and urged with vehement importunity: (to omit the
+Romish claim for the pope, and the prelatical claim for the bishop,) the
+politic Erastian pretends that the only proper subject of all church
+government is the political or civil magistrate; the gross Brownists or
+rigid Separatists, that it is the body of the people, or community of
+the faithful in an equal even level; they that are more refined, (who
+style themselves for distinction's sake[26] Independents,) that it is
+the single congregation, or the company of the faithful with their
+presbytery, or church officers; the Presbyterians hold that the proper
+subject wherein Christ hath seated and intrusted all church power, and
+the exercise thereof, is only his own church officers, (as is in the
+description expressed.) Here, therefore, the way will be deeper, and the
+travelling slower; the opposition is much, and therefore the
+disquisition of this matter will unavoidably be the more.
+
+For perspicuity herein, seeing it is said that this power is derived
+from Christ only to his own officers; and by this word (only) all other
+subjects are excluded; the subject of church power may be considered,
+1. Negatively, what it is not. 2. Affirmatively, what it is.
+
+Negatively, the proper subject unto whom Christ hath committed the power
+of church government, and the exercise thereof, is not, 1. The political
+magistrate, as the Erastians imagine. 2. Nor the body of the people,
+either with their presbytery or without it, as the Separatists and
+Independents pretend. Let these negatives first be evinced, and then the
+affirmative will be more clearly evidenced.
+
+Touching the first of these--that the political magistrate is not the
+proper subject unto whom Jesus Christ our Mediator hath committed the
+power of church government, and the exercise of that power; it will be
+cleared by declaring these two things distinctly and severally, viz: 1.
+What power about ecclesiasticals is granted to the civil magistrate. 2.
+What power therein is denied unto him, and why.
+
+
+SECTION 1.
+
+Such power is granted by the reformed churches and orthodox writers to
+the political magistrate, in reference to church affairs. Take it in
+these particulars.
+
+A defensive, protecting, patronizing power to the church, and all the
+members thereof. "Kings shall be thy nursing-fathers," &c., Isa. xlix.
+23. "The magistrate is the minister of God for good to well-doers, as
+well as the avenger, executing wrath upon evil-doers; a terror not to
+good works, but to the evil," Rom. xiii. 3, 4; he is called _an heir,
+or, possessor of restraint, to put men to shame_, Judges xviii. 7. And
+as the church ought to pray for kings and all in authority, so
+consequently all in authority should endeavor to defend it, that the
+church and people of God should lead a quiet and peaceable life, (under
+the wing of their protection,) "in all godliness and honesty," 1 Tim.
+ii. 2; and this is evident from the end and scope of these prayers here
+prescribed, as interpreters unanimously agree. And hereupon are those
+promises to the church, "The sons of strangers shall build up thy walls,
+and their kings shall minister unto thee," Isa. lx. 10; "and thou shalt
+suck the breast of kings," Isa. lx. 16. Now, this nursing, protecting
+care of magistrates towards the church, puts forth itself in these or
+like acts, viz: He,
+
+1. Removes all external impediments of true religion, worship of God,
+&c., by his civil power, whether persons or things, whether
+persecutions, profaneness, heresy, idolatry, superstition, &c., that
+truth and godliness may purely flourish: as did Jehoshaphat, Asa,
+Hezekiah, Josiah. And hereupon it is that God so oft condemns the not
+removing and demolishing of the high places and monuments of idolatry,
+1 Kings xv. 14, with 2 Chron. xv. 17; 1 Kings xxii. 44; 2 Kings xii. 3:
+and highly commends the contrary in Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 8, 16: in
+Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii. 3, 4, 6-10: in Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxxi. 1; 2
+Kings xviii. 4: in Manasseh, 2 Chron. xxxiii. 15: in Josiah, 2 Kings
+xxiii. 8, 13, 19, 20, 24: whereupon the Holy Ghost gives him that
+superlative commendation above all kings before and after him, ver. 25.
+
+2. Countenanceth, advanceth, and encourageth by his authority and
+example the public exercise of all God's ordinances, and duties of
+religion within his dominions, whether in matter of divine worship,
+discipline, and government, maintaining for the Church the fulness of
+spiritual liberties and privileges communicated to her from Christ: as
+did Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 9-16: Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xx. 7-9: Hezekiah, 2
+Chron. xxix., xxx., and xxxi. chapters throughout: Josiah, 2 Chron.
+xxxiv. and xxxv. chapters. And to this end God prescribed in the law
+that the king should still have a copy of the law of God by him, therein
+to read continually, Deut. xvii. 18-20; because he was to be not only a
+practiser, but also a protector thereof, a keeper of both tables.
+
+3. Supplies the Church with all external necessaries, provisions, means,
+and worldly helps in matters of religion: as convenient public places to
+worship in, sufficient maintenance for ministers, (as the Scripture
+requireth, 1 Tim. v. 17, 18; 1 Cor. ix. 6-15; Gal. vi. 6:) schools and
+colleges, for promoting of literature, as nurseries to the prophets,
+&c.; together with the peaceable and effectual enjoyment of all these
+worldly necessaries, for comfortably carrying on of all public
+ordinances of Christ. Thus David prepared materials, but Solomon built
+the temple, 1 Chron. xxii. Hezekiah commanded the people that dwelt in
+Jerusalem, to give the portion of the priests and the Levites, that they
+might be encouraged in the law of the Lord; and Hezekiah himself and his
+princes came and saw it performed, 2 Chron. xxxi. 4, &c., 8: Josiah
+repaired the house of God, 2 Chron. xxxiv.
+
+Nor need the magistrate think scorn, but rather count it his honor to be
+an earthly protector of the Church, which is the _body of Christ, the
+Lamb's wife_, for redeeming of which Christ died, and for gathering and
+perfecting of which the very world is continued.
+
+An ordering, regulating power is also allowed to the magistrate about
+ecclesiastical matters in a political way, so that he warrantably,
+
+1. Reforms the Church, when corrupted in divine worship, discipline, or
+government: as did Moses, Exod. xxxii.; Joshua, Josh. xxiv.; Asa, 2
+Chron. xv.; Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii.; Hezekiah, 2 Kings xviii.;
+Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii.; 2 Chron. xxxiv.
+
+2. Convenes or convocates synods and councils, made up of ecclesiastical
+persons, to consult, advise, and conclude determinatively, according to
+the word, how the church is to be reformed and refined from corruptions,
+and how to be guided and governed when reformed, &c. For, 1. Pious
+magistrates under the Old Testament called the Church together, convened
+councils. David, about bringing back the ark, 1 Chron. xiii. 1, 2, and
+another council when he was old, 1 Chron. xiii. 1; Solomon, 1 Kings
+viii. 1; Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxix. 4; and Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii. 1, 2. 2.
+All ought to be subject to superior powers, who ought to procure the
+public peace and prosperity of the Church, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, &c.; 1 Pet.
+ii. 13, &c., 17; 1 Tim. ii. 2. Therefore superior powers may convocate
+councils. 3. Christian magistrates called the four general councils:
+Constantine the first Nicene council; Theodosius, senior, the first
+council of Constantinople; Theodosius, junior, the first Ephesian
+council; Marcian Emperor, the Chalcedon council; and, 4. Hereunto
+antiquity subscribes, as Dr. Whitaker observes.
+
+3. Supports the laws of God with his secular authority, as a keeper of
+the tables, enjoining and commanding, under civil penalties, all under
+his dominion, strictly and inviolably to observe the same: as "Josiah
+made all that were present in Israel to serve the Lord their God," 2
+Chron. xxxiv. 33. Nehemiah made the sabbath to be sanctified, and
+strange wives to be put away, Neb. xii. 13, &c. Yea, Nebuchadnezzar, a
+heathen king, decreed, that "Whosoever should speak amiss of the God of
+Shadrach," &c., "should be cut in pieces, and their houses made a
+dunghill," Dan. iii. 28, 29. And Darius decreed, "That in every dominion
+of his kingdom men tremble and fear before the God of Daniel," &c., Dan.
+vi. 26, 27.
+
+And as he strengthens the laws and ordinances of God by his civil
+authority, so he ratifies and establishes within his dominions the just
+and necessary decrees of the Church in synods and councils (which are
+agreeable to God's word) by his civil sanction.
+
+4. Judges and determines definitively with a consequent political
+judgment, or judgment of political discretion, concerning the things
+judged and determined antecedently by the Church, in reference to his
+own act. Whether he will approve such ecclesiasticals or not; and in
+what manner he will so approve, or do otherwise by his public authority;
+for he is not a brutish agent, (as papists would have him,) to do
+whatsoever the Church enjoins him unto blind obedience, but is to act
+prudently and knowingly in all his office; and therefore the judgment of
+discerning (which belongs to every Christian, for the well-ordering of
+his own act) cannot be denied to the Christian magistrate, in respect of
+his office.
+
+5. Takes care politically, that even matters and ordinances merely and
+formally ecclesiastical, be duly managed by ecclesiastical persons
+orderly called thereto. Thus Hezekiah commanded the priests and Levites
+to do their duties, 2 Chron. xxix. 5, 24, and the people to do theirs, 2
+Chron. xxx. 1; and for this he is commended, that therein he did cleave
+unto the Lord, and observed his precepts which he had commanded Moses, 2
+Kings xviii. 6. Thus when the king is commanded to observe and do all
+the precepts of the law, the Lord (as orthodox divines do judge)
+intended that he should keep them, not only as a private man, but as a
+king, by using all care and endeavor that all his subjects with him
+perform all duties to God and man, Deut. xvii. 18-20.
+
+6. A compulsive, coactive, punitive, or corrective power, formally
+political, is also granted to the political magistrate in matters of
+religion, in reference to all sorts of persons and things under his
+jurisdiction. He may politically compel the outward man of all persons,
+church officers, or others under his dominions, unto external
+performance of their respective duties, and offices in matters of
+religion, punishing them, if either they neglect to do their duty at
+all, or do it corruptly, not only against equity and sobriety, contrary
+to the second table, but against truth and piety, contrary to the first
+table of the decalogue. We have sufficient intimation of the
+magistrate's punitive power in cases against the second table; as the
+stubborn and rebellious, incorrigible son, that was a glutton and a
+drunkard, sinning against the fifth commandment, was to be stoned to
+death, Deut. xxi. 18-21. The murderer, sinning against the sixth
+commandment, was to be punished with death, Gen. ix. 6; Numb. xxxv.
+30-34; Deut. x. 11-13. The unclean person, sinning against the seventh
+commandment, was to be punished with death, Lev. xx. 11, 12, 14, 17,
+19-25; and before that, see Gen. xxxviii. 24. Yea, Job, who is thought
+to live before Moses, and before this law was made, intimates that
+adultery is a heinous crime, yea, it is an iniquity to be punished by
+the judges, Job xxxi. 9,11. The thief, sinning against the eighth
+commandment, was to be punished by restitution, Exod. xxii. 1, 15, &c.
+The false witness, sinning against the ninth commandment, was to be
+dealt withal as he would have had his brother dealt with, by the law of
+retaliation, Deut. xix. 16, to the end of the chapter, &c. Yea, the
+magistrate's punitive power is extended also to offences against the
+first table; whether these offences be against the first commandment, by
+false prophets teaching lies, errors, and heresies in the name of the
+Lord, endeavoring to seduce people from the true God. "If there arise
+among you a prophet, or a dreamer of dreams, that prophet, or that
+dreamer of dreams shall be put to death, because he hath spoken to turn
+you away from the Lord your God, which brought you out of the land of
+Egypt," &c., Deut. xiii. 1-6. From which place Calvin notably asserts
+the punitive power of magistrates against false prophets and impostors
+that would draw God's people to a defection from the true God, showing
+that this power also belongs to the Christian magistrate in like cases
+now under the gospel.
+
+Yea, in case of such seducement from God, though by nearest allies,
+severe punishment was to be inflicted upon the seducer, Deut. xiii.
+6-12. See also ver. 12, to the end of the chapter, how a city is to be
+punished in the like case. And Mr. Burroughs,[27] in his Irenicum, shows
+that this place of Deut. xiii. 6, &c., belongs even to us under the
+gospel.
+
+Or whether these offences be against the second commandment, the
+magistrate's punitive power reaches them, Deut. xvii. 1-8; Lev. xvii.
+2-8; 2 Chron. xvi. 13, 16. "Maachah, the mother of Asa the king, he
+removed from being queen, because she had made an idol in a grove." Job
+xxxi. 26-28, herewith compare Exod. viii. 25, 26. Or whether the
+offences be against the third commandment, "And thou shalt speak unto
+the children of Israel, saying, Whosoever curseth God shall bear his
+sin: and he that blasphemeth the name of the Lord he shall surely be put
+to death, and all the congregation shall certainly stone him, as well
+the stranger as he that is born in the land, when he blasphemeth the
+name of the Lord shall be put to death," Lev. xxiv. 15, 16. Yea, the
+heathen king Nebuchadnezzar made a notable decree to this purpose,
+against blaspheming God, saying, "I make a decree, that every people,
+nation, and language, who speak any thing amiss against the God of
+Shadrach, Meshech, and Abednego, shall be cut in pieces, and their
+houses shall be made a dunghill," Dan. iii. 29: and the pagan
+magistrate, king Artaxerxes, made a more full decree against all
+contempt of the law of God: "And whosoever will not do the law of thy
+God," saith he to Ezra, "and the law of the king, let judgment be
+executed speedily upon him, whether it be unto death, or to banishment,
+or to confiscation of goods, or to imprisonment:" and Ezra blesses God
+for this, Ezra vii. 26, 27.
+
+Besides all this light of nature, and evidence of the Old Testament, for
+the ruler's political punitive power for offences against God, there are
+divers places in the New Testament showing that a civil punitive power
+rests still in the civil magistrate: witness those general expressions
+in those texts--Rom. xiii. 3, 4: "Rulers are not a terror to good works,
+but to the evil. If thou do that which is evil, be afraid, for he
+beareth not the sword in vain: for he is the minister of God, a revenger
+_to execute_ wrath upon him that doeth evil." 1 Pet. ii. 13, 14: "Submit
+yourselves unto every ordinance of man for the Lord's sake, whether it
+be to the king as to the supreme, or unto governors which are sent for
+the _punishment_ of evil-doers,[28] and the praise of them that do
+well." Now, (as Mr. Burroughs[29] notes,) seeing the Scripture speaks
+thus generally, except the nature of the thing require, why should we
+distinguish where the Scripture doth not? so that these expressions may
+be extended to those sorts of evil-doing against the first as well as
+against the second table; against murdering of souls by heresy, as well
+as murdering of men's bodies with the sword; against the blaspheming of
+the God of heaven, as well as against blaspheming of kings and rulers,
+that are counted gods on earth. That place seems to have much force in
+it to this purpose, Heb. x. 28, 29: "He that despised Moses' law, died
+without mercy under two or three witnesses. Of how much sorer
+punishment, suppose ye, shall he be thought worthy who hath trodden
+under foot the Son of God, and hath counted the blood of the covenant,
+wherewith he was sanctified, an unholy thing, and hath done despite unto
+the Spirit of grace?" Yea, what deserve such as deny the Spirit to be of
+God? Papists exempt their clergy from the judgment of the civil power,
+though they be delinquents against it; and their states, both civil
+and spiritual, from civil taxes, tributes, and penalties, both which we
+deny to ours: for, 1st, This is repugnant to the law of nature, that
+church officers and members, as parts and members of the commonwealth,
+should not be subject to the government of that commonwealth whereof
+they are parts. 2d, Repugnant to the laws and practices of the Old
+Testament, under which we read of no such exemptions. Yea, we have
+instance of Abiathar the high-priest, who, for his partnership with
+Adonijah in his rebellion, was exiled by king Solomon, and so
+consequently deprived of the exercise of his office, 1 Kings ii. 26, 27.
+3d, Inconsistent with our Saviour's example, who, as subject to the law,
+held himself obliged to pay tribute to avoid offence, (Matt. xvii. 26,)
+which was an active scandal; and he confesses Pilate's power to condemn
+or release him was _given him from above_, John xix. 11. 4th, And
+finally, contrary to the apostolical precepts, _enjoining all to be
+subject to superior powers_, Rom. xiii. 1-4; 1 Pet. ii. 13-15.
+
+Now, all the former power that is granted, or may be granted to the
+magistrate about religion, is only cumulative and objective, as divines
+used to express it; thus understand them:--
+
+Cumulative, not privative; adding to, not detracting from any liberties
+or privileges granted her from Christ. The heathen magistrate may be a
+_nurse-father_, Isa. xlix. 23; 1 Tim. ii. 2, may not be a _step-father_:
+may protect the Church, religion, &c., and order many things in a
+political way about religion; may not extirpate or persecute the Church;
+may help her in reformation; may not hinder her in reforming herself,
+convening synods in herself, as in Acts xv., &c., if he will not help
+her therein; otherwise her condition were better without than with a
+magistrate. The Christian magistrate much less ought to hinder her
+therein, otherwise her state were worse under the Christian than under
+the pagan magistrate.
+
+Objective or objectively ecclesiastical, as being exercised about
+objects ecclesiastical, but politically, not ecclesiastically. His
+proper power is _about_, not _in_ religious matters. He may politically,
+outwardly exercise his power about objects or matters spiritual; but not
+spiritually, inwardly, formally act any power in the Church. He may act
+in church affairs as did Asa, Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah; not as did
+Corah, Saul, Uzzah, or Uzziah. He is an overseer of things without, not
+of things within. And in a word, his whole power about church offices
+and religion is merely, properly, and formally civil or political.[30]
+
+Nor is this only our private judgment, or the opinion of some few
+particular persons touching the granting or bounding of the magistrate's
+power about matters of religion; but with us we have the suffrage of
+many reformed churches, who, in their Confessions of Faith published to
+the world, do fully and clearly express themselves to the same effect.
+
+The Helvetian church thus: Since every magistrate is of God, it is
+(unless he would exercise tyranny) his chief duty, all blasphemy being
+repressed, to defend and provide for religion, and to execute this to
+his utmost strength, as the prophet teacheth out of the word; in which
+respect the pure and free preaching of God's word, a right, diligent,
+and well-instituted discipline of youth, citizens and scholars; a just
+and liberal maintenance of the ministers of the church, and a solicitous
+care of the poor, (whereunto all ecclesiastical means belong,) have the
+first place. After this, &c.
+
+The French churches thus: He also therefore committed the sword into the
+magistrates' hands, that they might repress faults committed not only
+against the second table, but also against the first; therefore we
+affirm, that their laws and statutes ought to be obeyed, tribute to be
+paid, and other burdens to be borne, the yoke of subjection voluntarily
+to be undergone, yea, though the magistrates should be infidels, so long
+as the supreme government of God remains perfect and untouched, Matt.
+xxiv.; Acts iv. 17, and v. 19; Jude verse 8.
+
+The church of Scotland thus: Moreover we affirm, that the purging and
+conserving of religion is the first and most especial duty of kings,
+princes, governors, and magistrates. So that they are ordained of God
+not only for civil polity, but also for the conservation of true
+religion, and that all idolatry and superstition may be suppressed: as
+is evident in David, Jehoshaphat, Josiah, Hezekiah, and others, adorned
+with high praises for their singular zeal.
+
+The Belgic church thus: Therefore he hath armed the magistrates with a
+sword, that they may punish the bad and defend the good. Furthermore, it
+is their duty not only to be solicitous about preserving of civil
+polity, but also to give diligence that the sacred ministry may be
+preserved, all idolatry and adulterate worship of God may be taken out
+of the way, the kingdom of antichrist may be pulled down, but Christ's
+kingdom propagated. Finally, it is their part to take course, that the
+holy word of the gospel be preached on every side, that all may freely
+and purely serve and worship God according to the prescript of his word.
+And all men, of whatsoever dignity, condition, or state they be, ought
+to be subject to lawful magistrates, to pay them tribute and subsidies,
+to obey them in all things which are not repugnant to the word of God;
+to pour out prayers for them, that God would vouchsafe to direct them in
+all their actions, _and that we may under them lead a quiet and
+peaceable life in all godliness and honesty_. Wherefore we detest the
+Anabaptists and all turbulent men who cast off superior dominions and
+magistrates, pervert laws and judgments, make all goods common, and
+finally abolish or confound all orders and degrees which God hath
+constituted for honesty's sake among men.
+
+The church in Bohemia thus: They teach also that it is commanded in the
+word of God that _all should be subject to the higher powers_ in all
+things, yet in those things only which are not repugnant to God and his
+word. But as touching those things which concern men's souls, faith, and
+salvation, they teach that men should hearken only to God's word, &c.,
+his ministers, as Christ himself saith, _Render to Cæsar the things
+that are Cæsar's, and to God those things that are God's._ But if any
+would compel them to those things which are against God, and fight and
+strive against his word, which abideth forever; they teach them to make
+use of the apostle's example, who thus answered the magistrate at
+Jerusalem: _It is meet_ (say they) _to obey God rather than men_.
+
+Finally, the church in Saxony hath expressed herself notably in this
+point, saying, among many other passages, God will have all men, yea,
+even unregenerate men, to be ruled and restrained by political
+government. And in this government the wisdom, justice, and goodness of
+God to mankind do shine forth. His wisdom, order declares, which is the
+difference of virtues and vices, and the consociation of men by lawful
+governments and contracts ordained in wonderful wisdom. God's justice
+also is seen in political government, who will have manifest
+wickednesses to be punished by magistrates; and when they that rule
+punish not the guilty, God himself wonderfully draws them to punishment,
+and regularly punishes heinous faults with heinous penalties in this
+life, as it is said, _He that takes the sword shall perish by the
+sword_; and, _Whoremongers and adulterers God will judge_. God will have
+in these punishments the difference of vices and virtues to be seen; and
+will have us learn that God is wise, just, true, chaste. God's goodness
+also to mankind is beheld, because by this means he preserves the
+society of men, and therefore he preserves it that thence the Church may
+be gathered, and will have polities to be the Church's inns. Of these
+divine and immoveable laws, which are testimonies of God, and the chief
+rule of manners, the magistrate is to be keeper in punishing all that
+violate them. For the voice of the law, without punishment and
+execution, is of small avail to bridle and restrain men; therefore it is
+said by Paul, _The power should be a terror to evil works, and an honor
+to the good._ And antiquity rightly said, _The magistrate is the keeper
+of the law, both of the first and second table,_ so far as appertains to
+_good order_. And though many in their governments neglect the glory of
+God, yet this ought to be their chief care, to hear and embrace the true
+doctrine touching the Son of God, and to foster the churches, as the
+psalm saith, _And now understand, ye kings, and be instructed, ye judges
+of the earth._ Again, _Open your gates, ye princes_, i.e., Open your
+empires to the gospel, and afford harbor to the Son of God. And Isa.
+xlix.: _And kings shall be thy nursing-fathers, and queens_, i.e.,
+commonwealths, _shall be thy nursing-mothers_, i.e., of the Church, they
+shall afford lodgings to churches and pious studies. And kings and
+princes themselves shall be members of the Church, and shall rightly
+understand doctrine, shall not help those that establish false doctrine,
+and exercise unjust cruelty, but shall be mindful of this saying, "I
+will glorify them that glorify me." And Daniel exhorteth the king of
+Babylon unto the acknowledgment of God's wrath, and to clemency towards
+the exiled Church, when he saith, "Break off thy sins by righteousness,
+and thine iniquities by showing mercy to the poor." And since they are
+among the chief members of the Church, they should see that judgment be
+rightly exercised in the Church, as Constantine, Theodosius, Arcadius,
+Marcianus, Charles the Great, and many pious kings, took care that the
+judgments of the Church should be rightly exercised, &c.
+
+Thus those of the presbyterian judgment are willing to give to Cæsar
+those things that are Cæsar's, even about matters of religion, that the
+magistrate may see, it is far from their intention in the least degree
+to intrench upon his just power, by asserting the spiritual power, which
+Christ hath seated in his church officers, distinct from the
+magistratical power: but as for them of the independent judgment, and
+their adherents, they divest the magistrate of such power.[31]
+
+
+SECTION II.
+
+II. Some power on the other hand touching religion and church affairs,
+is utterly denied to the civil magistrate, as no way belonging to him at
+all by virtue of his office of magistracy. Take it thus:
+
+Jesus Christ, our Mediator, now under the New Testament, hath committed
+no spiritual power at all, magisterial or ministerial, properly,
+internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical, nor any exercise
+thereof, for the government of his Church, to the political magistrate,
+heathen or Christian, as the subject or receptacle thereof by virtue of
+his magistratical office.
+
+For explication hereof briefly thus: 1. What is meant by
+spiritual power, magisterial and ministerial, is laid down in the
+general nature of the government, Chap. III. And, That all magisterial
+lordly power over the Church, belongs peculiarly and only to Jesus
+Christ our Mediator, Lord of all, is proved, Chap. V. Consequently, the
+civil magistrate can challenge no such power, without usurpation upon
+Christ's prerogative. We hence condemn the Pope as Antichrist, while he
+claims to be Christ's vicar-general over Christ's visible Church on
+earth. So that all the question here will be about the ministerial
+power, whether any such belong to the civil magistrate. 2. What is meant
+by power, properly, internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical?
+Thus conceive: These several terms are purposely used, the more clearly
+and fully to distinguish power purely ecclesiastical, which is denied to
+the magistrate, from power purely political about ecclesiastical
+objects, which is granted to him; which is called ecclesiastical, not
+properly, but improperly; not internally, but externally; not formally,
+but only objectively, as conversant about ecclesiastical objects. Nor
+hath he any such ecclesiastical power in him virtually, i.e. so as to
+convey and give it to any other under him. He may grant and protect the
+public exercise of that power within his dominions; but designation of
+particular persons to the office and power, is from the Church; the
+donation of the office and power only from Christ himself. So that
+magistracy doth not formally nor virtually comprehend in it
+ecclesiastical power for church government; for a magistrate, as a
+magistrate, hath no inward ecclesiastical power at all belonging to him.
+
+For confirmation of this proposition, consider these ensuing arguments.
+
+_Argum_. 1st. The keys of the kingdom of heaven were never given by
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as such: therefore he cannot be the
+proper subject of church government as a magistrate. We may thus reason:
+
+_Major_. No power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven was ever given by
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+_Minor_. But all formal power of church government is at least part of
+the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no formal power of church government was ever
+given by Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+The major proposition is evident.
+
+1. Because when Christ gave the keys of the kingdom of heaven, he makes
+no mention at all of the civil magistrate directly or indirectly,
+expressly or implicitly, as the recipient subject thereof. Compare Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, John ii. 21-23, with Matt. xxvii. 18-20. 2.
+Because, in Christ's giving the keys of the kingdom of heaven, he makes
+express mention of church officers,[32] which are really and essentially
+different from the civil magistrate, viz. of Peter, in name of all the
+rest, Matt. xvi. 18, 19, and of the rest of the apostles as the
+receptacle of the keys with him, Matt. xviii. 18, all the disciples save
+Thomas being together, he gave them the same commission in other words,
+John xx. 20-24, and Matt. xxviii. 18-20. Now if Christ should have given
+the keys, or any power thereof to the magistrate, as a magistrate, he
+must consequently have given them only to the magistrate, and then how
+could he have given them to his apostles, being officers in the Church
+really distinct from the magistrate?
+
+3. Because Jesus Christ, in giving the keys of the kingdom, gave not any
+one sort, act, part, or piece of the keys severally, but the whole power
+of the keys, all the sorts and acts thereof jointly. Therefore it is
+said, _I give the keys of the kingdom_--and _whatsoever thou shalt
+bind--whatsoever thou shalt loose--whose soever sins ye remit--whose
+soever sins ye retain_--Matt. xvi. 19, John xx. 23. So that here is not
+only key, but keys given at once, viz. key of doctrine, and the key of
+discipline; or the key of order, and the key of jurisdiction; not only
+binding or retaining, but loosing or remitting of sins, viz. all acts
+together conferred in the keys. Now if Christ gave the keys to the
+magistrate, then he gave all the sorts of keys and all the acts thereof
+to him: if so, the magistrate may as well preach the word, and dispense
+the sacraments, &c., (as Erastus would have him,) as dispense the
+censures, &c., (for Christ joined all together in the same commission,
+and by what warrant are they disjoined?) and if so, what need of
+pastors, teachers, &c.,, in the Church? Let the civil magistrate do all.
+It is true, the ruling elder (which was after added) is limited only to
+one of the keys, viz. the _key of discipline_, 1 Tim. v. 17; but this
+limitation is by the same authority that ordained his office.
+
+4. Because if Christ gave the keys to the civil magistrate as such, then
+to every magistrate, whether Jewish, heathenish, or Christian: but not
+to the Jewish magistrate; for the sceptre was to depart from him, and
+the Jewish polity to be dissolved, and even then was almost extinct. Not
+to the heathenish magistrate, for then those might be properly and
+formally church governors which were not church members; and if the
+heathen magistrate refused to govern the Church, (when there was no
+other magistrate on earth,) she must be utterly destitute of all
+government, which are grossly absurd. Nor, finally, to the Christian
+magistrate, for Christ gave the keys to officers then in being; but at
+that time no Christian magistrate was in being in the world. Therefore
+the keys were given by Christ to no civil magistrate, as such, at all.
+
+The minor, viz. But all formal power of church government is at least
+part of the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven is clear. If we
+take church government largely, as containing both doctrine, worship,
+and discipline, it is the whole power of the keys; if strictly, as
+restrained only to discipline, it is at least part of the power. For,
+1st, Not only the power of order, but also the power of jurisdiction, is
+contained under the word keys; otherwise it should have been said key,
+not keys; church government therefore is at least part of the power of
+the keys. 2d, The word key, noting a stewardly power, as appears, Isa.
+xxii. 22, (as Erastians themselves will easily grant,) may as justly be
+extended in the nature of it to signify the ruling power by
+jurisdiction, as the teaching power by doctrine; in that the office of a
+steward in the household, who bears the keys, consists in governing,
+ordering, and ruling the household, as well as in feeding it, as that
+passage in Luke xii. 41-49, being well considered, doth very notably
+evidence. For, Christ applying his speech to his disciples, saith, "Who
+then is that faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall make ruler
+of his household?--he will make him ruler over all that he hath," &c.
+3d, Nothing in the text or context appears why we should limit keys and
+the acts thereof only to doctrine, and exclude discipline; and where the
+text restrains not, we are not to restrain. 4th, The most of sound
+interpreters extend the keys and the acts thereof as well to discipline
+as to doctrine; to matters of jurisdiction, as well as to matters of
+order. From all we may conclude,
+
+Therefore no formal power of church government was ever given by Christ
+to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+_Argum_. 2d. There was full power of church government in the church
+when no magistrate was Christian, yea, when all magistrates were
+persecutors of the Church, so far from being her _nursing fathers_, that
+they were her _cruel butchers_; therefore the magistrate is not the
+proper subject of this power. Thus we may argue:
+
+_Major_. No proper power of church government, which was fully exercised
+in the Church of Christ, before any magistrate became Christian, yea,
+when magistrates were persecutors of the Church, was derived from Christ
+to the magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+_Minor_. But all proper power of church government was fully exercised
+in the Church before any magistrate became Christian, yea, when
+magistrates were cruel persecutors of the Church of Christ.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no proper power of church government was derived
+from Christ to the civil magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+The _major_ proposition must be granted. For, 1st, Either then the
+Church, in exercising such full power of church government, should have
+usurped that power which belonged not at all to her, but only to the
+magistrate; for what power belongs to a magistrate, as a magistrate,
+belongs to him only; but dare we think that the apostles, or the
+primitive purest apostolical churches did or durst exercise all their
+power of church government which they exercised, merely by usurpation
+without any right thereunto themselves? 2d, Or if the Church usurped
+not, &c., but exercised the power which Christ gave her, let the
+magistrate show wherein Christ made void the Church's charter, retracted
+this power, and gave it unto him.
+
+The minor proposition cannot be denied. For,
+
+1st. It was about 300 years after Christ before any of the Roman
+emperors (who had subdued the whole world, Luke ii. 1, under their sole
+dominion) became Christian. For Constantine the Great was the first
+emperor that received the faith, procured peace to the Church, and gave
+her respite from her cruel persecutions, which was in Anno 309 (or
+thereabouts) after Christ; before which time the Church was miserably
+wasted and butchered with those ten bloody persecutions, by the tyranny
+of Nero, and other cruel emperors before Constantine.
+
+2d. Yet within the space of this first 309 or 311 years, all proper
+power of church government was fully exercised in the Church of Christ;
+not only the word preached, Acts iv. 2; 1 Tim. iii. 16; and sacraments
+dispensed, Acts xx. 7; 1 Cor. xi. 17, &c.; Acts ii. 4, and viii. 12: but
+also _deacons_ set apart for that office of _deaconship_, Acts vi.:
+_elders_ ordained and sent forth, Acts xiii. 1-3, and xiv. 23; 1 Tim.
+iv.; Tit. i. 5: public _admonition in use_, Tit. iii. 10; 1 Tim. v. 20:
+_excommunication_, 1 Cor. v.; and 1 Tim. i. 20: _absolution_ of the
+penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 6, 7, &c.: synodical conventions and decrees, Acts
+xv. with xvi. 4. So that we may conclude,
+
+Therefore no proper power of church government was derived from Christ
+to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+_Argum_. 3d. The magistratical power really, specifically, and
+essentially differs from the ecclesiastical power; therefore the civil
+magistrate, as a magistrate, cannot be the proper subject of this
+ecclesiastical power. Hence we may thus argue:
+
+_Major_. No power essentially, specifically, and really differing from
+magistratical power, was ever given by Christ to the magistrate as a
+magistrate.
+
+_Minor_. But all proper ecclesiastical power essentially, specifically,
+and really differs from the magistratical power.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no proper ecclesiastical power was ever given by
+Jesus Christ to the civil magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+The major is evident: for how can the magistrate, as a magistrate,
+receive such a power as is really and essentially distinct and different
+from magistracy? Were not that to make the magistratical power both
+really the same with itself, and yet really and essentially different
+from itself? A flat contradiction.
+
+The minor may be clearly evinced many ways: as, 1st, From the real and
+formal distinction between the two societies, viz. the Church and
+commonwealth, wherein ecclesiastical and political power are peculiarly
+seated. 2d. From the co-ordination of the power ecclesiastical and
+political, in reference to one another. 3d. From the different causes of
+these two powers, viz. efficient, material, formal, and final; in all
+which they are truly distinguished from one another.
+
+1st. From the real and formal distinction between the two societies,
+viz. church and commonwealth: for, 1. The society of the Church is only
+Christ's, and not the civil magistrate's: it is his _house_, his
+_spouse_, his _body_, &c., and Christ hath no vicar[33] under him. 2.
+The officers ecclesiastical are Christ's officers, not the magistrate's,
+1 Cor. iv. 1: _Christ gave_ them, Eph. iv. 8, 10, 11: _God set them in
+the Church_, 1 Cor. xii. 28. 3. These ecclesiastical officers are both
+elected and ordained by the Church, without commission from the civil
+magistrate, by virtue of Christ's ordinance, and in his name. Thus the
+apostles appointed officers: _Whom we may appoint_, Acts vi. 3, 4. The
+power of ordination and mission is in the hands of Christ's officers;
+compare Acts xiv. 23; 1 Tim. iv. 14, with Acts xiii. 1-4: and this is
+confessed by the parliament to be an ordinance of Jesus Christ, in their
+ordinance for ordaining of preaching presbyters. 4. The Church, and the
+several presbyteries ecclesiastical, meet not as civil judicatories, for
+civil acts of government, as making civil statutes, inflicting civil
+punishments, &c., but as spiritual assemblies, for spiritual acts of
+government and discipline: as preaching, baptizing, receiving the Lord's
+supper, prayer, admonition of the disorderly, &c. 5. What gross
+absurdities would follow, should not these two societies, viz. church
+and commonwealth, be acknowledged to be really and essentially
+distinct from one another! For then, 1. There can be no commonwealth
+where there is not a Church; but this is contrary to all experience.
+Heathens have commonwealths, yet no Church. 2. Then there may be church
+officers elected where there is no church, seeing there are magistrates
+where there is no church. 3. Then those magistrates, where there is no
+church, are no magistrates; but that is repugnant to Scripture, which
+accounts heathen rulers the servants of God, Isa. xlv. 1; Jer. xxv. 9:
+and calls them kings, Exod. vi. 13; Isa. xxxi. 35. And further, if there
+be no magistrates where there is no church, then the church is the
+formal constituting cause of magistrates. 4. Then the commonwealth, as
+the commonwealth, is the church; and the church, as the church, is the
+commonwealth: then the church and the commonwealth are the same. 5. Then
+all that are members of the commonwealth are, on that account, because
+members of the commonwealth, members of the church. 6. Then the
+commonwealth, being formally the same with the church, is, as a
+commonwealth, the mystical body of Christ. 7. Then the officers of the
+church are the officers of the commonwealth; the power of the keys gives
+them right to the civil sword: and consequently, the ministers of the
+gospel, as ministers, are justices of the peace, judges, parliament-men,
+&c., all which how absurd, let the world judge.
+
+2d. From the co-ordination of the power ecclesiastical and political, in
+reference to one another: (this being a received maxim, that subordinate
+powers are of the same kind; co-ordinate powers are of distinct kinds.)
+Now, that the power of the Church is co-ordinate with the civil power,
+may be evidenced as followeth: 1. The officers of Christ, as officers,
+are not directly and properly subordinate to the civil power, though in
+their persons they are subject thereto: the apostles and pastors may
+preach, and cast out of the church, against the will of the magistrate,
+and yet not truly offend magistracy; thus, in doing the duty they have
+immediately received from God, they must "obey God rather than men,"
+Acts iv. 19, 20. And the apostles and pastors must exercise their office
+(having received a command from Christ) without attending to the command
+or consent of the civil magistrate for the same; _as in casting out the
+incestuous person_, 1 Cor. v. 5: telling the Church, Matt. xviii. 17:
+_rejecting a heretic_, Tit. iii. 10. And, 2. Those acts of power are not
+directly and formally subordinate to the magistrate, which he himself
+cannot do, or which belong not to him. Thus the kings of Israel could
+not burn incense: "It appertaineth not unto thee," 2 Chron. xxvi. 18,
+19. Likewise, none have the power of the keys, but they to whom Christ
+saith, "Go ye into all the world and preach the gospel," Matt. xxviii.
+19: but Christ spake not this to magistrates: so only those that are
+_sent_, Rom. x. 15, and those that are governors, are by Christ placed
+in the Church. 3. The officers of the Church can ecclesiastically
+censure the officers of the state, though not as such, as well as the
+officers of the state can punish civilly the officers of the Church,
+though not as such: the church guides may admonish, excommunicate, &c.,
+the officers of the state as members of the Church, and the officers of
+the state may punish the officers of the Church as the members of the
+state. 4. Those that are not sent of the magistrate as his deputies,
+they are not subordinate in their mission to his power, but the
+ministers are not sent as the magistrate's deputies, but are _set over
+the flock by the Holy Ghost_, Acts xx. 28: they are likewise the
+_ministry of Christ_, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2: they are _over you in the Lord_,
+1 Thess. v. 12: and in his name they exercise their jurisdiction, 1 Cor.
+v. 4, 5. 5. If the last appeal in matters purely ecclesiastical be not
+to the civil power, then there is no subordination; but the last appeal
+properly so taken is not to the magistrate. This appears from these
+considerations: 1. Nothing is appealable to the magistrate but what is
+under the power of the sword; but admonition, excommunication, &c., are
+not under the power of the sword: they are neither matters of dominion
+nor coercion. 2. If it were so, then it follows that the having of the
+sword gives a man a power to the keys. 3. Then it follows that the
+officers of the kingdom of heaven are to be judged as such by the
+officers of the kingdom of this world as such, and then there is no
+difference between the things of Cæsar and the things of God. 4. The
+church of Antioch sent to Jerusalem, Acts xv. 2, and the synod there,
+without the magistrate, came together, ver. 6; and determined the
+controversy, ver. 28, 29. And we read, "The spirits of the prophets are
+subject to the prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 32; not to the civil power as
+prophets. So we must seek knowledge at the priest's lips, not at the
+civil magistrate's, Mal. ii. 7. And we read, that the people came to the
+priests in hard controversies, but never that the priests went to the
+civil power, Deut. xvii. 8-10. 5. It makes the magistrate Christ's
+vicar, and so Christ to have a visible head on earth, and so to be an
+ecclesiastico-civil pope, and consequently there should be as many
+visible heads of Christ's Church as there are magistrates. 6. These
+powers are both immediate; one from God the Father, as _Creator_, Rom.
+xiii. 1, 2; the other from Jesus Christ, as _Mediator_, Matt. xxviii.
+18. Now lay all these together, and there cannot be a subordination of
+powers; and therefore there must be a real distinction.
+
+3d. From the different causes of these two powers, viz. efficient,
+material, formal, and final; in all which they are truly distinguished
+from one another, as may plainly appear by this ensuing parallel:
+
+1. They differ in their efficient cause or author, whence they are
+derived. Magistratical power is from God, the Creator and Governor of
+the world, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 4; and so belongs to all mankind, heathen or
+Christian; ecclesiastical power is peculiarly from Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, Lord of the Church, (who hath all power given him, and the
+government of the Church laid upon his shoulder, as Eph. i. 22; Matt.
+xxviii. 18, compared with Isa. ix. 16.) See Matt. vi. 19, and xviii. 18,
+and xxviii. 19, 20; John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8: and consequently
+belongs properly to the Church, and to them that are within the Church,
+1 Cor. v. 12, 13. Magistratical power in general is the ordinance of
+God, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 4; but magistratical power in particular, whether
+it should be monarchical in a king, aristocratical in states,
+democratical in the people, &c., is of men, called, therefore, a human
+creature, or creation, 1 Pet. ii. 13; but ecclesiastical power, and
+officers in particular, as well as general, are from Christ, Matt. xvi.
+19, and xxviii. 18-20; Tit. iii. 10; 1 Cor. v. 13; 2 Cor. ii. For
+officers, see Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28.
+
+2. They differ in their material cause; whether it be the matter of
+which they consist, in which they are seated, or about which they are
+exercised. 1. In respect of the matter of which they consist, they much
+differ. Ecclesiastical power consists of the keys of the kingdom of
+heaven, which are exercised in the preaching of the word, dispensing the
+sacraments, executing the censures, admonition, excommunication,
+absolution, ordination of presbyters, &c.; but magistratical power
+consists in the secular sword, which puts forth itself in making
+statutes, inflicting fines, imprisonments, confiscations, banishments,
+torments, death. 2. In respect of the matter or object about which they
+are exercised, they much differ: for, the magistratical power is
+exercised politically, about persons and things without the Church, as
+well as within the church; but the ecclesiastical power is exercised
+only upon them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 13. The
+magistratical power in some cases of treason, &c., banishes or otherwise
+punishes even penitent persons: ecclesiastical power punishes no
+penitent persons. The magistratical power punishes not all sorts of
+scandal, but some: the ecclesiastical power punishes (if rightly
+managed) all sorts of scandal.
+
+3. They differ in their formal cause, as doth clearly appear by their
+way or manner of acting: magistratical power takes cognizance of crimes,
+and passes sentence thereupon according to statutes and laws made by
+man: ecclesiastical power takes cognizance of, and passes judgment upon
+crimes according to the word of God, the Holy Scriptures. Magistratical
+power punishes merely with political punishments, as fines,
+imprisonments, &c. Ecclesiastical merely with spiritual punishments, as
+church censures. Magistratical power makes all decrees and laws, and
+executes all authority, commanding or punishing only in its own name, in
+name of the supreme magistrate, as of the king, &c., but ecclesiastical
+power is wholly exercised, not in the name of churches, or officers, but
+only in Christ's name, Matt, xxviii. 19; Acts iv. 17; 1 Cor. v. 4. The
+magistrate can delegate his power to another: church-governors cannot
+delegate their power to others, but must exercise it by themselves. The
+magistrate about ecclesiasticals hath power to command and compel
+politically the church officers to do their duty, as formerly was
+evidenced; but cannot discharge lawfully those duties themselves, but in
+attempting the same, procure divine wrath upon themselves: as Korah,
+Numb. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam. xiii. 9-15; King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi.
+16-22: but church-guides can properly discharge the duties of doctrine,
+worship, and discipline themselves, and ecclesiastically command and
+compel others to do their duty also.
+
+4. Lastly, They differ in their final cause or ends. The magistratical
+power levels at the temporal, corporal, external, political peace,
+tranquillity, order, and good of human society, and of all persons
+within his jurisdiction, &c. The ecclesiastical power intends properly
+the spiritual good and edification of the Church and all the members
+thereof, Matt, xviii. 15; 1 Cor. v. 5, &c.; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii.
+10.[34] May we not from all clearly conclude, Therefore no proper
+ecclesiastical power was ever given by Jesus Christ to the magistrate as
+a magistrate?
+
+_Argum_. 4th. The civil magistrate is no proper church officer, and
+therefore cannot be the proper subject of church power, Hence we may
+argue:
+
+_Major_. All formal power of church government was derived from Jesus
+Christ to his own proper church officers only. To them he gave the _keys
+of the kingdom of heaven_, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21,
+28: to them he gave the _authority for edification of the church_, 2
+Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: but this will after more fully appear in Chap.
+XI. following.
+
+_Minor_. But no civil magistrate, as a magistrate, is any of Christ's
+proper church officers. For, 1. The civil magistrate is never reckoned
+up in the catalogue, list, or roll of Christ's church officers in
+Scripture, Eph. iv. 10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28, &c.; Rom. xii. 6-8; if here,
+or anywhere else, let the magistrate or the Erastians show it. 2. A
+magistrate, as a magistrate, is not a church member, (much less a church
+governor;) for then all magistrates, heathen as well as Christian,
+should be church members and church officers, but this is contrary to
+the very nature of Christ's kingdom, which admits no heathen into it.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no formal power of church government was derived
+from Jesus Christ to the magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+_Argum_. 5th. The civil magistrate, as such, is not properly subordinate
+to Christ's mediatory kingdom; therefore is not the receptacle of church
+power from Christ. Hence thus:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever formal power of church government Christ committed
+to any, he committed it only to those that were properly subordinate to
+his mediatory kingdom. For whatsoever ecclesiastical ordinance, office,
+power, or authority, Christ gave to men, he gave it as Mediator and Head
+of the Church, by virtue of his mediatory office; and for the
+gathering, edifying, and perfecting of his mediatory kingdom, which is
+his Church, Eph. iv. 7, 10-12. Therefore such as are not properly
+subordinate to Christ in this his office, and for this end, can have no
+formal church power from Christ.
+
+_Minor_. But no magistrate, as a magistrate, is subordinate properly to
+Christ's mediatory kingdom. For, 1. Not Christ the Mediator, but God the
+Creator authorizeth the magistrate's office, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 6. 2.
+Magistracy is never styled a ministry of Christ in Scripture, nor
+dispensed in his name. 3. Christ's kingdom is not of this world, John
+xviii. 36; the magistrate's is.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no formal power of Church government is
+committed by Christ to the magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+6th. Finally, divers absurdities unavoidably follow upon the granting of
+a proper formal power of Church government to the civil magistrate:
+therefore he cannot be the proper subject of such power. Hence it may be
+thus argued:
+
+_Major_. No grant of ecclesiastical power, which plainly introduceth
+many absurdities, can be allowed to the political magistrate, as the
+proper subject thereof. For though in matters of religion there be many
+things mysterious, sublime, and above the reach of reason; yet there is
+nothing to be found that is absurd, irrational, &c.
+
+_Minor_. But to grant to the political magistrate, as a magistrate, a
+proper formal power of church government, introduceth plainly many
+absurdities, e.g.: 1. This brings confusion betwixt the office of the
+magistracy and ministry. 2. Confounds the church and commonwealth
+together. 3. Church government may be monarchical in one man; and so,
+not only prelatical but papal; and consequently, antichristian. Which
+absurdities, with many others, were formerly intimated, and neither by
+religion nor reason can be endured. We conclude:
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the grant of a proper formal power of church
+government cannot be allowed to the political magistrate as the proper
+subject thereof, because he is a magistrate.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X.
+
+_That the community of the faithful, or body of the people, are not the
+immediate subject of the power of Church government._
+
+
+Thus we see, that Jesus Christ our Mediator did not commit any proper
+formal ecclesiastical power for church government to the political
+magistrate, as such, as the Erastians conceive. Now, in the next place
+(to come more close) let us consider that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath
+not committed the spiritual power of church government to the body of
+the people, presbyterated, or unpresbyterated (to use their own terms)
+as the first subject thereof, according to the opinion of the
+Separatists or Independents. Take it in this proposition:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not committed the proper formal power or
+authority spiritual, for government of his Church,[35] unto the
+community of the faithful, whole church, or body of the people, as the
+proper immediate receptacle, or first subject thereof.
+
+
+SECTION I.
+
+Some things herein need a little explanation, before we come to the
+confirmation.
+
+1. By _fraternity, community of the faithful, whole church or body of
+the people_, understand a particular company of people, meeting together
+in one assembly or single congregation, to partake of Christ's
+ordinances. This single congregation may be considered as presbyterated,
+i.e., furnished with an eldership; or as unpresbyterated, i.e.,
+destitute of an eldership, having yet no elders or officers erected
+among them. Rigid Brownists or Separatists say, that the fraternity or
+community of the faithful unpresbyterated is the first receptacle of
+proper ecclesiastical power from Christ: unto whom some of independent
+judgment subscribe. Independents thus resolve: First, That the apostles
+of Christ are the first subject of apostolical power. Secondly, That a
+particular congregation of saints, professing the faith, taken
+indefinitely for any church, (one as well as another,) is the first
+subject of all church offices with all their spiritual gifts and power.
+Thirdly, That when the church of a particular congregation walketh
+together in the truth and peace, the brethren of the church are the
+first subjects of church liberty; the elders thereof of church
+authority; and both of them together are the first subject of all church
+power.[36] Which assertions of Brownists and Independents (except the
+first) are denied by them of presbyterian judgment, as being obvious to
+divers material and just exceptions.[37]:
+
+2. By _proper formal power or authority spiritual, for church
+government_, thus conceive. To omit what hath been already laid down
+about the natures and sorts of spiritual power and authority, (part 2,
+chap. III. and VI.,) which are to be remembered, here it may be further
+observed, that there is a proper public, official, authoritative power,
+though but stewardly and ministerial, which is derived from Jesus Christ
+to his church officers, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21-23;
+Matt, xxviii. 18-20; of which power the apostle speaking, saith, "If I
+should somewhat boast of our power which the Lord hath given us to
+edification," 2 Cor. x. 8; so 2 Cor. xiii. 10. The people are indeed
+allowed certain liberties or privileges; as, _To try the spirits_, &c.,
+1 John iv. 1. To prove all doctrines by the word, 1 Thess. v. 21. To
+nominate and elect their own church officers, as their deacons, which
+they did, Acts vi. 3, 5, 6; but this is not a proper power of the keys.
+But the proper, public, official, authoritative power, is quite denied
+to the body of the people, furnished with an eldership or destitute
+thereof.
+
+3. By _proper immediate receptacle, or first subject of power_,
+understand, that subject, seat, or receptacle of power, which first and
+immediately received this power from Jesus Christ; and consequently was
+intrusted and authorized by him, to put forth and exercise that power in
+his Church for the government thereof. And here two things must be
+carefully remembered: 1. That we distinguish betwixt the object and
+subject of this power. The object for which, for whose good and benefit
+all this power is given, is primarily the general visible Church, Ephes.
+iv. 7, 10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom. xii. 5,6, &c. Secondarily, particular
+churches, as they are parts and members of the general. But the subject
+receiving to which the power is derived, is not the Church general or
+particular, but the officers or governors of the Church. 2. That we
+distinguish also betwixt the donation of the power, and the designation
+of particular persons to offices ecclesiastical. This designation of
+persons to the offices of key bearing or ruling may be done first and
+immediately by the Church, in nominating or electing her individual
+officers which is allowed to her; yet is no proper authoritative act of
+power. But the donation of the power itself is not from the Church as
+the fountain, but immediately from Christ himself, 2 Cor. xi. 8, and
+xiii. 10. Nor is it to the Church as the subject, but immediately to the
+individual church officers themselves, who consequently, in all the
+exercise of their power, act as the _ministers and stewards of Christ_,
+1 Cor. iv. 1, putting forth their power immediately received from
+Christ, not as the substitutes or delegates of the Church putting forth
+her power, which from Christ she mediately conveys to them, as
+Independents do imagine, but by us is utterly denied.
+
+
+SECTION II.
+
+For confirmation of this proposition thus explained and stated; consider
+these few arguments:
+
+_Argum_. I. The community of the faithful, or body of the people, have
+no authentic commission or grant of proper spiritual power for church
+government; and therefore they cannot possibly be the first subject or
+the proper immediate receptacle of such power from Christ. We may thus
+argue:
+
+_Major_. Whomsoever Jesus Christ hath made the immediate receptacle or
+first subject of proper formal power for governing of his Church, to
+them this power is conveyed by some authentic grant or commission.
+
+_Minor_. But the community of the faithful, or body of the people, have
+not this power conveyed unto them by any authentic grant or commission.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not made the
+community of the faithful, or body of the people, the immediate
+receptacle or first subject of proper formal power for governing of his
+Church.
+
+The major proposition is evident in itself: For, 1. The power of church
+government in this or that subject is not natural, but positive; and
+cast upon man, not by natural, but by positive law, positive grant: men
+are not bred, but made the first subject of such power; therefore all
+such power claimed or exercised, without such positive grant, is merely
+without any due title, imaginary, usurped, unwarrantable, in very fact
+null and void. 2. All power of church government is radically and
+fundamentally in Christ, Isa. ix. 6; Matt, xxviii. 18; John v. 22. And
+how shall any part of it be derived from Christ to man, but by some fit
+intervening mean betwixt Christ and man? And what mean of conveyance
+betwixt Christ and man can suffice, if it do not amount to an authentic
+grant or commission for such power? 3. This is evidently Christ's way to
+confer power by authentic commission immediately upon his church
+officers, the apostles and their successors, to the world's end. "Thou
+art Peter; and I give to thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven," &c.,
+Matt. xvi. 18, 19. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth," &c., Matt,
+xviii. 19, 20. "As my Father sent me, so send I you; go, disciple ye all
+nations; whose sins ye remit, they are remitted--and lo, I am with you
+always to the end of the world," John xx. 21, 23; Matt, xxviii. 19, 20.
+"Our power, which the Lord hath given us for edification," 2 Cor. x. 8,
+and xiii. 10: so that we may conclude them that have such commission to
+be the first subject and immediate receptacle of power from Christ, as
+will after more fully appear. 4. If no such commission be needful to
+distinguish those that have such power from those that have none, why
+may not all without exception, young and old, wise and foolish, men and
+women, Christian and heathen, &c., equally lay claim to this power of
+church government? If not, what hinders? If so, how absurd!
+
+The minor proposition, viz: But the community of the faithful, or body
+of the people, have not this power conveyed to them by any authentic
+grant or commission, is firm. For whence had they it? When was it given
+to them? What is the power committed to them? Or in what sense is such
+power committed to them?
+
+1. Whence had they it? _From heaven or of men?_ If from men, then it is
+a human ordinance and invention; _a plant which the heavenly Father hath
+not planted_; and therefore _shall he plucked up_. Matt. xv. 13. If from
+heaven, then from Christ; for _all power is given to him_, Matt, xxviii.
+18, &c.; Isa. ix. 6. If it be derived from Christ, then it is derived
+from him by some positive law of Christ as his grant or charter. A
+positive grant of such power to select persons, viz. church officers,
+the Scripture mentions, as was evidenced in the proof of the major
+proposition. But touching any such grant or commission to the community
+of the faithful, the Scripture is silent. And let those that are for the
+popular power produce, if they can, any clear scripture that expressly,
+or by infallible consequence, contains any such commission.
+
+2. When was any such power committed by Christ to the multitude of the
+faithful, either in the first planting and beginning of the Church, or
+in the after establishment and growth of the Church under the apostles'
+ministry? Not the first; for then the apostles themselves should have
+derived their power from the community of the faithful: now this is
+palpably inconsistent with the Scriptures, Which tell us that the
+apostles had both their apostleship itself, and their qualifications
+with gifts and graces for it, yea, and the very designation of all their
+particular persons unto that calling, all of them immediately from
+Christ himself. For the first, see Gal. i. 1: "Paul, an apostle, not of
+men, nor by man, but by Jesus Christ," Matt, xxviii. 18-20. For the
+second, see John xx. 22, 23: "And when he had said this, he breathed on
+them, and saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost; whose soever sins
+ye remit, they are remitted unto them," &c. For the third, see Luke vi.
+13, &c.: "And when it was day he called to him his disciples: and of
+them he chose twelve, whom also he named apostles; Simon--" Matt. x.
+5-7, &c.: "These twelve Jesus sent forth, and commanded them, saying."
+And after his resurrection he enlarges their commission, Mark xvi. 15,
+16: "Go ye into all the world;" and, "As my Father hath sent me, so send
+I you," John xx. 21. See also how the Lord cast the lot upon Matthias,
+Acts i. 24-26. Nor the second; for if such power be committed to the
+community of the faithful after the apostles had established the
+churches, then let those that so think show where Christ committed this
+power first to the apostles, and after to the community of the faithful,
+and by them or with them to their ordinary officers, for execution
+thereof. But no such thing hath any foundation in Scripture; for the
+ordinary Church guides, though they may have a designation to their
+office by the church, yet they have the donation, or derivation of their
+office and its authority only from Christ: their office is from Christ,
+Ephes. iv. 8, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Acts xx. 28, 29. Their power from
+Christ, Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18, 19; John xx. 21, 23. "Our power
+which the Lord hath given us," 2 Cor. viii. 10. They are _Christ's
+ministers, stewards, ambassadors_, 1 Cor. iv. 1; 2 Cor. v. 19, 20. They
+are to act and officiate _in his name_, Matt, xviii. 19; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5;
+and to Christ they _must give an account_. Heb. xiii. 17, 18; Luke xii.
+41, 42. Now if the ordinary officers have (as well as the apostles their
+apostleship) their offices of pastor, teacher, &c., from Christ, and are
+therein the successors of the apostles to continue to the world's end,
+(Matt, xxviii. 18-20,) then they have their power and authority in their
+offices immediately from Christ, as the first receptacles thereof
+themselves, and not from the Church as the first receptacle of it
+herself. A successor hath jurisdiction from him from whom the
+predecessor had his; otherwise he doth not truly succeed him.
+Consequently the Church or community of the faithful cannot possibly be
+the first receptacle of the power of church government from Christ.
+
+3. What power is it that is committed to the body of the Church or
+multitude of the faithful? Either it must be the power of order, or the
+power of jurisdiction. But neither of these is allowed to the multitude
+of the faithful by the Scriptures, (but appointed and appropriated to
+select persons.) Not the power of order; for the whole multitude, and
+everyone therein, neither can nor ought to intermeddle with any branches
+of that power. 1. Not with preaching; all are not _apt to teach_, 1 Tim.
+iii. 2, nor able to exhort and convince gainsayers, Tit. i. 9; all are
+not gifted and duly qualified. Some are expressly prohibited _speaking
+in the church_, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, 1 Tim. ii. 12, Rev. ii. 20, and none
+are _to preach, unless they be sent_, Rom. x. 15, nor _to take such
+honor unto themselves unless they be called_, &c., Heb. v. 4, 5. Are all
+and every one of the multitude of the faithful able to teach, exhort,
+and convince? are they all sent to preach? are they all called of God?
+&c. Nay, hath not Christ laid this task of authoritative preaching only
+upon his own officers? Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. 2. Not with administration
+of the sacraments; this and preaching are by one and the same commission
+given to officers only, Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi. 23. 3. Nor to
+ordain presbyters, or other officers. They may choose; but extraordinary
+officers, or the presbytery of ordinary officers, ordain. Acts vi. 3, 5,
+6: "Look ye out men--whom we may appoint." Compare also Acts xiv. 23; 1
+Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22; Tit. iii. 5. So that the people's bare election
+and approbation is no sufficient Scripture ordination of officers. Nor
+is there one often thousand among the people that is in all points able
+to try and judge of the sufficiency of preaching presbyters, for
+tongues, arts, and soundness of judgment in divinity. Nor is the power
+of jurisdiction in public admonition, excommunication, and absolution,
+&c., allowed to the multitude. For all and every one of the multitude of
+the faithful, 1. Never had any such power given to them from Christ;
+this key as well as the key of knowledge being given to the officers of
+the Church only, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20. _Tell the church_,
+there, must needs be meant of the ruling church only.[38] 2 Cor. viii.
+10; John xx. 21-23. 2. Never acted or executed any such power, that we
+can find in Scripture. As for that which is primarily urged of the
+church of Corinth, that the whole church did excommunicate the
+_incestuous person_, 1 Cor. v. 4, &c., many things may be answered to
+evince the contrary. 1st, The whole multitude could not do it; for
+children could not judge, and women must not speak in the Church. 2d, It
+is not said, _Sufficient to such an one is the rebuke inflicted of all_;
+but _of many_, 2 Cor. ii. 6, viz. of the presbytery, which consisted of
+many officers. 3d, The church of Corinth, wherein this censure was
+inflicted, was not a congregational, but a presbyterial church, having
+divers particular congregations in it, (as is hereafter cleared in Chap.
+XXIII.,) and therefore the whole multitude of the church of Corinth
+could not meet together in one place for this censure, but only the
+presbytery of that great church. Again, never did the whole multitude
+receive from Christ due gifts and qualifications for the exercise of
+church government and jurisdiction; nor any promise from Christ to be
+with them therein, as officers have, Matt, xxviii. 18-20. And the
+absurdities of such popular government are intolerable, as after will
+appear.
+
+4. Finally, in what sense can it be imagined that any such power should
+be committed from Christ to the community of the faithful, the whole
+body of the Church? For this power is given them equally with the
+church-guides, or unequally. If equally, then,.1. The church-guides have
+power and authority, as primarily and immediately committed to them, as
+the Church herself hath; and then they need not derive or borrow any
+power from the body of the faithful, having a power equal to theirs. 2.
+How vainly is that power equally given as to the officers, so to the
+whole multitude, when the whole multitude have no equal gifts and
+abilities to execute the same! If unequally, then this power is derived
+to the church-guides, either more or less than to the multitude of the
+faithful. If less, then how improperly were all those names of rule and
+government imposed upon officers, which nowhere are given by Scripture
+to the multitude! as _Pastors_, Eph. iv. 8, 11. _Elders_, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+_Overseers_, Acts xx. 28. _Guides_, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22. In this last
+verse they are contradistinguished from the saints; church-guides, and
+saints guided, make up a visible organical church. _Rulers in the Lord_,
+1 Thes. v. 12; Rom. xii. 8: and _well-ruling Elders_, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+_Governments_, 1 Cor. xii. 28. _Stewards_, 1 Cor. iv. 1,2; Luke xii. 42,
+&c. And all these titles have power and rule engraven in their very
+foreheads; and they of right belonged rather to the multitude than to
+the officers, if the officers derive their power from the multitude of
+the people. If more, then church-guides, having more power than the
+Church, need not derive any from the Church, being themselves better
+furnished.
+
+Thus, what way soever we look, it cannot be evinced, that the multitude
+and body of the people, with or without eldership, are the first subject
+of power, or have any authoritative public official power at all, from
+any grant, mandate, or commission of Christ. From all which we may
+strongly conclude,
+
+Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not made the community of the
+faithful, or body of the people, the immediate receptacle, or first
+subject of proper formal power for governing of his church.
+
+_Argum_. II. As the multitude of the faithful have no authentic grant or
+commission of such power of the keys in the Church; so they have no
+divine warrant for the actual execution of the power of the said keys
+therein: and therefore cannot be the first receptacle of the power of
+the keys from Christ. For thus we may reason:
+
+_Major_. Whosoever are the first subject, or immediate receptacle of the
+power of the keys from Christ, they have divine warrant actually to
+exercise and put in execution the said power. _Minor_. But the
+multitude or community of the faithful have no divine warrant actually
+to exercise and put in execution the power of the keys.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first
+subject, or immediate receptacle of the power of the keys from Jesus
+Christ.
+
+The major proposition must necessarily be yielded. For, 1. The power of
+the keys contains both authority and exercise; power being given to that
+end that it may be exercised for the benefit of the Church. It is called
+the _power given us for edification_, 2 Cor. viii. 10. Where there is no
+exercise of power there can be no edification by power. 2. Both the
+authority and complete exercise of all that authority, were at once and
+together communicated from Christ to the receptacle of power. "I give
+unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt
+bind on earth," &c., Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "As my Father sent
+me, so send I you--whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted," John
+xx. 21, 23. Here is both power and the exercise thereof joined together
+in the same commission. Yea, so individual and inseparable are power and
+exercise, that under exercise, power and authority is derived: as, "Go,
+disciple ye all nations, baptizing them," &c., Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3.
+How vain, idle, impertinent, and ridiculous is it to fancy and dream of
+such a power as shall never be drawn into act by them that have it!
+
+The minor proposition, viz. But the multitude or communion of the
+faithful have no divine warrant, actually to exercise and put in
+execution the power of the keys, is clear also:
+
+1. By reason: for, the actual execution of this power belongs to them by
+divine warrant, either when they have church officers, or when they want
+church officers. Not while they have officers; for, that were to slight
+Christ's officers: that were to take officers' work out of their hands
+by them that are no officers, and when there were no urgent necessity;
+contrary whereunto, see the proofs, Chap. XI. Section 2, that were to
+prejudice the church, in depriving her of the greater gifts, and
+undoubtedly authorized labors of her officers, &c. Not when they want
+officers in a constituted church: as in case where there are three or
+four elders, the pastor dies, two of the ruling elders fall sick, or the
+like; in such cases the community cannot by divine warrant supply the
+defects of these officers themselves, by exercising their power, or
+executing their offices. For where doth Scripture allow such power to
+the community in such cases? What one church without its eldership can
+be instanced in the New Testament, that in such cases once presumed to
+exercise such power, which might be precedent or example for it to
+other churches? How needless are church officers, if the multitude of
+the faithful may, as members of the church, take up their office, and
+actually discharge it in all the parts of it?
+
+2. By induction of particulars, it is evident, that the community cannot
+execute the power of the keys by any divine warrant. 1. _They may not
+preach_: for, "how shall they preach, except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15;
+but the community cannot he sent, many of them being incapable of the
+office, either by reason of their _sex_, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35; 1 Tim. ii.
+11, 12: or by reason of their _age_; as children, and all or most of
+them by reason of their deficiency in gifts and in scripture
+qualifications, Tit. i. and 1 Tim. iii. For not one member of a thousand
+is so completely furnished, as to be "apt to teach, able to convince
+gainsayers, and to divide the word of truth aright." Besides, they may
+not send themselves, were they capable, for, _no man takes this honor to
+himself_--Yea, _Jesus Christ himself did not glorify himself to be made
+an high-priest_--Heb. v. 4, 5. Now only officers are sent to preach,
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 19, 20; Mark xvi. 15. 2. They may not
+administer the seals, the sacraments, baptize, &c. under the New
+Testament; for who gave the people any such authority? hath not Christ
+conjoined preaching and dispensing of the sacraments in the same
+commission, that the same persons only that do the one, may do the
+other? Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3. They may not ordain officers in the
+church, and authoritatively send them abroad: for, ordinarily the
+community have not sufficient qualifications and abilities for proving
+and examining of men's gifts for the ministry. The community are nowhere
+commanded or allowed so to do in the whole New Testament, but other
+persons distinct from them, 1 Tim. v. 22; 2 Tim. ii. 2; Tit. i. 5, &c.
+Nor did the community ever exercise or assume to themselves any such
+power of ordination or mission, but only officers both in the first
+sending of men to preach, as 1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6: and to be
+deacons, Acts vi. 6, and also in after missions, as Acts xiii. 1-3. 4.
+The community, without officers, may not exercise any act of
+jurisdiction authoritatively and properly; may not admonish,
+excommunicate, or absolve. For we have no precept that they should do
+it; we have no example in all the New Testament that they ever did do
+it; we have both precept and example, that select officers both did and
+ought to do it. "Whatsoever ye bind on earth" (saith Christ to his
+officers) "shall be bound in heaven," &c. Matt. xviii. 18, and xvi. 19.
+"Whose soever sins ye remit," &c., John xx. 21, 23. "An heretic, after
+once or twice admonition, reject," Tit. i. 10. "I have decreed--to
+deliver such an one to Satan," 1 Cor. v. 4. "The rebuke inflicted by
+many," not all, 2 Cor. ii. "Whom I have delivered to Satan," 1 Tim. i.
+_ult_. And the Scriptures nowhere set the community over themselves to
+be their own church-guides and governors; but appoint over them in the
+Lord rulers and officers distinct from the community. Compare these
+places, 1 Thes. v. 12; Acts xx. 28, 29; Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22. "Salute
+all them that have the rule over you, and all the saints." From the
+premises we conclude,
+
+Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first subject, or
+immediate receptacle of the power of the keys from Jesus Christ.
+
+_Argum_. III. Jesus Christ hath not given nor promised to the community
+of the faithful a spirit of ministry, nor those gifts which are
+necessary for the government of the church: therefore the community was
+never intended to be the first subject of church government.
+
+_Major_. Whomsoever Christ makes the first subject of the power of
+church government, to them he promises and gives a spirit of ministry,
+and gifts necessary for that government. For, 1. As there is diversity
+of ecclesiastical administrations (which is the foundation of diversity
+of officers) and diversity of miraculous operations, and both for the
+profit of the Church; so there is conveyed from the Spirit of Christ
+diversity of gifts, free endowments, enabling and qualifying for the
+actual discharge of those administrations and operations. See 1 Cor.
+xii. 4-7, &c. 2. What instance can be given throughout the whole New
+Testament of any persons, whom Christ made the receptacle of church
+government, but withal he gifted them, and made his promises to them, to
+qualify them for such government? As the apostles and their successors:
+"As my Father sent me, even so send I you. And when he had said this, he
+breathed on them, and saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost: whose
+soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them; and whose soever sins
+ye retain, they are retained," John xx. 21-23. And, "Go ye therefore,
+and disciple ye all nations, &c.--And lo, I am with you alway," (or
+every day,) "even to the end of the world," Matt. xxviii. 19, 20. 3.
+Christ being the _wisdom of the Father_, Col. ii. 3, John i. 18, and
+_faithful as was Moses in all his house_; yea, _more faithful_--_Moses
+as a servant_ over another's, he _as a son over his own house_, Heb.
+iii. 2, 5, 6--it cannot stand with his most exact wisdom and fidelity,
+to commit the grand affairs of church government to such as are not duly
+gifted, and sufficiently qualified by himself for the due discharge
+thereof.
+
+_Minor_. But Christ neither promises, nor gives a spirit of ministry,
+nor necessary gifts for church government to the community of the
+faithful. For, 1. The Scriptures teach, that gifts for ministry and
+government are promised and bestowed not on all, but upon some
+particular persons only in the visible body of Christ. "To one is given
+by the Spirit the word of wisdom, to another the word of knowledge,"
+&c., not to all, 1 Cor. xii. 8, 9, &c. "If a man know not how to rule
+his own house, how shall he take care of the church of God?" 1 Tim. iii.
+5. The hypothesis insinuates that all men have not gifts and skill
+rightly to rule their own houses, much less to govern the church. 2.
+Experience tells us, that the multitude of the people are generally
+destitute of such knowledge, wisdom, prudence, learning, and other
+necessary qualifications for the right carrying on of church government.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ makes not the community of the faithful
+the first subject of the power of church government.
+
+_Argum_. IV. The community of the faithful are nowhere in the word
+called or acknowledged to be church governors: therefore they are not
+the first subject of church government.
+
+_Major_. Those persons, who are the first subject and receptacle of
+proper power for church government from Christ, are in the word called
+and acknowledged to be church governors. This is evident, 1. By
+Scripture, which is wont to give to them whom Christ intrusts with his
+government, such names and titles as have rule, authority, and
+government engraven upon them: as _overseers_, Acts xx. 28;
+_governments_, 1 Cor. xii. 28; _rulers_, 1 Tim. v. 17, and Rom. xii. 8;
+with divers others, as after will appear in Chap. XI. 2. By reason,
+which tells us that government and governors are relative terms; and
+therefore to whom government belongs, to them also the denominations of
+governors, rulers, &c., do belong, and not contrariwise.
+
+_Minor_. But the community of the faithful are nowhere in the word
+either called or acknowledged to be church governors. This is clear.
+For, 1. No titles or names are given them by Scripture which imply any
+rule or government in the visible Church of Christ. 2. They are plainly
+set in opposition against, and distinction from, church governors: they
+are called the _flock_; these, _overseers_ set over them by the Holy
+Ghost, Acts xx. 28: they, _the saints_; these _their rulers_, Heb. xiii.
+22: these are _over them in the Lord_; and consequently they are _under
+them in the Lord_, 1 Thes. v. 12. 3. The community of the faithful are
+so far from being the subject of church government themselves, that they
+are expressly charged by the word of Christ to _know, honor, obey_, and
+_submit_, to other governors set over them, and distinct from
+themselves. "Know them who are over you in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12.
+"Let the well-ruling elders be counted worthy of double
+honor; especially," &c., 1 Tim. v. 17. "Obey ye your rulers, and submit,
+for they watch for your souls," Heb. xiii. 17.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first
+subject and receptacle of proper power for church government.
+
+_Argum_. V. This opinion of making the body of the Church, or community
+of the faithful, the first subject and immediate receptacle of the keys
+for the government of the Church, doth inevitably bring along with it
+many intolerable absurdities. Therefore it is not to be granted. Thus we
+may argue:
+
+_Major_. That doctrine or opinion which draws after it unavoidably
+divers intolerable absurdities, is an unsound and unwarrantable opinion.
+
+_Minor_. But this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole community or
+body of the Church to be the first subject and immediate receptacle of
+the keys, draws after it unavoidable divers intolerable absurdities.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole
+community or body of the Church to be the first subject, and immediate
+receptacle of the keys, is an unsound and unwarrantable opinion.
+
+The _Major_ is plain. For, 1. Though matters of religion be above
+reason, yet are they not unreasonable, absurd, and directly contrary to
+right reason. 2. The Scriptures condemn it as a great brand upon men,
+that they are absurd or unreasonable; "Brethren, pray for us--that we
+may be delivered from absurd and evil men," 2 Thes. iii. 2; and
+therefore if absurd men be so culpable, absurdity, and unreasonableness
+itself, which make them such, are much more culpable.
+
+The _Minor_, viz. But this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole
+community or body of the Church to be the first subject and immediate
+receptacle of the keys, draws after it unavoidably divers intolerable
+absurdities, will notably appear by an induction of particulars.
+
+1. Hereby a clear foundation is laid for the rigid Brownist's confused
+democracy, and abhorred anarchy. For, if the whole body of the people be
+the first receptacle of the keys, then all church government and every
+act thereof is in the whole body, and every member of that body a
+governor, consequently every member of that body an officer. But this is
+absurd; for if all be officers, where is the organical body? and if all
+be governors, where are the governed? if all be eyes, where are the
+feet? and if there be none governed, where is the government? it is
+wholly resolved at last into mere democratical anarchy and confusion,
+"but God is not the author of confusion," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. What an
+absurdity were it, if in the body natural _all were an eye_, or _hand_!
+for _where_ then _were the hearing, smelling_, &c.; _or if all were one
+member, where were the body_? 1 Cor. xii. 17,19. So if in the family all
+were masters, where were the household? where were the family
+government? If in a city all were aldermen, where were the citizens?
+where were the city government? If in a kingdom all were kings, where
+were the subjects, the people, the commonalty, the commonwealth, or the
+political government?
+
+2. Hereby the community or whole body of the faithful, even to the
+meanest member, are vested from Christ with full power and authority
+actually to discharge and execute all acts of order and jurisdiction
+without exception: e.g. To preach the word authoritatively, dispense the
+sacraments, ordain their officers, admonish offenders, excommunicate the
+obstinate and incorrigible, and absolve the penitent. For _the keys of
+the kingdom of heaven_ comprehend all these acts jointly, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18-20, with John xx. 21, 23: and to whom Christ in the New
+Testament gives power to execute one of these acts, to them he gives
+power to execute all; they are joined together, Matt, xviii. 19, (except
+in such cases where himself gives a limitation of the power, as in the
+case of the ruling elder, who is limited to ruling as contradistinct to
+_laboring in the word and doctrine_, 1 Tim. v. 17.) Now what gross
+absurdities ensue hereupon! For, 1. Then the weak as well as the strong,
+the ignorant as well as the intelligent, the children as well as the
+parents, yea, and the very women as well as the men, may preach,
+dispense seals, ordain, admonish, excommunicate, absolve
+authoritatively; (for they are all equally members of the body, one as
+well as another, and therefore, as such, have all alike equal share in
+the keys and exercise thereof:) viz. they that are not gifted for these
+offices, shall discharge these offices; they that are not called nor
+sent of God to officiate, (for God sends not all,) shall yet officiate
+in the name of Christ without calling or sending, contrary to Rom. x.,
+Heb. v. 4. They that want the common use of reason and discretion (as
+children) shall have power to join in the highest acts of order and
+jurisdiction: yea, they that are expressly prohibited _speaking in the
+churches_, as the _women_, 1 Cor. xiv., 1 Tim. ii., shall yet have the
+_keys of the kingdom of heaven_ hung at their girdles. 2. Then the
+Church shall be the steward of Christ, and dispenser of the mysteries of
+God authoritatively and properly. But if the whole Church be the
+dispenser of the mysteries of God, what shall be the object of this
+dispensation? Not the Church, for according to this opinion she is the
+first subject dispensing; therefore it must be something distinct from
+the Church, unto which the Church dispenseth; what shall this be? shall
+it be another collateral church? then particular churches collateral may
+take pastoral care one of another reciprocally, and the same churches be
+both over and under one another; or shall it be those that are without
+all churches? then the ordinances of the gospel, and the dispensation of
+them, were not principally bestowed upon the Church and body of Christ
+for the good thereof, (which is directly repugnant to the Scriptures,
+Eph. iv. 8, 11-13;) but rather for them that are without. How shall the
+men, who maintain the principle's of the Independents, clearly help
+themselves out of these perplexing absurdities?
+
+3. Hereby the body of the people (as Mr. Bayly well observes in his
+Dissuasive, chap. ix. page 187) will be extremely unfitted for, and
+unwarrantably taken off from the several duties that lie upon them in
+point of conscience to discharge in their general and particular
+callings, in spiritual and secular matters, on the Lord's days and on
+their own days. For, if the ecclesiastical power be in all the people,
+then all the people are judges, and at least have a negative voice in
+all church matters. They cannot judge in any cause prudently and
+conscientiously, till they have complete knowledge and information of
+both the substantials and circumstantials of all those cases that are
+brought before them; they must not judge blindly, or by an implicit
+faith, &c., but by their own light. For all the people to have such full
+information and knowledge of every cause, cannot but take up abundance
+of time, (many of the people being slow of understanding and extremely
+disposed to puzzle, distract, and confound one another in any business
+to be transacted in common by them all.) If these matters of discipline
+be managed by them on the sabbath day after the dispatch of other public
+ordinances, ministry of the word, prayer, sacraments, &c., what time can
+remain for family duties privately, as repeating sermons, and meditating
+upon the word, searching the Scriptures, whether things preached be so
+indeed, reading the Scriptures, catechizing their children and servants,
+&c.? and how will the life of religion in families, yea, and in churches
+also, languish, if these family exercises be not conscientiously upheld?
+If they be managed on the week days, how can all the people spare so
+much time, as still to be present, when perhaps many of them have much
+ado all the week long to provide food and raiment, and other necessaries
+for their families? and "if any provide not for his own, and specially
+for those of his own house, he hath denied the faith, and is worse than
+an infidel," 1 Tim. v. 8. Let the case of the church of Arnheim[39]
+witness the mischief and absurdity of this popular government once for
+all.
+
+4. Hereby, finally, the community of the faithful (being accounted the
+proper subject of the power of the keys) have authority and power not
+only to elect, but also to ordain their own officers, their pastors and
+teachers. And this they of the independent judgment plainly confess in
+these words:[40] Though the office of a pastor in general be immediately
+from Christ, and the authority from him also, yet the application of
+this office, and of this authority to this elect person, is by the
+church; and therefore the church hath sufficient and just warrant, as to
+elect and call a presbyter unto an office, so to ordain him to it by
+imposition of hands. They that have power to elect a king, have power
+also to depute some in their name to set the crown upon his head. But
+for the whole church or community to ordain presbyters by imposition of
+hands, is very absurd. For, 1. Their women and children, being members
+of the church and of the community, may join in ordaining presbyters by
+imposing of hands, and have as great an influence in appointing them
+that shall actually impose hands, as the rest of the church members
+have, being as properly members as they. 2. Then the community, that
+generally are unable to judge of the fitness and sufficiency of
+presbyters for the pastoral office, in point of necessary gifts of
+learning, &c., shall, without judicious satisfaction herein by previous
+examination, ordain men notwithstanding to the highest ordinary office
+in the church. How ignorantly, how doubtfully, how irregularly, how
+unwarrantably, let the reader judge. 3. Then the community of the
+faithful may assume to themselves power to execute this ordinary act of
+ordination of officers, without all precept of Christ or his apostles,
+and without all warrant of the apostolical churches. But how absurd
+these things be, each moderate capacity may conceive. Further
+absurdities hereupon are declared by Mr. Bain,[41] and after him by Mr.
+Ball.[42]
+
+Whence we may justly conclude,
+
+Therefore this doctrine or opinion, that makes the whole community or
+body of the church to be the first subject and immediate receptacle of
+the keys, is an unsound and unwarrantable opinion.
+
+The middle-way men, (that profess to go between the authoritative
+presbyterial, and the rigid Brownistical way,) seeing these and such
+like absurdities, upon which the Brownists inevitably dash themselves,
+think to salve all by their new-coined distinction of the keys; viz. 1.
+There is a key of faith or knowledge, Luke xi. 52. The first subject of
+this key is every believer, whether joined to any particular church or
+not. 2. There is a key of order, Col. ii. 5, which is either, 1. A key
+of interest, power, or liberty, Gal. v. 13, which key is of a more large
+nature; 2. A key of rule and authority, which is of more strict nature,
+Matt. xvi. 19, John xx. 23. Hence, upon this distinction premised, they
+thus infer, 1. A particular congregation of saints is the first subject
+of all the church offices with all their spiritual gifts and power, 1
+Cor. iii. 22. 2. The apostles of Christ were the first subject of
+apostolical power. 3. The brethren of a particular congregation are the
+first subjects of church liberty. 4. The elders of a particular church
+are the first subjects of church authority. 5. Both the elders and
+brethren, walking and joining together in truth and peace, are the first
+subjects of all church power needful to be exercised in their own body.
+
+_Answer_. A rotten foundation, and a tottering superstruction, which
+tumbles down upon the builders' own heads: for,
+
+1. This distribution of the keys is infirm in divers respects: e.g. 1.
+In that the key of knowledge (as it stands here distinguished from the
+key of order, comprehending the key of power and authority) is left
+utterly devoid of all power. Now no key of the kingdom of heaven is to
+be left without all power, Independents themselves being judges. 2. In
+that the key of power is left as utterly void of all authority, (being
+contradistinguished from the key of authority,) as the key of knowledge
+is left void of power. Now, power and authority, in matters of
+government, seem to be both one; and the word in the original signifies
+the one as well as the other. 3. The key of liberty or interest is a new
+key, lately forged by some new locksmiths in Separation-shop, to be a
+pick-lock of the power of church officers, and to open the door for
+popular government; no ordinance of Christ, but a mere human invention,
+(as will after appear upon examination of that scripture upon which it
+is grounded,) and therefore this limb of the distribution is redundant,
+a superfluous excrescence. 4. The texts of Scripture upon which this
+distribution of the keys is grounded, are divers of them abused, or at
+least grossly mistaken; for, Luke xi. 52, key of knowledge is
+interpreted only the key of saving faith. But knowledge, in strict
+speaking, is one thing, and faith another; there may be knowledge where
+there is no faith; and knowledge, in a sort, is a key to faith, as the
+inlet thereof. And the key of knowledge, viz. true doctrine and pure
+preaching of the word, is a distinct thing from knowledge itself. This
+key the lawyers had taken away by not interpreting, or misinterpreting
+of the law; but they could not take away the people's faith, or
+knowledge itself. Touching Col. ii. 5, 6, _your order_, it will be hard
+to prove this was only or chiefly intended of the keys delivered to
+Peter: doth it not rather denote the people's moral orderly walking,
+according to the rule of faith and life, as in other duties, so in
+submitting themselves to Christ's order of government, as is elsewhere
+required, Heb. xiii. 17? And as for Gal. v. 13, produced to prove the
+key of liberty, _Brethren, you have been called unto liberty_, there is
+too much liberty taken in wresting this text; for the apostle here
+speaks not of liberty as a church power, of choosing officers, joining
+in censures, &c., but as a gospel privilege, consisting in freedom from
+the ceremonial law, that yoke of bondage, which false teachers would
+have imposed upon them, after Christ had broken it off; as will further
+appear, if you please with this text to compare Gal. v. 1, 11, 15, 10,
+and well consider the current of the whole context.
+
+2. The inferences upon this distribution of the keys premised, are very
+strange and untheological. For it may be accepted in general, that it is
+a groundless fancy to make several first subjects of the keys, according
+to the several distributions of the keys; for, had all the members of
+the distribution been good, yet this inference thereupon is naught,
+inasmuch as the Scripture tells us plainly, that all the keys together
+and at once were promised to Peter, Matt. xvi. 19, and given to the
+apostles, Matt, xviii. 18, 19, with xxviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21-23;
+so that originally the apostles and their successors were the only first
+subject and immediate receptacle of all the keys from Christ. And though
+since, for assistance and case of the pastor, they are divided into more
+hands--viz. of the ruling elder, Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v.
+17--yet originally the subject was but one. Further, here is just ground
+for many particular exceptions: as, 1. That every believer, whether
+joined to any particular church or not, is made the first subject of the
+key of knowledge, which seems to be extremely absurd: for then every
+particular believer, gifted or ungifted, strong or weak, man, woman, or
+child, hath power to preach, (taking the key of knowledge here for the
+key of doctrine, as it ought to be taken, or else it is no
+ecclesiastical key at all,) which is one of the highest offices, and
+which the great apostle said, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2
+Cor. ii. 16. How unscriptural and irrational this is, all may judge.
+Then also some of the keys may be committed to such as are without the
+Church. Then finally, it is possible to be a believer, and yet in no
+visible church; (for Independents hold there is no church but a
+particular congregation, which is their only church:) but a man is no
+sooner a true believer, but he is a member of the invisible Church: he
+is no sooner a professed believer, but he is a member of the general
+visible Church, though he be joined to no particular congregation. 2.
+That a particular congregation of saints is made the first subject of
+all the church offices, with all their spiritual gifts and power, 1 Cor.
+iii. 22. But is the word subject used here properly, for the first
+subject recipient of all church offices, with all their gifts and power?
+Then the congregation of saints are either officers themselves formally,
+and can execute the function of all sorts of officers, and have all
+gifts to that end; what need then is there of any select officers? for
+they can make officers virtually, and furnish those officers with gifts
+and power to that end; but who gave them any such authority? Or what
+apostolical church ever assumed to themselves any such thing? Officers,
+not churches, are the first subject of such gifts and power. Is the word
+subject here used improperly, for object, whose good all offices with
+their gifts and power are given? Then not any particular congregation,
+but the whole general visible Church is the object for which all offices
+and officers with their gifts and power are primarily given, 1 Cor. xii.
+28; Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12. As for that place, 1 Cor. iii. 22, "All is
+yours," &c., it points not out the particular privilege of any one
+single congregation, (nor was the church of Corinth such, but
+presbyterial, see chap. XIII.,) but the general privilege of all true
+saints, and of the invisible mystical Church: for were Paul and Cephas
+apostles given peculiarly to the church of Corinth only? Or was the
+_world, life, death, things present and to come_, given to the wicked in
+the church of Corinth? 3. That the apostles are made the first subject
+of all apostolical power. But then, how doth this contradict the former
+assertion, that a particular congregation is the first subject of all
+offices with their gifts and power? Are there two first subjects of the
+same adjuncts? Or is apostleship no office? Are apostolical gifts no
+gifts, or power no power? or have apostles all from the Church?
+Doubtless apostles were before all Christian churches, and had the keys
+given them before the churches had their being. 4. That the brethren of
+a particular congregation are made the first subjects of church liberty.
+But, if that liberty be power and authority, then this evidently
+contradicts the former, that a particular congregation is the first
+subject of all offices and power; for brethren here are distinct from
+elders, and both do but make up a particular congregation. If liberty
+here be not power, then it is none of Christ's keys, but a new forged
+pick-lock. 5. That the elders of a particular church are made the first
+subject of church authority; but then here is a contradiction to the
+former position, that made the particular congregation the first subject
+of all power. And though apostles and elders be the first subject of
+authority, yet, when the keys were first committed to them, they were
+not in relation to any particular church, but to the general. 6.
+Finally, that both elders and brethren, walking and joining together in
+truth and peace, are the first subjects of all church power, is liable
+also to exception. For this joins the brethren (who indeed have no
+authoritative power at all) with the elders, as the joint subject of all
+power. And this but allowed to them walking and joining together in
+truth and peace: but what if the major part of the Church prove
+heretical, and so walk not in truth; or schismatical, and so walk not in
+peace, shall the elders and the non-offending party lose all their
+power? Where then shall that independent church find healing? for
+appeals to presbyteries and synods are counted apocryphal by them. But
+enough hath been said to detect the vanity of these new dreams and
+notions; it is a bad sore that must be wrapped in so many clouts.[43]
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI.
+
+_Of the proper Receptacle, or immediate subject of the Power of Church
+Government: affirmatively, what it is, viz. Christ's own Officers._
+
+
+Thus the proper receptacle or subject of ecclesiastical power hath been
+considered negatively, what it is not, viz: not the political
+magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, with or without their eldership. Now this receptacle of power
+comes to be evidenced affirmatively, what it is, viz. (according to the
+express words of the description of government,) Christ's own officers.
+This is the last branch of the description, the divine right whereof
+remains to be cleared; which may most satisfactorily be done by
+evidencing these three things, viz: 1. That Jesus Christ our Mediator
+hath certain peculiar church guides and officers which he hath erected
+in his Church. 2. That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath especially
+intrusted his own officers with the government of his Church. 3. How, or
+in what sense the ruling officers are intrusted with this government,
+severally or jointly?
+
+
+SECTION I.
+
+1. _Of the Divine Right of Christ's Church Officers, viz. Pastors and
+Teachers, with Ruling Elders._
+
+Touching the first, that Christ hath certain peculiar church guides and
+officers, which he hath erected in his Church. Take it thus:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath ordained and set in his Church (besides
+the apostles and other extraordinary officers that are now ceased)
+pastors and teachers, as also ruling elders, as the subject of the keys
+for all ordinary ecclesiastical administrations. The divine right of
+these ordinary church officers may appear as followeth:
+
+I. Pastors and teachers are the ordinance of Jesus Christ. This is
+generally granted on all sides; and therefore these few particulars may
+suffice for the demonstration of it, viz:
+
+1. They are enumerated in the list or catalogue of those church officers
+which are of divine institution. "God hath set" (or put, constituted)
+"some in the Church, first, apostles; secondarily, prophets; thirdly,
+teachers," 1 Cor. xii. 28. These are some of the triumphant gifts and
+trophies of Christ's ascension: "Ascending up on high, he led captivity
+captive, and gave gifts to men: and he gave some apostles, and some
+prophets, and some evangelists, and some pastors and teachers," Eph. iv.
+8, 11. Thus in that exact roll of ordinary officers: "Having, therefore,
+gifts different according to the grace given unto us; whether prophecy,
+let us prophesy according to the proportion of faith; or ministry, let
+us wait on our ministry;" (here is the general distribution of all
+ordinary officers under two heads, _prophecy_ and _ministry_:) "or he
+that teacheth, on teaching; or he that exhorteth, on exhortation," (here
+is the teacher and the pastor, that come under the first head of
+prophecy,) Rom. xii. 6-8. "Take heed to yourselves, and to all the
+flock, over which the Holy Ghost hath made" (or set) "you overseers,"
+Acts xx. 28. Note--God hath set in the Church; Christ hath given for his
+body; the Holy Ghost hath made overseers over the flock, these pastors
+and teachers: and are not pastors and teachers church officers by divine
+right, having the authority of God, Christ, and of the Holy Ghost?
+
+2. They are to be thus and thus qualified according to divine direction.
+The qualifications of these pastors and teachers, (called presbyters and
+overseers,) see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, "An overseer," or bishop, "must be
+blameless," &c.; and Tit. i. 5-10, "To ordain presbyters," or elders,
+"in every city--If any be blameless," &c. Now, where God lays down
+qualifications for pastors and teachers, there he approves such officers
+to be his own ordinance.
+
+3. They have manifold church employments committed to them from Christ,
+as ministers of Christ and stewards of the mysteries of God, (1 Cor. iv.
+1, 2,) they being intrusted in whole or in part with the managing of
+most if not all the ordinances forementioned in part 2, chap. VII., as
+there by the texts alleged is evident. Matters of order and special
+office are committed to them only _divisim_: matters of jurisdiction are
+committed to them with ruling elders _conjunctim_. If Christ hath
+intrusted them thus with church ordinances, and the dispensing of them,
+sure they are Christ's church officers.
+
+4. The very names and titles given them in Scripture proclaim them to be
+Christ's own ordinance; among many take these: "Ministers of Christ," 1
+Cor. iv. 1; "Stewards of the mysteries of God," 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+"Ambassadors for Christ," 2 Cor. v. 20; "Laborers thrust forth into his
+harvest by the Lord of the harvest," Matt. ix. 38; "Ruling over you in
+the Lord,"[44] 1 Thess. v. 12.
+
+5. The Lord Christ charges their flock and people with many duties to be
+performed to their pastors and teachers, because of their office; as to
+know them, love them, obey them, submit unto them, honor them, maintain
+them, &c., which he would not do were they not his own ordinance. "But
+we beseech you, brethren, to know them that labor among you, and rule
+over you in the Lord, and esteem them very highly in love for their
+work's sake," 1 Thess. v. 12, 13. "Obey your rulers, and submit; for
+they watch for your souls as those that must give an account," Heb.
+xiii. 17. "The elders that rule well count worthy of double honor;
+especially them that labor in the word and doctrine; _for the Scripture
+saith_, Thou shalt not muzzle the mouth of the ox that treadeth out the
+corn, and the laborer is worthy of his hire," 1 Tim. v. 17, 18; compared
+With 1 Cor. ix. 6-15. "Let him that is catechized, communicate to him
+that catechizeth him in all good things," Gal. vi. 6-8.
+
+Thus much for the present may suffice to have been spoken touching the
+divine right of pastors and teachers, the ordinary standing ministers of
+Christ under the New Testament. But forasmuch as we observe that in
+these days some rigid Erastians and Seekers oppose and deny the very
+office of the ministry now under the gospel, and others profess that the
+ministry of the church of England is false and antichristian; we
+intend, (by God's assistance,) as soon as we can rid our hands from
+other pressing employments, to endeavor the asserting and vindicating of
+the divine right of the ministers of the New Testament in general, and
+of the truth of the ministry of the church of England in particular.
+
+II. Ruling elders, distinct from all preaching elders and deacons, are a
+divine ordinance in the Church of God now under the New Testament.
+
+The divine right of this church officer, the mere ruling elder, is much
+questioned and doubted by some, because they find not the Scriptures
+speaking so fully and clearly of the ruling elder as of the preaching
+elder and of the deacon. By others it is flatly denied and opposed, as
+by divers that adhere too tenaciously to the Erastian and prelatical
+principles: who yet are willing to account the assistance of the ruling
+elder in matter of church government to be a very prudential way. But if
+mere prudence be counted once a sufficient foundation for a distinct
+kind of church officer, we shall open a door for invention of church
+officers at pleasure; then welcome commissioners and committee men, &c.;
+yea, then let us return to the vomit, and resume prelates, deans,
+archdeacons, chancellors, officials, &c., for church officers. And where
+shall we stop? who but Christ Jesus himself can establish new officers
+in his church? Is it not the fruit of his ascension, &c.? Eph. iv. 7,
+11, 12. Certainly if the Scriptures lay not before us grounds more than
+prudential for the ruling elder, it were better never to have mere
+ruling elders in the church. Both the Presbyterians and Independents[45]
+acknowledge the divine right of the ruling elder. For satisfaction of
+doubting unprejudiced minds, (to omit divers considerations that might
+be produced,) the divine right of the ruling elder may be evinced by
+these ensuing arguments.
+
+_Argum_. I. The first argument for the divine right of the ruling elder
+in the Church of Christ, shall be drawn from Rom. xii. 6-8: "Having,
+then, gifts differing according to the grace that is given to us,
+whether prophecy, let us prophesy according to the proportion of faith;
+or ministry, _let us wait_ on our ministering; or he that teacheth, on
+teaching; or he that exhorteth, on exhortation; he that giveth, _let him
+do it_ with simplicity; he that ruleth, with diligence," &c. Let the
+scope and context of this chapter be a little viewed, and it will make
+way for the more clear arguing from this place. Briefly thus: The
+apostle having finished the principal part of his epistle, which was
+problematical, wherein he disputed--1. About justification, chap,
+i.-vi.; 2. Sanctification, chap. vi. 7, 8; and, 3. Predestination, chap.
+ix. 10, 11, he comes to the next branch, which is more practical, about
+good works, chap. xii.-xvi. This twelfth chapter is wholly in the way of
+exhortation, and he herein exhorts to divers duties. 1. More generally
+that we should even consecrate ourselves wholly to the service of God,
+ver. 1; that we should not conform to the world, ver. 2. More specially
+he descends to particular duties, which are of two sorts, viz: 1. Such
+as concern ecclesiastical officers as officers, ver. 3-9; 2. Such as
+concern all Christians in common as Christians, both towards one another
+and towards their very enemies, verse 9, to the end of the chapter.
+Touching ecclesiastical officers, the apostle's evident scope is to urge
+them not to be proud of their spiritual gifts, (which in those days
+abounded,) but to think soberly, self-denyingly of themselves, and to
+use all their gifts well. This he presseth upon them, 1. From the nature
+of the Church, which is as a natural organical body, wherein are many
+members, having their several offices for the good of the whole body; so
+the members of Christ's body being many, have their several gifts and
+offices for the good of the whole, that the superior should not despise
+the inferior, nor the inferior envy their superior, ver. 3-5. 2. From
+the distribution or enumeration of the several kinds of ordinary
+standing officers in this organical body, the Church, who are severally
+exhorted duly to discharge those duties that are specially required of
+them in their several functions, ver. 6-8. These officers are reduced
+first to two general heads, viz: Prophecy (understand not the
+extraordinary gift of foretelling future things, &c., but the ordinary,
+in the right understanding and interpreting of Scripture) and ministry;
+and the general duties thereof are annexed, ver. 6, 7. Then these
+generals are subdivided into the special offices contained under them,
+the special duty of every officer being severally pressed upon them.
+Under prophecy are contained, 1. _He that teacheth_, i.e., the doctor or
+teacher; 2. _He that exhorteth_, i.e., the pastor, ver. 7, 8. Under
+ministry are comprised, 1. _He that giveth_, i.e., the deacon; 2. _He
+that ruleth_, i.e., the ruling elder. The current of our best
+interpreters to this effect resolve this context. So that here we have a
+very excellent and perfect enumeration of all the ordinary standing
+officers in the Church of Christ distinctly laid down. This premised,
+the argument for the divine right of the ruling elder may be thus
+propounded:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever members of Christ's organical body have an ordinary
+office of ruling therein given them of God, distinct from all other
+ordinary standing officers in the church, together with directions from
+God how they are to rule; they are the ruling elders we seek, and that
+by divine right.
+
+_Minor_. But _he that ruleth_, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is a member of
+Christ's organical body, having an ordinary office of ruling therein
+given him of God, distinct from all other standing officers in the
+church, together with direction how he is to rule.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is the
+ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.
+
+The major proposition is clear. For in the particulars of it, well
+compared together, are observable both a plain delineation or
+description of the ruling elder's office; and also a firm foundation for
+the divine right of that office. The ruling elder's office is described
+and delineated by these several clauses, which set out so many
+requisites for the making up of a ruling elder, viz: 1. He must be a
+member of Christ's organical body. Such as are without, pagans,
+heathens, infidels, &c., out of the Church, they are not fit objects for
+church government, to have it exercised by the Church upon them; the
+Church only judges them that are within, (1 Cor. v. 12, 13,) much less
+can they be fit subjects of church government to exercise it themselves
+within the Church. How shall they be officers in the Church that are not
+so much as members of the Church? Besides, such as are only members of
+the invisible body of Christ, as the glorified saints in heaven, they
+cannot be officers in the Church; for not the Church invisible, but only
+the Church or body of Christ visible is organical. So that every church
+officer must first be a Church member, a member of the visible organical
+body: consequently a ruling elder must be such a member. 2. He must have
+an office of ruling in this body of Christ. Membership is not enough,
+unless that power of rule be superadded thereto; for the whole office of
+the ruling elder is contained in the matter of rule; take away rule, you
+destroy the very office. Now, rule belongs not to every member: "Salute
+all them that have the rule over you, and all the saints," Heb. xiii.
+24, where rulers and saints are made contradistinct to one another. In
+the body natural all the members are not eyes, hands, &c., governing the
+body, some are rather governed; so in the body of Christ, 1 Cor. xii. 3.
+This his office of ruling must be an ordinary office; apostles had some
+power that was extraordinary, as their apostleship was extraordinary;
+but when we seek for this ruling elder, we seek for a fixed, standing,
+ordinary officer ruling in the church. 4. All that is not enough, that
+he be a member of the church, that he have an office of rule in the
+church, and that office also be ordinary; but besides all these it is
+necessary that he be also distinct from all other standing officers in
+the church, viz. from pastors, teachers, deacons; else all the former
+will not make up a peculiar kind of officer, if in all points he fully
+agree with any of the said three. But if there can be found such an
+officer in whom all these four requisites do meet, viz: That, 1. Is a
+member of Christ's organical body; 2. Hath an office of rule therein; 3,
+That office is ordinary; and, 4. That ordinary office is distinct from
+all other ordinary standing offices in the church; this must unavoidably
+be that very ruling elder which we inquire after. By this it is evident,
+that in this proposition here is a plain and clear delineation of the
+ruling elder's office. Now, in the next place, touching the foundation
+for the divine right of this office; it also is notably expressed in the
+same proposition, while it presupposeth, 1. That God is the giver of
+this office; 2. That God is the guider of this office. For whatsoever
+office or officer God gives for his Church, and having given it, guides
+and directs to the right discharge thereof, that must needs be of divine
+right beyond all contradiction. Thus this proposition is firm and
+cogent. Now let us assume:
+
+_Minor_. But _he that ruleth_, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is a member of
+Christ's organical body, having an ordinary office of ruling therein,
+given him of God, distinct from all other ordinary standing officers in
+the church, together with direction from God how he is to rule.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition (whereon the main stress of the
+argument doth lie) may be thus evidenced by parts, from this context:
+
+_He that ruleth_ is a member of Christ's organical body. For, 1. The
+Church of Christ is here compared to a body, _We being many are one body
+in Christ_, ver. 5. 2. This body is declared to be organical, i.e.
+consisting of several members, that have their several offices in the
+body, some of teaching, some of exhorting, and some of ruling, &c. "For
+as we have many members in one body, and all members have not the same
+office, so we being many are one body in Christ, and every one members
+one of another," &c., ver. 4-6, &c. 3. Among the rest of the members of
+this body, _he that ruleth_ is reckoned up for one, ver. 5-8; this is
+palpably evident.
+
+_He that ruleth_ hath an office of ruling in this body of Christ. For,
+1. This word (translated) _he that ruleth_, in the proper signification
+and use of it, both in the Scriptures and in other Greek authors, doth
+signify one that ruleth authoritatively over another, (as hereafter is
+manifested in the 3d argument, § 2.) 2. Our best interpreters and
+commentators do render and expound the word generally to this effect:
+e.g. He that is over[46]--one set over[47]--he that stands in the head
+or front[48]--as a captain or commander in the army, to which this
+phrase seems to allude--_he that ruleth_. 3. This word, wherever it is
+used in a genuine proper sense, in all the New Testament, notes rule, or
+government. It is used metaphorically for taking care (as one set over
+any business) of good works, only in two places, Tit. iii. 8, and iii.
+14. Properly for government which superiors have over inferiors; and
+that either domestical, in private families, so it is used in 1 Tim.
+iii. 4, 5, 12, or ecclesiastical, in the church, which is the public
+family of God; in this sense it is used, 1 Thes. v. 12, 1 Tim. v. 17,
+and here, Rom. xii. 8, and these are all the places where this word is
+found used in all the New Testament.
+
+3. _He that ruleth_ here, hath an ordinary, not an extraordinary office
+of rule in the church. For he is ranked and reckoned up in the list of
+Christ's ordinary standing officers, that are constantly to continue in
+the church, viz. pastors, teachers, deacons. Commonly this place is
+interpreted to speak of the ordinary church officers, and none other;
+consequently he that ruleth is such a one.
+
+4. _He that ruleth_ here, is an officer distinct from all other ordinary
+officers in the Church of Christ. For in this place we have a full
+enumeration of all Christ's ordinary officers, and he that ruleth is a
+distinct officer among them all. 1. Distinct in name, he only is called
+_he that ruleth_, the rest have every one of them their several distinct
+name, ver. 7, 8. 2. Distinct in his work here appropriated to him; the
+doctor teacheth; the pastor exhorteth; the deacon giveth; this elder
+_ruleth_, as the very name signifieth, ver. 8. Compare 1 Tim. v. 17, 1
+Cor. xii. 28. As the elder ruleth, so he is distinct from the deacon
+that hath no rule in the church; and as he only rules, so he is distinct
+from both pastor and teacher, that both teach, exhort, and rule; they
+both have power of order and jurisdiction, the ruling elder hath only
+power of jurisdiction. 3. Finally, he is distinct among and from them
+all in the particular direction here given these officers about the
+right discharge of their functions. The teacher must be exercised _in
+teaching_; the pastor _in exhortation_; the deacon must _give with
+singleness_; and the elder, he must _rule with diligence, studiousness_,
+&c. Now what other solid reason can be imagined, why _he that ruleth_
+should here have a distinct name, distinct work and employment, and
+distinct direction how to manage this work, than this, that the Holy
+Ghost might set him out unto us as an ordinary officer in the church,
+distinct from all the other standing officers here enumerated?
+
+5. God himself is the author and giver of this office of him that
+ruleth, as well as of all the other offices here mentioned. For, 1. All
+gifts and endowments in the church in general, and in every member in
+particular; they are from God, it is he that gives and divides them as
+he will, _as God hath dealt to every one the measure of faith_, Rom.
+xii. 3. 2. All the special offices, and gifts for these offices in
+special, are also from the same God, _we having therefore gifts
+according to the grace given unto us, differing; whether prophecy_, &c.,
+Rom, xii. 6, 7, &c. Here it is plain that he distinguished betwixt grace
+and gifts. By grace here we are to understand that holy office or charge
+in the church, which is given to any man by the grace and favor of God.
+And in this sense the apostle in this very chapter, ver. 3, useth the
+word _grace: For I say through the grace given to me_, i.e. through the
+authority of my apostleship, which by grace I have received, &c. By
+gifts, we are to understand those endowments wherewith God hath freely
+furnished his officers in the church for their several offices. Now both
+these gifts and this grace, both the endowments and the office, are
+originally from God, his grace is the fountain of them; and both the
+grace of each office, and the gifts for such office, relate to all these
+ordinary offices here enumerated, as is evident by the current and
+connection of the whole context, see ver. 6-8; consequently the grace,
+i.e. the office of ruling, which is of divine grace, and the gifts for
+that office, arise from the same fountain, God himself.
+
+6. Finally, God himself is the guider and director of him that ruleth,
+here prescribing to him how he is to rule, viz. _with diligence, with
+studiousness_, &c., ver. 8. Now we may receive this as a maxim, That of
+divine right may be done, for which God gives his divine rule how it is
+to be done: and that office must needs be of divine right, which God
+himself so far approves as to direct in his word how it shall be
+discharged.
+
+Now, to sum up all, he that ruleth here, 1. Is a member of Christ's
+organical body. 2. Hath an office of ruling in this body. 3. This his
+office is not extraordinary but ordinary, standing, and perpetual. 4. He
+is an officer distinct from all other ordinary officers in the Church.
+5. God himself is the giver and author of this office. 6. And God
+himself is the guider and director of this office: and then see if we
+may not clearly conclude,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore, he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is
+the ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.
+
+The adversaries of ruling elders muster up divers exceptions against the
+alleging of Rom. xii. 8, for proof of the divine right of their office,
+the weakness of which is to be discovered ere we pass to another
+argument. _Except_. 1. This is an arguing from a general to a special
+affirmatively. It doth not follow, because the apostle here in general
+mentioneth him that ruleth, therefore in special it must be the ruling
+elder.[49]
+
+_Ans_. This exception is the same with first exception against the
+second argument hereafter laid down. There see. For the same answer
+appositely and satisfactorily is applicable to both.
+
+_Except_. 2. But the apostle here speaks of them that rule, but we have
+nowhere received that such elders have rule over the church--and he
+speaks of all that rule in the church, who therefore would wrest this
+place only to elders? One cannot rightly attribute that word translated
+_he that ruleth_ to elders only, which is common unto more. If these
+elders he here meant, neither pastors nor teachers ought to rule, for
+this word agrees no otherwise to him that ruleth, than the word of
+exhorting to him that exhorteth.[50]
+
+_Ans_. 1. That such elders rule in the church is evident, both by Rom.
+xii. 8, where this word implies rule as hath been showed, and he that
+ruleth is reckoned up amongst ordinary church officers, as hath been
+said, therefore he rules in the church: these the apostle also calls
+ruling elders, 1 Tim. v. 17, viz. officers in the church, and distinct
+from them that labor in the word and doctrine; as in the third argument
+will appear: yea, they are governments set of God in the church,
+distinct from other officers, 1 Cor. xii. 28, as in the second argument
+shall be evidenced: there see; therefore these elders have rule.
+
+2. Though in this term the apostle speaks of him that ruleth, yet he
+speaks not of every one that ruleth. For, 1. He speaks singularly, he
+that ruleth, as of one kind of ruling officer; not plurally, they that
+rule, as if he had indefinitely or universally meant all the ruling
+officers in the church. 2. He reckons up here distinct kinds of ordinary
+officers, pastors, teachers, elders, and deacons; and pastors and
+teachers, besides laboring in the word, have power of rule, 1 Thes. v.
+12, Heb. xiii. 7-17, and he that ruleth, here, is distinct from them
+both; and therefore this term cannot mean all church rulers, but only
+one kind, viz. the ruling elder.
+
+3. Though this name, _he that ruleth_, be common unto more rulers in the
+church, than to the mere ruling elder; yet it doth not therefore
+necessarily follow, that it cannot here particularly point out only the
+mere ruling elder, inasmuch, as _he that ruleth_, is not here set
+alone, (for then this objection might have had some color,) but is
+enumerated with other officers as distinct from them.
+
+4. Though the ruling elder here be called _he that ruleth_, yet this
+doth not exclude the pastor from ruling, no more than when the ordinary
+ministers are called pastors and teachers, the apostles and evangelists
+are excluded from feeding and teaching, in Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii.
+28. This elder is called, _he that ruleth_, not that there is no other
+ruler than he, but because he doth no other thing but rule, others rule
+and preach also.
+
+_Except_. 3. If this were meant of such elders, then these elders were
+as necessary to the church as pastors, being given to the church by the
+like reason. Consequently where these elders are not, there is no
+church; as there is no church where the word and sacraments are not.[51]
+
+_Ans_. 1. According to this argument deacons are as necessary as either
+pastors, teachers, or elders, and without deacons there should be no
+church; for they are all enumerated here alike, Rom. xii. 7, 8, and in 1
+Cor. xii. 28; but this would be absurd, and against experience. 2.
+Though both pastors and ruling elders belong to the church by divine
+right, yet doth it not follow that the ruling elder is equally as
+necessary as the pastor. The ruling elder only rules, the pastor both
+rules and preaches, therefore he is more necessary to the church. There
+are degrees of necessity; some things are absolutely necessary to the
+being of a church, as matter and form, viz. visible saints, and a due
+profession of faith, and obedience to Christ, according to the gospel.
+Thus it is possible a church may be, and yet want both deacons, elders,
+and pastors too, yea, and word and sacraments for a time: some things
+are only respectively necessary to the well-being of a church; thus
+officers are necessary, yet some more than others, without which the
+church is lame, defective, and miserably imperfect.
+
+_Except_. 4. Should ruling elders here be meant, then deacons that obey,
+should be preferred before the elders that rule.[52]
+
+_Ans_. Priority of order is no infallible argument of priority of worth
+and dignity; as is evidenced in answer to the third exception against
+Arg. II.--there see; we find Priscilla a woman named before Aquila a
+man, and her husband, Acts xviii. 18; Rom. xvi. 3; 1 Tim. iv. 19; is
+therefore the woman preferred before the man? the wife before the
+husband? And again, Aquila is set before Priscilla, Acts xviii. 2, 26, 1
+Cor. xvi. 19, to let us see that the Holy Ghost indifferently speaks
+of superior and inferior before one another.
+
+_Except_. 5. But here the apostle speaketh of divers gifts and graces,
+for so _differing gifts_ do import, not of divers offices: for then they
+might not concur in one man, and consequently neither might the prophet
+teach, nor exhort, nor the deacon distribute, nor show mercy. Many gifts
+may be common in one man, many offices cannot;--which of these gifts in
+the apostles' times was not common as well to the people as to the
+pastors; and to women as well as to men? &c.[53]
+
+_Ans_. Divers considerations may be propounded to discover the vanity of
+this exception: chiefly take these three.
+
+1. There is no sufficient reason in this exception, proving the apostle
+here to speak only of divers gifts and graces, and not of divers offices
+also. For, 1. This is not proved by that expression, _differing gifts_,
+ver. 6, for these differing gifts are not here spoken of abstractly and
+absolutely, without reference to their subjects, but relatively with
+reference to their subjects wherein they are, viz. in the several
+officers, ver. 7, 8, and therefore, as the apostle mentions the
+_differing gifts_, so here he tells us in the same sixth verse, that we
+have these "different gifts, according to the grace given unto us," i.e.
+according to the office given unto us of God's grace, (as hath been
+manifested,) after which immediately is subjoined an enumeration of
+offices. 2. Nor is this proved by the inference made, upon the granting
+that divers offices are here meant, viz. [Then they might not concur in
+one man, the prophet might not teach nor exhort, &c.; many gifts may be
+common in one man, many offices cannot.] For who is so little versed in
+the Scriptures, but he knows that apostles, pastors, elders, deacons,
+are distinct officers one from another; yet all the inferior offices are
+virtually comprehended in the superior, and may be discharged by them:
+elders may distribute as well as deacons; and beyond them, rule: pastors
+may distribute and rule as well as deacons and elders, and beyond both
+preach, dispense sacraments, and ordain ministers. Apostles may do there
+all, and many things besides extraordinary. Much more may the prophet
+teach and exhort, and the deacon distribute and show mercy; these being
+the proper acts of their office. 3. Nor, finally, is this proved by that
+suggestion, that all these gifts in the apostles' times were common to
+all sorts and sexes, women as well as men; as he after takes much pains
+to prove, but to very little purpose. For not only in the apostles'
+times, but in our times also, all Christians may teach, exhort,
+distribute, show mercy, &c., privately, occasionally, by bond of
+charity, and law of fraternity towards one another mutually: but may not
+teach, exhort, rule, distribute, &c., authoritatively by virtue of their
+office, so as to give themselves wholly to such employments, which is
+the thing here intended; yet it is worth observing how far Bilson was
+transported against ruling elders, that rather than yield to their
+office, he will make all these gifts common to all sorts and sexes, men
+and women. This is new divinity; all sorts and sexes may both preach and
+rule. Let Bilson have the credit of symbolizing with the Separatists, if
+not of transcending them.
+
+2. Here is good ground in the context to make us think that the apostle
+here spoke of distinct church officers, and not only of distinct gifts.
+For, 1. In the similitude of a natural body (whereunto here the church
+is compared) he speaks of distinct members, having distinct offices,
+ver. 4. "For as we have many members in one body, and all members have
+not the same office." 2. In his accommodation of this similitude, he
+speaks not only of gifts, but also of offices according to which these
+gifts are given, which he calls _grace_, ver. 6, (as was noted.). This
+grace given, or this office given of grace, is branched out, first, into
+two general heads, viz. _prophecy_ and _ministry_, ver. 6, 7. Then these
+generals are subdivided into the special offices contained under them,
+viz.: Under prophecy the teacher, _he that teacheth_; and the pastor,
+_he that exhorteth_; under ministry the deacon, _he that distributeth_;
+and the ruling elder, _he that ruleth_. Now there is in the text just
+ground for this resolution of the text, in making prophecy and ministry
+generals, and all the rest special kinds of officers; forasmuch as
+prophecy and ministry are expressed abstractly, _whether prophecy_,
+(not, whether we are prophets;) _whether ministry_, (not, whether we are
+deacons, ministers:) and both prophecy and ministry are put in the
+accusative case; and both of them have relation, and are joined unto the
+participle of the plural number _having_, intimating that divers do
+share in prophecy, pastor and teacher; divers in ministry, deacon and
+ruling elder. But all the other are expressed concretely, and in the
+nominative case, and in the singular number, and to every of them the
+single article is prefixed, translated He--_He that teacheth--He that
+exhorteth--He that giveth--He that ruleth_. Hence we have great cause to
+count prophecy and ministry as generals; all the rest as special offices
+under them.
+
+_Argum_. II. The second argument for the divine right of the ruling
+elder shall be grounded upon 1 Cor. xii. 28: "And God hath set some in
+the church, first, apostles, secondly, prophets, thirdly, teachers,
+afterwards powers, then gifts of healing, helps, governments, kinds of
+tongue." God, in the first founding of Christianity and of the primitive
+churches, bestowed many eminent gifts upon divers Christians; the church
+of Corinth greatly excelled in such gifts, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Hence their
+members gifted, grew spiritually proud, and despised their brethren; to
+correct which abuse of gifts, and direct them to the right use thereof
+for the common profit of all, is the chief scope of this chapter, see
+verse 7, "The manifestation of the Spirit is given to every man to
+profit withal." For, 1. All their gifts flow from one and the same
+fountain, the Spirit of God, therefore should be improved for the common
+good of all, especially considering no one man hath all gifts, but
+several men have several gifts, that all might be beholden to one
+another, ver. 8-11. 2. The whole Church of Christ throughout all the
+world is but one body, and that body organical, having several members
+therein placed for several uses, as eyes, hands, &c., wherein the
+meanest members are useful and necessary to the highest: therefore all
+members should harmoniously lay out their gifts for the good of the
+whole body, without jars or divisions, ver. 12-28. 3. All the several
+officers, whether extraordinary or ordinary, though furnished with
+several gifts and several administrations, yet are placed by one and the
+same God, in one and the same general Church; and therefore should all
+level at the benefit of the whole church, without pride, animosities,
+divisions, &c., ver. 28, to the end. These things being briefly premised
+for the clearing the context and scope of the chapter, we may thus argue
+from ver. 28:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever officers God himself, now under the New Testament,
+hath set in the Church as governors therein, distinct from all other
+church governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary; they are the ruling
+elders we inquire after, and that by divine right.
+
+This proposition is so clear and evident of itself, that much needs not
+to be said for any further demonstration of it. For what can be further
+desired for proof that there are such distinct officers as ruling elders
+in the Church of Christ, and that of divine right, than to evince, 1.
+That there are certain officers set of God in the Church as governors
+therein. 2. That those officers so set of God in the Church, are set in
+the Church under the New Testament, which immediately concerns us, and
+not under the Old Testament. 3. That these officers set of God as
+governors in the Church of the New Testament, are distinct from all
+other church governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary? For, by the
+third of these, we have a distinct church officer delineated and
+particularized: by the second we have this distinct church officer
+limited to the time and state of the Church only under the New
+Testament, which is our case: and by the first of these, we have this
+distinct New Testament officer's ruling power in the Church, and the
+divine right thereof evidently demonstrated, by God's act in setting him
+there in this capacity; (see Part 1. Chap. VI.;) so that by all put
+together, the consequence of this major proposition seems to be strong
+and unquestionable.
+
+_Minor_. But the governments named in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are officers which
+God himself now under the New Testament hath set in the Church as
+governors therein, distinct from all other church governors, whether
+extraordinary or ordinary.
+
+This minor or assumption is wholly grounded upon, and plainly contained
+in this text, and may thus be evidenced by parts.
+
+1. The church here spoken of [_in the church_] is the Church of Christ
+now under the New Testament: for, 1. The church here mentioned, ver. 28,
+is the same with that ONE BODY mentioned, ver. 12, 13, of this chapter,
+as the whole context and coherence of the chapter evinceth; but that ONE
+BODY denotes not the Church of God under the Old Testament, but only the
+Church of Christ under the New Testament; partly, inasmuch as it is
+counted the Church of Christ, yea, (so intimate is the union between
+head and members,) it is called CHRIST, _so also is_ CHRIST, ver. 12,
+(viz. not Christ personally considered, but Christ mystically
+considered, as comprehending head and body;) now this denomination of
+the Church, viz. Christ, or the Church of Christ, &c., is peculiar to
+the Church under the New Testament: for where in all the Scripture is
+the Church of God under the Old Testament called the Church of Christ,
+&c.? and partly, inasmuch as all, both Jews and Gentiles, are
+incorporated jointly into this ONE BODY, and coalesce into one Church:
+"For by one Spirit are we all baptized into one body, whether Jews or
+Gentiles, whether bond or free," 1 Cor. xii. 13. Now this union or
+conjunction of Jews and Gentiles into one body, one Church, is only done
+under the New Testament; see Eph. ii. 11, to the end of the chapter. 2.
+The officers here mentioned to be set in this Church, are only the New
+Testament officers, ver. 28. 3. The scope of the whole chapter is to
+redress abuses of spiritual gifts in the church of Corinth, which was a
+church under the New Testament; and therefore it would have been too
+remote for the apostle to have argued from the several distributions of
+gifts peculiar to the officers or members of the Church under the Old
+Testament.
+
+2. The governments here mentioned are officers set in this church as
+governors, or rulers therein: "Hath set some in the Church, first,
+apostles--governments." For clearing of this, consider the enumeration
+here made; the denomination of these officers, governments; and the
+constitution or placing of these governments in the Church. 1. The
+enumeration here made is evidently an enumeration of several sorts of
+church officers, some extraordinary, to endure but for a time, some
+ordinary, to continue constantly in the Church; to this the current of
+interpreters doth easily subscribe: and this the text itself plainly
+speaks; partly, if we look at the matter, viz. the several officers
+enumerated, which are either extraordinary, these five, viz. apostles,
+prophets, powers, or miracles, gifts of healing, and kinds of tongues:
+these continued but for a season, during the first founding of Christian
+churches: (the proper and peculiar work of these extraordinary officers,
+what it was, is not here to be disputed.) Or ordinary, these three, viz.
+_teachers_, (there is the preaching elder,) _governments_, (there is the
+ruling elder,) _helps_, (there is the deacon;) these are the officers
+enumerated; and however there be some other officers elsewhere
+mentioned, whence some conceive this enumeration not to be so absolutely
+perfect, yet this is undoubtedly evident, that it is an enumeration of
+officers in the church: partly, this is evident, if we look at the
+manner of the apostle's speech, which is in an enumerating form, viz.
+first, secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then: and partly, it is evident
+that he intended to reckon up those officers that were distinct from all
+other parts of the mystical body of Christ, by his recapitulation, "Are
+all apostles, are all prophets?" &c., ver. 29, 30, i.e. not all, but
+only some members of the body are set apart by God to bear these offices
+in the church. Now, if there be here a distinct enumeration of distinct
+officers in the church, as is evident; then consequently _governments_
+must needs be one of these distinct church officers, being reckoned up
+among the rest; and this is one step, that governments are in the roll
+of church officers enumerated. 2. The denomination of these officers,
+_governments_, evidenceth that they are governing officers, vested with
+rule in the Church. This word (as hath been noted in chap. II.) is a
+metaphor from pilots or shipmasters governing of their ships by their
+compass, helm, &c., James iii. 4, (who is hence called _governor_, viz.
+of the ship, Acts xxvii. 11; Rev. xviii. 17,) and it notes such officers
+as sit at the stern of the vessel of the Church, to govern and guide it
+in spirituals according to the will and mind of Christ: governments--the
+abstract is put for governors, the concrete: this name of governments
+hath engraven upon it an evident character of power for governing. But
+this will be easily granted by all. All the doubt will be, whom the
+apostle intended by these governments? Thus conceive, negatively, these
+cannot be meant, viz. not governors in general, for, besides that a
+general exists not but in the particular kinds or individuals thereof, a
+member of a body in general exists not but in this or that particular
+member, eye, hand, foot, &c.: besides this, it is evident that Christ
+hath not only in general appointed governors in his Church, and left
+particulars to the church or magistrate's determination, but hath
+himself descended to the particular determination of the several kinds
+of officers which he will have in his Church; compare these places
+together, Eph. iv. 7, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom. xii. 7, 8: though in
+the ordinance of magistracy God hath only settled the general, but for
+the particular kinds of it, whether it should be monarchical, &c., that
+is left to the prudence of the several commonwealths to determine what
+is fittest for themselves. (See Part 2, chap. IX.) 2. Not masters of
+families: for all families are not in the Church, pagan families are
+without. No family as a family is either a church or any part of a
+church, (in the notion that church is here spoken of;) and though
+masters of families be governors in their own houses, yet their power is
+not ecclesiastical but economical or domestical, common to heathens as
+well as Christians. Not the political magistrate,[54] for the reasons
+hinted, (Part 1, chap. I.; see also Part 2, chap. IX.,) and for divers
+other arguments that might be propounded. 4. Not the prelatical bishops,
+pretending to be an order above preaching presbyters, and to have the
+reins of all church government in their hands only; for, in Scripture
+language, bishop and presbyter are all one order, (these words being
+only names of the same officer;) this is evident by comparing Tit. i. 5,
+with ver. 7. Hereunto also the judgment of antiquity evidently
+subscribeth, accounting a bishop and a presbyter to be one and the same
+officer in the church; as appears particularly in Ambrose, Theodoret,
+Hierom, and others. Now, if there be no such order as prelatical
+bishops, consequently they cannot be governments in the church. 5. Not
+the same with _helps_, as the former corrupt impressions of our Bibles
+seemed to intimate, which had it thus, _helps in governments_, which
+some moderns seem to favor; but this is contrary to the original Greek,
+which signifies _helps, governments_; contrary to the ancient Syriac
+version, which hath it thus, (as Tremel. renders it,) _and helpers, and
+governments_: and therefore this gross corruption is well amended in our
+late printed Bible. _Helps, governments_, are here generally taken by
+interpreters for two distinct officers. 6. Nor, finally, can the
+teaching elder here be meant; for that were to make a needless and
+absurd tautology, the teacher being formerly mentioned in this same
+verse. Consequently, by _governments_ here, what can be intended, but
+such a kind of officer in the church as hath rule and government
+therein, distinct from all governors forementioned? And doth not this
+lead us plainly to the ruling elder?
+
+3. These governments thus set in the Church, as rulers therein, are set
+therein by God himself; God hath set some in the Church, _first,
+apostles--governments--God hath set, put, made, constituted_, &c., (as
+the word imports,) _in the Church_. What hath God set in the Church?
+viz. apostles and--governments, as well as apostles themselves. The
+verb, _hath set_, equally relates to all the sorts of officers
+enumerated. And is not that officer IA the Church of divine right, which
+God himself, by his own act and authority, sets therein? Then doubtless
+these governments are of divine right.
+
+4. Finally, these governments set in the Church under the New Testament
+as governors therein, and that by God himself, are distinct from not
+only all governing officers without the Church, (as hath been showed,)
+but also from all other governing officers within the church. For here
+the apostles make a notable enumeration of the several sorts of church
+officers, both extraordinary and ordinary, viz. eight in all. Five of
+these being extraordinary, and to continue but for a season, for the
+more effectual spreading and propagating of the gospel of Christ at
+first, and planting of Christian churches, viz. apostles, prophets,
+powers, gifts of healings, kinds of tongues: three of these being
+ordinary, and to be perpetuated in the Church, as of continual use and
+necessity therein, viz. teachers, governments, [i.e. ruling elders,] and
+helps, [i.e. deacons, who are to help and relieve the poor and
+afflicted.] This is the enumeration. It is not contended, that it is
+absolutely and completely perfect, for that some officers seem to be
+omitted and left out, which elsewhere are reckoned up, Eph. iv. 11; Rom.
+xii. 7, 8. Evangelists are omitted in the list of extraordinary
+officers, and pastors are left out of the roll of the ordinary officers;
+and yet some conceive that pastors and teachers point not out two
+distinct sorts of officers, but rather two distinct acts of the same
+officers; and if this will hold, then pastors are sufficiently comprised
+under the word teachers; yea, some think that both evangelists and
+pastors are comprehended under the word teacher.[55] But, however, be
+that as it will, these two things are evident, 1. That this enumeration
+(though evangelists and pastors be left out) is the fullest and
+completest enumeration of church officers which in any place is to be
+found throughout all the New Testament. 2. That though we should grant
+this defect in the enumeration, yet this is no way prejudicial to the
+present argument, that governments here mentioned are ruling officers in
+the Church, distinct from all other church officers that have rule; for
+they are plainly and distinctly recited as distinct kinds of officers,
+distinct from apostles, from prophets, from teachers, from all here
+mentioned. And thus interpreters[56] commonly expound this place, taking
+governments for a distinct kind of church officer from all the rest here
+enumerated.
+
+Now to sum up all that hath been said for the proof of the assumption;
+it is evident, 1. That the church here spoken of is the Church of Christ
+now under the New Testament. 2. That the governments here mentioned, are
+officers set in this church, (not out of the church,) as rulers
+governing therein. 3. That these governments set as rulers or governors
+in this church, are set there not by man, but by God himself; _God hath
+set in the Church--governments_. 4. And, finally, That these governments
+thus set in the Church, are distinct, not only from all governors out of
+the Church, but also from all governing officers within the Church. And
+if all this laid together will not clearly evince the divine right of
+the ruling elder, what will? Hence we may strongly conclude,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore these governments in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are the
+ruling elders we inquire after, and that of divine right.
+
+Now against the urging of 1 Cor. xii. 28, for the proof of the divine
+right of the ruling elders, divers exceptions are made, which are to be
+answered before we pass to the third argument.
+
+_Except_. 1. The allegation of this place is too weak to prove the thing
+in question. For will any man that knoweth what it is to reason, reason
+from the general to the particular and special affirmatively? or will
+ever any man of common sense be persuaded that this consequence is good:
+There were governors in the primitive church mentioned by the
+Apostles--therefore they were lay governors? Surely I think not.[57]
+
+_Ans_. This exception hath a confident flourish of words, but they are
+but words. It may be replied, 1. By way of concession, that to argue
+indeed from a general to a special, is no solid reasoning; as, This is a
+kingdom, therefore it is England; this is a city, therefore it is
+London; the apostle mentions government in the primitive Church,
+therefore they are ruling elders: this were an absurd kind of reasoning.
+2. By way of negation. Our reasoning from this text for the ruling
+elder, is not from the general to a special affirmatively--there are
+governments in the Church, therefore ruling elders: but this is our
+arguing--these governments here mentioned in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are a
+special kind of governing officers, set of God in the Church of Christ
+now under the New Testament, and distinct from all other church
+officers, whether extraordinary or ordinary: and therefore they are the
+ruling elders which we seek after, and that by divine right. So that we
+argue from the enumeration of several kinds of church officers
+affirmatively: here is an enumeration or roll of divers kinds of church
+officers of divine right; governments are one kind in the roll, distinct
+from the rest; therefore governments are of divine right, consequently
+ruling elders; for none but they can be these governments, as hath been
+proved in the assumption. If the apostle had here mentioned governments
+only, and none other kind of officers with them, there had been some
+color for this exception, and some probability that the apostle had
+meant governors in general and not in special: but when the apostle sets
+himself to enumerate so many special kinds of officers, apostles,
+prophets, teachers, &c., how far from reason is it to think that in the
+midst of all these specials, governments only should be a general. 3. As
+for Dr. Field's scoffing term of lay governors or lay elders, which he
+seems in scorn to give to ruling elders; it seems to be grounded upon
+that groundless distinction of the ministry and people into clergy and
+laity; which is justly rejected by sound orthodox writers[58], as not
+only without but against the warrant of Scripture, clergy being nowhere
+appropriated to the ministry only, but commonly attributed to the whole
+church, 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. The Scripture term given to these officers is
+_ruling elders_, 1 Tim. v. 17; and so far as such, (though they be
+elected from among the people,) they are ecclesiastical officers.
+
+_Except_. 2. But it is not said here governors in the concrete, as
+apostles, prophets, teachers are mentioned concretely, which are
+distinct officers: but it is said governments, in the abstract, to note
+faculties, not persons. The text may be thus resolved: The apostle first
+sets down three distinct orders, apostles, prophets, and teachers: then
+he reckons up those common gifts of the Holy Ghost (and among the rest
+the gift of governing) which were common to all three. So that we need
+not here make distinct orders in the Church, but only distinct gifts
+which might be in one man.[59]
+
+_Ans_. 1. As the apostles, prophets, and teachers are here set down
+concretely, and not abstractly, and are confessed to be three distinct
+orders enumerated: so all the other five, though set down abstractly,
+are (by a metonymy of the adjunct for the subject) to be understood
+concretely, helps for helpers; governments for governors, &c.; otherwise
+we shall here charge the apostle with a needless impertinent tautology
+in this chapter, for he had formerly spoken of these gifts abstractly,
+ver. 8-10, as being _all given to profit_ the Church _withal_, ver. 7;
+but here, ver. 28-30, he speaks of these gifts as they are in several
+distinct subjects, for the benefit of the organical body the church;
+else what saith he here, more than he said before? 2. That all these
+eight here enumerated, one as well as another, do denote, not distinct
+offices or acts of the same officer, but distinct officers, having
+distinct administrations, and distinct gifts for those administrations,
+is evident, partly by the apostle's form of enumeration, _first,
+secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then_ or _furthermore_: if he had
+intended only three sorts of officers, he would have stopped at thirdly,
+but he goes on in an enumerating way, to show us those that follow are
+distinct officers as well as those that go before; partly, by the
+apostle's recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, which plainly points out
+different officers, persons not gifts, besides those three: _Are all
+apostles? are all prophets? are all teachers?_ (and here he stops not,
+but reckons on) _are all workers of miracles? have all the gifts of
+healing?_ &c. If it should be replied, But he doth not add, Are all
+helps? are all governments? therefore these are not to be accounted
+distinct officers from the rest; otherwise why should the apostle thus
+have omitted them, had there been any such distinct officers in the
+Church in his time? It may be replied, These two officers, helps and
+governments, are omitted in the recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, not that
+the Church then had no such officers, for why then should they have been
+distinctly mentioned in the enumeration of church officers, ver. 28? But
+either, 1. For that helps and governments were more inferior ordinary
+officers, and not furnished with such extraordinary, or at least,
+eminent gifts, as the other had, (which they abused greatly to pride,
+contention, schism, and contempt of one another, the evils which the
+apostle here labors so much to cure,) and so there was no such danger
+that these helps and governments should run into the same distempers
+that the other did. Or, 2. For that he would instruct these helps and
+governments to be content with their own stations and offices, (without
+strife and emulation,) though they be neither apostles, nor prophets,
+nor teachers, nor any of the other enumerated, which were so ambitiously
+coveted after; and the last verse seems much to favor this
+consideration, _but covet earnestly the best gifts_, viz. which made
+most for edification, not for ostentation.[60]
+
+_Except_. 3. But helps here are placed before governments, therefore it
+is not likely that governments were the ruling elders; Helps, i.e.
+deacons, which is an inferior office, seeming here to be preferred
+before them.[61]
+
+_Ans_. This follows not. Priority of order is not always an argument of
+priority of worth, dignity, or authority. Scripture doth not always
+observe exactness of order, to put that first which is of most
+excellency: sometimes the pastor is put before the teacher, as Ephes.
+iv. 11, sometimes the teacher before the pastor, as Rom. xii. 7, 8.
+Peter is first named of all the apostles, both in Matt. x. 2, and in
+Acts i. 13, but we shall hardly grant the Papist's arguing thence to be
+solid--Peter is first named, therefore he is the chief and head of all
+the apostles; no more can we account this any good consequence--helps
+are set before governments, therefore governments are officers inferior
+to helps, consequently they cannot be ruling elders: this were bad
+logic.
+
+_Except_. 4. But the word governments is general, and may signify either
+Christian magistrates, or ecclesiastical officers, as archbishops,
+bishops, or whatsoever other by lawful authority are appointed in the
+Church.[62] And some of the semi-Erastians of our times, by governments
+understand the Christian magistracy, holding the Christian magistracy to
+be an ecclesiastical administration.[63]
+
+_Ans_. 1. Governments, i.e. governors, (though in itself and singly
+mentioned, it be a general, yet) here being enumerated among so many
+specials, is special, and notes the special kind of ruling elders, as
+hath been proved. 2. As for archbishops and diocesan bishops, they are
+notoriously known to be, as such, no officers set in the Church by God,
+but merely by the invention of man; therefore they have no part nor lot
+in this business, nor can here be meant. And if by others, by lawful
+authority appointed in the Church, they mean those officers that God
+appoints well: if those whom man sets there without God, as chancellors,
+commissioners, &c., such have as much power of government in the Church,
+as they are such, as archbishops and bishops, viz. just none at all by
+any divine warrant. 3. Nor can the civil Christian magistrate here be
+implied. 1. Partly, because this is quite beside the whole intent and
+scope of this chapter, treating merely upon spiritual church-matters,
+not at all of secular civil matters, viz: of spiritual gifts for the
+Church's profit, ver. 1 to 12; of the Church herself as one organical
+body, ver. 12 to 28; and of the officers which God hath set in this
+organical body, ver. 28, &c. Now here to crowd in the Christian
+magistrate, which is a mere political governor, into the midst of these
+spiritual matters, and into the roll of these merely ecclesiastical
+officers, how absurd is it! 2. Partly, because the magistrate, as such,
+is not set of God in the Church either as a church officer, or as a
+church member, (as hath been demonstrated formerly, chap. IX.;) and
+though he become a Christian, that adds nothing to the authority of his
+magistracy, being the privilege only of his person, not of his office.
+3. Partly, because when this was written to the Corinthians, the apostle
+writes of such governments as had at that time their present actual
+being and existence in the Church: and neither then, nor divers hundreds
+of years after, were there any magistrates Christian, as hath been
+evidenced, chap. IX.[64]
+
+_Except_. 5. Teachers are here expressed, but pastors omitted; and
+therefore well might governors be mentioned instead of pastors.[65]
+
+_Answ_. 1. Then, according to his judgment, pastors were a distinct kind
+of officers from teachers; otherwise the naming of teachers would have
+sufficiently implied pastors, without the addition of the word
+governors, one act or function of the office being put for the whole
+office. But prelates did not love to hear of such a distinction.
+However, it is the judgment of many others no less learned or pious than
+they, that in the same congregation where there are several ministers,
+he that excels in exposition of scriptures, teaching sound doctrine, and
+convincing gainsayers, may be designed hereunto, and called a teacher or
+doctor: he that excels in application, and designed thereunto, may be
+called a pastor; but where there is only one minister in one particular
+congregation, he is to perform, as far as he is able, the whole work of
+the ministry. 2. If pastors are to be understood by this term governors,
+as contradistinct from teachers, formerly enumerated in the text; doth
+not this seem to devolve the matter of government so wholly upon the
+pastor, as that the teacher hath nothing to do with it? and hereby both
+pastor and teacher are wronged at once: the teacher, while power of
+governing is denied him, which belongs to him as well as to the pastor;
+the teacher being a minister of the word, hath power of administration
+of the sacraments and discipline, as well as the pastor: the pastor,
+while he consequently is deprived of the necessary and comfortable
+assistance of the teacher in point of government. Therefore the pastor
+cannot here be intended by governors. 3. Bilson himself was not very
+confident of this gloss, and therefore he immediately adds, "If this
+content you not, I then deny they are all ecclesiastical functions that
+are there specified," &c. What then doth he make them? viz. he makes
+divers of them, and governments among the rest, to be but several gifts,
+whereof one and the same officer might be capable. And a little after he
+ingenuously confesses he cannot tell what these governors were, saying,
+"I could easily presume, I cannot easily prove what they were. The
+manner and order of those wonderful gifts of' God's Spirit, after so
+many hundreds may be conjectured, cannot be demonstrated--governors they
+were, or rather governments, (for so the apostle speaketh,) i.e. gifts
+of wisdom, discretion, and judgment, to direct and govern the whole
+church, and every particular member thereof, in the manifold dangers and
+distresses which those days did not want. Governors also they might be
+called, that were appointed in every congregation to hear and appease
+the private strifes and quarrels that grew betwixt man and man, lest the
+Christians, to the shame of themselves, and slander of the gospel,
+should pursue each other for things of this life before the magistrates,
+who then were infidels; of these St. Paul speaketh, 1 Cor. vi. 1-7.
+These governors and moderators of their brethren's quarrels and
+contentions I find, others I find not in the apostle's writings, but
+such as withal were watchmen and feeders of the flock." Thus
+inconsistent he is with himself: one while these governors must be
+pastors; another while arbitrators or daysmen about private differences;
+another while gifts, not officers; another while he cannot easily prove
+what they were. But they have been proved to be ruling elders, and the
+proof still stands good, notwithstanding all his or others' exceptions.
+
+_Argum_. III. The third argument for the divine right of the mere ruling
+elder shall be drawn from 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the elders that rule well,
+be counted worthy of double honor, especially they that labor in the
+word and doctrine." From which words we may thus argue for the divine
+right of the ruling elder:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever officers in the Church are, according to the word of
+Christ, styled elders, invested with rule in the Church, approved of God
+in their rule, and yet distinct from all them that labor in the word and
+doctrine; they are the ruling elders in the Church which we inquire
+after, and that by divine right.
+
+This proposition seems clear and unquestionable. For, 1. If there be a
+certain kind of church officer which Christ in his word calls an elder,
+2. Declares to have rule in his church, 3. Approves in this his rule,
+and, 4. Distinguished from him that labors in the word and doctrine;
+this is plainly the ruling elder, and here is evidently the divine right
+of his office. Such a divine approbation of his office, testified in
+Scripture, implies no less than a divine institution thereof.
+
+_Minor_. But the officers mentioned in 1 Tim. v. 17, are, according to
+the word of Christ, styled elders, invested with rule in the church:
+approved of God in their rule, and yet distinct from all them that labor
+in the word and doctrine. This assumption may be thus evidenced by
+parts.
+
+1. The officers mentioned here in this word of Christ, are styled
+elders. This Greek word translated _elder_, is used in the New Testament
+chiefly in three several senses: 1. For men of ancient time, not now
+living; and so it is opposed to modern: Tradition of elders, Matt. xv.
+2, i.e. of them of old time, see Matt. v. 21. 2. For elders in age now
+living; so it is opposed to younger, 1 Tim. v. 1; 1 Pet. v. 5. 3. For
+elders in function or office, opposed to private men not in office, as
+Acts xiv. 23; and in this last sense it is to be taken in this place, an
+office of ruling being here ascribed to these elders. They are called
+elders, say some, because for the most part they were chosen out of the
+elder sort of men: others better, from the maturity of knowledge,
+wisdom, gifts, gravity, piety, &c., which ought to be in them. This name
+elder seems to have rule and authority written upon it, when applied to
+any church officer; and it is by the Septuagint often ascribed to rulers
+political, _elders in the gate_, Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 1 Sam.
+v. 3; 1 Chron. xi. 3. In this place (as it is well noted by some[66])
+the word elders is a genus, a general attribute, agreeing both to them
+that rule well, and also to those that labor in the word and doctrine:
+the one sort only rule; the other sort both rule and preach; but both
+sorts are elders.
+
+2. The officers here mentioned are not only styled elders, but invested
+with rule in the church. For it is plain both by the text and context
+duly considered, and the apostle's scope in writing of this epistle, 1
+Tim. iii. 15, that these elders are officers in the Church. And that in
+the church they are vested with rule appears not only by their name of
+elders, which when applied to officers, imports rule, authority, &c., as
+hath been said; but also by the adjunct participle _that rule_, or
+_ruling_, annexed to elders--_Let the elders ruling well_. So that here
+we have not only the office, the thing, but the very name of ruling
+elders. The word seems to be a military term, for captains and
+commanders in an army, _foremost slanders_, (as the word imports,) that
+lead on and command all the rest that follow them: hence metaphorically
+used for the foremost-standers, rulers, governors in the church. It
+noteth not only those that go before others by doctrine, or good
+example: but that govern and rule others by authority. For, 1. Thus the
+word is used in Scripture: "One that ruleth well his own house, having
+his children in subjection with all gravity," 1 Tim. iii. 4: where it
+plainly notes an authoritative ruling. Again, "If a man know not how to
+rule his own house," 1 Tim. iii. 5. And again, "Ruling their children
+and their own houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12. And can any man be so absurd
+as to think that a master of a family hath not a proper authoritative
+rule over his own children and family, but rules them only by doctrine
+and example?
+
+2. Thus learned divines[67] and accurate Grecians[68] use the word to
+denote authority: so that the Holy Ghost here calling them ruling
+elders, implies they are vested with rule: and those that deny this
+place to hold out two sorts of elders, yet confess it holds out two
+sorts of acts, ruling and preaching.
+
+3. These ruling elders are here approved of God in their rule; and that
+two ways, viz: 1. In that God's Spirit here commends their ruling, being
+duly discharged, _ruling well, excellently_, &c. Did no rule in the
+Church belong to them for matter, God would never command or approve
+them for the matter. He cannot be accounted with God to do any thing
+well, that hath no right to do it at all. 2. In that God's Spirit here
+commands their well ruling to be honorably rewarded. _Let them be
+counted worthy of double honor:_ or, _Let them be dignified with double
+honor_. Here is not only reward, but an eminent reward appointed them,
+and that urged from Scripture, ver. 18. Where God thus appoints rewards,
+he approves that for which he rewards; and what God thus approves is of
+divine right. See part 1, chap. V.
+
+4. Yet, finally, These elders, vested with rule in the Church, and
+divinely approved in their rule, are distinct from all them that labor
+in the word and doctrine. This may thus he evidenced from the text, as
+some[69] have well observed: For, 1. Here is a general, under which the
+several kinds of officers here spoken of are comprehended, _elders_; all
+here mentioned are elders. 2. Here are two distinct kinds of elders,
+viz: _those that rule well_, there is one kind; and _they that labor in
+the word_ (as the pastors) _and doctrine_, (as the doctors and
+teachers,) here is the other kind. 3. Here are two participles
+expressing these two species or kinds of elders--_ruling_, and
+_laboring_: those only rule, that is all their work, and therefore
+here are called ruling elders; not because _they_ alone rule, but
+because their only work is to rule: but these not only rule, but, over
+and besides, _they_ labor in the word and doctrine. 4. Here are two
+distinct articles distinctly annexed to these two participles--_they
+that rule; they that labor_. 5. Finally, here is an eminent disjunctive
+particle set betwixt these two kinds of elders, these two participles,
+these two articles, evidently distinguishing one from the other, viz.
+especially _they that labor in the word_, &c., intimating, that as there
+were some ruling elders that did labor in the word and doctrine, so
+there were others that did rule, and not labor in the word: both were
+worthy of double honor, but especially they that both ruled and labored
+in the word also. And wheresoever this word, here translated
+_especially_, is used in all the New Testament, it is used to
+distinguish thing from thing, person from person, that are spoken of;
+as, "Let us do good to all, but especially to those of the household of
+faith," Gal. vi. 10: therefore there were some of the household of
+faith, and some that were not; and accordingly we must put a difference
+in doing good to them. "All the saints salute you, especially those of
+Cæsar's household;" some saints not of his household: all saluted them,
+but especially those of Cæsar's household. "He that provides not for
+his own, especially for them of his own house, he hath denied the
+faith," 1 Tim. v. 8. A believer is to provide for his friends and
+kindred, but especially _for those of his own house_, wife and children.
+See also 1 Tim. iv. 10; Tit. i. 11; 2 Tim. iv. 13; 2 Pet. ii. 10; Acts
+xx. 38, and xxvi. 3; in all which places the word _especially_ is used
+as a disjunctive particle, to distinguish one thing from another,
+without which distinction we shall but make nonsense in interpreting
+those places. And generally the best interpreters[70] do from this text
+conclude, that there were two sorts of elders, viz: the ruling elder,
+that only ruled; the preaching elder, that besides his ruling, labored
+in the word and doctrine also.
+
+Now, therefore, seeing the officers here mentioned are, 1. According to
+the word of Christ, (for this is the word of Christ,) styled elders; 2.
+Vested with rule; 3. Approved of God in their rule; and yet, 4. Distinct
+from all that labor in the word and doctrine, as hath been particularly
+proved; we may conclude, that,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the officers here mentioned are the ruling
+elders in the Church which we inquire after, and that by divine right.
+
+But against this place of 1 Tim. i. 17, and the argument from it, divers
+cavils and exceptions are made; let them have a brief solution.
+
+_Except_. 1. There were two sorts of elders, some laboring in the word
+and doctrine, some taking care of the poor, viz. deacons; both were
+worthy of double honor, especially they that labored in the word,
+&c.[71]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This is a new distinction of elders without warrant of
+Scripture. Deacons are nowhere in all the New Testament styled
+elders;[72] nay, they are contradistinguished from elders, both teaching
+and ruling. "He that giveth _let him do it_ with simplicity: he that
+ruleth, with diligence," Rom. xii. 8. "Helps, governments," 1 Cor. xii.
+28. Compare also Tit. i. 5, 6, &c., 1 Tim. iii. 2, &c., with 1 Tim. iii.
+8, &c. 2. As deacons are not elders, so deacons have no rule in the
+church. It is true, they are to "rule their children and their own
+houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12; this is only family rule: but as for the
+church, their office therein is to be _helps_, 1 Cor. xii. 28; _to
+distribute_, Rom. xii. 8; _to serve tables_, Acts vi. 2, 3; but no rule
+is ascribed to them.
+
+_Except_. 2. But by ruling well, some understand living well, leading a
+holy, exemplary life. The apostle would have ministers not only to live
+well themselves, but also to feed others by the word and doctrine; they
+that live well are to be double honored, especially they who labor in
+the word, &c., as 1 Thess. v. 12, 13.[73]
+
+_Ans_. 1. The apostle here speaks rather of officers than of acts of
+office: of persons rather than of duties, if his phrase be observed. 2.
+Living well is not ruling well here in the apostle's sense, who intends
+the rule of elders over others; he that lives well rules well over
+himself; not over others: else all that live well were church rulers;
+they conduct by example, do not govern by authority, Altar. Damasc. c.
+xii. 8. If well ruling be well living, then double honor, double
+maintenance from the church is due for well living, (1 Tim. v. 17, 18,)
+consequently all that live well deserve this double honor. 4. This seems
+to intimate that ministers deserve double honor for living well, though
+they preach not. _How absurd_! 5. D. Downham, once pleased with this
+gloss, after confessed it was not safe.
+
+_Except_. 3. Those that rule well may be meant of aged, infirm,
+superannuated bishops, who cannot labor in the word and doctrine.[74]
+
+_Ans_. 1. Here is no speech of prelatical bishops, but of ruling and
+preaching elders in this text. 2. How shall old, decrepit bishops rule
+well, when they cannot labor in the word and doctrine? 3. By this gloss,
+the preaching elders that labor in the word and doctrine, should be
+preferred before the most ancient bishop in double honor; such doctrine
+would not long since have been very odious and apocryphal to our late
+prelates. 4. Those preachers that have faithfully and constantly spent
+their strength, and worn out themselves with ministerial labor, that
+they cannot rule nor preach any longer, are yet worthy of double honor
+for all their former travels in the service of Christ and his Church.
+
+_Except_. 4. Among ministers some did preach, others only administered
+the sacraments; so Paul showeth that he preached and "labored more than
+all the apostles," 1 Cor. xv. 10; but baptized few or none, 1 Cor i. 14,
+leaving that to be performed by others; and when Paul and Barnabas were
+companions, and their travels were equal, yet Paul is noted to have been
+the chief speaker, (Acts xiv. 12:) all were worthy of double honor, but
+especially they who labored in the word and doctrine.[75]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This gloss imagineth such a ministry in the apostles' times as
+the prelates had erected of late in their days, viz: many dumb dogs that
+could not bark nor preach at all, yet could administer the sacraments by
+the old service-book. But the apostles, as Cartwright[76] observes,
+allowed no such ministers, will have every bishop or preaching elder to
+be both "apt to teach, _and_ able to convince," 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i.
+9. So that it was far from Paul to countenance a non-preaching or
+seldom-preaching ministry, by allowing any honor at all, much less a
+double honor, to such. Sure, preaching is one part, yea, a most
+principal part or duty of the minister's office, (as hath been evidenced
+before, Part 2, Chap. VII.,) and shall he be counted worthy of double
+honor that neglects a principal duty of his office? Nay, he deserves not
+the very name of such an officer in the church: why should he be called
+a pastor that doth not feed? or a teacher, that doth not teach his
+flock? &c., saith Chrysost. Hom. xv. in 1 Timothy. 2. Why should Paul's
+laboring be restrained here to his preaching only? when Paul speaks of
+his own labor elsewhere, he speaks of it in another sense, 2 Cor. xi.
+17, "in labor and weariness"--compare it with the context; and in this
+place judicious Calvin seems rather to interpret it of other manner of
+labor, and Pareus extends it, besides preaching, to divers other labors
+which Paul did undergo. 3. What warrant doth this exception hold out for
+two sorts of ministers here pretended, some _preaching_, others _only
+administering the sacraments_? Thus, _Paul preached much, baptised but
+few_: therefore, _there were some that only administered the
+sacraments_: well concluded. Yet Paul baptized some, 1 Cor. i. 14, 16,
+distributed the Lord's supper to some, Acts xx. 7, 11; so that he both
+preached and dispensed the sacraments. Let any show where any person
+dispensed the sacraments that was not a preacher. Again, _Paul and
+Barnabas equally travelled together, but Paul was chief speaker_: what
+then? therefore _some labored in the word, others in the sacraments
+only_. This is woful logic. 4. To whomsoever the power of dispensing the
+sacraments was given by Christ, to them also the power of preaching was
+given; dispensing the word and sacraments are joined in the same
+commission, Matt, xxviii. 18-20: what Christ joins together let not man
+put asunder. 5. Touching the preaching elder there is mentioned only one
+act peculiar to his office, viz. _laboring in the word_, &c.; but,
+taking a part for the whole, we may understand his dispensing the
+sacraments also, and what else is peculiar to the preaching elder's
+office, though for brevity's sake it be not here named.[77]
+
+_Except_. 5. By elders that rule well may be meant certain governors, or
+inferior magistrates, chosen to compose controversies or civil strifes.
+Suitable hereunto is the late Erastian gloss, that by elders ruling well
+may be meant kings, parliament-men, and all civil governors.[78]
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is well known that in the primitive times there was no
+Christian magistrate in the Church, and for the Church to choose heathen
+judges or magistrates to be arbitrators or daysmen in civil
+controversies, is a thing utterly condemned by the apostle, 1 Cor. vi.
+1, &c. 2. The apostle speaks here of ecclesiastical, not of civil
+officers, as the latter phrase intimates. The main scope of this epistle
+was to instruct Timothy how to behave himself, not in the commonwealth,
+but in the Church of God, (1 Tim. iii. 15,) and here he speaks of such
+officers as were in being in the Church at that time. 3. If kings,
+parliament-men, and all civil governors be these ruling elders, then
+ministers have not only an equal share with them in government by this
+text, which the Erastians will not like well; but also are to have a
+superior honor or maintenance to kings, parliament-men, and all civil
+governors. Certainly the magistrates will never triumph in this gloss,
+nor thank them that devised it. 4. Sutlive seems to be against this
+opinion, (though no great friend to ruling elders,) saying Beza bestows
+many words to prove that the judges in 1 Cor. vi. were not of the number
+of presbyters: which truly I myself should easily grant him. For there
+were none such ever constituted. 5. This is a novel interpretation, as
+some observe,[79] unknown among ancient writers.
+
+_Except_. 6. Those words [_especially they who labor in the word and
+doctrine_] are added to the former explanatively, to teach us who they
+are that rule well, viz. _they who labor much in the word and doctrine_,
+and not to distinguish them that labor in the word, from elders ruling
+well; as if Paul had said, "Let the elders that rule well be counted
+worthy of double honor, greatly laboring in the word," &c. For the word
+translated _especially_ here more aptly signifies _much, greatly_, than
+especially. For though with the adversative _but_ along with it, it
+signifieth especially, yet alone (as it is here) it signifies _much,
+greatly_.[80]
+
+_Ans_. 1. If this sentence [_especially they who labor_, &c.] were added
+only to explain who are well-ruling elders, viz. such as greatly labor
+in the word, &c., then few of the prelatical bishops were to be counted
+well-ruling elders, for very few, if any of them, were guilty of
+laboring greatly in the word and doctrine. 2. Then also the apostle
+would have said, either who especially labor, or simply without the
+article, especially laboring; then especially, they who labor, as here
+he doth, carrying his speech rather to distinct persons and officers,
+than to distinct duties or actions. 3. This word translated
+_especially_, hath been already in the minor proposition proved to be
+rather disjunctive, than explanatory; a term of distinction to point out
+a several sort of elders from only ruling elders, rather than a term of
+explication, signifying who are to be reputed these well-ruling elders.
+4. The word _especially_ is used for a term of distinction, even in
+those places where the adversative _but_ is not joined to it, as in Tit.
+i. 10, "For there are many unruly and vain talkers and deceivers,
+especially they of the circumcision:" where _especially_ distinguishes
+_them of the circumcision_, from all other _vain talkers, and
+deceivers_; and in 1 Tim. iv. 10, "Who is the Saviour of all men,
+especially of them that believe;" here _especially_ without _but_
+distinguishes them that believe from all other men, as capable of a
+special salvation from God; if here it were not a note of distinction,
+according to this gloss, we should thus read the place, "Who is the
+Saviour of all men, greatly believing;" but this were cold comfort to
+weak Christians of little faith. So here _especially_, though _but_ be
+wanting, distinguished them that labor in the word and doctrine, from
+them that labor not therein, and yet rule well.
+
+_Except_. 7. It is one thing to preach, another thing to labor in the
+word and doctrine. If there be here any distinction of elders it is
+between those that labor more abundantly and painfully, and between
+those that labor not so much. This objection takes much with some.[81]
+B. Bilson much presses this objection from the emphasis of the word
+_laboring_; signifying endeavoring any thing with greater striving and
+contention, &c., to this sense, "Let the elders that rule well be
+counted worthy of double honor, especially they who labor and sweat,
+&c., in the word--who give themselves even to be tired and broken with
+labors;" and this, saith he, is the genuine signification of the word
+translated laboring, when it is borrowed from the labor of the body, to
+denote the contention or striving of the mind, &c.[82]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This gloss takes it for granted, that this text speaks only of
+preaching, or the ministry of the word, and therein of the lesser or
+greater pains taken: which (besides that it begs the thing in question)
+makes the ministry of the word common to both sorts here distinctly
+spoken of, whereas rather the plain current of the text makes ruling
+common to both, over and beyond which the preaching elder _labors in the
+word_. 2. Doth not this interpretation allow a double honor to ministers
+that labor not so much as others in the word? And can we think that the
+laborious Paul intended to dignify, patronize, or encourage idle drones,
+lazy, sluggish, seldom preachers? Ministers must be exceeding instant
+and laborious in their ministry, 2 Tim. iv. 1-3. If this were the sense
+only to prefer the greater before the less labor in the ministry, the
+apostle would have used this order of words, "Let the elders that rule
+well be counted worthy of double honor, especially they who labor," &c.,
+take upon themselves more weighty cares. For those words (in the word
+and doctrine) should either have been quite omitted, as now was
+expressed, or should have been inserted immediately after them that rule
+well, and before the word especially, to this effect, "Let the elders
+that rule well and preach the word and doctrine well, be counted worthy
+of double honor; but especially those who labor much in well ruling and
+in well preaching:" in such an expression the case had been very clear
+and evident. 4. Should this comment stand, that they who labor more in
+the ministry than others should have more honor, more maintenance, than
+others, how many emulations and contentions were this likely to procure?
+Who shall undertake to proportion the honor and reward, according to
+the proportion of every minister's labor? 5. As for the criticism of the
+word _laboring_, which Bilson lays so much stress upon, these things are
+evident, 1. That here _laboring_, signifies emphatically nothing else
+but that labor, care, diligence, solicitude, &c., which the nature of
+the pastoral office requires in every faithful pastor; as is implied 1
+Thess. v., 12, 13, "Know them which labor among you, and are over you in
+the Lord;" and the apostle saith that every minister "shall receive a
+reward according to his own labor," 1 Cor. iii. 8. Such labor and
+diligence also is required in them that rule, whilst they are charged to
+rule _with diligence_, Rom. xii. 8, which is as much as _with labor_:
+yea, the common charity of Christians hath its labor; and this very word
+_labor_ is ascribed thereunto, _labor of love_, 1 Thess. i. 3; Heb. vi.
+10. 2. That if the apostle had here intended the extraordinary labor of
+some ministers above others, not ordinarily required of all, he would
+have taken a more emphatical word to have set it out, as he is wont to
+do in some other cases, as in 2 Cor. xi. 27, "In labor and weariness." 1
+Thess. ii. 9, "For ye remembered, brethren, our labor and weariness." 6.
+Finally, "If there be but one kind of church officers here designed,
+then," as saith the learned Cartwright, "the words (_especially those
+that labor_) do not cause the apostle's speech to rise, but to fall; not
+to go forward, but to go backward; for to teach worthily and singularly
+is more than to teach painfully; for the first doth set forth all that
+which may be required in a worthy teacher, where the latter noteth one
+virtue only of pains taking."
+
+_Except_. 8. Though it could be evinced, that here the apostle speaks of
+some other elders, besides the ministers of the word, yet what advantage
+can this be for the proof of ruling elders? For the apostle being to
+prove that the ministers of the word ought to be honored, i.e.
+maintained; why might he not use this general proposition, that all
+rulers, whether public or domestic, whether civil or ecclesiastical, are
+to be honored? And when the apostle speaketh of the qualifications of
+deacons, he requires them to be such as have ruled their own houses
+well.[83]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This slight gloss might have appeared more tolerable and
+plausible, were it not, partly, that the grand scope of the apostle in
+this chapter and epistle is to direct about church officers and church
+affairs, as both the context, and 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15, clearly evidence;
+and partly, had the word rulers been expressed alone in the text, and
+the word elders left out: but seeing that the apostle speaks not
+generally of them that rule well, but particularly of the elders that
+rule well in the Church; here is no place for this poor faint gloss. 2.
+Had the apostle here intended such a lax and general proposition for all
+sorts of rulers, then had he also meant that an honorable maintenance is
+due from the Church to domestic as well as public, yea, to civil as well
+as ecclesiastical rulers: then the Church should have charge enough:
+yea, and then should ministers of the word (according to this
+interpretation) have more honor and maintenance than any other rulers,
+domestic or public, civil or ecclesiastical. Magistrates will never
+thank him for this gloss. 3. Though some kind of skill to rule and
+govern be required in deacons, yet that is no public rule in the Church,
+but a private rule in their own houses only, which the apostle mentions,
+1 Tim. iii. 12.
+
+_Except_. 9. But these Well-ruling presbyters may be referred to these
+pastors and teachers which were resident in every church, who therefore
+are properly said to have care and inspection of the faithful, as being
+affixed to that place for that end; but the word _laboring_, or _they
+that labor_, may be referred to them who travelled up and down for the
+visiting and confirming of the churches.[84] "There were some that
+remained in some certain places, for the guiding and governing of such
+as were already won by the preaching of the gospel: others that
+travelled with great labor and pains from place to place to spread the
+knowledge of God into all parts, and to preach Christ crucified to such
+as never heard of him before. Both these were worthy of double honor,
+but the latter that builded not upon another man's foundation, more
+especially than the former, that did but keep that which others had
+gotten, and govern those that others have gained."[85]
+
+_Ans_. 1. If this be the sense, that there were some ministers fixed,
+and limited to particular places and churches; others unfixed, having an
+unlimited commission, and these are to be especially honored: then the
+meaning is, that the apostles and evangelists who were unfixed, and had
+unlimited commissions, and laid the foundation, were to be especially
+honored above pastors and teachers that were fixed and limited, and only
+built upon their foundation. But how should this be the meaning? For
+this seems a needless exhortation; what church would not readily yield
+an especial honor to apostles and evangelists above pastors and
+teachers? This would savor too much of self-seeking in the apostle, and
+providing for his own honor. This implies that the text hath reference
+to apostles and evangelists, whereas it evidently speaks only of
+ordinary ruling and preaching presbyters.
+
+2. If this be the sense of Dr. Field and Bilson, that some mere
+ordinary presbyters travelled laboriously to lay the foundation of
+Christianity, others were fixed to certain places to build upon that
+foundation: this seems to be false; for we read that mere ordinary
+presbyters were ordained for several cities and places as their peculiar
+charges, whom they were to feed, and with whom they were to remain, as
+Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5; herewith compare Acts xx. 28; 1 Pet. v. 2; 1
+Thess. v. 12. But that mere ordinary presbyters were ordained and
+employed in the Church without limitation of commission, where can it be
+evidenced in all the Scriptures? Wandering presbyters are nowhere
+commended; wandering stars are condemned, Jude, ver. 13.
+
+3. To refer the word _laboring_ to them that travelled from place to
+place for visiting and confirming of the churches, is very weak and
+unjustifiable in this place; for this clashes with Dr. Field's former
+gloss, (mentioned Except. 4, limiting _laboring_ to preaching.) But any
+thing for a present shift. This word is sometimes given to the apostle,
+as 1 Cor. xv. 10; 2 Cor. xi. 27: but where are apostles and evangelists
+called _laboring_, merely in respect of their travelling from place to
+place, to lay the foundation of Christianity, thereby to distinguish
+them from ordinary pastors and teachers? Nay, the apostle himself makes
+_them that rule_, and _them that labor_, the same, 1 Thess. v. 12, 13.
+So here in 1 Tim. v. 17, _they that rule_--_and they that labor_--are
+the same, i.e. both of them ordinary presbyters, both of them ruling,
+only to one of them the office of _laboring_ in the word and doctrine is
+superadded; yea, the very women that _were_ godly were said _to labor in
+the Lord_, Rom. xvi. 6, 12, not for their far travels up and down
+several countries to propagate the gospel, for where are Mary and Persis
+reported to have done this? Yet doubtless such good women privately
+labored much to bring in others, especially of their own sex, to hear
+the apostles, and entertain the gospel; and if the women may be said to
+_labor much in the Lord_, in respect of their private endeavors, how
+much more may labor be ascribed to presbyters in respect of both their
+private and public employments! So that this word _laboring_, which is
+applied in Scripture not only to ordinary presbyters, but also to women,
+cannot (without violence) be drawn peculiarly to signify apostles and
+evangelists, as this exception intends.
+
+_Except_. 10. Seeing in every minister of the word three things are
+requisite, unblamableness of life, dexterity of governing, and integrity
+of doctrine; the two first are commended here, but especially the labor
+in doctrine above them both; therefore here are set down not a two-fold
+order of presbyters, but only two parts of the pastoral office,
+preaching and governing; both which the apostle joins in the office of
+pastors, 1 Thes. v. 2-13.[86] "The guides of the church are worthy of
+double honor, both in respect of governing and teaching, but especially
+for their pains in teaching; so noting two parts or duties of
+presbyterial offices, not two sorts of presbyters."[87]
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is true, pastors have the power both of ruling and
+preaching belonging to their office, as is intimated, 1 Thes. v. 12, 13,
+and Heb. xiii. 7, and in other places; but doth it therefore follow,
+that none have the power of ruling, but those that have the power of
+preaching? or that this text, or 1 Tim. v. 17, intends only those rulers
+that preach? 2. Bilson, in this exception, confesseth that _laboring_
+belongs to ordinary fixed pastors, and therefore contradicts himself in
+his former objection, wherein he would have appropriated it to unfixed
+apostles and evangelists; yea, by this gloss it is granted, that
+preaching presbyters are to be more honored than non-preaching ruling
+prelates. These are miserable shifts and evasions, whereby they are
+necessitated thus to wound their own friends, and to cross their own
+principles. 3. According to this gloss, this should be the sense, "Let
+the ministers that rule well by good life, and skilful government, be
+counted worthy of double honor, especially they who labor in the word
+and doctrine." Now doth not this tacitly insinuate, that some ministers
+may rule well, and be worthy of double honor, though they labor not in
+the word and doctrine? and how absurd were this? But if the text be
+interpreted not of several acts of the same office, but of several sorts
+of officers, this absurdity is prevented, _Let ruling elders be doubly
+honored, especially those that both rule and preach_. 4. The text
+evidently speaks not of duties, but of persons; not of acts, but of
+agents; not of offices, but of officers; for it is not said, "Let the
+elders be counted worthy of double honor, for well ruling; especially
+for laboring"--but, _Let the elders that rule well, especially they that
+labor in the word, &c._ So that this gloss is vain, and against the
+plain letter of the text.
+
+_Except_. 11. Though the emphasis of the word, _they that labor_, be not
+to be neglected, yet the difference betwixt presbyters is not put by
+that word, but by those (_in the word and doctrine_.) This does not
+signify two kinds of presbyters, but two offices of ministers and
+pastors; one general, to _rule well_; another special, _to labor in the
+word and doctrine_. To rule well, saith Hierom, is to fulfil his office;
+or, as the Syriac interpreter expounds it, "to behave themselves well in
+their place;" or as the Scripture speaks, _To go in and out before God's
+people as becomes them, going before them in good works in their
+private conversations, and also in their public administrations_; whence
+the apostle makes here a comparison betwixt the duties of ministers
+thus, "All presbyters that generally discharge their office well are
+worthy of double honor; especially they who labor in the word, which is
+a primary part of their office."[88]
+
+_Ans_. 1. For substance this objection is the same with objection 10,
+already answered, therefore much more needs not to be added. 2. It is to
+be noted, that the apostle saith not, "Let the presbyters that rule well
+be counted worthy of double honor, especially because they labor in the
+word--for then he should have pointed at the distinct offices of
+ministers;" but he saith, _especially they that labor_, which clearly
+carries the sense to the distinction of elders themselves, who have
+distinct employments. 3. If preaching presbyters only should here be
+meant, and under that phrase (_that rule well_) their whole office in
+general, and the right managing thereof, should be contained, whereas
+_laboring in the word and doctrine_ (as this exception implies) is but
+one part thereof, then hence it would inevitably follow, that a minister
+deserves more honor for the well administration of one part of his
+office only, than for the well managing of the whole, which is absurd!
+Here therefore the apostle doth not compare one primary part of the
+pastor's office, with the whole office and all the parts thereof; but
+one sort of presbyters with another, distinguishing the mere ruling
+presbyter from the ruling and preaching presbyter, as the acute and
+learned Whitaker hath well observed.
+
+_Except_. 12. It is evident in the text itself, that all these elders
+here meant were worthy of double honor, whether they labored or
+governed; which by St. Paul's proofs, presently following, and by the
+consent of all old and new writers, is meant of their maintenance at the
+charges of the Church.[89] Now that lay-judges and censors of manners
+were in the apostle's time found at the expense of the Church, or by
+God's law ought to have their maintenance at the people's hands, till I
+see it justly proved, I cannot believe it: which yet must be proved
+before this construction can be admitted.[90]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This word _honor_ signifies (after the custom of the Hebrews,
+Exod. xx. 12) all pious offices and relief. This phrase (_double honor_)
+interpreters expound either absolutely or comparatively. Absolutely
+thus: _double honor_, i.e. great honor, so some; maintenance in this
+life, happiness in the life to come, so others; honor of reverence to
+their persons, and of maintenance for their labors, so Chrysostom, of
+which saith Calvin, "That Chrysostom interprets double honor to be
+maintenance and reverence, I impugn not." Comparatively thus: _double
+honor_ here seems to relate to what was before spoken, ver. 3, "Honor
+widows that are widows indeed." Now here he intimates, that though
+widows are to be honored, yet these should be much more honored; they
+should have single, these double honor. In this last sense, which seems
+most genuine, it seems most likely that the apostle here intended
+principally, if not only, the honor of maintenance; partly because the
+honor appointed for widows, ver. 3, &c., was only maintenance; partly
+because the reason of this charge to honor, &c., refers only to
+maintenance, ver. 18. Thus far we grant, that the text speaks of
+maintenance. 2. It may be further yielded that all the presbyters here
+spoken of are to be counted worthy of double honor, of honorable,
+liberal maintenance; even they that rule well (if need require) are to
+be thus honored, but the principal care of maintenance ought to be of
+them that labor in the word and doctrine, because the apostle saith
+_especially they that labor, &c._: the like injunction, see Gal. vi. 6,
+"Let him that is catechized, communicate to him that catechizeth him in
+all good things;" and thus much this text plainly evidenceth. 3. What
+then can be inferred hereupon by the adversaries of ruling elders?
+"Therefore the ruling elders (in the reformed churches) that take no
+maintenance of the church, are not the elders that rule well here
+mentioned?" This follows not: the apostle Paul took no wages of the
+church of Corinth, 2 Cor. xi. 7-9, and xii. 12, 13, &c., was he
+therefore not an apostle to them, as to other churches of whom he took
+maintenance? Divers among us in these days labor in the word and
+doctrine, and are not sufficiently maintained by their churches, but
+forced to spend of their own estates to do others service; are they
+therefore no ministers? _Forgive them this wrong_. Most churches are not
+able (or at least not willing) to maintain their very preaching
+presbyters and their families comfortably and sufficiently, as the
+gospel requireth: if therefore in prudence, that the Church be not
+needlessly burdened, those ruling elders are chosen generally that need
+no maintenance, doth their not taking maintenance of the church make
+their office null and void? Or if the church do not give them
+maintenance (when they neither need it, nor desire it, nor is the church
+able to do it) is the church therefore defective in her duty, or an ill
+observer of the apostolical precepts? Sure maintenance is not
+essentially and inseparably necessary to the calling of either ruling
+or preaching elder. There may be cases when not only the preaching, but
+the ruling elders ought to be maintained, and there may be cases when
+not only the ruling but also the preaching presbyter (as it was with
+Paul) should not expect to be maintained by the church. 4. It is as
+observable that the apostle here saith, let them be counted worthy of
+double honor, though the reformed churches do not actually give double
+maintenance to elders that rule well, yet they count them worthy of
+double maintenance, though the elders do not take it, though the
+churches cannot give it.
+
+Finally, unto these testimonies and arguments from Scripture, many
+testimonies of ancient and modern writers (of no small repute in the
+Church of God) may be usefully annexed, speaking for ruling elders in
+the Church of Christ from time to time: some speaking of such sort of
+elders, presbyters, or church-governors, as that ruling elders may very
+well be implied in their expressions; some plainly declaring that the
+Church of Christ _in fact_ had such officers for government thereof; and
+some testifying that of right such officers ought to be in the Church of
+Christ now under the New Testament for the well guiding thereof; by
+which it may notably appear, that in asserting the office of the ruling
+elder in the Church, we take not upon us to maintain any singular
+paradox of our own devising, or to hold forth some new light in this old
+opinionative age: and that the ruling elder is not a church officer
+first coined at Geneva, and a stranger to the Church of Christ for the
+first 1500 years, (as the adversaries of ruling elders scornfully
+pretend,) but hath been owned by the Church of Christ as well in former
+as in later times.[91]
+
+
+_An Appendix touching the Divine Right of Deacons._
+
+Though we cannot find in Scripture that the power of the keys is
+committed by Christ unto deacons, with the other church governors, but
+conceive that deacons, as other members of the church, are to be
+governed, and are not to govern; yet forasmuch as deacons are ordinary
+officers in the Church of God, of which she will have constant use in
+all ages, and which at first were divinely appointed, and after
+frequently mentioned in the New Testament; it will not be thought unfit,
+before we conclude this section, touching the divine right of Christ's
+church-officers, briefly to assert the divine right of deacons, as
+followeth.
+
+Deacons in the church are an ordinance of Jesus Christ. For,
+
+1. They are found in Christ's catalogue of church officers, distinct
+from all other officers, both extraordinary and ordinary. _Helps_, 1
+Cor. xii. 28. The Greek word in the natural acceptation properly
+signifies, to lift over against one in taking up some burden or weight;
+metaphorically, it here is used for deacons, whose office it is to
+_help_ and _succor the poor and sick, to lend them a hand to lift them
+up_, &c., and this office is here distinctly laid down from all other
+ordinary and extraordinary offices in the text. So they are
+distinguished from all ordinary officers reckoned up, Rom. xii. 7, 8:
+under _prophecy_, there is the _teacher_ and _pastor_; under _ministry_,
+the _ruling elder_, and the _deacon_, verse 8. This officer was so well
+known, and usual in the primitive churches, that when the apostle writes
+to the church at Philippi, he directs his epistle not only to the
+saints, but to the officers, viz. _to the overseers, and deacons_,
+Philip, i. 1. The occasion of the first institution of this office, see
+in Acts vi. 1, 2, &c. At the first planting of the Christian Church, the
+apostles themselves took care to receive the churches' goods, and to
+distribute to every one of their members _as they had need_, Acts iv.
+34, 35; but in the increase of the church, the burden of this care of
+distributing alms increasing also, upon some complaints of the Greeks,
+_that their widows were neglected_, the office of deacons was erected,
+for better provision for the poor, Acts vi. 1-7; and because the
+churches are never like to want poor and afflicted persons, there will
+be constant need of this officer. The pastor and deacon under the New
+Testament seem to answer the priests and Levites under the Old
+Testament.
+
+2. The qualifications of deacons are laid down by Christ in the New
+Testament, at large: 1 Tim. iii. 8-14, _Deacons also must be grave, not
+double-tongued_, &c., and Acts vi. 3, 5.
+
+3. The manner also of deacons' vocation or calling unto their office is
+delineated, viz: 1. They must be chosen by the church; "Look ye out
+among you seven men of honest report," &c., "and they chose Stephen,"
+&c., Acts vi. 3, 5. 2. They must first be proved and tried by the
+officers of the church, before they may officiate as deacons; "and let
+these also first be proved, then let them use the office of a deacon,
+being blameless," 1 Tim. iii. 10. 3. They must be appointed by the
+officers of the church to their office, and set apart with prayer, Acts
+vi. 3, 6: "Look ye out men--whom we may appoint over this business--whom
+they set before the apostles, and when they had prayed, they laid their
+hands on them."
+
+4. Deacons have by Scripture their work and employment appointed them.
+Their work is, _to serve tables_, (hence the name deacon seems derived,)
+Acts vi. 2, 3. To be an help, no hinderance in the church; called
+_helps_, 1 Cor. xii. 18.
+
+5. Deacons have a divine approbation and commendation in Scripture, if
+they execute their office well. "For they that have used the office of a
+deacon well, purchase to themselves a good degree, and great boldness in
+the faith which is in Christ Jesus," 1 Tim. iii. 13. Here the well
+administration of deaconship is commended as producing two good effects
+to such deacons, viz: 1. _A good degree_, i.e. great honor, dignity, and
+reputation, both to themselves and to their office; they adorn, grace,
+and credit their office in the church; not that they purchase to
+themselves by desert a higher office in the church, that from deacons
+they should be advanced to be presbyters, as some would interpret this
+text. 2. _Much boldness in the faith which is in Christ Jesus._ For
+nothing makes a man more bold than a good conscience in the upright and
+faithful discharge of our duties in our callings; innocency and
+integrity make brave spirits; such with great confidence and boldness
+serve Christ and the church, being men that may be trusted to the
+uttermost. Now where God thus approves or commends the well managing of
+an office, he also divinely approves and allows the office itself, and
+the officer that executes the same.[92]
+
+
+SECTION II.
+
+2. _Of the first receptacle, or subject of the power of church
+government from Christ, viz. Christ's own officers._
+
+Touching the second, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath peculiarly
+intrusted his own officers with the power of church government: take it
+thus--
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator did immediately commit the proper, formal,
+ministerial, or stewardly authority and power for governing of his
+church to his own church guides as the proper immediate receptacle or
+first subject thereof.
+
+For explication of this proposition, four things are to be opened.
+
+1. What is meant by proper, formal, ministerial or stewardly authority
+and power for church government? See this already discussed, Part 2,
+chapters III., V., and IX., in the beginning of Section 2, so that here
+there needs no further addition, as to this point.
+
+2. What is meant by church guides? By church guides here understand,
+negatively, 1. Not the political magistrate. For though he be the
+_nurse-father_ of the church, Isa. xlix. 23, _the keeper and avenger of
+both the tables_; and _have an outward care of religion_, and _may
+exercise a political power about sacred things_, as did Asa,
+Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah, &c., yet hath he no proper, inward,
+formal power in sacred things, nor is it lawful for him to exercise the
+same; as Korah, Num. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam. xiii. 9-15; Uzzah, 2 Sam.
+vi. 6-8, 1 Chron. xiii. 9, 10; and King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16-22,
+did to the provoking of God, and to their own destruction. (But see what
+power is granted, and what denied to the civil magistrate in matters of
+religion, and why, Part 2, Chap. IX. Sect. 1.) 2. Not any officer of
+man's mere invention and setting up in the church, whether papal, as
+cardinals, &c., prelatical, as deans, archdeacons, chancellors,
+officials, &c., or political, as committees, commissioners, &c. For who
+can create and institute a new kind of offices in the church, but Jesus
+Christ only, who alone hath the lordly magisterial power as Mediator
+appropriated to him? Eph. iv. 8, 11; Rom. xii. 5-8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and
+therefore how can such acts be sufficiently excused from bold usurpation
+upon Christ's own prerogative? 3. Nor the deacons themselves, (though
+officers of Christ's appointment, as was formerly proved;) for their
+office is not to rule and govern, but _to serve tables_, &c., Acts vi.
+2, 3. None of these are the church guides which Christ hath committed
+his proper power unto. But affirmatively understand all these church
+guides extraordinary and ordinary, which Christ hath erected in his
+Church, vesting them with power and authority therein, viz. apostles,
+prophets, evangelists, pastors and teachers, governments, or ruling
+elders, mentioned together in Eph. iv. 8, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v.
+17; Rom. xii. 6-8. These are Christ's own church officers, these Christ
+hath made the immediate receptacle and first subject of the keys, or of
+ecclesiastical power derived from himself.
+
+3. What is meant by Christ's committing this stewardly power first and
+immediately to the church guides? _Ans_. There is, 1. A priority and
+immediateness of the donation of the power of the keys: thus Christ
+first and immediately gave keys to his own officers, whom Scripture,
+therefore, calls _the ministers of Christ_, (not of the Church,) 1 Cor.
+iv. 1, not first and immediately to the community of the faithful, or
+Church, and then by the Church secondarily and mediately to the
+officers, as her substitutes and delegates, acting for her, and not in
+virtue of their own power from Christ. 2. A priority and immediateness
+of designation of particular individual persons to the office of
+key-bearing, and this is done by the mediate intervening act of the
+church officers in separating of particular persons to the office which
+Christ instituted; though it is not denied but that the church or
+company of the faithful may lawfully nominate or elect individual
+persons to be officers in the congregation, which yet is no act of
+authority or power.
+
+4. How hath Christ committed this power of the keys to his church
+guides, that thereby they become the most proper receptacle thereof?
+_Ans_. Thus briefly. All absolute lordly power is in God originally: all
+lordly magisterial mediatory power is in Christ dispensatorily: all
+official, stewardly power is by delegation from Christ only in the
+church guides[93] ministerially, as the only proper subject thereof that
+may exercise the same lawfully in Christ's name: yet all power, both
+magisterial in Christ, and ministerial in Christ's officers, is for the
+Church of Christ and her edification objectively and finally.
+
+These things thus explained and stated, we come now to the confirmation
+of the proposition. Consider these arguments:
+
+1. Jesus Christ committed immediately ecclesiastical power and the
+exercise thereof to his church guides. Thus we may argue:
+
+_Major_. All those that have ecclesiastical power, and the exercise
+thereof, immediately committed to them from Jesus Christ, are the
+immediate subject or receptacle of that power.
+
+For what makes any persons the immediate subject of power, but the
+immediate derivation and commission of power to them from Jesus Christ,
+who is the fountain of all power?
+
+_Minor_. But the church guides have the ecclesiastical power and the
+exercise thereof immediately committed to them from Jesus Christ. This
+may be evinced many ways by Scriptures. 1. It is said expressly, "Of
+our authority which the Lord hath given us for your edification," 2 Cor.
+10, 8: by _us_ here we are to understand church guides, for here they
+are set in opposition to the church members (_for edification_,) not
+destruction of (you.) Here are edifiers and edified. Now these church
+guides have authority given them, and that from the Lord, i.e. Christ;
+here is their commission or power, not from the Church or any creature,
+but from Christ; hence the apostle calls church guides, "Your rulers or
+guides in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12; _in the Lord_, i.e. by the Lord's
+authority and commission. So that church officers are _rulers in the
+Lord_, and the churches ruled by them; yea, ruling elders being one sort
+of church guides, have such an undoubted power of governing in the
+Church divinely committed to them, that of them it is said, "God hath
+set in the church governments", 1 Cor. xii. 28, i.e. governors, the
+abstract being put for the concrete. If _God have set governors in the
+Church_, then God vested those governors with a power of governing,
+whence they have their name of governments.
+
+2. The keys of the kingdom of heaven, with all their acts, were
+immediately committed to the church guides, viz. to the apostles and
+their successors to the end of the world; compare these testimonies,
+Matt. xvi. 16, 19, and xviii. 18-20; John xx. 21-23; with Matt, xxviii.
+18-20: therefore consequently ecclesiastical power was committed
+immediately unto them as the subject thereof. For, _By the kingdom of
+heaven_ here we are to understand (according to the full latitude of the
+phrase) both the kingdom of grace in this world, and of glory in the
+world to come; _binding and loosing both in earth and in heaven_, upon
+the right use of the keys, being here the privileges promised to church
+guides; and _by kingdom of heaven_--on earth, understand the whole
+visible Church of Christ in the earth, not only some single
+congregation. By _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, thus apprehend, Christ
+promiseth and giveth not the sword _of the kingdom_, any secular power;
+nor the sceptre _of the kingdom_, any sovereign, lordly, magisterial
+power over the Church. But the _keys_, &c. i.e. a stewardly, ministerial
+power, and their acts, _binding and loosing_, i.e. _retaining and
+remitting sins on earth_, (as in John it is explained;) opening and
+shutting are proper acts of keys; binding and loosing but metaphorical,
+viz. a speech borrowed from bonds or chains wherewith men's bodies are
+bound in prison or in captivity, or from which the body is loosed: we
+are naturally all under sin, Rom. v. 12, and therefore liable to death,
+Rom. vi. 23. Now sins are to the soul as bonds and cords, Prov. v. 22.
+_The bond of iniquity_, Acts viii. 23; and death with the pains thereof,
+are as chains, 2 Pet. ii. 4, Jude 6; in hell as in a prison, 1 Pet.
+iii. 10: the remission or retaining of these sins, is the loosing or the
+binding of the soul under these cords and chains. So that the keys
+themselves are not material but metaphorical; a metaphor from stewards
+in great men's houses, kings' houses, &c., into whose hands the whole
+trust and ordering of household affairs is committed, who take in and
+cast out servants, open and shut doors, &c., do all without control of
+any in the family save the master of the family. Such, in the Hebrew
+phrase, are said to be _over the house_, Gen. xliii. 18; Isa. xxii. 15;
+2 Kings xviii. 18: and the keys of the house are committed to them as a
+badge of their power. So that when God threatens to put Shebna out of
+his office in the king's house, and to place Eliakim, son of Hilkiah, in
+his room, he saith, "I will commit thy government into his hand--and the
+key of the house of David will I lay upon his shoulder," Isa. xxii. 21,
+22, parallel of that phrase, "and the government shall be upon his
+shoulder," Isa. ix. 6. Hence, as key is in the Old Testament used for
+stewardly power and government, Isa. xxii. 21, 22; (only twice properly,
+Judges iii. 25; 1 Chron. ix. 27;) so in the New Testament, _key_ is
+always used, metaphorically, to denote power, and that about
+ecclesiasticals or spirituals, viz. in Matt. xvi. 19; Luke xi. 52; Rev.
+i. 18, and iii. 7, and ix. 1, and xx. 1. So that _keys_, &c., are
+metaphorically the ordinances which Christ hath instituted, to be
+dispensed in his church, preaching the word, administrations of the
+seals and censures: for it is not said _key_, but _keys_, which
+comprehendeth them all: by the right use of which both the gates of the
+Church here, and of heaven hereafter, are opened or shut to believers or
+unbelievers; and Christ promising or giving these _keys_ to Peter and
+the apostles, and their successors _to the end of the world_, Matt.
+xxviii. 20, doth intrust and invest them with power and authority of
+dispensing these ordinances for this end, and so makes them _stewards_
+in his house _of the mysteries of God_, 1 Cor. iv. 1, so that we may
+conclude:
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the church guides are the immediate subject and
+receptacle of that ecclesiastical power, and of the exercise thereof.
+
+_Argum_. II. Jesus Christ our Mediator did institute ecclesiastical
+offices for church government under the New Testament before any
+Christian Church under the New Testament was gathered or constituted.
+Therefore those persons that were intrusted with those offices must
+needs be the first and immediate receptacle or subject of the power of
+the keys. Thus we may argue:
+
+_Major_. All those whose ecclesiastical offices for church government,
+under the New Testament, were instituted by Christ, before any formal
+visible Christian Church was gathered or constituted, are the first and
+immediate receptacle or subject of the power of the keys from Jesus
+Christ.
+
+_Minor_. But the ecclesiastical offices of Christ's own officers for
+governing of the Church, now under the New Testament, were instituted by
+Christ before any formal visible Christian Church was gathered or
+constituted.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ's own officers for governing of the
+Church now under the New Testament are the first and immediate
+receptacle or subject of the keys from Jesus Christ.
+
+The major proposition cannot reasonably be denied, and may be further
+cleared by these considerations, viz: 1. That the Church offices for
+church government under the New Testament are in their own nature
+intrinsically offices of power. The apostle styles it _power_, or
+_authority_, which is _given_ to these officers by _the Lord_, 2 Cor. x.
+8, and xiii. 10. _The keys of the kingdom of heaven_ are committed to
+them, Matt. xvi. 19, and _keys_ import a stewardly power: compare Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, John xx. 21, 23, with Isa. xxii. 21, 22.
+Materially, the acts and exercise of these officers are acts of power,
+as _binding, loosing_, &c., Matt, xviii. 18; not only _preaching_, &c.,
+but _excommunicating_, is an act of power, 1 Cor. v. 4. Absolving the
+penitent, and confirming him again in the Church's love, is an act of
+power:--_to confirm love unto him_, i.e. authoritatively to confirm,
+&c., as the word signifies, 2 Cor. ii. 8. Formally, these acts are to be
+done as acts of power, in Christ's name, and by his authority, Matt.
+xxviii. 19; 1 Cor. v. 4. Now if these offices be in their own nature
+offices of power, consequently they that have such offices conferred
+upon them by Christ, before the Christian Church had being or existence,
+they must needs be the first and immediate recipient subject of the
+power of the keys from Christ. 2. Either those church officers, whose
+offices were instituted before the Christian Church was constituted,
+must be the first subject of the power, &c., or some others. If any
+other, then, 1. Either heathens, or heathen magistrates, who are out of
+the Church: but both these were absurd to grant; for then they that are
+not so much as church members should be church governors, and the Church
+be ecclesiastically judged by them that are without. 2. Or the first
+subject of this power was the Christian Church itself before it had
+existence; but that were notoriously absurd; and besides these, no other
+can be imagined, but the church officers; therefore they must needs be
+the first subject of the power of the keys.
+
+The minor proposition (viz. But the ecclesiastical offices of Christ's
+own officers for governing of the Church now under the New Testament,
+were instituted by Christ before any formal visible Christian Church
+was gathered or constituted) is so evident in the current of the New
+Testament, that it needs little confirmation. For, 1. The church offices
+under the New Testament, as apostleship, pastorship, &c., were
+instituted by Christ either before his death--compare these places
+together, Mark iii. 13, 14, &c.; Luke ix. 1, &c., and x. 1, 2, &c.; John
+xx. 21-23; Matt, xxviii. 18-20--or presently upon his ascension, Eph.
+iv. 8, 11, 12, &c.; Acts ii.; 1 Cor. xiii. 28. Now no formal Christian
+Church was constituted and gathered till the feast of Pentecost and
+afterwards. Then, after the apostles had received the gifts of the Holy
+Ghost, &c., Acts ii., great multitudes of Jews and Gentiles were
+converted to Christ, and being converted, incorporated and associated
+themselves into churches, as the history of the Acts, chap, ii., and
+forward, evidenceth abundantly. 2. Church officers, under the New
+Testament, are for the calling and gathering men unto Christ, and to his
+body mystical; and for admitting of those that believe into that one
+body, Matt, xxviii. 18, 19; 1 Cor. xii. 28. And is not he that calleth,
+before them that are called by them; they that baptize, before the
+baptized; and they that gather the churches, before those churches which
+they gather? May we not hence conclude, _Therefore_, &c.
+
+_Argum_. III. The names, titles, and other denominations purposely and
+peculiarly given to the church guides in Scripture, generally do bear
+power and authority engraven upon their foreheads. _Therefore_, they are
+the proper, immediate, and only subjects of ecclesiastical power. Thus
+we may argue:
+
+_Major_. All those persons in the Church, that have such names, titles,
+or denominations given to them peculiarly in the Scriptures by the
+Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and power engraven upon
+them in reference to the Church, are the immediate and only proper
+subjects of ecclesiastical power.
+
+_Minor_. But Christ's officers in the Church have such names, titles, or
+denominations given to them peculiarly in the Scriptures by the Spirit
+of Christ, as generally have authority and power engraven upon them in
+reference to the Church.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church are the
+proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of ecclesiastical
+power.
+
+This major proposition must be granted. For, 1. Is not this the Holy
+Ghost's familiar and ordinary manner in Scripture, to give titles and
+denominations, which are apt, pertinent, significative and instructing
+both to others and themselves that have such denominations conferred
+upon them? As in the family, the husband is called _the head of the
+wife_, 1 Cor. xi., because he is to govern, she is to be subject: the
+wife is called _an help-meet_, &c., Gen. ii.: to teach the wife her
+duty, to help his good and comfort every way, to hinder it no way. So in
+the commonwealth, magistrates are called _heirs of restraint, to put men
+to shame_, Judges xviii. 7, because they are to restrain disorders,
+shame evil-doers: higher powers, to teach others subjection to them,
+Rom. xiii. 1. "An ordinance of man or human creation," 1 Pet. ii. 13:
+because, though magistracy in general be an ordinance of God, yet this
+or that special kind of magistracy, whether monarchical, aristocratical,
+&c., is of man. Thus in the Church: the Church is called _Christ's
+body_, Ephes. iv. 12, to show Christ's headship, the Church's subjection
+to Christ, and their near union to one another. Christians are called
+_members_, Rom. xii.; 1 Cor. xii., to teach them mutual love, care, and
+serviceableness to one another. Ministers are called _ambassadors of
+Christ_, 2 Cor. v. _Angels of the churches_, Rev. ii., to teach them to
+be faithful in their offices, and others to respect them for their
+offices. _Salt of the earth_, Matt. v. 13, because they are to season
+others spiritually. _Stars_, Rev. i., because they are to shine forth
+for the enlightening and guiding of others, &c. 2. If this proposition
+be denied, then to what end are such names and denominations, importing
+authority, generally given by the Spirit of God to some sort of persons
+only, and not to others? Is it for no end? That would be a dangerous
+charge upon the Spirit of Christ. Is it for any end? Then what other can
+be imagined, than to signify, hold forth, and instruct both themselves
+and others in their duties, and to distinguish them that are vested with
+authority in the Church, from them that are not?
+
+The _major proposition_ (viz. But Christ's own officers in the Church
+have such names, titles, or denominations given to them peculiarly in
+the Scriptures by the Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and
+power engraven upon them in reference to the Church) may be evinced, 1.
+By induction of particular names attributed to Christ's officers. 2. By
+a denial of them, or the like, to any other members of the Church.
+
+1. By induction of particular titles or denominations attributed to
+Christ's officers, which generally have power and authority palpably
+engraven upon them: (yea, the self-same names are given to them, by
+which not only heathen writers, but also the Greek version of the Old
+Testament by the Septuagint, and the very original of the New Testament
+are wont to give to political officers, to express their political
+authority, power, and government,) as, for instance:
+
+1. _Presbyter or elder_, is ascribed often to Christ's church officers,
+as in Acts xiv. 23, and xv. 2, 4, and xx. 17; 1 Tim. v. 17; Tit. v.; 1
+Pet. v. 1. This same word is ascribed to _rulers political_, to _elders
+in the gate_, by the Septuagint, in Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 2
+Sam. v. 3; 1 Chron. vi. 3.
+
+2. _Overseer_ or _bishop_, noting authority and power in having the
+charge and oversight of the flock, is ascribed to church officers in
+Acts xx. 28; Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i. 7. This same word is
+used by the Septuagint, to denote the power of the civil magistrate, to
+whom the care and oversight of the commonwealth is committed, Numb.
+xxxi. 14; Judges ix. 28; 2 Kings xi. 15.
+
+3. _Guide, leader, conductor, captain, governor_, signifies them all,
+and is given to church officers, as contradistinct from the _church_ and
+_saints_, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 24. It is also attributed to civil rulers to
+set forth their power, in Deut. i. 13; Micah iii. 9, 11; 2 Chron. v. 1;
+Ezek. xliv. 3, and xlv. 7; Dan. iii. 2; Acts vii. 10. This very word
+_governor_, is attributed to Christ himself, _out of thee shall come
+forth a governor, that shall rule_ (or _feed_) _my people Israel_, Matt.
+ii. 6.
+
+4. _Steward, dispenser_. "Stewards of the mysteries of God," is the
+title given to ministers, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. "Steward of God," Tit. i. 7.
+"That faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall make ruler over his
+household," &c., Luke xii. 42. This also is a title of power given to
+them that are set over families, as Gal. iv. 2, "he is under tutors and
+stewards." And to them that are set over cities--as Rom. xvi. 23,
+"Erastus the steward" (or as we render it, _the chamberlain_) "of the
+city saluteth you."
+
+5. _Pastor_ is ascribed to Christ's officers; Eph. iv. 11, "and some
+pastors and teachers." They govern the Church as the shepherd his flock,
+feeding, ruling them as well with the shepherd's staff, as with food.
+This term is sometimes given to civil magistrates, Isa. xliv. 28; Micah
+v. 5: sometimes to Christ the great shepherd of the sheep, 1 Pet. v. 4;
+noting his authority, Matt. xxvi. 31; John x. 2, 11, 14, 16; Heb. xiii.
+20; 1 Pet. ii. 25: sometimes to God himself the supreme Ruler of the
+world, Ps. lxxx. 1.
+
+6. _Governments_, a denomination given to _ruling elders_, 1 Cor. xii.
+28, as hath been proved Sect. 1 of this Chapter. A metaphor from
+mariners or pilots, that steer and govern the ship: translated thence,
+to signify the power and authority of church governors, spiritual
+pilots, steering the ship or ark of Christ's Church. This word is used
+also by heathen authors, to signify political governors.[94]
+
+_Ruler_. 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the elders that rule well"--and,
+
+"He that ruleth," Rom. xii. 8, and "Your rulers in the Lord," 1 Thes.
+v. 12, viz. not only in the fear of the Lord,[95] nor only in those
+things that appertain to God's worship,[96] but also in the Lord; i.e.
+who are over you, to rule according to the will of the Lord,[97] even by
+the Lord Christ's power and authority derived to them. Now these names
+are among heathen authors ascribed to rulers of cities, armies, and
+kingdoms.[98]
+
+By these among other titles given to Christ's officers in Scripture, he
+that runs may read a plain authority and power enstamped on them in
+reference to the Church; and consequently on them that are thus
+denominated, unless they be applied to them improperly, unfitly,
+abusively; which we suppose no sober intelligent reader dare affirm.
+
+2. By a denial of these and like titles to the whole Church of Christ,
+or to any other members of the Church whatsoever, besides church
+officers. For where can it be showed in all the book of God, that in
+this sense, either the whole Church or any members thereof besides
+officers, are ever styled _presbyters, bishops, governors, stewards of
+God, or of the mysteries of God, pastors, governments, or rulers_? The
+greatest factors for popular government must let this alone forever.
+Thus, from all that hath been said, we need not fear to conclude:
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church are the
+proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of ecclesiastical
+power.
+
+_Argum_. IV. The relations which Christ's officers have unto his Church,
+imply and comprehend in themselves authority and power in reference to
+the Church, and therefore they are the proper subjects of ecclesiastical
+power. Thus we reason:
+
+_Major_. Whosoever they are that peculiarly stand in such relations to
+the Church of Christ, as imply and comprehend in themselves authority
+and power for governing of the Church, they are the only subject of
+ecclesiastical power.
+
+This proposition is evident; for, otherwise, to what end are those
+peculiar relations to the Church which comprehend government in them,
+unless such as are so peculiarly related be the only subjects of
+government? Shall all those relations be mere names and shadows? or
+shall others in the church be counted the subject of this authority and
+power for church government, that have no such relations to the Church
+at all implying any such power?
+
+_Minor_. But the officers of Christ peculiarly stand in such relations
+to the Church of Christ as imply and comprehend in themselves authority
+and power for the government of the church.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition will be evident by a due induction
+of some of their particular relations that have such power enstamped on
+them; as for instance, Christ's officers stand in these relations of
+power to the Church and people of God.
+
+1. _They are pastors_, Eph. iv. 11. The church is the _flock_, John x.
+16; 1 Cor. ix. 7; _flock_, Acts xx. 28, 29; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. Hath not the
+_pastor_ power to rule and govern his _flock_?
+
+2. They are _stewards_. "Who is that faithful and wise steward?" Luke
+xii. 42. "Stewards of the mysteries of God," 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. "Stewards
+of God," Tit. i. 7. The Church and people of God are the Lord's
+_household_, over which these stewards are set, &c., Luke xii. 42.
+_God's house_, 1 Tim. iii. 15; Heb. iii. 6. Have not stewards power to
+govern and order those _families_ over which they are set, and wherewith
+they are intrusted? Gal. iv. 1.
+
+3. They are _bishops_ or _overseers_, Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i.
+7. The Church and people of God are that _charge_ which the Lord hath
+committed to their inspection. "Over which the Holy Ghost hath made you
+overseers," Acts xx. 28. Have not _overseers_ power over that which is
+_committed to their inspection_?
+
+4. They are _catechizers_ and _teachers_, Rom. xii. 7, 8; Eph. iv. 11.
+The Church and people are _catechized_, Gal. vi. 6; _taught_. Hath not
+he that _catechizeth_ power for government of him that is _catechized_?
+He that _teacheth_ of him that is _taught_?
+
+5. They are _co-workers_ with God, 1 Cor. iii. 9; 2 Cor. vi. 1.
+_Architects, builders_, &c., 1 Cor. iii. 10; some of them _laying the
+foundation, others building thereupon_. The Church and people of God are
+God's building. "Ye are God's building," 1 Cor. iii. 9. Have not
+_builders_ power of disposing and ordering affairs appertaining to the
+_building_?
+
+6. Finally, to add no more, the officers of Christ in the Church are not
+only as _nurses_; "We _were_ gentle among you, even as a nurse
+cherisheth her children," 1 Thess. ii. 7: and as _mothers_; "My little
+children, of whom I travail in birth again," Gal. iv. 19: but also as
+_fathers_, 1 Thess. ii. 11; 1 Cor. iv. 15, spiritual fathers in Christ:
+and the Church and people of God, they are the _sons_ and _daughters_,
+the spiritual _babes_ and _children_, begotten, brought forth, and
+nursed up by them, 1 Thess. ii. 7, 11; Gal. iv. 19: and have fathers no
+authority nor power of government over their children? See Eph. vi. 1-3;
+1 Tim. iii. 4.
+
+Thus Christ's officers stand in such relation to the Church as do
+evidently carry power of government along with them; but where are any
+other members of the church besides officers, stated in such relation of
+_pastors, stewards, overseers, catechizers, builders, husbandmen,
+nurses, mothers_, and _fathers_ to the Church of God and members of
+Christ, that can be evidenced by the Scriptures? Why may we not then
+clearly conclude,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the officers of Christ are the only subjects of
+ecclesiastical power.
+
+_Argum_. V. The many divine commands and impositions of duties of
+obedience, submission, subjection, &c., upon the Church and people of
+God, to be performed by them to Christ's officers, and that in reference
+to their office, do plainly proclaim the officers of Christ to be the
+proper receptacle and subject of authority and power from Christ for the
+government of his Church. Thus it may be argued:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever persons they are to whom the Church and people of
+God are peculiarly bound by the commands of Christ, to perform duties of
+obedience and subjection, and that in reference to their office in the
+church, they are the only subjects of authority from Christ for the
+government of his Church.
+
+This proposition needs no proof, unless we will be so absurd as to say
+that the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged by Christ's
+command to obey and be subject to them, that yet have no peculiar
+authority nor power over them, and that in reference to their office in
+the church.
+
+_Minor_. But the officers of Christ are those to whom the Church and
+people of God are peculiarly bound by the commands of Christ to perform
+duties of obedience and subjection, and that in reference to their
+office in the church.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition may be evidenced, 1. Partly by
+induction of some particular instances of Christ's commands, whereby the
+Church and people of God are bound to perform duties of obedience and
+subjection to the officers of Christ, in reference to their office in
+the church. 2. Partly by a denial of the like commands in reference to
+all others in the church, except the officers of the church only.
+
+Touching the first, viz. the instances of such commands, consider these
+following. The Church and people of God are commanded,
+
+1. To know their rulers. "We beseech you, brethren, to know them that
+labor among you, and are over you in the Lord," 1 Thess. v. 12. _To
+know_, i.e., not simply and merely to know, but to acknowledge, accept,
+and approve of them as such rulers over you in the Lord. This teaches
+subjection to the office of ruling.
+
+2. To love them exceedingly for their work's sake. "Esteem them
+superabundantly in love for their work's sake," 1 Thess. v. 13. For what
+work? viz. both laboring and ruling, mentioned verse 12. If they must
+love them so exceedingly for ruling over them, must they not much more
+be obedient to this rule?
+
+3. To count them worthy of double honor in reference to their
+well-ruling. "Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of double
+honor, especially--," 1 Tim. v. 17: whether we take _double honor_ here
+for reverence or maintenance, or both; yet how can we esteem the _elders
+ruling well worthy of double honor_ without some submission to their
+rule?
+
+4. To obey them that are their rulers and governors. _Obey ye your
+rulers, or governors_, Heb. xiii. 17; where the words _obey ye_ doth not
+(as some dream) signify a persuasion, but obedience, and in this sense
+it is commonly used, not only in profane authors, but also in the Holy
+Scriptures, as James iii. 3, Gal. iii. 1.
+
+5. Finally, to submit and be subordinate unto them. The Church and
+people of God are charged to submit unto them. "Obey your governors and
+submit ye," Heb. xiii. 17. The word properly notes a submissive yielding
+without opposition or resistance; yea, it signifies intense obedience.
+They must not only yield, but yield with subjection and submission,
+which relates to authority. They are also charged to be subordinate to
+them. "Likewise, ye younger, submit yourselves to the elders," 1 Pet. v.
+5; i.e., _be ye subordinate_, (it is a military term,) viz: be ordered,
+ranked, guided, governed, disciplined by them, as soldiers are by their
+commanders. The word _elders_ here is by some taken only for elders in
+age, and not in office. But it seems better to interpret it of elders in
+office; and the context well agrees with this; for the apostle having
+immediately before charged the ruling preaching presbyters with their
+duties towards their flock, ver. 1-4, here he seems to enjoin the ruled
+flock (which commonly were younger in age and gifts) to look to their
+duties of subjection to their elders in office.
+
+Touching the second, viz. the denial of like commands, and upon like
+grounds to all others in the church, except to the church officers only:
+where can it be evidenced in all the Scriptures that the people of God
+are commanded to know, to esteem very highly in love, to count worthy of
+double honor, to obey, and submit themselves to any persons in the
+church but to the ruling officers thereof in reference to their office,
+and the due execution thereof?
+
+Now, seeing the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged, by so
+many commands of Christ, to perform such duties of subjection and
+obedience to the officers of Christ, may it not be concluded,
+
+Therefore the officers of Christ are the only subjects of authority from
+Christ for the government of his Church?
+
+_Argum_. VI. Finally, the directions touching rule and government in the
+Church; the encouragements to well-ruling by commendations, promises,
+rewards, together with the contrary deterring discouragements from
+ill-ruling, by discommendations, threats, &c., being specially applied
+and appropriated by the word of Christ unto Christ's officers, very
+notably discover to us that Christ's officers are the only subjects of
+power from Christ for the government of his Church. Thus it may be
+argued:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever persons in the Church have directions for church
+government, encouragements to well-ruling, and discouragements from
+ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly applied unto them by the word of
+Christ; they are the only subjects of power from Christ for the
+government of his Church:
+
+This proposition is evident: For, 1. How should it be consistent with
+the infinite wisdom of God peculiarly to apply unto them directions
+about ruling and governing the church that are not the only subjects in
+whom the power of government is intrusted by Jesus Christ? 2. How can it
+stand with the justice of God to encourage them only unto well-ruling,
+by commendations, promises, rewards, &c., or to deter them from
+ill-governing by dispraises, threats, &c., &c., to whom the power of
+government doth not appertain, as to the only subjects thereof? 3. What
+strange apprehensions and distractions would this breed in the hearts of
+Christ's officers and others, should those that have not the power of
+church government committed to them by Christ, be yet directed by his
+word how to govern, encouraged in governing well, and deterred from
+governing ill?
+
+_Minor_. But the officers of Christ in the church have directions for
+church government, encouragements to well-ruling, and discouragements
+from ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly applied unto them by the
+word of God.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition may be cleared by divers Scriptures
+according to the particular branches thereof, viz:
+
+1. Directions for church government are particularly applied by the word
+of Christ to his own officers: as for instance, they are directed to
+_bind and loose_--to _remit_ and _retain sins on earth_, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 23. _To judge them that are within the_
+Church, _not without_, 1 Cor. v. 12. _Not to lord it, domineer_, or
+_overrule the flock of Christ_, 1 Pet. v. To _rule well_, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+To rule _with diligence_, Rom. xii. 8. To _lay hands suddenly on no man,
+neither to be partakers of other men's sins, but to keep themselves
+pure_, 1 Tim. v. 22. _Not to prefer one before another, nor do anything
+by partiality_, 1 Tim. v. 21. _To rebuke them that sin before all, that
+others also may fear_, 1 Tim. v. 20. _To reject a heretic after once or
+twice admonition_, Tit. iii. 10. To use the _authority that is given
+them from the Lord to the edification, not to the destruction_ of the
+Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; with divers such like rules specially
+directed to Christ's officers.
+
+2. Encouragements to well-ruling are peculiarly directed to Christ's
+officers. For, 1. They are the persons specially commended in that
+respect; _well-ruling_, 1 Tim. v. 17. _Good and faithful steward_, Luke
+xii. 42. The angels of the churches are praised for their good
+government, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6, and ver. 18, 19. 2. They are the persons
+to whom the promises, in reference to good government, are directed, as
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20; John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xxviii. 19, 20;
+Luke xii. 42-44; 1 Pet. v. 4. 3. They are the persons whom the Lord will
+have peculiarly rewarded, now with _double honor_, 1 Tim. v. 17;
+hereafter with _endless glory_, 1 Pet. v. 4.
+
+3. Discouragements, deterring from ill-governing, are also specially
+applied to Christ's officers, whether by way of dispraise or threats,
+&c., Rev. ii. 12, 14-16, and ver. 18, 20.
+
+Now if, 1. Rules for church government, 2. Encouragements in reference
+to well ruling, and, 3. Discouragements in reference to ill-ruling, be
+so peculiarly directed by the word of Christ to his own officers, we may
+conclude,
+
+Therefore the officers of Christ in the Church are the only subjects of
+power from Christ for the government of his Church.
+
+_Object_. But the church[99] of a particular congregation fully
+furnished with officers, and rightly walking in judgment and peace, is
+the first subject of all church authority, as appears from the example
+of the church of Corinth in the excommunication of the incestuous
+Corinthian, 1 Cor. v. 1-5; wherein it appears that the presbytery alone
+did not put forth this power, but the brethren also concurred in this
+sentence with some act of power, (viz. a negative power:) for, 1. The
+reproof, for not proceeding to sentence sooner, is directed to the whole
+Church, as well as to the presbytery. They are all blamed for not
+mourning, &c., 1 Cor. v. 2. 2. The command is directed to them all, when
+they are gathered together, (_and what is that but to a church
+meeting?_) to proceed against him, 1 Cor. v. 4, 13. 3. He declareth this
+act of theirs, in putting him out, to be a judicial act, ver. 12. 4.
+Upon his repentance the apostle speaketh to the brethren, as well as to
+their elders, to forgive him, 2 Cor. ii. 4-10. Consequently, Christ's
+church officers are not the peculiar, immediate, or only subject of the
+power of the keys, as hath been asserted.
+
+_Ans_. I. As for the main proposition asserted in this objection,
+something hath been formerly laid down to show the unsoundness of it.
+(See chap. X. near the end.) Whereunto thus much may be superadded. 1.
+What necessity is there that a particular congregation should be fully
+furnished with officers, to make it the subject of all church authority?
+For deacons are one sort of officers, yet what authority is added to the
+Church by the addition of deacons, whose office it is only to serve
+tables, Acts vi., not to rule the Church? or if the Church have no
+deacons, as once it had not, Acts i. 2, and before that, all the time
+from Christ, wherein is she maimed or defective in her authority? 2. If
+the Church, fully furnished with officers, yet walk not in judgment and
+peace, then in such case it is granted, that a particular congregation
+is not the first subject of all church authority. Then a congregation
+that walks in error or heresy, or passion, or profaneness, all which are
+contrary to judgment; and that walks in divisions, schisms, contentions,
+&c., which are contrary to peace, loseth her authority. Stick but close
+to this principle, and you will quickly lay the church authority of most
+independent congregations in the dust. But who shall determine whether
+they walk in judgment and peace, or not? Not themselves; for that were
+to make parties judges in their own case, and would produce a very
+partial sentence. Not sister churches; for all particular churches,
+according to them, have equal authority, and none may usurp one over
+another. Not a presbyterial church, for such they do not acknowledge.
+Then it must be left undetermined, yea undeterminable, (according to
+their principles;) consequently, who can tell when they have any
+authority at all? 3. Suppose the congregation had all her officers, and
+walked in judgment and peace also, yet is she not the first subject of
+all authority; for there is a synodal authority, beyond a congregational
+authority, as confessed by Mr. Cotton.[100]
+
+II. As for the proofs of this proposition asserted here, they seem
+extremely invalid and unsatisfying. For,
+
+The instance of the church of Corinth excommunicating the incestuous
+person, will not prove the congregation to be the first subject of all
+church authority: 1. Partly, because the church of Corinth was a
+presbyterial church, having several congregations in it, (as hereafter
+is evidenced, chap. XIII.;) now to argue from the authority of a
+presbyterial church, to the authority of a congregational,
+affirmatively, is not cogent. 2. Partly, because here were but two acts
+of power mentioned in this instance, viz. casting out and receiving
+again of the incestuous person: suppose the community had joined the
+presbytery in these two acts, (which yet is not proved,) will it follow
+therefore they are the first subject of all church authority? Are not
+ordination of presbyters, determination in case of appeals, of schism,
+of heresy, &c., acts of authority above the sphere of a single
+congregation? What one congregation can be instanced in the New
+Testament that did ever execute any of these acts of authority?
+
+The reasons brought, prove not that the brethren did concur with the
+presbytery in this sentence with some act of power, as will appear
+plainly, if they be considered severally.
+
+1. Not the reproof, 1 Cor. v. 2, "And ye are puffed up, and have not
+rather mourned, that he that hath done this deed might be taken away
+from among you." Here they are blamed, that they no more laid to heart
+so vile a scandal, which should have been matter of mourning to the
+whole congregation; that they instead of mourning were puffed up,
+gloried in their shame; and that they sluggishly neglected to endeavor,
+in their sphere, his casting out. And all this blame might justly be
+charged upon the whole church, the fraternity as well as the presbytery:
+the scandal of one member should be the grief of the whole body of the
+church. What then? Hath therefore the fraternity, as well as the
+presbytery, power to cast him out? That were a miserable consequence
+indeed: the people should not only have mourned for the sin, but have
+urged the presbytery to have proceeded to sentence, and after sentence
+have withdrawn from him, in obedience to the sentence; but none of all
+these can amount to a proper act of church authority in them.
+
+2. Nor doth the apostle's command prove the people's concurrence in any
+act of power with the presbytery, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, "In the name of our
+Lord Jesus Christ, when ye are gathered together, to deliver such an one
+unto Satan," &c.: ver. 7, "Purge out therefore the old leaven," &c.: and
+ver. 13, "Therefore put away from among yourselves that wicked person."
+In which passages it is supposed the apostle directs his injunction to
+them all (as well as to their presbytery) when they come together in
+their church meeting to proceed to sentence.
+
+But against this reason, well ponder upon these considerations, viz: 1.
+It is certain beyond all controversy, that the apostle did not direct
+these commands to the whole church of Corinth absolutely, and
+universally, without all exception and limitation to any members at all:
+for by his own rule, "Women must be silent in their churches, it being a
+shame for a woman to speak in the church," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, and
+children or fools were not able to judge. Hence it is evident that a
+church absolutely and universally taken, cannot possibly be the
+ministerial ruling church which hath the authority. 2. It is evident to
+any man that is but moderately acquainted with the Scriptures, that God
+useth to direct his commands, reproofs, and other speeches to a people
+indifferently, and as it were collectively and generally, which yet he
+intends should be particularly applied and appropriated; not to all, but
+to this or that person or persons, only among such a people
+distributively and respectively; according to their respective callings,
+interests, relations, &c., as in the Old Testament God directs a command
+to the people of Israel indefinitely, and as it were collectively, to
+kill enticers to idolatry, false prophets, Deut. xiii. 9; but intended
+that the judge should sentence him, finding him guilty by witnesses. The
+Lord also directs his command to all the people, as it were
+collectively, to put out of the camp "every one that was a leper, and
+had an issue, or was defiled by the dead," Numb. v. 2; but intended that
+the priest should peculiarly take and apply this command to himself, who
+was to judge in these cases. See Lev. xiii. and elsewhere. So in the New
+Testament the apostle praised the Corinthians indefinitely, and as it
+were collectively, for "remembering him in all things, and keeping the
+ordinances as he delivered them to them," 1 Cor. xi. 2; wherein he
+intended only to commend the virtuous; and after he discommends them
+indefinitely for "coming together not for better, but for worse," 1 Cor.
+xi. 17; intending only their dispraise that were herein particularly
+delinquent among them. Again, he speaks indefinitely, and as it were
+collectively and generally, "Ye may all prophesy one by one," 1 Cor.
+xiv. 31; but he intended it only to the prophets respectively, not to
+all the members; for he saith elsewhere, "Are all prophets?" 1 Cor. xii.
+29. And writing to the churches of Galatia, Gal. i. 2, against false
+teachers he speaks thus to all those churches collectively, "A little
+leaven leaveneth the whole lump," Gal. v. 9. And, "I would they were
+even cut off who trouble you," ver. 12. Now every one of these churches
+were to apply this to themselves respectively, Independents themselves
+being judges. So here in this present case of the church of Corinth, the
+apostle directs his commands to them, as it were collectively, about
+putting away the incestuous person, which commands were particularly to
+be put in execution by the presbytery in that church in whose hands the
+church authority was.[101]
+
+Thus taking these commands, 1 Cor. v. 4, 7, 13, though directed
+indefinitely, and as it were collectively to the whole church, yet
+intended respectively to be put in execution by the presbytery in that
+church, they hold forth no concurrence of the people in any act of power
+at all with the church officers or presbytery. And it is a good note
+which Cameron[102] hath upon this place, "These things that are written
+in this epistle are so to be taken of the presbytery and of the people,
+that every one both of the presbyters and of the people, should
+interpret the command according to the reason of his office." 3. When
+the apostle reciteth the proceedings of the church in this very case of
+the incestuous person, in his 2d epistle, he saith, "Sufficient to such
+a man is this punishment" (or censure) "which was inflicted of many," 2
+Cor. ii. 6. It is very observable, he saith not, _of all_; nor _of
+many_, but _of the chief ones_, viz. the church officers, who had the
+rule and government of the church committed to them: (the article _the_
+being emphatical;) for this word translated _many_ may as well be
+translated chief, denoting worth, &c., as many, denoting number. And in
+this sense the Holy Ghost ofttimes useth this word in the New Testament;
+as for instance, "Is not the life better than meat?" Matt. vi. 25.
+"Behold, a greater than Jonah is here," Matt. xii. 41. "And behold, a
+greater than Solomon is here," Matt. xii. 41. "To love him with all the
+heart," &c., "is more than all whole burnt-offerings and sacrifices,"
+Mark xii. 33. And again, ver. 43, "This poor widow hath cast more than
+all they," &c. And thus it is frequently used to signify quality, worth,
+greatness, dignity, eminency, &c., and so it may be conveniently
+interpreted in this of the Corinthians. 4. Though all proper acts of
+authority appertain only to the church officers, yet we are not against
+the people's fraternal concurrence therewith. People may incite the
+presbytery to the acts of their office; people may be present at the
+administration of censures, &c., by the elders, as Cyprian of old would
+dispatch all public acts, the people being present; people may judge
+with a judgment of discretion, acclamation, and approbation, &c., as the
+elders judge with a judgment of power; and people afterwards may, yea
+must, withdraw from delinquents sentenced, that the sentence may attain
+its proposed end. But none of these are properly any acts of power.
+
+3. Nor doth the apostle's expression, verse 12, "Do you not judge them
+that are within?" prove that the people concur with any authoritative
+act in the elders' sentence. For, 1. This being spoken to them
+indefinitely, was to be applied distributively and respectively, only to
+them to whom it properly appertained, viz. the elders, as hath been
+showed. They only have authority to judge. 2. Such a judgment is allowed
+to the saints in church censures, as shall be allowed to them when the
+saints shall judge the world, yea angels, 1 Cor. vi. 1-3, viz. in both a
+judgment of acclamation, approbation, &c., as assessors, as people judge
+at the assizes; not in either a judgment of authority, which the judge
+and jury only do pronounce.
+
+4. Nor, finally, doth the apostle's direction to forgive the incestuous,
+being penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 4-10, which seems to be given to all, prove
+the people's concurrence with the elders in any act of power. For the
+authoritative forgiving and receiving him again, belonged only to the
+elders; the charitable forgiving, receiving, and comforting of him,
+belonged also to the people. As the judge and jury at an assizes, acquit
+by judgment of authority, the people only by judgment of discretion and
+acclamation.
+
+Thus it appears how little strength is in this instance of the church of
+Corinth, (though supposed to be the strongest ground the Independents
+have,) for the propping up of their popular government, and
+authoritative suffrage of the people.
+
+
+SECTION III.
+
+III. Having thus considered the subject of authority and power for
+church government: 1. Negatively, what it is not, viz. neither the
+political magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or whole
+body of the people, Chap. IX. and X. 2. Positively, what it is, viz.
+Christ's own officers in his church, as hath been explained and
+evidenced, Sect. 2, of this Chap. 3. Now, in the third and last place,
+we are to insist a little further upon this subject of the power, by way
+of explanation: and to inquire, seeing Christ's officers are found to be
+the subject of this power, in what sense or notion they are the subject
+and receptacle of this authority and power from Christ, whether jointly
+or severally; as solitarily and single from one another, or associated
+and incorporated into assemblies with one another; or in both respects?
+
+For resolution herein we must remember that distribution of the keys, or
+of proper ecclesiastical power, (which was briefly mentioned before in
+Part 2, Chap. III.) into that which is,
+
+1. More special and peculiar to the office of some church governors,
+which by virtue of their office they are to execute and discharge: thus
+it is peculiar to the minister's office, 1. To preach the word; compare
+these places together, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, John xx. 21-23, Rom. x. 15,
+1 Tim. v. 17, Heb. xiii. 7, 2 Tim. iv. 1, 2, &c. 2. _To dispense the
+sacraments_, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25. The word and
+sacraments were joined together in the same commission to the same
+officers, viz. the preaching presbyters, &c., as is evident in that of
+Matt. xxviii. 19.
+
+2. More general and common to the office of all church governors, as the
+power of censures, viz. admonishing, excommunicating, and absolving, and
+of such other acts as necessarily depend thereupon; wherein not only the
+preaching, but also the ruling elders are to join and contribute their
+best assistance; as may be collected from these several testimonies of
+Scripture, Matt. xviii. 17, 18, _Tell the Church_,[103] 1 Cor. v. 2-13,
+2 Cor. ii. 6-12, compared with Rom. xii. 8, 1 Cor. xii. 28, and 1 Tim.
+v. 17.
+
+Now these officers of Christ, viz. they that labor in the word and
+doctrine, and the ruling elders, are the subject of this power of
+jurisdiction as they are united in one body, hence called a Church,
+Matth. xviii. 18, viz. the governing or ruling church; for no other can
+there be meant; and presbytery,[104] i.e. a society or assembly of
+presbyters together, 1 Tim. iv. 14.
+
+The presbyters, elderships, or assemblies wherein these officers are
+united and associated, are of two sorts, viz: 1. The lesser assemblies,
+consisting of the ministers and ruling elders in each single
+congregation; which, for distinction's sake, is styled the
+congregational eldership. 2. The greater assemblies, consisting of
+church governors sent from several churches and united into one body,
+for governing of all these churches within their own bounds, whence
+their members were sent. These greater assemblies are either
+presbyterial or synodal. 1. Presbyterial, consisting of the ministers
+and elders of several adjacent or neighboring single congregations, or
+parish churches, ruling those several congregations in common; this kind
+of assembly is commonly called the presbytery, or, for distinction's
+sake, the classical presbytery, i.e. the presbytery of such a rank of
+churches. 2. Synodal, consisting of ministers and elders, sent from
+presbyterial assemblies, to consult and conclude about matters of common
+and great concernment to the church within their limits. Such was that
+assembly mentioned, Acts xv. These synodal assemblies are either, 1. Of
+ministers and elders from several presbyteries within one province,
+called provincial. 2. Or of ministers and elders from several provinces
+within one nation, called therefore national. Or, 3. Of ministers and
+elders from the several nations within the whole Christian world,
+therefore called ecumenical: for all which assemblies, congregational,
+presbyterial, and synodal, and the subordination of the lesser to the
+greater assemblies respectively, there seems to be good ground and
+divine warrant in the word of God, as (God willing) shall be evinced in
+the xii., xiii., xiv., and xv. chapters following.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII.
+
+_Of the Divine Right of Congregational Elderships or Kirk Sessions, for
+the government of the Church._
+
+
+Touching congregational elderships, consisting of the ministers and
+ruling elders of the several single congregations, which are called the
+lesser assemblies, or smaller presbyteries, and which are to manage and
+order all ecclesiastical matters within themselves, which are of more
+immediate, private, particular concernment to their own congregations
+respectively; and consequently, of more easy dispatch, and of more daily
+use and necessity. Concerning these congregational presbyteries, we
+shall not now take into consideration either, 1. What are the members
+constituting and making up these elderships; whether ruling elders by
+divine warrant may be superadded to the pastors and teachers, and so be
+associated for the government of the congregation. For the divine right
+of the ruling elders, distinct from the preaching elder for the
+government of the church, hath been evidenced at large, Chapter XI.,
+Section 1, foregoing. And if any acts of government in the church belong
+to the ruling elder at all, sure those acts of common jurisdiction, to
+be dispatched in these least assemblies, cannot of all other be denied
+unto him. 2. Nor shall it here be discussed, what the power of
+congregational elderships is, whether it be universally extensive to all
+acts of government ecclesiastical whatsoever, without exception or
+limitation; and that independently, without subordination to the greater
+assemblies, and without all liberty of appeal thereunto in any cases
+whatsoever, though of greatest and most common concernment. Which things
+are well stated and handled by others;[105] and will in some measure be
+considered afterwards in Chapter XV.
+
+3. But the thing for the present to be insisted upon, against the
+Erastian and prelatical party, is, the divine right of authority and
+power for church government, which is in congregational presbyteries or
+elderships, in reference to their respective congregations. Take it
+thus:
+
+Elderships of single congregations vested and furnished with
+ecclesiastical authority and power to exercise and dispense acts of
+government in and over those respective congregations whereunto they do
+belong, are by divine right warrantable.
+
+For confirmation hereof the light of nature, the institution of Christ,
+the apostolical practice, and the law of necessity, seem to speak
+sufficiently unto us.
+
+1. The common light of nature thus far directeth all sorts of smaller
+societies, whether political or ecclesiastical, to compose all
+particular and more private differences and offences within themselves;
+and to decide and determine small, common, easy causes and matters, by
+smaller courts and judicatories appointed for that end: a vain thing to
+trouble more and greater assemblies with those matters, that may as well
+be determined by the lesser. It was wise and grave counsel which Jethro,
+Moses' father-in-law, gave to Moses, that he should set up over the
+people certain judges inferior to himself, who themselves might judge
+all smaller matters, but all _great and hard matters to be brought to
+Moses_, Exod. xviii. 22, 26. And our Saviour seems to insinuate, that
+the Jews had their inferior courts for inferior causes, superior
+judicatories for greater, in that gradation of his, Matt. v. 22.
+Likewise they had lesser and greater ecclesiastical assemblies, (as
+after will appear.) Now, to what use are greater and lesser
+judicatories, civil or ecclesiastical, but that the lesser and lighter
+causes may be judged in the inferior, harder and greater in the
+superior?
+
+2. The institution of Christ recorded Matt. xviii. 15-21, seems to hold
+forth notably both single congregational elderships, and their power.
+And this, whether we consider the Jewish form, unto which our Saviour
+seems to refer; or whether we observe the matter of his discourse.
+
+1. As for the Jewish form of church government (unto which our Saviour
+here seems to allude) we may observe it was managed by two, if not three
+sorts of ecclesiastical courts, viz: By the Sanhedrin, presbytery, and
+synagogue, (much like to the evangelical synod, presbytery, and
+congregational eldership since Christ.) 1. They had their
+ecclesiastical,[106] as well as their civil Sanhedrin, for high and
+difficult affairs of the church; which seems first to be constituted,
+Exod. xxiv. 1, and after decay thereof, it was restored by King
+Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xix. 8; and from this court that national church's
+reformation proceeded, Neh. vi. 13. 2. Again, it is very probable they
+had between their Sanhedrin and their synagogue a middle ecclesiastical
+court called _The Presbytery_, Luke xxii. 66, and Acts xxii. 5, _and the
+whole presbytery_. Let such as are expert in Jewish antiquities and
+their polity, consider and judge. 3. Finally, they had their lesser
+judicatories in their synagogues, or congregational meetings: for, their
+synagogues were not only for prayer, and the ministry of the word, in
+reading and expounding the Scriptures, but also for public censures,
+correcting of offences, &c., as that phrase seems to import, "And I
+punished them oft in every synagogue," Acts xxvi. 11. His facts and
+proceedings, it is true, were cruel, unjust, impious. But why inflicted
+_in every synagogue_, rather than in other places, and that by virtue of
+the _high priest's letters_, Acts ix. 1, 2; but there the Jews had
+judicatories, that inflicted public punishments upon persons
+ecclesiastically offending? Besides, we read often in the New Testament
+of the _rulers of the synagogue_, as Mark v. 35, 36, 38; Luke viii. 41,
+and xiii. 14; and of Crispus and Sosthenes the chief _rulers of the
+synagogue_, Acts xviii. 8, 17; whence is intimated to us, that these
+synagogues had their rule and government in themselves; and that this
+rule was not in one person, but in divers together; for if there were
+chief rulers, there were also inferiors subordinate unto them: but this
+is put out of doubt, in Acts xiii. 15, where after the lecture of the
+law and the prophets, _the rulers of the synagogue sent unto
+them_--_synagogue_ in the singular number, and rulers in the plural.
+Thus analogically there should be ecclesiastical rulers and governors in
+every single congregation, for the well guiding thereof. But if this
+satisfy not, add hereunto the material passages in our Saviour's speech.
+
+2. Now touching the matter of our Saviour's discourse, it makes this
+very clear to us; for by a gradation he leadeth us from admonition
+private and personal, to admonition before two or three witnesses, and
+from admonition before two or three witnesses, to the representative
+body of one church, (as the phrase _tell the church_ must here
+necessarily be interpreted,) if there the difference can be composed,
+the offence removed, or the cause ended; rather than unnecessarily
+render the offence, and so our brother's shame, more public and
+notorious. And that the presbytery or eldership of a particular
+congregation, vested with power to hear and determine such cases as
+shall be brought before them, is partly, though not only here intended,
+seems evident in the words following, which are added for the
+strengthening and confirming of what went before in ver. 17: "Verily, I
+say unto you, whatsoever ye shall bind on earth shall be bound in
+heaven; and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in
+heaven. Again, I say unto you, that if two of you shall agree on earth
+as touching any thing that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of
+my Father which is in heaven. For where two or three are gathered
+together in my name, there am I in the midst of them," Matt. xviii.
+18-20. In which passages these things are to be noted: 1. That this
+church to which the complaint is to be made, is invested with power of
+_binding_ and _loosing_, and that so authoritatively that what by this
+church shall be bound or loosed on earth shall also be bound or loosed
+in heaven, according to Christ's promise. 2. That these acts of
+_binding_ or _loosing_, may be the acts but of two or three, and
+therefore consequently of the eldership of a particular congregation;
+for where such a juridical act was dispatched by a classical presbytery,
+it is said to be done of _many_, 2 Cor. ii. 6, because that in such
+greater presbyteries there are always more than _two or three_. And
+though some do pretend, that the faults here spoken of by our Saviour in
+this place, were injuries, not scandals; and that the church here
+mentioned was not any ecclesiastical consistory, or court, but the civil
+Sanhedrin, a court of civil judicature; and yet most absurdly they
+interpret the binding and loosing here spoken of, to be doctrinal and
+declarative; not juridical and authoritative; as if the doctrinal
+binding and loosing were in the power of the civil Sanhedrin:[107] yet
+all these are but vain, groundless pretences and subterfuges, without
+substance or solidity, as the learned and diligent reader may easily
+find demonstrated by consulting these judicious authors mentioned in the
+foot note,[108] to whom for brevity's sake he is referred for
+satisfaction in these and divers such like particulars.
+
+3. The consideration of the apostolical practice, and state of the
+Church of God in those times, may serve further to clear this matter to
+us. For, 1. We sometimes read of single congregations; and as the Holy
+Ghost doth call the whole body of Christ _the Church_, Matt. xvi. 18, 1
+Cor. xii. 28, and often elsewhere; and the larger particular members of
+that body of Christ (partaking the nature of the whole, as a drop of
+water is as true water as the whole ocean) churches; as, _the church of
+Jerusalem_, Acts viii. 1; _the church of Antioch_, Acts xiii. 1; _the
+church of Ephesus_, Rev. ii. 1; _the church of Corinth_, 2 Cor. i. 1;
+(these being the greater presbyterial churches, as after will appear,
+Chap. XIII.;) so the same holy Spirit of Christ is pleased to style
+single congregations, _churches_, "Let women keep silence in the
+churches," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, i.e. in the single congregations of this one
+church of Corinth: and often mention is made of the church that is in
+such or such an _house_, as Rom. xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19; Col. iv. 15;
+Philem. 2; whether this be interpreted of the church made up only of the
+members of that family, or of the church that ordinarily did meet in
+such houses, it implies a single congregation. Now shall single
+congregations have the name and nature of churches, and shall we imagine
+they had not in them the ordinary standing church officers, viz. pastors
+and teachers, governments, or elders _ruling well_, and helps or
+deacons? or is it probable they were furnished with these officers, and
+yet the officers furnished with no power for the government of these
+single congregations at all? 2. We find that the apostles being crowned
+with such success in their ministry, as to be instruments of converting
+such multitudes to the faith as were sufficient to make up many several
+churches from time to time, did diligently take care to ordain them
+presbyters, or elders _in every church_, Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5. Now
+can it be clearly evidenced by any, that these were not ruling as well
+as preaching presbyters; especially when it appears by other places that
+the primitive churches had both? Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28;
+
+1 Tim. v. 17. Or can we think that the apostles were not as careful to
+erect elderships in several congregations, as to appoint elders?
+otherwise how could the apostles have answered it to their Lord and
+Master Jesus Christ, in leaving them without that necessary provision of
+government, which Christ himself had allowed to them, at least, in some
+cases, as hath been evidenced?
+
+4. Finally, necessity (which is a strong and cogent law) plainly and
+forcibly pleads for elderships in particular congregations endowed with
+authority and power from Christ for government within themselves. For,
+1. How wearisome a thing would it be to all congregations, should every
+one of their members be bound to attend upon synods and greater
+presbyteries, (which in the country are at a great distance from them,)
+in all ecclesiastical matters of judicature, if they had no relief in
+their own congregations? How impossible would it be for the greater
+presbyteries, not only to hear and determine all hard and weighty, but
+also all small and easy causes that would be brought before them? And
+what should become of such a congregation as either voluntarily
+transplants itself, or is accidentally cast among heathens or pagans in
+far countries, where there are no Christians or churches to join and
+associate withal, if they be denied an authoritative presbytery within
+themselves, for preventing and healing of scandals, and preserving
+themselves from destruction and ruin, which anarchy would unavoidably
+bring upon them?
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII.
+
+_Of the Divine Right of Presbyteries, (for distinction's sake called
+Classical Presbyteries,) for the government of the Church._
+
+
+Having spoken of the lesser, viz. congregational elderships, we come now
+to the greater ruling assemblies, which are either presbyterial or
+synodal. And first, of the presbyterial assembly, or classical
+presbytery, viz. an assembly made up of the presbyters of divers
+neighboring single congregations, for governing of all those respective
+congregations in common, whereunto they belong, in all matters of common
+concernment and greater difficulty in the Church. The divine warrant and
+right of this presbytery, and of the power thereof for church
+government, may principally be evidenced, 1. By the light of nature. 2.
+By the light of Scripture, which light of Scripture was followed by the
+Church in the ages after the apostolical times.
+
+I. The light of nature and right reason may discover to us (though more
+dimly) the divine warrant of the greater presbyteries, and of their
+power for the governing of the church. For,
+
+1. There are many ecclesiastical matters which are of common concernment
+to many single congregations, as trial of church officers, ordination
+and deposition of ministers, dispensation of censures, judicial
+determination of controversies, resolution in difficult cases of
+conscience, ordering of things indifferent, &c.; here the rule holds
+well, that which concerns many congregations, is not to be considered
+and determined upon only by one, but those many concerned and interested
+therein.
+
+2. Single congregational elderships stand in need of all mutual help and
+assistance one of another in the Lord, being, 1. Inwardly weak in
+themselves; too prone to be turned out of the way, Heb. xii. 13, Gal. v.
+15, and too feeble for divers great tasks: as examination and ordination
+of ministers, &c., which weakness is healed by association with others
+assisting them. 2. Outwardly opposed by many dangerous and subtle
+adversaries: men as grievous wolves, &c., Acts xx. 28-30; 2 Pet. ii. 1;
+Phil. iii. 2; 1 Tim. iv. 1-7; Eph. iv. 14; devils, 1 Pet. v. 8. In such
+cases two are better than one: "Wo to them that are alone; if they fall,
+who shall take them up?"
+
+3. Such intricate cases may fall out as cannot be determined and settled
+by the eldership of a single congregation. As for instance, some member
+in the congregation may conceive himself so wronged by the eldership
+thereof, that he cannot submit to their unjust sentence; shall he not in
+such case have liberty of appeal from them? If not, then he is left
+without a remedy, (which is the calamity of the Independent government.)
+If he may, whether shall he appeal regularly but to an associated
+presbytery? therefore there must be such a presbytery to appeal unto.
+Again, there may be a controversy betwixt the whole congregation, and
+their presbytery; yea, the presbytery itself may be equally divided
+against itself; yea, one single congregation may have a great and
+weighty contest with another sister congregation, (all single
+congregations being equal in power and authority, none superior, none
+inferior to others.) Now, in these and such like cases, suppose both
+parties be resolute and wilful, and will not yield to any bare moral
+suasion or advice without some superior authority, what healing is left
+in such cases, without the assistance of an authoritative presbytery,
+wherein the whole hath power to regulate all the parts?
+
+4. Single congregations, joined in vicinity and neighborhood to one
+another, should avoid divisions, (which are destructive to all
+societies, as well ecclesiastical as civil,) and maintain peace and
+unity among themselves, (which is conservative to all societies;)
+neither of which, without associated presbyteries, can be firmly and
+durably effected. Both which ought with all diligence to be endeavored.
+For, 1. Peace and unity in the Church are in themselves amiable, and
+ought to be promoted, Psal. cxxxiii. 1, &c.; Eph. iv. 3, 13; 1 Cor. i.
+10. 2. Schisms and divisions are simply evil, and all appearance, cause,
+and occasion thereof, ought carefully to be avoided, 1 Cor. xii. 25;
+Rom. xvi. 17; 1 Thes. iv. 22. 3. All congregations are but as so many
+branches, members, parts of that one church, one body, one family, one
+commonwealth, one kingdom, whereof Christ is Head, Lord, and King; and
+therefore they should communicate together, and harmoniously incorporate
+and associate with one another, (so far as may be,) for the common good,
+peace, unity, and edification of all. See 1 Cor. xii. 12-29; Eph. ii.
+12-16, and iv. 12-14, and v. 23-25.
+
+II. The light of Scripture will hold forth the divine warrant of greater
+presbyteries and their power for church government, far more clearly
+than the light of nature. Forasmuch as we find in the Scriptures a
+pattern of these greater presbyteries, and of their presbyterial
+government over divers single congregations in common in the primitive
+apostolical churches. For the greater evidence and perspicuity hereof,
+take this proposition:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern of
+presbyterial government in common over divers single congregations in
+one Church, for a rule to his Church in all after ages. For confirmation
+hereof, there are chiefly these three positions to make good, which are
+comprised in this proposition, viz: 1. That there is in the word a
+pattern of divers single congregations in one church. 2. That there is
+in the word a pattern of one presbyterial government in common over
+divers single congregations in one church. 3. Finally, that the pattern
+of the said presbyterial government, is for a rule to the churches of
+Christ in all after ages.
+
+
+POSITION I.
+
+That there is in the word a pattern of divers single congregations in
+one church, may be plentifully evinced by four instances of churches,
+(to mention no more,) viz. the churches of Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus,
+and Corinth. Touching which four these two things are clear in the
+Scripture, viz: 1. That every of them was one church. 2. That in every
+one of these churches there were more congregations than one. Both which
+will fully evince a pattern of divers single congregations in one church
+held forth in the word.
+
+1. The former of these, viz. That every one of these was one church,
+may be proved by induction of particulars. 1. All the believers in
+Jerusalem were one church; hence they are often comprised under the word
+church, of the singular number:--"Against the church which was at
+Jerusalem," Acts viii. 1. "Then tidings of these things came unto the
+ears of the church which was in Jerusalem," Acts ii. 22. "And when they
+were come to Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the
+apostles and elders," Acts xv. 4. 2. All the believers in Antioch were
+one church. "Now there were in the church that was at Antioch, certain
+prophets," Acts xiii. 1. "And when he had found him, he brought him to
+Antioch. And it came to pass, that a whole year they assembled
+themselves with the church, and taught much people, and the disciples
+were first called Christians in Antioch," Acts xi. 26. 3. All the
+believers in Ephesus were one church: "And from Miletus he sent to
+Ephesus, and called the elders of the church," Acts xx. 17. And after he
+gives them this charge, "Take heed therefore to yourselves, and to all
+the flock, over which the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed
+the church of God," ver. 28; all were but _one flock, one church_. "Unto
+the angel of the church of Ephesus, write," Rev. ii. 1. 4. All the
+believers in Corinth were one church, and comprised under that singular
+word, church: "Unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 1 Cor. i. 2.
+"Paul, an apostle of Jesus Christ, by the will of God, and Timothy our
+brother, unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 2 Cor. i. 1. Thus
+in all these four instances it is clear beyond all contradiction, that
+they were every of them respectively one church.
+
+The latter of these, viz. that these primitive apostolical churches of
+Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, were not every of them
+severally and respectively only one single congregation, (as some
+imagine,) but consisted every of them of more congregations than one.
+This shall be manifested in these four churches severally, as followeth:
+
+The church of Jerusalem in Judea contained in it more congregations than
+one. This may be convincingly evidenced divers ways, particularly from,
+1. The multitude of believers in that church. 2. The multitude of church
+officers there. 3. The variety of languages there. 4. The manner of the
+Christians' public meetings in those primitive times, both in the church
+of Jerusalem, and in other churches.
+
+1. From the multitude of believers in the church of Jerusalem. For it is
+palpably evident to any impartial reader that will not wilfully shut his
+eyes, and subject his reason unto the groundless dictates of men,
+against the clear light of the Scripture, that there were more believers
+in the church of Jerusalem, than could ordinarily meet in one
+congregation, to partake of all the ordinances of Christ.
+
+And this may fully appear by these many instances following. 1. Christ
+after his resurrection, and before his ascension, "was seen of above
+five hundred brethren at once," 1 Cor. xv. 6. 2. "After that of James,
+then of all the apostles," ver. 7. 3. At the election of Matthias, and
+before Christ's ascension, there were disciples together, the "company
+of their names together was as it were one hundred and twenty," Acts i.
+15. 4. At Peter's sermon, "they that gladly received his word, were
+baptized. And that day were added about three thousand souls," Acts ii.
+1, 4. 5. And "The Lord added to the Church daily such as should be
+saved," ver. 27. 6. Afterwards at another of Peter's sermons, "Many of
+them that heard the word believed; and the number of the men was about
+five thousand," Acts iv. 4. 7. After that, "Believers were the more
+added to the Lord, multitudes both of men and women," Acts v. 14. 8.
+Furthermore, the disciples multiplying, and the work of the ministry
+thereupon much increasing, the apostles were necessitated to appoint
+seven deacons for serving of tables, that they might wholly "give
+themselves to the ministry of the word and prayer," Acts vi. 1 to 7;
+whence some have thought, that there were seven congregations in
+Jerusalem, a deacon for every one. Certainly there were rather more than
+fewer, (saith the author of the Assertion of the Government of the
+Church of Scotland,[109]) though we cannot determine how many. However
+this, the Holy Ghost clearly testifieth that "The word of God increased,
+and the number of the disciples in Jerusalem multiplied greatly." 9.
+"And a great company of the priests became obedient to the faith," Acts
+vi. 7; and probably the example of the priests drew on multitudes to the
+Gospel. All these forementioned were in a short time converted, and
+became members of this one church of Jerusalem, and that before the
+dispersion occasioned by the persecution of the Church, Acts viii. 1.
+Now should we put all these together, viz. both the number of believers
+expressed in particular, which is 8,620, and the multitudes so often
+expressed in the general, (which, for aught we know, might be many more
+than the former,) what a vast multitude of believers was there in
+Jerusalem! and how impossible was it for them to meet all together in
+one congregation, to partake of all the ordinances of Jesus Christ! 10.
+In like manner, after the dispersion forementioned, the word so
+prospered, and the disciples brought into the faith by it, so
+multiplied, that it was still far more impossible for all the believers
+in the church of Jerusalem to meet in one congregation to partake of
+all the ordinances of Christ, than before. For it is said, "Then had the
+churches rest throughout all Judea" (and the church of Jerusalem in
+Judea was doubtless one of those churches) "and Galilee and Samaria, and
+were edified; and walking in the fear of the Lord, and comfort of the
+Holy Ghost, were multiplied." 11. Again, "the word of the Lord increased
+and multiplied," Acts xii. 24. 12. Furthermore, when Paul, with other
+disciples, his fellow-travellers, came to Jerusalem, and "declared to
+James and the elders, what things God had wrought by his ministry among
+the Gentiles--They glorified the Lord, and said unto him, Thou seest,
+brother, how many" myriads (or ten thousands) "of believing Jews there
+are, and they are all zealous of the law"--Acts xxi. 20. Our translation
+seems herein very defective, rendering it how many thousands; whereas it
+should be, according to the Greek, how many ten thousands: and these
+myriads seem to be in the church of Jerusalem, seeing it is said of
+them, ver. 22, "The multitude must needs come together, for they will
+hear that thou art come." Now considering this emphatical expression,
+not only _thousands_, but _ten thousand_: not _only ten thousand_ in the
+singular number, but _ten thousands, myriads_, in the plural number: nor
+only _myriads, ten thousands_, in the plural number, but _how many ten
+thousands_; we cannot in reason imagine but there were at least three
+ten thousands, viz: thirty thousand believers, and how all they should
+meet together in one congregation for all ordinances, let the reader
+judge. Thus far of the proof, from the multitude of believers in the
+church of Jerusalem.
+
+_Except_. But the five thousand mentioned Acts iv. 4, are no new number
+added to the three thousand, but the three thousand included in the five
+thousand, as Calvin and Beza think.
+
+_Ans_. 1. Then it is granted that five thousand one hundred and twenty,
+besides an innumerable addition of converts, were in Jerusalem; which if
+such a number, and multitudes besides, could for edification meet in one
+place, to partake of all the ordinances, let the reader judge.
+
+2. Though Calvin and Beza think the three thousand formerly converted to
+be included in this number of five thousand, Acts iv. 4, yet divers both
+ancient and modern interpreters are of another mind, as Augustine. There
+came unto the body of the Lord in number three thousand faithful men;
+also by another miracle wrought, there came other five thousand.[110]
+These five thousand are altogether diverse from the three thousand
+converted at the first sermon: so Lorinus, Aretius, and divers others.
+
+3. Besides a great number of testimonies, there are reasons to induce us
+to believe, that the three thousand are not included in the five
+thousand, viz: 1. As the three thousand mentioned in Acts ii. 41, did
+not comprehend the one hundred and twenty mentioned Acts i. 15, so it
+holds in proportion that the three thousand mentioned there, are not
+comprehended here in Acts iv. 4. Besides, 2. This sermon was not by
+intention to the church, or numbers already converted, but by occasion
+of the multitude flocking together to behold the miracle Peter and John
+wrought on the "man that was lame from his mother's womb;" as Acts iii.
+10-12; so that 'tis more than probable that the five thousand mentioned
+Acts iv. 4, are a number superadded besides the three thousand already
+converted.
+
+_Except_. But suppose such a number as three thousand, and afterwards
+five thousand were converted in Jerusalem, yet these remained not
+constant members of that Church, for the three thousand were not
+dwellers at Jerusalem, but strangers who came out of all countries to
+keep the feast of Pentecost: yea, Acts ii. 9, they are said expressly to
+be "dwellers of Mesopotamia, Cappadocia," &c., and so might erect
+churches where they came.
+
+_Ans_. 1. 'Tis said, Acts ii. 14, "Peter standing" (when he began to
+preach this sermon wherein the three thousand were converted) "said, Ye
+men of Judea, and all ye that dwell at Jerusalem, hearken to my voice;"
+intimating that these he preached to dwelt at Jerusalem.
+
+But grant that some of these men that heard Peter's sermon were formerly
+dwellers in Mesopotamia and Cappadocia, what hinders but that they might
+be now dwellers at Jerusalem?
+
+3. The occasion of their coming up to Jerusalem at this time was not
+only the observation of the feast of Pentecost, (which lasted but a
+day,) but also the great expectation that the people of the Jews then
+had of the appearance of the Messiah in his kingdom, as we may collect
+from Luke xix. 11, where it is said, "They thought the kingdom of God
+should immediately appear;" so that now they might choose to take up
+their dwellings at Jerusalem, and not return, as they had been wont, at
+the end of their usual feasts.
+
+4. The Holy Ghost makes mention that in the particular places mentioned,
+ver. 9, 10, that of all those nations there were some that dwelt at
+Jerusalem; read Acts ii. 5, "There were dwelling at Jerusalem Jews,
+devout men out of every nation under heaven;" if out of every nation,
+then out of those nations there specified; and even there dwelling at
+Jerusalem. 5. Those who were scattered by reason of persecution into
+Judea and Samaria, and other parts of the world, did not erect new
+churches, but were still members of that one church in Jerusalem; so
+saith the Scripture expressly, that "they" (of the church of Jerusalem)
+"were all scattered abroad throughout the region of Judea and Samaria,"
+Acts viii. 1.
+
+_Except_. Although it should be granted that before the dispersion
+mentioned Acts viii. 1, 2, the number was so great that they could not
+meet together in one place, yet the persecution so wasted and scattered
+them all, that there were no more left than might meet in one
+congregation?
+
+_Ans_. After the dispersion there were more believers in Jerusalem than
+could meet together in one place for all acts of worship, as appears by
+Acts ix. 31, "The churches had rest throughout all Judea," &c., "and
+were multiplied;" Acts xii. 24, "The word of God grew and multiplied;"
+and Acts xxi. 20, James saith of the believers of this church, "how many
+thousands of the Jews there are which believe, and are zealous of the
+law;" or, as it is in the Greek, thou seest how many _ten thousands_
+there are of the Jews which believe; this text will evince, that there
+were many thousands in the church of Jerusalem after the dispersion, as
+hath been observed: and if this number were not more after the
+dispersion than could meet together to partake of all ordinances, let
+the reader judge.
+
+_Except_. But the text saith expressly, all were scattered except the
+apostles.
+
+_Ans_. _All_ must be understood either of all the believers, or all the
+teachers and church officers in the church of Jerusalem, except
+believers; but it cannot be understood of all the believers that they
+were scattered: and therefore it must be understood that all the
+teachers and church officers were scattered, except the apostles. That
+all the believers were not scattered will easily appear: For, 1. 'Tis
+said that Paul broke into houses, "haling men and women, committed them
+to prison," ver. 3, and this he did in Jerusalem, Acts xxvi. 10;
+therefore all could not be scattered. 2. "They that were scattered,
+preached the word," ver. 4, which all the members, men and women, could
+not do; therefore by all that were scattered must of necessity be meant,
+not the body of believers in the church, but only the officers of the
+church. 3. If all the believers were scattered, to what end did the
+apostles tarry at Jerusalem--to preach to the walls? this we cannot
+imagine.
+
+_Except_. But can any think the teachers were scattered, and the
+ordinary believers were not, except we suppose the people more
+courageous to stay by it than their teachers?
+
+_Ans_. It is hard to say, that those that are scattered in a
+persecution, are less courageous than those that stay and suffer. In the
+time of the bishops' tyranny, many of the Independent ministers did
+leave this kingdom, while others of their brethren did abide by it,
+endured the heat and burden of the day, "had trial of cruel mockings,
+bonds and imprisonments:" now the Independent ministers that left us,
+would think we did them wrong, should we say that they were less
+courageous than those that stayed behind, enduring the hot brunt of
+persecution.
+
+II. From the multitude of church officers in Jerusalem, it may further
+appear, that there were more congregations than one in the church of
+Jerusalem. For there were many apostles, prophets, and elders in this
+church of Jerusalem, as is plain, if we consider these following
+passages in the Acts of the Apostles. After Christ's ascension, "the
+eleven apostles returned to Jerusalem, and continued in prayer and
+supplication," Acts i. 12-14. Matthias chosen by lot, was also "numbered
+with the eleven apostles," Acts i. 26. "And when the day of Pentecost
+was fully come, they were all with one accord in one place," Acts ii. 1.
+"Peter standing up with the eleven, lift up his voice and said," Acts
+ii. 14. "They were pricked in their heart, and said to Peter and to the
+rest of the apostles, Men and brethren, what shall we do?" Acts ii. 37.
+"And the same day there were added about three thousand souls, and they
+continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine and fellowship, and in
+breaking of bread, and in prayers," Acts ii. 42. "And with great power
+gave the apostles witness of the resurrection of the Lord Jesus," Acts
+iv. 33. "As many as were possessors of lands or houses, sold them, and
+brought the prices of the things that were sold, and laid them down at
+the apostles' feet," Acts iv. 34, 35, 37. "Then the twelve called the
+multitude of the disciples to them," Acts vi. 2. "Now, when the apostles
+which were at Jerusalem," Acts viii. 14. "They determined that Paul and
+Barnabas and certain other of them should go up to Jerusalem unto the
+apostles and elders about this question. And when they were come to
+Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the apostles and
+elders; and the apostles and elders came together," Acts xv. 2, 4, 6,
+22, 23; xi. 30. And "in those days came prophets from Jerusalem unto
+Antioch," Acts xi. 27. In all which places, the multitude of apostles,
+elders, and prophets in this church of Jerusalem is evident. And it is
+further observable, that the apostles devolved the serving of tables
+upon the seven deacons, that they might wholly "give themselves to
+prayer and the ministry of the word," Acts vi, 2; which needed not, nor
+would there have been full employment for the apostles, if there had
+not been divers congregations in that one church of Jerusalem.
+
+_Except_. 'Tis true, the apostles were for a time in Jerusalem, yet when
+in Judea or elsewhere any received the gospel, the apostles went abroad
+to erect other churches.
+
+_Ans_. Touching the apostles going abroad, there can be given but one
+instance, Acts viii. 14, where the whole twelve went not forth, but only
+two were sent, viz. Peter and John: but suppose it were granted, that
+upon some special occasions the apostles went out from Jerusalem, can it
+be imagined that the apostles' ordinary abode would be at Jerusalem, to
+attend only one single congregation, as if that would fill all their
+hands with work?
+
+_Except_. The apostles were well employed when they met in an upper
+room, and had but one hundred and twenty for their flock, and this for
+forty days together; now if they stayed in Jerusalem when they had but
+one hundred and twenty, and yet had their hands filled with work, the
+presence of the apostles argues not more congregations in Jerusalem than
+could meet in one place for all acts of worship.
+
+_Ans_. 1. From Christ's ascension (immediately after which they went up
+to the upper chamber) to the feast of Pentecost, there were but ten
+days, not forty; so that there is one mistake.
+
+2. During that time betwixt Christ's ascension and the feast of
+Pentecost, (whether ten or forty days is not very material,) the
+apostles were especially taken up in prayer and supplication, waiting
+for the promise of the Spirit to qualify them for the work of the
+ministry: now, because the twelve apostles, before they had received the
+extraordinary gifts of the Spirit, did continue for a short time in
+Jerusalem with a small number in prayer, will it therefore follow that
+after they had received these extraordinary gifts, that they were bound
+up within the limits of one single congregation?
+
+_Except_. The argument that there were many teachers in Jerusalem,
+proves not that there were more congregations in Jerusalem than one,
+because there were then many gifted men, which were not officers, which
+yet occasionally instructed others, as Aquila did Apollos; therefore it
+seems they were only gifted persons, not officers.
+
+_Ans_. 1. Grant that in those times there were many gifted men, not in
+office, which might occasionally instruct others, as Aquila did Apollos;
+yet it is further to be noted, that,
+
+2. This instructing must be either private, or public; if private only,
+then the objection is of no force, (because these teachers instructed
+publicly;) if in public, then if this objection were of force, it would
+follow, that women might instruct publicly, because Priscilla, as well
+as Aquila, instructed Apollos.
+
+3. The current of expositors say, that the seventy disciples were at
+Jerusalem among the one hundred and twenty, Acts i. 16, who were
+teachers by office.
+
+III. From the variety of languages among the disciples at Jerusalem, it
+is evident there were more congregations than one in that one church:
+the diversity of languages among them is plainly mentioned in divers
+places, "And there were dwelling at Jerusalem, Jews, devout men out of
+every nation under heaven. Now every man heard them speak in his own
+language," &c., Acts ii. 5, 8-12. Now, of those that heard this variety
+of languages, and Peter's sermon thereupon, "They that gladly received
+his word, were baptized, and the same day there were added about three
+thousand souls," Acts ii. 41, which diversity of languages necessitated
+those members of the church of Jerusalem to enjoy the ordinances in
+divers distinct congregations in their own language. And that they might
+so do, the Spirit furnished the apostles, &c., with diversity of
+languages, which diversity of languages were as well for edification of
+them within the Church, as for a sign to them that were without.
+
+_Except_. Though the Jews being dispersed were come in from other
+countries, yet they were all generally learned, and understood the
+Hebrew tongue, the language of their own nation, so that diversity of
+tongues proves not, that of necessity there must be distinct places to
+meet in.
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is easier said than proved, that the Jews were so generally
+skilled in the Hebrew tongue, when, while they were scattered in Media
+and Parthia, and other places, they had no universities or schools of
+learning. Besides, it is not to be forgotten, that the proper language
+or dialect in those days in use among the Jews was Syriac; as appears by
+divers instances of Syriac words in the New Testament, as of the Jews'
+own terms: Acts i. 19, which "in their proper tongue, is called
+Aceldama;" John xix. 13. 17, _Gabbatha, Golgotha_, &c.; Mark xv. 34,
+_Eloi, Eloi, lama-sabachthani_; with divers other pure Syriac terms.
+Grant they did; yet,
+
+2. There were in Jerusalem proselytes also, Romans, Cappadocians,
+Cretians, and Arabians, Acts ii. 10, 11; how could they be edified in
+the faith, if only one congregation, where nothing but Hebrew was
+spoken, met in Jerusalem; if so be there were not other congregations
+for men of other languages, that understood not the Hebrew tongue?
+
+IV. From the manner of Christians' public meetings in those primitive
+times, both in the church of Jerusalem and in other churches. It is
+plain that the multitudes of Christians in Jerusalem, and other
+churches, could not possibly meet all together in one single
+congregation, inasmuch as they had no public temples, or capacious
+places for worship and partaking of all ordinances, (as we now have,)
+but private places, _houses, chambers_, or _upper rooms_, (as the
+unsettled state of the Church and troublesomeness of those times would
+permit,) which in all probability were of no great extent, nor any way
+able to contain in them so many thousand believers at once, as there
+were: "They met from house to house, to break bread," Acts ii. 46. "In
+an upper room the apostles with the women and brethren continued in
+prayer and supplication," Acts i. 12-14. We read of their meetings in
+the _house of Mary_, Acts xii. 12. In the school _of one Tyrannus_, Acts
+xix. 9. In an _upper chamber at Troas_, Acts xx. 8. In _Paul's own hired
+house_ at Rome, Acts xxviii. 30, 31. In the _house of Aquila and
+Priscilla_, where the church met, therefore called the _church in his
+house_, Rom. xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19. In the _house of Nimphas_, Col. iv.
+15, and in the _house of Archippus_, Philem. 2. This was their manner of
+public meetings in the apostles' times: which also continued in the next
+ages, as saith Eusebius,[111] till, by indulgence of succeeding
+emperors, they had large churches, houses of public meeting erected for
+them.
+
+To sum up all: 1. There were in the church at Jerusalem greater numbers
+of believers than could possibly meet at once to partake of all Christ's
+ordinances. 2. There were more church officers than one single
+congregation could need, or than could be fully employed therein, unless
+we will say, that they preached but seldom. 3. There was such diversity
+of languages among them, that they must needs rank themselves into
+several congregations, according to their languages, else he that spoke
+in one language to hearers of many several languages, would be a
+barbarian to them, and they to him. 4. Finally, their places of ordinary
+meeting were private, of small extent, incapable of containing so many
+thousands at once as there were believers; and by all these, how evident
+is it, that there must needs be granted that there were more
+congregations than one in this one church of Jerusalem!
+
+II. The church of Antioch, in Syria, consisted also of more
+congregations than one. This appears,
+
+1. From the multitude of believers at Antioch. For, 1. After the
+dispersion upon Saul's persecution, _the Lord Jesus was preached at
+Antioch, and a great number believed_, &c., Acts xi. 21. 2. Upon
+_Barnabas's_ preaching there, _much people was added to the Lord_, Acts
+xi. 24. 3. _Barnabas_ and _Saul_ for a year together taught much people
+there, and disciples there so mightily multiplied, that there Christ's
+disciples first received the eminent and famous denomination of
+CHRISTIANS, and so were and still are called throughout the whole world,
+Acts xi. 25, 26.
+
+2. From the multitudes of prophets and preachers that ministered at
+Antioch. For, 1. Upon the dispersion of the Jews at Jerusalem, _divers
+of them (being men of Cyprus and Cyrene) preached the Lord Jesus at
+Antioch_, Acts xi. 20; here must be three or four preachers at least,
+otherwise they would not be _men of Cyprus and Cyrene_. 2. After this
+_Barnabas_ was sent to preach at Antioch; there is a fifth, Acts xi.
+22-24. 3. _Barnabas_ finds so much work at _Antioch_, that he goes to
+Tarsus to bring _Saul_ thither to help him; there is a sixth, ver. 25,
+26. 4. Besides these, _there came prophets from Jerusalem to Antioch in
+those days_; there are at least two more, viz. eight in all, Acts xi.
+27, 28. 4. Further, besides _Barnabas_ and _Saul_, three more teachers
+are named, viz. _Simon called Niger, Lucius of Cyrene, and Manaen_, Acts
+xii. 1-3. 6. Yea, "Paul and Barnabas continued in Antioch, teaching and
+preaching the word of the Lord, with many others also," Acts xv. 35. Now
+sum up all, what a multitude of believers, and what a college of
+preachers were here at Antioch! How is it possible that all these
+preachers should bustle themselves about one congregation (and doubtless
+they abhorred idleness) in dispensing the ordinances of Christ to them
+only? or how could so many members meet in one single congregation at
+once, ordinarily to partake of all ordinances?
+
+III. The church of Ephesus (_in Asia Minor_, Acts xix. 22) had in it
+more congregations than one: For,
+
+1. The number of prophets and preachers at Ephesus were many. _Paul_
+continued there _two years and three months_, Acts xix. 8, 10; and
+_Paul_ settled there about twelve _disciples who prophesied_, Acts xix.
+1, 6, 7. And how should these thirteen ministers be employed, if there
+were not many congregations? Compare also Acts xx. 17, 28, 36, 37, where
+it is said of the bishops of Ephesus, that "Paul kneeled down and prayed
+with them all, and they all wept sore." Here is a good number implied.
+
+2. The gift of tongues also was given unto all these twelve prophets,
+Acts xix. 6, 7. To what end, if they had not several congregations of
+several languages, to speak in these several tongues unto them?
+
+3. The multitude of believers must needs be great at Ephesus: For, 1.
+Why should _Paul_, who had universal commission to plant churches in all
+the world, stay _above two years together_ at Ephesus if no more had
+been converted there than to make up one single congregation? Acts xix.
+8, 10. 2. During this space, "all that dwelt in Asia," usually meeting
+at Ephesus for worship, "heard the word of the Lord, both Jews and
+Greeks," Acts xix. 10. 3. At the knowledge of _Paul's_ miracles, "fear
+fell upon all the Jews and Greeks dwelling at Ephesus, and the name of
+the Lord Jesus was magnified," Acts xix. 17. 4. _Many_ of the believers
+_came and confessed, and showed their deeds_, ver. 18, whereby is
+intimated that more did believe than did thus. 5. "Many also of them
+that used curious arts brought their books together, and burned them
+before all men, and they counted the price of them, and found it fifty
+thousand pieces of silver," (this they would never have done publicly if
+the major part, or at least a very great and considerable part of the
+city, had not embraced the faith, that city being so furiously zealous
+in their superstition and idolatry,) "so mightily grew the word of God,
+and prevailed," Acts xix. 19, 20. 6. _Paul_ testifies that at Ephesus _a
+great door and effectual was open unto him_, viz. a most advantageous
+opportunity of bringing in a mighty harvest of souls to Christ, 1 Cor.
+xvi. 8, 9. Put all together, 1. The number of prophets and preachers; 2.
+The gifts of tongues conferred upon those prophets; and, 3. The
+multitude of believers which so abounded at Ephesus: how is it possible
+to imagine, upon any solid ground, that there was no more but one single
+congregation in the church of Ephesus?
+
+IV. The church of Corinth in Græcia comprised in it also more
+congregations than one, as may be justly concluded from, 1. The
+multitude of believers. 2. The plenty of ministers. 3. The diversity of
+tongues and languages. 4. And the plurality of churches at Corinth. Let
+all these be well compared together.
+
+1. From the multitude of believers. There appears to be a greater number
+of believers at Corinth than could all at once meet together to partake
+of all the ordinances of Christ: For, 1. At Paul's first coming to
+Corinth, and at his first sermon preached in the house of Justus, it is
+said, "And Crispus, the chief ruler of the synagogue, believed on the
+Lord, and all his house, and many of the Corinthians hearing, believed
+and were baptized," Acts xviii. 1, 7, 8. Here is Crispus and all his
+house, (which probably was very great, he being the chief ruler of the
+synagogue,) and _many of the Corinthians, believing_; an excellent
+first-fruits; for who can justly say but Paul at his first sermon
+converted so many as might be sufficient to make up one single
+congregation? 2. Immediately after this (Paul having shook his raiment
+against the Jews, who, contrary to his doctrine, opposed themselves and
+blasphemed; and having said unto them, "Your blood be upon your own
+heads, I am clean: from henceforth I will go unto the Gentiles," Acts
+xviii. 6) the Lord comforts Paul against the obstinacy of the Jews by
+the success his ministry should have among the Gentiles in the city of
+Corinth: "Then spake the Lord to Paul in the night by a vision, Be not
+afraid, but speak, and hold not thy peace: for I am with thee, and no
+man shall set on thee to hurt thee: for I have much people in this
+city," Acts xviii. 9, 10. _Much people_ belonging to God, according to
+his secret predestination, over and besides those that already were
+actually his by effectual vocation. And _much people_, in respect of the
+Jews that opposed and blasphemed, (who were exceeding many,) otherwise
+it would have been but small comfort to Paul if by _much people_ should
+be meant no more than could meet at once in one small single
+congregation. 3. Paul himself continued at Corinth "a year and six
+months teaching the word of God among them," Acts xviii. 11. To what end
+should Paul the apostle of the Gentiles stay so long in one place, if he
+had not seen the Lord's blessing upon his ministry, to bring into the
+faith many more souls than would make up one congregation, having so
+much work to do far and near? 4. "They that believed at Corinth were
+baptized," Acts xviii. 8. (Baptism admitted them into that one body of
+the Church, 1 Cor. xii. 13.) Some were baptized by Paul, (though but few
+in comparison of the number of believers among them: compare Acts xviii.
+8, with 1 Cor. 14-17,) the generality consequently were baptized by
+other ministers there, and that in other congregations wherein Paul
+preached not, as well as in such wherein Paul preached; it being
+unreasonable to deny the being of divers congregations for the word and
+sacraments to be dispensed in, himself dispensing the sacrament of
+baptism to so few.
+
+2. From the plenty of ministers and preachers in the church of Corinth,
+it is evident it was a presbyterial church, and not only a single
+congregation; for to what end should there be many laborers in a little
+harvest, many teachers over one single congregation? &c. That there were
+many preachers at Corinth is plain: For, 1. Paul himself was the
+master-builder there that laid the foundation of that church, 1 Cor.
+iii. 10, their spiritual father; "In Christ Jesus I have begotten you
+through the gospel," 1 Cor. iv. 15. And he stayed with them _one year
+and a half_, Acts xviii. II. 2. While the apostle sharply taxeth them as
+guilty of schism and division for their carnal crying up of their
+several teachers: some doting upon one, some upon another, some upon a
+third, &c. "Every one of you saith, I am of Paul, and I of Apollos, and
+I of Cephas, and I of Christ," 1 Cor. i. 12. Doth not this intimate that
+they had plenty of preachers, and these preachers had their several
+followers, so prizing some of them as to undervalue the rest? and was
+this likely to be without several congregations into which they were
+divided? 3. When the apostle saith, "Though ye have ten thousand
+instructors in Christ, yet have ye not many fathers," 1 Cor. v. 15;
+though his words be hyperbolical, yet they imply that they had great
+store of teachers and preachers. 4. We have mention of many prophets in
+the church of Corinth: "Let the prophets speak two or three, and let the
+other judge--And the spirits of the prophets are subject to the
+prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 20, 31. Here are _prophets_ speaking _two or
+three_; and prophets judging of their doctrine, which sure were more
+than they that were judged; it being unreasonable for the minor part to
+pass judgement upon the major part. And though these prophets had
+extraordinary gifts, (as the church of Corinth excelled all other
+churches in gifts, 1 Cor. i. 7,) and were able to preach in an
+extraordinary singular way; yet were they the ordinary pastors and
+ministers of that church of Corinth, as the whole current of this
+fourteenth chapter evidenceth, wherein so many rules and directions,
+aptly agreeing to ordinary pastors, are imposed upon them for the well
+ordering of their ministerial exercises. Now, where there were so many
+pastors, were there not several congregations for them to feed? Or were
+they idle, neglecting the exercise and improvement of their talents?
+
+3. From the diversity of tongues and languages, wherein the church did
+eminently excel. "In every thing ye are enriched by him, in all
+utterance, and in all knowledge--So that you come behind in no gift,"
+&c., i.e., ye excel in every gift, more being intended than is
+expressed, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Among other gifts some of them excelled in
+tongues which they spake, the right use of which gift of tongues the
+apostle doth at large lay down, 1 Cor. xiv. 2, 4-6, 13, 14, 18, 19, 23,
+26, 27. "If any speak in _an unknown_ tongue let it be by two, or at the
+most by three, and that by course, and let one interpret." So that there
+were many endued with gifts of tongues in that church. To what end? Not
+only for a _sign to unbelievers_, ver. 22, but also for edification of
+divers congregations, of divers tongues and languages within that church
+of Corinth.
+
+4. From the plurality of churches mentioned in reference to this church
+of Corinth. For the apostle regulating their public assemblies and their
+worship there, saith to the church of Corinth, "Let your women keep
+silence in the churches." It is not said, in the _church_, in the
+singular number; but in the _churches_, in the plural; and this of the
+_churches in Corinth_, for it is said, _Let your women_, &c., not
+indefinitely, _Let women_, &c. So that according to the plain letter of
+the words, here are churches in the church of Corinth, viz. a plurality
+of single congregations in this one presbyterial church. And this
+plurality of churches in the church of Corinth is the more confirmed if
+we take the church of Cenchrea (which is a harbor or seaport to
+Corinth) to be comprised within the church of Corinth, as some learned
+authors do conceive it may.[112]
+
+
+POSITION II.
+
+That there is in the word of Christ a pattern of one presbyterial
+government in common over divers single congregations in one church.
+This may be evidenced by these following considerations: For,
+
+1. Divers single congregations are called one church, as hath at large
+been proved in the second position immediately foregoing; inasmuch as
+all the believers in Jerusalem are counted one church: yet those
+believers are more in number than could meet for all ordinances in any
+one single congregation. And why are divers congregations styled one
+church? 1. Not in regard of that oneness of heart and soul which was
+among them, "having all things common," &c., Acts iv. 32. For these
+affections and actions of kindness belonged to them by the law of
+brotherhood and Christian charity to one another, (especially
+considering the then present condition of believers,) rather than by any
+special ecclesiastical obligation, because they were members of such a
+church. 2. Not in regard of any explicit church covenant, knitting them
+in one body. For we find neither name nor thing, print nor footstep of
+any such thing as a church covenant in the church of Jerusalem, nor in
+any other primitive apostolical church in all the New Testament; and to
+impose an explicit church covenant upon the saints as a necessary
+constituting form of a true visible Church of Christ, and without which
+it is no Church, is a mere human invention, without all solid warrant
+from the word of God. 3. Not in regard of the ministration of the word,
+sacraments, prayers, &c. For these ordinances were dispensed in their
+single congregations severally, it being impossible that such multitudes
+of believers should meet all in one congregation, to partake of them
+jointly, (as hath been evidenced.) 4. But in regard of one joint
+administration of church government among them, by one common
+presbytery, or college of elders, associated for that end. From this one
+way of church government, by one presbytery in common, all the believers
+in Jerusalem, and so in other cities respectively, were counted but one
+church. 2. In every such presbyterial church made up of divers single
+congregations, there were ecclesiastical ruling officers, which are
+counted or called the officers of that church, but never counted or
+called governors, elders, &c., of any one single congregation therein;
+as in the church of Jerusalem, Acts xi. 27, 30, and xv. 2: of Antioch,
+compare Acts xiii. 1-3, with xv. 35: of Ephesus, Acts xx. 17, 28: and of
+the church of Corinth, 1 Cor. i. 12, and iv. 15, and xiv. 29.
+
+3. The officers of such presbyterial churches met together for acts of
+church government: as, to take charge of the church's goods, and of the
+due distribution thereof, Acts iv. 35, 37, and xi. 30: to ordain,
+appoint, and send forth church officers, Acts vi. 2, 3, 6, and xiii. 1,
+3: to excommunicate notorious offenders, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, 7, 13, compared
+with 2 Cor. ii. 6: and to restore again penitent persons to church
+communion, 2 Cor. ii. 7-9.
+
+_Except_. Receiving of alms is no act of government.
+
+_Ans_. True, the bare receiving of alms is no act of government, but the
+ordering and appointing how it shall be best improved and disposed of,
+cannot be denied to be an act of government, and for this did the elders
+meet together, Acts xi. 30.
+
+4. The apostles themselves, in their joint acts of government in such
+churches, acted as ordinary officers, viz. as presbyters or elders. This
+is much to be observed, and may be evidenced as followeth: for, 1. None
+of their acts of church government can at all be exemplary or obligatory
+upon us, if they were not presbyterial, but merely apostolical; if they
+acted therein not as ordinary presbyters, but as extraordinary apostles.
+For what acts they dispatched merely as apostles, none may meddle withal
+but only apostles. 2. As they were apostles, so they were presbyters,
+and so they style themselves, "The elder to the elect lady," 2 John i.
+"The elders which are among you I exhort," saith Peter, "who am also an
+elder," (i.e. who am a fellow-elder, or co-presbyter,) 1 Pet. v. 1;
+wherein he ranks himself among ordinary presbyters, which had been
+improper, unless he had discharged the offices and acts of an ordinary
+presbyter. 3. Their acts were such, for substance, as ordinary
+presbyters do perform, as preaching and prayer, Acts vi. 4: ordaining of
+officers, Acts vi. 6, and xiv. 23: dispensing of the sacraments, 1 Cor.
+i. 14; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7: and of church censures, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5,
+compared with 1 Tim. v. ver. 1, ult.: which acts of government, and such
+like, were committed by Christ to them, and to ordinary presbyters
+(their successors) to the end of the world; compare Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 17, 18, to the end, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt. xxviii.
+18-20. 4. They acted not only as ordinary elders, but also they acted
+jointly with other elders, being associated with them in the same
+assembly, as in that eminent synod at Jerusalem, Acts xv. 6, 22, 23, and
+xvi. 4, "And as they went through cities, they delivered them the
+decrees for to keep, that were ordained of the apostles and elders which
+were at Jerusalem." 5. And, finally, they took in the church's consent
+with themselves, wherein it was needful, as in the election and
+appointment of deacons, Acts vi. 2, 3. 6. The deacons being specially to
+be trusted with the church's goods, and the disposal thereof, according
+to the direction of the presbytery, for the good of the church, &c.
+
+Let all these considerations be impartially balanced in the scales of
+indifferent unprejudiced judgments; and how plainly do they delineate in
+the word, a pattern of one presbyterial government in common over divers
+single congregations within one church!
+
+_Except_. The apostles' power over many congregations was founded upon
+their power over all churches; and so cannot be a pattern for the power
+of elders over many.
+
+_Ans_. 1. The apostles' power over many congregations as one church, to
+govern them all as one church jointly and in common, was not founded
+upon their power over all churches, but upon the union of those
+congregations into one church; which union lays a foundation for the
+power of elders governing many congregations.
+
+2. Besides, the apostles, though extraordinary officers, are called
+elders, 1 Pet. v. 1, to intimate to us, that in ordinary acts of church
+government, they did act as elders for a pattern to us in like
+administrations.
+
+_Except_. The apostles, it is true, were elders virtually, that is,
+their apostleship contained all offices in it, but they were not elders
+formally.
+
+_Ans_. 1. If by formally be meant, that they were not elders really,
+then it is false; for the Scripture saith Peter was an elder, 1 Peter v.
+1. If by formally be meant that they were not elders only, that is
+granted; they were so elders, as they were still apostles, and so
+apostles as they were yet elders: their eldership did not exclude their
+apostleship, nor their apostleship swallow up their eldership.
+
+2. Besides, two distinct offices may be formally in one and the same
+person; as Melchisedec was formally a king and priest, and David
+formally a king and prophet; and why then might not Peter or John, or
+any of the twelve, be formally apostles and elders? And ministers are
+formally pastors and ruling elders.
+
+_Except_. 'Tis true, the apostles acted together with elders, because
+it so fell out they met together; but that they should meet jointly to
+give a pattern for an eldership, is not easy to prove; one apostle might
+have done that alone, which all here did.
+
+_Ans_. 1. 'Tis true, the apostles as apostles had power to act singly
+what they did jointly; yet, when they acted jointly, their acts might
+have more authority in the Church: upon which ground they of Antioch may
+be conceived to have sent to the whole college of apostles and elders at
+Jerusalem, (rather than to any one singly;) why was this, but to add
+more authority to their acts and determinations?
+
+2. Why should not their meeting together be a pattern of a presbytery,
+as well as their meeting together when they took in the consent of the
+people, Acts vi., in the choice of the deacons, to be a pattern or
+warrant that the people have a power in the choice of their officers?
+(as those of contrary judgment argue:) if one be taken in as an
+inimitable practice, why not the other?
+
+3. If the apostles joining with elders, acted nothing as elders, then we
+can bring nothing of theirs into imitation; and by this we should cut
+the sinews, and raze the foundation of church government, as if there
+were no footsteps thereof in the holy Scriptures.
+
+
+POSITION III.
+
+Finally, That the pattern of the said presbytery and presbyterial
+government is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all after ages,
+may appear as followeth:
+
+1. The first churches were immediately planted and governed by Christ's
+own apostles and disciples; 1. Who immediately received the keys of the
+kingdom of heaven from Christ himself in person, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 17,18; John xx. 21, 23. 2. Who immediately had the promise of
+Christ's perpetual presence with them in their ministry, Matt, xxviii.
+18-20; and of the plentiful donation of the Spirit of Christ to lead
+them into all truth, John xiv. 16, and xvi. 13-15; Acts i. 4, 5, 8 3.
+Who immediately received from Christ, after his resurrection and before
+his ascension, "commandments by the Holy Ghost,"--"Christ being seen of
+them forty days, and speaking of the things pertaining to the kingdom of
+God," Acts i. 2, 3; and, 4. Who were first and immediately _baptized by
+the Holy Ghost_, extraordinarily, Acts ii. 1-5. Now, who can imagine
+that the apostles and disciples were not actuated by the Spirit of
+Christ bestowed upon them? or did not discharge Christ's commandments,
+touching his kingdom imposed upon them? or did not duly use those keys
+of Christ's kingdom committed to them in the ordering and governing of
+the primitive churches? And if so, then the pattern of their practices
+must be a rule for all the succeeding churches, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil, iv.
+9.
+
+2. To what end hath the Holy Ghost so carefully recorded a pattern of
+the state and government of the primitive churches in the first and
+purest times, but for the imitation of successive churches in after
+times? "For whatsoever things wore written aforetime, were written for
+our learning," or instruction. But what do such records instruct us?
+Only _in fact_, that such things were done by the first churches? or _of
+right_ also, that such things should be done by the after churches?
+Surely, this is more proper and profitable for us.
+
+3. If such patterns of Christ's apostles, disciples, and primitive
+churches in matters of the government will not amount to an obligatory
+rule for all following churches, how shall we justify sundry other acts
+of religion commonly received in the best reformed churches, and founded
+only or chiefly upon the foundation of the practice of Christ's apostles
+and the apostolical churches? As the receiving of the Lord's supper on
+the Lord's days, Acts xx. 7, &c.; which notwithstanding are generally
+embraced without any considerable opposition or contradiction, and that
+most deservedly.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV.
+
+_Of the Divine Right of Synods, or Synodal Assemblies._
+
+
+Thus far of the ruling assemblies, which are styled presbyterial; next
+come into consideration those greater assemblies, which are usually
+called synodal, or synods, or councils. They are so called from their
+convening, or coming together: or rather from their calling together.
+Both names, viz. synod and council, are of such latitude of
+signification, as that they may be applied to any public convention of
+people: but in the common ordinary use of these words, they are
+appropriated to large ecclesiastical assemblies, above classical
+presbyteries in number and power. These synodal assemblies are made up,
+(as occasion and the necessity of the church shall require.) 1. Either
+of presbyters, sent from the several classical presbyteries within a
+province, hence called provincial synods: 2. Or of presbyters, sent from
+the several provincial synods within a nation, hence called national
+synods: 3. Or of presbyters, delegated or sent from the several
+national churches throughout the Christian world, hence called
+ecumenical synods, or universal and general councils.
+
+Touching the divine warrant of synods, and their power in church
+affairs, much need not be said, seeing divers learned authors have so
+fully stated and handled this matter.[113] Yet, that the reader may have
+a short view hereof, and not be left wholly unsatisfied, these two
+things shall briefly be opened and insisted upon, viz: 1. Certain
+considerations shall be propounded, tending to clear the state of the
+question about the divine right of synods, and their power. 2. The
+proposition itself, with some few arguments adduced, for the proof
+thereof.
+
+For the former, viz: The true stating of this question about the divine
+right of synods, and of their power, well weigh these few
+considerations.
+
+1. Synods differ in some respects from classical presbyteries, handled
+in Chap. XIII., though the nature and kind of their power be the same
+for substance. For, 1. Synods are more large extensive assemblies than
+classical presbyteries, the members of presbyteries being sent only from
+several single congregations, the members of synods being delegated from
+several presbyteries, and proportionably their power is extended also.
+2. The exercise of government by presbyteries, is the common ordinary
+way of government held forth in Scripture. By synods it is more rare and
+extraordinary, at least in great part, as in case of extraordinary
+causes that fall out: as, for choosing an apostle, Acts i., healing of
+scandals, &c., Acts xv.
+
+2. All synods are of the same nature and kind, whether provincial,
+national, or ecumenical, though they differ as lesser and greater, in
+respect of extent, from one another, (the provincial having as full
+power within their bounds, as the national or ecumenical within theirs.)
+So that the proving of the divine right of synods indefinitely and in
+general, doth prove also the divine right of provincial, national, and
+ecumenical synods in particular: for, greater and lesser do not vary the
+species or kind. What is true of ecclesiastical synods in general,
+agrees to every such synod in particular.
+
+_Object_. But why hath not the Scripture determined these assemblies in
+particular?
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is not necessary the Scripture should in every case descend
+to particulars. In things of one and the same kind, general rules may
+serve for all particulars; especially seeing particulars are so
+innumerable, what volumes would have contained all particulars? 2. All
+churches and seasons are not capable of synods provincial or national:
+for, in an island there may be no more Christians than to make up one
+single congregation, or one classical presbytery. Or in a nation, the
+Christian congregations may be so few, or so dispersed, or so involved
+in persecution, that they cannot convene in synods, &c.
+
+3. The power of synods contended for, is, 1. Not civil; they have no
+power to take cognizance of civil causes, as such; not to inflict any
+civil punishments; as fines, imprisonments, confiscations, banishments,
+death, (these being proper to the civil magistrate:) but merely
+spiritual; they judge only in ecclesiastical causes, in a spiritual
+manner, by spiritual censures, to spiritual ends, as did that synod,
+Acts xv. 2. Not corruptive, privative, or destructive to the power of
+classical presbyteries, or single congregations; but rather perfective
+and conservative thereunto. As suppose a single congregation should
+elect a minister unsound in judgment, or scandalous in conversation, the
+synod may annul and make void that election, and direct them to make a
+better choice, or appoint them a minister themselves; hereby this
+liberty of election is not at all infringed or violated, but for their
+own advantage regulated, &c. 3. Not absolute, and infallible; but
+limited and fallible: any synod or council may err, being constituted of
+men that are weak, frail, ignorant in part, &c., and therefore all their
+decrees and determinations are to be examined by the touchstone of the
+Scriptures, nor are they further to be embraced, or counted obligatory,
+than they are consonant thereunto, Isa. viii. 20. Hence there is liberty
+of appeal, as from congregational elderships to the classical
+presbytery, and from thence to the provincial synod, so from the
+provincial to the national assembly, &c. 4. Finally, the power of synods
+is not only persuasive and consultative, (as some think,) able to give
+grave advice, and to use forcible persuasions in any case, which if
+accepted and followed, well; if rejected and declined, there is no
+further remedy, but a new non-communion instead of a divine church
+censure: but it is a proper authoritative juridical power, which all
+within their bounds are obliged reverently to esteem, and dutifully to
+submit unto, so far as agreeable to the word of Christ.
+
+4. Finally, this authoritative juridical power of synods is threefold,
+viz. _doctrinal, regulating, and censuring_. 1. _Doctrinal_, in
+reference to matters of faith, and divine worship; not to coin new
+articles of faith, or devise new acts of divine worship: but to explain
+and apply those articles of faith and rules of worship which are laid
+down in the word, and declare the contrary errors, heresies,
+corruptions. Hence the Church is styled, _the pillar and ground of
+truth_, 1 Tim. iii. 15. Thus to the Jewish Church _were committed of
+trust the oracles of God_, Rom. iii. 2. 2. _Regulating_, in reference to
+external order and polity, in matters prudential and circumstantial,
+which are determinate according to the true light of nature, and the
+general rules of Scripture, such as are in 1 Cor. x. 31, 32; Rom. xiv.;
+1 Cor. xiv. 26, 40, &c.; not according to any arbitrary power of men. 3.
+_Censuring_ power, in reference to error, heresy, schism, obstinacy,
+contempt, or scandal, and the repressing thereof; which power is put
+forth merely in spiritual censures, as admonition, excommunication,
+deposition, &c. And these censures exercised, not in a lordly,
+domineering, prelatical way: but in an humble, sober, grave, yet
+authoritative way, necessary both for preservation of soundness of
+doctrine, and incorruptness of conversation; and for extirpation of the
+contrary. This is the power which belongs to synods. Thus much for
+clearing the right state of this question.
+
+II. For the second thing, viz. the proposition itself, and the
+confirmation thereof, take it briefly in these terms.
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word sufficient ground
+and warrant for juridical synods, and their authority, for governing of
+his Church now under the New Testament. Many arguments might be produced
+for proof of this proposition: as, 1. From the light of nature. 2. From
+the words of the law, Deut. xvii. 8, 12, compared with 2 Chron. xix. 8,
+11; Ps. cxxii. 4, 5, holding forth an ecclesiastical Sanhedrin in the
+Church of the Jews, superior to other courts. 3. From the words of
+Christ, Matt, xviii. 15-21. 4. From the unity of the visible Church of
+Christ now under the New Testament. 5. From the primitive apostolical
+pattern laid down, Acts xv., &c., and from divers other considerations;
+but for brevity's sake, only the two last arguments shall be a little
+insisted upon.
+
+_Argum_. I. The unity or oneness of the visible Church of Christ now
+under the New Testament, laid down in Scripture, gives us a notable
+foundation for church government by juridical synods. For, 1. That Jesus
+Christ our Mediator hath one general, visible Church on earth now under
+the New Testament, hath been already proved, Part 2, Chap. VIII. 2. That
+in this Church there is a government settled by divine right, is
+evidenced, Part 1, Chap. I. 3. That all Christ's ordinances, and
+particularly church government, primarily belong to the whole general
+Church visible, for her edification, (secondarily to particular churches
+and single congregations, as parts or members of the whole,) hath been
+manifested, Part 2, Chap. VIII. Now, there being one general visible
+Church, having a government set in it of divine right, and that
+government belonging primarily to the whole body of Christ; secondarily,
+to the parts or members thereof; must it not necessarily follow, that
+the more generally and extensively Christ's ordinance of church
+government is managed in greater and more general assemblies, the more
+fully the perfection and end of the government, viz. the edification of
+the whole body of Christ, is attained; and on the contrary, the more
+particularly and singly church government is exercised, as in
+presbyteries, or single congregational elderships, the more imperfect it
+is, and the less it attains to the principal end: consequently, if there
+be a divine warrant for church government by single congregational
+elderships, is it not much more for church government by presbyteries,
+and synods, or councils, wherein more complete provision is made for the
+edification of the general Church or body of Jesus Christ?
+
+_Argum_. II. The primitive apostolical practice in the first and purest
+ages of the Church after Christ, may further evidence with great
+strength the divine warrant for church government by juridical synods or
+councils. Let this be the position:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern of a
+juridical synod, consisting of governing officers of divers presbyterial
+churches, for a rule to the Church of Christ in all succeeding ages.
+
+For proof hereof take these two assertions: 1. That Jesus Christ hath
+laid down in his word a pattern of a juridical synod. 2. That this
+juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all
+succeeding ages.
+
+
+ASSERTION I.
+
+That Jesus Christ hath laid down in his word a pattern of a synod, yea,
+of a juridical synod, consisting of governing officers of divers
+presbyterial churches, is manifest, Acts xv. and xvi., where are plainly
+set forth: 1. The occasion of the synod. 2. The proper members of the
+synod. 3. The equal power and authority exercised by all those members.
+4. The way and method of ordinary synodal proceeding. 5. The juridical
+acts of power put forth by the synod; with the issue and consequent of
+all upon the churches.
+
+First, Here was a proper ground and occasion for a juridical synod. For
+thus the text expressly declareth, that "certain men which came down
+from Judea, taught the brethren, and said, Except ye be circumcised
+after the manner of Moses, ye cannot be saved; when therefore Paul and
+Barnabas had no small dissension and disputation with them, they
+determined that Paul and Barnabas, and certain other of them, should go
+up to Jerusalem to the apostles and elders about this question," Acts
+xv. 1, 2, compared with ver. 5--"But there rose up certain of the sect
+of the Pharisees, which believed, saying, that it was needful to
+circumcise them, and to command them to keep the law of Moses;" and with
+ver. 23, 24--"The apostles, and elders, and brethren send greeting unto
+the brethren which are of the Gentiles, in Antioch, and Syria, and
+Cilicia: Forasmuch as we have heard, that certain which went out from
+us, have troubled you with words, subverting your souls, saying, Ye must
+be circumcised and keep the law." In which passages these things are
+evident:
+
+1. That false doctrine, destructive to the doctrine of Christ in his
+gospel, did arise in the Church, viz: That circumcision and keeping of
+the ceremonial law of Moses was necessary to salvation, ver. 1, 5, 24;
+and this false doctrine promoted with lying, as if the apostles and
+elders of Jerusalem had sent forth the false teachers with directions to
+preach so, as their apology ("to whom we gave no such commandment," ver.
+24) seems to import. Here is corruption both in doctrine and manners fit
+for a synod to take cognizance of.
+
+2. That this corrupt doctrine was vented by certain that came down from
+Judea. It is evident, it was by certain of the sect of the Pharisees
+that believed; as Paul and Barnabas make the narrative to the church at
+Jerusalem, ver. 5, therefore the false teachers coming from Judea (where
+the Churches of Christ were first of all planted, and whence the church
+plantation spread) published their doctrines with more credit to their
+errors and danger to the churches; and so both the churches of Judea
+whence they came, and of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, whither they came,
+were interested in the business.
+
+3. That the said false teachers by the leaven of their doctrine troubled
+them with words, subverting the souls of the brethren, both at Antioch,
+Syria, and Cilicia, ver. 23, 24; here was the disturbance and scandal of
+divers churches: compare ver. 39 with 41.
+
+4. That Paul and Barnabas at Antioch had no small dissension and dispute
+against the false teachers, ver. 1, 2, that so (if possible) they might
+be convinced, and the Church's peace preserved, without craving further
+assistance in a solemn synod.
+
+5. That after these disputes, and for the better settling of all the
+churches about this matter, (which these disputes could not effect,)
+_they decreed_ (or ordained) _that Paul and Barnabas, and some others of
+themselves, should go up to the apostles and elders at Jerusalem about
+this question, ver_. 2. Here was an authoritative mission of delegated
+officers from the presbyterial church at Antioch, and from other
+churches of Syria and Cilicia also, ver. 23, 41, to a synodal assembly
+with the presbyterial church at Jerusalem.
+
+Secondly, Here were proper members of a synod convened to consider of
+this question, viz. the officers and delegates of divers presbyterial
+churches: of the presbyterial church at Jerusalem, the apostles and
+elders, Acts xv. 6: of the presbyterial church at Antioch, Paul,
+Barnabas, and others; compare verse 2 and 12. And besides these, there
+were brethren from other churches, present as members of the synod; as
+may appear by these two considerations, viz:
+
+1. Partly, because it is called "The whole multitude," ver. 12; "The
+apostles and elders with the whole church," ver. 22; "The apostles, and
+elders, and brethren," ver. 23. This whole multitude, whole church, and
+brethren, distinct from the apostles and elders which were at Jerusalem,
+cannot be _the company of all the faithful at Jerusalem_, for (as hath
+been evidenced, Chap. XIV., Position 2,) they were too many to meet in
+one house. But it was the synodal multitude, the synodal church,
+consisting of apostles, and elders, and brethren; which brethren seem to
+be such as were sent from several churches, as Judas and Silas, ver. 24,
+who were assistants to the apostles and evangelists--Judas, Acts xv. 22,
+32; Silas, Acts xv. 32, 40, and xvi. 19, and xvii. 4, 14, 15, and xviii.
+5. Some think Titus was of this synod also.
+
+2. Partly because the brethren of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, were
+troubled with this question, ver. 23, 24. Therefore it cannot be
+reasonably imagined, but all those places sought out for a remedy; and
+to that end, severally and respectively sent their delegates to the
+synod at Jerusalem: else they had been very regardless of their own
+church peace and welfare. And the epistle of the synod was directed to
+them all by name, ver. 23; and so did formally bind them all, having men
+of their own members of the synod, which decrees did but materially, and
+from the nature of the thing, bind the other churches at Lystra and
+Iconium, Acts xvi. 4. Now, if there were delegates but from two
+presbyterial churches, they were sufficient to constitute a synod; and
+this justifies delegates from ten or twenty churches, proportionably,
+when there shall be like just and necessary occasion.
+
+Thirdly, Here all the members of the synod, as they were convened by
+like ordinary authority, so they acted by like ordinary and equal power
+in the whole business laid before them; which shows it was an ordinary,
+not an extraordinary synod. For though apostles and evangelists, who had
+power over all churches, were members of the synod, as well as ordinary
+elders; yet they acted not in this synod by a transcendent, infallible,
+apostolical power, but by an ordinary power, as elders. This is evident,
+
+1. Because the Apostle Paul, and Barnabas his colleague, (called a
+prophet and teacher, Acts xiii. 1, 2, and an apostle, Acts xiv. 14,)
+were sent as members to this synod, by order and determination of the
+church of Antioch, and they submitted themselves to that determination,
+Acts xv. 2, 3; which they could not have submitted unto as apostles, but
+as ordinary elders and members of the presbytery at Antioch: they that
+send, being greater than those that are sent by them. Upon which ground
+it is a good argument which is urged against Peter's primacy over the
+rest of the apostles, because the college of apostles at Jerusalem sent
+Peter and John to Samaria, having received the faith, Acts viii. 14.
+
+2. Because the manner of proceeding in this synod convened, was not
+extraordinary and apostolical, as when they acted by an immediate
+infallible inspiration of the Spirit, in penning the Holy Scriptures,
+(without all disputing, examining, or judging of the matter that they
+wrote, so far as we can read,) 2 Tim. iii. 16,17; 2 Pet. i. 20, 21; but
+ordinary, presbyterial, and synodal; by ordinary helps and means, (as
+afterwards shall appear more fully;) stating the question, proving and
+evidencing from Scripture what was _the good and acceptable will of God_
+concerning the present controversy, and upon evidence of Scripture
+concluding, _It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us_, Acts xv. 28;
+which words, any assembly, having like clear evidence of Scripture for
+their determination, may without presumption use, as well as this synod
+did.[114]
+
+3. Because the elders and brethren (who are as authoritatively members
+of the synod as the apostles) did in all points as authoritatively act
+as the apostles themselves. For, 1. Certain other of the church of
+Antioch, as well as _Paul_ and _Barnabas_, were sent as delegates from
+the church of _Antioch_, Acts xv. 2. 2. They were all sent as well to
+the _elders_, as to the _apostles_ at _Jerusalem_, about this matter,
+ver. 2. 3. They were received at _Jerusalem_, as well by the _elders_,
+as the _apostles_, and reported their case to them both, ver. 4. 4. The
+_elders_, as well as the _apostles_, met together to consider thereof,
+ver. 6. 5. The letters containing the synodal decrees and
+determinations, were written in the name of the _elders and brethren_,
+as well as in the name of the _apostles_, ver. 23. 6. The _elders and
+brethren_, as well as the _apostles_, blame the false teachers for
+troubling of the Church, _subverting of souls_; declaring, that they
+gave the false teachers _no such commandment_ to preach any such
+doctrine, ver. 24. 7. The _elders and brethren_, as well as the
+_apostles_, say, "It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us," ver. 28.
+8. The _elders_ and _brethren_, as well as the _apostles_, did impose
+upon the churches "no other burden than these necessary things," ver.
+28. 9. The _elders_, as well as the _apostles_, being assembled,
+"thought good to send chosen men of themselves," viz. _Judas_ and
+_Silas_, with _Paul_ and _Barnabas_, to _Antioch_, to deliver the
+synodal decrees to them, and to tell them the same things by mouth, ver.
+22, 25, 27. 10. And the decrees are said to be ordained as well by the
+_elders_, as by the _apostles at Jerusalem_, Acts xvi. 4. So that
+through this whole synodal transaction, the elders are declared in the
+text to go on in a full authoritative course of judgment with the
+apostles, from point to point. And therefore in this synod, the apostles
+acted as ordinary elders, not as extraordinary officers.
+
+Fourthly. Here was the ordinary way and method of synodal proceedings by
+the apostles, elders, and brethren, when they were convened unanimously,
+ver. 25. For,
+
+1. They proceeded deliberatively, by discourses and disputes,
+deliberating about the true state of the question, and the remedy of the
+scandal. This is laid down, 1. More generally, "and when there had been
+much disputing," ver. 7. 2. More particularly, how they proceeded when
+they drew towards a synodal determination, Peter speaks of the Gentiles'
+conversion, and clears the doctrine of justification "by faith without
+the works of the law," ver. 7-12. Then Barnabas and Paul confirm the
+conversion of the Gentiles, "declaring the signs and wonders wrought by
+them among the Gentiles," ver. 12. After them James speaks, approving
+what Peter had spoken touching the conversion of the Gentiles,
+confirming it by Scripture; and further adds (which Peter did but hint,
+ver. 10, and Paul and Barnabas did not so much as touch upon) a remedy
+against the present scandal, ver. 13-22. Here is now an ordinary way of
+proceeding by debates, disputes, allegations of Scripture, and mutual
+suffrages. What needed all this, if this had been a transcendent,
+extraordinary, and not an ordinary synod?
+
+2. They proceeded after all their deliberative inquiries and disputes
+decisively to conclude and determine the matter, ver. 20-30. The result
+of the synod (as there is evident) is threefold. 1. To set down in
+writing their decrees and determinations. 2. To signify those decrees in
+an epistle to the brethren at Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia. 3. To send
+these letters by some from among themselves, viz. Judas and Silas,
+together with Paul and Barnabas, to all the churches that were offended
+or endangered, that both by written decrees and word of mouth, the
+churches might be established in faith and peace.
+
+Fifthly, Here were several authoritative and juridical acts of power,
+put forth in this synod, according to the exigency of the present
+distempers of the churches. This appears plainly,
+
+1. By the proceedings of the synod in accommodating a suitable and
+proportionable remedy to every malady at that time distempering the
+Church, viz. a triple medicine for a threefold disease.
+
+1. Against the heresy broached, viz. that they must be circumcised and
+keep the ceremonial "law of Moses, or else they could not be saved,"
+Acts xv. 2. The synod put forth a doctrinal power, in confutation of the
+heresy, and clear vindication of the truth, about the great point of
+"justification by faith without the works of the law," Acts xv. 7-23;
+and (Independents themselves being judges) a doctrinal decision of
+matters of faith by a lawful synod, far surpasseth the doctrinal
+determination of any single teacher, or of the presbytery of any single
+congregation; and is to be reverently received of the churches as a
+binding ordinance of Christ.
+
+2. Against the schism, occasioned by the doctrine of the false teachers
+that troubled the Church, Acts xv. 1, 2, the synod put forth a censuring
+power, stigmatizing the false teachers with the infamous brands of
+troubling the Church with words, subverting of souls, and (tacitly, as
+some conceive from that expression, "Unto whom we gave no such
+commandment," ver. 24) of belying the apostles and elders of Jerusalem,
+as if they had sent them abroad to preach this doctrine.
+
+_Object_. But the synod proceeded not properly to censure the false
+teachers by any ecclesiastical admonition, or excommunication; therefore
+the power exercised in the synod was only doctrinal, and not properly
+juridical.
+
+_Ans_. 1. They censured them in some degree, and that with a mark of
+infamy, ver. 24, as was manifested. And this was not only a warning and
+hint to the churches, to note such false teachers, avoid them, and
+withdraw from them, compare Rom. xvi. 17, 18, with 1 Tim. vi. 3-5; but
+also was a virtual admonition to the false teachers themselves, while
+their doctrines and ways were so expressly condemned. 2. They proceeded
+not to present excommunication, it is granted; nor was it at first dash
+seasonable, prudent, or needful. But the synod knew well, that if these
+false teachers, after this synodal mark of disgrace set upon them,
+should still persist in their course, incurably and incorrigibly
+obstinate, they might in due time be excommunicated by course; it being
+a clear case in itself that such heretics or schismatics, as otherwise
+cannot be reduced, are not to be suffered, but to be cast out of the
+churches. "An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject," Tit.
+iii. 10, 11; see Rev. ii. 2, 14, 20.
+
+3. Against the scandal of the weak Jews, and their heart-estrangement
+from the Gentiles, who neglected their ceremonial observances, as also
+against the scandal of the Gentiles, who were much troubled and offended
+at the urging of circumcision, and the keeping of the law as necessary
+to salvation, ver. 1, 2, 19, 24, the synod put forth an ordering or
+regulating power, framing practical rules or constitutions for the
+healing of the scandal, and for prevention of the spreading of it,
+commanding the brethren of the several churches to abstain from divers
+things that might any way occasion the same: "It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost, and to us, to impose" (or lay) "upon you no further burden than
+these necessary things," Acts xv. 28, 29. Here is _burden_ and
+_necessary things_, (so judged to be necessary for those times, and that
+state of the Church,) and imposing of these upon the churches: will not
+this amount to a plain ordering power and authority? Especially
+considering that the word _to impose_, or _lay on_, when it is used of
+the judgment, act, or sentence of an assembly, ordinarily signifies an
+authoritative judgment, or decree, as, "Why tempt ye God, to lay, or
+impose, a yoke upon the neck of the disciples?" Acts xv. 10. Thus some in
+the synod endeavored to carry the synod with themselves, authoritatively
+to have imposed the ceremonies upon the churches; whom Peter thus
+withstands. So, "They bind heavy burdens, and hard to be borne, and
+impose them upon men's shoulders," Matt, xxiii. 4: and this laying on of
+burdens by the Pharisees, was not by a bare doctrinal declaring, but by
+an authoritative commanding, as seems by that, "teaching for doctrines
+the commandments of men," Matt. xv. 9.
+
+2. By the title or denomination given to the synodal results contained
+in their letters sent to the brethren. They are styled, "The decrees
+ordained, or judged," Acts xvi. 4. Here are plainly juridical
+authoritative constitutions. For it is very observable,
+
+That wheresoever the words translated _decree_ or _decrees_ are found in
+the New Testament, thereby are denoted, laws, statutes, or decrees: as
+"Decrees of Cæsar," Acts xvii. 7: "A decree from Cæsar," Luke ii. 1:
+Moses' ceremonial law, "The hand-writing to ordinances," Col. ii. 14:
+"The law of commandments in ordinances," Eph. ii. 15: and this word is
+found used only in these five places in the whole New Testament: and the
+Septuagint interpreters often use the word in the Old Testament to this
+purpose; for _laws_, Dan. vi. 8; for _decrees_, Dan. ii. 13, and iii.
+10, 29, and iv. 3, and vi. 9.
+
+And the other word translated _ordained_, when applied to an assembly by
+the Septuagint, is used for a judgment of authority, as, "And what was
+decreed against her," Esth. ii. 1; and so a word derived from it,
+signifies a _decree_, Dan. iv. 14, 21.
+
+In this sense also the word is sometimes used in the New Testament, when
+applied to assemblies; as, "Take ye him, and judge him according to your
+law," John xviii. 31; "Whom we laid hold upon, and would have judged
+according to our law," Acts xxiv. 6.
+
+Now, if there be so much power and authority engraven upon these two
+words severally, how strongly do they hold forth authority, when they
+are applied to any thing jointly, as here to the synodal decisions!
+
+3. By the consequent of these synodal proceedings, viz. the cheerful
+submission of the churches thereunto. This appears both in the church of
+Antioch, where the troubles first were raised by the false teachers;
+where, "when the epistle" of the synod "was read, they rejoiced for the
+consolation," Acts xv. 30, 31; and Judas and Silas exhorted and
+confirmed the brethren by word of mouth, according to the synod's
+direction, ver. 32; and in other churches, to which Paul and Timothy
+delivered the "decrees ordained by the apostles and elders which were at
+Jerusalem; and so were the churches confirmed in the faith, and abounded
+in number daily," Acts xvi. 4, 5; whence we have these evidences of the
+churches' submission to the synodal decrees: 1. The decrees are counted
+by the churches a consolation. 2. They were so welcome to them, that
+they _rejoiced for the consolation_. 3. They were hereby notably
+_confirmed in the faith_, against the false doctrines broached among
+them. 4. The churches _abounded in number daily_, the scandal and
+stumbling-blocks that troubled the Church being removed out of the way.
+How should such effects so quickly have followed upon the publication of
+the synodal decrees, in the several churches, had not the churches
+looked upon that synod as vested with juridical power and authority for
+composing and imposing of these their determinations?
+
+
+ASSERTION II.
+
+That this juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all
+succeeding ages, there need no new considerations for proof hereof;
+only let the reader please to look back to Position iv. of the last
+chapter, where the substance of those considerations which urge the
+pattern of presbyteries and presbyterial government for a rule to
+succeeding churches, is applicable (by change of terms) to the pattern
+of juridical synods.[115]
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV.
+
+_Of the subordination of particular churches to greater assemblies for
+their authoritative and judicial determination of causes ecclesiastical,
+and the divine right thereof._
+
+
+The divine right of ecclesiastical assemblies, congregational,
+classical, and synodal, and of their power for church government, being
+thus evidenced by the Scriptures, now in the last place take a few words
+briefly touching the subordination of the lesser to the greater
+assemblies, and the divine warrant thereof. In asserting the
+subordination of particular churches to higher assemblies, whether
+classical or synodal,
+
+1. It is not denied, but particular churches have within themselves
+power of discipline entirely, so far as any cause in debate particularly
+and peculiarly concerneth themselves, and not others.
+
+2. It is granted, that where there is no consociation, or neighborhood
+of single churches, whereby they may mutually aid one another, there a
+single congregation must not be denied entire jurisdiction; but this
+falls not within the compass of ordinary rules of church government left
+us by Christ. If there be but one congregation in a kingdom or province,
+that particular congregation may do much by itself alone, which it ought
+not to do where there are neighboring and adjacent churches that might
+associate therewith for mutual assistance.
+
+3. It is granted, that every single congregation hath equal power, one
+as much as another, and that there is no subordination of one to
+another; according to that common and known axiom, An equal hath no
+power or rule over an equal. Subordination prelatical, which is of one
+or more parishes to the prelate and his cathedral, is denied; all
+particular churches being collateral, and of the same authority.
+
+4. It is granted, that classical or synodal authority cannot be by
+Scripture introduced over a particular church in a privative or
+destructive way to that power which God hath bestowed upon it; but
+contrarily it is affirmed, that all the power of assemblies, which are
+above particular congregations, is cumulative and perfective to the
+power of those inferior congregations.
+
+5. It is granted, that the highest ecclesiastical assembly in the world
+cannot require from the lowest a subordination absolute, and at their
+own mere will and pleasure, but only in some respect; subordination
+absolute being only to the law of God laid down in Scripture. We detest
+popish tyranny, which claims a power of giving their will for a law.
+'Tis subjection in the Lord that is pleaded for: the straightest rule in
+the world, unless the holy Scripture, we affirm to be a rule to be
+regulated; peace being only in walking according to Scripture canon,
+Gal. vi. ver. 16.
+
+6. Nor is it the question whether friendly, consultative, fraternal,
+Christian advice or direction, be either to be desired or bestowed by
+neighboring churches, either apart or in their synodal meetings, for the
+mutual benefit of one another, by reason of that holy profession in
+which they are all conjoined and knit together: for this will be granted
+on all hands, though when it is obtained, it will not amount to a
+sufficient remedy in many cases.
+
+But this is that which we maintain, viz. that the law of God holdeth
+forth a subordination of a particular church to greater assemblies,
+consisting of divers choice members, taken out of several single
+congregations: which assemblies have authoritative power and
+ecclesiastical jurisdiction over that particular church, by way of
+giving sentence in and deciding of causes ecclesiastical. For
+confirmation of this assertion, thus:
+
+_Argum_. I. The light of nature may be alleged to prove, that there
+ought to be this subordination: this is warranted not only by God's
+positive law, but even by nature's law. The church is a company of
+people who are not outlawed by nature. The visible church being an
+ecclesiastical polity, and the perfection of all polity, doth comprehend
+in it whatsoever is excellent in all other bodies political. The church
+must resemble the commonwealth's government in things common to both,
+and which have the same use in both. The law of nature directs unto
+diversities of courts in the commonwealth, and the greater to have
+authority over the lesser. The church is not only to be considered as
+employed in holy services, or as having assemblies exercised in
+spiritual things, and after a spiritual manner, but it is also to be
+considered as consisting of companies and societies of men to be
+regularly ordered, and so far nature agreeth to it, that it should have
+divers sorts of assemblies, and the lower subordinate to the higher.
+That particular parts should be subject to the whole for the good of the
+whole, is found necessary both in bodies natural and politic. Is the
+foot to be lanced? though it have a particular use of its own, and a
+peculiar employment, yet it is to be ordered by the eye, the hand, and
+the rest. Kingdoms have their several cities and towns, which all have
+their governments apart by themselves; yet for the preservation of the
+whole, all join together in the Parliament. Armies and navies have their
+several companies and ships, yet in any danger every particular company
+and ship is ordered by the counsels and directions of the officers and
+guides of the whole army or navy. The Church is spiritual, but yet a
+kingdom, a body, an army, &c. D. Ames himself affirms that the light of
+nature requires that particular churches ought to combine in synods for
+things of greater moment. The God of nature and reason hath not left in
+his word a government against the light of nature and right reason.
+Appeals are of divine and natural right, and certainly very necessary in
+every society, because of the iniquity and ignorance of judges. That
+they are so, the practices of all ages and nations sufficiently testify.
+
+_Argum_. II. The Jewish church government affords a second argument. If
+in that they had synagogues in every city, which were subordinate to the
+supreme ecclesiastical court at Jerusalem, then there ought to be a
+subordination of particular churches among us to higher assemblies; but
+so it was among them: therefore,
+
+That the subordination was among them of the particular synagogues to
+the assembly at Jerusalem, is clear--Deut. xvii. 8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8,
+11; Exod. xviii. 22, 26.
+
+That therefore it ought to be so among us, is as plain: for the dangers
+and difficulties that they were involved in without a government, and
+for which God caused that government to be set up among them, are as
+great if not greater among us, and therefore why should we want the same
+means of prevention and cure? Are not we in greater danger of heresies
+now in the time of the New Testament, the churches therein being thereby
+to be exercised by way of trial, as the apostle foretells, 1 Cor. xi.
+19? Doth not ungodliness in these last times abound, according to the
+same apostle's prediction? Is there not now a more free and permitted
+intercourse of society with infidels than in those times?
+
+Nor are the exceptions against this argument of any strength: as, 1.
+That arguments for the form of church government must yet be fetched
+from the Jewish Church; the government of the Jews was ceremonial and
+typical, and Christians must not Judaize, nor use that Judaical compound
+of subordination of churches: the Mosaical polity is abrogated now under
+the New Testament. Not to tell those that make this exception, 1. That
+none argue so much from the Jewish government as themselves for the
+power of congregations, both in ordination and excommunication, because
+the people of Israel laid hands on the Levites, and all Israel were to
+remove the unclean; 2. We answer, the laws of the Jewish church, whether
+ceremonial or judicial, so far are in force, even at this day, as they
+were grounded upon common equity, the principles of reason and nature,
+and were serving to the maintenance of the moral law. 'Tis of especial
+right, that the party unjustly aggrieved should have redress, that the
+adverse party should not be sole judge and party too, that judgment
+ought not to be rashly or partially passed upon any. The Jewish polity
+is only abrogated in regard of what was in it of particular right, not
+of common right: so far as there was in their laws either a typicalness
+proper to their church, or a peculiarness of respect to their state in
+that land of promise given unto them. Whatsoever was in their laws of
+moral concernment or general equity, is still obliging; whatsoever the
+Jewish Church had not as Jewish, but as it was a political church, or an
+ecclesiastical republic, (among which is the subordination of
+ecclesiastical courts to be reckoned,) doth belong to the Christian
+Church: that all judgments were to be determined by an high-priest, was
+typical of Christ's supremacy in judicature; but that there were gradual
+judicatories for the ease of an oppressed or grieved party, there can be
+no ceremony or type in this. This was not learned by Moses in the
+pattern of the Mount, but was taught by the light of nature to Jethro,
+Exod. xviii. 22, and by him given in advice to Moses. This did not
+belong unto the peculiar dispensation of the Jews, but unto the good
+order of the church.
+
+To conclude our answer to this exception, if the benefit of appeals be
+not as free to us as to the Jews, the yoke of the gospel should be more
+intolerable than the yoke of the law; the poor afflicted Christian might
+groan and cry under an unjust and tyrannical eldership, and no
+ecclesiastical judicatory to relieve him; whereas the poor oppressed Jew
+might appeal to the Sanhedrin: certainly this is contrary to that
+prophecy of Christ, Psal. lxxii. 12, 14.
+
+_Argum_. III. A third argument to prove the subordination of particular
+congregations, is taken from the institution of our Saviour Christ, of
+gradual appeals, Matt, xviii. 17, 18, where our Saviour hath appointed a
+particular member of a church (if scandalous) to be gradually dealt
+withal; first to be reproved in private, then to be admonished before
+two or three witnesses, and last of all to be complained of to the
+church: whence we thus argue:
+
+If Christ hath instituted that the offence of an obstinate brother
+should be complained of to the church; then much more is it intended
+that the obstinacy of a great number, suppose of a whole church, should
+be brought before a higher assembly: but the former is true, therefore
+the latter. The consequence, wherein the strength of the argument lies,
+is proved several ways.
+
+1. From the rule of proportion: by what proportion one or two are
+subject to a particular church, by the same proportion is that church
+subject to a provincial or a national assembly; and by the same
+proportion that one congregation is governed by the particular eldership
+representing it, by the same proportion are ten or twelve congregations
+governed by a classical presbytery representing them all.
+
+2. From the sufficiency of that remedy that Christ here prescribes for
+those emergent exigencies under which the Church may lie; since,
+therefore, offences may as well arise between two persons in the same
+congregation, Christ hath appointed that particular congregations, as
+well as members, shall have liberty to complain and appeal to a more
+general judgment for redress: the salve here prescribed by Christ is
+equal to the sore; if the sore of scandal may overspread whole churches,
+as well as particular persons, then certainly the salve of appeals and
+subordination is here also appointed. If a man be scandalized by the
+neighbor-church, to whom shall he complain? The church offending must
+not be both judge and party.
+
+3. From that ecclesiastical communion that is between churches and
+churches in one and the same province or nation, whereby churches are
+joined and united together in doctrine and discipline into one body, as
+well as divers particular persons in a particular congregation; since,
+therefore, scandals may be committed among them that are in that holy
+communion one with another, most unworthy of and destructive to that
+sacred league, certainly those scandals should be redressed by a
+superior judicatory, as well as offences between brother and brother.
+
+4. He that careth for a part of a church must much more care for the
+whole; he whose love extends itself to regard the conversion of one, is
+certainly very careful of the spiritual welfare of many, the edification
+of a whole church; the influence of Christ's love being poured upon the
+whole body, bride and spouse, by order of nature, before it redound to
+the benefit of a finger or toe, viz. some one single person or other.
+Nor are the exceptions against this institution of gradual appeals of
+any moment.
+
+The grand one, and that makes directly against our position is, that our
+Saviour would have the controversy between brother and brother to be
+terminated in a peculiar church, and that its judgment should be
+ultimately requested, he saith, _Tell the church_, not churches. The
+subordination here appointed by Christ is of fewer to more, but still
+within the same church, not without it. To which we answer, our Saviour
+means not by church only one single particular congregation, but also
+several, combined in their officers, as appears by these following
+reasons.
+
+1. A particular church in sundry cases cannot decide the difference, or
+heal the distemper our Saviour prescribes against; as when a particular
+church is divided into two parts, both in opposition one to the other;
+or when one church is at variance with another; if Christ here limits
+only to a particular church, how shall such distempers be remedied?
+
+2. When Christ bids _tell the church_, he speaks in allusion to the
+Jewish Church, which was represented not only by parts in the single
+synagogue or congregation, but wholly in their sanhedrin, consisting of
+select persons, appointed by God, for deciding controversies incident to
+their particular congregations, and their members. So that we may thus
+reason: the subordination here established by Christ is so far to be
+extended in the Christian Church, as in the Church of the Jews, for
+Christ alludeth to the Jewish practice; but in the Jewish Church there
+was a subordination of fewer to more, not only within the same synagogue
+or congregation, but within the whole nation, for all synagogues were
+under the great council at Jerusalem. Now that Christ gives here the
+same rule that was of old given to the Jews for church government, is
+clear, 1. From the censure of the obstinate, who was to be reputed a
+heathen and a publican; wherein is a manifest allusion to the present
+estate of the Church of the Jews; and, 2. From the familiarity and
+plainness of Christ's speech, _Tell the church_, which church could not
+have been understood by the disciples had not Christ spoken of the
+Jewish judicatory; besides which they knew none for such offences as
+Christ spake of to them, there being no particular church which had
+given its name to Christ: as also, 3. From his citing the words of that
+text, Deut. xix. 15, where the witnesses and offenders were, by way of
+further appeal, to stand before the Lord, before the priests for
+judgment, ver. 17.
+
+3. It is plain that our Saviour intended a liberty of going beyond a
+particular congregation for determining cases of controversy, from the
+reason of that subordination which Christ enjoins, of one to two or
+three, and of them to the church. The reason of that gradual progress
+there set down, was because in the increase of numbers and greatness of
+assemblies, more wisdom, judgment, and gravity is supposed to be, than
+in the admonitions of a few and smaller number; now, then, this power of
+right admonition increaseth with the number of admonishers, as well
+without as within the same congregation; if ten go beyond two in wisdom
+and gravity, forty will go beyond ten, and be more likely to win upon
+the offender, and regain him.
+
+_Argum_. IV. A fourth argument is taken from the pattern of the
+apostolical churches, Acts xv.
+
+The church of Antioch (though presbyterial, as was proved Chapter XIII.,
+Position II.) was subordinate to the synod at Jerusalem; therefore a
+particular church is subordinate to higher assemblies, &c.
+
+If a synodal decree did bind them in those times, then may it bind
+particular churches now, and these ought even still to be subject to
+synods.
+
+The consequence is undeniable, unless we hold that what the synod there
+imposed was unjust, or that we have now less need of those remedies than
+they had; nay, since the apostles (who were assisted with an
+extraordinary spirit of inspiration) would nevertheless in a doubtful
+business have synodal conventions for determining of controversies, much
+more ought we to do so whose gifts are far inferior to theirs; and
+unless it had been in their determination to leave us their example of a
+synodal way of church government for our pattern, they had not wanted
+the meeting together of so many with them for decision of the doubt,
+whose doctrine was infallible, and of itself, without an assembly, to be
+believed.
+
+The exceptions against this pattern of church polity are of no validity,
+e.g.
+
+1. This was no synod. First, that it was no synod appears, in that we
+read of no word of a synod. Secondly, no commissioners from Syria and
+Cilicia, which churches should have sent their delegates, had they been
+a synod, and had their decrees been to have bound in a synodal way.
+Thirdly, all the believers had voices here.
+
+2. If it were a synod, yet it is no pattern for us, in regard it was
+consisting of members guided by an infallible and apostolical spirit.
+
+We answer, 1. Here is the thing synod, though not the word, which is a
+meeting consisting of the deputies of many single churches.
+
+2. That Jerusalem and Antioch had their commissioners there, is evident;
+and by consequence many single churches had their commissioners, for
+there were many single congregations at Jerusalem and Antioch, as hath
+been proved, Chapter XIII., Position II.; that these met together, the
+word used, verse 6, _they came together_, evidenceth, and verse 25. For
+the churches of Syria and Cilicia not sending their commissioners, it
+follows not that because _they are not named_, therefore _they were not
+there_; and if _they were not there_, therefore _they ought not to have
+been_: but it is rather thought Syria and Cilicia had commissioners
+there, in regard the synodal decrees are directed to them as well as
+others, and the decrees bound them, which they could not do as formal
+Scripture; for the words, _it seemeth good to us_, and their submitting
+the matter to disputation, argue the contrary; therefore as synodal
+decrees, which inasmuch as they bound those churches, they either were
+present, or were obliged to be present by their commissioners.
+
+3. To that exception, that the multitude of believers had voices there,
+and therefore it is not one of our synods, ver. 22--
+
+We answer, it can nowise be proved that every particular believer had a
+suffrage in the assembly.
+
+Eminent divines[116] understand by _multitude_ and _church_, the
+multitude and whole church of apostles and elders, who are said to be
+_gathered together_, verse 6, _to consider of the matter_; besides which
+no other multitude is said to be gathered together, while the matter was
+in debate; yet we shall not deny even to other members the liberty of
+their consent and approbation, and freedom to examine all determinations
+by the rule of God's word: but the ordaining and forming those decrees
+is here evinced to be by the apostles and elders, when as they are
+called _their decrees_, Acts xvi. 4,6.
+
+3. Those only had definitive votes, who met together synodically to
+consider of the question; but they were only the apostles and elders,
+Acts xv. 6. That the epistle is sent in the name of all, is granted;
+because it was sent by common consent, and withal thereby was added some
+more weight to the message.
+
+4. Further, if the believers of Jerusalem voted in that assembly, by
+what authority was it? How could they _impose a burden_ upon, and
+command decrees unto the churches of Syria and Cilicia, and other
+churches, who, according to our brethren's opinion, were not only absent
+in their commissioners, but independent in their power?
+
+To the exception, that other synods may not pretend to the privileges of
+that, since its decrees were indited by the Holy Ghost; and therefore no
+pattern for our imitation--
+
+_Ans_. The decrees of this assembly did oblige, as synodal decrees, not
+as apostolical and canonical Scripture: this appears several ways:
+
+1. The apostles, in framing these canons, did proceed in a way synodal
+and ecclesiastical, and far different from that which they used in
+dictating of Scripture, and publishing divine truths; their decrees were
+brought forth by much disputation, human disquisition, but divine
+oracles are published without human reasonings, from the immediate
+inditing of the Spirit, 2 Pet. i. 2.
+
+2. Besides the apostles, there were here commissioned elders and other
+brethren, men of ordinary rank, not divinely and infallibly inspired.
+The apostles in the penning of Scripture consult not with elders and
+brethren, (as our opposites here say they did:) our brethren make
+mandates of ordinary believers divine and canonical Scripture.
+
+3. Divine writ is published only in the name of the Lord; but these in
+the name of man also, "It seemed good to the Holy Ghost and to us," Acts
+xv. 28.
+
+4. Canonical and apostolical writing of new Scripture shall not continue
+till Christ's coming, because the canon is complete, Rev. xxii. 18, 19,
+&c.; but thus to decree through the assistance of the Holy Ghost, who
+remaineth with the Church to the end, and to be directed by Scripture,
+shall still continue. Therefore this decreeing is not as the inditing of
+the Holy Scripture. The minor is clear both from Christ's promise,
+"Where two or three are met together," Matt. xvii. 18-20; Matt. viii.
+20; as also by the Spirit's inspiring those councils of Nice of old, and
+Dort of late: Therefore the apostles here laid aside their apostolical
+extraordinary power, descending to the places of ordinary pastors, to
+give them examples in future ages.
+
+To conclude, it is plain, that all the essentials in this assembly were
+synodal, as whether we consider: 1. The occasion of the meeting, a
+controversy; 2. The deputation of commissioners from particular
+churches, for the deciding of that controversy; or 3. The convention of
+those that were deputed; or 4. The discussion of the question, they
+being so convened; or 5. The determination of the question so discussed;
+or 6. The imposition of the thing so determined; or 7. The subjection to
+the thing so imposed.
+
+1 Tim. i. 17
+
+TO THE IMMORTAL GOD ALONE BE GLORY FOR EVER AND EVER.
+
+
+
+
+FOOTNOTES:
+
+[Footnote 1: This truth, that Jesus Christ is a king, and hath a kingdom
+and government in his Church distinct from the kingdoms of this world,
+and from the civil government, hath this commendation and character
+above all other truths, that Christ himself suffered to the death for
+it, and sealed it with his blood. For it may he observed from the story
+of his passion, this was the only point of his accusation, which was
+confessed and avouched by himself, Luke xxiii. 3; John xviii. 33, 36,
+37; was most aggravated, prosecuted, and driven home by the Jews, Luke
+xxiii. 2; John xix. 22, 23; was prevalent with Pilate as the cause of
+condemning him to die, John xix. 12, 13, and was mentioned also in his
+superscription upon his cross, John xix. 19; and although in reference
+to God, and in respect of satisfaction to the Divine justice for our
+sins, his death was [Greek: lytron] a price of redemption; yet in
+reference to men who did persecute, accuse, and condemn him, his death
+was [Greek: martyrion] a martyr's testimony to seal such a truth.--Mr.
+_G. Gillespie, in his Aaron's Rod Blossoming, &c., Epist. to the
+Reader_.]
+
+[Footnote 2: _Cent. I. lib. 2, cap._ 7, _p._ 407 _ad_ 418, _Edit. Basil.
+An._ 1624. De rebus ad Gubernationem Ecclesiae pertinentibus, Apostoli
+certos quosdam, Canones tradiderunt: quos ordine subjiciemus, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 3: Directions of the Lords and Commons, &c. Aug. 19, 1645, p.
+10]
+
+[Footnote 4: (1) The ancient discipline of the Bohemian Brethren,
+published in Latin, in octavo, _Anno_ 1633, pages 99, 100.
+
+(2) The discipline of Geneva, _Anno_ 1576, in _Art._ 1, 22, 57, 86, and
+87.
+
+(3) The discipline of the French church at Frankfort, _Edit._ 2, in
+octavo, _Anno_ 1555, _in cap. de Disciplina et Excom.,_ p. 75, and the
+Ecclesiast. Discipline of the reformed churches of France, printed at
+London, _Anno_ 1642, _Art._ 15, 16, and 24, p. 44. (1) The Synodal
+Constitution of the Dutch churches in England, chap. 4, _Art._ 13, and
+_Tit._ 1, _Art._ 2; and the Dutch churches in Belgia, (see _Harmonia
+Synodorum Belgicarum_,) _cap._ 14, _Art._ 7, 11, and 15, p. 160. (5) The
+reformed churches at Nassau, in Germany, as _Zeoper_ testifies, _De
+Politei Eccles.,_ printed _Herborne, Anno_ 1607, in octavo, _Tit. de
+Censuris Ecclesiast., Part_ 4, _Art._ 64, p. 813. (6) The discipline in
+the churches constituted by the labor of _Joannes â Lasco_, entitled
+_Forma ac ratio tota Ecclesiastici Miniterii, &c._, _author Joannes â
+Lasco Poloniae Barone, Anno_ 1555, p. 291. (7) The discipline agreed
+upon by the English exiles that fled from the _Marian_ persecution to
+Frankfort, thence to Geneva, allowed by _Calvin_; entitled _Ratio ac
+forma publicè orandi Deum, &c., Genevae_, 1556, _Tit. de Disciplina_, p.
+68. (8) The Order of Excommunication and Public Repentance used in the
+Church of Scotland, _Anno_ 1571, _Tit._ The offences that deserve public
+repentance, &c., pp. 87, 88.]
+
+[Footnote 5: See more in chap. 10, sect. 1.]
+
+[Footnote 6: R. Park, de Polit. Eccl. 1. 2, cap. 42.]
+
+[Footnote 7: Malcolm. Com. in loco.]
+
+[Footnote 8: Calvin in loco.]
+
+[Footnote 9: Chrys. wisheth--"But, O that there had not wanted one that
+would have delivered diligently unto us the history of the apostles, not
+only what they wrote, or what they spake, but how they behaved
+themselves throughout their whole life, both what they did eat, and when
+they did eat, when they sat, and whither they went, and what they did
+every day, in what parts they lived, and into what house they entered,
+and whither they sailed, and that would accurately have expounded all
+things; so full of manifold utility are all things of theirs."--Chrys.,
+Argum. in Epist. ad Philem. And elsewhere he affirmeth,--"Nor hath the
+grace of the Holy Ghost without cause left unto us these histories
+written, but that he may stir us up to the imitation and emulation of
+such unspeakable men. For when we hear of this man's patience, of that
+man's soberness, of another man's readiness to entertain strangers, and
+the manifold virtue of every one, and how every one of them did shine
+and become illustrious, we are stirred up to the like zeal." Chrys. in
+Gen. xxx. 25. Homil. 57, in initio.]
+
+[Footnote 10: "For this cause, therefore, the conversation of these most
+excellent men is accurately related, that by imitation of them our life
+may be rightly led on to that which is good."--Greg. Nyssen, lib. de
+Vita Mosis, tom. i. p. 170, vid. tot. lib.]
+
+[Footnote 11: Perkins on Matth. vi. 16. See him also on Heb. xi. 6, p.
+28, in fol. col. 2, B, C, &c., and on Heb. xi. 22, p. 131, col. 2, D,
+and notably on Heb. xii. 1, p. 200, col. 2, C, D, &c., and on Rev. ii.
+19, p. 313, col. 1, B, and his Art of Prophesying, p. 663, col. 1 and 2.
+Vide Pet. Martyr in lib. Jud. p. 2, col. 1, and in Rom. iv. 23, 24. And
+Calvin in Heb. xii. 1; and in Rom. iv. 23, 24, and in 1. Pet. i. 21,
+&c.]
+
+[Footnote 12: Park. de Pol. Eccl. 1. 2, c. 42.]
+
+[Footnote 13: 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 14: Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 15-18; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5; 2 Cor. x.
+8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 15: 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17; 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15, with all places
+that mention any thing of government.]
+
+[Footnote 16: Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Matt. xxviii. 18-20;
+John xx. 21-23; Matt. xvi. 19; 2 Cor. x. 8.]
+
+[Footnote 17: Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 19; John xx. 21, 23; 2 Cor. x.
+8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 18: Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Acts vi. 4; 2 Tim. iv. 2.]
+
+[Footnote 19: Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi. 24.]
+
+[Footnote 20: Matt, xviii. 15-17; Tit. iii. 19; 1 Tim. v. 20; 1 Cor. v.
+4, 5, 13; 2 Cor. ii. 6: 1 Tim. i. 20; 2 Cor. ii 7, 8, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 21: 1 Cor. iv. 1.]
+
+[Footnote 22: 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 23: [Greek: Ekklaesia], Acts xix. 32, 39, 40; Eph. v. 23; 1
+Cor. xii. 98.]
+
+[Footnote 24: Cameron. Praelect de Eccles. in fol. pp. 296-298.]
+
+[Footnote 25: Who in relating such things can refrain from weeping?]
+
+[Footnote 26: See Mr. Edwards's Antapologia, page 201, printed in anno
+1644, proving this out of their own books. Especially see a little book
+in 12mo. printed in anno 1646, styled a collection of certain matters,
+which almost in every page pleads for Independency and Independents by
+name: from which most of the Independent principles seem to be derived.]
+
+[Footnote 27: Let not any man put off this Scripture, saying, This is in
+the Old Testament, but we find no such thing in the gospel; for we find
+the same thing, almost the same words used in a prophecy of the times of
+the gospel, Zech. xiii. 3. In the latter end of the xii. chapter, it is
+prophesied that those who pierced Christ, should _look upon him and
+mourn_, &c., having a _spirit of grace and supplication_ poured upon
+them, chap. xiii. 1. "There shall now be opened a fountain for sin, and
+for uncleanness," ver. 3. "It shall come to pass that he that takes upon
+him to prophesy, that his father and mother that begat him, shall say
+unto him, Thou shalt not live, for thou speakest lies in the name of the
+Lord: and his father and his mother that begat him, shall thrust him
+through, when he prophesieth." You must understand this by that in
+Deuteronomy. The meaning is not that his father or mother should
+presently run a knife into him, but that though they begat him, yet they
+should be the means to bring him to condign punishment, even the taking
+away his life; these who were the instruments of his life, should now be
+the instruments of his death.--Mr. Jer. Burroughs in ills Irenicum,
+chap. v., Pages 19, 20, printed 1646.]
+
+[Footnote 28: But schismatics and heretics are called evil-workers,
+Phil. iii. 2; and heresy is classed among the works of the flesh, Gal.
+v. 20.]
+
+[Footnote 29: Mr. Burroughs in his _Irenicum_, c.v. page 25; printed
+1646.]
+
+[Footnote 30: See this evidenced upon divers grounds in _Appollon. jus
+Majest._, pp. 25, 26.]
+
+[Footnote 31: See M.S. to A.S., pages 55-60.]
+
+[Footnote 32: The civil magistrate is no proper church officer, as was
+intimated, Part 1 c. 1., and will be further evidenced in this chapter.]
+
+[Footnote 33: That the civil magistrate is not the vicar of Christ our
+Mediator, see abundantly proved by Mr. S. Rutherford, in his Divine
+Right of Church Government, &c., Ch. 27, Quest. 23, pages 595 to 647.]
+
+[Footnote 34: The formal difference or distinction betwixt these two
+powers, is fully and clearly asserted by that learned bishop, Usher, in
+these words: "God, for the better settling of piety and honesty among
+men, and the repressing of profaneness and other vices, hath established
+two distinct powers upon earth: the one of the keys, committed to the
+Church; the other of the sword, committed to the civil magistrate. That
+of the keys, is ordained to work upon the inward man; having immediate
+relation to the remitting or retaining of sins, John xx. 23. That of the
+sword is appointed to work upon the outward man; yielding protection to
+the obedient, and inflicting external punishment upon the rebellious and
+disobedient. By the former, the spiritual officers of the Church of
+Christ are inclinable to govern well, 1 Tim. v. 17. To _speak_, and
+_exhort_, and _rebuke_ with all _authority_, Tit. ii. 15. To loose such
+as are penitent, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. To commit others to the
+Lord's prison, until their amendment, or to bind them over to the
+judgment of the great day, if they shall persist in their wilfulness and
+obstinacy. By the other, princes have an imperious power assigned by God
+unto them, for the defence of such as do well, and executing revenge and
+wrath, Rom. xiii. 4, upon such as do evil, whether by death, or
+banishment, or confiscation of goods, or imprisonment, Ezra vii. 26,
+according to the quality of the offence.
+
+"When St. Peter, that had the keys committed unto him, made bold to draw
+the sword, he was commanded to put it up, Matt. xxvi. 52, as a weapon
+that he had no authority to meddle withal. And on the other side, when
+Uzziah the king would venture upon the execution of the priest's office,
+it was said unto him, 'It pertaineth not unto thee, Uzziah, to burn
+incense unto the Lord, but to the priests, the sons of Aaron, that are
+consecrated to burn incense,' 2 Chron. xxvi. 18. Let this therefore be
+our second conclusion: That the power of the sword, and of the keys, are
+two distinct ordinances of God; and that the prince hath no more
+authority to enter upon the execution of any part of the priest's
+function, than the priest hath to intrude upon any part of the office of
+the prince." In his speech delivered in the Castle-chamber at Dublin,
+&c., concerning the oath of supremacy, pages 3, 4, 5. Further
+differences betwixt these two powers, see in Gillespie's Aaron's Rod,
+Book 2, Chap. 4.]
+
+[Footnote 35: See this proposition for substance fully and clearly
+asserted by that acute and pious author, Mr. P. Bains, in his Diocesan's
+Trial, quest. 3, pages 83, 84, conclus. 3.]
+
+[Footnote 36: See Cotton's Keys, &c., pp. 31-33, and Mr. Thomas Goodwin,
+and Mr. Philip Nye, in their epistle prefixed thereunto, do own this
+book as being for substance their own judgment.]
+
+[Footnote 37: See that judicious treatise, Vindiciae Clavium, chap. III.
+IV. V., pp. 33-52.]
+
+[Footnote 38: John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt, xviii. 15, p. 149-151, in
+fol, and Baine's Diocesan's Trial, the third quest, pp. 79, 80, and D.
+Parcus in Matt. xviii. 15. This is fully discussed and proved by Mr.
+Rutherford in his Peaceable Plea, Chap. viii. p. 85, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 39: A difference arose betwixt two gentlemen in that church
+about singing of hymns: the second gentleman was complained of to the
+church by the first, and upon hearing of the whole business, and all the
+words that passed between them, this second gentleman was censured by
+the church, and Mr. Nye _charged sin upon him_ (that was the phrase) in
+many particulars, and still at the end of every charge Mr. Nye repeated,
+"this was your sin." After this censure, so solemnly done, the gentleman
+censured brings in accusations against Mr. Nye, in several articles,
+charging him with pride, want of charity, &c., in the manner of the
+censure; and this being brought before the church, continued in debate
+about half a year, three or four days in a week, and sometimes more,
+before all the congregation. Divers of the members having callings to
+follow, they desired to have leave to be absent. Mr. Goodwin oft
+professed publicly upon these differences, If this were their church
+fellowship, he would lay down his eldership; and nothing was more
+commonly spoke among the members, than that certainly for matter of
+discipline they were not in the right way, for that there was no way of
+bringing things to an end. At last, after more than half a year's
+debate, not being able to bring these differences to an end, and being
+come into England, they had their last meeting about it, to agree not to
+publish it abroad when they came into England, &c. Mr. Edwards's
+Antapolog., pp. 36, 37.]
+
+[Footnote 40: Mr. J. Cotton, in his Way of the Churches of Christ in New
+England, chap, ii. sect. 7, p. 43.]
+
+[Footnote 41: Were the power in the church, the church should not only
+call them, but make them out of virtue and power received into herself;
+then should the church have a true lordlike power in regard of her
+ministers. Besides, there are many in the community of Christians
+incapable of this power regularly, as women and children. Mr. P. Bain in
+his Diocesan's Trial, quest. 3, conclus. 3, page 84, printed 1621.]
+
+[Footnote 42: If spiritual and ecclesiastical power be in the church or
+community of the faithful, the church doth not only call, but make
+officers out of virtue and power received into herself, and then should
+the church have a true lordlike power in regard of her ministers. For,
+as he that will derive authority to the church, maketh himself lord of
+the church, so, if the church derive authority to the ministers of
+Christ, she maketh herself lady or mistress over them, in the exercise
+of that lordlike authority; for, as all men know, it is the property of
+the lord and master to impart authority. Did the church give power to
+the pastors and teachers, she might make the sacrament and preaching
+which one doth in order, no sacrament, no preaching; for it is the order
+instituted of God that giveth being and efficacy to these ordinances;
+and if the power of ruling, feeding, and dispensing the holy things of
+God do reside in the faithful, the word and sacrament, in respect of
+dispensation and efficacy, shall depend upon the order and institution
+of the society. If the power of the keys be derived from the community
+of the faithful, then are all officers immediately and formally servants
+to the church, and must do every thing in the name of the church, rule,
+feed, bind, loose, remit, and retain sins, preach and administer the
+sacraments; then they must perform their office according to the
+direction of the church, more or less, seldom or frequent, remiss or
+diligent; for from whom are they to receive direction how to carry
+themselves in their offices, but from him or them of whom they receive
+their office, whose work they are to do, and from whom they must expect
+reward? If their office and power be of God immediately, they must do
+the duties of their place according to his designment, and unto him they
+must give account; but if their power and function be from the church,
+the church must give account to God, and the officers to the church,
+whom she doth take to be her helpers, &c. Mr. John Ball, in his Trial of
+the grounds tending to separation, chap. xii. pages 252, 253, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 43: See Vindiciae Clavium, judiciously unmasking these new
+notions.]
+
+[Footnote 44: Here understand by this phrase, (_over you in the Lord_,)
+viz: Not only in the fear of the Lord, nor only in those things that
+appertain to God's worship, but also according to the will, and by the
+authority of the Lord Christ derived to them.]
+
+[Footnote 45: See the Apologetical narration by the five Independents,
+page 8; and Mr. Jo. Cotton, at large, asserts the divine institution of
+the ruling elder. Way of the Churches of Christ, &c., chap. 2, sect. 2,
+page 13-35.]
+
+[Footnote 46: Calvin, Beza, Pareus, Pagnin.]
+
+[Footnote 47: Arias Montan.]
+
+[Footnote 48: Tremel. out of the Syriac; so the old Geneva translation,
+and our new translation.]
+
+[Footnote 49: Field, of the Church, book 5, chap. 26.]
+
+[Footnote 50: Sutlive, who afterwards declared, that he was sorry with
+all his heart, that ever he put pen to paper to write against Beza as he
+had done, in behalf of the proud domineering prelates; and he spoke this
+with great indignation.]
+
+[Footnote 51: Mat. Sutliv. de Presbyterio, cap. 12, p. 87, edit. 1591.]
+
+[Footnote 52: Ibid. pages 72 and 87, edit. 1591.]
+
+[Footnote 53: Bilson's perpetual Government of Christ's Church, c. 10,
+p. 136, 137, 138, printed in Ann. 1610.]
+
+[Footnote 54: That the magistrate cannot be here meant, see fully
+evidenced in Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, &c., book ii. chap. 6, pages
+218-224, and also chap. 9, p. 284.]
+
+[Footnote 55: Pareas in 1 Cor. xii. 28.]
+
+[Footnote 56: D. Field, Of the Church, book v. chap. xxvi.]
+
+[Footnote 57: Peter Martyr, Beza, Piscator, and Calvin.]
+
+[Footnote 58: Calvin in 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. _Vid. etiam Jacob. Laurent.
+Comment, in_ 1 Pet. v. 2, 3, _ubi fusius de hac distinctione disserit_,
+p. 322, ad. 325.]
+
+[Footnote 59: Mat. Sutliv. De Presbyterio, cap. 12, page 72 and 87:
+edit. Lond., an. 1591. Bilson's Perpetual Government of Christ's Church,
+chap. 10, page 141; in 4to. printed in anno 1610.]
+
+[Footnote 60: _Vide_ Calv. in loc.]
+
+[Footnote 61: Sutlive.]
+
+[Footnote 62: Whitgift.]
+
+[Footnote 63: Coleman.]
+
+[Footnote 64: Who desire more full satisfaction touching this poor and
+empty gloss, that the civil magistrate should be meant by these
+governments, let them consult Mr. Gillespie's elaborate treatise, called
+Aaron's Rod Blossoming, book 2, chap, 6, pp. 218 to 224.]
+
+[Footnote 65: Bilson.]
+
+[Footnote 66: Mr. Rutherford in his Due Right of Presbyteries, p. 145.]
+
+[Footnote 67: Calvin, Beza, &c. on this place.]
+
+[Footnote 68: See Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, book 2, chap. 9.]
+
+[Footnote 69: Mr. Rutherford in his Due Rights of Presbyteries, chap. 7,
+sec. 7, pages 145-147.]
+
+[Footnote 70: Beza, Piscata, Calvin, on this verse.]
+
+[Footnote 71: Bilson's Perpetual Government of Christ's Church, chap. x.
+pages 130, 131.]
+
+[Footnote 72: Altar. Damas. cap. xii., page 918 and page 920.]
+
+[Footnote 73: B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii., Bilson in his
+Perpetual Government of Christ's Church, c. x. page 132, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 74: B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii., page 40.]
+
+[Footnote 75: B. Whitgift in his Defence against Cartwright's first
+Reply. This is one of D. Field's three glosses. Field, Of the Church,
+lib v., chap. 26.]
+
+[Footnote 76: Bishops that have no tolerable gift of teaching, are like
+idols, their cases, or rather coffins, set up in the church's choice.
+Cartwright Testam. _Annot_., in 1 Tim. v. 17.]
+
+[Footnote 77: Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page 919.]
+
+[Footnote 78: Bridge, Hussey.]
+
+[Footnote 79: Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page 919.]
+
+[Footnote 80: Sutlive.]
+
+[Footnote 81: Sutlive, De Presbyterio, cap. 12, pages 72, 73.]
+
+[Footnote 82: Bilson's Government of the Church, page 133.]
+
+[Footnote 83: Sutlive, De Presbyterio, c. 12, pages 72, 73.]
+
+[Footnote 84: Bilson, page 135.]
+
+[Footnote 85: Field, Book v.]
+
+[Footnote 86: Bilson, page 133.]
+
+[Footnote 87: Field, Book v.]
+
+[Footnote 88: D. Downham. See Altar. Damasc. c. xii. page 924.]
+
+[Footnote 89: Chrysost. Homil. 15, in 1 Tim. 5, Hier. in 1 Tim. cap. 5,
+Ambr. in 1 Tim. cap., Calv. in 1 Tim. cap. 5, Bullinger in 1 Tim. cap.
+5, Beza in 1 Tim. 5.]
+
+[Footnote 90: Bilson, Sutlive, and Downham.]
+
+[Footnote 91: The London ministers have here inserted the testimonies of
+these ancient writers in favor of the divine right of the office of the
+ruling elder, viz. Ignatius, Purpurius, Tertullian, Origen, Cyprian,
+Optatus, Ambrose, Augustine, and Isidorus; and of these three late ones,
+viz. Whitaker, Thorndike, and Rivet. The amount of their testimony, when
+taken together, appears to be simply this, that there have been ruling
+elders, as distinct from preaching elders, in the Church of Christ from
+the beginning. It is therefore judged unnecessary to give the quotations
+from these authors at large.--_Editor_.]
+
+[Footnote 92: Against the office of deacons, and the divine right
+thereof, fourteen objections are answered by Mr. S. Rutherford in his
+Due Right of Presbyteries, chap. 7, pages 159 to 175. To which the
+reader that shall make any scruple about the deacon's office, is
+referred for his further satisfaction.]
+
+[Footnote 93: Some of our brethren in New England, observing what
+confusion necessarily depends upon the government which hath been
+practised there, have been forced much to search into it within this
+four years, and incline to acknowledge the presbyters to be the subject
+of the power without dependence upon the people. "We judge, upon mature
+deliberation, that the ordinary exercise of government must be so in the
+presbyters, as not to depend upon the express votes and suffrages of the
+people. There hath been a convent or meeting of the ministers of these
+parts, about this question at Cambridge in the Bay, and there we have
+proposed our arguments, and answered theirs, and they proposed theirs,
+and answered ours; and so the point is left to consideration." Mr.
+Thomas Parker in his letter written from Newbury in New England,
+December 17, 1643, printed 1644.]
+
+[Footnote 94: Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. L. Graec. in verb.]
+
+[Footnote 95: Piscator.]
+
+[Footnote 96: Beza.]
+
+[Footnote 97: Zanch. in loco.]
+
+[Footnote 98: Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. ad verb.]
+
+[Footnote 99: Mr. Jo. Cotton's Keys of the Kingdom of Heaven, chap. vii.
+in propos. 3, pages 44-46.]
+
+[Footnote 100: See Mr. Cotton's own words in chap. XIV. at the end, in
+the margin.]
+
+[Footnote 101: See John Calvin, in 1 Cor. v. 4.]
+
+[Footnote 102: Cameron, in Matt. xviii. 15.]
+
+[Footnote 103: Thus Mr. Bayne remarkably expounds this text, Matt.
+xviii., saying: Where first mark, that Christ doth presuppose the
+authority of every particular church taken indistinctly. For it is such
+a church as any brother offended may presently complain to. Therefore no
+universal, or provincial, or diocesan church gathered in a council. 2.
+It is not any particular church that he doth send all Christians to, for
+then all Christians in the world should come to one particular church,
+were it possible. He doth therefore presuppose indistinctly the very
+particular church where the brother offending and offended are members.
+And if they be not both of one church, the plaintiff must make his
+denunciation to the church where the defendant is. 3. As Christ doth
+speak it of any ordinary particular church indistinctly, so he doth by
+the name of church not understand essentially all the congregation. For
+then Christ should give not some, but all the members of the church to
+be governors of it. 4. Christ speaketh it of such a church to whom we
+may ordinarily and orderly complain; now this we cannot to the whole
+multitude. 5. This church he speaketh of then doth presuppose it, as the
+ordinary executioner of all discipline and censure. But the multitude
+have not this execution ordinary, as all but Morelius, and such
+democratical spirits, do affirm. And the reason ratifying the sentence
+of the church, doth show that often the number of it is but small, "For
+where two or three are gathered together in my name;" whereas the church
+or congregations essentially taken for teachers and people, are
+incomparably great. Neither doth Christ mean by church the chief pastor,
+who is virtually as the whole church.--Mr. Bayne's Diocesan's Trial.]
+
+[Footnote 104: Timothy received grace by the laying on of the hands of
+the presbytery. For that persons must be understood here, is apparent by
+the like place, when it is said, by the laying on of my hands, he noteth
+a person, and so here a presbytery. 2. To take presbytery to signify the
+order of priesthood, is against all lexicons, and the nature of the
+Greek termination. 3. Timothy never received that order of a presbyter,
+as before we have proved. 4. It cannot signify, as Greek expositors take
+it, a company of bishops; for neither was that canon of three bishops
+and the Metropolitan, or all the bishops in a province, in the apostle's
+time; neither were these who were now called bishops, then called
+presbyters, as they say, but apostles, men that had received apostolic
+grace, angels, &c. Finally, it is very absurd to think of companies of
+other presbyters in churches that Paul planted, but presbyteries of such
+presbyters as are now distinguished from bishops, which is the grant of
+our adversaries.--Bayne's Diocesan's Trial, page 82.]
+
+[Footnote 105: See Assertion of the Government of the Church of
+Scotland, Part I. Chap. 2, p. 122, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 106: Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod Blossoming, book i. chap.
+iii. pages 8-38.]
+
+[Footnote 107: Vid. Joannis Seldeni de Anno Civili, and Calendario, &c.
+Dissertationem in Praefat., page 8. See also Mr. John Lightfoot's
+Commentary upon the Acts, c. x. 28, pages 235-239.]
+
+[Footnote 108: John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt. xviii. 15, page 143 ad
+162, and Mr. G. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod Blossoming, &c., book i., chap.
+3, page 8, &c., and book ii., chap. 9, page 294-297; and book iii.,
+chapters 2-6, handling this elaborately, pages 350-423.]
+
+[Footnote 109: Assertion, &c., part 2, chap. 3, p. 139.]
+
+[Footnote 110: Basilius in Psal. cxv. Oecumenius in loc. Jerom.
+Chrysostome, hom. 33, in Matt. Irenaeus, lib. 1, chap. 11. Salmeron.]
+
+[Footnote 111: Euseb. Hist. Eccles. 1. 8 c. 1.]
+
+[Footnote 112: If Cenchrea be comprehended under the church of Corinth
+in this epistle, and the apostle writing to the Corinthians, wrote also
+to this church, called, Rom. xvi. 1, _the church of Cenchrea_, then have
+we more congregations than one at Corinth. Now, Cenchrea was a seaport
+or harbor of the Corinthians. It was a place near to Corinth, on the
+east of the Egean Sea. Rutherford, in his Due Right of Presbyteries,
+page 462.]
+
+[Footnote 113: Paget, Gillespie, and the four Leyden professors, unto
+whose judicious and elaborate treatises, the reader is referred for more
+full satisfaction against the usual cavils and exceptions that are made
+against synods, and their power.]
+
+[Footnote 114: This is the judgment of the learned Whitaker upon these
+words: other lawful councils may in like manner assert "their decrees to
+be the decrees of the Holy Ghost, if they shall be like to this council,
+and shall keep the same rule, which in this council the apostles did
+keep and follow. For if they shall decree and determine nothing but from
+Scripture, (which was done in this council.) and if they shall examine
+all questions by the Scripture, and shall follow the voice of the
+Scriptures in all their decrees, then they may assert, that the Holy
+Ghost so decreed," &c. Whitaker, Cont. page 610.]
+
+[Footnote 115: That there is an authoritative, juridical synod; and that
+this synod, Acts xv., was such a one; and that this synod is a pattern
+to us;--all this is most ingenuously acknowledged and asserted by that
+learned Independent, Mr. John Cotton, in these words, viz:
+
+"IV. Proposition, in case a particular church be disturbed with errors
+of scandal, and the same maintained by a faction among them. Now a synod
+of churches, or of their messengers, is the first subject of that power
+and authority, whereby error is judicially convinced and condemned, the
+truth searched out and determined; and the way of truth and peace
+declared and imposed upon the churches.
+
+"The truth of this proposition may appear by two arguments
+
+"_Argum_. 1. From the want of power in such a particular church, to pass
+a binding sentence where error or scandal is maintained by a faction;
+for the promise of binding and loosing which is made to a particular
+church, Matt, xviii. 18, is not given to the church when it is leavened
+with error and variance. And the ground----If then the church, or a
+considerable part of it, fall into error through ignorance, or into
+faction; by variance, they cannot expect the presence of Christ with
+them according to his promise, to pass a blind sentence. And then as
+they fall under the conviction and admonition of any other sister
+church, in a way of brotherly love, by virtue of communion of churches;
+so their errors and variance, and whatsoever scandals else do accompany
+the same, they are justly subject to the condemnation of a synod of
+churches.
+
+"2. A second argument to prove that a synod is the first subject of
+power, to determine and judge errors and variances in particular
+churches, is taken from the pattern set before us in that case, Acts xv.
+1-28: when certain false teachers having taught in the church of Antioch
+a necessity of circumcision to salvation, and having gotten a faction to
+take part with them, (as appeareth by the dissension and disputation of
+Paul and Barnabas against them,) the church did not determine the case
+themselves, but referred the whole matter to the _apostles and elders at
+Jerusalem_, Acts xv. 1, 2. Not to the apostles alone, but to the
+apostles and elders. The apostles were as the elders and rulers of all
+churches; and the elders there were not a few, the believers in
+Jerusalem being many thousands. Neither did the apostles determine the
+matter (as hath been said) by apostolical authority from immediate
+revelation: but they assembled together with the elders, _to consider of
+the matter_, ver. 6, and a _multitude of brethren_ together with them,
+ver. 12, 22, 23; and after searching out the cause by an ordinary means
+of disputation, ver. 7, Peter cleared it by the witness Of the Spirit to
+his ministry in Cornelius's family; Paul and Barnabas by the like effect
+of their ministry among the Gentiles: James confirmed the same by the
+testimony of the prophets, wherewith the whole synod being satisfied,
+they determine of a JUDICIAL SENTENCE, and of a way to publish it by
+letters and messengers; in which they CENSURE the false teachers as
+troublers of their church, and subverters of their souls; they reject
+the imposition of circumcision as a yoke which neither they nor their
+fathers were able to bear; they IMPOSE upon the Church none but some
+necessary observations, and them by way of THAT AUTHORITY which the Lord
+had given them, ver. 28: which PATTERN clearly showeth us to whom the
+key of authority is committed, when there groweth offence and difference
+in a church. Look as in the case of the offence of a faithful brother
+persisted in, the matter is at last judged and determined in a church:
+so in the offence of the church or congregation, the matter is at last
+judged in a congregation of churches, a church of churches; for what is
+a synod else but a church of churches?"--Keys of the Kingdom of Heaven,
+pages 47-49.]
+
+[Footnote 116: Junius, Beza, Calvin, and Piscator.]
+
+
+
+
+APPENDIX.
+
+NO. 1.[117]
+
+_Of the Scriptural Qualifications and Duties of Church Members._
+
+
+_Quest_. What persons have a right in the sight of God to be actual
+members of the Church of Christ?
+
+_Ans_. Only regenerated and converted persons, such as are married to,
+and have put on Christ; such as are savingly and powerfully enlightened,
+quickened, and convinced of sin, righteousness, and judgment;[118] such
+as have chosen Christ for their Lord and Saviour, and resigned and made
+over themselves to him, and received him upon his own terms;[119] such
+only as are reconciled unto, and are in favor with God; as are justified
+by faith, sanctified by the Spirit, and set apart for holiness, and unto
+a living to God, and no more unto themselves:[120] such as are the
+beloved of God, called effectually to be saints, and have really and
+sincerely taken upon them the yoke of Christ Jesus, I say such persons,
+and only such, doth Jesus Christ account worthy of this privilege and
+dignity.[121] Although men do not certainly know those that are such,
+and by reason of their darkness and fallible judgments they may and do
+admit others into the Church, and unto her privileges, yet in truth
+these have no right unto them, and ought not to be there; for these
+spiritual holy things are for, and only for, spiritual and holy persons.
+Christ prepares men by his grace, word, and Spirit to make them fit
+materials, and then he calls them to join together and become a
+spiritual house, for his delight, service, and glory.[F] And therefore
+holy persons, and such only, ought to be full members of the Church of
+Christ.
+
+This will appear by these following particulars:
+
+1. Because God often declares his detestation and abhorrence of others
+being there, and manifests his indignation against them. As to the man
+that came to the marriage supper without the wedding-garment, Matt.
+xxii. 11-13; and the five foolish virgins, chap. xxv.; and the dreadful
+end of the tares, chap. xiii. 38-44, which were the hypocrites, that by
+the devil's instigation had crept into the Church. It is true that such
+were, and will be, in the best of churches, although their guides may do
+all they can to prevent it, because they cannot make an infallible
+judgment of persons' states; yet it is as certain these are usurpers and
+ought not to be there. For, although they are in God's providence
+permitted to creep in, yet we may be sure they are not there with his
+approbation:--they are not all Israel that are of Israel; for, saith God
+to all uncircumcised, What have you to do to take my covenant into your
+mouth, seeing you hate instruction and cast my words behind your back,
+(as all hypocrites do,) Ps. l. 16, 17. And Christ says, that such as
+will not have him to reign over him (and to be sure hypocrites will not)
+shall be destroyed, Luke xix. 27. Now, as hypocrites are most loathsome
+and abominable persons in the sight of God, as may be seen at large in
+Matt, xxiii. 13-35, they have no right unto the spiritual privileges of
+the Church of Christ, because, in the sight of God, the gospel Church
+should consist only of new creatures and real members of Jesus Christ.
+
+II. That all church members ought to be sincere-hearted believers
+appears by the high titles which the Lord Jesus gives unto them in
+Scripture: they are described to be like the king's daughter, all
+glorious within. They are called saints, holy brethren, and beloved,
+elect, dear children of God, the spouse of Christ, a holy temple of God,
+lively stones, built up a spiritual house, a holy priesthood, and the
+Lord's sealed ones. Now such honorable titles belong not unto mere
+formal professors, but only unto the real members of Christ: not unto
+those that have a name only; but to such as are so indeed and in truth.
+
+III. A third reason is taken from the ends of God in instituting and
+appointing churches. They are said to be built by the Spirit for God,
+i.e. for God to dwell and walk in them, to repose himself in them, as in
+his holy garden, house, and temple. They are designed for promoting his
+glory in the world, to distinguish his people from others; that they
+should be to the praise of his glorious grace, and be the living
+witnesses to his name, truths, and ways; that they should be the
+habitations of beauty and glory, of fame and renown in the world, and be
+the light thereof; and that with one heart and mouth they should glorify
+God. Believers are united into a church capacity for their spiritual
+profit and advantage, that God may there give them his love, and
+communicate his grace, truths, and counsels to them, as to his avowed
+household and family Christ walks there, and God the Father dwells
+there, and the Holy Spirit speaks to them in a special and frequent
+manner to distribute liberally of their love and fulness. They are
+formed and set up by Jesus Christ to be the only seats and subjects of
+his laws, ordinances, power, and authority, that they might receive,
+obey, and observe his laws, declare before the world their owning of him
+for their Lord, by their open and public profession of, and subjection
+unto him, as such; and that, by their regular and distinct following of
+him in their united church state, they might manifest to all men, that
+they are his subjects and disciples, that they have chosen him for their
+Lord and King, and his law for the rule of their faith and obedience;
+that they are not their own, but his; and that they have reposed
+themselves in him, as their happiness and eternal blessedness; that they
+are called out of the world and set apart by his grace for himself, to
+live unto him; and that they have taken upon themselves his holy yoke,
+and the observation of all his laws. God has united believers into
+churches, that by his Spirit and ministers he may feed and nourish them
+there as his flock, water them as his garden, support them as his house,
+and order and govern them as his family and household.
+
+IV. The Church of Christ should consist of new creatures and
+sincere-hearted believers, because they only can and will answer and
+prosecute the foresaid, and such like holy ends of God, in and by his
+Church. They are fitted and framed, moulded and polished, by the Holy
+Ghost, for their growing up into a holy temple in the Lord; and so, by
+the constant and promised guidance and conduct of their living head
+Jesus Christ, with their spiritual qualifications, they are enabled to
+answer and perform the great ends of God, in erecting and building them
+up in a church state. But unregenerate persons cannot do this, because
+they are strangers in heart to Jesus Christ, and to the power of
+godliness; nor would they if they could, because they have not the
+saving knowledge of Christ in them, but are full of obstinacy against
+God.
+
+V. Because all the laws, ordinances, and works of church members are
+holy, spiritual, and heavenly. They are such as the natural man
+understands not, and cannot discern what they are, because they are
+spiritual and holy; and therefore they that are not taught of God
+savingly to form a proper judgment of them, do think and judge of them
+carnally and vainly. But believers have them written in their hearts
+beforehand. Yet they have them not without book, I mean they have the
+same laws of Christ written in the books of their hearts which they find
+in the Bible, by which they are in some measure enabled to understand,
+receive, love, and rightly to obey, the laws and ordinances of Christ
+without. Their laws are holy and spiritual, and their works in a church
+state are so likewise. They have a holy God, who is a Spirit, to serve
+and worship; a spiritual Head to believe in and obey; holy and spiritual
+work to do; and therefore they need to be holy and spiritual persons,
+not only externally in profession, but also internally, in truth. Almost
+all the laws and ordinances of Christ are committed unto them, and God
+expects his principal and choicest worship from his Church; and these
+are all above and beyond the reach of carnal minds.
+
+VI. The Church ought to be composed of believers and regenerated
+persons, because they are called to continue and stand fast in all
+storms and tempests; and to hold out unto the end, as being built upon
+the rock Jesus Christ. For whatever church is built upon the sand, and
+not upon the Lord Jesus, and by the authority of his word and Spirit,
+will not stand long, because it wants a foundation to bear up its
+weight. They must all be built upon the rock and chief corner-stone, the
+sure foundation that God hath laid. The Lord Jesus tells us, Matt. xvi.
+18, that upon this rock (i.e. himself and the truths that Peter had
+confessed) will I build my Church, and the gates of hell shall not
+prevail against it. But it is certain that hypocrites are not built upon
+Christ by faith, but fix their vain hopes on a sandy foundation.
+Therefore, if their persons are not built upon Christ, their church
+state cannot; but upon the sand. Hence then it follows that only true
+believers are built on Christ, and so they are the only persons that
+Christ wishes to have built up into holy temples; because the churches
+that Christ builds shall be built upon himself, that they may stand
+impregnable against all opposition: and therefore they should only be
+composed of such as are united to him by faith, and have chosen him for
+their only rock and foundation, and not of such as do secretly reject
+him.
+
+_Quest_. What qualifications should believers find in themselves for
+their own satisfaction, before they enter into full communion with the
+visible Church of Christ?
+
+_Ans_. They should be able to answer the following questions in the
+affirmative.
+
+I. Can you say indeed that you do seriously and heartily desire to see,
+and to be more deeply and powerfully convinced of your own vileness and
+sinfulness, of your own weakness and wretchedness, and of your wants and
+unworthiness? and that, in order to your deep and spiritual humiliation
+and self-debasing, that you may be more vile in your own eyes, and Jesus
+Christ and free grace more precious and excellent, more high and
+honorable, and more sweet and desirable, that your hearts may be melted
+into godly sorrow, and that you may be moved thereby to abhor
+yourselves, and to repent in dust and ashes? Job xlii. 5, 6.
+
+II. Can you say that you do seriously and heartily desire and endeavor
+to believe in Christ, and to receive and accept of him in the gospel
+way, such as you find in Mark viii. 34; Luke xiv. 26-28, and elsewhere?
+Do you thus desire and choose to have him with his yoke and cross? Matt.
+xi. 28, 29. And do you so deny yourselves, and your sinful self,
+righteous self, worldly self, supposed able, powerful self, and every
+other carnal and spiritual self, that Christ only may be exalted, that
+you may be nothing in your justification and salvation, but that Jesus
+Christ and free grace may be all, and in all things? Col. iii. 11; Phil.
+iii. 7, 8. Do you desire, choose, and endeavor to have Christ on the
+hardest terms; and do you desire, that all may go for Christ's person,
+blood, and righteousness, his grace, love, life, and Spirit, for the
+pardon of your sins, and the justification of your persons, that you may
+be found in him, not having your own righteousness, but the
+righteousness of Christ by faith? Phil. iii. 9. And do you go and
+present yourselves as destitute condemned sinners to him, and to God the
+Father in and by him, that you may be clothed with the righteousness of
+Christ, and that God may pardon, justify, and accept you for his sake
+only?
+
+III. Do you seriously and heartily desire and choose to have Christ
+Jesus for your Lord and Ruler too, Col. ii. 6; that he may rule in you,
+and over you, and that your lusts and yourselves, your interests, and
+your all, may be subject unto him, and be wholly at his command and
+disposal continually? Is Christ the Lord as acceptable to you as Christ
+Jesus the Saviour? and are you willing to obey him, and to be subject to
+his authority and dominion, as well as to be saved by him? Would you
+have him to destroy your lusts, to make an end of sin, and to bring all
+under his obedience?
+
+IV. Do you seriously and heartily desire and endeavor never to sin more;
+but to walk with God unto all well-pleasing continually? Col. i. 10. And
+do you pray earnestly that God would work in you that which is
+well-pleasing in his sight, Heb. xiii. 21, that you may in all your ways
+honor and glorify him, as the end of your living in this world? 2 Cor.
+v. 15. Would you indeed live to the praise of his glorious grace, be an
+ornament unto his name and gospel, and be fruitful in every good word
+and work? Are these things the scope, aim, and intent of your hearts and
+souls (in some good measure and degree) daily, in duties and ordinances,
+and at other times?
+
+V. Do you seriously and heartily choose and desire communion with
+Christ, and in truth endeavor to obtain and keep it? Do you so seek for
+it in the way of gospel obedience, and in observing your duty in keeping
+Christ's commandments? And do you prefer it to all earthly, carnal
+things? Do your hearts breathe and pant after it, and are you willing to
+deny self, and all self-interests to get it? Are you glad when you find
+it, and sad when by your own carelessness you lose it? Doth it when
+obtained quicken your love to and zeal for Christ? Doth it warm your
+hearts, and cause them for a time to run your race in gospel obedience
+cheerfully? Doth it lead you unto, and cause your hearts to centre in
+Christ? and doth it oblige and bind them faster unto him and stir you up
+to thankfulness?
+
+VI. Do you sincerely and heartily desire, seriously choose, and
+earnestly endeavor, to be filled with gospel sincerity towards God and
+man, and would you rather be true-hearted towards God than seem to be so
+towards man? Would you much rather have the praise of God, and be
+approved of by him, than the praise of men, and be extolled by them? Is
+it the great thing you aim at, in your profession and practice, to
+attain sincerity and uprightness in heart? Is all hypocrisy hateful and
+abominable unto you? Are you afraid of it, and do you watch and strive
+against it, as against an enemy to God and your own souls, and are you
+grieved indeed when you find it in you?
+
+VII. Do you desire and choose Jesus Christ for the great object of your
+love, delight, and joy? and do you find him to be so in some measure? Do
+you desire and endeavor to make him the object of your warmest
+affections, and to love him sincerely, heartily, spiritually, fervently,
+and constantly; and do you express your love to him by keeping his
+commandments? Are you grieved in spirit, because you can love him no
+more? and do you earnestly pray unto him to shed abroad his love into
+your hearts by the Holy Ghost, that you may love him as ye ought? Rom.
+v. 5. Doth his love and loveliness attract your hearts to him, and cause
+you to yield the obedience of faith to his holy laws?
+
+VIII. Is it the desire, choice, and endeavor of your souls to have all
+sins purged out of them, and to have them filled with Christ's grace,
+truth, and holiness; and do you hate your sin, watch and fight against
+it, and endeavor to keep it under? Do you indeed aim at, desire, labor,
+and strive, to be holy in heart and life, and conformable unto Jesus
+Christ in all things possible? Are your lusts your heaviest burdens and
+your greatest afflictions, and do you intend and endeavor their utter
+ruin and destruction? Will no degree of grace satisfy you until you be
+perfect to the utmost as Christ is? Are you so much concerned for
+Christ's honor, and your soul's holiness and happiness, that you dare
+not knowingly sin against them for a world; or do, in word or deed, by
+omission or commission, that which may dishonor, grieve, or wound them?
+Are these things so indeed?
+
+IX. Have you a measure of spiritual knowledge and discerning of
+spiritual things? Do you understand the nature and concerns of the house
+of God, and the work and duties, the privileges and enjoyments thereof,
+and what you have to do there; together with the ends of God in
+instituting and erecting gospel churches?
+
+X. Do you intend and resolve, in the light, life, and power of Christ,
+to seek for, and endeavor unfeignedly to obtain, and prosecute the ends
+of church fellowship, when you shall he accepted among them? and do you
+desire and aim at the holy ends appointed by God in desiring communion
+with them? as, 1. To enjoy God and communion with him in all his
+ordinances. 2. To worship God there in spirit and truth, and to give him
+your homage and service in his house. 3. To show your subjection and
+obedience to him, and to make a public and open profession of him, and
+of his truths before men. 4. To receive of his grace, to enrich your
+souls with his fulness, and to be sealed by his Spirit unto the day of
+your redemption. 5. That you may walk orderly and beautifully, and shine
+as lights in the Church, and in the world, before saints and sinners. 6.
+That you may be established in the truth, live under the watch and care
+of Christ's ministers, and of fellow-members; that by their inspection
+and faithful dealings with you you may be kept, or brought back from sin
+to God, by their wise reproofs and holy instructions. 7. That you may
+yield up yourselves in holy obedience to Christ, and do all things
+whatsoever he commands you, that you may have the right use and
+enjoyment of all your purchased privileges, and be secured against the
+gates of hell. Are these and such like ends in your hearts and minds, in
+your walk and in church fellowship, and can you find the forementioned
+signs of grace in you in some suitable measure, though not so clearly
+and fully as you would wish? Then I may venture to assure you, that you
+are qualified for being actual members of the Church of Christ, that you
+are called and invited into his house, and that you are indispensably
+bound to answer to the call of God, and to enter into his holy temple.
+
+I say that church privileges are yours, the doors of God's house stand
+open for you, Christ stands at the door and waits for you, he invites
+you to come in and to sit down at his table, and you shall be most
+freely and heartily welcome to your Lord, and to his people.
+
+_Quest_. What are those qualifications, which the rulers of a church,
+for their own satisfaction, should look for, and find in such persons,
+as they admit into full communion with the Church of Christ?
+
+_Ans_. It is certain that all that profess the name of Christ and his
+ways, ought not, and may not be admitted into the Lord's holy temple,
+because many, if not the most of them, are very ignorant of Christ and
+his ways, and notoriously scandalous in their lives, as sad and woful
+experience shows. If church rulers should admit known hypocrites, they
+betray their trust, and defile Christ's holy temple, by taking in such
+persons as they know, or ought to know, he would not have there: and
+that they ought to try and prove persons, that they may know their
+fitness, before they admit them in, is clear in Acts ix. 26, 27, and
+because Christ hath committed the keys of his house to take in and
+exclude according to his will and appointment.
+
+As to satisfying qualifications in persons desiring admission into the
+church, when they appear to be real sound-hearted believers, according
+to the judgment of charity, by the rules of the word, the church ought
+to receive them in the Lord.
+
+I. If they can satisfy the church, by giving Scripture evidence of their
+regeneration, conversion, repentance, and faith in Christ; of their
+knowledge of Christ, his laws and ordinances; of their lost and
+perishing state by reason of sin, and of their sincere desires and
+resolutions to become the Lord's, and to walk with him unto all
+well-pleasing in all his ways.
+
+II. If they are sound in the faith of the gospel; I mean in the chief
+and principal doctrines thereof, although they may be ignorant of, or
+mistaken in matters of less importance. If they have some distinct
+knowledge and faith concerning these, and other such truths and matters
+contained in the word of God; as of the state and condition in which man
+was at first created; how he lost that holy and blessed estate, and the
+misery into which he brought himself and all his posterity thereby.
+Concerning themselves, that they are by nature children of wrath, dead
+in trespasses and sins, and condemned to eternal death; that they are
+enemies to, and at enmity with, God; that they have neither will nor
+power by nature to will and to do that which they ought, and which is
+well-pleasing to God; that they have forsaken God, and are under the
+curse of the law; and that they are the children, subjects, and servants
+of the devil, the world, and their own lusts; that God left not all men
+in this lost state and condition, but provided an all-sufficient remedy,
+namely, Jesus Christ, and that by an everlasting covenant, entered into
+with him, in the behalf of men, before the foundation of the world, Tit.
+i. 2; 2 Tim. i. 9; Prov. viii.: and that, in pursuance thereof, he
+elected and gave some to Christ, that he might save them out of his mere
+grace and love. John vi. 37, 40:--That God the Father gave and sent his
+Son, the second person of the Trinity, to mediate peace between God
+and man, and to reconcile them to God, by his active and passive
+obedience;--that Jesus Christ gave himself, and became a propitiation
+for their sins;--that he assumed our nature into a personal union with
+himself, whereby there are two natures in one person, by which he was
+made capable of his mediatorship;--that he, being God and man in one
+person, took upon himself our guilt and punishment, obeyed the whole law
+of God, that men had broke, and did always the things that pleased
+God;--that, when he had finished his active obedience, he became
+obedient unto the death of the cross, to the wrath of God, and to the
+curse of the law, Gal. iii. 13; Phil. ii. 8;--that he really died and
+was buried, lay in the grave, and rose again the third day; and after
+forty days he ascended into heaven, and sat down at the right hand of
+God; and that he will come again to judge the quick and the dead;--that
+he is king, priest, and prophet; a king to give laws unto men, and to
+command their obedience to him, to rule and govern his subjects, and to
+reward the obedient, and to punish the disobedient;--that all power in
+heaven and earth is committed unto him; and that he is coequally and
+coeternally God with the Father and Holy Spirit;--that as a High Priest
+he died and made atonement for the sins of his people, and sits in
+heaven to make intercession, and to appear in the presence of God for
+them, Heb. vii. 25, and ix. 24;--that there are three persons in the
+Godhead, yet but one God;--that the Holy Ghost is eternally God, was
+sent into the world, and came from the Father and Son, for the elect's
+sake;--that it is he that regenerates persons, works effectually in
+their hearts, applies Jesus Christ and all his benefits to men, and
+savingly convinces his elect of sin, righteousness, and judgment. That
+all that rightly believe in Christ shall be saved, but those that
+believe not shall be damned; and that all that believe in him must be
+careful to perform good works. That believers are made righteous,
+through the righteousness of Jesus Christ, and that they have none of
+their own to commend them unto God. That God hath made Jesus Christ unto
+his chosen, wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption; and
+that they are made the righteousness of God in him. That God imputed
+their sins to Christ, and imputes the blood and righteousness of Christ
+to them; and that they are justified thereby, and not by inherent
+holiness and righteousness. That God loves, pardons, justifies, and
+saves men _freely_, without any respect unto their good works, as any
+cause thereof; but that all the moving cause (without himself) is Jesus
+Christ in his mediation. That the ground and reason of their obedience,
+in performing good works, is the revealed will and pleasure of Christ
+commanding them, and the ends of them are to express their thankfulness
+to God for his grace and love, to please and honor him, to meet with
+God, and to enjoy communion with him, to receive of his grace and the
+good of many promises; to shine as lights in the world, and to be useful
+unto men; to declare whose and what they are, and to lay up a reward in
+another world; to keep their lusts under, and their graces in use and
+exercise; and to manifest their respect and subjection to Jesus Christ,
+his authority, and law. That the law, for the matter of it, as in the
+hand of Christ, is the rule of all obedience; and that all are bound to
+yield subjection to it. That there shall be a resurrection of the just
+and unjust. That regeneration is absolutely necessary to salvation, and
+that without it none can enter into the kingdom of heaven. That the
+Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments contain, and exhibit unto men,
+the whole revealed will of God, and are sufficient to make the man of
+God perfect, thoroughly furnished unto every good work; and that
+whatsoever they are to believe and do is contained therein; and that it
+is the ground of their faith, hope, and practice. That Jesus Christ hath
+instituted and appointed many ordinances of worship, for his own glory
+and his people's good, and that all are bound to observe and to wait on
+God in them. That all persons are indispensably bound to mind, and
+carefully to observe the principal manner and end of all their duties,
+and to see that they be right, holy, and spiritual indeed, and not to
+please themselves with the matter of them alone. That no man can serve
+God, or do any work acceptable unto him, until he be regenerated, and
+brought into a state of grace.
+
+These are some of the matters of faith that they should in some measure
+be acquainted with and believe, that are admitted into full communion
+with the Church of Christ. And these and other truths must not be known
+and believed in a general, notional, light, and speculative manner; but
+heartily, powerfully, and particularly: not for others, but for
+themselves; otherwise their faith and knowledge will no way profit their
+souls to salvation.
+
+III. They must be qualified also with a blameless conversation. Their
+conversation must be as becometh the gospel, otherwise they are not meet
+for communion with the gospel church. Carnal walking will not suit
+spiritual temples: for they will greatly pollute and defile them, and
+stain and obscure their beauty and glory. Therefore they must not be
+brawlers and contentious persons, covetous and worldly-minded, vain and
+frothy. They must not be froward and peevish, nor defraud others of
+their right. Nor must they neglect the worship of God in their families,
+nor be careless in governing and educating them in good manners, and in
+the things of God. They must not be such as are known to omit the
+duties and ordinances of religion in their proper seasons, or to have
+vicious families through their neglect: nor to have any other kind of
+conversation hateful to God and to his people. And therefore, whatever
+their profession be, they may not be admitted into the Church of God,
+until they have repented of these, or any other scandal in their life
+and conduct.
+
+IV. They ought to be such as have chosen the Lord Jesus Christ for their
+king and head, and dedicated and devoted themselves to him, to live in
+him and for him: such as have singled him out, and set him apart, (as it
+were,) to be the object of their love, trust, and delight, of their
+service and obedience. They must have chosen and closed with him upon
+his own terms, (i.e. _freely_,) renouncing and rejecting all their own
+righteousness, worthiness, interest, and sufficiency, and choosing and
+appropriating him to themselves, for their righteousness, worthiness,
+portion, and sufficiency, under a sight and conviction of their own
+emptiness and deformity; and with a heart-satisfied persuasion of the
+loveliness and fulness of Christ.
+
+V. All this must be done seriously, humbly, and heartily, so far as men
+can judge. If persons declare their knowledge of God and faith in Christ
+in such a manner, and apparently by such a spirit as evidences some
+sense and feeling of what they do declare, church rulers may be much
+helped in forming a right judgment of them, that they are fitted by God
+for church-membership. If they do seriously profess, that what they do
+is in obedience to the will, and, as they judge, to the call of Christ
+as their indispensable duty;--that they join in church fellowship to
+meet with and enjoy God, to receive out of his fulness to enable them to
+perform all duties, and to conform their hearts and lives in his will to
+all things;--such persons may undoubtedly be accounted worthy members,
+and admitted as such.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of church members towards one another?
+
+_Ans_. I. The greatest is love; love and spiritual affections are the
+holy cords which tie the hearts, souls, and judgments of believers
+together. This is that which, together with the fear of God, makes them
+avoid all things that may give just offence or grief to one another, and
+that which provokes them to follow after the things that make for peace
+and edification. Love is the bond of peace. It is that which, together
+with divine light and truth, causes church members to draw together as
+in one yoke, and unanimously as with one heart and soul to design, aim
+at, and carry on mutual and common good in the church. Without this they
+cannot, they will not cement, nor long abide and live together as a
+church, in peace and unity, nor promote any good work among themselves.
+Without heart-uniting love they will receive and entertain jealousies
+and suspicions one of another, and put the worst construction on
+whatever is said or done; and they cannot walk together comfortably and
+profitably when these are entertained. Therefore it is absolutely
+necessary for all church members to be firmly united in cordial love and
+charity, which is the bond of perfectness to and in all other duties.
+God highly commends and strictly commands this love one to another, and
+puts it into the heart of his peculiar people, that they may do what he
+commands.
+
+1. God highly commends it wherever he finds it in act and exercise; 1
+Thess. iv. 10, "and indeed," says he, "ye do it towards all the
+brethren." To this duty, and to manifest his high approbation of it, God
+hath promised a great reward, Heb. vi. 10.
+
+2. God commands it and vehemently exhorts to it often in the gospel. Oh
+how importunately did the Lord Jesus enjoin it, and frequently press it
+on his disciples when he was on earth! John xiii. 34, "A new commandment
+give I unto you." What is that new commandment? Why, "That ye love one
+another, as I have loved you, that ye also love one another." And in
+John xv. 12, 17, "This is my commandment, that ye love one another, as I
+have loved you;" i.e. Take the pattern of my love to you for your
+pattern in loving one another. I have loved and will love you--1. With
+_great_ love, John xv. 13: so do you likewise. 2. My love to you is
+_free_, without any desert in you: let yours be free, without carnal
+respects one to another also. 3. My love to you is _real, hearty_, and
+_unfeigned_: so let yours be one to another, 1 Pet. i. 22. 4. My love to
+you is an exceeding _fruitful love_. I loved you so, as to labor, toil,
+sweat, and die for you: so must you love one another with a fruitful,
+profiting love. 5. My love to you is a _pitying, sparing, and forgiving
+love; a forbearing and tender-hearted love_: so must you be to one
+another, Col. iii. 12, 13. 6. I love you with a _warm and fervent love_:
+so do you love one another. 7. I love with a _holy, spiritual love_, as
+new men who have my image stamped on, and my holy nature in you, and as
+you are made perfect by the comeliness and beauty I have put on you: so
+do you love one another, because you are a lovely and holy people unto
+me. 8. I love you with a _constant and unchangeable love_;
+notwithstanding of all your weaknesses, yea, unkindness too, and
+unworthy walkings before me: thus you are bound to love one another.
+
+O that church members and all other Christians would seriously,
+sincerely, diligently, and constantly mind and practise this grand and
+indispensable duty to one another, in all their ways and actions, and
+not lay it aside as a little, useless, or indifferent matter, which they
+may neglect at their own will and pleasure.
+
+2. As we are indispensably bound to love one another; so we are as
+absolutely and perfectly bound to walk in a loving and encouraging
+manner towards one another. Our behavior ought to be such in all things,
+as to invite all to love us, as holy, humble, and blameless saints, and
+brethren in Christ. The Lord Jesus expects church members to walk
+lovingly towards one another, as well as to love one another. They
+ought, therefore, as much as possible, to provoke and encourage each
+other, and to remove out of the way of love all such stumbling-blocks as
+may any way hinder it, as we cannot love a sour, peevish, contentious,
+and cross-grained professor, with as much complacency as a meek, quiet,
+humble, affable, and courteous one.
+
+3. Christ hath charged and strictly commanded all church members to live
+in peace: to be at peace among themselves; to follow peace with all men,
+and as much as in them lieth to live peaceably with all men. O how
+often, and with what vehemency doth the Holy Ghost press and enjoin this
+duty, especially among church members, in the Holy Scriptures! See Psal.
+xxxiv. 14; 1 Pet. iii. 11; Rom xiv. 19; 2 Cor. xiii. 11; 1 Thess. v. 13;
+Heb. xii. 14; Eph. v. 3. The apostle Paul earnestly warns church members
+against all debates, strifes, and contentions one with another,
+especially in their church meetings, Phil. ii. 3. David tells us, that
+it is a most pleasant and lovely thing for brethren to dwell together in
+unity, Psal. cxxxiii. 1, 2. Then how much more pleasant and lovely is it
+for spiritual brethren to love and worship God in this manner together
+Christ came into the world and lived here a peace-maker, and pronounces
+them blessed that are so, Matt. v. 9. He is a lover of peace and
+concord, especially in his Church; but he is an implacable hater of
+strife and discord, and will not endure it therein: much less will he
+wink at such as are the first sowers of these seeds. The truth is,
+strivers and disputers in a church are the devil's agents, do a great
+deal of mischief to it, and are real plagues in it. They greatly hinder
+edification, and spoil the order, beauty, and harmony there: they are
+the proud, self-conceited men, who are vainly puffed up with high
+thoughts of themselves, and their own abilities, because they have got
+some speculative knowledge into their heads, with a volubility of
+speech, while they are destitute of spiritual wisdom and humility in
+their hearts; and therefore they conceive that they are wiser than the
+church, and more able to manage and order church affairs than their
+rulers. Their pride and self-conceit make them slight and contemn their
+teachers, and rise up in a rebellious contention with, and opposition
+unto them; as the prophet complains, Hos. iv. 4, _This people are they
+that strive with the priests_. Take heed then of strife and contention,
+and follow peace one with another, especially in your assembling
+together about the work of the church. Endeavor to get humble hearts,
+and then you will not be contentious, but quiet and peaceable.
+
+4. Church members ought to sympathize with, and to help to bear one
+another's burdens as need requires, Rom. xii. 15, 16; Gal. vi. 2. They
+ought to make their brethren's crosses, losses, temptations, and
+afflictions their own. And, when they need the helping hand of
+fellow-members to support or lift them up, when fallen, they must give
+it to them freely, readily, and cheerfully, and not turn a deaf ear to,
+nor hide their eyes from, them and their cries. And, if they are cruel
+to, or careless of, one another in affliction, our Lord Jesus will
+require it at their hands, and lake it as done to himself. Therefore,
+seeing it is the will of God, and our indispensable duty to one another,
+who are members of the church, let us put on bowels of mercies and
+kindness, Col. iii. 12, and be tender-hearted, pitiful, and courteous to
+each other, Eph. iv. 32; 1 Pet. iii. 8.
+
+5. Church members ought to exhort and comfort one another, for so is the
+will of God concerning them. This is not only their teacher's duty and
+work, but theirs also to each other, Heb. x. 24, 25; Heb. iii. 13; 1
+Thess. v. 14. Christians stand in continual need of one another's
+exhortations and consolations; and if they manage this work well they
+may be very useful and profitable to one another, and may help to
+awaken, quicken, and provoke one another, to the love and practice of
+holiness.
+
+6. It is the will of the Lord Jesus Christ, the Church's head, that her
+members should be each other's keepers; that they should watch over one
+another, and admonish and reprove one another, as need requires. It is
+not meant, that they should pry into one another's secrets, or be
+busybodies in other men's matters, but that they should watch over one
+another's life and conversation, that if they do well they may be
+encouraged; if ill, that they may, by counsel, reproof, instruction, and
+exhortation, be brought to a real sight and sense of their misconduct,
+and to unfeigned repentance. By which good work, you will do them, the
+church, yea, Christ himself, good and acceptable service. Church members
+should carefully observe, if all do keep close to their duty in the
+church, or are remiss and negligent;--if they conduct themselves in a
+holy, righteous, and sober way; or if, on the contrary, they are frothy,
+vain, proud, extravagant, unjust, idle, careless, or any way scandalous.
+They should strictly observe if there be any tattlers, backbiters, or
+sowers of discord; or such as speak contemptibly of their brethren,
+especially of their elders, (ruling or preaching,) and of their
+administrations: as also, if there be any such as combine together, and
+make parties in the church, or endeavor to obstruct any good work which
+their elders are carrying on, for promoting the glory of Christ and the
+good of his people, and deal with them accordingly. They ought carefully
+to observe if any be fallen under sin or temptation in any case, and
+presently to set their hands to help, to relieve, and to restore them,
+Rev. vi. 1. They must watch, and endeavor to gain a sinning member, 1.
+By their private admonition, in case the offence be private; and if that
+will not do, to take one or two more to see what effect that will have.
+2. But if that will not answer the end, then they are bound to bring it
+to the church representative, that they may deal with the offending
+brother, and proceed against him as commanded: This is another great and
+indispensable duty required of church members, that they be not
+partakers of other men's sins.
+
+7. Church members ought to forbear and forgive one another; for this is
+another commanded duty, Eph. iv. 2, 32; Col. iii. 13. When a brother
+offends or does another any injury, the offended brother should tell him
+of it, examine the matter and search out the circumstances of it, and
+see whether he did it unadvisedly, through weakness or ignorance; or
+whether he did it wilfully and knowingly. If upon an impartial search he
+is found to have wronged his brother through ignorance or weakness, he
+must judge charitably of him, and not be harsh and severe towards him,
+in his carriage or censure. But if it clearly appear, upon impartial
+inquiry, that he did the injury knowingly and wilfully, then the
+offended brother must deal with him as a wilful transgressor. He must
+lay his sin before him, and show him what laws he hath transgressed;
+what evil he hath done him, what wrong to his own soul, and what offence
+he hath done to Christ, by breaking his holy laws. He must admonish him
+again and again of his sin, and reprove him, but not too severely, until
+he find him obstinate and stubborn. And if God convince him of his sin,
+and give him repentance unto life, he must readily forgive him. And, if
+he be once truly convinced of, and humbled for, his sin, he will most
+fully confess it to his brother, as well as to God, and endeavor to make
+him amends, and give him all possible satisfaction for the injury he
+hath done him, most freely and willingly: for it is a certain sign that
+a person is not powerfully and savingly convinced of, and humbled for,
+his sin, while he bears off, and must be sought after to make
+satisfaction to such as he hath wronged; because were his heart really
+melted into the will of God, he could not be quiet, until he have given
+all possible satisfaction to his brother whom he has injured, Luke xix.
+8. But in case he remain obstinate, and will not hearken to reproof,
+then the offended brother should take one or two more and deal with him;
+and if that will not do, he ought to bring it to the church
+representative, i.e. the elders of the church, that they may see what
+they can do with him. But if they cannot prevail on him to repent and to
+make satisfaction, then he ought to be cast out of the communion of the
+church, Matt, xviii. 17.
+
+8. It is the indispensable duty of church members to hearken to and
+receive instruction, admonition, and reproof from one another. For if
+some are indispensably bound at certain times to give them, surely
+others who need them are as much bound to receive them, Prov. viii. 33,
+x. 17, and xxix. 1. These are bound to hearken to their brethren's
+reproofs, counsels, and admonitions, with all humility, patience, and
+freedom of spirit, with all love, meekness, and thankfulness to God, and
+to the givers of them: for they are great mercies to such as need them,
+and they are their real and profitable friends, who seek their good, and
+endeavor to prevent their destruction. Let it therefore never be said
+justly of any of you that are church members, that you were reproved and
+admonished of any known sin by a brother, and that you refused and
+slighted their counsel or reproof, justified yourselves in your sins,
+and were displeased with or angry at such as admonished you, and did
+their indispensable duty to you, under your sin, for your salvation.
+
+9. Church members ought to pray for one another, and that with a real
+love, fervency, and importunity, as they do for themselves, James v. 16.
+O with what serious minds and strong affections should all church
+members pray for one another! They should be much in building up one
+another, and praying in the Holy Ghost one for another, Jude 20. They
+should carry one another in their hearts at the throne of grace,
+especially such as are under affliction, the whole Church in general,
+and her teachers in particular, Heb. xiii. 18, and wrestle with God for
+them; for they have the spirit of prayer given them, and audience and
+interest in heaven, for others, as well as for themselves.
+
+10. Church members should often meet together for prayer and holy
+conversation, by two or three or more, as they may have opportunity.
+This was wont to be the commendable practice of our forefathers, when
+Christ, duty, heaven, and religion lay warmer on their hearts than now
+they do; and this is still the practice of some, that are now alive. God
+hath promised his glorious teaching, and his warming, strengthening,
+sanctifying, and comforting presence to such as do so, Matt, xviii. 20.
+Church members find time enough to visit one another, and meet together
+to tell some idle stories, to tattle about other men's matters, which
+do not concern them, and perhaps to _backbite_ some of their brethren,
+and to prejudice the minds of persons against their teachers and their
+work, if they do not please them. And will not such meetings have
+bitterness in the end? Is it not great iniquity for Christians to tempt
+one another to sin, and to wrong their own souls, by misspending that
+precious time which they might have employed in the service of God, and
+one another's spiritual profit. Men and women were wont to discourse
+often of the things of God and their experiences one to another, Mal.
+iii. 16. But, alas! few persons are now to be found, who can find time
+and inclination for such an exercise. And the reason seems to be, that
+most are great strangers to God and to themselves, and are so much
+intoxicated with the things of this world, that they will not attend
+with any pleasure unto the spiritual duties of religion.
+
+11. Church members ought to encourage one another by their example, to
+attend regularly on the public ordinances of God's worship in his
+church. Whenever the church meets for the celebration of the worship of
+God, all her members are bound to meet together at the appointed time,
+except in extraordinary cases; otherwise good order cannot be kept, and
+the public duties performed, for the glory of God, and the edification
+of the church. By church members wilfully or carelessly absenting
+themselves at the time of meeting, they give an evil example to others,
+tempt them to do the like, and cast a stumbling-block in the way of
+their duty, Heb. x. 25.
+
+12. Church members must be charitable to the poor that are among them,
+and freely contribute to them according to their ability and _their_
+necessity. They are indispensably bound to impart their help and
+assistance to the poor, and to give them a little of their estates. It
+is a debt which they owe to God, and a duty to them. They will comfort
+them thereby; but they will much more profit themselves than them. It is
+a more blessed thing to give than to receive. Wealthy persons are
+stewards for the poor, and a part of what God hath given those was
+designed for these, 1 Pet. iv. 10, and therefore, says God, Deut. xv. 7,
+8, "Thou shalt not shut thine hand from thy poor brother, but shalt open
+it wide unto him." The rich must not only give to keep the poor alive in
+misery, but make comfortable provisions for them, that they may have
+enough to keep them from the temptations of poverty and pressing wants,
+and to fit them for, and encourage them in, their work and duty, to God
+and man.
+
+13. Church members ought carefully, watchfully, diligently, and
+conscientiously to beware of and avoid whatever may give any just
+offence or scandal to one another. For we are charged to "give none
+offence neither to Jew nor Gentile, nor to the Church of God," 1 Cor. x.
+32. And our Saviour tells us, that "wo to them by whom the offence
+cometh," Matt, xviii. 7.
+
+You must take heed of such evils as the following, and avoid them,
+because they all carry scandal in their nature to your own and others'
+souls: as, 1. Proud, disdainful, and haughty words conduct, and
+conversation; for these are grievous and provoking evils, which will
+justly offend all the observers of them. 2. Sullen, sour, and churlish
+language and behavior, which is offensive unto all sorts of persons; for
+this is an evil altogether unbecoming the followers of Jesus Christ. 3.
+A cross, captious, and contradictive spirit and conduct, delighting in
+opposition to the judgment of the church and her rulers. This is very
+scandalous to the brethren, and very reproachful unto themselves. 4.
+Speaking evil of one another behind their backs; backbiting or
+publishing their real or supposed evils, before they have been spoken to
+in secret. 5. Speaking lightly or contemptibly of one another, either to
+themselves or to others in their absence, as few men can bear patiently
+to be despised by the slighting carriages of their brethren. 6. Vain,
+foolish, and frothy discourses, which are very offensive to gracious
+saints. 7. Earthly-mindedness and greedy pursuits after worldly things;
+for as these are offensive to God, and hurtful to the soul, so they are
+offensive to saints. 8. Strife and contention among brethren, and
+grudging or envying one another's prosperity; as these produce many evil
+and wicked fruits, and cast blame upon the providence of God, who
+bestows his mercies as he will. 9. Defrauding and breaking promises.
+Contracting debts and unduly delaying or refusing to pay them, and
+disappointing men of their just expectations in virtue of promises made
+to them. Those also are scandalous, and cause the name of God to be evil
+spoken of. 10. Entering into a marriage relation with such as are
+apparently in an unbelieving, carnal, and unconverted state and
+condition; for this also is very offensive to holy serious men, although
+many make very light of it. 11. Idleness and slothfulness in your
+external calling, neglecting to provide for your own house, as that will
+prove a scandalous sin to others and to yourselves too. 12. Taking up a
+report rashly against one another of a scandalous nature, giving ear
+unto tattlers, and busybodies; or being busybodies in other men's
+matters yourselves, as this will give great offence.
+
+
+
+
+NO. II.[122]
+
+
+_Quest_. Who have a right to preach the gospel and dispense the public
+ordinances of religion?
+
+_Ans_. Without some proper furniture, it is absurd to imagine any should
+be sent of God to the ministerial work. When the ascended Jesus gave to
+the church apostles, evangelists; pastors and teachers, he gave gifts to
+men. _Who_, saith he, _goeth at, any time a warfare on his own charges?_
+What is the furniture, the qualifications prerequisite, according to the
+Holy Scriptures? A blameless conversation, a good report; experience of
+the self-debasing work of the Spirit of God; compassion to the souls of
+men; a fixedness in the Christian doctrines; a disposition faithfully to
+perform his vows; an aptness to teach the ignorant, and convince
+gainsayers. Knowledge of languages, knowledge of the history and
+sciences of this world, are useful handmaids to assist us in the study
+of divine things. To preach from the oracles of God, without capacity to
+peruse the original, especially if versant in romances and plays, we
+abhor and detest. This aptness to teach, however, consists not chiefly
+in any of these, but in a capacity to conceive spiritual things, and
+with some distinctness to express their conceptions to the edification
+of others, in that energy and life, whereby one, as affected himself,
+declares the truths of God, in a simple, serious, bold, and
+conscience-touching manner. The difference of this, from human
+eloquence, loud bawling, and theatrical action, is evident. These may
+touch the passions, and not affect the conscience: they may procure
+esteem to the preacher, none to Christ. These are the product of natural
+art: this the distinguished gift of God, without which, in a certain
+degree, none can have evidence that he was divinely sent to minister the
+gospel of Christ.
+
+No appearance of furniture, real or pretended, can warrant a man's
+exercising of the ministry, unless he have a regular call. That _all may
+prophesy one by one_ is indeed hinted in the sacred records: but there
+it is evident inspiration treats of what pertains to extraordinary
+officers in the church; hence there is mentioned _the gift of tongues_,
+extraordinary _psalms, revelations_: the _all_ that might prophesy are,
+therefore, not _all_ the members of the church; not _women_, who are
+forbid to speak in the church; but _all_ the extraordinary officers
+called prophets, 1 Cor. xiv. 31. The _all_ that were scattered abroad
+from Jerusalem, and _went about preaching the gospel_, Acts viii. 2,
+could not be _all_ the believers; for there remained at Jerusalem a
+church of believers for Saul to make havoc of. It must therefore have
+been _all_ the preachers, besides the apostles. To strengthen this, let
+it be observed, that the word here rendered _preaching_ is nowhere in
+Scripture referred to one out of office: that every one of this
+dispersion, we afterward hear of, are represented as evangelists,
+pastors, or teachers, Acts ix. 1, 11, 19, and xiii. 1. Parents and
+masters convey the same instruction that ministers do; but with a
+different authority: not as ministers of Christ, or officers in his
+Church. If other gifts or saintship entitled to preach the gospel, wo
+would be unto every gifted person, every saint, that did not preach it.
+If our adored Redeemer refused the work of a civil judge because not
+humanly vested with such power, will he allow his followers to exercise
+an office far more important, without any regular call? His oracles
+distinguish between the mission of persons, and their gifts, sometimes
+called a receiving of the Holy Ghost, John xx. 21, 23.
+
+To render the point incontestably evident, he demands, how men shall
+preach _except they be sent_? declares, that _no man_ rightly _taketh
+this honor to himself but he that is called of God, as was Aaron_. "I
+sent them not, therefore they shall not profit this people at all, saith
+the Lord." The characters divinely affixed to ministers, preachers, or
+heralds, ambassadors, stewards, watchmen, angels, messengers, brightly
+mark their call and commission to their work. The inspired rules for the
+qualifications, the election, the ordination of ministers, are divinely
+charged to be kept till _the day_, the second coming _of Jesus Christ_.
+For intermeddling with the sacred business without a regular call, has
+the Almighty severely punished numbers of men. Witness the destruction
+of Korah and his company; the rejection of Saul; and the death of Uzza;
+the leprosy of Uriah; the disaster of the sons of Sceva, &c., Num. xvi.;
+1 Sam. xiii.; 1 Chron. xiii.; 2 Chron. xxvi.; Acts xix.
+
+To rush into it, if gifted, or to imagine we are so, at our own hand,
+introduces the wildest disorder, and the most shocking errors: it did so
+at Antioch, and the places adjacent, where some falsely pretended a
+mission from the apostles. This, too, was its effect with the German
+anabaptists, and with the sectaries of England. Aversion at manual work,
+pride of abilities, a disturbed imagination, a carnal project to promote
+self, prompts the man to be preacher. Such ultroneous rushing is
+inconsistent with the deep impression of the charge, and the care to
+manifest their mission, everywhere in Scripture obvious in the ministers
+of Christ. However sound his doctrine, great his abilities, warm his
+address, where is the promise of God's especial presence, protection,
+or success, to the ultroneous preacher? Where is his conduct commanded,
+commended, or unmarked with wrath, exemplified in the sacred words? How
+then can the preaching, or our hearing, of such, be in faith? How can it
+be acceptable to God, or profitable to ourselves? For _whatsoever is not
+of faith is sin_. Falsely this preacher pretends a mission from Christ:
+wickedly, he usurps an authority over his Church: rebelliously he
+deserts his own calling, and attempts to make void the office his
+Saviour has appointed; to frustrate the dispensation of the gospel
+committed to his faithful ambassadors. For how can they fulfil their
+ministry, if others take the work out of their hand? How can they
+_commit it to faithful men_, if, not waiting their commission, men rush
+into it at pleasure?
+
+In vain pleads the ultroneous preacher, that a particular mission to the
+office of preaching and dispensing the sacraments was only necessary,
+when the gospel was preached to the heathen. From age to age, it is _as
+new_, to children _as new_, to such as never heard it. Nor, when hinting
+the necessity of a mission, does the inspiring Spirit make any
+distinction, whether the gospel be newly dispensed or not. _What
+therefore God hath joined together, let no man put asunder_. In vain he
+pleads an immediate commission from God: in his infallible statutes,
+having fixed standing rules of vocation to the ministry, by the
+mediation of men, God gives us no command, no encouragement, to hope for
+an immediate call, till the end of time. Absurdly then we allow any to
+have such a call, till we see _the signs of an apostle wrought in him_.
+It is not sufficient he be sound in his doctrine, exemplarily holy in
+his life, active in his labors, disinterested in his aims, seeking not
+his own, but the honor of Christ, not his own carnal profit, but the
+spiritual welfare of men: every ordinary preacher is, or ought to be so.
+But, to this claimant of a mission uncommon, working of miracles, or
+such extraordinary credentials, must demonstrate he hath not run unsent.
+
+In vain the ultroneous preacher boasts of his feelings; his success; his
+moving his audience; his reforming their lives; as if these demonstrated
+his call from God. On earth, was ever delusion carried on without
+pretence to, or without appearances of these? Let them, who know the
+history of Popery, of Mahometanism, Quakerism, &c., say if they were.
+Who knows not, that the Pharisaic sect pretended far more strictness,
+far more devotion, than the family of Christ? Who knows not, that Satan
+may, and has oft _transformed_ himself _into an angel of light_; his
+ministers into the form of inspired apostles; and his influences, almost
+indiscernibly similar to those of the Spirit of Jesus Christ? Who knows
+not, how oft vain-glory, proud and falsely extolling of himself and
+party, in their number, their spiritual experience and high advances in
+holiness, mark the distinguished impostor? How oft his sermons are
+larded with these!
+
+No more tell us, if the sermon be good, you do not regard who preach it.
+If God has prescribed a method of call, has stated the qualifications of
+the candidate, has warned against preachers unsent, has oft marked their
+guilt with visible strokes of his wrath, be ashamed to talk at so
+arrogant, so careless a rate. Lay it not in the power of the
+Mesopotamian wizard! Lies it not in the power of a Romish Jesuit, nay,
+if permitted, of Beelzebub, for a time to preach to you many truths of
+the gospel, in the warmest strain, the loftiest language? Would you
+acknowledge the _three_ for honored ambassadors of Christ? Tell us not
+your preacher is wonderfully pious and good: perhaps you have only his
+own attestation; when better known he may be a drunkard, a swearer, a
+villain, for you. Suppose he were pious, so was Uzziah; yet it pertained
+not to him to execute the priest's office. Say not he is wonderfully
+gifted--speaks like _never man_: perhaps so was Korah, a man famous and
+of renown: such perhaps were the vagabond sons of Sceva. Say not his
+earnestness in his work marks his heavenly call: no, such were the
+Satanic exorcists just mentioned; such was Mahomet, the vilest impostor.
+To abolish the idolatry, and various other abominations of his country,
+he exposed himself to cruel reproach, to manifold hardship and hazard of
+life; about fourteen years almost unsuccessful he persevered in this
+difficult, but delusive attempt. What hunger, what cold, what torment
+and death have some Jesuitic and other antichristian missionaries
+undergone, to propagate the most ruining delusions of hell; all under
+the pretence of earnestness to gain sinners to Christ and his church.
+The Scripture, however, nowhere saith, how shall they preach except they
+be gracious? except they be gifted? except they be in earnest? But, _how
+shall they preach except they be sent_?
+
+
+
+
+NO. III.[123]
+
+_On the same subject--Who have a right to preach the gospel_?
+
+
+It is expressly enjoined in the word of God that we should earnestly
+contend for the faith once delivered to the saints. This faith includes
+all the ordinances, as well as all the doctrines of Christ; and it is no
+less our duty to contend for the former than for the latter. They have
+been equally opposed, and there is the same necessity why we should
+contend for both. Among the ordinances of Christ, the preaching of the
+gospel holds a principal place, and it hath accordingly, in all ages,
+met with considerable opposition. Like other ordinances, it hath been
+often grievously abused, and perverted to the most unworthy purposes. By
+many who would be esteemed the wise of the world, it is counted unworthy
+the attention of any but the vulgar: it has been called the foolishness
+of preaching. The infidels of our time, and some who, by attachment to
+the Arian and Socinian system, are in a progress to infidelity, cry it
+down as a human device or piece of craft. This need not, however,
+occasion any great surprise: the spirit of the world savoreth not the
+things that be of God, and the enemies of the truth naturally wish to
+have full scope to propagate their delusions. But it is matter of regret
+that the preaching of the gospel is, by many who attend upon it, too
+little regarded as an ordinance of Christ. And some of the professed
+friends of gospel doctrine so far mistake the nature and institution of
+preaching, as to engage in it without any other call than their own
+abundant zeal, and even to plead that all should do so who find
+themselves qualified. To show that such a sentiment and practice have no
+warrant from the word of God, the following observations are offered.
+
+I. The preaching of the gospel is an ordinance that Christ hath
+appointed for the gathering and edification of his Church; and, being a
+matter of positive institution, all that belongs to the administration
+of it can be learned only from the rules and approved examples recorded
+in the New Testament. It is not like those duties that are incumbent
+upon all, according to the opportunities they have in providence for the
+performance of them, and which, without any express commandment, could
+be urged upon Christians by the common principles of moral obligation,
+such as to teach and admonish one another. And because the obligation to
+such moral duties depends not upon positive institution, it must equally
+extend to all, and no person whatever can be free from it. But it is
+otherwise as to the preaching of the gospel, which is a positive
+institution of Christ; for it is a duty enjoined upon some only; yea,
+some are even absolutely prohibited from intermeddling in it, 1 Cor.
+xiv. 34; 1 Tim. ii. 12: and this could not be the case if it were a
+matter of common moral obligation. All arguments therefore taken from
+general principles, to prove the obligation that Christians are under to
+exert themselves for promoting the cause of religion, are to no purpose
+here, as they do not prove that the preaching of the gospel is one of
+those means that all are warranted to use.
+
+II. There is an instituted ministry of the ordinances of Christ unto his
+Church, by such ministers and office-bearers as he hath appointed. And
+the preaching of the gospel is frequently referred to as a principal
+part of that ministry. We read of a ministry of the word, Acts vi. 4; a
+ministry received of the Lord Jesus to testify the gospel of the grace
+of God, Acts xx. 24; a ministry of reconciliation, 2 Cor. v. 18; and a
+ministry into which some are put by the Lord Christ, 1 Tim. i. 12. This
+ministry is not left open to all the members of the church, in such a
+manner as that everyone who finds himself disposed, of supposes himself
+to be qualified, may engage in it as he finds opportunity; but
+office-bearers are appointed for it by the Lord Christ, Eph. iv. 11,12:
+"And he gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some evangelists, and
+some pastors and teachers, for the perfecting of the saints, for the
+work of the ministry, and for the edifying of the body of Christ." Some
+of these officers were extraordinary and temporary; they had an
+extraordinary call, and were endued with miraculous powers, which are
+now ceased: but the work of the ministry, and particularly the preaching
+of the gospel, is to continue to the end of the world, as appears from
+the promise given for the encouragement of those that are employed in
+it, Matt, xxviii. 20. There are accordingly ordinary officers, pastors,
+and teachers, appointed for the continued exercise of that ministry.
+
+To these instituted office-bearers is this ministry exclusively
+committed, Mark xvi., Matt, xxviii. The gospel of Christ, in respect of
+the public ministry thereof by preaching, is frequently mentioned as a
+special and peculiar _trust_ committed unto them, 2 Cor. v. 18-20; 1
+Tim. i. 11, and vi. 20. In all the passages of Scripture where we have
+any mention of a charge or commission to preach the gospel, it would be
+easy to show that it is directed only to persons in office; and a
+variety of names are given to those that are employed in a ministry of
+the word, all of which are expressive of their peculiar office. They are
+called ministers, 1 Cor. iii. 6; officers and stewards, 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+ambassadors for Christ, 2 Cor. v. 20; heralds (so the word preacher
+signifies) and teachers, 2 Tim. i. 11.
+
+There is no room to plead here, that though a constant ministry of the
+word, in a pastoral charge, belongs only to persons in office, yet all
+may occasionally exercise their gifts in preaching the gospel. The word
+of God acknowledges no such distinction as that between a constant and
+an occasional ministry of the gospel. It enjoins upon those who are
+called to the work of the ministry, not an occasional, but a constant
+exercise of that ministry; so that whether they be paid pastors, or
+itinerant preachers, they are not to entangle themselves with the
+affairs of this life, but must be devoted wholly to the work of the
+gospel, 1 Tim. iv. 13-16; 2 Tim. ii. 4, and iv. 2. And because they must
+thus devote their time and attention to this work, the word of God also
+enjoins that a maintenance be given them by those to whom they exercise
+their ministry, 1 Cor. ix. 7-14; Gal. vi. 6; 1 Tim. v. 17. This is a
+farther evidence that the ministry of the word is restricted to persons
+in office, and that they are to devote their time and attention to it,
+not entangling themselves in the prosecution of a secular business.
+
+III. Those only can be warrantably employed in a ministry of the
+ordinances of Christ, and particularly in preaching the gospel, who are
+thereunto called by him, and admitted according to the rule laid down in
+the word. And none can be warrantably acknowledged and received as
+office-bearers, to whom that ministry is committed without some proper
+evidence of their being called and sent by Christ. "How shall they
+preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15. How, without this, can they do
+it warrantably or profitably? And, without some evidence of this, what
+ground have we to expect a blessing in waiting upon their ministry? It
+is not a mere providential sending that is here meant, as if there were
+no more necessity than abilities, and an opportunity of exercising them;
+for so the ministers of Satan may be sent, and a lying spirit was thus
+sent among the prophets of Ahab. But this sending means the call of
+Christ, intimated in such a way as to warrant the preacher, and with
+such evidence as may satisfy the conscience of the hearers, in receiving
+his ministry as the ordinance of Christ. A zeal for God, a strong desire
+of being useful to souls, and even a persuasion of having the call of
+Christ, cannot be sufficient warrant to the preacher; far less can the
+hearers, in receiving him, proceed upon grounds so uncertain.
+
+The apostles, and some other ministers in the beginning of the Christian
+dispensation, had an extraordinary call and immediate mission by Christ,
+and this was evidenced to all by the miraculous powers bestowed on them.
+These powers are now ceased, and it is vain to plead any such immediate
+call. The ordinary call of Christ to the work of the ministry is
+intimated by or through the church, judging thereof by the rules laid
+down in the word; and according to these rules, they that are found
+qualified and called, are to be admitted to the ministry by them who are
+already invested with it. The charge is given to the office-bearers of
+the church, to commit that ministry which they have received "to
+faithful men, who shall be able to teach others also," 2 Tim. ii. 2;
+Tit. i. 5. And for their direction in this matter, the qualifications
+necessary, both as to character and abilities, are laid down in the
+Word, particularly in 1 Tim. iii.; of these qualifications they are
+required to make an impartial and deliberate examination, so as to _lay
+hands suddenly on no man_, 1 Tim. iv. 22, but to admit to the office of
+the ministry those only, who, by this trial, they have reason to judge
+are called and sent by Christ.
+
+It is vain to distinguish here between a pastor of a congregation and an
+itinerant preacher; as if the call of the church was necessary only to
+the former and not to the latter. If by the call of the church is meant
+only the choice and call of the people, it is admitted, that this is
+only necessary to fix a pastoral relation to that part of the flock; but
+a regular admission to the work of the ministry, by the office-bearers
+of the church, is equally necessary in the case of all that are employed
+in it, whether they have a fixed charge or not. Timothy, who had no
+fixed charge, and though pointed out by prophecy as designed for the
+ministry, was ordained and admitted to it by the presbytery. And though
+Paul and Barnabas had an extraordinary call, yet the prophets and
+teachers of the church at Antioch are directed to separate and send them
+out, according to the call of the Holy Ghost, to preach the gospel unto
+the Gentiles, Acts xiii. A principal design of this seems to have been,
+to set an example of procedure to the church in after times.
+
+It appears, then, that the preaching of the gospel is an ordinance or
+institution of Christ--that the ministry of that and other ordinances
+belongs only to those office-bearers whom he hath appointed and
+commissioned for that end--and that in ordinary cases, none can be
+acknowledged as sent by him, but such as are admitted to the ministry in
+the way above mentioned. These observations would have admitted a much
+larger illustration; but as they are, they may assist an attentive
+reader to consult his Bible for further satisfaction. It is necessary,
+however, to take some notice of the arguments urged in support of the
+opposite sentiment, and of the attempt to prove that every man who is
+qualified has a right to preach the gospel, without any regular call and
+admission by the church. And,
+
+1st. It is pretended that this is enjoined upon all that are qualified
+for it, because Christians are called to teach, exhort, and admonish one
+another. But even supposing that this were to be understood of
+preaching, or a public ministry of the word, such directions, though
+expressed generally, would not apply to all, but to those only who are
+called to the ministry, according to the limitation and restriction that
+is laid down in other places of Scripture. There is, however, no
+necessity of understanding these directions in that sense. The
+Scripture evidently distinguishes the preaching of the gospel, or that
+public teaching which belongs to an instituted ministry, from that
+private teaching which is competent to, and obligatory on, all
+Christians by the law of love; the latter is enjoined upon some to whom
+the former is absolutely prohibited: compare 1 Tim. ii. 12, with Tit.
+ii. 3, 4. Christians in a private station have abundant opportunity, and
+ordinarily much more than they improve, to exercise their talents in
+teaching their families, friends, and neighbors, without interfering
+with that public ministry of the word which is committed to those who
+are especially called thereto.
+
+2d. Some passages of Scripture are urged, wherein it is supposed all
+Christians are enjoined to exercise their qualifications in public
+teaching or preaching: particularly Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11.
+These Scriptures, on the contrary, restrict the public ministry of the
+word to those invested with an office, and it is that ministry which
+belongs to their office that is spoken of. In Rom. xii. persons in
+office are exhorted to apply themselves faithfully and diligently to
+that ministry to which they are called, whether it be a ministry of the
+word, and of spiritual things, or a ministry of temporal things, and
+that without envying others who have a different office and ministry.
+And, to enforce this exhortation, the apostle compares the Church to the
+natural body, ver. 4, in which all members have not the same office, but
+one member is appointed to one office, and another member to a different
+office: and so it is in the Church of Christ, ver. 5. The same allusion
+is applied more largely, 1 Cor. xii. 27, 28, to illustrate this very
+point. The other passage, 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11, is of the very same import:
+those in office are called to exercise their ministry faithfully,
+whether it be in spiritual or temporal things, and are addressed as
+stewards, ver. 10; "As every man hath received the gift, even so
+minister the same one to another as good stewards of the manifold grace
+of God." Some are led to mistake the meaning of these Scriptures, by
+misunderstanding the word _gift_, as if it meant only talents or
+qualifications; whereas, in these and many other passages, it means a
+certain office and ministry to which one is appointed. Eph. iv. 8, 11:
+He gave gifts unto men; he gave some apostles, some prophets, &c. 1 Tim.
+iv. 14: "Neglect not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by
+prophecy, with the laying on of the hands of the presbytery." Timothy
+was ordained to the office of the ministry in consequence of special
+direction of the spirit of prophecy. See 1 Tim. i. 18.
+
+3d. It is also supposed and much insisted on by some, that both precept
+and example for the preaching of the gospel, by what they call every
+gifted brother, may be found in 1 Cor. xiv. 31, which is particularly
+urged in support of their opinion: "For ye may _all_ prophesy, one by
+one, that _all_ may learn, and _all_ may be comforted." But universal
+terms, such as are here used, are limited or extended according to the
+subject; and that even in the same verse, as in chap. xv. 22. In like
+manner here, the _all_ that may prophesy are not the same _all_ that may
+learn and be comforted. The latter may extend to all the members of the
+church, and even to strangers who might come into their assemblies; the
+former could apply only to a few. Some members of the church are
+expressly prohibited from public teaching, ver. 34. Besides, all were
+not prophets, chap. xii. 29, and therefore all could neither prophesy,
+nor could warrantably attempt it. The state of matters referred to in
+that chapter seems to have been this: The church at Corinth was
+numerous, and had many ministers, of whom the most, if not all, were
+endowed with some miraculous power, such as that of prophecy, of
+speaking strange languages, and the like; they were proud of these
+gifts, and forward to show them, ver. 26, which occasioned disorder in
+their assemblies for worship; those that had the gift of tongues
+prevented the prophets, and did not modestly give place to one another.
+These disorders the apostle reproves, and exhorts them to exercise their
+gifts in a more regular and decent manner, for the edification of the
+church. This being the case, it is strange to plead this passage as a
+warrant for the preaching of the gospel by those who are in no office,
+and who neither have any miraculous power to prove their immediate call
+by Christ to the work of the ministry, nor are admitted thereto by the
+call of the church.
+
+4th. Further, we are referred to Acts viii. 1-4, for an example of the
+preaching of the gospel by persons not in office. We are told, ver. 1,
+that "there was a great persecution against the church which was at
+Jerusalem, and they were all scattered abroad--_except the apostles_."
+And it is said, ver. 4, "_they_, that were scattered abroad, went
+everywhere _preaching the word_." From this it is argued, that _the
+Church in general_ proclaimed the gospel of the Lord Jesus. But why
+mention the Church in general, when the method of reasoning used would
+equally prove that the Church universally did so; and the absurdity of
+such reasoning must be evident upon a very little consideration of the
+subject. How absurd to suppose that _all_ mentioned in ver. 1, refers to
+and comprehends all the members of that church, and that all the
+thousands and ten thousands belonging to it were all scattered abroad,
+or that they all, men, women, and children, went _everywhere preaching_
+the word! Are we not told, ver. 3, that some of them, probably many of
+them, both men and women, were haled and committed to prison? Or, had
+all the members of the church been driven from Jerusalem, how were the
+apostles to be employed? Did they only tarry to gather a new church?
+When it is said, ver. 3, that Saul entered into every house, how absurd
+would it be to suppose that it is meant every house in Jerusalem, or
+even every house in which there was a Christian! The expression, also,
+_everywhere_, ver. 4, must be limited. It would therefore be
+unreasonable to object against a proper limitation of the word _all_,
+ver. 1. And about the just limitation of it we need be at no loss. They
+were all scattered abroad--except the apostles. What reason can there be
+for mentioning only the apostles as excepted, while there were so many
+other members of that church still remaining at Jerusalem, but this,
+that the persons referred to were of the same description in general
+with the apostles, persons in office, ministers of the church? Others
+might also be scattered, but these are here spoken of; and Philip, an
+evangelist, and endowed with miraculous powers, is mentioned as one of
+them.
+
+5th. As to the case of Apollos, which some urge as affording
+irresistible evidence to prove that all who are qualified may preach the
+gospel, a few words may suffice. He spoke boldly in the synagogue, the
+practice of which is no rule to the Christian Church. He was not yet
+acquainted with some important doctrines of the New Testament Church,
+much less could he be acquainted with the ordinances of it. Two
+intelligent Christians instructed him more perfectly in the way of God.
+He was recommended by the brethren to the church at Corinth, and there
+he labored successfully in the work of the ministry. And what is all
+this to the purpose for which his example is urged? We have no
+information, indeed, of what time, nor in what manner, he was called and
+admitted to the work of the ministry, more than we have about many
+others mentioned in Scripture: but he is expressly called a minister,
+and is, once and again, classed with the chiefest of the apostles, 1
+Cor. i. 12, iii. 5, 22.
+
+Lest these and the like arguments should be found insufficient, recourse
+is had by some to the plea of pure motives and good designs, with a kind
+of appeal to the judgment of the great day, and profession of trust,
+that they are such as will not then be condemned. It is a great
+satisfaction to have the testimony of conscience to the purity of
+motives in every part of conduct that is warranted by the word of God,
+and also to know that the judgment of the saints at the great day will
+be a judgment of mercy. But every part of the truth of Christ will be
+determined at that day in exact conformity to what is now declared in
+the word. And the purest motives and most noble designs are no rule of
+conduct to any; much less can they give satisfaction to others.
+
+These observations concerning the institution of a gospel ministry, the
+writer is persuaded, are agreeable to the word of God: if they be not,
+it would be idle to appeal to his motives in support of them. But he can
+freely say that they are here offered to the public, not from a desire
+of controversy, but from a conviction, that at this time it is
+necessary, on different accounts, to call people's attention to the mind
+and will of Christ, as revealed in the word concerning this subject. Let
+not such of the friends of religion, as may be of different sentiments
+from what are here expressed, be offended at an attempt, in the spirit
+of meekness, to remove their mistakes: nor let them impute it to envy,
+pride, or selfish principles. In a perfect consistency with all that he
+hath advanced, the writer can say, "Would to God that all the Lord's
+people were prophets."
+
+It is a necessary consequence of what is advanced on this subject, that
+all should be careful that the ministry of the ordinances they attend
+upon be such as is warranted in the word. If none can warrantably preach
+except they be sent, we cannot warrantably attend on the ministry of any
+but those who we have reason to believe have Christ's call and mission.
+And if it be an objection against a pastor of a congregation, that he is
+imposed upon the flock without their choice, it is no less an objection
+against a preacher, if he be not admitted to the ministry of the word by
+those whose office it is to examine his qualifications, and judge of his
+call. It must, however, be acknowledged, that to have gone through the
+ordinary forms of admission is no sufficient evidence of one's having
+the call of Christ. The outward forms may be observed, while the spirit
+and design of them is neglected, and the rule of the word transgressed.
+Nor can any be acknowledged as sent by Christ, unless their character
+correspond with that pointed out and required in the word, and unless
+the doctrine they teach be the gospel of Christ. None can be supposed to
+have a mission from Christ, who do not bring his message, 2 John ver.
+10: "If there come any unto you and bring not this doctrine, receive him
+not into your house, neither bid him God speed." But when we are favored
+with the pure gospel, and an administration of it agreeable to the word,
+let us wait upon it diligently; regarding the preaching of the gospel as
+an ordinance of Christ, and depending on his promised blessing to make
+it effectual: for when "the world by wisdom knew not God, it pleased
+God, by the foolishness of preaching, to save them that believe," 1 Cor.
+i. 21.
+
+Both parts of this number are recommended to the serious consideration
+of what are called _lay-preachers_, and of such as favor that scheme.
+And let all intruders upon the office of the holy ministry, with their
+deluded votaries, beware lest it should be said to them, _Who hath
+required this at your hands_?
+
+
+
+
+NO. IV.
+
+
+_Quest_. Have not the people a divine right to choose their own pastors
+and other church officers?
+
+_Ans_. In those divinely qualified for the ministry, there are
+diversities of gifts, though but one spirit. As the same food, though
+abundantly wholesome and nourishing, is not equally suited to the taste,
+appetite, and constitutions of different persons and nations; so the
+same gifts in a candidate for the gospel ministry are not equally
+adapted to every person and place. To secure edification there must
+therefore be a choice of the gifts most suitable. And who fitter to make
+it than those who are to enjoy the use thereof, if their senses be
+exercised to discern good and evil? Can any man pretend to know better
+what gifts suit the case of my soul than I do myself?
+
+Those ignorant of the fundamental truths of Christianity; those
+scandalous, profane deniers of the divine original of the Old and New
+Testaments, or of any truth therein plainly revealed; those neglecters
+of the public, private, and secret worship of God; those given to
+cursing, swearing, Sabbath profanation, drunkenness, whoredom, or other
+scandalous courses, are destitute of capacity and right to choose a
+gospel minister. The ignorant are utterly incapable to judge of either
+the preacher's matter or method. The openly wicked have their hatred of
+Christ, and a faithful minister, marked in their forehead; neither are
+such qualified to be visible members of the Christian Church. To admit
+them therefore to choose a Christian pastor would be a method,
+introducing ruin and we; a method equally absurd as for unfreemen to
+choose the magistrates of a burgh: rather, equally absurd as if ignorant
+babes, and our enemies the French, should be sustained electors of our
+members of parliament and privy council.
+
+Whether visible believers, adults, and having a life and conversation
+becoming the gospel, have a right from God to choose their pastors and
+other church officers, must now be examined.
+
+All along from the Reformation it has been the avowed principle of
+Scotch Presbyterians, that they have a divine warrant to choose their
+own pastors and other ecclesiastic officers. The first book of
+discipline, published A.D. 1560, declares the lawful calling of the
+ministry to consist in the election of the people, the examination of
+the ministry, and administration by both, and that no pastor should be
+intruded on any particular kirk without their consent. Their second book
+of discipline declares that the people's liberty of choosing church
+officers continued till the Church was corrupted by antichrist: that
+patronage flowed from the Pope's canon law, and is inconsistent with the
+order prescribed in God's word. From various documents the assembly of
+1736 declared it obvious, that from the Reformation it had been the
+fixed principle of this church that no minister ought to be intruded
+into any church contrary to the will of the congregation. They seriously
+recommended a due regard hereunto in planting the vacancies, as
+judicatories would study the glory of God, the honor of God, and the
+edification of men. It is the law of heaven, however, the book of the
+Lord, that here and everywhere we intend to build our faith upon.
+
+That of Matthias is the first instance of an election of an officer in
+the Christian Church. No doubt, then, it is marked in the sacred history
+as a pattern for the ages to come. Being an officer extraordinary, his
+call was in part immediately divine, by the determination of the lot.
+Being a church officer, he was chosen by the Church as far as consistent
+with his extraordinary office. The disciples about Jerusalem (120) were
+gathered together. Peter represented the necessity of filling up Judas's
+place in the apostolate with one who could be a meet witness of Jesus'
+doctrines, miracles, death, and resurrection. The one hundred and twenty
+disciples chose, appointed, or presented to whom they judged proper for
+that work. The office being extraordinary, and perhaps the votes equal,
+the decision which of these two was referred to the divine determination
+of the lot. After prayer for a perfect _one_, it fell upon Matthias, and
+he was, by suffrages, or votes, added to the number of the apostles.
+
+Had the next election of a church officer entirely excluded the
+Christian people, one had been tempted to suspect that Matthias's
+extraordinary case was never designed for a pattern. Instead hereof, the
+choice being of an ordinary officer, is entirely deposited in their
+hands. Never were men better qualified for such an election than the
+inspired, the spirit-discerning apostles; yet when restrained by
+laborious attendance to their principal work, the ministry of the word
+and of prayer, from sufficient leisure to distribute their multiplied
+alms to their now numerous poor, and directed by the Holy Ghost, they
+ordered the Christian people _to look out_, choose seven of their
+number, _men of honest report, full of the Holy Ghost and of wisdom_,
+who might be ordained to the office of deacons. Judging of the mentioned
+qualifications, the Christian multitude, entirely of their own accord,
+chose Stephen, Philip, Prochorus, Nicanor, Timon, Parmenas, and
+Nicolas. These they presented to the apostles, who immediately ordained
+them by prayer, and imposition of hands, Acts vi. 1-6. Here, by inspired
+appointment, the people had the whole power of electing their deacons.
+If they have the power of electing one ordinary officer, why not of all?
+If in the case of deacons they can judge of the qualifications of
+_honest report, full of the Holy Ghost and of wisdom_, what hinders them
+to judge of these and the like of ministers? If Jesus and his apostles
+argued from the less to the greater, Matt. vi. 30,1 Cor. ix. 10, who can
+forbid us to argue so? If it be right and equal for the Christian people
+to choose deacons who take care of their sacred alms, is it not much
+more right and equal that they have the choice of their pastors, who
+take the oversight of their souls?
+
+A third instance of the Christian people electing their ecclesiastical
+officers, relates to the joint travels of Paul and Barnabas at Lystra
+and places around, Acts xiv. 23. These two divinely directed messengers
+of Christ, having ordained (or, as properly translated from the Greek,
+_through suffrages or votes constituted) them elders_ (presbyters) _in
+every city, and prayed with fasting, commended them to the Lord_. Here
+it is plainly marked that these elders, _presbyters_, were chosen by
+_suffrages (votes)_ in order to ordination. This the Greek word in our
+version, by the fraud of the English bishops rendered _had ordained_,
+plainly imports. The root of this word is borrowed from the custom of
+giving votes at Athens and elsewhere in Greece, by lifting up of the
+hand. Wherever it is used in the Greek Testament, and for anything we
+know in every Greek author, not posterior to Luke, the writer of the
+Acts, it constantly implies _to give vote or suffrage_. In the text
+before us it agrees with Paul and Barnabas; because they presided in the
+choice, and finished the design of it by ordination. Here, moreover, it
+is evident that the persons chosen for elders _(presbyters)_ were set
+apart to their office, not by a hurried prayer and riotous banquet, but
+_by prayer and fasting:_ and this manner of choice and ordination was
+used in every church. The very performance of the work of ordination in
+public conjunction with the church tacitly infers their consent.
+
+Christ's commanding his people _to try the spirits_, to try false
+prophets, and to flee from them, 1 John iv. 1, 2, necessarily imports a
+right to choose the worthy, and reject the vile; to choose what suits
+our edification, and to reject what doth not; for, if we must receive
+whoever is imposed, there is no occasion for trial, we can have no
+other. The privilege of trial here allowed to his people by Christ
+plainly supposes their having some ability for it; and, by a diligent
+perusal of his word, and consulting his ministers, they may become more
+capable. Has our adored Redeemer thus intrusted to his adult members the
+election of their pastors? at what peril or guilt do any ministers or
+laics concur to bereave them thereof, thrusting men into the evangelic
+office by another way; thus constituting them spiritual _thieves_ and
+_robbers_? Instead of being _gentle_ to church members, as a _nurse
+cherisheth her children_; instead of _condescending to men of low
+degree_, and _doing all things to the glory of God_ and the _edification
+of souls_, is not this to set at naught their brethren; exercise lordly
+dominion over the members of Christ; and rule them with rigor?
+
+In the oracles of God, where is the hint, that the choice of pastors for
+the Christian people is lodged in any but themselves?--Since men
+apostolic and inspired put the choice from themselves to the Christian
+people; who can believe that it belongs to the clergy? Acts i. and vi.
+When Christ avers _his kingdom is not of this world_; when he threatens
+judgment without mercy to such as in his worshipping assemblies more
+readily give a seat to the rich, with his gold ring and gay clothing,
+than to the poor; can it be imagined that he has intrusted the choice of
+his ambassadors to men, for their greatness?
+
+There is indeed a haughty objection often stated against the people's
+choice: Shall a cottager, poor and unlearned, who pays not one farthing
+of the stipend, and at next term will perhaps remove from the
+congregation, have an equal choice of a minister with his master, a
+gentleman, a nobleman, of liberal education, of distinguished abilities,
+who is head of a large family, has a fixed property and residence in the
+parish, and furnishes almost the whole benefice? Will you fly in the
+face of our civil law? Will you plead for the method of choosing church
+officers, which already has produced so much strife, bloody squabbling,
+or riot? If Christ's _kingdom_, as himself when dying attested, _is not
+of this world_, how can outward learning, riches, settled abode, or any
+worldly thing, constitute one a member thereof? These do not make one a
+better Christian. No. _Not many wise men after the flesh, not many
+mighty, not many noble, are called_ with a holy calling. How ordinarily
+do rich men oppress the saints, draw them before judgment-seats, and
+blaspheme Jesus' worthy name, by which they are called! If worldly
+privileges and endowments cannot make one a subject of the Mediator's
+spiritual kingdom, how can they entitle any to, or raise him above his
+brethren in, the privileges thereof? If by the Son of God the poor
+cottager has been made free indeed; has been taught to profit; is rich
+in faith; is a king and priest unto God; and hath received a kingdom
+that cannot be moved; in the view of the Omniscient and his angels, and
+every man wise to salvation, how little is he inferior to his rich,
+perhaps his graceless, master? Your rich man has college education,
+understands philosophy, history, law, agriculture; but will that infer
+that he understands his Bible, understands Christian principles,
+spiritual experiences, and what spiritual gifts best correspond
+therewith, better than his cottager, who daily searches the Scriptures,
+and has heard and learned of the Father? How oft are the great things of
+God hid from the wise and prudent, and revealed unto babes! Christ
+crucified was to the learned Greeks foolishness; but to the poorest
+believer the power of God and the wisdom of God. "The natural man,"
+however learned, "receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God, neither
+can he know them; for they are spiritually discerned," 1 Cor. ii. 14.
+How easy to find the herdman, or the silly woman, who will endure a
+trial on Christian principles to far better purpose than many of your
+rich, your great men!--Your great man is the head of a numerous family,
+and has great influence in the corner. That, no doubt, is a strong
+motive for him, if he is a Christian, to be exceeding wary in his
+choice: if he is so, no doubt his Christian judgment, as far as is
+consistent with spiritual liberty, is to have its own weight. But while
+Christ's _kingdom is not of this world_; while in him there is _neither
+male nor female, bond nor free_; headship over a family can found no
+claim to a spiritual privilege. Thousands of heads of families are
+plainly _aliens from the commonwealth of Israel_, without God, and
+without hope in the world. Many are heads of families who, by neglect of
+the daily worship of God, of religious instruction, and by other
+unchristian conduct, ruin the same.
+
+Boast not of the great man's settled abode, boast not of to-morrow, for
+thou knowest not what a day may bring forth; how suddenly may disaster
+and death pluck him up by the roots! The rich fathers, where are they?
+Do the nobles live forever? Shall their dwelling continue to all
+generations? How often, in a few years, the rich inheritance changes its
+master, while the race of the poor hovers about the same spot for many
+generations! What if the cottager attend more to gospel ministrations,
+in one year, than the rich in forty! what if, removing at next term, he
+carry his beloved pastor in his heart, and by effectual fervent prayers,
+availing much, by multiplied groanings that cannot be uttered, he bring
+manifold blessings on the parish and ministry which he leaves; while
+your rich man, if wicked, if of the too common stamp, continues in it,
+for no better purpose than to distress the faithful pastor, corrupt the
+people, bring down a curse, and cumber the ground! The great man bears
+the load of the stipend no more than the poorest cottager. He purchased
+his estate with this burden upon it, and on that account had its price
+proportionally abated. Suppose it were otherwise, might not a poor
+widow's _two mites_ be more in Jesus' account than all he gives? Will
+we, with the Samaritan sorcerer, indulge the thought that the _gifts of
+God_, the spiritual privileges of his Church, _are to be purchased with
+money_? For money to erect the church or defray the benefice we must
+not, with the infamous traitor, betray the Son of God in his church--his
+ordinance, his ministry, into the hands of sinners to be crucified.
+
+It is in vain to mention the civil law: the very worst statute thereof,
+relative to the point in hand, indirectly supposes the consent of the
+congregation. It leaves to the presbytery the full power to judge
+whether the presentee is fit for that charge. If the congregation
+generally oppose, with what candor do the presbytery, in Jesus' name,
+determine that he is fit? The last statute relative hereto declared the
+presentation void, unless accepted. Nor is there in being any, but the
+_law of sin and death_ within them, the law of itch after worldly gain,
+that obliges candidates to accept. How unmanly, how disingenuous, to
+blame the civil law with the present course of intrusions!--Since the
+resurrection of Christ, we think we may almost defy any to produce an
+instance of bloody squabbling, or like outrageous contention, in the
+choice of a pastor, where none but the visible members of Christ's
+mystical body, adult, and blameless in their lives, were admitted to act
+in the choice. But if at any called popular elections, the power was
+sinfully betrayed into the hands of such baptized persons, as in
+ignorance and loose practice equalled, if not transcended, _heathen men
+and publicans_; into the hand of those who, to please a superior, to
+obtain a paltry bribe, or a flagon of wine, were readily determined in
+their vote for a minister; let the prostitutes of Jesus' ordinance
+answer for the unhappy consequences of their conduct. If they so
+enormously broke through the hedge of the divine law, no wonder a
+serpent bit them. But who has forgot what angry contentions, what
+necessity of a military guard at ordinations, the lodging of the power
+of elections in patrons or heritors, _as such_, has of late occasioned?
+
+To deprive the Christian people of their privilege in choosing their
+pastor, and give it to others upon worldly accounts, is the grossest
+absurdity. It overturns the nature of Christ's spiritual kingdom,
+founding a claim to her privileges on worldly character and property. It
+gives those blessed lips the lie, which said, _"My kingdom is not of
+this world."_ It counteracts the nature of the church, as a voluntary
+society; thrusting men into a momentous relation to her, without, nay
+contrary to, her consent. It settles the ministerial office upon a very
+rotten foundation: for how hard is it to believe the man is a minister
+of a Christian congregation, who never consented to his being such! to
+believe he has a pastoral mission from Christ, for whom providence would
+never open a regular door of entrance to the office; but he was obliged
+to be thrust in by the window, _as a thief and a robber_! If he comes
+unsent, how can I expect edification by his ministry, when God has
+declared, _such shall not profit his people at all_? It implies the most
+unnatural cruelty. If the law of nature allow me the choice of my
+physician, my servant, my guide, my master, how absurd to deny me the
+choice of a physician, a servant, a guide, to my soul; and to give it to
+another, merely because he has some more money, has a certain _piece of
+ground_, which I have not! How do these qualify him, or entitle him to
+provide, what the eternal salvation of my soul is so nearly connected
+with, better than myself, if taught of God?
+
+By patronage how oft the honor of Christ and the souls of men are
+betrayed into the hands of their declared enemies! If the patron is
+unholy, profane, how readily the candidate he prefers is too like
+himself! If a candidate be faithful, be holy, how readily, like Ahab in
+the case of Micaiah, he hates, he sends not for him! The complaisant
+chaplain, who almost never disturbed the family with the worship of God;
+who along with the children or others took off his cheerful glass; sung
+his wanton song; attended the licentious ball, or play-house; connived
+at, or swore a profane oath; took a hand at cards; or ridiculed the
+mysteries, the experiences, the circumspect professor of the Christian
+faith, is almost certain to have the presentation: perhaps he covenanted
+for it as part of his wages. For what simony, sacrilege, and deceitful
+perjury, with respect to ordination vows, patronage opens a door, he
+that runs may read. Shocked with the view, let us forbear!
+
+ * * * * *
+
+N.B. The London ministers in the preceding treatise have a large note
+respecting the election of ministers, which does not fully invest this
+right in the people. The editor, therefore, omitted that note
+altogether, and has inserted this number, extracted from Brown's
+Letters, in the place of it, as better adapted to the nature of the
+gospel church, and to that liberty wherewith Christ has made his people
+free.
+
+
+
+
+NO. V.[124]
+
+_Of the Ordination and Duty of Ministers._
+
+
+That the ordination of pastors is an ordinance of Christ, the sacred
+volumes clearly prove. Through election by suffrages (or votes) Paul and
+Barnabas ordained _elders_ (presbyters) _in every church_, Acts xiv. 23.
+By Paul's inspired orders Titus was left at Crete to ordain elders
+(presbyters) in every city, Tit. i. 5. By the laying on of the hands of
+the presbytery was Timothy himself ordained: he was apostolically
+authorized and directed to ordain others; and informed that these
+directions are to be observed, _till the day of Jesus Christ_, 1 Tim.
+iv. 14, 15.
+
+That not election, but ordination, confers the sacred office is no less
+evident. Election marks out the person to be ordained; ordination fixes
+the relation of a candidate to a particular congregation, upon receiving
+a regular call; while at the same time it constitutes him a minister of
+the whole catholic Church. Ordination made men _presbyters_ and
+_deacons_, which were not so before. If a person be destitute of the
+distinguishing ministerial gift, or any other essential qualification,
+ten thousand elections or ordinations cannot render him a minister of
+Christ. But solemnly tried and found qualified, he is to be set apart to
+the ministry, by prayer, fasting, and laying on of the hands of the
+presbytery.
+
+Nowhere in the heavenly volume do we find either precept or example that
+Christian people have a whit more right to ordain their pastor, than
+midwives have to baptize the children they assist to bring forth.
+Ordination appears to have been performed by apostles, by evangelists,
+and by a presbytery, Acts vi. 6, and xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5; 1 Tim. v. 22,
+and iv. 14: but never by private Christians. Could these ordain their
+pastors or other ecclesiastic officers, to what purpose did Paul leave
+Titus at Crete to _ordain elders in every city_? or why did he write
+never a word about ordination to the people, in any of his epistles, but
+to their rulers?
+
+Thus regularly ordained, the Christian pastor must enter upon his
+important work. Endowed with spiritual wisdom and understanding;
+possessed of inward experience of the power of divine truth; inflamed
+with zeal for the glory of God, love to his work, and compassion to the
+perishing souls of men, he is to endeavor to acquaint himself with the
+spiritual state of his flock; and to feed them, not with heathenish and
+Arminian harangues, but with the gospel of Christ, the sincere milk of
+the word, diligently preaching and rightly dividing it, according to
+their diversified state and condition, 1 Pet. v. 3; 2 Cor. v. 11; 1 Cor.
+ix. 16. Assiduously growing in the knowledge and love of divine things,
+he is to instruct and confirm his hearers therein. Every divine truth he
+is to publish and apply, as opportunity calls for: chiefly such as are
+most important, or, though once openly confessed, are in his time
+attacked and denied, 1 Tim. vi. 20, iii. 15. Painfully is he to
+catechize his people, and in Jesus' name to visit and teach them from
+house to house. To awaken their conscience, to promote the conversion of
+sinners, to direct and comfort the cast down, perplexed, tempted, and
+deserted; to ponder the Scripture, and his own and others' experience,
+to qualify him for this work, must be his earnest care. Faithfully is he
+to administer the sacraments to such (only) as are duly prepared; and in
+the simple manner prescribed by Christ. Tenderly is he to take care of
+the poor; to sympathize with the afflicted; impartially to visit the
+sick; to deal plainly with their consciences, and to exhort and pray
+over them in the name of the Lord. With impartiality, zeal, meekness,
+and prudence, he is to rule and govern the church, to admonish the
+unruly, to rebuke offenders, to excommunicate the incorrigible, and to
+absolve the penitent. Habitually is he to give himself to effectual
+fervent prayer, for his flock, and for the Church of God, travailing as
+in birth till Jesus be formed in the souls of men. Be a man's parts,
+diligence, and apparent piety what they will, negligence in this will
+blast his ministrations, and too clearly mark, that he is therein
+chiefly influenced by some carnal motive of honor or gain. Finally, he
+is constantly to walk before his flock a distinguished pattern of
+sobriety, righteousness, holiness, humility, heavenliness, temperance,
+charity, brotherly kindness, and every good word and work. Without this
+his ministrations appear but a solemn farce of deceit, 2 Tim. ii. 4; 1
+Tim. iv. 15; 2 Tim. iv. 2.
+
+Can ministers' reading of sermons consist with the dignity of their
+office? Did Jesus or his apostles ever show them an example of this? No.
+At Nazareth, when he read his text in the book of Esaias, he _closed his
+book_, and discoursed to the people. On the mount _he opened his mouth,
+and taught_: we hear not that he took out his papers and read. Peter, in
+his sermon at Pentecost, _lifted up his voice, and said_: his papers and
+reading we hear nothing of. After reading of the law and the prophets,
+the rulers of the synagogue of Antioch in Pisidia, desired Paul and
+Barnabas, not to _read_, but to _say on_. Our adored Saviour knew well
+enough how to direct his ambassadors; yet he ordered them to _go and
+preach_, not _read_, the gospel to every creature, Luke iv. 20, 21;
+Matt. v. 2; Acts ii. 14, and xiii. 15. How hard to believe, that he who
+gives gifts to men, for the edifying of his body, would send the
+sermonist, whose memory and judgment are so insufficient, that from
+neither he can produce an half hour's discourse without reading it! How
+dull and insipid the manner! How absurdly it hinders the Spirit's
+assistance, as to matter during the discourse! How shameful! Shall the
+bookless lawyer warmly and sensibly plead almost insignificant trifles,
+and shall the ambassador of Christ, deprived of his papers, be incapable
+to plead so short a space in favor of his Master, and of the souls of
+men?
+
+
+
+
+NO. VI.[125]
+
+_Of Ruling Elders._
+
+
+The rule and government of the Church, or the execution of the authority
+of Christ therein, is in the hand of the elders. All elders in office
+have rule, and none have rule in the church but elders: _as such_, rule
+doth belong unto them. The apostles by virtue of their special office
+were intrusted with all church power; but therefore they were elders
+also, 1 Pet. v. 1; 3 John i.: see Acts xxi. 17; 1 Tim. i. 17. They are
+some of them on other accounts called bishops, pastors, teachers,
+ministers, guides; but what belongs to any of them in point of rule, or
+what interest they have therein, it belongs unto them as elders, and not
+otherwise, Acts xx. 17, 18. The Scriptures affirm, 1st, That there is a
+work and duty of rule in the Church, distinct from the work and duty of
+pastoral feeding, by the preaching of the word and administration of the
+sacraments, Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v. 17; 2
+Tim. iv. 5; Heb. xiii. 7, 17; Rev. ii. 3.
+
+2d. Different and distinct gifts are required unto the discharge of
+these distinct works and duties. This belongs unto the harmony of the
+dispensation of the gospel. Gifts are bestowed to answer all duties
+prescribed. Hence they are the first foundation of all power, work, and
+duty in the church. Unto every one of us is given grace according to the
+measure of the gift of Christ, that is, ability for duty, according to
+the measure wherein Christ is pleased to grant it; Eph. iv. 7: see also
+1 Cor. xii. 4, 7, 8-10; Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet. iv. 10: wherefore
+different gifts are the first foundation of different offices and
+duties.
+
+3d. That different gifts are required unto the different works of
+pastoral teaching on the one hand, and practical rule on the other, is
+evident, 1st, From the light of reason, and the nature of the works
+themselves being so different. And, 2d, From experience; some men are
+fitted by gifts for the dispensation of the word and doctrine in a way
+of pastoral feeding, who have no useful ability in the work of rule; and
+some are fitted for rule, who have no gifts for the discharge of the
+pastoral work in preaching, Yea, it is very seldom that both these sort
+of gifts do concur in any eminent degree in the same persons, or without
+some notable defect.
+
+4th. The work of rule, as distinct from teaching, is in general to watch
+over the walk or conversation of the members of the church with
+authority, exhorting, comforting, admonishing, reproving, encouraging,
+and directing of them, as occasion shall require. The gifts necessary
+hereunto are diligence, wisdom, courage, and gravity; as we shall see
+afterwards. The pastoral work is principally to reveal the whole counsel
+of God, to divide the word aright, or to labor in the word and doctrine,
+both as unto the general dispensation and particular application of it,
+in all seasons and on all occasions. Hereunto spiritual wisdom,
+knowledge, sound judgment, experience, and utterance are required; all
+to be improved by continual study of the word and prayer. But this
+difference of gifts unto these distinct works doth not of itself
+constitute distinct offices, because the same persons may be suitably
+furnished with those of both sorts.
+
+5th. Yet distinct works and duties, though some were furnished with
+gifts for both, were a ground in the wisdom of the Holy Ghost, for
+distinct offices in the church, where one sort of them were as much as
+those of one office could, ordinarily attend unto, Acts vi. 2-4.
+Ministration unto the poor of the church, for the supply of their
+temporal necessities, is an ordinance of Christ, instituted that the
+apostles might give a more diligent attendance unto the word and prayer.
+
+6th. The work of the ministry in prayer, and preaching of the word, or
+labor in the word and doctrine, whereunto the administration of the
+seals of the covenant is annexed, with all the duties that belong unto
+the special application of these things before insisted on unto the
+flock, are ordinarily sufficient to take up the whole man, and the
+utmost of their endowments who are called unto the pastoral office in
+the church. The very nature of the work in itself is such, as that the
+apostle giving a short description of it adds, as an intimation of its
+greatness and excellency, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2 Cor.
+ii. 16. And the manner of its performance adds unto its weight. For not
+to mention that intenseness of mind in the exercise of faith, love,
+zeal, and compassion, which is required of them in the discharge of
+their whole office; the diligent consideration of the state of the
+flock, so as to provide spiritual food for them; with a constant
+attendance unto the issues and effects of the word in the consciences
+and lives of men; is enough for the most part to take up their whole
+time and strength. It is gross ignorance or negligence that causeth any
+to be otherwise minded. As the work of the ministry is generally
+discharged, consisting only in a weekly provision of sermons, and the
+performance of some stated offices by reading, men have time and liberty
+enough to attend unto other occasions. But in such persons we are not at
+present concerned. Our rule is plain, 1 Tim. iv. 12-17.
+
+7th. It doth not hence follow, that those who are called unto the
+ministry of the word, as pastors and teachers, who are elders also, are
+divested of their right to rule in the church, or discharged from the
+exercise of it, because others, not called unto their office, are
+appointed to be assistant unto them, that is, _helps in the government_.
+For the right and duty of rule is inseparable from the office of elders,
+which all bishops and pastors are. The right is still in them, and the
+exercise of it, consistent with their more excellent work, is required
+of them. The apostles in the constitution of elders in every church
+derogated nothing from their own authority, nor discharged themselves of
+their care. So when they appointed deacons to take care of supplies for
+the poor, they did not forego their own right, nor the exercise of their
+duty as their other work would permit them, Gal. ii. 9, 10. And in
+particular the apostle Paul manifested his concernment herein, in the
+care he took about _collection for the poor_ in all churches.
+
+8th. As we observed at the entrance of this chapter, the whole work of
+the church, as unto authoritative teaching and rule, is committed unto
+the elders. For authoritative teaching and ruling, is teaching and
+ruling by virtue of office: and this office whereunto they do belong is
+that of elders, as is undeniably attested, Acts xx. 17, &c. All that
+belongs unto the care, inspection, oversight, rule, fend instruction of
+the church, is committed unto the _elders_ of it expressly. For _elders_
+is a name derived from the Jews, denoting them that have _authority_ in
+the church.
+
+9th. To the complete constitution of any church, or to the perfection of
+its organical state, it is required that there be _many elders_ in it;
+at least more than one. I do not determine what their number ought to
+be; but it is to be proportioned to the work and end designed. Where the
+churches are small, the number of elders must be so also. So many are
+necessary in each office as are able to discharge the work which is
+allotted unto them. But that church, be it small or great, is defective,
+which hath not more elders than one; so many as are sufficient for their
+work. The pattern of the first churches constituted by the apostles,
+which it is our duty to imitate and follow as our rule, plainly
+declares, that many elders were appointed by them in every church, Acts
+xi. 30, xiv. 23, xv. 2, 4, 6, 22, xvi. 4, xx. 17; 1 Tim. v. 17; Phil. i.
+1; Tit. i. 5; 1 Pet. v. 1.
+
+10th. We shall now make application of these things unto our present
+purpose. I say then, 1st, Whereas there is a work of rule in the Church,
+distinct from that of pastoral feeding: 2d, Whereas this work is to be
+attended unto with diligence, which includes the whole duty of him that
+attends unto it: 3d, That the ministry of the word and prayer, with all
+those duties that accompany it, is a full employment for any man, and so
+consequently his principal and proper work, which it is unlawful for him
+to be remiss in, by attending on another with diligence: 4th, That, in
+the wisdom of the Holy Ghost, distinct works did require distinct
+offices for their discharge: and, 5th, Whereas there ought to be many
+elders in every church, that both the works of _teaching_ and _ruling_
+may be constantly attended unto; all which we have proved already: our
+inquiry herein is, whether the same Holy Spirit hath not distinguished
+this office of elders into those two sorts, namely, those who are called
+unto teaching and rule also, and those who are called unto rule only,
+which we affirm.
+
+The testimonies whereby the truth of this assertion is confirmed are
+generally known and pleaded. I shall insist on some of them only,
+beginning with that which is of uncontrollable evidence, if it had any
+thing to conflict with but prejudices and interest, and this is 1 Tim.
+v. 17, the meaning of which is, the elders or presbyters in office,
+elders of the church _that rule well_ or discharge their presidency for
+rule in due manner, are worthy, or ought to be reputed worthy, _of
+double honor_; especially those of them who labor, or are engaged in the
+great labor and travail of the word and doctrine.
+
+According to this sense the words of the text have a plain and obvious
+signification, which at first view presents itself unto the common sense
+and understanding of all men. On the first proposal of this text, that
+the elders that rule well are worthy of double honor, especially those
+who labor in the word and doctrine, a rational man, who is unprejudiced,
+and never heard of the controversy about ruling elders, can hardly avoid
+an apprehension that there are _two sorts of elders_, some that labor in
+the word and doctrine, and some who do not. This is the substance of the
+truth in the text. There are elders in the Church; there are or ought to
+be so in every church. With these elders the whole rule of the Church is
+intrusted; all these, and only these, do rule in it. Of these elders
+there are two sorts; for a description is given of one sort distinct
+from the other, and comparative with it. The first sort doth rule, and
+also labor in the word and doctrine. That these works are distinct and
+different was before declared: yet by the institution of Christ the
+right of rule is inseparable from the office of pastors or teachers. For
+all that are rightly called thereunto are elders also, which gives them
+an interest in rule. But there are elders which are not pastors or
+teachers. For there are some who rule well, but labor not in the word
+and doctrine; that is, who are not pastors or teachers.
+
+Elders which rule well, but labor not in the word and doctrine, are
+ruling elders only; for he who says, The elders who rule well are worthy
+of double honor, especially they who labor in the word and doctrine,
+saith that there are, or may be elders who rule well, who do not labor
+in the word and doctrine; that is, who are not obliged to do so.
+
+The argument from these words may be otherwise framed, but this contains
+the plain sense of this testimony.
+
+Our next testimony is from the same apostle, Rom. xii. 6, 7, _He that
+ruleth with diligence_. Our argument from hence is this: there is in the
+Church one that ruleth with authority by virtue of his office. For the
+discharge of this office there is a differing peculiar gift bestowed on
+some, ver. 7, and there is the special manner prescribed for the
+discharge of this special office, by virtue of that special gift; it is
+to be done with peculiar _diligence_. And this ruler is distinguished
+from him that exhorteth, and him that teacheth, with whose special work,
+as such, he hath nothing to do; even as they are distinguished from
+those who give and show mercy; that is, there is an elder by office in
+the Church, whose work and duty it is to _rule_, not to exhort or teach
+ministerially, which is our ruling elder. He that ruleth is a distinct
+officer, and is expressly distinguished from all others. Rule is the
+principal part of him that ruleth; for he is to attend unto it with
+_diligence_; that is, such as is peculiar unto _rule_, in
+contradistinction unto what is principally required in other
+administrations.
+
+There is the same evidence given unto the truth argued for in another
+testimony of the same apostle, 1 Cor. xii. 28: that there is here an
+enumeration of offices and officers in the Church, both extraordinary
+for that season, and ordinary for continuance, is beyond exception. Unto
+them is added the present exercise of some extraordinary gifts, as
+miracles, healing, tongues. That by _helps_ the deacons of the Church
+are intended most do agree, because their original institution was as
+helpers in the affairs of the Church. _Governments_ are governors or
+rulers; that is, such as are distinct from teachers; such hath God
+placed in the Church, and such there ought to be. It is said that
+_gifts_, not _offices_, are intended; the gift of government, or the
+gift for government. If God hath given gifts for government to abide in
+the Church, distinct from those given unto _teachers_, and unto other
+persons than the teachers, then there is a distinct office of rule or
+government in the Church, which is all we plead for.
+
+
+_Of the Duties of Ruling Elders._
+
+1st. To watch diligently over the ways, walk, and conversation of all
+the members of the church, to see that it be blameless, without offence,
+useful, exemplary, and in all things answering the holiness of the
+commands of Christ, the honor of the gospel, and the profession thereof
+which they make in the world. And upon the observation which they make
+in the watch wherein they are placed, to instruct, admonish, charge,
+exhort, encourage, or comfort as they see cause. And this they are to
+attend unto, with courage and diligence.
+
+2d. To endeavor to prevent every thing that is contrary unto that love
+which the Lord Christ requireth in a peculiar and eminent manner to be
+found among his disciples. This he calls his own _new command_, with
+respect unto his authority requiring it, his example first illustrating
+it in the world, and the peculiar fruits and effects of it which he
+revealed and taught. Wherefore, the due observance of this law of love
+in itself and all its fruits, with the prevention, removal, or
+condemnation of all that is contrary unto it, is that in which the _rule
+of the church_ doth in a great measure consist. And considering the
+weakness, the passions, the temptations of men, the mutual provocations
+and differences that are apt to fall out even among the best, the
+influence that earthly objects are apt to have upon their minds, the
+frowardness sometimes of men's natural tempers; the attendance unto
+this one duty, or part of rule, requires the utmost diligence of them
+that are called unto it.
+
+3d. To warn all the members of the church of their special church
+duties, that they be not found negligent or wanting in them. These are
+special duties required respectively of all church members, according
+unto the distinct talents which they have received, whether in things
+spiritual or temporal. Some are rich and some are poor; some old and
+some young; some in peace and some in trouble; some have received more
+spiritual gifts than others, and have more opportunity for their
+exercise: therefore it belongs unto the rule of the church, that all be
+admonished, instructed, and exhorted to attend unto their respective
+duties, by those in _rule_, according to the observation which they make
+of people's diligence or negligence in them.
+
+4th. To watch against the beginning of any church disorders, such as
+those that infested the church of Corinth, or any of the like sort; and
+to see that the members of the church attend regularly upon the
+ordinances of the gospel, as by slothfulness in this, decays in faith,
+love, and order have insensibly prevailed in many, to the dishonor of
+Christ, and the danger of their own souls.
+
+5th. It belongs unto them also to visit the sick, and especially such as
+their inward or outward conditions do expose them unto more than
+ordinary trials in their sickness; that is, the poor, the afflicted, the
+tempted in any kind. This in general is a moral duty, a work of mercy;
+but it is moreover a peculiar church duty by virtue of divine
+institution, ordaining, that the disciples of Christ may have all that
+spiritual and temporal relief, which is necessary for them, and useful
+to them, in their troubles and distresses.
+
+6th. To assist the pastor in watching over and directing the flock, and
+to advise with the deacons concerning the relief of the poor. According
+to the advantage which they have by their peculiar inspection of the
+conversation of all the members of the church, they ought to acquaint
+the teaching elders with the state of the flock, as to their knowledge,
+conditions, and temptations, which may be of singular use unto them, for
+their direction in the exercise of their ministry. The liberal
+contributions at Antioch for the brethren which dwelt in Judea, were
+sent by the hands of Barnabas and Saul unto the elders in Judea, Acts
+xi. 27, 30.
+
+7th. To unite with teaching elders in admitting members into the
+fellowship of the church, upon a visible evidence of their being
+qualified as the Scriptures direct. Unto them God bath given the keys of
+the kingdom of heaven, to open the door of admission unto those whom God
+hath received, Matt. xvi. 19.
+
+8th. To meet and consult with the teaching elders about such things of
+importance as are to be proposed to the members of the church for their
+consent. Hence nothing rash or indigested, nothing unsuited to the duty
+of the church, will at any time be proposed therein, so as to give
+occasion for contests, janglings, or disputes, contrary to order or
+decency, but all things may be preserved in a due regard unto the
+gravity and authority of the rulers.
+
+9th. To sit in judgment upon offenders, to take the proof, to weigh the
+evidence and determine accordingly, justifying the innocent, and
+ordaining censure to be inflicted on the convicted brother, according to
+the nature of the offence, Matt. xviii. 15, 17, 18.
+
+10th. Whereas there is generally but one teaching elder in a church,
+upon his death or removal, it is the work and duty of the ruling elders
+to preserve the church in peace and unity, to take care of the
+continuation of its public ordinances, to prevent irregularities in any
+persons or parties among them, and to give all necessary aid and advice
+in the choice and call of some other meet person to be their pastor, in
+the room of the deceased or removed.
+
+
+
+
+CONCLUSION.
+
+_A Summary of the preceding Treatise on Church Government,_
+
+BY QUESTION AND ANSWER.
+
+
+_Quest_. What is meant by church government?
+
+_Ans_. That particular form and order, which Christ has fixed in his
+Church, for the proper management thereof.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that there is a particular form of
+government appointed in the New Testament Church?
+
+_Ans_. As there is as great, if not greater, need of a government, in
+the New Testament Church, than there was in the Old, all the ordinances
+of which were most minutely described. Satan is now more experienced in
+deceiving, and his agents are still alive, and very actively employed,
+in attempting to waste and destroy this sacred vineyard, if without its
+proper hedge. Her members are still a mixture of tares and wheat; of
+sheep and goats: so that there is still a necessity of discerning
+between the precious and the vile; of trying and censuring false
+teachers; and of guarding divine ordinances from contempt and pollution.
+As Jesus gives the New Testament Church the peculiar title of the
+_kingdom of heaven_, he could not, in a consistency with his wisdom,
+leave it without any particular laws or form of government, except the
+changeable inclinations of men. As he was faithful in his New Testament
+house, he must fix a particular form of government for her, such as
+tends to her peace, order, and spiritual edification. And, amidst the
+prophet's vision of the New Testament Church, he is directed to teach
+his people _the form of the house, the laws of the house_, &c., Ezek.
+xliii. 11.
+
+_Quest_. When may a particular form of church government be said to be
+of divine right?
+
+_Ans_. When all the parts thereof are agreeable to Scripture precepts;
+to approved Scripture examples; or are deducible by fair Scripture
+consequences.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear, that Scripture consequences are to be
+admitted to prove any particular truth or doctrine?
+
+_Ans_. Because God has formed man a rational intelligent creature,
+capable of searching out the plain meaning and import, and also the
+necessary consequences of his express declarations. We find Christ
+reasoning by a deduction of consequences, when he showed that the
+doctrine of the resurrection was revealed to Moses at the burning bush;
+that the sixth commandment forbids angry words; and the seventh
+lascivious looks, Luke xx. 37, 38; Matt. v. 21, 28. And a great part of
+the inspired epistles to the Romans, Galatians, and Hebrews consists in
+such a deduction of consequences. And as all Scripture is said to be
+profitable "for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, and for
+instruction in righteousness," 2 Tim. iii. 16, without a rational
+deduction of consequences, every portion of Scripture cannot answer each
+of these valuable ends.
+
+_Quest_. What particular form of church government may lay the only
+proper claim to a divine right, according to the Holy Scriptures?
+
+_Ans_. The true presbyterian form, without that lordly dominion and
+tyrannical power, which has too often been exercised by courts, bearing
+this name. This government claimeth no power over men's bodies or
+estates. It does not inflict civil pains or corporal punishments. But it
+is a government purely spiritual, dealing with the consciences of men,
+and exercising the keys of the kingdom of heaven, doing all things
+according to the word of God.
+
+_Quest_. What are the parts of presbyterial church government?
+
+_Ans_. It consists of a people, having the qualifications which the
+Scriptures require; of certain rulers, who are to perform the duties of
+their respective offices; and of certain courts, in which these rulers
+sit and act in matters of judgment.
+
+_Quest_. What are the qualifications of persons who constitute the
+private members of the visible church?
+
+_Ans_. They ought to be true believers in Christ, to have a competent
+knowledge of the doctrines of the gospel, to make a sound profession of
+their faith, and to maintain a holy conversation.
+
+_Quest_. What rulers are there in the presbyterian church?
+
+_Ans_. Preaching elders, ruling elders, and deacons.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for the preaching elder?
+
+_Ans_. In the Holy Scriptures we find that God hath set some in the
+Church, TEACHERS: that our ascended Redeemer hath given her PASTORS and
+TEACHERS: that the Holy Ghost had made some BISHOPS, OVERSEERS, to feed
+her; and qualifies some for _prophecy, ministry, teaching, exhortation_,
+1 Cor. xii. 28; Eph. iv. 11; Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 6-8.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of preaching elders?
+
+_Ans_. To preach the word; to dispense the ordinances of baptism and the
+Lord's Supper; to administer church discipline; and to rule and govern
+the church, 2 Tim. iv. 2; Matt. xxviii. 19; 1 Cor. xi. 23-29; 1 Tim. v.
+20; Tit. ii. 15, and iii. 10; Heb. xiii. 17; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. _Quest_.
+Is the office of the gospel minister instituted by God to continue to
+the end of time?
+
+_Ans_. Yes; the ends of it are of a permanent nature, the converting and
+confirming of the elect, and the silencing of gain-savers, Acts xxvi.
+18; Tit. i. 9, 11.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for the office of the ruling elder?
+
+_Ans_. From the three following passages of sacred Scripture: 1. From
+Rom. xii. 5 to 8: "We being many are one body in Christ, and members one
+of another. Having then gifts, differing according to the grace that is
+given to us, whether prophecy, let us prophesy according to the
+proportion of faith; or ministry, let us wait on our ministering; or he
+that teacheth, on teaching; or he that exhorteth, on exhortation; he
+that giveth, let him do it with simplicity; he that ruleth, with
+diligence," &c. Here we have a list of the ordinary officers of Christ,
+one body, the church. Here is the teacher: _he that teacheth_. Here is
+the pastor: _he that exhorteth_. Here is the deacon: _he that giveth_.
+And here is another officer distinct from all them, _he that ruleth_.
+His description attests, that _ruling_ is, if not his only, yet his
+principal work. He that _ruleth_ is here marked by a distinct character,
+as having a different _gift_, and a distinct work from his
+fellow-officers. This office therefore must be _distinct_. 2. From 1
+Cor. xii. 28, where the _Spirit of God_ informs us, that God hath set
+some in the Church, GOVERNMENTS. These must be understood of
+_governors_, as _miracles_ are afterwards explained of _workers of
+miracles_. These governments and governors are said to be _set_ in the
+church, not in the state; by God, not by men: they are declared to be
+distinct officers by themselves. Their title, government, implies, that
+_ruling_ is their principal work. 3. From 1 Tim. v. 17, where the divine
+warrant for ruling elders shines with more peculiar brightness than
+anywhere in the book of God: "Let the elders that rule well be counted
+worthy of double honor; especially they who labor in the word and
+doctrine." The ruling elders here mentioned necessarily pertain to the
+church. Two sorts of ruling elders are here plainly distinguished: some
+that only rule well; others that also labor in word and doctrine. There
+is not one place in the New Testament, nor perhaps in any Greek author,
+where the word here translated ESPECIALLY does not distinguish between
+different persons or things, Gal. vi. 10; Phil. iv. 22; 1 Tim. iv. 10; 2
+Tim. iv. 13; and it would be absurd to suppose, that it does not
+distinguish here also. Therefore this single text shows the divine right
+of both the teaching and ruling elder.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of ruling elders?
+
+_Ans_. To exercise ecclesiastical rule in church courts with the same
+authority as the preaching elder; to watch over the flock; impartially
+to receive or exclude members; to warn and censure the unruly; and to
+visit and pray with the sick.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for deacons?
+
+_Ans_. From Acts vi., where we are informed of the original and design
+of their office; and from 1 Tim. iii. 8-12, where the inspired apostle
+describes their necessary qualifications.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of deacons?
+
+_Ans_. To look into the state and to serve the tables of the poor, by
+distributing the funds of the church, according to the respective
+necessities of the saints, 1 Tim. iii. 12.
+
+_Quest_. What are the courts in which presbyterian rulers meet?
+
+_Ans_. Congregational sessions, presbyteries, and synods.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for congregational sessions?
+
+_Ans_. From Matt, xviii. 15-18, where, in the Christian form of church
+discipline prescribed by the Church's Head, the concluding expression,
+"Let him be unto thee as a heathen man and publican," plainly alludes to
+the Jewish form of procedure in scandals. They had rulers, and
+consequently courts in every synagogue, or worshipping congregation,
+Mark v. 35-39. By virtue of letters from the high-priest to these, Saul
+had free access to punish the Christians in every synagogue, Acts ix. 1,
+2. To these congregational courts it pertained to cast out of the
+synagogue, and to order transgressors to be held for heathen men and
+publicans, John ix. 22. Now Jesus, in alluding to these, intimates that
+similar courts should be in every Christian congregation. In this form
+of discipline our divine Saviour shows his utmost aversion against
+private offences being unnecessarily published abroad: and therefore the
+church, to which the offence is to be told, after private admonition is
+fruitless, must be understood in the most private sense of the word. The
+following context evidences that it is a _church_, which may consist
+only of _two or three_ met together in Christ's name; yet,
+notwithstanding, a church having power to bind and loose from censure;
+that is, a church having the keys of the kingdom of heaven. It cannot
+then be the whole congregation or body of the people, as they are in
+general far too numerous to conceal offences, and to them Christ has
+given no formal judicial power, Matt. xviii. 18-21.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for a presbytery?
+
+_Ans_. Timothy is expressly said to be ordained by the laying on of the
+hands of the PRESBYTERY, 1 Tim. iv. 14. And the number of different
+Christian congregations governed by one presbytery, as at Jerusalem,
+Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, proves the divine right of this court. It
+is shown in the xiii. chapter of the preceding treatise, that in each
+of these places there were more Christians than could meet in one
+worshipping congregation, for the enjoying of public ordinances: and yet
+all these different congregations, at Jerusalem, are expressly said to
+have been one church, Acts viii. 1: so those at Antioch, Acts xiii. 1:
+so those at Ephesus, Acts xx. 17: and those also at Corinth, 1 Cor. i.
+2. Now the question is, How were the different congregations in each of
+these places ONE CHURCH? Not merely in union to Christ and mutual
+affection one to another; for in this respect all the saints are ONE,
+whether in heaven or in earth. And therefore they are one church in
+virtue of conjunct government under ONE PRESBYTERY. And in difficult
+cases, or where a single congregation is so divided into parties that it
+cannot act impartially; where the difference is between the pastor and
+the people, a superior court is necessary to obtain material justice.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for an ecclesiastical synod?
+
+_Ans_. In Acts xv. and xvi., where we have a cause referred; the proper
+members of a synod convened; the ordinary and equal power exercised by
+all those members; the ordinary method of procedure in such courts; and
+the judicial decrees given by the synod; together with the effect which
+their judgment, in this matter, had upon the churches.
+
+_Quest_. What was the cause referred to this synod?
+
+_Ans_. False doctrine propagated by some Judaizing teachers, who had
+gone down from Jerusalem to Antioch, and maintained that circumcision
+and the observance of other branches of the ceremonial law continued
+necessary for salvation, whereby they subverted some, and troubled other
+members of the churches there. After much unsuccessful disputing, Paul,
+Barnabas, and others were delegated to go up to Jerusalem to the
+apostles and elders about this matter.
+
+_Quest_. Who were the proper members of the synod convened here?
+
+_Ans_. The apostles and elders at Jerusalem; Paul, Barnabas, and others,
+from Antioch; and other commissioners from the troubled churches to whom
+the decrees were sent.
+
+_Quest_. Are not the brethren, the church, the whole church, mentioned
+here as well as the apostles and elders?
+
+_Ans_. But none of these expressions can mean, that all the members of
+the church of Jerusalem either were present or judged in that synod; for
+women, real members of the church, of the whole church, are expressly
+forbid to speak in the church, 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Church sometimes
+signifies only a small part of the church, either as delegates or
+commissioners, and in this sense it is used in verse 3, where the
+commissioners from Antioch are said to be brought on their way by the
+_church_; and in chap. xviii. 22, it is said that Paul saluted the
+_church_ at Jerusalem. Now, it is not credible that all the Christian
+professors at Antioch would attend their commissioners a part of the way
+to Jerusalem; or that Paul saluted the many ten thousand Christians at
+Jerusalem, Acts xxi. 20. And the _whole church_ does not necessarily
+mean the whole individual members of the church, more than the _whole
+world_ mentioned, 1 John ii. 2, means every individual in the world. If
+any, to support a favorite opinion, will still insist that the whole
+members of the church actually met and judged of this affair equally
+with the apostles and elders, they may inform us where they obtained a
+proper place for so many judges to reason and determine with
+distinctness or order. That the brethren who joined in judgment with the
+apostles and elders were not private persons, but rather delegates from
+the troubled churches around, appears from Judas and Silas, two of them
+being preachers, v. 22.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that the power of all the members was
+ordinary and equal?
+
+_Ans_. As every member, inspired or not, acted equally in the whole
+business laid before them. Paul and Barnabas were delegated by the
+church of Antioch: and the elders, who convened, had the same power as
+the apostles. To the elders, teaching or ruling, as well as to the
+apostles, was the matter referred: both met to consider of it: both were
+equally concerned in the decision, saying, _It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost and to us_. Elders, as well as apostles, imposed the necessary
+things upon the churches, and authoritatively determined the decrees. In
+the name of the elders, as well as of the apostles, the letters of the
+meeting, containing their decision, were written to the churches. And
+the only reason why the inspired members put themselves on an equality
+with others was to exhibit a pattern to after ages.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear, that this synod followed the ordinary
+method of procedure in such courts?
+
+_Ans_. As they examined the cause by much reasoning and dispute. In
+consequence of mature deliberation they determined the question, and
+sent letters, containing their decrees, by proper messengers, to the
+churches concerned. In their disputation they reasoned from the oracles
+of God: on these they founded their decision; and hence therein they
+say, _It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us_. And if this had not
+been to have given a pattern to succeeding ages, all this was
+unnecessary: how absurd for inspired men to reason and dispute on the
+subject, when the sentence of one inspired was sufficient for decision!
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that there were judicial decrees given by
+this synod?
+
+_Ans_. In opposition to the false doctrine taught, they, by a judicial
+decision, plainly declared, that obedience to the ceremonies of the law
+of Moses was no longer necessary: and by a decree for promoting decency
+and good order, they enacted, that to avoid offence, the believing
+Gentiles should abstain from fornication, from things strangled, and
+from blood, verse 24-29.
+
+_Quest_. What effect had the decision of this synod upon the churches?
+
+_Ans_. They cheerfully submitted to these _decrees_, and were by them
+conformed in the faith, comforted in heart, and increased in number
+daily, Acts xv. 31, and xvi. 4, 5.
+
+_Quest_. But might not this be a meeting merely for consultation, and
+their decision a mere advice?
+
+_Ans_. No: for every word here used imports authority. The word
+translated _lay upon_, commonly signifies an authoritative imposition,
+Matt. xxiii. 4. The decision is expressly called a _necessary burden_,
+and _decrees ordained_, which imply power and authority, Acts xv. 16,
+xvii. 7.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that inferior courts are subordinate to
+those that are superior; sessions to presbyteries, and presbyteries to
+synods?
+
+_Ans_. The true light of nature (which is proved, chap, iii., to be one
+of those ways, whereby a thing is of divine right) teacheth us, that, if
+we be injured by an inferior court, we may appeal to a higher court for
+redress, if there be one. As in the Jewish church there was evidently a
+subordination of judicatories, so that those injured in the synagogue
+might appeal to the Sanhedrin, Deut. xvii. 8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8, 11;
+Exod. xviii. 22, 26; Ps. cxxii. 5: therefore as our dangers,
+difficulties, and necessities are as great as theirs, by reason of false
+teachers and corrupt doctrines, which were foretold should appear in the
+last times, 1 Tim. iv. 1; 2 Pet. ii. 1; we cannot, without dishonor to
+Christ, suppose that he would deprive us of a proper remedy for
+redressing our grievances, which was afforded unto them:--the gradual
+advance in managing offences prescribed by Christ himself, Matt. xviii.
+19, as his care for the whole church cannot be less than for a single
+member. If then an inferior judicatory offend or injure us, we ought to
+carry the matter to another that has more influence and authority. If
+the offending judicatory neglect to hear this, we ought to tell the
+offence to the church in the highest sense, that redress may be
+obtained--the apostle Paul declaring, _that the spirits of the prophets
+are subject to the prophets_. But the right of reference or appeal from
+an inferior to a superior court is most clearly evinced from the case
+of the presbytery of Antioch, respecting circumcision, being referred
+for decision to the synod of Jerusalem, and their readily submitting to
+its determination, Acts xv.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that no power of authority is lodged in the
+body of the people, the private members of the church?
+
+_Ans_. Although every church member has a right to all the spiritual
+privileges purchased with the Saviour's blood, and given to the church,
+as need requires; although he has a right to try the spirits, and to
+prove all things by the word of God; a power to choose the church
+officers who are immediately to rule over him; yet the Holy Scriptures
+allow the exercise of no official power to the private members of the
+church. Not the Christian people, but their pastors have power to preach
+the gospel, Rom. x. 15; and to administer the sacraments, those
+mysteries of God, which are connected with preaching, 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+Matt. xxviii. 19. Not the people, but their rulers, are divinely
+warranted. Timothy was ordained, not by the people, but by the
+presbytery: elders, not by the people, but by Paul and Barnabas: and
+deacons, not by the people, but by the apostles, 1 Tim. iv. 14; Acts
+xiv. 23, and vi. 3, 6. Not the people, but their rulers are to censure
+the scandalous, and to absolve the penitent, Matt. xviii. 18; 1 Cor. v.
+The Scripture nowhere ascribes to the people any such characters as
+imply authority lodged in them; but the contrary. Instead of being
+styled pastors, they are called the _flock_, watched over and fed;
+instead of overseers, the family overseen; instead of _rulers, guides,
+governors_, they are called the _body_ governed, the persons subject in
+the Lord, and they are solemnly charged to know, honor, obey, and submit
+to those that are over them.
+
+_Quest_. What is the proper method of dealing with persons that fall
+into scandal?
+
+_Ans_. If the offence be known only to one or to a few, the offender is
+to be told his fault secretly, with Christian meekness, plainness, and
+love. If he profess his sorrow and resolution to amend, the whole matter
+ought to be carefully concealed; and those offended ought to be well
+pleased that their offending brother is gained. If, after one or more
+secret reproofs, he continue impenitent, defending his fault, one or two
+more Christian brethren, grave, judicious, and meek, are to be taken
+along, and the offender to be dealt with by them, and in their presence.
+If now he appear to repent, the several persons concerned in his reproof
+are, with care and in love, to conceal his offence, lest, by divulging
+it, they be reproached as wicked calumniators. If the offender contemn
+one or more such private admonitions or reproofs, or if his scandal be
+of such a nature that it will necessarily become public, the affair is
+to be told to the church court, to which he is most immediately subject.
+And, to bring him to a due sense of his fault, he is to be there dealt
+with in a prudent, affectionate, plain, and convincing manner. If this
+prove a means of bringing him to a sense of his offence, the censures of
+the church are to be executed upon him according to the laws of Christ's
+house, and the nature of his crime, and he is to be restored to the
+privileges of the church. But if, after due pains taken by the
+judicatories, he remain obstinate, he is then to be cast out of the
+church, and held as a heathen man and publican, Matt. xviii. 15 to 18.
+
+THE END.
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS.
+
+
+ PAGE.
+PREFACE 7
+
+PART I.
+
+CHAP. I.--That there is a Government in the Church of divine
+right now under the New Testament 19
+
+CHAP. II.--Of the nature of a divine right in general 22
+
+CHAP. III.--Of a divine right in particular, which is five ways;
+first, by the true light of Nature 24
+
+CHAP. IV.--Of a divine right, second, by obligatory Scripture 27
+examples
+
+CHAP. V.--Of a divine right, third, by God's approbation 37
+
+CHAP. VI.--Of a divine right, fourth, by divine acts 39
+
+CHAP. VII.--Of a divine right, fifth, by divine precepts 40
+
+
+PART II.
+
+CHAP. I.--A description of church government 45
+
+CHAP. II.--The subject described, and the terms church government
+briefly defined 46
+
+CHAP. III.--The general nature of church government, viz., power or
+authority 48
+
+CHAP. IV.--The special difference of church government from other
+governments, as to the special rule of it, viz., the Holy 53
+Scriptures
+
+CHAP. V.--The proper fountain from which church government is
+derived, so as to constitute it of divine authority, viz., Jesus
+Christ our Mediator 55
+
+CHAP. VI.--The peculiar nature of this power and authority 57
+
+CHAP. VII.--The several acts about which this power and authority
+is exercised, viz., doctrine and discipline 61
+
+CHAP. VIII.--The end and design of this government of the church 67
+
+CHAP. IX.--The peculiar subject intrusted by Christ with this
+power, and the execution thereof according to the Scriptures 70
+
+SECT. I.--The power granted to the civil magistrate about the 92
+Church
+
+SECT. II.--The power utterly refused him in church affairs 94
+
+CHAP. X.--That the community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, are not the immediate subject of the power of church 97
+government
+
+CHAP. XI.--That Christ's own officers are the immediate subject of
+it; pastors and ruling elders 111
+
+The divine right of the ruling elder at large 114
+
+The divine right of the deacon 149
+
+CHAP. XII.--The divine right of congregational elderships, or kirk
+sessions, for the government of the Church 172
+
+CHAP. XIII.--The divine right of presbyteries, consisting of rulers
+from different neighboring congregations 177
+
+CHAP. XIV.--The divine right of synods 197
+
+CHAP. XV.--The subordination of particular congregations to greater
+assemblies, for their judicial determination of ecclesiastical
+causes, proved to be of divine right 210
+
+
+APPENDIX.
+
+No. I.--Of the qualifications and duties of church members 219
+
+No. II.--Who have a right to preach the Gospel 237
+
+No. III.--On the same subject 240
+
+No. IV.--On the people's right to choose their own pastors 249
+
+No. V.--On the ordination and duty of ministers 256
+
+No. VI.--Of ruling elders, from Dr. Owen 258
+
+Conclusion 266
+
+
+
+
+FOOTNOTES:
+
+[Footnote 117: The substance of this Number is extracted from Ford's
+Gospel Church, printed 1675.]
+
+[Footnote 118: John xvi. 8, 9; 2 Cor. v. 5; Eph. ii. 1, 5.]
+
+[Footnote 119: Col. ii. 6; 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.]
+
+[Footnote 120: Col. i. 12.]
+
+[Footnote 121: 1 Pet. ii. 5.]
+
+[Footnote 122: From Brown's Letters.]
+
+[Footnote 123: Extracted from the Christian Magazine for Sept. 1797--a
+periodical publication well worth the perusal of the friends of
+evangelical doctrine.]
+
+[Footnote 124: From Brown's Letters.]
+
+[Footnote 125: This number is a summary of Dr. Owen's arguments in favor
+of the divine right of the ruling elder, with an abstract of the duties
+which he ought to perform. Although the Doctor was a professed
+Independent, yet he was entirely different, both in doctrine and church
+government, from any in Scotland that bear that name, as all who are
+acquainted with his works will easily observe. The writer of his life
+asserts that he heard him say, "He could readily join with presbytery as
+it was exercised in Scotland." And indeed it appears very probable that
+the difference between the consultative synod which he allows, and the
+authoritative synod contended for by true Presbyterians, is not so far
+different as many apprehend, because the decisions of either bind the
+conscience only as they are agreeable to the Holy Ghost speaking in the
+Scriptures.]
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Divine Right of Church Government
+by Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH ***
+
+***** This file should be named 13941-8.txt or 13941-8.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ https://www.gutenberg.org/1/3/9/4/13941/
+
+Produced by Jordan Dohms and the PG Online Distributed Proofreading Team.
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+https://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at https://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit https://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
+donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ https://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/13941-8.zip b/old/13941-8.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f7d1444
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/13941-8.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/13941-h.zip b/old/13941-h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c91bd71
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/13941-h.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/13941-h/13941-h.htm b/old/13941-h/13941-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0fdceb5
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/13941-h/13941-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,12941 @@
+<!DOCTYPE HTML PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01 Transitional//EN">
+<html lang="en">
+<head>
+<meta name="generator" content=
+"HTML Tidy for Windows (vers 1st March 2004), see www.w3.org">
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content=
+"text/html; charset=us-ascii">
+<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Divine Right of Church
+Goverment, by Sundry Ministers of London</title>
+
+<style type="text/css">
+ <!--
+ body { margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%; }
+ p { text-indent: 1em;
+ margin-top: .75em;
+ font-size: 100%;
+ text-align: justify;
+ margin-bottom: .75em; }
+ h1,h2,h3,h4,h5,h6 { text-align: center; }
+ hr { width: 50%; }
+ hr.full { width: 100%; }
+ .foot { margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; text-align: justify; text-indent: -3em; font-size: 85%; }
+ .poem { margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; margin-bottom: 1em; text-align: left; }
+ .poem .stanza { margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em; }
+ .poem p { margin: 0; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em; }
+ .poem p.i2 { margin-left: 1em; }
+ .poem p.i4 { margin-left: 2em; }
+ .poem p.i6 { margin-left: 3em; }
+ .poem p.i8 { margin-left: 4em; }
+ .poem p.i10 { margin-left: 5em; }
+ .toc { margin-left: 15%; font-size: 80%; margin-bottom: 0em;}
+ .toc2 { margin-left: 17%; font-size: 80%; margin-bottom: 0em;}
+ .toc3 { margin-left: 19%; font-size: 80%; margin-bottom: 0em;}
+ center { padding: 0.8em;}
+ td {border-top: 1px solid black}
+ table {border: 1px solid black}
+ // -->
+</style>
+</head>
+<body>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Divine Right of Church Government
+by Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Divine Right of Church Government
+
+Author: Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+Release Date: November 3, 2004 [EBook #13941]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Jordan Dohms and the PG Online Distributed Proofreading Team.
+
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<center>THE</center>
+<h1>DIVINE RIGHT</h1>
+<center>OF</center>
+<h1>CHURCH GOVERNMENT:</h1>
+<h5>WHEREIN IT IS PROVED</h5>
+<h5>THAT THE PRESBYTERIAN GOVERNMENT, BY PREACHING AND RULING<br>
+ELDERS, IN SESSIONAL, PRESBYTERIAL, AND SYNODICAL<br>
+ASSEMBLIES, MAY LAY THE ONLY LAWFUL CLAIM TO A<br>
+DIVINE RIGHT, ACCORDING TO THE HOLY SCRIPTURES.</h5>
+<center>A NEW EDITION, CORRECTED AND AMENDED.</center>
+<hr>
+<center><b>BY SUNDRY MINISTERS OF CHRIST WITHIN THE<br>
+CITY OF LONDON.</b></center>
+<hr>
+<h5>TO WHICH IS ADDED</h5>
+<h3>AN APPENDIX,</h3>
+<h5>CONTAINING</h5>
+<h5>EXTRACTS FROM SOME OF THE BEST AUTHORS WHO HAVE WRITTEN<br>
+ON CHURCH GOVERNMENT,</h5>
+<h6>CONCERNING THE SCRIPTURAL QUALIFICATIONS AND DUTIES OF CHURCH
+MEMBERS;<br>
+THE SOLE RIGHT OF GOSPEL MINISTERS TO PREACH THE GOSPEL; THE<br>
+PEOPLE'S DIVINE RIGHT TO CHOOSE THEIR OWN PASTORS;</h6>
+<h6>TOGETHER WITH</h6>
+<h5>AN ABSTRACT OF THE ARGUMENTS OF THE GREAT DR. OWEN<br>
+(THOUGH A PROFESSED INDEPENDENT)<br>
+IN FAVOUR OF THE DIVINE RIGHT OF THE OFFICE OF THE RULING
+ELDER.</h5>
+<hr>
+<h4>NEW YORK:<br>
+R. MARTIN &amp; CO., 26 JOHN-STREET.</h4>
+<hr>
+<center>M.DCCC.XLIV.<br>
+(1844)</center>
+<hr>
+<h2>CONTENTS.</h2>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_4_0001">THE EDITOR TO THE
+READER.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_PREF">PREFACE</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_4_0003">THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH
+GOVERNMENT.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#H_PART1">PART I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0001">CHAPTER I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0002">CHAPTER II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0003">CHAPTER III.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0004">CHAPTER IV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0005">CHAPTER V.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0006">CHAPTER VI.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0007">CHAPTER VII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#H_PART2">PART II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0008">CHAPTER I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0009">CHAPTER II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0010">CHAPTER III.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0011">CHAPTER IV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0012">CHAPTER V.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0013">CHAPTER VI.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0014">CHAPTER VII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0015">CHAPTER VIII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0016">CHAPTER IX.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTI-I">SECTION I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTI-II">SECTION II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0017">CHAPTER X.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTII-I">SECTION I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTII-II">SECTION II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0018">CHAPTER XI.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTIII-II">SECTION II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc3"><a href="#H_SECTIII-III">SECTION III.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0019">CHAPTER XII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0020">CHAPTER XIII.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0021">CHAPTER XIV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2HCH0022">CHAPTER XV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#H_FOOT1">FOOTNOTES</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_APPE">APPENDICES</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_APPE">NO. I.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0036">NO. II.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0037">NO. III.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0038">NO. IV.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0039">NO. V.</a></p>
+<p class="toc2"><a href="#2H_4_0040">NO. VI.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#2H_CONC">CONCLUSION.</a></p>
+<p class="toc"><a href="#H_FOOT2">FOOTNOTES</a></p>
+<a name="2H_4_0001"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>THE EDITOR TO THE READER.</h2>
+<hr>
+<p>After what the authors of the following Treatise have said in
+their preface, the Editor judges it unnecessary for him to detain
+the reader long with any observations of his upon the subject. He,
+however, could sincerely wish that the friends of Christ would pay
+that attention to the government and discipline of his Church which
+it justly deserves. Although this subject should not be placed
+among the things essential to the being of a Christian; yet if it
+be found among the things that Christ has commanded, it is at our
+peril if we continue wilfully ignorant of, or despise it. He has
+expressly declared, that he who breaks one of the <i>least</i> of
+his commandments, and teacheth men to do so, shall be called least
+in the kingdom of heaven. It is an opinion too common, that if we
+believe the <i>essentials</i> of religion, there is no occasion for
+so much preciseness about the forms of church government, which are
+only <i>circumstantials</i>, as there will be no inquiry made about
+these at the tribunal of Christ. But whatever relative importance
+the things of religion may have, when compared with one another, we
+ought to reckon nothing which God hath appointed, nothing which
+Jesus hath ratified with his blood, nothing which the Holy Spirit
+hath indited, so <i>circumstantial</i>, as to be unworthy of our
+serious regard. It is at least very rash, if not presumptuous, to
+say, that nothing about the circumstantials of religion will be
+inquired into at the tribunal of Christ. God has expressly said,
+that every work, good or evil, every idle word, and every deed done
+in the body, shall be brought into judgment; and false worshippers
+will, perhaps, find that their form of worship consisted in
+something worse than idle words, or sinful words either, even in
+sinful deeds, for which they will be accountable at the judgment.
+As Christ laid down his life for his people, has instructed them,
+and has set a hedge about all that they have, it would be most
+ungrateful to requite him with pouring the highest contempt on his
+kingly honor and authority; and when his worship is polluted, his
+truth perverted, and the walls of his New Testament Zion broken
+down, to care for none of those things. Government and discipline
+are the hedge of his garden, the Church; and how will what men call
+the essentials of religion remain in their glory, when this is
+broken down, the present state of affairs can sufficiently attest,
+when the most damnable errors are propagated with impunity.</p>
+<p>In our times the enemies of the scriptural order of the house of
+God are very numerous and very active, exerting all their power to
+break down the carved work of God's sanctuary. The present spirit
+for novelty and innovation, together with the rage for infidelity
+so prevalent, strongly favors the opposition made to every thing
+which has a tendency to bind men closely to God, to his truths, to
+the purity of his worship and ordinances, or to one another by a
+holy profession. The design, therefore, of republishing this
+Treatise is to assist Presbyterians of all denominations in the
+understanding of those passages of Scripture upon which their wall
+is built, that they be not led aside by the cunning speeches of
+false teachers, whereby they deceive and draw aside the hearts of
+the simple.</p>
+<p>This work was first published at London, at the time when the
+controversy between the Presbyterians and ancient Independents ran
+very high, and every intelligent and unprejudiced reader will see,
+that the Holy Scriptures have been carefully perused, accurately
+compared, wisely collected, and judiciously explained, in order to
+evince that the Presbyterian government has the only lawful claim
+to a divine right, and is the only form appointed by Christ in his
+Church. It is, therefore, to be wished, that all his people would
+endeavor, in the strength of Divine grace, to observe the laws of
+his house, and to walk in all his ordinances and commandments
+blameless.</p>
+<p>Considerable pains have been taken to make this edition more
+easily understood by common readers than the former, and yet
+several difficult and hard words have passed unnoticed. The Latin
+quotations from the Fathers have been omitted, because they contain
+nothing materially different from what is in the body of the work,
+and modern Independents pay little regard to any human authorities
+but their own. It was proposed to have added a few extracts from
+Messrs. Rutherford and Gillespie, but upon looking into their works
+nothing of consequence was observed, that tended to cast any new
+light upon the subject. It is hoped, however, that the Appendix is
+filled up with extracts from other authors upon subjects of
+considerable importance, and very necessary for these times,
+concerning the scriptural qualifications and duties of church
+members; the divine right of the gospel ministry; the people's
+divine right to choose their own pastors; with an abstract of Dr.
+Owen's arguments in favor of the divine right of the ruling elder:
+and as there are many serious Christians who have not a capacity to
+take up and retain a long chain of reasoning, a summary of the
+whole Treatise is given by way of question and answer as a
+conclusion.</p>
+<p>The Editor is not to be understood as approving of, or
+vindicating every single sentiment, or mode of expression, used in
+this Treatise: at the same time, next to the Holy Scriptures, he
+recommends it as one of the best defences of presbytery which he
+has seen.</p>
+<p>That it may be blessed of God for informing the ignorant,
+settling the wavering, and establishing the believers of <i>the
+present Truth</i>, is the earnest desire of,</p>
+
+<p>Christian reader,</p>
+<p>Your humble servant in the Gospel, </p>
+<p>T.H.</p>
+<p><i>Paisley, 28th February, 1799.</i></p>
+<a name="2H_PREF"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>PREFACE</h2>
+<h3>TO THE PIOUS AND JUDICIOUS READER.</h3>
+<p>CHRISTIAN READER:</p>
+<p>Thou hast in the ensuing treatise, 1st, a brief delineation of
+the nature of a divine right, wherein it consists, and how many
+ways a thing may be accounted of divine right, according to the
+Scriptures; as also, 2d, a plain and familiar description of that
+church government which seems to have the clearest divine right for
+it, and (of all other contended for) to be the most consonant and
+agreeable to the word of Christ; which description (comprehending
+in itself the whole frame and system of the government) is in the
+several branches thereof explained and confirmed by testimonies or
+arguments from Scripture; more briefly, in particulars which are
+easily granted; more largely, in particulars which are commonly
+controverted; yet as perspicuously and concisely in both as the
+nature of this unusual and comprehensive subject insisted upon
+would permit. Things are handled rather by way of positive
+assertion, than of polemical dissertation, (which too commonly
+degenerates into verbal strifes, 1 Tim. vi. 3, 4; 2 Tim. ii. 23;
+and vain-jangling, 1 Tim. i. 6,) and where any dissenting opinions
+or objections are refuted, we hope it is with that sobriety,
+meekness, and moderation of spirit, that any unprejudiced judgment
+may perceive, that we had rather gain than grieve those who dissent
+from us; that we endeavor rather to heal up than to tear open the
+rent; and that we contend more for truth than for victory.</p>
+<p>To the publication hereof we have been inclinable (after much
+importunity) principally upon deliberate and serious consideration
+of, 1st, the necessity of a treatise of this kind; 2d, the
+advantage likely to accrue thereupon; and, 3d, the seasonable
+opportunity of sending it abroad at such a time as this is.</p>
+<p>I. The necessity of a treatise of this nature, is evident and
+urgent. For,</p>
+<p>1. We hold ourselves obliged, not only by the common duty of our
+ministerial calling, but also by the special bond of our solemn
+covenant with God, especially in Art. 1, to bend all our best
+endeavors to help forward a reformation of religion according to
+the word of God, which can never be effected without a due
+establishment of the scripture-government and discipline in the
+Church of God. And to make known what this government is from the
+law and testimony, by preaching or writing, comes properly and
+peculiarly within the sphere of our place and vocation.</p>
+<p>2. A cloud of darkness and prejudice, in reference to this
+matter of church government, too generally rests upon the judgments
+and apprehensions of men (yea of God's own people) among us,
+either, 1st, through the difficulty or uncommonness of this matter
+of church government, (though ancient and familiar in other
+reformed churches, yet new and strange to us;) or, 2d, through the
+strange misrepresentations that are made hereof, by those that are
+small friends to the true presbyterial government, or that are
+enemies to all church government whatsoever; or, 3d, through the
+different opinions about church government, which are to be found
+among pious people and ministers: by all which the weak and
+unstable minds of many are cast into a maze of many confused
+thoughts and irresolutions.</p>
+<p>3. Though many learned treatises have been published, some
+whereof have positively asserted, others have polemically
+vindicated divers parts of church government, and the divine right
+thereof, yet hitherto no treatise of this nature is extant,
+positively laying open the nature of a divine right, what it is,
+and a system of that government, which is so, and proving both by
+the Scriptures; without which, how shall the judgments and
+consciences of men be satisfied, that this is that church
+government, according to the word of God, which they have
+covenanted to endeavor to promote, and whereto they are obliged to
+submit? And since it is our lot to travel in an unbeaten path, we,
+therefore, promise to ourselves, from all sober and judicious
+readers, the greater candor and ingenuity in their measuring of our
+steps and progress herein.</p>
+<p>II. The advantage which may probably accrue hereupon, we hope
+shall be manifold: For, 1. Who can tell but that some of them, that
+in some things are misled and contrary-minded, may be convinced and
+regained? and it will be no small reward of our labors if but one
+erring brother may be brought back. 2. Some satisfaction may
+redound to such as are of doubtful, unresolved minds, by removing
+of their doubts and scruples, and ripening of their resolutions, to
+settle more safely in point of church government. 3. Those that as
+yet are unseen in the matter of church government, or that want
+money to buy, or leisure to read many books upon this subject, may
+here have much in a little, and competently inform themselves of
+the whole body of the government. 4. Consequently upon the
+attaining of the former ends, the work of reformation will be much
+facilitated and smoothed, the hearts of the people being prepared
+for the Lord and his ordinances. 5. The present attempt (if it
+reach not to that completeness and satisfactoriness which is
+desired) may yet incite some of our brethren of more acute and
+polished judgments to embark themselves in some further discoveries
+for the public benefit of the Church. 6. But though it should fall
+out that in all the former we should be utterly disappointed, we
+shall have this peace and comfort upon our own spirits, that we
+have not hid our talent in the earth, nor neglected to bear witness
+to this part of Christ's truth, touching the government of his
+Church, by his kingly power, wherein Christ was opposed so much in
+all ages, Psalm ii. 1, 2, 3; Luke xix. 14, 27; Acts iv., and for
+which Christ did suffer so much in a special and immediate manner,
+as<a href="#note-1"><small>1</small></a> some have observed. For
+this end Christ came into the world, (and for this end we came into
+the ministerial calling,) to bear witness to the truth.</p>
+<p>III. Finally, the present opportunity of publishing a treatise
+on this subject doth much incite and encourage us therein. For at
+this time we are beginning, in this province of London, (and we
+hope the whole kingdom will, with all convenient speed, and due
+caution, second us,) to put that covenanted church government into
+actual execution, which we have a long time intended in our
+deliberate resolutions. So that generally we shall be engaged in
+the government one way or other, either as acting in it as the
+church officers, or as submitting to it as church members: now, how
+shall any truly conscientious person, either act in it, or conform
+and submit unto it with faith, judgment, and alacrity, till he be
+in some competent measure satisfied of the divine right
+thereof?</p>
+<p>Will mere prudence, without a divine right, be a sufficient
+basis to erect the whole frame of church government upon, as some
+conceive? Prudentials, according to general rules of Scripture, may
+be of use in circumstantials, but will bare prudentials in
+substantials also satisfy either our God, our covenant, our
+consciences, or our end in this great work of reformation? What
+conscientious person durst have a hand in acting as a ruling elder,
+did he not apprehend the word of God holds forth a divine right for
+the ruling elder? Who durst have a hand in the censures of
+admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the scandalous and
+obstinate, and of restoring the penitent, were there not a divine
+right hereof revealed in the Scripture, &amp;c. Now, therefore,
+that ruling elders, and the rest of the people, may begin this
+happy work conscientiously, judiciously, cheerfully, in some
+measure perceiving the divine right of the whole government,
+wherein they engage themselves, cleared by Scripture, we hope, by
+God's blessing, that this small tract will afford some seasonable
+assistance, which will be unto us a very acceptable recompense.</p>
+<p>Thus far of the nature of this treatise, and the grounds of our
+publishing thereof. In the next place, a few doubts or scruples
+touching church government here asserted, being succinctly
+resolved, we shall preface no further.</p>
+<p><i>Doubt</i> 1. Many scruple, and much question the divine right
+of the whole frame of church government; as, 1. Whether there be
+any particular church government of divine right? 2. What that
+government is? 3. What church officers or members of elderships are
+of divine right? 4. Whether parochial or congregational elderships
+be of divine right? 5. Whether classical presbyteries be of divine
+right? 6. Whether provincial, national, and ecumenical assemblies
+be of divine right? 7. Whether appeals from congregational to
+classical, provincial, national, and ecumenical assemblies, and
+their power to determine upon such appeals, be of divine right? 8.
+Whether the power of censures in the congregational eldership, or
+any other assembly, be of divine right? 9. Whether there be any
+particular rules in the Scripture directing persons or assemblies
+in the exercise of their power? 10. Whether the civil magistrates,
+or their committees' and commissioners' execution of church
+censures be contrary to that way of government which Christ hath
+appointed in his Church?</p>
+<p><i>Resol</i>. To all or most of these doubts some competent
+satisfaction may be had from this treatise ensuing, if seriously
+considered. For, 1. That there is a church government of divine
+right, now under the New Testament, declared in Scripture, is
+proved, Part I. 2. What that government is in particular, is
+evidenced both by the description of church government, and the
+confirmation of the parts thereof by Scripture, Part. II. chap. 1,
+and so to the end of the book: whereby it is cleared that the
+presbyterial government is that particular government which is of
+divine right, according to the word of God. 3. What ordinary church
+officers, (members of the several elderships,) are of divine right,
+is proved, Part II, chap. 11, sect. 1, viz. pastors and teachers,
+with ruling elders. 4. That parochial or congregational elderships,
+consisting of preaching and ruling elders, are of divine right, is
+manifested, Part II. chap. 12. 5. That classical presbyteries, or
+assemblies, and their power in church government, are of divine
+right, is demonstrated, Part II. chap. 13. 6. That synodical
+assemblies, or councils in general, (consequently provincial,
+national, or ecumenical councils in particular,) and their power in
+church government, are of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap.
+14. 7. That appeals from congregational elderships, to classical
+and synodical assemblies, from lesser to greater assemblies
+associated, and power in those assemblies to determine
+authoritatively in such, appeals, are of divine right, is proved,
+Part II. chap. 15. 8. That the power of church censures is in
+Christ's own church officers only as the first subject and proper
+receptacle there of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap. 11,
+sect. 2, which officers of Christ have and execute the said power
+respectively, in all the ruling assemblies, congregational,
+classical, or synodical. See section 3, and chap. 12, 13, 14, 15.
+9. That the Scriptures hold forth, touching church government, not
+only general, but also many particular rules, sufficiently
+directing both persons and assemblies how they should duly put in
+execution their power of church, government. This is made good,
+Part II. chap. 4; and those that desire to know which are these
+rules in particular, may consult those learned<a href=
+"#note-2"><small>2</small></a> centuriators of Magdeburg, who have
+collected and methodically digested, in the very words of the
+Scripture, a system of canons or rules, touching church government,
+as in the preface to those rules they do profess, saying, touching
+things pertaining to the government of the Church, the apostles
+delivered certain canons, which we will add in order, &amp;c., the
+very heads of which would be too prolix to recite. 10. Finally,
+that neither the supreme civil magistrate, as such, nor
+consequently any commissioner or committees whatsoever, devised and
+erected by his authority, are the proper subject of the formal
+power of church government, nor may lawfully, by any virtue of the
+magistratical office, dispense any ecclesiastical censures or
+ordinances: but that such undertakings are inconsistent with that
+way of government which Christ hath appointed in his Church, is
+evidenced, Part II. chap. 9, well compared with chap. 11.</p>
+<p><i>Doubt</i> 2. But this presbyterial government is likely to be
+an arbitrary and tyrannical government, forasmuch as the presbyters
+of the assembly of divines and others (who, Diotrephes-like,
+generally affect domineering) have desired an unlimited power,
+according to their own judgments and prudence, in excommunicating
+men from the ordinances in cases of scandal.</p>
+<p><i>Resol</i>. A heinous charge, could it be proved against the
+presbyterial government. Now for wiping off this black aspersion,
+consider two things, viz: I. The imputation itself, which is unjust
+and groundless; II. The pretended ground hereof, which is false or
+frivolous.</p>
+<p>I. The imputation itself is, that the presbyterial government is
+likely to be an arbitrary and tyrannical government. <i>Ans</i>.
+How unjust this aspersion! I. What likelihood of arbitrary conduct
+in this government, that is, that it should be managed and carried
+on according to men's mere will and pleasure? For, 1. The
+presbyterial government (truly so called) is not in the nature of
+it any invention of man, but an ordinance of Christ; nor in the
+execution of it to be stated by the will of man, but only by the
+sure word of prophecy, the sacred Scriptures. This government
+allows not of one church officer at all; nor of one ruling assembly
+made up of those officers; nor of one censure or act of power to be
+done by any officer or assembly; nor of one ordinance to be managed
+in the Church of God, but what are grounded upon, and warranted by
+the word of God. This government allows no execution of any part
+thereof, neither in substantials, nor circumstantials, but
+according to the particular, or at least, the general rules of
+Scripture respectively. And can that be arbitrary, which is not at
+all according to man's will, but only according to Christ's rule,
+limiting and ordering man's will? Or is not the Scripture a better
+and safer provision against all arbitrary government in the Church,
+than all the ordinances, decrees, statutes, or whatsoever municipal
+laws in the world of man's devising, can be against all arbitrary
+government in the commonwealth? Let not men put out their own eyes,
+though others would cast a mist before them. 2. Who can justly
+challenge the reformed presbyterial churches for arbitrary
+proceedings in matters of church government, practised in some of
+them for above these fourscore years? Or where are their accusers?
+3. Why should the presbyterial government, to be erected in
+England, be prejudged as arbitrary, before the government be put in
+execution? When arbitrary conduct appears, let the adversaries
+complain. 4. If any arbitrary conduct hath been discovered in any
+reformed church, or shall fall out in ours, it is or shall be more
+justly reputed the infirmity and fault of the governors, than of
+the government itself.</p>
+<p>II. What probability or possibility of tyranny in the
+presbyterial government? For, 1. Who should tyrannize, what
+persons, what ruling assemblies? Not the ministers; for, hitherto
+they have given no just cause of any suspicion, since this
+government was in hand: and they are counterpoised in all
+assemblies with a plurality of ruling elders, it being already
+studiously<a href="#note-3"><small>3</small></a> provided that
+there be always two ruling elders to one minister: if there be
+still two to one, how should they tyrannize if they would? Neither
+ministers nor ruling elders are likely to tyrannize, if due care be
+taken by them, whom it doth concern, to elect, place, and appoint,
+conscientious, prudent, and gracious ministers and ruling elders
+over all congregations. Nor yet the ruling assemblies, lesser or
+greater; for in the presbyterial government all lesser ruling
+assemblies (though now at first, perhaps, some of them consisting
+of more weak and less experienced members) are subordinate to the
+greater authoritatively; and persons aggrieved by any
+mal-administrations have liberty to appeal from inferior to
+superior: and the very national assembly itself, though not
+properly subordinate, yet is it to be responsible to the supreme
+political magistracy in all their proceedings so far as subjects
+and members of the commonwealth.</p>
+<p>III. How can they tyrannize over any? Or in what respects? Not
+over their estates: for they claim no secular power at all over
+men's estates, by fines, penalties, forfeitures, or confiscations.
+Not over their bodies, for they inflict no corporal punishment, by
+banishment, imprisonment, branding, slitting, cropping, striking,
+whipping, dismembering, or killing. Not over their souls; for, them
+they desire by this government to gain, Matth. xviii. 15; to edify,
+2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and to save, 1 Cor. v. 5. Only this
+government ought to be impartial and severe against sin, that the
+flesh may be destroyed, 1 Cor. v. 5. It is only destructive to
+corruption, which is deadly and destructive to the soul. Thus the
+imputation itself of arbitrary conduct and tyranny to the
+presbyterial government is unjust and groundless.</p>
+<p>II. The pretended ground of this aspersion is false and
+frivolous. The presbyters of the Assembly of Divines, and others
+(<i>Diotrephes</i>-like, affecting pre-eminence) have desired an
+unlimited power, according to their own prudence and judgment, in
+keeping men from the ordinances in cases of scandal not enumerated.
+<i>Ans</i>. 1. The presbyters of the Assembly and others, are so
+far from the domineering humor of Diotrephes, that they could
+gladly and heartily have quitted all intermeddling in church
+government, if Jesus Christ had not by office engaged them thereto;
+only to have dispensed the word and sacraments would have procured
+them less hatred, and more case. 2. They desired liberty to keep
+from the ordinances, not only persons guilty of the scandals
+enumerated, but of all such like scandals, (and to judge which are
+those scandals, not according to their minds unlimitedly, but
+according to the mind of Christ in his word, more sure than all
+ordinances or acts of Parliament in the world.) And was this so
+hideous a desire? This liberty was desired, not for themselves, but
+for well-constituted elderships. As great power was granted by the
+very service-book to every single curate; (see the Rubric before
+the communion.) A perfect enumeration and description of scandals
+can be made in no book but in the Scriptures; and when all is done,
+must we not refer thither? All scandals are punishable, as well as
+any, and to inflict penalties on some, and not on others as bad or
+worse, is inexcusable partiality. Why should not presbyteries duly
+constituted, especially the greater, be accounted, at least, as
+faithful, intelligent, prudent, and every way as competent judges
+of what is scandal, and what not, according to the Scriptures, and
+that without arbitrary conduct and tyranny, as any civil court,
+committees, or commissioners whatsoever? Ruling church assemblies
+are intrusted with the whole government in the church, consequently
+with this, and every part. The best reformed churches allow to
+their presbyteries power to keep from the ordinances scandalous
+persons, not only for scandals enumerated, but for scandals of like
+nature not enumerated, with some general clause or other, as may
+appear in eight several churches, according to the allegations here
+in the foot-note;<a href="#note-4"><small>4</small></a> and,
+therefore, no new thing is desired, but what is commonly practised
+in the reformed churches, whom we should imitate so far as they
+lead us on towards purity and perfection.</p>
+<p><i>Doubt</i> 3. But the independent government seems to be a far
+more excellent way, and it is embraced by many godly and precious
+people and ministers.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. What true excellency is there at all in the whole
+independent government, save only in those particulars wherein it
+agrees with the presbyterial government; and only so far as it is
+presbyterial? Therefore, the presbyterial government is equally,
+yea, primarily and principally excellent. Wherein is the excellency
+of the independent way of government? 1st. Have they only those
+officers which Christ himself hath appointed, pastors and teachers,
+ruling elders and deacons? So the Presbyterians. 2d. Have they
+those spiritual censures, of admonishing, excommunicating, and
+receiving again into communion, which Christ ordained in his
+Church, for guarding his ordinances, and well guiding of the flock?
+So the Presbyterians. 3d. Have they congregational presbyteries
+duly elected, and constituted for the exercise of all acts of
+government, proper and necessary for their respective
+congregations? So the Presbyterians. 4th. Have they liberty of
+electing their own<a href="#note-5"><small>5</small></a> officers,
+pastors, elders, and deacons? So the Presbyterians. 5th. Have they
+power to keep the whole lump of the Church from being leavened, and
+purely to preserve the ordinances of Christ, from pollution and
+profanation, &amp;c.? So the Presbyterians, &amp;c. So that
+whereinsoever the independent government is truly excellent, the
+presbyterial government stands in a full equipage and equality of
+excellence.</p>
+<p>II. What one true excellence is there in the whole independent
+government in any one point, wherein it really differs from the
+presbyterial government? Take for instance a few points of
+difference.</p>
+<table summary=
+"Differences between Independent and Presbyterial forms of government"
+cellspacing="0">
+<tr>
+<th><i>In the independent government.</i></th>
+<th><i>In the presbyterial government.</i></th>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>No other visible Church of Christ is acknowledged, but only a
+single congregational meeting in one place to partake of all
+ordinances.</td>
+<td>One general visible Church of Christ on earth is acknowledged,
+and all particular churches; and single congregations are but as
+similar parts of that whole.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>The matter of their visible Church must be to their utmost
+judgment of discerning such as have true grace, real saints.</td>
+<td>The matter of the Church invisible are only true believers, but
+of the Church visible persons professing true faith in Christ, and
+obedience to him according to the rules of the Gospel.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>Their churches are gathered out of other true visible churches
+of Christ, without any leave or consent of pastor or flock; yea,
+against their wills, receiving such as tender themselves, yea, too
+often by themselves or others, directly or indirectly seducing
+disciples after them.</td>
+<td>Parochial churches are received as true visible churches of
+Christ, and most convenient for mutual edification. Gathering
+churches out of churches, hath no footsteps in Scripture; is
+contrary to apostolical practice; is the scattering of churches,
+the daughter of schism, the mother of confusion, but the stepmother
+to edification.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>Preaching elders are only elected, not ordained.</td>
+<td>Preaching elders are both elected and ordained.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>Ruling elders also preach.</td>
+<td>Ruling elders only rule, preach not, 1 Tim. v. 17.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>The subject of church government is the community of the
+faithful.</td>
+<td>The subject of church government is only Christ's own church
+officers.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>The church officers act immediately as the servants of the
+church, and deputed thereby.</td>
+<td>The church governors act immediately as the servants of Christ,
+and as appointed by him.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>All censures and acts of government are dispensed in single
+congregations ultimately, independently, without all liberty of
+appeal from them to any superior church assembly; so the parties
+grieved are left without remedy.</td>
+<td>All censures and acts of government are dispensed in
+congregational presbyteries subordinately, dependently, with
+liberty of appeal in all cases to presbyterial or synodal
+assemblies; where parties grieved have sufficient remedy.</td>
+</tr>
+<tr>
+<td>There are acknowledged no authoritative classes or synods, in
+common, great, difficult cases, and in matters of appeals, but only
+suasive and consultative; and in case advice be not followed, they
+proceed only to a non-communion.</td>
+<td>There are acknowledged, and with happy success used, not only
+suasive and consultative; but also authoritative classes and
+synods, in cases of great importance, difficulty, common
+concernment, or appeals; which have power to dispense all church
+censures, as need shall require.</td>
+</tr>
+</table>
+<p>Let these and such like particulars in the independent way,
+differing from the presbyterial, be duly pondered, and then let the
+impartial and indifferent reader judge, whether they be not the
+deformities, at least the infirmities of that way.</p>
+<p>III. How many true excellences are there in the way of the
+presbyterial government, wherein it utterly surpasses the
+independent government! Read but the particulars of the former
+parallel in the presbyterial government, and then consider how far
+this transcends, yea, how the independent government is indeed no
+government at all, to the presbyterial government; wherein is to be
+found such ample provision, and that according to the word of God,
+for comely order against confusion; for peace and unity of the
+Church against schism and division; for truth of the faith against
+all error and heresy; for piety and unblamableness against all
+impiety and scandal of conversation; for equity and right against
+all mal-administrations, whether ignorant, arbitrary, or
+tyrannical; for the honor and purity of all Christ's ordinances
+against all contempt, pollution, and profanation; for comfort,
+quickening, and encouragement of the saints in all the ways of
+Christ; and consequently for the honor of God and our Lord Jesus
+Christ in all the mysterious services of his spiritual sanctuary:
+all which rich advantages, how impossible is it they should ever be
+found in the independent government so long as it continues
+independent? And what though some pious minister and people embrace
+the independent way! This dazzles not the eyes of the intelligent,
+but of the infirm; we are to be regulated by Scripture warrant, not
+by human examples. The best of saints have failed in the
+ecclesiastical affairs; what a sharp contention was there between
+Paul and Barnabas, Acts xv. 39, &amp;c.; what a dangerous
+dissimulation was there in Peter, the Jews, and Barnabas! Gal. ii.
+11, 12, 13, &amp;c.; and, therefore, it is not safe, prudent, or
+conscientious, to imitate all the examples of the best, and yet how
+few are those that have engaged themselves in the independent way,
+in comparison to the multitude of precious ministers and people,
+inferior to them neither in parts, learning, piety, nor any other
+spiritual gift, who are for the presbyterial way of church
+government! Notwithstanding, let all the true Israel of God
+constantly follow, not the doubtful practices of unglorified
+saints, but the written pleasure of the most glorious King of
+saints; and as many as walk according to this rule, peace shall be
+on them, and upon the Israel of God.</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0003"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH GOVERNMENT.</h2>
+<a name="H_PART1"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>PART I.</h2>
+<h3>OF THE NATURE OF A DIVINE RIGHT: AND HOW MANY WAYS A THING MAY
+BE OF DIVINE RIGHT.</h3>
+<a name="2HCH0001"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER I.</h2>
+<h3><i>That there is a Government in the Church of</i> DIVINE RIGHT
+<i>now under the New Testament.</i></h3>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath <i>the government</i> (both of
+the Church, and of all things for the Church) laid <i>upon his
+shoulder</i>, Isa. ix. 6, and to that end hath <i>all power in
+heaven and earth given to him</i>, Matth. xxviii. 18, John v. 22,
+Ephes. i. 22. But lapsed man (being full of pride, Psal. x. 2, 4,
+and enmity against the law of God, Rom. viii. 7) is most impatient
+of all government of God and of Christ, Ps. ii. 1, 2, 3, with Luke
+xix. 14, 27; whence it comes to pass, that the <i>governing</i> and
+<i>kingly power</i> of Christ hath been opposed in all ages, and
+especially in this of ours, by quarrelsome queries, wrangling
+disputes, plausible pretences, subtle policies, strong
+self-interests, and mere violent wilfulness of many in England,
+even after they are brought under the <i>oath of God to reform
+church government according to the word of God</i>. Yet it will be
+easily granted <i>that there should be a government in the Church
+of God</i>, otherwise the Church would become a mere <i>Babel</i>
+and <i>chaos</i> of confusion, and be in a far worse condition than
+all human societies in the whole world: and <i>that some one church
+government is much to be preferred before another, yea, before all
+other</i>; as being most desirable in itself, and most suitable to
+this state; otherwise, why is the <i>Prelatical</i> government
+rejected, that another and a better may be erected instead thereof?
+But the pinch lies in this, <i>Whether there be any government in
+the Church visible of divine right?</i> And, if so, <i>which of
+those church governments</i> (which lay claim to a divine right for
+their foundation) <i>may be most clearly evinced by the Scriptures
+to be of</i> divine right <i>indeed?</i> If the former be
+convincingly affirmed, the fancy of the <i>Erastians</i> and
+<i>semi-Erastians</i> of these things will vanish, that deny all
+government to the Church distinct from that of the civil
+magistrate. If the latter be solidly proved by Scripture, it will
+appear, whether the <i>monarchical government</i> of the pope and
+prelates; or the <i>mere democratical government</i> of all the
+people in an equal level of authority, as among the Brownists; or
+the <i>mixed democratical government</i> of both elders and people
+within their own single congregation only, without all
+subordination of Assemblies, and benefit of appeals, as among the
+Independents; or rather the <i>pure representative government</i>
+of the presbytery or church rulers only, chosen by the people, in
+subordination to superior synodical assemblies, and with appeals
+thereto, as it is among the Presbyterians, be that peculiar
+government which Jesus Christ hath left unto his church, by divine
+right, and in comparison of which all others are to be
+rejected.</p>
+<p>To draw things therefore to a clear and speedy issue about the
+divine right of church government, let this general proposition be
+laid down&mdash;</p>
+<p><i>The Scriptures declare, That there is a government of</i>
+DIVINE RIGHT <i>in the visible Church of Christ now under the New
+Testament.</i></p>
+<p>This is evident, 1 Cor. xii. 28, <i>God hath set some in the
+Church, first, Apostles, secondly, Prophets, thirdly,
+Teachers&mdash;Helps, Governments;</i> in which place these things
+are plain: 1. That here the Apostle speaks of the visible Church:
+for he had formerly spoken of visible gifts and <i>manifestations
+of the Spirit given to profit this</i> Church <i>withal</i>, ver. 7
+to 12. He also compares this Church of God to a visible organical
+body, consisting of many visible members, ver. 12, 13, &amp;c. And
+in this 28th verse he enumerates the visible officers of this
+Church. 2. That here the Apostle speaks of one general visible
+Church; for he saith not <i>churches</i>, but <i>church</i>, in the
+singular number, that is, of one; besides, he speaks here of the
+Church in such a latitude as to comprehend in itself all gifts of
+the Spirit, all members, and all officers, both extraordinary and
+ordinary, which cannot be meant of the church of Corinth, or any
+one particular church, but only of that one general Church on
+earth. 3. That this general visible Church here meant, is the
+Church of Christ now under the New Testament, and not under the Old
+Testament; for he mentions here the New Testament officers only,
+ver. 28. 4. That in the visible Church now under the New Testament,
+there is a government settled; for besides <i>Apostles,
+Prophets</i>, and <i>Teachers</i>, here is mention of another sort
+of officer distinct from them all, called, in the abstract,
+<i>Governments</i>, a metaphor from pilots, mariners, or
+shipmasters, who by their helm, card, or compass, cables, and other
+tacklings, guide, and order, turn and twine the ship as necessity
+shall require; so these officers called <i>Governments</i>, have a
+power of governing and steering the spiritual vessel of the Church;
+thus, Beza on this place, says he declares the order of Presbyters,
+<i>who are keepers of discipline and church polity</i>. For how
+improperly should these, or any officers be styled <i>Governments
+in the Church</i>, if they had not a power of government in the
+Church settled upon them? Nor can this be interpreted of the civil
+magistrate; for, when the Apostle wrote this, the Church had her
+government, when yet she had no civil magistrate to protect her;
+and when did God ever take this power from the Church and settle it
+upon the civil magistrate? Besides, all the other officers here
+enumerated are purely ecclesiastical officers; how groundless then
+and inconsistent is it under this name of <i>Governments</i> to
+introduce a foreign power, viz. the political magistrate, into the
+list and roll of mere church officers? Finally, the civil
+magistrate, as a magistrate, is not so much as a member of the
+visible Church, (for then all Pagan magistrates should be members
+of the Church,) much less a governor in the Church of Christ. 5.
+That this government settled in the Church is of divine right; for,
+of those <i>Governments</i>, as well as of <i>Apostles,
+Prophets</i>, and <i>Teachers</i>, it is said, <i>God hath set</i>
+them <i>in the Church. God hath set</i> them, <i>hath put,
+set</i>&mdash;Tremellius out of the Syriac. Hath <i>constituted,
+ordained</i>&mdash;Beza out of the Greek. Now, if they be set in
+the Church and God hath set them there, here is a plain divine
+right for government in the Church.</p>
+<p>Add hereto, 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority, which the Lord hath
+given to us for the edification, and not for the destruction of
+you." Here are mentioned&mdash;1. Church power or authority for
+government in the Church. 2. The end of this
+power&mdash;positively, for the edification; negatively, not for
+the destruction of the Church. 3. The Author or Fountain of this
+authority&mdash;the Lord Christ hath given it, dispensed it; there
+is the divine right. 4. The proper subjects intrusted with this
+authority, viz: the church guides, our authority, which he hath
+given to us. They are the receptacle of power for the Church, and
+the government thereof. Compare also 1 Thes. v. 12, Matth. xvi. 19,
+20, with xviii. 11, and John xx. 21, 22, 23. In which and divers
+like places the divine right of church government is apparently
+vouched by the Scripture, as will hereafter more fully appear; but
+this may suffice in general for the confirmation of this general
+proposition.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0002"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER II.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Nature of a</i> DIVINE RIGHT <i>in general.</i></h3>
+<p>Now touching this divine right of church government, two things
+are yet more particularly to be opened and proved, for the more
+satisfactory clearing thereof unto sober minds, to unprejudiced and
+unpre-engaged judgments, viz:&mdash;1. What the nature of a divine
+right is, and how many ways a thing may be said to be of divine
+right, and that by warrant of Scripture. 2. What the nature of the
+government of the Church under the New Testament is, which is
+vouched by the Scripture to be of divine right.</p>
+<p>For the first&mdash;viz. What the nature of a divine right
+is&mdash;consider both what a divine right is in general, and how
+many ways a thing may be said by Scripture warrant to be of divine
+right in particular.</p>
+<p><i>Right</i> is that which is most proper, just, or equal; or
+that which is prescribed or commanded by some statute law, and is
+just to be received in virtue of said law.</p>
+<p><i>Divine</i> sometimes points out a divine warrant or authority
+from God, engraven or enstamped upon any thing, whereby it is
+exalted above all human or created authority and power. And thus,
+all Scripture is styled divinely breathed or inspired of God. Hence
+is the divine authority of Scripture asserted, 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17;
+and in this sense divine right is here spoken of, in reference to
+church government, as it signifies a divine warrant and authority
+from God himself, engraven upon that church government and
+discipline, (hereafter to be handled,) and revealed to us in his
+holy Scriptures, the infallible and perfect oracles. So that divine
+right, according to this interpretation of the terms, is that which
+is either just, meet, and equal; or commanded and enjoined by any
+divine warrant or authority. And generally, a thing may be said to
+be of divine right, which is any way divinely just, equal, &amp;c.;
+or divinely commanded by any law of God, or by that which is
+equivalent to a divine law. And whatsoever matters in church
+government can be proved by Scripture to have this stamp of divine
+warrant and authority set upon them, they may properly be said to
+be of divine right, and that by the will and appointment of Jesus
+Christ, to whom God hath delegated all power and authority for the
+government of his Church, Matth. xxviii. 18, 19, 20, Isa. ix. 6,
+John v. 22, Eph. i. 22. In this sense, if church government, or any
+part of it, be found to be of divine right, then
+consequently&mdash;1. It is above all mere human power and created
+authority in the world whatsoever, and that supereminently.A divine
+right is the highest and best tenure whereby the Church can hold of
+Christ any doctrine, worship, or government; only God can stamp
+such a divine right upon any of these things, whereby conscience
+shall be obliged. All human inventions herein, whether devised of
+our own hearts, or derived as traditions from others, are
+incompatible and inconsistent herewith; vain in themselves, and to
+all that use them, and condemned of God. See 1 Kings xii. 32, 33,
+Isa. xxix. 4, Matth. xv. 6, 7, 8, 9. 2. It is beyond all just,
+human, or created power, to abolish or oppose the same, or the due
+execution thereof in the Church of Christ; for what is of divine
+right, is held of God, and not of man; and to oppose that, were to
+fight against God. The supreme magistrates in such cases should be
+nurse-fathers, Isa. xlix. 23, not step-fathers to the Church; their
+power being cumulative and perfective, not privative and
+destructive unto her; for she both had and exercised a power in
+church government, long before there was any Christian magistrate
+in the world; and it cannot be proved that ever Christ took away
+that power from his Church, or translated it to the political
+magistrate, when he became Christian. 3. It is so obligatory upon
+all churches in the whole Christian world, that they ought
+uniformly to submit themselves unto it; for a divine right is
+equally obligatory on one church as well as on another. And it is
+so obligatory on all persons, states, and degrees, that none ought
+to be exempted from that church government which is of divine
+right, nor to be <i>tolerated</i> in another church government,
+which is but of human invention; nor ought any Christian to seek
+after, or content himself with any such exemption or
+<i>toleration</i>; for in so doing, the inventions of men should be
+preferred before the ordinances of God; our own wisdom, will, and
+authority, before the wisdom, will, and authority of Christ: and we
+should in effect say, <i>We will not have this man to reign over
+us</i>, Luke xix. 27. <i>Let us break their bands asunder, and cast
+their cords away from us</i>, Psalm ii. 3.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0003"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER III.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Nature of a</i> DIVINE RIGHT <i>in particular. How
+many ways a thing may be of</i> DIVINE RIGHT. <i>And first, of
+a</i> DIVINE RIGHT <i>by the true light of nature.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus we see in general what a divine right is: now in particular
+let us come to consider how many ways a thing may be said to be of
+divine right by scripture-warrant, keeping still our eye upon this
+subject of church government, at which all particulars are to be
+levelled for the clearing of it.</p>
+<p>A thing may be said to be of divine right, or (which is the same
+for substance) of divine institution, divers ways. 1. <i>By the
+true light of nature.</i> 2. <i>By obligatory scripture
+examples.</i> 3. <i>By divine approbation.</i> 4. <i>By divine
+acts.</i> 5. <i>By divine precepts or mandates.</i> All may be
+reduced to these five heads, ascending by degrees from the lowest
+to the highest divine right.</p>
+<p>I. <i>By light of nature.</i> That which is evident by, and
+consonant to the true light of nature, or natural reason, is to be
+accounted of divine right in matters of religion. Hence two things
+are to be made out by Scripture. 1. What is meant by the true light
+of nature. 2. How it may be proved, that what things in religion
+are evident by, or consonant to this true light of nature, are of
+divine right.</p>
+<p>1. For the first, What is meant by the true light of nature, or
+natural reason? Thus conceive. The light of nature may be
+considered two ways. 1. As it was in man before the fall, and so it
+was that image and similitude of God, in which man was at first
+created, Gen. i. 26, 27, or at least part of that image; which
+image of God, and light of nature, was con-created with man, and
+was perfect: viz. so perfect as the sphere of humanity and state of
+innocency did require; there was no sinful darkness, crookedness,
+or imperfection in it; and whatsoever was evident by, or consonant
+to this pure and perfect light of nature, in respect either of
+theory or practice, was doubtless of divine right, because
+correspondent to that divine law of God's image naturally engraved
+in Adam's heart. But man being lapsed, this will not be now our
+question, as it is not our case. 2. As it is now in man after the
+fall. The light of nature and image of God in man is not totally
+abolished and utterly razed by the fall; there remain still some
+relics and fragments thereof, some glimmerings, dawnings, and
+common principles of light, both touching piety to God, equity to
+man, and sobriety to a man's self, &amp;c., as is evident by
+comparing these places, Psal. xix. 1, 2, &amp;c., Acts xiv. 17, and
+xvii. 27, 28; Rom. i. 18-21, and ii. 12, 14, 15; 2 Cor. v. 1: in
+which places it is plain, 1. That the book of the creature is able
+(without the scriptures, or divine revelations) to make known to
+man much of God, his invisible Godhead and attributes, Psalm xix.
+1, 2, &amp;c.; Acts xiv. 17, and xvii. 27, 28; yea, so far as to
+leave them without excuse, Rom. i. 18-21. 2. That there remained so
+much natural light in the minds even of the heathens, as to render
+them capable of instruction by the creature in the invisible things
+of God; yea, and that they actually in some measure did know God,
+and because they walked not up to this knowledge, were plagued,
+Rom. i. 18-21, 24, &amp;c. 3. That the work of the law (though not
+the right ground, manner, and end of that work, which is the
+blessing of the new covenant, Jer. xxxi. 33; Heb. viii. 10) was
+materially written in some measure in their hearts. Partly because
+they did by nature without the law the things contained in the law,
+so being a law to themselves, Rom. ii. 14, 15; partly, because they
+by nature forbore some of those sins which were forbidden in the
+law, and were practised by some that had the law, as 2 Cor. v. 1;
+and partly, because according to the good and bad they did,
+&amp;c., their conscience did accuse or excuse, Rom. ii. 15. Now
+conscience doth not accuse or excuse but according to some rule,
+principle, or law of God, (which is above the conscience,) or at
+least so supposed to be. And they had no law but the imperfect
+characters thereof in their own hearts, which were not quite
+obliterated by the fall. Now so far as this light of nature after
+the fall, is a true relic of the light of nature before the fall,
+that which is according to this light may be counted of divine
+right in matters of religion, which is the next thing to be
+proved.</p>
+<p>For the second, how it may be proved that what things in
+religion are evident by, or consonant to this true light of nature,
+are of divine right. Thus briefly,</p>
+<p>1. Because that knowledge which by the light of nature Gentiles
+have of the invisible things of God, is a beam of divine light, as
+the apostle, speaking of the Gentiles' light of nature, saith, That
+which may be known of God is manifest in them&mdash;for God hath
+showed it to them. For the invisible things, &amp;c., Rom. i. 19,
+20. God himself is the Fountain and Author of the true light of
+nature; hence some not unfitly call it the divine light of nature,
+not only because it hath God for its object, but also God for its
+principle; now that which is according to God's manifestation, must
+needs be of divine right.</p>
+<p>2. Because the Spirit of God and of Christ in the New Testament
+is pleased often to argue from the light of nature in condemning of
+sin, in commending and urging of duty, as in the case of the
+incestuous Corinthian; "It is reported commonly, that there is
+fornication among you, and such fornication as is not so much as
+named among the Gentiles," (who had only the light of nature to
+guide them,) 1 Cor. v. 1. In case of the habits of men and women in
+their public church assemblies, that women's heads should be
+covered, men's uncovered in praying or prophesying. "Judge in
+yourselves, is it comely that a woman pray unto God uncovered? Doth
+not even nature itself teach you, that if a man hath long hair, it
+is a shame to him? but if a woman have long hair it is a glory to
+her," &amp;c., 1 Cor. xi. 13-15. Here the apostle appeals plainly
+to the very light of nature for the regulating and directing of
+their habits in church assemblies; and thus, in case of praying or
+prophesying in the congregation in an unknown tongue, (unless some
+do interpret,) he strongly argues against it from the light of
+nature, 1 Cor. xiv. 7-11, and afterwards urges that women be silent
+in their churches, from the natural uncomeliness of their speaking
+there, for it is a shame for women to speak in the church, 1 Cor.
+xiv. 34, 35.</p>
+<p>Now, if the Spirit of God condemn things as vicious, and commend
+things as virtuous from the light of nature, is there not divine
+right in the light of nature? May we not say, that which is
+repugnant to the light of nature in matters of religion, is
+condemned by divine right; and what is correspondent to the light
+of nature, is prescribed by divine right? And if not, where is the
+strength or force of this kind of arguing from the light of
+nature?</p>
+<p>Consequently, in the present case of church government, that
+which is agreeable to the true light of nature, must needs be
+confessed to be of divine right. Though the light of nature be but
+dim, yet it will lend some help in this particular: e.g. the light
+of nature teaches, 1. That as every society in the world hath a
+distinct government of its own within itself, without which it
+could not subsist, so must the Church, which is a society, have its
+own distinct government within itself, without which it cannot
+subsist more than any other society. 2. That in all matters of
+difference the lesser number in every society should give way to,
+and the matters controverted be determined and concluded by the
+major part; else there would never be an end: and why not so in the
+Church? 3. That in every ill administration in inferior societies
+the parties aggrieved should have liberty to appeal from them to
+superior societies, that equity may take place; and why not from
+inferior to superior church assemblies?</p>
+<a name="2HCH0004"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER IV.</h2>
+<h3>II. <i>Of a Divine Right by obligatory Scripture
+Examples.</i></h3>
+<p>II. By obligatory scripture examples (which God's people are
+bound to follow and imitate) matters of religion become of divine
+right, and by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ, by whose
+Spirit those examples were recorded in Scripture, and propounded
+for imitation to the saints. The light of nature in this case helps
+something; but the light of obligatory scripture examples helps
+much more, as being more clear, distinct, and particular. We say
+scripture examples; for only these examples are held forth to us by
+an infallible, impartial, divine hand, and those scripture examples
+obligatory, or binding; for there are many sorts of scripture
+examples that oblige not us to imitation of them, being written for
+other uses and purposes.</p>
+<p>Great use is to be made of such examples in matters of religion,
+and particularly in matters of church government, for the clearing
+of the divine right thereof; and great opposition is made by some
+against the binding force of examples, especially by men of
+perverse spirits, (as too many of the Erastian party are;)
+therefore it will be of great consequence to unfold and clear this
+matter of scripture examples, and the obliging power thereof, that
+we may see how far examples are to be a law and rule for us by
+divine right. In general, this proposition seems to be
+unquestionable, that whatsoever matter or act of religion Jesus
+Christ makes known to his Church and people, by or under any
+binding scripture example, that matter or act of religion so made
+known, is of divine right, and by the will and appointment of Jesus
+Christ: But to evince this more satisfactorily, these several
+particulars are to be distinctly made good and manifested: 1. That
+some scripture examples are obligatory and binding on Christians in
+matters of religion. 2. Which are those obligatory scripture
+examples? These things being made out, we shall see with what
+strength scripture examples hold forth a divine right to us in the
+mysteries of religion, and particularly in church government.</p>
+<p>I. That some scripture examples in matters of religion are
+obligatory on Christians, as patterns and rules, which they are
+bound in conscience to follow and imitate, is evident,</p>
+<p>1. By the divine intention of the Spirit of God, in recording
+and propounding of examples in Scripture: for he records and
+propounds them for this very end, that they may be imitated. Thus
+Christ's humility, in washing the feet of his disciples, was
+intentionally propounded as an obligatory example, binding both the
+disciples, and us after them, to perform the meanest offices of
+love in humility to one another. "If I then, your Lord and Master,
+have washed your feet, ye ought also to wash one another's feet.
+For I have given you an example, that ye should do as I have done
+to you," John xiii. 4, &amp;c., 13-15. Thus Christ's suffering with
+innocence and unprovoked patience, not reviling again, &amp;c., is
+purposely propounded for all Christians to imitate, and they are
+bound in conscience as well as they can to follow it&mdash;"Christ
+suffered for us, leaving us an example, that ye should follow his
+steps," &amp;c., 1 Pet. ii. 21-23. Hence, the apostle so urges the
+example of Christ for the Corinthians to follow in their bounty to
+the poor saints, yea, though to their own impoverishing, "For you
+know the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, that though he was rich,
+yet for your sakes he became poor, that ye through his poverty
+might be rich," 2 Cor. viii. 9. Nor was the example of Christ only
+written for our imitation; but the examples of the apostles also in
+the primitive churches were intentionally left upon record for this
+end, that they might be binding patterns for us to follow in like
+cases in after ages. And in particular, this seems to be one
+singular ground, scope, and intention of Christ's Spirit in writing
+the history of the Acts of the Apostles, that the apostles' acts in
+the primitive churches might be our rules in successive churches.
+For, 1. Though this book contain in it many things dogmatical, that
+is, divers doctrines of the apostles, yet it is not styled the book
+of the doctrine, but of the Acts of the Apostles, that we may learn
+to act as they acted. This being one main difference between
+profane and sacred histories; those are for speculation, these also
+for admonition and imitation, 1 Cor. x. 11. The history, therefore,
+of the Acts propounds examples admonitory and obligatory upon us,
+that we should express like acts in like cases. 2. Luke (the penman
+of the Acts) makes such a transition from his history of Christ, to
+this history of Christ's apostles, as to unite and knit them into
+one volume, Acts i. 1; whence we are given to understand, that if
+the Church wanted this history of the apostles, she should want
+that perfect direction which the Spirit intended for her: as also
+that this book is useful and needful to her as well as the other.
+3. In the very front of the Acts it is said, that <i>Christ after
+his resurrection</i> (and before his ascension) <i>gave
+commandments to the apostles&mdash;and spake of the things
+pertaining to the kingdom of God</i>, Acts i. 2, 3; viz. of the
+polity of the Church, say some.<a href=
+"#note-6"><small>6</small></a>
+Of the kingdom of grace, say others.<a href=
+"#note-7"><small>7</small></a> Judicious Calvin<a href=
+"#note-8"><small>8</small></a> interprets it partly of church
+government, saying, Luke admonisheth us, that Christ did not so
+depart out of the world, as to cast off all care of us: for by this
+doctrine he shows that he hath constituted a perpetual government
+in his Church. Therefore Luke signifies, that Christ departed not,
+before he had provided for his Church's government. Now those
+expressions are set in the frontispiece, to stamp the greater
+authority and obligatory power upon the acts after recorded, being
+done according to Christ's commandments; Christ intending their
+acts in the first founding of his kingdom and polity ecclesiastic
+to be the rule for after churches. For what Christ spoke of his
+kingdom to the apostles is like that, "What I say to you, I say to
+all," Matt. xiii. 37, as what was said to the apostles touching
+preaching and baptizing, remitting and retaining of sins, was said
+to all the apostles' successors, "to the end of the world," John
+xx. 21, 23, with Matt, xxviii. 18-20.</p>
+<p>2. By God's approving and commending such as were followers not
+only of the doctrine, but also of the examples of the Lord, his
+apostles, and primitive churches; "And ye became followers" (or
+imitators) "of us and of the Lord," 1 Thess. i. 6, 7; and again,
+"Ye, brethren, became followers" (or imitators) "of the churches of
+God, which in Judea are in Christ Jesus: for ye also have suffered
+like things of your own countrymen, even as they have of the Jews,"
+1 Thess. ii. 14. In which places the Holy Ghost recites the
+Thessalonians imitating of the Lord, of the apostles, and of the
+churches, to the praise of the Thessalonians, by which they are
+given to understand that they did well, and discharged their duty
+in such imitations: for God's condemning or commending any thing,
+is virtually a prohibiting or prescribing thereof.</p>
+<p>3. By the Lord's commanding some examples to be imitated.
+Commands of this nature are frequent. In general, "Beloved, imitate
+not that which is evil, but that which is good," 3 John 11. In
+particular, 1. Imitating of God and Christ; "Be ye, therefore,
+followers of God as dear children: and walk in love, as Christ also
+hath loved us," Eph. v. 1, 2, with Eph. iv. 32. "He that saith he
+abideth in him, ought himself also to walk, even as he walked," 1
+John ii. 6. 2. Imitating the apostles and other saints of God. "I
+beseech you, be ye imitators of me: for this cause have I sent unto
+you Timothy&mdash;who shall bring you into remembrance of my ways
+which be in Christ," 1 Cor. iv. 16, 17. "Be ye imitators of me,
+even as I also am of Christ," 1 Cor. xi. 1.</p>
+<p>"Those things which you have both learned, and received, and
+heard, and seen in me, do: and the God of peace shall be with you,"
+Phil. iv. 9. "Be not slothful, but imitators of them who through
+faith and patience inherit the promises," Heb. vi. 12. "Whose faith
+imitate, considering the end of their conversation," Heb. xiii. 7.
+"Take, my brethren, the prophets, who have spoken in the name of
+the Lord, for an example" (or pattern) "of suffering affliction,
+and of patience," James v. 10. These and like divine commands
+infallibly evidence that many scripture examples are obligatory,
+and do bind our consciences to the imitation of them.</p>
+<p>4. By consent of orthodox and learned writers, both ancient and
+modern, acknowledging an obligatory force in some scripture
+examples, as being left upon record for our imitation. As among
+others Chrysostom,<a href="#note-9"><small>9</small></a> and Greg.
+Nyssen<a href="#note-10"><small>10</small></a> well observe.</p>
+<p>Among modern writers, Mr. Perkins excellently observes, This is
+a rule in divinity, that the ordinary examples of the godly
+approved in Scripture, being against no general precept, have the
+force of a general rule, and are to be followed. See also Pet.
+Martyr, Calvin, and others.<a href=
+"#note-11"><small>11</small></a></p>
+<p>II. Thus, it is clear that some scripture examples are
+obligatory. Now (to come closer to the matter) consider which
+scripture examples are obligatory. 1. How many sorts of binding
+examples are propounded to us in Scripture. 2. What rules we may
+walk by for finding out the obligatory force of such examples.</p>
+<p>How many sorts of binding examples are propounded unto us in
+Scripture, and which are those examples? Ans. There are principally
+three sorts, viz: Examples of God, of Christ, of Christians.</p>
+<p>I. Of God. The example of God is propounded in Scripture as
+obligatory on us in all moral excellencies and actions: e.g. Matt.
+v. 44, 45, 48; Eph. v. 1; 1 Pet. i. 14-16; 1 John iv. 10, 11.</p>
+<p>II. Of Christ. That the example of Christ is obligatory, and a
+binding rule to us for imitation, is evident by these and like
+testimonies of Scripture, Matt. xi. 29; 1 Cor. xi. 11; Eph. v. 2,
+3, 25, &amp;c.; 1 John ii. 6; 1 Pet. ii. 21-23. "If I then, your
+Lord and Master, have washed your feet, ye ought also to wash one
+another's feet. For I have given you an example, that ye should do
+as I have done to you," John xiii. 14, 15. In this place we must
+follow the reason of the example, rather than the individual act,
+viz: after Christ's example, we must be ready to perform the lowest
+and meanest offices of love and service to one another.</p>
+<p>But which of Christ's examples are obligatory on Christians,
+will better appear, by distinguishing the several sorts of Christ's
+actions. Christ's actions were of several kinds; and to imitate
+them all is neither needful, nor possible, nor warrantable.
+Orthodox writers thus rank Christ's actions:</p>
+<p>1. Some of Christ's actions were of divine power and virtue; as
+his miracles, turning water into wine, John ii. 7, &amp;c.; walking
+on the sea, Mark vi. 48, 49; dispossessing of devils by his word,
+Mark i. 27; Luke iv. 36; curing one born blind with clay and
+spittle, John ix.; healing the sick by his word or touch, John iv.
+50; Mark vi. 56; raising the dead to life again, as John xii. 1;
+Matt. xi. 5; Luke vii. 22.</p>
+<p>2. Some were acts of divine prerogative, as sending for the ass
+and colt, without first asking the owner's leave, Matt. xxi. 2,
+&amp;c.</p>
+<p>3. Some mediatory, done by him as Mediator, Prophet, Priest, and
+King of his Church: e.g. inditing the Scripture, called therefore
+the word of Christ, Col. iii. 16; laying down his life <i>for the
+sheep</i>, John x. 15, &amp;c.; giving of the Spirit, John xx. 22;
+Acts ii.; appointing of his own officers, and giving them
+commissions, Eph. iv. 7, 10, 11; Matt. x. and xxviii. 18-20;
+instituting of new, and thereby abrogating of old ordinances, Matt.
+xxviii. 18, 19; 1 Cor. xi. 23, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>4. Some accidental, occasional, incidental, or circumstantial,
+as in the case of his celebrating his supper, that it was at night,
+not in the morning; after supper, not before; with none but men,
+none but ministers; with unleavened, not with leavened bread,
+&amp;c.; these circumstantials were accidentally occasioned by the
+passover, nature of his family, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>5. Some acts of Christ were moral, as Matt. xi. 29; Eph. v. 2,
+3, 25, &amp;c.; or at least founded upon a moral reason and
+foundation, as John xiii. 14,15.</p>
+<p>To imitate Christ in his three first sort of acts, is utterly
+unlawful, and in part impossible. To imitate him in his
+circumstantial acts from necessity, were to make accidentals
+necessary, and happily to border upon superstition; for, to urge
+any thing above what is appointed, as absolutely necessary, is to
+urge superstition; and to yield to any thing above what is
+appointed, as simply necessary, were to yield to superstition. But
+to imitate Christ in his moral acts, or acts grounded upon a moral
+reason, is our duty: such acts of Christ ought to be the
+Christian's rules.</p>
+<p>III. Of prophets, apostles, saints, or primitive churches. That
+their examples are obligatory, is evident by these places, 1 Cor.
+xi. 1; Phil. iv. 8, 9; 1 Pet. iii. 4, 5, 6; 1 Thess. i. 6, and ii.
+14; Heb. xiii. 7; James v. 10, 11; 3 John 11.</p>
+<p>Which of their examples are obligatory, may be thus resolved, by
+distinguishing of their actions.</p>
+<p>1. Some were sinful; written for our caution and admonition, not
+for our imitation: as 1 Cor. x. 5, 6, 10, 12. That neither the just
+be lifted up into pride by security, nor the unjust be hardened
+against the medicine through despair. See the fourth rule
+following.</p>
+<p>2. Some were heroical; done by singular instinct and instigation
+of the Spirit of God; as divers acts may be presumed to be, (though
+we read not the instinct clearly recorded:) as, Elias's calling for
+fire from heaven, 2 Kings i. 10; which the very apostles might not
+imitate, not having his spirit, Luke ix. 54, 55; Phinehas's killing
+the adulterer and adulteress, Numb. xxv. 7, 8; Samson's avenging
+himself upon his enemies by his own death, Judges xvi. 30, of
+which, saith Bernard, if it be defended not to have been his sin,
+it is undoubtedly to be believed he had private counsel, viz. from
+God, for his fact; David's fighting with Goliath of Gath the giant,
+hand to hand, 1 Sam. xvii. 32, &amp;c., which is no warrant for
+private duels and quarrels. Such heroic acts are not imitable but
+by men furnished with like heroic spirit, and instinct divine.</p>
+<p>3. Some were by special calling, and singular extraordinary
+dispensation: as Abraham's call to leave his own country for
+pilgrimage in Canaan, Gen. xii. 1, 4, which is no warrant for
+popish pilgrimages to the holy land, &amp;c.; Abraham's attempts,
+upon God's special trying commands, to kill and sacrifice his son,
+Gen. xxii. 10, no warrant for parents to kill or sacrifice their
+children; the Israelites borrowing of, and robbing the Egyptians,
+Exod. xii. 35, no warrant for cozenage, stealing, or for borrowing
+with intent not to pay again: compare Rom. xiii. 8; 1 Thess. iv. 6;
+Psal. xxxvii. 21; the Israelites taking usury of the Canaanitish
+strangers, (who were destined to ruin both in their states and
+persons, Deut. xx. 15-17,) Deut. xxiii. 20, which justifies neither
+their nor our taking usury of our brethren, Lev. xxv. 36, 37; Deut.
+xxiii. 19, 20; Neh. v. 7, 10; Psal. xv. 5; Prov. xxviii. 8; Ezek.
+xviii. 8, 13, 17, and xxii. 12; John Baptist's living in the
+desert, Mat. iii., no protection for popish hermitage, or proof
+that it is a state of greater perfection, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>4. Some were only accidental or occasional, occasioned by
+special necessity of times and seasons, or some present appearance
+of scandal, or some such accidental emergency. Thus primitive
+Christians had all things common, Acts iv. 32, but that is no
+ground for anabaptistical community. Paul wrought at his trade of
+tent-making, made his hands <i>minister to his necessities</i>,
+Acts xx. 34; would not take wages for preaching to the church of
+Corinth, 2 Cor. xi. 7-9; but this lays no necessity on ministers to
+preach the gospel <i>gratis</i>, and maintain themselves by their
+own manual labors, except when cases and seasons are alike, Gal.
+vi. 6-8; 1 Cor. ix. 6-13; 1 Tim. v. 17, 18.</p>
+<p>5. Some were of a moral nature, and upon moral grounds, wherein
+they followed Christ, and we are to follow them, 1 Cor. xi. 1;
+Phil. iv. 8, 9, and other places forementioned; for, whatsoever
+actions were done then, upon such grounds as are of a moral,
+perpetual, and common concernment to one person as well as another,
+to one church as well as another, in one age as well as another,
+those actions are obligatory on all, and a rule to after
+generations. Thus the baptizing of women in the primitive churches,
+Acts viii. 12, and xvi. 15, though only the males were circumcised
+under the Old Testament, is a rule for our baptizing of women as
+well as men, they being <i>all one in Christ,</i> Gal. iii. 28. So
+the admitting of infants to the first initiating sacrament of the
+Old Testament, circumcision, because they with their parents' were
+accounted within the covenant of grace by God, Gen. xvii., is a
+rule for us now to admit infants to the first initiating sacrament
+of the New Testament, baptism, because infants are federally holy,
+and within the covenant with their believing parents now, as well
+as then, Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor. vii. 14; Col. ii. 11, 12. Thus the
+baptizing of divers persons formerly, though into no particular
+congregation, nor as members of any particular congregation, as the
+eunuch, Acts viii.; Lydia, Acts xvi.; the jailer, Acts xvi.;
+because it was sufficient they were baptized into that one general
+visible body of Christ, 1 Cor. xii. 12, 13, is a rule for us what
+to do in like cases upon the same common ground. Thus the Church's
+practice of preaching the word, and breaking bread on the first day
+of the week, Acts xx. 7, &amp;c., is our rule for sanctifying the
+Lord's day, by celebrating the word, sacraments, and other holy
+ordinances, at these times. And in like manner, the primitive
+practices of ordaining preaching presbyters, by laying on of hands,
+1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6; Acts xiii. 3; of governing all the
+congregations of a city by one common presbytery, in which respect
+they are all called by the name of one church, as the church of
+Jerusalem, Acts viii. 1, and xv. 4; the church of Antioch, Acts
+xiii. 1, and xi. 25, 26; the church of Corinth, 1 Cor. i. 2, 2 Cor.
+i. 1; which had churches in it, 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Of healing common
+scandals and errors, troubling divers presbyterial churches by the
+authoritative decrees of a synod, made up of members from divers
+presbyterial churches, as Acts xv., and such like, are our rules in
+like particulars, which the Lord hath left for our direction, the
+same grounds of such actions reaching us as well as them.</p>
+<p>Now this last kind of examples are those which we are, by divers
+divine commands, especially enjoined to follow; and therefore such
+examples amount to a divine right or institution; and what we ought
+to do by virtue of such binding examples is of divine right, and by
+the will and appointment of Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p>What discriminatory notes or rules may we walk by, for finding
+out the obligatory force of scripture examples; and what manner of
+examples those be? For discovery hereof, take these ensuing general
+rules:</p>
+<p>1. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ
+commands us to imitate, are undoubtedly obligatory. Such are the
+moral examples of God, Christ, apostles, prophets, saints, and
+churches, recorded in Scripture, with command to follow them, Eph.
+iv. 32, and v. 1, 2; 1 John ii. 6; 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil. iv. 6; Heb.
+vi. 12, and xiii. 7; James v. 10; 3 John 11.</p>
+<p>2. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ
+commends and praises, are obligatory; his commendings are virtual
+commandings; and we ought to follow whatsoever is praiseworthy,
+especially in God's account, Phil. iv. 8, 9; 2 Cor. x. 18. Now the
+Spirit of Christ commends many examples to us: as, <i>Enoch's
+walking with God</i>, Gen. v. 24; <i>Noah's uprightness,</i> Gen.
+vi.; <i>Abraham's faith</i>, Rom. iv., <i>and obedience</i>, Gen.
+xxii.; <i>Lot's zeal against Sodom's sins</i>, 2 Pet. ii. 9;
+<i>Job's patience</i>, James v. 10, 11. And in a word, all the
+examples of the saints, which the Lord approves and speaks well of;
+as Heb. xi.; 1 Pet. iii. 5, 6: together with all such examples,
+whose imitation by others is commended in Scripture; as, 1 Thess.
+i. 6, 7, and ii. 14.</p>
+<p>3. Those examples in Scripture are obligatory, whose ground,
+reason, scope, or end, are obligatory, and of a moral nature, and
+as much concern one Christian as another, one church as another,
+one time as another, &amp;c., whether they be the examples under
+the Old or New Testament. Thus the example of the church of
+Corinth, in excommunicating the incestuous person, because he was a
+wicked person&mdash;and lest he should <i>leaven the whole
+lump;</i> and that they might keep the evangelical passover
+sincerely, and for that they had power <i>to judge them within</i>;
+and that his "flesh might be destroyed, and his spirit saved in the
+day of the Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5-8, 11-13: which grounds and
+ends being moral, oblige us to use the like remedy against all
+wicked and scandalous persons.</p>
+<p>4. Those acts which are propounded in Scripture as patterns or
+examples, that we should act the like good, or avoid the like ill,
+are an obligatory law to us. There is an example of caution, and an
+example of imitation.</p>
+<p>Thus in reference to well-doing, or suffering for well-doing,
+the examples of Christ, his apostles, and other saints, are
+propounded as patterns to write after, as John xiii. 14, 15; Heb.
+xi. tot. with Heb. xii. 1, <i>with such a cloud of witnesses</i>.
+This verse is as the epilogue of the former chapter, (saith the
+learned Calvin,) showing to what end the catalogue of saints was
+reckoned up, who under the law excelled in faith, viz: that every
+one may fit himself to imitate them. Another adds,<a href=
+"#note-12"><small>12</small></a> He calls them a cloud, whereby we
+may be directed; in allusion to that cloud that went before Israel
+in the wilderness, to conduct them to the land of Canaan. See also 1
+Pet. ii. 21-23; James v. 10.</p>
+<p>Thus also, in reference to ill-doing, that it may be avoided by
+us, the bad examples of saints and others are laid before us as
+warnings and cautions to us, binding us to eschew like evils, 1
+Cor. x. 5, 6, 11. "Now these things were our examples, to the
+intent we should not lust after evil things, as they also lusted.
+Now all these things happened unto them for examples," &amp;c.,
+Jude 7.</p>
+<p>5. Those acts of saints or Christians, which were done by them
+as saints and Christians, are obligatory upon, and to be followed
+by all Christians; but those acts which are done by magistrates,
+prophets, apostles, ministers, &amp;c., only as such, are only
+obligatory on such as have like offices, not on all; according to
+the maxim, that which agrees to any thing as such, agrees to every
+thing that is such. Thus James urges the example of Elias in
+praying, James v. 17. Paul presses the example of Abraham in being
+justified by believing, Rom. iv. 23,24. Peter prescribes, as a
+pattern to wives, the example of Sarah, and other holy women of
+old, for "adorning themselves with a meek and quiet
+spirit,&mdash;being in subjection to their own husbands," 1 Pet.
+iii. 4-6.</p>
+<p>6. Those acts that were commonly and ordinarily done, are
+ordinarily to be imitated; as, baptizing <i>in water only</i>, and
+not in any other element, was the ordinary practice of the New
+Testament, Matt. iii. 11, 16; Mark i. 6, 10; Luke iii. 16; John i.
+26, 31, 33; Acts i. 5, and viii. 36, 38, and x. 47, and xi. 16; and
+by that practice we are obliged to baptize in water only. Joining
+of many Christians together in receiving the Lord's supper was an
+ordinary practice, Matt. xxvi. 20, 26, 27; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7,
+&amp;c.; 1 Cor. xi. 20, and by us ordinarily to be imitated; how
+else is it a communion? 1 Cor. x. 16, 17.</p>
+<p>But such acts as were done only upon special causes or singular
+reasons, are only to be imitated in like cases. Thus Christ argues
+from a like special cause, that he was not to do miracles at
+Nazareth without a call, as he did in other places where he had a
+call of God; from the particular example of Elijah and Elisha, who
+only went to them to whom God called them, Luke ix. 25-27; so he
+proves that in like case of necessity it was lawful for his
+disciples on the sabbath-day to rub ears of corn and eat them,
+&amp;c., from David's example of eating show-bread when he had
+need, Matt. xii. 1-5.</p>
+<p>7. Those acts that were done from extraordinary calling and
+gifts, are to be imitated (in regard of their special way of
+acting) only by those that have such extraordinary calling and
+gifts. Christ therefore blames his apostles for desiring to imitate
+Elijah's extraordinary act in calling for fire from heaven,
+&amp;c., when they had not his spirit, Luke ix. 54, 55. Papists are
+blameworthy for imitating the extraordinary forty days' and nights'
+fast of Moses, Elijah, and Christ, in their Lent fast. Prelates
+argue corruptly for bishops' prelacy over their brethren the
+ministers, from the superiority of the apostles over
+presbyters.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0005"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER V.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of a Divine Right by Divine Approbation.</i></h3>
+<p>III. By divine approbation of the Spirit of Jesus Christ in his
+word. Whatsoever in matters of religion hath the divine approbation
+of the Spirit of Christ in the Scriptures, that is of divine right,
+and by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ. God's approving or
+allowing of any thing, plainly implies that it is according to his
+will and pleasure, and so is equivalent to a divine institution or
+appointment; for what is a divine institution or law but the
+publishing of the divine will of the legislator, touching things to
+be acted or omitted? and God cannot approve any thing that is
+against his will. Contrariwise, God's disallowing of any thing,
+plainly implies that it is against his will, and so of divine right
+prohibited, and unlawful. God allows or disallows things not
+because they are good or evil; but things are, therefore, good or
+evil, because he approves or disallows them.</p>
+<p>Now God approves or disallows things divers ways:</p>
+<p>1. By commending or discommending. God commended king Josiah for
+his zeal and impartiality in completing of the reformation of
+religion, 1 Kings xiii. 25. This is a rule for all princes and
+magistrates how they should reform. The angel of the church of
+Ephesus is commended, for not bearing of those that were evil, for
+trying and detecting the false apostles, and for hating the works
+of the Nicolaitans, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6. The angel of the church of
+Pergamus is praised, for holding fast Christ's name, and not
+denying his faith in places of danger, and days of deepest
+persecution, Rev. ii. 13: a rule for all pastors and churches, how
+in all such cases they should carry themselves. God's commendings
+are divine commandings. On the contrary, God dispraises Ephesus,
+for falling from her first love, Rev. ii. 4. Pergamus, for holding
+the doctrine of Balaam, and the doctrine of the Nicolaitans, Rev.
+ii. 14, 15. Thyatira, for tolerating the false prophetess Jezebel,
+to teach and seduce his servants, &amp;c., Rev. ii. 20. Laodicea,
+because she was neither hot nor cold, but lukewarm, Rev. iii. 15.
+The church of Corinth, for coming together in public assemblies,
+not for better but for worse, by reason of schisms, scandals, and
+other disorders about the Lord's supper, 1 Cor. xi. 17, &amp;c. In
+these and all such divine discommendings of the churches for their
+corruptions, all succeeding churches are strongly forbidden the
+like corruptions: God's dispraises are divine prohibitions. Thus
+good church elders are commended in this notion, that they are
+<i>elders ruling well</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17; therefore, that elders in
+the church should rule, and rule well, is by this commendation of
+divine right.</p>
+<p>2. By promising and threatening. What promise did God ever make
+to any act or performance, which was not a duty? or what
+threatening against any act which was not a sin? He promises to
+them that forsake all for Christ, a "hundred-fold now in this time,
+and in the world to come eternal life," Mark x. 29, 30; therefore
+it is our duty to forsake all for Christ. He promised to ratify in
+heaven his disciples' sentences of <i>building or loosing on
+earth</i>; and to <i>be with them</i> whensoever <i>two or three of
+them were met together</i> for that end, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii.
+18-20, and John xx. 23. Therefore binding and loosing, remitting
+and retaining of sins, and meeting together for that end, belong to
+them by divine right. He promised to be with them that baptize,
+preach, remit, and retain sins in his name, &amp;c., <i>always, to
+the end of the world</i>, John xx. 23; with Matt, xxviii. 18-20,
+which promise shows, that these works and employments belong to all
+succeeding ministers to the world's end, as well as to the apostles
+by divine right. On the contrary, the Lord threatens Ephesus for
+decay of first love, Rev. ii. 4, 5; Pergamus, for holding false
+doctrine, Rev. ii. 14, 15; Thyatira, for tolerating of Jezebel and
+her false teaching, &amp;c., Rev. ii. 21, 21, 23; and Laodicea, for
+lukewarmness, Rev. iii. 15, 16. Therefore, all these were their
+sins, and we are bound, even by this divine threatening, to avoid
+the like by a divine warrant.</p>
+<p>3. By remunerating or rewarding; whether he reward with
+blessings or with judgments. With blessings God rewarded the Hebrew
+midwives, because they preserved the male children of Israel,
+contrary to Pharaoh's bloody command; <i>God made them houses</i>,
+Exod. i. 17, 20, 21. He will have the elders that rule well
+<i>counted worthy of double honor</i>, &amp;c.; i.e. rewarded with
+a bountiful, plentiful maintenance, 1 Tim. v. 17. Therefore, their
+ruling in the church is of divine right, for which God appoints
+such a good reward. Contrariwise, with judgments God rewarded king
+Saul, for offering a burnt-offering himself, 1 Sam. xiii. 12-14;
+Uzzah, for touching the ark, though it was ready to fall, 2 Sam.
+vi. 6, 7; and king Uzziah, for going into the temple to burn
+incense, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16. None of these being priests, yet
+presuming to meddle with the priest's office. A rule for all
+persons, being not church officers, yea, though they be princes or
+supreme magistrates, that they are hereby warned by the divine law,
+not to usurp church authority or offices to themselves. God
+rewarded the Corinthians with the judgments of weakness, sickness,
+and death, for unworthy receiving of the Lord's supper, 1 Cor. xi.
+30. So that this is a divine warning for all after churches against
+unworthy communicating.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0006"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VI.</h2>
+<h3>IV. <i>Of a Divine Right by Divine Acts.</i></h3>
+<p>IV. By divine acts. Whatsoever matters of religion were erected
+in, or conferred upon the Church of God, by God, or any person of
+the blessed Trinity, and are left recorded in the Scripture, they
+are of divine right, by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ.
+Shall divine approbation, yea, shall the saints' binding example
+hold forth to us a divine right, and shall not the divine actions
+of God, Christ, and the Spirit, do it much more? Take some
+instances: the Lord's-day sabbath, under the New Testament, was it
+not instituted (the seventh day being changed to the first day of
+the week) by the acts of Christ, having now perfected the spiritual
+creation of the new world? viz: by his resurrection and apparitions
+to his disciples on that day, and miraculous blessing and
+sanctifying of that day, by pouring forth the gifts of the Holy
+Ghost, Acts ii., all which were seconded with the apostolical
+practice in the primitive churches, Acts xx. 7, &amp;c.; 1 Cor.
+xvi. 1, 2. And do not the churches of Christ generally conclude
+upon these grounds, that the Lord's-day sabbath is of divine
+warrant? Thus circumcision is abrogated of divine right, by
+Christ's act, instituting baptism instead thereof, Col. ii. 11, 12.
+The passover is abolished of divine right, by Christ himself, our
+true passover, <i>being sacrificed for us</i>, 1 Cor. v. 7; and the
+Lord's supper being instituted a memorial of Christ's death instead
+of it, Matt, xxvi., Mark xiv., Luke xxii. And the whole ceremonial
+law is antiquated and made void by Christ's death, accomplishing
+all those dark types; therefore Christ, immediately before his
+yielding up the ghost, cried, <i>It is finished</i>, John xix. 30.
+See Col. ii. 14; Eph. ii. 14, 15; <i>abolishing the law of
+commandments in ordinances</i>, Heb. viii. 13, and x. 4, 5, &amp;c.
+Thus by Christ's act of giving the keys of the kingdom of heaven to
+Peter and the apostles, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, 19, the keys
+belong to the officers of the church by divine right. By God's act
+of <i>setting in the Church some, first apostles</i>, &amp;c., 1
+Cor. xii. 28, all those officers belong to the general visible
+Church by divine right. By Christ's act of bounty upon his
+triumphant ascension into heaven, <i>in giving gifts to men</i>,
+Eph. iv. 7, 11, 12; all those church officers being Christ's gifts,
+are of divine right. Finally, by the Holy Ghost's act, in setting
+elders, overseers over the flock, Acts xx. 28, elders are such
+overseers by divine right.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0007"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VII.</h2>
+<h3>V. <i>Of a Divine Right by Divine Precepts.</i></h3>
+<p>V. Finally, and primarily, by divine precepts, whatsoever in
+matters of religion is commanded or forbidden by God in his word,
+that is accordingly a duty or sin, by divine right: as, the duties
+of the whole moral law, the ten words, commanded of God, Exod. xx.;
+Deut. v. Believing in Christ, commanded of God, 1 John iii. 23. The
+plentiful and honorable maintenance of ministers, commanded of God,
+1 Tim. v. 17, 18; 1 Cor. ix. 9-11, 13, 14; Gal. vi. 6. The people's
+esteeming, loving, and obeying their pastors and teachers,
+commanded of God, 1 Thess. v. 12; Heb. xiii. 7, 17. Ministers'
+diligence and faithfulness, in feeding and watching over their
+flocks, commanded of God, Acts xx. 28; 2 Tim. iv. 1-3; 1 Pet. iv.
+1-3; with innumerable commands and precepts of all sorts: now all
+things so commanded are evidently of divine right, and without
+gainsaying, granted on all hands, even by Erastians themselves. But
+the question will be, how far we shall extend this head of
+<i>divine commands</i>. For clearness' sake, thus distinguish, thus
+resolve:</p>
+<p>God's commands are either immediate or mediate.</p>
+<p>1. Immediate divine commands: as those which God propounds and
+urges; as the ten commandments, Exod. xx., Deut. v., and all other
+injunctions of his in his word positively laid down. Of such
+commands, the apostle saith, "I command, yet not I, but the Lord,"
+1 Cor. vii. 10.</p>
+<p>Now these immediate commands of God, in regard of their manner
+of publishing and propounding, are either explicit or implicit.</p>
+<p>1. Explicit: which are expressly and in plain terms laid down,
+as the letter of the commandments of the decalogue, Exod. xx. The
+commands of Christ, "Feed my lambs, feed my sheep," John xxi.; "Go,
+disciple ye all nations," &amp;c., Matt, xxviii. 19; "Do this in
+remembrance of me," Matt, xxvi; 1 Cor. xi. 23, 24, &amp;c. Now
+whatsoever is expressly commanded of God in plain, evident terms,
+that is of divine right, without all color of controversy. Only
+take this caution, the divine right of things enjoined by God's
+express command, is to be interpreted according to the nature of
+the thing commanded, and the end or scope of the Lord in
+commanding: e.g. 1. Some things God commands morally, to be of
+perpetual use; as to honor father and mother, &amp;c.; these are of
+divine right forever. 2. Some things he commands but positively, to
+be of use for a certain season; as the ceremonial administrations
+till Christ should come, for the Jewish church, and the judicial
+observances for their Jewish polity; and all these positive laws
+were of divine right till Christ abrogated them. 3. Some things he
+commands only by way of trial, not with intention that the things
+commanded should be done, but that his people's fear, love, and
+obedience may be proved, tried, &amp;c. Thus God commanded Abraham
+to offer up his son Isaac for a burnt-offering, Gen. xxii.: such
+things are of divine right only in such cases of special infallible
+command. 4. Some things he commands extraordinarily in certain
+select and special cases: as, <i>Israel to borrow jewels of the
+Egyptians to rob them</i>, without intention ever to restore them,
+Exod. xi. 2, &amp;c. The disciples to <i>go preach</i>&mdash;yet to
+<i>provide neither gold nor silver</i>, &amp;c. Matt. x. 7-10. The
+elders of the church (while miracles were of use in the church)
+<i>to anoint the sick with oil in the name of the Lord</i>, for
+their recovery, James v. 14. These and like extraordinary commands
+were only of force by divine right, in these extraordinary select
+cases, when they were propounded.</p>
+<p>1. Implicit, or implied: which are either comprehensively
+contained in or under the express terms and letter of the command;
+or, consequentially, are deducible from the express command.</p>
+<p>Comprehensively, many things are contained in a command, that
+are not expressed in the very letter of the command. Thus sound
+interpreters of the decalogue generally confess, that all precepts
+thereof include the whole parts under the general term, and God
+wills many things by them more than the bare words signify: e.g. in
+negative commands, forbidding sin, we are to understand the
+positive precepts prescribing the contrary duties; and so, on the
+contrary, under affirmative commands, we are to understand the
+negative thereof: thus Christ expounds the sixth commandment, Matt.
+v. 21-27, and ver. 43, to the end of the chapter. So when any evil
+is forbidden, not only the outward gross acts, but all inward acts
+and degrees thereof, with all causes and occasions, all fruits and
+effects thereof, are forbidden likewise: as, under killing,
+provoking terms, rash anger, Matt. v. 21, 22; under adultery,
+wanton looks, lustful thoughts, &amp;c., Matt. v. 27-30. Now all
+things comprehended in a command (though not expressed) are of
+divine right.</p>
+<p>Consequentially, many things are clearly deducible from express
+commands in Scripture, by clear, unforced, infallible, and
+undeniable consequence. Now what things are commanded by necessary
+consequence, they are of divine right, as well as things in express
+terms prescribed: e.g. in the case of baptism, have the ordinary
+ministers of the New Testament any punctual express command to
+baptize? yet, by consequence, it is evident infallibly, the
+apostles are commanded to baptize, and the promise is made to them
+by Christ, that he <i>will be with them always to the end of the
+world</i>, Matt, xxviii. 18-20, which cannot be interpreted of the
+apostles' persons only; for they were not to live till the world's
+end, but are dead and gone long ago; but of the apostles and their
+successors, the ministers of the gospel to the world's end; now to
+whom the promise of Christ's presence is here to be applied, to
+them the precept of baptizing and teaching is intended by clear
+consequence and deduction. So, infants of Christian parents under
+the New Testament are commanded to be baptized by consequence; for
+that the infants of God's people under the Old Testament were
+commanded to be circumcised, Gen. xvii.; for, the privileges of
+believers under the New Testament are as large as the privileges of
+believers under the Old Testament: and the children of believers
+under the New Testament are federally holy, and within the covenant
+of God, as well as the children of believers under the Old
+Testament, Gen. xvii., compared with Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor. vii. 14:
+and what objections can be made from infants' incapacity now,
+against their baptism, might as well then have been made against
+their being circumcised: and why children should once be admitted
+to the initiating sacrament, and not still be admitted to the like
+initiating sacrament, (the Lord of the covenant and sacrament
+nowhere forbidding them,) there can be no just ground. And baptism
+succeeds in the room of circumcision, Col. ii. 11, 12. <i>Thus in
+case of the Lord's supper</i>, apostles were commanded to dispense
+it, and men commanded to receive it. "Do ye this in remembrance of
+me," Matt, xxvi., 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25; yet by consequence, the
+ministers of the gospel succeeding the apostles, being stewards of
+the mysteries of God, have the same charge laid upon them; and
+women as well as men are enjoined to keep that sacrament, whole
+families communicating in the passover, the forerunner of the
+Lord's supper, Exod. xiv., and male and female being <i>all one in
+Christ</i>, Gal. iii. 28. <i>Thus in case of the maintenance of
+ministers under the New Testament</i>: the apostle proves it by
+consequence to be commanded, God hath ordained, &amp;c., from God's
+command of not <i>muzzling the ox that treads out the corn</i>, and
+of maintaining the priests under the Old Testament, 1 Cor. ix. 14,
+&amp;c.; l Tim. v. 17, 18. And thus, in case of church polity, the
+Hebrews are commanded to obey and be subordinate to their rulers in
+the Lord, Heb. xiii. 17; consequently, other churches are commanded
+not only to have rulers, but to obey and submit to their rule and
+government. Timothy is commanded to lay hands <i>suddenly on
+none</i>, &amp;c., in ordaining of preaching elders, 1 Tim. v. 21,
+22; consequently, such as succeed Timothy in ordaining of preaching
+elders are enjoined therein to do nothing suddenly, hastily,
+&amp;c., but upon mature deliberation. The apostle commands, that
+men must <i>first be proved, and found blameless, before they
+execute the deacon's office</i>, 1 Tim. iii. 10; by consequence, it
+is much more necessarily commanded, that ruling elders should first
+be proved, and be found blameless, before they exercise rule; and
+that ministers be examined, and found blameless, before they be
+ordained to or execute the ministerial function, for these offices
+are of greater and higher concernment than the deacon's office.</p>
+<p>2. Mediate divine commands, which are mediately from God, but
+immediately from men; and these come under a double consideration,
+being either,</p>
+<p>1. Such commands whose general principles are immediately the
+Lord's, yet accommodations and determinations of particulars are
+from men, by apparent deductions from those grounds. Of such the
+apostle saith, "But to the rest speak I, not the Lord," 1 Cor. vii.
+12; not that Paul delivered any commands merely of his own head,
+(for he had "obtained mercy of the Lord to be faithful," ver. 25,
+and did <i>think that he had the Spirit of the Lord</i>, ver. 40,)
+but grounded his commands upon the word of God, whereof the apostle
+was the interpreter. The case is concerning divorce when it fell
+out that believer and unbeliever were married together: the Lord
+had given general rules about divorce, but no particular rule about
+this case, (it being not incident to the Jews;) the apostle,
+therefore, accommodates the general rule to the particular case;
+he, not the Lord, determined the particular. This sound
+interpreters conceive to be the apostle's meaning: Thus the
+apostle, treating of order in public assemblies, saith, "The
+prophet and the spiritual man must acknowledge the things which I
+write, to be the commandments of the Lord," 1 Cor. xiv. 37.
+Understand it mediately, as being agreeable to the Lord's
+principles revealed: for otherwise how should the prophet know what
+the Lord immediately revealed to the apostle? or why should we
+think it probable that what Paul here speaks of order and decency
+in church assemblies, was immediately and expressly delivered him
+by speech or revelation from the Lord, seeing these particulars
+have such easy and apparent deduction from general principles, and
+revelations are not unnecessarily multiplied? Yet these particular
+deductions and determinations are here styled the commandments of
+the Lord.</p>
+<p>2. Such commands, which are accidental and occasional, whose
+grounds and general principles are also the Lord's; yet
+determination or deduction of particulars can hardly be made, but
+in such emergent cases and occasions accidentally falling out, as
+necessitate thereunto. As in that case, Acts xv., when the synod
+commands abstinence <i>from blood, and things strangled</i>, and
+that necessarily, (though the Levitical law was now abrogated,)
+because the common use thereof by accident grew very scandalous:
+therefore, by the law of charity, the use of Christian liberty is
+to be suspended, when otherwise the scandal of my brother is
+endangered; yet from any ground of equity to have provided such a
+particular rule as this, without such a case occurring, would
+scarce have been possible. Now the synod saith of this
+determination, "It seemed good unto the Holy Ghost, and unto us,"
+Acts xv. And another synod, walking by the like light and rule of
+the Scripture as they did, may say of themselves as the apostles
+said.</p>
+<a name="H_PART2"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>PART II.</h2>
+<h3>OF THE NATURE OF THAT CHURCH GOVERNMENT WHICH IS OF DIVINE
+RIGHT, ACCORDING TO SCRIPTURE.</h3>
+<a name="2HCH0008"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER I.</h2>
+<h3><i>The Description of Church Government.</i></h3>
+<p>The nature of that church government which is of divine right
+according to Scripture, comes next to be considered; (having so
+fully seen what the nature of a divine right is, and how many
+several ways matters in religion may be said to be of divine
+right.) For the fuller and clearer unfolding whereof, let us first
+see how church government may be described; and then how that
+description may be explained and justified by the word of God, in
+the branches of it.</p>
+<p>Church government may be thus described:</p>
+<p>Church government is a power<a href=
+"#note-13"><small>13</small></a> or authority spiritual,<a href=
+"#note-14"><small>14</small></a> revealed in the holy
+Scriptures,<a href="#note-15"><small>15</small></a> derived from
+Jesus Christ<a href="#note-16"><small>16</small></a> our
+Mediator,<a href="#note-17"><small>17</small></a> only to his own
+officers, and by them exercised in dispensing of the word,<a href=
+"#note-18"><small>18</small></a> seals,<a href=
+"#note-19"><small>19</small></a> censures,<a href=
+"#note-20"><small>20</small></a> and all other ordinances of
+Christ,<a href="#note-21"><small>21</small></a> for the edifying of
+the Church of Christ.<a href="#note-22"><small>22</small></a></p>
+<p>This description of church government may be thus explained and
+proved. Three things are principally considerable herein, viz: 1.
+The thing defined, or described, viz. church government. 2. The
+general nature of this government which it hath in common with all
+other governments, viz. power or authority.</p>
+<p>3. The special difference whereby it is distinguished from all
+other governments whatsoever. Herein six things are observable. 1.
+The special rule, wherein it is revealed, and whereby it is to be
+measured, viz. the holy Scriptures. 2. The proper author, or
+fountain, whence this power is derived, viz. from Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, peculiarly. 3. The special kind of this power or
+authority, viz. it is a spiritual power, it is a derived power. 4.
+The several parts or acts wherein this power sets forth itself,
+viz. in dispensing the word, seals, censures, and all other
+ordinances of Christ. 5. The special end or scope of this power,
+viz. the edifying of the Church of Christ. 6. The proper and
+distinct subject or receptacle wherein Christ hath placed and
+intrusted all this power, viz. only his own officers. All these
+things are comprehended in this description, and unto these several
+heads the whole nature of church government may be reduced. So
+that, these being explained and confirmed by the Scriptures, it
+will easily and fully be discovered, what that church government is
+which is of divine right, and by the will and appointment of Jesus
+Christ, our Mediator.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0009"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER II.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Subject Described, viz. Church Government, the terms
+being briefly opened.</i></h3>
+<p>Touching the thing defined or described, it is church
+government. Here two terms are to be a little explained: 1. What is
+meant by church? 2. What is meant by government?</p>
+<p>1. Church is originally derived from a Greek word,<a href=
+"#note-23"><small>23</small></a> which signifies to call forth.
+Hence church properly signifies a company or multitude, called
+forth; and so in this notation of the word, three things are
+implied: 1. The term from which they are called. 2. The term to
+which they are called. 3. The medium or mean by which they are
+brought from one term to another, viz. by calling. And these things
+thus generally laid down, do agree to every company that may
+properly be called a church. Now, this word translated church,
+never signifies one particular person, but many congregated,
+gathered, or called together; and it hath several acceptations or
+uses in the New Testament: 1. It is used in a common and civil
+sense, for any civil meeting, or concourse of people together: thus
+that tumultuous and riotous assembly is called a church, Acts xix.
+32, 39, 40. 2. It is used in a special religious sense, for a
+sacred meeting or assembly of God's people together: and thus it
+signifies the Church of God, either, 1. Invisible, comprehending
+only the elect of God, as Heb. xii. 23, "and Church of the
+first-born," Eph. v. 23, &amp;c., "Even as Christ is the head of
+the Church." 2. Or, visible, comprehending the company of those
+that are called to the visible profession of the faith in Christ,
+and obedience unto Christ, according to the gospel, as Acts ii. 47,
+and v. 11, and viii. 3, and xii. 1, 5; 1 Cor. xii. 23, and often
+elsewhere. Now in this description, church is not understood of a
+civil assembly; for such assemblies are governed by civil power.
+Nor of the invisible Church of Christ; for, as the Church is
+invisible, (to speak properly,) it is invisibly governed by Christ
+and his Spirit, Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20. But of the visible
+Church of Christ, for which Christ hath provided a visible polity,
+a visible government, by visible officers and ordinances, for the
+good both of the visible and invisible members thereof, which is
+that church government here spoken of.</p>
+<p>2. Government is the translation of a Greek word, which properly
+signifies the government of a ship with chart, &amp;c., by the
+pilot or mariner, and thence metaphorically is used to signify any
+government, political or ecclesiastical. But the word is only once
+used in all the New Testament, viz. 1 Cor. xii. 28:
+<i>Governments</i>, h.e. ruling elders in the church; the abstract
+being put for the concrete, governments for governors. But whatever
+be the terms or names whereby government is expressed, government
+generally considered seems still to signify a superiority of
+office, power, and authority, which one hath and exerciseth over
+another. This is the notion of government in general. So that
+church government, in general, notes that pre-eminence or
+superiority of office, power, and authority, which some have and
+exercise over others in spiritual matters, in church affairs. And
+here we are further to consider, that church government is either,
+1. Magisterial, lordly, and supreme; and so it is primitively and
+absolutely in God, Matt. xxviii. 18. Dispensatorily and mediatorily
+in Jesus Christ our Mediator only, whom God hath made both Lord and
+Christ, Acts ii. 36; Matt, xxiii. 8, 10; 1 Cor. viii. 6, and to
+whom God alone hath dispensed all authority and power, Matt,
+xxviii. 18, 19; John v. 22. Now church government, as settled on
+Christ only, is monarchical. 2. Ministerial, stewardly, and
+subordinate; and this power Jesus Christ our Mediator hath
+committed to his church guides and officers in his Church, 2 Cor.
+x. 8, and xiii. 10; and church government, as intrusted in the
+hands of church guides, is representative. This ministerial church
+government, committed by Christ to his officers, may be considered
+either, 1. As it was dispensed under the Old Testament, in a
+Mosaical, Levitical polity; in which sense we here speak not of
+church government; (that polity being dissolved and antiquated.) 2.
+Or, as it is to be dispensed now under the New Testament, in an
+evangelical Christian polity, by Christ's New Testament officers;
+and this is that church government which is here described, viz.
+not the supreme magisterial government of Christ, but the
+subordinate ministerial government of Christ's officers; and this
+not as it was under the Old Testament, but as it ought to be now
+under the New Testament.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0010"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER III.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the general Nature of Church Government, viz. Power or
+Authority.</i></h3>
+<p>Touching the general nature of this government, which it
+participates in common with all other governments, it is power or
+authority. Here divers particulars are to be cleared and proved,
+viz:</p>
+<p>1. What is meant by power or authority? The word chiefly used in
+the New Testament for power or authority is used not only to denote
+Christ's supreme power, as Luke iv. 36; Mark i. 17, with Luke vi.
+19; but also his officers' derived power, as with 2 Cor. x. 8, and
+xiii. 10. It is used to signify divers things: as, 1. Dignity,
+privilege, prerogative. "To them he gave prerogative to be the sons
+of God," John i. 12. 2. Liberty, leave, license; as, 1 Cor. viii.
+9, "But so that your liberty become not an offence to the weak;"
+and 1 Cor. ix. 4, 5, "Have not we liberty to eat and drink? Have
+not we liberty to lead about a sister, a wife?" 3. But most usually
+right and authority; as, Matt. xxi. 23, 24, 27, and xxviii. 18; so
+2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: in this last sense especially it is here
+to be taken in this description of church government.</p>
+<p>Power or authority in general is by some<a href=
+"#note-24"><small>24</small></a> thus described: that whereby one
+may claim or challenge any thing to one's self, without the injury
+of any other. Power is exercised either about things, or actions,
+or persons. 1. About things, as when a man disposes of his own
+goods, which he may do without wrong to any. 2. About actions, as
+when a man acts that which offends no law. 3. About persons, as
+when a man commands his children or servants that are under his own
+power.&mdash;Proportionably, the power of the Church in government
+is exercised, 1. About things, as when it is to be determined by
+the word, what the Church may call her own of right; as, that all
+the officers are hers, Eph; iv. 7, 8, 10, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28: that
+all the promises are hers, 2 Pet. i. 4; 1 Tim. iv. 8: that Jesus
+Christ, and with Christ all things, are hers, 1 Cor. iii. 21, 22.
+The keys of the kingdom of heaven are hers, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18, &amp;c.; John xx. 21, 23, &amp;c.: these things the
+Church may challenge without wrong to any. 2. About actions. As
+when it is to be determined by the word, what the Church of divine
+right may do, or not do: as, the Church may not <i>bear with them
+that are evil</i>, Rev. ii. 2; <i>nor tolerate women to teach</i>,
+or false doctrine to be broached, Rev. ii. 20, &amp;c. The Church
+may <i>warn the unruly</i>, 1 Thess. v. 14: excommunicate the
+obstinate and incorrigible, Matt, xviii. 17, 18; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5,
+13: receive again penitent persons to the communion of the
+faithful, 2 Cor. ii. 7, 8: make binding decrees in synods, even to
+the restraining of the outward exercise of due Christian liberty
+for a time, for prevention of scandal, Acts xv. 3. About persons.
+The Church also hath a power to be exercised, for calling them to
+their duty, and keeping them in their duty according to the word of
+God: as, to <i>rebuke them before all</i>, that sin before all, 1
+Tim. v. 20: to prove deacons, Acts vi. 2, 3, &amp;c.; 1 Tim. iii.
+10: <i>to ordain elders</i>, Tit. i. 5; Acts xiv. 23: to use the
+<i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>, in the dispensing of all
+ordinances, Matt, xviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt,
+xxviii. 18-20: and, in a word, (as the cause shall require,) to
+judge of all them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.</p>
+<p>This is the power and authority wherein the nature of church
+government generally doth consist.</p>
+<p>2. That all governments in Scripture are styled by the common
+names of power or authority: e.g. the absolute government of God
+over all things, is power, Acts i. 7: the supreme government of
+Jesus Christ, is power, Matt, xxviii. 18; Rev. xii. 10: the
+political government of the magistrate in commonwealths, is power,
+as John xix. 10; Rom. xiii. 1-3; Luke xxiii. 7: the military
+government of soldiers under superior commanders, is power,
+&amp;c., Matt. viii. 9: the family government that the master of a
+family hath over his household, is power, 1 Tim. iii. 5, "If any
+man know not how to rule his own house." Yea, the very tyrannical
+rule that sin and Satan exercise over carnal men, is styled power,
+Acts xxvi. 18; Col. i. 13. Thus, generally, all sorts of government
+are commonly called power or authority.</p>
+<p>3. That thus the Scripture also styles church government, viz.
+power or authority, as 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority" (or power)
+"which the Lord hath given us for your edification." Paul speaks it
+of this power of church government. And again, speaking of the same
+subject, he saith, "Lest being present, I should use sharpness,
+according to the power which the Lord hath given me to edification,
+and not to destruction." 2 Cor. xiii. 10.</p>
+<p>For further clearing hereof, consider the several sorts or kinds
+of ecclesiastical power, according to this type or scheme of
+ecclesiastical power and authority here subjoined.</p>
+<p>Ecclesiastical power is either supreme and magisterial; or
+subordinate and ministerial.</p>
+<p>I. Supreme magisterial power, consisting in a lordly dominion
+and sovereignty over the Church; and may come under a double
+consideration, viz:</p>
+<p>1. As it is justly attributed to God alone. Thus the absolute
+sovereignty and supreme power (to speak properly) is only his over
+the Church, and all creatures in the whole universe: now this
+supreme divine power is either essential or mediatorial.</p>
+<p>1. Essential, viz. that power which belongs to the essence of
+God, and to every person of the Trinity in common, as God. "His
+kingdom ruleth over all," Psal. ciii. 19. "God ruleth in Jacob to
+the ends of the earth," Psal. lix. 13. "The kingdom is the Lord's,
+and he is the Governor among the nations," Psal. xxii. 28.</p>
+<p>2. Mediatorial, viz. that magisterial, lordly, and sovereign
+power or dominion, which God hath dispensed, delegated, or
+committed to Christ as Mediator, being both head of the Church, and
+over all things to the Church. This power is peculiar only to Jesus
+Christ our Mediator. "All power is given to me both in heaven and
+in earth," Matt. xxviii. 18. "The Father loveth the Son, and hath
+given all things into his hand," John iii. 35. "The Father judgeth
+no man, but hath committed all judgment to the Son," John v. 22.
+"One is your Master, even Christ," Matt. xxiii. 8, 10. "God hath
+put all things under his feet, and gave him to be head over all
+things to the Church," Eph. i. 20-23.&mdash;This power of Christ is
+the only proper fountain whence all ecclesiastical power flows to
+the Church.</p>
+<p>II. As it is unjustly arrogated and usurped by man; whether, 1.
+By the pope to himself; who arrogates to himself to be Christ's
+vicar, the supreme visible head on earth of the visible catholic
+Church of Christ; who exalts himself above all that is called God
+on earth, over magistrates, princes, kings, yea, over the souls and
+consciences of men, and the holy Scriptures of God themselves,
+&amp;c., 2 Thess. ii. 4; Rev. xviii. 10-13.</p>
+<p>2. By earthly princes to themselves: as, King Henry VIII., who,
+casting off the papal power and primacy, was vested with it himself
+within his own dominions, over the Church, accounting himself the
+fountain of all ecclesiastical power, (it being by statute law
+annexed to the crown,) and assuming to himself that papal title of
+supreme head of the Church, &amp;c., which is sharply taxed by
+orthodox divines of foreign churches. Thus, that most learned
+Rivet, taxing Bishop Gardiner for extolling the king's primacy,
+saith, "For, he that did as yet nourish the doctrine of the papacy,
+as after it appeared, did erect a new papacy in the person of the
+king."&mdash;Andrew Rivet, <i>Expli. Decalog. Edit.</i> ii. page
+203. Judicious Calvin saith thus: "And to this day how many are
+there in the papacy that heap upon kings whatsoever right and power
+they can possibly, so that there may not be any dispute of
+religion; but should this power be in one king, to decree according
+to his own pleasure whatsoever he pleaseth, and that should remain
+fixed without controversy? They that at first so much extolled
+Henry, king of England, (certainly they were inconsiderate men,)
+gave unto him supreme power of all things, and this grievously
+wounded me always; for they were blasphemers, when they called him
+the supreme head of the Church under Christ: certainly this was too
+much. But let this remain buried, because they sinned by an
+inconsiderate zeal. But when that impostor, (he means Bishop
+Gardiner, as Rivet notes,) which after was chancellor of this
+Proserpina, which there at this day overcometh all the devils, he
+when he was at Ratisbon did not contend with reasons, (I speak of
+this last chancellor, who was Bishop of Winchester,) but as I now
+began to say, he much regarded not scripture testimonies; but said,
+it was at the pleasure of the king to abrogate the statutes, and
+institute new rites. Touching fasting, there the king can enjoin
+and command the people, that this or that day the people may eat
+flesh: yea, that it is lawful for the king to forbid priests to
+marry; yea, that it is lawful for the king to forbid to the people
+the use of the cup in the Lord's supper; that it is lawful for the
+king to decree this or that in his kingdom. Why? Because the king
+hath the supreme power. It is certain, if kings do their duty, they
+are both patrons of religion, and nurse-fathers of the Church, as
+Isaiah calls them, Isa. xlix. 23. This, therefore, is principally
+required of kings, that they use the sword wherewith they are
+furnished, for the maintaining of God's worship. But in the mean
+time there are inconsiderate men, that make them too spiritual; and
+this fault reigns up and down Germany; yea, spreads too much in
+these countries. And now we perceive what fruits spring from this
+root, viz: that princes, and all that are in place of government,
+think themselves to be so spiritual, that there is no other
+ecclesiastical government. And this sacrilege creeps among us,
+because they cannot measure their office with certain and lawful
+bounds, but are of opinion they cannot reign, unless they abolish
+all the authority of the Church, and become the chief judges both
+in doctrine, and in the whole spiritual government. At the
+beginning they pretend some zeal; but mere ambition drives them,
+that so solicitously they snatch all things to themselves.
+Therefore there ought to be a temper kept; for this disease hath
+always reigned in princes, to desire to bend religion according to
+their own pleasure and lust, and for their own profits in the mean
+time. For they have respect to their profit, because for the most
+part they are not acted by the Spirit of God, but their ambition
+carries them." Thus Calvin in Amos vii. 13. Oh what exclamations
+would this holy man have poured out, had he lived to see the
+passages of our days! <i>Quis talia fando temperet a
+lachrymis!</i><a href="#note-25"><small>25</small></a></p>
+<p>II. Subordinate ministerial power, which is either,</p>
+<p>1. Indirectly, improperly, and only objectively ecclesiastical
+or spiritual, (so called, because it is exercised about spiritual
+or ecclesiastical objects, though formally in its own nature it be
+properly a mere civil or political power.) This is that power which
+is allowed to the civil magistrate about religion; he is <i>an
+overseer of things without the Church</i>, having an external care
+of religion as a <i>nurse-father</i>, Isa. xlix. 23; as had
+Hezekiah, Josiah, Asa, Jehoshaphat, &amp;c.; so as, by the law, to
+restore religion decayed, reform the Church corrupted, protect the
+Church reformed, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>2. Directly, properly, and formally ecclesiastical or spiritual,
+having respect properly to matters within the Church. This power
+only belongs to church officers, who are overseers of things
+within, 1 Cor. iv. 20, 21; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and this is
+either, 1. More special and peculiar to the office of some church
+governors only, as the power of preaching the gospel, dispensing
+the sacraments, &amp;c., which is only committed to the ministers
+of the gospel, and which they, as ministers, may execute, in virtue
+of their office. This is called by some the key of doctrine, or key
+of knowledge; by others, the power of order, or of special office.
+See Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Rom. x. 15; 1 Tim. v. 17. 2. More general
+and common to the office of all church governors, as the power of
+censures, &amp;c., wherein ruling elders act with ministers,
+admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the incorrigible, remitting
+and receiving again of the penitent into church communion. Compare
+Matt, xviii. 17, 18; 1 Cor. v. 2, 4, 5, 7, 11-13; 2 Cor. ii. 6-12,
+with Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and 1 Tim. v. 17. This is called
+the key of discipline, or power of jurisdiction.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0011"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER IV.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the special difference of Church Government from other
+Governments. And first of the Special Rule of Church Government,
+viz. the Holy Scriptures.</i></h3>
+<p>Touching the special difference, whereby church government is in
+this description distinguished from all other governments
+whatsoever, it consists of many branches, which will require more
+large explication and confirmation; and shall be handled, not
+according to that order, as they are first named in the
+description, but according to the order of nature, as they most
+conduce to the clearing of one another, every branch being
+distinctly laid down, as followeth:</p>
+<p>The rule or standard of church government is only the holy
+Scriptures. Thus in the description, church government is styled a
+power or authority revealed in the holy Scriptures. For clearing
+hereof, take this proposition, viz:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a perfect
+and sufficient rule for the government of his visible Church under
+the New Testament, which all the members of his Church ought to
+observe and submit unto until the end of the world. For clearing
+this, weigh these considerations:</p>
+<p>1. The government of the visible Church under the New Testament
+is as needful as ever it was under the Old Testament. What
+necessity of government could be pleaded then, which may not as
+strongly be pleaded now? Is not the visible Church of Christ a
+mixed body of sound and unsound members, of fruitful and barren
+branches, of tares and wheat, of good and bad, of sincere believers
+and hypocrites, of sheep and goats, &amp;c., now as well as it was
+then? Is there not as great cause to separate and distinguish by
+church power, between the precious and the vile, the clean and the
+unclean, (who are apt to defile, infect, and leaven one another,)
+now as well as then? Ought there not to be as great care over the
+holy ordinances of God, to preserve and guard them from contempt
+and pollution, by a hedge and fence of government, now as well as
+then? Is it not as necessary that by government sin be suppressed,
+piety promoted, and the Church edified, now as well as then? But
+under the Old Testament the Church visible had a perfect rule of
+church government, (as is granted on all sides:) and hath Jesus
+Christ left his Church now under the New Testament in a worse
+condition?</p>
+<p>2. The Lord Jesus Christ (upon whose shoulder God hath laid the
+government, Isa. ix. 6, and unto whom <i>all power both in heaven
+and in earth is given</i> by the Father to that end, Matt. xxviii.
+18) <i>is most faithful in all his house</i>, the Church, fully to
+discharge all the trust committed to him, and completely to supply
+his Church with all necessaries both to her being, and well-being
+ecclesiastical. Moses was faithful in the Old Testament; for, as
+God gave him a pattern of church government in the ceremonial law,
+so he did all things according to the pattern; and shall the Lord
+Jesus be less faithful as <i>a son over his own house,</i> than was
+Moses as a servant over another's house? "Consider the Apostle and
+High Priest of our profession, Christ Jesus, who was faithful to
+him that appointed him, as also Moses was faithful in all his
+house&mdash;and Moses verily was faithful in all his house as a
+servant&mdash;but Christ as a son over his own house, whose house
+are we," Heb. iii. 1, 2, 5, 6. Yea, "Jesus Christ, the same
+yesterday, and to-day, and forever," Heb. xiii. 8, giving a pattern
+of church government to Moses, and the church officers of the Old
+Testament, (the Church being then as a child in nonage and
+minority, Gal, iv. 1, &amp;c.,) can we imagine he hath not as
+carefully left a pattern of church government to his apostles, and
+the church officers of the New Testament, the Church being now as a
+man come to full age and maturity?</p>
+<p>3. The holy Scriptures are now completely and unalterably
+perfect, containing such exact rules for the churches of God in all
+states and ages, both under the Old and New Testament, that not
+only the people of God, of all sorts and degrees, but also the men
+of God, and officers of the Church, of all sorts and ages, may
+thereby be made perfect, thoroughly furnished unto all good works.
+"The law of the Lord is perfect," Psal. xix. 7. "All Scripture is
+given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for
+reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteousness, that the
+man of God may be perfect, thoroughly furnished to every good
+work," 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17. And in his first epistle to Timothy,
+(which is the Church's directory for divine worship, discipline,
+and government,) he saith, "These things write I unto
+thee&mdash;that thou mightest know how thou oughtest to behave
+thyself in the house of God, which is the Church of the living
+God," (this is spoken in reference to matters of church government
+peculiarly,) 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15. And the apostle, having respect to
+the former matters in his epistle, saith to Timothy, and to all
+Timothies after him, "I give thee charge in the sight of
+God&mdash;that thou keep this commandment without spot,
+unrebukable, until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ,"
+(therefore, this charge is intended for all ministers after Timothy
+to the world's end,) 1 Tim. vi. 13, 14, compared with 1 Tim. v. 21,
+observe <i>these things</i>. And the perfection of the whole
+scripture canon is sealed up with that testimony in the close of
+the last book, "If any man shall add unto these things, God shall
+add unto him the plagues that are written in this book: and if any
+man shall take away from the words of the book of this prophecy,
+God shall take away his part out of the book of life, and out of
+the holy city, and from the things which are written in this book,"
+Rev. xxii. 18, 19. Now, if the Scriptures be thus accurately
+perfect and complete, they must needs contain a sufficient pattern,
+and rules of church government now under the New Testament; which
+rules are scattered here and there in several books of the word,
+(as flowers grow scattered in the field, as silver is mingled in
+the mine, or as gold is mixed with the sand,) that so God may
+exercise his Church, in sifting and searching them out.</p>
+<p>4. All the substantials of church government under the New
+Testament are laid down in the word in particular rules, whether
+they be touching officers, ordinances, censures, assemblies, and
+the compass of their power, as after will appear; and all the
+circumstantials are laid down in the word, under general rules of
+order, decency, and edification, 1 Cor, xiv. 40, and ver. 5,12,
+26.</p>
+<p>Consequently, there is a perfect and sufficient rule for church
+government laid down in the Scriptures, which is obligatory upon
+all.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0012"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER V.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Proper Author or Fountain, whence Church Government
+and the authority thereof is derived by Divine Right, viz. Jesus
+Christ our Mediator.</i></h3>
+<p>As the Scripture is the rule of church government, so Christ is
+the sole root and fountain whence it originally flows; therefore,
+it is said in the description, church government is a power or
+authority, derived from Jesus Christ our Mediator. Take it in this
+proposition, viz:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath all authority and power in heaven
+and in earth, for the government of his Church, committed unto him
+from God the Father. This is clearly evident,</p>
+<p>1. By plain testimonies of Scripture, declaring that the
+government of the Church is laid upon his shoulder, to which end
+the Father hath invested him with all authority and power. "The
+government shall be upon his shoulder," &amp;c., Isa. ix. 6,7. "All
+power is given me in heaven and in earth: go, disciple ye all
+nations," &amp;c., Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. "He shall be great, and
+shall be called the Son of the Highest, and the Lord God shall give
+unto him the throne of his father David; and he shall reign over
+the house of Jacob forever, and of his kingdom there shall be no
+end," Luke i. 32, 33. "The Father judgeth no man, but hath
+committed all judgment to the Son; and hath given him authority to
+execute judgment also, because he is the Son of man," John v. 22,
+27. "The Father loveth the Son, and hath given all things into his
+hand," John iii. 35. "It is he that hath the key of David, that
+openeth and no man shutteth, and shutteth and no man openeth," Rev.
+iii. 7. "God raised him from the dead, and set him at his own right
+hand in the heavenly places, far above all principality, and power,
+and might, and dominion, and every name that is named, not only in
+this world, but also in that which is to come: and hath put all
+things under his feet, and gave him to be the head over all things
+to the Church, which is his body," Eph. i. 20-23,</p>
+<p>2. By eminent princely titles, attributed unto Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, having such authority, power, rule, and government
+legibly engraven upon their foreheads, in reference to his
+Church.</p>
+<p>"A Governor which shall feed" (or rule) "my people Israel,"
+Matt. ii. 6. "That great Shepherd of the sheep," Heb. xiii. 20.
+"That Shepherd and Bishop of our souls," 1 Pet. ii. ult. "One is
+your master, Christ," Matt, xxiii. 8, 10. "Christ as a son over his
+own house," Heb. iii. 6. "The Head of the body the Church," Col. i.
+18; Eph. v. 23. "Head over all things to the Church," Eph. i. 22.
+"To us but one Lord Jesus Christ," 1 Cor. viii. 6. "Made of God
+both Lord and Christ," Acts ii. 36. "Lord of lords," Rev. xix. 16.
+"He is Lord of all," Acts x. 36. "God's King set on his holy hill
+of Zion," Psal. ii. 6. "David their king," Jer. xxx. 9; Ezek.
+xxxiv. 23, and xxxvii. 24; Hos. iii. 5. "King of kings," Rev. xix.
+16.</p>
+<p>3. By those primitive, fundamental, imperial acts of power, and
+supreme authority in the government of the Church, which are
+peculiarly ascribed to Jesus Christ our Mediator, as appropriate to
+him alone, above all creatures, e.g.</p>
+<p>1. The giving of laws to his Church. "The law of Christ," Gal.
+vi. 2. "Gave commandments to the apostles," Acts i. 2. "There is
+one Lawgiver, who is able to save and to destroy," James iv. 12.
+"The Lord is our judge, the Lord is our lawgiver," (or
+statute-maker,) "the Lord is our king," Isa. xxxiii. 22.</p>
+<p>2. The constituting of ordinances, whereby his Church shall be
+edified: as <i>preaching the word</i>, Matt. x. 7; 1 Cor. i. 17;
+Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Mark xvi. 15. <i>Administering of the
+sacraments. Baptism</i>, John i. 33, with Matt. iii. 13, &amp;c.,
+and xxviii. 18, 19. <i>The Lord's supper</i>, 1 Cor. xi. 20, 23,
+&amp;c.; Matt. xxvi. 26, &amp;c.; Mark xiv. 22, &amp;c.; Luke xxii.
+19, 20. <i>Dispensing of censures</i>, Matt. xvi. 10, with xviii.
+15-18, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>3. The ordaining and appointing of his own church officers, by
+whom his ordinances shall be dispensed and managed in his Church.
+"He gave gifts to men; and he gave some, apostles; and some,
+prophets; and some, evangelists; and some, pastors and teachers,"
+Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11; compare 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Thess. v. 12; Acts xx.
+28.</p>
+<p>4. The dispensing of Christ's ordinances, not in the name of
+magistrates, ministers, churches, councils, &amp;c., but in
+Christ's own name. The apostles did "speak and teach in the name of
+Jesus," Acts iv. 17, 18. "Whatsoever ye ask in my name," John xiv.
+13, 14, and xvi. 23. "Baptizing them in the name of the Father, and
+of the Son," Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. "They were baptized in the name
+of the Lord Jesus," Acts xix. 5. "In the name&mdash;with the power
+of our Lord Jesus Christ, to deliver such a one to Satan," 1 Cor.
+v. 4. Yea, assemblies of the Church are to be in Christ's name:
+"Where two or three are gathered together in my name," Matt, xviii.
+20.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0013"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VI.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Special Kind, or Peculiar Nature of this Power and
+Authority.</i></h3>
+<p>Having viewed what is the rule of this authority, viz. the holy
+Scriptures, and what is the fountain of this authority, viz. Jesus
+Christ our Mediator; now consider the special kind or peculiar
+nature of this authority, which the description lays down in two
+several expressions, viz: 1. It is a spiritual power or authority.
+2. It is a derived power, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>1. The power or authority of church government is a spiritual
+power. Spiritual, not so perfectly and completely as Christ's
+supreme government is spiritual, who alone hath absolute and
+immediate power and authority over the very spirits and consciences
+of men; ruling them by the invisible influence of his Spirit and
+grace as he pleaseth, John iii. 8; Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20: but
+so purely, properly, and merely spiritual is this power, that it
+really, essentially, and specifically differs, and is
+contradistinct from that power which is properly civil, worldly,
+and political, in the hand of the political magistrate. Now, that
+this power of church government is in this sense properly, purely,
+merely spiritual: and that by divine right may be evidenced many
+ways according to Scripture; forasmuch as the rule, fountain,
+matter, form, subject, object, end, and the all of this power, is
+only spiritual.</p>
+<p>1. Spiritual in the rule, revealing and regulating it, viz. not
+any principles of state policy, parliament rolls, any human
+statutes, laws, ordinances, edicts, decrees, traditions, or
+precepts of men whatsoever, according to which cities, provinces,
+kingdoms, empires, may be happily governed: but the holy
+Scriptures, that perfect divine canon, wherein the Lord Christ hath
+revealed sufficiently how his own house, his Church, shall be
+ruled, 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15; and all his ordinances, word,
+sacraments, censures, &amp;c., shall therein be dispensed, 2 Tim.
+iii. 16, 17. (See chap. IV.) Now this Scripture is divinely
+breathed, or inspired of God&mdash;holy men writing not according
+to the fallible will of man, but the infallible acting of the Holy
+Ghost, 2 Tim. iii. 16, with 2 Pet. i. 20, 21.</p>
+<p>2. Spiritual in the fountain or author of this power, whence it
+originally flows; it being derived, not from any magistrate,
+prince, or potentate in the world, not from any man on earth, or
+the will of man; but only from Jesus Christ our Mediator, himself
+being the sole or first receptacle of all power from the Father,
+Matt. xxviii. 18; John v. 22: and consequently, the very fountain
+of all power and authority to his Church, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, with
+John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20; 2 Cor. x. 8. See
+this formerly cleared, chap. III. and V.</p>
+<p>3. Spiritual in the matter of it, and the several parts of this
+power: therefore called the <i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>,
+not the keys of the kingdoms of earth, Matt. xvi. 19, (as Christ
+professed his <i>kingdom was not of this world</i>, John xviii. 36;
+and when one requested of Christ, that by his authority he would
+speak to his brother to divide the inheritance with him, Christ
+disclaimed utterly all such worldly, earthly power, saying, "Man,
+who made me a judge or a divider over you?" Luke xii. 13, 14.)
+Consider these heavenly spiritual keys in the kinds of them,
+whether of doctrine or discipline; or in the acts of them, whether
+of binding or loosing, in all which they are spiritual: e.g. the
+doctrine which is preached is not human but divine, revealed in the
+Scriptures by the Spirit of God, and handling most sublime
+spiritual mysteries of religion, 2 Pet. i.; 2 Tim. iii. 16,17. The
+seals administered are not worldly seals, confirming and ratifying
+any carnal privileges, liberties, interests, authority, &amp;c.,
+but spiritual, <i>sealing the righteousness of faith</i>, Rom. iv.
+11; the death and blood of Jesus Christ, with all the spiritual
+virtue and efficacy thereof unto his members, Rom. v. 6; Gal. iii.;
+1 Cor. x. 16, 17, and xi. 23, 24, &amp;c. The censures dispensed
+are not pecuniary, corporal, or capital, by fines, confiscations,
+imprisonments, whippings, stocking, stigmatizing, or taking away of
+limb or life, (all such things this government meddles not withal,
+but leaves them to such as bear the civil sword,) but spiritual,
+that only concern the soul and conscience; as <i>admonishing</i> of
+the unruly and disorderly, Matt, xviii. 18, 19; <i>casting out the
+incorrigible</i> and obstinate from the spiritual fellowship of the
+saints, Matt. xviii. 18, 19; 2 Cor. v. ult.: <i>receiving again
+into spiritual communion</i> of the faithful, such as are penitent,
+2 Cor. ii. 6. Thus the binding and loosing, which are counted the
+chief acts of the keys, are spiritually by our Saviour interpreted
+to be the <i>remitting and retaining of sins</i>; compare Matt,
+xviii. 18, 19, with John xx. 21, 23.</p>
+<p>4. Spiritual in the form and manner, as well as in the matter.
+For this power is to be exercised, not in a natural manner, or in
+any carnal name, of earthly magistrate, court, parliament, prince,
+or potentate whatsoever, as all secular civil power is; no, nor in
+the name of saints, ministers, or the churches: but in a spiritual
+manner, in the name of the Lord Jesus, from whom alone all his
+officers receive their commissions. The word is to be <i>preached
+in his name</i>, Acts xvii. 18: seals dispensed in his name, Matt.
+xxviii. 19; Acts xix. 5: censures inflicted in his name, 1 Cor. v.
+4, &amp;c. (See chap. V.)</p>
+<p>5. Spiritual in the subject intrusted with this power; which is
+not any civil, political, or secular magistrate, (as after will
+more fully appear, in chap. IX.) but spiritual officers, which
+Christ himself hath instituted and bestowed upon his Church,
+<i>apostles</i>, &amp;c., <i>pastors, teachers, elders</i>, Eph.
+iv. 7, 8, 10, 11. To these only he hath given the <i>keys of the
+kingdom of heaven</i>, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18,19, and xxviii.
+18, 19; John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, <i>authority which the Lord
+hath given us</i>. These he hath made <i>governments in his
+Church</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28. To these he will have <i>obedience and
+subjection</i> performed, Heb. xiii. 17, and <i>double honor</i>
+allowed, 1 Tim. v. 17.</p>
+<p>6. Spiritual in respect of the object about which this power is
+to be put forth and exercised, viz. not about things, actions, or
+persons civil, as such; but spiritual and ecclesiastical, as such.
+Thus injurious actions, not as trespasses against any statute or
+law political; but as scandalous to our brethren, or the Church of
+God, Matt, xviii. 18, 19; are considered and punished by this
+power. Thus the incestuous person was cast out, because a wicked
+person in himself, and likely to leaven others by his bad example,
+1 Cor. v. 6. Thus the persons whom the Church may judge are not the
+men of the world without the Church, but those that are in some
+sense spiritual, and within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.</p>
+<p>7. Spiritual also is this power in the scope and end of it. This
+the Scripture frequently inculcates: e.g. a brother is to be
+admonished privately, publicly, &amp;c., not for the gaining of our
+private interests, advantages, &amp;c., but for <i>the gaining of
+our brother</i>, that his soul and conscience may be gained to God
+and to his duty, and he be reformed, Matt, xviii. 15. The
+incestuous person is to be "delivered to Satan, for the destruction
+of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day of our Lord
+Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5; yea, the whole authority given to church
+guides from the Lord was given to this end, <i>for the edification,
+not the destruction</i> of the Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10;
+all which, and such like, are spiritual ends. Thus the power of
+church government here described is wholly and entirely a spiritual
+power, whether we respect the rule, root, matter, form, subject,
+object, or end thereof. So that in this respect it is really and
+specifically distinct from all civil power, and in no respect
+encroacheth upon, or can be prejudicial unto the magistrate's
+authority, which is properly and only political.</p>
+<p>2. The power or authority of church government is a derived
+power. For clearing this, observe, there is a magisterial primitive
+supreme power, which is peculiar to Jesus Christ our Mediator, (as
+hath been proved, chap. III. and V:) and there is a ministerial,
+derivative, subordinate power, which the Scripture declares to be
+in church guides, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 23;
+Matt, xxviii. 19, 20; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10, and often
+elsewhere this is abundantly testified. But whence is this power
+originally derived to them? Here we are carefully to consider and
+distinguish three things, touching this power or authority from one
+another, viz: 1st. The donation of the authority itself, and of the
+offices whereunto this power doth properly belong. 2d. The
+designation of particular persons to such offices as are vested
+with such power. 3d. The public protection, countenancing,
+authorizing, defending, and maintaining of such officers in the
+public exercise of such power within such and such realms or
+dominions. This being premised, we may clearly thus resolve,
+according to scripture warrant, viz. the designation or setting
+apart of particular individual persons to those offices in the
+Church that have power and authority engraven upon them, is from
+the church nominating, electing, and ordaining of such persons
+thereunto, see Acts iii. 1-3; 1 Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22; Tit. i. 5;
+Acts iv. 22. The public protection, defence, maintenance, &amp;c.,
+of such officers in the public exercise of the power and authority
+of their office in such or such dominions, is from the civil
+magistrate, as the <i>nursing-father</i> of the Church, Isa. xlix.
+23; for it is by his authority and sanction that such public places
+shall be set apart for the public ministry, that such maintenance
+and reward shall be legally performed for such a ministry, that all
+such persons of such and such congregations shall be (in case they
+neglect their duty to such a ministry) punished with such political
+penalties, &amp;c. But the donation of the office and spiritual
+authority annexed thereunto, is only derived from Jesus Christ our
+Mediator. He alone gives all church officers, and therefore none
+may devise or superadd any new officers, Eph. iv. 7, 8, 10, 11; 1
+Cor. xii. 28. And he alone commits all authority and power
+spiritual to those officers, for dispensing of word, sacraments,
+censures, and all ordinances, Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18-20;
+John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: and therefore it is not
+safe for any creature to intrude upon this prerogative royal of
+Christ to give any power to any officer of the Church. None can
+give what he has not.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0014"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VII.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the several Parts or Acts of this power of Church
+Government, wherein it puts forth itself in the Church.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus far of the special kind or peculiar nature of this
+authority; now to the several parts or acts of this power which the
+description comprehends in these expressions, (in dispensing the
+word, seals, censures, and all other ordinances of Christ.) The
+evangelical ordinances which Christ has set up in his church are
+many; and all of them by divine right that Christ sets up. Take
+both the enumeration of ordinances and the divine right thereof
+severally, as followeth.</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath instituted and appointed these
+ensuing administrations to be standing and perpetual ordinances in
+his church: which ordinances for method sake may be reduced into
+two heads, according to the distribution of the keys formerly laid
+down, (chap. III.,) viz., ordinances appertaining, 1st, To the key
+of order or of doctrine; 2d, To the key of jurisdiction or of
+discipline.</p>
+<p>1. Ordinances appertaining to the key of order or doctrine,
+viz:</p>
+<p>1. Public prayer and thanksgiving are divine ordinances: for
+1st, Paul writing his first epistle to Timothy, "that he might know
+how to behave himself in the house of God," 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15,
+among other directions in that epistle, gives this for one, "I
+exhort therefore that first of all supplications, prayers,
+intercessions, and giving of thanks be made for all men," 1 Tim.
+ii. 1, 2, "for this is good and acceptable in the sight of God our
+Saviour," verse 3. 2. The apostle, regulating public prayers in the
+congregation, directing that they should be performed with the
+understanding, takes it for granted that public prayer was an
+ordinance of Christ. "If I pray in an unknown tongue, my spirit
+prayeth, but my understanding is unfruitful. What is it then? I
+will pray with the spirit, and will pray with the understanding
+also. Else when thou shalt bless with the spirit, how shall he that
+occupieth the room of the unlearned, say amen at thy giving of
+thanks, seeing he understandeth not what thou sayest? for thou
+verily givest thanks well, but the other is not edified." 1 Cor.
+xiv. 14-17. 3. Further, the apostles did account public prayer to
+be of more concern than serving of tables, and providing for the
+necessities of the poor, yea, to be a principal part of their
+ministerial office, and therefore resolve to addict and "give
+themselves to the ministry of the word and to prayer," Acts vi. 4;
+and this was the church's practice in the purest times, Acts i. 13,
+14, whose pious action is for our imitation. 4. And Jesus Christ
+hath made gracious promises to public prayer, viz., of his presence
+with those who assemble in his name; and of audience of their
+prayers, Matt, xviii. 19, 20. Would Christ so crown public prayer
+were it not his own ordinance?</p>
+<p>2. Singing of psalms is a divine ordinance, being,</p>
+<p>1. Prescribed; "be filled with the spirit: speaking to
+yourselves in psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs," Eph. v. 18,
+19. "Let the word of Christ dwell in you richly in all wisdom,
+teaching and admonishing one another in psalms, and hymns, and
+spiritual songs," Col. iii. 16.</p>
+<p>2. Regulated; the right performance thereof being laid down, "I
+will sing with the spirit, and I will sing with the understanding
+also," 1 Cor. xiv. 15, 16. "Singing with grace in your hearts to
+the Lord," Col. iii. 16. "Singing and making melody in your hearts
+to the Lord," Eph. v. 19.</p>
+<p>3. The public ministry of the word of God in the congregation is
+a divine ordinance. "We will give ourselves," said the apostles,
+"to the ministry of the word and prayer," Acts vi. 4. The ministry
+of the word is a sacred ordinance, whether read, preached, or
+catechetically propounded.</p>
+<p>1. The public reading of the word is a divine ordinance, (though
+exposition of what is read do not always immediately follow.) For,
+1. God commanded the reading of the word publicly, and never since
+repealed that command, Deut. xxxi. 11-13; Jer. xxxvi. 6; Col. iii.
+16. 2. Public reading of the scriptures hath been the practice of
+God's church, both before Christ, Exod. xxiv. 7; Neh. viii. 18, and
+ix. 3, and xiii. 1; and after Christ, Acts xiii. 15, 27, and xv.
+21; 2 Cor. iii. 14. 3. Public reading of the scriptures is as
+necessary and profitable now as ever it was. See Deut. xxxi.
+11-13.</p>
+<p>2. The public preaching of the word is an eminent ordinance of
+Christ. This is evident many ways, viz:</p>
+<p>1. Christ hath commanded that the word shall be preached. "Go ye
+into all the world, and preach the gospel to every creature," Mark
+xvi. 15. "Go ye, therefore, and disciple ye all nations; teaching
+them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you," Matt,
+xxviii. 19, 20. "As ye go, preach, saying, The kingdom of heaven is
+at hand," Matt. x. 7. See also Mark iii. 14. "I charge thee,"
+&amp;c. "Preach the word," 2 Tim. iv. 1, 2. "Necessity is laid upon
+me, yea, wo is unto me if I preach not the gospel," 1 Cor. ix. 16,
+17. "Christ sent me&mdash;to preach the gospel," 1 Cor. i. 17; with
+which compare also Acts xx. 28, and 1 Pet. v. 1-4.</p>
+<p>2. Christ hath appointed who shall preach the word. "How shall
+they preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15. The qualifications of
+preaching elders see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, and Tit. i. 5-9.</p>
+<p>3. Christ hath appointed how the word shall be preached. "Be
+instant, in season, out of season, reprove, rebuke, exhort with all
+long-suffering and doctrine," 2 Tim. iv. 2. "That he may be able by
+sound doctrine both to exhort and convince gainsayers," Tit. i. 9.
+"He that hath my word, let him speak my word faithfully: what is
+the chaff to the wheat, saith the Lord?" Jer. xxiii. 28.</p>
+<p>4. Christ hath made many encouraging promises to the preaching
+of his word, which he would not have done, were it not his own
+ordinance. "Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have
+commanded you, and lo I am with you every day to the end of the
+world," Matt, xxviii. 20. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth, shall
+be bound in heaven; and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be
+loosed in heaven," Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose soever sins
+ye remit, they are remitted unto them: and whose soever sins ye
+retain, they are retained," John xx. 23. Both these are partly
+meant of doctrinal binding and loosing, remitting and retaining.
+"Be not afraid, but speak, and hold not thy peace: for I am with
+thee, and no man shall set on thee to hurt thee, for I have much
+people in this city," Acts xviii. 9, 10.</p>
+<p>3. The catechetical propounding or expounding of the word, viz.
+a plain, familiar laying down of the first principles of the
+oracles of God, is an ordinance of Christ also. For, 1. This was
+the apostolical way of teaching the churches at the first
+plantation thereof. "When for the time ye ought to be teachers, ye
+have need that one teach you again which be the first principles of
+the oracles of God, and are become such as have need of milk and
+not of strong meat," Heb. v. 12. "Therefore, leaving the word of
+the beginning of Christ, let us go on unto perfection, not laying
+again the foundation of repentance from dead works, and of faith
+towards God," &amp;c., Heb. vi. 1,2. "And I, brethren, could not
+speak unto you as unto spiritual, but as unto carnal, as unto babes
+in Christ. I have fed you with milk, and not with meat, for
+hitherto ye were not able to bear it, neither yet now are ye able,"
+1 Cor. iii. 1, 2. 2. And this is the sense of pastor and people
+which the Holy Ghost useth, setting forth the reciprocal relation
+and office between them, with his own approbation. "Let him that is
+catechized in the word, communicate to him that catechizeth him, in
+all good things," Gal. vi. 6.</p>
+<p>4. The administration of the sacraments is of divine
+institution.</p>
+<p>1. Of baptism. "He that sent me to baptize with water," John i.
+33. "Go ye therefore, disciple ye all nations, baptizing them into
+the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost,"
+Matt, xxviii. 18-20.</p>
+<p>2. Of the Lord's supper, which Christ ordained <i>the same night
+in which he was betrayed</i>: which institution is at large
+described, 1 Cor. xi. 20, 23, &amp;c.; Matt. xxvi. 26-31; Mark xiv.
+22-27; Luke xxii. 19, 20.</p>
+<p>2. Ordinances appertaining to the key of jurisdiction or of
+discipline, viz:</p>
+<p>1. The ordination of presbyters with imposition of the hands of
+the presbytery, after praying and fasting, is a divine ordinance.
+"Neglect not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by
+prophecy with the laying on of the hands of the presbytery," 1 Tim.
+iv. 14. Titus was left in Crete for this end, "To set in order
+things that were wanting, and ordain presbyters" (or elders) "in
+every city, as Paul had appointed him," Tit. i. 5. Timothy is
+charged, "Lay hands suddenly on no man, neither be partaker of
+other men's sins; keep thyself pure," 1 Tim. v. 22. Paul and
+Barnabas came to Lystra, Iconium, and Antioch, and "when they had
+ordained them presbyters in every church, and had prayed with
+fasting, they commended them to the Lord," &amp;c., Acts xiv. 21,
+23.</p>
+<p>2. Authoritative discerning, and judging of doctrine according
+to the word of God, is a divine ordinance. As that council at
+Jerusalem, authoritatively (viz. by ministerial authority) judged
+of both the false doctrine and manners of false teachers, branding
+them for "troublers of the Church, subverters of souls," &amp;c.
+"Forasmuch as we have heard that certain, coming forth from u, have
+troubled you with words, subverting your souls, saying, ye ought to
+be circumcised, and keep the law, to whom we gave no such
+commandment," Acts xv. 24; "it seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and
+to us, to impose upon you no greater burden than these necessary
+things," v. 28; and this was done upon debates from scripture
+grounds, "and to this the words of the prophets agree," Acts xv.
+15: and afterwards their results and determinations are called
+"decrees ordained by the apostles and elders," Acts xvi. 4.</p>
+<p>3. Admonition and public rebuke of sinners is a divine ordinance
+of Christ. "If thy brother trespass against thee, go and tell him
+his fault between thee and him alone: if he will not hear thee,
+then take with thee one or two more&mdash;and if he shall neglect
+to hear them, tell it unto the Church," Matt, xviii. 15-17. "Whose
+soever sins ye bind on earth shall be bound in heaven," John xx.
+23. One way and degree of binding is by authoritative, convincing
+reproof. "Admonish the unruly," 1 Thess. v. 14. "An heretic, after
+the first and second admonition, reject," Tit. iii. 1. "Them that
+sin, convincingly reprove before all, that the rest also may fear,"
+1 Tim. v. 20. "Rebuke them sharply," (or convince them cuttingly,)
+Tit. iii. 13. "Sufficient to such an one is that rebuke, which was
+from many," 2 Cor. ii. 6.</p>
+<p>4. Rejecting, and purging out, or putting away from the
+communion of the Church, wicked and incorrigible persons, is an
+ordinance of Christ. "And if he will not hear them, tell the
+Church; but if he will not hear the Church, let him be unto thee
+even as a heathen and a publican." "Verily, I say unto you, what
+things soever ye shall bind on earth, they shall be bound in
+heaven," Matt, xviii. 17, 18, compared with Matt. xvi. 19, and John
+xx. 21, 23. "An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject,"
+Tit. iii. 10; i.e. excommunicate, till he repent&mdash;<i>Pisc. in
+loc.</i> By the lawful judgment of the Church, to deliver the
+impenitent to Satan.&mdash;<i>Beza in loc.</i> "Of whom is Hymeneus
+and Alexander, whom I have delivered to Satan, that they may learn
+not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i. 20. The apostle's scope in 1 Cor. v.
+is to press the church of Corinth to excommunicate the incestuous
+person. "Ye are puffed up, and have not rather mourned, that he
+that hath done this deed may be taken from the midst of you. For I
+verily, as absent in body, but present in spirit, have already as
+present judged him that thus wrought this thing. In the name of our
+Lord Jesus Christ, you being gathered together, and my spirit with
+the power of our Lord Jesus Christ, to deliver such an one to Satan
+for the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in
+the day of our Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 2-5. "Know ye not that a
+little leaven leaveneth the whole lump? Purge out therefore the old
+leaven," ver. 7. "I wrote to you in an epistle, not to be mingled
+together with fornicators," ver. 9, 11; and explaining what he
+meant by not being <i>mingled together</i>, saith, "If any named a
+brother be a fornicator, or covetous, or an idolater, or a reviler,
+or drunkard, or rapacious, with such an one not to eat together,"
+ver. 11. "Therefore take away from among yourselves that wicked
+person," ver. 13.</p>
+<p>5. Seasonable remitting, receiving, comforting, and
+authoritative confirming again in the communion of the Church those
+that are penitent. "What things soever ye shall loose on earth
+shall be loosed in heaven," Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose
+soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them," John xx. 23.
+This loosing and remitting is not only doctrinal and declarative in
+the preaching of the word, but also juridical and authoritative in
+the administration of censures. This is called, for distinction's
+sake, absolution. After the church of Corinth had excommunicated
+the incestuous person, and he thereupon had given sufficient
+testimony of his repentance, the apostle directs them to receive
+him into church communion again, saying, "Sufficient to such an one
+is that rebuke inflicted of many; so that contrariwise you should
+rather forgive and comfort him, lest such an one should be
+swallowed up of abundant sorrow. Wherefore I beseech
+authoritatively to confirm love unto him: for to this purpose also
+I have written unto you, that I may know the proof of you, if ye be
+obedient in all things," 2 Cor. ii. 6-9.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0015"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER VIII.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the End and Scope of this Government of the
+Church.</i></h3>
+<p>The end or scope intended by Christ in instituting, and to be
+aimed at by Christ's officers in executing of church government in
+dispensing the word, sacrament, censures, and all ordinances of
+Christ, is (as the description expresseth) <i>the edifying of the
+Church of Christ</i>. This end is very comprehensive. For the
+fuller evidencing whereof these two things are to be proved:1st,
+That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under the New Testament one
+general visible Church on earth. 2d. That the edification of this
+Church of Christ is that eminent scope and end why Christ gave the
+power of church government and other ordinances unto the
+Church.</p>
+<p>I. For the first, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under the
+New Testament a general visible Church on earth, made up of all
+particular churches, may be cleared by considering well these
+particulars.</p>
+<p>1st. That it is evident by the Scriptures that Jesus Christ hath
+on earth many particular visible churches: (whether churches
+congregational, presbyterial, provincial, or national, needs not
+here be determined.) "Unto the churches of Galatia," Gal. i. 2.
+"The churches of Judea," Gal. i. 22. "Through Syria and Cilicia,
+confirming the churches," Acts xv. 41. "To the seven churches in
+Asia," Rev. i. 4, 20. "The church of Ephesus," Rev. ii. 1. "The
+church in Smyrna," ver. 8. "The church in Pergamus," ver. 12. "The
+church in Thyatira," ver. 18. "The church in Sardis," Rev. iii. 1.
+"The church in Philadelphia," ver. 7. And "the church in Laodicea,"
+ver. 14. "The church that is in their house," Rom. xvi. 5; and
+Philem. 2. "Let your women keep silence in the church," 1 Cor. xiv.
+34. "All the churches of the Gentiles," Rom. xvi. 4. "So ordain I
+in all churches," 1 Cor. vii. 17. "As in all churches of the
+saints," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. "The care of all the churches," 2 Cor. xi.
+28. The New Testament hath many such like expressions.</p>
+<p>2d. That how many particular visible churches soever Christ hath
+on earth, yet Scripture counts them all to be but one general
+visible Church of Christ. This is manifest,</p>
+<p>1. By divers Scriptures, using the word church in such a full
+latitude and extensive completeness, as properly to signify, not
+any one single congregation, or particular church, but one general
+visible Church: as, "Upon this rock I will build my Church," Matt.
+xvi. 18. "Give none offence, neither to the Jews, nor to the
+Greeks, nor to the Church of God," 1 Cor. x. 32. "God hath set some
+in the Church, first, apostles; secondarily, prophets; thirdly,
+teachers," &amp;c., 1 Cor. xii. 28. "I persecuted the Church of
+God," 1 Cor. xv. 9; Gal. i. 13. "The Church of the living God, the
+pillar and ground of the truth," 1 Tim. iii. 15. "Might be known by
+the Church the manifold wisdom of God," Eph. iii. 10. "In the midst
+of the Church will I sing praise unto thee," Heb. ii. 12. In which,
+and such like places, we must needs understand, that one general
+visible Church of Christ.</p>
+<p>2. By such passages of scripture as evidently compare all
+visible professors and members of Christ throughout the world to
+one organical body, having eyes, ears, hands, feet, &amp;c., viz.,
+several organs, instruments, officers, &amp;c., in it, for the
+benefit of the whole body; as, "He gave some apostles, and some
+prophets, and some evangelists, and some pastors and teachers, for
+the perfecting of the saints, for the work of the ministry, for the
+edifying of the body of Christ," Eph. iv. 11, 12. "There is one
+body," Eph. iv. 4. "As we have many members in one body, and all
+members have not the same office; so we being many are one body in
+Christ, and every one members one of another," &amp;c., Rom. xii.
+4-9. "As the body is one, and hath many members, and all the
+members of that one body being many, are one body; so also is
+Christ," (i.e., Christ considered mystically, not personally,) "for
+by one Spirit are we all baptized into one body, whether we be Jews
+or Gentiles, whether we be bond or free," &amp;c., 1 Cor. xii. 12,
+to the end of the chapter, which context plainly demonstrates all
+Christ's visible members in the world, Jews or Gentiles, &amp;c.,
+to be members of one and the same organical body of Christ, which
+organical body of Christ is the general visible Church of Christ;
+for the invisible church is not organical.</p>
+<p>II. That the edification of the Church of Christ is that eminent
+scope and end, why Christ gave church government and all other
+ordinances of the New Testament to his Church. This is frequently
+testified in scripture. 1. The apostle, speaking of this power
+generally, saith, "Our authority which the Lord hath given to us
+for edification, and not for the destruction of you," 2 Cor. x. 8.
+The like passage he hath again, saying, "according to the
+authority," or power, "which the Lord hath given to me for
+edification, and not for destruction," 2 Cor. xiii. 10; in both
+which places he speaks of the authority of church government in a
+general comprehensive way, declaring the grand and general
+immediate end thereof to be, affirmatively, edification of the
+church; negatively, not the subversion or destruction thereof. 2.
+In like manner, when particular acts of government, and particular
+ordinances are mentioned, the edification of the Church, at least
+in her members, is propounded as the great end of all: e.g. 1.
+Admonition is for edification, that an erring <i>brother may be
+gained</i>, Matt. xviii. 15, 16, that wavering minds may be sound
+in the faith. "Rebuke them cuttingly, that they may be sound in the
+faith," Tit. i. 13, that beholders and bystanders may fear to fall
+into like sins. "Them that sin rebuke before all, that others also
+may fear," 1 Tim. v. 20. 2. Excommunication is for edification;
+particularly of the delinquent member himself; thus the incestuous
+person was "delivered to Satan for the destruction of the flesh,
+that the spirit might be saved in the day of the Lord Jesus," 1
+Cor. v. 4, 5. "Hymeneus and Alexander were delivered to Satan, that
+they might learn not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i. 20: more generally of
+the Church; thus the incestuous person was to be put away from
+among them lest the whole lump of the church should be leavened by
+him, 1 Cor. v. 3. Absolution also is for edification, lest the
+penitent party "should be swallowed up of too much sorrow," 2 Cor.
+ii. 7. 4. All the officers of his Church are for edification of the
+Church, (Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11, 12, 16,) together with all the gifts
+and endowments in these officers, whether of prayer, prophecy,
+tongues, &amp;c., all must be managed to edification. This is the
+scope of the whole chapter. 1 Cor. xii. 7, &amp;c., and 1 Cor. xiv.
+3-5, 9, 12, &amp;c., 26; read the whole chapter. That passage of
+Paul is remarkable, "I thank my God, I speak with tongues more than
+you all; yet in the church I had rather speak five words with my
+understanding, that by my voice I might teach others also, than ten
+thousand words in an unknown tongue," verses 18, 19. Thus church
+government, and all sorts of ordinances, with the particular acts
+thereof, are to be levelled at this mark of edification.
+Edification is an elegant metaphor from material buildings (perhaps
+of the material and typical temple) to the spiritual; for
+explanation's sake briefly thus take the accommodation: The
+<i>architects</i>, or builders, are the <i>ministers</i>, 1 Cor.
+iii. 10. The <i>foundation</i> and <i>corner-stone</i> that bears
+up, binds together, and gives strength to the building, is Jesus
+Christ, 1 Cor. iii. 11; 1 Pet. ii. 4, 6. The <i>stones</i> or
+<i>materials</i> are the <i>faithful</i> or <i>saints</i>, 2 Cor.
+i. 1. The <i>building</i>, or house itself, is the <i>Church</i>,
+that spiritual house, and <i>temple of the living God</i>, Eph. ii.
+21, and iv. 12; 1 Cor. iii. 9, 16, 17. The edification of this
+house is gradually to be perfected more and more till the coming of
+Christ, by laying the foundation of Christianity, in bringing men
+still unto Christ, and carrying on the superstruction in perfecting
+them in Christ in all spiritual growth, till at last the top-stone
+be laid on, the Church completed, and translated <i>to the house
+not made with hands, eternal in the heavens</i>.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0016"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER IX.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the proper receptacle and distinct subject of all this
+power and authority of Church Government, which Christ hath
+peculiarly intrusted with the execution thereof according to the
+Scriptures. And</i> 1. <i>Negatively, That the political magistrate
+is not the proper subject of this power.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus we have taken a brief survey of church government, both in
+the rule, root, kind, branches, and end thereof, all which are
+comprised in the former description, and being less controverted,
+have been more briefly handled. Now, the last thing in the
+description which comes under our consideration, is the proper
+receptacle of all this power from Christ, or the peculiar subject
+intrusted by Christ with this power and the execution thereof, viz.
+only Christ's own officers. For church government is a spiritual
+power or authority, derived from Jesus Christ our Mediator, only to
+his own officers, and by them exercised in dispensing of the word,
+&amp;c. Now about this subject of the power will be the great knot
+of the controversy, forasmuch as there are many different claims
+thereof made, and urged with vehement importunity: (to omit the
+Romish claim for the pope, and the prelatical claim for the
+bishop,) the politic Erastian pretends that the only proper subject
+of all church government is the political or civil magistrate; the
+gross Brownists or rigid Separatists, that it is the body of the
+people, or community of the faithful in an equal even level; they
+that are more refined, (who style themselves for distinction's
+sake<a href="#note-26"><small>26</small></a> Independents,) that it
+is the single congregation, or the company of the faithful with
+their presbytery, or church officers; the Presbyterians hold that
+the proper subject wherein Christ hath seated and intrusted all
+church power, and the exercise thereof, is only his own church
+officers, (as is in the description expressed.) Here, therefore,
+the way will be deeper, and the travelling slower; the opposition
+is much, and therefore the disquisition of this matter will
+unavoidably be the more.</p>
+<p>For perspicuity herein, seeing it is said that this power is
+derived from Christ only to his own officers; and by this word
+(only) all other subjects are excluded; the subject of church power
+may be considered, 1. Negatively, what it is not. 2. Affirmatively,
+what it is.</p>
+<p>Negatively, the proper subject unto whom Christ hath committed
+the power of church government, and the exercise thereof, is not,
+1. The political magistrate, as the Erastians imagine. 2. Nor the
+body of the people, either with their presbytery or without it, as
+the Separatists and Independents pretend. Let these negatives first
+be evinced, and then the affirmative will be more clearly
+evidenced.</p>
+<p>Touching the first of these&mdash;that the political magistrate
+is not the proper subject unto whom Jesus Christ our Mediator hath
+committed the power of church government, and the exercise of that
+power; it will be cleared by declaring these two things distinctly
+and severally, viz: 1. What power about ecclesiasticals is granted
+to the civil magistrate. 2. What power therein is denied unto him,
+and why.</p>
+<a name="H_SECTI-I"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION I.</h3>
+<p>Such power is granted by the reformed churches and orthodox
+writers to the political magistrate, in reference to church
+affairs. Take it in these particulars.</p>
+<p>A defensive, protecting, patronizing power to the church, and
+all the members thereof. "Kings shall be thy nursing-fathers,"
+&amp;c., Isa. xlix. 23. "The magistrate is the minister of God for
+good to well-doers, as well as the avenger, executing wrath upon
+evil-doers; a terror not to good works, but to the evil," Rom.
+xiii. 3, 4; he is called <i>an heir, or, possessor of restraint, to
+put men to shame</i>, Judges xviii. 7. And as the church ought to
+pray for kings and all in authority, so consequently all in
+authority should endeavor to defend it, that the church and people
+of God should lead a quiet and peaceable life, (under the wing of
+their protection,) "in all godliness and honesty," 1 Tim. ii. 2;
+and this is evident from the end and scope of these prayers here
+prescribed, as interpreters unanimously agree. And hereupon are
+those promises to the church, "The sons of strangers shall build up
+thy walls, and their kings shall minister unto thee," Isa. lx. 10;
+"and thou shalt suck the breast of kings," Isa. lx. 16. Now, this
+nursing, protecting care of magistrates towards the church, puts
+forth itself in these or like acts, viz: He,</p>
+<p>1. Removes all external impediments of true religion, worship of
+God, &amp;c., by his civil power, whether persons or things,
+whether persecutions, profaneness, heresy, idolatry, superstition,
+&amp;c., that truth and godliness may purely flourish: as did
+Jehoshaphat, Asa, Hezekiah, Josiah. And hereupon it is that God so
+oft condemns the not removing and demolishing of the high places
+and monuments of idolatry, 1 Kings xv. 14, with 2 Chron. xv. 17; 1
+Kings xxii. 44; 2 Kings xii. 3: and highly commends the contrary in
+Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 8, 16: in Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii. 3, 4, 6-10:
+in Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxxi. 1; 2 Kings xviii. 4: in Manasseh, 2
+Chron. xxxiii. 15: in Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii. 8, 13, 19, 20, 24:
+whereupon the Holy Ghost gives him that superlative commendation
+above all kings before and after him, ver. 25.</p>
+<p>2. Countenanceth, advanceth, and encourageth by his authority
+and example the public exercise of all God's ordinances, and duties
+of religion within his dominions, whether in matter of divine
+worship, discipline, and government, maintaining for the Church the
+fulness of spiritual liberties and privileges communicated to her
+from Christ: as did Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 9-16: Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron.
+xx. 7-9: Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxix., xxx., and xxxi. chapters
+throughout: Josiah, 2 Chron. xxxiv. and xxxv. chapters. And to this
+end God prescribed in the law that the king should still have a
+copy of the law of God by him, therein to read continually, Deut.
+xvii. 18-20; because he was to be not only a practiser, but also a
+protector thereof, a keeper of both tables.</p>
+<p>3. Supplies the Church with all external necessaries,
+provisions, means, and worldly helps in matters of religion: as
+convenient public places to worship in, sufficient maintenance for
+ministers, (as the Scripture requireth, 1 Tim. v. 17, 18; 1 Cor.
+ix. 6-15; Gal. vi. 6:) schools and colleges, for promoting of
+literature, as nurseries to the prophets, &amp;c.; together with
+the peaceable and effectual enjoyment of all these worldly
+necessaries, for comfortably carrying on of all public ordinances
+of Christ. Thus David prepared materials, but Solomon built the
+temple, 1 Chron. xxii. Hezekiah commanded the people that dwelt in
+Jerusalem, to give the portion of the priests and the Levites, that
+they might be encouraged in the law of the Lord; and Hezekiah
+himself and his princes came and saw it performed, 2 Chron. xxxi.
+4, &amp;c., 8: Josiah repaired the house of God, 2 Chron.
+xxxiv.</p>
+<p>Nor need the magistrate think scorn, but rather count it his
+honor to be an earthly protector of the Church, which is the
+<i>body of Christ, the Lamb's wife</i>, for redeeming of which
+Christ died, and for gathering and perfecting of which the very
+world is continued.</p>
+<p>An ordering, regulating power is also allowed to the magistrate
+about ecclesiastical matters in a political way, so that he
+warrantably,</p>
+<p>1. Reforms the Church, when corrupted in divine worship,
+discipline, or government: as did Moses, Exod. xxxii.; Joshua,
+Josh. xxiv.; Asa, 2 Chron. xv.; Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii.;
+Hezekiah, 2 Kings xviii.; Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii.; 2 Chron.
+xxxiv.</p>
+<p>2. Convenes or convocates synods and councils, made up of
+ecclesiastical persons, to consult, advise, and conclude
+determinatively, according to the word, how the church is to be
+reformed and refined from corruptions, and how to be guided and
+governed when reformed, &amp;c. For, 1. Pious magistrates under the
+Old Testament called the Church together, convened councils. David,
+about bringing back the ark, 1 Chron. xiii. 1, 2, and another
+council when he was old, 1 Chron. xiii. 1; Solomon, 1 Kings viii.
+1; Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxix. 4; and Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii. 1, 2. 2.
+All ought to be subject to superior powers, who ought to procure
+the public peace and prosperity of the Church, Rom. xiii. 1, 2,
+&amp;c.; 1 Pet. ii. 13, &amp;c., 17; 1 Tim. ii. 2. Therefore
+superior powers may convocate councils. 3. Christian magistrates
+called the four general councils: Constantine the first Nicene
+council; Theodosius, senior, the first council of Constantinople;
+Theodosius, junior, the first Ephesian council; Marcian Emperor,
+the Chalcedon council; and, 4. Hereunto antiquity subscribes, as
+Dr. Whitaker observes.</p>
+<p>3. Supports the laws of God with his secular authority, as a
+keeper of the tables, enjoining and commanding, under civil
+penalties, all under his dominion, strictly and inviolably to
+observe the same: as "Josiah made all that were present in Israel
+to serve the Lord their God," 2 Chron. xxxiv. 33. Nehemiah made the
+sabbath to be sanctified, and strange wives to be put away, Neb.
+xii. 13, &amp;c. Yea, Nebuchadnezzar, a heathen king, decreed, that
+"Whosoever should speak amiss of the God of Shadrach," &amp;c.,
+"should be cut in pieces, and their houses made a dunghill," Dan.
+iii. 28, 29. And Darius decreed, "That in every dominion of his
+kingdom men tremble and fear before the God of Daniel," &amp;c.,
+Dan. vi. 26, 27.</p>
+<p>And as he strengthens the laws and ordinances of God by his
+civil authority, so he ratifies and establishes within his
+dominions the just and necessary decrees of the Church in synods
+and councils (which are agreeable to God's word) by his civil
+sanction.</p>
+<p>4. Judges and determines definitively with a consequent
+political judgment, or judgment of political discretion, concerning
+the things judged and determined antecedently by the Church, in
+reference to his own act. Whether he will approve such
+ecclesiasticals or not; and in what manner he will so approve, or
+do otherwise by his public authority; for he is not a brutish
+agent, (as papists would have him,) to do whatsoever the Church
+enjoins him unto blind obedience, but is to act prudently and
+knowingly in all his office; and therefore the judgment of
+discerning (which belongs to every Christian, for the well-ordering
+of his own act) cannot be denied to the Christian magistrate, in
+respect of his office.</p>
+<p>5. Takes care politically, that even matters and ordinances
+merely and formally ecclesiastical, be duly managed by
+ecclesiastical persons orderly called thereto. Thus Hezekiah
+commanded the priests and Levites to do their duties, 2 Chron.
+xxix. 5, 24, and the people to do theirs, 2 Chron. xxx. 1; and for
+this he is commended, that therein he did cleave unto the Lord, and
+observed his precepts which he had commanded Moses, 2 Kings xviii.
+6. Thus when the king is commanded to observe and do all the
+precepts of the law, the Lord (as orthodox divines do judge)
+intended that he should keep them, not only as a private man, but
+as a king, by using all care and endeavor that all his subjects
+with him perform all duties to God and man, Deut. xvii. 18-20.</p>
+<p>6. A compulsive, coactive, punitive, or corrective power,
+formally political, is also granted to the political magistrate in
+matters of religion, in reference to all sorts of persons and
+things under his jurisdiction. He may politically compel the
+outward man of all persons, church officers, or others under his
+dominions, unto external performance of their respective duties,
+and offices in matters of religion, punishing them, if either they
+neglect to do their duty at all, or do it corruptly, not only
+against equity and sobriety, contrary to the second table, but
+against truth and piety, contrary to the first table of the
+decalogue. We have sufficient intimation of the magistrate's
+punitive power in cases against the second table; as the stubborn
+and rebellious, incorrigible son, that was a glutton and a
+drunkard, sinning against the fifth commandment, was to be stoned
+to death, Deut. xxi. 18-21. The murderer, sinning against the sixth
+commandment, was to be punished with death, Gen. ix. 6; Numb. xxxv.
+30-34; Deut. x. 11-13. The unclean person, sinning against the
+seventh commandment, was to be punished with death, Lev. xx. 11,
+12, 14, 17, 19-25; and before that, see Gen. xxxviii. 24. Yea, Job,
+who is thought to live before Moses, and before this law was made,
+intimates that adultery is a heinous crime, yea, it is an iniquity
+to be punished by the judges, Job xxxi. 9,11. The thief, sinning
+against the eighth commandment, was to be punished by restitution,
+Exod. xxii. 1, 15, &amp;c. The false witness, sinning against the
+ninth commandment, was to be dealt withal as he would have had his
+brother dealt with, by the law of retaliation, Deut. xix. 16, to
+the end of the chapter, &amp;c. Yea, the magistrate's punitive
+power is extended also to offences against the first table; whether
+these offences be against the first commandment, by false prophets
+teaching lies, errors, and heresies in the name of the Lord,
+endeavoring to seduce people from the true God. "If there arise
+among you a prophet, or a dreamer of dreams, that prophet, or that
+dreamer of dreams shall be put to death, because he hath spoken to
+turn you away from the Lord your God, which brought you out of the
+land of Egypt," &amp;c., Deut. xiii. 1-6. From which place Calvin
+notably asserts the punitive power of magistrates against false
+prophets and impostors that would draw God's people to a defection
+from the true God, showing that this power also belongs to the
+Christian magistrate in like cases now under the gospel.</p>
+<p>Yea, in case of such seducement from God, though by nearest
+allies, severe punishment was to be inflicted upon the seducer,
+Deut. xiii. 6-12. See also ver. 12, to the end of the chapter, how
+a city is to be punished in the like case. And Mr.
+Burroughs,<a href="#note-27"><small>27</small></a> in his Irenicum,
+shows that this place of Deut. xiii. 6, &amp;c., belongs even to us
+under the gospel.</p>
+<p>Or whether these offences be against the second commandment, the
+magistrate's punitive power reaches them, Deut. xvii. 1-8; Lev.
+xvii. 2-8; 2 Chron. xvi. 13, 16. "Maachah, the mother of Asa the
+king, he removed from being queen, because she had made an idol in
+a grove." Job xxxi. 26-28, herewith compare Exod. viii. 25, 26. Or
+whether the offences be against the third commandment, "And thou
+shalt speak unto the children of Israel, saying, Whosoever curseth
+God shall bear his sin: and he that blasphemeth the name of the
+Lord he shall surely be put to death, and all the congregation
+shall certainly stone him, as well the stranger as he that is born
+in the land, when he blasphemeth the name of the Lord shall be put
+to death," Lev. xxiv. 15, 16. Yea, the heathen king Nebuchadnezzar
+made a notable decree to this purpose, against blaspheming God,
+saying, "I make a decree, that every people, nation, and language,
+who speak any thing amiss against the God of Shadrach, Meshech, and
+Abednego, shall be cut in pieces, and their houses shall be made a
+dunghill," Dan. iii. 29: and the pagan magistrate, king Artaxerxes,
+made a more full decree against all contempt of the law of God:
+"And whosoever will not do the law of thy God," saith he to Ezra,
+"and the law of the king, let judgment be executed speedily upon
+him, whether it be unto death, or to banishment, or to confiscation
+of goods, or to imprisonment:" and Ezra blesses God for this, Ezra
+vii. 26, 27.</p>
+<p>Besides all this light of nature, and evidence of the Old
+Testament, for the ruler's political punitive power for offences
+against God, there are divers places in the New Testament showing
+that a civil punitive power rests still in the civil magistrate:
+witness those general expressions in those texts&mdash;Rom. xiii.
+3, 4: "Rulers are not a terror to good works, but to the evil. If
+thou do that which is evil, be afraid, for he beareth not the sword
+in vain: for he is the minister of God, a revenger <i>to
+execute</i> wrath upon him that doeth evil." 1 Pet. ii. 13, 14:
+"Submit yourselves unto every ordinance of man for the Lord's sake,
+whether it be to the king as to the supreme, or unto governors
+which are sent for the <i>punishment</i> of evil-doers,<a href=
+"#note-28"><small>28</small></a> and the praise of them that do
+well." Now, (as Mr. Burroughs<a href=
+"#note-29"><small>29</small></a> notes,) seeing the Scripture
+speaks thus generally, except the nature of the thing require, why
+should we distinguish where the Scripture doth not? so that these
+expressions may be extended to those sorts of evil-doing against
+the first as well as against the second table; against murdering of
+souls by heresy, as well as murdering of men's bodies with the
+sword; against the blaspheming of the God of heaven, as well as
+against blaspheming of kings and rulers, that are counted gods on
+earth. That place seems to have much force in it to this purpose,
+Heb. x. 28, 29: "He that despised Moses' law, died without mercy
+under two or three witnesses. Of how much sorer punishment, suppose
+ye, shall he be thought worthy who hath trodden under foot the Son
+of God, and hath counted the blood of the covenant, wherewith he
+was sanctified, an unholy thing, and hath done despite unto the
+Spirit of grace?" Yea, what deserve such as deny the Spirit to be
+of God? Papists exempt their clergy from the judgment of the civil
+power, though they be delinquents against it; and their states,
+both civil and spiritual, from civil taxes, tributes, and
+penalties, both which we deny to ours: for, 1st, This is repugnant
+to the law of nature, that church officers and members, as parts
+and members of the commonwealth, should not be subject to the
+government of that commonwealth whereof they are parts. 2d,
+Repugnant to the laws and practices of the Old Testament, under
+which we read of no such exemptions. Yea, we have instance of
+Abiathar the high-priest, who, for his partnership with Adonijah in
+his rebellion, was exiled by king Solomon, and so consequently
+deprived of the exercise of his office, 1 Kings ii. 26, 27. 3d,
+Inconsistent with our Saviour's example, who, as subject to the
+law, held himself obliged to pay tribute to avoid offence, (Matt.
+xvii. 26,) which was an active scandal; and he confesses Pilate's
+power to condemn or release him was <i>given him from above</i>,
+John xix. 11. 4th, And finally, contrary to the apostolical
+precepts, <i>enjoining all to be subject to superior powers</i>,
+Rom. xiii. 1-4; 1 Pet. ii. 13-15.</p>
+<p>Now, all the former power that is granted, or may be granted to
+the magistrate about religion, is only cumulative and objective, as
+divines used to express it; thus understand them:&mdash;</p>
+<p>Cumulative, not privative; adding to, not detracting from any
+liberties or privileges granted her from Christ. The heathen
+magistrate may be a <i>nurse-father</i>, Isa. xlix. 23; 1 Tim. ii.
+2, may not be a <i>step-father</i>: may protect the Church,
+religion, &amp;c., and order many things in a political way about
+religion; may not extirpate or persecute the Church; may help her
+in reformation; may not hinder her in reforming herself, convening
+synods in herself, as in Acts xv., &amp;c., if he will not help her
+therein; otherwise her condition were better without than with a
+magistrate. The Christian magistrate much less ought to hinder her
+therein, otherwise her state were worse under the Christian than
+under the pagan magistrate.</p>
+<p>Objective or objectively ecclesiastical, as being exercised
+about objects ecclesiastical, but politically, not
+ecclesiastically. His proper power is <i>about</i>, not <i>in</i>
+religious matters. He may politically, outwardly exercise his power
+about objects or matters spiritual; but not spiritually, inwardly,
+formally act any power in the Church. He may act in church affairs
+as did Asa, Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah; not as did Corah, Saul,
+Uzzah, or Uzziah. He is an overseer of things without, not of
+things within. And in a word, his whole power about church offices
+and religion is merely, properly, and formally civil or
+political.<a href="#note-30"><small>30</small></a></p>
+<p>Nor is this only our private judgment, or the opinion of some
+few particular persons touching the granting or bounding of the
+magistrate's power about matters of religion; but with us we have
+the suffrage of many reformed churches, who, in their Confessions
+of Faith published to the world, do fully and clearly express
+themselves to the same effect.</p>
+<p>The Helvetian church thus: Since every magistrate is of God, it
+is (unless he would exercise tyranny) his chief duty, all blasphemy
+being repressed, to defend and provide for religion, and to execute
+this to his utmost strength, as the prophet teacheth out of the
+word; in which respect the pure and free preaching of God's word, a
+right, diligent, and well-instituted discipline of youth, citizens
+and scholars; a just and liberal maintenance of the ministers of
+the church, and a solicitous care of the poor, (whereunto all
+ecclesiastical means belong,) have the first place. After this,
+&amp;c.</p>
+<p>The French churches thus: He also therefore committed the sword
+into the magistrates' hands, that they might repress faults
+committed not only against the second table, but also against the
+first; therefore we affirm, that their laws and statutes ought to
+be obeyed, tribute to be paid, and other burdens to be borne, the
+yoke of subjection voluntarily to be undergone, yea, though the
+magistrates should be infidels, so long as the supreme government
+of God remains perfect and untouched, Matt. xxiv.; Acts iv. 17, and
+v. 19; Jude verse 8.</p>
+<p>The church of Scotland thus: Moreover we affirm, that the
+purging and conserving of religion is the first and most especial
+duty of kings, princes, governors, and magistrates. So that they
+are ordained of God not only for civil polity, but also for the
+conservation of true religion, and that all idolatry and
+superstition may be suppressed: as is evident in David,
+Jehoshaphat, Josiah, Hezekiah, and others, adorned with high
+praises for their singular zeal.</p>
+<p>The Belgic church thus: Therefore he hath armed the magistrates
+with a sword, that they may punish the bad and defend the good.
+Furthermore, it is their duty not only to be solicitous about
+preserving of civil polity, but also to give diligence that the
+sacred ministry may be preserved, all idolatry and adulterate
+worship of God may be taken out of the way, the kingdom of
+antichrist may be pulled down, but Christ's kingdom propagated.
+Finally, it is their part to take course, that the holy word of the
+gospel be preached on every side, that all may freely and purely
+serve and worship God according to the prescript of his word. And
+all men, of whatsoever dignity, condition, or state they be, ought
+to be subject to lawful magistrates, to pay them tribute and
+subsidies, to obey them in all things which are not repugnant to
+the word of God; to pour out prayers for them, that God would
+vouchsafe to direct them in all their actions, <i>and that we may
+under them lead a quiet and peaceable life in all godliness and
+honesty</i>. Wherefore we detest the Anabaptists and all turbulent
+men who cast off superior dominions and magistrates, pervert laws
+and judgments, make all goods common, and finally abolish or
+confound all orders and degrees which God hath constituted for
+honesty's sake among men.</p>
+<p>The church in Bohemia thus: They teach also that it is commanded
+in the word of God that <i>all should be subject to the higher
+powers</i> in all things, yet in those things only which are not
+repugnant to God and his word. But as touching those things which
+concern men's souls, faith, and salvation, they teach that men
+should hearken only to God's word, &amp;c., his ministers, as
+Christ himself saith, <i>Render to C&aelig;sar the things that are
+C&aelig;sar's, and to God those things that are God's.</i> But if any
+would compel them to those things which are against God, and fight
+and strive against his word, which abideth forever; they teach them
+to make use of the apostle's example, who thus answered the
+magistrate at Jerusalem: <i>It is meet</i> (say they) <i>to obey
+God rather than men</i>.</p>
+<p>Finally, the church in Saxony hath expressed herself notably in
+this point, saying, among many other passages, God will have all
+men, yea, even unregenerate men, to be ruled and restrained by
+political government. And in this government the wisdom, justice,
+and goodness of God to mankind do shine forth. His wisdom, order
+declares, which is the difference of virtues and vices, and the
+consociation of men by lawful governments and contracts ordained in
+wonderful wisdom. God's justice also is seen in political
+government, who will have manifest wickednesses to be punished by
+magistrates; and when they that rule punish not the guilty, God
+himself wonderfully draws them to punishment, and regularly
+punishes heinous faults with heinous penalties in this life, as it
+is said, <i>He that takes the sword shall perish by the sword</i>;
+and, <i>Whoremongers and adulterers God will judge</i>. God will
+have in these punishments the difference of vices and virtues to be
+seen; and will have us learn that God is wise, just, true, chaste.
+God's goodness also to mankind is beheld, because by this means he
+preserves the society of men, and therefore he preserves it that
+thence the Church may be gathered, and will have polities to be the
+Church's inns. Of these divine and immoveable laws, which are
+testimonies of God, and the chief rule of manners, the magistrate
+is to be keeper in punishing all that violate them. For the voice
+of the law, without punishment and execution, is of small avail to
+bridle and restrain men; therefore it is said by Paul, <i>The power
+should be a terror to evil works, and an honor to the good.</i> And
+antiquity rightly said, <i>The magistrate is the keeper of the law,
+both of the first and second table,</i> so far as appertains to
+<i>good order</i>. And though many in their governments neglect the
+glory of God, yet this ought to be their chief care, to hear and
+embrace the true doctrine touching the Son of God, and to foster
+the churches, as the psalm saith, <i>And now understand, ye kings,
+and be instructed, ye judges of the earth.</i> Again, <i>Open your
+gates, ye princes</i>, i.e., Open your empires to the gospel, and
+afford harbor to the Son of God. And Isa. xlix.: <i>And kings shall
+be thy nursing-fathers, and queens</i>, i.e., commonwealths,
+<i>shall be thy nursing-mothers</i>, i.e., of the Church, they
+shall afford lodgings to churches and pious studies. And kings and
+princes themselves shall be members of the Church, and shall
+rightly understand doctrine, shall not help those that establish
+false doctrine, and exercise unjust cruelty, but shall be mindful
+of this saying, "I will glorify them that glorify me." And Daniel
+exhorteth the king of Babylon unto the acknowledgment of God's
+wrath, and to clemency towards the exiled Church, when he saith,
+"Break off thy sins by righteousness, and thine iniquities by
+showing mercy to the poor." And since they are among the chief
+members of the Church, they should see that judgment be rightly
+exercised in the Church, as Constantine, Theodosius, Arcadius,
+Marcianus, Charles the Great, and many pious kings, took care that
+the judgments of the Church should be rightly exercised,
+&amp;c.</p>
+<p>Thus those of the presbyterian judgment are willing to give to
+C&aelig;sar those things that are C&aelig;sar's, even about matters of
+religion, that the magistrate may see, it is far from their
+intention in the least degree to intrench upon his just power, by
+asserting the spiritual power, which Christ hath seated in his
+church officers, distinct from the magistratical power: but as for
+them of the independent judgment, and their adherents, they divest
+the magistrate of such power.<a href=
+"#note-31"><small>31</small></a></p>
+<a name="H_SECTI-II"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION II.</h3>
+<p>II. Some power on the other hand touching religion and church
+affairs, is utterly denied to the civil magistrate, as no way
+belonging to him at all by virtue of his office of magistracy. Take
+it thus:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ, our Mediator, now under the New Testament, hath
+committed no spiritual power at all, magisterial or ministerial,
+properly, internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical, nor
+any exercise thereof, for the government of his Church, to the
+political magistrate, heathen or Christian, as the subject or
+receptacle thereof by virtue of his magistratical office.</p>
+<p>For explication hereof briefly thus: 1. What is meant by
+spiritual power, magisterial and ministerial, is laid down in the
+general nature of the government, Chap. III. And, That all
+magisterial lordly power over the Church, belongs peculiarly and
+only to Jesus Christ our Mediator, Lord of all, is proved, Chap. V.
+Consequently, the civil magistrate can challenge no such power,
+without usurpation upon Christ's prerogative. We hence condemn the
+Pope as Antichrist, while he claims to be Christ's vicar-general
+over Christ's visible Church on earth. So that all the question
+here will be about the ministerial power, whether any such belong
+to the civil magistrate. 2. What is meant by power, properly,
+internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical? Thus conceive:
+These several terms are purposely used, the more clearly and fully
+to distinguish power purely ecclesiastical, which is denied to the
+magistrate, from power purely political about ecclesiastical
+objects, which is granted to him; which is called ecclesiastical,
+not properly, but improperly; not internally, but externally; not
+formally, but only objectively, as conversant about ecclesiastical
+objects. Nor hath he any such ecclesiastical power in him
+virtually, i.e. so as to convey and give it to any other under him.
+He may grant and protect the public exercise of that power within
+his dominions; but designation of particular persons to the office
+and power, is from the Church; the donation of the office and power
+only from Christ himself. So that magistracy doth not formally nor
+virtually comprehend in it ecclesiastical power for church
+government; for a magistrate, as a magistrate, hath no inward
+ecclesiastical power at all belonging to him.</p>
+<p>For confirmation of this proposition, consider these ensuing
+arguments.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 1st. The keys of the kingdom of heaven were never
+given by Christ to the civil magistrate, as such: therefore he
+cannot be the proper subject of church government as a magistrate.
+We may thus reason:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. No power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven was
+ever given by Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But all formal power of church government is at
+least part of the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no formal power of church
+government was ever given by Christ to the civil magistrate, as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p>The major proposition is evident.</p>
+<p>1. Because when Christ gave the keys of the kingdom of heaven,
+he makes no mention at all of the civil magistrate directly or
+indirectly, expressly or implicitly, as the recipient subject
+thereof. Compare Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, John ii. 21-23, with
+Matt. xxvii. 18-20. 2. Because, in Christ's giving the keys of the
+kingdom of heaven, he makes express mention of church
+officers,<a href="#note-32"><small>32</small></a> which are really
+and essentially different from the civil magistrate, viz. of Peter,
+in name of all the rest, Matt. xvi. 18, 19, and of the rest of the
+apostles as the receptacle of the keys with him, Matt. xviii. 18,
+all the disciples save Thomas being together, he gave them the same
+commission in other words, John xx. 20-24, and Matt. xxviii. 18-20.
+Now if Christ should have given the keys, or any power thereof to
+the magistrate, as a magistrate, he must consequently have given
+them only to the magistrate, and then how could he have given them
+to his apostles, being officers in the Church really distinct from
+the magistrate?</p>
+<p>3. Because Jesus Christ, in giving the keys of the kingdom, gave
+not any one sort, act, part, or piece of the keys severally, but
+the whole power of the keys, all the sorts and acts thereof
+jointly. Therefore it is said, <i>I give the keys of the
+kingdom</i>&mdash;and <i>whatsoever thou shalt
+bind&mdash;whatsoever thou shalt loose&mdash;whose soever sins ye
+remit&mdash;whose soever sins ye retain</i>&mdash;Matt. xvi. 19,
+John xx. 23. So that here is not only key, but keys given at once,
+viz. key of doctrine, and the key of discipline; or the key of
+order, and the key of jurisdiction; not only binding or retaining,
+but loosing or remitting of sins, viz. all acts together conferred
+in the keys. Now if Christ gave the keys to the magistrate, then he
+gave all the sorts of keys and all the acts thereof to him: if so,
+the magistrate may as well preach the word, and dispense the
+sacraments, &amp;c., (as Erastus would have him,) as dispense the
+censures, &amp;c., (for Christ joined all together in the same
+commission, and by what warrant are they disjoined?) and if so,
+what need of pastors, teachers, &amp;c.,, in the Church? Let the
+civil magistrate do all. It is true, the ruling elder (which was
+after added) is limited only to one of the keys, viz. the <i>key of
+discipline</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17; but this limitation is by the same
+authority that ordained his office.</p>
+<p>4. Because if Christ gave the keys to the civil magistrate as
+such, then to every magistrate, whether Jewish, heathenish, or
+Christian: but not to the Jewish magistrate; for the sceptre was to
+depart from him, and the Jewish polity to be dissolved, and even
+then was almost extinct. Not to the heathenish magistrate, for then
+those might be properly and formally church governors which were
+not church members; and if the heathen magistrate refused to govern
+the Church, (when there was no other magistrate on earth,) she must
+be utterly destitute of all government, which are grossly absurd.
+Nor, finally, to the Christian magistrate, for Christ gave the keys
+to officers then in being; but at that time no Christian magistrate
+was in being in the world. Therefore the keys were given by Christ
+to no civil magistrate, as such, at all.</p>
+<p>The minor, viz. But all formal power of church government is at
+least part of the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven is
+clear. If we take church government largely, as containing both
+doctrine, worship, and discipline, it is the whole power of the
+keys; if strictly, as restrained only to discipline, it is at least
+part of the power. For, 1st, Not only the power of order, but also
+the power of jurisdiction, is contained under the word keys;
+otherwise it should have been said key, not keys; church government
+therefore is at least part of the power of the keys. 2d, The word
+key, noting a stewardly power, as appears, Isa. xxii. 22, (as
+Erastians themselves will easily grant,) may as justly be extended
+in the nature of it to signify the ruling power by jurisdiction, as
+the teaching power by doctrine; in that the office of a steward in
+the household, who bears the keys, consists in governing, ordering,
+and ruling the household, as well as in feeding it, as that passage
+in Luke xii. 41-49, being well considered, doth very notably
+evidence. For, Christ applying his speech to his disciples, saith,
+"Who then is that faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall
+make ruler of his household?&mdash;he will make him ruler over all
+that he hath," &amp;c. 3d, Nothing in the text or context appears
+why we should limit keys and the acts thereof only to doctrine, and
+exclude discipline; and where the text restrains not, we are not to
+restrain. 4th, The most of sound interpreters extend the keys and
+the acts thereof as well to discipline as to doctrine; to matters
+of jurisdiction, as well as to matters of order. From all we may
+conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore no formal power of church government was ever given by
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 2d. There was full power of church government in
+the church when no magistrate was Christian, yea, when all
+magistrates were persecutors of the Church, so far from being her
+<i>nursing fathers</i>, that they were her <i>cruel butchers</i>;
+therefore the magistrate is not the proper subject of this power.
+Thus we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. No proper power of church government, which was
+fully exercised in the Church of Christ, before any magistrate
+became Christian, yea, when magistrates were persecutors of the
+Church, was derived from Christ to the magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But all proper power of church government was
+fully exercised in the Church before any magistrate became
+Christian, yea, when magistrates were cruel persecutors of the
+Church of Christ.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no proper power of church
+government was derived from Christ to the civil magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p>The <i>major</i> proposition must be granted. For, 1st, Either
+then the Church, in exercising such full power of church
+government, should have usurped that power which belonged not at
+all to her, but only to the magistrate; for what power belongs to a
+magistrate, as a magistrate, belongs to him only; but dare we think
+that the apostles, or the primitive purest apostolical churches did
+or durst exercise all their power of church government which they
+exercised, merely by usurpation without any right thereunto
+themselves? 2d, Or if the Church usurped not, &amp;c., but
+exercised the power which Christ gave her, let the magistrate show
+wherein Christ made void the Church's charter, retracted this
+power, and gave it unto him.</p>
+<p>The minor proposition cannot be denied. For,</p>
+<p>1st. It was about 300 years after Christ before any of the Roman
+emperors (who had subdued the whole world, Luke ii. 1, under their
+sole dominion) became Christian. For Constantine the Great was the
+first emperor that received the faith, procured peace to the
+Church, and gave her respite from her cruel persecutions, which was
+in Anno 309 (or thereabouts) after Christ; before which time the
+Church was miserably wasted and butchered with those ten bloody
+persecutions, by the tyranny of Nero, and other cruel emperors
+before Constantine.</p>
+<p>2d. Yet within the space of this first 309 or 311 years, all
+proper power of church government was fully exercised in the Church
+of Christ; not only the word preached, Acts iv. 2; 1 Tim. iii. 16;
+and sacraments dispensed, Acts xx. 7; 1 Cor. xi. 17, &amp;c.; Acts
+ii. 4, and viii. 12: but also <i>deacons</i> set apart for that
+office of <i>deaconship</i>, Acts vi.: <i>elders</i> ordained and
+sent forth, Acts xiii. 1-3, and xiv. 23; 1 Tim. iv.; Tit. i. 5:
+public <i>admonition in use</i>, Tit. iii. 10; 1 Tim. v. 20:
+<i>excommunication</i>, 1 Cor. v.; and 1 Tim. i. 20:
+<i>absolution</i> of the penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 6, 7, &amp;c.:
+synodical conventions and decrees, Acts xv. with xvi. 4. So that we
+may conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore no proper power of church government was derived from
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 3d. The magistratical power really, specifically,
+and essentially differs from the ecclesiastical power; therefore
+the civil magistrate, as a magistrate, cannot be the proper subject
+of this ecclesiastical power. Hence we may thus argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. No power essentially, specifically, and really
+differing from magistratical power, was ever given by Christ to the
+magistrate as a magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But all proper ecclesiastical power essentially,
+specifically, and really differs from the magistratical power.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no proper ecclesiastical power was
+ever given by Jesus Christ to the civil magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p>The major is evident: for how can the magistrate, as a
+magistrate, receive such a power as is really and essentially
+distinct and different from magistracy? Were not that to make the
+magistratical power both really the same with itself, and yet
+really and essentially different from itself? A flat
+contradiction.</p>
+<p>The minor may be clearly evinced many ways: as, 1st, From the
+real and formal distinction between the two societies, viz. the
+Church and commonwealth, wherein ecclesiastical and political power
+are peculiarly seated. 2d. From the co-ordination of the power
+ecclesiastical and political, in reference to one another. 3d. From
+the different causes of these two powers, viz. efficient, material,
+formal, and final; in all which they are truly distinguished from
+one another.</p>
+<p>1st. From the real and formal distinction between the two
+societies, viz. church and commonwealth: for, 1. The society of the
+Church is only Christ's, and not the civil magistrate's: it is his
+<i>house</i>, his <i>spouse</i>, his <i>body</i>, &amp;c., and
+Christ hath no vicar<a href="#note-33"><small>33</small></a> under
+him. 2. The officers ecclesiastical are Christ's officers, not the
+magistrate's, 1 Cor. iv. 1: <i>Christ gave</i> them, Eph. iv. 8,
+10, 11: <i>God set them in the Church</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28. 3. These
+ecclesiastical officers are both elected and ordained by the
+Church, without commission from the civil magistrate, by virtue of
+Christ's ordinance, and in his name. Thus the apostles appointed
+officers: <i>Whom we may appoint</i>, Acts vi. 3, 4. The power of
+ordination and mission is in the hands of Christ's officers;
+compare Acts xiv. 23; 1 Tim. iv. 14, with Acts xiii. 1-4: and this
+is confessed by the parliament to be an ordinance of Jesus Christ,
+in their ordinance for ordaining of preaching presbyters. 4. The
+Church, and the several presbyteries ecclesiastical, meet not as
+civil judicatories, for civil acts of government, as making civil
+statutes, inflicting civil punishments, &amp;c., but as spiritual
+assemblies, for spiritual acts of government and discipline: as
+preaching, baptizing, receiving the Lord's supper, prayer,
+admonition of the disorderly, &amp;c. 5. What gross absurdities
+would follow, should not these two societies, viz. church and
+commonwealth, be acknowledged to be really and essentially distinct
+from one another! For then, 1. There can be no commonwealth where
+there is not a Church; but this is contrary to all experience.
+Heathens have commonwealths, yet no Church. 2. Then there may be
+church officers elected where there is no church, seeing there are
+magistrates where there is no church. 3. Then those magistrates,
+where there is no church, are no magistrates; but that is repugnant
+to Scripture, which accounts heathen rulers the servants of God,
+Isa. xlv. 1; Jer. xxv. 9: and calls them kings, Exod. vi. 13; Isa.
+xxxi. 35. And further, if there be no magistrates where there is no
+church, then the church is the formal constituting cause of
+magistrates. 4. Then the commonwealth, as the commonwealth, is the
+church; and the church, as the church, is the commonwealth: then
+the church and the commonwealth are the same. 5. Then all that are
+members of the commonwealth are, on that account, because members
+of the commonwealth, members of the church. 6. Then the
+commonwealth, being formally the same with the church, is, as a
+commonwealth, the mystical body of Christ. 7. Then the officers of
+the church are the officers of the commonwealth; the power of the
+keys gives them right to the civil sword: and consequently, the
+ministers of the gospel, as ministers, are justices of the peace,
+judges, parliament-men, &amp;c., all which how absurd, let the
+world judge.</p>
+<p>2d. From the co-ordination of the power ecclesiastical and
+political, in reference to one another: (this being a received
+maxim, that subordinate powers are of the same kind; co-ordinate
+powers are of distinct kinds.) Now, that the power of the Church is
+co-ordinate with the civil power, may be evidenced as followeth: 1.
+The officers of Christ, as officers, are not directly and properly
+subordinate to the civil power, though in their persons they are
+subject thereto: the apostles and pastors may preach, and cast out
+of the church, against the will of the magistrate, and yet not
+truly offend magistracy; thus, in doing the duty they have
+immediately received from God, they must "obey God rather than
+men," Acts iv. 19, 20. And the apostles and pastors must exercise
+their office (having received a command from Christ) without
+attending to the command or consent of the civil magistrate for the
+same; <i>as in casting out the incestuous person</i>, 1 Cor. v. 5:
+telling the Church, Matt. xviii. 17: <i>rejecting a heretic</i>,
+Tit. iii. 10. And, 2. Those acts of power are not directly and
+formally subordinate to the magistrate, which he himself cannot do,
+or which belong not to him. Thus the kings of Israel could not burn
+incense: "It appertaineth not unto thee," 2 Chron. xxvi. 18, 19.
+Likewise, none have the power of the keys, but they to whom Christ
+saith, "Go ye into all the world and preach the gospel," Matt.
+xxviii. 19: but Christ spake not this to magistrates: so only those
+that are <i>sent</i>, Rom. x. 15, and those that are governors, are
+by Christ placed in the Church. 3. The officers of the Church can
+ecclesiastically censure the officers of the state, though not as
+such, as well as the officers of the state can punish civilly the
+officers of the Church, though not as such: the church guides may
+admonish, excommunicate, &amp;c., the officers of the state as
+members of the Church, and the officers of the state may punish the
+officers of the Church as the members of the state. 4. Those that
+are not sent of the magistrate as his deputies, they are not
+subordinate in their mission to his power, but the ministers are
+not sent as the magistrate's deputies, but are <i>set over the
+flock by the Holy Ghost</i>, Acts xx. 28: they are likewise the
+<i>ministry of Christ</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2: they are <i>over you in
+the Lord</i>, 1 Thess. v. 12: and in his name they exercise their
+jurisdiction, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5. 5. If the last appeal in matters
+purely ecclesiastical be not to the civil power, then there is no
+subordination; but the last appeal properly so taken is not to the
+magistrate. This appears from these considerations: 1. Nothing is
+appealable to the magistrate but what is under the power of the
+sword; but admonition, excommunication, &amp;c., are not under the
+power of the sword: they are neither matters of dominion nor
+coercion. 2. If it were so, then it follows that the having of the
+sword gives a man a power to the keys. 3. Then it follows that the
+officers of the kingdom of heaven are to be judged as such by the
+officers of the kingdom of this world as such, and then there is no
+difference between the things of C&aelig;sar and the things of God. 4.
+The church of Antioch sent to Jerusalem, Acts xv. 2, and the synod
+there, without the magistrate, came together, ver. 6; and
+determined the controversy, ver. 28, 29. And we read, "The spirits
+of the prophets are subject to the prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 32; not
+to the civil power as prophets. So we must seek knowledge at the
+priest's lips, not at the civil magistrate's, Mal. ii. 7. And we
+read, that the people came to the priests in hard controversies,
+but never that the priests went to the civil power, Deut. xvii.
+8-10. 5. It makes the magistrate Christ's vicar, and so Christ to
+have a visible head on earth, and so to be an ecclesiastico-civil
+pope, and consequently there should be as many visible heads of
+Christ's Church as there are magistrates. 6. These powers are both
+immediate; one from God the Father, as <i>Creator</i>, Rom. xiii.
+1, 2; the other from Jesus Christ, as <i>Mediator</i>, Matt.
+xxviii. 18. Now lay all these together, and there cannot be a
+subordination of powers; and therefore there must be a real
+distinction.</p>
+<p>3d. From the different causes of these two powers, viz.
+efficient, material, formal, and final; in all which they are truly
+distinguished from one another, as may plainly appear by this
+ensuing parallel:</p>
+<p>1. They differ in their efficient cause or author, whence they
+are derived. Magistratical power is from God, the Creator and
+Governor of the world, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 4; and so belongs to all
+mankind, heathen or Christian; ecclesiastical power is peculiarly
+from Jesus Christ our Mediator, Lord of the Church, (who hath all
+power given him, and the government of the Church laid upon his
+shoulder, as Eph. i. 22; Matt. xxviii. 18, compared with Isa. ix.
+16.) See Matt. vi. 19, and xviii. 18, and xxviii. 19, 20; John xx.
+21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8: and consequently belongs properly to the
+Church, and to them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 12, 13.
+Magistratical power in general is the ordinance of God, Rom. xiii.
+1, 2, 4; but magistratical power in particular, whether it should
+be monarchical in a king, aristocratical in states, democratical in
+the people, &amp;c., is of men, called, therefore, a human
+creature, or creation, 1 Pet. ii. 13; but ecclesiastical power, and
+officers in particular, as well as general, are from Christ, Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18-20; Tit. iii. 10; 1 Cor. v. 13; 2 Cor. ii.
+For officers, see Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28.</p>
+<p>2. They differ in their material cause; whether it be the matter
+of which they consist, in which they are seated, or about which
+they are exercised. 1. In respect of the matter of which they
+consist, they much differ. Ecclesiastical power consists of the
+keys of the kingdom of heaven, which are exercised in the preaching
+of the word, dispensing the sacraments, executing the censures,
+admonition, excommunication, absolution, ordination of presbyters,
+&amp;c.; but magistratical power consists in the secular sword,
+which puts forth itself in making statutes, inflicting fines,
+imprisonments, confiscations, banishments, torments, death. 2. In
+respect of the matter or object about which they are exercised,
+they much differ: for, the magistratical power is exercised
+politically, about persons and things without the Church, as well
+as within the church; but the ecclesiastical power is exercised
+only upon them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 13. The
+magistratical power in some cases of treason, &amp;c., banishes or
+otherwise punishes even penitent persons: ecclesiastical power
+punishes no penitent persons. The magistratical power punishes not
+all sorts of scandal, but some: the ecclesiastical power punishes
+(if rightly managed) all sorts of scandal.</p>
+<p>3. They differ in their formal cause, as doth clearly appear by
+their way or manner of acting: magistratical power takes cognizance
+of crimes, and passes sentence thereupon according to statutes and
+laws made by man: ecclesiastical power takes cognizance of, and
+passes judgment upon crimes according to the word of God, the Holy
+Scriptures. Magistratical power punishes merely with political
+punishments, as fines, imprisonments, &amp;c. Ecclesiastical merely
+with spiritual punishments, as church censures. Magistratical power
+makes all decrees and laws, and executes all authority, commanding
+or punishing only in its own name, in name of the supreme
+magistrate, as of the king, &amp;c., but ecclesiastical power is
+wholly exercised, not in the name of churches, or officers, but
+only in Christ's name, Matt, xxviii. 19; Acts iv. 17; 1 Cor. v. 4.
+The magistrate can delegate his power to another: church-governors
+cannot delegate their power to others, but must exercise it by
+themselves. The magistrate about ecclesiasticals hath power to
+command and compel politically the church officers to do their
+duty, as formerly was evidenced; but cannot discharge lawfully
+those duties themselves, but in attempting the same, procure divine
+wrath upon themselves: as Korah, Numb. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam.
+xiii. 9-15; King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16-22: but church-guides
+can properly discharge the duties of doctrine, worship, and
+discipline themselves, and ecclesiastically command and compel
+others to do their duty also.</p>
+<p>4. Lastly, They differ in their final cause or ends. The
+magistratical power levels at the temporal, corporal, external,
+political peace, tranquillity, order, and good of human society,
+and of all persons within his jurisdiction, &amp;c. The
+ecclesiastical power intends properly the spiritual good and
+edification of the Church and all the members thereof, Matt, xviii.
+15; 1 Cor. v. 5, &amp;c.; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.<a href=
+"#note-34"><small>34</small></a> May we not from all clearly
+conclude, Therefore no proper ecclesiastical power was ever given
+by Jesus Christ to the magistrate as a magistrate?</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 4th. The civil magistrate is no proper church
+officer, and therefore cannot be the proper subject of church
+power, Hence we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. All formal power of church government was derived
+from Jesus Christ to his own proper church officers only. To them
+he gave the <i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 28: to them he gave the <i>authority
+for edification of the church</i>, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: but
+this will after more fully appear in Chap. XI. following.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But no civil magistrate, as a magistrate, is any
+of Christ's proper church officers. For, 1. The civil magistrate is
+never reckoned up in the catalogue, list, or roll of Christ's
+church officers in Scripture, Eph. iv. 10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28,
+&amp;c.; Rom. xii. 6-8; if here, or anywhere else, let the
+magistrate or the Erastians show it. 2. A magistrate, as a
+magistrate, is not a church member, (much less a church governor;)
+for then all magistrates, heathen as well as Christian, should be
+church members and church officers, but this is contrary to the
+very nature of Christ's kingdom, which admits no heathen into
+it.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no formal power of church
+government was derived from Jesus Christ to the magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. 5th. The civil magistrate, as such, is not
+properly subordinate to Christ's mediatory kingdom; therefore is
+not the receptacle of church power from Christ. Hence thus:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever formal power of church government
+Christ committed to any, he committed it only to those that were
+properly subordinate to his mediatory kingdom. For whatsoever
+ecclesiastical ordinance, office, power, or authority, Christ gave
+to men, he gave it as Mediator and Head of the Church, by virtue of
+his mediatory office; and for the gathering, edifying, and
+perfecting of his mediatory kingdom, which is his Church, Eph. iv.
+7, 10-12. Therefore such as are not properly subordinate to Christ
+in this his office, and for this end, can have no formal church
+power from Christ.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But no magistrate, as a magistrate, is subordinate
+properly to Christ's mediatory kingdom. For, 1. Not Christ the
+Mediator, but God the Creator authorizeth the magistrate's office,
+Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 6. 2. Magistracy is never styled a ministry of
+Christ in Scripture, nor dispensed in his name. 3. Christ's kingdom
+is not of this world, John xviii. 36; the magistrate's is.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore no formal power of Church
+government is committed by Christ to the magistrate as a
+magistrate.</p>
+<p>6th. Finally, divers absurdities unavoidably follow upon the
+granting of a proper formal power of Church government to the civil
+magistrate: therefore he cannot be the proper subject of such
+power. Hence it may be thus argued:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. No grant of ecclesiastical power, which plainly
+introduceth many absurdities, can be allowed to the political
+magistrate, as the proper subject thereof. For though in matters of
+religion there be many things mysterious, sublime, and above the
+reach of reason; yet there is nothing to be found that is absurd,
+irrational, &amp;c.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But to grant to the political magistrate, as a
+magistrate, a proper formal power of church government, introduceth
+plainly many absurdities, e.g.: 1. This brings confusion betwixt
+the office of the magistracy and ministry. 2. Confounds the church
+and commonwealth together. 3. Church government may be monarchical
+in one man; and so, not only prelatical but papal; and
+consequently, antichristian. Which absurdities, with many others,
+were formerly intimated, and neither by religion nor reason can be
+endured. We conclude:</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the grant of a proper formal power
+of church government cannot be allowed to the political magistrate
+as the proper subject thereof, because he is a magistrate.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0017"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER X.</h2>
+<h3><i>That the community of the faithful, or body of the people,
+are not the immediate subject of the power of Church
+government.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus we see, that Jesus Christ our Mediator did not commit any
+proper formal ecclesiastical power for church government to the
+political magistrate, as such, as the Erastians conceive. Now, in
+the next place (to come more close) let us consider that Jesus
+Christ our Mediator hath not committed the spiritual power of
+church government to the body of the people, presbyterated, or
+unpresbyterated (to use their own terms) as the first subject
+thereof, according to the opinion of the Separatists or
+Independents. Take it in this proposition:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not committed the proper formal
+power or authority spiritual, for government of his Church,<a href=
+"#note-35"><small>35</small></a> unto the community of the
+faithful, whole church, or body of the people, as the proper
+immediate receptacle, or first subject thereof.</p>
+<a name="H_SECTII-I"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION I.</h3>
+<p>Some things herein need a little explanation, before we come to
+the confirmation.</p>
+<p>1. By <i>fraternity, community of the faithful, whole church or
+body of the people</i>, understand a particular company of people,
+meeting together in one assembly or single congregation, to partake
+of Christ's ordinances. This single congregation may be considered
+as presbyterated, i.e., furnished with an eldership; or as
+unpresbyterated, i.e., destitute of an eldership, having yet no
+elders or officers erected among them. Rigid Brownists or
+Separatists say, that the fraternity or community of the faithful
+unpresbyterated is the first receptacle of proper ecclesiastical
+power from Christ: unto whom some of independent judgment
+subscribe. Independents thus resolve: First, That the apostles of
+Christ are the first subject of apostolical power. Secondly, That a
+particular congregation of saints, professing the faith, taken
+indefinitely for any church, (one as well as another,) is the first
+subject of all church offices with all their spiritual gifts and
+power. Thirdly, That when the church of a particular congregation
+walketh together in the truth and peace, the brethren of the church
+are the first subjects of church liberty; the elders thereof of
+church authority; and both of them together are the first subject
+of all church power.<a href="#note-36"><small>36</small></a> Which
+assertions of Brownists and Independents (except the first) are
+denied by them of presbyterian judgment, as being obvious to divers
+material and just exceptions.<a href=
+"#note-37"><small>37</small></a>:</p>
+<p>2. By <i>proper formal power or authority spiritual, for
+church</i> <i>government</i>, thus conceive. To omit what hath been
+already laid down about the natures and sorts of spiritual power
+and authority, (part 2, chap. III. and VI.,) which are to be
+remembered, here it may be further observed, that there is a proper
+public, official, authoritative power, though but stewardly and
+ministerial, which is derived from Jesus Christ to his church
+officers, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21-23; Matt,
+xxviii. 18-20; of which power the apostle speaking, saith, "If I
+should somewhat boast of our power which the Lord hath given us to
+edification," 2 Cor. x. 8; so 2 Cor. xiii. 10. The people are
+indeed allowed certain liberties or privileges; as, <i>To try the
+spirits</i>, &amp;c., 1 John iv. 1. To prove all doctrines by the
+word, 1 Thess. v. 21. To nominate and elect their own church
+officers, as their deacons, which they did, Acts vi. 3, 5, 6; but
+this is not a proper power of the keys. But the proper, public,
+official, authoritative power, is quite denied to the body of the
+people, furnished with an eldership or destitute thereof.</p>
+<p>3. By <i>proper immediate receptacle, or first subject of
+power</i>, understand, that subject, seat, or receptacle of power,
+which first and immediately received this power from Jesus Christ;
+and consequently was intrusted and authorized by him, to put forth
+and exercise that power in his Church for the government thereof.
+And here two things must be carefully remembered: 1. That we
+distinguish betwixt the object and subject of this power. The
+object for which, for whose good and benefit all this power is
+given, is primarily the general visible Church, Ephes. iv. 7,
+10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom. xii. 5,6, &amp;c. Secondarily,
+particular churches, as they are parts and members of the general.
+But the subject receiving to which the power is derived, is not the
+Church general or particular, but the officers or governors of the
+Church. 2. That we distinguish also betwixt the donation of the
+power, and the designation of particular persons to offices
+ecclesiastical. This designation of persons to the offices of key
+bearing or ruling may be done first and immediately by the Church,
+in nominating or electing her individual officers which is allowed
+to her; yet is no proper authoritative act of power. But the
+donation of the power itself is not from the Church as the
+fountain, but immediately from Christ himself, 2 Cor. xi. 8, and
+xiii. 10. Nor is it to the Church as the subject, but immediately
+to the individual church officers themselves, who consequently, in
+all the exercise of their power, act as the <i>ministers and
+stewards of Christ</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1, putting forth their power
+immediately received from Christ, not as the substitutes or
+delegates of the Church putting forth her power, which from Christ
+she mediately conveys to them, as Independents do imagine, but by
+us is utterly denied.</p>
+<a name="H_SECTII-II"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION II.</h3>
+<p>For confirmation of this proposition thus explained and stated;
+consider these few arguments:</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. I. The community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, have no authentic commission or grant of proper spiritual
+power for church government; and therefore they cannot possibly be
+the first subject or the proper immediate receptacle of such power
+from Christ. We may thus argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whomsoever Jesus Christ hath made the immediate
+receptacle or first subject of proper formal power for governing of
+his Church, to them this power is conveyed by some authentic grant
+or commission.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, have not this power conveyed unto them by any authentic
+grant or commission.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not
+made the community of the faithful, or body of the people, the
+immediate receptacle or first subject of proper formal power for
+governing of his Church.</p>
+<p>The major proposition is evident in itself: For, 1. The power of
+church government in this or that subject is not natural, but
+positive; and cast upon man, not by natural, but by positive law,
+positive grant: men are not bred, but made the first subject of
+such power; therefore all such power claimed or exercised, without
+such positive grant, is merely without any due title, imaginary,
+usurped, unwarrantable, in very fact null and void. 2. All power of
+church government is radically and fundamentally in Christ, Isa.
+ix. 6; Matt, xxviii. 18; John v. 22. And how shall any part of it
+be derived from Christ to man, but by some fit intervening mean
+betwixt Christ and man? And what mean of conveyance betwixt Christ
+and man can suffice, if it do not amount to an authentic grant or
+commission for such power? 3. This is evidently Christ's way to
+confer power by authentic commission immediately upon his church
+officers, the apostles and their successors, to the world's end.
+"Thou art Peter; and I give to thee the keys of the kingdom of
+heaven," &amp;c., Matt. xvi. 18, 19. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on
+earth," &amp;c., Matt, xviii. 19, 20. "As my Father sent me, so
+send I you; go, disciple ye all nations; whose sins ye remit, they
+are remitted&mdash;and lo, I am with you always to the end of the
+world," John xx. 21, 23; Matt, xxviii. 19, 20. "Our power, which
+the Lord hath given us for edification," 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10:
+so that we may conclude them that have such commission to be the
+first subject and immediate receptacle of power from Christ, as
+will after more fully appear. 4. If no such commission be needful
+to distinguish those that have such power from those that have
+none, why may not all without exception, young and old, wise and
+foolish, men and women, Christian and heathen, &amp;c., equally lay
+claim to this power of church government? If not, what hinders? If
+so, how absurd!</p>
+<p>The minor proposition, viz: But the community of the faithful,
+or body of the people, have not this power conveyed to them by any
+authentic grant or commission, is firm. For whence had they it?
+When was it given to them? What is the power committed to them? Or
+in what sense is such power committed to them?</p>
+<p>1. Whence had they it? <i>From heaven or of men?</i> If from
+men, then it is a human ordinance and invention; <i>a plant which
+the heavenly Father hath not planted</i>; and therefore <i>shall he
+plucked up</i>. Matt. xv. 13. If from heaven, then from Christ; for
+<i>all power is given to him</i>, Matt, xxviii. 18, &amp;c.; Isa.
+ix. 6. If it be derived from Christ, then it is derived from him by
+some positive law of Christ as his grant or charter. A positive
+grant of such power to select persons, viz. church officers, the
+Scripture mentions, as was evidenced in the proof of the major
+proposition. But touching any such grant or commission to the
+community of the faithful, the Scripture is silent. And let those
+that are for the popular power produce, if they can, any clear
+scripture that expressly, or by infallible consequence, contains
+any such commission.</p>
+<p>2. When was any such power committed by Christ to the multitude
+of the faithful, either in the first planting and beginning of the
+Church, or in the after establishment and growth of the Church
+under the apostles' ministry? Not the first; for then the apostles
+themselves should have derived their power from the community of
+the faithful: now this is palpably inconsistent with the
+Scriptures, Which tell us that the apostles had both their
+apostleship itself, and their qualifications with gifts and graces
+for it, yea, and the very designation of all their particular
+persons unto that calling, all of them immediately from Christ
+himself. For the first, see Gal. i. 1: "Paul, an apostle, not of
+men, nor by man, but by Jesus Christ," Matt, xxviii. 18-20. For the
+second, see John xx. 22, 23: "And when he had said this, he
+breathed on them, and saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost;
+whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them," &amp;c.
+For the third, see Luke vi. 13, &amp;c.: "And when it was day he
+called to him his disciples: and of them he chose twelve, whom also
+he named apostles; Simon&mdash;" Matt. x. 5-7, &amp;c.: "These
+twelve Jesus sent forth, and commanded them, saying." And after his
+resurrection he enlarges their commission, Mark xvi. 15, 16: "Go ye
+into all the world;" and, "As my Father hath sent me, so send I
+you," John xx. 21. See also how the Lord cast the lot upon
+Matthias, Acts i. 24-26. Nor the second; for if such power be
+committed to the community of the faithful after the apostles had
+established the churches, then let those that so think show where
+Christ committed this power first to the apostles, and after to the
+community of the faithful, and by them or with them to their
+ordinary officers, for execution thereof. But no such thing hath
+any foundation in Scripture; for the ordinary Church guides, though
+they may have a designation to their office by the church, yet they
+have the donation, or derivation of their office and its authority
+only from Christ: their office is from Christ, Ephes. iv. 8, 11; 1
+Cor. xii. 28; Acts xx. 28, 29. Their power from Christ, Matt. xvi.
+19, and xxviii. 18, 19; John xx. 21, 23. "Our power which the Lord
+hath given us," 2 Cor. viii. 10. They are <i>Christ's ministers,
+stewards, ambassadors</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1; 2 Cor. v. 19, 20. They are
+to act and officiate <i>in his name</i>, Matt, xviii. 19; 1 Cor. v.
+4, 5; and to Christ they <i>must give an account</i>. Heb. xiii.
+17, 18; Luke xii. 41, 42. Now if the ordinary officers have (as
+well as the apostles their apostleship) their offices of pastor,
+teacher, &amp;c., from Christ, and are therein the successors of
+the apostles to continue to the world's end, (Matt, xxviii. 18-20,)
+then they have their power and authority in their offices
+immediately from Christ, as the first receptacles thereof
+themselves, and not from the Church as the first receptacle of it
+herself. A successor hath jurisdiction from him from whom the
+predecessor had his; otherwise he doth not truly succeed him.
+Consequently the Church or community of the faithful cannot
+possibly be the first receptacle of the power of church government
+from Christ.</p>
+<p>3. What power is it that is committed to the body of the Church
+or multitude of the faithful? Either it must be the power of order,
+or the power of jurisdiction. But neither of these is allowed to
+the multitude of the faithful by the Scriptures, (but appointed and
+appropriated to select persons.) Not the power of order; for the
+whole multitude, and everyone therein, neither can nor ought to
+intermeddle with any branches of that power. 1. Not with preaching;
+all are not <i>apt to teach</i>, 1 Tim. iii. 2, nor able to exhort
+and convince gainsayers, Tit. i. 9; all are not gifted and duly
+qualified. Some are expressly prohibited <i>speaking in the
+church</i>, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, 1 Tim. ii. 12, Rev. ii. 20, and
+none are <i>to preach, unless they be sent</i>, Rom. x. 15, nor
+<i>to take such honor unto themselves unless they be called</i>,
+&amp;c., Heb. v. 4, 5. Are all and every one of the multitude of
+the faithful able to teach, exhort, and convince? are they all sent
+to preach? are they all called of God? &amp;c. Nay, hath not Christ
+laid this task of authoritative preaching only upon his own
+officers? Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. 2. Not with administration of the
+sacraments; this and preaching are by one and the same commission
+given to officers only, Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi. 23. 3. Nor
+to ordain presbyters, or other officers. They may choose; but
+extraordinary officers, or the presbytery of ordinary officers,
+ordain. Acts vi. 3, 5, 6: "Look ye out men&mdash;whom we may
+appoint." Compare also Acts xiv. 23; 1 Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22; Tit.
+iii. 5. So that the people's bare election and approbation is no
+sufficient Scripture ordination of officers. Nor is there one often
+thousand among the people that is in all points able to try and
+judge of the sufficiency of preaching presbyters, for tongues,
+arts, and soundness of judgment in divinity. Nor is the power of
+jurisdiction in public admonition, excommunication, and absolution,
+&amp;c., allowed to the multitude. For all and every one of the
+multitude of the faithful, 1. Never had any such power given to
+them from Christ; this key as well as the key of knowledge being
+given to the officers of the Church only, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii.
+18-20. <i>Tell the church</i>, there, must needs be meant of the
+ruling church only.<a href="#note-38"><small>38</small></a> 2 Cor.
+viii. 10; John xx. 21-23. 2. Never acted or executed any such
+power, that we can find in Scripture. As for that which is
+primarily urged of the church of Corinth, that the whole church did
+excommunicate the <i>incestuous person</i>, 1 Cor. v. 4, &amp;c.,
+many things may be answered to evince the contrary. 1st, The whole
+multitude could not do it; for children could not judge, and women
+must not speak in the Church. 2d, It is not said, <i>Sufficient to
+such an one is the rebuke inflicted of all</i>; but <i>of many</i>,
+2 Cor. ii. 6, viz. of the presbytery, which consisted of many
+officers. 3d, The church of Corinth, wherein this censure was
+inflicted, was not a congregational, but a presbyterial church,
+having divers particular congregations in it, (as is hereafter
+cleared in Chap. XXIII.,) and therefore the whole multitude of the
+church of Corinth could not meet together in one place for this
+censure, but only the presbytery of that great church. Again, never
+did the whole multitude receive from Christ due gifts and
+qualifications for the exercise of church government and
+jurisdiction; nor any promise from Christ to be with them therein,
+as officers have, Matt, xxviii. 18-20. And the absurdities of such
+popular government are intolerable, as after will appear.</p>
+<p>4. Finally, in what sense can it be imagined that any such power
+should be committed from Christ to the community of the faithful,
+the whole body of the Church? For this power is given them equally
+with the church-guides, or unequally. If equally, then,.1. The
+church-guides have power and authority, as primarily and
+immediately committed to them, as the Church herself hath; and then
+they need not derive or borrow any power from the body of the
+faithful, having a power equal to theirs. 2. How vainly is that
+power equally given as to the officers, so to the whole multitude,
+when the whole multitude have no equal gifts and abilities to
+execute the same! If unequally, then this power is derived to the
+church-guides, either more or less than to the multitude of the
+faithful. If less, then how improperly were all those names of rule
+and government imposed upon officers, which nowhere are given by
+Scripture to the multitude! as <i>Pastors</i>, Eph. iv. 8, 11.
+<i>Elders</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17. <i>Overseers</i>, Acts xx. 28.
+<i>Guides</i>, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22. In this last verse they are
+contradistinguished from the saints; church-guides, and saints
+guided, make up a visible organical church. <i>Rulers in the
+Lord</i>, 1 Thes. v. 12; Rom. xii. 8: and <i>well-ruling
+Elders</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17. <i>Governments</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28.
+<i>Stewards</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1,2; Luke xii. 42, &amp;c. And all
+these titles have power and rule engraven in their very foreheads;
+and they of right belonged rather to the multitude than to the
+officers, if the officers derive their power from the multitude of
+the people. If more, then church-guides, having more power than the
+Church, need not derive any from the Church, being themselves
+better furnished.</p>
+<p>Thus, what way soever we look, it cannot be evinced, that the
+multitude and body of the people, with or without eldership, are
+the first subject of power, or have any authoritative public
+official power at all, from any grant, mandate, or commission of
+Christ. From all which we may strongly conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not made the community
+of the faithful, or body of the people, the immediate receptacle,
+or first subject of proper formal power for governing of his
+church.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. As the multitude of the faithful have no
+authentic grant or commission of such power of the keys in the
+Church; so they have no divine warrant for the actual execution of
+the power of the said keys therein: and therefore cannot be the
+first receptacle of the power of the keys from Christ. For thus we
+may reason:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whosoever are the first subject, or immediate
+receptacle of the power of the keys from Christ, they have divine
+warrant actually to exercise and put in execution the said power.
+<i>Minor</i>. But the multitude or community of the faithful have
+no divine warrant actually to exercise and put in execution the
+power of the keys.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the community of the faithful are
+not the first subject, or immediate receptacle of the power of the
+keys from Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p>The major proposition must necessarily be yielded. For, 1. The
+power of the keys contains both authority and exercise; power being
+given to that end that it may be exercised for the benefit of the
+Church. It is called the <i>power given us for edification</i>, 2
+Cor. viii. 10. Where there is no exercise of power there can be no
+edification by power. 2. Both the authority and complete exercise
+of all that authority, were at once and together communicated from
+Christ to the receptacle of power. "I give unto thee the keys of
+the kingdom of heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth,"
+&amp;c., Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "As my Father sent me, so
+send I you&mdash;whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted,"
+John xx. 21, 23. Here is both power and the exercise thereof joined
+together in the same commission. Yea, so individual and inseparable
+are power and exercise, that under exercise, power and authority is
+derived: as, "Go, disciple ye all nations, baptizing them,"
+&amp;c., Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3. How vain, idle, impertinent, and
+ridiculous is it to fancy and dream of such a power as shall never
+be drawn into act by them that have it!</p>
+<p>The minor proposition, viz. But the multitude or communion of
+the faithful have no divine warrant, actually to exercise and put
+in execution the power of the keys, is clear also:</p>
+<p>1. By reason: for, the actual execution of this power belongs to
+them by divine warrant, either when they have church officers, or
+when they want church officers. Not while they have officers; for,
+that were to slight Christ's officers: that were to take officers'
+work out of their hands by them that are no officers, and when
+there were no urgent necessity; contrary whereunto, see the proofs,
+Chap. XI. Section 2, that were to prejudice the church, in
+depriving her of the greater gifts, and undoubtedly authorized
+labors of her officers, &amp;c. Not when they want officers in a
+constituted church: as in case where there are three or four
+elders, the pastor dies, two of the ruling elders fall sick, or the
+like; in such cases the community cannot by divine warrant supply
+the defects of these officers themselves, by exercising their
+power, or executing their offices. For where doth Scripture allow
+such power to the community in such cases? What one church without
+its eldership can be instanced in the New Testament, that in such
+cases once presumed to exercise such power, which might be
+precedent or example for it to other churches? How needless are
+church officers, if the multitude of the faithful may, as members
+of the church, take up their office, and actually discharge it in
+all the parts of it?</p>
+<p>2. By induction of particulars, it is evident, that the
+community cannot execute the power of the keys by any divine
+warrant. 1. <i>They may not preach</i>: for, "how shall they
+preach, except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15; but the community cannot
+he sent, many of them being incapable of the office, either by
+reason of their <i>sex</i>, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35; 1 Tim. ii. 11, 12:
+or by reason of their <i>age</i>; as children, and all or most of
+them by reason of their deficiency in gifts and in scripture
+qualifications, Tit. i. and 1 Tim. iii. For not one member of a
+thousand is so completely furnished, as to be "apt to teach, able
+to convince gainsayers, and to divide the word of truth aright."
+Besides, they may not send themselves, were they capable, for,
+<i>no man takes this honor to himself</i>&mdash;Yea, <i>Jesus
+Christ himself did not glorify himself to be made an
+high-priest</i>&mdash;Heb. v. 4, 5. Now only officers are sent to
+preach, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 19, 20; Mark xvi. 15. 2. They may
+not administer the seals, the sacraments, baptize, &amp;c. under
+the New Testament; for who gave the people any such authority? hath
+not Christ conjoined preaching and dispensing of the sacraments in
+the same commission, that the same persons only that do the one,
+may do the other? Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3. They may not ordain
+officers in the church, and authoritatively send them abroad: for,
+ordinarily the community have not sufficient qualifications and
+abilities for proving and examining of men's gifts for the
+ministry. The community are nowhere commanded or allowed so to do
+in the whole New Testament, but other persons distinct from them, 1
+Tim. v. 22; 2 Tim. ii. 2; Tit. i. 5, &amp;c. Nor did the community
+ever exercise or assume to themselves any such power of ordination
+or mission, but only officers both in the first sending of men to
+preach, as 1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6: and to be deacons, Acts vi.
+6, and also in after missions, as Acts xiii. 1-3. 4. The community,
+without officers, may not exercise any act of jurisdiction
+authoritatively and properly; may not admonish, excommunicate, or
+absolve. For we have no precept that they should do it; we have no
+example in all the New Testament that they ever did do it; we have
+both precept and example, that select officers both did and ought
+to do it. "Whatsoever ye bind on earth" (saith Christ to his
+officers) "shall be bound in heaven," &amp;c. Matt. xviii. 18, and
+xvi. 19. "Whose soever sins ye remit," &amp;c., John xx. 21, 23.
+"An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject," Tit. i. 10.
+"I have decreed&mdash;to deliver such an one to Satan," 1 Cor. v.
+4. "The rebuke inflicted by many," not all, 2 Cor. ii. "Whom I have
+delivered to Satan," 1 Tim. i. <i>ult</i>. And the Scriptures
+nowhere set the community over themselves to be their own
+church-guides and governors; but appoint over them in the Lord
+rulers and officers distinct from the community. Compare these
+places, 1 Thes. v. 12; Acts xx. 28, 29; Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22.
+"Salute all them that have the rule over you, and all the saints."
+From the premises we conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first
+subject, or immediate receptacle of the power of the keys from
+Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. III. Jesus Christ hath not given nor promised to
+the community of the faithful a spirit of ministry, nor those gifts
+which are necessary for the government of the church: therefore the
+community was never intended to be the first subject of church
+government.</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whomsoever Christ makes the first subject of the
+power of church government, to them he promises and gives a spirit
+of ministry, and gifts necessary for that government. For, 1. As
+there is diversity of ecclesiastical administrations (which is the
+foundation of diversity of officers) and diversity of miraculous
+operations, and both for the profit of the Church; so there is
+conveyed from the Spirit of Christ diversity of gifts, free
+endowments, enabling and qualifying for the actual discharge of
+those administrations and operations. See 1 Cor. xii. 4-7, &amp;c.
+2. What instance can be given throughout the whole New Testament of
+any persons, whom Christ made the receptacle of church government,
+but withal he gifted them, and made his promises to them, to
+qualify them for such government? As the apostles and their
+successors: "As my Father sent me, even so send I you. And when he
+had said this, he breathed on them, and saith unto them, Receive ye
+the Holy Ghost: whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto
+them; and whose soever sins ye retain, they are retained," John xx.
+21-23. And, "Go ye therefore, and disciple ye all nations,
+&amp;c.&mdash;And lo, I am with you alway," (or every day,) "even
+to the end of the world," Matt. xxviii. 19, 20. 3. Christ being the
+<i>wisdom of the Father</i>, Col. ii. 3, John i. 18, and
+<i>faithful as was Moses in all his house</i>; yea, <i>more
+faithful</i>&mdash;<i>Moses as a servant</i> over another's, he
+<i>as a son over his own house</i>, Heb. iii. 2, 5, 6&mdash;it
+cannot stand with his most exact wisdom and fidelity, to commit the
+grand affairs of church government to such as are not duly gifted,
+and sufficiently qualified by himself for the due discharge
+thereof.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But Christ neither promises, nor gives a spirit of
+ministry, nor necessary gifts for church government to the
+community of the faithful. For, 1. The Scriptures teach, that gifts
+for ministry and government are promised and bestowed not on all,
+but upon some particular persons only in the visible body of
+Christ. "To one is given by the Spirit the word of wisdom, to
+another the word of knowledge," &amp;c., not to all, 1 Cor. xii. 8,
+9, &amp;c. "If a man know not how to rule his own house, how shall
+he take care of the church of God?" 1 Tim. iii. 5. The hypothesis
+insinuates that all men have not gifts and skill rightly to rule
+their own houses, much less to govern the church. 2. Experience
+tells us, that the multitude of the people are generally destitute
+of such knowledge, wisdom, prudence, learning, and other necessary
+qualifications for the right carrying on of church government.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Christ makes not the community of
+the faithful the first subject of the power of church
+government.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. IV. The community of the faithful are nowhere in
+the word called or acknowledged to be church governors: therefore
+they are not the first subject of church government.</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Those persons, who are the first subject and
+receptacle of proper power for church government from Christ, are
+in the word called and acknowledged to be church governors. This is
+evident, 1. By Scripture, which is wont to give to them whom Christ
+intrusts with his government, such names and titles as have rule,
+authority, and government engraven upon them: as <i>overseers</i>,
+Acts xx. 28; <i>governments</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28; <i>rulers</i>, 1
+Tim. v. 17, and Rom. xii. 8; with divers others, as after will
+appear in Chap. XI. 2. By reason, which tells us that government
+and governors are relative terms; and therefore to whom government
+belongs, to them also the denominations of governors, rulers,
+&amp;c., do belong, and not contrariwise.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the community of the faithful are nowhere in
+the word either called or acknowledged to be church governors. This
+is clear. For, 1. No titles or names are given them by Scripture
+which imply any rule or government in the visible Church of Christ.
+2. They are plainly set in opposition against, and distinction
+from, church governors: they are called the <i>flock</i>; these,
+<i>overseers</i> set over them by the Holy Ghost, Acts xx. 28:
+they, <i>the saints</i>; these <i>their rulers</i>, Heb. xiii. 22:
+these are <i>over them in the Lord</i>; and consequently they are
+<i>under them in the Lord</i>, 1 Thes. v. 12. 3. The community of
+the faithful are so far from being the subject of church government
+themselves, that they are expressly charged by the word of Christ
+to <i>know, honor, obey</i>, and <i>submit</i>, to other governors
+set over them, and distinct from themselves. "Know them who are
+over you in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12. "Let the well-ruling elders
+be counted worthy of double honor; especially," &amp;c., 1 Tim. v.
+17. "Obey ye your rulers, and submit, for they watch for your
+souls," Heb. xiii. 17.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the community of the faithful are
+not the first subject and receptacle of proper power for church
+government.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. V. This opinion of making the body of the Church,
+or community of the faithful, the first subject and immediate
+receptacle of the keys for the government of the Church, doth
+inevitably bring along with it many intolerable absurdities.
+Therefore it is not to be granted. Thus we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. That doctrine or opinion which draws after it
+unavoidably divers intolerable absurdities, is an unsound and
+unwarrantable opinion.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole
+community or body of the Church to be the first subject and
+immediate receptacle of the keys, draws after it unavoidable divers
+intolerable absurdities.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore this doctrine or opinion that makes
+the whole community or body of the Church to be the first subject,
+and immediate receptacle of the keys, is an unsound and
+unwarrantable opinion.</p>
+<p>The <i>Major</i> is plain. For, 1. Though matters of religion be
+above reason, yet are they not unreasonable, absurd, and directly
+contrary to right reason. 2. The Scriptures condemn it as a great
+brand upon men, that they are absurd or unreasonable; "Brethren,
+pray for us&mdash;that we may be delivered from absurd and evil
+men," 2 Thes. iii. 2; and therefore if absurd men be so culpable,
+absurdity, and unreasonableness itself, which make them such, are
+much more culpable.</p>
+<p>The <i>Minor</i>, viz. But this doctrine or opinion that makes
+the whole community or body of the Church to be the first subject
+and immediate receptacle of the keys, draws after it unavoidably
+divers intolerable absurdities, will notably appear by an induction
+of particulars.</p>
+<p>1. Hereby a clear foundation is laid for the rigid Brownist's
+confused democracy, and abhorred anarchy. For, if the whole body of
+the people be the first receptacle of the keys, then all church
+government and every act thereof is in the whole body, and every
+member of that body a governor, consequently every member of that
+body an officer. But this is absurd; for if all be officers, where
+is the organical body? and if all be governors, where are the
+governed? if all be eyes, where are the feet? and if there be none
+governed, where is the government? it is wholly resolved at last
+into mere democratical anarchy and confusion, "but God is not the
+author of confusion," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. What an absurdity were it, if
+in the body natural <i>all were an eye</i>, or <i>hand</i>! for
+<i>where</i> then <i>were the hearing, smelling</i>, &amp;c.; <i>or
+if all were one member, where were the body</i>? 1 Cor. xii. 17,19.
+So if in the family all were masters, where were the household?
+where were the family government? If in a city all were aldermen,
+where were the citizens? where were the city government? If in a
+kingdom all were kings, where were the subjects, the people, the
+commonalty, the commonwealth, or the political government?</p>
+<p>2. Hereby the community or whole body of the faithful, even to
+the meanest member, are vested from Christ with full power and
+authority actually to discharge and execute all acts of order and
+jurisdiction without exception: e.g. To preach the word
+authoritatively, dispense the sacraments, ordain their officers,
+admonish offenders, excommunicate the obstinate and incorrigible,
+and absolve the penitent. For <i>the keys of the kingdom of
+heaven</i> comprehend all these acts jointly, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18-20, with John xx. 21, 23: and to whom Christ in the New
+Testament gives power to execute one of these acts, to them he
+gives power to execute all; they are joined together, Matt, xviii.
+19, (except in such cases where himself gives a limitation of the
+power, as in the case of the ruling elder, who is limited to ruling
+as contradistinct to <i>laboring in the word and doctrine</i>, 1
+Tim. v. 17.) Now what gross absurdities ensue hereupon! For, 1.
+Then the weak as well as the strong, the ignorant as well as the
+intelligent, the children as well as the parents, yea, and the very
+women as well as the men, may preach, dispense seals, ordain,
+admonish, excommunicate, absolve authoritatively; (for they are all
+equally members of the body, one as well as another, and therefore,
+as such, have all alike equal share in the keys and exercise
+thereof:) viz. they that are not gifted for these offices, shall
+discharge these offices; they that are not called nor sent of God
+to officiate, (for God sends not all,) shall yet officiate in the
+name of Christ without calling or sending, contrary to Rom. x.,
+Heb. v. 4. They that want the common use of reason and discretion
+(as children) shall have power to join in the highest acts of order
+and jurisdiction: yea, they that are expressly prohibited
+<i>speaking in the churches</i>, as the <i>women</i>, 1 Cor. xiv.,
+1 Tim. ii., shall yet have the <i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>
+hung at their girdles. 2. Then the Church shall be the steward of
+Christ, and dispenser of the mysteries of God authoritatively and
+properly. But if the whole Church be the dispenser of the mysteries
+of God, what shall be the object of this dispensation? Not the
+Church, for according to this opinion she is the first subject
+dispensing; therefore it must be something distinct from the
+Church, unto which the Church dispenseth; what shall this be? shall
+it be another collateral church? then particular churches
+collateral may take pastoral care one of another reciprocally, and
+the same churches be both over and under one another; or shall it
+be those that are without all churches? then the ordinances of the
+gospel, and the dispensation of them, were not principally bestowed
+upon the Church and body of Christ for the good thereof, (which is
+directly repugnant to the Scriptures, Eph. iv. 8, 11-13;) but
+rather for them that are without. How shall the men, who maintain
+the principle's of the Independents, clearly help themselves out of
+these perplexing absurdities?</p>
+<p>3. Hereby the body of the people (as Mr. Bayly well observes in
+his Dissuasive, chap. ix. page 187) will be extremely unfitted for,
+and unwarrantably taken off from the several duties that lie upon
+them in point of conscience to discharge in their general and
+particular callings, in spiritual and secular matters, on the
+Lord's days and on their own days. For, if the ecclesiastical power
+be in all the people, then all the people are judges, and at least
+have a negative voice in all church matters. They cannot judge in
+any cause prudently and conscientiously, till they have complete
+knowledge and information of both the substantials and
+circumstantials of all those cases that are brought before them;
+they must not judge blindly, or by an implicit faith, &amp;c., but
+by their own light. For all the people to have such full
+information and knowledge of every cause, cannot but take up
+abundance of time, (many of the people being slow of understanding
+and extremely disposed to puzzle, distract, and confound one
+another in any business to be transacted in common by them all.) If
+these matters of discipline be managed by them on the sabbath day
+after the dispatch of other public ordinances, ministry of the
+word, prayer, sacraments, &amp;c., what time can remain for family
+duties privately, as repeating sermons, and meditating upon the
+word, searching the Scriptures, whether things preached be so
+indeed, reading the Scriptures, catechizing their children and
+servants, &amp;c.? and how will the life of religion in families,
+yea, and in churches also, languish, if these family exercises be
+not conscientiously upheld? If they be managed on the week days,
+how can all the people spare so much time, as still to be present,
+when perhaps many of them have much ado all the week long to
+provide food and raiment, and other necessaries for their families?
+and "if any provide not for his own, and specially for those of his
+own house, he hath denied the faith, and is worse than an infidel,"
+1 Tim. v. 8. Let the case of the church of Arnheim<a href=
+"#note-39"><small>39</small></a> witness the mischief and absurdity
+of this popular government once for all.</p>
+<p>4. Hereby, finally, the community of the faithful (being
+accounted the proper subject of the power of the keys) have
+authority and power not only to elect, but also to ordain their own
+officers, their pastors and teachers. And this they of the
+independent judgment plainly confess in these words:<a href=
+"#note-40"><small>40</small></a> Though the office of a pastor in
+general be immediately from Christ, and the authority from him
+also, yet the application of this office, and of this authority to
+this elect person, is by the church; and therefore the church hath
+sufficient and just warrant, as to elect and call a presbyter unto
+an office, so to ordain him to it by imposition of hands. They that
+have power to elect a king, have power also to depute some in their
+name to set the crown upon his head. But for the whole church or
+community to ordain presbyters by imposition of hands, is very
+absurd. For, 1. Their women and children, being members of the
+church and of the community, may join in ordaining presbyters by
+imposing of hands, and have as great an influence in appointing
+them that shall actually impose hands, as the rest of the church
+members have, being as properly members as they. 2. Then the
+community, that generally are unable to judge of the fitness and
+sufficiency of presbyters for the pastoral office, in point of
+necessary gifts of learning, &amp;c., shall, without judicious
+satisfaction herein by previous examination, ordain men
+notwithstanding to the highest ordinary office in the church. How
+ignorantly, how doubtfully, how irregularly, how unwarrantably, let
+the reader judge. 3. Then the community of the faithful may assume
+to themselves power to execute this ordinary act of ordination of
+officers, without all precept of Christ or his apostles, and
+without all warrant of the apostolical churches. But how absurd
+these things be, each moderate capacity may conceive. Further
+absurdities hereupon are declared by Mr. Bain,<a href=
+"#note-41"><small>41</small></a> and after him by Mr. Ball.<a href=
+"#note-42"><small>42</small></a></p>
+<p>Whence we may justly conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore this doctrine or opinion, that makes the whole
+community or body of the church to be the first subject and
+immediate receptacle of the keys, is an unsound and unwarrantable
+opinion.</p>
+<p>The middle-way men, (that profess to go between the
+authoritative presbyterial, and the rigid Brownistical way,) seeing
+these and such like absurdities, upon which the Brownists
+inevitably dash themselves, think to salve all by their new-coined
+distinction of the keys; viz. 1. There is a key of faith or
+knowledge,
+Luke xi. 52. The first subject of this key is every believer,
+whether joined to any particular church or not. 2. There is a key
+of order, Col. ii. 5, which is either, 1. A key of interest, power,
+or liberty, Gal. v. 13, which key is of a more large nature; 2. A
+key of rule and authority, which is of more strict nature, Matt.
+xvi. 19, John xx. 23. Hence, upon this distinction premised, they
+thus infer, 1. A particular congregation of saints is the first
+subject of all the church offices with all their spiritual gifts
+and power, 1 Cor. iii. 22. 2. The apostles of Christ were the first
+subject of apostolical power. 3. The brethren of a particular
+congregation are the first subjects of church liberty. 4. The
+elders of a particular church are the first subjects of church
+authority. 5. Both the elders and brethren, walking and joining
+together in truth and peace, are the first subjects of all church
+power needful to be exercised in their own body.</p>
+<p><i>Answer</i>. A rotten foundation, and a tottering
+superstruction, which tumbles down upon the builders' own heads:
+for,</p>
+<p>1. This distribution of the keys is infirm in divers respects:
+e.g. 1. In that the key of knowledge (as it stands here
+distinguished from the key of order, comprehending the key of power
+and authority) is left utterly devoid of all power. Now no key of
+the kingdom of heaven is to be left without all power, Independents
+themselves being judges. 2. In that the key of power is left as
+utterly void of all authority, (being contradistinguished from the
+key of authority,) as the key of knowledge is left void of power.
+Now, power and authority, in matters of government, seem to be both
+one; and the word in the original signifies the one as well as the
+other. 3. The key of liberty or interest is a new key, lately
+forged by some new locksmiths in Separation-shop, to be a pick-lock
+of the power of church officers, and to open the door for popular
+government; no ordinance of Christ, but a mere human invention, (as
+will after appear upon examination of that scripture upon which it
+is grounded,) and therefore this limb of the distribution is
+redundant, a superfluous excrescence. 4. The texts of Scripture
+upon which this distribution of the keys is grounded, are divers of
+them abused, or at least grossly mistaken; for, Luke xi. 52, key of
+knowledge is interpreted only the key of saving faith. But
+knowledge, in strict speaking, is one thing, and faith another;
+there may be knowledge where there is no faith; and knowledge, in a
+sort, is a key to faith, as the inlet thereof. And the key of
+knowledge, viz. true doctrine and pure preaching of the word, is a
+distinct thing from knowledge itself. This key the lawyers had
+taken away by not interpreting, or misinterpreting of the law; but
+they could not take away the people's faith, or knowledge itself.
+Touching Col. ii. 5, 6, <i>your order</i>, it will be hard to prove
+this was only or chiefly intended of the keys delivered to Peter:
+doth it not rather denote the people's moral orderly walking,
+according to the rule of faith and life, as in other duties, so in
+submitting themselves to Christ's order of government, as is
+elsewhere required, Heb. xiii. 17? And as for Gal. v. 13, produced
+to prove the key of liberty, <i>Brethren, you have been called unto
+liberty</i>, there is too much liberty taken in wresting this text;
+for the apostle here speaks not of liberty as a church power, of
+choosing officers, joining in censures, &amp;c., but as a gospel
+privilege, consisting in freedom from the ceremonial law, that yoke
+of bondage, which false teachers would have imposed upon them,
+after Christ had broken it off; as will further appear, if you
+please with this text to compare Gal. v. 1, 11, 15, 10, and well
+consider the current of the whole context.</p>
+<p>2. The inferences upon this distribution of the keys premised,
+are very strange and untheological. For it may be accepted in
+general, that it is a groundless fancy to make several first
+subjects of the keys, according to the several distributions of the
+keys; for, had all the members of the distribution been good, yet
+this inference thereupon is naught, inasmuch as the Scripture tells
+us plainly, that all the keys together and at once were promised to
+Peter, Matt. xvi. 19, and given to the apostles, Matt, xviii. 18,
+19, with xxviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21-23; so that originally the
+apostles and their successors were the only first subject and
+immediate receptacle of all the keys from Christ. And though since,
+for assistance and case of the pastor, they are divided into more
+hands&mdash;viz. of the ruling elder, Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28;
+1 Tim. v. 17&mdash;yet originally the subject was but one. Further,
+here is just ground for many particular exceptions: as, 1. That
+every believer, whether joined to any particular church or not, is
+made the first subject of the key of knowledge, which seems to be
+extremely absurd: for then every particular believer, gifted or
+ungifted, strong or weak, man, woman, or child, hath power to
+preach, (taking the key of knowledge here for the key of doctrine,
+as it ought to be taken, or else it is no ecclesiastical key at
+all,) which is one of the highest offices, and which the great
+apostle said, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2 Cor. ii. 16.
+How unscriptural and irrational this is, all may judge. Then also
+some of the keys may be committed to such as are without the
+Church. Then finally, it is possible to be a believer, and yet in
+no visible church; (for Independents hold there is no church but a
+particular congregation, which is their only church:) but a man is
+no sooner a true believer, but he is a member of the invisible
+Church: he is no sooner a professed believer, but he is a member of
+the general visible Church, though he be joined to no particular
+congregation. 2. That a particular congregation of saints is made
+the first subject of all the church offices, with all their
+spiritual gifts and power, 1 Cor. iii. 22. But is the word subject
+used here properly, for the first subject recipient of all church
+offices, with all their gifts and power? Then the congregation of
+saints are either officers themselves formally, and can execute the
+function of all sorts of officers, and have all gifts to that end;
+what need then is there of any select officers? for they can make
+officers virtually, and furnish those officers with gifts and power
+to that end; but who gave them any such authority? Or what
+apostolical church ever assumed to themselves any such thing?
+Officers, not churches, are the first subject of such gifts and
+power. Is the word subject here used improperly, for object, whose
+good all offices with their gifts and power are given? Then not any
+particular congregation, but the whole general visible Church is
+the object for which all offices and officers with their gifts and
+power are primarily given, 1 Cor. xii. 28; Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12. As
+for that place, 1 Cor. iii. 22, "All is yours," &amp;c., it points
+not out the particular privilege of any one single congregation,
+(nor was the church of Corinth such, but presbyterial, see chap.
+XIII.,) but the general privilege of all true saints, and of the
+invisible mystical Church: for were Paul and Cephas apostles given
+peculiarly to the church of Corinth only? Or was the <i>world,
+life, death, things present and to come</i>, given to the wicked in
+the church of Corinth? 3. That the apostles are made the first
+subject of all apostolical power. But then, how doth this
+contradict the former assertion, that a particular congregation is
+the first subject of all offices with their gifts and power? Are
+there two first subjects of the same adjuncts? Or is apostleship no
+office? Are apostolical gifts no gifts, or power no power? or have
+apostles all from the Church? Doubtless apostles were before all
+Christian churches, and had the keys given them before the churches
+had their being. 4. That the brethren of a particular congregation
+are made the first subjects of church liberty. But, if that liberty
+be power and authority, then this evidently contradicts the former,
+that a particular congregation is the first subject of all offices
+and power; for brethren here are distinct from elders, and both do
+but make up a particular congregation. If liberty here be not
+power, then it is none of Christ's keys, but a new forged
+pick-lock. 5. That the elders of a particular church are made the
+first subject of church authority; but then here is a contradiction
+to the former position, that made the particular congregation the
+first subject of all power. And though apostles and elders be the
+first subject of authority, yet, when the keys were first committed
+to them, they were not in relation to any particular church, but to
+the general. 6. Finally, that both elders and brethren, walking and
+joining together in truth and peace, are the first subjects of all
+church power, is liable also to exception. For this joins the
+brethren (who indeed have no authoritative power at all) with the
+elders, as the joint subject of all power. And this but allowed to
+them walking and joining together in truth and peace: but what if
+the major part of the Church prove heretical, and so walk not in
+truth; or schismatical, and so walk not in peace, shall the elders
+and the non-offending party lose all their power? Where then shall
+that independent church find healing? for appeals to presbyteries
+and synods are counted apocryphal by them. But enough hath been
+said to detect the vanity of these new dreams and notions; it is a
+bad sore that must be wrapped in so many clouts.<a href=
+"#note-43"><small>43</small></a></p>
+<a name="2HCH0018"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XI.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the proper Receptacle, or immediate subject of the Power
+of Church Government: affirmatively, what it is, viz. Christ's own
+Officers.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus the proper receptacle or subject of ecclesiastical power
+hath been considered negatively, what it is not, viz: not the
+political magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or
+body of the people, with or without their eldership. Now this
+receptacle of power comes to be evidenced affirmatively, what it
+is, viz. (according to the express words of the description of
+government,) Christ's own officers. This is the last branch of the
+description, the divine right whereof remains to be cleared; which
+may most satisfactorily be done by evidencing these three things,
+viz: 1. That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath certain peculiar church
+guides and officers which he hath erected in his Church. 2. That
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath especially intrusted his own
+officers with the government of his Church. 3. How, or in what
+sense the ruling officers are intrusted with this government,
+severally or jointly?</p>
+
+<h3>SECTION I.</h3>
+<p>1. <i>Of the Divine Right of Christ's Church Officers, viz.
+Pastors and Teachers, with Ruling Elders.</i></p>
+<p>Touching the first, that Christ hath certain peculiar church
+guides and officers, which he hath erected in his Church. Take it
+thus:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath ordained and set in his Church
+(besides the apostles and other extraordinary officers that are now
+ceased) pastors and teachers, as also ruling elders, as the subject
+of the keys for all ordinary ecclesiastical administrations. The
+divine right of these ordinary church officers may appear as
+followeth:</p>
+<p>I. Pastors and teachers are the ordinance of Jesus Christ. This
+is generally granted on all sides; and therefore these few
+particulars may suffice for the demonstration of it, viz:</p>
+<p>1. They are enumerated in the list or catalogue of those church
+officers which are of divine institution. "God hath set" (or put,
+constituted) "some in the Church, first, apostles; secondarily,
+prophets; thirdly, teachers," 1 Cor. xii. 28. These are some of the
+triumphant gifts and trophies of Christ's ascension: "Ascending up
+on high, he led captivity captive, and gave gifts to men: and he
+gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some evangelists, and
+some pastors and teachers," Eph. iv. 8, 11. Thus in that exact roll
+of ordinary officers: "Having, therefore, gifts different according
+to the grace given unto us; whether prophecy, let us prophesy
+according to the proportion of faith; or ministry, let us wait on
+our ministry;" (here is the general distribution of all ordinary
+officers under two heads, <i>prophecy</i> and <i>ministry</i>:) "or
+he that teacheth, on teaching; or he that exhorteth, on
+exhortation," (here is the teacher and the pastor, that come under
+the first head of prophecy,) Rom. xii. 6-8. "Take heed to
+yourselves, and to all the flock, over which the Holy Ghost hath
+made" (or set) "you overseers," Acts xx. 28. Note&mdash;God hath
+set in the Church; Christ hath given for his body; the Holy Ghost
+hath made overseers over the flock, these pastors and teachers: and
+are not pastors and teachers church officers by divine right,
+having the authority of God, Christ, and of the Holy Ghost?</p>
+<p>2. They are to be thus and thus qualified according to divine
+direction. The qualifications of these pastors and teachers,
+(called presbyters and overseers,) see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, "An
+overseer," or bishop, "must be blameless," &amp;c.; and Tit. i.
+5-10, "To ordain presbyters," or elders, "in every city&mdash;If
+any be blameless," &amp;c. Now, where God lays down qualifications
+for pastors and teachers, there he approves such officers to be his
+own ordinance.</p>
+<p>3. They have manifold church employments committed to them from
+Christ, as ministers of Christ and stewards of the mysteries of
+God, (1 Cor. iv. 1, 2,) they being intrusted in whole or in part
+with the managing of most if not all the ordinances forementioned
+in part 2, chap. VII., as there by the texts alleged is evident.
+Matters of order and special office are committed to them only
+<i>divisim</i>: matters of jurisdiction are committed to them with
+ruling elders <i>conjunctim</i>. If Christ hath intrusted them thus
+with church ordinances, and the dispensing of them, sure they are
+Christ's church officers.</p>
+<p>4. The very names and titles given them in Scripture proclaim
+them to be Christ's own ordinance; among many take these:
+"Ministers of Christ," 1 Cor. iv. 1; "Stewards of the mysteries of
+God," 1 Cor. iv. 1; "Ambassadors for Christ," 2 Cor. v. 20;
+"Laborers thrust forth into his harvest by the Lord of the
+harvest," Matt. ix. 38; "Ruling over you in the Lord,"<a href=
+"#note-44"><small>44</small></a> 1 Thess. v. 12.</p>
+<p>5. The Lord Christ charges their flock and people with many
+duties to be performed to their pastors and teachers, because of
+their office; as to know them, love them, obey them, submit unto
+them, honor them, maintain them, &amp;c., which he would not do
+were they not his own ordinance. "But we beseech you, brethren, to
+know them that labor among you, and rule over you in the Lord, and
+esteem them very highly in love for their work's sake," 1 Thess. v.
+12, 13. "Obey your rulers, and submit; for they watch for your
+souls as those that must give an account," Heb. xiii. 17. "The
+elders that rule well count worthy of double honor; especially them
+that labor in the word and doctrine; <i>for the Scripture
+saith</i>, Thou shalt not muzzle the mouth of the ox that treadeth
+out the corn, and the laborer is worthy of his hire," 1 Tim. v. 17,
+18; compared With 1 Cor. ix. 6-15. "Let him that is catechized,
+communicate to him that catechizeth him in all good things," Gal.
+vi. 6-8.</p>
+<p>Thus much for the present may suffice to have been spoken
+touching the divine right of pastors and teachers, the ordinary
+standing ministers of Christ under the New Testament. But forasmuch
+as we observe that in these days some rigid Erastians and Seekers
+oppose and deny the very office of the ministry now under the
+gospel, and others profess that the ministry of the church of
+England is false and antichristian; we intend, (by God's
+assistance,) as soon as we can rid our hands from other pressing
+employments, to endeavor the asserting and vindicating of the
+divine right of the ministers of the New Testament in general, and
+of the truth of the ministry of the church of England in
+particular.</p>
+<p>II. Ruling elders, distinct from all preaching elders and
+deacons, are a divine ordinance in the Church of God now under the
+New Testament.</p>
+<p>The divine right of this church officer, the mere ruling elder,
+is much questioned and doubted by some, because they find not the
+Scriptures speaking so fully and clearly of the ruling elder as of
+the preaching elder and of the deacon. By others it is flatly
+denied and opposed, as by divers that adhere too tenaciously to the
+Erastian and prelatical principles: who yet are willing to account
+the assistance of the ruling elder in matter of church government
+to be a very prudential way. But if mere prudence be counted once a
+sufficient foundation for a distinct kind of church officer, we
+shall open a door for invention of church officers at pleasure;
+then welcome commissioners and committee men, &amp;c.; yea, then
+let us return to the vomit, and resume prelates, deans,
+archdeacons, chancellors, officials, &amp;c., for church officers.
+And where shall we stop? who but Christ Jesus himself can establish
+new officers in his church? Is it not the fruit of his ascension,
+&amp;c.? Eph. iv. 7, 11, 12. Certainly if the Scriptures lay not
+before us grounds more than prudential for the ruling elder, it
+were better never to have mere ruling elders in the church. Both
+the Presbyterians and Independents<a href=
+"#note-45"><small>45</small></a> acknowledge the divine right of
+the ruling elder. For satisfaction of doubting unprejudiced minds,
+(to omit divers considerations that might be produced,) the divine
+right of the ruling elder may be evinced by these ensuing
+arguments.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. I. The first argument for the divine right of the
+ruling elder in the Church of Christ, shall be drawn from Rom. xii.
+6-8: "Having, then, gifts differing according to the grace that is
+given to us, whether prophecy, let us prophesy according to the
+proportion of faith; or ministry, <i>let us wait</i> on our
+ministering; or he that teacheth, on teaching; or he that
+exhorteth, on exhortation; he that giveth, <i>let him do it</i>
+with simplicity; he that ruleth, with diligence," &amp;c. Let the
+scope and context of this chapter be a little viewed, and it will
+make way for the more clear arguing from this place. Briefly thus:
+The apostle having finished the principal part of his epistle,
+which was problematical, wherein he disputed&mdash;1. About
+justification, chap, i.-vi.; 2. Sanctification, chap. vi. 7, 8;
+and, 3. Predestination, chap. ix. 10, 11, he comes to the next
+branch, which is more practical, about good works, chap. xii.-xvi.
+This twelfth chapter is wholly in the way of exhortation, and he
+herein exhorts to divers duties. 1. More generally that we should
+even consecrate ourselves wholly to the service of God, ver. 1;
+that we should not conform to the world, ver. 2. More specially he
+descends to particular duties, which are of two sorts, viz: 1. Such
+as concern ecclesiastical officers as officers, ver. 3-9; 2. Such
+as concern all Christians in common as Christians, both towards one
+another and towards their very enemies, verse 9, to the end of the
+chapter. Touching ecclesiastical officers, the apostle's evident
+scope is to urge them not to be proud of their spiritual gifts,
+(which in those days abounded,) but to think soberly,
+self-denyingly of themselves, and to use all their gifts well. This
+he presseth upon them, 1. From the nature of the Church, which is
+as a natural organical body, wherein are many members, having their
+several offices for the good of the whole body; so the members of
+Christ's body being many, have their several gifts and offices for
+the good of the whole, that the superior should not despise the
+inferior, nor the inferior envy their superior, ver. 3-5. 2. From
+the distribution or enumeration of the several kinds of ordinary
+standing officers in this organical body, the Church, who are
+severally exhorted duly to discharge those duties that are
+specially required of them in their several functions, ver. 6-8.
+These officers are reduced first to two general heads, viz:
+Prophecy (understand not the extraordinary gift of foretelling
+future things, &amp;c., but the ordinary, in the right
+understanding and interpreting of Scripture) and ministry; and the
+general duties thereof are annexed, ver. 6, 7. Then these generals
+are subdivided into the special offices contained under them, the
+special duty of every officer being severally pressed upon them.
+Under prophecy are contained, 1. <i>He that teacheth</i>, i.e., the
+doctor or teacher; 2. <i>He that exhorteth</i>, i.e., the pastor,
+ver. 7, 8. Under ministry are comprised, 1. <i>He that giveth</i>,
+i.e., the deacon; 2. <i>He that ruleth</i>, i.e., the ruling elder.
+The current of our best interpreters to this effect resolve this
+context. So that here we have a very excellent and perfect
+enumeration of all the ordinary standing officers in the Church of
+Christ distinctly laid down. This premised, the argument for the
+divine right of the ruling elder may be thus propounded:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever members of Christ's organical body have
+an ordinary office of ruling therein given them of God, distinct
+from all other ordinary standing officers in the church, together
+with directions from God how they are to rule; they are the ruling
+elders we seek, and that by divine right.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But <i>he that ruleth</i>, mentioned in Rom. xii.
+8, is a member of Christ's organical body, having an ordinary
+office of ruling therein given him of God, distinct from all other
+standing officers in the church, together with direction how he is
+to rule.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom.
+xii. 8, is the ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.</p>
+<p>The major proposition is clear. For in the particulars of it,
+well compared together, are observable both a plain delineation or
+description of the ruling elder's office; and also a firm
+foundation for the divine right of that office. The ruling elder's
+office is described and delineated by these several clauses, which
+set out so many requisites for the making up of a ruling elder,
+viz: 1. He must be a member of Christ's organical body. Such as are
+without, pagans, heathens, infidels, &amp;c., out of the Church,
+they are not fit objects for church government, to have it
+exercised by the Church upon them; the Church only judges them that
+are within, (1 Cor. v. 12, 13,) much less can they be fit subjects
+of church government to exercise it themselves within the Church.
+How shall they be officers in the Church that are not so much as
+members of the Church? Besides, such as are only members of the
+invisible body of Christ, as the glorified saints in heaven, they
+cannot be officers in the Church; for not the Church invisible, but
+only the Church or body of Christ visible is organical. So that
+every church officer must first be a Church member, a member of the
+visible organical body: consequently a ruling elder must be such a
+member. 2. He must have an office of ruling in this body of Christ.
+Membership is not enough, unless that power of rule be superadded
+thereto; for the whole office of the ruling elder is contained in
+the matter of rule; take away rule, you destroy the very office.
+Now, rule belongs not to every member: "Salute all them that have
+the rule over you, and all the saints," Heb. xiii. 24, where rulers
+and saints are made contradistinct to one another. In the body
+natural all the members are not eyes, hands, &amp;c., governing the
+body, some are rather governed; so in the body of Christ, 1 Cor.
+xii. 3. This his office of ruling must be an ordinary office;
+apostles had some power that was extraordinary, as their
+apostleship was extraordinary; but when we seek for this ruling
+elder, we seek for a fixed, standing, ordinary officer ruling in
+the church. 4. All that is not enough, that he be a member of the
+church, that he have an office of rule in the church, and that
+office also be ordinary; but besides all these it is necessary that
+he be also distinct from all other standing officers in the church,
+viz. from pastors, teachers, deacons; else all the former will not
+make up a peculiar kind of officer, if in all points he fully agree
+with any of the said three. But if there can be found such an
+officer in whom all these four requisites do meet, viz: That, 1. Is
+a member of Christ's organical body; 2. Hath an office of rule
+therein; 3, That office is ordinary; and, 4. That ordinary office
+is distinct from all other ordinary standing offices in the church;
+this must unavoidably be that very ruling elder which we inquire
+after. By this it is evident, that in this proposition here is a
+plain and clear delineation of the ruling elder's office. Now, in
+the next place, touching the foundation for the divine right of
+this office; it also is notably expressed in the same proposition,
+while it presupposeth, 1. That God is the giver of this office; 2.
+That God is the guider of this office. For whatsoever office or
+officer God gives for his Church, and having given it, guides and
+directs to the right discharge thereof, that must needs be of
+divine right beyond all contradiction. Thus this proposition is
+firm and cogent. Now let us assume:</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But <i>he that ruleth</i>, mentioned in Rom. xii.
+8, is a member of Christ's organical body, having an ordinary
+office of ruling therein, given him of God, distinct from all other
+ordinary standing officers in the church, together with direction
+from God how he is to rule.</p>
+<p>This assumption or minor proposition (whereon the main stress of
+the argument doth lie) may be thus evidenced by parts, from this
+context:</p>
+<p><i>He that ruleth</i> is a member of Christ's organical body.
+For, 1. The Church of Christ is here compared to a body, <i>We
+being many are one body in Christ</i>, ver. 5. 2. This body is
+declared to be organical, i.e. consisting of several members, that
+have their several offices in the body, some of teaching, some of
+exhorting, and some of ruling, &amp;c. "For as we have many members
+in one body, and all members have not the same office, so we being
+many are one body in Christ, and every one members one of another,"
+&amp;c., ver. 4-6, &amp;c. 3. Among the rest of the members of this
+body, <i>he that ruleth</i> is reckoned up for one, ver. 5-8; this
+is palpably evident.</p>
+<p><i>He that ruleth</i> hath an office of ruling in this body of
+Christ. For, 1. This word (translated) <i>he that ruleth</i>, in
+the proper signification and use of it, both in the Scriptures and
+in other Greek authors, doth signify one that ruleth
+authoritatively over another, (as hereafter is manifested in the 3d
+argument, &sect; 2.) 2. Our best interpreters and commentators do
+render and expound the word generally to this effect: e.g. He that
+is over<a href="#note-46"><small>46</small></a>&mdash;one set
+over<a href="#note-47"><small>47</small></a>&mdash;he that stands
+in the head or front<a href=
+"#note-48"><small>48</small></a>&mdash;as a captain or commander in
+the army, to which this phrase seems to allude&mdash;<i>he that
+ruleth</i>. 3. This word, wherever it is used in a genuine proper
+sense, in all the New Testament, notes rule, or government. It is
+used metaphorically for taking care (as one set over any business)
+of good works, only in two places, Tit. iii. 8, and iii. 14.
+Properly for government which superiors have over inferiors; and
+that either domestical, in private families, so it is used in 1
+Tim. iii. 4, 5, 12, or ecclesiastical, in the church, which is the
+public family of God; in this sense it is used, 1 Thes. v. 12, 1
+Tim. v. 17, and here, Rom. xii. 8, and these are all the places
+where this word is found used in all the New Testament.</p>
+<p>3. <i>He that ruleth</i> here, hath an ordinary, not an
+extraordinary office of rule in the church. For he is ranked and
+reckoned up in the list of Christ's ordinary standing officers,
+that are constantly to continue in the church, viz. pastors,
+teachers, deacons. Commonly this place is interpreted to speak of
+the ordinary church officers, and none other; consequently he that
+ruleth is such a one.</p>
+<p>4. <i>He that ruleth</i> here, is an officer distinct from all
+other ordinary officers in the Church of Christ. For in this place
+we have a full enumeration of all Christ's ordinary officers, and
+he that ruleth is a distinct officer among them all. 1. Distinct in
+name, he only is called <i>he that ruleth</i>, the rest have every
+one of them their several distinct name, ver. 7, 8. 2. Distinct in
+his work here appropriated to him; the doctor teacheth; the pastor
+exhorteth; the deacon giveth; this elder <i>ruleth</i>, as the very
+name signifieth, ver. 8. Compare 1 Tim. v. 17, 1 Cor. xii. 28. As
+the elder ruleth, so he is distinct from the deacon that hath no
+rule in the church; and as he only rules, so he is distinct from
+both pastor and teacher, that both teach, exhort, and rule; they
+both have power of order and jurisdiction, the ruling elder hath
+only power of jurisdiction. 3. Finally, he is distinct among and
+from them all in the particular direction here given these officers
+about the right discharge of their functions. The teacher must be
+exercised <i>in teaching</i>; the pastor <i>in exhortation</i>; the
+deacon must <i>give with singleness</i>; and the elder, he must
+<i>rule with diligence, studiousness</i>, &amp;c. Now what other
+solid reason can be imagined, why <i>he that ruleth</i> should here
+have a distinct name, distinct work and employment, and distinct
+direction how to manage this work, than this, that the Holy Ghost
+might set him out unto us as an ordinary officer in the church,
+distinct from all the other standing officers here enumerated?</p>
+<p>5. God himself is the author and giver of this office of him
+that ruleth, as well as of all the other offices here mentioned.
+For, 1. All gifts and endowments in the church in general, and in
+every member in particular; they are from God, it is he that gives
+and divides them as he will, <i>as God hath dealt to every one the
+measure of faith</i>, Rom. xii. 3. 2. All the special offices, and
+gifts for these offices in special, are also from the same God,
+<i>we having therefore gifts according to the grace given unto us,
+differing; whether prophecy</i>, &amp;c., Rom, xii. 6, 7, &amp;c.
+Here it is plain that he distinguished betwixt grace and gifts. By
+grace here we are to understand that holy office or charge in the
+church, which is given to any man by the grace and favor of God.
+And in this sense the apostle in this very chapter, ver. 3, useth
+the word <i>grace: For I say through the grace given to me</i>,
+i.e. through the authority of my apostleship, which by grace I have
+received, &amp;c. By gifts, we are to understand those endowments
+wherewith God hath freely furnished his officers in the church for
+their several offices. Now both these gifts and this grace, both
+the endowments and the office, are originally from God, his grace
+is the fountain of them; and both the grace of each office, and the
+gifts for such office, relate to all these ordinary offices here
+enumerated, as is evident by the current and connection of the
+whole context, see ver. 6-8; consequently the grace, i.e. the
+office of ruling, which is of divine grace, and the gifts for that
+office, arise from the same fountain, God himself.</p>
+<p>6. Finally, God himself is the guider and director of him that
+ruleth, here prescribing to him how he is to rule, viz. <i>with
+diligence, with studiousness</i>, &amp;c., ver. 8. Now we may
+receive this as a maxim, That of divine right may be done, for
+which God gives his divine rule how it is to be done: and that
+office must needs be of divine right, which God himself so far
+approves as to direct in his word how it shall be discharged.</p>
+<p>Now, to sum up all, he that ruleth here, 1. Is a member of
+Christ's organical body. 2. Hath an office of ruling in this body.
+3. This his office is not extraordinary but ordinary, standing, and
+perpetual. 4. He is an officer distinct from all other ordinary
+officers in the Church. 5. God himself is the giver and author of
+this office. 6. And God himself is the guider and director of this
+office: and then see if we may not clearly conclude,</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore, he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom.
+xii. 8, is the ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.</p>
+<p>The adversaries of ruling elders muster up divers exceptions
+against the alleging of Rom. xii. 8, for proof of the divine right
+of their office, the weakness of which is to be discovered ere we
+pass to another argument. <i>Except</i>. 1. This is an arguing from
+a general to a special affirmatively. It doth not follow, because
+the apostle here in general mentioneth him that ruleth, therefore
+in special it must be the ruling elder.<a href=
+"#note-49"><small>49</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. This exception is the same with first exception
+against the second argument hereafter laid down. There see. For the
+same answer appositely and satisfactorily is applicable to
+both.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 2. But the apostle here speaks of them that rule,
+but we have nowhere received that such elders have rule over the
+church&mdash;and he speaks of all that rule in the church, who
+therefore would wrest this place only to elders? One cannot rightly
+attribute that word translated <i>he that ruleth</i> to elders
+only, which is common unto more. If these elders he here meant,
+neither pastors nor teachers ought to rule, for this word agrees no
+otherwise to him that ruleth, than the word of exhorting to him
+that exhorteth.<a href="#note-50"><small>50</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. That such elders rule in the church is evident,
+both by Rom. xii. 8, where this word implies rule as hath been
+showed, and he that ruleth is reckoned up amongst ordinary church
+officers, as hath been said, therefore he rules in the church:
+these the apostle also calls ruling elders, 1 Tim. v. 17, viz.
+officers in the church, and distinct from them that labor in the
+word and doctrine; as in the third argument will appear: yea, they
+are governments set of God in the church, distinct from other
+officers, 1 Cor. xii. 28, as in the second argument shall be
+evidenced: there see; therefore these elders have rule.</p>
+<p>2. Though in this term the apostle speaks of him that ruleth,
+yet he speaks not of every one that ruleth. For, 1. He speaks
+singularly, he that ruleth, as of one kind of ruling officer; not
+plurally, they that rule, as if he had indefinitely or universally
+meant all the ruling officers in the church. 2. He reckons up here
+distinct kinds of ordinary officers, pastors, teachers, elders, and
+deacons; and pastors and teachers, besides laboring in the word,
+have power of rule, 1 Thes. v. 12, Heb. xiii. 7-17, and he that
+ruleth, here, is distinct from them both; and therefore this term
+cannot mean all church rulers, but only one kind, viz. the ruling
+elder.</p>
+<p>3. Though this name, <i>he that ruleth</i>, be common unto more
+rulers in the church, than to the mere ruling elder; yet it doth
+not therefore necessarily follow, that it cannot here particularly
+point out only the mere ruling elder, inasmuch, as <i>he that
+ruleth</i>, is not here set alone, (for then this objection might
+have had some color,) but is enumerated with other officers as
+distinct from them.</p>
+<p>4. Though the ruling elder here be called <i>he that ruleth</i>,
+yet this doth not exclude the pastor from ruling, no more than when
+the ordinary ministers are called pastors and teachers, the
+apostles and evangelists are excluded from feeding and teaching, in
+Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28. This elder is called, <i>he that
+ruleth</i>, not that there is no other ruler than he, but because
+he doth no other thing but rule, others rule and preach also.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 3. If this were meant of such elders, then these
+elders were as necessary to the church as pastors, being given to
+the church by the like reason. Consequently where these elders are
+not, there is no church; as there is no church where the word and
+sacraments are not.<a href="#note-51"><small>51</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. According to this argument deacons are as
+necessary as either pastors, teachers, or elders, and without
+deacons there should be no church; for they are all enumerated here
+alike, Rom. xii. 7, 8, and in 1 Cor. xii. 28; but this would be
+absurd, and against experience. 2. Though both pastors and ruling
+elders belong to the church by divine right, yet doth it not follow
+that the ruling elder is equally as necessary as the pastor. The
+ruling elder only rules, the pastor both rules and preaches,
+therefore he is more necessary to the church. There are degrees of
+necessity; some things are absolutely necessary to the being of a
+church, as matter and form, viz. visible saints, and a due
+profession of faith, and obedience to Christ, according to the
+gospel. Thus it is possible a church may be, and yet want both
+deacons, elders, and pastors too, yea, and word and sacraments for
+a time: some things are only respectively necessary to the
+well-being of a church; thus officers are necessary, yet some more
+than others, without which the church is lame, defective, and
+miserably imperfect.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 4. Should ruling elders here be meant, then
+deacons that obey, should be preferred before the elders that
+rule.<a href="#note-52"><small>52</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Priority of order is no infallible argument of
+priority of worth and dignity; as is evidenced in answer to the
+third exception against Arg. II.&mdash;there see; we find Priscilla
+a woman named before Aquila a man, and her husband, Acts xviii. 18;
+Rom. xvi. 3; 1 Tim. iv. 19; is therefore the woman preferred before
+the man? the wife before the husband? And again, Aquila is set
+before Priscilla, Acts xviii. 2, 26, 1 Cor. xvi. 19, to let us see
+that the Holy Ghost indifferently speaks of superior and inferior
+before one another.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 5. But here the apostle speaketh of divers gifts
+and graces, for so <i>differing gifts</i> do import, not of divers
+offices: for then they might not concur in one man, and
+consequently neither might the prophet teach, nor exhort, nor the
+deacon distribute, nor show mercy. Many gifts may be common in one
+man, many offices cannot;&mdash;which of these gifts in the
+apostles' times was not common as well to the people as to the
+pastors; and to women as well as to men? &amp;c.<a href=
+"#note-53"><small>53</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Divers considerations may be propounded to discover
+the vanity of this exception: chiefly take these three.</p>
+<p>1. There is no sufficient reason in this exception, proving the
+apostle here to speak only of divers gifts and graces, and not of
+divers offices also. For, 1. This is not proved by that expression,
+<i>differing gifts</i>, ver. 6, for these differing gifts are not
+here spoken of abstractly and absolutely, without reference to
+their subjects, but relatively with reference to their subjects
+wherein they are, viz. in the several officers, ver. 7, 8, and
+therefore, as the apostle mentions the <i>differing gifts</i>, so
+here he tells us in the same sixth verse, that we have these
+"different gifts, according to the grace given unto us," i.e.
+according to the office given unto us of God's grace, (as hath been
+manifested,) after which immediately is subjoined an enumeration of
+offices. 2. Nor is this proved by the inference made, upon the
+granting that divers offices are here meant, viz. [Then they might
+not concur in one man, the prophet might not teach nor exhort,
+&amp;c.; many gifts may be common in one man, many offices cannot.]
+For who is so little versed in the Scriptures, but he knows that
+apostles, pastors, elders, deacons, are distinct officers one from
+another; yet all the inferior offices are virtually comprehended in
+the superior, and may be discharged by them: elders may distribute
+as well as deacons; and beyond them, rule: pastors may distribute
+and rule as well as deacons and elders, and beyond both preach,
+dispense sacraments, and ordain ministers. Apostles may do there
+all, and many things besides extraordinary. Much more may the
+prophet teach and exhort, and the deacon distribute and show mercy;
+these being the proper acts of their office. 3. Nor, finally, is
+this proved by that suggestion, that all these gifts in the
+apostles' times were common to all sorts and sexes, women as well
+as men; as he after takes much pains to prove, but to very little
+purpose. For not only in the apostles' times, but in our times
+also, all Christians may teach, exhort, distribute, show mercy,
+&amp;c., privately, occasionally, by bond of charity, and law of
+fraternity towards one another mutually: but may not teach, exhort,
+rule, distribute, &amp;c., authoritatively by virtue of their
+office, so as to give themselves wholly to such employments, which
+is the thing here intended; yet it is worth observing how far
+Bilson was transported against ruling elders, that rather than
+yield to their office, he will make all these gifts common to all
+sorts and sexes, men and women. This is new divinity; all sorts and
+sexes may both preach and rule. Let Bilson have the credit of
+symbolizing with the Separatists, if not of transcending them.</p>
+<p>2. Here is good ground in the context to make us think that the
+apostle here spoke of distinct church officers, and not only of
+distinct gifts. For, 1. In the similitude of a natural body
+(whereunto here the church is compared) he speaks of distinct
+members, having distinct offices, ver. 4. "For as we have many
+members in one body, and all members have not the same office." 2.
+In his accommodation of this similitude, he speaks not only of
+gifts, but also of offices according to which these gifts are
+given, which he calls <i>grace</i>, ver. 6, (as was noted.). This
+grace given, or this office given of grace, is branched out, first,
+into two general heads, viz. <i>prophecy</i> and <i>ministry</i>,
+ver. 6, 7. Then these generals are subdivided into the special
+offices contained under them, viz.: Under prophecy the teacher,
+<i>he that teacheth</i>; and the pastor, <i>he that exhorteth</i>;
+under ministry the deacon, <i>he that distributeth</i>; and the
+ruling elder, <i>he that ruleth</i>. Now there is in the text just
+ground for this resolution of the text, in making prophecy and
+ministry generals, and all the rest special kinds of officers;
+forasmuch as prophecy and ministry are expressed abstractly,
+<i>whether prophecy</i>, (not, whether we are prophets;) <i>whether
+ministry</i>, (not, whether we are deacons, ministers:) and both
+prophecy and ministry are put in the accusative case; and both of
+them have relation, and are joined unto the participle of the
+plural number <i>having</i>, intimating that divers do share in
+prophecy, pastor and teacher; divers in ministry, deacon and ruling
+elder. But all the other are expressed concretely, and in the
+nominative case, and in the singular number, and to every of them
+the single article is prefixed, translated He&mdash;<i>He that
+teacheth&mdash;He that exhorteth&mdash;He that giveth&mdash;He that
+ruleth</i>. Hence we have great cause to count prophecy and
+ministry as generals; all the rest as special offices under
+them.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. The second argument for the divine right of
+the ruling elder shall be grounded upon 1 Cor. xii. 28: "And God
+hath set some in the church, first, apostles, secondly, prophets,
+thirdly, teachers, afterwards powers, then gifts of healing, helps,
+governments, kinds of tongue." God, in the first founding of
+Christianity and of the primitive churches, bestowed many eminent
+gifts upon divers Christians; the church of Corinth greatly
+excelled in such gifts, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Hence their members gifted,
+grew spiritually proud, and despised their brethren; to correct
+which abuse of gifts, and direct them to the right use thereof for
+the common profit of all, is the chief scope of this chapter, see
+verse 7, "The manifestation of the Spirit is given to every man to
+profit withal." For, 1. All their gifts flow from one and the same
+fountain, the Spirit of God, therefore should be improved for the
+common good of all, especially considering no one man hath all
+gifts, but several men have several gifts, that all might be
+beholden to one another, ver. 8-11. 2. The whole Church of Christ
+throughout all the world is but one body, and that body organical,
+having several members therein placed for several uses, as eyes,
+hands, &amp;c., wherein the meanest members are useful and
+necessary to the highest: therefore all members should harmoniously
+lay out their gifts for the good of the whole body, without jars or
+divisions, ver. 12-28. 3. All the several officers, whether
+extraordinary or ordinary, though furnished with several gifts and
+several administrations, yet are placed by one and the same God, in
+one and the same general Church; and therefore should all level at
+the benefit of the whole church, without pride, animosities,
+divisions, &amp;c., ver. 28, to the end. These things being briefly
+premised for the clearing the context and scope of the chapter, we
+may thus argue from ver. 28:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever officers God himself, now under the New
+Testament, hath set in the Church as governors therein, distinct
+from all other church governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary;
+they are the ruling elders we inquire after, and that by divine
+right.</p>
+<p>This proposition is so clear and evident of itself, that much
+needs not to be said for any further demonstration of it. For what
+can be further desired for proof that there are such distinct
+officers as ruling elders in the Church of Christ, and that of
+divine right, than to evince, 1. That there are certain officers
+set of God in the Church as governors therein. 2. That those
+officers so set of God in the Church, are set in the Church under
+the New Testament, which immediately concerns us, and not under the
+Old Testament. 3. That these officers set of God as governors in
+the Church of the New Testament, are distinct from all other church
+governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary? For, by the third of
+these, we have a distinct church officer delineated and
+particularized: by the second we have this distinct church officer
+limited to the time and state of the Church only under the New
+Testament, which is our case: and by the first of these, we have
+this distinct New Testament officer's ruling power in the Church,
+and the divine right thereof evidently demonstrated, by God's act
+in setting him there in this capacity; (see Part 1. Chap. VI.;) so
+that by all put together, the consequence of this major proposition
+seems to be strong and unquestionable.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the governments named in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are
+officers which God himself now under the New Testament hath set in
+the Church as governors therein, distinct from all other church
+governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary.</p>
+<p>This minor or assumption is wholly grounded upon, and plainly
+contained in this text, and may thus be evidenced by parts.</p>
+<p>1. The church here spoken of [<i>in the church</i>] is the
+Church of Christ now under the New Testament: for, 1. The church
+here mentioned, ver. 28, is the same with that ONE BODY mentioned,
+ver. 12, 13, of this chapter, as the whole context and coherence of
+the chapter evinceth; but that ONE BODY denotes not the Church of
+God under the Old Testament, but only the Church of Christ under
+the New Testament; partly, inasmuch as it is counted the Church of
+Christ, yea, (so intimate is the union between head and members,)
+it is called CHRIST, <i>so also is</i> CHRIST, ver. 12, (viz. not
+Christ personally considered, but Christ mystically considered, as
+comprehending head and body;) now this denomination of the Church,
+viz. Christ, or the Church of Christ, &amp;c., is peculiar to the
+Church under the New Testament: for where in all the Scripture is
+the Church of God under the Old Testament called the Church of
+Christ, &amp;c.? and partly, inasmuch as all, both Jews and
+Gentiles, are incorporated jointly into this ONE BODY, and coalesce
+into one Church: "For by one Spirit are we all baptized into one
+body, whether Jews or Gentiles, whether bond or free," 1 Cor. xii.
+13. Now this union or conjunction of Jews and Gentiles into one
+body, one Church, is only done under the New Testament; see Eph.
+ii. 11, to the end of the chapter. 2. The officers here mentioned
+to be set in this Church, are only the New Testament officers, ver.
+28. 3. The scope of the whole chapter is to redress abuses of
+spiritual gifts in the church of Corinth, which was a church under
+the New Testament; and therefore it would have been too remote for
+the apostle to have argued from the several distributions of gifts
+peculiar to the officers or members of the Church under the Old
+Testament.</p>
+<p>2. The governments here mentioned are officers set in this
+church as governors, or rulers therein: "Hath set some in the
+Church, first, apostles&mdash;governments." For clearing of this,
+consider the enumeration here made; the denomination of these
+officers, governments; and the constitution or placing of these
+governments in the Church. 1. The enumeration here made is
+evidently an enumeration of several sorts of church officers, some
+extraordinary, to endure but for a time, some ordinary, to continue
+constantly in the Church; to this the current of interpreters doth
+easily subscribe: and this the text itself plainly speaks; partly,
+if we look at the matter, viz. the several officers enumerated,
+which are either extraordinary, these five, viz. apostles,
+prophets, powers, or miracles, gifts of healing, and kinds of
+tongues: these continued but for a season, during the first
+founding of Christian churches: (the proper and peculiar work of
+these extraordinary officers, what it was, is not here to be
+disputed.) Or ordinary, these three, viz. <i>teachers</i>, (there
+is the preaching elder,) <i>governments</i>, (there is the ruling
+elder,) <i>helps</i>, (there is the deacon;) these are the officers
+enumerated; and however there be some other officers elsewhere
+mentioned, whence some conceive this enumeration not to be so
+absolutely perfect, yet this is undoubtedly evident, that it is an
+enumeration of officers in the church: partly, this is evident, if
+we look at the manner of the apostle's speech, which is in an
+enumerating form, viz. first, secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then:
+and partly, it is evident that he intended to reckon up those
+officers that were distinct from all other parts of the mystical
+body of Christ, by his recapitulation, "Are all apostles, are all
+prophets?" &amp;c., ver. 29, 30, i.e. not all, but only some
+members of the body are set apart by God to bear these offices in
+the church. Now, if there be here a distinct enumeration of
+distinct officers in the church, as is evident; then consequently
+<i>governments</i> must needs be one of these distinct church
+officers, being reckoned up among the rest; and this is one step,
+that governments are in the roll of church officers enumerated. 2.
+The denomination of these officers, <i>governments</i>, evidenceth
+that they are governing officers, vested with rule in the Church.
+This word (as hath been noted in chap. II.) is a metaphor from
+pilots or shipmasters governing of their ships by their compass,
+helm, &amp;c., James iii. 4, (who is hence called <i>governor</i>,
+viz. of the ship, Acts xxvii. 11; Rev. xviii. 17,) and it notes
+such officers as sit at the stern of the vessel of the Church, to
+govern and guide it in spirituals according to the will and mind of
+Christ: governments&mdash;the abstract is put for governors, the
+concrete: this name of governments hath engraven upon it an evident
+character of power for governing. But this will be easily granted
+by all. All the doubt will be, whom the apostle intended by these
+governments? Thus conceive, negatively, these cannot be meant, viz.
+not governors in general, for, besides that a general exists not
+but in the particular kinds or individuals thereof, a member of a
+body in general exists not but in this or that particular member,
+eye, hand, foot, &amp;c.: besides this, it is evident that Christ
+hath not only in general appointed governors in his Church, and
+left particulars to the church or magistrate's determination, but
+hath himself descended to the particular determination of the
+several kinds of officers which he will have in his Church; compare
+these places together, Eph. iv. 7, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom.
+xii. 7, 8: though in the ordinance of magistracy God hath only
+settled the general, but for the particular kinds of it, whether it
+should be monarchical, &amp;c., that is left to the prudence of the
+several commonwealths to determine what is fittest for themselves.
+(See Part 2, chap. IX.) 2. Not masters of families: for all
+families are not in the Church, pagan families are without. No
+family as a family is either a church or any part of a church, (in
+the notion that church is here spoken of;) and though masters of
+families be governors in their own houses, yet their power is not
+ecclesiastical but economical or domestical, common to heathens as
+well as Christians. Not the political magistrate,<a href=
+"#note-54"><small>54</small></a> for the reasons hinted, (Part 1,
+chap. I.; see also Part 2, chap. IX.,) and for divers other
+arguments that might be propounded. 4. Not the prelatical bishops,
+pretending to be an order above preaching presbyters, and to have
+the reins of all church government in their hands only; for, in
+Scripture language, bishop and presbyter are all one order, (these
+words being only names of the same officer;) this is evident by
+comparing Tit. i. 5, with ver. 7. Hereunto also the judgment of
+antiquity evidently subscribeth, accounting a bishop and a
+presbyter to be one and the same officer in the church; as appears
+particularly in Ambrose, Theodoret, Hierom, and others. Now, if
+there be no such order as prelatical bishops, consequently they
+cannot be governments in the church. 5. Not the same with
+<i>helps</i>, as the former corrupt impressions of our Bibles
+seemed to intimate, which had it thus, <i>helps in governments</i>,
+which some moderns seem to favor; but this is contrary to the
+original Greek, which signifies <i>helps, governments</i>; contrary
+to the ancient Syriac version, which hath it thus, (as Tremel.
+renders it,) <i>and helpers, and governments</i>: and therefore
+this gross corruption is well amended in our late printed Bible.
+<i>Helps, governments</i>, are here generally taken by interpreters
+for two distinct officers. 6. Nor, finally, can the teaching elder
+here be meant; for that were to make a needless and absurd
+tautology, the teacher being formerly mentioned in this same verse.
+Consequently, by <i>governments</i> here, what can be intended, but
+such a kind of officer in the church as hath rule and government
+therein, distinct from all governors forementioned? And doth not
+this lead us plainly to the ruling elder?</p>
+<p>3. These governments thus set in the Church, as rulers therein,
+are set therein by God himself; God hath set some in the Church,
+<i>first, apostles&mdash;governments&mdash;God hath set, put, made,
+constituted</i>, &amp;c., (as the word imports,) <i>in the
+Church</i>. What hath God set in the Church? viz. apostles
+and&mdash;governments, as well as apostles themselves. The verb,
+<i>hath set</i>, equally relates to all the sorts of officers
+enumerated. And is not that officer IA the Church of divine right,
+which God himself, by his own act and authority, sets therein? Then
+doubtless these governments are of divine right.</p>
+<p>4. Finally, these governments set in the Church under the New
+Testament as governors therein, and that by God himself, are
+distinct from not only all governing officers without the Church,
+(as hath been showed,) but also from all other governing officers
+within the church. For here the apostles make a notable enumeration
+of the several sorts of church officers, both extraordinary and
+ordinary, viz. eight in all. Five of these being extraordinary, and
+to continue but for a season, for the more effectual spreading and
+propagating of the gospel of Christ at first, and planting of
+Christian churches, viz. apostles, prophets, powers, gifts of
+healings, kinds of tongues: three of these being ordinary, and to
+be perpetuated in the Church, as of continual use and necessity
+therein, viz. teachers, governments, [i.e. ruling elders,] and
+helps, [i.e. deacons, who are to help and relieve the poor and
+afflicted.] This is the enumeration. It is not contended, that it
+is absolutely and completely perfect, for that some officers seem
+to be omitted and left out, which elsewhere are reckoned up, Eph.
+iv. 11; Rom. xii. 7, 8. Evangelists are omitted in the list of
+extraordinary officers, and pastors are left out of the roll of the
+ordinary officers; and yet some conceive that pastors and teachers
+point not out two distinct sorts of officers, but rather two
+distinct acts of the same officers; and if this will hold, then
+pastors are sufficiently comprised under the word teachers; yea,
+some think that both evangelists and pastors are comprehended under
+the word teacher.<a href="#note-55"><small>55</small></a> But,
+however, be that as it will, these two things are evident, 1. That
+this enumeration (though evangelists and pastors be left out) is
+the fullest and completest enumeration of church officers which in
+any place is to be found throughout all the New Testament. 2. That
+though we should grant this defect in the enumeration, yet this is
+no way prejudicial to the present argument, that governments here
+mentioned are ruling officers in the Church, distinct from all
+other church officers that have rule; for they are plainly and
+distinctly recited as distinct kinds of officers, distinct from
+apostles, from prophets, from teachers, from all here mentioned.
+And thus interpreters<a href="#note-56"><small>56</small></a>
+commonly expound this place, taking governments for a distinct kind
+of church officer from all the rest here enumerated.</p>
+<p>Now to sum up all that hath been said for the proof of the
+assumption; it is evident, 1. That the church here spoken of is the
+Church of Christ now under the New Testament. 2. That the
+governments here mentioned, are officers set in this church, (not
+out of the church,) as rulers governing therein. 3. That these
+governments set as rulers or governors in this church, are set
+there not by man, but by God himself; <i>God hath set in the
+Church&mdash;governments</i>. 4. And, finally, That these
+governments thus set in the Church, are distinct, not only from all
+governors out of the Church, but also from all governing officers
+within the Church. And if all this laid together will not clearly
+evince the divine right of the ruling elder, what will? Hence we
+may strongly conclude,</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore these governments in 1 Cor. xii.
+28, are the ruling elders we inquire after, and that of divine
+right.</p>
+<p>Now against the urging of 1 Cor. xii. 28, for the proof of the
+divine right of the ruling elders, divers exceptions are made,
+which are to be answered before we pass to the third argument.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 1. The allegation of this place is too weak to
+prove the thing in question. For will any man that knoweth what it
+is to reason, reason from the general to the particular and special
+affirmatively? or will ever any man of common sense be persuaded
+that this consequence is good: There were governors in the
+primitive church mentioned by the Apostles&mdash;therefore they
+were lay governors? Surely I think not.<a href=
+"#note-57"><small>57</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. This exception hath a confident flourish of words,
+but they are but words. It may be replied, 1. By way of concession,
+that to argue indeed from a general to a special, is no solid
+reasoning; as, This is a kingdom, therefore it is England; this is
+a city, therefore it is London; the apostle mentions government in
+the primitive Church, therefore they are ruling elders: this were
+an absurd kind of reasoning. 2. By way of negation. Our reasoning
+from this text for the ruling elder, is not from the general to a
+special affirmatively&mdash;there are governments in the Church,
+therefore ruling elders: but this is our arguing&mdash;these
+governments here mentioned in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are a special kind of
+governing officers, set of God in the Church of Christ now under
+the New Testament, and distinct from all other church officers,
+whether extraordinary or ordinary: and therefore they are the
+ruling elders which we seek after, and that by divine right. So
+that we argue from the enumeration of several kinds of church
+officers affirmatively: here is an enumeration or roll of divers
+kinds of church officers of divine right; governments are one kind
+in the roll, distinct from the rest; therefore governments are of
+divine right, consequently ruling elders; for none but they can be
+these governments, as hath been proved in the assumption. If the
+apostle had here mentioned governments only, and none other kind of
+officers with them, there had been some color for this exception,
+and some probability that the apostle had meant governors in
+general and not in special: but when the apostle sets himself to
+enumerate so many special kinds of officers, apostles, prophets,
+teachers, &amp;c., how far from reason is it to think that in the
+midst of all these specials, governments only should be a general.
+3. As for Dr. Field's scoffing term of lay governors or lay elders,
+which he seems in scorn to give to ruling elders; it seems to be
+grounded upon that groundless distinction of the ministry and
+people into clergy and laity; which is justly rejected by sound
+orthodox writers<a href="#note-58"><small>58</small></a>, as not
+only without but against the warrant of Scripture, clergy being
+nowhere appropriated to the ministry only, but commonly attributed
+to the whole church, 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. The Scripture term given to
+these officers is <i>ruling elders</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17; and so far as
+such, (though they be elected from among the people,) they are
+ecclesiastical officers.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 2. But it is not said here governors in the
+concrete, as apostles, prophets, teachers are mentioned concretely,
+which are distinct officers: but it is said governments, in the
+abstract, to note faculties, not persons. The text may be thus
+resolved: The apostle first sets down three distinct orders,
+apostles, prophets, and teachers: then he reckons up those common
+gifts of the Holy Ghost (and among the rest the gift of governing)
+which were common to all three. So that we need not here make
+distinct orders in the Church, but only distinct gifts which might
+be in one man.<a href="#note-59"><small>59</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. As the apostles, prophets, and teachers are here
+set down concretely, and not abstractly, and are confessed to be
+three distinct orders enumerated: so all the other five, though set
+down abstractly, are (by a metonymy of the adjunct for the subject)
+to be understood concretely, helps for helpers; governments for
+governors, &amp;c.; otherwise we shall here charge the apostle with
+a needless impertinent tautology in this chapter, for he had
+formerly spoken of these gifts abstractly, ver. 8-10, as being
+<i>all given to profit</i> the Church <i>withal</i>, ver. 7; but
+here, ver. 28-30, he speaks of these gifts as they are in several
+distinct subjects, for the benefit of the organical body the
+church; else what saith he here, more than he said before? 2. That
+all these eight here enumerated, one as well as another, do denote,
+not distinct offices or acts of the same officer, but distinct
+officers, having distinct administrations, and distinct gifts for
+those administrations, is evident, partly by the apostle's form of
+enumeration, <i>first, secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then</i> or
+<i>furthermore</i>: if he had intended only three sorts of
+officers, he would have stopped at thirdly, but he goes on in an
+enumerating way, to show us those that follow are distinct officers
+as well as those that go before; partly, by the apostle's
+recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, which plainly points out different
+officers, persons not gifts, besides those three: <i>Are all
+apostles? are all prophets? are all teachers?</i> (and here he
+stops not, but reckons on) <i>are all workers of miracles? have all
+the gifts of healing?</i> &amp;c. If it should be replied, But he
+doth not add, Are all helps? are all governments? therefore these
+are not to be accounted distinct officers from the rest; otherwise
+why should the apostle thus have omitted them, had there been any
+such distinct officers in the Church in his time? It may be
+replied, These two officers, helps and governments, are omitted in
+the recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, not that the Church then had no
+such officers, for why then should they have been distinctly
+mentioned in the enumeration of church officers, ver. 28? But
+either, 1. For that helps and governments were more inferior
+ordinary officers, and not furnished with such extraordinary, or at
+least, eminent gifts, as the other had, (which they abused greatly
+to pride, contention, schism, and contempt of one another, the
+evils which the apostle here labors so much to cure,) and so there
+was no such danger that these helps and governments should run into
+the same distempers that the other did. Or, 2. For that he would
+instruct these helps and governments to be content with their own
+stations and offices, (without strife and emulation,) though they
+be neither apostles, nor prophets, nor teachers, nor any of the
+other enumerated, which were so ambitiously coveted after; and the
+last verse seems much to favor this consideration, <i>but covet
+earnestly the best gifts</i>, viz. which made most for edification,
+not for ostentation.<a href="#note-60"><small>60</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 3. But helps here are placed before governments,
+therefore it is not likely that governments were the ruling elders;
+Helps, i.e. deacons, which is an inferior office, seeming here to
+be preferred before them.<a href=
+"#note-61"><small>61</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. This follows not. Priority of order is not always an
+argument of priority of worth, dignity, or authority. Scripture
+doth not always observe exactness of order, to put that first which
+is of most excellency: sometimes the pastor is put before the
+teacher, as Ephes. iv. 11, sometimes the teacher before the pastor,
+as Rom. xii. 7, 8. Peter is first named of all the apostles, both
+in Matt. x. 2, and in Acts i. 13, but we shall hardly grant the
+Papist's arguing thence to be solid&mdash;Peter is first named,
+therefore he is the chief and head of all the apostles; no more can
+we account this any good consequence&mdash;helps are set before
+governments, therefore governments are officers inferior to helps,
+consequently they cannot be ruling elders: this were bad logic.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 4. But the word governments is general, and may
+signify either Christian magistrates, or ecclesiastical officers,
+as archbishops, bishops, or whatsoever other by lawful authority
+are appointed in the Church.<a href=
+"#note-62"><small>62</small></a> And some of the semi-Erastians of
+our times, by governments understand the Christian magistracy,
+holding the Christian magistracy to be an ecclesiastical
+administration.<a href="#note-63"><small>63</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. Governments, i.e. governors, (though in itself
+and singly mentioned, it be a general, yet) here being enumerated
+among so many specials, is special, and notes the special kind of
+ruling elders, as hath been proved. 2. As for archbishops and
+diocesan bishops, they are notoriously known to be, as such, no
+officers set in the Church by God, but merely by the invention of
+man; therefore they have no part nor lot in this business, nor can
+here be meant. And if by others, by lawful authority appointed in
+the Church, they mean those officers that God appoints well: if
+those whom man sets there without God, as chancellors,
+commissioners, &amp;c., such have as much power of government in
+the Church, as they are such, as archbishops and bishops, viz. just
+none at all by any divine warrant. 3. Nor can the civil Christian
+magistrate here be implied. 1. Partly, because this is quite beside
+the whole intent and scope of this chapter, treating merely upon
+spiritual church-matters, not at all of secular civil matters, viz:
+of spiritual gifts for the Church's profit, ver. 1 to 12; of the
+Church herself as one organical body, ver. 12 to 28; and of the
+officers which God hath set in this organical body, ver. 28,
+&amp;c. Now here to crowd in the Christian magistrate, which is a
+mere political governor, into the midst of these spiritual matters,
+and into the roll of these merely ecclesiastical officers, how
+absurd is it! 2. Partly, because the magistrate, as such, is not
+set of God in the Church either as a church officer, or as a church
+member, (as hath been demonstrated formerly, chap. IX.;) and though
+he become a Christian, that adds nothing to the authority of his
+magistracy, being the privilege only of his person, not of his
+office. 3. Partly, because when this was written to the
+Corinthians, the apostle writes of such governments as had at that
+time their present actual being and existence in the Church: and
+neither then, nor divers hundreds of years after, were there any
+magistrates Christian, as hath been evidenced, chap. IX.<a href=
+"#note-64"><small>64</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 5. Teachers are here expressed, but pastors
+omitted; and therefore well might governors be mentioned instead of
+pastors.<a href="#note-65"><small>65</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Answ</i>. 1. Then, according to his judgment, pastors were a
+distinct kind of officers from teachers; otherwise the naming of
+teachers would have sufficiently implied pastors, without the
+addition of the word governors, one act or function of the office
+being put for the whole office. But prelates did not love to hear
+of such a distinction. However, it is the judgment of many others
+no less learned or pious than they, that in the same congregation
+where there are several ministers, he that excels in exposition of
+scriptures, teaching sound doctrine, and convincing gainsayers, may
+be designed hereunto, and called a teacher or doctor: he that
+excels in application, and designed thereunto, may be called a
+pastor; but where there is only one minister in one particular
+congregation, he is to perform, as far as he is able, the whole
+work of the ministry. 2. If pastors are to be understood by this
+term governors, as contradistinct from teachers, formerly
+enumerated in the text; doth not this seem to devolve the matter of
+government so wholly upon the pastor, as that the teacher hath
+nothing to do with it? and hereby both pastor and teacher are
+wronged at once: the teacher, while power of governing is denied
+him, which belongs to him as well as to the pastor; the teacher
+being a minister of the word, hath power of administration of the
+sacraments and discipline, as well as the pastor: the pastor, while
+he consequently is deprived of the necessary and comfortable
+assistance of the teacher in point of government. Therefore the
+pastor cannot here be intended by governors. 3. Bilson himself was
+not very confident of this gloss, and therefore he immediately
+adds, "If this content you not, I then deny they are all
+ecclesiastical functions that are there specified," &amp;c. What
+then doth he make them? viz. he makes divers of them, and
+governments among the rest, to be but several gifts, whereof one
+and the same officer might be capable. And a little after he
+ingenuously confesses he cannot tell what these governors were,
+saying, "I could easily presume, I cannot easily prove what they
+were. The manner and order of those wonderful gifts of' God's
+Spirit, after so many hundreds may be conjectured, cannot be
+demonstrated&mdash;governors they were, or rather governments, (for
+so the apostle speaketh,) i.e. gifts of wisdom, discretion, and
+judgment, to direct and govern the whole church, and every
+particular member thereof, in the manifold dangers and distresses
+which those days did not want. Governors also they might be called,
+that were appointed in every congregation to hear and appease the
+private strifes and quarrels that grew betwixt man and man, lest
+the Christians, to the shame of themselves, and slander of the
+gospel, should pursue each other for things of this life before the
+magistrates, who then were infidels; of these St. Paul speaketh, 1
+Cor. vi. 1-7. These governors and moderators of their brethren's
+quarrels and contentions I find, others I find not in the apostle's
+writings, but such as withal were watchmen and feeders of the
+flock." Thus inconsistent he is with himself: one while these
+governors must be pastors; another while arbitrators or daysmen
+about private differences; another while gifts, not officers;
+another while he cannot easily prove what they were. But they have
+been proved to be ruling elders, and the proof still stands good,
+notwithstanding all his or others' exceptions.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. III. The third argument for the divine right of
+the mere ruling elder shall be drawn from 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the
+elders that rule well, be counted worthy of double honor,
+especially they that labor in the word and doctrine." From which
+words we may thus argue for the divine right of the ruling
+elder:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever officers in the Church are, according
+to the word of Christ, styled elders, invested with rule in the
+Church, approved of God in their rule, and yet distinct from all
+them that labor in the word and doctrine; they are the ruling
+elders in the Church which we inquire after, and that by divine
+right.</p>
+<p>This proposition seems clear and unquestionable. For, 1. If
+there be a certain kind of church officer which Christ in his word
+calls an elder, 2. Declares to have rule in his church, 3. Approves
+in this his rule, and, 4. Distinguished from him that labors in the
+word and doctrine; this is plainly the ruling elder, and here is
+evidently the divine right of his office. Such a divine approbation
+of his office, testified in Scripture, implies no less than a
+divine institution thereof.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the officers mentioned in 1 Tim. v. 17, are,
+according to the word of Christ, styled elders, invested with rule
+in the church: approved of God in their rule, and yet distinct from
+all them that labor in the word and doctrine. This assumption may
+be thus evidenced by parts.</p>
+<p>1. The officers mentioned here in this word of Christ, are
+styled elders. This Greek word translated <i>elder</i>, is used in
+the New Testament chiefly in three several senses: 1. For men of
+ancient time, not now living; and so it is opposed to modern:
+Tradition of elders, Matt. xv. 2, i.e. of them of old time, see
+Matt. v. 21. 2. For elders in age now living; so it is opposed to
+younger, 1 Tim. v. 1; 1 Pet. v. 5. 3. For elders in function or
+office, opposed to private men not in office, as Acts xiv. 23; and
+in this last sense it is to be taken in this place, an office of
+ruling being here ascribed to these elders. They are called elders,
+say some, because for the most part they were chosen out of the
+elder sort of men: others better, from the maturity of knowledge,
+wisdom, gifts, gravity, piety, &amp;c., which ought to be in them.
+This name elder seems to have rule and authority written upon it,
+when applied to any church officer; and it is by the Septuagint
+often ascribed to rulers political, <i>elders in the gate</i>,
+Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 1 Sam. v. 3; 1 Chron. xi. 3. In
+this place (as it is well noted by some<a href=
+"#note-66"><small>66</small></a>) the word elders is a genus, a
+general attribute, agreeing both to them that rule well, and also
+to those that labor in the word and doctrine: the one sort only
+rule; the other sort both rule and preach; but both sorts are
+elders.</p>
+<p>2. The officers here mentioned are not only styled elders, but
+invested with rule in the church. For it is plain both by the text
+and context duly considered, and the apostle's scope in writing of
+this epistle, 1 Tim. iii. 15, that these elders are officers in the
+Church. And that in the church they are vested with rule appears
+not only by their name of elders, which when applied to officers,
+imports rule, authority, &amp;c., as hath been said; but also by
+the adjunct participle <i>that rule</i>, or <i>ruling</i>, annexed
+to elders&mdash;<i>Let the elders ruling well</i>. So that here we
+have not only the office, the thing, but the very name of ruling
+elders. The word seems to be a military term, for captains and
+commanders in an army, <i>foremost slanders</i>, (as the word
+imports,) that lead on and command all the rest that follow them:
+hence metaphorically used for the foremost-standers, rulers,
+governors in the church. It noteth not only those that go before
+others by doctrine, or good example: but that govern and rule
+others by authority. For, 1. Thus the word is used in Scripture:
+"One that ruleth well his own house, having his children in
+subjection with all gravity," 1 Tim. iii. 4: where it plainly notes
+an authoritative ruling. Again, "If a man know not how to rule his
+own house," 1 Tim. iii. 5. And again, "Ruling their children and
+their own houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12. And can any man be so
+absurd as to think that a master of a family hath not a proper
+authoritative rule over his own children and family, but rules them
+only by doctrine and example?</p>
+<p>2. Thus learned divines<a href="#note-67"><small>67</small></a>
+and accurate Grecians<a href="#note-8"><small>68</small></a> use
+the word to denote authority: so that the Holy Ghost here calling
+them ruling elders, implies they are vested with rule: and those
+that deny this place to hold out two sorts of elders, yet confess
+it holds out two sorts of acts, ruling and preaching.</p>
+<p>3. These ruling elders are here approved of God in their rule;
+and that two ways, viz: 1. In that God's Spirit here commends their
+ruling, being duly discharged, <i>ruling well, excellently</i>,
+&amp;c. Did no rule in the Church belong to them for matter, God
+would never command or approve them for the matter. He cannot be
+accounted with God to do any thing well, that hath no right to do
+it at all. 2. In that God's Spirit here commands their well ruling
+to be honorably rewarded. <i>Let them be counted worthy of double
+honor:</i> or, <i>Let them be dignified with double honor</i>. Here
+is not only reward, but an eminent reward appointed them, and that
+urged from Scripture, ver. 18. Where God thus appoints rewards, he
+approves that for which he rewards; and what God thus approves is
+of divine right. See part 1, chap. V.</p>
+<p>4. Yet, finally, These elders, vested with rule in the Church,
+and divinely approved in their rule, are distinct from all them
+that labor in the word and doctrine. This may thus he evidenced
+from the text, as some<a href="#note-69"><small>69</small></a> have
+well observed: For, 1. Here is a general, under which the several
+kinds of officers here spoken of are comprehended, <i>elders</i>;
+all here mentioned are elders. 2. Here are two distinct kinds of
+elders, viz: <i>those that rule well</i>, there is one kind; and
+<i>they that labor in the word</i> (as the pastors) <i>and
+doctrine</i>, (as the doctors and teachers,) here is the other
+kind. 3. Here are two participles expressing these two species or
+kinds of elders&mdash;<i>ruling</i>, and <i>laboring</i>: those
+only rule, that is all their work, and therefore here are called
+ruling elders; not because <i>they</i> alone rule, but because
+their only work is to rule: but these not only rule, but, over and
+besides, <i>they</i> labor in the word and doctrine. 4. Here are
+two distinct articles distinctly annexed to these two
+participles&mdash;<i>they that rule; they that labor</i>. 5.
+Finally, here is an eminent disjunctive particle set betwixt these
+two kinds of elders, these two participles, these two articles,
+evidently distinguishing one from the other, viz. especially
+<i>they that labor in the word</i>, &amp;c., intimating, that as
+there were some ruling elders that did labor in the word and
+doctrine, so there were others that did rule, and not labor in the
+word: both were worthy of double honor, but especially they that
+both ruled and labored in the word also. And wheresoever this word,
+here translated <i>especially</i>, is used in all the New
+Testament, it is used to distinguish thing from thing, person from
+person, that are spoken of; as, "Let us do good to all, but
+especially to those of the household of faith," Gal. vi. 10:
+therefore there were some of the household of faith, and some that
+were not; and accordingly we must put a difference in doing good to
+them. "All the saints salute you, especially those of C&aelig;sar's
+household;" some saints not of his household: all saluted them, but
+especially those of C&aelig;sar's household. "He that provides not for
+his own, especially for them of his own house, he hath denied the
+faith," 1 Tim. v. 8. A believer is to provide for his friends and
+kindred, but especially <i>for those of his own house</i>, wife and
+children. See also 1 Tim. iv. 10; Tit. i. 11; 2 Tim. iv. 13; 2 Pet.
+ii. 10; Acts xx. 38, and xxvi. 3; in all which places the word
+<i>especially</i> is used as a disjunctive particle, to distinguish
+one thing from another, without which distinction we shall but make
+nonsense in interpreting those places. And generally the best
+interpreters<a href="#note-70"><small>70</small></a> do from this
+text conclude, that there were two sorts of elders, viz: the ruling
+elder, that only ruled; the preaching elder, that besides his
+ruling, labored in the word and doctrine also.</p>
+<p>Now, therefore, seeing the officers here mentioned are, 1.
+According to the word of Christ, (for this is the word of Christ,)
+styled elders; 2. Vested with rule; 3. Approved of God in their
+rule; and yet, 4. Distinct from all that labor in the word and
+doctrine, as hath been particularly proved; we may conclude,
+that,</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the officers here mentioned are the
+ruling elders in the Church which we inquire after, and that by
+divine right.</p>
+<p>But against this place of 1 Tim. i. 17, and the argument from
+it, divers cavils and exceptions are made; let them have a brief
+solution.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 1. There were two sorts of elders, some laboring
+in the word and doctrine, some taking care of the poor, viz.
+deacons; both were worthy of double honor, especially they that
+labored in the word, &amp;c.<a href=
+"#note-71"><small>71</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This is a new distinction of elders without
+warrant of Scripture. Deacons are nowhere in all the New Testament
+styled elders;<a href="#note-72"><small>72</small></a> nay, they
+are contradistinguished from elders, both teaching and ruling. "He
+that giveth <i>let him do it</i> with simplicity: he that ruleth,
+with diligence," Rom. xii. 8. "Helps, governments," 1 Cor. xii. 28.
+Compare also Tit. i. 5, 6, &amp;c., 1 Tim. iii. 2, &amp;c., with 1
+Tim. iii. 8, &amp;c. 2. As deacons are not elders, so deacons have
+no rule in the church. It is true, they are to "rule their children
+and their own houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12; this is only family
+rule: but as for the church, their office therein is to be
+<i>helps</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28; <i>to distribute</i>, Rom. xii. 8;
+<i>to serve tables</i>, Acts vi. 2, 3; but no rule is ascribed to
+them.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 2. But by ruling well, some understand living
+well, leading a holy, exemplary life. The apostle would have
+ministers not only to live well themselves, but also to feed others
+by the word and doctrine; they that live well are to be double
+honored, especially they who labor in the word, &amp;c., as 1
+Thess. v. 12, 13.<a href="#note-73"><small>73</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. The apostle here speaks rather of officers than
+of acts of office: of persons rather than of duties, if his phrase
+be observed. 2. Living well is not ruling well here in the
+apostle's sense, who intends the rule of elders over others; he
+that lives well rules well over himself; not over others: else all
+that live well were church rulers; they conduct by example, do not
+govern by authority, Altar. Damasc. c. xii. 8. If well ruling be
+well living, then double honor, double maintenance from the church
+is due for well living, (1 Tim. v. 17, 18,) consequently all that
+live well deserve this double honor. 4. This seems to intimate that
+ministers deserve double honor for living well, though they preach
+not. <i>How absurd</i>! 5. D. Downham, once pleased with this
+gloss, after confessed it was not safe.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 3. Those that rule well may be meant of aged,
+infirm, superannuated bishops, who cannot labor in the word and
+doctrine.<a href="#note-74"><small>74</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. Here is no speech of prelatical bishops, but of
+ruling and preaching elders in this text. 2. How shall old,
+decrepit bishops rule well, when they cannot labor in the word and
+doctrine? 3. By this gloss, the preaching elders that labor in the
+word and doctrine, should be preferred before the most ancient
+bishop in double honor; such doctrine would not long since have
+been very odious and apocryphal to our late prelates. 4. Those
+preachers that have faithfully and constantly spent their strength,
+and worn out themselves with ministerial labor, that they cannot
+rule nor preach any longer, are yet worthy of double honor for all
+their former travels in the service of Christ and his Church.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 4. Among ministers some did preach, others only
+administered the sacraments; so Paul showeth that he preached and
+"labored more than all the apostles," 1 Cor. xv. 10; but baptized
+few or none, 1 Cor i. 14, leaving that to be performed by others;
+and when Paul and Barnabas were companions, and their travels were
+equal, yet Paul is noted to have been the chief speaker, (Acts xiv.
+12:) all were worthy of double honor, but especially they who
+labored in the word and doctrine.<a href=
+"#note-75"><small>75</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This gloss imagineth such a ministry in the
+apostles' times as the prelates had erected of late in their days,
+viz: many dumb dogs that could not bark nor preach at all, yet
+could administer the sacraments by the old service-book. But the
+apostles, as Cartwright<a href="#note-76"><small>76</small></a>
+observes, allowed no such ministers, will have every bishop or
+preaching elder to be both "apt to teach, <i>and</i> able to
+convince," 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i. 9. So that it was far from Paul
+to countenance a non-preaching or seldom-preaching ministry, by
+allowing any honor at all, much less a double honor, to such. Sure,
+preaching is one part, yea, a most principal part or duty of the
+minister's office, (as hath been evidenced before, Part 2, Chap.
+VII.,) and shall he be counted worthy of double honor that neglects
+a principal duty of his office? Nay, he deserves not the very name
+of such an officer in the church: why should he be called a pastor
+that doth not feed? or a teacher, that doth not teach his flock?
+&amp;c., saith Chrysost. Hom. xv. in 1 Timothy. 2. Why should
+Paul's laboring be restrained here to his preaching only? when Paul
+speaks of his own labor elsewhere, he speaks of it in another
+sense, 2 Cor. xi. 17, "in labor and weariness"&mdash;compare it
+with the context; and in this place judicious Calvin seems rather
+to interpret it of other manner of labor, and Pareus extends it,
+besides preaching, to divers other labors which Paul did undergo.
+3. What warrant doth this exception hold out for two sorts of
+ministers here pretended, some <i>preaching</i>, others <i>only
+administering the sacraments</i>? Thus, <i>Paul preached much,
+baptised but few</i>: therefore, <i>there were some that only
+administered the sacraments</i>: well concluded. Yet Paul baptized
+some, 1 Cor. i. 14, 16, distributed the Lord's supper to some, Acts
+xx. 7, 11; so that he both preached and dispensed the sacraments.
+Let any show where any person dispensed the sacraments that was not
+a preacher. Again, <i>Paul and Barnabas equally travelled together,
+but Paul was chief speaker</i>: what then? therefore <i>some
+labored in the word, others in the sacraments only</i>. This is
+woful logic. 4. To whomsoever the power of dispensing the
+sacraments was given by Christ, to them also the power of preaching
+was given; dispensing the word and sacraments are joined in the
+same commission, Matt, xxviii. 18-20: what Christ joins together
+let not man put asunder. 5. Touching the preaching elder there is
+mentioned only one act peculiar to his office, viz. <i>laboring in
+the word</i>, &amp;c.; but, taking a part for the whole, we may
+understand his dispensing the sacraments also, and what else is
+peculiar to the preaching elder's office, though for brevity's sake
+it be not here named.<a href="#note-77"><small>77</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 5. By elders that rule well may be meant certain
+governors, or inferior magistrates, chosen to compose controversies
+or civil strifes. Suitable hereunto is the late Erastian gloss,
+that by elders ruling well may be meant kings, parliament-men, and
+all civil governors.<a href="#note-78"><small>78</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. It is well known that in the primitive times
+there was no Christian magistrate in the Church, and for the Church
+to choose heathen judges or magistrates to be arbitrators or
+daysmen in civil controversies, is a thing utterly condemned by the
+apostle, 1 Cor. vi. 1, &amp;c. 2. The apostle speaks here of
+ecclesiastical, not of civil officers, as the latter phrase
+intimates. The main scope of this epistle was to instruct Timothy
+how to behave himself, not in the commonwealth, but in the Church
+of God, (1 Tim. iii. 15,) and here he speaks of such officers as
+were in being in the Church at that time. 3. If kings,
+parliament-men, and all civil governors be these ruling elders,
+then ministers have not only an equal share with them in government
+by this text, which the Erastians will not like well; but also are
+to have a superior honor or maintenance to kings, parliament-men,
+and all civil governors. Certainly the magistrates will never
+triumph in this gloss, nor thank them that devised it. 4. Sutlive
+seems to be against this opinion, (though no great friend to ruling
+elders,) saying Beza bestows many words to prove that the judges in
+1 Cor. vi. were not of the number of presbyters: which truly I
+myself should easily grant him. For there were none such ever
+constituted. 5. This is a novel interpretation, as some
+observe,<a href="#note-79"><small>79</small></a> unknown among
+ancient writers.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 6. Those words [<i>especially they who labor in
+the word and doctrine</i>] are added to the former explanatively,
+to teach us who they are that rule well, viz. <i>they who labor
+much in the word and doctrine</i>, and not to distinguish them that
+labor in the word, from elders ruling well; as if Paul had said,
+"Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of double honor,
+greatly laboring in the word," &amp;c. For the word translated
+<i>especially</i> here more aptly signifies <i>much, greatly</i>,
+than especially. For though with the adversative <i>but</i> along
+with it, it signifieth especially, yet alone (as it is here) it
+signifies <i>much, greatly</i>.<a href=
+"#note-80"><small>80</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. If this sentence [<i>especially they who
+labor</i>, &amp;c.] were added only to explain who are well-ruling
+elders, viz. such as greatly labor in the word, &amp;c., then few
+of the prelatical bishops were to be counted well-ruling elders,
+for very few, if any of them, were guilty of laboring greatly in
+the word and doctrine. 2. Then also the apostle would have said,
+either who especially labor, or simply without the article,
+especially laboring; then especially, they who labor, as here he
+doth, carrying his speech rather to distinct persons and officers,
+than to distinct duties or actions. 3. This word translated
+<i>especially</i>, hath been already in the minor proposition
+proved to be rather disjunctive, than explanatory; a term of
+distinction to point out a several sort of elders from only ruling
+elders, rather than a term of explication, signifying who are to be
+reputed these well-ruling elders. 4. The word <i>especially</i> is
+used for a term of distinction, even in those places where the
+adversative <i>but</i> is not joined to it, as in Tit. i. 10, "For
+there are many unruly and vain talkers and deceivers, especially
+they of the circumcision:" where <i>especially</i> distinguishes
+<i>them of the circumcision</i>, from all other <i>vain talkers,
+and deceivers</i>; and in 1 Tim. iv. 10, "Who is the Saviour of all
+men, especially of them that believe;" here <i>especially</i>
+without <i>but</i> distinguishes them that believe from all other
+men, as capable of a special salvation from God; if here it were
+not a note of distinction, according to this gloss, we should thus
+read the place, "Who is the Saviour of all men, greatly believing;"
+but this were cold comfort to weak Christians of little faith. So
+here <i>especially</i>, though <i>but</i> be wanting, distinguished
+them that labor in the word and doctrine, from them that labor not
+therein, and yet rule well.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 7. It is one thing to preach, another thing to
+labor in the word and doctrine. If there be here any distinction of
+elders it is between those that labor more abundantly and
+painfully, and between those that labor not so much. This objection
+takes much with some.<a href="#note-81"><small>81</small></a> B.
+Bilson much presses this objection from the emphasis of the word
+<i>laboring</i>; signifying endeavoring any thing with greater
+striving and contention, &amp;c., to this sense, "Let the elders
+that rule well be counted worthy of double honor, especially they
+who labor and sweat, &amp;c., in the word&mdash;who give themselves
+even to be tired and broken with labors;" and this, saith he, is
+the genuine signification of the word translated laboring, when it
+is borrowed from the labor of the body, to denote the contention or
+striving of the mind, &amp;c.<a href=
+"#note-82"><small>82</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This gloss takes it for granted, that this text
+speaks only of preaching, or the ministry of the word, and therein
+of the lesser or greater pains taken: which (besides that it begs
+the thing in question) makes the ministry of the word common to
+both sorts here distinctly spoken of, whereas rather the plain
+current of the text makes ruling common to both, over and beyond
+which the preaching elder <i>labors in the word</i>. 2. Doth not
+this interpretation allow a double honor to ministers that labor
+not so much as others in the word? And can we think that the
+laborious Paul intended to dignify, patronize, or encourage idle
+drones, lazy, sluggish, seldom preachers? Ministers must be
+exceeding instant and laborious in their ministry, 2 Tim. iv. 1-3.
+If this were the sense only to prefer the greater before the less
+labor in the ministry, the apostle would have used this order of
+words, "Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of double
+honor, especially they who labor," &amp;c., take upon themselves
+more weighty cares. For those words (in the word and doctrine)
+should either have been quite omitted, as now was expressed, or
+should have been inserted immediately after them that rule well,
+and before the word especially, to this effect, "Let the elders
+that rule well and preach the word and doctrine well, be counted
+worthy of double honor; but especially those who labor much in well
+ruling and in well preaching:" in such an expression the case had
+been very clear and evident. 4. Should this comment stand, that
+they who labor more in the ministry than others should have more
+honor, more maintenance, than others, how many emulations and
+contentions were this likely to procure? Who shall undertake to
+proportion the honor and reward, according to the proportion of
+every minister's labor? 5. As for the criticism of the word
+<i>laboring</i>, which Bilson lays so much stress upon, these
+things are evident, 1. That here <i>laboring</i>, signifies
+emphatically nothing else but that labor, care, diligence,
+solicitude, &amp;c., which the nature of the pastoral office
+requires in every faithful pastor; as is implied 1 Thess. v., 12,
+13, "Know them which labor among you, and are over you in the
+Lord;" and the apostle saith that every minister "shall receive a
+reward according to his own labor," 1 Cor. iii. 8. Such labor and
+diligence also is required in them that rule, whilst they are
+charged to rule <i>with diligence</i>, Rom. xii. 8, which is as
+much as <i>with labor</i>: yea, the common charity of Christians
+hath its labor; and this very word <i>labor</i> is ascribed
+thereunto, <i>labor of love</i>, 1 Thess. i. 3; Heb. vi. 10. 2.
+That if the apostle had here intended the extraordinary labor of
+some ministers above others, not ordinarily required of all, he
+would have taken a more emphatical word to have set it out, as he
+is wont to do in some other cases, as in 2 Cor. xi. 27, "In labor
+and weariness." 1 Thess. ii. 9, "For ye remembered, brethren, our
+labor and weariness." 6. Finally, "If there be but one kind of
+church officers here designed, then," as saith the learned
+Cartwright, "the words (<i>especially those that labor</i>) do not
+cause the apostle's speech to rise, but to fall; not to go forward,
+but to go backward; for to teach worthily and singularly is more
+than to teach painfully; for the first doth set forth all that
+which may be required in a worthy teacher, where the latter noteth
+one virtue only of pains taking."</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 8. Though it could be evinced, that here the
+apostle speaks of some other elders, besides the ministers of the
+word, yet what advantage can this be for the proof of ruling
+elders? For the apostle being to prove that the ministers of the
+word ought to be honored, i.e. maintained; why might he not use
+this general proposition, that all rulers, whether public or
+domestic, whether civil or ecclesiastical, are to be honored? And
+when the apostle speaketh of the qualifications of deacons, he
+requires them to be such as have ruled their own houses
+well.<a href="#note-83"><small>83</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This slight gloss might have appeared more
+tolerable and plausible, were it not, partly, that the grand scope
+of the apostle in this chapter and epistle is to direct about
+church officers and church affairs, as both the context, and 1 Tim.
+iii. 14, 15, clearly evidence; and partly, had the word rulers been
+expressed alone in the text, and the word elders left out: but
+seeing that the apostle speaks not generally of them that rule
+well, but particularly of the elders that rule well in the Church;
+here is no place for this poor faint gloss. 2. Had the apostle here
+intended such a lax and general proposition for all sorts of
+rulers, then had he also meant that an honorable maintenance is due
+from the Church to domestic as well as public, yea, to civil as
+well as ecclesiastical rulers: then the Church should have charge
+enough: yea, and then should ministers of the word (according to
+this interpretation) have more honor and maintenance than any other
+rulers, domestic or public, civil or ecclesiastical. Magistrates
+will never thank him for this gloss. 3. Though some kind of skill
+to rule and govern be required in deacons, yet that is no public
+rule in the Church, but a private rule in their own houses only,
+which the apostle mentions, 1 Tim. iii. 12.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 9. But these Well-ruling presbyters may be
+referred to these pastors and teachers which were resident in every
+church, who therefore are properly said to have care and inspection
+of the faithful, as being affixed to that place for that end; but
+the word <i>laboring</i>, or <i>they that labor</i>, may be
+referred to them who travelled up and down for the visiting and
+confirming of the churches.<a href="#note-84"><small>84</small></a>
+"There were some that remained in some certain places, for the
+guiding and governing of such as were already won by the preaching
+of the gospel: others that travelled with great labor and pains
+from place to place to spread the knowledge of God into all parts,
+and to preach Christ crucified to such as never heard of him
+before. Both these were worthy of double honor, but the latter that
+builded not upon another man's foundation, more especially than the
+former, that did but keep that which others had gotten, and govern
+those that others have gained."<a href=
+"#note-85"><small>85</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. If this be the sense, that there were some
+ministers fixed, and limited to particular places and churches;
+others unfixed, having an unlimited commission, and these are to be
+especially honored: then the meaning is, that the apostles and
+evangelists who were unfixed, and had unlimited commissions, and
+laid the foundation, were to be especially honored above pastors
+and teachers that were fixed and limited, and only built upon their
+foundation. But how should this be the meaning? For this seems a
+needless exhortation; what church would not readily yield an
+especial honor to apostles and evangelists above pastors and
+teachers? This would savor too much of self-seeking in the apostle,
+and providing for his own honor. This implies that the text hath
+reference to apostles and evangelists, whereas it evidently speaks
+only of ordinary ruling and preaching presbyters.</p>
+<p>2. If this be the sense of Dr. Field and Bilson, that some mere
+ordinary presbyters travelled laboriously to lay the foundation of
+Christianity, others were fixed to certain places to build upon
+that foundation: this seems to be false; for we read that mere
+ordinary presbyters were ordained for several cities and places as
+their peculiar charges, whom they were to feed, and with whom they
+were to remain, as Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5; herewith compare Acts
+xx. 28; 1 Pet. v. 2; 1 Thess. v. 12. But that mere ordinary
+presbyters were ordained and employed in the Church without
+limitation of commission, where can it be evidenced in all the
+Scriptures? Wandering presbyters are nowhere commended; wandering
+stars are condemned, Jude, ver. 13.</p>
+<p>3. To refer the word <i>laboring</i> to them that travelled from
+place to place for visiting and confirming of the churches, is very
+weak and unjustifiable in this place; for this clashes with Dr.
+Field's former gloss, (mentioned Except. 4, limiting
+<i>laboring</i> to preaching.) But any thing for a present shift.
+This word is sometimes given to the apostle, as 1 Cor. xv. 10; 2
+Cor. xi. 27: but where are apostles and evangelists called
+<i>laboring</i>, merely in respect of their travelling from place
+to place, to lay the foundation of Christianity, thereby to
+distinguish them from ordinary pastors and teachers? Nay, the
+apostle himself makes <i>them that rule</i>, and <i>them that
+labor</i>, the same, 1 Thess. v. 12, 13. So here in 1 Tim. v. 17,
+<i>they that rule</i>&mdash;<i>and they that labor</i>&mdash;are
+the same, i.e. both of them ordinary presbyters, both of them
+ruling, only to one of them the office of <i>laboring</i> in the
+word and doctrine is superadded; yea, the very women that
+<i>were</i> godly were said <i>to labor in the Lord</i>, Rom. xvi.
+6, 12, not for their far travels up and down several countries to
+propagate the gospel, for where are Mary and Persis reported to
+have done this? Yet doubtless such good women privately labored
+much to bring in others, especially of their own sex, to hear the
+apostles, and entertain the gospel; and if the women may be said to
+<i>labor much in the Lord</i>, in respect of their private
+endeavors, how much more may labor be ascribed to presbyters in
+respect of both their private and public employments! So that this
+word <i>laboring</i>, which is applied in Scripture not only to
+ordinary presbyters, but also to women, cannot (without violence)
+be drawn peculiarly to signify apostles and evangelists, as this
+exception intends.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 10. Seeing in every minister of the word three
+things are requisite, unblamableness of life, dexterity of
+governing, and integrity of doctrine; the two first are commended
+here, but especially the labor in doctrine above them both;
+therefore here are set down not a two-fold order of presbyters, but
+only two parts of the pastoral office, preaching and governing;
+both which the apostle joins in the office of pastors, 1 Thes. v.
+2-13.<a href="#note-86"><small>86</small></a> "The guides of the
+church are worthy of double honor, both in respect of governing and
+teaching, but especially for their pains in teaching; so noting two
+parts or duties of presbyterial offices, not two sorts of
+presbyters."<a href="#note-87"><small>87</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. It is true, pastors have the power both of ruling
+and preaching belonging to their office, as is intimated, 1 Thes.
+v. 12, 13, and Heb. xiii. 7, and in other places; but doth it
+therefore follow, that none have the power of ruling, but those
+that have the power of preaching? or that this text, or 1 Tim. v.
+17, intends only those rulers that preach? 2. Bilson, in this
+exception, confesseth that <i>laboring</i> belongs to ordinary
+fixed pastors, and therefore contradicts himself in his former
+objection, wherein he would have appropriated it to unfixed
+apostles and evangelists; yea, by this gloss it is granted, that
+preaching presbyters are to be more honored than non-preaching
+ruling prelates. These are miserable shifts and evasions, whereby
+they are necessitated thus to wound their own friends, and to cross
+their own principles. 3. According to this gloss, this should be
+the sense, "Let the ministers that rule well by good life, and
+skilful government, be counted worthy of double honor, especially
+they who labor in the word and doctrine." Now doth not this
+tacitly insinuate, that some ministers may rule well, and be worthy
+of double honor, though they labor not in the word and doctrine?
+and how absurd were this? But if the text be interpreted not of
+several acts of the same office, but of several sorts of officers,
+this absurdity is prevented, <i>Let ruling elders be doubly
+honored, especially those that both rule and preach</i>. 4. The
+text evidently speaks not of duties, but of persons; not of acts,
+but of agents; not of offices, but of officers; for it is not said,
+"Let the elders be counted worthy of double honor, for well ruling;
+especially for laboring"&mdash;but, <i>Let the elders that rule
+well, especially they that labor in the word, &amp;c.</i> So that
+this gloss is vain, and against the plain letter of the text.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 11. Though the emphasis of the word, <i>they that
+labor</i>, be not to be neglected, yet the difference betwixt
+presbyters is not put by that word, but by those (<i>in the word
+and doctrine</i>.) This does not signify two kinds of presbyters,
+but two offices of ministers and pastors; one general, to <i>rule
+well</i>; another special, <i>to labor in the word and
+doctrine</i>. To rule well, saith Hierom, is to fulfil his office;
+or, as the Syriac interpreter expounds it, "to behave themselves
+well in their place;" or as the Scripture speaks, <i>To go in and
+out before God's people as becomes them, going before them in good
+works in their private conversations, and also in their public
+administrations</i>; whence the apostle makes here a comparison
+betwixt the duties of ministers thus, "All presbyters that
+generally discharge their office well are worthy of double honor;
+especially they who labor in the word, which is a primary part of
+their office."<a href="#note-88"><small>88</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. For substance this objection is the same with
+objection 10, already answered, therefore much more needs not to be
+added. 2. It is to be noted, that the apostle saith not, "Let the
+presbyters that rule well be counted worthy of double honor,
+especially because they labor in the word&mdash;for then he should
+have pointed at the distinct offices of ministers;" but he saith,
+<i>especially they that labor</i>, which clearly carries the sense
+to the distinction of elders themselves, who have distinct
+employments. 3. If preaching presbyters only should here be meant,
+and under that phrase (<i>that rule well</i>) their whole office in
+general, and the right managing thereof, should be contained,
+whereas <i>laboring in the word and doctrine</i> (as this exception
+implies) is but one part thereof, then hence it would inevitably
+follow, that a minister deserves more honor for the well
+administration of one part of his office only, than for the well
+managing of the whole, which is absurd! Here therefore the apostle
+doth not compare one primary part of the pastor's office, with the
+whole office and all the parts thereof; but one sort of presbyters
+with another, distinguishing the mere ruling presbyter from the
+ruling and preaching presbyter, as the acute and learned Whitaker
+hath well observed.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 12. It is evident in the text itself, that all
+these elders here meant were worthy of double honor, whether they
+labored or governed; which by St. Paul's proofs, presently
+following, and by the consent of all old and new writers, is meant
+of their maintenance at the charges of the Church.<a href=
+"#note-89"><small>89</small></a> Now that lay-judges and censors of
+manners were in the apostle's time found at the expense of the
+Church, or by God's law ought to have their maintenance at the
+people's hands, till I see it justly proved, I cannot believe it:
+which yet must be proved before this construction can be
+admitted.<a href="#note-90"><small>90</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. This word <i>honor</i> signifies (after the
+custom of the Hebrews, Exod. xx. 12) all pious offices and relief.
+This phrase (<i>double honor</i>) interpreters expound either
+absolutely or comparatively. Absolutely thus: <i>double honor</i>,
+i.e. great honor, so some; maintenance in this life, happiness in
+the life to come, so others; honor of reverence to their persons,
+and of maintenance for their labors, so Chrysostom, of which saith
+Calvin, "That Chrysostom interprets double honor to be maintenance
+and reverence, I impugn not." Comparatively thus: <i>double
+honor</i> here seems to relate to what was before spoken, ver. 3,
+"Honor widows that are widows indeed." Now here he intimates, that
+though widows are to be honored, yet these should be much more
+honored; they should have single, these double honor. In this last
+sense, which seems most genuine, it seems most likely that the
+apostle here intended principally, if not only, the honor of
+maintenance; partly because the honor appointed for widows, ver. 3,
+&amp;c., was only maintenance; partly because the reason of this
+charge to honor, &amp;c., refers only to maintenance, ver. 18. Thus
+far we grant, that the text speaks of maintenance. 2. It may be
+further yielded that all the presbyters here spoken of are to be
+counted worthy of double honor, of honorable, liberal maintenance;
+even they that rule well (if need require) are to be thus honored,
+but the principal care of maintenance ought to be of them that
+labor in the word and doctrine, because the apostle saith
+<i>especially they that labor, &amp;c.</i>: the like injunction,
+see Gal. vi. 6, "Let him that is catechized, communicate to him
+that catechizeth him in all good things;" and thus much this text
+plainly evidenceth. 3. What then can be inferred hereupon by the
+adversaries of ruling elders? "Therefore the ruling elders (in the
+reformed churches) that take no maintenance of the church, are not
+the elders that rule well here mentioned?" This follows not: the
+apostle Paul took no wages of the church of Corinth, 2 Cor. xi.
+7-9, and xii. 12, 13, &amp;c., was he therefore not an apostle to
+them, as to other churches of whom he took maintenance? Divers
+among us in these days labor in the word and doctrine, and are not
+sufficiently maintained by their churches, but forced to spend of
+their own estates to do others service; are they therefore no
+ministers? <i>Forgive them this wrong</i>. Most churches are not
+able (or at least not willing) to maintain their very preaching
+presbyters and their families comfortably and sufficiently, as the
+gospel requireth: if therefore in prudence, that the Church be not
+needlessly burdened, those ruling elders are chosen generally that
+need no maintenance, doth their not taking maintenance of the
+church make their office null and void? Or if the church do not
+give them maintenance (when they neither need it, nor desire it,
+nor is the church able to do it) is the church therefore defective
+in her duty, or an ill observer of the apostolical precepts? Sure
+maintenance is not essentially and inseparably necessary to the
+calling of either ruling or preaching elder. There may be cases
+when not only the preaching, but the ruling elders ought to be
+maintained, and there may be cases when not only the ruling but
+also the preaching presbyter (as it was with Paul) should not
+expect to be maintained by the church. 4. It is as observable that
+the apostle here saith, let them be counted worthy of double honor,
+though the reformed churches do not actually give double
+maintenance to elders that rule well, yet they count them worthy of
+double maintenance, though the elders do not take it, though the
+churches cannot give it.</p>
+<p>Finally, unto these testimonies and arguments from Scripture,
+many testimonies of ancient and modern writers (of no small repute
+in the Church of God) may be usefully annexed, speaking for ruling
+elders in the Church of Christ from time to time: some speaking of
+such sort of elders, presbyters, or church-governors, as that
+ruling elders may very well be implied in their expressions; some
+plainly declaring that the Church of Christ <i>in fact</i> had such
+officers for government thereof; and some testifying that of right
+such officers ought to be in the Church of Christ now under the New
+Testament for the well guiding thereof; by which it may notably
+appear, that in asserting the office of the ruling elder in the
+Church, we take not upon us to maintain any singular paradox of our
+own devising, or to hold forth some new light in this old
+opinionative age: and that the ruling elder is not a church officer
+first coined at Geneva, and a stranger to the Church of Christ for
+the first 1500 years, (as the adversaries of ruling elders
+scornfully pretend,) but hath been owned by the Church of Christ as
+well in former as in later times.<a href=
+"#note-91"><small>91</small></a></p>
+<h3><i>An Appendix touching the Divine Right of Deacons.</i></h3>
+<p>Though we cannot find in Scripture that the power of the keys is
+committed by Christ unto deacons, with the other church governors,
+but conceive that deacons, as other members of the church, are to
+be governed, and are not to govern; yet forasmuch as deacons are
+ordinary officers in the Church of God, of which she will have
+constant use in all ages, and which at first were divinely
+appointed, and after frequently mentioned in the New Testament; it
+will not be thought unfit, before we conclude this section,
+touching the divine right of Christ's church-officers, briefly to
+assert the divine right of deacons, as followeth.</p>
+<p>Deacons in the church are an ordinance of Jesus Christ. For,</p>
+<p>1. They are found in Christ's catalogue of church officers,
+distinct from all other officers, both extraordinary and ordinary.
+<i>Helps</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28. The Greek word in the natural
+acceptation properly signifies, to lift over against one in taking
+up some burden or weight; metaphorically, it here is used for
+deacons, whose office it is to <i>help</i> and <i>succor the poor
+and sick, to lend them a hand to lift them up</i>, &amp;c., and
+this office is here distinctly laid down from all other ordinary
+and extraordinary offices in the text. So they are distinguished
+from all ordinary officers reckoned up, Rom. xii. 7, 8: under
+<i>prophecy</i>, there is the <i>teacher</i> and <i>pastor</i>;
+under <i>ministry</i>, the <i>ruling elder</i>, and the
+<i>deacon</i>, verse 8. This officer was so well known, and usual
+in the primitive churches, that when the apostle writes to the
+church at Philippi, he directs his epistle not only to the saints,
+but to the officers, viz. <i>to the overseers, and deacons</i>,
+Philip, i. 1. The occasion of the first institution of this office,
+see in Acts vi. 1, 2, &amp;c. At the first planting of the
+Christian Church, the apostles themselves took care to receive the
+churches' goods, and to distribute to every one of their members
+<i>as they had need</i>, Acts iv. 34, 35; but in the increase of
+the church, the burden of this care of distributing alms increasing
+also, upon some complaints of the Greeks, <i>that their widows were
+neglected</i>, the office of deacons was erected, for better
+provision for the poor, Acts vi. 1-7; and because the churches are
+never like to want poor and afflicted persons, there will be
+constant need of this officer. The pastor and deacon under the New
+Testament seem to answer the priests and Levites under the Old
+Testament.</p>
+<p>2. The qualifications of deacons are laid down by Christ in the
+New Testament, at large: 1 Tim. iii. 8-14, <i>Deacons also must be
+grave, not double-tongued</i>, &amp;c., and Acts vi. 3, 5.</p>
+<p>3. The manner also of deacons' vocation or calling unto their
+office is delineated, viz: 1. They must be chosen by the church;
+"Look ye out among you seven men of honest report," &amp;c., "and
+they chose Stephen," &amp;c., Acts vi. 3, 5. 2. They must first be
+proved and tried by the officers of the church, before they may
+officiate as deacons; "and let these also first be proved, then let
+them use the office of a deacon, being blameless," 1 Tim. iii. 10.
+3. They must be appointed by the officers of the church to their
+office, and set apart with prayer, Acts vi. 3, 6: "Look ye out
+men&mdash;whom we may appoint over this business&mdash;whom they
+set before the apostles, and when they had prayed, they laid their
+hands on them."</p>
+<p>4. Deacons have by Scripture their work and employment appointed
+them. Their work is, <i>to serve tables</i>, (hence the name deacon
+seems derived,) Acts vi. 2, 3. To be an help, no hinderance in the
+church; called <i>helps</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 18.</p>
+<p>5. Deacons have a divine approbation and commendation in
+Scripture, if they execute their office well. "For they that have
+used the office of a deacon well, purchase to themselves a good
+degree, and great boldness in the faith which is in Christ Jesus,"
+1 Tim. iii. 13. Here the well administration of deaconship is
+commended as producing two good effects to such deacons, viz: 1.
+<i>A good degree</i>, i.e. great honor, dignity, and reputation,
+both to themselves and to their office; they adorn, grace, and
+credit their office in the church; not that they purchase to
+themselves by desert a higher office in the church, that from
+deacons they should be advanced to be presbyters, as some would
+interpret this text. 2. <i>Much boldness in the faith which is in
+Christ Jesus.</i> For nothing makes a man more bold than a good
+conscience in the upright and faithful discharge of our duties in
+our callings; innocency and integrity make brave spirits; such with
+great confidence and boldness serve Christ and the church, being
+men that may be trusted to the uttermost. Now where God thus
+approves or commends the well managing of an office, he also
+divinely approves and allows the office itself, and the officer
+that executes the same.<a href="#note-92"><small>92</small></a></p>
+<a name="H_SECTIII-II"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION II.</h3>
+<p>2. <i>Of the first receptacle, or subject of the power of church
+government from Christ, viz. Christ's own officers.</i></p>
+<p>Touching the second, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath
+peculiarly intrusted his own officers with the power of church
+government: take it thus&mdash;</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator did immediately commit the proper,
+formal, ministerial, or stewardly authority and power for governing
+of his church to his own church guides as the proper immediate
+receptacle or first subject thereof.</p>
+<p>For explication of this proposition, four things are to be
+opened.</p>
+<p>1. What is meant by proper, formal, ministerial or stewardly
+authority and power for church government? See this already
+discussed, Part 2, chapters III., V., and IX., in the beginning of
+Section 2, so that here there needs no further addition, as to this
+point.</p>
+<p>2. What is meant by church guides? By church guides here
+understand, negatively, 1. Not the political magistrate. For though
+he be the <i>nurse-father</i> of the church, Isa. xlix. 23, <i>the
+keeper and avenger of both the tables</i>; and <i>have an outward
+care of religion</i>, and <i>may exercise a political power about
+sacred things</i>, as did Asa, Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah,
+&amp;c., yet hath he no proper, inward, formal power in sacred
+things, nor is it lawful for him to exercise the same; as Korah,
+Num. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam. xiii. 9-15; Uzzah, 2 Sam. vi. 6-8, 1
+Chron. xiii. 9, 10; and King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16-22, did to
+the provoking of God, and to their own destruction. (But see what
+power is granted, and what denied to the civil magistrate in
+matters of religion, and why, Part 2, Chap. IX. Sect. 1.) 2. Not
+any officer of man's mere invention and setting up in the church,
+whether papal, as cardinals, &amp;c., prelatical, as deans,
+archdeacons, chancellors, officials, &amp;c., or political, as
+committees, commissioners, &amp;c. For who can create and institute
+a new kind of offices in the church, but Jesus Christ only, who
+alone hath the lordly magisterial power as Mediator appropriated to
+him? Eph. iv. 8, 11; Rom. xii. 5-8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and therefore
+how can such acts be sufficiently excused from bold usurpation upon
+Christ's own prerogative? 3. Nor the deacons themselves, (though
+officers of Christ's appointment, as was formerly proved;) for
+their office is not to rule and govern, but <i>to serve tables</i>,
+&amp;c., Acts vi. 2, 3. None of these are the church guides which
+Christ hath committed his proper power unto. But affirmatively
+understand all these church guides extraordinary and ordinary,
+which Christ hath erected in his Church, vesting them with power
+and authority therein, viz. apostles, prophets, evangelists,
+pastors and teachers, governments, or ruling elders, mentioned
+together in Eph. iv. 8, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v. 17; Rom. xii.
+6-8. These are Christ's own church officers, these Christ hath made
+the immediate receptacle and first subject of the keys, or of
+ecclesiastical power derived from himself.</p>
+<p>3. What is meant by Christ's committing this stewardly power
+first and immediately to the church guides? <i>Ans</i>. There is,
+1. A priority and immediateness of the donation of the power of the
+keys: thus Christ first and immediately gave keys to his own
+officers, whom Scripture, therefore, calls <i>the ministers of
+Christ</i>, (not of the Church,) 1 Cor. iv. 1, not first and
+immediately to the community of the faithful, or Church, and then
+by the Church secondarily and mediately to the officers, as her
+substitutes and delegates, acting for her, and not in virtue of
+their own power from Christ. 2. A priority and immediateness of
+designation of particular individual persons to the office of
+key-bearing, and this is done by the mediate intervening act of the
+church officers in separating of particular persons to the office
+which Christ instituted; though it is not denied but that the
+church or company of the faithful may lawfully nominate or elect
+individual persons to be officers in the congregation, which yet is
+no act of authority or power.</p>
+<p>4. How hath Christ committed this power of the keys to his
+church guides, that thereby they become the most proper receptacle
+thereof? <i>Ans</i>. Thus briefly. All absolute lordly power is in
+God originally: all lordly magisterial mediatory power is in Christ
+dispensatorily: all official, stewardly power is by delegation from
+Christ only in the church guides<a href=
+"#note-93"><small>93</small></a> ministerially, as the only proper
+subject thereof that may exercise the same lawfully in Christ's
+name: yet all power, both magisterial in Christ, and ministerial in
+Christ's officers, is for the Church of Christ and her edification
+objectively and finally.</p>
+<p>These things thus explained and stated, we come now to the
+confirmation of the proposition. Consider these arguments:</p>
+<p>1. Jesus Christ committed immediately ecclesiastical power and
+the exercise thereof to his church guides. Thus we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. All those that have ecclesiastical power, and the
+exercise thereof, immediately committed to them from Jesus Christ,
+are the immediate subject or receptacle of that power.</p>
+<p>For what makes any persons the immediate subject of power, but
+the immediate derivation and commission of power to them from Jesus
+Christ, who is the fountain of all power?</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the church guides have the ecclesiastical
+power and the exercise thereof immediately committed to them from
+Jesus Christ. This may be evinced many ways by Scriptures. 1. It is
+said expressly, "Of our authority which the Lord hath given us for
+your edification," 2 Cor. 10, 8: by <i>us</i> here we are to
+understand church guides, for here they are set in opposition to
+the church members (<i>for edification</i>,) not destruction of
+(you.) Here are edifiers and edified. Now these church guides have
+authority given them, and that from the Lord, i.e. Christ; here is
+their commission or power, not from the Church or any creature, but
+from Christ; hence the apostle calls church guides, "Your rulers or
+guides in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12; <i>in the Lord</i>, i.e. by the
+Lord's authority and commission. So that church officers are
+<i>rulers in the Lord</i>, and the churches ruled by them; yea,
+ruling elders being one sort of church guides, have such an
+undoubted power of governing in the Church divinely committed to
+them, that of them it is said, "God hath set in the church
+governments", 1 Cor. xii. 28, i.e. governors, the abstract being
+put for the concrete. If <i>God have set governors in the
+Church</i>, then God vested those governors with a power of
+governing, whence they have their name of governments.</p>
+<p>2. The keys of the kingdom of heaven, with all their acts, were
+immediately committed to the church guides, viz. to the apostles
+and their successors to the end of the world; compare these
+testimonies, Matt. xvi. 16, 19, and xviii. 18-20; John xx. 21-23;
+with Matt, xxviii. 18-20: therefore consequently ecclesiastical
+power was committed immediately unto them as the subject thereof.
+For, <i>By the kingdom of heaven</i> here we are to understand
+(according to the full latitude of the phrase) both the kingdom of
+grace in this world, and of glory in the world to come; <i>binding
+and loosing both in earth and in heaven</i>, upon the right use of
+the keys, being here the privileges promised to church guides; and
+<i>by kingdom of heaven</i>&mdash;on earth, understand the whole
+visible Church of Christ in the earth, not only some single
+congregation. By <i>keys of the kingdom of heaven</i>, thus
+apprehend, Christ promiseth and giveth not the sword <i>of the
+kingdom</i>, any secular power; nor the sceptre <i>of the
+kingdom</i>, any sovereign, lordly, magisterial power over the
+Church. But the <i>keys</i>, &amp;c. i.e. a stewardly, ministerial
+power, and their acts, <i>binding and loosing</i>, i.e.
+<i>retaining and remitting sins on earth</i>, (as in John it is
+explained;) opening and shutting are proper acts of keys; binding
+and loosing but metaphorical, viz. a speech borrowed from bonds or
+chains wherewith men's bodies are bound in prison or in captivity,
+or from which the body is loosed: we are naturally all under sin,
+Rom. v. 12, and therefore liable to death, Rom. vi. 23. Now sins
+are to the soul as bonds and cords, Prov. v. 22. <i>The bond of
+iniquity</i>, Acts viii. 23; and death with the pains thereof, are
+as chains, 2 Pet. ii. 4, Jude 6; in hell as in a prison,
+1 Pet. iii. 10: the remission or retaining of these sins, is the
+loosing or the binding of the soul under these cords and chains. So
+that the keys themselves are not material but metaphorical; a
+metaphor from stewards in great men's houses, kings' houses,
+&amp;c., into whose hands the whole trust and ordering of household
+affairs is committed, who take in and cast out servants, open and
+shut doors, &amp;c., do all without control of any in the family
+save the master of the family. Such, in the Hebrew phrase, are said
+to be <i>over the house</i>, Gen. xliii. 18; Isa. xxii. 15; 2 Kings
+xviii. 18: and the keys of the house are committed to them as a
+badge of their power. So that when God threatens to put Shebna out
+of his office in the king's house, and to place Eliakim, son of
+Hilkiah, in his room, he saith, "I will commit thy government into
+his hand&mdash;and the key of the house of David will I lay upon
+his shoulder," Isa. xxii. 21, 22, parallel of that phrase, "and the
+government shall be upon his shoulder," Isa. ix. 6. Hence, as key
+is in the Old Testament used for stewardly power and government,
+Isa. xxii. 21, 22; (only twice properly, Judges iii. 25; 1 Chron.
+ix. 27;) so in the New Testament, <i>key</i> is always used,
+metaphorically, to denote power, and that about ecclesiasticals or
+spirituals, viz. in Matt. xvi. 19; Luke xi. 52; Rev. i. 18, and
+iii. 7, and ix. 1, and xx. 1. So that <i>keys</i>, &amp;c., are
+metaphorically the ordinances which Christ hath instituted, to be
+dispensed in his church, preaching the word, administrations of the
+seals and censures: for it is not said <i>key</i>, but <i>keys</i>,
+which comprehendeth them all: by the right use of which both the
+gates of the Church here, and of heaven hereafter, are opened or
+shut to believers or unbelievers; and Christ promising or giving
+these <i>keys</i> to Peter and the apostles, and their successors
+<i>to the end of the world</i>, Matt. xxviii. 20, doth intrust and
+invest them with power and authority of dispensing these ordinances
+for this end, and so makes them <i>stewards</i> in his house <i>of
+the mysteries of God</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1, so that we may
+conclude:</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the church guides are the immediate
+subject and receptacle of that ecclesiastical power, and of the
+exercise thereof.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. Jesus Christ our Mediator did institute
+ecclesiastical offices for church government under the New
+Testament before any Christian Church under the New Testament was
+gathered or constituted. Therefore those persons that were
+intrusted with those offices must needs be the first and immediate
+receptacle or subject of the power of the keys. Thus we may
+argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. All those whose ecclesiastical offices for church
+government, under the New Testament, were instituted by Christ,
+before any formal visible Christian Church was gathered or
+constituted, are the first and immediate receptacle or subject of
+the power of the keys from Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the ecclesiastical offices of Christ's own
+officers for governing of the Church, now under the New Testament,
+were instituted by Christ before any formal visible Christian
+Church was gathered or constituted.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Christ's own officers for governing
+of the Church now under the New Testament are the first and
+immediate receptacle or subject of the keys from Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p>The major proposition cannot reasonably be denied, and may be
+further cleared by these considerations, viz: 1. That the Church
+offices for church government under the New Testament are in their
+own nature intrinsically offices of power. The apostle styles it
+<i>power</i>, or <i>authority</i>, which is <i>given</i> to these
+officers by <i>the Lord</i>, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10. <i>The keys
+of the kingdom of heaven</i> are committed to them, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and <i>keys</i> import a stewardly power: compare Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18, John xx. 21, 23, with Isa. xxii. 21, 22. Materially,
+the acts and exercise of these officers are acts of power, as
+<i>binding, loosing</i>, &amp;c., Matt, xviii. 18; not only
+<i>preaching</i>, &amp;c., but <i>excommunicating</i>, is an act of
+power, 1 Cor. v. 4. Absolving the penitent, and confirming him
+again in the Church's love, is an act of power:&mdash;<i>to confirm
+love unto him</i>, i.e. authoritatively to confirm, &amp;c., as the
+word signifies, 2 Cor. ii. 8. Formally, these acts are to be done
+as acts of power, in Christ's name, and by his authority, Matt.
+xxviii. 19; 1 Cor. v. 4. Now if these offices be in their own
+nature offices of power, consequently they that have such offices
+conferred upon them by Christ, before the Christian Church had
+being or existence, they must needs be the first and immediate
+recipient subject of the power of the keys from Christ. 2. Either
+those church officers, whose offices were instituted before the
+Christian Church was constituted, must be the first subject of the
+power, &amp;c., or some others. If any other, then, 1. Either
+heathens, or heathen magistrates, who are out of the Church: but
+both these were absurd to grant; for then they that are not so much
+as church members should be church governors, and the Church be
+ecclesiastically judged by them that are without. 2. Or the first
+subject of this power was the Christian Church itself before it had
+existence; but that were notoriously absurd; and besides these, no
+other can be imagined, but the church officers; therefore they must
+needs be the first subject of the power of the keys.</p>
+<p>The minor proposition (viz. But the ecclesiastical offices of
+Christ's own officers for governing of the Church now under the New
+Testament, were instituted by Christ before any formal visible
+Christian Church was gathered or constituted) is so evident in the
+current of the New Testament, that it needs little confirmation.
+For, 1. The church offices under the New Testament, as apostleship,
+pastorship, &amp;c., were instituted by Christ either before his
+death&mdash;compare these places together, Mark iii. 13, 14,
+&amp;c.; Luke ix. 1, &amp;c., and x. 1, 2, &amp;c.; John xx. 21-23;
+Matt, xxviii. 18-20&mdash;or presently upon his ascension, Eph. iv.
+8, 11, 12, &amp;c.; Acts ii.; 1 Cor. xiii. 28. Now no formal
+Christian Church was constituted and gathered till the feast of
+Pentecost and afterwards. Then, after the apostles had received the
+gifts of the Holy Ghost, &amp;c., Acts ii., great multitudes of
+Jews and Gentiles were converted to Christ, and being converted,
+incorporated and associated themselves into churches, as the
+history of the Acts, chap, ii., and forward, evidenceth abundantly.
+2. Church officers, under the New Testament, are for the calling
+and gathering men unto Christ, and to his body mystical; and for
+admitting of those that believe into that one body, Matt, xxviii.
+18, 19; 1 Cor. xii. 28. And is not he that calleth, before them
+that are called by them; they that baptize, before the baptized;
+and they that gather the churches, before those churches which they
+gather? May we not hence conclude, <i>Therefore</i>, &amp;c.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. III. The names, titles, and other denominations
+purposely and peculiarly given to the church guides in Scripture,
+generally do bear power and authority engraven upon their
+foreheads. <i>Therefore</i>, they are the proper, immediate, and
+only subjects of ecclesiastical power. Thus we may argue:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. All those persons in the Church, that have such
+names, titles, or denominations given to them peculiarly in the
+Scriptures by the Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and
+power engraven upon them in reference to the Church, are the
+immediate and only proper subjects of ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But Christ's officers in the Church have such
+names, titles, or denominations given to them peculiarly in the
+Scriptures by the Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and
+power engraven upon them in reference to the Church.</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church
+are the proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of
+ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p>This major proposition must be granted. For, 1. Is not this the
+Holy Ghost's familiar and ordinary manner in Scripture, to give
+titles and denominations, which are apt, pertinent, significative
+and instructing both to others and themselves that have such
+denominations conferred upon them? As in the family, the husband is
+called <i>the head of the wife</i>, 1 Cor. xi., because he is to
+govern, she is to be subject: the wife is called <i>an
+help-meet</i>, &amp;c., Gen. ii.: to teach the wife her duty, to
+help his good and comfort every way, to hinder it no way. So in the
+commonwealth, magistrates are called <i>heirs of restraint, to put
+men to shame</i>, Judges xviii. 7, because they are to restrain
+disorders, shame evil-doers: higher powers, to teach others
+subjection to them, Rom. xiii. 1. "An ordinance of man or human
+creation," 1 Pet. ii. 13: because, though magistracy in general be
+an ordinance of God, yet this or that special kind of magistracy,
+whether monarchical, aristocratical, &amp;c., is of man. Thus in
+the Church: the Church is called <i>Christ's body</i>, Ephes. iv.
+12, to show Christ's headship, the Church's subjection to Christ,
+and their near union to one another. Christians are called
+<i>members</i>, Rom. xii.; 1 Cor. xii., to teach them mutual love,
+care, and serviceableness to one another. Ministers are called
+<i>ambassadors of Christ</i>, 2 Cor. v. <i>Angels of the
+churches</i>, Rev. ii., to teach them to be faithful in their
+offices, and others to respect them for their offices. <i>Salt of
+the earth</i>, Matt. v. 13, because they are to season others
+spiritually. <i>Stars</i>, Rev. i., because they are to shine forth
+for the enlightening and guiding of others, &amp;c. 2. If this
+proposition be denied, then to what end are such names and
+denominations, importing authority, generally given by the Spirit
+of God to some sort of persons only, and not to others? Is it for
+no end? That would be a dangerous charge upon the Spirit of Christ.
+Is it for any end? Then what other can be imagined, than to
+signify, hold forth, and instruct both themselves and others in
+their duties, and to distinguish them that are vested with
+authority in the Church, from them that are not?</p>
+<p>The <i>major proposition</i> (viz. But Christ's own officers in
+the Church have such names, titles, or denominations given to them
+peculiarly in the Scriptures by the Spirit of Christ, as generally
+have authority and power engraven upon them in reference to the
+Church) may be evinced, 1. By induction of particular names
+attributed to Christ's officers. 2. By a denial of them, or the
+like, to any other members of the Church.</p>
+<p>1. By induction of particular titles or denominations attributed
+to Christ's officers, which generally have power and authority
+palpably engraven upon them: (yea, the self-same names are given to
+them, by which not only heathen writers, but also the Greek version
+of the Old Testament by the Septuagint, and the very original of
+the New Testament are wont to give to political officers, to
+express their political authority, power, and government,) as, for
+instance:</p>
+<p>1. <i>Presbyter or elder</i>, is ascribed often to Christ's
+church officers, as in Acts xiv. 23, and xv. 2, 4, and xx. 17; 1
+Tim. v. 17; Tit. v.; 1 Pet. v. 1. This same word is ascribed to
+<i>rulers political</i>, to <i>elders in the gate</i>, by the
+Septuagint, in Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 2 Sam. v. 3; 1
+Chron. vi. 3.</p>
+<p>2. <i>Overseer</i> or <i>bishop</i>, noting authority and power
+in having the charge and oversight of the flock, is ascribed to
+church officers in Acts xx. 28; Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i.
+7. This same word is used by the Septuagint, to denote the power of
+the civil magistrate, to whom the care and oversight of the
+commonwealth is committed, Numb. xxxi. 14; Judges ix. 28; 2 Kings
+xi. 15.</p>
+<p>3. <i>Guide, leader, conductor, captain, governor</i>, signifies
+them all, and is given to church officers, as contradistinct from
+the <i>church</i> and <i>saints</i>, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 24. It is
+also attributed to civil rulers to set forth their power, in Deut.
+i. 13; Micah iii. 9, 11; 2 Chron. v. 1; Ezek. xliv. 3, and xlv. 7;
+Dan. iii. 2; Acts vii. 10. This very word <i>governor</i>, is
+attributed to Christ himself, <i>out of thee shall come forth a
+governor, that shall rule</i> (or <i>feed</i>) <i>my people
+Israel</i>, Matt. ii. 6.</p>
+<p>4. <i>Steward, dispenser</i>. "Stewards of the mysteries of
+God," is the title given to ministers, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. "Steward of
+God," Tit. i. 7. "That faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord
+shall make ruler over his household," &amp;c., Luke xii. 42. This
+also is a title of power given to them that are set over families,
+as Gal. iv. 2, "he is under tutors and stewards." And to them that
+are set over cities&mdash;as Rom. xvi. 23, "Erastus the steward"
+(or as we render it, <i>the chamberlain</i>) "of the city saluteth
+you."</p>
+<p>5. <i>Pastor</i> is ascribed to Christ's officers; Eph. iv. 11,
+"and some pastors and teachers." They govern the Church as the
+shepherd his flock, feeding, ruling them as well with the
+shepherd's staff, as with food. This term is sometimes given to
+civil magistrates, Isa. xliv. 28; Micah v. 5: sometimes to Christ
+the great shepherd of the sheep, 1 Pet. v. 4; noting his authority,
+Matt. xxvi. 31; John x. 2, 11, 14, 16; Heb. xiii. 20; 1 Pet. ii.
+25: sometimes to God himself the supreme Ruler of the world, Ps.
+lxxx. 1.</p>
+<p>6. <i>Governments</i>, a denomination given to <i>ruling
+elders</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28, as hath been proved Sect. 1 of this
+Chapter. A metaphor from mariners or pilots, that steer and govern
+the ship: translated thence, to signify the power and authority of
+church governors, spiritual pilots, steering the ship or ark of
+Christ's Church. This word is used also by heathen authors, to
+signify political governors.<a href=
+"#note-94"><small>94</small></a></p>
+<p><i>Ruler</i>. 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the elders that rule
+well"&mdash;and,</p>
+<p>"He that ruleth," Rom. xii. 8, and "Your rulers in the Lord," 1
+Thes. v. 12, viz. not only in the fear of the Lord,<a href=
+"#note-95"><small>95</small></a> nor only in those things that
+appertain to God's worship,<a href="#note-96"><small>96</small></a>
+but also in the Lord; i.e. who are over you, to rule according to
+the will of the Lord,<a href="#note-97"><small>97</small></a> even
+by the Lord Christ's power and authority derived to them. Now these
+names are among heathen authors ascribed to rulers of cities,
+armies, and kingdoms.<a href="#note-98"><small>98</small></a></p>
+<p>By these among other titles given to Christ's officers in
+Scripture, he that runs may read a plain authority and power
+enstamped on them in reference to the Church; and consequently on
+them that are thus denominated, unless they be applied to them
+improperly, unfitly, abusively; which we suppose no sober
+intelligent reader dare affirm.</p>
+<p>2. By a denial of these and like titles to the whole Church of
+Christ, or to any other members of the Church whatsoever, besides
+church officers. For where can it be showed in all the book of God,
+that in this sense, either the whole Church or any members thereof
+besides officers, are ever styled <i>presbyters, bishops,
+governors, stewards of God, or of the mysteries of God, pastors,
+governments, or rulers</i>? The greatest factors for popular
+government must let this alone forever. Thus, from all that hath
+been said, we need not fear to conclude:</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church
+are the proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of
+ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. IV. The relations which Christ's officers have
+unto his Church, imply and comprehend in themselves authority and
+power in reference to the Church, and therefore they are the proper
+subjects of ecclesiastical power. Thus we reason:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whosoever they are that peculiarly stand in such
+relations to the Church of Christ, as imply and comprehend in
+themselves authority and power for governing of the Church, they
+are the only subject of ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p>This proposition is evident; for, otherwise, to what end are
+those peculiar relations to the Church which comprehend government
+in them, unless such as are so peculiarly related be the only
+subjects of government? Shall all those relations be mere names and
+shadows? or shall others in the church be counted the subject of
+this authority and power for church government, that have no such
+relations to the Church at all implying any such power?</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the officers of Christ peculiarly stand in
+such relations to the Church of Christ as imply and comprehend in
+themselves authority and power for the government of the
+church.</p>
+<p>This assumption or minor proposition will be evident by a due
+induction of some of their particular relations that have such
+power enstamped on them; as for instance, Christ's officers stand
+in these relations of power to the Church and people of God.</p>
+<p>1. <i>They are pastors</i>, Eph. iv. 11. The church is the
+<i>flock</i>, John x. 16; 1 Cor. ix. 7; <i>flock</i>, Acts xx. 28,
+29; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. Hath not the <i>pastor</i> power to rule and
+govern his <i>flock</i>?</p>
+<p>2. They are <i>stewards</i>. "Who is that faithful and wise
+steward?" Luke xii. 42. "Stewards of the mysteries of God," 1 Cor.
+iv. 1, 2. "Stewards of God," Tit. i. 7. The Church and people of
+God are the Lord's <i>household</i>, over which these stewards are
+set, &amp;c., Luke xii. 42. <i>God's house</i>, 1 Tim. iii. 15;
+Heb. iii. 6. Have not stewards power to govern and order those
+<i>families</i> over which they are set, and wherewith they are
+intrusted? Gal. iv. 1.</p>
+<p>3. They are <i>bishops</i> or <i>overseers</i>, Phil. i. 1; 1
+Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i. 7. The Church and people of God are that
+<i>charge</i> which the Lord hath committed to their inspection.
+"Over which the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers," Acts xx. 28.
+Have not <i>overseers</i> power over that which is <i>committed to
+their inspection</i>?</p>
+<p>4. They are <i>catechizers</i> and <i>teachers</i>, Rom. xii. 7,
+8; Eph. iv. 11. The Church and people are <i>catechized</i>, Gal.
+vi. 6; <i>taught</i>. Hath not he that <i>catechizeth</i> power for
+government of him that is <i>catechized</i>? He that
+<i>teacheth</i> of him that is <i>taught</i>?</p>
+<p>5. They are <i>co-workers</i> with God, 1 Cor. iii. 9; 2 Cor.
+vi. 1. <i>Architects, builders</i>, &amp;c., 1 Cor. iii. 10; some
+of them <i>laying the foundation, others building thereupon</i>.
+The Church and people of God are God's building. "Ye are God's
+building," 1 Cor. iii. 9. Have not <i>builders</i> power of
+disposing and ordering affairs appertaining to the
+<i>building</i>?</p>
+<p>6. Finally, to add no more, the officers of Christ in the Church
+are not only as <i>nurses</i>; "We <i>were</i> gentle among you,
+even as a nurse cherisheth her children," 1 Thess. ii. 7: and as
+<i>mothers</i>; "My little children, of whom I travail in birth
+again," Gal. iv. 19: but also as <i>fathers</i>, 1 Thess. ii. 11; 1
+Cor. iv. 15, spiritual fathers in Christ: and the Church and people
+of God, they are the <i>sons</i> and <i>daughters</i>, the
+spiritual <i>babes</i> and <i>children</i>, begotten, brought
+forth, and nursed up by them, 1 Thess. ii. 7, 11; Gal. iv. 19: and
+have fathers no authority nor power of government over their
+children? See Eph. vi. 1-3; 1 Tim. iii. 4.</p>
+<p>Thus Christ's officers stand in such relation to the Church as
+do evidently carry power of government along with them; but where
+are any other members of the church besides officers, stated in
+such relation of <i>pastors, stewards, overseers, catechizers,
+builders, husbandmen, nurses, mothers</i>, and <i>fathers</i> to
+the Church of God and members of Christ, that can be evidenced by
+the Scriptures? Why may we not then clearly conclude,</p>
+<p><i>Conclusion</i>. Therefore the officers of Christ are the only
+subjects of ecclesiastical power.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. V. The many divine commands and impositions of
+duties of obedience, submission, subjection, &amp;c., upon the
+Church and people of God, to be performed by them to Christ's
+officers, and that in reference to their office, do plainly
+proclaim the officers of Christ to be the proper receptacle and
+subject of authority and power from Christ for the government of
+his Church. Thus it may be argued:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever persons they are to whom the Church and
+people of God are peculiarly bound by the commands of Christ, to
+perform duties of obedience and subjection, and that in reference
+to their office in the church, they are the only subjects of
+authority from Christ for the government of his Church.</p>
+<p>This proposition needs no proof, unless we will be so absurd as
+to say that the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged by
+Christ's command to obey and be subject to them, that yet have no
+peculiar authority nor power over them, and that in reference to
+their office in the church.</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the officers of Christ are those to whom the
+Church and people of God are peculiarly bound by the commands of
+Christ to perform duties of obedience and subjection, and that in
+reference to their office in the church.</p>
+<p>This assumption or minor proposition may be evidenced, 1. Partly
+by induction of some particular instances of Christ's commands,
+whereby the Church and people of God are bound to perform duties of
+obedience and subjection to the officers of Christ, in reference to
+their office in the church. 2. Partly by a denial of the like
+commands in reference to all others in the church, except the
+officers of the church only.</p>
+<p>Touching the first, viz. the instances of such commands,
+consider these following. The Church and people of God are
+commanded,</p>
+<p>1. To know their rulers. "We beseech you, brethren, to know them
+that labor among you, and are over you in the Lord," 1 Thess. v.
+12. <i>To know</i>, i.e., not simply and merely to know, but to
+acknowledge, accept, and approve of them as such rulers over you in
+the Lord. This teaches subjection to the office of ruling.</p>
+<p>2. To love them exceedingly for their work's sake. "Esteem them
+superabundantly in love for their work's sake," 1 Thess. v. 13. For
+what work? viz. both laboring and ruling, mentioned verse 12. If
+they must love them so exceedingly for ruling over them, must they
+not much more be obedient to this rule?</p>
+<p>3. To count them worthy of double honor in reference to their
+well-ruling. "Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of
+double honor, especially&mdash;," 1 Tim. v. 17: whether we take
+<i>double honor</i> here for reverence or maintenance, or both; yet
+how can we esteem the <i>elders ruling well worthy of double
+honor</i> without some submission to their rule?</p>
+<p>4. To obey them that are their rulers and governors. <i>Obey ye
+your rulers, or governors</i>, Heb. xiii. 17; where the words
+<i>obey ye</i> doth not (as some dream) signify a persuasion, but
+obedience, and in this sense it is commonly used, not only in
+profane authors, but also in the Holy Scriptures, as James iii. 3,
+Gal. iii. 1.</p>
+<p>5. Finally, to submit and be subordinate unto them. The Church
+and people of God are charged to submit unto them. "Obey your
+governors and submit ye," Heb. xiii. 17. The word properly notes a
+submissive yielding without opposition or resistance; yea, it
+signifies intense obedience. They must not only yield, but yield
+with subjection and submission, which relates to authority. They
+are also charged to be subordinate to them. "Likewise, ye younger,
+submit yourselves to the elders," 1 Pet. v. 5; i.e., <i>be ye
+subordinate</i>, (it is a military term,) viz: be ordered, ranked,
+guided, governed, disciplined by them, as soldiers are by their
+commanders. The word <i>elders</i> here is by some taken only for
+elders in age, and not in office. But it seems better to interpret
+it of elders in office; and the context well agrees with this; for
+the apostle having immediately before charged the ruling preaching
+presbyters with their duties towards their flock, ver. 1-4, here he
+seems to enjoin the ruled flock (which commonly were younger in age
+and gifts) to look to their duties of subjection to their elders in
+office.</p>
+<p>Touching the second, viz. the denial of like commands, and upon
+like grounds to all others in the church, except to the church
+officers only: where can it be evidenced in all the Scriptures that
+the people of God are commanded to know, to esteem very highly in
+love, to count worthy of double honor, to obey, and submit
+themselves to any persons in the church but to the ruling officers
+thereof in reference to their office, and the due execution
+thereof?</p>
+<p>Now, seeing the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged,
+by so many commands of Christ, to perform such duties of subjection
+and obedience to the officers of Christ, may it not be
+concluded,</p>
+<p>Therefore the officers of Christ are the only subjects of
+authority from Christ for the government of his Church?</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. VI. Finally, the directions touching rule and
+government in the Church; the encouragements to well-ruling by
+commendations, promises, rewards, together with the contrary
+deterring discouragements from ill-ruling, by discommendations,
+threats, &amp;c., being specially applied and appropriated by the
+word of Christ unto Christ's officers, very notably discover to us
+that Christ's officers are the only subjects of power from Christ
+for the government of his Church. Thus it may be argued:</p>
+<p><i>Major</i>. Whatsoever persons in the Church have directions
+for church government, encouragements to well-ruling, and
+discouragements from ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly
+applied unto them by the word of Christ; they are the only subjects
+of power from Christ for the government of his Church:</p>
+<p>This proposition is evident: For, 1. How should it be consistent
+with the infinite wisdom of God peculiarly to apply unto them
+directions about ruling and governing the church that are not the
+only subjects in whom the power of government is intrusted by Jesus
+Christ? 2. How can it stand with the justice of God to encourage
+them only unto well-ruling, by commendations, promises, rewards,
+&amp;c., or to deter them from ill-governing by dispraises,
+threats, &amp;c., &amp;c., to whom the power of government doth not
+appertain, as to the only subjects thereof? 3. What strange
+apprehensions and distractions would this breed in the hearts of
+Christ's officers and others, should those that have not the power
+of church government committed to them by Christ, be yet directed
+by his word how to govern, encouraged in governing well, and
+deterred from governing ill?</p>
+<p><i>Minor</i>. But the officers of Christ in the church have
+directions for church government, encouragements to well-ruling,
+and discouragements from ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly
+applied unto them by the word of God.</p>
+<p>This assumption or minor proposition may be cleared by divers
+Scriptures according to the particular branches thereof, viz:</p>
+<p>1. Directions for church government are particularly applied by
+the word of Christ to his own officers: as for instance, they are
+directed to <i>bind and loose</i>&mdash;to <i>remit</i> and
+<i>retain sins on earth</i>, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx.
+21, 23. <i>To judge them that are within the</i> Church, <i>not
+without</i>, 1 Cor. v. 12. <i>Not to lord it, domineer</i>, or
+<i>overrule the flock of Christ</i>, 1 Pet. v. To <i>rule well</i>,
+1 Tim. v. 17. To rule <i>with diligence</i>, Rom. xii. 8. To <i>lay
+hands suddenly on no man, neither to be partakers of other men's
+sins, but to keep themselves pure</i>, 1 Tim. v. 22. <i>Not to
+prefer one before another, nor do anything by partiality</i>, 1
+Tim. v. 21. <i>To rebuke them that sin before all, that others also
+may fear</i>, 1 Tim. v. 20. <i>To reject a heretic after once or
+twice admonition</i>, Tit. iii. 10. To use the <i>authority that is
+given them from the Lord to the edification, not to the
+destruction</i> of the Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; with
+divers such like rules specially directed to Christ's officers.</p>
+<p>2. Encouragements to well-ruling are peculiarly directed to
+Christ's officers. For, 1. They are the persons specially commended
+in that respect; <i>well-ruling</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17. <i>Good and
+faithful steward</i>, Luke xii. 42. The angels of the churches are
+praised for their good government, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6, and ver. 18,
+19. 2. They are the persons to whom the promises, in reference to
+good government, are directed, as Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20;
+John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xxviii. 19, 20; Luke xii. 42-44; 1 Pet. v.
+4. 3. They are the persons whom the Lord will have peculiarly
+rewarded, now with <i>double honor</i>, 1 Tim. v. 17; hereafter
+with <i>endless glory</i>, 1 Pet. v. 4.</p>
+<p>3. Discouragements, deterring from ill-governing, are also
+specially applied to Christ's officers, whether by way of dispraise
+or threats, &amp;c., Rev. ii. 12, 14-16, and ver. 18, 20.</p>
+<p>Now if, 1. Rules for church government, 2. Encouragements in
+reference to well ruling, and, 3. Discouragements in reference to
+ill-ruling, be so peculiarly directed by the word of Christ to his
+own officers, we may conclude,</p>
+<p>Therefore the officers of Christ in the Church are the only
+subjects of power from Christ for the government of his Church.</p>
+<p><i>Object</i>. But the church<a href=
+"#note-99"><small>99</small></a> of a particular congregation fully
+furnished with officers, and rightly walking in judgment and peace,
+is the first subject of all church authority, as appears from the
+example of the church of Corinth in the excommunication of the
+incestuous Corinthian, 1 Cor. v. 1-5; wherein it appears that the
+presbytery alone did not put forth this power, but the brethren
+also concurred in this sentence with some act of power, (viz. a
+negative power:) for, 1. The reproof, for not proceeding to
+sentence sooner, is directed to the whole Church, as well as to the
+presbytery. They are all blamed for not mourning, &amp;c., 1 Cor.
+v. 2. 2. The command is directed to them all, when they are
+gathered together, (<i>and what is that but to a church
+meeting?</i>) to proceed against him, 1 Cor. v. 4, 13. 3. He
+declareth this act of theirs, in putting him out, to be a judicial
+act, ver. 12. 4. Upon his repentance the apostle speaketh to the
+brethren, as well as to their elders, to forgive him, 2 Cor. ii.
+4-10. Consequently, Christ's church officers are not the peculiar,
+immediate, or only subject of the power of the keys, as hath been
+asserted.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. I. As for the main proposition asserted in this
+objection, something hath been formerly laid down to show the
+unsoundness of it. (See chap. X. near the end.) Whereunto thus much
+may be superadded. 1. What necessity is there that a particular
+congregation should be fully furnished with officers, to make it
+the subject of all church authority? For deacons are one sort of
+officers, yet what authority is added to the Church by the addition
+of deacons, whose office it is only to serve tables, Acts vi., not
+to rule the Church? or if the Church have no deacons, as once it
+had not, Acts i. 2, and before that, all the time from Christ,
+wherein is she maimed or defective in her authority? 2. If the
+Church, fully furnished with officers, yet walk not in judgment and
+peace, then in such case it is granted, that a particular
+congregation is not the first subject of all church authority. Then
+a congregation that walks in error or heresy, or passion, or
+profaneness, all which are contrary to judgment; and that walks in
+divisions, schisms, contentions, &amp;c., which are contrary to
+peace, loseth her authority. Stick but close to this principle, and
+you will quickly lay the church authority of most independent
+congregations in the dust. But who shall determine whether they
+walk in judgment and peace, or not? Not themselves; for that were
+to make parties judges in their own case, and would produce a very
+partial sentence. Not sister churches; for all particular churches,
+according to them, have equal authority, and none may usurp one
+over another. Not a presbyterial church, for such they do not
+acknowledge. Then it must be left undetermined, yea undeterminable,
+(according to their principles;) consequently, who can tell when
+they have any authority at all? 3. Suppose the congregation had all
+her officers, and walked in judgment and peace also, yet is she not
+the first subject of all authority; for there is a synodal
+authority, beyond a congregational authority, as confessed by Mr.
+Cotton.<a href="#note-100"><small>100</small></a></p>
+<p>II. As for the proofs of this proposition asserted here, they
+seem extremely invalid and unsatisfying. For,</p>
+<p>The instance of the church of Corinth excommunicating the
+incestuous person, will not prove the congregation to be the first
+subject of all church authority: 1. Partly, because the church of
+Corinth was a presbyterial church, having several congregations in
+it, (as hereafter is evidenced, chap. XIII.;) now to argue from the
+authority of a presbyterial church, to the authority of a
+congregational, affirmatively, is not cogent. 2. Partly, because
+here were but two acts of power mentioned in this instance, viz.
+casting out and receiving again of the incestuous person: suppose
+the community had joined the presbytery in these two acts, (which
+yet is not proved,) will it follow therefore they are the first
+subject of all church authority? Are not ordination of presbyters,
+determination in case of appeals, of schism, of heresy, &amp;c.,
+acts of authority above the sphere of a single congregation? What
+one congregation can be instanced in the New Testament that did
+ever execute any of these acts of authority?</p>
+<p>The reasons brought, prove not that the brethren did concur with
+the presbytery in this sentence with some act of power, as will
+appear plainly, if they be considered severally.</p>
+<p>1. Not the reproof, 1 Cor. v. 2, "And ye are puffed up, and have
+not rather mourned, that he that hath done this deed might be taken
+away from among you." Here they are blamed, that they no more laid
+to heart so vile a scandal, which should have been matter of
+mourning to the whole congregation; that they instead of mourning
+were puffed up, gloried in their shame; and that they sluggishly
+neglected to endeavor, in their sphere, his casting out. And all
+this blame might justly be charged upon the whole church, the
+fraternity as well as the presbytery: the scandal of one member
+should be the grief of the whole body of the church. What then?
+Hath therefore the fraternity, as well as the presbytery, power to
+cast him out? That were a miserable consequence indeed: the people
+should not only have mourned for the sin, but have urged the
+presbytery to have proceeded to sentence, and after sentence have
+withdrawn from him, in obedience to the sentence; but none of all
+these can amount to a proper act of church authority in them.</p>
+<p>2. Nor doth the apostle's command prove the people's concurrence
+in any act of power with the presbytery, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, "In the
+name of our Lord Jesus Christ, when ye are gathered together, to
+deliver such an one unto Satan," &amp;c.: ver. 7, "Purge out
+therefore the old leaven," &amp;c.: and ver. 13, "Therefore put
+away from among yourselves that wicked person." In which passages
+it is supposed the apostle directs his injunction to them all (as
+well as to their presbytery) when they come together in their
+church meeting to proceed to sentence.</p>
+<p>But against this reason, well ponder upon these considerations,
+viz: 1. It is certain beyond all controversy, that the apostle did
+not direct these commands to the whole church of Corinth
+absolutely, and universally, without all exception and limitation
+to any members at all: for by his own rule, "Women must be silent
+in their churches, it being a shame for a woman to speak in the
+church," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, and children or fools were not able to
+judge. Hence it is evident that a church absolutely and universally
+taken, cannot possibly be the ministerial ruling church which hath
+the authority. 2. It is evident to any man that is but moderately
+acquainted with the Scriptures, that God useth to direct his
+commands, reproofs, and other speeches to a people indifferently,
+and as it were collectively and generally, which yet he intends
+should be particularly applied and appropriated; not to all, but to
+this or that person or persons, only among such a people
+distributively and respectively; according to their respective
+callings, interests, relations, &amp;c., as in the Old Testament
+God directs a command to the people of Israel indefinitely, and as
+it were collectively, to kill enticers to idolatry, false prophets,
+Deut. xiii. 9; but intended that the judge should sentence him,
+finding him guilty by witnesses. The Lord also directs his command
+to all the people, as it were collectively, to put out of the camp
+"every one that was a leper, and had an issue, or was defiled by
+the dead," Numb. v. 2; but intended that the priest should
+peculiarly take and apply this command to himself, who was to judge
+in these cases. See Lev. xiii. and elsewhere. So in the New
+Testament the apostle praised the Corinthians indefinitely, and as
+it were collectively, for "remembering him in all things, and
+keeping the ordinances as he delivered them to them," 1 Cor. xi. 2;
+wherein he intended only to commend the virtuous; and after he
+discommends them indefinitely for "coming together not for better,
+but for worse," 1 Cor. xi. 17; intending only their dispraise that
+were herein particularly delinquent among them. Again, he speaks
+indefinitely, and as it were collectively and generally, "Ye may
+all prophesy one by one," 1 Cor. xiv. 31; but he intended it only
+to the prophets respectively, not to all the members; for he saith
+elsewhere, "Are all prophets?" 1 Cor. xii. 29. And writing to the
+churches of Galatia, Gal. i. 2, against false teachers he speaks
+thus to all those churches collectively, "A little leaven leaveneth
+the whole lump," Gal. v. 9. And, "I would they were even cut off
+who trouble you," ver. 12. Now every one of these churches were to
+apply this to themselves respectively, Independents themselves
+being judges. So here in this present case of the church of
+Corinth, the apostle directs his commands to them, as it were
+collectively, about putting away the incestuous person, which
+commands were particularly to be put in execution by the presbytery
+in that church in whose hands the church authority was.<a href=
+"#note-101"><small>101</small></a></p>
+<p>Thus taking these commands, 1 Cor. v. 4, 7, 13, though directed
+indefinitely, and as it were collectively to the whole church, yet
+intended respectively to be put in execution by the presbytery in
+that church, they hold forth no concurrence of the people in any
+act of power at all with the church officers or presbytery. And it
+is a good note which Cameron<a href=
+"#note-102"><small>102</small></a> hath upon this place, "These
+things that are written in this epistle are so to be taken of the
+presbytery and of the people, that every one both of the presbyters
+and of the people, should interpret the command according to the
+reason of his office." 3. When the apostle reciteth the proceedings
+of the church in this very case of the incestuous person, in his 2d
+epistle, he saith, "Sufficient to such a man is this punishment"
+(or censure) "which was inflicted of many," 2 Cor. ii. 6. It is
+very observable, he saith not, <i>of all</i>; nor <i>of many</i>,
+but <i>of the chief ones</i>, viz. the church officers, who had the
+rule and government of the church committed to them: (the article
+<i>the</i> being emphatical;) for this word translated <i>many</i>
+may as well be translated chief, denoting worth, &amp;c., as many,
+denoting number. And in this sense the Holy Ghost ofttimes useth
+this word in the New Testament; as for instance, "Is not the life
+better than meat?" Matt. vi. 25. "Behold, a greater than Jonah is
+here," Matt. xii. 41. "And behold, a greater than Solomon is here,"
+Matt. xii. 41. "To love him with all the heart," &amp;c., "is more
+than all whole burnt-offerings and sacrifices," Mark xii. 33. And
+again, ver. 43, "This poor widow hath cast more than all they,"
+&amp;c. And thus it is frequently used to signify quality, worth,
+greatness, dignity, eminency, &amp;c., and so it may be
+conveniently interpreted in this of the Corinthians. 4. Though all
+proper acts of authority appertain only to the church officers, yet
+we are not against the people's fraternal concurrence therewith.
+People may incite the presbytery to the acts of their office;
+people may be present at the administration of censures, &amp;c.,
+by the elders, as Cyprian of old would dispatch all public acts,
+the people being present; people may judge with a judgment of
+discretion, acclamation, and approbation, &amp;c., as the elders
+judge with a judgment of power; and people afterwards may, yea
+must, withdraw from delinquents sentenced, that the sentence may
+attain its proposed end. But none of these are properly any acts of
+power.</p>
+<p>3. Nor doth the apostle's expression, verse 12, "Do you not
+judge them that are within?" prove that the people concur with any
+authoritative act in the elders' sentence. For, 1. This being
+spoken to them indefinitely, was to be applied distributively and
+respectively, only to them to whom it properly appertained, viz.
+the elders, as hath been showed. They only have authority to judge.
+2. Such a judgment is allowed to the saints in church censures, as
+shall be allowed to them when the saints shall judge the world, yea
+angels, 1 Cor. vi. 1-3, viz. in both a judgment of acclamation,
+approbation, &amp;c., as assessors, as people judge at the assizes;
+not in either a judgment of authority, which the judge and jury
+only do pronounce.</p>
+<p>4. Nor, finally, doth the apostle's direction to forgive the
+incestuous, being penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 4-10, which seems to be
+given to all, prove the people's concurrence with the elders in any
+act of power. For the authoritative forgiving and receiving him
+again, belonged only to the elders; the charitable forgiving,
+receiving, and comforting of him, belonged also to the people. As
+the judge and jury at an assizes, acquit by judgment of authority,
+the people only by judgment of discretion and acclamation.</p>
+<p>Thus it appears how little strength is in this instance of the
+church of Corinth, (though supposed to be the strongest ground the
+Independents have,) for the propping up of their popular
+government, and authoritative suffrage of the people.</p>
+<a name="H_SECTIII-III"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 2em;"><br>
+<br></div>
+<h3>SECTION III.</h3>
+<p>III. Having thus considered the subject of authority and power
+for church government: 1. Negatively, what it is not, viz. neither
+the political magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or
+whole body of the people, Chap. IX. and X. 2. Positively, what it
+is, viz. Christ's own officers in his church, as hath been
+explained and evidenced, Sect. 2, of this Chap. 3. Now, in the
+third and last place, we are to insist a little further upon this
+subject of the power, by way of explanation: and to inquire, seeing
+Christ's officers are found to be the subject of this power, in
+what sense or notion they are the subject and receptacle of this
+authority and power from Christ, whether jointly or severally; as
+solitarily and single from one another, or associated and
+incorporated into assemblies with one another; or in both
+respects?</p>
+<p>For resolution herein we must remember that distribution of the
+keys, or of proper ecclesiastical power, (which was briefly
+mentioned before in Part 2, Chap. III.) into that which is,</p>
+<p>1. More special and peculiar to the office of some church
+governors, which by virtue of their office they are to execute and
+discharge: thus it is peculiar to the minister's office, 1. To
+preach the word; compare these places together, Matt. xxviii.
+18-20, John xx. 21-23, Rom. x. 15, 1 Tim. v. 17, Heb. xiii. 7, 2
+Tim. iv. 1, 2, &amp;c. 2. <i>To dispense the sacraments</i>, Matt.
+xxviii. 18-20, 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25. The word and sacraments were
+joined together in the same commission to the same officers, viz.
+the preaching presbyters, &amp;c., as is evident in that of Matt.
+xxviii. 19.</p>
+<p>2. More general and common to the office of all church
+governors, as the power of censures, viz. admonishing,
+excommunicating, and absolving, and of such other acts as
+necessarily depend thereupon; wherein not only the preaching, but
+also the ruling elders are to join and contribute their best
+assistance; as may be collected from these several testimonies of
+Scripture, Matt. xviii. 17, 18, <i>Tell the Church</i>,<a href=
+"#note-103"><small>103</small></a> 1 Cor. v. 2-13, 2 Cor. ii. 6-12,
+compared with Rom. xii. 8, 1 Cor. xii. 28, and 1 Tim. v. 17.</p>
+<p>Now these officers of Christ, viz. they that labor in the word
+and doctrine, and the ruling elders, are the subject of this power
+of jurisdiction as they are united in one body, hence called a
+Church, Matth. xviii. 18, viz. the governing or ruling church; for
+no other can there be meant; and presbytery,<a href=
+"#note-104"><small>104</small></a> i.e. a society or assembly of
+presbyters together, 1 Tim. iv. 14.</p>
+<p>The presbyters, elderships, or assemblies wherein these officers
+are united and associated, are of two sorts, viz: 1. The lesser
+assemblies, consisting of the ministers and ruling elders in each
+single congregation; which, for distinction's sake, is styled the
+congregational eldership. 2. The greater assemblies, consisting of
+church governors sent from several churches and united into one
+body, for governing of all these churches within their own bounds,
+whence their members were sent. These greater assemblies are either
+presbyterial or synodal. 1. Presbyterial, consisting of the
+ministers and elders of several adjacent or neighboring single
+congregations, or parish churches, ruling those several
+congregations in common; this kind of assembly is commonly called
+the presbytery, or, for distinction's sake, the classical
+presbytery, i.e. the presbytery of such a rank of churches. 2.
+Synodal, consisting of ministers and elders, sent from presbyterial
+assemblies, to consult and conclude about matters of common and
+great concernment to the church within their limits. Such was that
+assembly mentioned, Acts xv. These synodal assemblies are either,
+1. Of ministers and elders from several presbyteries within one
+province, called provincial. 2. Or of ministers and elders from
+several provinces within one nation, called therefore national. Or,
+3. Of ministers and elders from the several nations within the
+whole Christian world, therefore called ecumenical: for all which
+assemblies, congregational, presbyterial, and synodal, and the
+subordination of the lesser to the greater assemblies respectively,
+there seems to be good ground and divine warrant in the word of
+God, as (God willing) shall be evinced in the xii., xiii., xiv.,
+and xv. chapters following.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0019"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XII.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Divine Right of Congregational Elderships or Kirk
+Sessions, for the government of the Church.</i></h3>
+<p>Touching congregational elderships, consisting of the ministers
+and ruling elders of the several single congregations, which are
+called the lesser assemblies, or smaller presbyteries, and which
+are to manage and order all ecclesiastical matters within
+themselves, which are of more immediate, private, particular
+concernment to their own congregations respectively; and
+consequently, of more easy dispatch, and of more daily use and
+necessity. Concerning these congregational presbyteries, we shall
+not now take into consideration either, 1. What are the members
+constituting and making up these elderships; whether ruling elders
+by divine warrant may be superadded to the pastors and teachers,
+and so be associated for the government of the congregation. For
+the divine right of the ruling elders, distinct from the preaching
+elder for the government of the church, hath been evidenced at
+large, Chapter XI., Section 1, foregoing. And if any acts of
+government in the church belong to the ruling elder at all, sure
+those acts of common jurisdiction, to be dispatched in these least
+assemblies, cannot of all other be denied unto him. 2. Nor shall it
+here be discussed, what the power of congregational elderships is,
+whether it be universally extensive to all acts of government
+ecclesiastical whatsoever, without exception or limitation; and
+that independently, without subordination to the greater
+assemblies, and without all liberty of appeal thereunto in any
+cases whatsoever, though of greatest and most common concernment.
+Which things are well stated and handled by others;<a href=
+"#note-105"><small>105</small></a> and will in some measure be
+considered afterwards in Chapter XV.</p>
+<p>3. But the thing for the present to be insisted upon, against
+the Erastian and prelatical party, is, the divine right of
+authority and power for church government, which is in
+congregational presbyteries or elderships, in reference to their
+respective congregations. Take it thus:</p>
+<p>Elderships of single congregations vested and furnished with
+ecclesiastical authority and power to exercise and dispense acts of
+government in and over those respective congregations whereunto
+they do belong, are by divine right warrantable.</p>
+<p>For confirmation hereof the light of nature, the institution of
+Christ, the apostolical practice, and the law of necessity, seem to
+speak sufficiently unto us.</p>
+<p>1. The common light of nature thus far directeth all sorts of
+smaller societies, whether political or ecclesiastical, to compose
+all particular and more private differences and offences within
+themselves; and to decide and determine small, common, easy causes
+and matters, by smaller courts and judicatories appointed for that
+end: a vain thing to trouble more and greater assemblies with those
+matters, that may as well be determined by the lesser. It was wise
+and grave counsel which Jethro, Moses' father-in-law, gave to
+Moses, that he should set up over the people certain judges
+inferior to himself, who themselves might judge all smaller
+matters, but all <i>great and hard matters to be brought to
+Moses</i>, Exod. xviii. 22, 26. And our Saviour seems to insinuate,
+that the Jews had their inferior courts for inferior causes,
+superior judicatories for greater, in that gradation of his, Matt.
+v. 22. Likewise they had lesser and greater ecclesiastical
+assemblies, (as after will appear.) Now, to what use are greater
+and lesser judicatories, civil or ecclesiastical, but that the
+lesser and lighter causes may be judged in the inferior, harder and
+greater in the superior?</p>
+<p>2. The institution of Christ recorded Matt. xviii. 15-21, seems
+to hold forth notably both single congregational elderships, and
+their power. And this, whether we consider the Jewish form, unto
+which our Saviour seems to refer; or whether we observe the matter
+of his discourse.</p>
+<p>1. As for the Jewish form of church government (unto which our
+Saviour here seems to allude) we may observe it was managed by two,
+if not three sorts of ecclesiastical courts, viz: By the Sanhedrin,
+presbytery, and synagogue, (much like to the evangelical synod,
+presbytery, and congregational eldership since Christ.) 1. They had
+their ecclesiastical,<a href="#note-106"><small>106</small></a> as
+well as their civil Sanhedrin, for high and difficult affairs of
+the church; which seems first to be constituted, Exod. xxiv. 1, and
+after decay thereof, it was restored by King Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron.
+xix. 8; and from this court that national church's reformation
+proceeded, Neh. vi. 13. 2. Again, it is very probable they had
+between their Sanhedrin and their synagogue a middle ecclesiastical
+court called <i>The Presbytery</i>, Luke xxii. 66, and Acts xxii.
+5, <i>and the whole presbytery</i>. Let such as are expert in
+Jewish antiquities and their polity, consider and judge. 3.
+Finally, they had their lesser judicatories in their synagogues, or
+congregational meetings: for, their synagogues were not only for
+prayer, and the ministry of the word, in reading and expounding the
+Scriptures, but also for public censures, correcting of offences,
+&amp;c., as that phrase seems to import, "And I punished them oft
+in every synagogue," Acts xxvi. 11. His facts and proceedings, it
+is true, were cruel, unjust, impious. But why inflicted <i>in every
+synagogue</i>, rather than in other places, and that by virtue of
+the <i>high priest's letters</i>, Acts ix. 1, 2; but there the Jews
+had judicatories, that inflicted public punishments upon persons
+ecclesiastically offending? Besides, we read often in the New
+Testament of the <i>rulers of the synagogue</i>, as Mark v. 35, 36,
+38; Luke viii. 41, and xiii. 14; and of Crispus and Sosthenes the
+chief <i>rulers of the synagogue</i>, Acts xviii. 8, 17; whence is
+intimated to us, that these synagogues had their rule and
+government in themselves; and that this rule was not in one person,
+but in divers together; for if there were chief rulers, there were
+also inferiors subordinate unto them: but this is put out of doubt,
+in Acts xiii. 15, where after the lecture of the law and the
+prophets, <i>the rulers of the synagogue sent unto
+them</i>&mdash;<i>synagogue</i> in the singular number, and rulers
+in the plural. Thus analogically there should be ecclesiastical
+rulers and governors in every single congregation, for the well
+guiding thereof. But if this satisfy not, add hereunto the material
+passages in our Saviour's speech.</p>
+<p>2. Now touching the matter of our Saviour's discourse, it makes
+this very clear to us; for by a gradation he leadeth us from
+admonition private and personal, to admonition before two or three
+witnesses, and from admonition before two or three witnesses, to
+the representative body of one church, (as the phrase <i>tell the
+church</i> must here necessarily be interpreted,) if there the
+difference can be composed, the offence removed, or the cause
+ended; rather than unnecessarily render the offence, and so our
+brother's shame, more public and notorious. And that the presbytery
+or eldership of a particular congregation, vested with power to
+hear and determine such cases as shall be brought before them, is
+partly, though not only here intended, seems evident in the words
+following, which are added for the strengthening and confirming of
+what went before in ver. 17: "Verily, I say unto you, whatsoever ye
+shall bind on earth shall be bound in heaven; and whatsoever ye
+shall loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven. Again, I say unto
+you, that if two of you shall agree on earth as touching any thing
+that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of my Father which
+is in heaven. For where two or three are gathered together in my
+name, there am I in the midst of them," Matt. xviii. 18-20. In
+which passages these things are to be noted: 1. That this church to
+which the complaint is to be made, is invested with power of
+<i>binding</i> and <i>loosing</i>, and that so authoritatively that
+what by this church shall be bound or loosed on earth shall also be
+bound or loosed in heaven, according to Christ's promise. 2. That
+these acts of <i>binding</i> or <i>loosing</i>, may be the acts but
+of two or three, and therefore consequently of the eldership of a
+particular congregation; for where such a juridical act was
+dispatched by a classical presbytery, it is said to be done of
+<i>many</i>, 2 Cor. ii. 6, because that in such greater
+presbyteries there are always more than <i>two or three</i>. And
+though some do pretend, that the faults here spoken of by our
+Saviour in this place, were injuries, not scandals; and that the
+church here mentioned was not any ecclesiastical consistory, or
+court, but the civil Sanhedrin, a court of civil judicature; and
+yet most absurdly they interpret the binding and loosing here
+spoken of, to be doctrinal and declarative; not juridical and
+authoritative; as if the doctrinal binding and loosing were in the
+power of the civil Sanhedrin:<a href=
+"#note-107"><small>107</small></a> yet all these are but vain,
+groundless pretences and subterfuges, without substance or
+solidity, as the learned and diligent reader may easily find
+demonstrated by consulting these judicious authors mentioned in the
+foot note,<a href="#note-108"><small>108</small></a> to whom for
+brevity's sake he is referred for satisfaction in these and divers
+such like particulars.</p>
+<p>3. The consideration of the apostolical practice, and state of
+the Church of God in those times, may serve further to clear this
+matter to us. For, 1. We sometimes read of single congregations;
+and as the Holy Ghost doth call the whole body of Christ <i>the
+Church</i>, Matt. xvi. 18, 1 Cor. xii. 28, and often elsewhere; and
+the larger particular members of that body of Christ (partaking the
+nature of the whole, as a drop of water is as true water as the
+whole ocean) churches; as, <i>the church of Jerusalem</i>, Acts
+viii. 1; <i>the church of Antioch</i>, Acts xiii. 1; <i>the church
+of Ephesus</i>, Rev. ii. 1; <i>the church of Corinth</i>, 2 Cor. i.
+1; (these being the greater presbyterial churches, as after will
+appear, Chap. XIII.;) so the same holy Spirit of Christ is pleased
+to style single congregations, <i>churches</i>, "Let women keep
+silence in the churches," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, i.e. in the single
+congregations of this one church of Corinth: and often mention is
+made of the church that is in such or such an <i>house</i>, as Rom.
+xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19; Col. iv. 15; Philem. 2; whether this be
+interpreted of the church made up only of the members of that
+family, or of the church that ordinarily did meet in such houses,
+it implies a single congregation. Now shall single congregations
+have the name and nature of churches, and shall we imagine they had
+not in them the ordinary standing church officers, viz. pastors and
+teachers, governments, or elders <i>ruling well</i>, and helps or
+deacons? or is it probable they were furnished with these officers,
+and yet the officers furnished with no power for the government of
+these single congregations at all? 2. We find that the apostles
+being crowned with such success in their ministry, as to be
+instruments of converting such multitudes to the faith as were
+sufficient to make up many several churches from time to time, did
+diligently take care to ordain them presbyters, or elders <i>in
+every church</i>, Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5. Now can it be clearly
+evidenced by any, that these were not ruling as well as preaching
+presbyters; especially when it appears by other places that the
+primitive churches had both? Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28;</p>
+<p>1 Tim. v. 17. Or can we think that the apostles were not as
+careful to erect elderships in several congregations, as to appoint
+elders? otherwise how could the apostles have answered it to their
+Lord and Master Jesus Christ, in leaving them without that
+necessary provision of government, which Christ himself had allowed
+to them, at least, in some cases, as hath been evidenced?</p>
+<p>4. Finally, necessity (which is a strong and cogent law) plainly
+and forcibly pleads for elderships in particular congregations
+endowed with authority and power from Christ for government within
+themselves. For, 1. How wearisome a thing would it be to all
+congregations, should every one of their members be bound to attend
+upon synods and greater presbyteries, (which in the country are at
+a great distance from them,) in all ecclesiastical matters of
+judicature, if they had no relief in their own congregations? How
+impossible would it be for the greater presbyteries, not only to
+hear and determine all hard and weighty, but also all small and
+easy causes that would be brought before them? And what should
+become of such a congregation as either voluntarily transplants
+itself, or is accidentally cast among heathens or pagans in far
+countries, where there are no Christians or churches to join and
+associate withal, if they be denied an authoritative presbytery
+within themselves, for preventing and healing of scandals, and
+preserving themselves from destruction and ruin, which anarchy
+would unavoidably bring upon them?</p>
+<a name="2HCH0020"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIII.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Divine Right of Presbyteries, (for distinction's sake
+called Classical Presbyteries,) for the government of the
+Church.</i></h3>
+<p>Having spoken of the lesser, viz. congregational elderships, we
+come now to the greater ruling assemblies, which are either
+presbyterial or synodal. And first, of the presbyterial assembly,
+or classical presbytery, viz. an assembly made up of the presbyters
+of divers neighboring single congregations, for governing of all
+those respective congregations in common, whereunto they belong, in
+all matters of common concernment and greater difficulty in the
+Church. The divine warrant and right of this presbytery, and of the
+power thereof for church government, may principally be evidenced,
+1. By the light of nature. 2. By the light of Scripture, which
+light of Scripture was followed by the Church in the ages after the
+apostolical times.</p>
+<p>I. The light of nature and right reason may discover to us
+(though more dimly) the divine warrant of the greater presbyteries,
+and of their power for the governing of the church. For,</p>
+<p>1. There are many ecclesiastical matters which are of common
+concernment to many single congregations, as trial of church
+officers, ordination and deposition of ministers, dispensation of
+censures, judicial determination of controversies, resolution in
+difficult cases of conscience, ordering of things indifferent,
+&amp;c.; here the rule holds well, that which concerns many
+congregations, is not to be considered and determined upon only by
+one, but those many concerned and interested therein.</p>
+<p>2. Single congregational elderships stand in need of all mutual
+help and assistance one of another in the Lord, being, 1. Inwardly
+weak in themselves; too prone to be turned out of the way, Heb.
+xii. 13, Gal. v. 15, and too feeble for divers great tasks: as
+examination and ordination of ministers, &amp;c., which weakness is
+healed by association with others assisting them. 2. Outwardly
+opposed by many dangerous and subtle adversaries: men as grievous
+wolves, &amp;c., Acts xx. 28-30; 2 Pet. ii. 1; Phil. iii. 2; 1 Tim.
+iv. 1-7; Eph. iv. 14; devils, 1 Pet. v. 8. In such cases two are
+better than one: "Wo to them that are alone; if they fall, who
+shall take them up?"</p>
+<p>3. Such intricate cases may fall out as cannot be determined and
+settled by the eldership of a single congregation. As for instance,
+some member in the congregation may conceive himself so wronged by
+the eldership thereof, that he cannot submit to their unjust
+sentence; shall he not in such case have liberty of appeal from
+them? If not, then he is left without a remedy, (which is the
+calamity of the Independent government.) If he may, whether shall
+he appeal regularly but to an associated presbytery? therefore
+there must be such a presbytery to appeal unto. Again, there may be
+a controversy betwixt the whole congregation, and their presbytery;
+yea, the presbytery itself may be equally divided against itself;
+yea, one single congregation may have a great and weighty contest
+with another sister congregation, (all single congregations being
+equal in power and authority, none superior, none inferior to
+others.) Now, in these and such like cases, suppose both parties be
+resolute and wilful, and will not yield to any bare moral suasion
+or advice without some superior authority, what healing is left in
+such cases, without the assistance of an authoritative presbytery,
+wherein the whole hath power to regulate all the parts?</p>
+<p>4. Single congregations, joined in vicinity and neighborhood to
+one another, should avoid divisions, (which are destructive to all
+societies, as well ecclesiastical as civil,) and maintain peace and
+unity among themselves, (which is conservative to all societies;)
+neither of which, without associated presbyteries, can be firmly
+and durably effected. Both which ought with all diligence to be
+endeavored. For, 1. Peace and unity in the Church are in themselves
+amiable, and ought to be promoted, Psal. cxxxiii. 1, &amp;c.; Eph.
+iv. 3, 13; 1 Cor. i. 10. 2. Schisms and divisions are simply evil,
+and all appearance, cause, and occasion thereof, ought carefully to
+be avoided, 1 Cor. xii. 25; Rom. xvi. 17; 1 Thes. iv. 22. 3. All
+congregations are but as so many branches, members, parts of that
+one church, one body, one family, one commonwealth, one kingdom,
+whereof Christ is Head, Lord, and King; and therefore they should
+communicate together, and harmoniously incorporate and associate
+with one another, (so far as may be,) for the common good, peace,
+unity, and edification of all. See 1 Cor. xii. 12-29; Eph. ii.
+12-16, and iv. 12-14, and v. 23-25.</p>
+<p>II. The light of Scripture will hold forth the divine warrant of
+greater presbyteries and their power for church government, far
+more clearly than the light of nature. Forasmuch as we find in the
+Scriptures a pattern of these greater presbyteries, and of their
+presbyterial government over divers single congregations in common
+in the primitive apostolical churches. For the greater evidence and
+perspicuity hereof, take this proposition:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern
+of presbyterial government in common over divers single
+congregations in one Church, for a rule to his Church in all after
+ages. For confirmation hereof, there are chiefly these three
+positions to make good, which are comprised in this proposition,
+viz: 1. That there is in the word a pattern of divers single
+congregations in one church. 2. That there is in the word a pattern
+of one presbyterial government in common over divers single
+congregations in one church. 3. Finally, that the pattern of the
+said presbyterial government, is for a rule to the churches of
+Christ in all after ages.</p>
+<center>POSITION I.</center>
+<p>That there is in the word a pattern of divers single
+congregations in one church, may be plentifully evinced by four
+instances of churches, (to mention no more,) viz. the churches of
+Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth. Touching which four these
+two things are clear in the Scripture, viz: 1. That every of them
+was one church. 2. That in every one of these churches there were
+more congregations than one. Both which will fully evince a pattern
+of divers single congregations in one church held forth in the
+word.</p>
+<p>1. The former of these, viz. That every one of these was one
+church, may be proved by induction of particulars. 1. All the
+believers in Jerusalem were one church; hence they are often
+comprised under the word church, of the singular
+number:&mdash;"Against the church which was at Jerusalem," Acts
+viii. 1. "Then tidings of these things came unto the ears of the
+church which was in Jerusalem," Acts ii. 22. "And when they were
+come to Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the
+apostles and elders," Acts xv. 4. 2. All the believers in Antioch
+were one church. "Now there were in the church that was at Antioch,
+certain prophets," Acts xiii. 1. "And when he had found him, he
+brought him to Antioch. And it came to pass, that a whole year they
+assembled themselves with the church, and taught much people, and
+the disciples were first called Christians in Antioch," Acts xi.
+26. 3. All the believers in Ephesus were one church: "And from
+Miletus he sent to Ephesus, and called the elders of the church,"
+Acts xx. 17. And after he gives them this charge, "Take heed
+therefore to yourselves, and to all the flock, over which the Holy
+Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed the church of God," ver. 28;
+all were but <i>one flock, one church</i>. "Unto the angel of the
+church of Ephesus, write," Rev. ii. 1. 4. All the believers in
+Corinth were one church, and comprised under that singular word,
+church: "Unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 1 Cor. i. 2.
+"Paul, an apostle of Jesus Christ, by the will of God, and Timothy
+our brother, unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 2 Cor. i.
+1. Thus in all these four instances it is clear beyond all
+contradiction, that they were every of them respectively one
+church.</p>
+<p>The latter of these, viz. that these primitive apostolical
+churches of Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, were not
+every of them severally and respectively only one single
+congregation, (as some imagine,) but consisted every of them of
+more congregations than one. This shall be manifested in these four
+churches severally, as followeth:</p>
+<p>The church of Jerusalem in Judea contained in it more
+congregations than one. This may be convincingly evidenced divers
+ways, particularly from, 1. The multitude of believers in that
+church. 2. The multitude of church officers there. 3. The variety
+of languages there. 4. The manner of the Christians' public
+meetings in those primitive times, both in the church of Jerusalem,
+and in other churches.</p>
+<p>1. From the multitude of believers in the church of Jerusalem.
+For it is palpably evident to any impartial reader that will not
+wilfully shut his eyes, and subject his reason unto the groundless
+dictates of men, against the clear light of the Scripture, that
+there were more believers in the church of Jerusalem, than could
+ordinarily meet in one congregation, to partake of all the
+ordinances of Christ.</p>
+<p>And this may fully appear by these many instances following. 1.
+Christ after his resurrection, and before his ascension, "was seen
+of above five hundred brethren at once," 1 Cor. xv. 6. 2. "After
+that of James, then of all the apostles," ver. 7. 3. At the
+election of Matthias, and before Christ's ascension, there were
+disciples together, the "company of their names together was as it
+were one hundred and twenty," Acts i. 15. 4. At Peter's sermon,
+"they that gladly received his word, were baptized. And that day
+were added about three thousand souls," Acts ii. 1, 4. 5. And "The
+Lord added to the Church daily such as should be saved," ver. 27.
+6. Afterwards at another of Peter's sermons, "Many of them that
+heard the word believed; and the number of the men was about five
+thousand," Acts iv. 4. 7. After that, "Believers were the more
+added to the Lord, multitudes both of men and women," Acts v. 14.
+8. Furthermore, the disciples multiplying, and the work of the
+ministry thereupon much increasing, the apostles were necessitated
+to appoint seven deacons for serving of tables, that they might
+wholly "give themselves to the ministry of the word and prayer,"
+Acts vi. 1 to 7; whence some have thought, that there were seven
+congregations in Jerusalem, a deacon for every one. Certainly there
+were rather more than fewer, (saith the author of the Assertion of
+the Government of the Church of Scotland,<a href=
+"#note-109"><small>109</small></a>) though we cannot determine how
+many. However this, the Holy Ghost clearly testifieth that "The
+word of God increased, and the number of the disciples in Jerusalem
+multiplied greatly." 9. "And a great company of the priests became
+obedient to the faith," Acts vi. 7; and probably the example of the
+priests drew on multitudes to the Gospel. All these forementioned
+were in a short time converted, and became members of this one
+church of Jerusalem, and that before the dispersion occasioned by
+the persecution of the Church, Acts viii. 1. Now should we put all
+these together, viz. both the number of believers expressed in
+particular, which is 8,620, and the multitudes so often expressed
+in the general, (which, for aught we know, might be many more than
+the former,) what a vast multitude of believers was there in
+Jerusalem! and how impossible was it for them to meet all together
+in one congregation, to partake of all the ordinances of Jesus
+Christ! 10. In like manner, after the dispersion forementioned, the
+word so prospered, and the disciples brought into the faith by it,
+so multiplied, that it was still far more impossible for all the
+believers in the church of Jerusalem to meet in one congregation to
+partake of all the ordinances of Christ, than before. For it is
+said, "Then had the churches rest throughout all Judea" (and the
+church of Jerusalem in Judea was doubtless one of those churches)
+"and Galilee and Samaria, and were edified; and walking in the fear
+of the Lord, and comfort of the Holy Ghost, were multiplied." 11.
+Again, "the word of the Lord increased and multiplied," Acts xii.
+24. 12. Furthermore, when Paul, with other disciples, his
+fellow-travellers, came to Jerusalem, and "declared to James and
+the elders, what things God had wrought by his ministry among the
+Gentiles&mdash;They glorified the Lord, and said unto him, Thou
+seest, brother, how many" myriads (or ten thousands) "of believing
+Jews there are, and they are all zealous of the law"&mdash;Acts
+xxi. 20. Our translation seems herein very defective, rendering it
+how many thousands; whereas it should be, according to the Greek,
+how many ten thousands: and these myriads seem to be in the church
+of Jerusalem, seeing it is said of them, ver. 22, "The multitude
+must needs come together, for they will hear that thou art come."
+Now considering this emphatical expression, not only
+<i>thousands</i>, but <i>ten thousand</i>: not <i>only ten
+thousand</i> in the singular number, but <i>ten thousands,
+myriads</i>, in the plural number: nor only <i>myriads, ten
+thousands</i>, in the plural number, but <i>how many ten
+thousands</i>; we cannot in reason imagine but there were at least
+three ten thousands, viz: thirty thousand believers, and how all
+they should meet together in one congregation for all ordinances,
+let the reader judge. Thus far of the proof, from the multitude of
+believers in the church of Jerusalem.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. But the five thousand mentioned Acts iv. 4, are
+no new number added to the three thousand, but the three thousand
+included in the five thousand, as Calvin and Beza think.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. Then it is granted that five thousand one hundred
+and twenty, besides an innumerable addition of converts, were in
+Jerusalem; which if such a number, and multitudes besides, could
+for edification meet in one place, to partake of all the
+ordinances, let the reader judge.</p>
+<p>2. Though Calvin and Beza think the three thousand formerly
+converted to be included in this number of five thousand, Acts iv.
+4, yet divers both ancient and modern interpreters are of another
+mind, as Augustine. There came unto the body of the Lord in number
+three thousand faithful men; also by another miracle wrought, there
+came other five thousand.<a href="#note-110"><small>110</small></a>
+These five thousand are altogether diverse from the three thousand
+converted at the first sermon: so Lorinus, Aretius, and divers
+others.</p>
+<p>3. Besides a great number of testimonies, there are reasons to
+induce us to believe, that the three thousand are not included in
+the five thousand, viz: 1. As the three thousand mentioned in Acts
+ii. 41, did not comprehend the one hundred and twenty mentioned
+Acts i. 15, so it holds in proportion that the three thousand
+mentioned there, are not comprehended here in Acts iv. 4. Besides,
+2. This sermon was not by intention to the church, or numbers
+already converted, but by occasion of the multitude flocking
+together to behold the miracle Peter and John wrought on the "man
+that was lame from his mother's womb;" as Acts iii. 10-12; so that
+'tis more than probable that the five thousand mentioned Acts iv.
+4, are a number superadded besides the three thousand already
+converted.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. But suppose such a number as three thousand, and
+afterwards five thousand were converted in Jerusalem, yet these
+remained not constant members of that Church, for the three
+thousand were not dwellers at Jerusalem, but strangers who came out
+of all countries to keep the feast of Pentecost: yea, Acts ii. 9,
+they are said expressly to be "dwellers of Mesopotamia,
+Cappadocia," &amp;c., and so might erect churches where they
+came.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. 'Tis said, Acts ii. 14, "Peter standing" (when he
+began to preach this sermon wherein the three thousand were
+converted) "said, Ye men of Judea, and all ye that dwell at
+Jerusalem, hearken to my voice;" intimating that these he preached
+to dwelt at Jerusalem.</p>
+<p>But grant that some of these men that heard Peter's sermon were
+formerly dwellers in Mesopotamia and Cappadocia, what hinders but
+that they might be now dwellers at Jerusalem?</p>
+<p>3. The occasion of their coming up to Jerusalem at this time was
+not only the observation of the feast of Pentecost, (which lasted
+but a day,) but also the great expectation that the people of the
+Jews then had of the appearance of the Messiah in his kingdom, as
+we may collect from Luke xix. 11, where it is said, "They thought
+the kingdom of God should immediately appear;" so that now they
+might choose to take up their dwellings at Jerusalem, and not
+return, as they had been wont, at the end of their usual
+feasts.</p>
+<p>4. The Holy Ghost makes mention that in the particular places
+mentioned, ver. 9, 10, that of all those nations there were some
+that dwelt at Jerusalem; read Acts ii. 5, "There were dwelling at
+Jerusalem Jews, devout men out of every nation under heaven;" if
+out of every nation, then out of those nations there specified; and
+even there dwelling at Jerusalem. 5. Those who were scattered by
+reason of persecution into Judea and Samaria, and other parts of
+the world, did not erect new churches, but were still members of
+that one church in Jerusalem; so saith the Scripture expressly,
+that "they" (of the church of Jerusalem) "were all scattered abroad
+throughout the region of Judea and Samaria," Acts viii. 1.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. Although it should be granted that before the
+dispersion mentioned Acts viii. 1, 2, the number was so great that
+they could not meet together in one place, yet the persecution so
+wasted and scattered them all, that there were no more left than
+might meet in one congregation?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. After the dispersion there were more believers in
+Jerusalem than could meet together in one place for all acts of
+worship, as appears by Acts ix. 31, "The churches had rest
+throughout all Judea," &amp;c., "and were multiplied;" Acts xii.
+24, "The word of God grew and multiplied;" and Acts xxi. 20, James
+saith of the believers of this church, "how many thousands of the
+Jews there are which believe, and are zealous of the law;" or, as
+it is in the Greek, thou seest how many <i>ten thousands</i> there
+are of the Jews which believe; this text will evince, that there
+were many thousands in the church of Jerusalem after the
+dispersion, as hath been observed: and if this number were not more
+after the dispersion than could meet together to partake of all
+ordinances, let the reader judge.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. But the text saith expressly, all were scattered
+except the apostles.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. <i>All</i> must be understood either of all the
+believers, or all the teachers and church officers in the church of
+Jerusalem, except believers; but it cannot be understood of all the
+believers that they were scattered: and therefore it must be
+understood that all the teachers and church officers were
+scattered, except the apostles. That all the believers were not
+scattered will easily appear: For, 1. 'Tis said that Paul broke
+into houses, "haling men and women, committed them to prison," ver.
+3, and this he did in Jerusalem, Acts xxvi. 10; therefore all could
+not be scattered. 2. "They that were scattered, preached the word,"
+ver. 4, which all the members, men and women, could not do;
+therefore by all that were scattered must of necessity be meant,
+not the body of believers in the church, but only the officers of
+the church. 3. If all the believers were scattered, to what end did
+the apostles tarry at Jerusalem&mdash;to preach to the walls? this
+we cannot imagine.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. But can any think the teachers were scattered,
+and the ordinary believers were not, except we suppose the people
+more courageous to stay by it than their teachers?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. It is hard to say, that those that are scattered in
+a persecution, are less courageous than those that stay and suffer.
+In the time of the bishops' tyranny, many of the Independent
+ministers did leave this kingdom, while others of their brethren
+did abide by it, endured the heat and burden of the day, "had trial
+of cruel mockings, bonds and imprisonments:" now the Independent
+ministers that left us, would think we did them wrong, should we
+say that they were less courageous than those that stayed behind,
+enduring the hot brunt of persecution.</p>
+<p>II. From the multitude of church officers in Jerusalem, it may
+further appear, that there were more congregations than one in the
+church of Jerusalem. For there were many apostles, prophets, and
+elders in this church of Jerusalem, as is plain, if we consider
+these following passages in the Acts of the Apostles. After
+Christ's ascension, "the eleven apostles returned to Jerusalem, and
+continued in prayer and supplication," Acts i. 12-14. Matthias
+chosen by lot, was also "numbered with the eleven apostles," Acts
+i. 26. "And when the day of Pentecost was fully come, they were all
+with one accord in one place," Acts ii. 1. "Peter standing up with
+the eleven, lift up his voice and said," Acts ii. 14. "They were
+pricked in their heart, and said to Peter and to the rest of the
+apostles, Men and brethren, what shall we do?" Acts ii. 37. "And
+the same day there were added about three thousand souls, and they
+continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine and fellowship, and
+in breaking of bread, and in prayers," Acts ii. 42. "And with great
+power gave the apostles witness of the resurrection of the Lord
+Jesus," Acts iv. 33. "As many as were possessors of lands or
+houses, sold them, and brought the prices of the things that were
+sold, and laid them down at the apostles' feet," Acts iv. 34, 35,
+37. "Then the twelve called the multitude of the disciples to
+them," Acts vi. 2. "Now, when the apostles which were at
+Jerusalem," Acts viii. 14. "They determined that Paul and Barnabas
+and certain other of them should go up to Jerusalem unto the
+apostles and elders about this question. And when they were come to
+Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the apostles
+and elders; and the apostles and elders came together," Acts xv. 2,
+4, 6, 22, 23; xi. 30. And "in those days came prophets from
+Jerusalem unto Antioch," Acts xi. 27. In all which places, the
+multitude of apostles, elders, and prophets in this church of
+Jerusalem is evident. And it is further observable, that the
+apostles devolved the serving of tables upon the seven deacons,
+that they might wholly "give themselves to prayer and the ministry
+of the word," Acts vi, 2; which needed not, nor would there have
+been full employment for the apostles, if there had not been divers
+congregations in that one church of Jerusalem.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 'Tis true, the apostles were for a time in
+Jerusalem, yet when in Judea or elsewhere any received the gospel,
+the apostles went abroad to erect other churches.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Touching the apostles going abroad, there can be
+given but one instance, Acts viii. 14, where the whole twelve went
+not forth, but only two were sent, viz. Peter and John: but suppose
+it were granted, that upon some special occasions the apostles went
+out from Jerusalem, can it be imagined that the apostles' ordinary
+abode would be at Jerusalem, to attend only one single
+congregation, as if that would fill all their hands with work?</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. The apostles were well employed when they met in
+an upper room, and had but one hundred and twenty for their flock,
+and this for forty days together; now if they stayed in Jerusalem
+when they had but one hundred and twenty, and yet had their hands
+filled with work, the presence of the apostles argues not more
+congregations in Jerusalem than could meet in one place for all
+acts of worship.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. From Christ's ascension (immediately after which
+they went up to the upper chamber) to the feast of Pentecost, there
+were but ten days, not forty; so that there is one mistake.</p>
+<p>2. During that time betwixt Christ's ascension and the feast of
+Pentecost, (whether ten or forty days is not very material,) the
+apostles were especially taken up in prayer and supplication,
+waiting for the promise of the Spirit to qualify them for the work
+of the ministry: now, because the twelve apostles, before they had
+received the extraordinary gifts of the Spirit, did continue for a
+short time in Jerusalem with a small number in prayer, will it
+therefore follow that after they had received these extraordinary
+gifts, that they were bound up within the limits of one single
+congregation?</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. The argument that there were many teachers in
+Jerusalem, proves not that there were more congregations in
+Jerusalem than one, because there were then many gifted men, which
+were not officers, which yet occasionally instructed others, as
+Aquila did Apollos; therefore it seems they were only gifted
+persons, not officers.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. Grant that in those times there were many gifted
+men, not in office, which might occasionally instruct others, as
+Aquila did Apollos; yet it is further to be noted, that,</p>
+<p>2. This instructing must be either private, or public; if
+private only, then the objection is of no force, (because these
+teachers instructed publicly;) if in public, then if this objection
+were of force, it would follow, that women might instruct publicly,
+because Priscilla, as well as Aquila, instructed Apollos.</p>
+<p>3. The current of expositors say, that the seventy disciples
+were at Jerusalem among the one hundred and twenty, Acts i. 16, who
+were teachers by office.</p>
+<p>III. From the variety of languages among the disciples at
+Jerusalem, it is evident there were more congregations than one in
+that one church: the diversity of languages among them is plainly
+mentioned in divers places, "And there were dwelling at Jerusalem,
+Jews, devout men out of every nation under heaven. Now every man
+heard them speak in his own language," &amp;c., Acts ii. 5, 8-12.
+Now, of those that heard this variety of languages, and Peter's
+sermon thereupon, "They that gladly received his word, were
+baptized, and the same day there were added about three thousand
+souls," Acts ii. 41, which diversity of languages necessitated
+those members of the church of Jerusalem to enjoy the ordinances in
+divers distinct congregations in their own language. And that they
+might so do, the Spirit furnished the apostles, &amp;c., with
+diversity of languages, which diversity of languages were as well
+for edification of them within the Church, as for a sign to them
+that were without.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. Though the Jews being dispersed were come in from
+other countries, yet they were all generally learned, and
+understood the Hebrew tongue, the language of their own nation, so
+that diversity of tongues proves not, that of necessity there must
+be distinct places to meet in.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. It is easier said than proved, that the Jews were
+so generally skilled in the Hebrew tongue, when, while they were
+scattered in Media and Parthia, and other places, they had no
+universities or schools of learning. Besides, it is not to be
+forgotten, that the proper language or dialect in those days in use
+among the Jews was Syriac; as appears by divers instances of Syriac
+words in the New Testament, as of the Jews' own terms: Acts i. 19,
+which "in their proper tongue, is called Aceldama;" John xix. 13.
+17, <i>Gabbatha, Golgotha</i>, &amp;c.; Mark xv. 34, <i>Eloi, Eloi,
+lama-sabachthani</i>; with divers other pure Syriac terms. Grant
+they did; yet,</p>
+<p>2. There were in Jerusalem proselytes also, Romans,
+Cappadocians, Cretians, and Arabians, Acts ii. 10, 11; how could
+they be edified in the faith, if only one congregation, where
+nothing but Hebrew was spoken, met in Jerusalem; if so be there
+were not other congregations for men of other languages, that
+understood not the Hebrew tongue?</p>
+<p>IV. From the manner of Christians' public meetings in those
+primitive times, both in the church of Jerusalem and in other
+churches. It is plain that the multitudes of Christians in
+Jerusalem, and other churches, could not possibly meet all together
+in one single congregation, inasmuch as they had no public temples,
+or capacious places for worship and partaking of all ordinances,
+(as we now have,) but private places, <i>houses, chambers</i>, or
+<i>upper rooms</i>, (as the unsettled state of the Church and
+troublesomeness of those times would permit,) which in all
+probability were of no great extent, nor any way able to contain in
+them so many thousand believers at once, as there were: "They met
+from house to house, to break bread," Acts ii. 46. "In an upper
+room the apostles with the women and brethren continued in prayer
+and supplication," Acts i. 12-14. We read of their meetings in the
+<i>house of Mary</i>, Acts xii. 12. In the school <i>of one
+Tyrannus</i>, Acts xix. 9. In an <i>upper chamber at Troas</i>,
+Acts xx. 8. In <i>Paul's own hired house</i> at Rome, Acts xxviii.
+30, 31. In the <i>house of Aquila and Priscilla</i>, where the
+church met, therefore called the <i>church in his house</i>, Rom.
+xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19. In the <i>house of Nimphas</i>, Col. iv.
+15, and in the <i>house of Archippus</i>, Philem. 2. This was their
+manner of public meetings in the apostles' times: which also
+continued in the next ages, as saith Eusebius,<a href=
+"#note-111"><small>111</small></a> till, by indulgence of
+succeeding emperors, they had large churches, houses of public
+meeting erected for them.</p>
+<p>To sum up all: 1. There were in the church at Jerusalem greater
+numbers of believers than could possibly meet at once to partake of
+all Christ's ordinances. 2. There were more church officers than
+one single congregation could need, or than could be fully employed
+therein, unless we will say, that they preached but seldom. 3.
+There was such diversity of languages among them, that they must
+needs rank themselves into several congregations, according to
+their languages, else he that spoke in one language to hearers of
+many several languages, would be a barbarian to them, and they to
+him. 4. Finally, their places of ordinary meeting were private, of
+small extent, incapable of containing so many thousands at once as
+there were believers; and by all these, how evident is it, that
+there must needs be granted that there were more congregations than
+one in this one church of Jerusalem!</p>
+<p>II. The church of Antioch, in Syria, consisted also of more
+congregations than one. This appears,</p>
+<p>1. From the multitude of believers at Antioch. For, 1. After the
+dispersion upon Saul's persecution, <i>the Lord Jesus was preached
+at Antioch, and a great number believed</i>, &amp;c., Acts xi. 21.
+2. Upon <i>Barnabas's</i> preaching there, <i>much people was added
+to the Lord</i>, Acts xi. 24. 3. <i>Barnabas</i> and <i>Saul</i>
+for a year together taught much people there, and disciples there
+so mightily multiplied, that there Christ's disciples first
+received the eminent and famous denomination of CHRISTIANS, and so
+were and still are called throughout the whole world, Acts xi. 25,
+26.</p>
+<p>2. From the multitudes of prophets and preachers that ministered
+at Antioch. For, 1. Upon the dispersion of the Jews at Jerusalem,
+<i>divers of them (being men of Cyprus and Cyrene) preached the
+Lord Jesus at Antioch</i>, Acts xi. 20; here must be three or four
+preachers at least, otherwise they would not be <i>men of Cyprus
+and Cyrene</i>. 2. After this <i>Barnabas</i> was sent to preach at
+Antioch; there is a fifth, Acts xi. 22-24. 3. <i>Barnabas</i> finds
+so much work at <i>Antioch</i>, that he goes to Tarsus to bring
+<i>Saul</i> thither to help him; there is a sixth, ver. 25, 26. 4.
+Besides these, <i>there came prophets from Jerusalem to Antioch in
+those days</i>; there are at least two more, viz. eight in all,
+Acts xi. 27, 28. 4. Further, besides <i>Barnabas</i> and
+<i>Saul</i>, three more teachers are named, viz. <i>Simon called
+Niger, Lucius of Cyrene, and Manaen</i>, Acts xii. 1-3. 6. Yea,
+"Paul and Barnabas continued in Antioch, teaching and preaching the
+word of the Lord, with many others also," Acts xv. 35. Now sum up
+all, what a multitude of believers, and what a college of preachers
+were here at Antioch! How is it possible that all these preachers
+should bustle themselves about one congregation (and doubtless they
+abhorred idleness) in dispensing the ordinances of Christ to them
+only? or how could so many members meet in one single congregation
+at once, ordinarily to partake of all ordinances?</p>
+<p>III. The church of Ephesus (<i>in Asia Minor</i>, Acts xix. 22)
+had in it more congregations than one: For,</p>
+<p>1. The number of prophets and preachers at Ephesus were many.
+<i>Paul</i> continued there <i>two years and three months</i>, Acts
+xix. 8, 10; and <i>Paul</i> settled there about twelve <i>disciples
+who prophesied</i>, Acts xix. 1, 6, 7. And how should these
+thirteen ministers be employed, if there were not many
+congregations? Compare also Acts xx. 17, 28, 36, 37, where it is
+said of the bishops of Ephesus, that "Paul kneeled down and prayed
+with them all, and they all wept sore." Here is a good number
+implied.</p>
+<p>2. The gift of tongues also was given unto all these twelve
+prophets, Acts xix. 6, 7. To what end, if they had not several
+congregations of several languages, to speak in these several
+tongues unto them?</p>
+<p>3. The multitude of believers must needs be great at Ephesus:
+For, 1. Why should <i>Paul</i>, who had universal commission to
+plant churches in all the world, stay <i>above two years
+together</i> at Ephesus if no more had been converted there than to
+make up one single congregation? Acts xix. 8, 10. 2. During this
+space, "all that dwelt in Asia," usually meeting at Ephesus for
+worship, "heard the word of the Lord, both Jews and Greeks," Acts
+xix. 10. 3. At the knowledge of <i>Paul's</i> miracles, "fear fell
+upon all the Jews and Greeks dwelling at Ephesus, and the name of
+the Lord Jesus was magnified," Acts xix. 17. 4. <i>Many</i> of the
+believers <i>came and confessed, and showed their deeds</i>, ver.
+18, whereby is intimated that more did believe than did thus. 5.
+"Many also of them that used curious arts brought their books
+together, and burned them before all men, and they counted the
+price of them, and found it fifty thousand pieces of silver," (this
+they would never have done publicly if the major part, or at least
+a very great and considerable part of the city, had not embraced
+the faith, that city being so furiously zealous in their
+superstition and idolatry,) "so mightily grew the word of God, and
+prevailed," Acts xix. 19, 20. 6. <i>Paul</i> testifies that at
+Ephesus <i>a great door and effectual was open unto him</i>, viz. a
+most advantageous opportunity of bringing in a mighty harvest of
+souls to Christ, 1 Cor. xvi. 8, 9. Put all together, 1. The number
+of prophets and preachers; 2. The gifts of tongues conferred upon
+those prophets; and, 3. The multitude of believers which so
+abounded at Ephesus: how is it possible to imagine, upon any solid
+ground, that there was no more but one single congregation in the
+church of Ephesus?</p>
+<p>IV. The church of Corinth in Gr&aelig;cia comprised in it also more
+congregations than one, as may be justly concluded from, 1. The
+multitude of believers. 2. The plenty of ministers. 3. The
+diversity of tongues and languages. 4. And the plurality of
+churches at Corinth. Let all these be well compared together.</p>
+<p>1. From the multitude of believers. There appears to be a
+greater number of believers at Corinth than could all at once meet
+together to partake of all the ordinances of Christ: For, 1. At
+Paul's first coming to Corinth, and at his first sermon preached in
+the house of Justus, it is said, "And Crispus, the chief ruler of
+the synagogue, believed on the Lord, and all his house, and many of
+the Corinthians hearing, believed and were baptized," Acts xviii.
+1, 7, 8. Here is Crispus and all his house, (which probably was
+very great, he being the chief ruler of the synagogue,) and <i>many
+of the Corinthians, believing</i>; an excellent first-fruits; for
+who can justly say but Paul at his first sermon converted so many
+as might be sufficient to make up one single congregation? 2.
+Immediately after this (Paul having shook his raiment against the
+Jews, who, contrary to his doctrine, opposed themselves and
+blasphemed; and having said unto them, "Your blood be upon your own
+heads, I am clean: from henceforth I will go unto the Gentiles,"
+Acts xviii. 6) the Lord comforts Paul against the obstinacy of the
+Jews by the success his ministry should have among the Gentiles in
+the city of Corinth: "Then spake the Lord to Paul in the night by a
+vision, Be not afraid, but speak, and hold not thy peace: for I am
+with thee, and no man shall set on thee to hurt thee: for I have
+much people in this city," Acts xviii. 9, 10. <i>Much people</i>
+belonging to God, according to his secret predestination, over and
+besides those that already were actually his by effectual vocation.
+And <i>much people</i>, in respect of the Jews that opposed and
+blasphemed, (who were exceeding many,) otherwise it would have been
+but small comfort to Paul if by <i>much people</i> should be meant
+no more than could meet at once in one small single congregation.
+3. Paul himself continued at Corinth "a year and six months
+teaching the word of God among them," Acts xviii. 11. To what end
+should Paul the apostle of the Gentiles stay so long in one place,
+if he had not seen the Lord's blessing upon his ministry, to bring
+into the faith many more souls than would make up one congregation,
+having so much work to do far and near? 4. "They that believed at
+Corinth were baptized," Acts xviii. 8. (Baptism admitted them into
+that one body of the Church, 1 Cor. xii. 13.) Some were baptized by
+Paul, (though but few in comparison of the number of believers
+among them: compare Acts xviii. 8, with 1 Cor. 14-17,) the
+generality consequently were baptized by other ministers there, and
+that in other congregations wherein Paul preached not, as well as
+in such wherein Paul preached; it being unreasonable to deny the
+being of divers congregations for the word and sacraments to be
+dispensed in, himself dispensing the sacrament of baptism to so
+few.</p>
+<p>2. From the plenty of ministers and preachers in the church of
+Corinth, it is evident it was a presbyterial church, and not only a
+single congregation; for to what end should there be many laborers
+in a little harvest, many teachers over one single congregation?
+&amp;c. That there were many preachers at Corinth is plain: For, 1.
+Paul himself was the master-builder there that laid the foundation
+of that church, 1 Cor. iii. 10, their spiritual father; "In Christ
+Jesus I have begotten you through the gospel," 1 Cor. iv. 15. And
+he stayed with them <i>one year and a half</i>, Acts xviii. II. 2.
+While the apostle sharply taxeth them as guilty of schism and
+division for their carnal crying up of their several teachers: some
+doting upon one, some upon another, some upon a third, &amp;c.
+"Every one of you saith, I am of Paul, and I of Apollos, and I of
+Cephas, and I of Christ," 1 Cor. i. 12. Doth not this intimate that
+they had plenty of preachers, and these preachers had their several
+followers, so prizing some of them as to undervalue the rest? and
+was this likely to be without several congregations into which they
+were divided? 3. When the apostle saith, "Though ye have ten
+thousand instructors in Christ, yet have ye not many fathers," 1
+Cor. v. 15; though his words be hyperbolical, yet they imply that
+they had great store of teachers and preachers. 4. We have mention
+of many prophets in the church of Corinth: "Let the prophets speak
+two or three, and let the other judge&mdash;And the spirits of the
+prophets are subject to the prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 20, 31. Here are
+<i>prophets</i> speaking <i>two or three</i>; and prophets judging
+of their doctrine, which sure were more than they that were judged;
+it being unreasonable for the minor part to pass judgement upon the
+major part. And though these prophets had extraordinary gifts, (as
+the church of Corinth excelled all other churches in gifts, 1 Cor.
+i. 7,) and were able to preach in an extraordinary singular way;
+yet were they the ordinary pastors and ministers of that church of
+Corinth, as the whole current of this fourteenth chapter
+evidenceth, wherein so many rules and directions, aptly agreeing to
+ordinary pastors, are imposed upon them for the well ordering of
+their ministerial exercises. Now, where there were so many pastors,
+were there not several congregations for them to feed? Or were they
+idle, neglecting the exercise and improvement of their talents?</p>
+<p>3. From the diversity of tongues and languages, wherein the
+church did eminently excel. "In every thing ye are enriched by him,
+in all utterance, and in all knowledge&mdash;So that you come
+behind in no gift," &amp;c., i.e., ye excel in every gift, more
+being intended than is expressed, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Among other gifts
+some of them excelled in tongues which they spake, the right use of
+which gift of tongues the apostle doth at large lay down, 1 Cor.
+xiv. 2, 4-6, 13, 14, 18, 19, 23, 26, 27. "If any speak in <i>an
+unknown</i> tongue let it be by two, or at the most by three, and
+that by course, and let one interpret." So that there were many
+endued with gifts of tongues in that church. To what end? Not only
+for a <i>sign to unbelievers</i>, ver. 22, but also for edification
+of divers congregations, of divers tongues and languages within
+that church of Corinth.</p>
+<p>4. From the plurality of churches mentioned in reference to this
+church of Corinth. For the apostle regulating their public
+assemblies and their worship there, saith to the church of Corinth,
+"Let your women keep silence in the churches." It is not said, in
+the <i>church</i>, in the singular number; but in the
+<i>churches</i>, in the plural; and this of the <i>churches in
+Corinth</i>, for it is said, <i>Let your women</i>, &amp;c., not
+indefinitely, <i>Let women</i>, &amp;c. So that according to the
+plain letter of the words, here are churches in the church of
+Corinth, viz. a plurality of single congregations in this one
+presbyterial church. And this plurality of churches in the church
+of Corinth is the more confirmed if we take the church of Cenchrea
+(which is a harbor or seaport to Corinth) to be comprised within
+the church of Corinth, as some learned authors do conceive it
+may.<a href="#note-112"><small>112</small></a></p>
+<center>POSITION II.</center>
+<p>That there is in the word of Christ a pattern of one
+presbyterial government in common over divers single congregations
+in one church. This may be evidenced by these following
+considerations: For,</p>
+<p>1. Divers single congregations are called one church, as hath at
+large been proved in the second position immediately foregoing;
+inasmuch as all the believers in Jerusalem are counted one church:
+yet those believers are more in number than could meet for all
+ordinances in any one single congregation. And why are divers
+congregations styled one church? 1. Not in regard of that oneness
+of heart and soul which was among them, "having all things common,"
+&amp;c., Acts iv. 32. For these affections and actions of kindness
+belonged to them by the law of brotherhood and Christian charity to
+one another, (especially considering the then present condition of
+believers,) rather than by any special ecclesiastical obligation,
+because they were members of such a church. 2. Not in regard of any
+explicit church covenant, knitting them in one body. For we find
+neither name nor thing, print nor footstep of any such thing as a
+church covenant in the church of Jerusalem, nor in any other
+primitive apostolical church in all the New Testament; and to
+impose an explicit church covenant upon the saints as a necessary
+constituting form of a true visible Church of Christ, and without
+which it is no Church, is a mere human invention, without all solid
+warrant from the word of God. 3. Not in regard of the ministration
+of the word, sacraments, prayers, &amp;c. For these ordinances were
+dispensed in their single congregations severally, it being
+impossible that such multitudes of believers should meet all in one
+congregation, to partake of them jointly, (as hath been evidenced.)
+4. But in regard of one joint administration of church government
+among them, by one common presbytery, or college of elders,
+associated for that end. From this one way of church government, by
+one presbytery in common, all the believers in Jerusalem, and so in
+other cities respectively, were counted but one church. 2. In every
+such presbyterial church made up of divers single congregations,
+there were ecclesiastical ruling officers, which are counted or
+called the officers of that church, but never counted or called
+governors, elders, &amp;c., of any one single congregation therein;
+as in the church of Jerusalem, Acts xi. 27, 30, and xv. 2: of
+Antioch, compare Acts xiii. 1-3, with xv. 35: of Ephesus, Acts xx.
+17, 28: and of the church of Corinth, 1 Cor. i. 12, and iv. 15, and
+xiv. 29.</p>
+<p>3. The officers of such presbyterial churches met together for
+acts of church government: as, to take charge of the church's
+goods, and of the due distribution thereof, Acts iv. 35, 37, and
+xi. 30: to ordain, appoint, and send forth church officers, Acts
+vi. 2, 3, 6, and xiii. 1, 3: to excommunicate notorious offenders,
+1 Cor. v. 4, 5, 7, 13, compared with 2 Cor. ii. 6: and to restore
+again penitent persons to church communion, 2 Cor. ii. 7-9.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. Receiving of alms is no act of government.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. True, the bare receiving of alms is no act of
+government, but the ordering and appointing how it shall be best
+improved and disposed of, cannot be denied to be an act of
+government, and for this did the elders meet together, Acts xi.
+30.</p>
+<p>4. The apostles themselves, in their joint acts of government in
+such churches, acted as ordinary officers, viz. as presbyters or
+elders. This is much to be observed, and may be evidenced as
+followeth: for, 1. None of their acts of church government can at
+all be exemplary or obligatory upon us, if they were not
+presbyterial, but merely apostolical; if they acted therein not as
+ordinary presbyters, but as extraordinary apostles. For what acts
+they dispatched merely as apostles, none may meddle withal but only
+apostles. 2. As they were apostles, so they were presbyters, and so
+they style themselves, "The elder to the elect lady," 2 John i.
+"The elders which are among you I exhort," saith Peter, "who am
+also an elder," (i.e. who am a fellow-elder, or co-presbyter,) 1
+Pet. v. 1; wherein he ranks himself among ordinary presbyters,
+which had been improper, unless he had discharged the offices and
+acts of an ordinary presbyter. 3. Their acts were such, for
+substance, as ordinary presbyters do perform, as preaching and
+prayer, Acts vi. 4: ordaining of officers, Acts vi. 6, and xiv. 23:
+dispensing of the sacraments, 1 Cor. i. 14; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7:
+and of church censures, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, compared with 1 Tim. v.
+ver. 1, ult.: which acts of government, and such like, were
+committed by Christ to them, and to ordinary presbyters (their
+successors) to the end of the world; compare Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 17, 18, to the end, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt. xxviii.
+18-20. 4. They acted not only as ordinary elders, but also they
+acted jointly with other elders, being associated with them in the
+same assembly, as in that eminent synod at Jerusalem, Acts xv. 6,
+22, 23, and xvi. 4, "And as they went through cities, they
+delivered them the decrees for to keep, that were ordained of the
+apostles and elders which were at Jerusalem." 5. And, finally, they
+took in the church's consent with themselves, wherein it was
+needful, as in the election and appointment of deacons, Acts vi. 2,
+3. 6. The deacons being specially to be trusted with the church's
+goods, and the disposal thereof, according to the direction of the
+presbytery, for the good of the church, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>Let all these considerations be impartially balanced in the
+scales of indifferent unprejudiced judgments; and how plainly do
+they delineate in the word, a pattern of one presbyterial
+government in common over divers single congregations within one
+church!</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. The apostles' power over many congregations was
+founded upon their power over all churches; and so cannot be a
+pattern for the power of elders over many.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. The apostles' power over many congregations as
+one church, to govern them all as one church jointly and in common,
+was not founded upon their power over all churches, but upon the
+union of those congregations into one church; which union lays a
+foundation for the power of elders governing many
+congregations.</p>
+<p>2. Besides, the apostles, though extraordinary officers, are
+called elders, 1 Pet. v. 1, to intimate to us, that in ordinary
+acts of church government, they did act as elders for a pattern to
+us in like administrations.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. The apostles, it is true, were elders virtually,
+that is, their apostleship contained all offices in it, but they
+were not elders formally.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. If by formally be meant, that they were not
+elders really, then it is false; for the Scripture saith Peter was
+an elder, 1 Peter v. 1. If by formally be meant that they were not
+elders only, that is granted; they were so elders, as they were
+still apostles, and so apostles as they were yet elders: their
+eldership did not exclude their apostleship, nor their apostleship
+swallow up their eldership.</p>
+<p>2. Besides, two distinct offices may be formally in one and the
+same person; as Melchisedec was formally a king and priest, and
+David formally a king and prophet; and why then might not Peter or
+John, or any of the twelve, be formally apostles and elders? And
+ministers are formally pastors and ruling elders.</p>
+<p><i>Except</i>. 'Tis true, the apostles acted together with
+elders, because it so fell out they met together; but that they
+should meet jointly to give a pattern for an eldership, is not easy
+to prove; one apostle might have done that alone, which all here
+did.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. 'Tis true, the apostles as apostles had power to
+act singly what they did jointly; yet, when they acted jointly,
+their acts might have more authority in the Church: upon which
+ground they of Antioch may be conceived to have sent to the whole
+college of apostles and elders at Jerusalem, (rather than to any
+one singly;) why was this, but to add more authority to their acts
+and determinations?</p>
+<p>2. Why should not their meeting together be a pattern of a
+presbytery, as well as their meeting together when they took in the
+consent of the people, Acts vi., in the choice of the deacons, to
+be a pattern or warrant that the people have a power in the choice
+of their officers? (as those of contrary judgment argue:) if one be
+taken in as an inimitable practice, why not the other?</p>
+<p>3. If the apostles joining with elders, acted nothing as elders,
+then we can bring nothing of theirs into imitation; and by this we
+should cut the sinews, and raze the foundation of church
+government, as if there were no footsteps thereof in the holy
+Scriptures.</p>
+<center>POSITION III.</center>
+<p>Finally, That the pattern of the said presbytery and
+presbyterial government is for a rule to the churches of Christ in
+all after ages, may appear as followeth:</p>
+<p>1. The first churches were immediately planted and governed by
+Christ's own apostles and disciples; 1. Who immediately received
+the keys of the kingdom of heaven from Christ himself in person,
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 17,18; John xx. 21, 23. 2. Who
+immediately had the promise of Christ's perpetual presence with
+them in their ministry, Matt, xxviii. 18-20; and of the plentiful
+donation of the Spirit of Christ to lead them into all truth, John
+xiv. 16, and xvi. 13-15; Acts i. 4, 5, 8 3. Who immediately
+received from Christ, after his resurrection and before his
+ascension, "commandments by the Holy Ghost,"&mdash;"Christ being
+seen of them forty days, and speaking of the things pertaining to
+the kingdom of God," Acts i. 2, 3; and, 4. Who were first and
+immediately <i>baptized by the Holy Ghost</i>, extraordinarily,
+Acts ii. 1-5. Now, who can imagine that the apostles and disciples
+were not actuated by the Spirit of Christ bestowed upon them? or
+did not discharge Christ's commandments, touching his kingdom
+imposed upon them? or did not duly use those keys of Christ's
+kingdom committed to them in the ordering and governing of the
+primitive churches? And if so, then the pattern of their practices
+must be a rule for all the succeeding churches, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil,
+iv. 9.</p>
+<p>2. To what end hath the Holy Ghost so carefully recorded a
+pattern of the state and government of the primitive churches in
+the first and purest times, but for the imitation of successive
+churches in after times? "For whatsoever things wore written
+aforetime, were written for our learning," or instruction. But what
+do such records instruct us? Only <i>in fact</i>, that such things
+were done by the first churches? or <i>of right</i> also, that such
+things should be done by the after churches? Surely, this is more
+proper and profitable for us.</p>
+<p>3. If such patterns of Christ's apostles, disciples, and
+primitive churches in matters of the government will not amount to
+an obligatory rule for all following churches, how shall we justify
+sundry other acts of religion commonly received in the best
+reformed churches, and founded only or chiefly upon the foundation
+of the practice of Christ's apostles and the apostolical churches?
+As the receiving of the Lord's supper on the Lord's days, Acts xx.
+7, &amp;c.; which notwithstanding are generally embraced without
+any considerable opposition or contradiction, and that most
+deservedly.</p>
+<a name="2HCH0021"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIV.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Divine Right of Synods, or Synodal
+Assemblies.</i></h3>
+<p>Thus far of the ruling assemblies, which are styled
+presbyterial; next come into consideration those greater
+assemblies, which are usually called synodal, or synods, or
+councils. They are so called from their convening, or coming
+together: or rather from their calling together. Both names, viz.
+synod and council, are of such latitude of signification, as that
+they may be applied to any public convention of people: but in the
+common ordinary use of these words, they are appropriated to large
+ecclesiastical assemblies, above classical presbyteries in number
+and power. These synodal assemblies are made up, (as occasion and
+the necessity of the church shall require.) 1. Either of
+presbyters, sent from the several classical presbyteries within a
+province, hence called provincial synods: 2. Or of presbyters, sent
+from the several provincial synods within a nation, hence called
+national synods: 3. Or of presbyters, delegated or sent from the
+several national churches throughout the Christian world, hence
+called ecumenical synods, or universal and general councils.</p>
+<p>Touching the divine warrant of synods, and their power in church
+affairs, much need not be said, seeing divers learned authors have
+so fully stated and handled this matter.<a href=
+"#note-113"><small>113</small></a> Yet, that the reader may have a
+short view hereof, and not be left wholly unsatisfied, these two
+things shall briefly be opened and insisted upon, viz: 1. Certain
+considerations shall be propounded, tending to clear the state of
+the question about the divine right of synods, and their power. 2.
+The proposition itself, with some few arguments adduced, for the
+proof thereof.</p>
+<p>For the former, viz: The true stating of this question about the
+divine right of synods, and of their power, well weigh these few
+considerations.</p>
+<p>1. Synods differ in some respects from classical presbyteries,
+handled in Chap. XIII., though the nature and kind of their power
+be the same for substance. For, 1. Synods are more large extensive
+assemblies than classical presbyteries, the members of presbyteries
+being sent only from several single congregations, the members of
+synods being delegated from several presbyteries, and
+proportionably their power is extended also. 2. The exercise of
+government by presbyteries, is the common ordinary way of
+government held forth in Scripture. By synods it is more rare and
+extraordinary, at least in great part, as in case of extraordinary
+causes that fall out: as, for choosing an apostle, Acts i., healing
+of scandals, &amp;c., Acts xv.</p>
+<p>2. All synods are of the same nature and kind, whether
+provincial, national, or ecumenical, though they differ as lesser
+and greater, in respect of extent, from one another, (the
+provincial having as full power within their bounds, as the
+national or ecumenical within theirs.) So that the proving of the
+divine right of synods indefinitely and in general, doth prove also
+the divine right of provincial, national, and ecumenical synods in
+particular: for, greater and lesser do not vary the species or
+kind. What is true of ecclesiastical synods in general, agrees to
+every such synod in particular.</p>
+<p><i>Object</i>. But why hath not the Scripture determined these
+assemblies in particular?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. It is not necessary the Scripture should in every
+case descend to particulars. In things of one and the same kind,
+general rules may serve for all particulars; especially seeing
+particulars are so innumerable, what volumes would have contained
+all particulars? 2. All churches and seasons are not capable of
+synods provincial or national: for, in an island there may be no
+more Christians than to make up one single congregation, or one
+classical presbytery. Or in a nation, the Christian congregations
+may be so few, or so dispersed, or so involved in persecution, that
+they cannot convene in synods, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>3. The power of synods contended for, is, 1. Not civil; they
+have no power to take cognizance of civil causes, as such; not to
+inflict any civil punishments; as fines, imprisonments,
+confiscations, banishments, death, (these being proper to the civil
+magistrate:) but merely spiritual; they judge only in
+ecclesiastical causes, in a spiritual manner, by spiritual
+censures, to spiritual ends, as did that synod, Acts xv. 2. Not
+corruptive, privative, or destructive to the power of classical
+presbyteries, or single congregations; but rather perfective and
+conservative thereunto. As suppose a single congregation should
+elect a minister unsound in judgment, or scandalous in
+conversation, the synod may annul and make void that election, and
+direct them to make a better choice, or appoint them a minister
+themselves; hereby this liberty of election is not at all infringed
+or violated, but for their own advantage regulated, &amp;c. 3. Not
+absolute, and infallible; but limited and fallible: any synod or
+council may err, being constituted of men that are weak, frail,
+ignorant in part, &amp;c., and therefore all their decrees and
+determinations are to be examined by the touchstone of the
+Scriptures, nor are they further to be embraced, or counted
+obligatory, than they are consonant thereunto, Isa. viii. 20. Hence
+there is liberty of appeal, as from congregational elderships to
+the classical presbytery, and from thence to the provincial synod,
+so from the provincial to the national assembly, &amp;c. 4.
+Finally, the power of synods is not only persuasive and
+consultative, (as some think,) able to give grave advice, and to
+use forcible persuasions in any case, which if accepted and
+followed, well; if rejected and declined, there is no further
+remedy, but a new non-communion instead of a divine church censure:
+but it is a proper authoritative juridical power, which all within
+their bounds are obliged reverently to esteem, and dutifully to
+submit unto, so far as agreeable to the word of Christ.</p>
+<p>4. Finally, this authoritative juridical power of synods is
+threefold, viz. <i>doctrinal, regulating, and censuring</i>. 1.
+<i>Doctrinal</i>, in reference to matters of faith, and divine
+worship; not to coin new articles of faith, or devise new acts of
+divine worship: but to explain and apply those articles of faith
+and rules of worship which are laid down in the word, and declare
+the contrary errors, heresies, corruptions. Hence the Church is
+styled, <i>the pillar and ground of truth</i>, 1 Tim. iii. 15. Thus
+to the Jewish Church <i>were committed of trust the oracles of
+God</i>, Rom. iii. 2. 2. <i>Regulating</i>, in reference to
+external order and polity, in matters prudential and
+circumstantial, which are determinate according to the true light
+of nature, and the general rules of Scripture, such as are in 1
+Cor. x. 31, 32; Rom. xiv.; 1 Cor. xiv. 26, 40, &amp;c.; not
+according to any arbitrary power of men. 3. <i>Censuring</i> power,
+in reference to error, heresy, schism, obstinacy, contempt, or
+scandal, and the repressing thereof; which power is put forth
+merely in spiritual censures, as admonition, excommunication,
+deposition, &amp;c. And these censures exercised, not in a lordly,
+domineering, prelatical way: but in an humble, sober, grave, yet
+authoritative way, necessary both for preservation of soundness of
+doctrine, and incorruptness of conversation; and for extirpation of
+the contrary. This is the power which belongs to synods. Thus much
+for clearing the right state of this question.</p>
+<p>II. For the second thing, viz. the proposition itself, and the
+confirmation thereof, take it briefly in these terms.</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word sufficient
+ground and warrant for juridical synods, and their authority, for
+governing of his Church now under the New Testament. Many arguments
+might be produced for proof of this proposition: as, 1. From the
+light of nature. 2. From the words of the law, Deut. xvii. 8, 12,
+compared with 2 Chron. xix. 8, 11; Ps. cxxii. 4, 5, holding forth
+an ecclesiastical Sanhedrin in the Church of the Jews, superior to
+other courts. 3. From the words of Christ, Matt, xviii. 15-21. 4.
+From the unity of the visible Church of Christ now under the New
+Testament. 5. From the primitive apostolical pattern laid down,
+Acts xv., &amp;c., and from divers other considerations; but for
+brevity's sake, only the two last arguments shall be a little
+insisted upon.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. I. The unity or oneness of the visible Church of
+Christ now under the New Testament, laid down in Scripture, gives
+us a notable foundation for church government by juridical synods.
+For, 1. That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath one general, visible
+Church on earth now under the New Testament, hath been already
+proved, Part 2, Chap. VIII. 2. That in this Church there is a
+government settled by divine right, is evidenced, Part 1, Chap. I.
+3. That all Christ's ordinances, and particularly church
+government, primarily belong to the whole general Church visible,
+for her edification, (secondarily to particular churches and single
+congregations, as parts or members of the whole,) hath been
+manifested, Part 2, Chap. VIII. Now, there being one general
+visible Church, having a government set in it of divine right, and
+that government belonging primarily to the whole body of Christ;
+secondarily, to the parts or members thereof; must it not
+necessarily follow, that the more generally and extensively
+Christ's ordinance of church government is managed in greater and
+more general assemblies, the more fully the perfection and end of
+the government, viz. the edification of the whole body of Christ,
+is attained; and on the contrary, the more particularly and singly
+church government is exercised, as in presbyteries, or single
+congregational elderships, the more imperfect it is, and the less
+it attains to the principal end: consequently, if there be a divine
+warrant for church government by single congregational elderships,
+is it not much more for church government by presbyteries, and
+synods, or councils, wherein more complete provision is made for
+the edification of the general Church or body of Jesus Christ?</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. The primitive apostolical practice in the
+first and purest ages of the Church after Christ, may further
+evidence with great strength the divine warrant for church
+government by juridical synods or councils. Let this be the
+position:</p>
+<p>Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern
+of a juridical synod, consisting of governing officers of divers
+presbyterial churches, for a rule to the Church of Christ in all
+succeeding ages.</p>
+<p>For proof hereof take these two assertions: 1. That Jesus Christ
+hath laid down in his word a pattern of a juridical synod. 2. That
+this juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all
+succeeding ages.</p>
+<center>ASSERTION I.</center>
+<p>That Jesus Christ hath laid down in his word a pattern of a
+synod, yea, of a juridical synod, consisting of governing officers
+of divers presbyterial churches, is manifest, Acts xv. and xvi.,
+where are plainly set forth: 1. The occasion of the synod. 2. The
+proper members of the synod. 3. The equal power and authority
+exercised by all those members. 4. The way and method of ordinary
+synodal proceeding. 5. The juridical acts of power put forth by the
+synod; with the issue and consequent of all upon the churches.</p>
+<p>First, Here was a proper ground and occasion for a juridical
+synod. For thus the text expressly declareth, that "certain men
+which came down from Judea, taught the brethren, and said, Except
+ye be circumcised after the manner of Moses, ye cannot be saved;
+when therefore Paul and Barnabas had no small dissension and
+disputation with them, they determined that Paul and Barnabas, and
+certain other of them, should go up to Jerusalem to the apostles
+and elders about this question," Acts xv. 1, 2, compared with ver.
+5&mdash;"But there rose up certain of the sect of the Pharisees,
+which believed, saying, that it was needful to circumcise them, and
+to command them to keep the law of Moses;" and with ver. 23,
+24&mdash;"The apostles, and elders, and brethren send greeting unto
+the brethren which are of the Gentiles, in Antioch, and Syria, and
+Cilicia: Forasmuch as we have heard, that certain which went out
+from us, have troubled you with words, subverting your souls,
+saying, Ye must be circumcised and keep the law." In which passages
+these things are evident:</p>
+<p>1. That false doctrine, destructive to the doctrine of Christ in
+his gospel, did arise in the Church, viz: That circumcision and
+keeping of the ceremonial law of Moses was necessary to salvation,
+ver. 1, 5, 24; and this false doctrine promoted with lying, as if
+the apostles and elders of Jerusalem had sent forth the false
+teachers with directions to preach so, as their apology ("to whom
+we gave no such commandment," ver. 24) seems to import. Here is
+corruption both in doctrine and manners fit for a synod to take
+cognizance of.</p>
+<p>2. That this corrupt doctrine was vented by certain that came
+down from Judea. It is evident, it was by certain of the sect of
+the Pharisees that believed; as Paul and Barnabas make the
+narrative to the church at Jerusalem, ver. 5, therefore the false
+teachers coming from Judea (where the Churches of Christ were first
+of all planted, and whence the church plantation spread) published
+their doctrines with more credit to their errors and danger to the
+churches; and so both the churches of Judea whence they came, and
+of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, whither they came, were interested
+in the business.</p>
+<p>3. That the said false teachers by the leaven of their doctrine
+troubled them with words, subverting the souls of the brethren,
+both at Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, ver. 23, 24; here was the
+disturbance and scandal of divers churches: compare ver. 39 with
+41.</p>
+<p>4. That Paul and Barnabas at Antioch had no small dissension and
+dispute against the false teachers, ver. 1, 2, that so (if
+possible) they might be convinced, and the Church's peace
+preserved, without craving further assistance in a solemn
+synod.</p>
+<p>5. That after these disputes, and for the better settling of all
+the churches about this matter, (which these disputes could not
+effect,) <i>they decreed</i> (or ordained) <i>that Paul and
+Barnabas, and some others of themselves, should go up to the
+apostles and elders at Jerusalem about this question, ver</i>. 2.
+Here was an authoritative mission of delegated officers from the
+presbyterial church at Antioch, and from other churches of Syria
+and Cilicia also, ver. 23, 41, to a synodal assembly with the
+presbyterial church at Jerusalem.</p>
+<p>Secondly, Here were proper members of a synod convened to
+consider of this question, viz. the officers and delegates of
+divers presbyterial churches: of the presbyterial church at
+Jerusalem, the apostles and elders, Acts xv. 6: of the presbyterial
+church at Antioch, Paul, Barnabas, and others; compare verse 2 and
+12. And besides these, there were brethren from other churches,
+present as members of the synod; as may appear by these two
+considerations, viz:</p>
+<p>1. Partly, because it is called "The whole multitude," ver. 12;
+"The apostles and elders with the whole church," ver. 22; "The
+apostles, and elders, and brethren," ver. 23. This whole multitude,
+whole church, and brethren, distinct from the apostles and elders
+which were at Jerusalem, cannot be <i>the company of all the
+faithful at Jerusalem</i>, for (as hath been evidenced, Chap. XIV.,
+Position 2,) they were too many to meet in one house. But it was
+the synodal multitude, the synodal church, consisting of apostles,
+and elders, and brethren; which brethren seem to be such as were
+sent from several churches, as Judas and Silas, ver. 24, who were
+assistants to the apostles and evangelists&mdash;Judas, Acts xv.
+22, 32; Silas, Acts xv. 32, 40, and xvi. 19, and xvii. 4, 14, 15,
+and xviii. 5. Some think Titus was of this synod also.</p>
+<p>2. Partly because the brethren of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia,
+were troubled with this question, ver. 23, 24. Therefore it cannot
+be reasonably imagined, but all those places sought out for a
+remedy; and to that end, severally and respectively sent their
+delegates to the synod at Jerusalem: else they had been very
+regardless of their own church peace and welfare. And the epistle
+of the synod was directed to them all by name, ver. 23; and so did
+formally bind them all, having men of their own members of the
+synod, which decrees did but materially, and from the nature of the
+thing, bind the other churches at Lystra and Iconium, Acts xvi. 4.
+Now, if there were delegates but from two presbyterial churches,
+they were sufficient to constitute a synod; and this justifies
+delegates from ten or twenty churches, proportionably, when there
+shall be like just and necessary occasion.</p>
+<p>Thirdly, Here all the members of the synod, as they were
+convened by like ordinary authority, so they acted by like ordinary
+and equal power in the whole business laid before them; which shows
+it was an ordinary, not an extraordinary synod. For though apostles
+and evangelists, who had power over all churches, were members of
+the synod, as well as ordinary elders; yet they acted not in this
+synod by a transcendent, infallible, apostolical power, but by an
+ordinary power, as elders. This is evident,</p>
+<p>1. Because the Apostle Paul, and Barnabas his colleague, (called
+a prophet and teacher, Acts xiii. 1, 2, and an apostle, Acts xiv.
+14,) were sent as members to this synod, by order and determination
+of the church of Antioch, and they submitted themselves to that
+determination, Acts xv. 2, 3; which they could not have submitted
+unto as apostles, but as ordinary elders and members of the
+presbytery at Antioch: they that send, being greater than those
+that are sent by them. Upon which ground it is a good argument
+which is urged against Peter's primacy over the rest of the
+apostles, because the college of apostles at Jerusalem sent Peter
+and John to Samaria, having received the faith, Acts viii. 14.</p>
+<p>2. Because the manner of proceeding in this synod convened, was
+not extraordinary and apostolical, as when they acted by an
+immediate infallible inspiration of the Spirit, in penning the Holy
+Scriptures, (without all disputing, examining, or judging of the
+matter that they wrote, so far as we can read,) 2 Tim. iii. 16,17;
+2 Pet. i. 20, 21; but ordinary, presbyterial, and synodal; by
+ordinary helps and means, (as afterwards shall appear more fully;)
+stating the question, proving and evidencing from Scripture what
+was <i>the good and acceptable will of God</i> concerning the
+present controversy, and upon evidence of Scripture concluding,
+<i>It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us</i>, Acts xv. 28;
+which words, any assembly, having like clear evidence of Scripture
+for their determination, may without presumption use, as well as
+this synod did.<a href="#note-114"><small>114</small></a></p>
+<p>3. Because the elders and brethren (who are as authoritatively
+members of the synod as the apostles) did in all points as
+authoritatively act as the apostles themselves. For, 1. Certain
+other of the church of Antioch, as well as <i>Paul</i> and
+<i>Barnabas</i>, were sent as delegates from the church of
+<i>Antioch</i>, Acts xv. 2. 2. They were all sent as well to the
+<i>elders</i>, as to the <i>apostles</i> at <i>Jerusalem</i>, about
+this matter, ver. 2. 3. They were received at <i>Jerusalem</i>, as
+well by the <i>elders</i>, as the <i>apostles</i>, and reported
+their case to them both, ver. 4. 4. The <i>elders</i>, as well as
+the <i>apostles</i>, met together to consider thereof, ver. 6. 5.
+The letters containing the synodal decrees and determinations, were
+written in the name of the <i>elders and brethren</i>, as well as
+in the name of the <i>apostles</i>, ver. 23. 6. The <i>elders and
+brethren</i>, as well as the <i>apostles</i>, blame the false
+teachers for troubling of the Church, <i>subverting of souls</i>;
+declaring, that they gave the false teachers <i>no such
+commandment</i> to preach any such doctrine, ver. 24. 7. The
+<i>elders and brethren</i>, as well as the <i>apostles</i>, say,
+"It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us," ver. 28. 8. The
+<i>elders</i> and <i>brethren</i>, as well as the <i>apostles</i>,
+did impose upon the churches "no other burden than these necessary
+things," ver. 28. 9. The <i>elders</i>, as well as the
+<i>apostles</i>, being assembled, "thought good to send chosen men
+of themselves," viz. <i>Judas</i> and <i>Silas</i>, with
+<i>Paul</i> and <i>Barnabas</i>, to <i>Antioch</i>, to deliver the
+synodal decrees to them, and to tell them the same things by mouth,
+ver. 22, 25, 27. 10. And the decrees are said to be ordained as
+well by the <i>elders</i>, as by the <i>apostles at Jerusalem</i>,
+Acts xvi. 4. So that through this whole synodal transaction, the
+elders are declared in the text to go on in a full authoritative
+course of judgment with the apostles, from point to point. And
+therefore in this synod, the apostles acted as ordinary elders, not
+as extraordinary officers.</p>
+<p>Fourthly. Here was the ordinary way and method of synodal
+proceedings by the apostles, elders, and brethren, when they were
+convened unanimously, ver. 25. For,</p>
+<p>1. They proceeded deliberatively, by discourses and disputes,
+deliberating about the true state of the question, and the remedy
+of the scandal. This is laid down, 1. More generally, "and when
+there had been much disputing," ver. 7. 2. More particularly, how
+they proceeded when they drew towards a synodal determination,
+Peter speaks of the Gentiles' conversion, and clears the doctrine
+of justification "by faith without the works of the law," ver.
+7-12. Then Barnabas and Paul confirm the conversion of the
+Gentiles, "declaring the signs and wonders wrought by them among
+the Gentiles," ver. 12. After them James speaks, approving what
+Peter had spoken touching the conversion of the Gentiles,
+confirming it by Scripture; and further adds (which Peter did but
+hint, ver. 10, and Paul and Barnabas did not so much as touch upon)
+a remedy against the present scandal, ver. 13-22. Here is now an
+ordinary way of proceeding by debates, disputes, allegations of
+Scripture, and mutual suffrages. What needed all this, if this had
+been a transcendent, extraordinary, and not an ordinary synod?</p>
+<p>2. They proceeded after all their deliberative inquiries and
+disputes decisively to conclude and determine the matter, ver.
+20-30. The result of the synod (as there is evident) is threefold.
+1. To set down in writing their decrees and determinations. 2. To
+signify those decrees in an epistle to the brethren at Antioch,
+Syria, and Cilicia. 3. To send these letters by some from among
+themselves, viz. Judas and Silas, together with Paul and Barnabas,
+to all the churches that were offended or endangered, that both by
+written decrees and word of mouth, the churches might be
+established in faith and peace.</p>
+<p>Fifthly, Here were several authoritative and juridical acts of
+power, put forth in this synod, according to the exigency of the
+present distempers of the churches. This appears plainly,</p>
+<p>1. By the proceedings of the synod in accommodating a suitable
+and proportionable remedy to every malady at that time distempering
+the Church, viz. a triple medicine for a threefold disease.</p>
+<p>1. Against the heresy broached, viz. that they must be
+circumcised and keep the ceremonial "law of Moses, or else they
+could not be saved," Acts xv. 2. The synod put forth a doctrinal
+power, in confutation of the heresy, and clear vindication of the
+truth, about the great point of "justification by faith without the
+works of the law," Acts xv. 7-23; and (Independents themselves
+being judges) a doctrinal decision of matters of faith by a lawful
+synod, far surpasseth the doctrinal determination of any single
+teacher, or of the presbytery of any single congregation; and is to
+be reverently received of the churches as a binding ordinance of
+Christ.</p>
+<p>2. Against the schism, occasioned by the doctrine of the false
+teachers that troubled the Church, Acts xv. 1, 2, the synod put
+forth a censuring power, stigmatizing the false teachers with the
+infamous brands of troubling the Church with words, subverting of
+souls, and (tacitly, as some conceive from that expression, "Unto
+whom we gave no such commandment," ver. 24) of belying the apostles
+and elders of Jerusalem, as if they had sent them abroad to preach
+this doctrine.</p>
+<p><i>Object</i>. But the synod proceeded not properly to censure
+the false teachers by any ecclesiastical admonition, or
+excommunication; therefore the power exercised in the synod was
+only doctrinal, and not properly juridical.</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. 1. They censured them in some degree, and that with
+a mark of infamy, ver. 24, as was manifested. And this was not only
+a warning and hint to the churches, to note such false teachers,
+avoid them, and withdraw from them, compare Rom. xvi. 17, 18, with
+1 Tim. vi. 3-5; but also was a virtual admonition to the false
+teachers themselves, while their doctrines and ways were so
+expressly condemned. 2. They proceeded not to present
+excommunication, it is granted; nor was it at first dash
+seasonable, prudent, or needful. But the synod knew well, that if
+these false teachers, after this synodal mark of disgrace set upon
+them, should still persist in their course, incurably and
+incorrigibly obstinate, they might in due time be excommunicated by
+course; it being a clear case in itself that such heretics or
+schismatics, as otherwise cannot be reduced, are not to be
+suffered, but to be cast out of the churches. "An heretic, after
+once or twice admonition, reject," Tit. iii. 10, 11; see Rev. ii.
+2, 14, 20.</p>
+<p>3. Against the scandal of the weak Jews, and their
+heart-estrangement from the Gentiles, who neglected their
+ceremonial observances, as also against the scandal of the
+Gentiles, who were much troubled and offended at the urging of
+circumcision, and the keeping of the law as necessary to salvation,
+ver. 1, 2, 19, 24, the synod put forth an ordering or regulating
+power, framing practical rules or constitutions for the healing of
+the scandal, and for prevention of the spreading of it, commanding
+the brethren of the several churches to abstain from divers things
+that might any way occasion the same: "It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost, and to us, to impose" (or lay) "upon you no further burden
+than these necessary things," Acts xv. 28, 29. Here is
+<i>burden</i> and <i>necessary things</i>, (so judged to be
+necessary for those times, and that state of the Church,) and
+imposing of these upon the churches: will not this amount to a
+plain ordering power and authority? Especially considering that the
+word <i>to impose</i>, or <i>lay on</i>, when it is used of the
+judgment, act, or sentence of an assembly, ordinarily signifies an
+authoritative judgment, or decree, as, "Why tempt ye God, to lay,
+or impose, a yoke upon the neck of the disciples?" Acts xv. 10. Thus
+some in the synod endeavored to carry the synod with themselves,
+authoritatively to have imposed the ceremonies upon the churches;
+whom Peter thus withstands. So, "They bind heavy burdens, and hard
+to be borne, and impose them upon men's shoulders," Matt, xxiii. 4:
+and this laying on of burdens by the Pharisees, was not by a bare
+doctrinal declaring, but by an authoritative commanding, as seems
+by that, "teaching for doctrines the commandments of men," Matt.
+xv. 9.</p>
+<p>2. By the title or denomination given to the synodal results
+contained in their letters sent to the brethren. They are styled,
+"The decrees ordained, or judged," Acts xvi. 4. Here are plainly
+juridical authoritative constitutions. For it is very
+observable,</p>
+<p>That wheresoever the words translated <i>decree</i> or
+<i>decrees</i> are found in the New Testament, thereby are denoted,
+laws, statutes, or decrees: as "Decrees of C&aelig;sar," Acts xvii. 7:
+"A decree from C&aelig;sar," Luke ii. 1: Moses' ceremonial law, "The
+hand-writing to ordinances," Col. ii. 14: "The law of commandments
+in ordinances," Eph. ii. 15: and this word is found used only in
+these five places in the whole New Testament: and the Septuagint
+interpreters often use the word in the Old Testament to this
+purpose; for <i>laws</i>, Dan. vi. 8; for <i>decrees</i>, Dan. ii.
+13, and iii. 10, 29, and iv. 3, and vi. 9.</p>
+<p>And the other word translated <i>ordained</i>, when applied to
+an assembly by the Septuagint, is used for a judgment of authority,
+as, "And what was decreed against her," Esth. ii. 1; and so a word
+derived from it, signifies a <i>decree</i>, Dan. iv. 14, 21.</p>
+<p>In this sense also the word is sometimes used in the New
+Testament, when applied to assemblies; as, "Take ye him, and judge
+him according to your law," John xviii. 31; "Whom we laid hold
+upon, and would have judged according to our law," Acts xxiv.
+6.</p>
+<p>Now, if there be so much power and authority engraven upon these
+two words severally, how strongly do they hold forth authority,
+when they are applied to any thing jointly, as here to the synodal
+decisions!</p>
+<p>3. By the consequent of these synodal proceedings, viz. the
+cheerful submission of the churches thereunto. This appears both in
+the church of Antioch, where the troubles first were raised by the
+false teachers; where, "when the epistle" of the synod "was read,
+they rejoiced for the consolation," Acts xv. 30, 31; and Judas and
+Silas exhorted and confirmed the brethren by word of mouth,
+according to the synod's direction, ver. 32; and in other churches,
+to which Paul and Timothy delivered the "decrees ordained by the
+apostles and elders which were at Jerusalem; and so were the
+churches confirmed in the faith, and abounded in number daily,"
+Acts xvi. 4, 5; whence we have these evidences of the churches'
+submission to the synodal decrees: 1. The decrees are counted by
+the churches a consolation. 2. They were so welcome to them, that
+they <i>rejoiced for the consolation</i>. 3. They were hereby
+notably <i>confirmed in the faith</i>, against the false doctrines
+broached among them. 4. The churches <i>abounded in number
+daily</i>, the scandal and stumbling-blocks that troubled the
+Church being removed out of the way. How should such effects so
+quickly have followed upon the publication of the synodal decrees,
+in the several churches, had not the churches looked upon that
+synod as vested with juridical power and authority for composing
+and imposing of these their determinations?</p>
+<center>ASSERTION II.</center>
+<p>That this juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of
+Christ in all succeeding ages, there need no new considerations for
+proof hereof; only let the reader please to look back to Position
+iv. of the last chapter, where the substance of those
+considerations which urge the pattern of presbyteries and
+presbyterial government for a rule to succeeding churches, is
+applicable (by change of terms) to the pattern of juridical
+synods.<a href="#note-115"><small>115</small></a></p>
+<a name="2HCH0022"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CHAPTER XV.</h2>
+<h3><i>Of the subordination of particular churches to greater
+assemblies for their authoritative and judicial determination of
+causes ecclesiastical, and the divine right thereof.</i></h3>
+<p>The divine right of ecclesiastical assemblies, congregational,
+classical, and synodal, and of their power for church government,
+being thus evidenced by the Scriptures, now in the last place take
+a few words briefly touching the subordination of the lesser to the
+greater assemblies, and the divine warrant thereof. In asserting
+the subordination of particular churches to higher assemblies,
+whether classical or synodal,</p>
+<p>1. It is not denied, but particular churches have within
+themselves power of discipline entirely, so far as any cause in
+debate particularly and peculiarly concerneth themselves, and not
+others.</p>
+<p>2. It is granted, that where there is no consociation, or
+neighborhood of single churches, whereby they may mutually aid one
+another, there a single congregation must not be denied entire
+jurisdiction; but this falls not within the compass of ordinary
+rules of church government left us by Christ. If there be but one
+congregation in a kingdom or province, that particular congregation
+may do much by itself alone, which it ought not to do where there
+are neighboring and adjacent churches that might associate
+therewith for mutual assistance.</p>
+<p>3. It is granted, that every single congregation hath equal
+power, one as much as another, and that there is no subordination
+of one to another; according to that common and known axiom, An
+equal hath no power or rule over an equal. Subordination
+prelatical, which is of one or more parishes to the prelate and his
+cathedral, is denied; all particular churches being collateral, and
+of the same authority.</p>
+<p>4. It is granted, that classical or synodal authority cannot be
+by Scripture introduced over a particular church in a privative or
+destructive way to that power which God hath bestowed upon it; but
+contrarily it is affirmed, that all the power of assemblies, which
+are above particular congregations, is cumulative and perfective to
+the power of those inferior congregations.</p>
+<p>5. It is granted, that the highest ecclesiastical assembly in
+the world cannot require from the lowest a subordination absolute,
+and at their own mere will and pleasure, but only in some respect;
+subordination absolute being only to the law of God laid down in
+Scripture. We detest popish tyranny, which claims a power of giving
+their will for a law. 'Tis subjection in the Lord that is pleaded
+for: the straightest rule in the world, unless the holy Scripture,
+we affirm to be a rule to be regulated; peace being only in walking
+according to Scripture canon, Gal. vi. ver. 16.</p>
+<p>6. Nor is it the question whether friendly, consultative,
+fraternal, Christian advice or direction, be either to be desired
+or bestowed by neighboring churches, either apart or in their
+synodal meetings, for the mutual benefit of one another, by reason
+of that holy profession in which they are all conjoined and knit
+together: for this will be granted on all hands, though when it is
+obtained, it will not amount to a sufficient remedy in many
+cases.</p>
+<p>But this is that which we maintain, viz. that the law of God
+holdeth forth a subordination of a particular church to greater
+assemblies, consisting of divers choice members, taken out of
+several single congregations: which assemblies have authoritative
+power and ecclesiastical jurisdiction over that particular church,
+by way of giving sentence in and deciding of causes ecclesiastical.
+For confirmation of this assertion, thus:</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. I. The light of nature may be alleged to prove,
+that there ought to be this subordination: this is warranted not
+only by God's positive law, but even by nature's law. The church is
+a company of people who are not outlawed by nature. The visible
+church being an ecclesiastical polity, and the perfection of all
+polity, doth comprehend in it whatsoever is excellent in all other
+bodies political. The church must resemble the commonwealth's
+government in things common to both, and which have the same use in
+both. The law of nature directs unto diversities of courts in the
+commonwealth, and the greater to have authority over the lesser.
+The church is not only to be considered as employed in holy
+services, or as having assemblies exercised in spiritual things,
+and after a spiritual manner, but it is also to be considered as
+consisting of companies and societies of men to be regularly
+ordered, and so far nature agreeth to it, that it should have
+divers sorts of assemblies, and the lower subordinate to the
+higher. That particular parts should be subject to the whole for
+the good of the whole, is found necessary both in bodies natural
+and politic. Is the foot to be lanced? though it have a particular
+use of its own, and a peculiar employment, yet it is to be ordered
+by the eye, the hand, and the rest. Kingdoms have their several
+cities and towns, which all have their governments apart by
+themselves; yet for the preservation of the whole, all join
+together in the Parliament. Armies and navies have their several
+companies and ships, yet in any danger every particular company and
+ship is ordered by the counsels and directions of the officers and
+guides of the whole army or navy. The Church is spiritual, but yet
+a kingdom, a body, an army, &amp;c. D. Ames himself affirms that
+the light of nature requires that particular churches ought to
+combine in synods for things of greater moment. The God of nature
+and reason hath not left in his word a government against the light
+of nature and right reason. Appeals are of divine and natural
+right, and certainly very necessary in every society, because of
+the iniquity and ignorance of judges. That they are so, the
+practices of all ages and nations sufficiently testify.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. II. The Jewish church government affords a second
+argument. If in that they had synagogues in every city, which were
+subordinate to the supreme ecclesiastical court at Jerusalem, then
+there ought to be a subordination of particular churches among us
+to higher assemblies; but so it was among them: therefore,</p>
+<p>That the subordination was among them of the particular
+synagogues to the assembly at Jerusalem, is clear&mdash;Deut. xvii.
+8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8, 11; Exod. xviii. 22, 26.</p>
+<p>That therefore it ought to be so among us, is as plain: for the
+dangers and difficulties that they were involved in without a
+government, and for which God caused that government to be set up
+among them, are as great if not greater among us, and therefore why
+should we want the same means of prevention and cure? Are not we in
+greater danger of heresies now in the time of the New Testament,
+the churches therein being thereby to be exercised by way of trial,
+as the apostle foretells, 1 Cor. xi. 19? Doth not ungodliness in
+these last times abound, according to the same apostle's
+prediction? Is there not now a more free and permitted intercourse
+of society with infidels than in those times?</p>
+<p>Nor are the exceptions against this argument of any strength:
+as, 1. That arguments for the form of church government must yet be
+fetched from the Jewish Church; the government of the Jews was
+ceremonial and typical, and Christians must not Judaize, nor use
+that Judaical compound of subordination of churches: the Mosaical
+polity is abrogated now under the New Testament. Not to tell those
+that make this exception, 1. That none argue so much from the
+Jewish government as themselves for the power of congregations,
+both in ordination and excommunication, because the people of
+Israel laid hands on the Levites, and all Israel were to remove the
+unclean; 2. We answer, the laws of the Jewish church, whether
+ceremonial or judicial, so far are in force, even at this day, as
+they were grounded upon common equity, the principles of reason and
+nature, and were serving to the maintenance of the moral law. 'Tis
+of especial right, that the party unjustly aggrieved should have
+redress, that the adverse party should not be sole judge and party
+too, that judgment ought not to be rashly or partially passed upon
+any. The Jewish polity is only abrogated in regard of what was in
+it of particular right, not of common right: so far as there was in
+their laws either a typicalness proper to their church, or a
+peculiarness of respect to their state in that land of promise
+given unto them. Whatsoever was in their laws of moral concernment
+or general equity, is still obliging; whatsoever the Jewish Church
+had not as Jewish, but as it was a political church, or an
+ecclesiastical republic, (among which is the subordination of
+ecclesiastical courts to be reckoned,) doth belong to the Christian
+Church: that all judgments were to be determined by an high-priest,
+was typical of Christ's supremacy in judicature; but that there
+were gradual judicatories for the ease of an oppressed or grieved
+party, there can be no ceremony or type in this. This was not
+learned by Moses in the pattern of the Mount, but was taught by the
+light of nature to Jethro, Exod. xviii. 22, and by him given in
+advice to Moses. This did not belong unto the peculiar dispensation
+of the Jews, but unto the good order of the church.</p>
+<p>To conclude our answer to this exception, if the benefit of
+appeals be not as free to us as to the Jews, the yoke of the gospel
+should be more intolerable than the yoke of the law; the poor
+afflicted Christian might groan and cry under an unjust and
+tyrannical eldership, and no ecclesiastical judicatory to relieve
+him; whereas the poor oppressed Jew might appeal to the Sanhedrin:
+certainly this is contrary to that prophecy of Christ, Psal. lxxii.
+12, 14.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. III. A third argument to prove the subordination
+of particular congregations, is taken from the institution of our
+Saviour Christ, of gradual appeals, Matt, xviii. 17, 18, where our
+Saviour hath appointed a particular member of a church (if
+scandalous) to be gradually dealt withal; first to be reproved in
+private, then to be admonished before two or three witnesses, and
+last of all to be complained of to the church: whence we thus
+argue:</p>
+<p>If Christ hath instituted that the offence of an obstinate
+brother should be complained of to the church; then much more is it
+intended that the obstinacy of a great number, suppose of a whole
+church, should be brought before a higher assembly: but the former
+is true, therefore the latter. The consequence, wherein the
+strength of the argument lies, is proved several ways.</p>
+<p>1. From the rule of proportion: by what proportion one or two
+are subject to a particular church, by the same proportion is that
+church subject to a provincial or a national assembly; and by the
+same proportion that one congregation is governed by the particular
+eldership representing it, by the same proportion are ten or twelve
+congregations governed by a classical presbytery representing them
+all.</p>
+<p>2. From the sufficiency of that remedy that Christ here
+prescribes for those emergent exigencies under which the Church may
+lie; since, therefore, offences may as well arise between two
+persons in the same congregation, Christ hath appointed that
+particular congregations, as well as members, shall have liberty to
+complain and appeal to a more general judgment for redress: the
+salve here prescribed by Christ is equal to the sore; if the sore
+of scandal may overspread whole churches, as well as particular
+persons, then certainly the salve of appeals and subordination is
+here also appointed. If a man be scandalized by the
+neighbor-church, to whom shall he complain? The church offending
+must not be both judge and party.</p>
+<p>3. From that ecclesiastical communion that is between churches
+and churches in one and the same province or nation, whereby
+churches are joined and united together in doctrine and discipline
+into one body, as well as divers particular persons in a particular
+congregation; since, therefore, scandals may be committed among
+them that are in that holy communion one with another, most
+unworthy of and destructive to that sacred league, certainly those
+scandals should be redressed by a superior judicatory, as well as
+offences between brother and brother.</p>
+<p>4. He that careth for a part of a church must much more care for
+the whole; he whose love extends itself to regard the conversion of
+one, is certainly very careful of the spiritual welfare of many,
+the edification of a whole church; the influence of Christ's love
+being poured upon the whole body, bride and spouse, by order of
+nature, before it redound to the benefit of a finger or toe, viz.
+some one single person or other. Nor are the exceptions against
+this institution of gradual appeals of any moment.</p>
+<p>The grand one, and that makes directly against our position is,
+that our Saviour would have the controversy between brother and
+brother to be terminated in a peculiar church, and that its
+judgment should be ultimately requested, he saith, <i>Tell the
+church</i>, not churches. The subordination here appointed by
+Christ is of fewer to more, but still within the same church, not
+without it. To which we answer, our Saviour means not by church
+only one single particular congregation, but also several, combined
+in their officers, as appears by these following reasons.</p>
+<p>1. A particular church in sundry cases cannot decide the
+difference, or heal the distemper our Saviour prescribes against;
+as when a particular church is divided into two parts, both in
+opposition one to the other; or when one church is at variance with
+another; if Christ here limits only to a particular church, how
+shall such distempers be remedied?</p>
+<p>2. When Christ bids <i>tell the church</i>, he speaks in
+allusion to the Jewish Church, which was represented not only by
+parts in the single synagogue or congregation, but wholly in their
+sanhedrin, consisting of select persons, appointed by God, for
+deciding controversies incident to their particular congregations,
+and their members. So that we may thus reason: the subordination
+here established by Christ is so far to be extended in the
+Christian Church, as in the Church of the Jews, for Christ alludeth
+to the Jewish practice; but in the Jewish Church there was a
+subordination of fewer to more, not only within the same synagogue
+or congregation, but within the whole nation, for all synagogues
+were under the great council at Jerusalem. Now that Christ gives
+here the same rule that was of old given to the Jews for church
+government, is clear, 1. From the censure of the obstinate, who was
+to be reputed a heathen and a publican; wherein is a manifest
+allusion to the present estate of the Church of the Jews; and, 2.
+From the familiarity and plainness of Christ's speech, <i>Tell the
+church</i>, which church could not have been understood by the
+disciples had not Christ spoken of the Jewish judicatory; besides
+which they knew none for such offences as Christ spake of to them,
+there being no particular church which had given its name to
+Christ: as also, 3. From his citing the words of that text, Deut.
+xix. 15, where the witnesses and offenders were, by way of further
+appeal, to stand before the Lord, before the priests for judgment,
+ver. 17.</p>
+<p>3. It is plain that our Saviour intended a liberty of going
+beyond a particular congregation for determining cases of
+controversy, from the reason of that subordination which Christ
+enjoins, of one to two or three, and of them to the church. The
+reason of that gradual progress there set down, was because in the
+increase of numbers and greatness of assemblies, more wisdom,
+judgment, and gravity is supposed to be, than in the admonitions of
+a few and smaller number; now, then, this power of right admonition
+increaseth with the number of admonishers, as well without as
+within the same congregation; if ten go beyond two in wisdom and
+gravity, forty will go beyond ten, and be more likely to win upon
+the offender, and regain him.</p>
+<p><i>Argum</i>. IV. A fourth argument is taken from the pattern of
+the apostolical churches, Acts xv.</p>
+<p>The church of Antioch (though presbyterial, as was proved
+Chapter XIII., Position II.) was subordinate to the synod at
+Jerusalem; therefore a particular church is subordinate to higher
+assemblies, &amp;c.</p>
+<p>If a synodal decree did bind them in those times, then may it
+bind particular churches now, and these ought even still to be
+subject to synods.</p>
+<p>The consequence is undeniable, unless we hold that what the
+synod there imposed was unjust, or that we have now less need of
+those remedies than they had; nay, since the apostles (who were
+assisted with an extraordinary spirit of inspiration) would
+nevertheless in a doubtful business have synodal conventions for
+determining of controversies, much more ought we to do so whose
+gifts are far inferior to theirs; and unless it had been in their
+determination to leave us their example of a synodal way of church
+government for our pattern, they had not wanted the meeting
+together of so many with them for decision of the doubt, whose
+doctrine was infallible, and of itself, without an assembly, to be
+believed.</p>
+<p>The exceptions against this pattern of church polity are of no
+validity, e.g.</p>
+<p>1. This was no synod. First, that it was no synod appears, in
+that we read of no word of a synod. Secondly, no commissioners from
+Syria and Cilicia, which churches should have sent their delegates,
+had they been a synod, and had their decrees been to have bound in
+a synodal way. Thirdly, all the believers had voices here.</p>
+<p>2. If it were a synod, yet it is no pattern for us, in regard it
+was consisting of members guided by an infallible and apostolical
+spirit.</p>
+<p>We answer, 1. Here is the thing synod, though not the word,
+which is a meeting consisting of the deputies of many single
+churches.</p>
+<p>2. That Jerusalem and Antioch had their commissioners there, is
+evident; and by consequence many single churches had their
+commissioners, for there were many single congregations at
+Jerusalem and Antioch, as hath been proved, Chapter XIII., Position
+II.; that these met together, the word used, verse 6, <i>they came
+together</i>, evidenceth, and verse 25. For the churches of Syria
+and Cilicia not sending their commissioners, it follows not that
+because <i>they are not named</i>, therefore <i>they were not
+there</i>; and if <i>they were not there</i>, therefore <i>they
+ought not to have been</i>: but it is rather thought Syria and
+Cilicia had commissioners there, in regard the synodal decrees are
+directed to them as well as others, and the decrees bound them,
+which they could not do as formal Scripture; for the words, <i>it
+seemeth good to us</i>, and their submitting the matter to
+disputation, argue the contrary; therefore as synodal decrees,
+which inasmuch as they bound those churches, they either were
+present, or were obliged to be present by their commissioners.</p>
+<p>3. To that exception, that the multitude of believers had voices
+there, and therefore it is not one of our synods, ver.
+22&mdash;</p>
+<p>We answer, it can nowise be proved that every particular
+believer had a suffrage in the assembly.</p>
+<p>Eminent divines<a href="#note-116"><small>116</small></a>
+understand by <i>multitude</i> and <i>church</i>, the multitude and
+whole church of apostles and elders, who are said to be <i>gathered
+together</i>, verse 6, <i>to consider of the matter</i>; besides
+which no other multitude is said to be gathered together, while the
+matter was in debate; yet we shall not deny even to other members
+the liberty of their consent and approbation, and freedom to
+examine all determinations by the rule of God's word: but the
+ordaining and forming those decrees is here evinced to be by the
+apostles and elders, when as they are called <i>their decrees</i>,
+Acts xvi. 4,6.</p>
+<p>3. Those only had definitive votes, who met together synodically
+to consider of the question; but they were only the apostles and
+elders, Acts xv. 6. That the epistle is sent in the name of all, is
+granted; because it was sent by common consent, and withal thereby
+was added some more weight to the message.</p>
+<p>4. Further, if the believers of Jerusalem voted in that
+assembly, by what authority was it? How could they <i>impose a
+burden</i> upon, and command decrees unto the churches of Syria and
+Cilicia, and other churches, who, according to our brethren's
+opinion, were not only absent in their commissioners, but
+independent in their power?</p>
+<p>To the exception, that other synods may not pretend to the
+privileges of that, since its decrees were indited by the Holy
+Ghost; and therefore no pattern for our imitation&mdash;</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. The decrees of this assembly did oblige, as synodal
+decrees, not as apostolical and canonical Scripture: this appears
+several ways:</p>
+<p>1. The apostles, in framing these canons, did proceed in a way
+synodal and ecclesiastical, and far different from that which they
+used in dictating of Scripture, and publishing divine truths; their
+decrees were brought forth by much disputation, human disquisition,
+but divine oracles are published without human reasonings, from the
+immediate inditing of the Spirit, 2 Pet. i. 2.</p>
+<p>2. Besides the apostles, there were here commissioned elders and
+other brethren, men of ordinary rank, not divinely and infallibly
+inspired. The apostles in the penning of Scripture consult not with
+elders and brethren, (as our opposites here say they did:) our
+brethren make mandates of ordinary believers divine and canonical
+Scripture.</p>
+<p>3. Divine writ is published only in the name of the Lord; but
+these in the name of man also, "It seemed good to the Holy Ghost
+and to us," Acts xv. 28.</p>
+<p>4. Canonical and apostolical writing of new Scripture shall not
+continue till Christ's coming, because the canon is complete, Rev.
+xxii. 18, 19, &amp;c.; but thus to decree through the assistance of
+the Holy Ghost, who remaineth with the Church to the end, and to be
+directed by Scripture, shall still continue. Therefore this
+decreeing is not as the inditing of the Holy Scripture. The minor
+is clear both from Christ's promise, "Where two or three are met
+together," Matt. xvii. 18-20; Matt. viii. 20; as also by the
+Spirit's inspiring those councils of Nice of old, and Dort of late:
+Therefore the apostles here laid aside their apostolical
+extraordinary power, descending to the places of ordinary pastors,
+to give them examples in future ages.</p>
+<p>To conclude, it is plain, that all the essentials in this
+assembly were synodal, as whether we consider: 1. The occasion of
+the meeting, a controversy; 2. The deputation of commissioners from
+particular churches, for the deciding of that controversy; or 3.
+The convention of those that were deputed; or 4. The discussion of
+the question, they being so convened; or 5. The determination of
+the question so discussed; or 6. The imposition of the thing so
+determined; or 7. The subjection to the thing so imposed.</p>
+<p>1 Tim. i. 17</p>
+<p>TO THE IMMORTAL GOD ALONE BE GLORY FOR EVER AND EVER.</p>
+<a name="H_FOOT1"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>FOOTNOTES:</h2>
+<a name="note-1"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>1</u> [ This truth, that Jesus Christ is a king,
+and hath a kingdom and government in his Church distinct from the
+kingdoms of this world, and from the civil government, hath this
+commendation and character above all other truths, that Christ
+himself suffered to the death for it, and sealed it with his blood.
+For it may he observed from the story of his passion, this was the
+only point of his accusation, which was confessed and avouched by
+himself, Luke xxiii. 3; John xviii. 33, 36, 37; was most
+aggravated, prosecuted, and driven home by the Jews, Luke xxiii. 2;
+John xix. 22, 23; was prevalent with Pilate as the cause of
+condemning him to die, John xix. 12, 13, and was mentioned also in
+his superscription upon his cross, John xix. 19; and although in
+reference to God, and in respect of satisfaction to the Divine
+justice for our sins, his death was [Greek: lytron] a price of
+redemption; yet in reference to men who did persecute, accuse, and
+condemn him, his death was [Greek: martyrion] a martyr's testimony
+to seal such a truth.&mdash;Mr. <i>G. Gillespie, in his Aaron's Rod
+Blossoming, &amp;c., Epist. to the Reader</i>.]</p>
+<a name="note-2"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>2</u> [ <i>Cent. I. lib. 2, cap.</i> 7,
+<i>p.</i> 407 <i>ad</i> 418, <i>Edit. Basil. An.</i> 1624. De rebus
+ad Gubernationem Ecclesiae pertinentibus, Apostoli certos quosdam,
+Canones tradiderunt: quos ordine subjiciemus, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-3"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>3</u> [ Directions of the Lords and Commons,
+&amp;c. Aug. 19, 1645, p. 10]</p>
+<a name="note-4"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>4</u> [ (1) The ancient discipline of the
+Bohemian Brethren, published in Latin, in octavo, <i>Anno</i> 1633,
+pages 99, 100.</p>
+<p class="foot">(2) The discipline of Geneva, <i>Anno</i> 1576, in
+<i>Art.</i> 1, 22, 57, 86, and 87.</p>
+<p class="foot">(3) The discipline of the French church at
+Frankfort, <i>Edit.</i> 2, in octavo, <i>Anno</i> 1555, <i>in cap.
+de Disciplina et Excom.,</i> p. 75, and the Ecclesiast. Discipline
+of the reformed churches of France, printed at London, <i>Anno</i>
+1642, <i>Art.</i> 15, 16, and 24, p. 44. (1) The Synodal
+Constitution of the Dutch churches in England, chap. 4, <i>Art.</i>
+13, and <i>Tit.</i> 1, <i>Art.</i> 2; and the Dutch churches in
+Belgia, (see <i>Harmonia Synodorum Belgicarum</i>,) <i>cap.</i> 14,
+<i>Art.</i> 7, 11, and 15, p. 160. (5) The reformed churches at
+Nassau, in Germany, as <i>Zeoper</i> testifies, <i>De Politei
+Eccles.,</i> printed <i>Herborne, Anno</i> 1607, in octavo, <i>Tit.
+de Censuris Ecclesiast., Part</i> 4, <i>Art.</i> 64, p. 813. (6)
+The discipline in the churches constituted by the labor of
+<i>Joannes &acirc; Lasco</i>, entitled <i>Forma ac ratio tota
+Ecclesiastici Miniterii, &amp;c.</i>, <i>author Joannes &acirc;
+Lasco Poloniae Barone, Anno</i> 1555, p. 291. (7) The discipline
+agreed upon by the English exiles that fled from the <i>Marian</i>
+persecution to Frankfort, thence to Geneva, allowed by
+<i>Calvin</i>; entitled <i>Ratio ac forma public&egrave; orandi
+Deum, &amp;c., Genevae</i>, 1556, <i>Tit. de Disciplina</i>, p. 68.
+(8) The Order of Excommunication and Public Repentance used in the
+Church of Scotland, <i>Anno</i> 1571, <i>Tit.</i> The offences that
+deserve public repentance, &amp;c., pp. 87, 88.]</p>
+<a name="note-5"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>5</u> [ See more in chap. 10, sect. 1.]</p>
+<a name="note-6"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>6</u> [ R. Park, de Polit. Eccl. 1. 2, cap.
+42.]</p>
+<a name="note-7"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>7</u> [ Malcolm. Com. in loco.]</p>
+<a name="note-8"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>8</u> [ Calvin in loco.]</p>
+<a name="note-9"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>9</u> [ Chrys. wisheth&mdash;"But, O that there
+had not wanted one that would have delivered diligently unto us the
+history of the apostles, not only what they wrote, or what they
+spake, but how they behaved themselves throughout their whole life,
+both what they did eat, and when they did eat, when they sat, and
+whither they went, and what they did every day, in what parts they
+lived, and into what house they entered, and whither they sailed,
+and that would accurately have expounded all things; so full of
+manifold utility are all things of theirs."&mdash;Chrys., Argum. in
+Epist. ad Philem. And elsewhere he affirmeth,&mdash;"Nor hath the
+grace of the Holy Ghost without cause left unto us these histories
+written, but that he may stir us up to the imitation and emulation
+of such unspeakable men. For when we hear of this man's patience,
+of that man's soberness, of another man's readiness to entertain
+strangers, and the manifold virtue of every one, and how every one
+of them did shine and become illustrious, we are stirred up to the
+like zeal." Chrys. in Gen. xxx. 25. Homil. 57, in initio.]</p>
+<a name="note-10"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>10</u> [ "For this cause, therefore, the
+conversation of these most excellent men is accurately related,
+that by imitation of them our life may be rightly led on to that
+which is good."&mdash;Greg. Nyssen, lib. de Vita Mosis, tom. i. p.
+170, vid. tot. lib.]</p>
+<a name="note-11"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>11</u> [ Perkins on Matth. vi. 16. See him also
+on Heb. xi. 6, p. 28, in fol. col. 2, B, C, &amp;c., and on Heb.
+xi. 22, p. 131, col. 2, D, and notably on Heb. xii. 1, p. 200, col.
+2, C, D, &amp;c., and on Rev. ii. 19, p. 313, col. 1, B, and his
+Art of Prophesying, p. 663, col. 1 and 2. Vide Pet. Martyr in lib.
+Jud. p. 2, col. 1, and in Rom. iv. 23, 24. And Calvin in Heb. xii.
+1; and in Rom. iv. 23, 24, and in 1. Pet. i. 21, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-12"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>12</u> [ Park. de Pol. Eccl. 1. 2, c. 42.]</p>
+<a name="note-13"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>13</u> [ 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]</p>
+<a name="note-14"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>14</u> [ Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 15-18; 1 Cor.
+v. 4, 5; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]</p>
+<a name="note-15"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>15</u> [ 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17; 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15,
+with all places that mention any thing of government.]</p>
+<a name="note-16"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>16</u> [ Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28;
+Matt. xxviii. 18-20; John xx. 21-23; Matt. xvi. 19; 2 Cor. x.
+8.]</p>
+<a name="note-17"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>17</u> [ Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 19; John xx.
+21, 23; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]</p>
+<a name="note-18"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>18</u> [ Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Acts vi. 4; 2 Tim.
+iv. 2.]</p>
+<a name="note-19"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>19</u> [ Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi.
+24.]</p>
+<a name="note-20"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>20</u> [ Matt, xviii. 15-17; Tit. iii. 19; 1
+Tim. v. 20; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, 13; 2 Cor. ii. 6: 1 Tim. i. 20; 2 Cor.
+ii 7, 8, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-21"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>21</u> [ 1 Cor. iv. 1.]</p>
+<a name="note-22"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>22</u> [ 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]</p>
+<a name="note-23"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>23</u> [ [Greek: Ekklaesia], Acts xix. 32, 39,
+40; Eph. v. 23; 1 Cor. xii. 98.]</p>
+<a name="note-24"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>24</u> [ Cameron. Praelect de Eccles. in fol.
+pp. 296-298.]</p>
+<a name="note-25"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>25</u> [ Who in relating such things can refrain
+from weeping?]</p>
+<a name="note-26"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>26</u> [ See Mr. Edwards's Antapologia, page
+201, printed in anno 1644, proving this out of their own books.
+Especially see a little book in 12mo. printed in anno 1646, styled
+a collection of certain matters, which almost in every page pleads
+for Independency and Independents by name: from which most of the
+Independent principles seem to be derived.]</p>
+<a name="note-27"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>27</u> [ Let not any man put off this Scripture,
+saying, This is in the Old Testament, but we find no such thing in
+the gospel; for we find the same thing, almost the same words used
+in a prophecy of the times of the gospel, Zech. xiii. 3. In the
+latter end of the xii. chapter, it is prophesied that those who
+pierced Christ, should <i>look upon him and mourn</i>, &amp;c.,
+having a <i>spirit of grace and supplication</i> poured upon them,
+chap. xiii. 1. "There shall now be opened a fountain for sin, and
+for uncleanness," ver. 3. "It shall come to pass that he that takes
+upon him to prophesy, that his father and mother that begat him,
+shall say unto him, Thou shalt not live, for thou speakest lies in
+the name of the Lord: and his father and his mother that begat him,
+shall thrust him through, when he prophesieth." You must understand
+this by that in Deuteronomy. The meaning is not that his father or
+mother should presently run a knife into him, but that though they
+begat him, yet they should be the means to bring him to condign
+punishment, even the taking away his life; these who were the
+instruments of his life, should now be the instruments of his
+death.&mdash;Mr. Jer. Burroughs in ills Irenicum, chap. v., Pages
+19, 20, printed 1646.]</p>
+<a name="note-28"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>28</u> [ But schismatics and heretics are called
+evil-workers, Phil. iii. 2; and heresy is classed among the works
+of the flesh, Gal. v. 20.]</p>
+<a name="note-29"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>29</u> [ Mr. Burroughs in his <i>Irenicum</i>,
+c.v. page 25; printed 1646.]</p>
+<a name="note-30"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>30</u> [ See this evidenced upon divers grounds
+in <i>Appollon. jus Majest.</i>, pp. 25, 26.]</p>
+<a name="note-31"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>31</u> [ See M.S. to A.S., pages 55-60.]</p>
+<a name="note-32"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>32</u> [ The civil magistrate is no proper
+church officer, as was intimated, Part 1 c. 1., and will be further
+evidenced in this chapter.]</p>
+<a name="note-33"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>33</u> [ That the civil magistrate is not the
+vicar of Christ our Mediator, see abundantly proved by Mr. S.
+Rutherford, in his Divine Right of Church Government, &amp;c., Ch.
+27, Quest. 23, pages 595 to 647.]</p>
+<a name="note-34"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>34</u> [ The formal difference or distinction
+betwixt these two powers, is fully and clearly asserted by that
+learned bishop, Usher, in these words: "God, for the better
+settling of piety and honesty among men, and the repressing of
+profaneness and other vices, hath established two distinct powers
+upon earth: the one of the keys, committed to the Church; the other
+of the sword, committed to the civil magistrate. That of the keys,
+is ordained to work upon the inward man; having immediate relation
+to the remitting or retaining of sins, John xx. 23. That of the
+sword is appointed to work upon the outward man; yielding
+protection to the obedient, and inflicting external punishment upon
+the rebellious and disobedient. By the former, the spiritual
+officers of the Church of Christ are inclinable to govern well, 1
+Tim. v. 17. To <i>speak</i>, and <i>exhort</i>, and <i>rebuke</i>
+with all <i>authority</i>, Tit. ii. 15. To loose such as are
+penitent, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. To commit others to the
+Lord's prison, until their amendment, or to bind them over to the
+judgment of the great day, if they shall persist in their
+wilfulness and obstinacy. By the other, princes have an imperious
+power assigned by God unto them, for the defence of such as do
+well, and executing revenge and wrath, Rom. xiii. 4, upon such as
+do evil, whether by death, or banishment, or confiscation of goods,
+or imprisonment, Ezra vii. 26, according to the quality of the
+offence.</p>
+<p class="foot">"When St. Peter, that had the keys committed unto
+him, made bold to draw the sword, he was commanded to put it up,
+Matt. xxvi. 52, as a weapon that he had no authority to meddle
+withal. And on the other side, when Uzziah the king would venture
+upon the execution of the priest's office, it was said unto him,
+'It pertaineth not unto thee, Uzziah, to burn incense unto the
+Lord, but to the priests, the sons of Aaron, that are consecrated
+to burn incense,' 2 Chron. xxvi. 18. Let this therefore be our
+second conclusion: That the power of the sword, and of the keys,
+are two distinct ordinances of God; and that the prince hath no
+more authority to enter upon the execution of any part of the
+priest's function, than the priest hath to intrude upon any part of
+the office of the prince." In his speech delivered in the
+Castle-chamber at Dublin, &amp;c., concerning the oath of
+supremacy, pages 3, 4, 5. Further differences betwixt these two
+powers, see in Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, Book 2, Chap. 4.]</p>
+<a name="note-35"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>35</u> [ See this proposition for substance
+fully and clearly asserted by that acute and pious author, Mr. P.
+Bains, in his Diocesan's Trial, quest. 3, pages 83, 84, conclus.
+3.]</p>
+<a name="note-36"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>36</u> [ See Cotton's Keys, &amp;c., pp. 31-33,
+and Mr. Thomas Goodwin, and Mr. Philip Nye, in their epistle
+prefixed thereunto, do own this book as being for substance their
+own judgment.]</p>
+<a name="note-37"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>37</u> [ See that judicious treatise, Vindiciae
+Clavium, chap. III. IV. V., pp. 33-52.]</p>
+<a name="note-38"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>38</u> [ John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt, xviii.
+15, p. 149-151, in fol, and Baine's Diocesan's Trial, the third
+quest, pp. 79, 80, and D. Parcus in Matt. xviii. 15. This is fully
+discussed and proved by Mr. Rutherford in his Peaceable Plea, Chap.
+viii. p. 85, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-39"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>39</u> [ A difference arose betwixt two
+gentlemen in that church about singing of hymns: the second
+gentleman was complained of to the church by the first, and upon
+hearing of the whole business, and all the words that passed
+between them, this second gentleman was censured by the church, and
+Mr. Nye <i>charged sin upon him</i> (that was the phrase) in many
+particulars, and still at the end of every charge Mr. Nye repeated,
+"this was your sin." After this censure, so solemnly done, the
+gentleman censured brings in accusations against Mr. Nye, in
+several articles, charging him with pride, want of charity,
+&amp;c., in the manner of the censure; and this being brought
+before the church, continued in debate about half a year, three or
+four days in a week, and sometimes more, before all the
+congregation. Divers of the members having callings to follow, they
+desired to have leave to be absent. Mr. Goodwin oft professed
+publicly upon these differences, If this were their church
+fellowship, he would lay down his eldership; and nothing was more
+commonly spoke among the members, than that certainly for matter of
+discipline they were not in the right way, for that there was no
+way of bringing things to an end. At last, after more than half a
+year's debate, not being able to bring these differences to an end,
+and being come into England, they had their last meeting about it,
+to agree not to publish it abroad when they came into England,
+&amp;c. Mr. Edwards's Antapolog., pp. 36, 37.]</p>
+<a name="note-40"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>40</u> [ Mr. J. Cotton, in his Way of the
+Churches of Christ in New England, chap, ii. sect. 7, p. 43.]</p>
+<a name="note-41"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>41</u> [ Were the power in the church, the
+church should not only call them, but make them out of virtue and
+power received into herself; then should the church have a true
+lordlike power in regard of her ministers. Besides, there are many
+in the community of Christians incapable of this power regularly,
+as women and children. Mr. P. Bain in his Diocesan's Trial, quest.
+3, conclus. 3, page 84, printed 1621.]</p>
+<a name="note-42"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>42</u> [ If spiritual and ecclesiastical power
+be in the church or community of the faithful, the church doth not
+only call, but make officers out of virtue and power received into
+herself, and then should the church have a true lordlike power in
+regard of her ministers. For, as he that will derive authority to
+the church, maketh himself lord of the church, so, if the church
+derive authority to the ministers of Christ, she maketh herself
+lady or mistress over them, in the exercise of that lordlike
+authority; for, as all men know, it is the property of the lord and
+master to impart authority. Did the church give power to the
+pastors and teachers, she might make the sacrament and preaching
+which one doth in order, no sacrament, no preaching; for it is the
+order instituted of God that giveth being and efficacy to these
+ordinances; and if the power of ruling, feeding, and dispensing the
+holy things of God do reside in the faithful, the word and
+sacrament, in respect of dispensation and efficacy, shall depend
+upon the order and institution of the society. If the power of the
+keys be derived from the community of the faithful, then are all
+officers immediately and formally servants to the church, and must
+do every thing in the name of the church, rule, feed, bind, loose,
+remit, and retain sins, preach and administer the sacraments; then
+they must perform their office according to the direction of the
+church, more or less, seldom or frequent, remiss or diligent; for
+from whom are they to receive direction how to carry themselves in
+their offices, but from him or them of whom they receive their
+office, whose work they are to do, and from whom they must expect
+reward? If their office and power be of God immediately, they must
+do the duties of their place according to his designment, and unto
+him they must give account; but if their power and function be from
+the church, the church must give account to God, and the officers
+to the church, whom she doth take to be her helpers, &amp;c. Mr.
+John Ball, in his Trial of the grounds tending to separation, chap.
+xii. pages 252, 253, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-43"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>43</u> [ See Vindiciae Clavium, judiciously
+unmasking these new notions.]</p>
+<a name="note-44"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>44</u> [ Here understand by this phrase,
+(<i>over you in the Lord</i>,) viz: Not only in the fear of the
+Lord, nor only in those things that appertain to God's worship, but
+also according to the will, and by the authority of the Lord Christ
+derived to them.]</p>
+<a name="note-45"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>45</u> [ See the Apologetical narration by the
+five Independents, page 8; and Mr. Jo. Cotton, at large, asserts
+the divine institution of the ruling elder. Way of the Churches of
+Christ, &amp;c., chap. 2, sect. 2, page 13-35.]</p>
+<a name="note-46"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>46</u> [ Calvin, Beza, Pareus, Pagnin.]</p>
+<a name="note-47"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>47</u> [ Arias Montan.]</p>
+<a name="note-48"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>48</u> [ Tremel. out of the Syriac; so the old
+Geneva translation, and our new translation.]</p>
+<a name="note-49"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>49</u> [ Field, of the Church, book 5, chap.
+26.]</p>
+<a name="note-50"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>50</u> [ Sutlive, who afterwards declared, that
+he was sorry with all his heart, that ever he put pen to paper to
+write against Beza as he had done, in behalf of the proud
+domineering prelates; and he spoke this with great
+indignation.]</p>
+<a name="note-51"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>51</u> [ Mat. Sutliv. de Presbyterio, cap. 12,
+p. 87, edit. 1591.]</p>
+<a name="note-52"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>52</u> [ Ibid. pages 72 and 87, edit. 1591.]</p>
+<a name="note-53"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>53</u> [ Bilson's perpetual Government of
+Christ's Church, c. 10, p. 136, 137, 138, printed in Ann.
+1610.]</p>
+<a name="note-54"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>54</u> [ That the magistrate cannot be here
+meant, see fully evidenced in Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, &amp;c.,
+book ii. chap. 6, pages 218-224, and also chap. 9, p. 284.]</p>
+<a name="note-55"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>55</u> [ Pareas in 1 Cor. xii. 28.]</p>
+<a name="note-56"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>56</u> [ D. Field, Of the Church, book v. chap.
+xxvi.]</p>
+<a name="note-57"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>57</u> [ Peter Martyr, Beza, Piscator, and
+Calvin.]</p>
+<a name="note-58"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>58</u> [ Calvin in 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. <i>Vid. etiam
+Jacob. Laurent. Comment, in</i> 1 Pet. v. 2, 3, <i>ubi fusius de
+hac distinctione disserit</i>, p. 322, ad. 325.]</p>
+<a name="note-59"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>59</u> [ Mat. Sutliv. De Presbyterio, cap. 12,
+page 72 and 87: edit. Lond., an. 1591. Bilson's Perpetual
+Government of Christ's Church, chap. 10, page 141; in 4to. printed
+in anno 1610.]</p>
+<a name="note-60"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>60</u> [ <i>Vide</i> Calv. in loc.]</p>
+<a name="note-61"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>61</u> [ Sutlive.]</p>
+<a name="note-62"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>62</u> [ Whitgift.]</p>
+<a name="note-63"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>63</u> [ Coleman.]</p>
+<a name="note-64"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>64</u> [ Who desire more full satisfaction
+touching this poor and empty gloss, that the civil magistrate
+should be meant by these governments, let them consult Mr.
+Gillespie's elaborate treatise, called Aaron's Rod Blossoming, book
+2, chap, 6, pp. 218 to 224.]</p>
+<a name="note-65"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>65</u> [ Bilson.]</p>
+<a name="note-66"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>66</u> [ Mr. Rutherford in his Due Right of
+Presbyteries, p. 145.]</p>
+<a name="note-67"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>67</u> [ Calvin, Beza, &amp;c. on this
+place.]</p>
+<a name="note-68"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>68</u> [ See Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, book 2,
+chap. 9.]</p>
+<a name="note-69"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>69</u> [ Mr. Rutherford in his Due Rights of
+Presbyteries, chap. 7, sec. 7, pages 145-147.]</p>
+<a name="note-70"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>70</u> [ Beza, Piscata, Calvin, on this
+verse.]</p>
+<a name="note-71"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>71</u> [ Bilson's Perpetual Government of
+Christ's Church, chap. x. pages 130, 131.]</p>
+<a name="note-72"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>72</u> [ Altar. Damas. cap. xii., page 918 and
+page 920.]</p>
+<a name="note-73"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>73</u> [ B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii.,
+Bilson in his Perpetual Government of Christ's Church, c. x. page
+132, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-74"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>74</u> [ B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii.,
+page 40.]</p>
+<a name="note-75"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>75</u> [ B. Whitgift in his Defence against
+Cartwright's first Reply. This is one of D. Field's three glosses.
+Field, Of the Church, lib v., chap. 26.]</p>
+<a name="note-76"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>76</u> [ Bishops that have no tolerable gift of
+teaching, are like idols, their cases, or rather coffins, set up in
+the church's choice. Cartwright Testam. <i>Annot</i>., in 1 Tim. v.
+17.]</p>
+<a name="note-77"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>77</u> [ Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page
+919.]</p>
+<a name="note-78"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>78</u> [ Bridge, Hussey.]</p>
+<a name="note-79"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>79</u> [ Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page
+919.]</p>
+<a name="note-80"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>80</u> [ Sutlive.]</p>
+<a name="note-81"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>81</u> [ Sutlive, De Presbyterio, cap. 12, pages
+72, 73.]</p>
+<a name="note-82"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>82</u> [ Bilson's Government of the Church, page
+133.]</p>
+<a name="note-83"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>83</u> [ Sutlive, De Presbyterio, c. 12, pages
+72, 73.]</p>
+<a name="note-84"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>84</u> [ Bilson, page 135.]</p>
+<a name="note-85"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>85</u> [ Field, Book v.]</p>
+<a name="note-86"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>86</u> [ Bilson, page 133.]</p>
+<a name="note-87"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>87</u> [ Field, book v.]</p>
+<a name="note-88"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>88</u> [ D. Downham. See Altar. Damasc. c. xii.
+page 924.]</p>
+<a name="note-89"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>89</u> [ Chrysost. Homil. 15, in 1 Tim. 5, Hier.
+in 1 Tim. cap. 5, Ambr. in 1 Tim. cap., Calv. in 1 Tim. cap. 5,
+Bullinger in 1 Tim. cap. 5, Beza in 1 Tim. 5.]</p>
+<a name="note-90"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>90</u> [ Bilson, Sutlive, and Downham.]</p>
+<a name="note-91"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>91</u> [ The London ministers have here inserted
+the testimonies of these ancient writers in favor of the divine
+right of the office of the ruling elder, viz. Ignatius, Purpurius,
+Tertullian, Origen, Cyprian, Optatus, Ambrose, Augustine, and
+Isidorus; and of these three late ones, viz. Whitaker, Thorndike,
+and Rivet. The amount of their testimony, when taken together,
+appears to be simply this, that there have been ruling elders, as
+distinct from preaching elders, in the Church of Christ from the
+beginning. It is therefore judged unnecessary to give the
+quotations from these authors at large.&mdash;<i>Editor</i>.]</p>
+<a name="note-92"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>92</u> [ Against the office of deacons, and the
+divine right thereof, fourteen objections are answered by Mr. S.
+Rutherford in his Due Right of Presbyteries, chap. 7, pages 159 to
+175. To which the reader that shall make any scruple about the
+deacon's office, is referred for his further satisfaction.]</p>
+<a name="note-93"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>93</u> [ Some of our brethren in New England,
+observing what confusion necessarily depends upon the government
+which hath been practised there, have been forced much to search
+into it within this four years, and incline to acknowledge the
+presbyters to be the subject of the power without dependence upon
+the people. "We judge, upon mature deliberation, that the ordinary
+exercise of government must be so in the presbyters, as not to
+depend upon the express votes and suffrages of the people. There
+hath been a convent or meeting of the ministers of these parts,
+about this question at Cambridge in the Bay, and there we have
+proposed our arguments, and answered theirs, and they proposed
+theirs, and answered ours; and so the point is left to
+consideration." Mr. Thomas Parker in his letter written from
+Newbury in New England, December 17, 1643, printed 1644.]</p>
+<a name="note-94"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>94</u> [ Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. L. Graec. in
+verb.]</p>
+<a name="note-95"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>95</u> [ Piscator.]</p>
+<a name="note-96"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>96</u> [ Beza.]</p>
+<a name="note-97"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>97</u> [ Zanch. in loco.]</p>
+<a name="note-98"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>98</u> [ Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. ad verb.]</p>
+<a name="note-99"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>99</u> [ Mr. Jo. Cotton's Keys of the Kingdom of
+Heaven, chap. vii. in propos. 3, pages 44-46.]</p>
+<a name="note-100"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>100</u> [ See Mr. Cotton's own words in chap.
+XIV. at the end, in the margin.]</p>
+<a name="note-101"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>101</u> [ See John Calvin, in 1 Cor. v. 4.]</p>
+<a name="note-102"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>102</u> [ Cameron, in Matt. xviii. 15.]</p>
+<a name="note-103"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>103</u> [ Thus Mr. Bayne remarkably expounds
+this text, Matt. xviii., saying: Where first mark, that Christ doth
+presuppose the authority of every particular church taken
+indistinctly. For it is such a church as any brother offended may
+presently complain to. Therefore no universal, or provincial, or
+diocesan church gathered in a council. 2. It is not any particular
+church that he doth send all Christians to, for then all Christians
+in the world should come to one particular church, were it
+possible. He doth therefore presuppose indistinctly the very
+particular church where the brother offending and offended are
+members. And if they be not both of one church, the plaintiff must
+make his denunciation to the church where the defendant is. 3. As
+Christ doth speak it of any ordinary particular church
+indistinctly, so he doth by the name of church not understand
+essentially all the congregation. For then Christ should give not
+some, but all the members of the church to be governors of it. 4.
+Christ speaketh it of such a church to whom we may ordinarily and
+orderly complain; now this we cannot to the whole multitude. 5.
+This church he speaketh of then doth presuppose it, as the ordinary
+executioner of all discipline and censure. But the multitude have
+not this execution ordinary, as all but Morelius, and such
+democratical spirits, do affirm. And the reason ratifying the
+sentence of the church, doth show that often the number of it is
+but small, "For where two or three are gathered together in my
+name;" whereas the church or congregations essentially taken for
+teachers and people, are incomparably great. Neither doth Christ
+mean by church the chief pastor, who is virtually as the whole
+church.&mdash;Mr. Bayne's Diocesan's Trial.]</p>
+<a name="note-104"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>104</u> [ Timothy received grace by the laying
+on of the hands of the presbytery. For that persons must be
+understood here, is apparent by the like place, when it is said, by
+the laying on of my hands, he noteth a person, and so here a
+presbytery. 2. To take presbytery to signify the order of
+priesthood, is against all lexicons, and the nature of the Greek
+termination. 3. Timothy never received that order of a presbyter,
+as before we have proved. 4. It cannot signify, as Greek expositors
+take it, a company of bishops; for neither was that canon of three
+bishops and the Metropolitan, or all the bishops in a province, in
+the apostle's time; neither were these who were now called bishops,
+then called presbyters, as they say, but apostles, men that had
+received apostolic grace, angels, &amp;c. Finally, it is very
+absurd to think of companies of other presbyters in churches that
+Paul planted, but presbyteries of such presbyters as are now
+distinguished from bishops, which is the grant of our
+adversaries.&mdash;Bayne's Diocesan's Trial, page 82.]</p>
+<a name="note-105"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>105</u> [ See Assertion of the Government of the
+Church of Scotland, Part I. Chap. 2, p. 122, &amp;c.]</p>
+<a name="note-106"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>106</u> [ Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod
+Blossoming, book i. chap. iii. pages 8-38.]</p>
+<a name="note-107"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>107</u> [ Vid. Joannis Seldeni de Anno Civili,
+and Calendario, &amp;c. Dissertationem in Praefat., page 8. See
+also Mr. John Lightfoot's Commentary upon the Acts, c. x. 28, pages
+235-239.]</p>
+<a name="note-108"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>108</u> [ John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt.
+xviii. 15, page 143 ad 162, and Mr. G. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod
+Blossoming, &amp;c., book i., chap. 3, page 8, &amp;c., and book
+ii., chap. 9, page 294-297; and book iii., chapters 2-6, handling
+this elaborately, pages 350-423.]</p>
+<a name="note-109"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>109</u> [ Assertion, &amp;c., part 2, chap. 3,
+p. 139.]</p>
+<a name="note-110"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>110</u> [ Basilius in Psal. cxv. Oecumenius in
+loc. Jerom. Chrysostome, hom. 33, in Matt. Irenaeus, lib. 1, chap.
+11. Salmeron.]</p>
+<a name="note-111"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>111</u> [ Euseb. Hist. Eccles. 1. 8 c. 1.]</p>
+<a name="note-112"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>112</u> [ If Cenchrea be comprehended under the
+church of Corinth in this epistle, and the apostle writing to the
+Corinthians, wrote also to this church, called, Rom. xvi. 1, <i>the
+church of Cenchrea</i>, then have we more congregations than one at
+Corinth. Now, Cenchrea was a seaport or harbor of the Corinthians.
+It was a place near to Corinth, on the east of the Egean Sea.
+Rutherford, in his Due Right of Presbyteries, page 462.]</p>
+<a name="note-113"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>113</u> [ Paget, Gillespie, and the four Leyden
+professors, unto whose judicious and elaborate treatises, the
+reader is referred for more full satisfaction against the usual
+cavils and exceptions that are made against synods, and their
+power.]</p>
+<a name="note-114"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>114</u> [ This is the judgment of the learned
+Whitaker upon these words: other lawful councils may in like manner
+assert "their decrees to be the decrees of the Holy Ghost, if they
+shall be like to this council, and shall keep the same rule, which
+in this council the apostles did keep and follow. For if they shall
+decree and determine nothing but from Scripture, (which was done in
+this council.) and if they shall examine all questions by the
+Scripture, and shall follow the voice of the Scriptures in all
+their decrees, then they may assert, that the Holy Ghost so
+decreed," &amp;c. Whitaker, Cont. page 610.]</p>
+<a name="note-115"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>115</u> [ That there is an authoritative,
+juridical synod; and that this synod, Acts xv., was such a one; and
+that this synod is a pattern to us;&mdash;all this is most
+ingenuously acknowledged and asserted by that learned Independent,
+Mr. John Cotton, in these words, viz:</p>
+<p class="foot">"IV. Proposition, in case a particular church be
+disturbed with errors of scandal, and the same maintained by a
+faction among them. Now a synod of churches, or of their
+messengers, is the first subject of that power and authority,
+whereby error is judicially convinced and condemned, the truth
+searched out and determined; and the way of truth and peace
+declared and imposed upon the churches.</p>
+<p class="foot">"The truth of this proposition may appear by two
+arguments</p>
+<p class="foot">"<i>Argum</i>. 1. From the want of power in such a
+particular church, to pass a binding sentence where error or
+scandal is maintained by a faction; for the promise of binding and
+loosing which is made to a particular church, Matt, xviii. 18, is
+not given to the church when it is leavened with error and
+variance. And the ground&mdash;&mdash;If then the church, or a
+considerable part of it, fall into error through ignorance, or into
+faction; by variance, they cannot expect the presence of Christ
+with them according to his promise, to pass a blind sentence. And
+then as they fall under the conviction and admonition of any other
+sister church, in a way of brotherly love, by virtue of communion
+of churches; so their errors and variance, and whatsoever scandals
+else do accompany the same, they are justly subject to the
+condemnation of a synod of churches.</p>
+<p class="foot">"2. A second argument to prove that a synod is the
+first subject of power, to determine and judge errors and variances
+in particular churches, is taken from the pattern set before us in
+that case, Acts xv. 1-28: when certain false teachers having taught
+in the church of Antioch a necessity of circumcision to salvation,
+and having gotten a faction to take part with them, (as appeareth
+by the dissension and disputation of Paul and Barnabas against
+them,) the church did not determine the case themselves, but
+referred the whole matter to the <i>apostles and elders at
+Jerusalem</i>, Acts xv. 1, 2. Not to the apostles alone, but to the
+apostles and elders. The apostles were as the elders and rulers of
+all churches; and the elders there were not a few, the believers in
+Jerusalem being many thousands. Neither did the apostles determine
+the matter (as hath been said) by apostolical authority from
+immediate revelation: but they assembled together with the elders,
+<i>to consider of the matter</i>, ver. 6, and a <i>multitude of
+brethren</i> together with them, ver. 12, 22, 23; and after
+searching out the cause by an ordinary means of disputation, ver.
+7, Peter cleared it by the witness Of the Spirit to his ministry in
+Cornelius's family; Paul and Barnabas by the like effect of their
+ministry among the Gentiles: James confirmed the same by the
+testimony of the prophets, wherewith the whole synod being
+satisfied, they determine of a JUDICIAL SENTENCE, and of a way to
+publish it by letters and messengers; in which they CENSURE the
+false teachers as troublers of their church, and subverters of
+their souls; they reject the imposition of circumcision as a yoke
+which neither they nor their fathers were able to bear; they IMPOSE
+upon the Church none but some necessary observations, and them by
+way of THAT AUTHORITY which the Lord had given them, ver. 28: which
+PATTERN clearly showeth us to whom the key of authority is
+committed, when there groweth offence and difference in a church.
+Look as in the case of the offence of a faithful brother persisted
+in, the matter is at last judged and determined in a church: so in
+the offence of the church or congregation, the matter is at last
+judged in a congregation of churches, a church of churches; for
+what is a synod else but a church of churches?"&mdash;Keys of the
+Kingdom of Heaven, pages 47-49.]</p>
+<a name="note-116"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>116</u> [ Junius, Beza, Calvin, and
+Piscator.]</p>
+<a name="2H_APPE"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>APPENDIX.</h2>
+<h3>NO. 1.<a href="#note-117"><small>117</small></a></h3>
+<h4><i>Of the Scriptural Qualifications and Duties of Church
+Members.</i></h4>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What persons have a right in the sight of God to
+be actual members of the Church of Christ?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Only regenerated and converted persons, such as are
+married to, and have put on Christ; such as are savingly and
+powerfully enlightened, quickened, and convinced of sin,
+righteousness, and judgment;<a href=
+"#note-118"><small>118</small></a> such as have chosen Christ for
+their Lord and Saviour, and resigned and made over themselves to
+him, and received him upon his own terms;<a href=
+"#note-119"><small>119</small></a> such only as are reconciled
+unto, and are in favor with God; as are justified by faith,
+sanctified by the Spirit, and set apart for holiness, and unto a
+living to God, and no more unto themselves:<a href=
+"#note-120"><small>120</small></a> such as are the beloved of God,
+called effectually to be saints, and have really and sincerely
+taken upon them the yoke of Christ Jesus, I say such persons, and
+only such, doth Jesus Christ account worthy of this privilege and
+dignity.<a href="#note-121"><small>121</small></a> Although men do
+not certainly know those that are such, and by reason of their
+darkness and fallible judgments they may and do admit others into
+the Church, and unto her privileges, yet in truth these have no
+right unto them, and ought not to be there; for these spiritual
+holy things are for, and only for, spiritual and holy persons.
+Christ prepares men by his grace, word, and Spirit to make them fit
+materials, and then he calls them to join together and become a
+spiritual house, for his delight, service, and glory.[F] And
+therefore holy persons, and such only, ought to be full members of
+the Church of Christ.</p>
+<p>This will appear by these following particulars:</p>
+<p>1. Because God often declares his detestation and abhorrence of
+others being there, and manifests his indignation against them. As
+to the man that came to the marriage supper without the
+wedding-garment, Matt. xxii. 11-13; and the five foolish virgins,
+chap. xxv.; and the dreadful end of the tares, chap. xiii. 38-44,
+which were the hypocrites, that by the devil's instigation had
+crept into the Church. It is true that such were, and will be, in
+the best of churches, although their guides may do all they can to
+prevent it, because they cannot make an infallible judgment of
+persons' states; yet it is as certain these are usurpers and ought
+not to be there. For, although they are in God's providence
+permitted to creep in, yet we may be sure they are not there with
+his approbation:&mdash;they are not all Israel that are of Israel;
+for, saith God to all uncircumcised, What have you to do to take my
+covenant into your mouth, seeing you hate instruction and cast my
+words behind your back, (as all hypocrites do,) Ps. l. 16, 17. And
+Christ says, that such as will not have him to reign over him (and
+to be sure hypocrites will not) shall be destroyed, Luke xix. 27.
+Now, as hypocrites are most loathsome and abominable persons in the
+sight of God, as may be seen at large in Matt, xxiii. 13-35, they
+have no right unto the spiritual privileges of the Church of
+Christ, because, in the sight of God, the gospel Church should
+consist only of new creatures and real members of Jesus Christ.</p>
+<p>II. That all church members ought to be sincere-hearted
+believers appears by the high titles which the Lord Jesus gives
+unto them in Scripture: they are described to be like the king's
+daughter, all glorious within. They are called saints, holy
+brethren, and beloved, elect, dear children of God, the spouse of
+Christ, a holy temple of God, lively stones, built up a spiritual
+house, a holy priesthood, and the Lord's sealed ones. Now such
+honorable titles belong not unto mere formal professors, but only
+unto the real members of Christ: not unto those that have a name
+only; but to such as are so indeed and in truth.</p>
+<p>III. A third reason is taken from the ends of God in instituting
+and appointing churches. They are said to be built by the Spirit
+for God, i.e. for God to dwell and walk in them, to repose himself
+in them, as in his holy garden, house, and temple. They are
+designed for promoting his glory in the world, to distinguish his
+people from others; that they should be to the praise of his
+glorious grace, and be the living witnesses to his name, truths,
+and ways; that they should be the habitations of beauty and glory,
+of fame and renown in the world, and be the light thereof; and that
+with one heart and mouth they should glorify God. Believers are
+united into a church capacity for their spiritual profit and
+advantage, that God may there give them his love, and communicate
+his grace, truths, and counsels to them, as to his avowed household
+and family Christ walks there, and God the Father dwells there, and
+the Holy Spirit speaks to them in a special and frequent manner to
+distribute liberally of their love and fulness. They are formed and
+set up by Jesus Christ to be the only seats and subjects of his
+laws, ordinances, power, and authority, that they might receive,
+obey, and observe his laws, declare before the world their owning
+of him for their Lord, by their open and public profession of, and
+subjection unto him, as such; and that, by their regular and
+distinct following of him in their united church state, they might
+manifest to all men, that they are his subjects and disciples, that
+they have chosen him for their Lord and King, and his law for the
+rule of their faith and obedience; that they are not their own, but
+his; and that they have reposed themselves in him, as their
+happiness and eternal blessedness; that they are called out of the
+world and set apart by his grace for himself, to live unto him; and
+that they have taken upon themselves his holy yoke, and the
+observation of all his laws. God has united believers into
+churches, that by his Spirit and ministers he may feed and nourish
+them there as his flock, water them as his garden, support them as
+his house, and order and govern them as his family and
+household.</p>
+<p>IV. The Church of Christ should consist of new creatures and
+sincere-hearted believers, because they only can and will answer
+and prosecute the foresaid, and such like holy ends of God, in and
+by his Church. They are fitted and framed, moulded and polished, by
+the Holy Ghost, for their growing up into a holy temple in the
+Lord; and so, by the constant and promised guidance and conduct of
+their living head Jesus Christ, with their spiritual
+qualifications, they are enabled to answer and perform the great
+ends of God, in erecting and building them up in a church state.
+But unregenerate persons cannot do this, because they are strangers
+in heart to Jesus Christ, and to the power of godliness; nor would
+they if they could, because they have not the saving knowledge of
+Christ in them, but are full of obstinacy against God.</p>
+<p>V. Because all the laws, ordinances, and works of church members
+are holy, spiritual, and heavenly. They are such as the natural man
+understands not, and cannot discern what they are, because they are
+spiritual and holy; and therefore they that are not taught of God
+savingly to form a proper judgment of them, do think and judge of
+them carnally and vainly. But believers have them written in their
+hearts beforehand. Yet they have them not without book, I mean they
+have the same laws of Christ written in the books of their hearts
+which they find in the Bible, by which they are in some measure
+enabled to understand, receive, love, and rightly to obey, the laws
+and ordinances of Christ without. Their laws are holy and
+spiritual, and their works in a church state are so likewise. They
+have a holy God, who is a Spirit, to serve and worship; a spiritual
+Head to believe in and obey; holy and spiritual work to do; and
+therefore they need to be holy and spiritual persons, not only
+externally in profession, but also internally, in truth. Almost all
+the laws and ordinances of Christ are committed unto them, and God
+expects his principal and choicest worship from his Church; and
+these are all above and beyond the reach of carnal minds.</p>
+<p>VI. The Church ought to be composed of believers and regenerated
+persons, because they are called to continue and stand fast in all
+storms and tempests; and to hold out unto the end, as being built
+upon the rock Jesus Christ. For whatever church is built upon the
+sand, and not upon the Lord Jesus, and by the authority of his word
+and Spirit, will not stand long, because it wants a foundation to
+bear up its weight. They must all be built upon the rock and chief
+corner-stone, the sure foundation that God hath laid. The Lord
+Jesus tells us, Matt. xvi. 18, that upon this rock (i.e. himself
+and the truths that Peter had confessed) will I build my Church,
+and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it. But it is
+certain that hypocrites are not built upon Christ by faith, but fix
+their vain hopes on a sandy foundation. Therefore, if their persons
+are not built upon Christ, their church state cannot; but upon the
+sand. Hence then it follows that only true believers are built on
+Christ, and so they are the only persons that Christ wishes to have
+built up into holy temples; because the churches that Christ builds
+shall be built upon himself, that they may stand impregnable
+against all opposition: and therefore they should only be composed
+of such as are united to him by faith, and have chosen him for
+their only rock and foundation, and not of such as do secretly
+reject him.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What qualifications should believers find in
+themselves for their own satisfaction, before they enter into full
+communion with the visible Church of Christ?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. They should be able to answer the following
+questions in the affirmative.</p>
+<p>I. Can you say indeed that you do seriously and heartily desire
+to see, and to be more deeply and powerfully convinced of your own
+vileness and sinfulness, of your own weakness and wretchedness, and
+of your wants and unworthiness? and that, in order to your deep and
+spiritual humiliation and self-debasing, that you may be more vile
+in your own eyes, and Jesus Christ and free grace more precious and
+excellent, more high and honorable, and more sweet and desirable,
+that your hearts may be melted into godly sorrow, and that you may
+be moved thereby to abhor yourselves, and to repent in dust and
+ashes? Job xlii. 5, 6.</p>
+<p>II. Can you say that you do seriously and heartily desire and
+endeavor to believe in Christ, and to receive and accept of him in
+the gospel way, such as you find in Mark viii. 34; Luke xiv. 26-28,
+and elsewhere? Do you thus desire and choose to have him with his
+yoke and cross? Matt. xi. 28, 29. And do you so deny yourselves,
+and your sinful self, righteous self, worldly self, supposed able,
+powerful self, and every other carnal and spiritual self, that
+Christ only may be exalted, that you may be nothing in your
+justification and salvation, but that Jesus Christ and free grace
+may be all, and in all things? Col. iii. 11; Phil. iii. 7, 8. Do
+you desire, choose, and endeavor to have Christ on the hardest
+terms; and do you desire, that all may go for Christ's person,
+blood, and righteousness, his grace, love, life, and Spirit, for
+the pardon of your sins, and the justification of your persons,
+that you may be found in him, not having your own righteousness,
+but the righteousness of Christ by faith? Phil. iii. 9. And do you
+go and present yourselves as destitute condemned sinners to him,
+and to God the Father in and by him, that you may be clothed with
+the righteousness of Christ, and that God may pardon, justify, and
+accept you for his sake only?</p>
+<p>III. Do you seriously and heartily desire and choose to have
+Christ Jesus for your Lord and Ruler too, Col. ii. 6; that he may
+rule in you, and over you, and that your lusts and yourselves, your
+interests, and your all, may be subject unto him, and be wholly at
+his command and disposal continually? Is Christ the Lord as
+acceptable to you as Christ Jesus the Saviour? and are you willing
+to obey him, and to be subject to his authority and dominion, as
+well as to be saved by him? Would you have him to destroy your
+lusts, to make an end of sin, and to bring all under his
+obedience?</p>
+<p>IV. Do you seriously and heartily desire and endeavor never to
+sin more; but to walk with God unto all well-pleasing continually?
+Col. i. 10. And do you pray earnestly that God would work in you
+that which is well-pleasing in his sight, Heb. xiii. 21, that you
+may in all your ways honor and glorify him, as the end of your
+living in this world? 2 Cor. v. 15. Would you indeed live to the
+praise of his glorious grace, be an ornament unto his name and
+gospel, and be fruitful in every good word and work? Are these
+things the scope, aim, and intent of your hearts and souls (in some
+good measure and degree) daily, in duties and ordinances, and at
+other times?</p>
+<p>V. Do you seriously and heartily choose and desire communion
+with Christ, and in truth endeavor to obtain and keep it? Do you so
+seek for it in the way of gospel obedience, and in observing your
+duty in keeping Christ's commandments? And do you prefer it to all
+earthly, carnal things? Do your hearts breathe and pant after it,
+and are you willing to deny self, and all self-interests to get it?
+Are you glad when you find it, and sad when by your own
+carelessness you lose it? Doth it when obtained quicken your love
+to and zeal for Christ? Doth it warm your hearts, and cause them
+for a time to run your race in gospel obedience cheerfully? Doth it
+lead you unto, and cause your hearts to centre in Christ? and doth
+it oblige and bind them faster unto him and stir you up to
+thankfulness?</p>
+<p>VI. Do you sincerely and heartily desire, seriously choose, and
+earnestly endeavor, to be filled with gospel sincerity towards God
+and man, and would you rather be true-hearted towards God than seem
+to be so towards man? Would you much rather have the praise of God,
+and be approved of by him, than the praise of men, and be extolled
+by them? Is it the great thing you aim at, in your profession and
+practice, to attain sincerity and uprightness in heart? Is all
+hypocrisy hateful and abominable unto you? Are you afraid of it,
+and do you watch and strive against it, as against an enemy to God
+and your own souls, and are you grieved indeed when you find it in
+you?</p>
+<p>VII. Do you desire and choose Jesus Christ for the great object
+of your love, delight, and joy? and do you find him to be so in
+some measure? Do you desire and endeavor to make him the object of
+your warmest affections, and to love him sincerely, heartily,
+spiritually, fervently, and constantly; and do you express your
+love to him by keeping his commandments? Are you grieved in spirit,
+because you can love him no more? and do you earnestly pray unto
+him to shed abroad his love into your hearts by the Holy Ghost,
+that you may love him as ye ought? Rom. v. 5. Doth his love and
+loveliness attract your hearts to him, and cause you to yield the
+obedience of faith to his holy laws?</p>
+<p>VIII. Is it the desire, choice, and endeavor of your souls to
+have all sins purged out of them, and to have them filled with
+Christ's grace, truth, and holiness; and do you hate your sin,
+watch and fight against it, and endeavor to keep it under? Do you
+indeed aim at, desire, labor, and strive, to be holy in heart and
+life, and conformable unto Jesus Christ in all things possible? Are
+your lusts your heaviest burdens and your greatest afflictions, and
+do you intend and endeavor their utter ruin and destruction? Will
+no degree of grace satisfy you until you be perfect to the utmost
+as Christ is? Are you so much concerned for Christ's honor, and
+your soul's holiness and happiness, that you dare not knowingly sin
+against them for a world; or do, in word or deed, by omission or
+commission, that which may dishonor, grieve, or wound them? Are
+these things so indeed?</p>
+<p>IX. Have you a measure of spiritual knowledge and discerning of
+spiritual things? Do you understand the nature and concerns of the
+house of God, and the work and duties, the privileges and
+enjoyments thereof, and what you have to do there; together with
+the ends of God in instituting and erecting gospel churches?</p>
+<p>X. Do you intend and resolve, in the light, life, and power of
+Christ, to seek for, and endeavor unfeignedly to obtain, and
+prosecute the ends of church fellowship, when you shall he accepted
+among them? and do you desire and aim at the holy ends appointed by
+God in desiring communion with them? as, 1. To enjoy God and
+communion with him in all his ordinances. 2. To worship God there
+in spirit and truth, and to give him your homage and service in his
+house. 3. To show your subjection and obedience to him, and to make
+a public and open profession of him, and of his truths before men.
+4. To receive of his grace, to enrich your souls with his fulness,
+and to be sealed by his Spirit unto the day of your redemption. 5.
+That you may walk orderly and beautifully, and shine as lights in
+the Church, and in the world, before saints and sinners. 6. That
+you may be established in the truth, live under the watch and care
+of Christ's ministers, and of fellow-members; that by their
+inspection and faithful dealings with you you may be kept, or
+brought back from sin to God, by their wise reproofs and holy
+instructions. 7. That you may yield up yourselves in holy obedience
+to Christ, and do all things whatsoever he commands you, that you
+may have the right use and enjoyment of all your purchased
+privileges, and be secured against the gates of hell. Are these and
+such like ends in your hearts and minds, in your walk and in church
+fellowship, and can you find the forementioned signs of grace in
+you in some suitable measure, though not so clearly and fully as
+you would wish? Then I may venture to assure you, that you are
+qualified for being actual members of the Church of Christ, that
+you are called and invited into his house, and that you are
+indispensably bound to answer to the call of God, and to enter into
+his holy temple.</p>
+<p>I say that church privileges are yours, the doors of God's house
+stand open for you, Christ stands at the door and waits for you, he
+invites you to come in and to sit down at his table, and you shall
+be most freely and heartily welcome to your Lord, and to his
+people.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are those qualifications, which the rulers of
+a church, for their own satisfaction, should look for, and find in
+such persons, as they admit into full communion with the Church of
+Christ?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. It is certain that all that profess the name of
+Christ and his ways, ought not, and may not be admitted into the
+Lord's holy temple, because many, if not the most of them, are very
+ignorant of Christ and his ways, and notoriously scandalous in
+their lives, as sad and woful experience shows. If church rulers
+should admit known hypocrites, they betray their trust, and defile
+Christ's holy temple, by taking in such persons as they know, or
+ought to know, he would not have there: and that they ought to try
+and prove persons, that they may know their fitness, before they
+admit them in, is clear in Acts ix. 26, 27, and because Christ hath
+committed the keys of his house to take in and exclude according to
+his will and appointment.</p>
+<p>As to satisfying qualifications in persons desiring admission
+into the church, when they appear to be real sound-hearted
+believers, according to the judgment of charity, by the rules of
+the word, the church ought to receive them in the Lord.</p>
+<p>I. If they can satisfy the church, by giving Scripture evidence
+of their regeneration, conversion, repentance, and faith in Christ;
+of their knowledge of Christ, his laws and ordinances; of their
+lost and perishing state by reason of sin, and of their sincere
+desires and resolutions to become the Lord's, and to walk with him
+unto all well-pleasing in all his ways.</p>
+<p>II. If they are sound in the faith of the gospel; I mean in the
+chief and principal doctrines thereof, although they may be
+ignorant of, or mistaken in matters of less importance. If they
+have some distinct knowledge and faith concerning these, and other
+such truths and matters contained in the word of God; as of the
+state and condition in which man was at first created; how he lost
+that holy and blessed estate, and the misery into which he brought
+himself and all his posterity thereby. Concerning themselves, that
+they are by nature children of wrath, dead in trespasses and sins,
+and condemned to eternal death; that they are enemies to, and at
+enmity with, God; that they have neither will nor power by nature
+to will and to do that which they ought, and which is well-pleasing
+to God; that they have forsaken God, and are under the curse of the
+law; and that they are the children, subjects, and servants of the
+devil, the world, and their own lusts; that God left not all men in
+this lost state and condition, but provided an all-sufficient
+remedy, namely, Jesus Christ, and that by an everlasting covenant,
+entered into with him, in the behalf of men, before the foundation
+of the world, Tit. i. 2; 2 Tim. i. 9; Prov. viii.: and that, in
+pursuance thereof, he elected and gave some to Christ, that he
+might save them out of his mere grace and love. John vi. 37,
+40:&mdash;That God the Father gave and sent his Son, the second
+person of the Trinity, to mediate peace between God and man, and to
+reconcile them to God, by his active and passive
+obedience;&mdash;that Jesus Christ gave himself, and became a
+propitiation for their sins;&mdash;that he assumed our nature into
+a personal union with himself, whereby there are two natures in one
+person, by which he was made capable of his
+mediatorship;&mdash;that he, being God and man in one person, took
+upon himself our guilt and punishment, obeyed the whole law of God,
+that men had broke, and did always the things that pleased
+God;&mdash;that, when he had finished his active obedience, he
+became obedient unto the death of the cross, to the wrath of God,
+and to the curse of the law, Gal. iii. 13; Phil. ii. 8;&mdash;that
+he really died and was buried, lay in the grave, and rose again the
+third day; and after forty days he ascended into heaven, and sat
+down at the right hand of God; and that he will come again to judge
+the quick and the dead;&mdash;that he is king, priest, and prophet;
+a king to give laws unto men, and to command their obedience to
+him, to rule and govern his subjects, and to reward the obedient,
+and to punish the disobedient;&mdash;that all power in heaven and
+earth is committed unto him; and that he is coequally and
+coeternally God with the Father and Holy Spirit;&mdash;that as a
+High Priest he died and made atonement for the sins of his people,
+and sits in heaven to make intercession, and to appear in the
+presence of God for them, Heb. vii. 25, and ix. 24;&mdash;that
+there are three persons in the Godhead, yet but one God;&mdash;that
+the Holy Ghost is eternally God, was sent into the world, and came
+from the Father and Son, for the elect's sake;&mdash;that it is he
+that regenerates persons, works effectually in their hearts,
+applies Jesus Christ and all his benefits to men, and savingly
+convinces his elect of sin, righteousness, and judgment. That all
+that rightly believe in Christ shall be saved, but those that
+believe not shall be damned; and that all that believe in him must
+be careful to perform good works. That believers are made
+righteous, through the righteousness of Jesus Christ, and that they
+have none of their own to commend them unto God. That God hath made
+Jesus Christ unto his chosen, wisdom, righteousness,
+sanctification, and redemption; and that they are made the
+righteousness of God in him. That God imputed their sins to Christ,
+and imputes the blood and righteousness of Christ to them; and that
+they are justified thereby, and not by inherent holiness and
+righteousness. That God loves, pardons, justifies, and saves men
+<i>freely</i>, without any respect unto their good works, as any
+cause thereof; but that all the moving cause (without himself) is
+Jesus Christ in his mediation. That the ground and reason of their
+obedience, in performing good works, is the revealed will and
+pleasure of Christ commanding them, and the ends of them are to
+express their thankfulness to God for his grace and love, to please
+and honor him, to meet with God, and to enjoy communion with him,
+to receive of his grace and the good of many promises; to shine as
+lights in the world, and to be useful unto men; to declare whose
+and what they are, and to lay up a reward in another world; to keep
+their lusts under, and their graces in use and exercise; and to
+manifest their respect and subjection to Jesus Christ, his
+authority, and law. That the law, for the matter of it, as in the
+hand of Christ, is the rule of all obedience; and that all are
+bound to yield subjection to it. That there shall be a resurrection
+of the just and unjust. That regeneration is absolutely necessary
+to salvation, and that without it none can enter into the kingdom
+of heaven. That the Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments
+contain, and exhibit unto men, the whole revealed will of God, and
+are sufficient to make the man of God perfect, thoroughly furnished
+unto every good work; and that whatsoever they are to believe and
+do is contained therein; and that it is the ground of their faith,
+hope, and practice. That Jesus Christ hath instituted and appointed
+many ordinances of worship, for his own glory and his people's
+good, and that all are bound to observe and to wait on God in them.
+That all persons are indispensably bound to mind, and carefully to
+observe the principal manner and end of all their duties, and to
+see that they be right, holy, and spiritual indeed, and not to
+please themselves with the matter of them alone. That no man can
+serve God, or do any work acceptable unto him, until he be
+regenerated, and brought into a state of grace.</p>
+<p>These are some of the matters of faith that they should in some
+measure be acquainted with and believe, that are admitted into full
+communion with the Church of Christ. And these and other truths
+must not be known and believed in a general, notional, light, and
+speculative manner; but heartily, powerfully, and particularly: not
+for others, but for themselves; otherwise their faith and knowledge
+will no way profit their souls to salvation.</p>
+<p>III. They must be qualified also with a blameless conversation.
+Their conversation must be as becometh the gospel, otherwise they
+are not meet for communion with the gospel church. Carnal walking
+will not suit spiritual temples: for they will greatly pollute and
+defile them, and stain and obscure their beauty and glory.
+Therefore they must not be brawlers and contentious persons,
+covetous and worldly-minded, vain and frothy. They must not be
+froward and peevish, nor defraud others of their right. Nor must
+they neglect the worship of God in their families, nor be careless
+in governing and educating them in good manners, and in the things
+of God. They must not be such as are known to omit the duties and
+ordinances of religion in their proper seasons, or to have vicious
+families through their neglect: nor to have any other kind of
+conversation hateful to God and to his people. And therefore,
+whatever their profession be, they may not be admitted into the
+Church of God, until they have repented of these, or any other
+scandal in their life and conduct.</p>
+<p>IV. They ought to be such as have chosen the Lord Jesus Christ
+for their king and head, and dedicated and devoted themselves to
+him, to live in him and for him: such as have singled him out, and
+set him apart, (as it were,) to be the object of their love, trust,
+and delight, of their service and obedience. They must have chosen
+and closed with him upon his own terms, (i.e. <i>freely</i>,)
+renouncing and rejecting all their own righteousness, worthiness,
+interest, and sufficiency, and choosing and appropriating him to
+themselves, for their righteousness, worthiness, portion, and
+sufficiency, under a sight and conviction of their own emptiness
+and deformity; and with a heart-satisfied persuasion of the
+loveliness and fulness of Christ.</p>
+<p>V. All this must be done seriously, humbly, and heartily, so far
+as men can judge. If persons declare their knowledge of God and
+faith in Christ in such a manner, and apparently by such a spirit
+as evidences some sense and feeling of what they do declare, church
+rulers may be much helped in forming a right judgment of them, that
+they are fitted by God for church-membership. If they do seriously
+profess, that what they do is in obedience to the will, and, as
+they judge, to the call of Christ as their indispensable
+duty;&mdash;that they join in church fellowship to meet with and
+enjoy God, to receive out of his fulness to enable them to perform
+all duties, and to conform their hearts and lives in his will to
+all things;&mdash;such persons may undoubtedly be accounted worthy
+members, and admitted as such.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the duties of church members towards one
+another?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. I. The greatest is love; love and spiritual
+affections are the holy cords which tie the hearts, souls, and
+judgments of believers together. This is that which, together with
+the fear of God, makes them avoid all things that may give just
+offence or grief to one another, and that which provokes them to
+follow after the things that make for peace and edification. Love
+is the bond of peace. It is that which, together with divine light
+and truth, causes church members to draw together as in one yoke,
+and unanimously as with one heart and soul to design, aim at, and
+carry on mutual and common good in the church. Without this they
+cannot, they will not cement, nor long abide and live together as a
+church, in peace and unity, nor promote any good work among
+themselves. Without heart-uniting love they will receive and
+entertain jealousies and suspicions one of another, and put the
+worst construction on whatever is said or done; and they cannot
+walk together comfortably and profitably when these are
+entertained. Therefore it is absolutely necessary for all church
+members to be firmly united in cordial love and charity, which is
+the bond of perfectness to and in all other duties. God highly
+commends and strictly commands this love one to another, and puts
+it into the heart of his peculiar people, that they may do what he
+commands.</p>
+<p>1. God highly commends it wherever he finds it in act and
+exercise; 1 Thess. iv. 10, "and indeed," says he, "ye do it towards
+all the brethren." To this duty, and to manifest his high
+approbation of it, God hath promised a great reward, Heb. vi.
+10.</p>
+<p>2. God commands it and vehemently exhorts to it often in the
+gospel. Oh how importunately did the Lord Jesus enjoin it, and
+frequently press it on his disciples when he was on earth! John
+xiii. 34, "A new commandment give I unto you." What is that new
+commandment? Why, "That ye love one another, as I have loved you,
+that ye also love one another." And in John xv. 12, 17, "This is my
+commandment, that ye love one another, as I have loved you;" i.e.
+Take the pattern of my love to you for your pattern in loving one
+another. I have loved and will love you&mdash;1. With <i>great</i>
+love, John xv. 13: so do you likewise. 2. My love to you is
+<i>free</i>, without any desert in you: let yours be free, without
+carnal respects one to another also. 3. My love to you is <i>real,
+hearty</i>, and <i>unfeigned</i>: so let yours be one to another, 1
+Pet. i. 22. 4. My love to you is an exceeding <i>fruitful love</i>.
+I loved you so, as to labor, toil, sweat, and die for you: so must
+you love one another with a fruitful, profiting love. 5. My love to
+you is a <i>pitying, sparing, and forgiving love; a forbearing and
+tender-hearted love</i>: so must you be to one another, Col. iii.
+12, 13. 6. I love you with a <i>warm and fervent love</i>: so do
+you love one another. 7. I love with a <i>holy, spiritual love</i>,
+as new men who have my image stamped on, and my holy nature in you,
+and as you are made perfect by the comeliness and beauty I have put
+on you: so do you love one another, because you are a lovely and
+holy people unto me. 8. I love you with a <i>constant and
+unchangeable love</i>; notwithstanding of all your weaknesses, yea,
+unkindness too, and unworthy walkings before me: thus you are bound
+to love one another.</p>
+<p>O that church members and all other Christians would seriously,
+sincerely, diligently, and constantly mind and practise this grand
+and indispensable duty to one another, in all their ways and
+actions, and not lay it aside as a little, useless, or indifferent
+matter, which they may neglect at their own will and pleasure.</p>
+<p>2. As we are indispensably bound to love one another; so we are
+as absolutely and perfectly bound to walk in a loving and
+encouraging manner towards one another. Our behavior ought to be
+such in all things, as to invite all to love us, as holy, humble,
+and blameless saints, and brethren in Christ. The Lord Jesus
+expects church members to walk lovingly towards one another, as
+well as to love one another. They ought, therefore, as much as
+possible, to provoke and encourage each other, and to remove out of
+the way of love all such stumbling-blocks as may any way hinder it,
+as we cannot love a sour, peevish, contentious, and cross-grained
+professor, with as much complacency as a meek, quiet, humble,
+affable, and courteous one.</p>
+<p>3. Christ hath charged and strictly commanded all church members
+to live in peace: to be at peace among themselves; to follow peace
+with all men, and as much as in them lieth to live peaceably with
+all men. O how often, and with what vehemency doth the Holy Ghost
+press and enjoin this duty, especially among church members, in the
+Holy Scriptures! See Psal. xxxiv. 14; 1 Pet. iii. 11; Rom xiv. 19;
+2 Cor. xiii. 11; 1 Thess. v. 13; Heb. xii. 14; Eph. v. 3. The
+apostle Paul earnestly warns church members against all debates,
+strifes, and contentions one with another, especially in their
+church meetings, Phil. ii. 3. David tells us, that it is a most
+pleasant and lovely thing for brethren to dwell together in unity,
+Psal. cxxxiii. 1, 2. Then how much more pleasant and lovely is it
+for spiritual brethren to love and worship God in this manner
+together Christ came into the world and lived here a peace-maker,
+and pronounces them blessed that are so, Matt. v. 9. He is a lover
+of peace and concord, especially in his Church; but he is an
+implacable hater of strife and discord, and will not endure it
+therein: much less will he wink at such as are the first sowers of
+these seeds. The truth is, strivers and disputers in a church are
+the devil's agents, do a great deal of mischief to it, and are real
+plagues in it. They greatly hinder edification, and spoil the
+order, beauty, and harmony there: they are the proud,
+self-conceited men, who are vainly puffed up with high thoughts of
+themselves, and their own abilities, because they have got some
+speculative knowledge into their heads, with a volubility of
+speech, while they are destitute of spiritual wisdom and humility
+in their hearts; and therefore they conceive that they are wiser
+than the church, and more able to manage and order church affairs
+than their rulers. Their pride and self-conceit make them slight
+and contemn their teachers, and rise up in a rebellious contention
+with, and opposition unto them; as the prophet complains, Hos. iv.
+4, <i>This people are they that strive with the priests</i>. Take
+heed then of strife and contention, and follow peace one with
+another, especially in your assembling together about the work of
+the church. Endeavor to get humble hearts, and then you will not be
+contentious, but quiet and peaceable.</p>
+<p>4. Church members ought to sympathize with, and to help to bear
+one another's burdens as need requires, Rom. xii. 15, 16; Gal. vi.
+2. They ought to make their brethren's crosses, losses,
+temptations, and afflictions their own. And, when they need the
+helping hand of fellow-members to support or lift them up, when
+fallen, they must give it to them freely, readily, and cheerfully,
+and not turn a deaf ear to, nor hide their eyes from, them and
+their cries. And, if they are cruel to, or careless of, one another
+in affliction, our Lord Jesus will require it at their hands, and
+lake it as done to himself. Therefore, seeing it is the will of
+God, and our indispensable duty to one another, who are members of
+the church, let us put on bowels of mercies and kindness, Col. iii.
+12, and be tender-hearted, pitiful, and courteous to each other,
+Eph. iv. 32; 1 Pet. iii. 8.</p>
+<p>5. Church members ought to exhort and comfort one another, for
+so is the will of God concerning them. This is not only their
+teacher's duty and work, but theirs also to each other, Heb. x. 24,
+25; Heb. iii. 13; 1 Thess. v. 14. Christians stand in continual
+need of one another's exhortations and consolations; and if they
+manage this work well they may be very useful and profitable to one
+another, and may help to awaken, quicken, and provoke one another,
+to the love and practice of holiness.</p>
+<p>6. It is the will of the Lord Jesus Christ, the Church's head,
+that her members should be each other's keepers; that they should
+watch over one another, and admonish and reprove one another, as
+need requires. It is not meant, that they should pry into one
+another's secrets, or be busybodies in other men's matters, but
+that they should watch over one another's life and conversation,
+that if they do well they may be encouraged; if ill, that they may,
+by counsel, reproof, instruction, and exhortation, be brought to a
+real sight and sense of their misconduct, and to unfeigned
+repentance. By which good work, you will do them, the church, yea,
+Christ himself, good and acceptable service. Church members should
+carefully observe, if all do keep close to their duty in the
+church, or are remiss and negligent;&mdash;if they conduct
+themselves in a holy, righteous, and sober way; or if, on the
+contrary, they are frothy, vain, proud, extravagant, unjust, idle,
+careless, or any way scandalous. They should strictly observe if
+there be any tattlers, backbiters, or sowers of discord; or such as
+speak contemptibly of their brethren, especially of their elders,
+(ruling or preaching,) and of their administrations: as also, if
+there be any such as combine together, and make parties in the
+church, or endeavor to obstruct any good work which their elders
+are carrying on, for promoting the glory of Christ and the good of
+his people, and deal with them accordingly. They ought carefully to
+observe if any be fallen under sin or temptation in any case, and
+presently to set their hands to help, to relieve, and to restore
+them, Rev. vi. 1. They must watch, and endeavor to gain a sinning
+member, 1. By their private admonition, in case the offence be
+private; and if that will not do, to take one or two more to see
+what effect that will have. 2. But if that will not answer the end,
+then they are bound to bring it to the church representative, that
+they may deal with the offending brother, and proceed against him
+as commanded: This is another great and indispensable duty required
+of church members, that they be not partakers of other men's
+sins.</p>
+<p>7. Church members ought to forbear and forgive one another; for
+this is another commanded duty, Eph. iv. 2, 32; Col. iii. 13. When
+a brother offends or does another any injury, the offended brother
+should tell him of it, examine the matter and search out the
+circumstances of it, and see whether he did it unadvisedly, through
+weakness or ignorance; or whether he did it wilfully and knowingly.
+If upon an impartial search he is found to have wronged his brother
+through ignorance or weakness, he must judge charitably of him, and
+not be harsh and severe towards him, in his carriage or censure.
+But if it clearly appear, upon impartial inquiry, that he did the
+injury knowingly and wilfully, then the offended brother must deal
+with him as a wilful transgressor. He must lay his sin before him,
+and show him what laws he hath transgressed; what evil he hath done
+him, what wrong to his own soul, and what offence he hath done to
+Christ, by breaking his holy laws. He must admonish him again and
+again of his sin, and reprove him, but not too severely, until he
+find him obstinate and stubborn. And if God convince him of his
+sin, and give him repentance unto life, he must readily forgive
+him. And, if he be once truly convinced of, and humbled for, his
+sin, he will most fully confess it to his brother, as well as to
+God, and endeavor to make him amends, and give him all possible
+satisfaction for the injury he hath done him, most freely and
+willingly: for it is a certain sign that a person is not powerfully
+and savingly convinced of, and humbled for, his sin, while he bears
+off, and must be sought after to make satisfaction to such as he
+hath wronged; because were his heart really melted into the will of
+God, he could not be quiet, until he have given all possible
+satisfaction to his brother whom he has injured, Luke xix. 8. But
+in case he remain obstinate, and will not hearken to reproof, then
+the offended brother should take one or two more and deal with him;
+and if that will not do, he ought to bring it to the church
+representative, i.e. the elders of the church, that they may see
+what they can do with him. But if they cannot prevail on him to
+repent and to make satisfaction, then he ought to be cast out of
+the communion of the church, Matt, xviii. 17.</p>
+<p>8. It is the indispensable duty of church members to hearken to
+and receive instruction, admonition, and reproof from one another.
+For if some are indispensably bound at certain times to give them,
+surely others who need them are as much bound to receive them,
+Prov. viii. 33, x. 17, and xxix. 1. These are bound to hearken to
+their brethren's reproofs, counsels, and admonitions, with all
+humility, patience, and freedom of spirit, with all love, meekness,
+and thankfulness to God, and to the givers of them: for they are
+great mercies to such as need them, and they are their real and
+profitable friends, who seek their good, and endeavor to prevent
+their destruction. Let it therefore never be said justly of any of
+you that are church members, that you were reproved and admonished
+of any known sin by a brother, and that you refused and slighted
+their counsel or reproof, justified yourselves in your sins, and
+were displeased with or angry at such as admonished you, and did
+their indispensable duty to you, under your sin, for your
+salvation.</p>
+<p>9. Church members ought to pray for one another, and that with a
+real love, fervency, and importunity, as they do for themselves,
+James v. 16. O with what serious minds and strong affections should
+all church members pray for one another! They should be much in
+building up one another, and praying in the Holy Ghost one for
+another, Jude 20. They should carry one another in their hearts at
+the throne of grace, especially such as are under affliction, the
+whole Church in general, and her teachers in particular, Heb. xiii.
+18, and wrestle with God for them; for they have the spirit of
+prayer given them, and audience and interest in heaven, for others,
+as well as for themselves.</p>
+<p>10. Church members should often meet together for prayer and
+holy conversation, by two or three or more, as they may have
+opportunity. This was wont to be the commendable practice of our
+forefathers, when Christ, duty, heaven, and religion lay warmer on
+their hearts than now they do; and this is still the practice of
+some, that are now alive. God hath promised his glorious teaching,
+and his warming, strengthening, sanctifying, and comforting
+presence to such as do so, Matt, xviii. 20. Church members find
+time enough to visit one another, and meet together to tell some
+idle stories, to tattle about other men's matters, which do not
+concern them, and perhaps to <i>backbite</i> some of their
+brethren, and to prejudice the minds of persons against their
+teachers and their work, if they do not please them. And will not
+such meetings have bitterness in the end? Is it not great iniquity
+for Christians to tempt one another to sin, and to wrong their own
+souls, by misspending that precious time which they might have
+employed in the service of God, and one another's spiritual profit.
+Men and women were wont to discourse often of the things of God and
+their experiences one to another, Mal. iii. 16. But, alas! few
+persons are now to be found, who can find time and inclination for
+such an exercise. And the reason seems to be, that most are great
+strangers to God and to themselves, and are so much intoxicated
+with the things of this world, that they will not attend with any
+pleasure unto the spiritual duties of religion.</p>
+<p>11. Church members ought to encourage one another by their
+example, to attend regularly on the public ordinances of God's
+worship in his church. Whenever the church meets for the
+celebration of the worship of God, all her members are bound to
+meet together at the appointed time, except in extraordinary cases;
+otherwise good order cannot be kept, and the public duties
+performed, for the glory of God, and the edification of the church.
+By church members wilfully or carelessly absenting themselves at
+the time of meeting, they give an evil example to others, tempt
+them to do the like, and cast a stumbling-block in the way of their
+duty, Heb. x. 25.</p>
+<p>12. Church members must be charitable to the poor that are among
+them, and freely contribute to them according to their ability and
+<i>their</i> necessity. They are indispensably bound to impart
+their help and assistance to the poor, and to give them a little of
+their estates. It is a debt which they owe to God, and a duty to
+them. They will comfort them thereby; but they will much more
+profit themselves than them. It is a more blessed thing to give
+than to receive. Wealthy persons are stewards for the poor, and a
+part of what God hath given those was designed for these, 1 Pet.
+iv. 10, and therefore, says God, Deut. xv. 7, 8, "Thou shalt not
+shut thine hand from thy poor brother, but shalt open it wide unto
+him." The rich must not only give to keep the poor alive in misery,
+but make comfortable provisions for them, that they may have enough
+to keep them from the temptations of poverty and pressing wants,
+and to fit them for, and encourage them in, their work and duty, to
+God and man.</p>
+<p>13. Church members ought carefully, watchfully, diligently, and
+conscientiously to beware of and avoid whatever may give any just
+offence or scandal to one another. For we are charged to "give none
+offence neither to Jew nor Gentile, nor to the Church of God," 1
+Cor. x. 32. And our Saviour tells us, that "wo to them by whom the
+offence cometh," Matt, xviii. 7.</p>
+<p>You must take heed of such evils as the following, and avoid
+them, because they all carry scandal in their nature to your own
+and others' souls: as, 1. Proud, disdainful, and haughty words
+conduct, and conversation; for these are grievous and provoking
+evils, which will justly offend all the observers of them. 2.
+Sullen, sour, and churlish language and behavior, which is
+offensive unto all sorts of persons; for this is an evil altogether
+unbecoming the followers of Jesus Christ. 3. A cross, captious, and
+contradictive spirit and conduct, delighting in opposition to the
+judgment of the church and her rulers. This is very scandalous to
+the brethren, and very reproachful unto themselves. 4. Speaking
+evil of one another behind their backs; backbiting or publishing
+their real or supposed evils, before they have been spoken to in
+secret. 5. Speaking lightly or contemptibly of one another, either
+to themselves or to others in their absence, as few men can bear
+patiently to be despised by the slighting carriages of their
+brethren. 6. Vain, foolish, and frothy discourses, which are very
+offensive to gracious saints. 7. Earthly-mindedness and greedy
+pursuits after worldly things; for as these are offensive to God,
+and hurtful to the soul, so they are offensive to saints. 8. Strife
+and contention among brethren, and grudging or envying one
+another's prosperity; as these produce many evil and wicked fruits,
+and cast blame upon the providence of God, who bestows his mercies
+as he will. 9. Defrauding and breaking promises. Contracting debts
+and unduly delaying or refusing to pay them, and disappointing men
+of their just expectations in virtue of promises made to them.
+Those also are scandalous, and cause the name of God to be evil
+spoken of. 10. Entering into a marriage relation with such as are
+apparently in an unbelieving, carnal, and unconverted state and
+condition; for this also is very offensive to holy serious men,
+although many make very light of it. 11. Idleness and slothfulness
+in your external calling, neglecting to provide for your own house,
+as that will prove a scandalous sin to others and to yourselves
+too. 12. Taking up a report rashly against one another of a
+scandalous nature, giving ear unto tattlers, and busybodies; or
+being busybodies in other men's matters yourselves, as this will
+give great offence.</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0036"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. II.<a href="#note-122"><small>122</small></a></h2>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Who have a right to preach the gospel and dispense
+the public ordinances of religion?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Without some proper furniture, it is absurd to
+imagine any should be sent of God to the ministerial work. When the
+ascended Jesus gave to the church apostles, evangelists; pastors
+and teachers, he gave gifts to men. <i>Who</i>, saith he, <i>goeth
+at, any time a warfare on his own charges?</i> What is the
+furniture, the qualifications prerequisite, according to the Holy
+Scriptures? A blameless conversation, a good report; experience of
+the self-debasing work of the Spirit of God; compassion to the
+souls of men; a fixedness in the Christian doctrines; a disposition
+faithfully to perform his vows; an aptness to teach the ignorant,
+and convince gainsayers. Knowledge of languages, knowledge of the
+history and sciences of this world, are useful handmaids to assist
+us in the study of divine things. To preach from the oracles of
+God, without capacity to peruse the original, especially if versant
+in romances and plays, we abhor and detest. This aptness to teach,
+however, consists not chiefly in any of these, but in a capacity to
+conceive spiritual things, and with some distinctness to express
+their conceptions to the edification of others, in that energy and
+life, whereby one, as affected himself, declares the truths of God,
+in a simple, serious, bold, and conscience-touching manner. The
+difference of this, from human eloquence, loud bawling, and
+theatrical action, is evident. These may touch the passions, and
+not affect the conscience: they may procure esteem to the preacher,
+none to Christ. These are the product of natural art: this the
+distinguished gift of God, without which, in a certain degree, none
+can have evidence that he was divinely sent to minister the gospel
+of Christ.</p>
+<p>No appearance of furniture, real or pretended, can warrant a
+man's exercising of the ministry, unless he have a regular call.
+That <i>all may prophesy one by one</i> is indeed hinted in the
+sacred records: but there it is evident inspiration treats of what
+pertains to extraordinary officers in the church; hence there is
+mentioned <i>the gift of tongues</i>, extraordinary <i>psalms,
+revelations</i>: the <i>all</i> that might prophesy are, therefore,
+not <i>all</i> the members of the church; not <i>women</i>, who are
+forbid to speak in the church; but <i>all</i> the extraordinary
+officers called prophets, 1 Cor. xiv. 31. The <i>all</i> that were
+scattered abroad from Jerusalem, and <i>went about preaching
+the gospel</i>, Acts viii. 2, could not be <i>all</i> the
+believers; for there remained at Jerusalem a church of believers
+for Saul to make havoc of. It must therefore have been <i>all</i>
+the preachers, besides the apostles. To strengthen this, let it be
+observed, that the word here rendered <i>preaching</i> is nowhere
+in Scripture referred to one out of office: that every one of this
+dispersion, we afterward hear of, are represented as evangelists,
+pastors, or teachers, Acts ix. 1, 11, 19, and xiii. 1. Parents and
+masters convey the same instruction that ministers do; but with a
+different authority: not as ministers of Christ, or officers in his
+Church. If other gifts or saintship entitled to preach the gospel,
+wo would be unto every gifted person, every saint, that did not
+preach it. If our adored Redeemer refused the work of a civil judge
+because not humanly vested with such power, will he allow his
+followers to exercise an office far more important, without any
+regular call? His oracles distinguish between the mission of
+persons, and their gifts, sometimes called a receiving of the Holy
+Ghost, John xx. 21, 23.</p>
+<p>To render the point incontestably evident, he demands, how men
+shall preach <i>except they be sent</i>? declares, that <i>no
+man</i> rightly <i>taketh this honor to himself but he that is
+called of God, as was Aaron</i>. "I sent them not, therefore they
+shall not profit this people at all, saith the Lord." The
+characters divinely affixed to ministers, preachers, or heralds,
+ambassadors, stewards, watchmen, angels, messengers, brightly mark
+their call and commission to their work. The inspired rules for the
+qualifications, the election, the ordination of ministers, are
+divinely charged to be kept till <i>the day</i>, the second coming
+<i>of Jesus Christ</i>. For intermeddling with the sacred business
+without a regular call, has the Almighty severely punished numbers
+of men. Witness the destruction of Korah and his company; the
+rejection of Saul; and the death of Uzza; the leprosy of Uriah; the
+disaster of the sons of Sceva, &amp;c., Num. xvi.; 1 Sam. xiii.; 1
+Chron. xiii.; 2 Chron. xxvi.; Acts xix.</p>
+<p>To rush into it, if gifted, or to imagine we are so, at our own
+hand, introduces the wildest disorder, and the most shocking
+errors: it did so at Antioch, and the places adjacent, where some
+falsely pretended a mission from the apostles. This, too, was its
+effect with the German anabaptists, and with the sectaries of
+England. Aversion at manual work, pride of abilities, a disturbed
+imagination, a carnal project to promote self, prompts the man to
+be preacher. Such ultroneous rushing is inconsistent with the deep
+impression of the charge, and the care to manifest their mission,
+everywhere in Scripture obvious in the ministers of Christ. However
+sound his doctrine, great his abilities, warm his address, where is
+the promise of God's especial presence, protection, or success, to
+the ultroneous preacher? Where is his conduct commanded, commended,
+or unmarked with wrath, exemplified in the sacred words? How then
+can the preaching, or our hearing, of such, be in faith? How can it
+be acceptable to God, or profitable to ourselves? For <i>whatsoever
+is not of faith is sin</i>. Falsely this preacher pretends a
+mission from Christ: wickedly, he usurps an authority over his
+Church: rebelliously he deserts his own calling, and attempts to
+make void the office his Saviour has appointed; to frustrate the
+dispensation of the gospel committed to his faithful ambassadors.
+For how can they fulfil their ministry, if others take the work out
+of their hand? How can they <i>commit it to faithful men</i>, if,
+not waiting their commission, men rush into it at pleasure?</p>
+<p>In vain pleads the ultroneous preacher, that a particular
+mission to the office of preaching and dispensing the sacraments
+was only necessary, when the gospel was preached to the heathen.
+From age to age, it is <i>as new</i>, to children <i>as new</i>, to
+such as never heard it. Nor, when hinting the necessity of a
+mission, does the inspiring Spirit make any distinction, whether
+the gospel be newly dispensed or not. <i>What therefore God hath
+joined together, let no man put asunder</i>. In vain he pleads an
+immediate commission from God: in his infallible statutes, having
+fixed standing rules of vocation to the ministry, by the mediation
+of men, God gives us no command, no encouragement, to hope for an
+immediate call, till the end of time. Absurdly then we allow any to
+have such a call, till we see <i>the signs of an apostle wrought in
+him</i>. It is not sufficient he be sound in his doctrine,
+exemplarily holy in his life, active in his labors, disinterested
+in his aims, seeking not his own, but the honor of Christ, not his
+own carnal profit, but the spiritual welfare of men: every ordinary
+preacher is, or ought to be so. But, to this claimant of a mission
+uncommon, working of miracles, or such extraordinary credentials,
+must demonstrate he hath not run unsent.</p>
+<p>In vain the ultroneous preacher boasts of his feelings; his
+success; his moving his audience; his reforming their lives; as if
+these demonstrated his call from God. On earth, was ever delusion
+carried on without pretence to, or without appearances of these?
+Let them, who know the history of Popery, of Mahometanism,
+Quakerism, &amp;c., say if they were. Who knows not, that the
+Pharisaic sect pretended far more strictness, far more devotion,
+than the family of Christ? Who knows not, that Satan may, and has
+oft <i>transformed</i> himself <i>into an angel of light</i>; his
+ministers into the form of inspired apostles; and his influences,
+almost indiscernibly similar to those of the Spirit of Jesus
+Christ? Who knows not, how oft vain-glory, proud and falsely
+extolling of himself and party, in their number, their spiritual
+experience and high advances in holiness, mark the distinguished
+impostor? How oft his sermons are larded with these!</p>
+<p>No more tell us, if the sermon be good, you do not regard who
+preach it. If God has prescribed a method of call, has stated the
+qualifications of the candidate, has warned against preachers
+unsent, has oft marked their guilt with visible strokes of his
+wrath, be ashamed to talk at so arrogant, so careless a rate. Lay
+it not in the power of the Mesopotamian wizard! Lies it not in the
+power of a Romish Jesuit, nay, if permitted, of Beelzebub, for a
+time to preach to you many truths of the gospel, in the warmest
+strain, the loftiest language? Would you acknowledge the
+<i>three</i> for honored ambassadors of Christ? Tell us not your
+preacher is wonderfully pious and good: perhaps you have only his
+own attestation; when better known he may be a drunkard, a swearer,
+a villain, for you. Suppose he were pious, so was Uzziah; yet it
+pertained not to him to execute the priest's office. Say not he is
+wonderfully gifted&mdash;speaks like <i>never man</i>: perhaps so
+was Korah, a man famous and of renown: such perhaps were the
+vagabond sons of Sceva. Say not his earnestness in his work marks
+his heavenly call: no, such were the Satanic exorcists just
+mentioned; such was Mahomet, the vilest impostor. To abolish the
+idolatry, and various other abominations of his country, he exposed
+himself to cruel reproach, to manifold hardship and hazard of life;
+about fourteen years almost unsuccessful he persevered in this
+difficult, but delusive attempt. What hunger, what cold, what
+torment and death have some Jesuitic and other antichristian
+missionaries undergone, to propagate the most ruining delusions of
+hell; all under the pretence of earnestness to gain sinners to
+Christ and his church. The Scripture, however, nowhere saith, how
+shall they preach except they be gracious? except they be gifted?
+except they be in earnest? But, <i>how shall they preach except
+they be sent</i>?</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0037"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. III.<a href="#note-123"><small>123</small></a></h2>
+<h3><i>On the same subject&mdash;Who have a right to preach the
+gospel</i>?</h3>
+<p>It is expressly enjoined in the word of God that we should
+earnestly contend for the faith once delivered to the saints. This
+faith includes all the ordinances, as well as all the doctrines of
+Christ; and it is no less our duty to contend for the former than
+for the latter. They have been equally opposed, and there is the
+same necessity why we should contend for both. Among the ordinances
+of Christ, the preaching of the gospel holds a principal place, and
+it hath accordingly, in all ages, met with considerable opposition.
+Like other ordinances, it hath been often grievously abused, and
+perverted to the most unworthy purposes. By many who would be
+esteemed the wise of the world, it is counted unworthy the
+attention of any but the vulgar: it has been called the foolishness
+of preaching. The infidels of our time, and some who, by attachment
+to the Arian and Socinian system, are in a progress to infidelity,
+cry it down as a human device or piece of craft. This need not,
+however, occasion any great surprise: the spirit of the world
+savoreth not the things that be of God, and the enemies of the
+truth naturally wish to have full scope to propagate their
+delusions. But it is matter of regret that the preaching of the
+gospel is, by many who attend upon it, too little regarded as an
+ordinance of Christ. And some of the professed friends of gospel
+doctrine so far mistake the nature and institution of preaching, as
+to engage in it without any other call than their own abundant
+zeal, and even to plead that all should do so who find themselves
+qualified. To show that such a sentiment and practice have no
+warrant from the word of God, the following observations are
+offered.</p>
+<p>I. The preaching of the gospel is an ordinance that Christ hath
+appointed for the gathering and edification of his Church; and,
+being a matter of positive institution, all that belongs to the
+administration of it can be learned only from the rules and
+approved examples recorded in the New Testament. It is not like
+those duties that are incumbent upon all, according to the
+opportunities they have in providence for the performance of them,
+and which, without any express commandment, could be urged upon
+Christians by the common principles of moral obligation, such as to
+teach and admonish one another. And because the obligation to such
+moral duties depends not upon positive institution, it must equally
+extend to all, and no person whatever can be free from it. But it
+is otherwise as to the preaching of the gospel, which is a positive
+institution of Christ; for it is a duty enjoined upon some only;
+yea, some are even absolutely prohibited from intermeddling in it,
+1 Cor. xiv. 34; 1 Tim. ii. 12: and this could not be the case if it
+were a matter of common moral obligation. All arguments therefore
+taken from general principles, to prove the obligation that
+Christians are under to exert themselves for promoting the cause of
+religion, are to no purpose here, as they do not prove that the
+preaching of the gospel is one of those means that all are
+warranted to use.</p>
+<p>II. There is an instituted ministry of the ordinances of Christ
+unto his Church, by such ministers and office-bearers as he hath
+appointed. And the preaching of the gospel is frequently referred
+to as a principal part of that ministry. We read of a ministry of
+the word, Acts vi. 4; a ministry received of the Lord Jesus to
+testify the gospel of the grace of God, Acts xx. 24; a ministry of
+reconciliation, 2 Cor. v. 18; and a ministry into which some are
+put by the Lord Christ, 1 Tim. i. 12. This ministry is not left
+open to all the members of the church, in such a manner as that
+everyone who finds himself disposed, of supposes himself to be
+qualified, may engage in it as he finds opportunity; but
+office-bearers are appointed for it by the Lord Christ, Eph. iv.
+11,12: "And he gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some
+evangelists, and some pastors and teachers, for the perfecting of
+the saints, for the work of the ministry, and for the edifying of
+the body of Christ." Some of these officers were extraordinary and
+temporary; they had an extraordinary call, and were endued with
+miraculous powers, which are now ceased: but the work of the
+ministry, and particularly the preaching of the gospel, is to
+continue to the end of the world, as appears from the promise given
+for the encouragement of those that are employed in it, Matt,
+xxviii. 20. There are accordingly ordinary officers, pastors, and
+teachers, appointed for the continued exercise of that
+ministry.</p>
+<p>To these instituted office-bearers is this ministry exclusively
+committed, Mark xvi., Matt, xxviii. The gospel of Christ, in
+respect of the public ministry thereof by preaching, is frequently
+mentioned as a special and peculiar <i>trust</i> committed unto
+them, 2 Cor. v. 18-20; 1 Tim. i. 11, and vi. 20. In all the
+passages of Scripture where we have any mention of a charge or
+commission to preach the gospel, it would be easy to show that it
+is directed only to persons in office; and a variety of names are
+given to those that are employed in a ministry of the word, all of
+which are expressive of their peculiar office. They are called
+ministers, 1 Cor. iii. 6; officers and stewards, 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+ambassadors for Christ, 2 Cor. v. 20; heralds (so the word preacher
+signifies) and teachers, 2 Tim. i. 11.</p>
+<p>There is no room to plead here, that though a constant ministry
+of the word, in a pastoral charge, belongs only to persons in
+office, yet all may occasionally exercise their gifts in preaching
+the gospel. The word of God acknowledges no such distinction as
+that between a constant and an occasional ministry of the gospel.
+It enjoins upon those who are called to the work of the ministry,
+not an occasional, but a constant exercise of that ministry; so
+that whether they be paid pastors, or itinerant preachers, they are
+not to entangle themselves with the affairs of this life, but must
+be devoted wholly to the work of the gospel, 1 Tim. iv. 13-16; 2
+Tim. ii. 4, and iv. 2. And because they must thus devote their time
+and attention to this work, the word of God also enjoins that a
+maintenance be given them by those to whom they exercise their
+ministry, 1 Cor. ix. 7-14; Gal. vi. 6; 1 Tim. v. 17. This is a
+farther evidence that the ministry of the word is restricted to
+persons in office, and that they are to devote their time and
+attention to it, not entangling themselves in the prosecution of a
+secular business.</p>
+<p>III. Those only can be warrantably employed in a ministry of the
+ordinances of Christ, and particularly in preaching the gospel, who
+are thereunto called by him, and admitted according to the rule
+laid down in the word. And none can be warrantably acknowledged and
+received as office-bearers, to whom that ministry is committed
+without some proper evidence of their being called and sent by
+Christ. "How shall they preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15.
+How, without this, can they do it warrantably or profitably? And,
+without some evidence of this, what ground have we to expect a
+blessing in waiting upon their ministry? It is not a mere
+providential sending that is here meant, as if there were no more
+necessity than abilities, and an opportunity of exercising them;
+for so the ministers of Satan may be sent, and a lying spirit was
+thus sent among the prophets of Ahab. But this sending means the
+call of Christ, intimated in such a way as to warrant the preacher,
+and with such evidence as may satisfy the conscience of the
+hearers, in receiving his ministry as the ordinance of Christ. A
+zeal for God, a strong desire of being useful to souls, and even a
+persuasion of having the call of Christ, cannot be sufficient
+warrant to the preacher; far less can the hearers, in receiving
+him, proceed upon grounds so uncertain.</p>
+<p>The apostles, and some other ministers in the beginning of the
+Christian dispensation, had an extraordinary call and immediate
+mission by Christ, and this was evidenced to all by the miraculous
+powers bestowed on them. These powers are now ceased, and it is
+vain to plead any such immediate call. The ordinary call of Christ
+to the work of the ministry is intimated by or through the church,
+judging thereof by the rules laid down in the word; and according
+to these rules, they that are found qualified and called, are to be
+admitted to the ministry by them who are already invested with it.
+The charge is given to the office-bearers of the church, to commit
+that ministry which they have received "to faithful men, who shall
+be able to teach others also," 2 Tim. ii. 2; Tit. i. 5. And for
+their direction in this matter, the qualifications necessary, both
+as to character and abilities, are laid down in the Word,
+particularly in 1 Tim. iii.; of these qualifications they are
+required to make an impartial and deliberate examination, so as to
+<i>lay hands suddenly on no man</i>, 1 Tim. iv. 22, but to admit to
+the office of the ministry those only, who, by this trial, they
+have reason to judge are called and sent by Christ.</p>
+<p>It is vain to distinguish here between a pastor of a
+congregation and an itinerant preacher; as if the call of the
+church was necessary only to the former and not to the latter. If
+by the call of the church is meant only the choice and call of the
+people, it is admitted, that this is only necessary to fix a
+pastoral relation to that part of the flock; but a regular
+admission to the work of the ministry, by the office-bearers of the
+church, is equally necessary in the case of all that are employed
+in it, whether they have a fixed charge or not. Timothy, who had no
+fixed charge, and though pointed out by prophecy as designed for
+the ministry, was ordained and admitted to it by the presbytery.
+And though Paul and Barnabas had an extraordinary call, yet the
+prophets and teachers of the church at Antioch are directed to
+separate and send them out, according to the call of the Holy
+Ghost, to preach the gospel unto the Gentiles, Acts xiii. A
+principal design of this seems to have been, to set an example of
+procedure to the church in after times.</p>
+<p>It appears, then, that the preaching of the gospel is an
+ordinance or institution of Christ&mdash;that the ministry of that
+and other ordinances belongs only to those office-bearers whom he
+hath appointed and commissioned for that end&mdash;and that in
+ordinary cases, none can be acknowledged as sent by him, but such
+as are admitted to the ministry in the way above mentioned. These
+observations would have admitted a much larger illustration; but as
+they are, they may assist an attentive reader to consult his Bible
+for further satisfaction. It is necessary, however, to take some
+notice of the arguments urged in support of the opposite sentiment,
+and of the attempt to prove that every man who is qualified has a
+right to preach the gospel, without any regular call and admission
+by the church. And,</p>
+<p>1st. It is pretended that this is enjoined upon all that are
+qualified for it, because Christians are called to teach, exhort,
+and admonish one another. But even supposing that this were to be
+understood of preaching, or a public ministry of the word, such
+directions, though expressed generally, would not apply to all, but
+to those only who are called to the ministry, according to the
+limitation and restriction that is laid down in other places of
+Scripture. There is, however, no necessity of understanding these
+directions in that sense. The Scripture evidently distinguishes the
+preaching of the gospel, or that public teaching which belongs to
+an instituted ministry, from that private teaching which is
+competent to, and obligatory on, all Christians by the law of love;
+the latter is enjoined upon some to whom the former is absolutely
+prohibited: compare 1 Tim. ii. 12, with Tit. ii. 3, 4. Christians
+in a private station have abundant opportunity, and ordinarily much
+more than they improve, to exercise their talents in teaching their
+families, friends, and neighbors, without interfering with that
+public ministry of the word which is committed to those who are
+especially called thereto.</p>
+<p>2d. Some passages of Scripture are urged, wherein it is supposed
+all Christians are enjoined to exercise their qualifications in
+public teaching or preaching: particularly Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet.
+iv. 10, 11. These Scriptures, on the contrary, restrict the public
+ministry of the word to those invested with an office, and it is
+that ministry which belongs to their office that is spoken of. In
+Rom. xii. persons in office are exhorted to apply themselves
+faithfully and diligently to that ministry to which they are
+called, whether it be a ministry of the word, and of spiritual
+things, or a ministry of temporal things, and that without envying
+others who have a different office and ministry. And, to enforce
+this exhortation, the apostle compares the Church to the natural
+body, ver. 4, in which all members have not the same office, but
+one member is appointed to one office, and another member to a
+different office: and so it is in the Church of Christ, ver. 5. The
+same allusion is applied more largely, 1 Cor. xii. 27, 28, to
+illustrate this very point. The other passage, 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11,
+is of the very same import: those in office are called to exercise
+their ministry faithfully, whether it be in spiritual or temporal
+things, and are addressed as stewards, ver. 10; "As every man hath
+received the gift, even so minister the same one to another as good
+stewards of the manifold grace of God." Some are led to mistake the
+meaning of these Scriptures, by misunderstanding the word
+<i>gift</i>, as if it meant only talents or qualifications;
+whereas, in these and many other passages, it means a certain
+office and ministry to which one is appointed. Eph. iv. 8, 11: He
+gave gifts unto men; he gave some apostles, some prophets, &amp;c.
+1 Tim. iv. 14: "Neglect not the gift that is in thee, which was
+given thee by prophecy, with the laying on of the hands of the
+presbytery." Timothy was ordained to the office of the ministry in
+consequence of special direction of the spirit of prophecy. See 1
+Tim. i. 18.</p>
+<p>3d. It is also supposed and much insisted on by some, that both
+precept and example for the preaching of the gospel, by what they
+call every gifted brother, may be found in 1 Cor. xiv. 31, which is
+particularly urged in support of their opinion: "For ye may
+<i>all</i> prophesy, one by one, that <i>all</i> may learn, and
+<i>all</i> may be comforted." But universal terms, such as are here
+used, are limited or extended according to the subject; and that
+even in the same verse, as in chap. xv. 22. In like manner here,
+the <i>all</i> that may prophesy are not the same <i>all</i> that
+may learn and be comforted. The latter may extend to all the
+members of the church, and even to strangers who might come into
+their assemblies; the former could apply only to a few. Some
+members of the church are expressly prohibited from public
+teaching, ver. 34. Besides, all were not prophets, chap. xii. 29,
+and therefore all could neither prophesy, nor could warrantably
+attempt it. The state of matters referred to in that chapter seems
+to have been this: The church at Corinth was numerous, and had many
+ministers, of whom the most, if not all, were endowed with some
+miraculous power, such as that of prophecy, of speaking strange
+languages, and the like; they were proud of these gifts, and
+forward to show them, ver. 26, which occasioned disorder in their
+assemblies for worship; those that had the gift of tongues
+prevented the prophets, and did not modestly give place to one
+another. These disorders the apostle reproves, and exhorts them to
+exercise their gifts in a more regular and decent manner, for the
+edification of the church. This being the case, it is strange to
+plead this passage as a warrant for the preaching of the gospel by
+those who are in no office, and who neither have any miraculous
+power to prove their immediate call by Christ to the work of the
+ministry, nor are admitted thereto by the call of the church.</p>
+<p>4th. Further, we are referred to Acts viii. 1-4, for an example
+of the preaching of the gospel by persons not in office. We are
+told, ver. 1, that "there was a great persecution against the
+church which was at Jerusalem, and they were all scattered
+abroad&mdash;<i>except the apostles</i>." And it is said, ver. 4,
+"<i>they</i>, that were scattered abroad, went everywhere
+<i>preaching the word</i>." From this it is argued, that <i>the
+Church in general</i> proclaimed the gospel of the Lord Jesus. But
+why mention the Church in general, when the method of reasoning
+used would equally prove that the Church universally did so; and
+the absurdity of such reasoning must be evident upon a very little
+consideration of the subject. How absurd to suppose that <i>all</i>
+mentioned in ver. 1, refers to and comprehends all the members of
+that church, and that all the thousands and ten thousands belonging
+to it were all scattered abroad, or that they all, men, women, and
+children, went <i>everywhere preaching</i> the word! Are we not
+told, ver. 3, that some of them, probably many of them, both men
+and women, were haled and committed to prison? Or, had all the
+members of the church been driven from Jerusalem, how were the
+apostles to be employed? Did they only tarry to gather a new
+church? When it is said, ver. 3, that Saul entered into every
+house, how absurd would it be to suppose that it is meant every
+house in Jerusalem, or even every house in which there was a
+Christian! The expression, also, <i>everywhere</i>, ver. 4, must be
+limited. It would therefore be unreasonable to object against a
+proper limitation of the word <i>all</i>, ver. 1. And about the
+just limitation of it we need be at no loss. They were all
+scattered abroad&mdash;except the apostles. What reason can there
+be for mentioning only the apostles as excepted, while there were
+so many other members of that church still remaining at Jerusalem,
+but this, that the persons referred to were of the same description
+in general with the apostles, persons in office, ministers of the
+church? Others might also be scattered, but these are here spoken
+of; and Philip, an evangelist, and endowed with miraculous powers,
+is mentioned as one of them.</p>
+<p>5th. As to the case of Apollos, which some urge as affording
+irresistible evidence to prove that all who are qualified may
+preach the gospel, a few words may suffice. He spoke boldly in the
+synagogue, the practice of which is no rule to the Christian
+Church. He was not yet acquainted with some important doctrines of
+the New Testament Church, much less could he be acquainted with the
+ordinances of it. Two intelligent Christians instructed him more
+perfectly in the way of God. He was recommended by the brethren to
+the church at Corinth, and there he labored successfully in the
+work of the ministry. And what is all this to the purpose for which
+his example is urged? We have no information, indeed, of what time,
+nor in what manner, he was called and admitted to the work of the
+ministry, more than we have about many others mentioned in
+Scripture: but he is expressly called a minister, and is, once and
+again, classed with the chiefest of the apostles, 1 Cor. i. 12,
+iii. 5, 22.</p>
+<p>Lest these and the like arguments should be found insufficient,
+recourse is had by some to the plea of pure motives and good
+designs, with a kind of appeal to the judgment of the great day,
+and profession of trust, that they are such as will not then be
+condemned. It is a great satisfaction to have the testimony of
+conscience to the purity of motives in every part of conduct that
+is warranted by the word of God, and also to know that the judgment
+of the saints at the great day will be a judgment of mercy. But
+every part of the truth of Christ will be determined at that day in
+exact conformity to what is now declared in the word. And the
+purest motives and most noble designs are no rule of conduct to
+any; much less can they give satisfaction to others.</p>
+<p>These observations concerning the institution of a gospel
+ministry, the writer is persuaded, are agreeable to the word of
+God: if they be not, it would be idle to appeal to his motives in
+support of them. But he can freely say that they are here offered
+to the public, not from a desire of controversy, but from a
+conviction, that at this time it is necessary, on different
+accounts, to call people's attention to the mind and will of
+Christ, as revealed in the word concerning this subject. Let not
+such of the friends of religion, as may be of different sentiments
+from what are here expressed, be offended at an attempt, in the
+spirit of meekness, to remove their mistakes: nor let them impute
+it to envy, pride, or selfish principles. In a perfect consistency
+with all that he hath advanced, the writer can say, "Would to God
+that all the Lord's people were prophets."</p>
+<p>It is a necessary consequence of what is advanced on this
+subject, that all should be careful that the ministry of the
+ordinances they attend upon be such as is warranted in the word. If
+none can warrantably preach except they be sent, we cannot
+warrantably attend on the ministry of any but those who we have
+reason to believe have Christ's call and mission. And if it be an
+objection against a pastor of a congregation, that he is imposed
+upon the flock without their choice, it is no less an objection
+against a preacher, if he be not admitted to the ministry of the
+word by those whose office it is to examine his qualifications, and
+judge of his call. It must, however, be acknowledged, that to have
+gone through the ordinary forms of admission is no sufficient
+evidence of one's having the call of Christ. The outward forms may
+be observed, while the spirit and design of them is neglected, and
+the rule of the word transgressed. Nor can any be acknowledged as
+sent by Christ, unless their character correspond with that pointed
+out and required in the word, and unless the doctrine they teach be
+the gospel of Christ. None can be supposed to have a mission from
+Christ, who do not bring his message, 2 John ver. 10: "If there
+come any unto you and bring not this doctrine, receive him not into
+your house, neither bid him God speed." But when we are favored
+with the pure gospel, and an administration of it agreeable to the
+word, let us wait upon it diligently; regarding the preaching of
+the gospel as an ordinance of Christ, and depending on his promised
+blessing to make it effectual: for when "the world by wisdom knew
+not God, it pleased God, by the foolishness of preaching, to save
+them that believe," 1 Cor. i. 21.</p>
+<p>Both parts of this number are recommended to the serious
+consideration of what are called <i>lay-preachers</i>, and of such
+as favor that scheme. And let all intruders upon the office of the
+holy ministry, with their deluded votaries, beware lest it should
+be said to them, <i>Who hath required this at your hands</i>?</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0038"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. IV.</h2>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Have not the people a divine right to choose their
+own pastors and other church officers?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. In those divinely qualified for the ministry, there
+are diversities of gifts, though but one spirit. As the same food,
+though abundantly wholesome and nourishing, is not equally suited
+to the taste, appetite, and constitutions of different persons and
+nations; so the same gifts in a candidate for the gospel ministry
+are not equally adapted to every person and place. To secure
+edification there must therefore be a choice of the gifts most
+suitable. And who fitter to make it than those who are to enjoy the
+use thereof, if their senses be exercised to discern good and evil?
+Can any man pretend to know better what gifts suit the case of my
+soul than I do myself?</p>
+<p>Those ignorant of the fundamental truths of Christianity; those
+scandalous, profane deniers of the divine original of the Old and
+New Testaments, or of any truth therein plainly revealed; those
+neglecters of the public, private, and secret worship of God; those
+given to cursing, swearing, Sabbath profanation, drunkenness,
+whoredom, or other scandalous courses, are destitute of capacity
+and right to choose a gospel minister. The ignorant are utterly
+incapable to judge of either the preacher's matter or method. The
+openly wicked have their hatred of Christ, and a faithful minister,
+marked in their forehead; neither are such qualified to be visible
+members of the Christian Church. To admit them therefore to choose
+a Christian pastor would be a method, introducing ruin and we; a
+method equally absurd as for unfreemen to choose the magistrates of
+a burgh: rather, equally absurd as if ignorant babes, and our
+enemies the French, should be sustained electors of our members of
+parliament and privy council.</p>
+<p>Whether visible believers, adults, and having a life and
+conversation becoming the gospel, have a right from God to choose
+their pastors and other church officers, must now be examined.</p>
+<p>All along from the Reformation it has been the avowed principle
+of Scotch Presbyterians, that they have a divine warrant to choose
+their own pastors and other ecclesiastic officers. The first book
+of discipline, published A.D. 1560, declares the lawful calling of
+the ministry to consist in the election of the people, the
+examination of the ministry, and administration by both, and that
+no pastor should be intruded on any particular kirk without their
+consent. Their second book of discipline declares that the people's
+liberty of choosing church officers continued till the Church was
+corrupted by antichrist: that patronage flowed from the Pope's
+canon law, and is inconsistent with the order prescribed in God's
+word. From various documents the assembly of 1736 declared it
+obvious, that from the Reformation it had been the fixed principle
+of this church that no minister ought to be intruded into any
+church contrary to the will of the congregation. They seriously
+recommended a due regard hereunto in planting the vacancies, as
+judicatories would study the glory of God, the honor of God, and
+the edification of men. It is the law of heaven, however, the book
+of the Lord, that here and everywhere we intend to build our faith
+upon.</p>
+<p>That of Matthias is the first instance of an election of an
+officer in the Christian Church. No doubt, then, it is marked in
+the sacred history as a pattern for the ages to come. Being an
+officer extraordinary, his call was in part immediately divine, by
+the determination of the lot. Being a church officer, he was chosen
+by the Church as far as consistent with his extraordinary office.
+The disciples about Jerusalem (120) were gathered together. Peter
+represented the necessity of filling up Judas's place in the
+apostolate with one who could be a meet witness of Jesus'
+doctrines, miracles, death, and resurrection. The one hundred and
+twenty disciples chose, appointed, or presented to whom they judged
+proper for that work. The office being extraordinary, and perhaps
+the votes equal, the decision which of these two was referred to
+the divine determination of the lot. After prayer for a perfect
+<i>one</i>, it fell upon Matthias, and he was, by suffrages, or
+votes, added to the number of the apostles.</p>
+<p>Had the next election of a church officer entirely excluded the
+Christian people, one had been tempted to suspect that Matthias's
+extraordinary case was never designed for a pattern. Instead
+hereof, the choice being of an ordinary officer, is entirely
+deposited in their hands. Never were men better qualified for such
+an election than the inspired, the spirit-discerning apostles; yet
+when restrained by laborious attendance to their principal work,
+the ministry of the word and of prayer, from sufficient leisure to
+distribute their multiplied alms to their now numerous poor, and
+directed by the Holy Ghost, they ordered the Christian people <i>to
+look out</i>, choose seven of their number, <i>men of honest
+report, full of the Holy Ghost and of wisdom</i>, who might be
+ordained to the office of deacons. Judging of the mentioned
+qualifications, the Christian multitude, entirely of their own
+accord, chose Stephen, Philip, Prochorus, Nicanor, Timon, Parmenas,
+and Nicolas. These they presented to the apostles, who immediately
+ordained them by prayer, and imposition of hands, Acts vi. 1-6.
+Here, by inspired appointment, the people had the whole power of
+electing their deacons. If they have the power of electing one
+ordinary officer, why not of all? If in the case of deacons they
+can judge of the qualifications of <i>honest report, full of the
+Holy Ghost and of wisdom</i>, what hinders them to judge of these
+and the like of ministers? If Jesus and his apostles argued from
+the less to the greater, Matt. vi. 30,1 Cor. ix. 10, who can forbid
+us to argue so? If it be right and equal for the Christian people
+to choose deacons who take care of their sacred alms, is it not
+much more right and equal that they have the choice of their
+pastors, who take the oversight of their souls?</p>
+<p>A third instance of the Christian people electing their
+ecclesiastical officers, relates to the joint travels of Paul and
+Barnabas at Lystra and places around, Acts xiv. 23. These two
+divinely directed messengers of Christ, having ordained (or, as
+properly translated from the Greek, <i>through suffrages or votes
+constituted) them elders</i> (presbyters) <i>in every city, and
+prayed with fasting, commended them to the Lord</i>. Here it is
+plainly marked that these elders, <i>presbyters</i>, were chosen by
+<i>suffrages (votes)</i> in order to ordination. This the Greek
+word in our version, by the fraud of the English bishops rendered
+<i>had ordained</i>, plainly imports. The root of this word is
+borrowed from the custom of giving votes at Athens and elsewhere in
+Greece, by lifting up of the hand. Wherever it is used in the Greek
+Testament, and for anything we know in every Greek author, not
+posterior to Luke, the writer of the Acts, it constantly implies
+<i>to give vote or suffrage</i>. In the text before us it agrees
+with Paul and Barnabas; because they presided in the choice, and
+finished the design of it by ordination. Here, moreover, it is
+evident that the persons chosen for elders <i>(presbyters)</i> were
+set apart to their office, not by a hurried prayer and riotous
+banquet, but <i>by prayer and fasting:</i> and this manner of
+choice and ordination was used in every church. The very
+performance of the work of ordination in public conjunction with
+the church tacitly infers their consent.</p>
+<p>Christ's commanding his people <i>to try the spirits</i>, to try
+false prophets, and to flee from them, 1 John iv. 1, 2, necessarily
+imports a right to choose the worthy, and reject the vile; to
+choose what suits our edification, and to reject what doth not;
+for, if we must receive whoever is imposed, there is no occasion
+for trial, we can have no other. The privilege of trial here
+allowed to his people by Christ plainly supposes their having some
+ability for it; and, by a diligent perusal of his word, and
+consulting his ministers, they may become more capable. Has our
+adored Redeemer thus intrusted to his adult members the election of
+their pastors? at what peril or guilt do any ministers or laics
+concur to bereave them thereof, thrusting men into the evangelic
+office by another way; thus constituting them spiritual
+<i>thieves</i> and <i>robbers</i>? Instead of being <i>gentle</i>
+to church members, as a <i>nurse cherisheth her children</i>;
+instead of <i>condescending to men of low degree</i>, and <i>doing
+all things to the glory of God</i> and the <i>edification of
+souls</i>, is not this to set at naught their brethren; exercise
+lordly dominion over the members of Christ; and rule them with
+rigor?</p>
+<p>In the oracles of God, where is the hint, that the choice of
+pastors for the Christian people is lodged in any but
+themselves?&mdash;Since men apostolic and inspired put the choice
+from themselves to the Christian people; who can believe that it
+belongs to the clergy? Acts i. and vi. When Christ avers <i>his
+kingdom is not of this world</i>; when he threatens judgment
+without mercy to such as in his worshipping assemblies more readily
+give a seat to the rich, with his gold ring and gay clothing, than
+to the poor; can it be imagined that he has intrusted the choice of
+his ambassadors to men, for their greatness?</p>
+<p>There is indeed a haughty objection often stated against the
+people's choice: Shall a cottager, poor and unlearned, who pays not
+one farthing of the stipend, and at next term will perhaps remove
+from the congregation, have an equal choice of a minister with his
+master, a gentleman, a nobleman, of liberal education, of
+distinguished abilities, who is head of a large family, has a fixed
+property and residence in the parish, and furnishes almost the
+whole benefice? Will you fly in the face of our civil law? Will you
+plead for the method of choosing church officers, which already has
+produced so much strife, bloody squabbling, or riot? If Christ's
+<i>kingdom</i>, as himself when dying attested, <i>is not of this
+world</i>, how can outward learning, riches, settled abode, or any
+worldly thing, constitute one a member thereof? These do not make
+one a better Christian. No. <i>Not many wise men after the flesh,
+not many mighty, not many noble, are called</i> with a holy
+calling. How ordinarily do rich men oppress the saints, draw them
+before judgment-seats, and blaspheme Jesus' worthy name, by which
+they are called! If worldly privileges and endowments cannot make
+one a subject of the Mediator's spiritual kingdom, how can they
+entitle any to, or raise him above his brethren in, the privileges
+thereof? If by the Son of God the poor cottager has been made free
+indeed; has been taught to profit; is rich in faith; is a king and
+priest unto God; and hath received a kingdom that cannot be moved;
+in the view of the Omniscient and his angels, and every man wise to
+salvation, how little is he inferior to his rich, perhaps his
+graceless, master? Your rich man has college education, understands
+philosophy, history, law, agriculture; but will that infer that he
+understands his Bible, understands Christian principles, spiritual
+experiences, and what spiritual gifts best correspond therewith,
+better than his cottager, who daily searches the Scriptures, and
+has heard and learned of the Father? How oft are the great things
+of God hid from the wise and prudent, and revealed unto babes!
+Christ crucified was to the learned Greeks foolishness; but to the
+poorest believer the power of God and the wisdom of God. "The
+natural man," however learned, "receiveth not the things of the
+Spirit of God, neither can he know them; for they are spiritually
+discerned," 1 Cor. ii. 14. How easy to find the herdman, or the
+silly woman, who will endure a trial on Christian principles to far
+better purpose than many of your rich, your great men!&mdash;Your
+great man is the head of a numerous family, and has great influence
+in the corner. That, no doubt, is a strong motive for him, if he is
+a Christian, to be exceeding wary in his choice: if he is so, no
+doubt his Christian judgment, as far as is consistent with
+spiritual liberty, is to have its own weight. But while Christ's
+<i>kingdom is not of this world</i>; while in him there is
+<i>neither male nor female, bond nor free</i>; headship over a
+family can found no claim to a spiritual privilege. Thousands of
+heads of families are plainly <i>aliens from the commonwealth of
+Israel</i>, without God, and without hope in the world. Many are
+heads of families who, by neglect of the daily worship of God, of
+religious instruction, and by other unchristian conduct, ruin the
+same.</p>
+<p>Boast not of the great man's settled abode, boast not of
+to-morrow, for thou knowest not what a day may bring forth; how
+suddenly may disaster and death pluck him up by the roots! The rich
+fathers, where are they? Do the nobles live forever? Shall their
+dwelling continue to all generations? How often, in a few years,
+the rich inheritance changes its master, while the race of the poor
+hovers about the same spot for many generations! What if the
+cottager attend more to gospel ministrations, in one year, than the
+rich in forty! what if, removing at next term, he carry his beloved
+pastor in his heart, and by effectual fervent prayers, availing
+much, by multiplied groanings that cannot be uttered, he bring
+manifold blessings on the parish and ministry which he leaves;
+while your rich man, if wicked, if of the too common stamp,
+continues in it, for no better purpose than to distress the
+faithful pastor, corrupt the people, bring down a curse, and cumber
+the ground! The great man bears the load of the stipend no more
+than the poorest cottager. He purchased his estate with this burden
+upon it, and on that account had its price proportionally abated.
+Suppose it were otherwise, might not a poor widow's <i>two
+mites</i> be more in Jesus' account than all he gives? Will we,
+with the Samaritan sorcerer, indulge the thought that the <i>gifts
+of God</i>, the spiritual privileges of his Church, <i>are to be
+purchased with money</i>? For money to erect the church or defray
+the benefice we must not, with the infamous traitor, betray the Son
+of God in his church&mdash;his ordinance, his ministry, into the
+hands of sinners to be crucified.</p>
+<p>It is in vain to mention the civil law: the very worst statute
+thereof, relative to the point in hand, indirectly supposes the
+consent of the congregation. It leaves to the presbytery the full
+power to judge whether the presentee is fit for that charge. If the
+congregation generally oppose, with what candor do the presbytery,
+in Jesus' name, determine that he is fit? The last statute relative
+hereto declared the presentation void, unless accepted. Nor is
+there in being any, but the <i>law of sin and death</i> within
+them, the law of itch after worldly gain, that obliges candidates
+to accept. How unmanly, how disingenuous, to blame the civil law
+with the present course of intrusions!&mdash;Since the resurrection
+of Christ, we think we may almost defy any to produce an instance
+of bloody squabbling, or like outrageous contention, in the choice
+of a pastor, where none but the visible members of Christ's
+mystical body, adult, and blameless in their lives, were admitted
+to act in the choice. But if at any called popular elections, the
+power was sinfully betrayed into the hands of such baptized
+persons, as in ignorance and loose practice equalled, if not
+transcended, <i>heathen men and publicans</i>; into the hand of
+those who, to please a superior, to obtain a paltry bribe, or a
+flagon of wine, were readily determined in their vote for a
+minister; let the prostitutes of Jesus' ordinance answer for the
+unhappy consequences of their conduct. If they so enormously broke
+through the hedge of the divine law, no wonder a serpent bit them.
+But who has forgot what angry contentions, what necessity of a
+military guard at ordinations, the lodging of the power of
+elections in patrons or heritors, <i>as such</i>, has of late
+occasioned?</p>
+<p>To deprive the Christian people of their privilege in choosing
+their pastor, and give it to others upon worldly accounts, is the
+grossest absurdity. It overturns the nature of Christ's spiritual
+kingdom, founding a claim to her privileges on worldly character
+and property. It gives those blessed lips the lie, which said,
+<i>"My kingdom is not of this world."</i> It counteracts the nature
+of the church, as a voluntary society; thrusting men into a
+momentous relation to her, without, nay contrary to, her consent.
+It settles the ministerial office upon a very rotten foundation:
+for how hard is it to believe the man is a minister of a Christian
+congregation, who never consented to his being such! to believe he
+has a pastoral mission from Christ, for whom providence would never
+open a regular door of entrance to the office; but he was obliged
+to be thrust in by the window, <i>as a thief and a robber</i>! If
+he comes unsent, how can I expect edification by his ministry, when
+God has declared, <i>such shall not profit his people at all</i>?
+It implies the most unnatural cruelty. If the law of nature allow
+me the choice of my physician, my servant, my guide, my master, how
+absurd to deny me the choice of a physician, a servant, a guide, to
+my soul; and to give it to another, merely because he has some more
+money, has a certain <i>piece of ground</i>, which I have not! How
+do these qualify him, or entitle him to provide, what the eternal
+salvation of my soul is so nearly connected with, better than
+myself, if taught of God?</p>
+<p>By patronage how oft the honor of Christ and the souls of men
+are betrayed into the hands of their declared enemies! If the
+patron is unholy, profane, how readily the candidate he prefers is
+too like himself! If a candidate be faithful, be holy, how readily,
+like Ahab in the case of Micaiah, he hates, he sends not for him!
+The complaisant chaplain, who almost never disturbed the family
+with the worship of God; who along with the children or others took
+off his cheerful glass; sung his wanton song; attended the
+licentious ball, or play-house; connived at, or swore a profane
+oath; took a hand at cards; or ridiculed the mysteries, the
+experiences, the circumspect professor of the Christian faith, is
+almost certain to have the presentation: perhaps he covenanted for
+it as part of his wages. For what simony, sacrilege, and deceitful
+perjury, with respect to ordination vows, patronage opens a door,
+he that runs may read. Shocked with the view, let us forbear!</p>
+
+<hr>
+
+<p>N.B. The London ministers in the preceding treatise have a large
+note respecting the election of ministers, which does not fully
+invest this right in the people. The editor, therefore, omitted
+that note altogether, and has inserted this number, extracted from
+Brown's Letters, in the place of it, as better adapted to the
+nature of the gospel church, and to that liberty wherewith Christ
+has made his people free.</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0039"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. V.<a href="#note-124"><small>124</small></a></h2>
+<h3><i>Of the Ordination and Duty of Ministers.</i></h3>
+<p>That the ordination of pastors is an ordinance of Christ, the
+sacred volumes clearly prove. Through election by suffrages (or
+votes) Paul and Barnabas ordained <i>elders</i> (presbyters) <i>in
+every church</i>, Acts xiv. 23. By Paul's inspired orders Titus was
+left at Crete to ordain elders (presbyters) in every city, Tit. i.
+5. By the laying on of the hands of the presbytery was Timothy
+himself ordained: he was apostolically authorized and directed to
+ordain others; and informed that these directions are to be
+observed, <i>till the day of Jesus Christ</i>, 1 Tim. iv. 14,
+15.</p>
+<p>That not election, but ordination, confers the sacred office is
+no less evident. Election marks out the person to be ordained;
+ordination fixes the relation of a candidate to a particular
+congregation, upon receiving a regular call; while at the same time
+it constitutes him a minister of the whole catholic Church.
+Ordination made men <i>presbyters</i> and <i>deacons</i>, which
+were not so before. If a person be destitute of the distinguishing
+ministerial gift, or any other essential qualification, ten
+thousand elections or ordinations cannot render him a minister of
+Christ. But solemnly tried and found qualified, he is to be set
+apart to the ministry, by prayer, fasting, and laying on of the
+hands of the presbytery.</p>
+<p>Nowhere in the heavenly volume do we find either precept or
+example that Christian people have a whit more right to ordain
+their pastor, than midwives have to baptize the children they
+assist to bring forth. Ordination appears to have been performed by
+apostles, by evangelists, and by a presbytery, Acts vi. 6, and xiv.
+23; Tit. i. 5; 1 Tim. v. 22, and iv. 14: but never by private
+Christians. Could these ordain their pastors or other ecclesiastic
+officers, to what purpose did Paul leave Titus at Crete to
+<i>ordain elders in every city</i>? or why did he write never a
+word about ordination to the people, in any of his epistles, but to
+their rulers?</p>
+<p>Thus regularly ordained, the Christian pastor must enter upon
+his important work. Endowed with spiritual wisdom and
+understanding; possessed of inward experience of the power of
+divine truth; inflamed with zeal for the glory of God, love to his
+work, and compassion to the perishing souls of men, he is to
+endeavor to acquaint himself with the spiritual state of his flock;
+and to feed them, not with heathenish and Arminian harangues, but
+with the gospel of Christ, the sincere milk of the word, diligently
+preaching and rightly dividing it, according to their diversified
+state and condition, 1 Pet. v. 3; 2 Cor. v. 11; 1 Cor. ix. 16.
+Assiduously growing in the knowledge and love of divine things, he
+is to instruct and confirm his hearers therein. Every divine truth
+he is to publish and apply, as opportunity calls for: chiefly such
+as are most important, or, though once openly confessed, are in his
+time attacked and denied, 1 Tim. vi. 20, iii. 15. Painfully is he
+to catechize his people, and in Jesus' name to visit and teach them
+from house to house. To awaken their conscience, to promote the
+conversion of sinners, to direct and comfort the cast down,
+perplexed, tempted, and deserted; to ponder the Scripture, and his
+own and others' experience, to qualify him for this work, must be
+his earnest care. Faithfully is he to administer the sacraments to
+such (only) as are duly prepared; and in the simple manner
+prescribed by Christ. Tenderly is he to take care of the poor; to
+sympathize with the afflicted; impartially to visit the sick; to
+deal plainly with their consciences, and to exhort and pray over
+them in the name of the Lord. With impartiality, zeal, meekness,
+and prudence, he is to rule and govern the church, to admonish the
+unruly, to rebuke offenders, to excommunicate the incorrigible, and
+to absolve the penitent. Habitually is he to give himself to
+effectual fervent prayer, for his flock, and for the Church of God,
+travailing as in birth till Jesus be formed in the souls of men. Be
+a man's parts, diligence, and apparent piety what they will,
+negligence in this will blast his ministrations, and too clearly
+mark, that he is therein chiefly influenced by some carnal motive
+of honor or gain. Finally, he is constantly to walk before his
+flock a distinguished pattern of sobriety, righteousness, holiness,
+humility, heavenliness, temperance, charity, brotherly kindness,
+and every good word and work. Without this his ministrations appear
+but a solemn farce of deceit, 2 Tim. ii. 4; 1 Tim. iv. 15; 2 Tim.
+iv. 2.</p>
+<p>Can ministers' reading of sermons consist with the dignity of
+their office? Did Jesus or his apostles ever show them an example
+of this? No. At Nazareth, when he read his text in the book of
+Esaias, he <i>closed his book</i>, and discoursed to the people. On
+the mount <i>he opened his mouth, and taught</i>: we hear not that
+he took out his papers and read. Peter, in his sermon at Pentecost,
+<i>lifted up his voice, and said</i>: his papers and reading we
+hear nothing of. After reading of the law and the prophets, the
+rulers of the synagogue of Antioch in Pisidia, desired Paul and
+Barnabas, not to <i>read</i>, but to <i>say on</i>. Our adored
+Saviour knew well enough how to direct his ambassadors; yet he
+ordered them to <i>go and preach</i>, not <i>read</i>, the gospel
+to every creature, Luke iv. 20, 21; Matt. v. 2; Acts ii. 14, and
+xiii. 15. How hard to believe, that he who gives gifts to men, for
+the edifying of his body, would send the sermonist, whose memory
+and judgment are so insufficient, that from neither he can produce
+an half hour's discourse without reading it! How dull and insipid
+the manner! How absurdly it hinders the Spirit's assistance, as to
+matter during the discourse! How shameful! Shall the bookless
+lawyer warmly and sensibly plead almost insignificant trifles, and
+shall the ambassador of Christ, deprived of his papers, be
+incapable to plead so short a space in favor of his Master, and of
+the souls of men?</p>
+<a name="2H_4_0040"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>NO. VI.<a href="#note-125"><small>125</small></a></h2>
+<h3><i>Of Ruling Elders.</i></h3>
+<p>The rule and government of the Church, or the execution of the
+authority of Christ therein, is in the hand of the elders. All
+elders in office have rule, and none have rule in the church but
+elders: <i>as such</i>, rule doth belong unto them. The apostles by
+virtue of their special office were intrusted with all church
+power; but therefore they were elders also, 1 Pet. v. 1; 3 John i.:
+see Acts xxi. 17; 1 Tim. i. 17. They are some of them on other
+accounts called bishops, pastors, teachers, ministers, guides; but
+what belongs to any of them in point of rule, or what interest they
+have therein, it belongs unto them as elders, and not otherwise,
+Acts xx. 17, 18. The Scriptures affirm, 1st, That there is a work
+and duty of rule in the Church, distinct from the work and duty of
+pastoral feeding, by the preaching of the word and administration
+of the sacraments, Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim.
+v. 17; 2 Tim. iv. 5; Heb. xiii. 7, 17; Rev. ii. 3.</p>
+<p>2d. Different and distinct gifts are required unto the discharge
+of these distinct works and duties. This belongs unto the harmony
+of the dispensation of the gospel. Gifts are bestowed to answer all
+duties prescribed. Hence they are the first foundation of all
+power, work, and duty in the church. Unto every one of us is given
+grace according to the measure of the gift of Christ, that is,
+ability for duty, according to the measure wherein Christ is
+pleased to grant it; Eph. iv. 7: see also 1 Cor. xii. 4, 7, 8-10;
+Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet. iv. 10: wherefore different gifts are the
+first foundation of different offices and duties.</p>
+<p>3d. That different gifts are required unto the different works
+of pastoral teaching on the one hand, and practical rule on the
+other, is evident, 1st, From the light of reason, and the nature of
+the works themselves being so different. And, 2d, From experience;
+some men are fitted by gifts for the dispensation of the word and
+doctrine in a way of pastoral feeding, who have no useful ability
+in the work of rule; and some are fitted for rule, who have no
+gifts for the discharge of the pastoral work in preaching, Yea, it
+is very seldom that both these sort of gifts do concur in any
+eminent degree in the same persons, or without some notable
+defect.</p>
+<p>4th. The work of rule, as distinct from teaching, is in general
+to watch over the walk or conversation of the members of the church
+with authority, exhorting, comforting, admonishing, reproving,
+encouraging, and directing of them, as occasion shall require. The
+gifts necessary hereunto are diligence, wisdom, courage, and
+gravity; as we shall see afterwards. The pastoral work is
+principally to reveal the whole counsel of God, to divide the word
+aright, or to labor in the word and doctrine, both as unto the
+general dispensation and particular application of it, in all
+seasons and on all occasions. Hereunto spiritual wisdom, knowledge,
+sound judgment, experience, and utterance are required; all to be
+improved by continual study of the word and prayer. But this
+difference of gifts unto these distinct works doth not of itself
+constitute distinct offices, because the same persons may be
+suitably furnished with those of both sorts.</p>
+<p>5th. Yet distinct works and duties, though some were furnished
+with gifts for both, were a ground in the wisdom of the Holy Ghost,
+for distinct offices in the church, where one sort of them were as
+much as those of one office could, ordinarily attend unto, Acts vi.
+2-4. Ministration unto the poor of the church, for the supply of
+their temporal necessities, is an ordinance of Christ, instituted
+that the apostles might give a more diligent attendance unto the
+word and prayer.</p>
+<p>6th. The work of the ministry in prayer, and preaching of the
+word, or labor in the word and doctrine, whereunto the
+administration of the seals of the covenant is annexed, with all
+the duties that belong unto the special application of these things
+before insisted on unto the flock, are ordinarily sufficient to
+take up the whole man, and the utmost of their endowments who are
+called unto the pastoral office in the church. The very nature of
+the work in itself is such, as that the apostle giving a short
+description of it adds, as an intimation of its greatness and
+excellency, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2 Cor. ii. 16.
+And the manner of its performance adds unto its weight. For not to
+mention that intenseness of mind in the exercise of faith, love,
+zeal, and compassion, which is required of them in the discharge of
+their whole office; the diligent consideration of the state of the
+flock, so as to provide spiritual food for them; with a constant
+attendance unto the issues and effects of the word in the
+consciences and lives of men; is enough for the most part to take
+up their whole time and strength. It is gross ignorance or
+negligence that causeth any to be otherwise minded. As the work of
+the ministry is generally discharged, consisting only in a weekly
+provision of sermons, and the performance of some stated offices by
+reading, men have time and liberty enough to attend unto other
+occasions. But in such persons we are not at present concerned. Our
+rule is plain, 1 Tim. iv. 12-17.</p>
+<p>7th. It doth not hence follow, that those who are called unto
+the ministry of the word, as pastors and teachers, who are elders
+also, are divested of their right to rule in the church, or
+discharged from the exercise of it, because others, not called unto
+their office, are appointed to be assistant unto them, that is,
+<i>helps in the government</i>. For the right and duty of rule is
+inseparable from the office of elders, which all bishops and
+pastors are. The right is still in them, and the exercise of it,
+consistent with their more excellent work, is required of them. The
+apostles in the constitution of elders in every church derogated
+nothing from their own authority, nor discharged themselves of
+their care. So when they appointed deacons to take care of supplies
+for the poor, they did not forego their own right, nor the exercise
+of their duty as their other work would permit them, Gal. ii. 9,
+10. And in particular the apostle Paul manifested his concernment
+herein, in the care he took about <i>collection for the poor</i> in
+all churches.</p>
+<p>8th. As we observed at the entrance of this chapter, the whole
+work of the church, as unto authoritative teaching and rule, is
+committed unto the elders. For authoritative teaching and ruling,
+is teaching and ruling by virtue of office: and this office
+whereunto they do belong is that of elders, as is undeniably
+attested, Acts xx. 17, &amp;c. All that belongs unto the care,
+inspection, oversight, rule, fend instruction of the church, is
+committed unto the <i>elders</i> of it expressly. For <i>elders</i>
+is a name derived from the Jews, denoting them that have
+<i>authority</i> in the church.</p>
+<p>9th. To the complete constitution of any church, or to the
+perfection of its organical state, it is required that there be
+<i>many elders</i> in it; at least more than one. I do not
+determine what their number ought to be; but it is to be
+proportioned to the work and end designed. Where the churches are
+small, the number of elders must be so also. So many are necessary
+in each office as are able to discharge the work which is allotted
+unto them. But that church, be it small or great, is defective,
+which hath not more elders than one; so many as are sufficient for
+their work. The pattern of the first churches constituted by the
+apostles, which it is our duty to imitate and follow as our rule,
+plainly declares, that many elders were appointed by them in every
+church, Acts xi. 30, xiv. 23, xv. 2, 4, 6, 22, xvi. 4, xx. 17; 1
+Tim. v. 17; Phil. i. 1; Tit. i. 5; 1 Pet. v. 1.</p>
+<p>10th. We shall now make application of these things unto our
+present purpose. I say then, 1st, Whereas there is a work of rule
+in the Church, distinct from that of pastoral feeding: 2d, Whereas
+this work is to be attended unto with diligence, which includes the
+whole duty of him that attends unto it: 3d, That the ministry of
+the word and prayer, with all those duties that accompany it, is a
+full employment for any man, and so consequently his principal and
+proper work, which it is unlawful for him to be remiss in, by
+attending on another with diligence: 4th, That, in the wisdom of
+the Holy Ghost, distinct works did require distinct offices for
+their discharge: and, 5th, Whereas there ought to be many elders in
+every church, that both the works of <i>teaching</i> and
+<i>ruling</i> may be constantly attended unto; all which we have
+proved already: our inquiry herein is, whether the same Holy Spirit
+hath not distinguished this office of elders into those two sorts,
+namely, those who are called unto teaching and rule also, and those
+who are called unto rule only, which we affirm.</p>
+<p>The testimonies whereby the truth of this assertion is confirmed
+are generally known and pleaded. I shall insist on some of them
+only, beginning with that which is of uncontrollable evidence, if
+it had any thing to conflict with but prejudices and interest, and
+this is 1 Tim. v. 17, the meaning of which is, the elders or
+presbyters in office, elders of the church <i>that rule well</i> or
+discharge their presidency for rule in due manner, are worthy, or
+ought to be reputed worthy, <i>of double honor</i>; especially
+those of them who labor, or are engaged in the great labor and
+travail of the word and doctrine.</p>
+<p>According to this sense the words of the text have a plain and
+obvious signification, which at first view presents itself unto the
+common sense and understanding of all men. On the first proposal of
+this text, that the elders that rule well are worthy of double
+honor, especially those who labor in the word and doctrine, a
+rational man, who is unprejudiced, and never heard of the
+controversy about ruling elders, can hardly avoid an apprehension
+that there are <i>two sorts of elders</i>, some that labor in the
+word and doctrine, and some who do not. This is the substance of
+the truth in the text. There are elders in the Church; there are or
+ought to be so in every church. With these elders the whole rule of
+the Church is intrusted; all these, and only these, do rule in it.
+Of these elders there are two sorts; for a description is given of
+one sort distinct from the other, and comparative with it. The
+first sort doth rule, and also labor in the word and doctrine. That
+these works are distinct and different was before declared: yet by
+the institution of Christ the right of rule is inseparable from the
+office of pastors or teachers. For all that are rightly called
+thereunto are elders also, which gives them an interest in rule.
+But there are elders which are not pastors or teachers. For there
+are some who rule well, but labor not in the word and doctrine;
+that is, who are not pastors or teachers.</p>
+<p>Elders which rule well, but labor not in the word and doctrine,
+are ruling elders only; for he who says, The elders who rule well
+are worthy of double honor, especially they who labor in the word
+and doctrine, saith that there are, or may be elders who rule well,
+who do not labor in the word and doctrine; that is, who are not
+obliged to do so.</p>
+<p>The argument from these words may be otherwise framed, but this
+contains the plain sense of this testimony.</p>
+<p>Our next testimony is from the same apostle, Rom. xii. 6, 7,
+<i>He that ruleth with diligence</i>. Our argument from hence is
+this: there is in the Church one that ruleth with authority by
+virtue of his office. For the discharge of this office there is a
+differing peculiar gift bestowed on some, ver. 7, and there is the
+special manner prescribed for the discharge of this special office,
+by virtue of that special gift; it is to be done with peculiar
+<i>diligence</i>. And this ruler is distinguished from him that
+exhorteth, and him that teacheth, with whose special work, as such,
+he hath nothing to do; even as they are distinguished from those
+who give and show mercy; that is, there is an elder by office in
+the Church, whose work and duty it is to <i>rule</i>, not to exhort
+or teach ministerially, which is our ruling elder. He that ruleth
+is a distinct officer, and is expressly distinguished from all
+others. Rule is the principal part of him that ruleth; for he is to
+attend unto it with <i>diligence</i>; that is, such as is peculiar
+unto <i>rule</i>, in contradistinction unto what is principally
+required in other administrations.</p>
+<p>There is the same evidence given unto the truth argued for in
+another testimony of the same apostle, 1 Cor. xii. 28: that there
+is here an enumeration of offices and officers in the Church, both
+extraordinary for that season, and ordinary for continuance, is
+beyond exception. Unto them is added the present exercise of some
+extraordinary gifts, as miracles, healing, tongues. That by
+<i>helps</i> the deacons of the Church are intended most do agree,
+because their original institution was as helpers in the affairs of
+the Church. <i>Governments</i> are governors or rulers; that is,
+such as are distinct from teachers; such hath God placed in the
+Church, and such there ought to be. It is said that <i>gifts</i>,
+not <i>offices</i>, are intended; the gift of government, or the
+gift for government. If God hath given gifts for government to
+abide in the Church, distinct from those given unto
+<i>teachers</i>, and unto other persons than the teachers, then
+there is a distinct office of rule or government in the Church,
+which is all we plead for.</p>
+<p><i>Of the Duties of Ruling Elders.</i></p>
+<p>1st. To watch diligently over the ways, walk, and conversation
+of all the members of the church, to see that it be blameless,
+without offence, useful, exemplary, and in all things answering the
+holiness of the commands of Christ, the honor of the gospel, and
+the profession thereof which they make in the world. And upon the
+observation which they make in the watch wherein they are placed,
+to instruct, admonish, charge, exhort, encourage, or comfort as
+they see cause. And this they are to attend unto, with courage and
+diligence.</p>
+<p>2d. To endeavor to prevent every thing that is contrary unto
+that love which the Lord Christ requireth in a peculiar and eminent
+manner to be found among his disciples. This he calls his own
+<i>new command</i>, with respect unto his authority requiring it,
+his example first illustrating it in the world, and the peculiar
+fruits and effects of it which he revealed and taught. Wherefore,
+the due observance of this law of love in itself and all its
+fruits, with the prevention, removal, or condemnation of all that
+is contrary unto it, is that in which the <i>rule of the church</i>
+doth in a great measure consist. And considering the weakness, the
+passions, the temptations of men, the mutual provocations and
+differences that are apt to fall out even among the best, the
+influence that earthly objects are apt to have upon their minds,
+the frowardness sometimes of men's natural tempers; the attendance
+unto this one duty, or part of rule, requires the utmost diligence
+of them that are called unto it.</p>
+<p>3d. To warn all the members of the church of their special
+church duties, that they be not found negligent or wanting in them.
+These are special duties required respectively of all church
+members, according unto the distinct talents which they have
+received, whether in things spiritual or temporal. Some are rich
+and some are poor; some old and some young; some in peace and some
+in trouble; some have received more spiritual gifts than others,
+and have more opportunity for their exercise: therefore it belongs
+unto the rule of the church, that all be admonished, instructed,
+and exhorted to attend unto their respective duties, by those in
+<i>rule</i>, according to the observation which they make of
+people's diligence or negligence in them.</p>
+<p>4th. To watch against the beginning of any church disorders,
+such as those that infested the church of Corinth, or any of the
+like sort; and to see that the members of the church attend
+regularly upon the ordinances of the gospel, as by slothfulness in
+this, decays in faith, love, and order have insensibly prevailed in
+many, to the dishonor of Christ, and the danger of their own
+souls.</p>
+<p>5th. It belongs unto them also to visit the sick, and especially
+such as their inward or outward conditions do expose them unto more
+than ordinary trials in their sickness; that is, the poor, the
+afflicted, the tempted in any kind. This in general is a moral
+duty, a work of mercy; but it is moreover a peculiar church duty by
+virtue of divine institution, ordaining, that the disciples of
+Christ may have all that spiritual and temporal relief, which is
+necessary for them, and useful to them, in their troubles and
+distresses.</p>
+<p>6th. To assist the pastor in watching over and directing the
+flock, and to advise with the deacons concerning the relief of the
+poor. According to the advantage which they have by their peculiar
+inspection of the conversation of all the members of the church,
+they ought to acquaint the teaching elders with the state of the
+flock, as to their knowledge, conditions, and temptations, which
+may be of singular use unto them, for their direction in the
+exercise of their ministry. The liberal contributions at Antioch
+for the brethren which dwelt in Judea, were sent by the hands of
+Barnabas and Saul unto the elders in Judea, Acts xi. 27, 30.</p>
+<p>7th. To unite with teaching elders in admitting members into the
+fellowship of the church, upon a visible evidence of their being
+qualified as the Scriptures direct. Unto them God bath given the
+keys of the kingdom of heaven, to open the door of admission unto
+those whom God hath received, Matt. xvi. 19.</p>
+<p>8th. To meet and consult with the teaching elders about such
+things of importance as are to be proposed to the members of the
+church for their consent. Hence nothing rash or indigested, nothing
+unsuited to the duty of the church, will at any time be proposed
+therein, so as to give occasion for contests, janglings, or
+disputes, contrary to order or decency, but all things may be
+preserved in a due regard unto the gravity and authority of the
+rulers.</p>
+<p>9th. To sit in judgment upon offenders, to take the proof, to
+weigh the evidence and determine accordingly, justifying the
+innocent, and ordaining censure to be inflicted on the convicted
+brother, according to the nature of the offence, Matt. xviii. 15,
+17, 18.</p>
+<p>10th. Whereas there is generally but one teaching elder in a
+church, upon his death or removal, it is the work and duty of the
+ruling elders to preserve the church in peace and unity, to take
+care of the continuation of its public ordinances, to prevent
+irregularities in any persons or parties among them, and to give
+all necessary aid and advice in the choice and call of some other
+meet person to be their pastor, in the room of the deceased or
+removed.</p>
+<a name="2H_CONC"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>CONCLUSION.</h2>
+<h3><i>A Summary of the preceding Treatise on Church
+Government,</i></h3>
+<h4>BY QUESTION AND ANSWER.</h4>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What is meant by church government?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. That particular form and order, which Christ has
+fixed in his Church, for the proper management thereof.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear that there is a particular form
+of government appointed in the New Testament Church?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. As there is as great, if not greater, need of a
+government, in the New Testament Church, than there was in the Old,
+all the ordinances of which were most minutely described. Satan is
+now more experienced in deceiving, and his agents are still alive,
+and very actively employed, in attempting to waste and destroy this
+sacred vineyard, if without its proper hedge. Her members are still
+a mixture of tares and wheat; of sheep and goats: so that there is
+still a necessity of discerning between the precious and the vile;
+of trying and censuring false teachers; and of guarding divine
+ordinances from contempt and pollution. As Jesus gives the New
+Testament Church the peculiar title of the <i>kingdom of
+heaven</i>, he could not, in a consistency with his wisdom, leave
+it without any particular laws or form of government, except the
+changeable inclinations of men. As he was faithful in his New
+Testament house, he must fix a particular form of government for
+her, such as tends to her peace, order, and spiritual edification.
+And, amidst the prophet's vision of the New Testament Church, he is
+directed to teach his people <i>the form of the house, the laws of
+the house</i>, &amp;c., Ezek. xliii. 11.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. When may a particular form of church government be
+said to be of divine right?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. When all the parts thereof are agreeable to
+Scripture precepts; to approved Scripture examples; or are
+deducible by fair Scripture consequences.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear, that Scripture consequences
+are to be admitted to prove any particular truth or doctrine?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Because God has formed man a rational intelligent
+creature, capable of searching out the plain meaning and import,
+and also the necessary consequences of his express declarations. We
+find Christ reasoning by a deduction of consequences, when he
+showed that the doctrine of the resurrection was revealed to Moses
+at the burning bush; that the sixth commandment forbids angry
+words; and the seventh lascivious looks, Luke xx. 37, 38; Matt. v.
+21, 28. And a great part of the inspired epistles to the Romans,
+Galatians, and Hebrews consists in such a deduction of
+consequences. And as all Scripture is said to be profitable "for
+doctrine, for reproof, for correction, and for instruction in
+righteousness," 2 Tim. iii. 16, without a rational deduction of
+consequences, every portion of Scripture cannot answer each of
+these valuable ends.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What particular form of church government may lay
+the only proper claim to a divine right, according to the Holy
+Scriptures?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. The true presbyterian form, without that lordly
+dominion and tyrannical power, which has too often been exercised
+by courts, bearing this name. This government claimeth no power
+over men's bodies or estates. It does not inflict civil pains or
+corporal punishments. But it is a government purely spiritual,
+dealing with the consciences of men, and exercising the keys of the
+kingdom of heaven, doing all things according to the word of
+God.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the parts of presbyterial church
+government?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. It consists of a people, having the qualifications
+which the Scriptures require; of certain rulers, who are to perform
+the duties of their respective offices; and of certain courts, in
+which these rulers sit and act in matters of judgment.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the qualifications of persons who
+constitute the private members of the visible church?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. They ought to be true believers in Christ, to have a
+competent knowledge of the doctrines of the gospel, to make a sound
+profession of their faith, and to maintain a holy conversation.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What rulers are there in the presbyterian
+church?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Preaching elders, ruling elders, and deacons.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for the preaching
+elder?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. In the Holy Scriptures we find that God hath set
+some in the Church, TEACHERS: that our ascended Redeemer hath given
+her PASTORS and TEACHERS: that the Holy Ghost had made some
+BISHOPS, OVERSEERS, to feed her; and qualifies some for
+<i>prophecy, ministry, teaching, exhortation</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 28;
+Eph. iv. 11; Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 6-8.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the duties of preaching elders?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. To preach the word; to dispense the ordinances of
+baptism and the Lord's Supper; to administer church discipline; and
+to rule and govern the church, 2 Tim. iv. 2; Matt. xxviii. 19; 1
+Cor. xi. 23-29; 1 Tim. v. 20; Tit. ii. 15, and iii. 10; Heb. xiii.
+17; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. <i>Quest</i>. Is the office of the gospel
+minister instituted by God to continue to the end of time?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Yes; the ends of it are of a permanent nature, the
+converting and confirming of the elect, and the silencing of
+gain-savers, Acts xxvi. 18; Tit. i. 9, 11.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for the office of the
+ruling elder?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. From the three following passages of sacred
+Scripture: 1. From Rom. xii. 5 to 8: "We being many are one body in
+Christ, and members one of another. Having then gifts, differing
+according to the grace that is given to us, whether prophecy, let
+us prophesy according to the proportion of faith; or ministry, let
+us wait on our ministering; or he that teacheth, on teaching; or he
+that exhorteth, on exhortation; he that giveth, let him do it with
+simplicity; he that ruleth, with diligence," &amp;c. Here we have a
+list of the ordinary officers of Christ, one body, the church. Here
+is the teacher: <i>he that teacheth</i>. Here is the pastor: <i>he
+that exhorteth</i>. Here is the deacon: <i>he that giveth</i>. And
+here is another officer distinct from all them, <i>he that
+ruleth</i>. His description attests, that <i>ruling</i> is, if not
+his only, yet his principal work. He that <i>ruleth</i> is here
+marked by a distinct character, as having a different <i>gift</i>,
+and a distinct work from his fellow-officers. This office therefore
+must be <i>distinct</i>. 2. From 1 Cor. xii. 28, where the
+<i>Spirit of God</i> informs us, that God hath set some in the
+Church, GOVERNMENTS. These must be understood of <i>governors</i>,
+as <i>miracles</i> are afterwards explained of <i>workers of
+miracles</i>. These governments and governors are said to be
+<i>set</i> in the church, not in the state; by God, not by men:
+they are declared to be distinct officers by themselves. Their
+title, government, implies, that <i>ruling</i> is their principal
+work. 3. From 1 Tim. v. 17, where the divine warrant for ruling
+elders shines with more peculiar brightness than anywhere in the
+book of God: "Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of
+double honor; especially they who labor in the word and doctrine."
+The ruling elders here mentioned necessarily pertain to the church.
+Two sorts of ruling elders are here plainly distinguished: some
+that only rule well; others that also labor in word and doctrine.
+There is not one place in the New Testament, nor perhaps in any
+Greek author, where the word here translated ESPECIALLY does not
+distinguish between different persons or things, Gal. vi. 10; Phil.
+iv. 22; 1 Tim. iv. 10; 2 Tim. iv. 13; and it would be absurd to
+suppose, that it does not distinguish here also. Therefore this
+single text shows the divine right of both the teaching and ruling
+elder.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the duties of ruling elders?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. To exercise ecclesiastical rule in church courts
+with the same authority as the preaching elder; to watch over the
+flock; impartially to receive or exclude members; to warn and
+censure the unruly; and to visit and pray with the sick.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for deacons?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. From Acts vi., where we are informed of the original
+and design of their office; and from 1 Tim. iii. 8-12, where the
+inspired apostle describes their necessary qualifications.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the duties of deacons?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. To look into the state and to serve the tables of
+the poor, by distributing the funds of the church, according to the
+respective necessities of the saints, 1 Tim. iii. 12.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What are the courts in which presbyterian rulers
+meet?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Congregational sessions, presbyteries, and
+synods.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for congregational
+sessions?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. From Matt, xviii. 15-18, where, in the Christian
+form of church discipline prescribed by the Church's Head, the
+concluding expression, "Let him be unto thee as a heathen man and
+publican," plainly alludes to the Jewish form of procedure in
+scandals. They had rulers, and consequently courts in every
+synagogue, or worshipping congregation, Mark v. 35-39. By virtue of
+letters from the high-priest to these, Saul had free access to
+punish the Christians in every synagogue, Acts ix. 1, 2. To these
+congregational courts it pertained to cast out of the synagogue,
+and to order transgressors to be held for heathen men and
+publicans, John ix. 22. Now Jesus, in alluding to these, intimates
+that similar courts should be in every Christian congregation. In
+this form of discipline our divine Saviour shows his utmost
+aversion against private offences being unnecessarily published
+abroad: and therefore the church, to which the offence is to be
+told, after private admonition is fruitless, must be understood in
+the most private sense of the word. The following context evidences
+that it is a <i>church</i>, which may consist only of <i>two or
+three</i> met together in Christ's name; yet, notwithstanding, a
+church having power to bind and loose from censure; that is, a
+church having the keys of the kingdom of heaven. It cannot then be
+the whole congregation or body of the people, as they are in
+general far too numerous to conceal offences, and to them Christ
+has given no formal judicial power, Matt. xviii. 18-21.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for a presbytery?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Timothy is expressly said to be ordained by the
+laying on of the hands of the PRESBYTERY, 1 Tim. iv. 14. And the
+number of different Christian congregations governed by one
+presbytery, as at Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, proves
+the divine right of this court. It is shown in the xiii. chapter of
+the preceding treatise, that in each of these places there were
+more Christians than could meet in one worshipping congregation,
+for the enjoying of public ordinances: and yet all these different
+congregations, at Jerusalem, are expressly said to have been one
+church, Acts viii. 1: so those at Antioch, Acts xiii. 1: so those
+at Ephesus, Acts xx. 17: and those also at Corinth, 1 Cor. i. 2.
+Now the question is, How were the different congregations in each
+of these places ONE CHURCH? Not merely in union to Christ and
+mutual affection one to another; for in this respect all the saints
+are ONE, whether in heaven or in earth. And therefore they are one
+church in virtue of conjunct government under ONE PRESBYTERY. And
+in difficult cases, or where a single congregation is so divided
+into parties that it cannot act impartially; where the difference
+is between the pastor and the people, a superior court is necessary
+to obtain material justice.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Where is the divine warrant for an ecclesiastical
+synod?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. In Acts xv. and xvi., where we have a cause
+referred; the proper members of a synod convened; the ordinary and
+equal power exercised by all those members; the ordinary method of
+procedure in such courts; and the judicial decrees given by the
+synod; together with the effect which their judgment, in this
+matter, had upon the churches.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What was the cause referred to this synod?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. False doctrine propagated by some Judaizing
+teachers, who had gone down from Jerusalem to Antioch, and
+maintained that circumcision and the observance of other branches
+of the ceremonial law continued necessary for salvation, whereby
+they subverted some, and troubled other members of the churches
+there. After much unsuccessful disputing, Paul, Barnabas, and
+others were delegated to go up to Jerusalem to the apostles and
+elders about this matter.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Who were the proper members of the synod convened
+here?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. The apostles and elders at Jerusalem; Paul,
+Barnabas, and others, from Antioch; and other commissioners from
+the troubled churches to whom the decrees were sent.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. Are not the brethren, the church, the whole
+church, mentioned here as well as the apostles and elders?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. But none of these expressions can mean, that all the
+members of the church of Jerusalem either were present or judged in
+that synod; for women, real members of the church, of the whole
+church, are expressly forbid to speak in the church, 1 Cor. xiv.
+34. Church sometimes signifies only a small part of the church,
+either as delegates or commissioners, and in this sense it is used
+in verse 3, where the commissioners from Antioch are said to be
+brought on their way by the <i>church</i>; and in chap. xviii. 22,
+it is said that Paul saluted the <i>church</i> at Jerusalem. Now,
+it is not credible that all the Christian professors at Antioch
+would attend their commissioners a part of the way to Jerusalem; or
+that Paul saluted the many ten thousand Christians at Jerusalem,
+Acts xxi. 20. And the <i>whole church</i> does not necessarily mean
+the whole individual members of the church, more than the <i>whole
+world</i> mentioned, 1 John ii. 2, means every individual in the
+world. If any, to support a favorite opinion, will still insist
+that the whole members of the church actually met and judged of
+this affair equally with the apostles and elders, they may inform
+us where they obtained a proper place for so many judges to reason
+and determine with distinctness or order. That the brethren who
+joined in judgment with the apostles and elders were not private
+persons, but rather delegates from the troubled churches around,
+appears from Judas and Silas, two of them being preachers, v.
+22.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear that the power of all the
+members was ordinary and equal?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. As every member, inspired or not, acted equally in
+the whole business laid before them. Paul and Barnabas were
+delegated by the church of Antioch: and the elders, who convened,
+had the same power as the apostles. To the elders, teaching or
+ruling, as well as to the apostles, was the matter referred: both
+met to consider of it: both were equally concerned in the decision,
+saying, <i>It seemed good to the Holy Ghost and to us</i>. Elders,
+as well as apostles, imposed the necessary things upon the
+churches, and authoritatively determined the decrees. In the name
+of the elders, as well as of the apostles, the letters of the
+meeting, containing their decision, were written to the churches.
+And the only reason why the inspired members put themselves on an
+equality with others was to exhibit a pattern to after ages.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear, that this synod followed the
+ordinary method of procedure in such courts?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. As they examined the cause by much reasoning and
+dispute. In consequence of mature deliberation they determined the
+question, and sent letters, containing their decrees, by proper
+messengers, to the churches concerned. In their disputation they
+reasoned from the oracles of God: on these they founded their
+decision; and hence therein they say, <i>It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost, and to us</i>. And if this had not been to have given a
+pattern to succeeding ages, all this was unnecessary: how absurd
+for inspired men to reason and dispute on the subject, when the
+sentence of one inspired was sufficient for decision!</p>
+
+<p><i>Quest</i>.
+How does it appear that there were judicial decrees given by this
+synod?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. In opposition to the false doctrine taught, they, by
+a judicial decision, plainly declared, that obedience to the
+ceremonies of the law of Moses was no longer necessary: and by a
+decree for promoting decency and good order, they enacted, that to
+avoid offence, the believing Gentiles should abstain from
+fornication, from things strangled, and from blood, verse
+24-29.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What effect had the decision of this synod upon
+the churches?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. They cheerfully submitted to these <i>decrees</i>,
+and were by them conformed in the faith, comforted in heart, and
+increased in number daily, Acts xv. 31, and xvi. 4, 5.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. But might not this be a meeting merely for
+consultation, and their decision a mere advice?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. No: for every word here used imports authority. The
+word translated <i>lay upon</i>, commonly signifies an
+authoritative imposition, Matt. xxiii. 4. The decision is expressly
+called a <i>necessary burden</i>, and <i>decrees ordained</i>,
+which imply power and authority, Acts xv. 16, xvii. 7.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear that inferior courts are
+subordinate to those that are superior; sessions to presbyteries,
+and presbyteries to synods?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. The true light of nature (which is proved, chap,
+iii., to be one of those ways, whereby a thing is of divine right)
+teacheth us, that, if we be injured by an inferior court, we may
+appeal to a higher court for redress, if there be one. As in the
+Jewish church there was evidently a subordination of judicatories,
+so that those injured in the synagogue might appeal to the
+Sanhedrin, Deut. xvii. 8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8, 11; Exod. xviii. 22,
+26; Ps. cxxii. 5: therefore as our dangers, difficulties, and
+necessities are as great as theirs, by reason of false teachers and
+corrupt doctrines, which were foretold should appear in the last
+times, 1 Tim. iv. 1; 2 Pet. ii. 1; we cannot, without dishonor to
+Christ, suppose that he would deprive us of a proper remedy for
+redressing our grievances, which was afforded unto them:&mdash;the
+gradual advance in managing offences prescribed by Christ himself,
+Matt. xviii. 19, as his care for the whole church cannot be less
+than for a single member. If then an inferior judicatory offend or
+injure us, we ought to carry the matter to another that has more
+influence and authority. If the offending judicatory neglect to
+hear this, we ought to tell the offence to the church in the
+highest sense, that redress may be obtained&mdash;the apostle Paul
+declaring, <i>that the spirits of the prophets are subject to the
+prophets</i>. But the right of reference or appeal from an inferior
+to a superior court is most clearly evinced from the case of the
+presbytery of Antioch, respecting circumcision, being referred for
+decision to the synod of Jerusalem, and their readily submitting to
+its determination, Acts xv.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. How does it appear that no power of authority is
+lodged in the body of the people, the private members of the
+church?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. Although every church member has a right to all the
+spiritual privileges purchased with the Saviour's blood, and given
+to the church, as need requires; although he has a right to try the
+spirits, and to prove all things by the word of God; a power to
+choose the church officers who are immediately to rule over him;
+yet the Holy Scriptures allow the exercise of no official power to
+the private members of the church. Not the Christian people, but
+their pastors have power to preach the gospel, Rom. x. 15; and to
+administer the sacraments, those mysteries of God, which are
+connected with preaching, 1 Cor. iv. 1; Matt. xxviii. 19. Not the
+people, but their rulers, are divinely warranted. Timothy was
+ordained, not by the people, but by the presbytery: elders, not by
+the people, but by Paul and Barnabas: and deacons, not by the
+people, but by the apostles, 1 Tim. iv. 14; Acts xiv. 23, and vi.
+3, 6. Not the people, but their rulers are to censure the
+scandalous, and to absolve the penitent, Matt. xviii. 18; 1 Cor. v.
+The Scripture nowhere ascribes to the people any such characters as
+imply authority lodged in them; but the contrary. Instead of being
+styled pastors, they are called the <i>flock</i>, watched over and
+fed; instead of overseers, the family overseen; instead of
+<i>rulers, guides, governors</i>, they are called the <i>body</i>
+governed, the persons subject in the Lord, and they are solemnly
+charged to know, honor, obey, and submit to those that are over
+them.</p>
+<p><i>Quest</i>. What is the proper method of dealing with persons
+that fall into scandal?</p>
+<p><i>Ans</i>. If the offence be known only to one or to a few, the
+offender is to be told his fault secretly, with Christian meekness,
+plainness, and love. If he profess his sorrow and resolution to
+amend, the whole matter ought to be carefully concealed; and those
+offended ought to be well pleased that their offending brother is
+gained. If, after one or more secret reproofs, he continue
+impenitent, defending his fault, one or two more Christian
+brethren, grave, judicious, and meek, are to be taken along, and
+the offender to be dealt with by them, and in their presence. If
+now he appear to repent, the several persons concerned in his
+reproof are, with care and in love, to conceal his offence, lest,
+by divulging it, they be reproached as wicked calumniators. If the
+offender contemn one or more such private admonitions or reproofs,
+or if his scandal be of such a nature that it will necessarily
+become public, the affair is to be told to the church court, to
+which he is most immediately subject. And, to bring him to a due
+sense of his fault, he is to be there dealt with in a prudent,
+affectionate, plain, and convincing manner. If this prove a means
+of bringing him to a sense of his offence, the censures of the
+church are to be executed upon him according to the laws of
+Christ's house, and the nature of his crime, and he is to be
+restored to the privileges of the church. But if, after due pains
+taken by the judicatories, he remain obstinate, he is then to be
+cast out of the church, and held as a heathen man and publican,
+Matt. xviii. 15 to 18.</p>
+<center>THE END.</center>
+<hr>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<a name="H_FOOT2"><!-- H2 anchor --></a>
+<div style="height: 4em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+<h2>FOOTNOTES:</h2>
+<a name="note-117"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>117</u> [ The substance of this Number is
+extracted from Ford's Gospel Church, printed 1675.]</p>
+<a name="note-118"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>118</u> [ John xvi. 8, 9; 2 Cor. v. 5; Eph. ii.
+1, 5.]</p>
+<a name="note-119"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>119</u> [ Col. ii. 6; 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.]</p>
+<a name="note-120"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>120</u> [ Col. i. 12.]</p>
+<a name="note-121"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>121</u> [ 1 Pet. ii. 5.]</p>
+<a name="note-122"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>122</u> [ From Brown's Letters.]</p>
+<a name="note-123"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>123</u> [ Extracted from the Christian Magazine
+for Sept. 1797&mdash;a periodical publication well worth the
+perusal of the friends of evangelical doctrine.]</p>
+<a name="note-124"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>124</u> [ From Brown's Letters.]</p>
+<a name="note-125"><!--Note--></a>
+<p class="foot"><u>125</u> [ This number is a summary of Dr. Owen's
+arguments in favor of the divine right of the ruling elder, with an
+abstract of the duties which he ought to perform. Although the
+Doctor was a professed Independent, yet he was entirely different,
+both in doctrine and church government, from any in Scotland that
+bear that name, as all who are acquainted with his works will
+easily observe. The writer of his life asserts that he heard him
+say, "He could readily join with presbytery as it was exercised in
+Scotland." And indeed it appears very probable that the difference
+between the consultative synod which he allows, and the
+authoritative synod contended for by true Presbyterians, is not so
+far different as many apprehend, because the decisions of either
+bind the conscience only as they are agreeable to the Holy Ghost
+speaking in the Scriptures.]</p>
+<div style="height: 6em;"><br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br>
+<br></div>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Divine Right of Church Government
+by Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH ***
+
+***** This file should be named 13941-h.htm or 13941-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ https://www.gutenberg.org/1/3/9/4/13941/
+
+Produced by Jordan Dohms and the PG Online Distributed Proofreading Team.
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+https://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at https://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit https://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
+donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ https://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+</pre>
+
+</body>
+</html>
+
diff --git a/old/13941.txt b/old/13941.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..fb61d95
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/13941.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,12707 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Divine Right of Church Government
+by Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: The Divine Right of Church Government
+
+Author: Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+Release Date: November 3, 2004 [EBook #13941]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Jordan Dohms and the PG Online Distributed Proofreading Team.
+
+
+
+
+THE
+
+DIVINE RIGHT
+
+OF
+
+CHURCH GOVERNMENT:
+
+WHEREIN IT IS PROVED
+
+THAT THE PRESBYTERIAN GOVERNMENT, BY PREACHING AND RULING ELDERS, IN
+SESSIONAL, PRESBYTERIAL, AND SYNODICAL ASSEMBLIES, MAY LAY THE ONLY
+LAWFUL CLAIM TO A DIVINE RIGHT, ACCORDING TO THE HOLY SCRIPTURES.
+
+A NEW EDITION, CORRECTED AND AMENDED.
+
+ * * * * *
+BY SUNDRY MINISTERS OF CHRIST WITHIN THE
+CITY OF LONDON.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+TO WHICH IS ADDED
+
+AN APPENDIX,
+
+CONTAINING
+
+EXTRACTS FROM SOME OF THE BEST AUTHORS WHO HAVE WRITTEN ON CHURCH
+GOVERNMENT,
+
+CONCERNING THE SCRIPTURAL QUALIFICATIONS AND DUTIES OF CHURCH MEMBERS;
+THE SOLE RIGHT OF GOSPEL MINISTERS TO PREACH THE GOSPEL; THE PEOPLE'S
+DIVINE RIGHT TO CHOOSE THEIR OWN PASTORS;
+
+TOGETHER WITH
+
+AN ABSTRACT OF THE ARGUMENTS OF THE GREAT DR. OWEN (THOUGH A PROFESSED
+INDEPENDENT) IN FAVOUR OF THE DIVINE RIGHT OF THE OFFICE OF THE RULING
+ELDER.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+NEW YORK: R. MARTIN & CO., 26 JOHN-STREET.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+M.DCCC.XLIV.
+
+
+
+
+THE EDITOR TO THE READER.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+After what the authors of the following Treatise have said in their
+preface, the Editor judges it unnecessary for him to detain the reader
+long with any observations of his upon the subject. He, however, could
+sincerely wish that the friends of Christ would pay that attention to
+the government and discipline of his Church which it justly deserves.
+Although this subject should not be placed among the things essential to
+the being of a Christian; yet if it be found among the things that
+Christ has commanded, it is at our peril if we continue wilfully
+ignorant of, or despise it. He has expressly declared, that he who
+breaks one of the _least_ of his commandments, and teacheth men to do
+so, shall be called least in the kingdom of heaven. It is an opinion too
+common, that if we believe the _essentials_ of religion, there is no
+occasion for so much preciseness about the forms of church government,
+which are only _circumstantials_, as there will be no inquiry made about
+these at the tribunal of Christ. But whatever relative importance the
+things of religion may have, when compared with one another, we ought to
+reckon nothing which God hath appointed, nothing which Jesus hath
+ratified with his blood, nothing which the Holy Spirit hath indited, so
+_circumstantial_, as to be unworthy of our serious regard. It is at
+least very rash, if not presumptuous, to say, that nothing about the
+circumstantials of religion will be inquired into at the tribunal of
+Christ. God has expressly said, that every work, good or evil, every
+idle word, and every deed done in the body, shall be brought into
+judgment; and false worshippers will, perhaps, find that their form of
+worship consisted in something worse than idle words, or sinful words
+either, even in sinful deeds, for which they will be accountable at the
+judgment. As Christ laid down his life for his people, has instructed
+them, and has set a hedge about all that they have, it would be most
+ungrateful to requite him with pouring the highest contempt on his
+kingly honor and authority; and when his worship is polluted, his truth
+perverted, and the walls of his New Testament Zion broken down, to care
+for none of those things. Government and discipline are the hedge of his
+garden, the Church; and how will what men call the essentials of
+religion remain in their glory, when this is broken down, the present
+state of affairs can sufficiently attest, when the most damnable errors
+are propagated with impunity.
+
+In our times the enemies of the scriptural order of the house of God are
+very numerous and very active, exerting all their power to break down
+the carved work of God's sanctuary. The present spirit for novelty and
+innovation, together with the rage for infidelity so prevalent, strongly
+favors the opposition made to every thing which has a tendency to bind
+men closely to God, to his truths, to the purity of his worship and
+ordinances, or to one another by a holy profession. The design,
+therefore, of republishing this Treatise is to assist Presbyterians of
+all denominations in the understanding of those passages of Scripture
+upon which their wall is built, that they be not led aside by the
+cunning speeches of false teachers, whereby they deceive and draw aside
+the hearts of the simple.
+
+This work was first published at London, at the time when the
+controversy between the Presbyterians and ancient Independents ran very
+high, and every intelligent and unprejudiced reader will see, that the
+Holy Scriptures have been carefully perused, accurately compared, wisely
+collected, and judiciously explained, in order to evince that the
+Presbyterian government has the only lawful claim to a divine right, and
+is the only form appointed by Christ in his Church. It is, therefore, to
+be wished, that all his people would endeavor, in the strength of Divine
+grace, to observe the laws of his house, and to walk in all his
+ordinances and commandments blameless.
+
+Considerable pains have been taken to make this edition more easily
+understood by common readers than the former, and yet several difficult
+and hard words have passed unnoticed. The Latin quotations from the
+Fathers have been omitted, because they contain nothing materially
+different from what is in the body of the work, and modern Independents
+pay little regard to any human authorities but their own. It was
+proposed to have added a few extracts from Messrs. Rutherford and
+Gillespie, but upon looking into their works nothing of consequence was
+observed, that tended to cast any new light upon the subject. It is
+hoped, however, that the Appendix is filled up with extracts from other
+authors upon subjects of considerable importance, and very necessary for
+these times, concerning the scriptural qualifications and duties of
+church members; the divine right of the gospel ministry; the people's
+divine right to choose their own pastors; with an abstract of Dr. Owen's
+arguments in favor of the divine right of the ruling elder: and as there
+are many serious Christians who have not a capacity to take up and
+retain a long chain of reasoning, a summary of the whole Treatise is
+given by way of question and answer as a conclusion.
+
+The Editor is not to be understood as approving of, or vindicating every
+single sentiment, or mode of expression, used in this Treatise: at the
+same time, next to the Holy Scriptures, he recommends it as one of the
+best defences of presbytery which he has seen.
+
+That it may be blessed of God for informing the ignorant, settling the
+wavering, and establishing the believers of _the present Truth_, is the
+earnest desire of,
+
+Christian reader,
+
+Your humble servant in the Gospel,
+
+T.H.
+
+_Paisley, 28th February, 1799._
+
+
+
+
+PREFACE
+
+TO THE PIOUS AND JUDICIOUS READER.
+
+
+CHRISTIAN READER:
+
+Thou hast in the ensuing treatise, 1st, a brief delineation of the
+nature of a divine right, wherein it consists, and how many ways a thing
+may be accounted of divine right, according to the Scriptures; as also,
+2d, a plain and familiar description of that church government which
+seems to have the clearest divine right for it, and (of all other
+contended for) to be the most consonant and agreeable to the word of
+Christ; which description (comprehending in itself the whole frame and
+system of the government) is in the several branches thereof explained
+and confirmed by testimonies or arguments from Scripture; more briefly,
+in particulars which are easily granted; more largely, in particulars
+which are commonly controverted; yet as perspicuously and concisely in
+both as the nature of this unusual and comprehensive subject insisted
+upon would permit. Things are handled rather by way of positive
+assertion, than of polemical dissertation, (which too commonly
+degenerates into verbal strifes, 1 Tim. vi. 3, 4; 2 Tim. ii. 23; and
+vain-jangling, 1 Tim. i. 6,) and where any dissenting opinions or
+objections are refuted, we hope it is with that sobriety, meekness, and
+moderation of spirit, that any unprejudiced judgment may perceive, that
+we had rather gain than grieve those who dissent from us; that we
+endeavor rather to heal up than to tear open the rent; and that we
+contend more for truth than for victory.
+
+To the publication hereof we have been inclinable (after much
+importunity) principally upon deliberate and serious consideration of,
+1st, the necessity of a treatise of this kind; 2d, the advantage likely
+to accrue thereupon; and, 3d, the seasonable opportunity of sending it
+abroad at such a time as this is.
+
+I. The necessity of a treatise of this nature, is evident and urgent.
+For,
+
+1. We hold ourselves obliged, not only by the common duty of our
+ministerial calling, but also by the special bond of our solemn
+covenant with God, especially in Art. 1, to bend all our best endeavors
+to help forward a reformation of religion according to the word of God,
+which can never be effected without a due establishment of the
+scripture-government and discipline in the Church of God. And to make
+known what this government is from the law and testimony, by preaching
+or writing, comes properly and peculiarly within the sphere of our place
+and vocation.
+
+2. A cloud of darkness and prejudice, in reference to this matter of
+church government, too generally rests upon the judgments and
+apprehensions of men (yea of God's own people) among us, either, 1st,
+through the difficulty or uncommonness of this matter of church
+government, (though ancient and familiar in other reformed churches, yet
+new and strange to us;) or, 2d, through the strange misrepresentations
+that are made hereof, by those that are small friends to the true
+presbyterial government, or that are enemies to all church government
+whatsoever; or, 3d, through the different opinions about church
+government, which are to be found among pious people and ministers: by
+all which the weak and unstable minds of many are cast into a maze of
+many confused thoughts and irresolutions.
+
+3. Though many learned treatises have been published, some whereof have
+positively asserted, others have polemically vindicated divers parts of
+church government, and the divine right thereof, yet hitherto no
+treatise of this nature is extant, positively laying open the nature of
+a divine right, what it is, and a system of that government, which is
+so, and proving both by the Scriptures; without which, how shall the
+judgments and consciences of men be satisfied, that this is that church
+government, according to the word of God, which they have covenanted to
+endeavor to promote, and whereto they are obliged to submit? And since
+it is our lot to travel in an unbeaten path, we, therefore, promise to
+ourselves, from all sober and judicious readers, the greater candor and
+ingenuity in their measuring of our steps and progress herein.
+
+II. The advantage which may probably accrue hereupon, we hope shall be
+manifold: For, 1. Who can tell but that some of them, that in some
+things are misled and contrary-minded, may be convinced and regained?
+and it will be no small reward of our labors if but one erring brother
+may be brought back. 2. Some satisfaction may redound to such as are of
+doubtful, unresolved minds, by removing of their doubts and scruples,
+and ripening of their resolutions, to settle more safely in point of
+church government. 3. Those that as yet are unseen in the matter of
+church government, or that want money to buy, or leisure to read many
+books upon this subject, may here have much in a little, and
+competently inform themselves of the whole body of the government. 4.
+Consequently upon the attaining of the former ends, the work of
+reformation will be much facilitated and smoothed, the hearts of the
+people being prepared for the Lord and his ordinances. 5. The present
+attempt (if it reach not to that completeness and satisfactoriness which
+is desired) may yet incite some of our brethren of more acute and
+polished judgments to embark themselves in some further discoveries for
+the public benefit of the Church. 6. But though it should fall out that
+in all the former we should be utterly disappointed, we shall have this
+peace and comfort upon our own spirits, that we have not hid our talent
+in the earth, nor neglected to bear witness to this part of Christ's
+truth, touching the government of his Church, by his kingly power,
+wherein Christ was opposed so much in all ages, Psalm ii. 1, 2, 3; Luke
+xix. 14, 27; Acts iv., and for which Christ did suffer so much in a
+special and immediate manner, as[1] some have observed. For this end
+Christ came into the world, (and for this end we came into the
+ministerial calling,) to bear witness to the truth.
+
+III. Finally, the present opportunity of publishing a treatise on this
+subject doth much incite and encourage us therein. For at this time we
+are beginning, in this province of London, (and we hope the whole
+kingdom will, with all convenient speed, and due caution, second us,) to
+put that covenanted church government into actual execution, which we
+have a long time intended in our deliberate resolutions. So that
+generally we shall be engaged in the government one way or other, either
+as acting in it as the church officers, or as submitting to it as church
+members: now, how shall any truly conscientious person, either act in
+it, or conform and submit unto it with faith, judgment, and alacrity,
+till he be in some competent measure satisfied of the divine right
+thereof?
+
+Will mere prudence, without a divine right, be a sufficient basis to
+erect the whole frame of church government upon, as some conceive?
+Prudentials, according to general rules of Scripture, may be of use in
+circumstantials, but will bare prudentials in substantials also satisfy
+either our God, our covenant, our consciences, or our end in this great
+work of reformation? What conscientious person durst have a hand in
+acting as a ruling elder, did he not apprehend the word of God holds
+forth a divine right for the ruling elder? Who durst have a hand in the
+censures of admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the scandalous and
+obstinate, and of restoring the penitent, were there not a divine right
+hereof revealed in the Scripture, &c. Now, therefore, that ruling
+elders, and the rest of the people, may begin this happy work
+conscientiously, judiciously, cheerfully, in some measure perceiving the
+divine right of the whole government, wherein they engage themselves,
+cleared by Scripture, we hope, by God's blessing, that this small tract
+will afford some seasonable assistance, which will be unto us a very
+acceptable recompense.
+
+Thus far of the nature of this treatise, and the grounds of our
+publishing thereof. In the next place, a few doubts or scruples touching
+church government here asserted, being succinctly resolved, we shall
+preface no further.
+
+_Doubt_ 1. Many scruple, and much question the divine right of the whole
+frame of church government; as, 1. Whether there be any particular
+church government of divine right? 2. What that government is? 3. What
+church officers or members of elderships are of divine right? 4. Whether
+parochial or congregational elderships be of divine right? 5. Whether
+classical presbyteries be of divine right? 6. Whether provincial,
+national, and ecumenical assemblies be of divine right? 7. Whether
+appeals from congregational to classical, provincial, national, and
+ecumenical assemblies, and their power to determine upon such appeals,
+be of divine right? 8. Whether the power of censures in the
+congregational eldership, or any other assembly, be of divine right? 9.
+Whether there be any particular rules in the Scripture directing persons
+or assemblies in the exercise of their power? 10. Whether the civil
+magistrates, or their committees' and commissioners' execution of church
+censures be contrary to that way of government which Christ hath
+appointed in his Church?
+
+_Resol_. To all or most of these doubts some competent satisfaction may
+be had from this treatise ensuing, if seriously considered. For, 1. That
+there is a church government of divine right, now under the New
+Testament, declared in Scripture, is proved, Part I. 2. What that
+government is in particular, is evidenced both by the description of
+church government, and the confirmation of the parts thereof by
+Scripture, Part. II. chap. 1, and so to the end of the book: whereby it
+is cleared that the presbyterial government is that particular
+government which is of divine right, according to the word of God. 3.
+What ordinary church officers, (members of the several elderships,) are
+of divine right, is proved, Part II, chap. 11, sect. 1, viz. pastors and
+teachers, with ruling elders. 4. That parochial or congregational
+elderships, consisting of preaching and ruling elders, are of divine
+right, is manifested, Part II. chap. 12. 5. That classical presbyteries,
+or assemblies, and their power in church government, are of divine
+right, is demonstrated, Part II. chap. 13. 6. That synodical assemblies,
+or councils in general, (consequently provincial, national, or
+ecumenical councils in particular,) and their power in church
+government, are of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap. 14. 7. That
+appeals from congregational elderships, to classical and synodical
+assemblies, from lesser to greater assemblies associated, and power in
+those assemblies to determine authoritatively in such, appeals, are of
+divine right, is proved, Part II. chap. 15. 8. That the power of church
+censures is in Christ's own church officers only as the first subject
+and proper receptacle there of divine right, is cleared, Part II. chap.
+11, sect. 2, which officers of Christ have and execute the said power
+respectively, in all the ruling assemblies, congregational, classical,
+or synodical. See section 3, and chap. 12, 13, 14, 15. 9. That the
+Scriptures hold forth, touching church government, not only general, but
+also many particular rules, sufficiently directing both persons and
+assemblies how they should duly put in execution their power of church,
+government. This is made good, Part II. chap. 4; and those that desire
+to know which are these rules in particular, may consult those
+learned[2] centuriators of Magdeburg, who have collected and
+methodically digested, in the very words of the Scripture, a system of
+canons or rules, touching church government, as in the preface to those
+rules they do profess, saying, touching things pertaining to the
+government of the Church, the apostles delivered certain canons, which
+we will add in order, &c., the very heads of which would be too prolix
+to recite. 10. Finally, that neither the supreme civil magistrate, as
+such, nor consequently any commissioner or committees whatsoever,
+devised and erected by his authority, are the proper subject of the
+formal power of church government, nor may lawfully, by any virtue of
+the magistratical office, dispense any ecclesiastical censures or
+ordinances: but that such undertakings are inconsistent with that way of
+government which Christ hath appointed in his Church, is evidenced, Part
+II. chap. 9, well compared with chap. 11.
+
+_Doubt_ 2. But this presbyterial government is likely to be an arbitrary
+and tyrannical government, forasmuch as the presbyters of the assembly
+of divines and others (who, Diotrephes-like, generally affect
+domineering) have desired an unlimited power, according to their own
+judgments and prudence, in excommunicating men from the ordinances in
+cases of scandal.
+
+_Resol_. A heinous charge, could it be proved against the presbyterial
+government. Now for wiping off this black aspersion, consider two
+things, viz: I. The imputation itself, which is unjust and groundless;
+II. The pretended ground hereof, which is false or frivolous.
+
+I. The imputation itself is, that the presbyterial government is likely
+to be an arbitrary and tyrannical government. _Ans_. How unjust this
+aspersion! I. What likelihood of arbitrary conduct in this government,
+that is, that it should be managed and carried on according to men's
+mere will and pleasure? For, 1. The presbyterial government (truly so
+called) is not in the nature of it any invention of man, but an
+ordinance of Christ; nor in the execution of it to be stated by the will
+of man, but only by the sure word of prophecy, the sacred Scriptures.
+This government allows not of one church officer at all; nor of one
+ruling assembly made up of those officers; nor of one censure or act of
+power to be done by any officer or assembly; nor of one ordinance to be
+managed in the Church of God, but what are grounded upon, and warranted
+by the word of God. This government allows no execution of any part
+thereof, neither in substantials, nor circumstantials, but according to
+the particular, or at least, the general rules of Scripture
+respectively. And can that be arbitrary, which is not at all according
+to man's will, but only according to Christ's rule, limiting and
+ordering man's will? Or is not the Scripture a better and safer
+provision against all arbitrary government in the Church, than all the
+ordinances, decrees, statutes, or whatsoever municipal laws in the world
+of man's devising, can be against all arbitrary government in the
+commonwealth? Let not men put out their own eyes, though others would
+cast a mist before them. 2. Who can justly challenge the reformed
+presbyterial churches for arbitrary proceedings in matters of church
+government, practised in some of them for above these fourscore years?
+Or where are their accusers? 3. Why should the presbyterial
+government, to be erected in England, be prejudged as arbitrary, before
+the government be put in execution? When arbitrary conduct appears, let
+the adversaries complain. 4. If any arbitrary conduct hath been
+discovered in any reformed church, or shall fall out in ours, it is or
+shall be more justly reputed the infirmity and fault of the governors,
+than of the government itself.
+
+II. What probability or possibility of tyranny in the presbyterial
+government? For, 1. Who should tyrannize, what persons, what ruling
+assemblies? Not the ministers; for, hitherto they have given no just
+cause of any suspicion, since this government was in hand: and they are
+counterpoised in all assemblies with a plurality of ruling elders, it
+being already studiously[3] provided that there be always two ruling
+elders to one minister: if there be still two to one, how should they
+tyrannize if they would? Neither ministers nor ruling elders are likely
+to tyrannize, if due care be taken by them, whom it doth concern, to
+elect, place, and appoint, conscientious, prudent, and gracious
+ministers and ruling elders over all congregations. Nor yet the ruling
+assemblies, lesser or greater; for in the presbyterial government all
+lesser ruling assemblies (though now at first, perhaps, some of them
+consisting of more weak and less experienced members) are subordinate to
+the greater authoritatively; and persons aggrieved by any
+mal-administrations have liberty to appeal from inferior to superior:
+and the very national assembly itself, though not properly subordinate,
+yet is it to be responsible to the supreme political magistracy in all
+their proceedings so far as subjects and members of the commonwealth.
+
+III. How can they tyrannize over any? Or in what respects? Not over
+their estates: for they claim no secular power at all over men's
+estates, by fines, penalties, forfeitures, or confiscations. Not over
+their bodies, for they inflict no corporal punishment, by banishment,
+imprisonment, branding, slitting, cropping, striking, whipping,
+dismembering, or killing. Not over their souls; for, them they desire by
+this government to gain, Matth. xviii. 15; to edify, 2 Cor. x. 8, and
+xiii. 10; and to save, 1 Cor. v. 5. Only this government ought to be
+impartial and severe against sin, that the flesh may be destroyed, 1
+Cor. v. 5. It is only destructive to corruption, which is deadly and
+destructive to the soul. Thus the imputation itself of arbitrary conduct
+and tyranny to the presbyterial government is unjust and groundless.
+
+II. The pretended ground of this aspersion is false and frivolous. The
+presbyters of the Assembly of Divines, and others (_Diotrephes_-like,
+affecting pre-eminence) have desired an unlimited power, according to
+their own prudence and judgment, in keeping men from the ordinances in
+cases of scandal not enumerated. _Ans_. 1. The presbyters of the
+Assembly and others, are so far from the domineering humor of
+Diotrephes, that they could gladly and heartily have quitted all
+intermeddling in church government, if Jesus Christ had not by office
+engaged them thereto; only to have dispensed the word and sacraments
+would have procured them less hatred, and more case. 2. They desired
+liberty to keep from the ordinances, not only persons guilty of the
+scandals enumerated, but of all such like scandals, (and to judge which
+are those scandals, not according to their minds unlimitedly, but
+according to the mind of Christ in his word, more sure than all
+ordinances or acts of Parliament in the world.) And was this so hideous
+a desire? This liberty was desired, not for themselves, but for
+well-constituted elderships. As great power was granted by the very
+service-book to every single curate; (see the Rubric before the
+communion.) A perfect enumeration and description of scandals can be
+made in no book but in the Scriptures; and when all is done, must we not
+refer thither? All scandals are punishable, as well as any, and to
+inflict penalties on some, and not on others as bad or worse, is
+inexcusable partiality. Why should not presbyteries duly constituted,
+especially the greater, be accounted, at least, as faithful,
+intelligent, prudent, and every way as competent judges of what is
+scandal, and what not, according to the Scriptures, and that without
+arbitrary conduct and tyranny, as any civil court, committees, or
+commissioners whatsoever? Ruling church assemblies are intrusted with
+the whole government in the church, consequently with this, and every
+part. The best reformed churches allow to their presbyteries power to
+keep from the ordinances scandalous persons, not only for scandals
+enumerated, but for scandals of like nature not enumerated, with some
+general clause or other, as may appear in eight several churches,
+according to the allegations here in the foot-note;[4] and, therefore,
+no new thing is desired, but what is commonly practised in the reformed
+churches, whom we should imitate so far as they lead us on towards
+purity and perfection.
+
+_Doubt_ 3. But the independent government seems to be a far more
+excellent way, and it is embraced by many godly and precious people and
+ministers.
+
+_Ans_. 1. What true excellency is there at all in the whole independent
+government, save only in those particulars wherein it agrees with the
+presbyterial government; and only so far as it is presbyterial?
+Therefore, the presbyterial government is equally, yea, primarily and
+principally excellent. Wherein is the excellency of the independent way
+of government? 1st. Have they only those officers which Christ himself
+hath appointed, pastors and teachers, ruling elders and deacons? So the
+Presbyterians. 2d. Have they those spiritual censures, of admonishing,
+excommunicating, and receiving again into communion, which Christ
+ordained in his Church, for guarding his ordinances, and well guiding of
+the flock? So the Presbyterians. 3d. Have they congregational
+presbyteries duly elected, and constituted for the exercise of all acts
+of government, proper and necessary for their respective congregations?
+So the Presbyterians. 4th. Have they liberty of electing their own[5]
+officers, pastors, elders, and deacons? So the Presbyterians. 5th. Have
+they power to keep the whole lump of the Church from being leavened, and
+purely to preserve the ordinances of Christ, from pollution and
+profanation, &c.? So the Presbyterians, &c. So that whereinsoever the
+independent government is truly excellent, the presbyterial government
+stands in a full equipage and equality of excellence.
+
+II. What one true excellence is there in the whole independent
+government in any one point, wherein it really differs from the
+presbyterial government? Take for instance a few points of difference.
+
+_In the independent government._
+
+ No other visible Church of Christ is acknowledged, but only a single
+ congregational meeting in one place to partake of all ordinances.
+
+ The matter of their visible Church must be to their utmost judgment
+ of discerning such as have true grace, real saints.
+
+ Their churches are gathered out of other true visible churches of
+ Christ, without any leave or consent of pastor or flock; yea,
+ against their wills, receiving such as tender themselves, yea, too
+ often by themselves or others, directly or indirectly seducing
+ disciples after them.
+
+ Preaching elders are only elected, not ordained.
+
+ Ruling elders also preach.
+
+ The subject of church government is the community of the faithful.
+
+ The church officers act immediately as the servants of the church,
+ and deputed thereby.
+
+ All censures and acts of government are dispensed in single
+ congregations ultimately, independently, without all liberty of
+ appeal from them to any superior church assembly; so the parties
+ grieved are left without remedy.
+
+ There are acknowledged no authoritative classes or synods, in
+ common, great, difficult cases, and in matters of appeals, but only
+ suasive and consultative; and in case advice be not followed, they
+ proceed only to a non-communion.
+
+
+_In the presbyterial government._
+
+ One general visible Church of Christ on earth is acknowledged, and
+ all particular churches; and single congregations are but as similar
+ parts of that whole.
+
+ The matter of the Church invisible are only true believers, but of
+ the Church visible persons professing true faith in Christ, and
+ obedience to him according to the rules of the Gospel.
+
+ Parochial churches are received as true visible churches of Christ,
+ and most convenient for mutual edification. Gathering churches out
+ of churches, hath no footsteps in Scripture; is contrary to
+ apostolical practice; is the scattering of churches, the daughter of
+ schism, the mother of confusion, but the stepmother to edification.
+
+ Preaching elders are both elected and ordained.
+
+ Ruling elders only rule, preach not, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+
+ The subject of church government is only Christ's own church
+ officers.
+
+ The church governors act immediately as the servants of Christ, and
+ as appointed by him.
+
+ All censures and acts of government are dispensed in congregational
+ presbyteries subordinately, dependently, with liberty of appeal in
+ all cases to presbyterial or synodal assemblies; where parties
+ grieved have sufficient remedy.
+
+ There are acknowledged, and with happy success used, not only
+ suasive and consultative; but also authoritative classes and synods,
+ in cases of great importance, difficulty, common concernment, or
+ appeals; which have power to dispense all church censures, as need
+ shall require.
+
+Let these and such like particulars in the independent way, differing
+from the presbyterial, be duly pondered, and then let the impartial and
+indifferent reader judge, whether they be not the deformities, at least
+the infirmities of that way.
+
+III. How many true excellences are there in the way of the presbyterial
+government, wherein it utterly surpasses the independent government!
+Read but the particulars of the former parallel in the presbyterial
+government, and then consider how far this transcends, yea, how the
+independent government is indeed no government at all, to the
+presbyterial government; wherein is to be found such ample provision,
+and that according to the word of God, for comely order against
+confusion; for peace and unity of the Church against schism and
+division; for truth of the faith against all error and heresy; for piety
+and unblamableness against all impiety and scandal of conversation; for
+equity and right against all mal-administrations, whether ignorant,
+arbitrary, or tyrannical; for the honor and purity of all Christ's
+ordinances against all contempt, pollution, and profanation; for
+comfort, quickening, and encouragement of the saints in all the ways of
+Christ; and consequently for the honor of God and our Lord Jesus Christ
+in all the mysterious services of his spiritual sanctuary: all which
+rich advantages, how impossible is it they should ever be found in the
+independent government so long as it continues independent? And what
+though some pious minister and people embrace the independent way! This
+dazzles not the eyes of the intelligent, but of the infirm; we are to be
+regulated by Scripture warrant, not by human examples. The best of
+saints have failed in the ecclesiastical affairs; what a sharp
+contention was there between Paul and Barnabas, Acts xv. 39, &c.; what a
+dangerous dissimulation was there in Peter, the Jews, and Barnabas! Gal.
+ii. 11, 12, 13, &c.; and, therefore, it is not safe, prudent, or
+conscientious, to imitate all the examples of the best, and yet how few
+are those that have engaged themselves in the independent way, in
+comparison to the multitude of precious ministers and people, inferior
+to them neither in parts, learning, piety, nor any other spiritual gift,
+who are for the presbyterial way of church government! Notwithstanding,
+let all the true Israel of God constantly follow, not the doubtful
+practices of unglorified saints, but the written pleasure of the most
+glorious King of saints; and as many as walk according to this rule,
+peace shall be on them, and upon the Israel of God.
+
+
+
+
+THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH GOVERNMENT.
+
+PART I.
+
+OF THE NATURE OF A DIVINE RIGHT: AND HOW MANY WAYS A THING MAY BE OF
+DIVINE RIGHT.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I.
+
+_That there is a Government in the Church of_ DIVINE RIGHT _now under
+the New Testament._
+
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath _the government_ (both of the Church, and
+of all things for the Church) laid _upon his shoulder_, Isa. ix. 6, and
+to that end hath _all power in heaven and earth given to him_, Matth.
+xxviii. 18, John v. 22, Ephes. i. 22. But lapsed man (being full of
+pride, Psal. x. 2, 4, and enmity against the law of God, Rom. viii. 7)
+is most impatient of all government of God and of Christ, Ps. ii. 1, 2,
+3, with Luke xix. 14, 27; whence it comes to pass, that the _governing_
+and _kingly power_ of Christ hath been opposed in all ages, and
+especially in this of ours, by quarrelsome queries, wrangling disputes,
+plausible pretences, subtle policies, strong self-interests, and mere
+violent wilfulness of many in England, even after they are brought under
+the _oath of God to reform church government according to the word of
+God_. Yet it will be easily granted _that there should be a government
+in the Church of God_, otherwise the Church would become a mere _Babel_
+and _chaos_ of confusion, and be in a far worse condition than all human
+societies in the whole world: and _that some one church government is
+much to be preferred before another, yea, before all other_; as being
+most desirable in itself, and most suitable to this state; otherwise,
+why is the _Prelatical_ government rejected, that another and a better
+may be erected instead thereof? But the pinch lies in this, _Whether
+there be any government in the Church visible of divine right?_ And, if
+so, _which of those church governments_ (which lay claim to a divine
+right for their foundation) _may be most clearly evinced by the
+Scriptures to be of_ divine right _indeed?_ If the former be
+convincingly affirmed, the fancy of the _Erastians_ and _semi-Erastians_
+of these things will vanish, that deny all government to the Church
+distinct from that of the civil magistrate. If the latter be solidly
+proved by Scripture, it will appear, whether the _monarchical
+government_ of the pope and prelates; or the _mere democratical
+government_ of all the people in an equal level of authority, as among
+the Brownists; or the _mixed democratical government_ of both elders and
+people within their own single congregation only, without all
+subordination of Assemblies, and benefit of appeals, as among the
+Independents; or rather the _pure representative government_ of the
+presbytery or church rulers only, chosen by the people, in subordination
+to superior synodical assemblies, and with appeals thereto, as it is
+among the Presbyterians, be that peculiar government which Jesus Christ
+hath left unto his church, by divine right, and in comparison of which
+all others are to be rejected.
+
+To draw things therefore to a clear and speedy issue about the divine
+right of church government, let this general proposition be laid down--
+
+_The Scriptures declare, That there is a government of_ DIVINE RIGHT _in
+the visible Church of Christ now under the New Testament._
+
+This is evident, 1 Cor. xii. 28, _God hath set some in the Church,
+first, Apostles, secondly, Prophets, thirdly, Teachers--Helps,
+Governments;_ in which place these things are plain: 1. That here the
+Apostle speaks of the visible Church: for he had formerly spoken of
+visible gifts and _manifestations of the Spirit given to profit this_
+Church _withal_, ver. 7 to 12. He also compares this Church of God to a
+visible organical body, consisting of many visible members, ver. 12, 13,
+&c. And in this 28th verse he enumerates the visible officers of this
+Church. 2. That here the Apostle speaks of one general visible Church;
+for he saith not _churches_, but _church_, in the singular number, that
+is, of one; besides, he speaks here of the Church in such a latitude as
+to comprehend in itself all gifts of the Spirit, all members, and all
+officers, both extraordinary and ordinary, which cannot be meant of the
+church of Corinth, or any one particular church, but only of that one
+general Church on earth. 3. That this general visible Church here meant,
+is the Church of Christ now under the New Testament, and not under the
+Old Testament; for he mentions here the New Testament officers only,
+ver. 28. 4. That in the visible Church now under the New Testament,
+there is a government settled; for besides _Apostles, Prophets_, and
+_Teachers_, here is mention of another sort of officer distinct from
+them all, called, in the abstract, _Governments_, a metaphor from
+pilots, mariners, or shipmasters, who by their helm, card, or compass,
+cables, and other tacklings, guide, and order, turn and twine the ship
+as necessity shall require; so these officers called _Governments_, have
+a power of governing and steering the spiritual vessel of the Church;
+thus, Beza on this place, says he declares the order of Presbyters, _who
+are keepers of discipline and church polity_. For how improperly should
+these, or any officers be styled _Governments in the Church_, if they
+had not a power of government in the Church settled upon them? Nor can
+this be interpreted of the civil magistrate; for, when the Apostle wrote
+this, the Church had her government, when yet she had no civil
+magistrate to protect her; and when did God ever take this power from
+the Church and settle it upon the civil magistrate? Besides, all the
+other officers here enumerated are purely ecclesiastical officers; how
+groundless then and inconsistent is it under this name of _Governments_
+to introduce a foreign power, viz. the political magistrate, into the
+list and roll of mere church officers? Finally, the civil magistrate, as
+a magistrate, is not so much as a member of the visible Church, (for
+then all Pagan magistrates should be members of the Church,) much less a
+governor in the Church of Christ. 5. That this government settled in the
+Church is of divine right; for, of those _Governments_, as well as of
+_Apostles, Prophets_, and _Teachers_, it is said, _God hath set_ them
+_in the Church. God hath set_ them, _hath put, set_--Tremellius out of
+the Syriac. Hath _constituted, ordained_--Beza out of the Greek. Now, if
+they be set in the Church and God hath set them there, here is a plain
+divine right for government in the Church.
+
+Add hereto, 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority, which the Lord hath given to
+us for the edification, and not for the destruction of you." Here are
+mentioned--1. Church power or authority for government in the Church. 2.
+The end of this power--positively, for the edification; negatively, not
+for the destruction of the Church. 3. The Author or Fountain of this
+authority--the Lord Christ hath given it, dispensed it; there is the
+divine right. 4. The proper subjects intrusted with this authority, viz:
+the church guides, our authority, which he hath given to us. They are
+the receptacle of power for the Church, and the government thereof.
+Compare also 1 Thes. v. 12, Matth. xvi. 19, 20, with xviii. 11, and John
+xx. 21, 22, 23. In which and divers like places the divine right of
+church government is apparently vouched by the Scripture, as will
+hereafter more fully appear; but this may suffice in general for the
+confirmation of this general proposition.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II.
+
+_Of the Nature of a_ DIVINE RIGHT _in general._
+
+
+Now touching this divine right of church government, two things are yet
+more particularly to be opened and proved, for the more satisfactory
+clearing thereof unto sober minds, to unprejudiced and unpre-engaged
+judgments, viz:--1. What the nature of a divine right is, and how many
+ways a thing may be said to be of divine right, and that by warrant of
+Scripture. 2. What the nature of the government of the Church under the
+New Testament is, which is vouched by the Scripture to be of divine
+right.
+
+For the first--viz. What the nature of a divine right is--consider both
+what a divine right is in general, and how many ways a thing may be said
+by Scripture warrant to be of divine right in particular.
+
+_Right_ is that which is most proper, just, or equal; or that which is
+prescribed or commanded by some statute law, and is just to be received
+in virtue of said law.
+
+_Divine_ sometimes points out a divine warrant or authority from God,
+engraven or enstamped upon any thing, whereby it is exalted above all
+human or created authority and power. And thus, all Scripture is styled
+divinely breathed or inspired of God. Hence is the divine authority of
+Scripture asserted, 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17; and in this sense divine right
+is here spoken of, in reference to church government, as it signifies a
+divine warrant and authority from God himself, engraven upon that church
+government and discipline, (hereafter to be handled,) and revealed to us
+in his holy Scriptures, the infallible and perfect oracles. So that
+divine right, according to this interpretation of the terms, is that
+which is either just, meet, and equal; or commanded and enjoined by any
+divine warrant or authority. And generally, a thing may be said to be of
+divine right, which is any way divinely just, equal, &c.; or divinely
+commanded by any law of God, or by that which is equivalent to a divine
+law. And whatsoever matters in church government can be proved by
+Scripture to have this stamp of divine warrant and authority set upon
+them, they may properly be said to be of divine right, and that by the
+will and appointment of Jesus Christ, to whom God hath delegated all
+power and authority for the government of his Church, Matth. xxviii. 18,
+19, 20, Isa. ix. 6, John v. 22, Eph. i. 22. In this sense, if church
+government, or any part of it, be found to be of divine right, then
+consequently--1. It is above all mere human power and created authority
+in the world whatsoever, and that supereminently. A divine
+right is the highest and best tenure whereby the Church can hold of
+Christ any doctrine, worship, or government; only God can stamp such a
+divine right upon any of these things, whereby conscience shall be
+obliged. All human inventions herein, whether devised of our own hearts,
+or derived as traditions from others, are incompatible and inconsistent
+herewith; vain in themselves, and to all that use them, and condemned of
+God. See 1 Kings xii. 32, 33, Isa. xxix. 4, Matth. xv. 6, 7, 8, 9. 2. It
+is beyond all just, human, or created power, to abolish or oppose the
+same, or the due execution thereof in the Church of Christ; for what is
+of divine right, is held of God, and not of man; and to oppose that,
+were to fight against God. The supreme magistrates in such cases should
+be nurse-fathers, Isa. xlix. 23, not step-fathers to the Church; their
+power being cumulative and perfective, not privative and destructive
+unto her; for she both had and exercised a power in church government,
+long before there was any Christian magistrate in the world; and it
+cannot be proved that ever Christ took away that power from his Church,
+or translated it to the political magistrate, when he became Christian.
+3. It is so obligatory upon all churches in the whole Christian world,
+that they ought uniformly to submit themselves unto it; for a divine
+right is equally obligatory on one church as well as on another. And it
+is so obligatory on all persons, states, and degrees, that none ought to
+be exempted from that church government which is of divine right, nor to
+be _tolerated_ in another church government, which is but of human
+invention; nor ought any Christian to seek after, or content himself
+with any such exemption or _toleration_; for in so doing, the inventions
+of men should be preferred before the ordinances of God; our own wisdom,
+will, and authority, before the wisdom, will, and authority of Christ:
+and we should in effect say, _We will not have this man to reign over
+us_, Luke xix. 27. _Let us break their bands asunder, and cast their
+cords away from us_, Psalm ii. 3.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III.
+
+_Of the Nature of a_ DIVINE RIGHT _in particular. How many ways a thing
+may be of_ DIVINE RIGHT. _And first, of a_ DIVINE RIGHT _by the true
+light of nature._
+
+
+Thus we see in general what a divine right is: now in particular let us
+come to consider how many ways a thing may be said to be of divine right
+by scripture-warrant, keeping still our eye upon this subject of church
+government, at which all particulars are to be levelled for the clearing
+of it.
+
+A thing may be said to be of divine right, or (which is the same for
+substance) of divine institution, divers ways. 1. _By the true light of
+nature._ 2. _By obligatory scripture examples._ 3. _By divine
+approbation._ 4. _By divine acts._ 5. _By divine precepts or mandates._
+All may be reduced to these five heads, ascending by degrees from the
+lowest to the highest divine right.
+
+I. _By light of nature._ That which is evident by, and consonant to the
+true light of nature, or natural reason, is to be accounted of divine
+right in matters of religion. Hence two things are to be made out by
+Scripture. 1. What is meant by the true light of nature. 2. How it may
+be proved, that what things in religion are evident by, or consonant to
+this true light of nature, are of divine right.
+
+1. For the first, What is meant by the true light of nature, or natural
+reason? Thus conceive. The light of nature may be considered two ways.
+1. As it was in man before the fall, and so it was that image and
+similitude of God, in which man was at first created, Gen. i. 26, 27, or
+at least part of that image; which image of God, and light of nature,
+was con-created with man, and was perfect: viz. so perfect as the sphere
+of humanity and state of innocency did require; there was no sinful
+darkness, crookedness, or imperfection in it; and whatsoever was evident
+by, or consonant to this pure and perfect light of nature, in respect
+either of theory or practice, was doubtless of divine right, because
+correspondent to that divine law of God's image naturally engraved in
+Adam's heart. But man being lapsed, this will not be now our question,
+as it is not our case. 2. As it is now in man after the fall. The light
+of nature and image of God in man is not totally abolished and utterly
+razed by the fall; there remain still some relics and fragments thereof,
+some glimmerings, dawnings, and common principles of light, both
+touching piety to God, equity to man, and sobriety to a man's self, &c.,
+as is evident by comparing these places, Psal. xix. 1, 2, &c., Acts
+xiv. 17, and xvii. 27, 28; Rom. i. 18-21, and ii. 12, 14, 15; 2 Cor. v.
+1: in which places it is plain, 1. That the book of the creature is able
+(without the scriptures, or divine revelations) to make known to man
+much of God, his invisible Godhead and attributes, Psalm xix. 1, 2, &c.;
+Acts xiv. 17, and xvii. 27, 28; yea, so far as to leave them without
+excuse, Rom. i. 18-21. 2. That there remained so much natural light in
+the minds even of the heathens, as to render them capable of instruction
+by the creature in the invisible things of God; yea, and that they
+actually in some measure did know God, and because they walked not up to
+this knowledge, were plagued, Rom. i. 18-21, 24, &c. 3. That the work of
+the law (though not the right ground, manner, and end of that work,
+which is the blessing of the new covenant, Jer. xxxi. 33; Heb. viii. 10)
+was materially written in some measure in their hearts. Partly because
+they did by nature without the law the things contained in the law, so
+being a law to themselves, Rom. ii. 14, 15; partly, because they by
+nature forbore some of those sins which were forbidden in the law, and
+were practised by some that had the law, as 2 Cor. v. 1; and partly,
+because according to the good and bad they did, &c., their conscience
+did accuse or excuse, Rom. ii. 15. Now conscience doth not accuse or
+excuse but according to some rule, principle, or law of God, (which is
+above the conscience,) or at least so supposed to be. And they had no
+law but the imperfect characters thereof in their own hearts, which were
+not quite obliterated by the fall. Now so far as this light of nature
+after the fall, is a true relic of the light of nature before the fall,
+that which is according to this light may be counted of divine right in
+matters of religion, which is the next thing to be proved.
+
+For the second, how it may be proved that what things in religion are
+evident by, or consonant to this true light of nature, are of divine
+right. Thus briefly,
+
+1. Because that knowledge which by the light of nature Gentiles have of
+the invisible things of God, is a beam of divine light, as the apostle,
+speaking of the Gentiles' light of nature, saith, That which may be
+known of God is manifest in them--for God hath showed it to them. For
+the invisible things, &c., Rom. i. 19, 20. God himself is the Fountain
+and Author of the true light of nature; hence some not unfitly call it
+the divine light of nature, not only because it hath God for its object,
+but also God for its principle; now that which is according to God's
+manifestation, must needs be of divine right.
+
+2. Because the Spirit of God and of Christ in the New Testament is
+pleased often to argue from the light of nature in condemning of sin, in
+commending and urging of duty, as in the case of the incestuous
+Corinthian; "It is reported commonly, that there is fornication among
+you, and such fornication as is not so much as named among the
+Gentiles," (who had only the light of nature to guide them,) 1 Cor. v.
+1. In case of the habits of men and women in their public church
+assemblies, that women's heads should be covered, men's uncovered in
+praying or prophesying. "Judge in yourselves, is it comely that a woman
+pray unto God uncovered? Doth not even nature itself teach you, that if
+a man hath long hair, it is a shame to him? but if a woman have long
+hair it is a glory to her," &c., 1 Cor. xi. 13-15. Here the apostle
+appeals plainly to the very light of nature for the regulating and
+directing of their habits in church assemblies; and thus, in case of
+praying or prophesying in the congregation in an unknown tongue, (unless
+some do interpret,) he strongly argues against it from the light of
+nature, 1 Cor. xiv. 7-11, and afterwards urges that women be silent in
+their churches, from the natural uncomeliness of their speaking there,
+for it is a shame for women to speak in the church, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35.
+
+Now, if the Spirit of God condemn things as vicious, and commend things
+as virtuous from the light of nature, is there not divine right in the
+light of nature? May we not say, that which is repugnant to the light of
+nature in matters of religion, is condemned by divine right; and what is
+correspondent to the light of nature, is prescribed by divine right? And
+if not, where is the strength or force of this kind of arguing from the
+light of nature?
+
+Consequently, in the present case of church government, that which is
+agreeable to the true light of nature, must needs be confessed to be of
+divine right. Though the light of nature be but dim, yet it will lend
+some help in this particular: e.g. the light of nature teaches, 1. That
+as every society in the world hath a distinct government of its own
+within itself, without which it could not subsist, so must the Church,
+which is a society, have its own distinct government within itself,
+without which it cannot subsist more than any other society. 2. That in
+all matters of difference the lesser number in every society should give
+way to, and the matters controverted be determined and concluded by the
+major part; else there would never be an end: and why not so in the
+Church? 3. That in every ill administration in inferior societies the
+parties aggrieved should have liberty to appeal from them to superior
+societies, that equity may take place; and why not from inferior to
+superior church assemblies?
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV.
+
+II. _Of a Divine Right by obligatory Scripture Examples._
+
+
+II. By obligatory scripture examples (which God's people are bound to
+follow and imitate) matters of religion become of divine right, and by
+the will and appointment of Jesus Christ, by whose Spirit those examples
+were recorded in Scripture, and propounded for imitation to the saints.
+The light of nature in this case helps something; but the light of
+obligatory scripture examples helps much more, as being more clear,
+distinct, and particular. We say scripture examples; for only these
+examples are held forth to us by an infallible, impartial, divine hand,
+and those scripture examples obligatory, or binding; for there are many
+sorts of scripture examples that oblige not us to imitation of them,
+being written for other uses and purposes.
+
+Great use is to be made of such examples in matters of religion, and
+particularly in matters of church government, for the clearing of the
+divine right thereof; and great opposition is made by some against the
+binding force of examples, especially by men of perverse spirits, (as
+too many of the Erastian party are;) therefore it will be of great
+consequence to unfold and clear this matter of scripture examples, and
+the obliging power thereof, that we may see how far examples are to be a
+law and rule for us by divine right. In general, this proposition seems
+to be unquestionable, that whatsoever matter or act of religion Jesus
+Christ makes known to his Church and people, by or under any binding
+scripture example, that matter or act of religion so made known, is of
+divine right, and by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ: But to
+evince this more satisfactorily, these several particulars are to be
+distinctly made good and manifested: 1. That some scripture examples are
+obligatory and binding on Christians in matters of religion. 2. Which
+are those obligatory scripture examples? These things being made out, we
+shall see with what strength scripture examples hold forth a divine
+right to us in the mysteries of religion, and particularly in church
+government.
+
+I. That some scripture examples in matters of religion are obligatory on
+Christians, as patterns and rules, which they are bound in conscience to
+follow and imitate, is evident,
+
+1. By the divine intention of the Spirit of God, in recording and
+propounding of examples in Scripture: for he records and propounds them
+for this very end, that they may be imitated. Thus Christ's humility,
+in washing the feet of his disciples, was intentionally propounded as an
+obligatory example, binding both the disciples, and us after them, to
+perform the meanest offices of love in humility to one another. "If I
+then, your Lord and Master, have washed your feet, ye ought also to wash
+one another's feet. For I have given you an example, that ye should do
+as I have done to you," John xiii. 4, &c., 13-15. Thus Christ's
+suffering with innocence and unprovoked patience, not reviling again,
+&c., is purposely propounded for all Christians to imitate, and they are
+bound in conscience as well as they can to follow it--"Christ suffered
+for us, leaving us an example, that ye should follow his steps," &c., 1
+Pet. ii. 21-23. Hence, the apostle so urges the example of Christ for
+the Corinthians to follow in their bounty to the poor saints, yea,
+though to their own impoverishing, "For you know the grace of our Lord
+Jesus Christ, that though he was rich, yet for your sakes he became
+poor, that ye through his poverty might be rich," 2 Cor. viii. 9. Nor
+was the example of Christ only written for our imitation; but the
+examples of the apostles also in the primitive churches were
+intentionally left upon record for this end, that they might be binding
+patterns for us to follow in like cases in after ages. And in
+particular, this seems to be one singular ground, scope, and intention
+of Christ's Spirit in writing the history of the Acts of the Apostles,
+that the apostles' acts in the primitive churches might be our rules in
+successive churches. For, 1. Though this book contain in it many things
+dogmatical, that is, divers doctrines of the apostles, yet it is not
+styled the book of the doctrine, but of the Acts of the Apostles, that
+we may learn to act as they acted. This being one main difference
+between profane and sacred histories; those are for speculation, these
+also for admonition and imitation, 1 Cor. x. 11. The history, therefore,
+of the Acts propounds examples admonitory and obligatory upon us, that
+we should express like acts in like cases. 2. Luke (the penman of the
+Acts) makes such a transition from his history of Christ, to this
+history of Christ's apostles, as to unite and knit them into one volume,
+Acts i. 1; whence we are given to understand, that if the Church wanted
+this history of the apostles, she should want that perfect direction
+which the Spirit intended for her: as also that this book is useful and
+needful to her as well as the other. 3. In the very front of the Acts it
+is said, that _Christ after his resurrection_ (and before his ascension)
+_gave commandments to the apostles--and spake of the things pertaining
+to the kingdom of God_, Acts i. 2, 3; viz. of the polity of the Church,
+say some.[6] Of the kingdom of grace, say others.[7] Judicious
+Calvin[8] interprets it partly of church government, saying, Luke
+admonisheth us, that Christ did not so depart out of the world, as to
+cast off all care of us: for by this doctrine he shows that he hath
+constituted a perpetual government in his Church. Therefore Luke
+signifies, that Christ departed not, before he had provided for his
+Church's government. Now those expressions are set in the frontispiece,
+to stamp the greater authority and obligatory power upon the acts after
+recorded, being done according to Christ's commandments; Christ
+intending their acts in the first founding of his kingdom and polity
+ecclesiastic to be the rule for after churches. For what Christ spoke of
+his kingdom to the apostles is like that, "What I say to you, I say to
+all," Matt. xiii. 37, as what was said to the apostles touching
+preaching and baptizing, remitting and retaining of sins, was said to
+all the apostles' successors, "to the end of the world," John xx. 21,
+23, with Matt, xxviii. 18-20.
+
+2. By God's approving and commending such as were followers not only of
+the doctrine, but also of the examples of the Lord, his apostles, and
+primitive churches; "And ye became followers" (or imitators) "of us and
+of the Lord," 1 Thess. i. 6, 7; and again, "Ye, brethren, became
+followers" (or imitators) "of the churches of God, which in Judea are in
+Christ Jesus: for ye also have suffered like things of your own
+countrymen, even as they have of the Jews," 1 Thess. ii. 14. In which
+places the Holy Ghost recites the Thessalonians imitating of the Lord,
+of the apostles, and of the churches, to the praise of the
+Thessalonians, by which they are given to understand that they did well,
+and discharged their duty in such imitations: for God's condemning or
+commending any thing, is virtually a prohibiting or prescribing thereof.
+
+3. By the Lord's commanding some examples to be imitated. Commands of
+this nature are frequent. In general, "Beloved, imitate not that which
+is evil, but that which is good," 3 John 11. In particular, 1. Imitating
+of God and Christ; "Be ye, therefore, followers of God as dear children:
+and walk in love, as Christ also hath loved us," Eph. v. 1, 2, with Eph.
+iv. 32. "He that saith he abideth in him, ought himself also to walk,
+even as he walked," 1 John ii. 6. 2. Imitating the apostles and other
+saints of God. "I beseech you, be ye imitators of me: for this cause
+have I sent unto you Timothy--who shall bring you into remembrance of my
+ways which be in Christ," 1 Cor. iv. 16, 17. "Be ye imitators of me,
+even as I also am of Christ," 1 Cor. xi. 1.
+
+"Those things which you have both learned, and received, and heard, and
+seen in me, do: and the God of peace shall be with you," Phil. iv. 9.
+"Be not slothful, but imitators of them who through faith and patience
+inherit the promises," Heb. vi. 12. "Whose faith imitate, considering
+the end of their conversation," Heb. xiii. 7. "Take, my brethren, the
+prophets, who have spoken in the name of the Lord, for an example" (or
+pattern) "of suffering affliction, and of patience," James v. 10. These
+and like divine commands infallibly evidence that many scripture
+examples are obligatory, and do bind our consciences to the imitation of
+them.
+
+4. By consent of orthodox and learned writers, both ancient and modern,
+acknowledging an obligatory force in some scripture examples, as being
+left upon record for our imitation. As among others Chrysostom,[9] and
+Greg. Nyssen[10] well observe.
+
+Among modern writers, Mr. Perkins excellently observes, This is a rule
+in divinity, that the ordinary examples of the godly approved in
+Scripture, being against no general precept, have the force of a general
+rule, and are to be followed. See also Pet. Martyr, Calvin, and
+others.[11]
+
+II. Thus, it is clear that some scripture examples are obligatory. Now
+(to come closer to the matter) consider which scripture examples are
+obligatory. 1. How many sorts of binding examples are propounded to us
+in Scripture. 2. What rules we may walk by for finding out the
+obligatory force of such examples.
+
+How many sorts of binding examples are propounded unto us in Scripture,
+and which are those examples? Ans. There are principally three sorts,
+viz: Examples of God, of Christ, of Christians.
+
+I. Of God. The example of God is propounded in Scripture as obligatory
+on us in all moral excellencies and actions: e.g. Matt. v. 44, 45, 48;
+Eph. v. 1; 1 Pet. i. 14-16; 1 John iv. 10, 11.
+
+II. Of Christ. That the example of Christ is obligatory, and a binding
+rule to us for imitation, is evident by these and like testimonies of
+Scripture, Matt. xi. 29; 1 Cor. xi. 11; Eph. v. 2, 3, 25, &c.; 1 John
+ii. 6; 1 Pet. ii. 21-23. "If I then, your Lord and Master, have washed
+your feet, ye ought also to wash one another's feet. For I have given
+you an example, that ye should do as I have done to you," John xiii. 14,
+15. In this place we must follow the reason of the example, rather than
+the individual act, viz: after Christ's example, we must be ready to
+perform the lowest and meanest offices of love and service to one
+another.
+
+But which of Christ's examples are obligatory on Christians, will better
+appear, by distinguishing the several sorts of Christ's actions.
+Christ's actions were of several kinds; and to imitate them all is
+neither needful, nor possible, nor warrantable. Orthodox writers thus
+rank Christ's actions:
+
+1. Some of Christ's actions were of divine power and virtue; as his
+miracles, turning water into wine, John ii. 7, &c.; walking on the sea,
+Mark vi. 48, 49; dispossessing of devils by his word, Mark i. 27; Luke
+iv. 36; curing one born blind with clay and spittle, John ix.; healing
+the sick by his word or touch, John iv. 50; Mark vi. 56; raising the
+dead to life again, as John xii. 1; Matt. xi. 5; Luke vii. 22.
+
+2. Some were acts of divine prerogative, as sending for the ass and
+colt, without first asking the owner's leave, Matt. xxi. 2, &c.
+
+3. Some mediatory, done by him as Mediator, Prophet, Priest, and King of
+his Church: e.g. inditing the Scripture, called therefore the word of
+Christ, Col. iii. 16; laying down his life _for the sheep_, John x. 15,
+&c.; giving of the Spirit, John xx. 22; Acts ii.; appointing of his own
+officers, and giving them commissions, Eph. iv. 7, 10, 11; Matt. x. and
+xxviii. 18-20; instituting of new, and thereby abrogating of old
+ordinances, Matt. xxviii. 18, 19; 1 Cor. xi. 23, &c.
+
+4. Some accidental, occasional, incidental, or circumstantial, as in
+the case of his celebrating his supper, that it was at night, not in the
+morning; after supper, not before; with none but men, none but
+ministers; with unleavened, not with leavened bread, &c.; these
+circumstantials were accidentally occasioned by the passover, nature of
+his family, &c.
+
+5. Some acts of Christ were moral, as Matt. xi. 29; Eph. v. 2, 3, 25,
+&c.; or at least founded upon a moral reason and foundation, as John
+xiii. 14,15.
+
+To imitate Christ in his three first sort of acts, is utterly unlawful,
+and in part impossible. To imitate him in his circumstantial acts from
+necessity, were to make accidentals necessary, and happily to border
+upon superstition; for, to urge any thing above what is appointed, as
+absolutely necessary, is to urge superstition; and to yield to any thing
+above what is appointed, as simply necessary, were to yield to
+superstition. But to imitate Christ in his moral acts, or acts grounded
+upon a moral reason, is our duty: such acts of Christ ought to be the
+Christian's rules.
+
+III. Of prophets, apostles, saints, or primitive churches. That their
+examples are obligatory, is evident by these places, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil.
+iv. 8, 9; 1 Pet. iii. 4, 5, 6; 1 Thess. i. 6, and ii. 14; Heb. xiii. 7;
+James v. 10, 11; 3 John 11.
+
+Which of their examples are obligatory, may be thus resolved, by
+distinguishing of their actions.
+
+1. Some were sinful; written for our caution and admonition, not for our
+imitation: as 1 Cor. x. 5, 6, 10, 12. That neither the just be lifted up
+into pride by security, nor the unjust be hardened against the medicine
+through despair. See the fourth rule following.
+
+2. Some were heroical; done by singular instinct and instigation of the
+Spirit of God; as divers acts may be presumed to be, (though we read not
+the instinct clearly recorded:) as, Elias's calling for fire from
+heaven, 2 Kings i. 10; which the very apostles might not imitate, not
+having his spirit, Luke ix. 54, 55; Phinehas's killing the adulterer and
+adulteress, Numb. xxv. 7, 8; Samson's avenging himself upon his enemies
+by his own death, Judges xvi. 30, of which, saith Bernard, if it be
+defended not to have been his sin, it is undoubtedly to be believed he
+had private counsel, viz. from God, for his fact; David's fighting with
+Goliath of Gath the giant, hand to hand, 1 Sam. xvii. 32, &c., which is
+no warrant for private duels and quarrels. Such heroic acts are not
+imitable but by men furnished with like heroic spirit, and instinct
+divine.
+
+3. Some were by special calling, and singular extraordinary
+dispensation: as Abraham's call to leave his own country for pilgrimage
+in Canaan, Gen. xii. 1, 4, which is no warrant for popish pilgrimages
+to the holy land, &c.; Abraham's attempts, upon God's special trying
+commands, to kill and sacrifice his son, Gen. xxii. 10, no warrant for
+parents to kill or sacrifice their children; the Israelites borrowing
+of, and robbing the Egyptians, Exod. xii. 35, no warrant for cozenage,
+stealing, or for borrowing with intent not to pay again: compare Rom.
+xiii. 8; 1 Thess. iv. 6; Psal. xxxvii. 21; the Israelites taking usury
+of the Canaanitish strangers, (who were destined to ruin both in their
+states and persons, Deut. xx. 15-17,) Deut. xxiii. 20, which justifies
+neither their nor our taking usury of our brethren, Lev. xxv. 36, 37;
+Deut. xxiii. 19, 20; Neh. v. 7, 10; Psal. xv. 5; Prov. xxviii. 8; Ezek.
+xviii. 8, 13, 17, and xxii. 12; John Baptist's living in the desert,
+Mat. iii., no protection for popish hermitage, or proof that it is a
+state of greater perfection, &c.
+
+4. Some were only accidental or occasional, occasioned by special
+necessity of times and seasons, or some present appearance of scandal,
+or some such accidental emergency. Thus primitive Christians had all
+things common, Acts iv. 32, but that is no ground for anabaptistical
+community. Paul wrought at his trade of tent-making, made his hands
+_minister to his necessities_, Acts xx. 34; would not take wages for
+preaching to the church of Corinth, 2 Cor. xi. 7-9; but this lays no
+necessity on ministers to preach the gospel _gratis_, and maintain
+themselves by their own manual labors, except when cases and seasons are
+alike, Gal. vi. 6-8; 1 Cor. ix. 6-13; 1 Tim. v. 17, 18.
+
+5. Some were of a moral nature, and upon moral grounds, wherein they
+followed Christ, and we are to follow them, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil. iv. 8,
+9, and other places forementioned; for, whatsoever actions were done
+then, upon such grounds as are of a moral, perpetual, and common
+concernment to one person as well as another, to one church as well as
+another, in one age as well as another, those actions are obligatory on
+all, and a rule to after generations. Thus the baptizing of women in the
+primitive churches, Acts viii. 12, and xvi. 15, though only the males
+were circumcised under the Old Testament, is a rule for our baptizing of
+women as well as men, they being _all one in Christ,_ Gal. iii. 28. So
+the admitting of infants to the first initiating sacrament of the Old
+Testament, circumcision, because they with their parents' were accounted
+within the covenant of grace by God, Gen. xvii., is a rule for us now to
+admit infants to the first initiating sacrament of the New Testament,
+baptism, because infants are federally holy, and within the covenant
+with their believing parents now, as well as then, Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor.
+vii. 14; Col. ii. 11, 12. Thus the baptizing of divers persons formerly,
+though into no particular congregation, nor as members of any
+particular congregation, as the eunuch, Acts viii.; Lydia, Acts xvi.;
+the jailer, Acts xvi.; because it was sufficient they were baptized into
+that one general visible body of Christ, 1 Cor. xii. 12, 13, is a rule
+for us what to do in like cases upon the same common ground. Thus the
+Church's practice of preaching the word, and breaking bread on the first
+day of the week, Acts xx. 7, &c., is our rule for sanctifying the Lord's
+day, by celebrating the word, sacraments, and other holy ordinances, at
+these times. And in like manner, the primitive practices of ordaining
+preaching presbyters, by laying on of hands, 1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6;
+Acts xiii. 3; of governing all the congregations of a city by one common
+presbytery, in which respect they are all called by the name of one
+church, as the church of Jerusalem, Acts viii. 1, and xv. 4; the church
+of Antioch, Acts xiii. 1, and xi. 25, 26; the church of Corinth, 1 Cor.
+i. 2, 2 Cor. i. 1; which had churches in it, 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Of healing
+common scandals and errors, troubling divers presbyterial churches by
+the authoritative decrees of a synod, made up of members from divers
+presbyterial churches, as Acts xv., and such like, are our rules in like
+particulars, which the Lord hath left for our direction, the same
+grounds of such actions reaching us as well as them.
+
+Now this last kind of examples are those which we are, by divers divine
+commands, especially enjoined to follow; and therefore such examples
+amount to a divine right or institution; and what we ought to do by
+virtue of such binding examples is of divine right, and by the will and
+appointment of Jesus Christ.
+
+What discriminatory notes or rules may we walk by, for finding out the
+obligatory force of scripture examples; and what manner of examples
+those be? For discovery hereof, take these ensuing general rules:
+
+1. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ commands us
+to imitate, are undoubtedly obligatory. Such are the moral examples of
+God, Christ, apostles, prophets, saints, and churches, recorded in
+Scripture, with command to follow them, Eph. iv. 32, and v. 1, 2; 1 John
+ii. 6; 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil. iv. 6; Heb. vi. 12, and xiii. 7; James v. 10;
+3 John 11.
+
+2. Those examples in Scripture, which the Spirit of Christ commends and
+praises, are obligatory; his commendings are virtual commandings; and we
+ought to follow whatsoever is praiseworthy, especially in God's account,
+Phil. iv. 8, 9; 2 Cor. x. 18. Now the Spirit of Christ commends many
+examples to us: as, _Enoch's walking with God_, Gen. v. 24; _Noah's
+uprightness,_ Gen. vi.; _Abraham's faith_, Rom. iv., _and obedience_,
+Gen. xxii.; _Lot's zeal against Sodom's sins_, 2 Pet. ii. 9; _Job's
+patience_, James v. 10, 11. And in a word, all the examples of the
+saints, which the Lord approves and speaks well of; as Heb. xi.; 1 Pet.
+iii. 5, 6: together with all such examples, whose imitation by others is
+commended in Scripture; as, 1 Thess. i. 6, 7, and ii. 14.
+
+3. Those examples in Scripture are obligatory, whose ground, reason,
+scope, or end, are obligatory, and of a moral nature, and as much
+concern one Christian as another, one church as another, one time as
+another, &c., whether they be the examples under the Old or New
+Testament. Thus the example of the church of Corinth, in excommunicating
+the incestuous person, because he was a wicked person--and lest he
+should _leaven the whole lump;_ and that they might keep the
+evangelical passover sincerely, and for that they had power _to judge
+them within_; and that his "flesh might be destroyed, and his spirit
+saved in the day of the Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5-8, 11-13: which grounds
+and ends being moral, oblige us to use the like remedy against all
+wicked and scandalous persons.
+
+4. Those acts which are propounded in Scripture as patterns or examples,
+that we should act the like good, or avoid the like ill, are an
+obligatory law to us. There is an example of caution, and an example of
+imitation.
+
+Thus in reference to well-doing, or suffering for well-doing, the
+examples of Christ, his apostles, and other saints, are propounded as
+patterns to write after, as John xiii. 14, 15; Heb. xi. tot. with Heb.
+xii. 1, _with such a cloud of witnesses_. This verse is as the epilogue
+of the former chapter, (saith the learned Calvin,) showing to what end
+the catalogue of saints was reckoned up, who under the law excelled in
+faith, viz: that every one may fit himself to imitate them. Another
+adds,[12] He calls them a cloud, whereby we may be directed; in allusion
+to that cloud that went before Israel in the wilderness, to conduct them
+to the land of Canaan. See also 1 Pet. ii. 21-23; James v. 10.
+
+Thus also, in reference to ill-doing, that it may be avoided by us, the
+bad examples of saints and others are laid before us as warnings and
+cautions to us, binding us to eschew like evils, 1 Cor. x. 5, 6, 11.
+"Now these things were our examples, to the intent we should not lust
+after evil things, as they also lusted. Now all these things happened
+unto them for examples," &c., Jude 7.
+
+5. Those acts of saints or Christians, which were done by them as saints
+and Christians, are obligatory upon, and to be followed by all
+Christians; but those acts which are done by magistrates, prophets,
+apostles, ministers, &c., only as such, are only obligatory on such as
+have like offices, not on all; according to the maxim, that which agrees
+to any thing as such, agrees to every thing that is such. Thus James
+urges the example of Elias in praying, James v. 17. Paul presses the
+example of Abraham in being justified by believing, Rom. iv. 23,24.
+Peter prescribes, as a pattern to wives, the example of Sarah, and other
+holy women of old, for "adorning themselves with a meek and quiet
+spirit,--being in subjection to their own husbands," 1 Pet. iii. 4-6.
+
+6. Those acts that were commonly and ordinarily done, are ordinarily to
+be imitated; as, baptizing _in water only_, and not in any other
+element, was the ordinary practice of the New Testament, Matt. iii. 11,
+16; Mark i. 6, 10; Luke iii. 16; John i. 26, 31, 33; Acts i. 5, and
+viii. 36, 38, and x. 47, and xi. 16; and by that practice we are obliged
+to baptize in water only. Joining of many Christians together in
+receiving the Lord's supper was an ordinary practice, Matt. xxvi. 20,
+26, 27; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7, &c.; 1 Cor. xi. 20, and by us ordinarily
+to be imitated; how else is it a communion? 1 Cor. x. 16, 17.
+
+But such acts as were done only upon special causes or singular reasons,
+are only to be imitated in like cases. Thus Christ argues from a like
+special cause, that he was not to do miracles at Nazareth without a
+call, as he did in other places where he had a call of God; from the
+particular example of Elijah and Elisha, who only went to them to whom
+God called them, Luke ix. 25-27; so he proves that in like case of
+necessity it was lawful for his disciples on the sabbath-day to rub ears
+of corn and eat them, &c., from David's example of eating show-bread when
+he had need, Matt. xii. 1-5.
+
+7. Those acts that were done from extraordinary calling and gifts, are
+to be imitated (in regard of their special way of acting) only by those
+that have such extraordinary calling and gifts. Christ therefore blames
+his apostles for desiring to imitate Elijah's extraordinary act in
+calling for fire from heaven, &c., when they had not his spirit, Luke ix.
+54, 55. Papists are blameworthy for imitating the extraordinary forty
+days' and nights' fast of Moses, Elijah, and Christ, in their Lent fast.
+Prelates argue corruptly for bishops' prelacy over their brethren the
+ministers, from the superiority of the apostles over presbyters.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V.
+
+_Of a Divine Right by Divine Approbation._
+
+
+III. By divine approbation of the Spirit of Jesus Christ in his word.
+Whatsoever in matters of religion hath the divine approbation of the
+Spirit of Christ in the Scriptures, that is of divine right, and by the
+will and appointment of Jesus Christ. God's approving or allowing of any
+thing, plainly implies that it is according to his will and pleasure,
+and so is equivalent to a divine institution or appointment; for what is
+a divine institution or law but the publishing of the divine will of the
+legislator, touching things to be acted or omitted? and God cannot
+approve any thing that is against his will. Contrariwise, God's
+disallowing of any thing, plainly implies that it is against his will,
+and so of divine right prohibited, and unlawful. God allows or disallows
+things not because they are good or evil; but things are, therefore,
+good or evil, because he approves or disallows them.
+
+Now God approves or disallows things divers ways:
+
+1. By commending or discommending. God commended king Josiah for his
+zeal and impartiality in completing of the reformation of religion, 1
+Kings xiii. 25. This is a rule for all princes and magistrates how they
+should reform. The angel of the church of Ephesus is commended, for not
+bearing of those that were evil, for trying and detecting the false
+apostles, and for hating the works of the Nicolaitans, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6.
+The angel of the church of Pergamus is praised, for holding fast
+Christ's name, and not denying his faith in places of danger, and days
+of deepest persecution, Rev. ii. 13: a rule for all pastors and
+churches, how in all such cases they should carry themselves. God's
+commendings are divine commandings. On the contrary, God dispraises
+Ephesus, for falling from her first love, Rev. ii. 4. Pergamus, for
+holding the doctrine of Balaam, and the doctrine of the Nicolaitans,
+Rev. ii. 14, 15. Thyatira, for tolerating the false prophetess Jezebel,
+to teach and seduce his servants, &c., Rev. ii. 20. Laodicea, because
+she was neither hot nor cold, but lukewarm, Rev. iii. 15. The church of
+Corinth, for coming together in public assemblies, not for better but
+for worse, by reason of schisms, scandals, and other disorders about the
+Lord's supper, 1 Cor. xi. 17, &c. In these and all such divine
+discommendings of the churches for their corruptions, all succeeding
+churches are strongly forbidden the like corruptions: God's dispraises
+are divine prohibitions. Thus good church elders are commended in this
+notion, that they are _elders ruling well_, 1 Tim. v. 17; therefore,
+that elders in the church should rule, and rule well, is by this
+commendation of divine right.
+
+2. By promising and threatening. What promise did God ever make to any
+act or performance, which was not a duty? or what threatening against
+any act which was not a sin? He promises to them that forsake all for
+Christ, a "hundred-fold now in this time, and in the world to come
+eternal life," Mark x. 29, 30; therefore it is our duty to forsake all
+for Christ. He promised to ratify in heaven his disciples' sentences of
+_building or loosing on earth_; and to _be with them_ whensoever _two or
+three of them were met together_ for that end, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii.
+18-20, and John xx. 23. Therefore binding and loosing, remitting and
+retaining of sins, and meeting together for that end, belong to them by
+divine right. He promised to be with them that baptize, preach, remit,
+and retain sins in his name, &c., _always, to the end of the world_,
+John xx. 23; with Matt, xxviii. 18-20, which promise shows, that these
+works and employments belong to all succeeding ministers to the world's
+end, as well as to the apostles by divine right. On the contrary, the
+Lord threatens Ephesus for decay of first love, Rev. ii. 4, 5; Pergamus,
+for holding false doctrine, Rev. ii. 14, 15; Thyatira, for tolerating of
+Jezebel and her false teaching, &c., Rev. ii. 21, 21, 23; and Laodicea,
+for lukewarmness, Rev. iii. 15, 16. Therefore, all these were their
+sins, and we are bound, even by this divine threatening, to avoid the
+like by a divine warrant.
+
+3. By remunerating or rewarding; whether he reward with blessings or
+with judgments. With blessings God rewarded the Hebrew midwives, because
+they preserved the male children of Israel, contrary to Pharaoh's bloody
+command; _God made them houses_, Exod. i. 17, 20, 21. He will have the
+elders that rule well _counted worthy of double honor_, &c.; i.e.
+rewarded with a bountiful, plentiful maintenance, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+Therefore, their ruling in the church is of divine right, for which God
+appoints such a good reward. Contrariwise, with judgments God rewarded
+king Saul, for offering a burnt-offering himself, 1 Sam. xiii. 12-14;
+Uzzah, for touching the ark, though it was ready to fall, 2 Sam. vi. 6,
+7; and king Uzziah, for going into the temple to burn incense, 2 Chron.
+xxvi. 16. None of these being priests, yet presuming to meddle with the
+priest's office. A rule for all persons, being not church officers, yea,
+though they be princes or supreme magistrates, that they are hereby
+warned by the divine law, not to usurp church authority or offices to
+themselves. God rewarded the Corinthians with the judgments of
+weakness, sickness, and death, for unworthy receiving of the Lord's
+supper, 1 Cor. xi. 30. So that this is a divine warning for all after
+churches against unworthy communicating.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI.
+
+IV. _Of a Divine Right by Divine Acts._
+
+
+IV. By divine acts. Whatsoever matters of religion were erected in, or
+conferred upon the Church of God, by God, or any person of the blessed
+Trinity, and are left recorded in the Scripture, they are of divine
+right, by the will and appointment of Jesus Christ. Shall divine
+approbation, yea, shall the saints' binding example hold forth to us a
+divine right, and shall not the divine actions of God, Christ, and the
+Spirit, do it much more? Take some instances: the Lord's-day sabbath,
+under the New Testament, was it not instituted (the seventh day being
+changed to the first day of the week) by the acts of Christ, having now
+perfected the spiritual creation of the new world? viz: by his
+resurrection and apparitions to his disciples on that day, and
+miraculous blessing and sanctifying of that day, by pouring forth the
+gifts of the Holy Ghost, Acts ii., all which were seconded with the
+apostolical practice in the primitive churches, Acts xx. 7, &c.; 1 Cor.
+xvi. 1, 2. And do not the churches of Christ generally conclude upon
+these grounds, that the Lord's-day sabbath is of divine warrant? Thus
+circumcision is abrogated of divine right, by Christ's act, instituting
+baptism instead thereof, Col. ii. 11, 12. The passover is abolished of
+divine right, by Christ himself, our true passover, _being sacrificed
+for us_, 1 Cor. v. 7; and the Lord's supper being instituted a memorial
+of Christ's death instead of it, Matt, xxvi., Mark xiv., Luke xxii. And
+the whole ceremonial law is antiquated and made void by Christ's death,
+accomplishing all those dark types; therefore Christ, immediately before
+his yielding up the ghost, cried, _It is finished_, John xix. 30. See
+Col. ii. 14; Eph. ii. 14, 15; _abolishing the law of commandments in
+ordinances_, Heb. viii. 13, and x. 4, 5, &c. Thus by Christ's act of
+giving the keys of the kingdom of heaven to Peter and the apostles,
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, 19, the keys belong to the officers of the
+church by divine right. By God's act of _setting in the Church some,
+first apostles_, &c., 1 Cor. xii. 28, all those officers belong to the
+general visible Church by divine right. By Christ's act of bounty upon
+his triumphant ascension into heaven, _in giving gifts to men_, Eph.
+iv. 7, 11, 12; all those church officers being Christ's gifts, are of
+divine right. Finally, by the Holy Ghost's act, in setting elders,
+overseers over the flock, Acts xx. 28, elders are such overseers by
+divine right.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII.
+
+V. _Of a Divine Right by Divine Precepts._
+
+
+V. Finally, and primarily, by divine precepts, whatsoever in matters of
+religion is commanded or forbidden by God in his word, that is
+accordingly a duty or sin, by divine right: as, the duties of the whole
+moral law, the ten words, commanded of God, Exod. xx.; Deut. v.
+Believing in Christ, commanded of God, 1 John iii. 23. The plentiful and
+honorable maintenance of ministers, commanded of God, 1 Tim. v. 17, 18;
+1 Cor. ix. 9-11, 13, 14; Gal. vi. 6. The people's esteeming, loving, and
+obeying their pastors and teachers, commanded of God, 1 Thess. v. 12;
+Heb. xiii. 7, 17. Ministers' diligence and faithfulness, in feeding and
+watching over their flocks, commanded of God, Acts xx. 28; 2 Tim. iv.
+1-3; 1 Pet. iv. 1-3; with innumerable commands and precepts of all
+sorts: now all things so commanded are evidently of divine right, and
+without gainsaying, granted on all hands, even by Erastians themselves.
+But the question will be, how far we shall extend this head of _divine
+commands_. For clearness' sake, thus distinguish, thus resolve:
+
+God's commands are either immediate or mediate.
+
+1. Immediate divine commands: as those which God propounds and urges; as
+the ten commandments, Exod. xx., Deut. v., and all other injunctions of
+his in his word positively laid down. Of such commands, the apostle
+saith, "I command, yet not I, but the Lord," 1 Cor. vii. 10.
+
+Now these immediate commands of God, in regard of their manner of
+publishing and propounding, are either explicit or implicit.
+
+1. Explicit: which are expressly and in plain terms laid down, as the
+letter of the commandments of the decalogue, Exod. xx. The commands of
+Christ, "Feed my lambs, feed my sheep," John xxi.; "Go, disciple ye all
+nations," &c., Matt, xxviii. 19; "Do this in remembrance of me," Matt,
+xxvi; 1 Cor. xi. 23, 24, &c. Now whatsoever is expressly commanded of
+God in plain, evident terms, that is of divine right, without all color
+of controversy. Only take this caution, the divine right of things
+enjoined by God's express command, is to be interpreted according to the
+nature of the thing commanded, and the end or scope of the Lord in
+commanding: e.g. 1. Some things God commands morally, to be of perpetual
+use; as to honor father and mother, &c.; these are of divine right
+forever. 2. Some things he commands but positively, to be of use for a
+certain season; as the ceremonial administrations till Christ should
+come, for the Jewish church, and the judicial observances for their
+Jewish polity; and all these positive laws were of divine right till
+Christ abrogated them. 3. Some things he commands only by way of trial,
+not with intention that the things commanded should be done, but that
+his people's fear, love, and obedience may be proved, tried, &c. Thus
+God commanded Abraham to offer up his son Isaac for a burnt-offering,
+Gen. xxii.: such things are of divine right only in such cases of
+special infallible command. 4. Some things he commands extraordinarily
+in certain select and special cases: as, _Israel to borrow jewels of the
+Egyptians to rob them_, without intention ever to restore them, Exod.
+xi. 2, &c. The disciples to _go preach_--yet to _provide neither gold
+nor silver_, &c. Matt. x. 7-10. The elders of the church (while miracles
+were of use in the church) _to anoint the sick with oil in the name of
+the Lord_, for their recovery, James v. 14. These and like extraordinary
+commands were only of force by divine right, in these extraordinary
+select cases, when they were propounded.
+
+1. Implicit, or implied: which are either comprehensively contained in
+or under the express terms and letter of the command; or,
+consequentially, are deducible from the express command.
+
+Comprehensively, many things are contained in a command, that are not
+expressed in the very letter of the command. Thus sound interpreters of
+the decalogue generally confess, that all precepts thereof include the
+whole parts under the general term, and God wills many things by them
+more than the bare words signify: e.g. in negative commands, forbidding
+sin, we are to understand the positive precepts prescribing the contrary
+duties; and so, on the contrary, under affirmative commands, we are to
+understand the negative thereof: thus Christ expounds the sixth
+commandment, Matt. v. 21-27, and ver. 43, to the end of the chapter. So
+when any evil is forbidden, not only the outward gross acts, but all
+inward acts and degrees thereof, with all causes and occasions, all
+fruits and effects thereof, are forbidden likewise: as, under killing,
+provoking terms, rash anger, Matt. v. 21, 22; under adultery, wanton
+looks, lustful thoughts, &c., Matt. v. 27-30. Now all things
+comprehended in a command (though not expressed) are of divine right.
+
+Consequentially, many things are clearly deducible from express commands
+in Scripture, by clear, unforced, infallible, and undeniable
+consequence. Now what things are commanded by necessary consequence,
+they are of divine right, as well as things in express terms prescribed:
+e.g. in the case of baptism, have the ordinary ministers of the New
+Testament any punctual express command to baptize? yet, by consequence,
+it is evident infallibly, the apostles are commanded to baptize, and the
+promise is made to them by Christ, that he _will be with them always to
+the end of the world_, Matt, xxviii. 18-20, which cannot be interpreted
+of the apostles' persons only; for they were not to live till the
+world's end, but are dead and gone long ago; but of the apostles and
+their successors, the ministers of the gospel to the world's end; now to
+whom the promise of Christ's presence is here to be applied, to them the
+precept of baptizing and teaching is intended by clear consequence and
+deduction. So, infants of Christian parents under the New Testament are
+commanded to be baptized by consequence; for that the infants of God's
+people under the Old Testament were commanded to be circumcised, Gen.
+xvii.; for, the privileges of believers under the New Testament are as
+large as the privileges of believers under the Old Testament: and the
+children of believers under the New Testament are federally holy, and
+within the covenant of God, as well as the children of believers under
+the Old Testament, Gen. xvii., compared with Rom. xi. 16; 1 Cor. vii.
+14: and what objections can be made from infants' incapacity now,
+against their baptism, might as well then have been made against their
+being circumcised: and why children should once be admitted to the
+initiating sacrament, and not still be admitted to the like initiating
+sacrament, (the Lord of the covenant and sacrament nowhere forbidding
+them,) there can be no just ground. And baptism succeeds in the room of
+circumcision, Col. ii. 11, 12. _Thus in case of the Lord's supper_,
+apostles were commanded to dispense it, and men commanded to receive it.
+"Do ye this in remembrance of me," Matt, xxvi., 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25; yet
+by consequence, the ministers of the gospel succeeding the apostles,
+being stewards of the mysteries of God, have the same charge laid upon
+them; and women as well as men are enjoined to keep that sacrament,
+whole families communicating in the passover, the forerunner of the
+Lord's supper, Exod. xiv., and male and female being _all one in
+Christ_, Gal. iii. 28. _Thus in case of the maintenance of ministers
+under the New Testament_: the apostle proves it by consequence to be
+commanded, God hath ordained, &c., from God's command of not _muzzling
+the ox that treads out the corn_, and of maintaining the priests under
+the Old Testament, 1 Cor. ix. 14, &c.; l Tim. v. 17, 18. And thus, in
+case of church polity, the Hebrews are commanded to obey and be
+subordinate to their rulers in the Lord, Heb. xiii. 17; consequently,
+other churches are commanded not only to have rulers, but to obey and
+submit to their rule and government. Timothy is commanded to lay hands
+_suddenly on none_, &c., in ordaining of preaching elders, 1 Tim. v. 21,
+22; consequently, such as succeed Timothy in ordaining of preaching
+elders are enjoined therein to do nothing suddenly, hastily, &c., but
+upon mature deliberation. The apostle commands, that men must _first be
+proved, and found blameless, before they execute the deacon's office_, 1
+Tim. iii. 10; by consequence, it is much more necessarily commanded,
+that ruling elders should first be proved, and be found blameless,
+before they exercise rule; and that ministers be examined, and found
+blameless, before they be ordained to or execute the ministerial
+function, for these offices are of greater and higher concernment than
+the deacon's office.
+
+2. Mediate divine commands, which are mediately from God, but
+immediately from men; and these come under a double consideration, being
+either,
+
+1. Such commands whose general principles are immediately the Lord's,
+yet accommodations and determinations of particulars are from men, by
+apparent deductions from those grounds. Of such the apostle saith, "But
+to the rest speak I, not the Lord," 1 Cor. vii. 12; not that Paul
+delivered any commands merely of his own head, (for he had "obtained
+mercy of the Lord to be faithful," ver. 25, and did _think that he had
+the Spirit of the Lord_, ver. 40,) but grounded his commands upon the
+word of God, whereof the apostle was the interpreter. The case is
+concerning divorce when it fell out that believer and unbeliever were
+married together: the Lord had given general rules about divorce, but no
+particular rule about this case, (it being not incident to the Jews;)
+the apostle, therefore, accommodates the general rule to the particular
+case; he, not the Lord, determined the particular. This sound
+interpreters conceive to be the apostle's meaning: Thus the apostle,
+treating of order in public assemblies, saith, "The prophet and the
+spiritual man must acknowledge the things which I write, to be the
+commandments of the Lord," 1 Cor. xiv. 37. Understand it mediately, as
+being agreeable to the Lord's principles revealed: for otherwise how
+should the prophet know what the Lord immediately revealed to the
+apostle? or why should we think it probable that what Paul here speaks
+of order and decency in church assemblies, was immediately and expressly
+delivered him by speech or revelation from the Lord, seeing these
+particulars have such easy and apparent deduction from general
+principles, and revelations are not unnecessarily multiplied? Yet these
+particular deductions and determinations are here styled the
+commandments of the Lord.
+
+2. Such commands, which are accidental and occasional, whose grounds and
+general principles are also the Lord's; yet determination or deduction
+of particulars can hardly be made, but in such emergent cases and
+occasions accidentally falling out, as necessitate thereunto. As in that
+case, Acts xv., when the synod commands abstinence _from blood, and
+things strangled_, and that necessarily, (though the Levitical law was
+now abrogated,) because the common use thereof by accident grew very
+scandalous: therefore, by the law of charity, the use of Christian
+liberty is to be suspended, when otherwise the scandal of my brother is
+endangered; yet from any ground of equity to have provided such a
+particular rule as this, without such a case occurring, would scarce
+have been possible. Now the synod saith of this determination, "It
+seemed good unto the Holy Ghost, and unto us," Acts xv. And another
+synod, walking by the like light and rule of the Scripture as they did,
+may say of themselves as the apostles said.
+
+
+
+
+PART II.
+
+OF THE NATURE OF THAT CHURCH GOVERNMENT WHICH IS OF DIVINE RIGHT,
+ACCORDING TO SCRIPTURE.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I.
+
+_The Description of Church Government._
+
+
+The nature of that church government which is of divine right according
+to Scripture, comes next to be considered; (having so fully seen what
+the nature of a divine right is, and how many several ways matters in
+religion may be said to be of divine right.) For the fuller and clearer
+unfolding whereof, let us first see how church government may be
+described; and then how that description may be explained and justified
+by the word of God, in the branches of it.
+
+Church government may be thus described:
+
+Church government is a power[13] or authority spiritual,[14] revealed in
+the holy Scriptures,[15] derived from Jesus Christ[16] our Mediator,[17]
+only to his own officers, and by them exercised in dispensing of the
+word,[18] seals,[19] censures,[20] and all other ordinances of
+Christ,[21] for the edifying of the Church of Christ.[22]
+
+This description of church government may be thus explained and proved.
+Three things are principally considerable herein, viz: 1. The thing
+defined, or described, viz. church government. 2. The general nature of
+this government which it hath in common with all other governments, viz.
+power or authority.
+
+3. The special difference whereby it is distinguished from all other
+governments whatsoever. Herein six things are observable. 1. The special
+rule, wherein it is revealed, and whereby it is to be measured, viz. the
+holy Scriptures. 2. The proper author, or fountain, whence this power is
+derived, viz. from Jesus Christ our Mediator, peculiarly. 3. The special
+kind of this power or authority, viz. it is a spiritual power, it is a
+derived power. 4. The several parts or acts wherein this power sets
+forth itself, viz. in dispensing the word, seals, censures, and all
+other ordinances of Christ. 5. The special end or scope of this power,
+viz. the edifying of the Church of Christ. 6. The proper and distinct
+subject or receptacle wherein Christ hath placed and intrusted all this
+power, viz. only his own officers. All these things are comprehended in
+this description, and unto these several heads the whole nature of
+church government may be reduced. So that, these being explained and
+confirmed by the Scriptures, it will easily and fully be discovered,
+what that church government is which is of divine right, and by the will
+and appointment of Jesus Christ, our Mediator.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II.
+
+_Of the Subject Described, viz. Church Government, the terms being
+briefly opened._
+
+
+Touching the thing defined or described, it is church government. Here
+two terms are to be a little explained: 1. What is meant by church? 2.
+What is meant by government?
+
+1. Church is originally derived from a Greek word,[23] which signifies
+to call forth. Hence church properly signifies a company or multitude,
+called forth; and so in this notation of the word, three things are
+implied: 1. The term from which they are called. 2. The term to which
+they are called. 3. The medium or mean by which they are brought from
+one term to another, viz. by calling. And these things thus generally
+laid down, do agree to every company that may properly be called a
+church. Now, this word translated church, never signifies one particular
+person, but many congregated, gathered, or called together; and it hath
+several acceptations or uses in the New Testament: 1. It is used in a
+common and civil sense, for any civil meeting, or concourse of people
+together: thus that tumultuous and riotous assembly is called a church,
+Acts xix. 32, 39, 40. 2. It is used in a special religious sense, for a
+sacred meeting or assembly of God's people together: and thus it
+signifies the Church of God, either, 1. Invisible, comprehending only
+the elect of God, as Heb. xii. 23, "and Church of the first-born," Eph.
+v. 23, &c., "Even as Christ is the head of the Church." 2. Or, visible,
+comprehending the company of those that are called to the visible
+profession of the faith in Christ, and obedience unto Christ, according
+to the gospel, as Acts ii. 47, and v. 11, and viii. 3, and xii. 1, 5; 1
+Cor. xii. 23, and often elsewhere. Now in this description, church is
+not understood of a civil assembly; for such assemblies are governed by
+civil power. Nor of the invisible Church of Christ; for, as the Church
+is invisible, (to speak properly,) it is invisibly governed by Christ
+and his Spirit, Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20. But of the visible Church of
+Christ, for which Christ hath provided a visible polity, a visible
+government, by visible officers and ordinances, for the good both of the
+visible and invisible members thereof, which is that church government
+here spoken of.
+
+2. Government is the translation of a Greek word, which properly
+signifies the government of a ship with chart, &c., by the pilot or
+mariner, and thence metaphorically is used to signify any government,
+political or ecclesiastical. But the word is only once used in all the
+New Testament, viz. 1 Cor. xii. 28: _Governments_, h.e. ruling elders in
+the church; the abstract being put for the concrete, governments for
+governors. But whatever be the terms or names whereby government is
+expressed, government generally considered seems still to signify a
+superiority of office, power, and authority, which one hath and
+exerciseth over another. This is the notion of government in general. So
+that church government, in general, notes that pre-eminence or
+superiority of office, power, and authority, which some have and
+exercise over others in spiritual matters, in church affairs. And here
+we are further to consider, that church government is either, 1.
+Magisterial, lordly, and supreme; and so it is primitively and
+absolutely in God, Matt. xxviii. 18. Dispensatorily and mediatorily in
+Jesus Christ our Mediator only, whom God hath made both Lord and Christ,
+Acts ii. 36; Matt, xxiii. 8, 10; 1 Cor. viii. 6, and to whom God alone
+hath dispensed all authority and power, Matt, xxviii. 18, 19; John v.
+22. Now church government, as settled on Christ only, is monarchical. 2.
+Ministerial, stewardly, and subordinate; and this power Jesus Christ our
+Mediator hath committed to his church guides and officers in his Church,
+2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and church government, as intrusted in the
+hands of church guides, is representative. This ministerial church
+government, committed by Christ to his officers, may be considered
+either, 1. As it was dispensed under the Old Testament, in a Mosaical,
+Levitical polity; in which sense we here speak not of church government;
+(that polity being dissolved and antiquated.) 2. Or, as it is to be
+dispensed now under the New Testament, in an evangelical Christian
+polity, by Christ's New Testament officers; and this is that church
+government which is here described, viz. not the supreme magisterial
+government of Christ, but the subordinate ministerial government of
+Christ's officers; and this not as it was under the Old Testament, but
+as it ought to be now under the New Testament.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III.
+
+_Of the general Nature of Church Government, viz. Power or Authority._
+
+
+Touching the general nature of this government, which it participates in
+common with all other governments, it is power or authority. Here divers
+particulars are to be cleared and proved, viz:
+
+1. What is meant by power or authority? The word chiefly used in the New
+Testament for power or authority is used not only to denote Christ's
+supreme power, as Luke iv. 36; Mark i. 17, with Luke vi. 19; but also
+his officers' derived power, as with 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10. It is
+used to signify divers things: as, 1. Dignity, privilege, prerogative.
+"To them he gave prerogative to be the sons of God," John i. 12. 2.
+Liberty, leave, license; as, 1 Cor. viii. 9, "But so that your liberty
+become not an offence to the weak;" and 1 Cor. ix. 4, 5, "Have not we
+liberty to eat and drink? Have not we liberty to lead about a sister, a
+wife?" 3. But most usually right and authority; as, Matt. xxi. 23, 24,
+27, and xxviii. 18; so 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: in this last sense
+especially it is here to be taken in this description of church
+government.
+
+Power or authority in general is by some[24] thus described: that
+whereby one may claim or challenge any thing to one's self, without the
+injury of any other. Power is exercised either about things, or actions,
+or persons. 1. About things, as when a man disposes of his own goods,
+which he may do without wrong to any. 2. About actions, as when a man
+acts that which offends no law. 3. About persons, as when a man commands
+his children or servants that are under his own power.--Proportionably,
+the power of the Church in government is exercised, 1. About things, as
+when it is to be determined by the word, what the Church may call her
+own of right; as, that all the officers are hers, Eph; iv. 7, 8, 10, 11;
+1 Cor. xii. 28: that all the promises are hers, 2 Pet. i. 4; 1 Tim. iv.
+8: that Jesus Christ, and with Christ all things, are hers, 1 Cor. iii.
+21, 22. The keys of the kingdom of heaven are hers, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18, &c.; John xx. 21, 23, &c.: these things the Church may
+challenge without wrong to any. 2. About actions. As when it is to be
+determined by the word, what the Church of divine right may do, or not
+do: as, the Church may not _bear with them that are evil_, Rev. ii. 2;
+_nor tolerate women to teach_, or false doctrine to be broached, Rev.
+ii. 20, &c. The Church may _warn the unruly_, 1 Thess. v. 14:
+excommunicate the obstinate and incorrigible, Matt, xviii. 17, 18; 1
+Cor. v. 4, 5, 13: receive again penitent persons to the communion of the
+faithful, 2 Cor. ii. 7, 8: make binding decrees in synods, even to the
+restraining of the outward exercise of due Christian liberty for a time,
+for prevention of scandal, Acts xv. 3. About persons. The Church also
+hath a power to be exercised, for calling them to their duty, and
+keeping them in their duty according to the word of God: as, to _rebuke
+them before all_, that sin before all, 1 Tim. v. 20: to prove deacons,
+Acts vi. 2, 3, &c.; 1 Tim. iii. 10: _to ordain elders_, Tit. i. 5; Acts
+xiv. 23: to use the _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, in the dispensing
+of all ordinances, Matt, xviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt,
+xxviii. 18-20: and, in a word, (as the cause shall require,) to judge of
+all them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.
+
+This is the power and authority wherein the nature of church government
+generally doth consist.
+
+2. That all governments in Scripture are styled by the common names of
+power or authority: e.g. the absolute government of God over all things,
+is power, Acts i. 7: the supreme government of Jesus Christ, is power,
+Matt, xxviii. 18; Rev. xii. 10: the political government of the
+magistrate in commonwealths, is power, as John xix. 10; Rom. xiii. 1-3;
+Luke xxiii. 7: the military government of soldiers under superior
+commanders, is power, &c., Matt. viii. 9: the family government that the
+master of a family hath over his household, is power, 1 Tim. iii. 5, "If
+any man know not how to rule his own house." Yea, the very tyrannical
+rule that sin and Satan exercise over carnal men, is styled power, Acts
+xxvi. 18; Col. i. 13. Thus, generally, all sorts of government are
+commonly called power or authority.
+
+3. That thus the Scripture also styles church government, viz. power or
+authority, as 2 Cor. x. 8, "Of our authority" (or power) "which the Lord
+hath given us for your edification." Paul speaks it of this power of
+church government. And again, speaking of the same subject, he saith,
+"Lest being present, I should use sharpness, according to the power
+which the Lord hath given me to edification, and not to destruction." 2
+Cor. xiii. 10.
+
+For further clearing hereof, consider the several sorts or kinds of
+ecclesiastical power, according to this type or scheme of ecclesiastical
+power and authority here subjoined.
+
+Ecclesiastical power is either supreme and magisterial; or subordinate
+and ministerial.
+
+I. Supreme magisterial power, consisting in a lordly dominion and
+sovereignty over the Church; and may come under a double consideration,
+viz:
+
+1. As it is justly attributed to God alone. Thus the absolute
+sovereignty and supreme power (to speak properly) is only his over the
+Church, and all creatures in the whole universe: now this supreme divine
+power is either essential or mediatorial.
+
+1. Essential, viz. that power which belongs to the essence of God, and
+to every person of the Trinity in common, as God. "His kingdom ruleth
+over all," Psal. ciii. 19. "God ruleth in Jacob to the ends of the
+earth," Psal. lix. 13. "The kingdom is the Lord's, and he is the
+Governor among the nations," Psal. xxii. 28.
+
+2. Mediatorial, viz. that magisterial, lordly, and sovereign power or
+dominion, which God hath dispensed, delegated, or committed to Christ as
+Mediator, being both head of the Church, and over all things to the
+Church. This power is peculiar only to Jesus Christ our Mediator. "All
+power is given to me both in heaven and in earth," Matt. xxviii. 18.
+"The Father loveth the Son, and hath given all things into his hand,"
+John iii. 35. "The Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all
+judgment to the Son," John v. 22. "One is your Master, even Christ,"
+Matt. xxiii. 8, 10. "God hath put all things under his feet, and gave
+him to be head over all things to the Church," Eph. i. 20-23.--This
+power of Christ is the only proper fountain whence all ecclesiastical
+power flows to the Church.
+
+II. As it is unjustly arrogated and usurped by man; whether, 1. By the
+pope to himself; who arrogates to himself to be Christ's vicar, the
+supreme visible head on earth of the visible catholic Church of Christ;
+who exalts himself above all that is called God on earth, over
+magistrates, princes, kings, yea, over the souls and consciences of
+men, and the holy Scriptures of God themselves, &c., 2 Thess. ii. 4;
+Rev. xviii. 10-13.
+
+2. By earthly princes to themselves: as, King Henry VIII., who, casting
+off the papal power and primacy, was vested with it himself within his
+own dominions, over the Church, accounting himself the fountain of all
+ecclesiastical power, (it being by statute law annexed to the crown,)
+and assuming to himself that papal title of supreme head of the Church,
+&c., which is sharply taxed by orthodox divines of foreign churches.
+Thus, that most learned Rivet, taxing Bishop Gardiner for extolling the
+king's primacy, saith, "For, he that did as yet nourish the doctrine of
+the papacy, as after it appeared, did erect a new papacy in the person
+of the king."--Andrew Rivet, _Expli. Decalog. Edit._ ii. page 203.
+Judicious Calvin saith thus: "And to this day how many are there in the
+papacy that heap upon kings whatsoever right and power they can
+possibly, so that there may not be any dispute of religion; but should
+this power be in one king, to decree according to his own pleasure
+whatsoever he pleaseth, and that should remain fixed without
+controversy? They that at first so much extolled Henry, king of England,
+(certainly they were inconsiderate men,) gave unto him supreme power of
+all things, and this grievously wounded me always; for they were
+blasphemers, when they called him the supreme head of the Church under
+Christ: certainly this was too much. But let this remain buried, because
+they sinned by an inconsiderate zeal. But when that impostor, (he means
+Bishop Gardiner, as Rivet notes,) which after was chancellor of this
+Proserpina, which there at this day overcometh all the devils, he when
+he was at Ratisbon did not contend with reasons, (I speak of this last
+chancellor, who was Bishop of Winchester,) but as I now began to say, he
+much regarded not scripture testimonies; but said, it was at the
+pleasure of the king to abrogate the statutes, and institute new rites.
+Touching fasting, there the king can enjoin and command the people, that
+this or that day the people may eat flesh: yea, that it is lawful for
+the king to forbid priests to marry; yea, that it is lawful for the king
+to forbid to the people the use of the cup in the Lord's supper; that it
+is lawful for the king to decree this or that in his kingdom. Why?
+Because the king hath the supreme power. It is certain, if kings do
+their duty, they are both patrons of religion, and nurse-fathers of the
+Church, as Isaiah calls them, Isa. xlix. 23. This, therefore, is
+principally required of kings, that they use the sword wherewith they
+are furnished, for the maintaining of God's worship. But in the mean
+time there are inconsiderate men, that make them too spiritual; and this
+fault reigns up and down Germany; yea, spreads too much in
+these countries. And now we perceive what fruits spring from this root,
+viz: that princes, and all that are in place of government, think
+themselves to be so spiritual, that there is no other ecclesiastical
+government. And this sacrilege creeps among us, because they cannot
+measure their office with certain and lawful bounds, but are of opinion
+they cannot reign, unless they abolish all the authority of the Church,
+and become the chief judges both in doctrine, and in the whole spiritual
+government. At the beginning they pretend some zeal; but mere ambition
+drives them, that so solicitously they snatch all things to themselves.
+Therefore there ought to be a temper kept; for this disease hath always
+reigned in princes, to desire to bend religion according to their own
+pleasure and lust, and for their own profits in the mean time. For they
+have respect to their profit, because for the most part they are not
+acted by the Spirit of God, but their ambition carries them." Thus
+Calvin in Amos vii. 13. Oh what exclamations would this holy man have
+poured out, had he lived to see the passages of our days! _Quis talia
+fando temperet a lachrymis!_[25]
+
+II. Subordinate ministerial power, which is either,
+
+1. Indirectly, improperly, and only objectively ecclesiastical or
+spiritual, (so called, because it is exercised about spiritual or
+ecclesiastical objects, though formally in its own nature it be properly
+a mere civil or political power.) This is that power which is allowed to
+the civil magistrate about religion; he is _an overseer of things
+without the Church_, having an external care of religion as a
+_nurse-father_, Isa. xlix. 23; as had Hezekiah, Josiah, Asa,
+Jehoshaphat, &c.; so as, by the law, to restore religion decayed, reform
+the Church corrupted, protect the Church reformed, &c.
+
+2. Directly, properly, and formally ecclesiastical or spiritual, having
+respect properly to matters within the Church. This power only belongs
+to church officers, who are overseers of things within, 1 Cor. iv. 20,
+21; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; and this is either, 1. More special and
+peculiar to the office of some church governors only, as the power of
+preaching the gospel, dispensing the sacraments, &c., which is only
+committed to the ministers of the gospel, and which they, as ministers,
+may execute, in virtue of their office. This is called by some the key
+of doctrine, or key of knowledge; by others, the power of order, or of
+special office. See Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Rom. x. 15; 1 Tim. v. 17. 2.
+More general and common to the office of all church governors, as the
+power of censures, &c., wherein ruling elders act with ministers,
+admonishing the unruly, excommunicating the incorrigible, remitting and
+receiving again of the penitent into church communion. Compare Matt,
+xviii. 17, 18; 1 Cor. v. 2, 4, 5, 7, 11-13; 2 Cor. ii. 6-12, with Rom.
+xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and 1 Tim. v. 17. This is called the key of
+discipline, or power of jurisdiction.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV.
+
+_Of the special difference of Church Government from other Governments.
+And first of the Special Rule of Church Government, viz. the Holy
+Scriptures._
+
+
+Touching the special difference, whereby church government is in this
+description distinguished from all other governments whatsoever, it
+consists of many branches, which will require more large explication and
+confirmation; and shall be handled, not according to that order, as they
+are first named in the description, but according to the order of
+nature, as they most conduce to the clearing of one another, every
+branch being distinctly laid down, as followeth:
+
+The rule or standard of church government is only the holy Scriptures.
+Thus in the description, church government is styled a power or
+authority revealed in the holy Scriptures. For clearing hereof, take
+this proposition, viz:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a perfect and
+sufficient rule for the government of his visible Church under the New
+Testament, which all the members of his Church ought to observe and
+submit unto until the end of the world. For clearing this, weigh these
+considerations:
+
+1. The government of the visible Church under the New Testament is as
+needful as ever it was under the Old Testament. What necessity of
+government could be pleaded then, which may not as strongly be pleaded
+now? Is not the visible Church of Christ a mixed body of sound and
+unsound members, of fruitful and barren branches, of tares and wheat, of
+good and bad, of sincere believers and hypocrites, of sheep and goats,
+&c., now as well as it was then? Is there not as great cause to separate
+and distinguish by church power, between the precious and the vile, the
+clean and the unclean, (who are apt to defile, infect, and leaven one
+another,) now as well as then? Ought there not to be as great care over
+the holy ordinances of God, to preserve and guard them from contempt and
+pollution, by a hedge and fence of government, now as well as then? Is
+it not as necessary that by government sin be suppressed, piety
+promoted, and the Church edified, now as well as then? But under the Old
+Testament the Church visible had a perfect rule of church government,
+(as is granted on all sides:) and hath Jesus Christ left his Church now
+under the New Testament in a worse condition?
+
+2. The Lord Jesus Christ (upon whose shoulder God hath laid the
+government, Isa. ix. 6, and unto whom _all power both in heaven and in
+earth is given_ by the Father to that end, Matt. xxviii. 18) _is most
+faithful in all his house_, the Church, fully to discharge all the trust
+committed to him, and completely to supply his Church with all
+necessaries both to her being, and well-being ecclesiastical. Moses was
+faithful in the Old Testament; for, as God gave him a pattern of church
+government in the ceremonial law, so he did all things according to the
+pattern; and shall the Lord Jesus be less faithful as _a son over his
+own house,_ than was Moses as a servant over another's house? "Consider
+the Apostle and High Priest of our profession, Christ Jesus, who was
+faithful to him that appointed him, as also Moses was faithful in all
+his house--and Moses verily was faithful in all his house as a
+servant--but Christ as a son over his own house, whose house are we,"
+Heb. iii. 1, 2, 5, 6. Yea, "Jesus Christ, the same yesterday, and
+to-day, and forever," Heb. xiii. 8, giving a pattern of church
+government to Moses, and the church officers of the Old Testament, (the
+Church being then as a child in nonage and minority, Gal, iv. 1, &c.,)
+can we imagine he hath not as carefully left a pattern of church
+government to his apostles, and the church officers of the New
+Testament, the Church being now as a man come to full age and maturity?
+
+3. The holy Scriptures are now completely and unalterably perfect,
+containing such exact rules for the churches of God in all states and
+ages, both under the Old and New Testament, that not only the people of
+God, of all sorts and degrees, but also the men of God, and officers of
+the Church, of all sorts and ages, may thereby be made perfect,
+thoroughly furnished unto all good works. "The law of the Lord is
+perfect," Psal. xix. 7. "All Scripture is given by inspiration of God,
+and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for
+instruction in righteousness, that the man of God may be perfect,
+thoroughly furnished to every good work," 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17. And in his
+first epistle to Timothy, (which is the Church's directory for divine
+worship, discipline, and government,) he saith, "These things write I
+unto thee--that thou mightest know how thou oughtest to behave thyself
+in the house of God, which is the Church of the living God," (this is
+spoken in reference to matters of church government peculiarly,) 1 Tim.
+iii. 14, 15. And the apostle, having respect to the former matters in
+his epistle, saith to Timothy, and to all Timothies after him, "I give
+thee charge in the sight of God--that thou keep this commandment without
+spot, unrebukable, until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ,"
+(therefore, this charge is intended for all ministers after Timothy to
+the world's end,) 1 Tim. vi. 13, 14, compared with 1 Tim. v. 21, observe
+_these things_. And the perfection of the whole scripture canon is
+sealed up with that testimony in the close of the last book, "If any man
+shall add unto these things, God shall add unto him the plagues that are
+written in this book: and if any man shall take away from the words of
+the book of this prophecy, God shall take away his part out of the book
+of life, and out of the holy city, and from the things which are written
+in this book," Rev. xxii. 18, 19. Now, if the Scriptures be thus
+accurately perfect and complete, they must needs contain a sufficient
+pattern, and rules of church government now under the New Testament;
+which rules are scattered here and there in several books of the word,
+(as flowers grow scattered in the field, as silver is mingled in the
+mine, or as gold is mixed with the sand,) that so God may exercise his
+Church, in sifting and searching them out.
+
+4. All the substantials of church government under the New Testament are
+laid down in the word in particular rules, whether they be touching
+officers, ordinances, censures, assemblies, and the compass of their
+power, as after will appear; and all the circumstantials are laid down
+in the word, under general rules of order, decency, and edification, 1
+Cor, xiv. 40, and ver. 5,12, 26.
+
+Consequently, there is a perfect and sufficient rule for church
+government laid down in the Scriptures, which is obligatory upon all.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V.
+
+_Of the Proper Author or Fountain, whence Church Government and the
+authority thereof is derived by Divine Right, viz. Jesus Christ our
+Mediator._
+
+
+As the Scripture is the rule of church government, so Christ is the sole
+root and fountain whence it originally flows; therefore, it is said in
+the description, church government is a power or authority, derived from
+Jesus Christ our Mediator. Take it in this proposition, viz:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath all authority and power in heaven and in
+earth, for the government of his Church, committed unto him from God the
+Father. This is clearly evident,
+
+1. By plain testimonies of Scripture, declaring that the government of
+the Church is laid upon his shoulder, to which end the Father hath
+invested him with all authority and power. "The government shall be upon
+his shoulder," &c., Isa. ix. 6,7. "All power is given me in heaven and in
+earth: go, disciple ye all nations," &c., Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. "He shall
+be great, and shall be called the Son of the Highest, and the Lord God
+shall give unto him the throne of his father David; and he shall reign
+over the house of Jacob forever, and of his kingdom there shall be no
+end," Luke i. 32, 33. "The Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all
+judgment to the Son; and hath given him authority to execute judgment
+also, because he is the Son of man," John v. 22, 27. "The Father loveth
+the Son, and hath given all things into his hand," John iii. 35. "It is
+he that hath the key of David, that openeth and no man shutteth, and
+shutteth and no man openeth," Rev. iii. 7. "God raised him from the
+dead, and set him at his own right hand in the heavenly places, far
+above all principality, and power, and might, and dominion, and every
+name that is named, not only in this world, but also in that which is to
+come: and hath put all things under his feet, and gave him to be the
+head over all things to the Church, which is his body," Eph. i. 20-23,
+
+2. By eminent princely titles, attributed unto Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, having such authority, power, rule, and government legibly
+engraven upon their foreheads, in reference to his Church.
+
+"A Governor which shall feed" (or rule) "my people Israel," Matt. ii. 6.
+"That great Shepherd of the sheep," Heb. xiii. 20. "That Shepherd and
+Bishop of our souls," 1 Pet. ii. ult. "One is your master, Christ,"
+Matt, xxiii. 8, 10. "Christ as a son over his own house," Heb. iii. 6.
+"The Head of the body the Church," Col. i. 18; Eph. v. 23. "Head over
+all things to the Church," Eph. i. 22. "To us but one Lord Jesus
+Christ," 1 Cor. viii. 6. "Made of God both Lord and Christ," Acts ii.
+36. "Lord of lords," Rev. xix. 16. "He is Lord of all," Acts x. 36.
+"God's King set on his holy hill of Zion," Psal. ii. 6. "David their
+king," Jer. xxx. 9; Ezek. xxxiv. 23, and xxxvii. 24; Hos. iii. 5. "King
+of kings," Rev. xix. 16.
+
+3. By those primitive, fundamental, imperial acts of power, and supreme
+authority in the government of the Church, which are peculiarly ascribed
+to Jesus Christ our Mediator, as appropriate to him alone, above all
+creatures, e.g.
+
+1. The giving of laws to his Church. "The law of Christ," Gal. vi. 2.
+"Gave commandments to the apostles," Acts i. 2. "There is one Lawgiver,
+who is able to save and to destroy," James iv. 12. "The Lord is our
+judge, the Lord is our lawgiver," (or statute-maker,) "the Lord is our
+king," Isa. xxxiii. 22.
+
+2. The constituting of ordinances, whereby his Church shall be edified:
+as _preaching the word_, Matt. x. 7; 1 Cor. i. 17; Matt, xxviii. 18-20;
+Mark xvi. 15. _Administering of the sacraments. Baptism_, John i. 33,
+with Matt. iii. 13, &c., and xxviii. 18, 19. _The Lord's supper_, 1 Cor.
+xi. 20, 23, &c.; Matt. xxvi. 26, &c.; Mark xiv. 22, &c.; Luke xxii. 19,
+20. _Dispensing of censures_, Matt. xvi. 10, with xviii. 15-18, &c.
+
+3. The ordaining and appointing of his own church officers, by whom his
+ordinances shall be dispensed and managed in his Church. "He gave gifts
+to men; and he gave some, apostles; and some, prophets; and some,
+evangelists; and some, pastors and teachers," Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11; compare
+1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Thess. v. 12; Acts xx. 28.
+
+4. The dispensing of Christ's ordinances, not in the name of
+magistrates, ministers, churches, councils, &c., but in Christ's own
+name. The apostles did "speak and teach in the name of Jesus," Acts iv.
+17, 18. "Whatsoever ye ask in my name," John xiv. 13, 14, and xvi. 23.
+"Baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son," Matt,
+xxviii. 18, 19. "They were baptized in the name of the Lord Jesus," Acts
+xix. 5. "In the name--with the power of our Lord Jesus Christ, to
+deliver such a one to Satan," 1 Cor. v. 4. Yea, assemblies of the Church
+are to be in Christ's name: "Where two or three are gathered together in
+my name," Matt, xviii. 20.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI.
+
+_Of the Special Kind, or Peculiar Nature of this Power and Authority._
+
+
+Having viewed what is the rule of this authority, viz. the holy
+Scriptures, and what is the fountain of this authority, viz. Jesus
+Christ our Mediator; now consider the special kind or peculiar nature of
+this authority, which the description lays down in two several
+expressions, viz: 1. It is a spiritual power or authority. 2. It is a
+derived power, &c.
+
+1. The power or authority of church government is a spiritual power.
+Spiritual, not so perfectly and completely as Christ's supreme
+government is spiritual, who alone hath absolute and immediate power and
+authority over the very spirits and consciences of men; ruling them by
+the invisible influence of his Spirit and grace as he pleaseth, John
+iii. 8; Rom. viii. 14; Gal. ii. 20: but so purely, properly, and merely
+spiritual is this power, that it really, essentially, and specifically
+differs, and is contradistinct from that power which is properly civil,
+worldly, and political, in the hand of the political magistrate. Now,
+that this power of church government is in this sense properly, purely,
+merely spiritual: and that by divine right may be evidenced many ways
+according to Scripture; forasmuch as the rule, fountain, matter, form,
+subject, object, end, and the all of this power, is only spiritual.
+
+1. Spiritual in the rule, revealing and regulating it, viz. not any
+principles of state policy, parliament rolls, any human statutes, laws,
+ordinances, edicts, decrees, traditions, or precepts of men whatsoever,
+according to which cities, provinces, kingdoms, empires, may be happily
+governed: but the holy Scriptures, that perfect divine canon, wherein
+the Lord Christ hath revealed sufficiently how his own house, his
+Church, shall be ruled, 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15; and all his ordinances,
+word, sacraments, censures, &c., shall therein be dispensed, 2 Tim. iii.
+16, 17. (See chap. IV.) Now this Scripture is divinely breathed, or
+inspired of God--holy men writing not according to the fallible will of
+man, but the infallible acting of the Holy Ghost, 2 Tim. iii. 16, with 2
+Pet. i. 20, 21.
+
+2. Spiritual in the fountain or author of this power, whence it
+originally flows; it being derived, not from any magistrate, prince, or
+potentate in the world, not from any man on earth, or the will of man;
+but only from Jesus Christ our Mediator, himself being the sole or first
+receptacle of all power from the Father, Matt. xxviii. 18; John v. 22:
+and consequently, the very fountain of all power and authority to his
+Church, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, with John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 18-20; 2 Cor. x. 8. See this formerly cleared, chap. III. and V.
+
+3. Spiritual in the matter of it, and the several parts of this power:
+therefore called the _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, not the keys of
+the kingdoms of earth, Matt. xvi. 19, (as Christ professed his _kingdom
+was not of this world_, John xviii. 36; and when one requested of
+Christ, that by his authority he would speak to his brother to divide
+the inheritance with him, Christ disclaimed utterly all such worldly,
+earthly power, saying, "Man, who made me a judge or a divider over you?"
+Luke xii. 13, 14.) Consider these heavenly spiritual keys in the kinds
+of them, whether of doctrine or discipline; or in the acts of them,
+whether of binding or loosing, in all which they are spiritual: e.g. the
+doctrine which is preached is not human but divine, revealed in the
+Scriptures by the Spirit of God, and handling most sublime spiritual
+mysteries of religion, 2 Pet. i.; 2 Tim. iii. 16,17. The seals
+administered are not worldly seals, confirming and ratifying any carnal
+privileges, liberties, interests, authority, &c., but spiritual,
+_sealing the righteousness of faith_, Rom. iv. 11; the death and blood
+of Jesus Christ, with all the spiritual virtue and efficacy thereof unto
+his members, Rom. v. 6; Gal. iii.; 1 Cor. x. 16, 17, and xi. 23, 24, &c.
+The censures dispensed are not pecuniary, corporal, or capital, by
+fines, confiscations, imprisonments, whippings, stocking, stigmatizing,
+or taking away of limb or life, (all such things this government meddles
+not withal, but leaves them to such as bear the civil sword,) but
+spiritual, that only concern the soul and conscience; as _admonishing_
+of the unruly and disorderly, Matt, xviii. 18, 19; _casting out the
+incorrigible_ and obstinate from the spiritual fellowship of the saints,
+Matt. xviii. 18, 19; 2 Cor. v. ult.: _receiving again into spiritual
+communion_ of the faithful, such as are penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 6. Thus the
+binding and loosing, which are counted the chief acts of the keys, are
+spiritually by our Saviour interpreted to be the _remitting and
+retaining of sins_; compare Matt, xviii. 18, 19, with John xx. 21, 23.
+
+4. Spiritual in the form and manner, as well as in the matter. For this
+power is to be exercised, not in a natural manner, or in any carnal
+name, of earthly magistrate, court, parliament, prince, or potentate
+whatsoever, as all secular civil power is; no, nor in the name of
+saints, ministers, or the churches: but in a spiritual manner, in the
+name of the Lord Jesus, from whom alone all his officers receive their
+commissions. The word is to be _preached in his name_, Acts xvii. 18:
+seals dispensed in his name, Matt. xxviii. 19; Acts xix. 5: censures
+inflicted in his name, 1 Cor. v. 4, &c. (See chap. V.)
+
+5. Spiritual in the subject intrusted with this power; which is not any
+civil, political, or secular magistrate, (as after will more fully
+appear, in chap. IX.) but spiritual officers, which Christ himself hath
+instituted and bestowed upon his Church, _apostles_, &c., _pastors,
+teachers, elders_, Eph. iv. 7, 8, 10, 11. To these only he hath given
+the _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18,19,
+and xxviii. 18, 19; John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, _authority which the
+Lord hath given us_. These he hath made _governments in his Church_, 1
+Cor. xii. 28. To these he will have _obedience and subjection_
+performed, Heb. xiii. 17, and _double honor_ allowed, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+
+6. Spiritual in respect of the object about which this power is to be
+put forth and exercised, viz. not about things, actions, or persons
+civil, as such; but spiritual and ecclesiastical, as such. Thus
+injurious actions, not as trespasses against any statute or law
+political; but as scandalous to our brethren, or the Church of God,
+Matt, xviii. 18, 19; are considered and punished by this power. Thus the
+incestuous person was cast out, because a wicked person in himself, and
+likely to leaven others by his bad example, 1 Cor. v. 6. Thus the
+persons whom the Church may judge are not the men of the world without
+the Church, but those that are in some sense spiritual, and within the
+Church, 1 Cor. v. 12.
+
+7. Spiritual also is this power in the scope and end of it. This the
+Scripture frequently inculcates: e.g. a brother is to be admonished
+privately, publicly, &c., not for the gaining of our private interests,
+advantages, &c., but for _the gaining of our brother_, that his soul and
+conscience may be gained to God and to his duty, and he be reformed,
+Matt, xviii. 15. The incestuous person is to be "delivered to Satan, for
+the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day of
+our Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 5; yea, the whole authority given to church
+guides from the Lord was given to this end, _for the edification, not
+the destruction_ of the Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; all which,
+and such like, are spiritual ends. Thus the power of church government
+here described is wholly and entirely a spiritual power, whether we
+respect the rule, root, matter, form, subject, object, or end thereof.
+So that in this respect it is really and specifically distinct from all
+civil power, and in no respect encroacheth upon, or can be prejudicial
+unto the magistrate's authority, which is properly and only political.
+
+2. The power or authority of church government is a derived power. For
+clearing this, observe, there is a magisterial primitive supreme power,
+which is peculiar to Jesus Christ our Mediator, (as hath been proved,
+chap. III. and V:) and there is a ministerial, derivative, subordinate
+power, which the Scripture declares to be in church guides, Matt. xvi.
+19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 23; Matt, xxviii. 19, 20; 2 Cor. x. 8,
+and xiii. 10, and often elsewhere this is abundantly testified. But
+whence is this power originally derived to them? Here we are carefully
+to consider and distinguish three things, touching this power or
+authority from one another, viz: 1st. The donation of the authority
+itself, and of the offices whereunto this power doth properly belong.
+2d. The designation of particular persons to such offices as are vested
+with such power. 3d. The public protection, countenancing, authorizing,
+defending, and maintaining of such officers in the public exercise of
+such power within such and such realms or dominions. This being
+premised, we may clearly thus resolve, according to scripture warrant,
+viz. the designation or setting apart of particular individual persons
+to those offices in the Church that have power and authority engraven
+upon them, is from the church nominating, electing, and ordaining of
+such persons thereunto, see Acts iii. 1-3; 1 Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22;
+Tit. i. 5; Acts iv. 22. The public protection, defence, maintenance,
+&c., of such officers in the public exercise of the power and authority
+of their office in such or such dominions, is from the civil magistrate,
+as the _nursing-father_ of the Church, Isa. xlix. 23; for it is by his
+authority and sanction that such public places shall be set apart for
+the public ministry, that such maintenance and reward shall be legally
+performed for such a ministry, that all such persons of such and such
+congregations shall be (in case they neglect their duty to such a
+ministry) punished with such political penalties, &c. But the donation
+of the office and spiritual authority annexed thereunto, is only derived
+from Jesus Christ our Mediator. He alone gives all church officers, and
+therefore none may devise or superadd any new officers, Eph. iv. 7, 8,
+10, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28. And he alone commits all authority and power
+spiritual to those officers, for dispensing of word, sacraments,
+censures, and all ordinances, Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18-20; John xx.
+21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: and therefore it is not safe for any
+creature to intrude upon this prerogative royal of Christ to give any
+power to any officer of the Church. None can give what he has not.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII.
+
+_Of the several Parts or Acts of this power of Church Government,
+wherein it puts forth itself in the Church._
+
+
+Thus far of the special kind or peculiar nature of this authority; now
+to the several parts or acts of this power which the description
+comprehends in these expressions, (in dispensing the word, seals,
+censures, and all other ordinances of Christ.) The evangelical
+ordinances which Christ has set up in his church are many; and all of
+them by divine right that Christ sets up. Take both the enumeration of
+ordinances and the divine right thereof severally, as followeth.
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath instituted and appointed these ensuing
+administrations to be standing and perpetual ordinances in his church:
+which ordinances for method sake may be reduced into two heads,
+according to the distribution of the keys formerly laid down, (chap.
+III.,) viz., ordinances appertaining, 1st, To the key of order or of
+doctrine; 2d, To the key of jurisdiction or of discipline.
+
+1. Ordinances appertaining to the key of order or doctrine, viz:
+
+1. Public prayer and thanksgiving are divine ordinances: for 1st, Paul
+writing his first epistle to Timothy, "that he might know how to behave
+himself in the house of God," 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15, among other directions
+in that epistle, gives this for one, "I exhort therefore that first of
+all supplications, prayers, intercessions, and giving of thanks be made
+for all men," 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2, "for this is good and acceptable in the
+sight of God our Saviour," verse 3. 2. The apostle, regulating public
+prayers in the congregation, directing that they should be performed
+with the understanding, takes it for granted that public prayer was an
+ordinance of Christ. "If I pray in an unknown tongue, my spirit prayeth,
+but my understanding is unfruitful. What is it then? I will pray with
+the spirit, and will pray with the understanding also. Else when thou
+shalt bless with the spirit, how shall he that occupieth the room of the
+unlearned, say amen at thy giving of thanks, seeing he understandeth not
+what thou sayest? for thou verily givest thanks well, but the other is
+not edified." 1 Cor. xiv. 14-17. 3. Further, the apostles did account
+public prayer to be of more concern than serving of tables, and
+providing for the necessities of the poor, yea, to be a principal part
+of their ministerial office, and therefore resolve to addict and "give
+themselves to the ministry of the word and to prayer," Acts vi. 4; and
+this was the church's practice in the purest times, Acts i. 13, 14,
+whose pious action is for our imitation. 4. And Jesus Christ hath made
+gracious promises to public prayer, viz., of his presence with those who
+assemble in his name; and of audience of their prayers, Matt, xviii. 19,
+20. Would Christ so crown public prayer were it not his own ordinance?
+
+2. Singing of psalms is a divine ordinance, being,
+
+1. Prescribed; "be filled with the spirit: speaking to yourselves in
+psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs," Eph. v. 18, 19. "Let the word
+of Christ dwell in you richly in all wisdom, teaching and admonishing
+one another in psalms, and hymns, and spiritual songs," Col. iii. 16.
+
+2. Regulated; the right performance thereof being laid down, "I will
+sing with the spirit, and I will sing with the understanding also," 1
+Cor. xiv. 15, 16. "Singing with grace in your hearts to the Lord," Col.
+iii. 16. "Singing and making melody in your hearts to the Lord," Eph. v.
+19.
+
+3. The public ministry of the word of God in the congregation is a
+divine ordinance. "We will give ourselves," said the apostles, "to the
+ministry of the word and prayer," Acts vi. 4. The ministry of the word
+is a sacred ordinance, whether read, preached, or catechetically
+propounded.
+
+1. The public reading of the word is a divine ordinance, (though
+exposition of what is read do not always immediately follow.) For, 1.
+God commanded the reading of the word publicly, and never since repealed
+that command, Deut. xxxi. 11-13; Jer. xxxvi. 6; Col. iii. 16. 2. Public
+reading of the scriptures hath been the practice of God's church, both
+before Christ, Exod. xxiv. 7; Neh. viii. 18, and ix. 3, and xiii. 1; and
+after Christ, Acts xiii. 15, 27, and xv. 21; 2 Cor. iii. 14. 3. Public
+reading of the scriptures is as necessary and profitable now as ever it
+was. See Deut. xxxi. 11-13.
+
+2. The public preaching of the word is an eminent ordinance of Christ.
+This is evident many ways, viz:
+
+1. Christ hath commanded that the word shall be preached. "Go ye into
+all the world, and preach the gospel to every creature," Mark xvi. 15.
+"Go ye, therefore, and disciple ye all nations; teaching them to observe
+all things whatsoever I have commanded you," Matt, xxviii. 19, 20. "As
+ye go, preach, saying, The kingdom of heaven is at hand," Matt. x. 7.
+See also Mark iii. 14. "I charge thee," &c. "Preach the word," 2 Tim.
+iv. 1, 2. "Necessity is laid upon me, yea, wo is unto me if I preach not
+the gospel," 1 Cor. ix. 16, 17. "Christ sent me--to preach the gospel,"
+1 Cor. i. 17; with which compare also Acts xx. 28, and 1 Pet. v. 1-4.
+
+2. Christ hath appointed who shall preach the word. "How shall they
+preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15. The qualifications of preaching
+elders see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, and Tit. i. 5-9.
+
+3. Christ hath appointed how the word shall be preached. "Be instant, in
+season, out of season, reprove, rebuke, exhort with all long-suffering
+and doctrine," 2 Tim. iv. 2. "That he may be able by sound doctrine
+both to exhort and convince gainsayers," Tit. i. 9. "He that hath my
+word, let him speak my word faithfully: what is the chaff to the wheat,
+saith the Lord?" Jer. xxiii. 28.
+
+4. Christ hath made many encouraging promises to the preaching of his
+word, which he would not have done, were it not his own ordinance.
+"Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you,
+and lo I am with you every day to the end of the world," Matt, xxviii.
+20. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth, shall be bound in heaven; and
+whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven," Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted
+unto them: and whose soever sins ye retain, they are retained," John xx.
+23. Both these are partly meant of doctrinal binding and loosing,
+remitting and retaining. "Be not afraid, but speak, and hold not thy
+peace: for I am with thee, and no man shall set on thee to hurt thee,
+for I have much people in this city," Acts xviii. 9, 10.
+
+3. The catechetical propounding or expounding of the word, viz. a plain,
+familiar laying down of the first principles of the oracles of God, is
+an ordinance of Christ also. For, 1. This was the apostolical way of
+teaching the churches at the first plantation thereof. "When for the
+time ye ought to be teachers, ye have need that one teach you again
+which be the first principles of the oracles of God, and are become such
+as have need of milk and not of strong meat," Heb. v. 12. "Therefore,
+leaving the word of the beginning of Christ, let us go on unto
+perfection, not laying again the foundation of repentance from dead
+works, and of faith towards God," &c., Heb. vi. 1,2. "And I, brethren,
+could not speak unto you as unto spiritual, but as unto carnal, as unto
+babes in Christ. I have fed you with milk, and not with meat, for
+hitherto ye were not able to bear it, neither yet now are ye able," 1
+Cor. iii. 1, 2. 2. And this is the sense of pastor and people which the
+Holy Ghost useth, setting forth the reciprocal relation and office
+between them, with his own approbation. "Let him that is catechized in
+the word, communicate to him that catechizeth him, in all good things,"
+Gal. vi. 6.
+
+4. The administration of the sacraments is of divine institution.
+
+1. Of baptism. "He that sent me to baptize with water," John i. 33. "Go
+ye therefore, disciple ye all nations, baptizing them into the name of
+the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost," Matt, xxviii. 18-20.
+
+2. Of the Lord's supper, which Christ ordained _the same night in which
+he was betrayed_: which institution is at large described, 1 Cor. xi.
+20, 23, &c.; Matt. xxvi. 26-31; Mark xiv. 22-27; Luke xxii. 19, 20.
+
+2. Ordinances appertaining to the key of jurisdiction or of discipline,
+viz:
+
+1. The ordination of presbyters with imposition of the hands of the
+presbytery, after praying and fasting, is a divine ordinance. "Neglect
+not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by prophecy with the
+laying on of the hands of the presbytery," 1 Tim. iv. 14. Titus was left
+in Crete for this end, "To set in order things that were wanting, and
+ordain presbyters" (or elders) "in every city, as Paul had appointed
+him," Tit. i. 5. Timothy is charged, "Lay hands suddenly on no man,
+neither be partaker of other men's sins; keep thyself pure," 1 Tim. v.
+22. Paul and Barnabas came to Lystra, Iconium, and Antioch, and "when
+they had ordained them presbyters in every church, and had prayed with
+fasting, they commended them to the Lord," &c., Acts xiv. 21, 23.
+
+2. Authoritative discerning, and judging of doctrine according to the
+word of God, is a divine ordinance. As that council at Jerusalem,
+authoritatively (viz. by ministerial authority) judged of both the false
+doctrine and manners of false teachers, branding them for "troublers of
+the Church, subverters of souls," &c. "Forasmuch as we have heard that
+certain, coming forth from u, have troubled you with words, subverting
+your souls, saying, ye ought to be circumcised, and keep the law, to
+whom we gave no such commandment," Acts xv. 24; "it seemed good to the
+Holy Ghost, and to us, to impose upon you no greater burden than these
+necessary things," v. 28; and this was done upon debates from scripture
+grounds, "and to this the words of the prophets agree," Acts xv. 15:
+and afterwards their results and determinations are called "decrees
+ordained by the apostles and elders," Acts xvi. 4.
+
+3. Admonition and public rebuke of sinners is a divine ordinance of
+Christ. "If thy brother trespass against thee, go and tell him his
+fault between thee and him alone: if he will not hear thee, then take
+with thee one or two more--and if he shall neglect to hear them, tell it
+unto the Church," Matt, xviii. 15-17. "Whose soever sins ye bind on
+earth shall be bound in heaven," John xx. 23. One way and degree of
+binding is by authoritative, convincing reproof. "Admonish the unruly,"
+1 Thess. v. 14. "An heretic, after the first and second admonition,
+reject," Tit. iii. 1. "Them that sin, convincingly reprove before all,
+that the rest also may fear," 1 Tim. v. 20. "Rebuke them sharply," (or
+convince them cuttingly,) Tit. iii. 13. "Sufficient to such an one is
+that rebuke, which was from many," 2 Cor. ii. 6.
+
+4. Rejecting, and purging out, or putting away from the communion of the
+Church, wicked and incorrigible persons, is an ordinance of Christ. "And
+if he will not hear them, tell the Church; but if he will not hear the
+Church, let him be unto thee even as a heathen and a publican." "Verily,
+I say unto you, what things soever ye shall bind on earth, they shall be
+bound in heaven," Matt, xviii. 17, 18, compared with Matt. xvi. 19, and
+John xx. 21, 23. "An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject,"
+Tit. iii. 10; i.e. excommunicate, till he repent--_Pisc. in loc._ By
+the lawful judgment of the Church, to deliver the impenitent to
+Satan.--_Beza in loc._ "Of whom is Hymeneus and Alexander, whom I have
+delivered to Satan, that they may learn not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i. 20.
+The apostle's scope in 1 Cor. v. is to press the church of Corinth to
+excommunicate the incestuous person. "Ye are puffed up, and have not
+rather mourned, that he that hath done this deed may be taken from the
+midst of you. For I verily, as absent in body, but present in spirit,
+have already as present judged him that thus wrought this thing. In the
+name of our Lord Jesus Christ, you being gathered together, and my
+spirit with the power of our Lord Jesus Christ, to deliver such an one
+to Satan for the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved
+in the day of our Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 2-5. "Know ye not that a little
+leaven leaveneth the whole lump? Purge out therefore the old leaven,"
+ver. 7. "I wrote to you in an epistle, not to be mingled together with
+fornicators," ver. 9, 11; and explaining what he meant by not being
+_mingled together_, saith, "If any named a brother be a fornicator, or
+covetous, or an idolater, or a reviler, or drunkard, or rapacious, with
+such an one not to eat together," ver. 11. "Therefore take away from
+among yourselves that wicked person," ver. 13.
+
+5. Seasonable remitting, receiving, comforting, and authoritative
+confirming again in the communion of the Church those that are penitent.
+"What things soever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven,"
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "Whose soever sins ye remit, they are
+remitted unto them," John xx. 23. This loosing and remitting is not only
+doctrinal and declarative in the preaching of the word, but also
+juridical and authoritative in the administration of censures. This is
+called, for distinction's sake, absolution. After the church of Corinth
+had excommunicated the incestuous person, and he thereupon had given
+sufficient testimony of his repentance, the apostle directs them to
+receive him into church communion again, saying, "Sufficient to such an
+one is that rebuke inflicted of many; so that contrariwise you should
+rather forgive and comfort him, lest such an one should be swallowed up
+of abundant sorrow. Wherefore I beseech authoritatively to confirm love
+unto him: for to this purpose also I have written unto you, that I may
+know the proof of you, if ye be obedient in all things," 2 Cor. ii. 6-9.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII.
+
+_Of the End and Scope of this Government of the Church._
+
+
+The end or scope intended by Christ in instituting, and to be aimed at
+by Christ's officers in executing of church government in dispensing the
+word, sacrament, censures, and all ordinances of Christ, is (as the
+description expresseth) _the edifying of the Church of Christ_. This end
+is very comprehensive. For the fuller evidencing whereof these two
+things are to be proved:1st, That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under
+the New Testament one general visible Church on earth. 2d. That the
+edification of this Church of Christ is that eminent scope and end why
+Christ gave the power of church government and other ordinances unto the
+Church.
+
+I. For the first, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath under the New
+Testament a general visible Church on earth, made up of all particular
+churches, may be cleared by considering well these particulars.
+
+1st. That it is evident by the Scriptures that Jesus Christ hath on
+earth many particular visible churches: (whether churches
+congregational, presbyterial, provincial, or national, needs not here be
+determined.) "Unto the churches of Galatia," Gal. i. 2. "The churches
+of Judea," Gal. i. 22. "Through Syria and Cilicia, confirming the
+churches," Acts xv. 41. "To the seven churches in Asia," Rev. i. 4, 20.
+"The church of Ephesus," Rev. ii. 1. "The church in Smyrna," ver. 8.
+"The church in Pergamus," ver. 12. "The church in Thyatira," ver. 18.
+"The church in Sardis," Rev. iii. 1. "The church in Philadelphia," ver.
+7. And "the church in Laodicea," ver. 14. "The church that is in their
+house," Rom. xvi. 5; and Philem. 2. "Let your women keep silence in the
+church," 1 Cor. xiv. 34. "All the churches of the Gentiles," Rom. xvi.
+4. "So ordain I in all churches," 1 Cor. vii. 17. "As in all churches
+of the saints," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. "The care of all the churches," 2 Cor.
+xi. 28. The New Testament hath many such like expressions.
+
+2d. That how many particular visible churches soever Christ hath on
+earth, yet Scripture counts them all to be but one general visible
+Church of Christ. This is manifest,
+
+1. By divers Scriptures, using the word church in such a full latitude
+and extensive completeness, as properly to signify, not any one single
+congregation, or particular church, but one general visible Church: as,
+"Upon this rock I will build my Church," Matt. xvi. 18. "Give none
+offence, neither to the Jews, nor to the Greeks, nor to the Church of
+God," 1 Cor. x. 32. "God hath set some in the Church, first, apostles;
+secondarily, prophets; thirdly, teachers," &c., 1 Cor. xii. 28. "I
+persecuted the Church of God," 1 Cor. xv. 9; Gal. i. 13. "The Church of
+the living God, the pillar and ground of the truth," 1 Tim. iii. 15.
+"Might be known by the Church the manifold wisdom of God," Eph. iii. 10.
+"In the midst of the Church will I sing praise unto thee," Heb. ii. 12.
+In which, and such like places, we must needs understand, that one
+general visible Church of Christ.
+
+2. By such passages of scripture as evidently compare all visible
+professors and members of Christ throughout the world to one organical
+body, having eyes, ears, hands, feet, &c., viz., several organs,
+instruments, officers, &c., in it, for the benefit of the whole body; as,
+"He gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some evangelists, and
+some pastors and teachers, for the perfecting of the saints, for the
+work of the ministry, for the edifying of the body of Christ," Eph. iv.
+11, 12. "There is one body," Eph. iv. 4. "As we have many members in one
+body, and all members have not the same office; so we being many are one
+body in Christ, and every one members one of another," &c., Rom. xii.
+4-9. "As the body is one, and hath many members, and all the members of
+that one body being many, are one body; so also is Christ," (i.e.,
+Christ considered mystically, not personally,) "for by one Spirit are we
+all baptized into one body, whether we be Jews or Gentiles, whether we
+be bond or free," &c., 1 Cor. xii. 12, to the end of the chapter, which
+context plainly demonstrates all Christ's visible members in the world,
+Jews or Gentiles, &c., to be members of one and the same organical body
+of Christ, which organical body of Christ is the general visible Church
+of Christ; for the invisible church is not organical.
+
+II. That the edification of the Church of Christ is that eminent scope
+and end, why Christ gave church government and all other ordinances of
+the New Testament to his Church. This is frequently testified in
+scripture. 1. The apostle, speaking of this power generally, saith, "Our
+authority which the Lord hath given to us for edification, and not for
+the destruction of you," 2 Cor. x. 8. The like passage he hath again,
+saying, "according to the authority," or power, "which the Lord hath
+given to me for edification, and not for destruction," 2 Cor. xiii. 10;
+in both which places he speaks of the authority of church government in
+a general comprehensive way, declaring the grand and general immediate
+end thereof to be, affirmatively, edification of the church; negatively,
+not the subversion or destruction thereof. 2. In like manner, when
+particular acts of government, and particular ordinances
+are mentioned, the edification of the Church, at least in her members,
+is propounded as the great end of all: e.g. 1. Admonition is for
+edification, that an erring _brother may be gained_, Matt. xviii. 15,
+16, that wavering minds may be sound in the faith. "Rebuke them
+cuttingly, that they may be sound in the faith," Tit. i. 13, that
+beholders and bystanders may fear to fall into like sins. "Them that sin
+rebuke before all, that others also may fear," 1 Tim. v. 20. 2.
+Excommunication is for edification; particularly of the delinquent
+member himself; thus the incestuous person was "delivered to Satan for
+the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit might be saved in the day
+of the Lord Jesus," 1 Cor. v. 4, 5. "Hymeneus and Alexander were
+delivered to Satan, that they might learn not to blaspheme," 1 Tim. i.
+20: more generally of the Church; thus the incestuous person was to be
+put away from among them lest the whole lump of the church should be
+leavened by him, 1 Cor. v. 3. Absolution also is for edification, lest
+the penitent party "should be swallowed up of too much sorrow," 2 Cor.
+ii. 7. 4. All the officers of his Church are for edification of the
+Church, (Eph. iv. 7, 8, 11, 12, 16,) together with all the gifts and
+endowments in these officers, whether of prayer, prophecy, tongues, &c.,
+all must be managed to edification. This is the scope of the whole
+chapter. 1 Cor. xii. 7, &c., and 1 Cor. xiv. 3-5, 9, 12, &c., 26; read
+the whole chapter. That passage of Paul is remarkable, "I thank my God,
+I speak with tongues more than you all; yet in the church I had rather
+speak five words with my understanding, that by my voice I might teach
+others also, than ten thousand words in an unknown tongue," verses 18,
+19. Thus church government, and all sorts of ordinances, with the
+particular acts thereof, are to be levelled at this mark of edification.
+Edification is an elegant metaphor from material buildings (perhaps of
+the material and typical temple) to the spiritual; for explanation's
+sake briefly thus take the accommodation: The _architects_, or builders,
+are the _ministers_, 1 Cor. iii. 10. The _foundation_ and _corner-stone_
+that bears up, binds together, and gives strength to the building, is
+Jesus Christ, 1 Cor. iii. 11; 1 Pet. ii. 4, 6. The _stones_ or
+_materials_ are the _faithful_ or _saints_, 2 Cor. i. 1. The _building_,
+or house itself, is the _Church_, that spiritual house, and _temple of
+the living God_, Eph. ii. 21, and iv. 12; 1 Cor. iii. 9, 16, 17. The
+edification of this house is gradually to be perfected more and more
+till the coming of Christ, by laying the foundation of Christianity, in
+bringing men still unto Christ, and carrying on the superstruction in
+perfecting them in Christ in all spiritual growth, till at last the
+top-stone be laid on, the Church completed, and translated _to the house
+not made with hands, eternal in the heavens_.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX.
+
+_Of the proper receptacle and distinct subject of all this power and
+authority of Church Government, which Christ hath peculiarly intrusted
+with the execution thereof according to the Scriptures. And_ 1.
+_Negatively, That the political magistrate is not the proper subject of
+this power._
+
+
+Thus we have taken a brief survey of church government, both in the
+rule, root, kind, branches, and end thereof, all which are comprised in
+the former description, and being less controverted, have been more
+briefly handled. Now, the last thing in the description which comes
+under our consideration, is the proper receptacle of all this power from
+Christ, or the peculiar subject intrusted by Christ with this power and
+the execution thereof, viz. only Christ's own officers. For church
+government is a spiritual power or authority, derived from Jesus Christ
+our Mediator, only to his own officers, and by them exercised in
+dispensing of the word, &c. Now about this subject of the power will be
+the great knot of the controversy, forasmuch as there are many different
+claims thereof made, and urged with vehement importunity: (to omit the
+Romish claim for the pope, and the prelatical claim for the bishop,) the
+politic Erastian pretends that the only proper subject of all church
+government is the political or civil magistrate; the gross Brownists or
+rigid Separatists, that it is the body of the people, or community of
+the faithful in an equal even level; they that are more refined, (who
+style themselves for distinction's sake[26] Independents,) that it is
+the single congregation, or the company of the faithful with their
+presbytery, or church officers; the Presbyterians hold that the proper
+subject wherein Christ hath seated and intrusted all church power, and
+the exercise thereof, is only his own church officers, (as is in the
+description expressed.) Here, therefore, the way will be deeper, and the
+travelling slower; the opposition is much, and therefore the
+disquisition of this matter will unavoidably be the more.
+
+For perspicuity herein, seeing it is said that this power is derived
+from Christ only to his own officers; and by this word (only) all other
+subjects are excluded; the subject of church power may be considered,
+1. Negatively, what it is not. 2. Affirmatively, what it is.
+
+Negatively, the proper subject unto whom Christ hath committed the power
+of church government, and the exercise thereof, is not, 1. The political
+magistrate, as the Erastians imagine. 2. Nor the body of the people,
+either with their presbytery or without it, as the Separatists and
+Independents pretend. Let these negatives first be evinced, and then the
+affirmative will be more clearly evidenced.
+
+Touching the first of these--that the political magistrate is not the
+proper subject unto whom Jesus Christ our Mediator hath committed the
+power of church government, and the exercise of that power; it will be
+cleared by declaring these two things distinctly and severally, viz: 1.
+What power about ecclesiasticals is granted to the civil magistrate. 2.
+What power therein is denied unto him, and why.
+
+
+SECTION 1.
+
+Such power is granted by the reformed churches and orthodox writers to
+the political magistrate, in reference to church affairs. Take it in
+these particulars.
+
+A defensive, protecting, patronizing power to the church, and all the
+members thereof. "Kings shall be thy nursing-fathers," &c., Isa. xlix.
+23. "The magistrate is the minister of God for good to well-doers, as
+well as the avenger, executing wrath upon evil-doers; a terror not to
+good works, but to the evil," Rom. xiii. 3, 4; he is called _an heir,
+or, possessor of restraint, to put men to shame_, Judges xviii. 7. And
+as the church ought to pray for kings and all in authority, so
+consequently all in authority should endeavor to defend it, that the
+church and people of God should lead a quiet and peaceable life, (under
+the wing of their protection,) "in all godliness and honesty," 1 Tim.
+ii. 2; and this is evident from the end and scope of these prayers here
+prescribed, as interpreters unanimously agree. And hereupon are those
+promises to the church, "The sons of strangers shall build up thy walls,
+and their kings shall minister unto thee," Isa. lx. 10; "and thou shalt
+suck the breast of kings," Isa. lx. 16. Now, this nursing, protecting
+care of magistrates towards the church, puts forth itself in these or
+like acts, viz: He,
+
+1. Removes all external impediments of true religion, worship of God,
+&c., by his civil power, whether persons or things, whether
+persecutions, profaneness, heresy, idolatry, superstition, &c., that
+truth and godliness may purely flourish: as did Jehoshaphat, Asa,
+Hezekiah, Josiah. And hereupon it is that God so oft condemns the not
+removing and demolishing of the high places and monuments of idolatry,
+1 Kings xv. 14, with 2 Chron. xv. 17; 1 Kings xxii. 44; 2 Kings xii. 3:
+and highly commends the contrary in Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 8, 16: in
+Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii. 3, 4, 6-10: in Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxxi. 1; 2
+Kings xviii. 4: in Manasseh, 2 Chron. xxxiii. 15: in Josiah, 2 Kings
+xxiii. 8, 13, 19, 20, 24: whereupon the Holy Ghost gives him that
+superlative commendation above all kings before and after him, ver. 25.
+
+2. Countenanceth, advanceth, and encourageth by his authority and
+example the public exercise of all God's ordinances, and duties of
+religion within his dominions, whether in matter of divine worship,
+discipline, and government, maintaining for the Church the fulness of
+spiritual liberties and privileges communicated to her from Christ: as
+did Asa, 2 Chron. xv. 9-16: Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xx. 7-9: Hezekiah, 2
+Chron. xxix., xxx., and xxxi. chapters throughout: Josiah, 2 Chron.
+xxxiv. and xxxv. chapters. And to this end God prescribed in the law
+that the king should still have a copy of the law of God by him, therein
+to read continually, Deut. xvii. 18-20; because he was to be not only a
+practiser, but also a protector thereof, a keeper of both tables.
+
+3. Supplies the Church with all external necessaries, provisions, means,
+and worldly helps in matters of religion: as convenient public places to
+worship in, sufficient maintenance for ministers, (as the Scripture
+requireth, 1 Tim. v. 17, 18; 1 Cor. ix. 6-15; Gal. vi. 6:) schools and
+colleges, for promoting of literature, as nurseries to the prophets,
+&c.; together with the peaceable and effectual enjoyment of all these
+worldly necessaries, for comfortably carrying on of all public
+ordinances of Christ. Thus David prepared materials, but Solomon built
+the temple, 1 Chron. xxii. Hezekiah commanded the people that dwelt in
+Jerusalem, to give the portion of the priests and the Levites, that they
+might be encouraged in the law of the Lord; and Hezekiah himself and his
+princes came and saw it performed, 2 Chron. xxxi. 4, &c., 8: Josiah
+repaired the house of God, 2 Chron. xxxiv.
+
+Nor need the magistrate think scorn, but rather count it his honor to be
+an earthly protector of the Church, which is the _body of Christ, the
+Lamb's wife_, for redeeming of which Christ died, and for gathering and
+perfecting of which the very world is continued.
+
+An ordering, regulating power is also allowed to the magistrate about
+ecclesiastical matters in a political way, so that he warrantably,
+
+1. Reforms the Church, when corrupted in divine worship, discipline, or
+government: as did Moses, Exod. xxxii.; Joshua, Josh. xxiv.; Asa, 2
+Chron. xv.; Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xvii.; Hezekiah, 2 Kings xviii.;
+Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii.; 2 Chron. xxxiv.
+
+2. Convenes or convocates synods and councils, made up of ecclesiastical
+persons, to consult, advise, and conclude determinatively, according to
+the word, how the church is to be reformed and refined from corruptions,
+and how to be guided and governed when reformed, &c. For, 1. Pious
+magistrates under the Old Testament called the Church together, convened
+councils. David, about bringing back the ark, 1 Chron. xiii. 1, 2, and
+another council when he was old, 1 Chron. xiii. 1; Solomon, 1 Kings
+viii. 1; Hezekiah, 2 Chron. xxix. 4; and Josiah, 2 Kings xxiii. 1, 2. 2.
+All ought to be subject to superior powers, who ought to procure the
+public peace and prosperity of the Church, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, &c.; 1 Pet.
+ii. 13, &c., 17; 1 Tim. ii. 2. Therefore superior powers may convocate
+councils. 3. Christian magistrates called the four general councils:
+Constantine the first Nicene council; Theodosius, senior, the first
+council of Constantinople; Theodosius, junior, the first Ephesian
+council; Marcian Emperor, the Chalcedon council; and, 4. Hereunto
+antiquity subscribes, as Dr. Whitaker observes.
+
+3. Supports the laws of God with his secular authority, as a keeper of
+the tables, enjoining and commanding, under civil penalties, all under
+his dominion, strictly and inviolably to observe the same: as "Josiah
+made all that were present in Israel to serve the Lord their God," 2
+Chron. xxxiv. 33. Nehemiah made the sabbath to be sanctified, and
+strange wives to be put away, Neb. xii. 13, &c. Yea, Nebuchadnezzar, a
+heathen king, decreed, that "Whosoever should speak amiss of the God of
+Shadrach," &c., "should be cut in pieces, and their houses made a
+dunghill," Dan. iii. 28, 29. And Darius decreed, "That in every dominion
+of his kingdom men tremble and fear before the God of Daniel," &c., Dan.
+vi. 26, 27.
+
+And as he strengthens the laws and ordinances of God by his civil
+authority, so he ratifies and establishes within his dominions the just
+and necessary decrees of the Church in synods and councils (which are
+agreeable to God's word) by his civil sanction.
+
+4. Judges and determines definitively with a consequent political
+judgment, or judgment of political discretion, concerning the things
+judged and determined antecedently by the Church, in reference to his
+own act. Whether he will approve such ecclesiasticals or not; and in
+what manner he will so approve, or do otherwise by his public authority;
+for he is not a brutish agent, (as papists would have him,) to do
+whatsoever the Church enjoins him unto blind obedience, but is to act
+prudently and knowingly in all his office; and therefore the judgment of
+discerning (which belongs to every Christian, for the well-ordering of
+his own act) cannot be denied to the Christian magistrate, in respect of
+his office.
+
+5. Takes care politically, that even matters and ordinances merely and
+formally ecclesiastical, be duly managed by ecclesiastical persons
+orderly called thereto. Thus Hezekiah commanded the priests and Levites
+to do their duties, 2 Chron. xxix. 5, 24, and the people to do theirs, 2
+Chron. xxx. 1; and for this he is commended, that therein he did cleave
+unto the Lord, and observed his precepts which he had commanded Moses, 2
+Kings xviii. 6. Thus when the king is commanded to observe and do all
+the precepts of the law, the Lord (as orthodox divines do judge)
+intended that he should keep them, not only as a private man, but as a
+king, by using all care and endeavor that all his subjects with him
+perform all duties to God and man, Deut. xvii. 18-20.
+
+6. A compulsive, coactive, punitive, or corrective power, formally
+political, is also granted to the political magistrate in matters of
+religion, in reference to all sorts of persons and things under his
+jurisdiction. He may politically compel the outward man of all persons,
+church officers, or others under his dominions, unto external
+performance of their respective duties, and offices in matters of
+religion, punishing them, if either they neglect to do their duty at
+all, or do it corruptly, not only against equity and sobriety, contrary
+to the second table, but against truth and piety, contrary to the first
+table of the decalogue. We have sufficient intimation of the
+magistrate's punitive power in cases against the second table; as the
+stubborn and rebellious, incorrigible son, that was a glutton and a
+drunkard, sinning against the fifth commandment, was to be stoned to
+death, Deut. xxi. 18-21. The murderer, sinning against the sixth
+commandment, was to be punished with death, Gen. ix. 6; Numb. xxxv.
+30-34; Deut. x. 11-13. The unclean person, sinning against the seventh
+commandment, was to be punished with death, Lev. xx. 11, 12, 14, 17,
+19-25; and before that, see Gen. xxxviii. 24. Yea, Job, who is thought
+to live before Moses, and before this law was made, intimates that
+adultery is a heinous crime, yea, it is an iniquity to be punished by
+the judges, Job xxxi. 9,11. The thief, sinning against the eighth
+commandment, was to be punished by restitution, Exod. xxii. 1, 15, &c.
+The false witness, sinning against the ninth commandment, was to be
+dealt withal as he would have had his brother dealt with, by the law of
+retaliation, Deut. xix. 16, to the end of the chapter, &c. Yea, the
+magistrate's punitive power is extended also to offences against the
+first table; whether these offences be against the first commandment, by
+false prophets teaching lies, errors, and heresies in the name of the
+Lord, endeavoring to seduce people from the true God. "If there arise
+among you a prophet, or a dreamer of dreams, that prophet, or that
+dreamer of dreams shall be put to death, because he hath spoken to turn
+you away from the Lord your God, which brought you out of the land of
+Egypt," &c., Deut. xiii. 1-6. From which place Calvin notably asserts
+the punitive power of magistrates against false prophets and impostors
+that would draw God's people to a defection from the true God, showing
+that this power also belongs to the Christian magistrate in like cases
+now under the gospel.
+
+Yea, in case of such seducement from God, though by nearest allies,
+severe punishment was to be inflicted upon the seducer, Deut. xiii.
+6-12. See also ver. 12, to the end of the chapter, how a city is to be
+punished in the like case. And Mr. Burroughs,[27] in his Irenicum, shows
+that this place of Deut. xiii. 6, &c., belongs even to us under the
+gospel.
+
+Or whether these offences be against the second commandment, the
+magistrate's punitive power reaches them, Deut. xvii. 1-8; Lev. xvii.
+2-8; 2 Chron. xvi. 13, 16. "Maachah, the mother of Asa the king, he
+removed from being queen, because she had made an idol in a grove." Job
+xxxi. 26-28, herewith compare Exod. viii. 25, 26. Or whether the
+offences be against the third commandment, "And thou shalt speak unto
+the children of Israel, saying, Whosoever curseth God shall bear his
+sin: and he that blasphemeth the name of the Lord he shall surely be put
+to death, and all the congregation shall certainly stone him, as well
+the stranger as he that is born in the land, when he blasphemeth the
+name of the Lord shall be put to death," Lev. xxiv. 15, 16. Yea, the
+heathen king Nebuchadnezzar made a notable decree to this purpose,
+against blaspheming God, saying, "I make a decree, that every people,
+nation, and language, who speak any thing amiss against the God of
+Shadrach, Meshech, and Abednego, shall be cut in pieces, and their
+houses shall be made a dunghill," Dan. iii. 29: and the pagan
+magistrate, king Artaxerxes, made a more full decree against all
+contempt of the law of God: "And whosoever will not do the law of thy
+God," saith he to Ezra, "and the law of the king, let judgment be
+executed speedily upon him, whether it be unto death, or to banishment,
+or to confiscation of goods, or to imprisonment:" and Ezra blesses God
+for this, Ezra vii. 26, 27.
+
+Besides all this light of nature, and evidence of the Old Testament, for
+the ruler's political punitive power for offences against God, there are
+divers places in the New Testament showing that a civil punitive power
+rests still in the civil magistrate: witness those general expressions
+in those texts--Rom. xiii. 3, 4: "Rulers are not a terror to good works,
+but to the evil. If thou do that which is evil, be afraid, for he
+beareth not the sword in vain: for he is the minister of God, a revenger
+_to execute_ wrath upon him that doeth evil." 1 Pet. ii. 13, 14: "Submit
+yourselves unto every ordinance of man for the Lord's sake, whether it
+be to the king as to the supreme, or unto governors which are sent for
+the _punishment_ of evil-doers,[28] and the praise of them that do
+well." Now, (as Mr. Burroughs[29] notes,) seeing the Scripture speaks
+thus generally, except the nature of the thing require, why should we
+distinguish where the Scripture doth not? so that these expressions may
+be extended to those sorts of evil-doing against the first as well as
+against the second table; against murdering of souls by heresy, as well
+as murdering of men's bodies with the sword; against the blaspheming of
+the God of heaven, as well as against blaspheming of kings and rulers,
+that are counted gods on earth. That place seems to have much force in
+it to this purpose, Heb. x. 28, 29: "He that despised Moses' law, died
+without mercy under two or three witnesses. Of how much sorer
+punishment, suppose ye, shall he be thought worthy who hath trodden
+under foot the Son of God, and hath counted the blood of the covenant,
+wherewith he was sanctified, an unholy thing, and hath done despite unto
+the Spirit of grace?" Yea, what deserve such as deny the Spirit to be of
+God? Papists exempt their clergy from the judgment of the civil power,
+though they be delinquents against it; and their states, both civil
+and spiritual, from civil taxes, tributes, and penalties, both which we
+deny to ours: for, 1st, This is repugnant to the law of nature, that
+church officers and members, as parts and members of the commonwealth,
+should not be subject to the government of that commonwealth whereof
+they are parts. 2d, Repugnant to the laws and practices of the Old
+Testament, under which we read of no such exemptions. Yea, we have
+instance of Abiathar the high-priest, who, for his partnership with
+Adonijah in his rebellion, was exiled by king Solomon, and so
+consequently deprived of the exercise of his office, 1 Kings ii. 26, 27.
+3d, Inconsistent with our Saviour's example, who, as subject to the law,
+held himself obliged to pay tribute to avoid offence, (Matt. xvii. 26,)
+which was an active scandal; and he confesses Pilate's power to condemn
+or release him was _given him from above_, John xix. 11. 4th, And
+finally, contrary to the apostolical precepts, _enjoining all to be
+subject to superior powers_, Rom. xiii. 1-4; 1 Pet. ii. 13-15.
+
+Now, all the former power that is granted, or may be granted to the
+magistrate about religion, is only cumulative and objective, as divines
+used to express it; thus understand them:--
+
+Cumulative, not privative; adding to, not detracting from any liberties
+or privileges granted her from Christ. The heathen magistrate may be a
+_nurse-father_, Isa. xlix. 23; 1 Tim. ii. 2, may not be a _step-father_:
+may protect the Church, religion, &c., and order many things in a
+political way about religion; may not extirpate or persecute the Church;
+may help her in reformation; may not hinder her in reforming herself,
+convening synods in herself, as in Acts xv., &c., if he will not help
+her therein; otherwise her condition were better without than with a
+magistrate. The Christian magistrate much less ought to hinder her
+therein, otherwise her state were worse under the Christian than under
+the pagan magistrate.
+
+Objective or objectively ecclesiastical, as being exercised about
+objects ecclesiastical, but politically, not ecclesiastically. His
+proper power is _about_, not _in_ religious matters. He may politically,
+outwardly exercise his power about objects or matters spiritual; but not
+spiritually, inwardly, formally act any power in the Church. He may act
+in church affairs as did Asa, Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah; not as did
+Corah, Saul, Uzzah, or Uzziah. He is an overseer of things without, not
+of things within. And in a word, his whole power about church offices
+and religion is merely, properly, and formally civil or political.[30]
+
+Nor is this only our private judgment, or the opinion of some few
+particular persons touching the granting or bounding of the magistrate's
+power about matters of religion; but with us we have the suffrage of
+many reformed churches, who, in their Confessions of Faith published to
+the world, do fully and clearly express themselves to the same effect.
+
+The Helvetian church thus: Since every magistrate is of God, it is
+(unless he would exercise tyranny) his chief duty, all blasphemy being
+repressed, to defend and provide for religion, and to execute this to
+his utmost strength, as the prophet teacheth out of the word; in which
+respect the pure and free preaching of God's word, a right, diligent,
+and well-instituted discipline of youth, citizens and scholars; a just
+and liberal maintenance of the ministers of the church, and a solicitous
+care of the poor, (whereunto all ecclesiastical means belong,) have the
+first place. After this, &c.
+
+The French churches thus: He also therefore committed the sword into the
+magistrates' hands, that they might repress faults committed not only
+against the second table, but also against the first; therefore we
+affirm, that their laws and statutes ought to be obeyed, tribute to be
+paid, and other burdens to be borne, the yoke of subjection voluntarily
+to be undergone, yea, though the magistrates should be infidels, so long
+as the supreme government of God remains perfect and untouched, Matt.
+xxiv.; Acts iv. 17, and v. 19; Jude verse 8.
+
+The church of Scotland thus: Moreover we affirm, that the purging and
+conserving of religion is the first and most especial duty of kings,
+princes, governors, and magistrates. So that they are ordained of God
+not only for civil polity, but also for the conservation of true
+religion, and that all idolatry and superstition may be suppressed: as
+is evident in David, Jehoshaphat, Josiah, Hezekiah, and others, adorned
+with high praises for their singular zeal.
+
+The Belgic church thus: Therefore he hath armed the magistrates with a
+sword, that they may punish the bad and defend the good. Furthermore, it
+is their duty not only to be solicitous about preserving of civil
+polity, but also to give diligence that the sacred ministry may be
+preserved, all idolatry and adulterate worship of God may be taken out
+of the way, the kingdom of antichrist may be pulled down, but Christ's
+kingdom propagated. Finally, it is their part to take course, that the
+holy word of the gospel be preached on every side, that all may freely
+and purely serve and worship God according to the prescript of his word.
+And all men, of whatsoever dignity, condition, or state they be, ought
+to be subject to lawful magistrates, to pay them tribute and subsidies,
+to obey them in all things which are not repugnant to the word of God;
+to pour out prayers for them, that God would vouchsafe to direct them in
+all their actions, _and that we may under them lead a quiet and
+peaceable life in all godliness and honesty_. Wherefore we detest the
+Anabaptists and all turbulent men who cast off superior dominions and
+magistrates, pervert laws and judgments, make all goods common, and
+finally abolish or confound all orders and degrees which God hath
+constituted for honesty's sake among men.
+
+The church in Bohemia thus: They teach also that it is commanded in the
+word of God that _all should be subject to the higher powers_ in all
+things, yet in those things only which are not repugnant to God and his
+word. But as touching those things which concern men's souls, faith, and
+salvation, they teach that men should hearken only to God's word, &c.,
+his ministers, as Christ himself saith, _Render to Caesar the things
+that are Caesar's, and to God those things that are God's._ But if any
+would compel them to those things which are against God, and fight and
+strive against his word, which abideth forever; they teach them to make
+use of the apostle's example, who thus answered the magistrate at
+Jerusalem: _It is meet_ (say they) _to obey God rather than men_.
+
+Finally, the church in Saxony hath expressed herself notably in this
+point, saying, among many other passages, God will have all men, yea,
+even unregenerate men, to be ruled and restrained by political
+government. And in this government the wisdom, justice, and goodness of
+God to mankind do shine forth. His wisdom, order declares, which is the
+difference of virtues and vices, and the consociation of men by lawful
+governments and contracts ordained in wonderful wisdom. God's justice
+also is seen in political government, who will have manifest
+wickednesses to be punished by magistrates; and when they that rule
+punish not the guilty, God himself wonderfully draws them to punishment,
+and regularly punishes heinous faults with heinous penalties in this
+life, as it is said, _He that takes the sword shall perish by the
+sword_; and, _Whoremongers and adulterers God will judge_. God will have
+in these punishments the difference of vices and virtues to be seen; and
+will have us learn that God is wise, just, true, chaste. God's goodness
+also to mankind is beheld, because by this means he preserves the
+society of men, and therefore he preserves it that thence the Church may
+be gathered, and will have polities to be the Church's inns. Of these
+divine and immoveable laws, which are testimonies of God, and the chief
+rule of manners, the magistrate is to be keeper in punishing all that
+violate them. For the voice of the law, without punishment and
+execution, is of small avail to bridle and restrain men; therefore it is
+said by Paul, _The power should be a terror to evil works, and an honor
+to the good._ And antiquity rightly said, _The magistrate is the keeper
+of the law, both of the first and second table,_ so far as appertains to
+_good order_. And though many in their governments neglect the glory of
+God, yet this ought to be their chief care, to hear and embrace the true
+doctrine touching the Son of God, and to foster the churches, as the
+psalm saith, _And now understand, ye kings, and be instructed, ye judges
+of the earth._ Again, _Open your gates, ye princes_, i.e., Open your
+empires to the gospel, and afford harbor to the Son of God. And Isa.
+xlix.: _And kings shall be thy nursing-fathers, and queens_, i.e.,
+commonwealths, _shall be thy nursing-mothers_, i.e., of the Church, they
+shall afford lodgings to churches and pious studies. And kings and
+princes themselves shall be members of the Church, and shall rightly
+understand doctrine, shall not help those that establish false doctrine,
+and exercise unjust cruelty, but shall be mindful of this saying, "I
+will glorify them that glorify me." And Daniel exhorteth the king of
+Babylon unto the acknowledgment of God's wrath, and to clemency towards
+the exiled Church, when he saith, "Break off thy sins by righteousness,
+and thine iniquities by showing mercy to the poor." And since they are
+among the chief members of the Church, they should see that judgment be
+rightly exercised in the Church, as Constantine, Theodosius, Arcadius,
+Marcianus, Charles the Great, and many pious kings, took care that the
+judgments of the Church should be rightly exercised, &c.
+
+Thus those of the presbyterian judgment are willing to give to Caesar
+those things that are Caesar's, even about matters of religion, that the
+magistrate may see, it is far from their intention in the least degree
+to intrench upon his just power, by asserting the spiritual power, which
+Christ hath seated in his church officers, distinct from the
+magistratical power: but as for them of the independent judgment, and
+their adherents, they divest the magistrate of such power.[31]
+
+
+SECTION II.
+
+II. Some power on the other hand touching religion and church affairs,
+is utterly denied to the civil magistrate, as no way belonging to him at
+all by virtue of his office of magistracy. Take it thus:
+
+Jesus Christ, our Mediator, now under the New Testament, hath committed
+no spiritual power at all, magisterial or ministerial, properly,
+internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical, nor any exercise
+thereof, for the government of his Church, to the political magistrate,
+heathen or Christian, as the subject or receptacle thereof by virtue of
+his magistratical office.
+
+For explication hereof briefly thus: 1. What is meant by
+spiritual power, magisterial and ministerial, is laid down in the
+general nature of the government, Chap. III. And, That all magisterial
+lordly power over the Church, belongs peculiarly and only to Jesus
+Christ our Mediator, Lord of all, is proved, Chap. V. Consequently, the
+civil magistrate can challenge no such power, without usurpation upon
+Christ's prerogative. We hence condemn the Pope as Antichrist, while he
+claims to be Christ's vicar-general over Christ's visible Church on
+earth. So that all the question here will be about the ministerial
+power, whether any such belong to the civil magistrate. 2. What is meant
+by power, properly, internally, formally, or virtually ecclesiastical?
+Thus conceive: These several terms are purposely used, the more clearly
+and fully to distinguish power purely ecclesiastical, which is denied to
+the magistrate, from power purely political about ecclesiastical
+objects, which is granted to him; which is called ecclesiastical, not
+properly, but improperly; not internally, but externally; not formally,
+but only objectively, as conversant about ecclesiastical objects. Nor
+hath he any such ecclesiastical power in him virtually, i.e. so as to
+convey and give it to any other under him. He may grant and protect the
+public exercise of that power within his dominions; but designation of
+particular persons to the office and power, is from the Church; the
+donation of the office and power only from Christ himself. So that
+magistracy doth not formally nor virtually comprehend in it
+ecclesiastical power for church government; for a magistrate, as a
+magistrate, hath no inward ecclesiastical power at all belonging to him.
+
+For confirmation of this proposition, consider these ensuing arguments.
+
+_Argum_. 1st. The keys of the kingdom of heaven were never given by
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as such: therefore he cannot be the
+proper subject of church government as a magistrate. We may thus reason:
+
+_Major_. No power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven was ever given by
+Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+_Minor_. But all formal power of church government is at least part of
+the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no formal power of church government was ever
+given by Christ to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+The major proposition is evident.
+
+1. Because when Christ gave the keys of the kingdom of heaven, he makes
+no mention at all of the civil magistrate directly or indirectly,
+expressly or implicitly, as the recipient subject thereof. Compare Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, John ii. 21-23, with Matt. xxvii. 18-20. 2.
+Because, in Christ's giving the keys of the kingdom of heaven, he makes
+express mention of church officers,[32] which are really and essentially
+different from the civil magistrate, viz. of Peter, in name of all the
+rest, Matt. xvi. 18, 19, and of the rest of the apostles as the
+receptacle of the keys with him, Matt. xviii. 18, all the disciples save
+Thomas being together, he gave them the same commission in other words,
+John xx. 20-24, and Matt. xxviii. 18-20. Now if Christ should have given
+the keys, or any power thereof to the magistrate, as a magistrate, he
+must consequently have given them only to the magistrate, and then how
+could he have given them to his apostles, being officers in the Church
+really distinct from the magistrate?
+
+3. Because Jesus Christ, in giving the keys of the kingdom, gave not any
+one sort, act, part, or piece of the keys severally, but the whole power
+of the keys, all the sorts and acts thereof jointly. Therefore it is
+said, _I give the keys of the kingdom_--and _whatsoever thou shalt
+bind--whatsoever thou shalt loose--whose soever sins ye remit--whose
+soever sins ye retain_--Matt. xvi. 19, John xx. 23. So that here is not
+only key, but keys given at once, viz. key of doctrine, and the key of
+discipline; or the key of order, and the key of jurisdiction; not only
+binding or retaining, but loosing or remitting of sins, viz. all acts
+together conferred in the keys. Now if Christ gave the keys to the
+magistrate, then he gave all the sorts of keys and all the acts thereof
+to him: if so, the magistrate may as well preach the word, and dispense
+the sacraments, &c., (as Erastus would have him,) as dispense the
+censures, &c., (for Christ joined all together in the same commission,
+and by what warrant are they disjoined?) and if so, what need of
+pastors, teachers, &c.,, in the Church? Let the civil magistrate do all.
+It is true, the ruling elder (which was after added) is limited only to
+one of the keys, viz. the _key of discipline_, 1 Tim. v. 17; but this
+limitation is by the same authority that ordained his office.
+
+4. Because if Christ gave the keys to the civil magistrate as such, then
+to every magistrate, whether Jewish, heathenish, or Christian: but not
+to the Jewish magistrate; for the sceptre was to depart from him, and
+the Jewish polity to be dissolved, and even then was almost extinct. Not
+to the heathenish magistrate, for then those might be properly and
+formally church governors which were not church members; and if the
+heathen magistrate refused to govern the Church, (when there was no
+other magistrate on earth,) she must be utterly destitute of all
+government, which are grossly absurd. Nor, finally, to the Christian
+magistrate, for Christ gave the keys to officers then in being; but at
+that time no Christian magistrate was in being in the world. Therefore
+the keys were given by Christ to no civil magistrate, as such, at all.
+
+The minor, viz. But all formal power of church government is at least
+part of the power of the keys of the kingdom of heaven is clear. If we
+take church government largely, as containing both doctrine, worship,
+and discipline, it is the whole power of the keys; if strictly, as
+restrained only to discipline, it is at least part of the power. For,
+1st, Not only the power of order, but also the power of jurisdiction, is
+contained under the word keys; otherwise it should have been said key,
+not keys; church government therefore is at least part of the power of
+the keys. 2d, The word key, noting a stewardly power, as appears, Isa.
+xxii. 22, (as Erastians themselves will easily grant,) may as justly be
+extended in the nature of it to signify the ruling power by
+jurisdiction, as the teaching power by doctrine; in that the office of a
+steward in the household, who bears the keys, consists in governing,
+ordering, and ruling the household, as well as in feeding it, as that
+passage in Luke xii. 41-49, being well considered, doth very notably
+evidence. For, Christ applying his speech to his disciples, saith, "Who
+then is that faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall make ruler
+of his household?--he will make him ruler over all that he hath," &c.
+3d, Nothing in the text or context appears why we should limit keys and
+the acts thereof only to doctrine, and exclude discipline; and where the
+text restrains not, we are not to restrain. 4th, The most of sound
+interpreters extend the keys and the acts thereof as well to discipline
+as to doctrine; to matters of jurisdiction, as well as to matters of
+order. From all we may conclude,
+
+Therefore no formal power of church government was ever given by Christ
+to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+_Argum_. 2d. There was full power of church government in the church
+when no magistrate was Christian, yea, when all magistrates were
+persecutors of the Church, so far from being her _nursing fathers_, that
+they were her _cruel butchers_; therefore the magistrate is not the
+proper subject of this power. Thus we may argue:
+
+_Major_. No proper power of church government, which was fully exercised
+in the Church of Christ, before any magistrate became Christian, yea,
+when magistrates were persecutors of the Church, was derived from Christ
+to the magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+_Minor_. But all proper power of church government was fully exercised
+in the Church before any magistrate became Christian, yea, when
+magistrates were cruel persecutors of the Church of Christ.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no proper power of church government was derived
+from Christ to the civil magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+The _major_ proposition must be granted. For, 1st, Either then the
+Church, in exercising such full power of church government, should have
+usurped that power which belonged not at all to her, but only to the
+magistrate; for what power belongs to a magistrate, as a magistrate,
+belongs to him only; but dare we think that the apostles, or the
+primitive purest apostolical churches did or durst exercise all their
+power of church government which they exercised, merely by usurpation
+without any right thereunto themselves? 2d, Or if the Church usurped
+not, &c., but exercised the power which Christ gave her, let the
+magistrate show wherein Christ made void the Church's charter, retracted
+this power, and gave it unto him.
+
+The minor proposition cannot be denied. For,
+
+1st. It was about 300 years after Christ before any of the Roman
+emperors (who had subdued the whole world, Luke ii. 1, under their sole
+dominion) became Christian. For Constantine the Great was the first
+emperor that received the faith, procured peace to the Church, and gave
+her respite from her cruel persecutions, which was in Anno 309 (or
+thereabouts) after Christ; before which time the Church was miserably
+wasted and butchered with those ten bloody persecutions, by the tyranny
+of Nero, and other cruel emperors before Constantine.
+
+2d. Yet within the space of this first 309 or 311 years, all proper
+power of church government was fully exercised in the Church of Christ;
+not only the word preached, Acts iv. 2; 1 Tim. iii. 16; and sacraments
+dispensed, Acts xx. 7; 1 Cor. xi. 17, &c.; Acts ii. 4, and viii. 12: but
+also _deacons_ set apart for that office of _deaconship_, Acts vi.:
+_elders_ ordained and sent forth, Acts xiii. 1-3, and xiv. 23; 1 Tim.
+iv.; Tit. i. 5: public _admonition in use_, Tit. iii. 10; 1 Tim. v. 20:
+_excommunication_, 1 Cor. v.; and 1 Tim. i. 20: _absolution_ of the
+penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 6, 7, &c.: synodical conventions and decrees, Acts
+xv. with xvi. 4. So that we may conclude,
+
+Therefore no proper power of church government was derived from Christ
+to the civil magistrate, as a magistrate.
+
+_Argum_. 3d. The magistratical power really, specifically, and
+essentially differs from the ecclesiastical power; therefore the civil
+magistrate, as a magistrate, cannot be the proper subject of this
+ecclesiastical power. Hence we may thus argue:
+
+_Major_. No power essentially, specifically, and really differing from
+magistratical power, was ever given by Christ to the magistrate as a
+magistrate.
+
+_Minor_. But all proper ecclesiastical power essentially, specifically,
+and really differs from the magistratical power.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no proper ecclesiastical power was ever given by
+Jesus Christ to the civil magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+The major is evident: for how can the magistrate, as a magistrate,
+receive such a power as is really and essentially distinct and different
+from magistracy? Were not that to make the magistratical power both
+really the same with itself, and yet really and essentially different
+from itself? A flat contradiction.
+
+The minor may be clearly evinced many ways: as, 1st, From the real and
+formal distinction between the two societies, viz. the Church and
+commonwealth, wherein ecclesiastical and political power are peculiarly
+seated. 2d. From the co-ordination of the power ecclesiastical and
+political, in reference to one another. 3d. From the different causes of
+these two powers, viz. efficient, material, formal, and final; in all
+which they are truly distinguished from one another.
+
+1st. From the real and formal distinction between the two societies,
+viz. church and commonwealth: for, 1. The society of the Church is only
+Christ's, and not the civil magistrate's: it is his _house_, his
+_spouse_, his _body_, &c., and Christ hath no vicar[33] under him. 2.
+The officers ecclesiastical are Christ's officers, not the magistrate's,
+1 Cor. iv. 1: _Christ gave_ them, Eph. iv. 8, 10, 11: _God set them in
+the Church_, 1 Cor. xii. 28. 3. These ecclesiastical officers are both
+elected and ordained by the Church, without commission from the civil
+magistrate, by virtue of Christ's ordinance, and in his name. Thus the
+apostles appointed officers: _Whom we may appoint_, Acts vi. 3, 4. The
+power of ordination and mission is in the hands of Christ's officers;
+compare Acts xiv. 23; 1 Tim. iv. 14, with Acts xiii. 1-4: and this is
+confessed by the parliament to be an ordinance of Jesus Christ, in their
+ordinance for ordaining of preaching presbyters. 4. The Church, and the
+several presbyteries ecclesiastical, meet not as civil judicatories, for
+civil acts of government, as making civil statutes, inflicting civil
+punishments, &c., but as spiritual assemblies, for spiritual acts of
+government and discipline: as preaching, baptizing, receiving the Lord's
+supper, prayer, admonition of the disorderly, &c. 5. What gross
+absurdities would follow, should not these two societies, viz. church
+and commonwealth, be acknowledged to be really and essentially
+distinct from one another! For then, 1. There can be no commonwealth
+where there is not a Church; but this is contrary to all experience.
+Heathens have commonwealths, yet no Church. 2. Then there may be church
+officers elected where there is no church, seeing there are magistrates
+where there is no church. 3. Then those magistrates, where there is no
+church, are no magistrates; but that is repugnant to Scripture, which
+accounts heathen rulers the servants of God, Isa. xlv. 1; Jer. xxv. 9:
+and calls them kings, Exod. vi. 13; Isa. xxxi. 35. And further, if there
+be no magistrates where there is no church, then the church is the
+formal constituting cause of magistrates. 4. Then the commonwealth, as
+the commonwealth, is the church; and the church, as the church, is the
+commonwealth: then the church and the commonwealth are the same. 5. Then
+all that are members of the commonwealth are, on that account, because
+members of the commonwealth, members of the church. 6. Then the
+commonwealth, being formally the same with the church, is, as a
+commonwealth, the mystical body of Christ. 7. Then the officers of the
+church are the officers of the commonwealth; the power of the keys gives
+them right to the civil sword: and consequently, the ministers of the
+gospel, as ministers, are justices of the peace, judges, parliament-men,
+&c., all which how absurd, let the world judge.
+
+2d. From the co-ordination of the power ecclesiastical and political, in
+reference to one another: (this being a received maxim, that subordinate
+powers are of the same kind; co-ordinate powers are of distinct kinds.)
+Now, that the power of the Church is co-ordinate with the civil power,
+may be evidenced as followeth: 1. The officers of Christ, as officers,
+are not directly and properly subordinate to the civil power, though in
+their persons they are subject thereto: the apostles and pastors may
+preach, and cast out of the church, against the will of the magistrate,
+and yet not truly offend magistracy; thus, in doing the duty they have
+immediately received from God, they must "obey God rather than men,"
+Acts iv. 19, 20. And the apostles and pastors must exercise their office
+(having received a command from Christ) without attending to the command
+or consent of the civil magistrate for the same; _as in casting out the
+incestuous person_, 1 Cor. v. 5: telling the Church, Matt. xviii. 17:
+_rejecting a heretic_, Tit. iii. 10. And, 2. Those acts of power are not
+directly and formally subordinate to the magistrate, which he himself
+cannot do, or which belong not to him. Thus the kings of Israel could
+not burn incense: "It appertaineth not unto thee," 2 Chron. xxvi. 18,
+19. Likewise, none have the power of the keys, but they to whom Christ
+saith, "Go ye into all the world and preach the gospel," Matt. xxviii.
+19: but Christ spake not this to magistrates: so only those that are
+_sent_, Rom. x. 15, and those that are governors, are by Christ placed
+in the Church. 3. The officers of the Church can ecclesiastically
+censure the officers of the state, though not as such, as well as the
+officers of the state can punish civilly the officers of the Church,
+though not as such: the church guides may admonish, excommunicate, &c.,
+the officers of the state as members of the Church, and the officers of
+the state may punish the officers of the Church as the members of the
+state. 4. Those that are not sent of the magistrate as his deputies,
+they are not subordinate in their mission to his power, but the
+ministers are not sent as the magistrate's deputies, but are _set over
+the flock by the Holy Ghost_, Acts xx. 28: they are likewise the
+_ministry of Christ_, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2: they are _over you in the Lord_,
+1 Thess. v. 12: and in his name they exercise their jurisdiction, 1 Cor.
+v. 4, 5. 5. If the last appeal in matters purely ecclesiastical be not
+to the civil power, then there is no subordination; but the last appeal
+properly so taken is not to the magistrate. This appears from these
+considerations: 1. Nothing is appealable to the magistrate but what is
+under the power of the sword; but admonition, excommunication, &c., are
+not under the power of the sword: they are neither matters of dominion
+nor coercion. 2. If it were so, then it follows that the having of the
+sword gives a man a power to the keys. 3. Then it follows that the
+officers of the kingdom of heaven are to be judged as such by the
+officers of the kingdom of this world as such, and then there is no
+difference between the things of Caesar and the things of God. 4. The
+church of Antioch sent to Jerusalem, Acts xv. 2, and the synod there,
+without the magistrate, came together, ver. 6; and determined the
+controversy, ver. 28, 29. And we read, "The spirits of the prophets are
+subject to the prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 32; not to the civil power as
+prophets. So we must seek knowledge at the priest's lips, not at the
+civil magistrate's, Mal. ii. 7. And we read, that the people came to the
+priests in hard controversies, but never that the priests went to the
+civil power, Deut. xvii. 8-10. 5. It makes the magistrate Christ's
+vicar, and so Christ to have a visible head on earth, and so to be an
+ecclesiastico-civil pope, and consequently there should be as many
+visible heads of Christ's Church as there are magistrates. 6. These
+powers are both immediate; one from God the Father, as _Creator_, Rom.
+xiii. 1, 2; the other from Jesus Christ, as _Mediator_, Matt. xxviii.
+18. Now lay all these together, and there cannot be a subordination of
+powers; and therefore there must be a real distinction.
+
+3d. From the different causes of these two powers, viz. efficient,
+material, formal, and final; in all which they are truly distinguished
+from one another, as may plainly appear by this ensuing parallel:
+
+1. They differ in their efficient cause or author, whence they are
+derived. Magistratical power is from God, the Creator and Governor of
+the world, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 4; and so belongs to all mankind, heathen or
+Christian; ecclesiastical power is peculiarly from Jesus Christ our
+Mediator, Lord of the Church, (who hath all power given him, and the
+government of the Church laid upon his shoulder, as Eph. i. 22; Matt.
+xxviii. 18, compared with Isa. ix. 16.) See Matt. vi. 19, and xviii. 18,
+and xxviii. 19, 20; John xx. 21-23; 2 Cor. x. 8: and consequently
+belongs properly to the Church, and to them that are within the Church,
+1 Cor. v. 12, 13. Magistratical power in general is the ordinance of
+God, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 4; but magistratical power in particular, whether
+it should be monarchical in a king, aristocratical in states,
+democratical in the people, &c., is of men, called, therefore, a human
+creature, or creation, 1 Pet. ii. 13; but ecclesiastical power, and
+officers in particular, as well as general, are from Christ, Matt. xvi.
+19, and xxviii. 18-20; Tit. iii. 10; 1 Cor. v. 13; 2 Cor. ii. For
+officers, see Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28.
+
+2. They differ in their material cause; whether it be the matter of
+which they consist, in which they are seated, or about which they are
+exercised. 1. In respect of the matter of which they consist, they much
+differ. Ecclesiastical power consists of the keys of the kingdom of
+heaven, which are exercised in the preaching of the word, dispensing the
+sacraments, executing the censures, admonition, excommunication,
+absolution, ordination of presbyters, &c.; but magistratical power
+consists in the secular sword, which puts forth itself in making
+statutes, inflicting fines, imprisonments, confiscations, banishments,
+torments, death. 2. In respect of the matter or object about which they
+are exercised, they much differ: for, the magistratical power is
+exercised politically, about persons and things without the Church, as
+well as within the church; but the ecclesiastical power is exercised
+only upon them that are within the Church, 1 Cor. v. 13. The
+magistratical power in some cases of treason, &c., banishes or otherwise
+punishes even penitent persons: ecclesiastical power punishes no
+penitent persons. The magistratical power punishes not all sorts of
+scandal, but some: the ecclesiastical power punishes (if rightly
+managed) all sorts of scandal.
+
+3. They differ in their formal cause, as doth clearly appear by their
+way or manner of acting: magistratical power takes cognizance of crimes,
+and passes sentence thereupon according to statutes and laws made by
+man: ecclesiastical power takes cognizance of, and passes judgment upon
+crimes according to the word of God, the Holy Scriptures. Magistratical
+power punishes merely with political punishments, as fines,
+imprisonments, &c. Ecclesiastical merely with spiritual punishments, as
+church censures. Magistratical power makes all decrees and laws, and
+executes all authority, commanding or punishing only in its own name, in
+name of the supreme magistrate, as of the king, &c., but ecclesiastical
+power is wholly exercised, not in the name of churches, or officers, but
+only in Christ's name, Matt, xxviii. 19; Acts iv. 17; 1 Cor. v. 4. The
+magistrate can delegate his power to another: church-governors cannot
+delegate their power to others, but must exercise it by themselves. The
+magistrate about ecclesiasticals hath power to command and compel
+politically the church officers to do their duty, as formerly was
+evidenced; but cannot discharge lawfully those duties themselves, but in
+attempting the same, procure divine wrath upon themselves: as Korah,
+Numb. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam. xiii. 9-15; King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi.
+16-22: but church-guides can properly discharge the duties of doctrine,
+worship, and discipline themselves, and ecclesiastically command and
+compel others to do their duty also.
+
+4. Lastly, They differ in their final cause or ends. The magistratical
+power levels at the temporal, corporal, external, political peace,
+tranquillity, order, and good of human society, and of all persons
+within his jurisdiction, &c. The ecclesiastical power intends properly
+the spiritual good and edification of the Church and all the members
+thereof, Matt, xviii. 15; 1 Cor. v. 5, &c.; 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii.
+10.[34] May we not from all clearly conclude, Therefore no proper
+ecclesiastical power was ever given by Jesus Christ to the magistrate as
+a magistrate?
+
+_Argum_. 4th. The civil magistrate is no proper church officer, and
+therefore cannot be the proper subject of church power, Hence we may
+argue:
+
+_Major_. All formal power of church government was derived from Jesus
+Christ to his own proper church officers only. To them he gave the _keys
+of the kingdom of heaven_, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21,
+28: to them he gave the _authority for edification of the church_, 2
+Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10: but this will after more fully appear in Chap.
+XI. following.
+
+_Minor_. But no civil magistrate, as a magistrate, is any of Christ's
+proper church officers. For, 1. The civil magistrate is never reckoned
+up in the catalogue, list, or roll of Christ's church officers in
+Scripture, Eph. iv. 10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28, &c.; Rom. xii. 6-8; if here,
+or anywhere else, let the magistrate or the Erastians show it. 2. A
+magistrate, as a magistrate, is not a church member, (much less a church
+governor;) for then all magistrates, heathen as well as Christian,
+should be church members and church officers, but this is contrary to
+the very nature of Christ's kingdom, which admits no heathen into it.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no formal power of church government was derived
+from Jesus Christ to the magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+_Argum_. 5th. The civil magistrate, as such, is not properly subordinate
+to Christ's mediatory kingdom; therefore is not the receptacle of church
+power from Christ. Hence thus:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever formal power of church government Christ committed
+to any, he committed it only to those that were properly subordinate to
+his mediatory kingdom. For whatsoever ecclesiastical ordinance, office,
+power, or authority, Christ gave to men, he gave it as Mediator and Head
+of the Church, by virtue of his mediatory office; and for the
+gathering, edifying, and perfecting of his mediatory kingdom, which is
+his Church, Eph. iv. 7, 10-12. Therefore such as are not properly
+subordinate to Christ in this his office, and for this end, can have no
+formal church power from Christ.
+
+_Minor_. But no magistrate, as a magistrate, is subordinate properly to
+Christ's mediatory kingdom. For, 1. Not Christ the Mediator, but God the
+Creator authorizeth the magistrate's office, Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 6. 2.
+Magistracy is never styled a ministry of Christ in Scripture, nor
+dispensed in his name. 3. Christ's kingdom is not of this world, John
+xviii. 36; the magistrate's is.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore no formal power of Church government is
+committed by Christ to the magistrate as a magistrate.
+
+6th. Finally, divers absurdities unavoidably follow upon the granting of
+a proper formal power of Church government to the civil magistrate:
+therefore he cannot be the proper subject of such power. Hence it may be
+thus argued:
+
+_Major_. No grant of ecclesiastical power, which plainly introduceth
+many absurdities, can be allowed to the political magistrate, as the
+proper subject thereof. For though in matters of religion there be many
+things mysterious, sublime, and above the reach of reason; yet there is
+nothing to be found that is absurd, irrational, &c.
+
+_Minor_. But to grant to the political magistrate, as a magistrate, a
+proper formal power of church government, introduceth plainly many
+absurdities, e.g.: 1. This brings confusion betwixt the office of the
+magistracy and ministry. 2. Confounds the church and commonwealth
+together. 3. Church government may be monarchical in one man; and so,
+not only prelatical but papal; and consequently, antichristian. Which
+absurdities, with many others, were formerly intimated, and neither by
+religion nor reason can be endured. We conclude:
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the grant of a proper formal power of church
+government cannot be allowed to the political magistrate as the proper
+subject thereof, because he is a magistrate.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X.
+
+_That the community of the faithful, or body of the people, are not the
+immediate subject of the power of Church government._
+
+
+Thus we see, that Jesus Christ our Mediator did not commit any proper
+formal ecclesiastical power for church government to the political
+magistrate, as such, as the Erastians conceive. Now, in the next place
+(to come more close) let us consider that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath
+not committed the spiritual power of church government to the body of
+the people, presbyterated, or unpresbyterated (to use their own terms)
+as the first subject thereof, according to the opinion of the
+Separatists or Independents. Take it in this proposition:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not committed the proper formal power or
+authority spiritual, for government of his Church,[35] unto the
+community of the faithful, whole church, or body of the people, as the
+proper immediate receptacle, or first subject thereof.
+
+
+SECTION I.
+
+Some things herein need a little explanation, before we come to the
+confirmation.
+
+1. By _fraternity, community of the faithful, whole church or body of
+the people_, understand a particular company of people, meeting together
+in one assembly or single congregation, to partake of Christ's
+ordinances. This single congregation may be considered as presbyterated,
+i.e., furnished with an eldership; or as unpresbyterated, i.e.,
+destitute of an eldership, having yet no elders or officers erected
+among them. Rigid Brownists or Separatists say, that the fraternity or
+community of the faithful unpresbyterated is the first receptacle of
+proper ecclesiastical power from Christ: unto whom some of independent
+judgment subscribe. Independents thus resolve: First, That the apostles
+of Christ are the first subject of apostolical power. Secondly, That a
+particular congregation of saints, professing the faith, taken
+indefinitely for any church, (one as well as another,) is the first
+subject of all church offices with all their spiritual gifts and power.
+Thirdly, That when the church of a particular congregation walketh
+together in the truth and peace, the brethren of the church are the
+first subjects of church liberty; the elders thereof of church
+authority; and both of them together are the first subject of all church
+power.[36] Which assertions of Brownists and Independents (except the
+first) are denied by them of presbyterian judgment, as being obvious to
+divers material and just exceptions.[37]:
+
+2. By _proper formal power or authority spiritual, for church
+government_, thus conceive. To omit what hath been already laid down
+about the natures and sorts of spiritual power and authority, (part 2,
+chap. III. and VI.,) which are to be remembered, here it may be further
+observed, that there is a proper public, official, authoritative power,
+though but stewardly and ministerial, which is derived from Jesus Christ
+to his church officers, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18; John xx. 21-23;
+Matt, xxviii. 18-20; of which power the apostle speaking, saith, "If I
+should somewhat boast of our power which the Lord hath given us to
+edification," 2 Cor. x. 8; so 2 Cor. xiii. 10. The people are indeed
+allowed certain liberties or privileges; as, _To try the spirits_, &c.,
+1 John iv. 1. To prove all doctrines by the word, 1 Thess. v. 21. To
+nominate and elect their own church officers, as their deacons, which
+they did, Acts vi. 3, 5, 6; but this is not a proper power of the keys.
+But the proper, public, official, authoritative power, is quite denied
+to the body of the people, furnished with an eldership or destitute
+thereof.
+
+3. By _proper immediate receptacle, or first subject of power_,
+understand, that subject, seat, or receptacle of power, which first and
+immediately received this power from Jesus Christ; and consequently was
+intrusted and authorized by him, to put forth and exercise that power in
+his Church for the government thereof. And here two things must be
+carefully remembered: 1. That we distinguish betwixt the object and
+subject of this power. The object for which, for whose good and benefit
+all this power is given, is primarily the general visible Church, Ephes.
+iv. 7, 10-12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom. xii. 5,6, &c. Secondarily, particular
+churches, as they are parts and members of the general. But the subject
+receiving to which the power is derived, is not the Church general or
+particular, but the officers or governors of the Church. 2. That we
+distinguish also betwixt the donation of the power, and the designation
+of particular persons to offices ecclesiastical. This designation of
+persons to the offices of key bearing or ruling may be done first and
+immediately by the Church, in nominating or electing her individual
+officers which is allowed to her; yet is no proper authoritative act of
+power. But the donation of the power itself is not from the Church as
+the fountain, but immediately from Christ himself, 2 Cor. xi. 8, and
+xiii. 10. Nor is it to the Church as the subject, but immediately to the
+individual church officers themselves, who consequently, in all the
+exercise of their power, act as the _ministers and stewards of Christ_,
+1 Cor. iv. 1, putting forth their power immediately received from
+Christ, not as the substitutes or delegates of the Church putting forth
+her power, which from Christ she mediately conveys to them, as
+Independents do imagine, but by us is utterly denied.
+
+
+SECTION II.
+
+For confirmation of this proposition thus explained and stated; consider
+these few arguments:
+
+_Argum_. I. The community of the faithful, or body of the people, have
+no authentic commission or grant of proper spiritual power for church
+government; and therefore they cannot possibly be the first subject or
+the proper immediate receptacle of such power from Christ. We may thus
+argue:
+
+_Major_. Whomsoever Jesus Christ hath made the immediate receptacle or
+first subject of proper formal power for governing of his Church, to
+them this power is conveyed by some authentic grant or commission.
+
+_Minor_. But the community of the faithful, or body of the people, have
+not this power conveyed unto them by any authentic grant or commission.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not made the
+community of the faithful, or body of the people, the immediate
+receptacle or first subject of proper formal power for governing of his
+Church.
+
+The major proposition is evident in itself: For, 1. The power of church
+government in this or that subject is not natural, but positive; and
+cast upon man, not by natural, but by positive law, positive grant: men
+are not bred, but made the first subject of such power; therefore all
+such power claimed or exercised, without such positive grant, is merely
+without any due title, imaginary, usurped, unwarrantable, in very fact
+null and void. 2. All power of church government is radically and
+fundamentally in Christ, Isa. ix. 6; Matt, xxviii. 18; John v. 22. And
+how shall any part of it be derived from Christ to man, but by some fit
+intervening mean betwixt Christ and man? And what mean of conveyance
+betwixt Christ and man can suffice, if it do not amount to an authentic
+grant or commission for such power? 3. This is evidently Christ's way to
+confer power by authentic commission immediately upon his church
+officers, the apostles and their successors, to the world's end. "Thou
+art Peter; and I give to thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven," &c.,
+Matt. xvi. 18, 19. "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth," &c., Matt,
+xviii. 19, 20. "As my Father sent me, so send I you; go, disciple ye all
+nations; whose sins ye remit, they are remitted--and lo, I am with you
+always to the end of the world," John xx. 21, 23; Matt, xxviii. 19, 20.
+"Our power, which the Lord hath given us for edification," 2 Cor. x. 8,
+and xiii. 10: so that we may conclude them that have such commission to
+be the first subject and immediate receptacle of power from Christ, as
+will after more fully appear. 4. If no such commission be needful to
+distinguish those that have such power from those that have none, why
+may not all without exception, young and old, wise and foolish, men and
+women, Christian and heathen, &c., equally lay claim to this power of
+church government? If not, what hinders? If so, how absurd!
+
+The minor proposition, viz: But the community of the faithful, or body
+of the people, have not this power conveyed to them by any authentic
+grant or commission, is firm. For whence had they it? When was it given
+to them? What is the power committed to them? Or in what sense is such
+power committed to them?
+
+1. Whence had they it? _From heaven or of men?_ If from men, then it is
+a human ordinance and invention; _a plant which the heavenly Father hath
+not planted_; and therefore _shall he plucked up_. Matt. xv. 13. If from
+heaven, then from Christ; for _all power is given to him_, Matt, xxviii.
+18, &c.; Isa. ix. 6. If it be derived from Christ, then it is derived
+from him by some positive law of Christ as his grant or charter. A
+positive grant of such power to select persons, viz. church officers,
+the Scripture mentions, as was evidenced in the proof of the major
+proposition. But touching any such grant or commission to the community
+of the faithful, the Scripture is silent. And let those that are for the
+popular power produce, if they can, any clear scripture that expressly,
+or by infallible consequence, contains any such commission.
+
+2. When was any such power committed by Christ to the multitude of the
+faithful, either in the first planting and beginning of the Church, or
+in the after establishment and growth of the Church under the apostles'
+ministry? Not the first; for then the apostles themselves should have
+derived their power from the community of the faithful: now this is
+palpably inconsistent with the Scriptures, Which tell us that the
+apostles had both their apostleship itself, and their qualifications
+with gifts and graces for it, yea, and the very designation of all their
+particular persons unto that calling, all of them immediately from
+Christ himself. For the first, see Gal. i. 1: "Paul, an apostle, not of
+men, nor by man, but by Jesus Christ," Matt, xxviii. 18-20. For the
+second, see John xx. 22, 23: "And when he had said this, he breathed on
+them, and saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost; whose soever sins
+ye remit, they are remitted unto them," &c. For the third, see Luke vi.
+13, &c.: "And when it was day he called to him his disciples: and of
+them he chose twelve, whom also he named apostles; Simon--" Matt. x.
+5-7, &c.: "These twelve Jesus sent forth, and commanded them, saying."
+And after his resurrection he enlarges their commission, Mark xvi. 15,
+16: "Go ye into all the world;" and, "As my Father hath sent me, so send
+I you," John xx. 21. See also how the Lord cast the lot upon Matthias,
+Acts i. 24-26. Nor the second; for if such power be committed to the
+community of the faithful after the apostles had established the
+churches, then let those that so think show where Christ committed this
+power first to the apostles, and after to the community of the faithful,
+and by them or with them to their ordinary officers, for execution
+thereof. But no such thing hath any foundation in Scripture; for the
+ordinary Church guides, though they may have a designation to their
+office by the church, yet they have the donation, or derivation of their
+office and its authority only from Christ: their office is from Christ,
+Ephes. iv. 8, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Acts xx. 28, 29. Their power from
+Christ, Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 18, 19; John xx. 21, 23. "Our power
+which the Lord hath given us," 2 Cor. viii. 10. They are _Christ's
+ministers, stewards, ambassadors_, 1 Cor. iv. 1; 2 Cor. v. 19, 20. They
+are to act and officiate _in his name_, Matt, xviii. 19; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5;
+and to Christ they _must give an account_. Heb. xiii. 17, 18; Luke xii.
+41, 42. Now if the ordinary officers have (as well as the apostles their
+apostleship) their offices of pastor, teacher, &c., from Christ, and are
+therein the successors of the apostles to continue to the world's end,
+(Matt, xxviii. 18-20,) then they have their power and authority in their
+offices immediately from Christ, as the first receptacles thereof
+themselves, and not from the Church as the first receptacle of it
+herself. A successor hath jurisdiction from him from whom the
+predecessor had his; otherwise he doth not truly succeed him.
+Consequently the Church or community of the faithful cannot possibly be
+the first receptacle of the power of church government from Christ.
+
+3. What power is it that is committed to the body of the Church or
+multitude of the faithful? Either it must be the power of order, or the
+power of jurisdiction. But neither of these is allowed to the multitude
+of the faithful by the Scriptures, (but appointed and appropriated to
+select persons.) Not the power of order; for the whole multitude, and
+everyone therein, neither can nor ought to intermeddle with any branches
+of that power. 1. Not with preaching; all are not _apt to teach_, 1 Tim.
+iii. 2, nor able to exhort and convince gainsayers, Tit. i. 9; all are
+not gifted and duly qualified. Some are expressly prohibited _speaking
+in the church_, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, 1 Tim. ii. 12, Rev. ii. 20, and none
+are _to preach, unless they be sent_, Rom. x. 15, nor _to take such
+honor unto themselves unless they be called_, &c., Heb. v. 4, 5. Are all
+and every one of the multitude of the faithful able to teach, exhort,
+and convince? are they all sent to preach? are they all called of God?
+&c. Nay, hath not Christ laid this task of authoritative preaching only
+upon his own officers? Matt, xxviii. 18, 19. 2. Not with administration
+of the sacraments; this and preaching are by one and the same commission
+given to officers only, Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi. 23. 3. Nor to
+ordain presbyters, or other officers. They may choose; but extraordinary
+officers, or the presbytery of ordinary officers, ordain. Acts vi. 3, 5,
+6: "Look ye out men--whom we may appoint." Compare also Acts xiv. 23; 1
+Tim. iv. 14, and v. 22; Tit. iii. 5. So that the people's bare election
+and approbation is no sufficient Scripture ordination of officers. Nor
+is there one often thousand among the people that is in all points able
+to try and judge of the sufficiency of preaching presbyters, for
+tongues, arts, and soundness of judgment in divinity. Nor is the power
+of jurisdiction in public admonition, excommunication, and absolution,
+&c., allowed to the multitude. For all and every one of the multitude of
+the faithful, 1. Never had any such power given to them from Christ;
+this key as well as the key of knowledge being given to the officers of
+the Church only, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20. _Tell the church_,
+there, must needs be meant of the ruling church only.[38] 2 Cor. viii.
+10; John xx. 21-23. 2. Never acted or executed any such power, that we
+can find in Scripture. As for that which is primarily urged of the
+church of Corinth, that the whole church did excommunicate the
+_incestuous person_, 1 Cor. v. 4, &c., many things may be answered to
+evince the contrary. 1st, The whole multitude could not do it; for
+children could not judge, and women must not speak in the Church. 2d, It
+is not said, _Sufficient to such an one is the rebuke inflicted of all_;
+but _of many_, 2 Cor. ii. 6, viz. of the presbytery, which consisted of
+many officers. 3d, The church of Corinth, wherein this censure was
+inflicted, was not a congregational, but a presbyterial church, having
+divers particular congregations in it, (as is hereafter cleared in Chap.
+XXIII.,) and therefore the whole multitude of the church of Corinth
+could not meet together in one place for this censure, but only the
+presbytery of that great church. Again, never did the whole multitude
+receive from Christ due gifts and qualifications for the exercise of
+church government and jurisdiction; nor any promise from Christ to be
+with them therein, as officers have, Matt, xxviii. 18-20. And the
+absurdities of such popular government are intolerable, as after will
+appear.
+
+4. Finally, in what sense can it be imagined that any such power should
+be committed from Christ to the community of the faithful, the whole
+body of the Church? For this power is given them equally with the
+church-guides, or unequally. If equally, then,.1. The church-guides have
+power and authority, as primarily and immediately committed to them, as
+the Church herself hath; and then they need not derive or borrow any
+power from the body of the faithful, having a power equal to theirs. 2.
+How vainly is that power equally given as to the officers, so to the
+whole multitude, when the whole multitude have no equal gifts and
+abilities to execute the same! If unequally, then this power is derived
+to the church-guides, either more or less than to the multitude of the
+faithful. If less, then how improperly were all those names of rule and
+government imposed upon officers, which nowhere are given by Scripture
+to the multitude! as _Pastors_, Eph. iv. 8, 11. _Elders_, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+_Overseers_, Acts xx. 28. _Guides_, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22. In this last
+verse they are contradistinguished from the saints; church-guides, and
+saints guided, make up a visible organical church. _Rulers in the Lord_,
+1 Thes. v. 12; Rom. xii. 8: and _well-ruling Elders_, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+_Governments_, 1 Cor. xii. 28. _Stewards_, 1 Cor. iv. 1,2; Luke xii. 42,
+&c. And all these titles have power and rule engraven in their very
+foreheads; and they of right belonged rather to the multitude than to
+the officers, if the officers derive their power from the multitude of
+the people. If more, then church-guides, having more power than the
+Church, need not derive any from the Church, being themselves better
+furnished.
+
+Thus, what way soever we look, it cannot be evinced, that the multitude
+and body of the people, with or without eldership, are the first subject
+of power, or have any authoritative public official power at all, from
+any grant, mandate, or commission of Christ. From all which we may
+strongly conclude,
+
+Therefore Jesus Christ our Mediator hath not made the community of the
+faithful, or body of the people, the immediate receptacle, or first
+subject of proper formal power for governing of his church.
+
+_Argum_. II. As the multitude of the faithful have no authentic grant or
+commission of such power of the keys in the Church; so they have no
+divine warrant for the actual execution of the power of the said keys
+therein: and therefore cannot be the first receptacle of the power of
+the keys from Christ. For thus we may reason:
+
+_Major_. Whosoever are the first subject, or immediate receptacle of the
+power of the keys from Christ, they have divine warrant actually to
+exercise and put in execution the said power. _Minor_. But the
+multitude or community of the faithful have no divine warrant actually
+to exercise and put in execution the power of the keys.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first
+subject, or immediate receptacle of the power of the keys from Jesus
+Christ.
+
+The major proposition must necessarily be yielded. For, 1. The power of
+the keys contains both authority and exercise; power being given to that
+end that it may be exercised for the benefit of the Church. It is called
+the _power given us for edification_, 2 Cor. viii. 10. Where there is no
+exercise of power there can be no edification by power. 2. Both the
+authority and complete exercise of all that authority, were at once and
+together communicated from Christ to the receptacle of power. "I give
+unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt
+bind on earth," &c., Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. "As my Father sent
+me, so send I you--whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted," John
+xx. 21, 23. Here is both power and the exercise thereof joined together
+in the same commission. Yea, so individual and inseparable are power and
+exercise, that under exercise, power and authority is derived: as, "Go,
+disciple ye all nations, baptizing them," &c., Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3.
+How vain, idle, impertinent, and ridiculous is it to fancy and dream of
+such a power as shall never be drawn into act by them that have it!
+
+The minor proposition, viz. But the multitude or communion of the
+faithful have no divine warrant, actually to exercise and put in
+execution the power of the keys, is clear also:
+
+1. By reason: for, the actual execution of this power belongs to them by
+divine warrant, either when they have church officers, or when they want
+church officers. Not while they have officers; for, that were to slight
+Christ's officers: that were to take officers' work out of their hands
+by them that are no officers, and when there were no urgent necessity;
+contrary whereunto, see the proofs, Chap. XI. Section 2, that were to
+prejudice the church, in depriving her of the greater gifts, and
+undoubtedly authorized labors of her officers, &c. Not when they want
+officers in a constituted church: as in case where there are three or
+four elders, the pastor dies, two of the ruling elders fall sick, or the
+like; in such cases the community cannot by divine warrant supply the
+defects of these officers themselves, by exercising their power, or
+executing their offices. For where doth Scripture allow such power to
+the community in such cases? What one church without its eldership can
+be instanced in the New Testament, that in such cases once presumed to
+exercise such power, which might be precedent or example for it to
+other churches? How needless are church officers, if the multitude of
+the faithful may, as members of the church, take up their office, and
+actually discharge it in all the parts of it?
+
+2. By induction of particulars, it is evident, that the community cannot
+execute the power of the keys by any divine warrant. 1. _They may not
+preach_: for, "how shall they preach, except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15;
+but the community cannot he sent, many of them being incapable of the
+office, either by reason of their _sex_, 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35; 1 Tim. ii.
+11, 12: or by reason of their _age_; as children, and all or most of
+them by reason of their deficiency in gifts and in scripture
+qualifications, Tit. i. and 1 Tim. iii. For not one member of a thousand
+is so completely furnished, as to be "apt to teach, able to convince
+gainsayers, and to divide the word of truth aright." Besides, they may
+not send themselves, were they capable, for, _no man takes this honor to
+himself_--Yea, _Jesus Christ himself did not glorify himself to be made
+an high-priest_--Heb. v. 4, 5. Now only officers are sent to preach,
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 19, 20; Mark xvi. 15. 2. They may not
+administer the seals, the sacraments, baptize, &c. under the New
+Testament; for who gave the people any such authority? hath not Christ
+conjoined preaching and dispensing of the sacraments in the same
+commission, that the same persons only that do the one, may do the
+other? Matt. xxviii. 18, 19. 3. They may not ordain officers in the
+church, and authoritatively send them abroad: for, ordinarily the
+community have not sufficient qualifications and abilities for proving
+and examining of men's gifts for the ministry. The community are nowhere
+commanded or allowed so to do in the whole New Testament, but other
+persons distinct from them, 1 Tim. v. 22; 2 Tim. ii. 2; Tit. i. 5, &c.
+Nor did the community ever exercise or assume to themselves any such
+power of ordination or mission, but only officers both in the first
+sending of men to preach, as 1 Tim. iv. 14; 2 Tim. i. 6: and to be
+deacons, Acts vi. 6, and also in after missions, as Acts xiii. 1-3. 4.
+The community, without officers, may not exercise any act of
+jurisdiction authoritatively and properly; may not admonish,
+excommunicate, or absolve. For we have no precept that they should do
+it; we have no example in all the New Testament that they ever did do
+it; we have both precept and example, that select officers both did and
+ought to do it. "Whatsoever ye bind on earth" (saith Christ to his
+officers) "shall be bound in heaven," &c. Matt. xviii. 18, and xvi. 19.
+"Whose soever sins ye remit," &c., John xx. 21, 23. "An heretic, after
+once or twice admonition, reject," Tit. i. 10. "I have decreed--to
+deliver such an one to Satan," 1 Cor. v. 4. "The rebuke inflicted by
+many," not all, 2 Cor. ii. "Whom I have delivered to Satan," 1 Tim. i.
+_ult_. And the Scriptures nowhere set the community over themselves to
+be their own church-guides and governors; but appoint over them in the
+Lord rulers and officers distinct from the community. Compare these
+places, 1 Thes. v. 12; Acts xx. 28, 29; Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 22. "Salute
+all them that have the rule over you, and all the saints." From the
+premises we conclude,
+
+Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first subject, or
+immediate receptacle of the power of the keys from Jesus Christ.
+
+_Argum_. III. Jesus Christ hath not given nor promised to the community
+of the faithful a spirit of ministry, nor those gifts which are
+necessary for the government of the church: therefore the community was
+never intended to be the first subject of church government.
+
+_Major_. Whomsoever Christ makes the first subject of the power of
+church government, to them he promises and gives a spirit of ministry,
+and gifts necessary for that government. For, 1. As there is diversity
+of ecclesiastical administrations (which is the foundation of diversity
+of officers) and diversity of miraculous operations, and both for the
+profit of the Church; so there is conveyed from the Spirit of Christ
+diversity of gifts, free endowments, enabling and qualifying for the
+actual discharge of those administrations and operations. See 1 Cor.
+xii. 4-7, &c. 2. What instance can be given throughout the whole New
+Testament of any persons, whom Christ made the receptacle of church
+government, but withal he gifted them, and made his promises to them, to
+qualify them for such government? As the apostles and their successors:
+"As my Father sent me, even so send I you. And when he had said this, he
+breathed on them, and saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost: whose
+soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them; and whose soever sins
+ye retain, they are retained," John xx. 21-23. And, "Go ye therefore,
+and disciple ye all nations, &c.--And lo, I am with you alway," (or
+every day,) "even to the end of the world," Matt. xxviii. 19, 20. 3.
+Christ being the _wisdom of the Father_, Col. ii. 3, John i. 18, and
+_faithful as was Moses in all his house_; yea, _more faithful_--_Moses
+as a servant_ over another's, he _as a son over his own house_, Heb.
+iii. 2, 5, 6--it cannot stand with his most exact wisdom and fidelity,
+to commit the grand affairs of church government to such as are not duly
+gifted, and sufficiently qualified by himself for the due discharge
+thereof.
+
+_Minor_. But Christ neither promises, nor gives a spirit of ministry,
+nor necessary gifts for church government to the community of the
+faithful. For, 1. The Scriptures teach, that gifts for ministry and
+government are promised and bestowed not on all, but upon some
+particular persons only in the visible body of Christ. "To one is given
+by the Spirit the word of wisdom, to another the word of knowledge,"
+&c., not to all, 1 Cor. xii. 8, 9, &c. "If a man know not how to rule
+his own house, how shall he take care of the church of God?" 1 Tim. iii.
+5. The hypothesis insinuates that all men have not gifts and skill
+rightly to rule their own houses, much less to govern the church. 2.
+Experience tells us, that the multitude of the people are generally
+destitute of such knowledge, wisdom, prudence, learning, and other
+necessary qualifications for the right carrying on of church government.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ makes not the community of the faithful
+the first subject of the power of church government.
+
+_Argum_. IV. The community of the faithful are nowhere in the word
+called or acknowledged to be church governors: therefore they are not
+the first subject of church government.
+
+_Major_. Those persons, who are the first subject and receptacle of
+proper power for church government from Christ, are in the word called
+and acknowledged to be church governors. This is evident, 1. By
+Scripture, which is wont to give to them whom Christ intrusts with his
+government, such names and titles as have rule, authority, and
+government engraven upon them: as _overseers_, Acts xx. 28;
+_governments_, 1 Cor. xii. 28; _rulers_, 1 Tim. v. 17, and Rom. xii. 8;
+with divers others, as after will appear in Chap. XI. 2. By reason,
+which tells us that government and governors are relative terms; and
+therefore to whom government belongs, to them also the denominations of
+governors, rulers, &c., do belong, and not contrariwise.
+
+_Minor_. But the community of the faithful are nowhere in the word
+either called or acknowledged to be church governors. This is clear.
+For, 1. No titles or names are given them by Scripture which imply any
+rule or government in the visible Church of Christ. 2. They are plainly
+set in opposition against, and distinction from, church governors: they
+are called the _flock_; these, _overseers_ set over them by the Holy
+Ghost, Acts xx. 28: they, _the saints_; these _their rulers_, Heb. xiii.
+22: these are _over them in the Lord_; and consequently they are _under
+them in the Lord_, 1 Thes. v. 12. 3. The community of the faithful are
+so far from being the subject of church government themselves, that they
+are expressly charged by the word of Christ to _know, honor, obey_, and
+_submit_, to other governors set over them, and distinct from
+themselves. "Know them who are over you in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12.
+"Let the well-ruling elders be counted worthy of double
+honor; especially," &c., 1 Tim. v. 17. "Obey ye your rulers, and submit,
+for they watch for your souls," Heb. xiii. 17.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the community of the faithful are not the first
+subject and receptacle of proper power for church government.
+
+_Argum_. V. This opinion of making the body of the Church, or community
+of the faithful, the first subject and immediate receptacle of the keys
+for the government of the Church, doth inevitably bring along with it
+many intolerable absurdities. Therefore it is not to be granted. Thus we
+may argue:
+
+_Major_. That doctrine or opinion which draws after it unavoidably
+divers intolerable absurdities, is an unsound and unwarrantable opinion.
+
+_Minor_. But this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole community or
+body of the Church to be the first subject and immediate receptacle of
+the keys, draws after it unavoidable divers intolerable absurdities.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole
+community or body of the Church to be the first subject, and immediate
+receptacle of the keys, is an unsound and unwarrantable opinion.
+
+The _Major_ is plain. For, 1. Though matters of religion be above
+reason, yet are they not unreasonable, absurd, and directly contrary to
+right reason. 2. The Scriptures condemn it as a great brand upon men,
+that they are absurd or unreasonable; "Brethren, pray for us--that we
+may be delivered from absurd and evil men," 2 Thes. iii. 2; and
+therefore if absurd men be so culpable, absurdity, and unreasonableness
+itself, which make them such, are much more culpable.
+
+The _Minor_, viz. But this doctrine or opinion that makes the whole
+community or body of the Church to be the first subject and immediate
+receptacle of the keys, draws after it unavoidably divers intolerable
+absurdities, will notably appear by an induction of particulars.
+
+1. Hereby a clear foundation is laid for the rigid Brownist's confused
+democracy, and abhorred anarchy. For, if the whole body of the people be
+the first receptacle of the keys, then all church government and every
+act thereof is in the whole body, and every member of that body a
+governor, consequently every member of that body an officer. But this is
+absurd; for if all be officers, where is the organical body? and if all
+be governors, where are the governed? if all be eyes, where are the
+feet? and if there be none governed, where is the government? it is
+wholly resolved at last into mere democratical anarchy and confusion,
+"but God is not the author of confusion," 1 Cor. xiv. 33. What an
+absurdity were it, if in the body natural _all were an eye_, or _hand_!
+for _where_ then _were the hearing, smelling_, &c.; _or if all were one
+member, where were the body_? 1 Cor. xii. 17,19. So if in the family all
+were masters, where were the household? where were the family
+government? If in a city all were aldermen, where were the citizens?
+where were the city government? If in a kingdom all were kings, where
+were the subjects, the people, the commonalty, the commonwealth, or the
+political government?
+
+2. Hereby the community or whole body of the faithful, even to the
+meanest member, are vested from Christ with full power and authority
+actually to discharge and execute all acts of order and jurisdiction
+without exception: e.g. To preach the word authoritatively, dispense the
+sacraments, ordain their officers, admonish offenders, excommunicate the
+obstinate and incorrigible, and absolve the penitent. For _the keys of
+the kingdom of heaven_ comprehend all these acts jointly, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18-20, with John xx. 21, 23: and to whom Christ in the New
+Testament gives power to execute one of these acts, to them he gives
+power to execute all; they are joined together, Matt, xviii. 19, (except
+in such cases where himself gives a limitation of the power, as in the
+case of the ruling elder, who is limited to ruling as contradistinct to
+_laboring in the word and doctrine_, 1 Tim. v. 17.) Now what gross
+absurdities ensue hereupon! For, 1. Then the weak as well as the strong,
+the ignorant as well as the intelligent, the children as well as the
+parents, yea, and the very women as well as the men, may preach,
+dispense seals, ordain, admonish, excommunicate, absolve
+authoritatively; (for they are all equally members of the body, one as
+well as another, and therefore, as such, have all alike equal share in
+the keys and exercise thereof:) viz. they that are not gifted for these
+offices, shall discharge these offices; they that are not called nor
+sent of God to officiate, (for God sends not all,) shall yet officiate
+in the name of Christ without calling or sending, contrary to Rom. x.,
+Heb. v. 4. They that want the common use of reason and discretion (as
+children) shall have power to join in the highest acts of order and
+jurisdiction: yea, they that are expressly prohibited _speaking in the
+churches_, as the _women_, 1 Cor. xiv., 1 Tim. ii., shall yet have the
+_keys of the kingdom of heaven_ hung at their girdles. 2. Then the
+Church shall be the steward of Christ, and dispenser of the mysteries of
+God authoritatively and properly. But if the whole Church be the
+dispenser of the mysteries of God, what shall be the object of this
+dispensation? Not the Church, for according to this opinion she is the
+first subject dispensing; therefore it must be something distinct from
+the Church, unto which the Church dispenseth; what shall this be? shall
+it be another collateral church? then particular churches collateral may
+take pastoral care one of another reciprocally, and the same churches be
+both over and under one another; or shall it be those that are without
+all churches? then the ordinances of the gospel, and the dispensation of
+them, were not principally bestowed upon the Church and body of Christ
+for the good thereof, (which is directly repugnant to the Scriptures,
+Eph. iv. 8, 11-13;) but rather for them that are without. How shall the
+men, who maintain the principle's of the Independents, clearly help
+themselves out of these perplexing absurdities?
+
+3. Hereby the body of the people (as Mr. Bayly well observes in his
+Dissuasive, chap. ix. page 187) will be extremely unfitted for, and
+unwarrantably taken off from the several duties that lie upon them in
+point of conscience to discharge in their general and particular
+callings, in spiritual and secular matters, on the Lord's days and on
+their own days. For, if the ecclesiastical power be in all the people,
+then all the people are judges, and at least have a negative voice in
+all church matters. They cannot judge in any cause prudently and
+conscientiously, till they have complete knowledge and information of
+both the substantials and circumstantials of all those cases that are
+brought before them; they must not judge blindly, or by an implicit
+faith, &c., but by their own light. For all the people to have such full
+information and knowledge of every cause, cannot but take up abundance
+of time, (many of the people being slow of understanding and extremely
+disposed to puzzle, distract, and confound one another in any business
+to be transacted in common by them all.) If these matters of discipline
+be managed by them on the sabbath day after the dispatch of other public
+ordinances, ministry of the word, prayer, sacraments, &c., what time can
+remain for family duties privately, as repeating sermons, and meditating
+upon the word, searching the Scriptures, whether things preached be so
+indeed, reading the Scriptures, catechizing their children and servants,
+&c.? and how will the life of religion in families, yea, and in churches
+also, languish, if these family exercises be not conscientiously upheld?
+If they be managed on the week days, how can all the people spare so
+much time, as still to be present, when perhaps many of them have much
+ado all the week long to provide food and raiment, and other necessaries
+for their families? and "if any provide not for his own, and specially
+for those of his own house, he hath denied the faith, and is worse than
+an infidel," 1 Tim. v. 8. Let the case of the church of Arnheim[39]
+witness the mischief and absurdity of this popular government once for
+all.
+
+4. Hereby, finally, the community of the faithful (being accounted the
+proper subject of the power of the keys) have authority and power not
+only to elect, but also to ordain their own officers, their pastors and
+teachers. And this they of the independent judgment plainly confess in
+these words:[40] Though the office of a pastor in general be immediately
+from Christ, and the authority from him also, yet the application of
+this office, and of this authority to this elect person, is by the
+church; and therefore the church hath sufficient and just warrant, as to
+elect and call a presbyter unto an office, so to ordain him to it by
+imposition of hands. They that have power to elect a king, have power
+also to depute some in their name to set the crown upon his head. But
+for the whole church or community to ordain presbyters by imposition of
+hands, is very absurd. For, 1. Their women and children, being members
+of the church and of the community, may join in ordaining presbyters by
+imposing of hands, and have as great an influence in appointing them
+that shall actually impose hands, as the rest of the church members
+have, being as properly members as they. 2. Then the community, that
+generally are unable to judge of the fitness and sufficiency of
+presbyters for the pastoral office, in point of necessary gifts of
+learning, &c., shall, without judicious satisfaction herein by previous
+examination, ordain men notwithstanding to the highest ordinary office
+in the church. How ignorantly, how doubtfully, how irregularly, how
+unwarrantably, let the reader judge. 3. Then the community of the
+faithful may assume to themselves power to execute this ordinary act of
+ordination of officers, without all precept of Christ or his apostles,
+and without all warrant of the apostolical churches. But how absurd
+these things be, each moderate capacity may conceive. Further
+absurdities hereupon are declared by Mr. Bain,[41] and after him by Mr.
+Ball.[42]
+
+Whence we may justly conclude,
+
+Therefore this doctrine or opinion, that makes the whole community or
+body of the church to be the first subject and immediate receptacle of
+the keys, is an unsound and unwarrantable opinion.
+
+The middle-way men, (that profess to go between the authoritative
+presbyterial, and the rigid Brownistical way,) seeing these and such
+like absurdities, upon which the Brownists inevitably dash themselves,
+think to salve all by their new-coined distinction of the keys; viz. 1.
+There is a key of faith or knowledge, Luke xi. 52. The first subject of
+this key is every believer, whether joined to any particular church or
+not. 2. There is a key of order, Col. ii. 5, which is either, 1. A key
+of interest, power, or liberty, Gal. v. 13, which key is of a more large
+nature; 2. A key of rule and authority, which is of more strict nature,
+Matt. xvi. 19, John xx. 23. Hence, upon this distinction premised, they
+thus infer, 1. A particular congregation of saints is the first subject
+of all the church offices with all their spiritual gifts and power, 1
+Cor. iii. 22. 2. The apostles of Christ were the first subject of
+apostolical power. 3. The brethren of a particular congregation are the
+first subjects of church liberty. 4. The elders of a particular church
+are the first subjects of church authority. 5. Both the elders and
+brethren, walking and joining together in truth and peace, are the first
+subjects of all church power needful to be exercised in their own body.
+
+_Answer_. A rotten foundation, and a tottering superstruction, which
+tumbles down upon the builders' own heads: for,
+
+1. This distribution of the keys is infirm in divers respects: e.g. 1.
+In that the key of knowledge (as it stands here distinguished from the
+key of order, comprehending the key of power and authority) is left
+utterly devoid of all power. Now no key of the kingdom of heaven is to
+be left without all power, Independents themselves being judges. 2. In
+that the key of power is left as utterly void of all authority, (being
+contradistinguished from the key of authority,) as the key of knowledge
+is left void of power. Now, power and authority, in matters of
+government, seem to be both one; and the word in the original signifies
+the one as well as the other. 3. The key of liberty or interest is a new
+key, lately forged by some new locksmiths in Separation-shop, to be a
+pick-lock of the power of church officers, and to open the door for
+popular government; no ordinance of Christ, but a mere human invention,
+(as will after appear upon examination of that scripture upon which it
+is grounded,) and therefore this limb of the distribution is redundant,
+a superfluous excrescence. 4. The texts of Scripture upon which this
+distribution of the keys is grounded, are divers of them abused, or at
+least grossly mistaken; for, Luke xi. 52, key of knowledge is
+interpreted only the key of saving faith. But knowledge, in strict
+speaking, is one thing, and faith another; there may be knowledge where
+there is no faith; and knowledge, in a sort, is a key to faith, as the
+inlet thereof. And the key of knowledge, viz. true doctrine and pure
+preaching of the word, is a distinct thing from knowledge itself. This
+key the lawyers had taken away by not interpreting, or misinterpreting
+of the law; but they could not take away the people's faith, or
+knowledge itself. Touching Col. ii. 5, 6, _your order_, it will be hard
+to prove this was only or chiefly intended of the keys delivered to
+Peter: doth it not rather denote the people's moral orderly walking,
+according to the rule of faith and life, as in other duties, so in
+submitting themselves to Christ's order of government, as is elsewhere
+required, Heb. xiii. 17? And as for Gal. v. 13, produced to prove the
+key of liberty, _Brethren, you have been called unto liberty_, there is
+too much liberty taken in wresting this text; for the apostle here
+speaks not of liberty as a church power, of choosing officers, joining
+in censures, &c., but as a gospel privilege, consisting in freedom from
+the ceremonial law, that yoke of bondage, which false teachers would
+have imposed upon them, after Christ had broken it off; as will further
+appear, if you please with this text to compare Gal. v. 1, 11, 15, 10,
+and well consider the current of the whole context.
+
+2. The inferences upon this distribution of the keys premised, are very
+strange and untheological. For it may be accepted in general, that it is
+a groundless fancy to make several first subjects of the keys, according
+to the several distributions of the keys; for, had all the members of
+the distribution been good, yet this inference thereupon is naught,
+inasmuch as the Scripture tells us plainly, that all the keys together
+and at once were promised to Peter, Matt. xvi. 19, and given to the
+apostles, Matt, xviii. 18, 19, with xxviii. 18-20, and John xx. 21-23;
+so that originally the apostles and their successors were the only first
+subject and immediate receptacle of all the keys from Christ. And though
+since, for assistance and case of the pastor, they are divided into more
+hands--viz. of the ruling elder, Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v.
+17--yet originally the subject was but one. Further, here is just ground
+for many particular exceptions: as, 1. That every believer, whether
+joined to any particular church or not, is made the first subject of the
+key of knowledge, which seems to be extremely absurd: for then every
+particular believer, gifted or ungifted, strong or weak, man, woman, or
+child, hath power to preach, (taking the key of knowledge here for the
+key of doctrine, as it ought to be taken, or else it is no
+ecclesiastical key at all,) which is one of the highest offices, and
+which the great apostle said, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2
+Cor. ii. 16. How unscriptural and irrational this is, all may judge.
+Then also some of the keys may be committed to such as are without the
+Church. Then finally, it is possible to be a believer, and yet in no
+visible church; (for Independents hold there is no church but a
+particular congregation, which is their only church:) but a man is no
+sooner a true believer, but he is a member of the invisible Church: he
+is no sooner a professed believer, but he is a member of the general
+visible Church, though he be joined to no particular congregation. 2.
+That a particular congregation of saints is made the first subject of
+all the church offices, with all their spiritual gifts and power, 1 Cor.
+iii. 22. But is the word subject used here properly, for the first
+subject recipient of all church offices, with all their gifts and power?
+Then the congregation of saints are either officers themselves formally,
+and can execute the function of all sorts of officers, and have all
+gifts to that end; what need then is there of any select officers? for
+they can make officers virtually, and furnish those officers with gifts
+and power to that end; but who gave them any such authority? Or what
+apostolical church ever assumed to themselves any such thing? Officers,
+not churches, are the first subject of such gifts and power. Is the word
+subject here used improperly, for object, whose good all offices with
+their gifts and power are given? Then not any particular congregation,
+but the whole general visible Church is the object for which all offices
+and officers with their gifts and power are primarily given, 1 Cor. xii.
+28; Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12. As for that place, 1 Cor. iii. 22, "All is
+yours," &c., it points not out the particular privilege of any one
+single congregation, (nor was the church of Corinth such, but
+presbyterial, see chap. XIII.,) but the general privilege of all true
+saints, and of the invisible mystical Church: for were Paul and Cephas
+apostles given peculiarly to the church of Corinth only? Or was the
+_world, life, death, things present and to come_, given to the wicked in
+the church of Corinth? 3. That the apostles are made the first subject
+of all apostolical power. But then, how doth this contradict the former
+assertion, that a particular congregation is the first subject of all
+offices with their gifts and power? Are there two first subjects of the
+same adjuncts? Or is apostleship no office? Are apostolical gifts no
+gifts, or power no power? or have apostles all from the Church?
+Doubtless apostles were before all Christian churches, and had the keys
+given them before the churches had their being. 4. That the brethren of
+a particular congregation are made the first subjects of church liberty.
+But, if that liberty be power and authority, then this evidently
+contradicts the former, that a particular congregation is the first
+subject of all offices and power; for brethren here are distinct from
+elders, and both do but make up a particular congregation. If liberty
+here be not power, then it is none of Christ's keys, but a new forged
+pick-lock. 5. That the elders of a particular church are made the first
+subject of church authority; but then here is a contradiction to the
+former position, that made the particular congregation the first subject
+of all power. And though apostles and elders be the first subject of
+authority, yet, when the keys were first committed to them, they were
+not in relation to any particular church, but to the general. 6.
+Finally, that both elders and brethren, walking and joining together in
+truth and peace, are the first subjects of all church power, is liable
+also to exception. For this joins the brethren (who indeed have no
+authoritative power at all) with the elders, as the joint subject of all
+power. And this but allowed to them walking and joining together in
+truth and peace: but what if the major part of the Church prove
+heretical, and so walk not in truth; or schismatical, and so walk not in
+peace, shall the elders and the non-offending party lose all their
+power? Where then shall that independent church find healing? for
+appeals to presbyteries and synods are counted apocryphal by them. But
+enough hath been said to detect the vanity of these new dreams and
+notions; it is a bad sore that must be wrapped in so many clouts.[43]
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI.
+
+_Of the proper Receptacle, or immediate subject of the Power of Church
+Government: affirmatively, what it is, viz. Christ's own Officers._
+
+
+Thus the proper receptacle or subject of ecclesiastical power hath been
+considered negatively, what it is not, viz: not the political
+magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, with or without their eldership. Now this receptacle of power
+comes to be evidenced affirmatively, what it is, viz. (according to the
+express words of the description of government,) Christ's own officers.
+This is the last branch of the description, the divine right whereof
+remains to be cleared; which may most satisfactorily be done by
+evidencing these three things, viz: 1. That Jesus Christ our Mediator
+hath certain peculiar church guides and officers which he hath erected
+in his Church. 2. That Jesus Christ our Mediator hath especially
+intrusted his own officers with the government of his Church. 3. How, or
+in what sense the ruling officers are intrusted with this government,
+severally or jointly?
+
+
+SECTION I.
+
+1. _Of the Divine Right of Christ's Church Officers, viz. Pastors and
+Teachers, with Ruling Elders._
+
+Touching the first, that Christ hath certain peculiar church guides and
+officers, which he hath erected in his Church. Take it thus:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath ordained and set in his Church (besides
+the apostles and other extraordinary officers that are now ceased)
+pastors and teachers, as also ruling elders, as the subject of the keys
+for all ordinary ecclesiastical administrations. The divine right of
+these ordinary church officers may appear as followeth:
+
+I. Pastors and teachers are the ordinance of Jesus Christ. This is
+generally granted on all sides; and therefore these few particulars may
+suffice for the demonstration of it, viz:
+
+1. They are enumerated in the list or catalogue of those church officers
+which are of divine institution. "God hath set" (or put, constituted)
+"some in the Church, first, apostles; secondarily, prophets; thirdly,
+teachers," 1 Cor. xii. 28. These are some of the triumphant gifts and
+trophies of Christ's ascension: "Ascending up on high, he led captivity
+captive, and gave gifts to men: and he gave some apostles, and some
+prophets, and some evangelists, and some pastors and teachers," Eph. iv.
+8, 11. Thus in that exact roll of ordinary officers: "Having, therefore,
+gifts different according to the grace given unto us; whether prophecy,
+let us prophesy according to the proportion of faith; or ministry, let
+us wait on our ministry;" (here is the general distribution of all
+ordinary officers under two heads, _prophecy_ and _ministry_:) "or he
+that teacheth, on teaching; or he that exhorteth, on exhortation," (here
+is the teacher and the pastor, that come under the first head of
+prophecy,) Rom. xii. 6-8. "Take heed to yourselves, and to all the
+flock, over which the Holy Ghost hath made" (or set) "you overseers,"
+Acts xx. 28. Note--God hath set in the Church; Christ hath given for his
+body; the Holy Ghost hath made overseers over the flock, these pastors
+and teachers: and are not pastors and teachers church officers by divine
+right, having the authority of God, Christ, and of the Holy Ghost?
+
+2. They are to be thus and thus qualified according to divine direction.
+The qualifications of these pastors and teachers, (called presbyters and
+overseers,) see in 1 Tim. iii. 2-8, "An overseer," or bishop, "must be
+blameless," &c.; and Tit. i. 5-10, "To ordain presbyters," or elders,
+"in every city--If any be blameless," &c. Now, where God lays down
+qualifications for pastors and teachers, there he approves such officers
+to be his own ordinance.
+
+3. They have manifold church employments committed to them from Christ,
+as ministers of Christ and stewards of the mysteries of God, (1 Cor. iv.
+1, 2,) they being intrusted in whole or in part with the managing of
+most if not all the ordinances forementioned in part 2, chap. VII., as
+there by the texts alleged is evident. Matters of order and special
+office are committed to them only _divisim_: matters of jurisdiction are
+committed to them with ruling elders _conjunctim_. If Christ hath
+intrusted them thus with church ordinances, and the dispensing of them,
+sure they are Christ's church officers.
+
+4. The very names and titles given them in Scripture proclaim them to be
+Christ's own ordinance; among many take these: "Ministers of Christ," 1
+Cor. iv. 1; "Stewards of the mysteries of God," 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+"Ambassadors for Christ," 2 Cor. v. 20; "Laborers thrust forth into his
+harvest by the Lord of the harvest," Matt. ix. 38; "Ruling over you in
+the Lord,"[44] 1 Thess. v. 12.
+
+5. The Lord Christ charges their flock and people with many duties to be
+performed to their pastors and teachers, because of their office; as to
+know them, love them, obey them, submit unto them, honor them, maintain
+them, &c., which he would not do were they not his own ordinance. "But
+we beseech you, brethren, to know them that labor among you, and rule
+over you in the Lord, and esteem them very highly in love for their
+work's sake," 1 Thess. v. 12, 13. "Obey your rulers, and submit; for
+they watch for your souls as those that must give an account," Heb.
+xiii. 17. "The elders that rule well count worthy of double honor;
+especially them that labor in the word and doctrine; _for the Scripture
+saith_, Thou shalt not muzzle the mouth of the ox that treadeth out the
+corn, and the laborer is worthy of his hire," 1 Tim. v. 17, 18; compared
+With 1 Cor. ix. 6-15. "Let him that is catechized, communicate to him
+that catechizeth him in all good things," Gal. vi. 6-8.
+
+Thus much for the present may suffice to have been spoken touching the
+divine right of pastors and teachers, the ordinary standing ministers of
+Christ under the New Testament. But forasmuch as we observe that in
+these days some rigid Erastians and Seekers oppose and deny the very
+office of the ministry now under the gospel, and others profess that the
+ministry of the church of England is false and antichristian; we
+intend, (by God's assistance,) as soon as we can rid our hands from
+other pressing employments, to endeavor the asserting and vindicating of
+the divine right of the ministers of the New Testament in general, and
+of the truth of the ministry of the church of England in particular.
+
+II. Ruling elders, distinct from all preaching elders and deacons, are a
+divine ordinance in the Church of God now under the New Testament.
+
+The divine right of this church officer, the mere ruling elder, is much
+questioned and doubted by some, because they find not the Scriptures
+speaking so fully and clearly of the ruling elder as of the preaching
+elder and of the deacon. By others it is flatly denied and opposed, as
+by divers that adhere too tenaciously to the Erastian and prelatical
+principles: who yet are willing to account the assistance of the ruling
+elder in matter of church government to be a very prudential way. But if
+mere prudence be counted once a sufficient foundation for a distinct
+kind of church officer, we shall open a door for invention of church
+officers at pleasure; then welcome commissioners and committee men, &c.;
+yea, then let us return to the vomit, and resume prelates, deans,
+archdeacons, chancellors, officials, &c., for church officers. And where
+shall we stop? who but Christ Jesus himself can establish new officers
+in his church? Is it not the fruit of his ascension, &c.? Eph. iv. 7,
+11, 12. Certainly if the Scriptures lay not before us grounds more than
+prudential for the ruling elder, it were better never to have mere
+ruling elders in the church. Both the Presbyterians and Independents[45]
+acknowledge the divine right of the ruling elder. For satisfaction of
+doubting unprejudiced minds, (to omit divers considerations that might
+be produced,) the divine right of the ruling elder may be evinced by
+these ensuing arguments.
+
+_Argum_. I. The first argument for the divine right of the ruling elder
+in the Church of Christ, shall be drawn from Rom. xii. 6-8: "Having,
+then, gifts differing according to the grace that is given to us,
+whether prophecy, let us prophesy according to the proportion of faith;
+or ministry, _let us wait_ on our ministering; or he that teacheth, on
+teaching; or he that exhorteth, on exhortation; he that giveth, _let him
+do it_ with simplicity; he that ruleth, with diligence," &c. Let the
+scope and context of this chapter be a little viewed, and it will make
+way for the more clear arguing from this place. Briefly thus: The
+apostle having finished the principal part of his epistle, which was
+problematical, wherein he disputed--1. About justification, chap,
+i.-vi.; 2. Sanctification, chap. vi. 7, 8; and, 3. Predestination, chap.
+ix. 10, 11, he comes to the next branch, which is more practical, about
+good works, chap. xii.-xvi. This twelfth chapter is wholly in the way of
+exhortation, and he herein exhorts to divers duties. 1. More generally
+that we should even consecrate ourselves wholly to the service of God,
+ver. 1; that we should not conform to the world, ver. 2. More specially
+he descends to particular duties, which are of two sorts, viz: 1. Such
+as concern ecclesiastical officers as officers, ver. 3-9; 2. Such as
+concern all Christians in common as Christians, both towards one another
+and towards their very enemies, verse 9, to the end of the chapter.
+Touching ecclesiastical officers, the apostle's evident scope is to urge
+them not to be proud of their spiritual gifts, (which in those days
+abounded,) but to think soberly, self-denyingly of themselves, and to
+use all their gifts well. This he presseth upon them, 1. From the nature
+of the Church, which is as a natural organical body, wherein are many
+members, having their several offices for the good of the whole body; so
+the members of Christ's body being many, have their several gifts and
+offices for the good of the whole, that the superior should not despise
+the inferior, nor the inferior envy their superior, ver. 3-5. 2. From
+the distribution or enumeration of the several kinds of ordinary
+standing officers in this organical body, the Church, who are severally
+exhorted duly to discharge those duties that are specially required of
+them in their several functions, ver. 6-8. These officers are reduced
+first to two general heads, viz: Prophecy (understand not the
+extraordinary gift of foretelling future things, &c., but the ordinary,
+in the right understanding and interpreting of Scripture) and ministry;
+and the general duties thereof are annexed, ver. 6, 7. Then these
+generals are subdivided into the special offices contained under them,
+the special duty of every officer being severally pressed upon them.
+Under prophecy are contained, 1. _He that teacheth_, i.e., the doctor or
+teacher; 2. _He that exhorteth_, i.e., the pastor, ver. 7, 8. Under
+ministry are comprised, 1. _He that giveth_, i.e., the deacon; 2. _He
+that ruleth_, i.e., the ruling elder. The current of our best
+interpreters to this effect resolve this context. So that here we have a
+very excellent and perfect enumeration of all the ordinary standing
+officers in the Church of Christ distinctly laid down. This premised,
+the argument for the divine right of the ruling elder may be thus
+propounded:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever members of Christ's organical body have an ordinary
+office of ruling therein given them of God, distinct from all other
+ordinary standing officers in the church, together with directions from
+God how they are to rule; they are the ruling elders we seek, and that
+by divine right.
+
+_Minor_. But _he that ruleth_, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is a member of
+Christ's organical body, having an ordinary office of ruling therein
+given him of God, distinct from all other standing officers in the
+church, together with direction how he is to rule.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is the
+ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.
+
+The major proposition is clear. For in the particulars of it, well
+compared together, are observable both a plain delineation or
+description of the ruling elder's office; and also a firm foundation for
+the divine right of that office. The ruling elder's office is described
+and delineated by these several clauses, which set out so many
+requisites for the making up of a ruling elder, viz: 1. He must be a
+member of Christ's organical body. Such as are without, pagans,
+heathens, infidels, &c., out of the Church, they are not fit objects for
+church government, to have it exercised by the Church upon them; the
+Church only judges them that are within, (1 Cor. v. 12, 13,) much less
+can they be fit subjects of church government to exercise it themselves
+within the Church. How shall they be officers in the Church that are not
+so much as members of the Church? Besides, such as are only members of
+the invisible body of Christ, as the glorified saints in heaven, they
+cannot be officers in the Church; for not the Church invisible, but only
+the Church or body of Christ visible is organical. So that every church
+officer must first be a Church member, a member of the visible organical
+body: consequently a ruling elder must be such a member. 2. He must have
+an office of ruling in this body of Christ. Membership is not enough,
+unless that power of rule be superadded thereto; for the whole office of
+the ruling elder is contained in the matter of rule; take away rule, you
+destroy the very office. Now, rule belongs not to every member: "Salute
+all them that have the rule over you, and all the saints," Heb. xiii.
+24, where rulers and saints are made contradistinct to one another. In
+the body natural all the members are not eyes, hands, &c., governing the
+body, some are rather governed; so in the body of Christ, 1 Cor. xii. 3.
+This his office of ruling must be an ordinary office; apostles had some
+power that was extraordinary, as their apostleship was extraordinary;
+but when we seek for this ruling elder, we seek for a fixed, standing,
+ordinary officer ruling in the church. 4. All that is not enough, that
+he be a member of the church, that he have an office of rule in the
+church, and that office also be ordinary; but besides all these it is
+necessary that he be also distinct from all other standing officers in
+the church, viz. from pastors, teachers, deacons; else all the former
+will not make up a peculiar kind of officer, if in all points he fully
+agree with any of the said three. But if there can be found such an
+officer in whom all these four requisites do meet, viz: That, 1. Is a
+member of Christ's organical body; 2. Hath an office of rule therein; 3,
+That office is ordinary; and, 4. That ordinary office is distinct from
+all other ordinary standing offices in the church; this must unavoidably
+be that very ruling elder which we inquire after. By this it is evident,
+that in this proposition here is a plain and clear delineation of the
+ruling elder's office. Now, in the next place, touching the foundation
+for the divine right of this office; it also is notably expressed in the
+same proposition, while it presupposeth, 1. That God is the giver of
+this office; 2. That God is the guider of this office. For whatsoever
+office or officer God gives for his Church, and having given it, guides
+and directs to the right discharge thereof, that must needs be of divine
+right beyond all contradiction. Thus this proposition is firm and
+cogent. Now let us assume:
+
+_Minor_. But _he that ruleth_, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is a member of
+Christ's organical body, having an ordinary office of ruling therein,
+given him of God, distinct from all other ordinary standing officers in
+the church, together with direction from God how he is to rule.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition (whereon the main stress of the
+argument doth lie) may be thus evidenced by parts, from this context:
+
+_He that ruleth_ is a member of Christ's organical body. For, 1. The
+Church of Christ is here compared to a body, _We being many are one body
+in Christ_, ver. 5. 2. This body is declared to be organical, i.e.
+consisting of several members, that have their several offices in the
+body, some of teaching, some of exhorting, and some of ruling, &c. "For
+as we have many members in one body, and all members have not the same
+office, so we being many are one body in Christ, and every one members
+one of another," &c., ver. 4-6, &c. 3. Among the rest of the members of
+this body, _he that ruleth_ is reckoned up for one, ver. 5-8; this is
+palpably evident.
+
+_He that ruleth_ hath an office of ruling in this body of Christ. For,
+1. This word (translated) _he that ruleth_, in the proper signification
+and use of it, both in the Scriptures and in other Greek authors, doth
+signify one that ruleth authoritatively over another, (as hereafter is
+manifested in the 3d argument, Sec. 2.) 2. Our best interpreters and
+commentators do render and expound the word generally to this effect:
+e.g. He that is over[46]--one set over[47]--he that stands in the head
+or front[48]--as a captain or commander in the army, to which this
+phrase seems to allude--_he that ruleth_. 3. This word, wherever it is
+used in a genuine proper sense, in all the New Testament, notes rule, or
+government. It is used metaphorically for taking care (as one set over
+any business) of good works, only in two places, Tit. iii. 8, and iii.
+14. Properly for government which superiors have over inferiors; and
+that either domestical, in private families, so it is used in 1 Tim.
+iii. 4, 5, 12, or ecclesiastical, in the church, which is the public
+family of God; in this sense it is used, 1 Thes. v. 12, 1 Tim. v. 17,
+and here, Rom. xii. 8, and these are all the places where this word is
+found used in all the New Testament.
+
+3. _He that ruleth_ here, hath an ordinary, not an extraordinary office
+of rule in the church. For he is ranked and reckoned up in the list of
+Christ's ordinary standing officers, that are constantly to continue in
+the church, viz. pastors, teachers, deacons. Commonly this place is
+interpreted to speak of the ordinary church officers, and none other;
+consequently he that ruleth is such a one.
+
+4. _He that ruleth_ here, is an officer distinct from all other ordinary
+officers in the Church of Christ. For in this place we have a full
+enumeration of all Christ's ordinary officers, and he that ruleth is a
+distinct officer among them all. 1. Distinct in name, he only is called
+_he that ruleth_, the rest have every one of them their several distinct
+name, ver. 7, 8. 2. Distinct in his work here appropriated to him; the
+doctor teacheth; the pastor exhorteth; the deacon giveth; this elder
+_ruleth_, as the very name signifieth, ver. 8. Compare 1 Tim. v. 17, 1
+Cor. xii. 28. As the elder ruleth, so he is distinct from the deacon
+that hath no rule in the church; and as he only rules, so he is distinct
+from both pastor and teacher, that both teach, exhort, and rule; they
+both have power of order and jurisdiction, the ruling elder hath only
+power of jurisdiction. 3. Finally, he is distinct among and from them
+all in the particular direction here given these officers about the
+right discharge of their functions. The teacher must be exercised _in
+teaching_; the pastor _in exhortation_; the deacon must _give with
+singleness_; and the elder, he must _rule with diligence, studiousness_,
+&c. Now what other solid reason can be imagined, why _he that ruleth_
+should here have a distinct name, distinct work and employment, and
+distinct direction how to manage this work, than this, that the Holy
+Ghost might set him out unto us as an ordinary officer in the church,
+distinct from all the other standing officers here enumerated?
+
+5. God himself is the author and giver of this office of him that
+ruleth, as well as of all the other offices here mentioned. For, 1. All
+gifts and endowments in the church in general, and in every member in
+particular; they are from God, it is he that gives and divides them as
+he will, _as God hath dealt to every one the measure of faith_, Rom.
+xii. 3. 2. All the special offices, and gifts for these offices in
+special, are also from the same God, _we having therefore gifts
+according to the grace given unto us, differing; whether prophecy_, &c.,
+Rom, xii. 6, 7, &c. Here it is plain that he distinguished betwixt grace
+and gifts. By grace here we are to understand that holy office or charge
+in the church, which is given to any man by the grace and favor of God.
+And in this sense the apostle in this very chapter, ver. 3, useth the
+word _grace: For I say through the grace given to me_, i.e. through the
+authority of my apostleship, which by grace I have received, &c. By
+gifts, we are to understand those endowments wherewith God hath freely
+furnished his officers in the church for their several offices. Now both
+these gifts and this grace, both the endowments and the office, are
+originally from God, his grace is the fountain of them; and both the
+grace of each office, and the gifts for such office, relate to all these
+ordinary offices here enumerated, as is evident by the current and
+connection of the whole context, see ver. 6-8; consequently the grace,
+i.e. the office of ruling, which is of divine grace, and the gifts for
+that office, arise from the same fountain, God himself.
+
+6. Finally, God himself is the guider and director of him that ruleth,
+here prescribing to him how he is to rule, viz. _with diligence, with
+studiousness_, &c., ver. 8. Now we may receive this as a maxim, That of
+divine right may be done, for which God gives his divine rule how it is
+to be done: and that office must needs be of divine right, which God
+himself so far approves as to direct in his word how it shall be
+discharged.
+
+Now, to sum up all, he that ruleth here, 1. Is a member of Christ's
+organical body. 2. Hath an office of ruling in this body. 3. This his
+office is not extraordinary but ordinary, standing, and perpetual. 4. He
+is an officer distinct from all other ordinary officers in the Church.
+5. God himself is the giver and author of this office. 6. And God
+himself is the guider and director of this office: and then see if we
+may not clearly conclude,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore, he that ruleth, mentioned in Rom. xii. 8, is
+the ruling elder we seek, and that by divine right.
+
+The adversaries of ruling elders muster up divers exceptions against the
+alleging of Rom. xii. 8, for proof of the divine right of their office,
+the weakness of which is to be discovered ere we pass to another
+argument. _Except_. 1. This is an arguing from a general to a special
+affirmatively. It doth not follow, because the apostle here in general
+mentioneth him that ruleth, therefore in special it must be the ruling
+elder.[49]
+
+_Ans_. This exception is the same with first exception against the
+second argument hereafter laid down. There see. For the same answer
+appositely and satisfactorily is applicable to both.
+
+_Except_. 2. But the apostle here speaks of them that rule, but we have
+nowhere received that such elders have rule over the church--and he
+speaks of all that rule in the church, who therefore would wrest this
+place only to elders? One cannot rightly attribute that word translated
+_he that ruleth_ to elders only, which is common unto more. If these
+elders he here meant, neither pastors nor teachers ought to rule, for
+this word agrees no otherwise to him that ruleth, than the word of
+exhorting to him that exhorteth.[50]
+
+_Ans_. 1. That such elders rule in the church is evident, both by Rom.
+xii. 8, where this word implies rule as hath been showed, and he that
+ruleth is reckoned up amongst ordinary church officers, as hath been
+said, therefore he rules in the church: these the apostle also calls
+ruling elders, 1 Tim. v. 17, viz. officers in the church, and distinct
+from them that labor in the word and doctrine; as in the third argument
+will appear: yea, they are governments set of God in the church,
+distinct from other officers, 1 Cor. xii. 28, as in the second argument
+shall be evidenced: there see; therefore these elders have rule.
+
+2. Though in this term the apostle speaks of him that ruleth, yet he
+speaks not of every one that ruleth. For, 1. He speaks singularly, he
+that ruleth, as of one kind of ruling officer; not plurally, they that
+rule, as if he had indefinitely or universally meant all the ruling
+officers in the church. 2. He reckons up here distinct kinds of ordinary
+officers, pastors, teachers, elders, and deacons; and pastors and
+teachers, besides laboring in the word, have power of rule, 1 Thes. v.
+12, Heb. xiii. 7-17, and he that ruleth, here, is distinct from them
+both; and therefore this term cannot mean all church rulers, but only
+one kind, viz. the ruling elder.
+
+3. Though this name, _he that ruleth_, be common unto more rulers in the
+church, than to the mere ruling elder; yet it doth not therefore
+necessarily follow, that it cannot here particularly point out only the
+mere ruling elder, inasmuch, as _he that ruleth_, is not here set
+alone, (for then this objection might have had some color,) but is
+enumerated with other officers as distinct from them.
+
+4. Though the ruling elder here be called _he that ruleth_, yet this
+doth not exclude the pastor from ruling, no more than when the ordinary
+ministers are called pastors and teachers, the apostles and evangelists
+are excluded from feeding and teaching, in Eph. iv. 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii.
+28. This elder is called, _he that ruleth_, not that there is no other
+ruler than he, but because he doth no other thing but rule, others rule
+and preach also.
+
+_Except_. 3. If this were meant of such elders, then these elders were
+as necessary to the church as pastors, being given to the church by the
+like reason. Consequently where these elders are not, there is no
+church; as there is no church where the word and sacraments are not.[51]
+
+_Ans_. 1. According to this argument deacons are as necessary as either
+pastors, teachers, or elders, and without deacons there should be no
+church; for they are all enumerated here alike, Rom. xii. 7, 8, and in 1
+Cor. xii. 28; but this would be absurd, and against experience. 2.
+Though both pastors and ruling elders belong to the church by divine
+right, yet doth it not follow that the ruling elder is equally as
+necessary as the pastor. The ruling elder only rules, the pastor both
+rules and preaches, therefore he is more necessary to the church. There
+are degrees of necessity; some things are absolutely necessary to the
+being of a church, as matter and form, viz. visible saints, and a due
+profession of faith, and obedience to Christ, according to the gospel.
+Thus it is possible a church may be, and yet want both deacons, elders,
+and pastors too, yea, and word and sacraments for a time: some things
+are only respectively necessary to the well-being of a church; thus
+officers are necessary, yet some more than others, without which the
+church is lame, defective, and miserably imperfect.
+
+_Except_. 4. Should ruling elders here be meant, then deacons that obey,
+should be preferred before the elders that rule.[52]
+
+_Ans_. Priority of order is no infallible argument of priority of worth
+and dignity; as is evidenced in answer to the third exception against
+Arg. II.--there see; we find Priscilla a woman named before Aquila a
+man, and her husband, Acts xviii. 18; Rom. xvi. 3; 1 Tim. iv. 19; is
+therefore the woman preferred before the man? the wife before the
+husband? And again, Aquila is set before Priscilla, Acts xviii. 2, 26, 1
+Cor. xvi. 19, to let us see that the Holy Ghost indifferently speaks
+of superior and inferior before one another.
+
+_Except_. 5. But here the apostle speaketh of divers gifts and graces,
+for so _differing gifts_ do import, not of divers offices: for then they
+might not concur in one man, and consequently neither might the prophet
+teach, nor exhort, nor the deacon distribute, nor show mercy. Many gifts
+may be common in one man, many offices cannot;--which of these gifts in
+the apostles' times was not common as well to the people as to the
+pastors; and to women as well as to men? &c.[53]
+
+_Ans_. Divers considerations may be propounded to discover the vanity of
+this exception: chiefly take these three.
+
+1. There is no sufficient reason in this exception, proving the apostle
+here to speak only of divers gifts and graces, and not of divers offices
+also. For, 1. This is not proved by that expression, _differing gifts_,
+ver. 6, for these differing gifts are not here spoken of abstractly and
+absolutely, without reference to their subjects, but relatively with
+reference to their subjects wherein they are, viz. in the several
+officers, ver. 7, 8, and therefore, as the apostle mentions the
+_differing gifts_, so here he tells us in the same sixth verse, that we
+have these "different gifts, according to the grace given unto us," i.e.
+according to the office given unto us of God's grace, (as hath been
+manifested,) after which immediately is subjoined an enumeration of
+offices. 2. Nor is this proved by the inference made, upon the granting
+that divers offices are here meant, viz. [Then they might not concur in
+one man, the prophet might not teach nor exhort, &c.; many gifts may be
+common in one man, many offices cannot.] For who is so little versed in
+the Scriptures, but he knows that apostles, pastors, elders, deacons,
+are distinct officers one from another; yet all the inferior offices are
+virtually comprehended in the superior, and may be discharged by them:
+elders may distribute as well as deacons; and beyond them, rule: pastors
+may distribute and rule as well as deacons and elders, and beyond both
+preach, dispense sacraments, and ordain ministers. Apostles may do there
+all, and many things besides extraordinary. Much more may the prophet
+teach and exhort, and the deacon distribute and show mercy; these being
+the proper acts of their office. 3. Nor, finally, is this proved by that
+suggestion, that all these gifts in the apostles' times were common to
+all sorts and sexes, women as well as men; as he after takes much pains
+to prove, but to very little purpose. For not only in the apostles'
+times, but in our times also, all Christians may teach, exhort,
+distribute, show mercy, &c., privately, occasionally, by bond of
+charity, and law of fraternity towards one another mutually: but may not
+teach, exhort, rule, distribute, &c., authoritatively by virtue of their
+office, so as to give themselves wholly to such employments, which is
+the thing here intended; yet it is worth observing how far Bilson was
+transported against ruling elders, that rather than yield to their
+office, he will make all these gifts common to all sorts and sexes, men
+and women. This is new divinity; all sorts and sexes may both preach and
+rule. Let Bilson have the credit of symbolizing with the Separatists, if
+not of transcending them.
+
+2. Here is good ground in the context to make us think that the apostle
+here spoke of distinct church officers, and not only of distinct gifts.
+For, 1. In the similitude of a natural body (whereunto here the church
+is compared) he speaks of distinct members, having distinct offices,
+ver. 4. "For as we have many members in one body, and all members have
+not the same office." 2. In his accommodation of this similitude, he
+speaks not only of gifts, but also of offices according to which these
+gifts are given, which he calls _grace_, ver. 6, (as was noted.). This
+grace given, or this office given of grace, is branched out, first, into
+two general heads, viz. _prophecy_ and _ministry_, ver. 6, 7. Then these
+generals are subdivided into the special offices contained under them,
+viz.: Under prophecy the teacher, _he that teacheth_; and the pastor,
+_he that exhorteth_; under ministry the deacon, _he that distributeth_;
+and the ruling elder, _he that ruleth_. Now there is in the text just
+ground for this resolution of the text, in making prophecy and ministry
+generals, and all the rest special kinds of officers; forasmuch as
+prophecy and ministry are expressed abstractly, _whether prophecy_,
+(not, whether we are prophets;) _whether ministry_, (not, whether we are
+deacons, ministers:) and both prophecy and ministry are put in the
+accusative case; and both of them have relation, and are joined unto the
+participle of the plural number _having_, intimating that divers do
+share in prophecy, pastor and teacher; divers in ministry, deacon and
+ruling elder. But all the other are expressed concretely, and in the
+nominative case, and in the singular number, and to every of them the
+single article is prefixed, translated He--_He that teacheth--He that
+exhorteth--He that giveth--He that ruleth_. Hence we have great cause to
+count prophecy and ministry as generals; all the rest as special offices
+under them.
+
+_Argum_. II. The second argument for the divine right of the ruling
+elder shall be grounded upon 1 Cor. xii. 28: "And God hath set some in
+the church, first, apostles, secondly, prophets, thirdly, teachers,
+afterwards powers, then gifts of healing, helps, governments, kinds of
+tongue." God, in the first founding of Christianity and of the primitive
+churches, bestowed many eminent gifts upon divers Christians; the church
+of Corinth greatly excelled in such gifts, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Hence their
+members gifted, grew spiritually proud, and despised their brethren; to
+correct which abuse of gifts, and direct them to the right use thereof
+for the common profit of all, is the chief scope of this chapter, see
+verse 7, "The manifestation of the Spirit is given to every man to
+profit withal." For, 1. All their gifts flow from one and the same
+fountain, the Spirit of God, therefore should be improved for the common
+good of all, especially considering no one man hath all gifts, but
+several men have several gifts, that all might be beholden to one
+another, ver. 8-11. 2. The whole Church of Christ throughout all the
+world is but one body, and that body organical, having several members
+therein placed for several uses, as eyes, hands, &c., wherein the
+meanest members are useful and necessary to the highest: therefore all
+members should harmoniously lay out their gifts for the good of the
+whole body, without jars or divisions, ver. 12-28. 3. All the several
+officers, whether extraordinary or ordinary, though furnished with
+several gifts and several administrations, yet are placed by one and the
+same God, in one and the same general Church; and therefore should all
+level at the benefit of the whole church, without pride, animosities,
+divisions, &c., ver. 28, to the end. These things being briefly premised
+for the clearing the context and scope of the chapter, we may thus argue
+from ver. 28:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever officers God himself, now under the New Testament,
+hath set in the Church as governors therein, distinct from all other
+church governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary; they are the ruling
+elders we inquire after, and that by divine right.
+
+This proposition is so clear and evident of itself, that much needs not
+to be said for any further demonstration of it. For what can be further
+desired for proof that there are such distinct officers as ruling elders
+in the Church of Christ, and that of divine right, than to evince, 1.
+That there are certain officers set of God in the Church as governors
+therein. 2. That those officers so set of God in the Church, are set in
+the Church under the New Testament, which immediately concerns us, and
+not under the Old Testament. 3. That these officers set of God as
+governors in the Church of the New Testament, are distinct from all
+other church governors, whether extraordinary or ordinary? For, by the
+third of these, we have a distinct church officer delineated and
+particularized: by the second we have this distinct church officer
+limited to the time and state of the Church only under the New
+Testament, which is our case: and by the first of these, we have this
+distinct New Testament officer's ruling power in the Church, and the
+divine right thereof evidently demonstrated, by God's act in setting him
+there in this capacity; (see Part 1. Chap. VI.;) so that by all put
+together, the consequence of this major proposition seems to be strong
+and unquestionable.
+
+_Minor_. But the governments named in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are officers which
+God himself now under the New Testament hath set in the Church as
+governors therein, distinct from all other church governors, whether
+extraordinary or ordinary.
+
+This minor or assumption is wholly grounded upon, and plainly contained
+in this text, and may thus be evidenced by parts.
+
+1. The church here spoken of [_in the church_] is the Church of Christ
+now under the New Testament: for, 1. The church here mentioned, ver. 28,
+is the same with that ONE BODY mentioned, ver. 12, 13, of this chapter,
+as the whole context and coherence of the chapter evinceth; but that ONE
+BODY denotes not the Church of God under the Old Testament, but only the
+Church of Christ under the New Testament; partly, inasmuch as it is
+counted the Church of Christ, yea, (so intimate is the union between
+head and members,) it is called CHRIST, _so also is_ CHRIST, ver. 12,
+(viz. not Christ personally considered, but Christ mystically
+considered, as comprehending head and body;) now this denomination of
+the Church, viz. Christ, or the Church of Christ, &c., is peculiar to
+the Church under the New Testament: for where in all the Scripture is
+the Church of God under the Old Testament called the Church of Christ,
+&c.? and partly, inasmuch as all, both Jews and Gentiles, are
+incorporated jointly into this ONE BODY, and coalesce into one Church:
+"For by one Spirit are we all baptized into one body, whether Jews or
+Gentiles, whether bond or free," 1 Cor. xii. 13. Now this union or
+conjunction of Jews and Gentiles into one body, one Church, is only done
+under the New Testament; see Eph. ii. 11, to the end of the chapter. 2.
+The officers here mentioned to be set in this Church, are only the New
+Testament officers, ver. 28. 3. The scope of the whole chapter is to
+redress abuses of spiritual gifts in the church of Corinth, which was a
+church under the New Testament; and therefore it would have been too
+remote for the apostle to have argued from the several distributions of
+gifts peculiar to the officers or members of the Church under the Old
+Testament.
+
+2. The governments here mentioned are officers set in this church as
+governors, or rulers therein: "Hath set some in the Church, first,
+apostles--governments." For clearing of this, consider the enumeration
+here made; the denomination of these officers, governments; and the
+constitution or placing of these governments in the Church. 1. The
+enumeration here made is evidently an enumeration of several sorts of
+church officers, some extraordinary, to endure but for a time, some
+ordinary, to continue constantly in the Church; to this the current of
+interpreters doth easily subscribe: and this the text itself plainly
+speaks; partly, if we look at the matter, viz. the several officers
+enumerated, which are either extraordinary, these five, viz. apostles,
+prophets, powers, or miracles, gifts of healing, and kinds of tongues:
+these continued but for a season, during the first founding of Christian
+churches: (the proper and peculiar work of these extraordinary officers,
+what it was, is not here to be disputed.) Or ordinary, these three, viz.
+_teachers_, (there is the preaching elder,) _governments_, (there is the
+ruling elder,) _helps_, (there is the deacon;) these are the officers
+enumerated; and however there be some other officers elsewhere
+mentioned, whence some conceive this enumeration not to be so absolutely
+perfect, yet this is undoubtedly evident, that it is an enumeration of
+officers in the church: partly, this is evident, if we look at the
+manner of the apostle's speech, which is in an enumerating form, viz.
+first, secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then: and partly, it is evident
+that he intended to reckon up those officers that were distinct from all
+other parts of the mystical body of Christ, by his recapitulation, "Are
+all apostles, are all prophets?" &c., ver. 29, 30, i.e. not all, but
+only some members of the body are set apart by God to bear these offices
+in the church. Now, if there be here a distinct enumeration of distinct
+officers in the church, as is evident; then consequently _governments_
+must needs be one of these distinct church officers, being reckoned up
+among the rest; and this is one step, that governments are in the roll
+of church officers enumerated. 2. The denomination of these officers,
+_governments_, evidenceth that they are governing officers, vested with
+rule in the Church. This word (as hath been noted in chap. II.) is a
+metaphor from pilots or shipmasters governing of their ships by their
+compass, helm, &c., James iii. 4, (who is hence called _governor_, viz.
+of the ship, Acts xxvii. 11; Rev. xviii. 17,) and it notes such officers
+as sit at the stern of the vessel of the Church, to govern and guide it
+in spirituals according to the will and mind of Christ: governments--the
+abstract is put for governors, the concrete: this name of governments
+hath engraven upon it an evident character of power for governing. But
+this will be easily granted by all. All the doubt will be, whom the
+apostle intended by these governments? Thus conceive, negatively, these
+cannot be meant, viz. not governors in general, for, besides that a
+general exists not but in the particular kinds or individuals thereof, a
+member of a body in general exists not but in this or that particular
+member, eye, hand, foot, &c.: besides this, it is evident that Christ
+hath not only in general appointed governors in his Church, and left
+particulars to the church or magistrate's determination, but hath
+himself descended to the particular determination of the several kinds
+of officers which he will have in his Church; compare these places
+together, Eph. iv. 7, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Rom. xii. 7, 8: though in
+the ordinance of magistracy God hath only settled the general, but for
+the particular kinds of it, whether it should be monarchical, &c., that
+is left to the prudence of the several commonwealths to determine what
+is fittest for themselves. (See Part 2, chap. IX.) 2. Not masters of
+families: for all families are not in the Church, pagan families are
+without. No family as a family is either a church or any part of a
+church, (in the notion that church is here spoken of;) and though
+masters of families be governors in their own houses, yet their power is
+not ecclesiastical but economical or domestical, common to heathens as
+well as Christians. Not the political magistrate,[54] for the reasons
+hinted, (Part 1, chap. I.; see also Part 2, chap. IX.,) and for divers
+other arguments that might be propounded. 4. Not the prelatical bishops,
+pretending to be an order above preaching presbyters, and to have the
+reins of all church government in their hands only; for, in Scripture
+language, bishop and presbyter are all one order, (these words being
+only names of the same officer;) this is evident by comparing Tit. i. 5,
+with ver. 7. Hereunto also the judgment of antiquity evidently
+subscribeth, accounting a bishop and a presbyter to be one and the same
+officer in the church; as appears particularly in Ambrose, Theodoret,
+Hierom, and others. Now, if there be no such order as prelatical
+bishops, consequently they cannot be governments in the church. 5. Not
+the same with _helps_, as the former corrupt impressions of our Bibles
+seemed to intimate, which had it thus, _helps in governments_, which
+some moderns seem to favor; but this is contrary to the original Greek,
+which signifies _helps, governments_; contrary to the ancient Syriac
+version, which hath it thus, (as Tremel. renders it,) _and helpers, and
+governments_: and therefore this gross corruption is well amended in our
+late printed Bible. _Helps, governments_, are here generally taken by
+interpreters for two distinct officers. 6. Nor, finally, can the
+teaching elder here be meant; for that were to make a needless and
+absurd tautology, the teacher being formerly mentioned in this same
+verse. Consequently, by _governments_ here, what can be intended, but
+such a kind of officer in the church as hath rule and government
+therein, distinct from all governors forementioned? And doth not this
+lead us plainly to the ruling elder?
+
+3. These governments thus set in the Church, as rulers therein, are set
+therein by God himself; God hath set some in the Church, _first,
+apostles--governments--God hath set, put, made, constituted_, &c., (as
+the word imports,) _in the Church_. What hath God set in the Church?
+viz. apostles and--governments, as well as apostles themselves. The
+verb, _hath set_, equally relates to all the sorts of officers
+enumerated. And is not that officer IA the Church of divine right, which
+God himself, by his own act and authority, sets therein? Then doubtless
+these governments are of divine right.
+
+4. Finally, these governments set in the Church under the New Testament
+as governors therein, and that by God himself, are distinct from not
+only all governing officers without the Church, (as hath been showed,)
+but also from all other governing officers within the church. For here
+the apostles make a notable enumeration of the several sorts of church
+officers, both extraordinary and ordinary, viz. eight in all. Five of
+these being extraordinary, and to continue but for a season, for the
+more effectual spreading and propagating of the gospel of Christ at
+first, and planting of Christian churches, viz. apostles, prophets,
+powers, gifts of healings, kinds of tongues: three of these being
+ordinary, and to be perpetuated in the Church, as of continual use and
+necessity therein, viz. teachers, governments, [i.e. ruling elders,] and
+helps, [i.e. deacons, who are to help and relieve the poor and
+afflicted.] This is the enumeration. It is not contended, that it is
+absolutely and completely perfect, for that some officers seem to be
+omitted and left out, which elsewhere are reckoned up, Eph. iv. 11; Rom.
+xii. 7, 8. Evangelists are omitted in the list of extraordinary
+officers, and pastors are left out of the roll of the ordinary officers;
+and yet some conceive that pastors and teachers point not out two
+distinct sorts of officers, but rather two distinct acts of the same
+officers; and if this will hold, then pastors are sufficiently comprised
+under the word teachers; yea, some think that both evangelists and
+pastors are comprehended under the word teacher.[55] But, however, be
+that as it will, these two things are evident, 1. That this enumeration
+(though evangelists and pastors be left out) is the fullest and
+completest enumeration of church officers which in any place is to be
+found throughout all the New Testament. 2. That though we should grant
+this defect in the enumeration, yet this is no way prejudicial to the
+present argument, that governments here mentioned are ruling officers in
+the Church, distinct from all other church officers that have rule; for
+they are plainly and distinctly recited as distinct kinds of officers,
+distinct from apostles, from prophets, from teachers, from all here
+mentioned. And thus interpreters[56] commonly expound this place, taking
+governments for a distinct kind of church officer from all the rest here
+enumerated.
+
+Now to sum up all that hath been said for the proof of the assumption;
+it is evident, 1. That the church here spoken of is the Church of Christ
+now under the New Testament. 2. That the governments here mentioned, are
+officers set in this church, (not out of the church,) as rulers
+governing therein. 3. That these governments set as rulers or governors
+in this church, are set there not by man, but by God himself; _God hath
+set in the Church--governments_. 4. And, finally, That these governments
+thus set in the Church, are distinct, not only from all governors out of
+the Church, but also from all governing officers within the Church. And
+if all this laid together will not clearly evince the divine right of
+the ruling elder, what will? Hence we may strongly conclude,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore these governments in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are the
+ruling elders we inquire after, and that of divine right.
+
+Now against the urging of 1 Cor. xii. 28, for the proof of the divine
+right of the ruling elders, divers exceptions are made, which are to be
+answered before we pass to the third argument.
+
+_Except_. 1. The allegation of this place is too weak to prove the thing
+in question. For will any man that knoweth what it is to reason, reason
+from the general to the particular and special affirmatively? or will
+ever any man of common sense be persuaded that this consequence is good:
+There were governors in the primitive church mentioned by the
+Apostles--therefore they were lay governors? Surely I think not.[57]
+
+_Ans_. This exception hath a confident flourish of words, but they are
+but words. It may be replied, 1. By way of concession, that to argue
+indeed from a general to a special, is no solid reasoning; as, This is a
+kingdom, therefore it is England; this is a city, therefore it is
+London; the apostle mentions government in the primitive Church,
+therefore they are ruling elders: this were an absurd kind of reasoning.
+2. By way of negation. Our reasoning from this text for the ruling
+elder, is not from the general to a special affirmatively--there are
+governments in the Church, therefore ruling elders: but this is our
+arguing--these governments here mentioned in 1 Cor. xii. 28, are a
+special kind of governing officers, set of God in the Church of Christ
+now under the New Testament, and distinct from all other church
+officers, whether extraordinary or ordinary: and therefore they are the
+ruling elders which we seek after, and that by divine right. So that we
+argue from the enumeration of several kinds of church officers
+affirmatively: here is an enumeration or roll of divers kinds of church
+officers of divine right; governments are one kind in the roll, distinct
+from the rest; therefore governments are of divine right, consequently
+ruling elders; for none but they can be these governments, as hath been
+proved in the assumption. If the apostle had here mentioned governments
+only, and none other kind of officers with them, there had been some
+color for this exception, and some probability that the apostle had
+meant governors in general and not in special: but when the apostle sets
+himself to enumerate so many special kinds of officers, apostles,
+prophets, teachers, &c., how far from reason is it to think that in the
+midst of all these specials, governments only should be a general. 3. As
+for Dr. Field's scoffing term of lay governors or lay elders, which he
+seems in scorn to give to ruling elders; it seems to be grounded upon
+that groundless distinction of the ministry and people into clergy and
+laity; which is justly rejected by sound orthodox writers[58], as not
+only without but against the warrant of Scripture, clergy being nowhere
+appropriated to the ministry only, but commonly attributed to the whole
+church, 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. The Scripture term given to these officers is
+_ruling elders_, 1 Tim. v. 17; and so far as such, (though they be
+elected from among the people,) they are ecclesiastical officers.
+
+_Except_. 2. But it is not said here governors in the concrete, as
+apostles, prophets, teachers are mentioned concretely, which are
+distinct officers: but it is said governments, in the abstract, to note
+faculties, not persons. The text may be thus resolved: The apostle first
+sets down three distinct orders, apostles, prophets, and teachers: then
+he reckons up those common gifts of the Holy Ghost (and among the rest
+the gift of governing) which were common to all three. So that we need
+not here make distinct orders in the Church, but only distinct gifts
+which might be in one man.[59]
+
+_Ans_. 1. As the apostles, prophets, and teachers are here set down
+concretely, and not abstractly, and are confessed to be three distinct
+orders enumerated: so all the other five, though set down abstractly,
+are (by a metonymy of the adjunct for the subject) to be understood
+concretely, helps for helpers; governments for governors, &c.; otherwise
+we shall here charge the apostle with a needless impertinent tautology
+in this chapter, for he had formerly spoken of these gifts abstractly,
+ver. 8-10, as being _all given to profit_ the Church _withal_, ver. 7;
+but here, ver. 28-30, he speaks of these gifts as they are in several
+distinct subjects, for the benefit of the organical body the church;
+else what saith he here, more than he said before? 2. That all these
+eight here enumerated, one as well as another, do denote, not distinct
+offices or acts of the same officer, but distinct officers, having
+distinct administrations, and distinct gifts for those administrations,
+is evident, partly by the apostle's form of enumeration, _first,
+secondly, thirdly, afterwards, then_ or _furthermore_: if he had
+intended only three sorts of officers, he would have stopped at thirdly,
+but he goes on in an enumerating way, to show us those that follow are
+distinct officers as well as those that go before; partly, by the
+apostle's recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, which plainly points out
+different officers, persons not gifts, besides those three: _Are all
+apostles? are all prophets? are all teachers?_ (and here he stops not,
+but reckons on) _are all workers of miracles? have all the gifts of
+healing?_ &c. If it should be replied, But he doth not add, Are all
+helps? are all governments? therefore these are not to be accounted
+distinct officers from the rest; otherwise why should the apostle thus
+have omitted them, had there been any such distinct officers in the
+Church in his time? It may be replied, These two officers, helps and
+governments, are omitted in the recapitulation, ver. 29, 30, not that
+the Church then had no such officers, for why then should they have been
+distinctly mentioned in the enumeration of church officers, ver. 28? But
+either, 1. For that helps and governments were more inferior ordinary
+officers, and not furnished with such extraordinary, or at least,
+eminent gifts, as the other had, (which they abused greatly to pride,
+contention, schism, and contempt of one another, the evils which the
+apostle here labors so much to cure,) and so there was no such danger
+that these helps and governments should run into the same distempers
+that the other did. Or, 2. For that he would instruct these helps and
+governments to be content with their own stations and offices, (without
+strife and emulation,) though they be neither apostles, nor prophets,
+nor teachers, nor any of the other enumerated, which were so ambitiously
+coveted after; and the last verse seems much to favor this
+consideration, _but covet earnestly the best gifts_, viz. which made
+most for edification, not for ostentation.[60]
+
+_Except_. 3. But helps here are placed before governments, therefore it
+is not likely that governments were the ruling elders; Helps, i.e.
+deacons, which is an inferior office, seeming here to be preferred
+before them.[61]
+
+_Ans_. This follows not. Priority of order is not always an argument of
+priority of worth, dignity, or authority. Scripture doth not always
+observe exactness of order, to put that first which is of most
+excellency: sometimes the pastor is put before the teacher, as Ephes.
+iv. 11, sometimes the teacher before the pastor, as Rom. xii. 7, 8.
+Peter is first named of all the apostles, both in Matt. x. 2, and in
+Acts i. 13, but we shall hardly grant the Papist's arguing thence to be
+solid--Peter is first named, therefore he is the chief and head of all
+the apostles; no more can we account this any good consequence--helps
+are set before governments, therefore governments are officers inferior
+to helps, consequently they cannot be ruling elders: this were bad
+logic.
+
+_Except_. 4. But the word governments is general, and may signify either
+Christian magistrates, or ecclesiastical officers, as archbishops,
+bishops, or whatsoever other by lawful authority are appointed in the
+Church.[62] And some of the semi-Erastians of our times, by governments
+understand the Christian magistracy, holding the Christian magistracy to
+be an ecclesiastical administration.[63]
+
+_Ans_. 1. Governments, i.e. governors, (though in itself and singly
+mentioned, it be a general, yet) here being enumerated among so many
+specials, is special, and notes the special kind of ruling elders, as
+hath been proved. 2. As for archbishops and diocesan bishops, they are
+notoriously known to be, as such, no officers set in the Church by God,
+but merely by the invention of man; therefore they have no part nor lot
+in this business, nor can here be meant. And if by others, by lawful
+authority appointed in the Church, they mean those officers that God
+appoints well: if those whom man sets there without God, as chancellors,
+commissioners, &c., such have as much power of government in the Church,
+as they are such, as archbishops and bishops, viz. just none at all by
+any divine warrant. 3. Nor can the civil Christian magistrate here be
+implied. 1. Partly, because this is quite beside the whole intent and
+scope of this chapter, treating merely upon spiritual church-matters,
+not at all of secular civil matters, viz: of spiritual gifts for the
+Church's profit, ver. 1 to 12; of the Church herself as one organical
+body, ver. 12 to 28; and of the officers which God hath set in this
+organical body, ver. 28, &c. Now here to crowd in the Christian
+magistrate, which is a mere political governor, into the midst of these
+spiritual matters, and into the roll of these merely ecclesiastical
+officers, how absurd is it! 2. Partly, because the magistrate, as such,
+is not set of God in the Church either as a church officer, or as a
+church member, (as hath been demonstrated formerly, chap. IX.;) and
+though he become a Christian, that adds nothing to the authority of his
+magistracy, being the privilege only of his person, not of his office.
+3. Partly, because when this was written to the Corinthians, the apostle
+writes of such governments as had at that time their present actual
+being and existence in the Church: and neither then, nor divers hundreds
+of years after, were there any magistrates Christian, as hath been
+evidenced, chap. IX.[64]
+
+_Except_. 5. Teachers are here expressed, but pastors omitted; and
+therefore well might governors be mentioned instead of pastors.[65]
+
+_Answ_. 1. Then, according to his judgment, pastors were a distinct kind
+of officers from teachers; otherwise the naming of teachers would have
+sufficiently implied pastors, without the addition of the word
+governors, one act or function of the office being put for the whole
+office. But prelates did not love to hear of such a distinction.
+However, it is the judgment of many others no less learned or pious than
+they, that in the same congregation where there are several ministers,
+he that excels in exposition of scriptures, teaching sound doctrine, and
+convincing gainsayers, may be designed hereunto, and called a teacher or
+doctor: he that excels in application, and designed thereunto, may be
+called a pastor; but where there is only one minister in one particular
+congregation, he is to perform, as far as he is able, the whole work of
+the ministry. 2. If pastors are to be understood by this term governors,
+as contradistinct from teachers, formerly enumerated in the text; doth
+not this seem to devolve the matter of government so wholly upon the
+pastor, as that the teacher hath nothing to do with it? and hereby both
+pastor and teacher are wronged at once: the teacher, while power of
+governing is denied him, which belongs to him as well as to the pastor;
+the teacher being a minister of the word, hath power of administration
+of the sacraments and discipline, as well as the pastor: the pastor,
+while he consequently is deprived of the necessary and comfortable
+assistance of the teacher in point of government. Therefore the pastor
+cannot here be intended by governors. 3. Bilson himself was not very
+confident of this gloss, and therefore he immediately adds, "If this
+content you not, I then deny they are all ecclesiastical functions that
+are there specified," &c. What then doth he make them? viz. he makes
+divers of them, and governments among the rest, to be but several gifts,
+whereof one and the same officer might be capable. And a little after he
+ingenuously confesses he cannot tell what these governors were, saying,
+"I could easily presume, I cannot easily prove what they were. The
+manner and order of those wonderful gifts of' God's Spirit, after so
+many hundreds may be conjectured, cannot be demonstrated--governors they
+were, or rather governments, (for so the apostle speaketh,) i.e. gifts
+of wisdom, discretion, and judgment, to direct and govern the whole
+church, and every particular member thereof, in the manifold dangers and
+distresses which those days did not want. Governors also they might be
+called, that were appointed in every congregation to hear and appease
+the private strifes and quarrels that grew betwixt man and man, lest the
+Christians, to the shame of themselves, and slander of the gospel,
+should pursue each other for things of this life before the magistrates,
+who then were infidels; of these St. Paul speaketh, 1 Cor. vi. 1-7.
+These governors and moderators of their brethren's quarrels and
+contentions I find, others I find not in the apostle's writings, but
+such as withal were watchmen and feeders of the flock." Thus
+inconsistent he is with himself: one while these governors must be
+pastors; another while arbitrators or daysmen about private differences;
+another while gifts, not officers; another while he cannot easily prove
+what they were. But they have been proved to be ruling elders, and the
+proof still stands good, notwithstanding all his or others' exceptions.
+
+_Argum_. III. The third argument for the divine right of the mere ruling
+elder shall be drawn from 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the elders that rule well,
+be counted worthy of double honor, especially they that labor in the
+word and doctrine." From which words we may thus argue for the divine
+right of the ruling elder:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever officers in the Church are, according to the word of
+Christ, styled elders, invested with rule in the Church, approved of God
+in their rule, and yet distinct from all them that labor in the word and
+doctrine; they are the ruling elders in the Church which we inquire
+after, and that by divine right.
+
+This proposition seems clear and unquestionable. For, 1. If there be a
+certain kind of church officer which Christ in his word calls an elder,
+2. Declares to have rule in his church, 3. Approves in this his rule,
+and, 4. Distinguished from him that labors in the word and doctrine;
+this is plainly the ruling elder, and here is evidently the divine right
+of his office. Such a divine approbation of his office, testified in
+Scripture, implies no less than a divine institution thereof.
+
+_Minor_. But the officers mentioned in 1 Tim. v. 17, are, according to
+the word of Christ, styled elders, invested with rule in the church:
+approved of God in their rule, and yet distinct from all them that labor
+in the word and doctrine. This assumption may be thus evidenced by
+parts.
+
+1. The officers mentioned here in this word of Christ, are styled
+elders. This Greek word translated _elder_, is used in the New Testament
+chiefly in three several senses: 1. For men of ancient time, not now
+living; and so it is opposed to modern: Tradition of elders, Matt. xv.
+2, i.e. of them of old time, see Matt. v. 21. 2. For elders in age now
+living; so it is opposed to younger, 1 Tim. v. 1; 1 Pet. v. 5. 3. For
+elders in function or office, opposed to private men not in office, as
+Acts xiv. 23; and in this last sense it is to be taken in this place, an
+office of ruling being here ascribed to these elders. They are called
+elders, say some, because for the most part they were chosen out of the
+elder sort of men: others better, from the maturity of knowledge,
+wisdom, gifts, gravity, piety, &c., which ought to be in them. This name
+elder seems to have rule and authority written upon it, when applied to
+any church officer; and it is by the Septuagint often ascribed to rulers
+political, _elders in the gate_, Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 1 Sam.
+v. 3; 1 Chron. xi. 3. In this place (as it is well noted by some[66])
+the word elders is a genus, a general attribute, agreeing both to them
+that rule well, and also to those that labor in the word and doctrine:
+the one sort only rule; the other sort both rule and preach; but both
+sorts are elders.
+
+2. The officers here mentioned are not only styled elders, but invested
+with rule in the church. For it is plain both by the text and context
+duly considered, and the apostle's scope in writing of this epistle, 1
+Tim. iii. 15, that these elders are officers in the Church. And that in
+the church they are vested with rule appears not only by their name of
+elders, which when applied to officers, imports rule, authority, &c., as
+hath been said; but also by the adjunct participle _that rule_, or
+_ruling_, annexed to elders--_Let the elders ruling well_. So that here
+we have not only the office, the thing, but the very name of ruling
+elders. The word seems to be a military term, for captains and
+commanders in an army, _foremost slanders_, (as the word imports,) that
+lead on and command all the rest that follow them: hence metaphorically
+used for the foremost-standers, rulers, governors in the church. It
+noteth not only those that go before others by doctrine, or good
+example: but that govern and rule others by authority. For, 1. Thus the
+word is used in Scripture: "One that ruleth well his own house, having
+his children in subjection with all gravity," 1 Tim. iii. 4: where it
+plainly notes an authoritative ruling. Again, "If a man know not how to
+rule his own house," 1 Tim. iii. 5. And again, "Ruling their children
+and their own houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12. And can any man be so absurd
+as to think that a master of a family hath not a proper authoritative
+rule over his own children and family, but rules them only by doctrine
+and example?
+
+2. Thus learned divines[67] and accurate Grecians[68] use the word to
+denote authority: so that the Holy Ghost here calling them ruling
+elders, implies they are vested with rule: and those that deny this
+place to hold out two sorts of elders, yet confess it holds out two
+sorts of acts, ruling and preaching.
+
+3. These ruling elders are here approved of God in their rule; and that
+two ways, viz: 1. In that God's Spirit here commends their ruling, being
+duly discharged, _ruling well, excellently_, &c. Did no rule in the
+Church belong to them for matter, God would never command or approve
+them for the matter. He cannot be accounted with God to do any thing
+well, that hath no right to do it at all. 2. In that God's Spirit here
+commands their well ruling to be honorably rewarded. _Let them be
+counted worthy of double honor:_ or, _Let them be dignified with double
+honor_. Here is not only reward, but an eminent reward appointed them,
+and that urged from Scripture, ver. 18. Where God thus appoints rewards,
+he approves that for which he rewards; and what God thus approves is of
+divine right. See part 1, chap. V.
+
+4. Yet, finally, These elders, vested with rule in the Church, and
+divinely approved in their rule, are distinct from all them that labor
+in the word and doctrine. This may thus he evidenced from the text, as
+some[69] have well observed: For, 1. Here is a general, under which the
+several kinds of officers here spoken of are comprehended, _elders_; all
+here mentioned are elders. 2. Here are two distinct kinds of elders,
+viz: _those that rule well_, there is one kind; and _they that labor in
+the word_ (as the pastors) _and doctrine_, (as the doctors and
+teachers,) here is the other kind. 3. Here are two participles
+expressing these two species or kinds of elders--_ruling_, and
+_laboring_: those only rule, that is all their work, and therefore
+here are called ruling elders; not because _they_ alone rule, but
+because their only work is to rule: but these not only rule, but, over
+and besides, _they_ labor in the word and doctrine. 4. Here are two
+distinct articles distinctly annexed to these two participles--_they
+that rule; they that labor_. 5. Finally, here is an eminent disjunctive
+particle set betwixt these two kinds of elders, these two participles,
+these two articles, evidently distinguishing one from the other, viz.
+especially _they that labor in the word_, &c., intimating, that as there
+were some ruling elders that did labor in the word and doctrine, so
+there were others that did rule, and not labor in the word: both were
+worthy of double honor, but especially they that both ruled and labored
+in the word also. And wheresoever this word, here translated
+_especially_, is used in all the New Testament, it is used to
+distinguish thing from thing, person from person, that are spoken of;
+as, "Let us do good to all, but especially to those of the household of
+faith," Gal. vi. 10: therefore there were some of the household of
+faith, and some that were not; and accordingly we must put a difference
+in doing good to them. "All the saints salute you, especially those of
+Caesar's household;" some saints not of his household: all saluted them,
+but especially those of Caesar's household. "He that provides not for
+his own, especially for them of his own house, he hath denied the
+faith," 1 Tim. v. 8. A believer is to provide for his friends and
+kindred, but especially _for those of his own house_, wife and children.
+See also 1 Tim. iv. 10; Tit. i. 11; 2 Tim. iv. 13; 2 Pet. ii. 10; Acts
+xx. 38, and xxvi. 3; in all which places the word _especially_ is used
+as a disjunctive particle, to distinguish one thing from another,
+without which distinction we shall but make nonsense in interpreting
+those places. And generally the best interpreters[70] do from this text
+conclude, that there were two sorts of elders, viz: the ruling elder,
+that only ruled; the preaching elder, that besides his ruling, labored
+in the word and doctrine also.
+
+Now, therefore, seeing the officers here mentioned are, 1. According to
+the word of Christ, (for this is the word of Christ,) styled elders; 2.
+Vested with rule; 3. Approved of God in their rule; and yet, 4. Distinct
+from all that labor in the word and doctrine, as hath been particularly
+proved; we may conclude, that,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the officers here mentioned are the ruling
+elders in the Church which we inquire after, and that by divine right.
+
+But against this place of 1 Tim. i. 17, and the argument from it, divers
+cavils and exceptions are made; let them have a brief solution.
+
+_Except_. 1. There were two sorts of elders, some laboring in the word
+and doctrine, some taking care of the poor, viz. deacons; both were
+worthy of double honor, especially they that labored in the word,
+&c.[71]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This is a new distinction of elders without warrant of
+Scripture. Deacons are nowhere in all the New Testament styled
+elders;[72] nay, they are contradistinguished from elders, both teaching
+and ruling. "He that giveth _let him do it_ with simplicity: he that
+ruleth, with diligence," Rom. xii. 8. "Helps, governments," 1 Cor. xii.
+28. Compare also Tit. i. 5, 6, &c., 1 Tim. iii. 2, &c., with 1 Tim. iii.
+8, &c. 2. As deacons are not elders, so deacons have no rule in the
+church. It is true, they are to "rule their children and their own
+houses well," 1 Tim. iii. 12; this is only family rule: but as for the
+church, their office therein is to be _helps_, 1 Cor. xii. 28; _to
+distribute_, Rom. xii. 8; _to serve tables_, Acts vi. 2, 3; but no rule
+is ascribed to them.
+
+_Except_. 2. But by ruling well, some understand living well, leading a
+holy, exemplary life. The apostle would have ministers not only to live
+well themselves, but also to feed others by the word and doctrine; they
+that live well are to be double honored, especially they who labor in
+the word, &c., as 1 Thess. v. 12, 13.[73]
+
+_Ans_. 1. The apostle here speaks rather of officers than of acts of
+office: of persons rather than of duties, if his phrase be observed. 2.
+Living well is not ruling well here in the apostle's sense, who intends
+the rule of elders over others; he that lives well rules well over
+himself; not over others: else all that live well were church rulers;
+they conduct by example, do not govern by authority, Altar. Damasc. c.
+xii. 8. If well ruling be well living, then double honor, double
+maintenance from the church is due for well living, (1 Tim. v. 17, 18,)
+consequently all that live well deserve this double honor. 4. This seems
+to intimate that ministers deserve double honor for living well, though
+they preach not. _How absurd_! 5. D. Downham, once pleased with this
+gloss, after confessed it was not safe.
+
+_Except_. 3. Those that rule well may be meant of aged, infirm,
+superannuated bishops, who cannot labor in the word and doctrine.[74]
+
+_Ans_. 1. Here is no speech of prelatical bishops, but of ruling and
+preaching elders in this text. 2. How shall old, decrepit bishops rule
+well, when they cannot labor in the word and doctrine? 3. By this gloss,
+the preaching elders that labor in the word and doctrine, should be
+preferred before the most ancient bishop in double honor; such doctrine
+would not long since have been very odious and apocryphal to our late
+prelates. 4. Those preachers that have faithfully and constantly spent
+their strength, and worn out themselves with ministerial labor, that
+they cannot rule nor preach any longer, are yet worthy of double honor
+for all their former travels in the service of Christ and his Church.
+
+_Except_. 4. Among ministers some did preach, others only administered
+the sacraments; so Paul showeth that he preached and "labored more than
+all the apostles," 1 Cor. xv. 10; but baptized few or none, 1 Cor i. 14,
+leaving that to be performed by others; and when Paul and Barnabas were
+companions, and their travels were equal, yet Paul is noted to have been
+the chief speaker, (Acts xiv. 12:) all were worthy of double honor, but
+especially they who labored in the word and doctrine.[75]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This gloss imagineth such a ministry in the apostles' times as
+the prelates had erected of late in their days, viz: many dumb dogs that
+could not bark nor preach at all, yet could administer the sacraments by
+the old service-book. But the apostles, as Cartwright[76] observes,
+allowed no such ministers, will have every bishop or preaching elder to
+be both "apt to teach, _and_ able to convince," 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i.
+9. So that it was far from Paul to countenance a non-preaching or
+seldom-preaching ministry, by allowing any honor at all, much less a
+double honor, to such. Sure, preaching is one part, yea, a most
+principal part or duty of the minister's office, (as hath been evidenced
+before, Part 2, Chap. VII.,) and shall he be counted worthy of double
+honor that neglects a principal duty of his office? Nay, he deserves not
+the very name of such an officer in the church: why should he be called
+a pastor that doth not feed? or a teacher, that doth not teach his
+flock? &c., saith Chrysost. Hom. xv. in 1 Timothy. 2. Why should Paul's
+laboring be restrained here to his preaching only? when Paul speaks of
+his own labor elsewhere, he speaks of it in another sense, 2 Cor. xi.
+17, "in labor and weariness"--compare it with the context; and in this
+place judicious Calvin seems rather to interpret it of other manner of
+labor, and Pareus extends it, besides preaching, to divers other labors
+which Paul did undergo. 3. What warrant doth this exception hold out for
+two sorts of ministers here pretended, some _preaching_, others _only
+administering the sacraments_? Thus, _Paul preached much, baptised but
+few_: therefore, _there were some that only administered the
+sacraments_: well concluded. Yet Paul baptized some, 1 Cor. i. 14, 16,
+distributed the Lord's supper to some, Acts xx. 7, 11; so that he both
+preached and dispensed the sacraments. Let any show where any person
+dispensed the sacraments that was not a preacher. Again, _Paul and
+Barnabas equally travelled together, but Paul was chief speaker_: what
+then? therefore _some labored in the word, others in the sacraments
+only_. This is woful logic. 4. To whomsoever the power of dispensing the
+sacraments was given by Christ, to them also the power of preaching was
+given; dispensing the word and sacraments are joined in the same
+commission, Matt, xxviii. 18-20: what Christ joins together let not man
+put asunder. 5. Touching the preaching elder there is mentioned only one
+act peculiar to his office, viz. _laboring in the word_, &c.; but,
+taking a part for the whole, we may understand his dispensing the
+sacraments also, and what else is peculiar to the preaching elder's
+office, though for brevity's sake it be not here named.[77]
+
+_Except_. 5. By elders that rule well may be meant certain governors, or
+inferior magistrates, chosen to compose controversies or civil strifes.
+Suitable hereunto is the late Erastian gloss, that by elders ruling well
+may be meant kings, parliament-men, and all civil governors.[78]
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is well known that in the primitive times there was no
+Christian magistrate in the Church, and for the Church to choose heathen
+judges or magistrates to be arbitrators or daysmen in civil
+controversies, is a thing utterly condemned by the apostle, 1 Cor. vi.
+1, &c. 2. The apostle speaks here of ecclesiastical, not of civil
+officers, as the latter phrase intimates. The main scope of this epistle
+was to instruct Timothy how to behave himself, not in the commonwealth,
+but in the Church of God, (1 Tim. iii. 15,) and here he speaks of such
+officers as were in being in the Church at that time. 3. If kings,
+parliament-men, and all civil governors be these ruling elders, then
+ministers have not only an equal share with them in government by this
+text, which the Erastians will not like well; but also are to have a
+superior honor or maintenance to kings, parliament-men, and all civil
+governors. Certainly the magistrates will never triumph in this gloss,
+nor thank them that devised it. 4. Sutlive seems to be against this
+opinion, (though no great friend to ruling elders,) saying Beza bestows
+many words to prove that the judges in 1 Cor. vi. were not of the number
+of presbyters: which truly I myself should easily grant him. For there
+were none such ever constituted. 5. This is a novel interpretation, as
+some observe,[79] unknown among ancient writers.
+
+_Except_. 6. Those words [_especially they who labor in the word and
+doctrine_] are added to the former explanatively, to teach us who they
+are that rule well, viz. _they who labor much in the word and doctrine_,
+and not to distinguish them that labor in the word, from elders ruling
+well; as if Paul had said, "Let the elders that rule well be counted
+worthy of double honor, greatly laboring in the word," &c. For the word
+translated _especially_ here more aptly signifies _much, greatly_, than
+especially. For though with the adversative _but_ along with it, it
+signifieth especially, yet alone (as it is here) it signifies _much,
+greatly_.[80]
+
+_Ans_. 1. If this sentence [_especially they who labor_, &c.] were added
+only to explain who are well-ruling elders, viz. such as greatly labor
+in the word, &c., then few of the prelatical bishops were to be counted
+well-ruling elders, for very few, if any of them, were guilty of
+laboring greatly in the word and doctrine. 2. Then also the apostle
+would have said, either who especially labor, or simply without the
+article, especially laboring; then especially, they who labor, as here
+he doth, carrying his speech rather to distinct persons and officers,
+than to distinct duties or actions. 3. This word translated
+_especially_, hath been already in the minor proposition proved to be
+rather disjunctive, than explanatory; a term of distinction to point out
+a several sort of elders from only ruling elders, rather than a term of
+explication, signifying who are to be reputed these well-ruling elders.
+4. The word _especially_ is used for a term of distinction, even in
+those places where the adversative _but_ is not joined to it, as in Tit.
+i. 10, "For there are many unruly and vain talkers and deceivers,
+especially they of the circumcision:" where _especially_ distinguishes
+_them of the circumcision_, from all other _vain talkers, and
+deceivers_; and in 1 Tim. iv. 10, "Who is the Saviour of all men,
+especially of them that believe;" here _especially_ without _but_
+distinguishes them that believe from all other men, as capable of a
+special salvation from God; if here it were not a note of distinction,
+according to this gloss, we should thus read the place, "Who is the
+Saviour of all men, greatly believing;" but this were cold comfort to
+weak Christians of little faith. So here _especially_, though _but_ be
+wanting, distinguished them that labor in the word and doctrine, from
+them that labor not therein, and yet rule well.
+
+_Except_. 7. It is one thing to preach, another thing to labor in the
+word and doctrine. If there be here any distinction of elders it is
+between those that labor more abundantly and painfully, and between
+those that labor not so much. This objection takes much with some.[81]
+B. Bilson much presses this objection from the emphasis of the word
+_laboring_; signifying endeavoring any thing with greater striving and
+contention, &c., to this sense, "Let the elders that rule well be
+counted worthy of double honor, especially they who labor and sweat,
+&c., in the word--who give themselves even to be tired and broken with
+labors;" and this, saith he, is the genuine signification of the word
+translated laboring, when it is borrowed from the labor of the body, to
+denote the contention or striving of the mind, &c.[82]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This gloss takes it for granted, that this text speaks only of
+preaching, or the ministry of the word, and therein of the lesser or
+greater pains taken: which (besides that it begs the thing in question)
+makes the ministry of the word common to both sorts here distinctly
+spoken of, whereas rather the plain current of the text makes ruling
+common to both, over and beyond which the preaching elder _labors in the
+word_. 2. Doth not this interpretation allow a double honor to ministers
+that labor not so much as others in the word? And can we think that the
+laborious Paul intended to dignify, patronize, or encourage idle drones,
+lazy, sluggish, seldom preachers? Ministers must be exceeding instant
+and laborious in their ministry, 2 Tim. iv. 1-3. If this were the sense
+only to prefer the greater before the less labor in the ministry, the
+apostle would have used this order of words, "Let the elders that rule
+well be counted worthy of double honor, especially they who labor," &c.,
+take upon themselves more weighty cares. For those words (in the word
+and doctrine) should either have been quite omitted, as now was
+expressed, or should have been inserted immediately after them that rule
+well, and before the word especially, to this effect, "Let the elders
+that rule well and preach the word and doctrine well, be counted worthy
+of double honor; but especially those who labor much in well ruling and
+in well preaching:" in such an expression the case had been very clear
+and evident. 4. Should this comment stand, that they who labor more in
+the ministry than others should have more honor, more maintenance, than
+others, how many emulations and contentions were this likely to procure?
+Who shall undertake to proportion the honor and reward, according to
+the proportion of every minister's labor? 5. As for the criticism of the
+word _laboring_, which Bilson lays so much stress upon, these things are
+evident, 1. That here _laboring_, signifies emphatically nothing else
+but that labor, care, diligence, solicitude, &c., which the nature of
+the pastoral office requires in every faithful pastor; as is implied 1
+Thess. v., 12, 13, "Know them which labor among you, and are over you in
+the Lord;" and the apostle saith that every minister "shall receive a
+reward according to his own labor," 1 Cor. iii. 8. Such labor and
+diligence also is required in them that rule, whilst they are charged to
+rule _with diligence_, Rom. xii. 8, which is as much as _with labor_:
+yea, the common charity of Christians hath its labor; and this very word
+_labor_ is ascribed thereunto, _labor of love_, 1 Thess. i. 3; Heb. vi.
+10. 2. That if the apostle had here intended the extraordinary labor of
+some ministers above others, not ordinarily required of all, he would
+have taken a more emphatical word to have set it out, as he is wont to
+do in some other cases, as in 2 Cor. xi. 27, "In labor and weariness." 1
+Thess. ii. 9, "For ye remembered, brethren, our labor and weariness." 6.
+Finally, "If there be but one kind of church officers here designed,
+then," as saith the learned Cartwright, "the words (_especially those
+that labor_) do not cause the apostle's speech to rise, but to fall; not
+to go forward, but to go backward; for to teach worthily and singularly
+is more than to teach painfully; for the first doth set forth all that
+which may be required in a worthy teacher, where the latter noteth one
+virtue only of pains taking."
+
+_Except_. 8. Though it could be evinced, that here the apostle speaks of
+some other elders, besides the ministers of the word, yet what advantage
+can this be for the proof of ruling elders? For the apostle being to
+prove that the ministers of the word ought to be honored, i.e.
+maintained; why might he not use this general proposition, that all
+rulers, whether public or domestic, whether civil or ecclesiastical, are
+to be honored? And when the apostle speaketh of the qualifications of
+deacons, he requires them to be such as have ruled their own houses
+well.[83]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This slight gloss might have appeared more tolerable and
+plausible, were it not, partly, that the grand scope of the apostle in
+this chapter and epistle is to direct about church officers and church
+affairs, as both the context, and 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15, clearly evidence;
+and partly, had the word rulers been expressed alone in the text, and
+the word elders left out: but seeing that the apostle speaks not
+generally of them that rule well, but particularly of the elders that
+rule well in the Church; here is no place for this poor faint gloss. 2.
+Had the apostle here intended such a lax and general proposition for all
+sorts of rulers, then had he also meant that an honorable maintenance is
+due from the Church to domestic as well as public, yea, to civil as well
+as ecclesiastical rulers: then the Church should have charge enough:
+yea, and then should ministers of the word (according to this
+interpretation) have more honor and maintenance than any other rulers,
+domestic or public, civil or ecclesiastical. Magistrates will never
+thank him for this gloss. 3. Though some kind of skill to rule and
+govern be required in deacons, yet that is no public rule in the Church,
+but a private rule in their own houses only, which the apostle mentions,
+1 Tim. iii. 12.
+
+_Except_. 9. But these Well-ruling presbyters may be referred to these
+pastors and teachers which were resident in every church, who therefore
+are properly said to have care and inspection of the faithful, as being
+affixed to that place for that end; but the word _laboring_, or _they
+that labor_, may be referred to them who travelled up and down for the
+visiting and confirming of the churches.[84] "There were some that
+remained in some certain places, for the guiding and governing of such
+as were already won by the preaching of the gospel: others that
+travelled with great labor and pains from place to place to spread the
+knowledge of God into all parts, and to preach Christ crucified to such
+as never heard of him before. Both these were worthy of double honor,
+but the latter that builded not upon another man's foundation, more
+especially than the former, that did but keep that which others had
+gotten, and govern those that others have gained."[85]
+
+_Ans_. 1. If this be the sense, that there were some ministers fixed,
+and limited to particular places and churches; others unfixed, having an
+unlimited commission, and these are to be especially honored: then the
+meaning is, that the apostles and evangelists who were unfixed, and had
+unlimited commissions, and laid the foundation, were to be especially
+honored above pastors and teachers that were fixed and limited, and only
+built upon their foundation. But how should this be the meaning? For
+this seems a needless exhortation; what church would not readily yield
+an especial honor to apostles and evangelists above pastors and
+teachers? This would savor too much of self-seeking in the apostle, and
+providing for his own honor. This implies that the text hath reference
+to apostles and evangelists, whereas it evidently speaks only of
+ordinary ruling and preaching presbyters.
+
+2. If this be the sense of Dr. Field and Bilson, that some mere
+ordinary presbyters travelled laboriously to lay the foundation of
+Christianity, others were fixed to certain places to build upon that
+foundation: this seems to be false; for we read that mere ordinary
+presbyters were ordained for several cities and places as their peculiar
+charges, whom they were to feed, and with whom they were to remain, as
+Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5; herewith compare Acts xx. 28; 1 Pet. v. 2; 1
+Thess. v. 12. But that mere ordinary presbyters were ordained and
+employed in the Church without limitation of commission, where can it be
+evidenced in all the Scriptures? Wandering presbyters are nowhere
+commended; wandering stars are condemned, Jude, ver. 13.
+
+3. To refer the word _laboring_ to them that travelled from place to
+place for visiting and confirming of the churches, is very weak and
+unjustifiable in this place; for this clashes with Dr. Field's former
+gloss, (mentioned Except. 4, limiting _laboring_ to preaching.) But any
+thing for a present shift. This word is sometimes given to the apostle,
+as 1 Cor. xv. 10; 2 Cor. xi. 27: but where are apostles and evangelists
+called _laboring_, merely in respect of their travelling from place to
+place, to lay the foundation of Christianity, thereby to distinguish
+them from ordinary pastors and teachers? Nay, the apostle himself makes
+_them that rule_, and _them that labor_, the same, 1 Thess. v. 12, 13.
+So here in 1 Tim. v. 17, _they that rule_--_and they that labor_--are
+the same, i.e. both of them ordinary presbyters, both of them ruling,
+only to one of them the office of _laboring_ in the word and doctrine is
+superadded; yea, the very women that _were_ godly were said _to labor in
+the Lord_, Rom. xvi. 6, 12, not for their far travels up and down
+several countries to propagate the gospel, for where are Mary and Persis
+reported to have done this? Yet doubtless such good women privately
+labored much to bring in others, especially of their own sex, to hear
+the apostles, and entertain the gospel; and if the women may be said to
+_labor much in the Lord_, in respect of their private endeavors, how
+much more may labor be ascribed to presbyters in respect of both their
+private and public employments! So that this word _laboring_, which is
+applied in Scripture not only to ordinary presbyters, but also to women,
+cannot (without violence) be drawn peculiarly to signify apostles and
+evangelists, as this exception intends.
+
+_Except_. 10. Seeing in every minister of the word three things are
+requisite, unblamableness of life, dexterity of governing, and integrity
+of doctrine; the two first are commended here, but especially the labor
+in doctrine above them both; therefore here are set down not a two-fold
+order of presbyters, but only two parts of the pastoral office,
+preaching and governing; both which the apostle joins in the office of
+pastors, 1 Thes. v. 2-13.[86] "The guides of the church are worthy of
+double honor, both in respect of governing and teaching, but especially
+for their pains in teaching; so noting two parts or duties of
+presbyterial offices, not two sorts of presbyters."[87]
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is true, pastors have the power both of ruling and
+preaching belonging to their office, as is intimated, 1 Thes. v. 12, 13,
+and Heb. xiii. 7, and in other places; but doth it therefore follow,
+that none have the power of ruling, but those that have the power of
+preaching? or that this text, or 1 Tim. v. 17, intends only those rulers
+that preach? 2. Bilson, in this exception, confesseth that _laboring_
+belongs to ordinary fixed pastors, and therefore contradicts himself in
+his former objection, wherein he would have appropriated it to unfixed
+apostles and evangelists; yea, by this gloss it is granted, that
+preaching presbyters are to be more honored than non-preaching ruling
+prelates. These are miserable shifts and evasions, whereby they are
+necessitated thus to wound their own friends, and to cross their own
+principles. 3. According to this gloss, this should be the sense, "Let
+the ministers that rule well by good life, and skilful government, be
+counted worthy of double honor, especially they who labor in the word
+and doctrine." Now doth not this tacitly insinuate, that some ministers
+may rule well, and be worthy of double honor, though they labor not in
+the word and doctrine? and how absurd were this? But if the text be
+interpreted not of several acts of the same office, but of several sorts
+of officers, this absurdity is prevented, _Let ruling elders be doubly
+honored, especially those that both rule and preach_. 4. The text
+evidently speaks not of duties, but of persons; not of acts, but of
+agents; not of offices, but of officers; for it is not said, "Let the
+elders be counted worthy of double honor, for well ruling; especially
+for laboring"--but, _Let the elders that rule well, especially they that
+labor in the word, &c._ So that this gloss is vain, and against the
+plain letter of the text.
+
+_Except_. 11. Though the emphasis of the word, _they that labor_, be not
+to be neglected, yet the difference betwixt presbyters is not put by
+that word, but by those (_in the word and doctrine_.) This does not
+signify two kinds of presbyters, but two offices of ministers and
+pastors; one general, to _rule well_; another special, _to labor in the
+word and doctrine_. To rule well, saith Hierom, is to fulfil his office;
+or, as the Syriac interpreter expounds it, "to behave themselves well in
+their place;" or as the Scripture speaks, _To go in and out before God's
+people as becomes them, going before them in good works in their
+private conversations, and also in their public administrations_; whence
+the apostle makes here a comparison betwixt the duties of ministers
+thus, "All presbyters that generally discharge their office well are
+worthy of double honor; especially they who labor in the word, which is
+a primary part of their office."[88]
+
+_Ans_. 1. For substance this objection is the same with objection 10,
+already answered, therefore much more needs not to be added. 2. It is to
+be noted, that the apostle saith not, "Let the presbyters that rule well
+be counted worthy of double honor, especially because they labor in the
+word--for then he should have pointed at the distinct offices of
+ministers;" but he saith, _especially they that labor_, which clearly
+carries the sense to the distinction of elders themselves, who have
+distinct employments. 3. If preaching presbyters only should here be
+meant, and under that phrase (_that rule well_) their whole office in
+general, and the right managing thereof, should be contained, whereas
+_laboring in the word and doctrine_ (as this exception implies) is but
+one part thereof, then hence it would inevitably follow, that a minister
+deserves more honor for the well administration of one part of his
+office only, than for the well managing of the whole, which is absurd!
+Here therefore the apostle doth not compare one primary part of the
+pastor's office, with the whole office and all the parts thereof; but
+one sort of presbyters with another, distinguishing the mere ruling
+presbyter from the ruling and preaching presbyter, as the acute and
+learned Whitaker hath well observed.
+
+_Except_. 12. It is evident in the text itself, that all these elders
+here meant were worthy of double honor, whether they labored or
+governed; which by St. Paul's proofs, presently following, and by the
+consent of all old and new writers, is meant of their maintenance at the
+charges of the Church.[89] Now that lay-judges and censors of manners
+were in the apostle's time found at the expense of the Church, or by
+God's law ought to have their maintenance at the people's hands, till I
+see it justly proved, I cannot believe it: which yet must be proved
+before this construction can be admitted.[90]
+
+_Ans_. 1. This word _honor_ signifies (after the custom of the Hebrews,
+Exod. xx. 12) all pious offices and relief. This phrase (_double honor_)
+interpreters expound either absolutely or comparatively. Absolutely
+thus: _double honor_, i.e. great honor, so some; maintenance in this
+life, happiness in the life to come, so others; honor of reverence to
+their persons, and of maintenance for their labors, so Chrysostom, of
+which saith Calvin, "That Chrysostom interprets double honor to be
+maintenance and reverence, I impugn not." Comparatively thus: _double
+honor_ here seems to relate to what was before spoken, ver. 3, "Honor
+widows that are widows indeed." Now here he intimates, that though
+widows are to be honored, yet these should be much more honored; they
+should have single, these double honor. In this last sense, which seems
+most genuine, it seems most likely that the apostle here intended
+principally, if not only, the honor of maintenance; partly because the
+honor appointed for widows, ver. 3, &c., was only maintenance; partly
+because the reason of this charge to honor, &c., refers only to
+maintenance, ver. 18. Thus far we grant, that the text speaks of
+maintenance. 2. It may be further yielded that all the presbyters here
+spoken of are to be counted worthy of double honor, of honorable,
+liberal maintenance; even they that rule well (if need require) are to
+be thus honored, but the principal care of maintenance ought to be of
+them that labor in the word and doctrine, because the apostle saith
+_especially they that labor, &c._: the like injunction, see Gal. vi. 6,
+"Let him that is catechized, communicate to him that catechizeth him in
+all good things;" and thus much this text plainly evidenceth. 3. What
+then can be inferred hereupon by the adversaries of ruling elders?
+"Therefore the ruling elders (in the reformed churches) that take no
+maintenance of the church, are not the elders that rule well here
+mentioned?" This follows not: the apostle Paul took no wages of the
+church of Corinth, 2 Cor. xi. 7-9, and xii. 12, 13, &c., was he
+therefore not an apostle to them, as to other churches of whom he took
+maintenance? Divers among us in these days labor in the word and
+doctrine, and are not sufficiently maintained by their churches, but
+forced to spend of their own estates to do others service; are they
+therefore no ministers? _Forgive them this wrong_. Most churches are not
+able (or at least not willing) to maintain their very preaching
+presbyters and their families comfortably and sufficiently, as the
+gospel requireth: if therefore in prudence, that the Church be not
+needlessly burdened, those ruling elders are chosen generally that need
+no maintenance, doth their not taking maintenance of the church make
+their office null and void? Or if the church do not give them
+maintenance (when they neither need it, nor desire it, nor is the church
+able to do it) is the church therefore defective in her duty, or an ill
+observer of the apostolical precepts? Sure maintenance is not
+essentially and inseparably necessary to the calling of either ruling
+or preaching elder. There may be cases when not only the preaching, but
+the ruling elders ought to be maintained, and there may be cases when
+not only the ruling but also the preaching presbyter (as it was with
+Paul) should not expect to be maintained by the church. 4. It is as
+observable that the apostle here saith, let them be counted worthy of
+double honor, though the reformed churches do not actually give double
+maintenance to elders that rule well, yet they count them worthy of
+double maintenance, though the elders do not take it, though the
+churches cannot give it.
+
+Finally, unto these testimonies and arguments from Scripture, many
+testimonies of ancient and modern writers (of no small repute in the
+Church of God) may be usefully annexed, speaking for ruling elders in
+the Church of Christ from time to time: some speaking of such sort of
+elders, presbyters, or church-governors, as that ruling elders may very
+well be implied in their expressions; some plainly declaring that the
+Church of Christ _in fact_ had such officers for government thereof; and
+some testifying that of right such officers ought to be in the Church of
+Christ now under the New Testament for the well guiding thereof; by
+which it may notably appear, that in asserting the office of the ruling
+elder in the Church, we take not upon us to maintain any singular
+paradox of our own devising, or to hold forth some new light in this old
+opinionative age: and that the ruling elder is not a church officer
+first coined at Geneva, and a stranger to the Church of Christ for the
+first 1500 years, (as the adversaries of ruling elders scornfully
+pretend,) but hath been owned by the Church of Christ as well in former
+as in later times.[91]
+
+
+_An Appendix touching the Divine Right of Deacons._
+
+Though we cannot find in Scripture that the power of the keys is
+committed by Christ unto deacons, with the other church governors, but
+conceive that deacons, as other members of the church, are to be
+governed, and are not to govern; yet forasmuch as deacons are ordinary
+officers in the Church of God, of which she will have constant use in
+all ages, and which at first were divinely appointed, and after
+frequently mentioned in the New Testament; it will not be thought unfit,
+before we conclude this section, touching the divine right of Christ's
+church-officers, briefly to assert the divine right of deacons, as
+followeth.
+
+Deacons in the church are an ordinance of Jesus Christ. For,
+
+1. They are found in Christ's catalogue of church officers, distinct
+from all other officers, both extraordinary and ordinary. _Helps_, 1
+Cor. xii. 28. The Greek word in the natural acceptation properly
+signifies, to lift over against one in taking up some burden or weight;
+metaphorically, it here is used for deacons, whose office it is to
+_help_ and _succor the poor and sick, to lend them a hand to lift them
+up_, &c., and this office is here distinctly laid down from all other
+ordinary and extraordinary offices in the text. So they are
+distinguished from all ordinary officers reckoned up, Rom. xii. 7, 8:
+under _prophecy_, there is the _teacher_ and _pastor_; under _ministry_,
+the _ruling elder_, and the _deacon_, verse 8. This officer was so well
+known, and usual in the primitive churches, that when the apostle writes
+to the church at Philippi, he directs his epistle not only to the
+saints, but to the officers, viz. _to the overseers, and deacons_,
+Philip, i. 1. The occasion of the first institution of this office, see
+in Acts vi. 1, 2, &c. At the first planting of the Christian Church, the
+apostles themselves took care to receive the churches' goods, and to
+distribute to every one of their members _as they had need_, Acts iv.
+34, 35; but in the increase of the church, the burden of this care of
+distributing alms increasing also, upon some complaints of the Greeks,
+_that their widows were neglected_, the office of deacons was erected,
+for better provision for the poor, Acts vi. 1-7; and because the
+churches are never like to want poor and afflicted persons, there will
+be constant need of this officer. The pastor and deacon under the New
+Testament seem to answer the priests and Levites under the Old
+Testament.
+
+2. The qualifications of deacons are laid down by Christ in the New
+Testament, at large: 1 Tim. iii. 8-14, _Deacons also must be grave, not
+double-tongued_, &c., and Acts vi. 3, 5.
+
+3. The manner also of deacons' vocation or calling unto their office is
+delineated, viz: 1. They must be chosen by the church; "Look ye out
+among you seven men of honest report," &c., "and they chose Stephen,"
+&c., Acts vi. 3, 5. 2. They must first be proved and tried by the
+officers of the church, before they may officiate as deacons; "and let
+these also first be proved, then let them use the office of a deacon,
+being blameless," 1 Tim. iii. 10. 3. They must be appointed by the
+officers of the church to their office, and set apart with prayer, Acts
+vi. 3, 6: "Look ye out men--whom we may appoint over this business--whom
+they set before the apostles, and when they had prayed, they laid their
+hands on them."
+
+4. Deacons have by Scripture their work and employment appointed them.
+Their work is, _to serve tables_, (hence the name deacon seems derived,)
+Acts vi. 2, 3. To be an help, no hinderance in the church; called
+_helps_, 1 Cor. xii. 18.
+
+5. Deacons have a divine approbation and commendation in Scripture, if
+they execute their office well. "For they that have used the office of a
+deacon well, purchase to themselves a good degree, and great boldness in
+the faith which is in Christ Jesus," 1 Tim. iii. 13. Here the well
+administration of deaconship is commended as producing two good effects
+to such deacons, viz: 1. _A good degree_, i.e. great honor, dignity, and
+reputation, both to themselves and to their office; they adorn, grace,
+and credit their office in the church; not that they purchase to
+themselves by desert a higher office in the church, that from deacons
+they should be advanced to be presbyters, as some would interpret this
+text. 2. _Much boldness in the faith which is in Christ Jesus._ For
+nothing makes a man more bold than a good conscience in the upright and
+faithful discharge of our duties in our callings; innocency and
+integrity make brave spirits; such with great confidence and boldness
+serve Christ and the church, being men that may be trusted to the
+uttermost. Now where God thus approves or commends the well managing of
+an office, he also divinely approves and allows the office itself, and
+the officer that executes the same.[92]
+
+
+SECTION II.
+
+2. _Of the first receptacle, or subject of the power of church
+government from Christ, viz. Christ's own officers._
+
+Touching the second, that Jesus Christ our Mediator hath peculiarly
+intrusted his own officers with the power of church government: take it
+thus--
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator did immediately commit the proper, formal,
+ministerial, or stewardly authority and power for governing of his
+church to his own church guides as the proper immediate receptacle or
+first subject thereof.
+
+For explication of this proposition, four things are to be opened.
+
+1. What is meant by proper, formal, ministerial or stewardly authority
+and power for church government? See this already discussed, Part 2,
+chapters III., V., and IX., in the beginning of Section 2, so that here
+there needs no further addition, as to this point.
+
+2. What is meant by church guides? By church guides here understand,
+negatively, 1. Not the political magistrate. For though he be the
+_nurse-father_ of the church, Isa. xlix. 23, _the keeper and avenger of
+both the tables_; and _have an outward care of religion_, and _may
+exercise a political power about sacred things_, as did Asa,
+Jehoshaphat, Hezekiah, Josiah, &c., yet hath he no proper, inward,
+formal power in sacred things, nor is it lawful for him to exercise the
+same; as Korah, Num. xvi.; King Saul, 1 Sam. xiii. 9-15; Uzzah, 2 Sam.
+vi. 6-8, 1 Chron. xiii. 9, 10; and King Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16-22,
+did to the provoking of God, and to their own destruction. (But see what
+power is granted, and what denied to the civil magistrate in matters of
+religion, and why, Part 2, Chap. IX. Sect. 1.) 2. Not any officer of
+man's mere invention and setting up in the church, whether papal, as
+cardinals, &c., prelatical, as deans, archdeacons, chancellors,
+officials, &c., or political, as committees, commissioners, &c. For who
+can create and institute a new kind of offices in the church, but Jesus
+Christ only, who alone hath the lordly magisterial power as Mediator
+appropriated to him? Eph. iv. 8, 11; Rom. xii. 5-8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; and
+therefore how can such acts be sufficiently excused from bold usurpation
+upon Christ's own prerogative? 3. Nor the deacons themselves, (though
+officers of Christ's appointment, as was formerly proved;) for their
+office is not to rule and govern, but _to serve tables_, &c., Acts vi.
+2, 3. None of these are the church guides which Christ hath committed
+his proper power unto. But affirmatively understand all these church
+guides extraordinary and ordinary, which Christ hath erected in his
+Church, vesting them with power and authority therein, viz. apostles,
+prophets, evangelists, pastors and teachers, governments, or ruling
+elders, mentioned together in Eph. iv. 8, 11; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v.
+17; Rom. xii. 6-8. These are Christ's own church officers, these Christ
+hath made the immediate receptacle and first subject of the keys, or of
+ecclesiastical power derived from himself.
+
+3. What is meant by Christ's committing this stewardly power first and
+immediately to the church guides? _Ans_. There is, 1. A priority and
+immediateness of the donation of the power of the keys: thus Christ
+first and immediately gave keys to his own officers, whom Scripture,
+therefore, calls _the ministers of Christ_, (not of the Church,) 1 Cor.
+iv. 1, not first and immediately to the community of the faithful, or
+Church, and then by the Church secondarily and mediately to the
+officers, as her substitutes and delegates, acting for her, and not in
+virtue of their own power from Christ. 2. A priority and immediateness
+of designation of particular individual persons to the office of
+key-bearing, and this is done by the mediate intervening act of the
+church officers in separating of particular persons to the office which
+Christ instituted; though it is not denied but that the church or
+company of the faithful may lawfully nominate or elect individual
+persons to be officers in the congregation, which yet is no act of
+authority or power.
+
+4. How hath Christ committed this power of the keys to his church
+guides, that thereby they become the most proper receptacle thereof?
+_Ans_. Thus briefly. All absolute lordly power is in God originally: all
+lordly magisterial mediatory power is in Christ dispensatorily: all
+official, stewardly power is by delegation from Christ only in the
+church guides[93] ministerially, as the only proper subject thereof that
+may exercise the same lawfully in Christ's name: yet all power, both
+magisterial in Christ, and ministerial in Christ's officers, is for the
+Church of Christ and her edification objectively and finally.
+
+These things thus explained and stated, we come now to the confirmation
+of the proposition. Consider these arguments:
+
+1. Jesus Christ committed immediately ecclesiastical power and the
+exercise thereof to his church guides. Thus we may argue:
+
+_Major_. All those that have ecclesiastical power, and the exercise
+thereof, immediately committed to them from Jesus Christ, are the
+immediate subject or receptacle of that power.
+
+For what makes any persons the immediate subject of power, but the
+immediate derivation and commission of power to them from Jesus Christ,
+who is the fountain of all power?
+
+_Minor_. But the church guides have the ecclesiastical power and the
+exercise thereof immediately committed to them from Jesus Christ. This
+may be evinced many ways by Scriptures. 1. It is said expressly, "Of
+our authority which the Lord hath given us for your edification," 2 Cor.
+10, 8: by _us_ here we are to understand church guides, for here they
+are set in opposition to the church members (_for edification_,) not
+destruction of (you.) Here are edifiers and edified. Now these church
+guides have authority given them, and that from the Lord, i.e. Christ;
+here is their commission or power, not from the Church or any creature,
+but from Christ; hence the apostle calls church guides, "Your rulers or
+guides in the Lord," 1 Thes. v. 12; _in the Lord_, i.e. by the Lord's
+authority and commission. So that church officers are _rulers in the
+Lord_, and the churches ruled by them; yea, ruling elders being one sort
+of church guides, have such an undoubted power of governing in the
+Church divinely committed to them, that of them it is said, "God hath
+set in the church governments", 1 Cor. xii. 28, i.e. governors, the
+abstract being put for the concrete. If _God have set governors in the
+Church_, then God vested those governors with a power of governing,
+whence they have their name of governments.
+
+2. The keys of the kingdom of heaven, with all their acts, were
+immediately committed to the church guides, viz. to the apostles and
+their successors to the end of the world; compare these testimonies,
+Matt. xvi. 16, 19, and xviii. 18-20; John xx. 21-23; with Matt, xxviii.
+18-20: therefore consequently ecclesiastical power was committed
+immediately unto them as the subject thereof. For, _By the kingdom of
+heaven_ here we are to understand (according to the full latitude of the
+phrase) both the kingdom of grace in this world, and of glory in the
+world to come; _binding and loosing both in earth and in heaven_, upon
+the right use of the keys, being here the privileges promised to church
+guides; and _by kingdom of heaven_--on earth, understand the whole
+visible Church of Christ in the earth, not only some single
+congregation. By _keys of the kingdom of heaven_, thus apprehend, Christ
+promiseth and giveth not the sword _of the kingdom_, any secular power;
+nor the sceptre _of the kingdom_, any sovereign, lordly, magisterial
+power over the Church. But the _keys_, &c. i.e. a stewardly, ministerial
+power, and their acts, _binding and loosing_, i.e. _retaining and
+remitting sins on earth_, (as in John it is explained;) opening and
+shutting are proper acts of keys; binding and loosing but metaphorical,
+viz. a speech borrowed from bonds or chains wherewith men's bodies are
+bound in prison or in captivity, or from which the body is loosed: we
+are naturally all under sin, Rom. v. 12, and therefore liable to death,
+Rom. vi. 23. Now sins are to the soul as bonds and cords, Prov. v. 22.
+_The bond of iniquity_, Acts viii. 23; and death with the pains thereof,
+are as chains, 2 Pet. ii. 4, Jude 6; in hell as in a prison, 1 Pet.
+iii. 10: the remission or retaining of these sins, is the loosing or the
+binding of the soul under these cords and chains. So that the keys
+themselves are not material but metaphorical; a metaphor from stewards
+in great men's houses, kings' houses, &c., into whose hands the whole
+trust and ordering of household affairs is committed, who take in and
+cast out servants, open and shut doors, &c., do all without control of
+any in the family save the master of the family. Such, in the Hebrew
+phrase, are said to be _over the house_, Gen. xliii. 18; Isa. xxii. 15;
+2 Kings xviii. 18: and the keys of the house are committed to them as a
+badge of their power. So that when God threatens to put Shebna out of
+his office in the king's house, and to place Eliakim, son of Hilkiah, in
+his room, he saith, "I will commit thy government into his hand--and the
+key of the house of David will I lay upon his shoulder," Isa. xxii. 21,
+22, parallel of that phrase, "and the government shall be upon his
+shoulder," Isa. ix. 6. Hence, as key is in the Old Testament used for
+stewardly power and government, Isa. xxii. 21, 22; (only twice properly,
+Judges iii. 25; 1 Chron. ix. 27;) so in the New Testament, _key_ is
+always used, metaphorically, to denote power, and that about
+ecclesiasticals or spirituals, viz. in Matt. xvi. 19; Luke xi. 52; Rev.
+i. 18, and iii. 7, and ix. 1, and xx. 1. So that _keys_, &c., are
+metaphorically the ordinances which Christ hath instituted, to be
+dispensed in his church, preaching the word, administrations of the
+seals and censures: for it is not said _key_, but _keys_, which
+comprehendeth them all: by the right use of which both the gates of the
+Church here, and of heaven hereafter, are opened or shut to believers or
+unbelievers; and Christ promising or giving these _keys_ to Peter and
+the apostles, and their successors _to the end of the world_, Matt.
+xxviii. 20, doth intrust and invest them with power and authority of
+dispensing these ordinances for this end, and so makes them _stewards_
+in his house _of the mysteries of God_, 1 Cor. iv. 1, so that we may
+conclude:
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the church guides are the immediate subject and
+receptacle of that ecclesiastical power, and of the exercise thereof.
+
+_Argum_. II. Jesus Christ our Mediator did institute ecclesiastical
+offices for church government under the New Testament before any
+Christian Church under the New Testament was gathered or constituted.
+Therefore those persons that were intrusted with those offices must
+needs be the first and immediate receptacle or subject of the power of
+the keys. Thus we may argue:
+
+_Major_. All those whose ecclesiastical offices for church government,
+under the New Testament, were instituted by Christ, before any formal
+visible Christian Church was gathered or constituted, are the first and
+immediate receptacle or subject of the power of the keys from Jesus
+Christ.
+
+_Minor_. But the ecclesiastical offices of Christ's own officers for
+governing of the Church, now under the New Testament, were instituted by
+Christ before any formal visible Christian Church was gathered or
+constituted.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ's own officers for governing of the
+Church now under the New Testament are the first and immediate
+receptacle or subject of the keys from Jesus Christ.
+
+The major proposition cannot reasonably be denied, and may be further
+cleared by these considerations, viz: 1. That the Church offices for
+church government under the New Testament are in their own nature
+intrinsically offices of power. The apostle styles it _power_, or
+_authority_, which is _given_ to these officers by _the Lord_, 2 Cor. x.
+8, and xiii. 10. _The keys of the kingdom of heaven_ are committed to
+them, Matt. xvi. 19, and _keys_ import a stewardly power: compare Matt.
+xvi. 19, and xviii. 18, John xx. 21, 23, with Isa. xxii. 21, 22.
+Materially, the acts and exercise of these officers are acts of power,
+as _binding, loosing_, &c., Matt, xviii. 18; not only _preaching_, &c.,
+but _excommunicating_, is an act of power, 1 Cor. v. 4. Absolving the
+penitent, and confirming him again in the Church's love, is an act of
+power:--_to confirm love unto him_, i.e. authoritatively to confirm,
+&c., as the word signifies, 2 Cor. ii. 8. Formally, these acts are to be
+done as acts of power, in Christ's name, and by his authority, Matt.
+xxviii. 19; 1 Cor. v. 4. Now if these offices be in their own nature
+offices of power, consequently they that have such offices conferred
+upon them by Christ, before the Christian Church had being or existence,
+they must needs be the first and immediate recipient subject of the
+power of the keys from Christ. 2. Either those church officers, whose
+offices were instituted before the Christian Church was constituted,
+must be the first subject of the power, &c., or some others. If any
+other, then, 1. Either heathens, or heathen magistrates, who are out of
+the Church: but both these were absurd to grant; for then they that are
+not so much as church members should be church governors, and the Church
+be ecclesiastically judged by them that are without. 2. Or the first
+subject of this power was the Christian Church itself before it had
+existence; but that were notoriously absurd; and besides these, no other
+can be imagined, but the church officers; therefore they must needs be
+the first subject of the power of the keys.
+
+The minor proposition (viz. But the ecclesiastical offices of Christ's
+own officers for governing of the Church now under the New Testament,
+were instituted by Christ before any formal visible Christian Church
+was gathered or constituted) is so evident in the current of the New
+Testament, that it needs little confirmation. For, 1. The church offices
+under the New Testament, as apostleship, pastorship, &c., were
+instituted by Christ either before his death--compare these places
+together, Mark iii. 13, 14, &c.; Luke ix. 1, &c., and x. 1, 2, &c.; John
+xx. 21-23; Matt, xxviii. 18-20--or presently upon his ascension, Eph.
+iv. 8, 11, 12, &c.; Acts ii.; 1 Cor. xiii. 28. Now no formal Christian
+Church was constituted and gathered till the feast of Pentecost and
+afterwards. Then, after the apostles had received the gifts of the Holy
+Ghost, &c., Acts ii., great multitudes of Jews and Gentiles were
+converted to Christ, and being converted, incorporated and associated
+themselves into churches, as the history of the Acts, chap, ii., and
+forward, evidenceth abundantly. 2. Church officers, under the New
+Testament, are for the calling and gathering men unto Christ, and to his
+body mystical; and for admitting of those that believe into that one
+body, Matt, xxviii. 18, 19; 1 Cor. xii. 28. And is not he that calleth,
+before them that are called by them; they that baptize, before the
+baptized; and they that gather the churches, before those churches which
+they gather? May we not hence conclude, _Therefore_, &c.
+
+_Argum_. III. The names, titles, and other denominations purposely and
+peculiarly given to the church guides in Scripture, generally do bear
+power and authority engraven upon their foreheads. _Therefore_, they are
+the proper, immediate, and only subjects of ecclesiastical power. Thus
+we may argue:
+
+_Major_. All those persons in the Church, that have such names, titles,
+or denominations given to them peculiarly in the Scriptures by the
+Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and power engraven upon
+them in reference to the Church, are the immediate and only proper
+subjects of ecclesiastical power.
+
+_Minor_. But Christ's officers in the Church have such names, titles, or
+denominations given to them peculiarly in the Scriptures by the Spirit
+of Christ, as generally have authority and power engraven upon them in
+reference to the Church.
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church are the
+proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of ecclesiastical
+power.
+
+This major proposition must be granted. For, 1. Is not this the Holy
+Ghost's familiar and ordinary manner in Scripture, to give titles and
+denominations, which are apt, pertinent, significative and instructing
+both to others and themselves that have such denominations conferred
+upon them? As in the family, the husband is called _the head of the
+wife_, 1 Cor. xi., because he is to govern, she is to be subject: the
+wife is called _an help-meet_, &c., Gen. ii.: to teach the wife her
+duty, to help his good and comfort every way, to hinder it no way. So in
+the commonwealth, magistrates are called _heirs of restraint, to put men
+to shame_, Judges xviii. 7, because they are to restrain disorders,
+shame evil-doers: higher powers, to teach others subjection to them,
+Rom. xiii. 1. "An ordinance of man or human creation," 1 Pet. ii. 13:
+because, though magistracy in general be an ordinance of God, yet this
+or that special kind of magistracy, whether monarchical, aristocratical,
+&c., is of man. Thus in the Church: the Church is called _Christ's
+body_, Ephes. iv. 12, to show Christ's headship, the Church's subjection
+to Christ, and their near union to one another. Christians are called
+_members_, Rom. xii.; 1 Cor. xii., to teach them mutual love, care, and
+serviceableness to one another. Ministers are called _ambassadors of
+Christ_, 2 Cor. v. _Angels of the churches_, Rev. ii., to teach them to
+be faithful in their offices, and others to respect them for their
+offices. _Salt of the earth_, Matt. v. 13, because they are to season
+others spiritually. _Stars_, Rev. i., because they are to shine forth
+for the enlightening and guiding of others, &c. 2. If this proposition
+be denied, then to what end are such names and denominations, importing
+authority, generally given by the Spirit of God to some sort of persons
+only, and not to others? Is it for no end? That would be a dangerous
+charge upon the Spirit of Christ. Is it for any end? Then what other can
+be imagined, than to signify, hold forth, and instruct both themselves
+and others in their duties, and to distinguish them that are vested with
+authority in the Church, from them that are not?
+
+The _major proposition_ (viz. But Christ's own officers in the Church
+have such names, titles, or denominations given to them peculiarly in
+the Scriptures by the Spirit of Christ, as generally have authority and
+power engraven upon them in reference to the Church) may be evinced, 1.
+By induction of particular names attributed to Christ's officers. 2. By
+a denial of them, or the like, to any other members of the Church.
+
+1. By induction of particular titles or denominations attributed to
+Christ's officers, which generally have power and authority palpably
+engraven upon them: (yea, the self-same names are given to them, by
+which not only heathen writers, but also the Greek version of the Old
+Testament by the Septuagint, and the very original of the New Testament
+are wont to give to political officers, to express their political
+authority, power, and government,) as, for instance:
+
+1. _Presbyter or elder_, is ascribed often to Christ's church officers,
+as in Acts xiv. 23, and xv. 2, 4, and xx. 17; 1 Tim. v. 17; Tit. v.; 1
+Pet. v. 1. This same word is ascribed to _rulers political_, to _elders
+in the gate_, by the Septuagint, in Judges viii. 14; Ruth iv. 2, 3; 2
+Sam. v. 3; 1 Chron. vi. 3.
+
+2. _Overseer_ or _bishop_, noting authority and power in having the
+charge and oversight of the flock, is ascribed to church officers in
+Acts xx. 28; Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i. 7. This same word is
+used by the Septuagint, to denote the power of the civil magistrate, to
+whom the care and oversight of the commonwealth is committed, Numb.
+xxxi. 14; Judges ix. 28; 2 Kings xi. 15.
+
+3. _Guide, leader, conductor, captain, governor_, signifies them all,
+and is given to church officers, as contradistinct from the _church_ and
+_saints_, Heb. xiii. 7, 17, 24. It is also attributed to civil rulers to
+set forth their power, in Deut. i. 13; Micah iii. 9, 11; 2 Chron. v. 1;
+Ezek. xliv. 3, and xlv. 7; Dan. iii. 2; Acts vii. 10. This very word
+_governor_, is attributed to Christ himself, _out of thee shall come
+forth a governor, that shall rule_ (or _feed_) _my people Israel_, Matt.
+ii. 6.
+
+4. _Steward, dispenser_. "Stewards of the mysteries of God," is the
+title given to ministers, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. "Steward of God," Tit. i. 7.
+"That faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall make ruler over his
+household," &c., Luke xii. 42. This also is a title of power given to
+them that are set over families, as Gal. iv. 2, "he is under tutors and
+stewards." And to them that are set over cities--as Rom. xvi. 23,
+"Erastus the steward" (or as we render it, _the chamberlain_) "of the
+city saluteth you."
+
+5. _Pastor_ is ascribed to Christ's officers; Eph. iv. 11, "and some
+pastors and teachers." They govern the Church as the shepherd his flock,
+feeding, ruling them as well with the shepherd's staff, as with food.
+This term is sometimes given to civil magistrates, Isa. xliv. 28; Micah
+v. 5: sometimes to Christ the great shepherd of the sheep, 1 Pet. v. 4;
+noting his authority, Matt. xxvi. 31; John x. 2, 11, 14, 16; Heb. xiii.
+20; 1 Pet. ii. 25: sometimes to God himself the supreme Ruler of the
+world, Ps. lxxx. 1.
+
+6. _Governments_, a denomination given to _ruling elders_, 1 Cor. xii.
+28, as hath been proved Sect. 1 of this Chapter. A metaphor from
+mariners or pilots, that steer and govern the ship: translated thence,
+to signify the power and authority of church governors, spiritual
+pilots, steering the ship or ark of Christ's Church. This word is used
+also by heathen authors, to signify political governors.[94]
+
+_Ruler_. 1 Tim. v. 17, "Let the elders that rule well"--and,
+
+"He that ruleth," Rom. xii. 8, and "Your rulers in the Lord," 1 Thes.
+v. 12, viz. not only in the fear of the Lord,[95] nor only in those
+things that appertain to God's worship,[96] but also in the Lord; i.e.
+who are over you, to rule according to the will of the Lord,[97] even by
+the Lord Christ's power and authority derived to them. Now these names
+are among heathen authors ascribed to rulers of cities, armies, and
+kingdoms.[98]
+
+By these among other titles given to Christ's officers in Scripture, he
+that runs may read a plain authority and power enstamped on them in
+reference to the Church; and consequently on them that are thus
+denominated, unless they be applied to them improperly, unfitly,
+abusively; which we suppose no sober intelligent reader dare affirm.
+
+2. By a denial of these and like titles to the whole Church of Christ,
+or to any other members of the Church whatsoever, besides church
+officers. For where can it be showed in all the book of God, that in
+this sense, either the whole Church or any members thereof besides
+officers, are ever styled _presbyters, bishops, governors, stewards of
+God, or of the mysteries of God, pastors, governments, or rulers_? The
+greatest factors for popular government must let this alone forever.
+Thus, from all that hath been said, we need not fear to conclude:
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore Christ's own officers in the Church are the
+proper, immediate, and only subjects or receptacles of ecclesiastical
+power.
+
+_Argum_. IV. The relations which Christ's officers have unto his Church,
+imply and comprehend in themselves authority and power in reference to
+the Church, and therefore they are the proper subjects of ecclesiastical
+power. Thus we reason:
+
+_Major_. Whosoever they are that peculiarly stand in such relations to
+the Church of Christ, as imply and comprehend in themselves authority
+and power for governing of the Church, they are the only subject of
+ecclesiastical power.
+
+This proposition is evident; for, otherwise, to what end are those
+peculiar relations to the Church which comprehend government in them,
+unless such as are so peculiarly related be the only subjects of
+government? Shall all those relations be mere names and shadows? or
+shall others in the church be counted the subject of this authority and
+power for church government, that have no such relations to the Church
+at all implying any such power?
+
+_Minor_. But the officers of Christ peculiarly stand in such relations
+to the Church of Christ as imply and comprehend in themselves authority
+and power for the government of the church.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition will be evident by a due induction
+of some of their particular relations that have such power enstamped on
+them; as for instance, Christ's officers stand in these relations of
+power to the Church and people of God.
+
+1. _They are pastors_, Eph. iv. 11. The church is the _flock_, John x.
+16; 1 Cor. ix. 7; _flock_, Acts xx. 28, 29; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. Hath not the
+_pastor_ power to rule and govern his _flock_?
+
+2. They are _stewards_. "Who is that faithful and wise steward?" Luke
+xii. 42. "Stewards of the mysteries of God," 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. "Stewards
+of God," Tit. i. 7. The Church and people of God are the Lord's
+_household_, over which these stewards are set, &c., Luke xii. 42.
+_God's house_, 1 Tim. iii. 15; Heb. iii. 6. Have not stewards power to
+govern and order those _families_ over which they are set, and wherewith
+they are intrusted? Gal. iv. 1.
+
+3. They are _bishops_ or _overseers_, Phil. i. 1; 1 Tim. iii. 2; Tit. i.
+7. The Church and people of God are that _charge_ which the Lord hath
+committed to their inspection. "Over which the Holy Ghost hath made you
+overseers," Acts xx. 28. Have not _overseers_ power over that which is
+_committed to their inspection_?
+
+4. They are _catechizers_ and _teachers_, Rom. xii. 7, 8; Eph. iv. 11.
+The Church and people are _catechized_, Gal. vi. 6; _taught_. Hath not
+he that _catechizeth_ power for government of him that is _catechized_?
+He that _teacheth_ of him that is _taught_?
+
+5. They are _co-workers_ with God, 1 Cor. iii. 9; 2 Cor. vi. 1.
+_Architects, builders_, &c., 1 Cor. iii. 10; some of them _laying the
+foundation, others building thereupon_. The Church and people of God are
+God's building. "Ye are God's building," 1 Cor. iii. 9. Have not
+_builders_ power of disposing and ordering affairs appertaining to the
+_building_?
+
+6. Finally, to add no more, the officers of Christ in the Church are not
+only as _nurses_; "We _were_ gentle among you, even as a nurse
+cherisheth her children," 1 Thess. ii. 7: and as _mothers_; "My little
+children, of whom I travail in birth again," Gal. iv. 19: but also as
+_fathers_, 1 Thess. ii. 11; 1 Cor. iv. 15, spiritual fathers in Christ:
+and the Church and people of God, they are the _sons_ and _daughters_,
+the spiritual _babes_ and _children_, begotten, brought forth, and
+nursed up by them, 1 Thess. ii. 7, 11; Gal. iv. 19: and have fathers no
+authority nor power of government over their children? See Eph. vi. 1-3;
+1 Tim. iii. 4.
+
+Thus Christ's officers stand in such relation to the Church as do
+evidently carry power of government along with them; but where are any
+other members of the church besides officers, stated in such relation of
+_pastors, stewards, overseers, catechizers, builders, husbandmen,
+nurses, mothers_, and _fathers_ to the Church of God and members of
+Christ, that can be evidenced by the Scriptures? Why may we not then
+clearly conclude,
+
+_Conclusion_. Therefore the officers of Christ are the only subjects of
+ecclesiastical power.
+
+_Argum_. V. The many divine commands and impositions of duties of
+obedience, submission, subjection, &c., upon the Church and people of
+God, to be performed by them to Christ's officers, and that in reference
+to their office, do plainly proclaim the officers of Christ to be the
+proper receptacle and subject of authority and power from Christ for the
+government of his Church. Thus it may be argued:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever persons they are to whom the Church and people of
+God are peculiarly bound by the commands of Christ, to perform duties of
+obedience and subjection, and that in reference to their office in the
+church, they are the only subjects of authority from Christ for the
+government of his Church.
+
+This proposition needs no proof, unless we will be so absurd as to say
+that the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged by Christ's
+command to obey and be subject to them, that yet have no peculiar
+authority nor power over them, and that in reference to their office in
+the church.
+
+_Minor_. But the officers of Christ are those to whom the Church and
+people of God are peculiarly bound by the commands of Christ to perform
+duties of obedience and subjection, and that in reference to their
+office in the church.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition may be evidenced, 1. Partly by
+induction of some particular instances of Christ's commands, whereby the
+Church and people of God are bound to perform duties of obedience and
+subjection to the officers of Christ, in reference to their office in
+the church. 2. Partly by a denial of the like commands in reference to
+all others in the church, except the officers of the church only.
+
+Touching the first, viz. the instances of such commands, consider these
+following. The Church and people of God are commanded,
+
+1. To know their rulers. "We beseech you, brethren, to know them that
+labor among you, and are over you in the Lord," 1 Thess. v. 12. _To
+know_, i.e., not simply and merely to know, but to acknowledge, accept,
+and approve of them as such rulers over you in the Lord. This teaches
+subjection to the office of ruling.
+
+2. To love them exceedingly for their work's sake. "Esteem them
+superabundantly in love for their work's sake," 1 Thess. v. 13. For what
+work? viz. both laboring and ruling, mentioned verse 12. If they must
+love them so exceedingly for ruling over them, must they not much more
+be obedient to this rule?
+
+3. To count them worthy of double honor in reference to their
+well-ruling. "Let the elders that rule well be counted worthy of double
+honor, especially--," 1 Tim. v. 17: whether we take _double honor_ here
+for reverence or maintenance, or both; yet how can we esteem the _elders
+ruling well worthy of double honor_ without some submission to their
+rule?
+
+4. To obey them that are their rulers and governors. _Obey ye your
+rulers, or governors_, Heb. xiii. 17; where the words _obey ye_ doth not
+(as some dream) signify a persuasion, but obedience, and in this sense
+it is commonly used, not only in profane authors, but also in the Holy
+Scriptures, as James iii. 3, Gal. iii. 1.
+
+5. Finally, to submit and be subordinate unto them. The Church and
+people of God are charged to submit unto them. "Obey your governors and
+submit ye," Heb. xiii. 17. The word properly notes a submissive yielding
+without opposition or resistance; yea, it signifies intense obedience.
+They must not only yield, but yield with subjection and submission,
+which relates to authority. They are also charged to be subordinate to
+them. "Likewise, ye younger, submit yourselves to the elders," 1 Pet. v.
+5; i.e., _be ye subordinate_, (it is a military term,) viz: be ordered,
+ranked, guided, governed, disciplined by them, as soldiers are by their
+commanders. The word _elders_ here is by some taken only for elders in
+age, and not in office. But it seems better to interpret it of elders in
+office; and the context well agrees with this; for the apostle having
+immediately before charged the ruling preaching presbyters with their
+duties towards their flock, ver. 1-4, here he seems to enjoin the ruled
+flock (which commonly were younger in age and gifts) to look to their
+duties of subjection to their elders in office.
+
+Touching the second, viz. the denial of like commands, and upon like
+grounds to all others in the church, except to the church officers only:
+where can it be evidenced in all the Scriptures that the people of God
+are commanded to know, to esteem very highly in love, to count worthy of
+double honor, to obey, and submit themselves to any persons in the
+church but to the ruling officers thereof in reference to their office,
+and the due execution thereof?
+
+Now, seeing the Church and people of God are peculiarly obliged, by so
+many commands of Christ, to perform such duties of subjection and
+obedience to the officers of Christ, may it not be concluded,
+
+Therefore the officers of Christ are the only subjects of authority from
+Christ for the government of his Church?
+
+_Argum_. VI. Finally, the directions touching rule and government in the
+Church; the encouragements to well-ruling by commendations, promises,
+rewards, together with the contrary deterring discouragements from
+ill-ruling, by discommendations, threats, &c., being specially applied
+and appropriated by the word of Christ unto Christ's officers, very
+notably discover to us that Christ's officers are the only subjects of
+power from Christ for the government of his Church. Thus it may be
+argued:
+
+_Major_. Whatsoever persons in the Church have directions for church
+government, encouragements to well-ruling, and discouragements from
+ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly applied unto them by the word of
+Christ; they are the only subjects of power from Christ for the
+government of his Church:
+
+This proposition is evident: For, 1. How should it be consistent with
+the infinite wisdom of God peculiarly to apply unto them directions
+about ruling and governing the church that are not the only subjects in
+whom the power of government is intrusted by Jesus Christ? 2. How can it
+stand with the justice of God to encourage them only unto well-ruling,
+by commendations, promises, rewards, &c., or to deter them from
+ill-governing by dispraises, threats, &c., &c., to whom the power of
+government doth not appertain, as to the only subjects thereof? 3. What
+strange apprehensions and distractions would this breed in the hearts of
+Christ's officers and others, should those that have not the power of
+church government committed to them by Christ, be yet directed by his
+word how to govern, encouraged in governing well, and deterred from
+governing ill?
+
+_Minor_. But the officers of Christ in the church have directions for
+church government, encouragements to well-ruling, and discouragements
+from ill-ruling, particularly and peculiarly applied unto them by the
+word of God.
+
+This assumption or minor proposition may be cleared by divers Scriptures
+according to the particular branches thereof, viz:
+
+1. Directions for church government are particularly applied by the word
+of Christ to his own officers: as for instance, they are directed to
+_bind and loose_--to _remit_ and _retain sins on earth_, Matt. xvi. 19,
+and xviii. 18; John xx. 21, 23. _To judge them that are within the_
+Church, _not without_, 1 Cor. v. 12. _Not to lord it, domineer_, or
+_overrule the flock of Christ_, 1 Pet. v. To _rule well_, 1 Tim. v. 17.
+To rule _with diligence_, Rom. xii. 8. To _lay hands suddenly on no man,
+neither to be partakers of other men's sins, but to keep themselves
+pure_, 1 Tim. v. 22. _Not to prefer one before another, nor do anything
+by partiality_, 1 Tim. v. 21. _To rebuke them that sin before all, that
+others also may fear_, 1 Tim. v. 20. _To reject a heretic after once or
+twice admonition_, Tit. iii. 10. To use the _authority that is given
+them from the Lord to the edification, not to the destruction_ of the
+Church, 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10; with divers such like rules specially
+directed to Christ's officers.
+
+2. Encouragements to well-ruling are peculiarly directed to Christ's
+officers. For, 1. They are the persons specially commended in that
+respect; _well-ruling_, 1 Tim. v. 17. _Good and faithful steward_, Luke
+xii. 42. The angels of the churches are praised for their good
+government, Rev. ii. 2, 3, 6, and ver. 18, 19. 2. They are the persons
+to whom the promises, in reference to good government, are directed, as
+Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18-20; John xx. 21, 23; Matt. xxviii. 19, 20;
+Luke xii. 42-44; 1 Pet. v. 4. 3. They are the persons whom the Lord will
+have peculiarly rewarded, now with _double honor_, 1 Tim. v. 17;
+hereafter with _endless glory_, 1 Pet. v. 4.
+
+3. Discouragements, deterring from ill-governing, are also specially
+applied to Christ's officers, whether by way of dispraise or threats,
+&c., Rev. ii. 12, 14-16, and ver. 18, 20.
+
+Now if, 1. Rules for church government, 2. Encouragements in reference
+to well ruling, and, 3. Discouragements in reference to ill-ruling, be
+so peculiarly directed by the word of Christ to his own officers, we may
+conclude,
+
+Therefore the officers of Christ in the Church are the only subjects of
+power from Christ for the government of his Church.
+
+_Object_. But the church[99] of a particular congregation fully
+furnished with officers, and rightly walking in judgment and peace, is
+the first subject of all church authority, as appears from the example
+of the church of Corinth in the excommunication of the incestuous
+Corinthian, 1 Cor. v. 1-5; wherein it appears that the presbytery alone
+did not put forth this power, but the brethren also concurred in this
+sentence with some act of power, (viz. a negative power:) for, 1. The
+reproof, for not proceeding to sentence sooner, is directed to the whole
+Church, as well as to the presbytery. They are all blamed for not
+mourning, &c., 1 Cor. v. 2. 2. The command is directed to them all, when
+they are gathered together, (_and what is that but to a church
+meeting?_) to proceed against him, 1 Cor. v. 4, 13. 3. He declareth this
+act of theirs, in putting him out, to be a judicial act, ver. 12. 4.
+Upon his repentance the apostle speaketh to the brethren, as well as to
+their elders, to forgive him, 2 Cor. ii. 4-10. Consequently, Christ's
+church officers are not the peculiar, immediate, or only subject of the
+power of the keys, as hath been asserted.
+
+_Ans_. I. As for the main proposition asserted in this objection,
+something hath been formerly laid down to show the unsoundness of it.
+(See chap. X. near the end.) Whereunto thus much may be superadded. 1.
+What necessity is there that a particular congregation should be fully
+furnished with officers, to make it the subject of all church authority?
+For deacons are one sort of officers, yet what authority is added to the
+Church by the addition of deacons, whose office it is only to serve
+tables, Acts vi., not to rule the Church? or if the Church have no
+deacons, as once it had not, Acts i. 2, and before that, all the time
+from Christ, wherein is she maimed or defective in her authority? 2. If
+the Church, fully furnished with officers, yet walk not in judgment and
+peace, then in such case it is granted, that a particular congregation
+is not the first subject of all church authority. Then a congregation
+that walks in error or heresy, or passion, or profaneness, all which are
+contrary to judgment; and that walks in divisions, schisms, contentions,
+&c., which are contrary to peace, loseth her authority. Stick but close
+to this principle, and you will quickly lay the church authority of most
+independent congregations in the dust. But who shall determine whether
+they walk in judgment and peace, or not? Not themselves; for that were
+to make parties judges in their own case, and would produce a very
+partial sentence. Not sister churches; for all particular churches,
+according to them, have equal authority, and none may usurp one over
+another. Not a presbyterial church, for such they do not acknowledge.
+Then it must be left undetermined, yea undeterminable, (according to
+their principles;) consequently, who can tell when they have any
+authority at all? 3. Suppose the congregation had all her officers, and
+walked in judgment and peace also, yet is she not the first subject of
+all authority; for there is a synodal authority, beyond a congregational
+authority, as confessed by Mr. Cotton.[100]
+
+II. As for the proofs of this proposition asserted here, they seem
+extremely invalid and unsatisfying. For,
+
+The instance of the church of Corinth excommunicating the incestuous
+person, will not prove the congregation to be the first subject of all
+church authority: 1. Partly, because the church of Corinth was a
+presbyterial church, having several congregations in it, (as hereafter
+is evidenced, chap. XIII.;) now to argue from the authority of a
+presbyterial church, to the authority of a congregational,
+affirmatively, is not cogent. 2. Partly, because here were but two acts
+of power mentioned in this instance, viz. casting out and receiving
+again of the incestuous person: suppose the community had joined the
+presbytery in these two acts, (which yet is not proved,) will it follow
+therefore they are the first subject of all church authority? Are not
+ordination of presbyters, determination in case of appeals, of schism,
+of heresy, &c., acts of authority above the sphere of a single
+congregation? What one congregation can be instanced in the New
+Testament that did ever execute any of these acts of authority?
+
+The reasons brought, prove not that the brethren did concur with the
+presbytery in this sentence with some act of power, as will appear
+plainly, if they be considered severally.
+
+1. Not the reproof, 1 Cor. v. 2, "And ye are puffed up, and have not
+rather mourned, that he that hath done this deed might be taken away
+from among you." Here they are blamed, that they no more laid to heart
+so vile a scandal, which should have been matter of mourning to the
+whole congregation; that they instead of mourning were puffed up,
+gloried in their shame; and that they sluggishly neglected to endeavor,
+in their sphere, his casting out. And all this blame might justly be
+charged upon the whole church, the fraternity as well as the presbytery:
+the scandal of one member should be the grief of the whole body of the
+church. What then? Hath therefore the fraternity, as well as the
+presbytery, power to cast him out? That were a miserable consequence
+indeed: the people should not only have mourned for the sin, but have
+urged the presbytery to have proceeded to sentence, and after sentence
+have withdrawn from him, in obedience to the sentence; but none of all
+these can amount to a proper act of church authority in them.
+
+2. Nor doth the apostle's command prove the people's concurrence in any
+act of power with the presbytery, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, "In the name of our
+Lord Jesus Christ, when ye are gathered together, to deliver such an one
+unto Satan," &c.: ver. 7, "Purge out therefore the old leaven," &c.: and
+ver. 13, "Therefore put away from among yourselves that wicked person."
+In which passages it is supposed the apostle directs his injunction to
+them all (as well as to their presbytery) when they come together in
+their church meeting to proceed to sentence.
+
+But against this reason, well ponder upon these considerations, viz: 1.
+It is certain beyond all controversy, that the apostle did not direct
+these commands to the whole church of Corinth absolutely, and
+universally, without all exception and limitation to any members at all:
+for by his own rule, "Women must be silent in their churches, it being a
+shame for a woman to speak in the church," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, 35, and
+children or fools were not able to judge. Hence it is evident that a
+church absolutely and universally taken, cannot possibly be the
+ministerial ruling church which hath the authority. 2. It is evident to
+any man that is but moderately acquainted with the Scriptures, that God
+useth to direct his commands, reproofs, and other speeches to a people
+indifferently, and as it were collectively and generally, which yet he
+intends should be particularly applied and appropriated; not to all, but
+to this or that person or persons, only among such a people
+distributively and respectively; according to their respective callings,
+interests, relations, &c., as in the Old Testament God directs a command
+to the people of Israel indefinitely, and as it were collectively, to
+kill enticers to idolatry, false prophets, Deut. xiii. 9; but intended
+that the judge should sentence him, finding him guilty by witnesses. The
+Lord also directs his command to all the people, as it were
+collectively, to put out of the camp "every one that was a leper, and
+had an issue, or was defiled by the dead," Numb. v. 2; but intended that
+the priest should peculiarly take and apply this command to himself, who
+was to judge in these cases. See Lev. xiii. and elsewhere. So in the New
+Testament the apostle praised the Corinthians indefinitely, and as it
+were collectively, for "remembering him in all things, and keeping the
+ordinances as he delivered them to them," 1 Cor. xi. 2; wherein he
+intended only to commend the virtuous; and after he discommends them
+indefinitely for "coming together not for better, but for worse," 1 Cor.
+xi. 17; intending only their dispraise that were herein particularly
+delinquent among them. Again, he speaks indefinitely, and as it were
+collectively and generally, "Ye may all prophesy one by one," 1 Cor.
+xiv. 31; but he intended it only to the prophets respectively, not to
+all the members; for he saith elsewhere, "Are all prophets?" 1 Cor. xii.
+29. And writing to the churches of Galatia, Gal. i. 2, against false
+teachers he speaks thus to all those churches collectively, "A little
+leaven leaveneth the whole lump," Gal. v. 9. And, "I would they were
+even cut off who trouble you," ver. 12. Now every one of these churches
+were to apply this to themselves respectively, Independents themselves
+being judges. So here in this present case of the church of Corinth, the
+apostle directs his commands to them, as it were collectively, about
+putting away the incestuous person, which commands were particularly to
+be put in execution by the presbytery in that church in whose hands the
+church authority was.[101]
+
+Thus taking these commands, 1 Cor. v. 4, 7, 13, though directed
+indefinitely, and as it were collectively to the whole church, yet
+intended respectively to be put in execution by the presbytery in that
+church, they hold forth no concurrence of the people in any act of power
+at all with the church officers or presbytery. And it is a good note
+which Cameron[102] hath upon this place, "These things that are written
+in this epistle are so to be taken of the presbytery and of the people,
+that every one both of the presbyters and of the people, should
+interpret the command according to the reason of his office." 3. When
+the apostle reciteth the proceedings of the church in this very case of
+the incestuous person, in his 2d epistle, he saith, "Sufficient to such
+a man is this punishment" (or censure) "which was inflicted of many," 2
+Cor. ii. 6. It is very observable, he saith not, _of all_; nor _of
+many_, but _of the chief ones_, viz. the church officers, who had the
+rule and government of the church committed to them: (the article _the_
+being emphatical;) for this word translated _many_ may as well be
+translated chief, denoting worth, &c., as many, denoting number. And in
+this sense the Holy Ghost ofttimes useth this word in the New Testament;
+as for instance, "Is not the life better than meat?" Matt. vi. 25.
+"Behold, a greater than Jonah is here," Matt. xii. 41. "And behold, a
+greater than Solomon is here," Matt. xii. 41. "To love him with all the
+heart," &c., "is more than all whole burnt-offerings and sacrifices,"
+Mark xii. 33. And again, ver. 43, "This poor widow hath cast more than
+all they," &c. And thus it is frequently used to signify quality, worth,
+greatness, dignity, eminency, &c., and so it may be conveniently
+interpreted in this of the Corinthians. 4. Though all proper acts of
+authority appertain only to the church officers, yet we are not against
+the people's fraternal concurrence therewith. People may incite the
+presbytery to the acts of their office; people may be present at the
+administration of censures, &c., by the elders, as Cyprian of old would
+dispatch all public acts, the people being present; people may judge
+with a judgment of discretion, acclamation, and approbation, &c., as the
+elders judge with a judgment of power; and people afterwards may, yea
+must, withdraw from delinquents sentenced, that the sentence may attain
+its proposed end. But none of these are properly any acts of power.
+
+3. Nor doth the apostle's expression, verse 12, "Do you not judge them
+that are within?" prove that the people concur with any authoritative
+act in the elders' sentence. For, 1. This being spoken to them
+indefinitely, was to be applied distributively and respectively, only to
+them to whom it properly appertained, viz. the elders, as hath been
+showed. They only have authority to judge. 2. Such a judgment is allowed
+to the saints in church censures, as shall be allowed to them when the
+saints shall judge the world, yea angels, 1 Cor. vi. 1-3, viz. in both a
+judgment of acclamation, approbation, &c., as assessors, as people judge
+at the assizes; not in either a judgment of authority, which the judge
+and jury only do pronounce.
+
+4. Nor, finally, doth the apostle's direction to forgive the incestuous,
+being penitent, 2 Cor. ii. 4-10, which seems to be given to all, prove
+the people's concurrence with the elders in any act of power. For the
+authoritative forgiving and receiving him again, belonged only to the
+elders; the charitable forgiving, receiving, and comforting of him,
+belonged also to the people. As the judge and jury at an assizes, acquit
+by judgment of authority, the people only by judgment of discretion and
+acclamation.
+
+Thus it appears how little strength is in this instance of the church of
+Corinth, (though supposed to be the strongest ground the Independents
+have,) for the propping up of their popular government, and
+authoritative suffrage of the people.
+
+
+SECTION III.
+
+III. Having thus considered the subject of authority and power for
+church government: 1. Negatively, what it is not, viz. neither the
+political magistrate, nor yet the community of the faithful, or whole
+body of the people, Chap. IX. and X. 2. Positively, what it is, viz.
+Christ's own officers in his church, as hath been explained and
+evidenced, Sect. 2, of this Chap. 3. Now, in the third and last place,
+we are to insist a little further upon this subject of the power, by way
+of explanation: and to inquire, seeing Christ's officers are found to be
+the subject of this power, in what sense or notion they are the subject
+and receptacle of this authority and power from Christ, whether jointly
+or severally; as solitarily and single from one another, or associated
+and incorporated into assemblies with one another; or in both respects?
+
+For resolution herein we must remember that distribution of the keys, or
+of proper ecclesiastical power, (which was briefly mentioned before in
+Part 2, Chap. III.) into that which is,
+
+1. More special and peculiar to the office of some church governors,
+which by virtue of their office they are to execute and discharge: thus
+it is peculiar to the minister's office, 1. To preach the word; compare
+these places together, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, John xx. 21-23, Rom. x. 15,
+1 Tim. v. 17, Heb. xiii. 7, 2 Tim. iv. 1, 2, &c. 2. _To dispense the
+sacraments_, Matt. xxviii. 18-20, 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25. The word and
+sacraments were joined together in the same commission to the same
+officers, viz. the preaching presbyters, &c., as is evident in that of
+Matt. xxviii. 19.
+
+2. More general and common to the office of all church governors, as the
+power of censures, viz. admonishing, excommunicating, and absolving, and
+of such other acts as necessarily depend thereupon; wherein not only the
+preaching, but also the ruling elders are to join and contribute their
+best assistance; as may be collected from these several testimonies of
+Scripture, Matt. xviii. 17, 18, _Tell the Church_,[103] 1 Cor. v. 2-13,
+2 Cor. ii. 6-12, compared with Rom. xii. 8, 1 Cor. xii. 28, and 1 Tim.
+v. 17.
+
+Now these officers of Christ, viz. they that labor in the word and
+doctrine, and the ruling elders, are the subject of this power of
+jurisdiction as they are united in one body, hence called a Church,
+Matth. xviii. 18, viz. the governing or ruling church; for no other can
+there be meant; and presbytery,[104] i.e. a society or assembly of
+presbyters together, 1 Tim. iv. 14.
+
+The presbyters, elderships, or assemblies wherein these officers are
+united and associated, are of two sorts, viz: 1. The lesser assemblies,
+consisting of the ministers and ruling elders in each single
+congregation; which, for distinction's sake, is styled the
+congregational eldership. 2. The greater assemblies, consisting of
+church governors sent from several churches and united into one body,
+for governing of all these churches within their own bounds, whence
+their members were sent. These greater assemblies are either
+presbyterial or synodal. 1. Presbyterial, consisting of the ministers
+and elders of several adjacent or neighboring single congregations, or
+parish churches, ruling those several congregations in common; this kind
+of assembly is commonly called the presbytery, or, for distinction's
+sake, the classical presbytery, i.e. the presbytery of such a rank of
+churches. 2. Synodal, consisting of ministers and elders, sent from
+presbyterial assemblies, to consult and conclude about matters of common
+and great concernment to the church within their limits. Such was that
+assembly mentioned, Acts xv. These synodal assemblies are either, 1. Of
+ministers and elders from several presbyteries within one province,
+called provincial. 2. Or of ministers and elders from several provinces
+within one nation, called therefore national. Or, 3. Of ministers and
+elders from the several nations within the whole Christian world,
+therefore called ecumenical: for all which assemblies, congregational,
+presbyterial, and synodal, and the subordination of the lesser to the
+greater assemblies respectively, there seems to be good ground and
+divine warrant in the word of God, as (God willing) shall be evinced in
+the xii., xiii., xiv., and xv. chapters following.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII.
+
+_Of the Divine Right of Congregational Elderships or Kirk Sessions, for
+the government of the Church._
+
+
+Touching congregational elderships, consisting of the ministers and
+ruling elders of the several single congregations, which are called the
+lesser assemblies, or smaller presbyteries, and which are to manage and
+order all ecclesiastical matters within themselves, which are of more
+immediate, private, particular concernment to their own congregations
+respectively; and consequently, of more easy dispatch, and of more daily
+use and necessity. Concerning these congregational presbyteries, we
+shall not now take into consideration either, 1. What are the members
+constituting and making up these elderships; whether ruling elders by
+divine warrant may be superadded to the pastors and teachers, and so be
+associated for the government of the congregation. For the divine right
+of the ruling elders, distinct from the preaching elder for the
+government of the church, hath been evidenced at large, Chapter XI.,
+Section 1, foregoing. And if any acts of government in the church belong
+to the ruling elder at all, sure those acts of common jurisdiction, to
+be dispatched in these least assemblies, cannot of all other be denied
+unto him. 2. Nor shall it here be discussed, what the power of
+congregational elderships is, whether it be universally extensive to all
+acts of government ecclesiastical whatsoever, without exception or
+limitation; and that independently, without subordination to the greater
+assemblies, and without all liberty of appeal thereunto in any cases
+whatsoever, though of greatest and most common concernment. Which things
+are well stated and handled by others;[105] and will in some measure be
+considered afterwards in Chapter XV.
+
+3. But the thing for the present to be insisted upon, against the
+Erastian and prelatical party, is, the divine right of authority and
+power for church government, which is in congregational presbyteries or
+elderships, in reference to their respective congregations. Take it
+thus:
+
+Elderships of single congregations vested and furnished with
+ecclesiastical authority and power to exercise and dispense acts of
+government in and over those respective congregations whereunto they do
+belong, are by divine right warrantable.
+
+For confirmation hereof the light of nature, the institution of Christ,
+the apostolical practice, and the law of necessity, seem to speak
+sufficiently unto us.
+
+1. The common light of nature thus far directeth all sorts of smaller
+societies, whether political or ecclesiastical, to compose all
+particular and more private differences and offences within themselves;
+and to decide and determine small, common, easy causes and matters, by
+smaller courts and judicatories appointed for that end: a vain thing to
+trouble more and greater assemblies with those matters, that may as well
+be determined by the lesser. It was wise and grave counsel which Jethro,
+Moses' father-in-law, gave to Moses, that he should set up over the
+people certain judges inferior to himself, who themselves might judge
+all smaller matters, but all _great and hard matters to be brought to
+Moses_, Exod. xviii. 22, 26. And our Saviour seems to insinuate, that
+the Jews had their inferior courts for inferior causes, superior
+judicatories for greater, in that gradation of his, Matt. v. 22.
+Likewise they had lesser and greater ecclesiastical assemblies, (as
+after will appear.) Now, to what use are greater and lesser
+judicatories, civil or ecclesiastical, but that the lesser and lighter
+causes may be judged in the inferior, harder and greater in the
+superior?
+
+2. The institution of Christ recorded Matt. xviii. 15-21, seems to hold
+forth notably both single congregational elderships, and their power.
+And this, whether we consider the Jewish form, unto which our Saviour
+seems to refer; or whether we observe the matter of his discourse.
+
+1. As for the Jewish form of church government (unto which our Saviour
+here seems to allude) we may observe it was managed by two, if not three
+sorts of ecclesiastical courts, viz: By the Sanhedrin, presbytery, and
+synagogue, (much like to the evangelical synod, presbytery, and
+congregational eldership since Christ.) 1. They had their
+ecclesiastical,[106] as well as their civil Sanhedrin, for high and
+difficult affairs of the church; which seems first to be constituted,
+Exod. xxiv. 1, and after decay thereof, it was restored by King
+Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xix. 8; and from this court that national church's
+reformation proceeded, Neh. vi. 13. 2. Again, it is very probable they
+had between their Sanhedrin and their synagogue a middle ecclesiastical
+court called _The Presbytery_, Luke xxii. 66, and Acts xxii. 5, _and the
+whole presbytery_. Let such as are expert in Jewish antiquities and
+their polity, consider and judge. 3. Finally, they had their lesser
+judicatories in their synagogues, or congregational meetings: for, their
+synagogues were not only for prayer, and the ministry of the word, in
+reading and expounding the Scriptures, but also for public censures,
+correcting of offences, &c., as that phrase seems to import, "And I
+punished them oft in every synagogue," Acts xxvi. 11. His facts and
+proceedings, it is true, were cruel, unjust, impious. But why inflicted
+_in every synagogue_, rather than in other places, and that by virtue of
+the _high priest's letters_, Acts ix. 1, 2; but there the Jews had
+judicatories, that inflicted public punishments upon persons
+ecclesiastically offending? Besides, we read often in the New Testament
+of the _rulers of the synagogue_, as Mark v. 35, 36, 38; Luke viii. 41,
+and xiii. 14; and of Crispus and Sosthenes the chief _rulers of the
+synagogue_, Acts xviii. 8, 17; whence is intimated to us, that these
+synagogues had their rule and government in themselves; and that this
+rule was not in one person, but in divers together; for if there were
+chief rulers, there were also inferiors subordinate unto them: but this
+is put out of doubt, in Acts xiii. 15, where after the lecture of the
+law and the prophets, _the rulers of the synagogue sent unto
+them_--_synagogue_ in the singular number, and rulers in the plural.
+Thus analogically there should be ecclesiastical rulers and governors in
+every single congregation, for the well guiding thereof. But if this
+satisfy not, add hereunto the material passages in our Saviour's speech.
+
+2. Now touching the matter of our Saviour's discourse, it makes this
+very clear to us; for by a gradation he leadeth us from admonition
+private and personal, to admonition before two or three witnesses, and
+from admonition before two or three witnesses, to the representative
+body of one church, (as the phrase _tell the church_ must here
+necessarily be interpreted,) if there the difference can be composed,
+the offence removed, or the cause ended; rather than unnecessarily
+render the offence, and so our brother's shame, more public and
+notorious. And that the presbytery or eldership of a particular
+congregation, vested with power to hear and determine such cases as
+shall be brought before them, is partly, though not only here intended,
+seems evident in the words following, which are added for the
+strengthening and confirming of what went before in ver. 17: "Verily, I
+say unto you, whatsoever ye shall bind on earth shall be bound in
+heaven; and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in
+heaven. Again, I say unto you, that if two of you shall agree on earth
+as touching any thing that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of
+my Father which is in heaven. For where two or three are gathered
+together in my name, there am I in the midst of them," Matt. xviii.
+18-20. In which passages these things are to be noted: 1. That this
+church to which the complaint is to be made, is invested with power of
+_binding_ and _loosing_, and that so authoritatively that what by this
+church shall be bound or loosed on earth shall also be bound or loosed
+in heaven, according to Christ's promise. 2. That these acts of
+_binding_ or _loosing_, may be the acts but of two or three, and
+therefore consequently of the eldership of a particular congregation;
+for where such a juridical act was dispatched by a classical presbytery,
+it is said to be done of _many_, 2 Cor. ii. 6, because that in such
+greater presbyteries there are always more than _two or three_. And
+though some do pretend, that the faults here spoken of by our Saviour in
+this place, were injuries, not scandals; and that the church here
+mentioned was not any ecclesiastical consistory, or court, but the civil
+Sanhedrin, a court of civil judicature; and yet most absurdly they
+interpret the binding and loosing here spoken of, to be doctrinal and
+declarative; not juridical and authoritative; as if the doctrinal
+binding and loosing were in the power of the civil Sanhedrin:[107] yet
+all these are but vain, groundless pretences and subterfuges, without
+substance or solidity, as the learned and diligent reader may easily
+find demonstrated by consulting these judicious authors mentioned in the
+foot note,[108] to whom for brevity's sake he is referred for
+satisfaction in these and divers such like particulars.
+
+3. The consideration of the apostolical practice, and state of the
+Church of God in those times, may serve further to clear this matter to
+us. For, 1. We sometimes read of single congregations; and as the Holy
+Ghost doth call the whole body of Christ _the Church_, Matt. xvi. 18, 1
+Cor. xii. 28, and often elsewhere; and the larger particular members of
+that body of Christ (partaking the nature of the whole, as a drop of
+water is as true water as the whole ocean) churches; as, _the church of
+Jerusalem_, Acts viii. 1; _the church of Antioch_, Acts xiii. 1; _the
+church of Ephesus_, Rev. ii. 1; _the church of Corinth_, 2 Cor. i. 1;
+(these being the greater presbyterial churches, as after will appear,
+Chap. XIII.;) so the same holy Spirit of Christ is pleased to style
+single congregations, _churches_, "Let women keep silence in the
+churches," 1 Cor. xiv. 34, i.e. in the single congregations of this one
+church of Corinth: and often mention is made of the church that is in
+such or such an _house_, as Rom. xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19; Col. iv. 15;
+Philem. 2; whether this be interpreted of the church made up only of the
+members of that family, or of the church that ordinarily did meet in
+such houses, it implies a single congregation. Now shall single
+congregations have the name and nature of churches, and shall we imagine
+they had not in them the ordinary standing church officers, viz. pastors
+and teachers, governments, or elders _ruling well_, and helps or
+deacons? or is it probable they were furnished with these officers, and
+yet the officers furnished with no power for the government of these
+single congregations at all? 2. We find that the apostles being crowned
+with such success in their ministry, as to be instruments of converting
+such multitudes to the faith as were sufficient to make up many several
+churches from time to time, did diligently take care to ordain them
+presbyters, or elders _in every church_, Acts xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5. Now
+can it be clearly evidenced by any, that these were not ruling as well
+as preaching presbyters; especially when it appears by other places that
+the primitive churches had both? Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28;
+
+1 Tim. v. 17. Or can we think that the apostles were not as careful to
+erect elderships in several congregations, as to appoint elders?
+otherwise how could the apostles have answered it to their Lord and
+Master Jesus Christ, in leaving them without that necessary provision of
+government, which Christ himself had allowed to them, at least, in some
+cases, as hath been evidenced?
+
+4. Finally, necessity (which is a strong and cogent law) plainly and
+forcibly pleads for elderships in particular congregations endowed with
+authority and power from Christ for government within themselves. For,
+1. How wearisome a thing would it be to all congregations, should every
+one of their members be bound to attend upon synods and greater
+presbyteries, (which in the country are at a great distance from them,)
+in all ecclesiastical matters of judicature, if they had no relief in
+their own congregations? How impossible would it be for the greater
+presbyteries, not only to hear and determine all hard and weighty, but
+also all small and easy causes that would be brought before them? And
+what should become of such a congregation as either voluntarily
+transplants itself, or is accidentally cast among heathens or pagans in
+far countries, where there are no Christians or churches to join and
+associate withal, if they be denied an authoritative presbytery within
+themselves, for preventing and healing of scandals, and preserving
+themselves from destruction and ruin, which anarchy would unavoidably
+bring upon them?
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII.
+
+_Of the Divine Right of Presbyteries, (for distinction's sake called
+Classical Presbyteries,) for the government of the Church._
+
+
+Having spoken of the lesser, viz. congregational elderships, we come now
+to the greater ruling assemblies, which are either presbyterial or
+synodal. And first, of the presbyterial assembly, or classical
+presbytery, viz. an assembly made up of the presbyters of divers
+neighboring single congregations, for governing of all those respective
+congregations in common, whereunto they belong, in all matters of common
+concernment and greater difficulty in the Church. The divine warrant and
+right of this presbytery, and of the power thereof for church
+government, may principally be evidenced, 1. By the light of nature. 2.
+By the light of Scripture, which light of Scripture was followed by the
+Church in the ages after the apostolical times.
+
+I. The light of nature and right reason may discover to us (though more
+dimly) the divine warrant of the greater presbyteries, and of their
+power for the governing of the church. For,
+
+1. There are many ecclesiastical matters which are of common concernment
+to many single congregations, as trial of church officers, ordination
+and deposition of ministers, dispensation of censures, judicial
+determination of controversies, resolution in difficult cases of
+conscience, ordering of things indifferent, &c.; here the rule holds
+well, that which concerns many congregations, is not to be considered
+and determined upon only by one, but those many concerned and interested
+therein.
+
+2. Single congregational elderships stand in need of all mutual help and
+assistance one of another in the Lord, being, 1. Inwardly weak in
+themselves; too prone to be turned out of the way, Heb. xii. 13, Gal. v.
+15, and too feeble for divers great tasks: as examination and ordination
+of ministers, &c., which weakness is healed by association with others
+assisting them. 2. Outwardly opposed by many dangerous and subtle
+adversaries: men as grievous wolves, &c., Acts xx. 28-30; 2 Pet. ii. 1;
+Phil. iii. 2; 1 Tim. iv. 1-7; Eph. iv. 14; devils, 1 Pet. v. 8. In such
+cases two are better than one: "Wo to them that are alone; if they fall,
+who shall take them up?"
+
+3. Such intricate cases may fall out as cannot be determined and settled
+by the eldership of a single congregation. As for instance, some member
+in the congregation may conceive himself so wronged by the eldership
+thereof, that he cannot submit to their unjust sentence; shall he not in
+such case have liberty of appeal from them? If not, then he is left
+without a remedy, (which is the calamity of the Independent government.)
+If he may, whether shall he appeal regularly but to an associated
+presbytery? therefore there must be such a presbytery to appeal unto.
+Again, there may be a controversy betwixt the whole congregation, and
+their presbytery; yea, the presbytery itself may be equally divided
+against itself; yea, one single congregation may have a great and
+weighty contest with another sister congregation, (all single
+congregations being equal in power and authority, none superior, none
+inferior to others.) Now, in these and such like cases, suppose both
+parties be resolute and wilful, and will not yield to any bare moral
+suasion or advice without some superior authority, what healing is left
+in such cases, without the assistance of an authoritative presbytery,
+wherein the whole hath power to regulate all the parts?
+
+4. Single congregations, joined in vicinity and neighborhood to one
+another, should avoid divisions, (which are destructive to all
+societies, as well ecclesiastical as civil,) and maintain peace and
+unity among themselves, (which is conservative to all societies;)
+neither of which, without associated presbyteries, can be firmly and
+durably effected. Both which ought with all diligence to be endeavored.
+For, 1. Peace and unity in the Church are in themselves amiable, and
+ought to be promoted, Psal. cxxxiii. 1, &c.; Eph. iv. 3, 13; 1 Cor. i.
+10. 2. Schisms and divisions are simply evil, and all appearance, cause,
+and occasion thereof, ought carefully to be avoided, 1 Cor. xii. 25;
+Rom. xvi. 17; 1 Thes. iv. 22. 3. All congregations are but as so many
+branches, members, parts of that one church, one body, one family, one
+commonwealth, one kingdom, whereof Christ is Head, Lord, and King; and
+therefore they should communicate together, and harmoniously incorporate
+and associate with one another, (so far as may be,) for the common good,
+peace, unity, and edification of all. See 1 Cor. xii. 12-29; Eph. ii.
+12-16, and iv. 12-14, and v. 23-25.
+
+II. The light of Scripture will hold forth the divine warrant of greater
+presbyteries and their power for church government, far more clearly
+than the light of nature. Forasmuch as we find in the Scriptures a
+pattern of these greater presbyteries, and of their presbyterial
+government over divers single congregations in common in the primitive
+apostolical churches. For the greater evidence and perspicuity hereof,
+take this proposition:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern of
+presbyterial government in common over divers single congregations in
+one Church, for a rule to his Church in all after ages. For confirmation
+hereof, there are chiefly these three positions to make good, which are
+comprised in this proposition, viz: 1. That there is in the word a
+pattern of divers single congregations in one church. 2. That there is
+in the word a pattern of one presbyterial government in common over
+divers single congregations in one church. 3. Finally, that the pattern
+of the said presbyterial government, is for a rule to the churches of
+Christ in all after ages.
+
+
+POSITION I.
+
+That there is in the word a pattern of divers single congregations in
+one church, may be plentifully evinced by four instances of churches,
+(to mention no more,) viz. the churches of Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus,
+and Corinth. Touching which four these two things are clear in the
+Scripture, viz: 1. That every of them was one church. 2. That in every
+one of these churches there were more congregations than one. Both which
+will fully evince a pattern of divers single congregations in one church
+held forth in the word.
+
+1. The former of these, viz. That every one of these was one church,
+may be proved by induction of particulars. 1. All the believers in
+Jerusalem were one church; hence they are often comprised under the word
+church, of the singular number:--"Against the church which was at
+Jerusalem," Acts viii. 1. "Then tidings of these things came unto the
+ears of the church which was in Jerusalem," Acts ii. 22. "And when they
+were come to Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the
+apostles and elders," Acts xv. 4. 2. All the believers in Antioch were
+one church. "Now there were in the church that was at Antioch, certain
+prophets," Acts xiii. 1. "And when he had found him, he brought him to
+Antioch. And it came to pass, that a whole year they assembled
+themselves with the church, and taught much people, and the disciples
+were first called Christians in Antioch," Acts xi. 26. 3. All the
+believers in Ephesus were one church: "And from Miletus he sent to
+Ephesus, and called the elders of the church," Acts xx. 17. And after he
+gives them this charge, "Take heed therefore to yourselves, and to all
+the flock, over which the Holy Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed
+the church of God," ver. 28; all were but _one flock, one church_. "Unto
+the angel of the church of Ephesus, write," Rev. ii. 1. 4. All the
+believers in Corinth were one church, and comprised under that singular
+word, church: "Unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 1 Cor. i. 2.
+"Paul, an apostle of Jesus Christ, by the will of God, and Timothy our
+brother, unto the church of God which is at Corinth," 2 Cor. i. 1. Thus
+in all these four instances it is clear beyond all contradiction, that
+they were every of them respectively one church.
+
+The latter of these, viz. that these primitive apostolical churches of
+Jerusalem, Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, were not every of them
+severally and respectively only one single congregation, (as some
+imagine,) but consisted every of them of more congregations than one.
+This shall be manifested in these four churches severally, as followeth:
+
+The church of Jerusalem in Judea contained in it more congregations than
+one. This may be convincingly evidenced divers ways, particularly from,
+1. The multitude of believers in that church. 2. The multitude of church
+officers there. 3. The variety of languages there. 4. The manner of the
+Christians' public meetings in those primitive times, both in the church
+of Jerusalem, and in other churches.
+
+1. From the multitude of believers in the church of Jerusalem. For it is
+palpably evident to any impartial reader that will not wilfully shut his
+eyes, and subject his reason unto the groundless dictates of men,
+against the clear light of the Scripture, that there were more believers
+in the church of Jerusalem, than could ordinarily meet in one
+congregation, to partake of all the ordinances of Christ.
+
+And this may fully appear by these many instances following. 1. Christ
+after his resurrection, and before his ascension, "was seen of above
+five hundred brethren at once," 1 Cor. xv. 6. 2. "After that of James,
+then of all the apostles," ver. 7. 3. At the election of Matthias, and
+before Christ's ascension, there were disciples together, the "company
+of their names together was as it were one hundred and twenty," Acts i.
+15. 4. At Peter's sermon, "they that gladly received his word, were
+baptized. And that day were added about three thousand souls," Acts ii.
+1, 4. 5. And "The Lord added to the Church daily such as should be
+saved," ver. 27. 6. Afterwards at another of Peter's sermons, "Many of
+them that heard the word believed; and the number of the men was about
+five thousand," Acts iv. 4. 7. After that, "Believers were the more
+added to the Lord, multitudes both of men and women," Acts v. 14. 8.
+Furthermore, the disciples multiplying, and the work of the ministry
+thereupon much increasing, the apostles were necessitated to appoint
+seven deacons for serving of tables, that they might wholly "give
+themselves to the ministry of the word and prayer," Acts vi. 1 to 7;
+whence some have thought, that there were seven congregations in
+Jerusalem, a deacon for every one. Certainly there were rather more than
+fewer, (saith the author of the Assertion of the Government of the
+Church of Scotland,[109]) though we cannot determine how many. However
+this, the Holy Ghost clearly testifieth that "The word of God increased,
+and the number of the disciples in Jerusalem multiplied greatly." 9.
+"And a great company of the priests became obedient to the faith," Acts
+vi. 7; and probably the example of the priests drew on multitudes to the
+Gospel. All these forementioned were in a short time converted, and
+became members of this one church of Jerusalem, and that before the
+dispersion occasioned by the persecution of the Church, Acts viii. 1.
+Now should we put all these together, viz. both the number of believers
+expressed in particular, which is 8,620, and the multitudes so often
+expressed in the general, (which, for aught we know, might be many more
+than the former,) what a vast multitude of believers was there in
+Jerusalem! and how impossible was it for them to meet all together in
+one congregation, to partake of all the ordinances of Jesus Christ! 10.
+In like manner, after the dispersion forementioned, the word so
+prospered, and the disciples brought into the faith by it, so
+multiplied, that it was still far more impossible for all the believers
+in the church of Jerusalem to meet in one congregation to partake of
+all the ordinances of Christ, than before. For it is said, "Then had the
+churches rest throughout all Judea" (and the church of Jerusalem in
+Judea was doubtless one of those churches) "and Galilee and Samaria, and
+were edified; and walking in the fear of the Lord, and comfort of the
+Holy Ghost, were multiplied." 11. Again, "the word of the Lord increased
+and multiplied," Acts xii. 24. 12. Furthermore, when Paul, with other
+disciples, his fellow-travellers, came to Jerusalem, and "declared to
+James and the elders, what things God had wrought by his ministry among
+the Gentiles--They glorified the Lord, and said unto him, Thou seest,
+brother, how many" myriads (or ten thousands) "of believing Jews there
+are, and they are all zealous of the law"--Acts xxi. 20. Our translation
+seems herein very defective, rendering it how many thousands; whereas it
+should be, according to the Greek, how many ten thousands: and these
+myriads seem to be in the church of Jerusalem, seeing it is said of
+them, ver. 22, "The multitude must needs come together, for they will
+hear that thou art come." Now considering this emphatical expression,
+not only _thousands_, but _ten thousand_: not _only ten thousand_ in the
+singular number, but _ten thousands, myriads_, in the plural number: nor
+only _myriads, ten thousands_, in the plural number, but _how many ten
+thousands_; we cannot in reason imagine but there were at least three
+ten thousands, viz: thirty thousand believers, and how all they should
+meet together in one congregation for all ordinances, let the reader
+judge. Thus far of the proof, from the multitude of believers in the
+church of Jerusalem.
+
+_Except_. But the five thousand mentioned Acts iv. 4, are no new number
+added to the three thousand, but the three thousand included in the five
+thousand, as Calvin and Beza think.
+
+_Ans_. 1. Then it is granted that five thousand one hundred and twenty,
+besides an innumerable addition of converts, were in Jerusalem; which if
+such a number, and multitudes besides, could for edification meet in one
+place, to partake of all the ordinances, let the reader judge.
+
+2. Though Calvin and Beza think the three thousand formerly converted to
+be included in this number of five thousand, Acts iv. 4, yet divers both
+ancient and modern interpreters are of another mind, as Augustine. There
+came unto the body of the Lord in number three thousand faithful men;
+also by another miracle wrought, there came other five thousand.[110]
+These five thousand are altogether diverse from the three thousand
+converted at the first sermon: so Lorinus, Aretius, and divers others.
+
+3. Besides a great number of testimonies, there are reasons to induce us
+to believe, that the three thousand are not included in the five
+thousand, viz: 1. As the three thousand mentioned in Acts ii. 41, did
+not comprehend the one hundred and twenty mentioned Acts i. 15, so it
+holds in proportion that the three thousand mentioned there, are not
+comprehended here in Acts iv. 4. Besides, 2. This sermon was not by
+intention to the church, or numbers already converted, but by occasion
+of the multitude flocking together to behold the miracle Peter and John
+wrought on the "man that was lame from his mother's womb;" as Acts iii.
+10-12; so that 'tis more than probable that the five thousand mentioned
+Acts iv. 4, are a number superadded besides the three thousand already
+converted.
+
+_Except_. But suppose such a number as three thousand, and afterwards
+five thousand were converted in Jerusalem, yet these remained not
+constant members of that Church, for the three thousand were not
+dwellers at Jerusalem, but strangers who came out of all countries to
+keep the feast of Pentecost: yea, Acts ii. 9, they are said expressly to
+be "dwellers of Mesopotamia, Cappadocia," &c., and so might erect
+churches where they came.
+
+_Ans_. 1. 'Tis said, Acts ii. 14, "Peter standing" (when he began to
+preach this sermon wherein the three thousand were converted) "said, Ye
+men of Judea, and all ye that dwell at Jerusalem, hearken to my voice;"
+intimating that these he preached to dwelt at Jerusalem.
+
+But grant that some of these men that heard Peter's sermon were formerly
+dwellers in Mesopotamia and Cappadocia, what hinders but that they might
+be now dwellers at Jerusalem?
+
+3. The occasion of their coming up to Jerusalem at this time was not
+only the observation of the feast of Pentecost, (which lasted but a
+day,) but also the great expectation that the people of the Jews then
+had of the appearance of the Messiah in his kingdom, as we may collect
+from Luke xix. 11, where it is said, "They thought the kingdom of God
+should immediately appear;" so that now they might choose to take up
+their dwellings at Jerusalem, and not return, as they had been wont, at
+the end of their usual feasts.
+
+4. The Holy Ghost makes mention that in the particular places mentioned,
+ver. 9, 10, that of all those nations there were some that dwelt at
+Jerusalem; read Acts ii. 5, "There were dwelling at Jerusalem Jews,
+devout men out of every nation under heaven;" if out of every nation,
+then out of those nations there specified; and even there dwelling at
+Jerusalem. 5. Those who were scattered by reason of persecution into
+Judea and Samaria, and other parts of the world, did not erect new
+churches, but were still members of that one church in Jerusalem; so
+saith the Scripture expressly, that "they" (of the church of Jerusalem)
+"were all scattered abroad throughout the region of Judea and Samaria,"
+Acts viii. 1.
+
+_Except_. Although it should be granted that before the dispersion
+mentioned Acts viii. 1, 2, the number was so great that they could not
+meet together in one place, yet the persecution so wasted and scattered
+them all, that there were no more left than might meet in one
+congregation?
+
+_Ans_. After the dispersion there were more believers in Jerusalem than
+could meet together in one place for all acts of worship, as appears by
+Acts ix. 31, "The churches had rest throughout all Judea," &c., "and
+were multiplied;" Acts xii. 24, "The word of God grew and multiplied;"
+and Acts xxi. 20, James saith of the believers of this church, "how many
+thousands of the Jews there are which believe, and are zealous of the
+law;" or, as it is in the Greek, thou seest how many _ten thousands_
+there are of the Jews which believe; this text will evince, that there
+were many thousands in the church of Jerusalem after the dispersion, as
+hath been observed: and if this number were not more after the
+dispersion than could meet together to partake of all ordinances, let
+the reader judge.
+
+_Except_. But the text saith expressly, all were scattered except the
+apostles.
+
+_Ans_. _All_ must be understood either of all the believers, or all the
+teachers and church officers in the church of Jerusalem, except
+believers; but it cannot be understood of all the believers that they
+were scattered: and therefore it must be understood that all the
+teachers and church officers were scattered, except the apostles. That
+all the believers were not scattered will easily appear: For, 1. 'Tis
+said that Paul broke into houses, "haling men and women, committed them
+to prison," ver. 3, and this he did in Jerusalem, Acts xxvi. 10;
+therefore all could not be scattered. 2. "They that were scattered,
+preached the word," ver. 4, which all the members, men and women, could
+not do; therefore by all that were scattered must of necessity be meant,
+not the body of believers in the church, but only the officers of the
+church. 3. If all the believers were scattered, to what end did the
+apostles tarry at Jerusalem--to preach to the walls? this we cannot
+imagine.
+
+_Except_. But can any think the teachers were scattered, and the
+ordinary believers were not, except we suppose the people more
+courageous to stay by it than their teachers?
+
+_Ans_. It is hard to say, that those that are scattered in a
+persecution, are less courageous than those that stay and suffer. In the
+time of the bishops' tyranny, many of the Independent ministers did
+leave this kingdom, while others of their brethren did abide by it,
+endured the heat and burden of the day, "had trial of cruel mockings,
+bonds and imprisonments:" now the Independent ministers that left us,
+would think we did them wrong, should we say that they were less
+courageous than those that stayed behind, enduring the hot brunt of
+persecution.
+
+II. From the multitude of church officers in Jerusalem, it may further
+appear, that there were more congregations than one in the church of
+Jerusalem. For there were many apostles, prophets, and elders in this
+church of Jerusalem, as is plain, if we consider these following
+passages in the Acts of the Apostles. After Christ's ascension, "the
+eleven apostles returned to Jerusalem, and continued in prayer and
+supplication," Acts i. 12-14. Matthias chosen by lot, was also "numbered
+with the eleven apostles," Acts i. 26. "And when the day of Pentecost
+was fully come, they were all with one accord in one place," Acts ii. 1.
+"Peter standing up with the eleven, lift up his voice and said," Acts
+ii. 14. "They were pricked in their heart, and said to Peter and to the
+rest of the apostles, Men and brethren, what shall we do?" Acts ii. 37.
+"And the same day there were added about three thousand souls, and they
+continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine and fellowship, and in
+breaking of bread, and in prayers," Acts ii. 42. "And with great power
+gave the apostles witness of the resurrection of the Lord Jesus," Acts
+iv. 33. "As many as were possessors of lands or houses, sold them, and
+brought the prices of the things that were sold, and laid them down at
+the apostles' feet," Acts iv. 34, 35, 37. "Then the twelve called the
+multitude of the disciples to them," Acts vi. 2. "Now, when the apostles
+which were at Jerusalem," Acts viii. 14. "They determined that Paul and
+Barnabas and certain other of them should go up to Jerusalem unto the
+apostles and elders about this question. And when they were come to
+Jerusalem, they were received of the church, and of the apostles and
+elders; and the apostles and elders came together," Acts xv. 2, 4, 6,
+22, 23; xi. 30. And "in those days came prophets from Jerusalem unto
+Antioch," Acts xi. 27. In all which places, the multitude of apostles,
+elders, and prophets in this church of Jerusalem is evident. And it is
+further observable, that the apostles devolved the serving of tables
+upon the seven deacons, that they might wholly "give themselves to
+prayer and the ministry of the word," Acts vi, 2; which needed not, nor
+would there have been full employment for the apostles, if there had
+not been divers congregations in that one church of Jerusalem.
+
+_Except_. 'Tis true, the apostles were for a time in Jerusalem, yet when
+in Judea or elsewhere any received the gospel, the apostles went abroad
+to erect other churches.
+
+_Ans_. Touching the apostles going abroad, there can be given but one
+instance, Acts viii. 14, where the whole twelve went not forth, but only
+two were sent, viz. Peter and John: but suppose it were granted, that
+upon some special occasions the apostles went out from Jerusalem, can it
+be imagined that the apostles' ordinary abode would be at Jerusalem, to
+attend only one single congregation, as if that would fill all their
+hands with work?
+
+_Except_. The apostles were well employed when they met in an upper
+room, and had but one hundred and twenty for their flock, and this for
+forty days together; now if they stayed in Jerusalem when they had but
+one hundred and twenty, and yet had their hands filled with work, the
+presence of the apostles argues not more congregations in Jerusalem than
+could meet in one place for all acts of worship.
+
+_Ans_. 1. From Christ's ascension (immediately after which they went up
+to the upper chamber) to the feast of Pentecost, there were but ten
+days, not forty; so that there is one mistake.
+
+2. During that time betwixt Christ's ascension and the feast of
+Pentecost, (whether ten or forty days is not very material,) the
+apostles were especially taken up in prayer and supplication, waiting
+for the promise of the Spirit to qualify them for the work of the
+ministry: now, because the twelve apostles, before they had received the
+extraordinary gifts of the Spirit, did continue for a short time in
+Jerusalem with a small number in prayer, will it therefore follow that
+after they had received these extraordinary gifts, that they were bound
+up within the limits of one single congregation?
+
+_Except_. The argument that there were many teachers in Jerusalem,
+proves not that there were more congregations in Jerusalem than one,
+because there were then many gifted men, which were not officers, which
+yet occasionally instructed others, as Aquila did Apollos; therefore it
+seems they were only gifted persons, not officers.
+
+_Ans_. 1. Grant that in those times there were many gifted men, not in
+office, which might occasionally instruct others, as Aquila did Apollos;
+yet it is further to be noted, that,
+
+2. This instructing must be either private, or public; if private only,
+then the objection is of no force, (because these teachers instructed
+publicly;) if in public, then if this objection were of force, it would
+follow, that women might instruct publicly, because Priscilla, as well
+as Aquila, instructed Apollos.
+
+3. The current of expositors say, that the seventy disciples were at
+Jerusalem among the one hundred and twenty, Acts i. 16, who were
+teachers by office.
+
+III. From the variety of languages among the disciples at Jerusalem, it
+is evident there were more congregations than one in that one church:
+the diversity of languages among them is plainly mentioned in divers
+places, "And there were dwelling at Jerusalem, Jews, devout men out of
+every nation under heaven. Now every man heard them speak in his own
+language," &c., Acts ii. 5, 8-12. Now, of those that heard this variety
+of languages, and Peter's sermon thereupon, "They that gladly received
+his word, were baptized, and the same day there were added about three
+thousand souls," Acts ii. 41, which diversity of languages necessitated
+those members of the church of Jerusalem to enjoy the ordinances in
+divers distinct congregations in their own language. And that they might
+so do, the Spirit furnished the apostles, &c., with diversity of
+languages, which diversity of languages were as well for edification of
+them within the Church, as for a sign to them that were without.
+
+_Except_. Though the Jews being dispersed were come in from other
+countries, yet they were all generally learned, and understood the
+Hebrew tongue, the language of their own nation, so that diversity of
+tongues proves not, that of necessity there must be distinct places to
+meet in.
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is easier said than proved, that the Jews were so generally
+skilled in the Hebrew tongue, when, while they were scattered in Media
+and Parthia, and other places, they had no universities or schools of
+learning. Besides, it is not to be forgotten, that the proper language
+or dialect in those days in use among the Jews was Syriac; as appears by
+divers instances of Syriac words in the New Testament, as of the Jews'
+own terms: Acts i. 19, which "in their proper tongue, is called
+Aceldama;" John xix. 13. 17, _Gabbatha, Golgotha_, &c.; Mark xv. 34,
+_Eloi, Eloi, lama-sabachthani_; with divers other pure Syriac terms.
+Grant they did; yet,
+
+2. There were in Jerusalem proselytes also, Romans, Cappadocians,
+Cretians, and Arabians, Acts ii. 10, 11; how could they be edified in
+the faith, if only one congregation, where nothing but Hebrew was
+spoken, met in Jerusalem; if so be there were not other congregations
+for men of other languages, that understood not the Hebrew tongue?
+
+IV. From the manner of Christians' public meetings in those primitive
+times, both in the church of Jerusalem and in other churches. It is
+plain that the multitudes of Christians in Jerusalem, and other
+churches, could not possibly meet all together in one single
+congregation, inasmuch as they had no public temples, or capacious
+places for worship and partaking of all ordinances, (as we now have,)
+but private places, _houses, chambers_, or _upper rooms_, (as the
+unsettled state of the Church and troublesomeness of those times would
+permit,) which in all probability were of no great extent, nor any way
+able to contain in them so many thousand believers at once, as there
+were: "They met from house to house, to break bread," Acts ii. 46. "In
+an upper room the apostles with the women and brethren continued in
+prayer and supplication," Acts i. 12-14. We read of their meetings in
+the _house of Mary_, Acts xii. 12. In the school _of one Tyrannus_, Acts
+xix. 9. In an _upper chamber at Troas_, Acts xx. 8. In _Paul's own hired
+house_ at Rome, Acts xxviii. 30, 31. In the _house of Aquila and
+Priscilla_, where the church met, therefore called the _church in his
+house_, Rom. xvi. 5; 1 Cor. xvi. 19. In the _house of Nimphas_, Col. iv.
+15, and in the _house of Archippus_, Philem. 2. This was their manner of
+public meetings in the apostles' times: which also continued in the next
+ages, as saith Eusebius,[111] till, by indulgence of succeeding
+emperors, they had large churches, houses of public meeting erected for
+them.
+
+To sum up all: 1. There were in the church at Jerusalem greater numbers
+of believers than could possibly meet at once to partake of all Christ's
+ordinances. 2. There were more church officers than one single
+congregation could need, or than could be fully employed therein, unless
+we will say, that they preached but seldom. 3. There was such diversity
+of languages among them, that they must needs rank themselves into
+several congregations, according to their languages, else he that spoke
+in one language to hearers of many several languages, would be a
+barbarian to them, and they to him. 4. Finally, their places of ordinary
+meeting were private, of small extent, incapable of containing so many
+thousands at once as there were believers; and by all these, how evident
+is it, that there must needs be granted that there were more
+congregations than one in this one church of Jerusalem!
+
+II. The church of Antioch, in Syria, consisted also of more
+congregations than one. This appears,
+
+1. From the multitude of believers at Antioch. For, 1. After the
+dispersion upon Saul's persecution, _the Lord Jesus was preached at
+Antioch, and a great number believed_, &c., Acts xi. 21. 2. Upon
+_Barnabas's_ preaching there, _much people was added to the Lord_, Acts
+xi. 24. 3. _Barnabas_ and _Saul_ for a year together taught much people
+there, and disciples there so mightily multiplied, that there Christ's
+disciples first received the eminent and famous denomination of
+CHRISTIANS, and so were and still are called throughout the whole world,
+Acts xi. 25, 26.
+
+2. From the multitudes of prophets and preachers that ministered at
+Antioch. For, 1. Upon the dispersion of the Jews at Jerusalem, _divers
+of them (being men of Cyprus and Cyrene) preached the Lord Jesus at
+Antioch_, Acts xi. 20; here must be three or four preachers at least,
+otherwise they would not be _men of Cyprus and Cyrene_. 2. After this
+_Barnabas_ was sent to preach at Antioch; there is a fifth, Acts xi.
+22-24. 3. _Barnabas_ finds so much work at _Antioch_, that he goes to
+Tarsus to bring _Saul_ thither to help him; there is a sixth, ver. 25,
+26. 4. Besides these, _there came prophets from Jerusalem to Antioch in
+those days_; there are at least two more, viz. eight in all, Acts xi.
+27, 28. 4. Further, besides _Barnabas_ and _Saul_, three more teachers
+are named, viz. _Simon called Niger, Lucius of Cyrene, and Manaen_, Acts
+xii. 1-3. 6. Yea, "Paul and Barnabas continued in Antioch, teaching and
+preaching the word of the Lord, with many others also," Acts xv. 35. Now
+sum up all, what a multitude of believers, and what a college of
+preachers were here at Antioch! How is it possible that all these
+preachers should bustle themselves about one congregation (and doubtless
+they abhorred idleness) in dispensing the ordinances of Christ to them
+only? or how could so many members meet in one single congregation at
+once, ordinarily to partake of all ordinances?
+
+III. The church of Ephesus (_in Asia Minor_, Acts xix. 22) had in it
+more congregations than one: For,
+
+1. The number of prophets and preachers at Ephesus were many. _Paul_
+continued there _two years and three months_, Acts xix. 8, 10; and
+_Paul_ settled there about twelve _disciples who prophesied_, Acts xix.
+1, 6, 7. And how should these thirteen ministers be employed, if there
+were not many congregations? Compare also Acts xx. 17, 28, 36, 37, where
+it is said of the bishops of Ephesus, that "Paul kneeled down and prayed
+with them all, and they all wept sore." Here is a good number implied.
+
+2. The gift of tongues also was given unto all these twelve prophets,
+Acts xix. 6, 7. To what end, if they had not several congregations of
+several languages, to speak in these several tongues unto them?
+
+3. The multitude of believers must needs be great at Ephesus: For, 1.
+Why should _Paul_, who had universal commission to plant churches in all
+the world, stay _above two years together_ at Ephesus if no more had
+been converted there than to make up one single congregation? Acts xix.
+8, 10. 2. During this space, "all that dwelt in Asia," usually meeting
+at Ephesus for worship, "heard the word of the Lord, both Jews and
+Greeks," Acts xix. 10. 3. At the knowledge of _Paul's_ miracles, "fear
+fell upon all the Jews and Greeks dwelling at Ephesus, and the name of
+the Lord Jesus was magnified," Acts xix. 17. 4. _Many_ of the believers
+_came and confessed, and showed their deeds_, ver. 18, whereby is
+intimated that more did believe than did thus. 5. "Many also of them
+that used curious arts brought their books together, and burned them
+before all men, and they counted the price of them, and found it fifty
+thousand pieces of silver," (this they would never have done publicly if
+the major part, or at least a very great and considerable part of the
+city, had not embraced the faith, that city being so furiously zealous
+in their superstition and idolatry,) "so mightily grew the word of God,
+and prevailed," Acts xix. 19, 20. 6. _Paul_ testifies that at Ephesus _a
+great door and effectual was open unto him_, viz. a most advantageous
+opportunity of bringing in a mighty harvest of souls to Christ, 1 Cor.
+xvi. 8, 9. Put all together, 1. The number of prophets and preachers; 2.
+The gifts of tongues conferred upon those prophets; and, 3. The
+multitude of believers which so abounded at Ephesus: how is it possible
+to imagine, upon any solid ground, that there was no more but one single
+congregation in the church of Ephesus?
+
+IV. The church of Corinth in Graecia comprised in it also more
+congregations than one, as may be justly concluded from, 1. The
+multitude of believers. 2. The plenty of ministers. 3. The diversity of
+tongues and languages. 4. And the plurality of churches at Corinth. Let
+all these be well compared together.
+
+1. From the multitude of believers. There appears to be a greater number
+of believers at Corinth than could all at once meet together to partake
+of all the ordinances of Christ: For, 1. At Paul's first coming to
+Corinth, and at his first sermon preached in the house of Justus, it is
+said, "And Crispus, the chief ruler of the synagogue, believed on the
+Lord, and all his house, and many of the Corinthians hearing, believed
+and were baptized," Acts xviii. 1, 7, 8. Here is Crispus and all his
+house, (which probably was very great, he being the chief ruler of the
+synagogue,) and _many of the Corinthians, believing_; an excellent
+first-fruits; for who can justly say but Paul at his first sermon
+converted so many as might be sufficient to make up one single
+congregation? 2. Immediately after this (Paul having shook his raiment
+against the Jews, who, contrary to his doctrine, opposed themselves and
+blasphemed; and having said unto them, "Your blood be upon your own
+heads, I am clean: from henceforth I will go unto the Gentiles," Acts
+xviii. 6) the Lord comforts Paul against the obstinacy of the Jews by
+the success his ministry should have among the Gentiles in the city of
+Corinth: "Then spake the Lord to Paul in the night by a vision, Be not
+afraid, but speak, and hold not thy peace: for I am with thee, and no
+man shall set on thee to hurt thee: for I have much people in this
+city," Acts xviii. 9, 10. _Much people_ belonging to God, according to
+his secret predestination, over and besides those that already were
+actually his by effectual vocation. And _much people_, in respect of the
+Jews that opposed and blasphemed, (who were exceeding many,) otherwise
+it would have been but small comfort to Paul if by _much people_ should
+be meant no more than could meet at once in one small single
+congregation. 3. Paul himself continued at Corinth "a year and six
+months teaching the word of God among them," Acts xviii. 11. To what end
+should Paul the apostle of the Gentiles stay so long in one place, if he
+had not seen the Lord's blessing upon his ministry, to bring into the
+faith many more souls than would make up one congregation, having so
+much work to do far and near? 4. "They that believed at Corinth were
+baptized," Acts xviii. 8. (Baptism admitted them into that one body of
+the Church, 1 Cor. xii. 13.) Some were baptized by Paul, (though but few
+in comparison of the number of believers among them: compare Acts xviii.
+8, with 1 Cor. 14-17,) the generality consequently were baptized by
+other ministers there, and that in other congregations wherein Paul
+preached not, as well as in such wherein Paul preached; it being
+unreasonable to deny the being of divers congregations for the word and
+sacraments to be dispensed in, himself dispensing the sacrament of
+baptism to so few.
+
+2. From the plenty of ministers and preachers in the church of Corinth,
+it is evident it was a presbyterial church, and not only a single
+congregation; for to what end should there be many laborers in a little
+harvest, many teachers over one single congregation? &c. That there were
+many preachers at Corinth is plain: For, 1. Paul himself was the
+master-builder there that laid the foundation of that church, 1 Cor.
+iii. 10, their spiritual father; "In Christ Jesus I have begotten you
+through the gospel," 1 Cor. iv. 15. And he stayed with them _one year
+and a half_, Acts xviii. II. 2. While the apostle sharply taxeth them as
+guilty of schism and division for their carnal crying up of their
+several teachers: some doting upon one, some upon another, some upon a
+third, &c. "Every one of you saith, I am of Paul, and I of Apollos, and
+I of Cephas, and I of Christ," 1 Cor. i. 12. Doth not this intimate that
+they had plenty of preachers, and these preachers had their several
+followers, so prizing some of them as to undervalue the rest? and was
+this likely to be without several congregations into which they were
+divided? 3. When the apostle saith, "Though ye have ten thousand
+instructors in Christ, yet have ye not many fathers," 1 Cor. v. 15;
+though his words be hyperbolical, yet they imply that they had great
+store of teachers and preachers. 4. We have mention of many prophets in
+the church of Corinth: "Let the prophets speak two or three, and let the
+other judge--And the spirits of the prophets are subject to the
+prophets," 1 Cor. xiv. 20, 31. Here are _prophets_ speaking _two or
+three_; and prophets judging of their doctrine, which sure were more
+than they that were judged; it being unreasonable for the minor part to
+pass judgement upon the major part. And though these prophets had
+extraordinary gifts, (as the church of Corinth excelled all other
+churches in gifts, 1 Cor. i. 7,) and were able to preach in an
+extraordinary singular way; yet were they the ordinary pastors and
+ministers of that church of Corinth, as the whole current of this
+fourteenth chapter evidenceth, wherein so many rules and directions,
+aptly agreeing to ordinary pastors, are imposed upon them for the well
+ordering of their ministerial exercises. Now, where there were so many
+pastors, were there not several congregations for them to feed? Or were
+they idle, neglecting the exercise and improvement of their talents?
+
+3. From the diversity of tongues and languages, wherein the church did
+eminently excel. "In every thing ye are enriched by him, in all
+utterance, and in all knowledge--So that you come behind in no gift,"
+&c., i.e., ye excel in every gift, more being intended than is
+expressed, 1 Cor. i. 5, 7. Among other gifts some of them excelled in
+tongues which they spake, the right use of which gift of tongues the
+apostle doth at large lay down, 1 Cor. xiv. 2, 4-6, 13, 14, 18, 19, 23,
+26, 27. "If any speak in _an unknown_ tongue let it be by two, or at the
+most by three, and that by course, and let one interpret." So that there
+were many endued with gifts of tongues in that church. To what end? Not
+only for a _sign to unbelievers_, ver. 22, but also for edification of
+divers congregations, of divers tongues and languages within that church
+of Corinth.
+
+4. From the plurality of churches mentioned in reference to this church
+of Corinth. For the apostle regulating their public assemblies and their
+worship there, saith to the church of Corinth, "Let your women keep
+silence in the churches." It is not said, in the _church_, in the
+singular number; but in the _churches_, in the plural; and this of the
+_churches in Corinth_, for it is said, _Let your women_, &c., not
+indefinitely, _Let women_, &c. So that according to the plain letter of
+the words, here are churches in the church of Corinth, viz. a plurality
+of single congregations in this one presbyterial church. And this
+plurality of churches in the church of Corinth is the more confirmed if
+we take the church of Cenchrea (which is a harbor or seaport to
+Corinth) to be comprised within the church of Corinth, as some learned
+authors do conceive it may.[112]
+
+
+POSITION II.
+
+That there is in the word of Christ a pattern of one presbyterial
+government in common over divers single congregations in one church.
+This may be evidenced by these following considerations: For,
+
+1. Divers single congregations are called one church, as hath at large
+been proved in the second position immediately foregoing; inasmuch as
+all the believers in Jerusalem are counted one church: yet those
+believers are more in number than could meet for all ordinances in any
+one single congregation. And why are divers congregations styled one
+church? 1. Not in regard of that oneness of heart and soul which was
+among them, "having all things common," &c., Acts iv. 32. For these
+affections and actions of kindness belonged to them by the law of
+brotherhood and Christian charity to one another, (especially
+considering the then present condition of believers,) rather than by any
+special ecclesiastical obligation, because they were members of such a
+church. 2. Not in regard of any explicit church covenant, knitting them
+in one body. For we find neither name nor thing, print nor footstep of
+any such thing as a church covenant in the church of Jerusalem, nor in
+any other primitive apostolical church in all the New Testament; and to
+impose an explicit church covenant upon the saints as a necessary
+constituting form of a true visible Church of Christ, and without which
+it is no Church, is a mere human invention, without all solid warrant
+from the word of God. 3. Not in regard of the ministration of the word,
+sacraments, prayers, &c. For these ordinances were dispensed in their
+single congregations severally, it being impossible that such multitudes
+of believers should meet all in one congregation, to partake of them
+jointly, (as hath been evidenced.) 4. But in regard of one joint
+administration of church government among them, by one common
+presbytery, or college of elders, associated for that end. From this one
+way of church government, by one presbytery in common, all the believers
+in Jerusalem, and so in other cities respectively, were counted but one
+church. 2. In every such presbyterial church made up of divers single
+congregations, there were ecclesiastical ruling officers, which are
+counted or called the officers of that church, but never counted or
+called governors, elders, &c., of any one single congregation therein;
+as in the church of Jerusalem, Acts xi. 27, 30, and xv. 2: of Antioch,
+compare Acts xiii. 1-3, with xv. 35: of Ephesus, Acts xx. 17, 28: and of
+the church of Corinth, 1 Cor. i. 12, and iv. 15, and xiv. 29.
+
+3. The officers of such presbyterial churches met together for acts of
+church government: as, to take charge of the church's goods, and of the
+due distribution thereof, Acts iv. 35, 37, and xi. 30: to ordain,
+appoint, and send forth church officers, Acts vi. 2, 3, 6, and xiii. 1,
+3: to excommunicate notorious offenders, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5, 7, 13, compared
+with 2 Cor. ii. 6: and to restore again penitent persons to church
+communion, 2 Cor. ii. 7-9.
+
+_Except_. Receiving of alms is no act of government.
+
+_Ans_. True, the bare receiving of alms is no act of government, but the
+ordering and appointing how it shall be best improved and disposed of,
+cannot be denied to be an act of government, and for this did the elders
+meet together, Acts xi. 30.
+
+4. The apostles themselves, in their joint acts of government in such
+churches, acted as ordinary officers, viz. as presbyters or elders. This
+is much to be observed, and may be evidenced as followeth: for, 1. None
+of their acts of church government can at all be exemplary or obligatory
+upon us, if they were not presbyterial, but merely apostolical; if they
+acted therein not as ordinary presbyters, but as extraordinary apostles.
+For what acts they dispatched merely as apostles, none may meddle withal
+but only apostles. 2. As they were apostles, so they were presbyters,
+and so they style themselves, "The elder to the elect lady," 2 John i.
+"The elders which are among you I exhort," saith Peter, "who am also an
+elder," (i.e. who am a fellow-elder, or co-presbyter,) 1 Pet. v. 1;
+wherein he ranks himself among ordinary presbyters, which had been
+improper, unless he had discharged the offices and acts of an ordinary
+presbyter. 3. Their acts were such, for substance, as ordinary
+presbyters do perform, as preaching and prayer, Acts vi. 4: ordaining of
+officers, Acts vi. 6, and xiv. 23: dispensing of the sacraments, 1 Cor.
+i. 14; Acts ii. 42, and xx. 7: and of church censures, 1 Cor. v. 4, 5,
+compared with 1 Tim. v. ver. 1, ult.: which acts of government, and such
+like, were committed by Christ to them, and to ordinary presbyters
+(their successors) to the end of the world; compare Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 17, 18, to the end, and John xx. 21, 23, with Matt. xxviii.
+18-20. 4. They acted not only as ordinary elders, but also they acted
+jointly with other elders, being associated with them in the same
+assembly, as in that eminent synod at Jerusalem, Acts xv. 6, 22, 23, and
+xvi. 4, "And as they went through cities, they delivered them the
+decrees for to keep, that were ordained of the apostles and elders which
+were at Jerusalem." 5. And, finally, they took in the church's consent
+with themselves, wherein it was needful, as in the election and
+appointment of deacons, Acts vi. 2, 3. 6. The deacons being specially to
+be trusted with the church's goods, and the disposal thereof, according
+to the direction of the presbytery, for the good of the church, &c.
+
+Let all these considerations be impartially balanced in the scales of
+indifferent unprejudiced judgments; and how plainly do they delineate in
+the word, a pattern of one presbyterial government in common over divers
+single congregations within one church!
+
+_Except_. The apostles' power over many congregations was founded upon
+their power over all churches; and so cannot be a pattern for the power
+of elders over many.
+
+_Ans_. 1. The apostles' power over many congregations as one church, to
+govern them all as one church jointly and in common, was not founded
+upon their power over all churches, but upon the union of those
+congregations into one church; which union lays a foundation for the
+power of elders governing many congregations.
+
+2. Besides, the apostles, though extraordinary officers, are called
+elders, 1 Pet. v. 1, to intimate to us, that in ordinary acts of church
+government, they did act as elders for a pattern to us in like
+administrations.
+
+_Except_. The apostles, it is true, were elders virtually, that is,
+their apostleship contained all offices in it, but they were not elders
+formally.
+
+_Ans_. 1. If by formally be meant, that they were not elders really,
+then it is false; for the Scripture saith Peter was an elder, 1 Peter v.
+1. If by formally be meant that they were not elders only, that is
+granted; they were so elders, as they were still apostles, and so
+apostles as they were yet elders: their eldership did not exclude their
+apostleship, nor their apostleship swallow up their eldership.
+
+2. Besides, two distinct offices may be formally in one and the same
+person; as Melchisedec was formally a king and priest, and David
+formally a king and prophet; and why then might not Peter or John, or
+any of the twelve, be formally apostles and elders? And ministers are
+formally pastors and ruling elders.
+
+_Except_. 'Tis true, the apostles acted together with elders, because
+it so fell out they met together; but that they should meet jointly to
+give a pattern for an eldership, is not easy to prove; one apostle might
+have done that alone, which all here did.
+
+_Ans_. 1. 'Tis true, the apostles as apostles had power to act singly
+what they did jointly; yet, when they acted jointly, their acts might
+have more authority in the Church: upon which ground they of Antioch may
+be conceived to have sent to the whole college of apostles and elders at
+Jerusalem, (rather than to any one singly;) why was this, but to add
+more authority to their acts and determinations?
+
+2. Why should not their meeting together be a pattern of a presbytery,
+as well as their meeting together when they took in the consent of the
+people, Acts vi., in the choice of the deacons, to be a pattern or
+warrant that the people have a power in the choice of their officers?
+(as those of contrary judgment argue:) if one be taken in as an
+inimitable practice, why not the other?
+
+3. If the apostles joining with elders, acted nothing as elders, then we
+can bring nothing of theirs into imitation; and by this we should cut
+the sinews, and raze the foundation of church government, as if there
+were no footsteps thereof in the holy Scriptures.
+
+
+POSITION III.
+
+Finally, That the pattern of the said presbytery and presbyterial
+government is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all after ages,
+may appear as followeth:
+
+1. The first churches were immediately planted and governed by Christ's
+own apostles and disciples; 1. Who immediately received the keys of the
+kingdom of heaven from Christ himself in person, Matt. xvi. 19, and
+xviii. 17,18; John xx. 21, 23. 2. Who immediately had the promise of
+Christ's perpetual presence with them in their ministry, Matt, xxviii.
+18-20; and of the plentiful donation of the Spirit of Christ to lead
+them into all truth, John xiv. 16, and xvi. 13-15; Acts i. 4, 5, 8 3.
+Who immediately received from Christ, after his resurrection and before
+his ascension, "commandments by the Holy Ghost,"--"Christ being seen of
+them forty days, and speaking of the things pertaining to the kingdom of
+God," Acts i. 2, 3; and, 4. Who were first and immediately _baptized by
+the Holy Ghost_, extraordinarily, Acts ii. 1-5. Now, who can imagine
+that the apostles and disciples were not actuated by the Spirit of
+Christ bestowed upon them? or did not discharge Christ's commandments,
+touching his kingdom imposed upon them? or did not duly use those keys
+of Christ's kingdom committed to them in the ordering and governing of
+the primitive churches? And if so, then the pattern of their practices
+must be a rule for all the succeeding churches, 1 Cor. xi. 1; Phil, iv.
+9.
+
+2. To what end hath the Holy Ghost so carefully recorded a pattern of
+the state and government of the primitive churches in the first and
+purest times, but for the imitation of successive churches in after
+times? "For whatsoever things wore written aforetime, were written for
+our learning," or instruction. But what do such records instruct us?
+Only _in fact_, that such things were done by the first churches? or _of
+right_ also, that such things should be done by the after churches?
+Surely, this is more proper and profitable for us.
+
+3. If such patterns of Christ's apostles, disciples, and primitive
+churches in matters of the government will not amount to an obligatory
+rule for all following churches, how shall we justify sundry other acts
+of religion commonly received in the best reformed churches, and founded
+only or chiefly upon the foundation of the practice of Christ's apostles
+and the apostolical churches? As the receiving of the Lord's supper on
+the Lord's days, Acts xx. 7, &c.; which notwithstanding are generally
+embraced without any considerable opposition or contradiction, and that
+most deservedly.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV.
+
+_Of the Divine Right of Synods, or Synodal Assemblies._
+
+
+Thus far of the ruling assemblies, which are styled presbyterial; next
+come into consideration those greater assemblies, which are usually
+called synodal, or synods, or councils. They are so called from their
+convening, or coming together: or rather from their calling together.
+Both names, viz. synod and council, are of such latitude of
+signification, as that they may be applied to any public convention of
+people: but in the common ordinary use of these words, they are
+appropriated to large ecclesiastical assemblies, above classical
+presbyteries in number and power. These synodal assemblies are made up,
+(as occasion and the necessity of the church shall require.) 1. Either
+of presbyters, sent from the several classical presbyteries within a
+province, hence called provincial synods: 2. Or of presbyters, sent from
+the several provincial synods within a nation, hence called national
+synods: 3. Or of presbyters, delegated or sent from the several
+national churches throughout the Christian world, hence called
+ecumenical synods, or universal and general councils.
+
+Touching the divine warrant of synods, and their power in church
+affairs, much need not be said, seeing divers learned authors have so
+fully stated and handled this matter.[113] Yet, that the reader may have
+a short view hereof, and not be left wholly unsatisfied, these two
+things shall briefly be opened and insisted upon, viz: 1. Certain
+considerations shall be propounded, tending to clear the state of the
+question about the divine right of synods, and their power. 2. The
+proposition itself, with some few arguments adduced, for the proof
+thereof.
+
+For the former, viz: The true stating of this question about the divine
+right of synods, and of their power, well weigh these few
+considerations.
+
+1. Synods differ in some respects from classical presbyteries, handled
+in Chap. XIII., though the nature and kind of their power be the same
+for substance. For, 1. Synods are more large extensive assemblies than
+classical presbyteries, the members of presbyteries being sent only from
+several single congregations, the members of synods being delegated from
+several presbyteries, and proportionably their power is extended also.
+2. The exercise of government by presbyteries, is the common ordinary
+way of government held forth in Scripture. By synods it is more rare and
+extraordinary, at least in great part, as in case of extraordinary
+causes that fall out: as, for choosing an apostle, Acts i., healing of
+scandals, &c., Acts xv.
+
+2. All synods are of the same nature and kind, whether provincial,
+national, or ecumenical, though they differ as lesser and greater, in
+respect of extent, from one another, (the provincial having as full
+power within their bounds, as the national or ecumenical within theirs.)
+So that the proving of the divine right of synods indefinitely and in
+general, doth prove also the divine right of provincial, national, and
+ecumenical synods in particular: for, greater and lesser do not vary the
+species or kind. What is true of ecclesiastical synods in general,
+agrees to every such synod in particular.
+
+_Object_. But why hath not the Scripture determined these assemblies in
+particular?
+
+_Ans_. 1. It is not necessary the Scripture should in every case descend
+to particulars. In things of one and the same kind, general rules may
+serve for all particulars; especially seeing particulars are so
+innumerable, what volumes would have contained all particulars? 2. All
+churches and seasons are not capable of synods provincial or national:
+for, in an island there may be no more Christians than to make up one
+single congregation, or one classical presbytery. Or in a nation, the
+Christian congregations may be so few, or so dispersed, or so involved
+in persecution, that they cannot convene in synods, &c.
+
+3. The power of synods contended for, is, 1. Not civil; they have no
+power to take cognizance of civil causes, as such; not to inflict any
+civil punishments; as fines, imprisonments, confiscations, banishments,
+death, (these being proper to the civil magistrate:) but merely
+spiritual; they judge only in ecclesiastical causes, in a spiritual
+manner, by spiritual censures, to spiritual ends, as did that synod,
+Acts xv. 2. Not corruptive, privative, or destructive to the power of
+classical presbyteries, or single congregations; but rather perfective
+and conservative thereunto. As suppose a single congregation should
+elect a minister unsound in judgment, or scandalous in conversation, the
+synod may annul and make void that election, and direct them to make a
+better choice, or appoint them a minister themselves; hereby this
+liberty of election is not at all infringed or violated, but for their
+own advantage regulated, &c. 3. Not absolute, and infallible; but
+limited and fallible: any synod or council may err, being constituted of
+men that are weak, frail, ignorant in part, &c., and therefore all their
+decrees and determinations are to be examined by the touchstone of the
+Scriptures, nor are they further to be embraced, or counted obligatory,
+than they are consonant thereunto, Isa. viii. 20. Hence there is liberty
+of appeal, as from congregational elderships to the classical
+presbytery, and from thence to the provincial synod, so from the
+provincial to the national assembly, &c. 4. Finally, the power of synods
+is not only persuasive and consultative, (as some think,) able to give
+grave advice, and to use forcible persuasions in any case, which if
+accepted and followed, well; if rejected and declined, there is no
+further remedy, but a new non-communion instead of a divine church
+censure: but it is a proper authoritative juridical power, which all
+within their bounds are obliged reverently to esteem, and dutifully to
+submit unto, so far as agreeable to the word of Christ.
+
+4. Finally, this authoritative juridical power of synods is threefold,
+viz. _doctrinal, regulating, and censuring_. 1. _Doctrinal_, in
+reference to matters of faith, and divine worship; not to coin new
+articles of faith, or devise new acts of divine worship: but to explain
+and apply those articles of faith and rules of worship which are laid
+down in the word, and declare the contrary errors, heresies,
+corruptions. Hence the Church is styled, _the pillar and ground of
+truth_, 1 Tim. iii. 15. Thus to the Jewish Church _were committed of
+trust the oracles of God_, Rom. iii. 2. 2. _Regulating_, in reference to
+external order and polity, in matters prudential and circumstantial,
+which are determinate according to the true light of nature, and the
+general rules of Scripture, such as are in 1 Cor. x. 31, 32; Rom. xiv.;
+1 Cor. xiv. 26, 40, &c.; not according to any arbitrary power of men. 3.
+_Censuring_ power, in reference to error, heresy, schism, obstinacy,
+contempt, or scandal, and the repressing thereof; which power is put
+forth merely in spiritual censures, as admonition, excommunication,
+deposition, &c. And these censures exercised, not in a lordly,
+domineering, prelatical way: but in an humble, sober, grave, yet
+authoritative way, necessary both for preservation of soundness of
+doctrine, and incorruptness of conversation; and for extirpation of the
+contrary. This is the power which belongs to synods. Thus much for
+clearing the right state of this question.
+
+II. For the second thing, viz. the proposition itself, and the
+confirmation thereof, take it briefly in these terms.
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word sufficient ground
+and warrant for juridical synods, and their authority, for governing of
+his Church now under the New Testament. Many arguments might be produced
+for proof of this proposition: as, 1. From the light of nature. 2. From
+the words of the law, Deut. xvii. 8, 12, compared with 2 Chron. xix. 8,
+11; Ps. cxxii. 4, 5, holding forth an ecclesiastical Sanhedrin in the
+Church of the Jews, superior to other courts. 3. From the words of
+Christ, Matt, xviii. 15-21. 4. From the unity of the visible Church of
+Christ now under the New Testament. 5. From the primitive apostolical
+pattern laid down, Acts xv., &c., and from divers other considerations;
+but for brevity's sake, only the two last arguments shall be a little
+insisted upon.
+
+_Argum_. I. The unity or oneness of the visible Church of Christ now
+under the New Testament, laid down in Scripture, gives us a notable
+foundation for church government by juridical synods. For, 1. That Jesus
+Christ our Mediator hath one general, visible Church on earth now under
+the New Testament, hath been already proved, Part 2, Chap. VIII. 2. That
+in this Church there is a government settled by divine right, is
+evidenced, Part 1, Chap. I. 3. That all Christ's ordinances, and
+particularly church government, primarily belong to the whole general
+Church visible, for her edification, (secondarily to particular churches
+and single congregations, as parts or members of the whole,) hath been
+manifested, Part 2, Chap. VIII. Now, there being one general visible
+Church, having a government set in it of divine right, and that
+government belonging primarily to the whole body of Christ; secondarily,
+to the parts or members thereof; must it not necessarily follow, that
+the more generally and extensively Christ's ordinance of church
+government is managed in greater and more general assemblies, the more
+fully the perfection and end of the government, viz. the edification of
+the whole body of Christ, is attained; and on the contrary, the more
+particularly and singly church government is exercised, as in
+presbyteries, or single congregational elderships, the more imperfect it
+is, and the less it attains to the principal end: consequently, if there
+be a divine warrant for church government by single congregational
+elderships, is it not much more for church government by presbyteries,
+and synods, or councils, wherein more complete provision is made for the
+edification of the general Church or body of Jesus Christ?
+
+_Argum_. II. The primitive apostolical practice in the first and purest
+ages of the Church after Christ, may further evidence with great
+strength the divine warrant for church government by juridical synods or
+councils. Let this be the position:
+
+Jesus Christ our Mediator hath laid down in his word a pattern of a
+juridical synod, consisting of governing officers of divers presbyterial
+churches, for a rule to the Church of Christ in all succeeding ages.
+
+For proof hereof take these two assertions: 1. That Jesus Christ hath
+laid down in his word a pattern of a juridical synod. 2. That this
+juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all
+succeeding ages.
+
+
+ASSERTION I.
+
+That Jesus Christ hath laid down in his word a pattern of a synod, yea,
+of a juridical synod, consisting of governing officers of divers
+presbyterial churches, is manifest, Acts xv. and xvi., where are plainly
+set forth: 1. The occasion of the synod. 2. The proper members of the
+synod. 3. The equal power and authority exercised by all those members.
+4. The way and method of ordinary synodal proceeding. 5. The juridical
+acts of power put forth by the synod; with the issue and consequent of
+all upon the churches.
+
+First, Here was a proper ground and occasion for a juridical synod. For
+thus the text expressly declareth, that "certain men which came down
+from Judea, taught the brethren, and said, Except ye be circumcised
+after the manner of Moses, ye cannot be saved; when therefore Paul and
+Barnabas had no small dissension and disputation with them, they
+determined that Paul and Barnabas, and certain other of them, should go
+up to Jerusalem to the apostles and elders about this question," Acts
+xv. 1, 2, compared with ver. 5--"But there rose up certain of the sect
+of the Pharisees, which believed, saying, that it was needful to
+circumcise them, and to command them to keep the law of Moses;" and with
+ver. 23, 24--"The apostles, and elders, and brethren send greeting unto
+the brethren which are of the Gentiles, in Antioch, and Syria, and
+Cilicia: Forasmuch as we have heard, that certain which went out from
+us, have troubled you with words, subverting your souls, saying, Ye must
+be circumcised and keep the law." In which passages these things are
+evident:
+
+1. That false doctrine, destructive to the doctrine of Christ in his
+gospel, did arise in the Church, viz: That circumcision and keeping of
+the ceremonial law of Moses was necessary to salvation, ver. 1, 5, 24;
+and this false doctrine promoted with lying, as if the apostles and
+elders of Jerusalem had sent forth the false teachers with directions to
+preach so, as their apology ("to whom we gave no such commandment," ver.
+24) seems to import. Here is corruption both in doctrine and manners fit
+for a synod to take cognizance of.
+
+2. That this corrupt doctrine was vented by certain that came down from
+Judea. It is evident, it was by certain of the sect of the Pharisees
+that believed; as Paul and Barnabas make the narrative to the church at
+Jerusalem, ver. 5, therefore the false teachers coming from Judea (where
+the Churches of Christ were first of all planted, and whence the church
+plantation spread) published their doctrines with more credit to their
+errors and danger to the churches; and so both the churches of Judea
+whence they came, and of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, whither they came,
+were interested in the business.
+
+3. That the said false teachers by the leaven of their doctrine troubled
+them with words, subverting the souls of the brethren, both at Antioch,
+Syria, and Cilicia, ver. 23, 24; here was the disturbance and scandal of
+divers churches: compare ver. 39 with 41.
+
+4. That Paul and Barnabas at Antioch had no small dissension and dispute
+against the false teachers, ver. 1, 2, that so (if possible) they might
+be convinced, and the Church's peace preserved, without craving further
+assistance in a solemn synod.
+
+5. That after these disputes, and for the better settling of all the
+churches about this matter, (which these disputes could not effect,)
+_they decreed_ (or ordained) _that Paul and Barnabas, and some others of
+themselves, should go up to the apostles and elders at Jerusalem about
+this question, ver_. 2. Here was an authoritative mission of delegated
+officers from the presbyterial church at Antioch, and from other
+churches of Syria and Cilicia also, ver. 23, 41, to a synodal assembly
+with the presbyterial church at Jerusalem.
+
+Secondly, Here were proper members of a synod convened to consider of
+this question, viz. the officers and delegates of divers presbyterial
+churches: of the presbyterial church at Jerusalem, the apostles and
+elders, Acts xv. 6: of the presbyterial church at Antioch, Paul,
+Barnabas, and others; compare verse 2 and 12. And besides these, there
+were brethren from other churches, present as members of the synod; as
+may appear by these two considerations, viz:
+
+1. Partly, because it is called "The whole multitude," ver. 12; "The
+apostles and elders with the whole church," ver. 22; "The apostles, and
+elders, and brethren," ver. 23. This whole multitude, whole church, and
+brethren, distinct from the apostles and elders which were at Jerusalem,
+cannot be _the company of all the faithful at Jerusalem_, for (as hath
+been evidenced, Chap. XIV., Position 2,) they were too many to meet in
+one house. But it was the synodal multitude, the synodal church,
+consisting of apostles, and elders, and brethren; which brethren seem to
+be such as were sent from several churches, as Judas and Silas, ver. 24,
+who were assistants to the apostles and evangelists--Judas, Acts xv. 22,
+32; Silas, Acts xv. 32, 40, and xvi. 19, and xvii. 4, 14, 15, and xviii.
+5. Some think Titus was of this synod also.
+
+2. Partly because the brethren of Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia, were
+troubled with this question, ver. 23, 24. Therefore it cannot be
+reasonably imagined, but all those places sought out for a remedy; and
+to that end, severally and respectively sent their delegates to the
+synod at Jerusalem: else they had been very regardless of their own
+church peace and welfare. And the epistle of the synod was directed to
+them all by name, ver. 23; and so did formally bind them all, having men
+of their own members of the synod, which decrees did but materially, and
+from the nature of the thing, bind the other churches at Lystra and
+Iconium, Acts xvi. 4. Now, if there were delegates but from two
+presbyterial churches, they were sufficient to constitute a synod; and
+this justifies delegates from ten or twenty churches, proportionably,
+when there shall be like just and necessary occasion.
+
+Thirdly, Here all the members of the synod, as they were convened by
+like ordinary authority, so they acted by like ordinary and equal power
+in the whole business laid before them; which shows it was an ordinary,
+not an extraordinary synod. For though apostles and evangelists, who had
+power over all churches, were members of the synod, as well as ordinary
+elders; yet they acted not in this synod by a transcendent, infallible,
+apostolical power, but by an ordinary power, as elders. This is evident,
+
+1. Because the Apostle Paul, and Barnabas his colleague, (called a
+prophet and teacher, Acts xiii. 1, 2, and an apostle, Acts xiv. 14,)
+were sent as members to this synod, by order and determination of the
+church of Antioch, and they submitted themselves to that determination,
+Acts xv. 2, 3; which they could not have submitted unto as apostles, but
+as ordinary elders and members of the presbytery at Antioch: they that
+send, being greater than those that are sent by them. Upon which ground
+it is a good argument which is urged against Peter's primacy over the
+rest of the apostles, because the college of apostles at Jerusalem sent
+Peter and John to Samaria, having received the faith, Acts viii. 14.
+
+2. Because the manner of proceeding in this synod convened, was not
+extraordinary and apostolical, as when they acted by an immediate
+infallible inspiration of the Spirit, in penning the Holy Scriptures,
+(without all disputing, examining, or judging of the matter that they
+wrote, so far as we can read,) 2 Tim. iii. 16,17; 2 Pet. i. 20, 21; but
+ordinary, presbyterial, and synodal; by ordinary helps and means, (as
+afterwards shall appear more fully;) stating the question, proving and
+evidencing from Scripture what was _the good and acceptable will of God_
+concerning the present controversy, and upon evidence of Scripture
+concluding, _It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us_, Acts xv. 28;
+which words, any assembly, having like clear evidence of Scripture for
+their determination, may without presumption use, as well as this synod
+did.[114]
+
+3. Because the elders and brethren (who are as authoritatively members
+of the synod as the apostles) did in all points as authoritatively act
+as the apostles themselves. For, 1. Certain other of the church of
+Antioch, as well as _Paul_ and _Barnabas_, were sent as delegates from
+the church of _Antioch_, Acts xv. 2. 2. They were all sent as well to
+the _elders_, as to the _apostles_ at _Jerusalem_, about this matter,
+ver. 2. 3. They were received at _Jerusalem_, as well by the _elders_,
+as the _apostles_, and reported their case to them both, ver. 4. 4. The
+_elders_, as well as the _apostles_, met together to consider thereof,
+ver. 6. 5. The letters containing the synodal decrees and
+determinations, were written in the name of the _elders and brethren_,
+as well as in the name of the _apostles_, ver. 23. 6. The _elders and
+brethren_, as well as the _apostles_, blame the false teachers for
+troubling of the Church, _subverting of souls_; declaring, that they
+gave the false teachers _no such commandment_ to preach any such
+doctrine, ver. 24. 7. The _elders and brethren_, as well as the
+_apostles_, say, "It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us," ver. 28.
+8. The _elders_ and _brethren_, as well as the _apostles_, did impose
+upon the churches "no other burden than these necessary things," ver.
+28. 9. The _elders_, as well as the _apostles_, being assembled,
+"thought good to send chosen men of themselves," viz. _Judas_ and
+_Silas_, with _Paul_ and _Barnabas_, to _Antioch_, to deliver the
+synodal decrees to them, and to tell them the same things by mouth, ver.
+22, 25, 27. 10. And the decrees are said to be ordained as well by the
+_elders_, as by the _apostles at Jerusalem_, Acts xvi. 4. So that
+through this whole synodal transaction, the elders are declared in the
+text to go on in a full authoritative course of judgment with the
+apostles, from point to point. And therefore in this synod, the apostles
+acted as ordinary elders, not as extraordinary officers.
+
+Fourthly. Here was the ordinary way and method of synodal proceedings by
+the apostles, elders, and brethren, when they were convened unanimously,
+ver. 25. For,
+
+1. They proceeded deliberatively, by discourses and disputes,
+deliberating about the true state of the question, and the remedy of the
+scandal. This is laid down, 1. More generally, "and when there had been
+much disputing," ver. 7. 2. More particularly, how they proceeded when
+they drew towards a synodal determination, Peter speaks of the Gentiles'
+conversion, and clears the doctrine of justification "by faith without
+the works of the law," ver. 7-12. Then Barnabas and Paul confirm the
+conversion of the Gentiles, "declaring the signs and wonders wrought by
+them among the Gentiles," ver. 12. After them James speaks, approving
+what Peter had spoken touching the conversion of the Gentiles,
+confirming it by Scripture; and further adds (which Peter did but hint,
+ver. 10, and Paul and Barnabas did not so much as touch upon) a remedy
+against the present scandal, ver. 13-22. Here is now an ordinary way of
+proceeding by debates, disputes, allegations of Scripture, and mutual
+suffrages. What needed all this, if this had been a transcendent,
+extraordinary, and not an ordinary synod?
+
+2. They proceeded after all their deliberative inquiries and disputes
+decisively to conclude and determine the matter, ver. 20-30. The result
+of the synod (as there is evident) is threefold. 1. To set down in
+writing their decrees and determinations. 2. To signify those decrees in
+an epistle to the brethren at Antioch, Syria, and Cilicia. 3. To send
+these letters by some from among themselves, viz. Judas and Silas,
+together with Paul and Barnabas, to all the churches that were offended
+or endangered, that both by written decrees and word of mouth, the
+churches might be established in faith and peace.
+
+Fifthly, Here were several authoritative and juridical acts of power,
+put forth in this synod, according to the exigency of the present
+distempers of the churches. This appears plainly,
+
+1. By the proceedings of the synod in accommodating a suitable and
+proportionable remedy to every malady at that time distempering the
+Church, viz. a triple medicine for a threefold disease.
+
+1. Against the heresy broached, viz. that they must be circumcised and
+keep the ceremonial "law of Moses, or else they could not be saved,"
+Acts xv. 2. The synod put forth a doctrinal power, in confutation of the
+heresy, and clear vindication of the truth, about the great point of
+"justification by faith without the works of the law," Acts xv. 7-23;
+and (Independents themselves being judges) a doctrinal decision of
+matters of faith by a lawful synod, far surpasseth the doctrinal
+determination of any single teacher, or of the presbytery of any single
+congregation; and is to be reverently received of the churches as a
+binding ordinance of Christ.
+
+2. Against the schism, occasioned by the doctrine of the false teachers
+that troubled the Church, Acts xv. 1, 2, the synod put forth a censuring
+power, stigmatizing the false teachers with the infamous brands of
+troubling the Church with words, subverting of souls, and (tacitly, as
+some conceive from that expression, "Unto whom we gave no such
+commandment," ver. 24) of belying the apostles and elders of Jerusalem,
+as if they had sent them abroad to preach this doctrine.
+
+_Object_. But the synod proceeded not properly to censure the false
+teachers by any ecclesiastical admonition, or excommunication; therefore
+the power exercised in the synod was only doctrinal, and not properly
+juridical.
+
+_Ans_. 1. They censured them in some degree, and that with a mark of
+infamy, ver. 24, as was manifested. And this was not only a warning and
+hint to the churches, to note such false teachers, avoid them, and
+withdraw from them, compare Rom. xvi. 17, 18, with 1 Tim. vi. 3-5; but
+also was a virtual admonition to the false teachers themselves, while
+their doctrines and ways were so expressly condemned. 2. They proceeded
+not to present excommunication, it is granted; nor was it at first dash
+seasonable, prudent, or needful. But the synod knew well, that if these
+false teachers, after this synodal mark of disgrace set upon them,
+should still persist in their course, incurably and incorrigibly
+obstinate, they might in due time be excommunicated by course; it being
+a clear case in itself that such heretics or schismatics, as otherwise
+cannot be reduced, are not to be suffered, but to be cast out of the
+churches. "An heretic, after once or twice admonition, reject," Tit.
+iii. 10, 11; see Rev. ii. 2, 14, 20.
+
+3. Against the scandal of the weak Jews, and their heart-estrangement
+from the Gentiles, who neglected their ceremonial observances, as also
+against the scandal of the Gentiles, who were much troubled and offended
+at the urging of circumcision, and the keeping of the law as necessary
+to salvation, ver. 1, 2, 19, 24, the synod put forth an ordering or
+regulating power, framing practical rules or constitutions for the
+healing of the scandal, and for prevention of the spreading of it,
+commanding the brethren of the several churches to abstain from divers
+things that might any way occasion the same: "It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost, and to us, to impose" (or lay) "upon you no further burden than
+these necessary things," Acts xv. 28, 29. Here is _burden_ and
+_necessary things_, (so judged to be necessary for those times, and that
+state of the Church,) and imposing of these upon the churches: will not
+this amount to a plain ordering power and authority? Especially
+considering that the word _to impose_, or _lay on_, when it is used of
+the judgment, act, or sentence of an assembly, ordinarily signifies an
+authoritative judgment, or decree, as, "Why tempt ye God, to lay, or
+impose, a yoke upon the neck of the disciples?" Acts xv. 10. Thus some in
+the synod endeavored to carry the synod with themselves, authoritatively
+to have imposed the ceremonies upon the churches; whom Peter thus
+withstands. So, "They bind heavy burdens, and hard to be borne, and
+impose them upon men's shoulders," Matt, xxiii. 4: and this laying on of
+burdens by the Pharisees, was not by a bare doctrinal declaring, but by
+an authoritative commanding, as seems by that, "teaching for doctrines
+the commandments of men," Matt. xv. 9.
+
+2. By the title or denomination given to the synodal results contained
+in their letters sent to the brethren. They are styled, "The decrees
+ordained, or judged," Acts xvi. 4. Here are plainly juridical
+authoritative constitutions. For it is very observable,
+
+That wheresoever the words translated _decree_ or _decrees_ are found in
+the New Testament, thereby are denoted, laws, statutes, or decrees: as
+"Decrees of Caesar," Acts xvii. 7: "A decree from Caesar," Luke ii. 1:
+Moses' ceremonial law, "The hand-writing to ordinances," Col. ii. 14:
+"The law of commandments in ordinances," Eph. ii. 15: and this word is
+found used only in these five places in the whole New Testament: and the
+Septuagint interpreters often use the word in the Old Testament to this
+purpose; for _laws_, Dan. vi. 8; for _decrees_, Dan. ii. 13, and iii.
+10, 29, and iv. 3, and vi. 9.
+
+And the other word translated _ordained_, when applied to an assembly by
+the Septuagint, is used for a judgment of authority, as, "And what was
+decreed against her," Esth. ii. 1; and so a word derived from it,
+signifies a _decree_, Dan. iv. 14, 21.
+
+In this sense also the word is sometimes used in the New Testament, when
+applied to assemblies; as, "Take ye him, and judge him according to your
+law," John xviii. 31; "Whom we laid hold upon, and would have judged
+according to our law," Acts xxiv. 6.
+
+Now, if there be so much power and authority engraven upon these two
+words severally, how strongly do they hold forth authority, when they
+are applied to any thing jointly, as here to the synodal decisions!
+
+3. By the consequent of these synodal proceedings, viz. the cheerful
+submission of the churches thereunto. This appears both in the church of
+Antioch, where the troubles first were raised by the false teachers;
+where, "when the epistle" of the synod "was read, they rejoiced for the
+consolation," Acts xv. 30, 31; and Judas and Silas exhorted and
+confirmed the brethren by word of mouth, according to the synod's
+direction, ver. 32; and in other churches, to which Paul and Timothy
+delivered the "decrees ordained by the apostles and elders which were at
+Jerusalem; and so were the churches confirmed in the faith, and abounded
+in number daily," Acts xvi. 4, 5; whence we have these evidences of the
+churches' submission to the synodal decrees: 1. The decrees are counted
+by the churches a consolation. 2. They were so welcome to them, that
+they _rejoiced for the consolation_. 3. They were hereby notably
+_confirmed in the faith_, against the false doctrines broached among
+them. 4. The churches _abounded in number daily_, the scandal and
+stumbling-blocks that troubled the Church being removed out of the way.
+How should such effects so quickly have followed upon the publication of
+the synodal decrees, in the several churches, had not the churches
+looked upon that synod as vested with juridical power and authority for
+composing and imposing of these their determinations?
+
+
+ASSERTION II.
+
+That this juridical synod is for a rule to the churches of Christ in all
+succeeding ages, there need no new considerations for proof hereof;
+only let the reader please to look back to Position iv. of the last
+chapter, where the substance of those considerations which urge the
+pattern of presbyteries and presbyterial government for a rule to
+succeeding churches, is applicable (by change of terms) to the pattern
+of juridical synods.[115]
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV.
+
+_Of the subordination of particular churches to greater assemblies for
+their authoritative and judicial determination of causes ecclesiastical,
+and the divine right thereof._
+
+
+The divine right of ecclesiastical assemblies, congregational,
+classical, and synodal, and of their power for church government, being
+thus evidenced by the Scriptures, now in the last place take a few words
+briefly touching the subordination of the lesser to the greater
+assemblies, and the divine warrant thereof. In asserting the
+subordination of particular churches to higher assemblies, whether
+classical or synodal,
+
+1. It is not denied, but particular churches have within themselves
+power of discipline entirely, so far as any cause in debate particularly
+and peculiarly concerneth themselves, and not others.
+
+2. It is granted, that where there is no consociation, or neighborhood
+of single churches, whereby they may mutually aid one another, there a
+single congregation must not be denied entire jurisdiction; but this
+falls not within the compass of ordinary rules of church government left
+us by Christ. If there be but one congregation in a kingdom or province,
+that particular congregation may do much by itself alone, which it ought
+not to do where there are neighboring and adjacent churches that might
+associate therewith for mutual assistance.
+
+3. It is granted, that every single congregation hath equal power, one
+as much as another, and that there is no subordination of one to
+another; according to that common and known axiom, An equal hath no
+power or rule over an equal. Subordination prelatical, which is of one
+or more parishes to the prelate and his cathedral, is denied; all
+particular churches being collateral, and of the same authority.
+
+4. It is granted, that classical or synodal authority cannot be by
+Scripture introduced over a particular church in a privative or
+destructive way to that power which God hath bestowed upon it; but
+contrarily it is affirmed, that all the power of assemblies, which are
+above particular congregations, is cumulative and perfective to the
+power of those inferior congregations.
+
+5. It is granted, that the highest ecclesiastical assembly in the world
+cannot require from the lowest a subordination absolute, and at their
+own mere will and pleasure, but only in some respect; subordination
+absolute being only to the law of God laid down in Scripture. We detest
+popish tyranny, which claims a power of giving their will for a law.
+'Tis subjection in the Lord that is pleaded for: the straightest rule in
+the world, unless the holy Scripture, we affirm to be a rule to be
+regulated; peace being only in walking according to Scripture canon,
+Gal. vi. ver. 16.
+
+6. Nor is it the question whether friendly, consultative, fraternal,
+Christian advice or direction, be either to be desired or bestowed by
+neighboring churches, either apart or in their synodal meetings, for the
+mutual benefit of one another, by reason of that holy profession in
+which they are all conjoined and knit together: for this will be granted
+on all hands, though when it is obtained, it will not amount to a
+sufficient remedy in many cases.
+
+But this is that which we maintain, viz. that the law of God holdeth
+forth a subordination of a particular church to greater assemblies,
+consisting of divers choice members, taken out of several single
+congregations: which assemblies have authoritative power and
+ecclesiastical jurisdiction over that particular church, by way of
+giving sentence in and deciding of causes ecclesiastical. For
+confirmation of this assertion, thus:
+
+_Argum_. I. The light of nature may be alleged to prove, that there
+ought to be this subordination: this is warranted not only by God's
+positive law, but even by nature's law. The church is a company of
+people who are not outlawed by nature. The visible church being an
+ecclesiastical polity, and the perfection of all polity, doth comprehend
+in it whatsoever is excellent in all other bodies political. The church
+must resemble the commonwealth's government in things common to both,
+and which have the same use in both. The law of nature directs unto
+diversities of courts in the commonwealth, and the greater to have
+authority over the lesser. The church is not only to be considered as
+employed in holy services, or as having assemblies exercised in
+spiritual things, and after a spiritual manner, but it is also to be
+considered as consisting of companies and societies of men to be
+regularly ordered, and so far nature agreeth to it, that it should have
+divers sorts of assemblies, and the lower subordinate to the higher.
+That particular parts should be subject to the whole for the good of the
+whole, is found necessary both in bodies natural and politic. Is the
+foot to be lanced? though it have a particular use of its own, and a
+peculiar employment, yet it is to be ordered by the eye, the hand, and
+the rest. Kingdoms have their several cities and towns, which all have
+their governments apart by themselves; yet for the preservation of the
+whole, all join together in the Parliament. Armies and navies have their
+several companies and ships, yet in any danger every particular company
+and ship is ordered by the counsels and directions of the officers and
+guides of the whole army or navy. The Church is spiritual, but yet a
+kingdom, a body, an army, &c. D. Ames himself affirms that the light of
+nature requires that particular churches ought to combine in synods for
+things of greater moment. The God of nature and reason hath not left in
+his word a government against the light of nature and right reason.
+Appeals are of divine and natural right, and certainly very necessary in
+every society, because of the iniquity and ignorance of judges. That
+they are so, the practices of all ages and nations sufficiently testify.
+
+_Argum_. II. The Jewish church government affords a second argument. If
+in that they had synagogues in every city, which were subordinate to the
+supreme ecclesiastical court at Jerusalem, then there ought to be a
+subordination of particular churches among us to higher assemblies; but
+so it was among them: therefore,
+
+That the subordination was among them of the particular synagogues to
+the assembly at Jerusalem, is clear--Deut. xvii. 8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8,
+11; Exod. xviii. 22, 26.
+
+That therefore it ought to be so among us, is as plain: for the dangers
+and difficulties that they were involved in without a government, and
+for which God caused that government to be set up among them, are as
+great if not greater among us, and therefore why should we want the same
+means of prevention and cure? Are not we in greater danger of heresies
+now in the time of the New Testament, the churches therein being thereby
+to be exercised by way of trial, as the apostle foretells, 1 Cor. xi.
+19? Doth not ungodliness in these last times abound, according to the
+same apostle's prediction? Is there not now a more free and permitted
+intercourse of society with infidels than in those times?
+
+Nor are the exceptions against this argument of any strength: as, 1.
+That arguments for the form of church government must yet be fetched
+from the Jewish Church; the government of the Jews was ceremonial and
+typical, and Christians must not Judaize, nor use that Judaical compound
+of subordination of churches: the Mosaical polity is abrogated now under
+the New Testament. Not to tell those that make this exception, 1. That
+none argue so much from the Jewish government as themselves for the
+power of congregations, both in ordination and excommunication, because
+the people of Israel laid hands on the Levites, and all Israel were to
+remove the unclean; 2. We answer, the laws of the Jewish church, whether
+ceremonial or judicial, so far are in force, even at this day, as they
+were grounded upon common equity, the principles of reason and nature,
+and were serving to the maintenance of the moral law. 'Tis of especial
+right, that the party unjustly aggrieved should have redress, that the
+adverse party should not be sole judge and party too, that judgment
+ought not to be rashly or partially passed upon any. The Jewish polity
+is only abrogated in regard of what was in it of particular right, not
+of common right: so far as there was in their laws either a typicalness
+proper to their church, or a peculiarness of respect to their state in
+that land of promise given unto them. Whatsoever was in their laws of
+moral concernment or general equity, is still obliging; whatsoever the
+Jewish Church had not as Jewish, but as it was a political church, or an
+ecclesiastical republic, (among which is the subordination of
+ecclesiastical courts to be reckoned,) doth belong to the Christian
+Church: that all judgments were to be determined by an high-priest, was
+typical of Christ's supremacy in judicature; but that there were gradual
+judicatories for the ease of an oppressed or grieved party, there can be
+no ceremony or type in this. This was not learned by Moses in the
+pattern of the Mount, but was taught by the light of nature to Jethro,
+Exod. xviii. 22, and by him given in advice to Moses. This did not
+belong unto the peculiar dispensation of the Jews, but unto the good
+order of the church.
+
+To conclude our answer to this exception, if the benefit of appeals be
+not as free to us as to the Jews, the yoke of the gospel should be more
+intolerable than the yoke of the law; the poor afflicted Christian might
+groan and cry under an unjust and tyrannical eldership, and no
+ecclesiastical judicatory to relieve him; whereas the poor oppressed Jew
+might appeal to the Sanhedrin: certainly this is contrary to that
+prophecy of Christ, Psal. lxxii. 12, 14.
+
+_Argum_. III. A third argument to prove the subordination of particular
+congregations, is taken from the institution of our Saviour Christ, of
+gradual appeals, Matt, xviii. 17, 18, where our Saviour hath appointed a
+particular member of a church (if scandalous) to be gradually dealt
+withal; first to be reproved in private, then to be admonished before
+two or three witnesses, and last of all to be complained of to the
+church: whence we thus argue:
+
+If Christ hath instituted that the offence of an obstinate brother
+should be complained of to the church; then much more is it intended
+that the obstinacy of a great number, suppose of a whole church, should
+be brought before a higher assembly: but the former is true, therefore
+the latter. The consequence, wherein the strength of the argument lies,
+is proved several ways.
+
+1. From the rule of proportion: by what proportion one or two are
+subject to a particular church, by the same proportion is that church
+subject to a provincial or a national assembly; and by the same
+proportion that one congregation is governed by the particular eldership
+representing it, by the same proportion are ten or twelve congregations
+governed by a classical presbytery representing them all.
+
+2. From the sufficiency of that remedy that Christ here prescribes for
+those emergent exigencies under which the Church may lie; since,
+therefore, offences may as well arise between two persons in the same
+congregation, Christ hath appointed that particular congregations, as
+well as members, shall have liberty to complain and appeal to a more
+general judgment for redress: the salve here prescribed by Christ is
+equal to the sore; if the sore of scandal may overspread whole churches,
+as well as particular persons, then certainly the salve of appeals and
+subordination is here also appointed. If a man be scandalized by the
+neighbor-church, to whom shall he complain? The church offending must
+not be both judge and party.
+
+3. From that ecclesiastical communion that is between churches and
+churches in one and the same province or nation, whereby churches are
+joined and united together in doctrine and discipline into one body, as
+well as divers particular persons in a particular congregation; since,
+therefore, scandals may be committed among them that are in that holy
+communion one with another, most unworthy of and destructive to that
+sacred league, certainly those scandals should be redressed by a
+superior judicatory, as well as offences between brother and brother.
+
+4. He that careth for a part of a church must much more care for the
+whole; he whose love extends itself to regard the conversion of one, is
+certainly very careful of the spiritual welfare of many, the edification
+of a whole church; the influence of Christ's love being poured upon the
+whole body, bride and spouse, by order of nature, before it redound to
+the benefit of a finger or toe, viz. some one single person or other.
+Nor are the exceptions against this institution of gradual appeals of
+any moment.
+
+The grand one, and that makes directly against our position is, that our
+Saviour would have the controversy between brother and brother to be
+terminated in a peculiar church, and that its judgment should be
+ultimately requested, he saith, _Tell the church_, not churches. The
+subordination here appointed by Christ is of fewer to more, but still
+within the same church, not without it. To which we answer, our Saviour
+means not by church only one single particular congregation, but also
+several, combined in their officers, as appears by these following
+reasons.
+
+1. A particular church in sundry cases cannot decide the difference, or
+heal the distemper our Saviour prescribes against; as when a particular
+church is divided into two parts, both in opposition one to the other;
+or when one church is at variance with another; if Christ here limits
+only to a particular church, how shall such distempers be remedied?
+
+2. When Christ bids _tell the church_, he speaks in allusion to the
+Jewish Church, which was represented not only by parts in the single
+synagogue or congregation, but wholly in their sanhedrin, consisting of
+select persons, appointed by God, for deciding controversies incident to
+their particular congregations, and their members. So that we may thus
+reason: the subordination here established by Christ is so far to be
+extended in the Christian Church, as in the Church of the Jews, for
+Christ alludeth to the Jewish practice; but in the Jewish Church there
+was a subordination of fewer to more, not only within the same synagogue
+or congregation, but within the whole nation, for all synagogues were
+under the great council at Jerusalem. Now that Christ gives here the
+same rule that was of old given to the Jews for church government, is
+clear, 1. From the censure of the obstinate, who was to be reputed a
+heathen and a publican; wherein is a manifest allusion to the present
+estate of the Church of the Jews; and, 2. From the familiarity and
+plainness of Christ's speech, _Tell the church_, which church could not
+have been understood by the disciples had not Christ spoken of the
+Jewish judicatory; besides which they knew none for such offences as
+Christ spake of to them, there being no particular church which had
+given its name to Christ: as also, 3. From his citing the words of that
+text, Deut. xix. 15, where the witnesses and offenders were, by way of
+further appeal, to stand before the Lord, before the priests for
+judgment, ver. 17.
+
+3. It is plain that our Saviour intended a liberty of going beyond a
+particular congregation for determining cases of controversy, from the
+reason of that subordination which Christ enjoins, of one to two or
+three, and of them to the church. The reason of that gradual progress
+there set down, was because in the increase of numbers and greatness of
+assemblies, more wisdom, judgment, and gravity is supposed to be, than
+in the admonitions of a few and smaller number; now, then, this power of
+right admonition increaseth with the number of admonishers, as well
+without as within the same congregation; if ten go beyond two in wisdom
+and gravity, forty will go beyond ten, and be more likely to win upon
+the offender, and regain him.
+
+_Argum_. IV. A fourth argument is taken from the pattern of the
+apostolical churches, Acts xv.
+
+The church of Antioch (though presbyterial, as was proved Chapter XIII.,
+Position II.) was subordinate to the synod at Jerusalem; therefore a
+particular church is subordinate to higher assemblies, &c.
+
+If a synodal decree did bind them in those times, then may it bind
+particular churches now, and these ought even still to be subject to
+synods.
+
+The consequence is undeniable, unless we hold that what the synod there
+imposed was unjust, or that we have now less need of those remedies than
+they had; nay, since the apostles (who were assisted with an
+extraordinary spirit of inspiration) would nevertheless in a doubtful
+business have synodal conventions for determining of controversies, much
+more ought we to do so whose gifts are far inferior to theirs; and
+unless it had been in their determination to leave us their example of a
+synodal way of church government for our pattern, they had not wanted
+the meeting together of so many with them for decision of the doubt,
+whose doctrine was infallible, and of itself, without an assembly, to be
+believed.
+
+The exceptions against this pattern of church polity are of no validity,
+e.g.
+
+1. This was no synod. First, that it was no synod appears, in that we
+read of no word of a synod. Secondly, no commissioners from Syria and
+Cilicia, which churches should have sent their delegates, had they been
+a synod, and had their decrees been to have bound in a synodal way.
+Thirdly, all the believers had voices here.
+
+2. If it were a synod, yet it is no pattern for us, in regard it was
+consisting of members guided by an infallible and apostolical spirit.
+
+We answer, 1. Here is the thing synod, though not the word, which is a
+meeting consisting of the deputies of many single churches.
+
+2. That Jerusalem and Antioch had their commissioners there, is evident;
+and by consequence many single churches had their commissioners, for
+there were many single congregations at Jerusalem and Antioch, as hath
+been proved, Chapter XIII., Position II.; that these met together, the
+word used, verse 6, _they came together_, evidenceth, and verse 25. For
+the churches of Syria and Cilicia not sending their commissioners, it
+follows not that because _they are not named_, therefore _they were not
+there_; and if _they were not there_, therefore _they ought not to have
+been_: but it is rather thought Syria and Cilicia had commissioners
+there, in regard the synodal decrees are directed to them as well as
+others, and the decrees bound them, which they could not do as formal
+Scripture; for the words, _it seemeth good to us_, and their submitting
+the matter to disputation, argue the contrary; therefore as synodal
+decrees, which inasmuch as they bound those churches, they either were
+present, or were obliged to be present by their commissioners.
+
+3. To that exception, that the multitude of believers had voices there,
+and therefore it is not one of our synods, ver. 22--
+
+We answer, it can nowise be proved that every particular believer had a
+suffrage in the assembly.
+
+Eminent divines[116] understand by _multitude_ and _church_, the
+multitude and whole church of apostles and elders, who are said to be
+_gathered together_, verse 6, _to consider of the matter_; besides which
+no other multitude is said to be gathered together, while the matter was
+in debate; yet we shall not deny even to other members the liberty of
+their consent and approbation, and freedom to examine all determinations
+by the rule of God's word: but the ordaining and forming those decrees
+is here evinced to be by the apostles and elders, when as they are
+called _their decrees_, Acts xvi. 4,6.
+
+3. Those only had definitive votes, who met together synodically to
+consider of the question; but they were only the apostles and elders,
+Acts xv. 6. That the epistle is sent in the name of all, is granted;
+because it was sent by common consent, and withal thereby was added some
+more weight to the message.
+
+4. Further, if the believers of Jerusalem voted in that assembly, by
+what authority was it? How could they _impose a burden_ upon, and
+command decrees unto the churches of Syria and Cilicia, and other
+churches, who, according to our brethren's opinion, were not only absent
+in their commissioners, but independent in their power?
+
+To the exception, that other synods may not pretend to the privileges of
+that, since its decrees were indited by the Holy Ghost; and therefore no
+pattern for our imitation--
+
+_Ans_. The decrees of this assembly did oblige, as synodal decrees, not
+as apostolical and canonical Scripture: this appears several ways:
+
+1. The apostles, in framing these canons, did proceed in a way synodal
+and ecclesiastical, and far different from that which they used in
+dictating of Scripture, and publishing divine truths; their decrees were
+brought forth by much disputation, human disquisition, but divine
+oracles are published without human reasonings, from the immediate
+inditing of the Spirit, 2 Pet. i. 2.
+
+2. Besides the apostles, there were here commissioned elders and other
+brethren, men of ordinary rank, not divinely and infallibly inspired.
+The apostles in the penning of Scripture consult not with elders and
+brethren, (as our opposites here say they did:) our brethren make
+mandates of ordinary believers divine and canonical Scripture.
+
+3. Divine writ is published only in the name of the Lord; but these in
+the name of man also, "It seemed good to the Holy Ghost and to us," Acts
+xv. 28.
+
+4. Canonical and apostolical writing of new Scripture shall not continue
+till Christ's coming, because the canon is complete, Rev. xxii. 18, 19,
+&c.; but thus to decree through the assistance of the Holy Ghost, who
+remaineth with the Church to the end, and to be directed by Scripture,
+shall still continue. Therefore this decreeing is not as the inditing of
+the Holy Scripture. The minor is clear both from Christ's promise,
+"Where two or three are met together," Matt. xvii. 18-20; Matt. viii.
+20; as also by the Spirit's inspiring those councils of Nice of old, and
+Dort of late: Therefore the apostles here laid aside their apostolical
+extraordinary power, descending to the places of ordinary pastors, to
+give them examples in future ages.
+
+To conclude, it is plain, that all the essentials in this assembly were
+synodal, as whether we consider: 1. The occasion of the meeting, a
+controversy; 2. The deputation of commissioners from particular
+churches, for the deciding of that controversy; or 3. The convention of
+those that were deputed; or 4. The discussion of the question, they
+being so convened; or 5. The determination of the question so discussed;
+or 6. The imposition of the thing so determined; or 7. The subjection to
+the thing so imposed.
+
+1 Tim. i. 17
+
+TO THE IMMORTAL GOD ALONE BE GLORY FOR EVER AND EVER.
+
+
+
+
+FOOTNOTES:
+
+[Footnote 1: This truth, that Jesus Christ is a king, and hath a kingdom
+and government in his Church distinct from the kingdoms of this world,
+and from the civil government, hath this commendation and character
+above all other truths, that Christ himself suffered to the death for
+it, and sealed it with his blood. For it may he observed from the story
+of his passion, this was the only point of his accusation, which was
+confessed and avouched by himself, Luke xxiii. 3; John xviii. 33, 36,
+37; was most aggravated, prosecuted, and driven home by the Jews, Luke
+xxiii. 2; John xix. 22, 23; was prevalent with Pilate as the cause of
+condemning him to die, John xix. 12, 13, and was mentioned also in his
+superscription upon his cross, John xix. 19; and although in reference
+to God, and in respect of satisfaction to the Divine justice for our
+sins, his death was [Greek: lytron] a price of redemption; yet in
+reference to men who did persecute, accuse, and condemn him, his death
+was [Greek: martyrion] a martyr's testimony to seal such a truth.--Mr.
+_G. Gillespie, in his Aaron's Rod Blossoming, &c., Epist. to the
+Reader_.]
+
+[Footnote 2: _Cent. I. lib. 2, cap._ 7, _p._ 407 _ad_ 418, _Edit. Basil.
+An._ 1624. De rebus ad Gubernationem Ecclesiae pertinentibus, Apostoli
+certos quosdam, Canones tradiderunt: quos ordine subjiciemus, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 3: Directions of the Lords and Commons, &c. Aug. 19, 1645, p.
+10]
+
+[Footnote 4: (1) The ancient discipline of the Bohemian Brethren,
+published in Latin, in octavo, _Anno_ 1633, pages 99, 100.
+
+(2) The discipline of Geneva, _Anno_ 1576, in _Art._ 1, 22, 57, 86, and
+87.
+
+(3) The discipline of the French church at Frankfort, _Edit._ 2, in
+octavo, _Anno_ 1555, _in cap. de Disciplina et Excom.,_ p. 75, and the
+Ecclesiast. Discipline of the reformed churches of France, printed at
+London, _Anno_ 1642, _Art._ 15, 16, and 24, p. 44. (1) The Synodal
+Constitution of the Dutch churches in England, chap. 4, _Art._ 13, and
+_Tit._ 1, _Art._ 2; and the Dutch churches in Belgia, (see _Harmonia
+Synodorum Belgicarum_,) _cap._ 14, _Art._ 7, 11, and 15, p. 160. (5) The
+reformed churches at Nassau, in Germany, as _Zeoper_ testifies, _De
+Politei Eccles.,_ printed _Herborne, Anno_ 1607, in octavo, _Tit. de
+Censuris Ecclesiast., Part_ 4, _Art._ 64, p. 813. (6) The discipline in
+the churches constituted by the labor of _Joannes a Lasco_, entitled
+_Forma ac ratio tota Ecclesiastici Miniterii, &c._, _author Joannes a
+Lasco Poloniae Barone, Anno_ 1555, p. 291. (7) The discipline agreed
+upon by the English exiles that fled from the _Marian_ persecution to
+Frankfort, thence to Geneva, allowed by _Calvin_; entitled _Ratio ac
+forma publice orandi Deum, &c., Genevae_, 1556, _Tit. de Disciplina_, p.
+68. (8) The Order of Excommunication and Public Repentance used in the
+Church of Scotland, _Anno_ 1571, _Tit._ The offences that deserve public
+repentance, &c., pp. 87, 88.]
+
+[Footnote 5: See more in chap. 10, sect. 1.]
+
+[Footnote 6: R. Park, de Polit. Eccl. 1. 2, cap. 42.]
+
+[Footnote 7: Malcolm. Com. in loco.]
+
+[Footnote 8: Calvin in loco.]
+
+[Footnote 9: Chrys. wisheth--"But, O that there had not wanted one that
+would have delivered diligently unto us the history of the apostles, not
+only what they wrote, or what they spake, but how they behaved
+themselves throughout their whole life, both what they did eat, and when
+they did eat, when they sat, and whither they went, and what they did
+every day, in what parts they lived, and into what house they entered,
+and whither they sailed, and that would accurately have expounded all
+things; so full of manifold utility are all things of theirs."--Chrys.,
+Argum. in Epist. ad Philem. And elsewhere he affirmeth,--"Nor hath the
+grace of the Holy Ghost without cause left unto us these histories
+written, but that he may stir us up to the imitation and emulation of
+such unspeakable men. For when we hear of this man's patience, of that
+man's soberness, of another man's readiness to entertain strangers, and
+the manifold virtue of every one, and how every one of them did shine
+and become illustrious, we are stirred up to the like zeal." Chrys. in
+Gen. xxx. 25. Homil. 57, in initio.]
+
+[Footnote 10: "For this cause, therefore, the conversation of these most
+excellent men is accurately related, that by imitation of them our life
+may be rightly led on to that which is good."--Greg. Nyssen, lib. de
+Vita Mosis, tom. i. p. 170, vid. tot. lib.]
+
+[Footnote 11: Perkins on Matth. vi. 16. See him also on Heb. xi. 6, p.
+28, in fol. col. 2, B, C, &c., and on Heb. xi. 22, p. 131, col. 2, D,
+and notably on Heb. xii. 1, p. 200, col. 2, C, D, &c., and on Rev. ii.
+19, p. 313, col. 1, B, and his Art of Prophesying, p. 663, col. 1 and 2.
+Vide Pet. Martyr in lib. Jud. p. 2, col. 1, and in Rom. iv. 23, 24. And
+Calvin in Heb. xii. 1; and in Rom. iv. 23, 24, and in 1. Pet. i. 21,
+&c.]
+
+[Footnote 12: Park. de Pol. Eccl. 1. 2, c. 42.]
+
+[Footnote 13: 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 14: Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 15-18; 1 Cor. v. 4, 5; 2 Cor. x.
+8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 15: 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17; 1 Tim. iii. 14, 15, with all places
+that mention any thing of government.]
+
+[Footnote 16: Eph. iv. 8, 11, 12; 1 Cor. xii. 28; Matt. xxviii. 18-20;
+John xx. 21-23; Matt. xvi. 19; 2 Cor. x. 8.]
+
+[Footnote 17: Matt. xvi. 19, and xxviii. 19; John xx. 21, 23; 2 Cor. x.
+8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 18: Matt, xxviii. 18-20; Acts vi. 4; 2 Tim. iv. 2.]
+
+[Footnote 19: Matt, xxviii. 18-20; 1 Cor. xi. 24.]
+
+[Footnote 20: Matt, xviii. 15-17; Tit. iii. 19; 1 Tim. v. 20; 1 Cor. v.
+4, 5, 13; 2 Cor. ii. 6: 1 Tim. i. 20; 2 Cor. ii 7, 8, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 21: 1 Cor. iv. 1.]
+
+[Footnote 22: 2 Cor. x. 8, and xiii. 10.]
+
+[Footnote 23: [Greek: Ekklaesia], Acts xix. 32, 39, 40; Eph. v. 23; 1
+Cor. xii. 98.]
+
+[Footnote 24: Cameron. Praelect de Eccles. in fol. pp. 296-298.]
+
+[Footnote 25: Who in relating such things can refrain from weeping?]
+
+[Footnote 26: See Mr. Edwards's Antapologia, page 201, printed in anno
+1644, proving this out of their own books. Especially see a little book
+in 12mo. printed in anno 1646, styled a collection of certain matters,
+which almost in every page pleads for Independency and Independents by
+name: from which most of the Independent principles seem to be derived.]
+
+[Footnote 27: Let not any man put off this Scripture, saying, This is in
+the Old Testament, but we find no such thing in the gospel; for we find
+the same thing, almost the same words used in a prophecy of the times of
+the gospel, Zech. xiii. 3. In the latter end of the xii. chapter, it is
+prophesied that those who pierced Christ, should _look upon him and
+mourn_, &c., having a _spirit of grace and supplication_ poured upon
+them, chap. xiii. 1. "There shall now be opened a fountain for sin, and
+for uncleanness," ver. 3. "It shall come to pass that he that takes upon
+him to prophesy, that his father and mother that begat him, shall say
+unto him, Thou shalt not live, for thou speakest lies in the name of the
+Lord: and his father and his mother that begat him, shall thrust him
+through, when he prophesieth." You must understand this by that in
+Deuteronomy. The meaning is not that his father or mother should
+presently run a knife into him, but that though they begat him, yet they
+should be the means to bring him to condign punishment, even the taking
+away his life; these who were the instruments of his life, should now be
+the instruments of his death.--Mr. Jer. Burroughs in ills Irenicum,
+chap. v., Pages 19, 20, printed 1646.]
+
+[Footnote 28: But schismatics and heretics are called evil-workers,
+Phil. iii. 2; and heresy is classed among the works of the flesh, Gal.
+v. 20.]
+
+[Footnote 29: Mr. Burroughs in his _Irenicum_, c.v. page 25; printed
+1646.]
+
+[Footnote 30: See this evidenced upon divers grounds in _Appollon. jus
+Majest._, pp. 25, 26.]
+
+[Footnote 31: See M.S. to A.S., pages 55-60.]
+
+[Footnote 32: The civil magistrate is no proper church officer, as was
+intimated, Part 1 c. 1., and will be further evidenced in this chapter.]
+
+[Footnote 33: That the civil magistrate is not the vicar of Christ our
+Mediator, see abundantly proved by Mr. S. Rutherford, in his Divine
+Right of Church Government, &c., Ch. 27, Quest. 23, pages 595 to 647.]
+
+[Footnote 34: The formal difference or distinction betwixt these two
+powers, is fully and clearly asserted by that learned bishop, Usher, in
+these words: "God, for the better settling of piety and honesty among
+men, and the repressing of profaneness and other vices, hath established
+two distinct powers upon earth: the one of the keys, committed to the
+Church; the other of the sword, committed to the civil magistrate. That
+of the keys, is ordained to work upon the inward man; having immediate
+relation to the remitting or retaining of sins, John xx. 23. That of the
+sword is appointed to work upon the outward man; yielding protection to
+the obedient, and inflicting external punishment upon the rebellious and
+disobedient. By the former, the spiritual officers of the Church of
+Christ are inclinable to govern well, 1 Tim. v. 17. To _speak_, and
+_exhort_, and _rebuke_ with all _authority_, Tit. ii. 15. To loose such
+as are penitent, Matt. xvi. 19, and xviii. 18. To commit others to the
+Lord's prison, until their amendment, or to bind them over to the
+judgment of the great day, if they shall persist in their wilfulness and
+obstinacy. By the other, princes have an imperious power assigned by God
+unto them, for the defence of such as do well, and executing revenge and
+wrath, Rom. xiii. 4, upon such as do evil, whether by death, or
+banishment, or confiscation of goods, or imprisonment, Ezra vii. 26,
+according to the quality of the offence.
+
+"When St. Peter, that had the keys committed unto him, made bold to draw
+the sword, he was commanded to put it up, Matt. xxvi. 52, as a weapon
+that he had no authority to meddle withal. And on the other side, when
+Uzziah the king would venture upon the execution of the priest's office,
+it was said unto him, 'It pertaineth not unto thee, Uzziah, to burn
+incense unto the Lord, but to the priests, the sons of Aaron, that are
+consecrated to burn incense,' 2 Chron. xxvi. 18. Let this therefore be
+our second conclusion: That the power of the sword, and of the keys, are
+two distinct ordinances of God; and that the prince hath no more
+authority to enter upon the execution of any part of the priest's
+function, than the priest hath to intrude upon any part of the office of
+the prince." In his speech delivered in the Castle-chamber at Dublin,
+&c., concerning the oath of supremacy, pages 3, 4, 5. Further
+differences betwixt these two powers, see in Gillespie's Aaron's Rod,
+Book 2, Chap. 4.]
+
+[Footnote 35: See this proposition for substance fully and clearly
+asserted by that acute and pious author, Mr. P. Bains, in his Diocesan's
+Trial, quest. 3, pages 83, 84, conclus. 3.]
+
+[Footnote 36: See Cotton's Keys, &c., pp. 31-33, and Mr. Thomas Goodwin,
+and Mr. Philip Nye, in their epistle prefixed thereunto, do own this
+book as being for substance their own judgment.]
+
+[Footnote 37: See that judicious treatise, Vindiciae Clavium, chap. III.
+IV. V., pp. 33-52.]
+
+[Footnote 38: John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt, xviii. 15, p. 149-151, in
+fol, and Baine's Diocesan's Trial, the third quest, pp. 79, 80, and D.
+Parcus in Matt. xviii. 15. This is fully discussed and proved by Mr.
+Rutherford in his Peaceable Plea, Chap. viii. p. 85, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 39: A difference arose betwixt two gentlemen in that church
+about singing of hymns: the second gentleman was complained of to the
+church by the first, and upon hearing of the whole business, and all the
+words that passed between them, this second gentleman was censured by
+the church, and Mr. Nye _charged sin upon him_ (that was the phrase) in
+many particulars, and still at the end of every charge Mr. Nye repeated,
+"this was your sin." After this censure, so solemnly done, the gentleman
+censured brings in accusations against Mr. Nye, in several articles,
+charging him with pride, want of charity, &c., in the manner of the
+censure; and this being brought before the church, continued in debate
+about half a year, three or four days in a week, and sometimes more,
+before all the congregation. Divers of the members having callings to
+follow, they desired to have leave to be absent. Mr. Goodwin oft
+professed publicly upon these differences, If this were their church
+fellowship, he would lay down his eldership; and nothing was more
+commonly spoke among the members, than that certainly for matter of
+discipline they were not in the right way, for that there was no way of
+bringing things to an end. At last, after more than half a year's
+debate, not being able to bring these differences to an end, and being
+come into England, they had their last meeting about it, to agree not to
+publish it abroad when they came into England, &c. Mr. Edwards's
+Antapolog., pp. 36, 37.]
+
+[Footnote 40: Mr. J. Cotton, in his Way of the Churches of Christ in New
+England, chap, ii. sect. 7, p. 43.]
+
+[Footnote 41: Were the power in the church, the church should not only
+call them, but make them out of virtue and power received into herself;
+then should the church have a true lordlike power in regard of her
+ministers. Besides, there are many in the community of Christians
+incapable of this power regularly, as women and children. Mr. P. Bain in
+his Diocesan's Trial, quest. 3, conclus. 3, page 84, printed 1621.]
+
+[Footnote 42: If spiritual and ecclesiastical power be in the church or
+community of the faithful, the church doth not only call, but make
+officers out of virtue and power received into herself, and then should
+the church have a true lordlike power in regard of her ministers. For,
+as he that will derive authority to the church, maketh himself lord of
+the church, so, if the church derive authority to the ministers of
+Christ, she maketh herself lady or mistress over them, in the exercise
+of that lordlike authority; for, as all men know, it is the property of
+the lord and master to impart authority. Did the church give power to
+the pastors and teachers, she might make the sacrament and preaching
+which one doth in order, no sacrament, no preaching; for it is the order
+instituted of God that giveth being and efficacy to these ordinances;
+and if the power of ruling, feeding, and dispensing the holy things of
+God do reside in the faithful, the word and sacrament, in respect of
+dispensation and efficacy, shall depend upon the order and institution
+of the society. If the power of the keys be derived from the community
+of the faithful, then are all officers immediately and formally servants
+to the church, and must do every thing in the name of the church, rule,
+feed, bind, loose, remit, and retain sins, preach and administer the
+sacraments; then they must perform their office according to the
+direction of the church, more or less, seldom or frequent, remiss or
+diligent; for from whom are they to receive direction how to carry
+themselves in their offices, but from him or them of whom they receive
+their office, whose work they are to do, and from whom they must expect
+reward? If their office and power be of God immediately, they must do
+the duties of their place according to his designment, and unto him they
+must give account; but if their power and function be from the church,
+the church must give account to God, and the officers to the church,
+whom she doth take to be her helpers, &c. Mr. John Ball, in his Trial of
+the grounds tending to separation, chap. xii. pages 252, 253, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 43: See Vindiciae Clavium, judiciously unmasking these new
+notions.]
+
+[Footnote 44: Here understand by this phrase, (_over you in the Lord_,)
+viz: Not only in the fear of the Lord, nor only in those things that
+appertain to God's worship, but also according to the will, and by the
+authority of the Lord Christ derived to them.]
+
+[Footnote 45: See the Apologetical narration by the five Independents,
+page 8; and Mr. Jo. Cotton, at large, asserts the divine institution of
+the ruling elder. Way of the Churches of Christ, &c., chap. 2, sect. 2,
+page 13-35.]
+
+[Footnote 46: Calvin, Beza, Pareus, Pagnin.]
+
+[Footnote 47: Arias Montan.]
+
+[Footnote 48: Tremel. out of the Syriac; so the old Geneva translation,
+and our new translation.]
+
+[Footnote 49: Field, of the Church, book 5, chap. 26.]
+
+[Footnote 50: Sutlive, who afterwards declared, that he was sorry with
+all his heart, that ever he put pen to paper to write against Beza as he
+had done, in behalf of the proud domineering prelates; and he spoke this
+with great indignation.]
+
+[Footnote 51: Mat. Sutliv. de Presbyterio, cap. 12, p. 87, edit. 1591.]
+
+[Footnote 52: Ibid. pages 72 and 87, edit. 1591.]
+
+[Footnote 53: Bilson's perpetual Government of Christ's Church, c. 10,
+p. 136, 137, 138, printed in Ann. 1610.]
+
+[Footnote 54: That the magistrate cannot be here meant, see fully
+evidenced in Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, &c., book ii. chap. 6, pages
+218-224, and also chap. 9, p. 284.]
+
+[Footnote 55: Pareas in 1 Cor. xii. 28.]
+
+[Footnote 56: D. Field, Of the Church, book v. chap. xxvi.]
+
+[Footnote 57: Peter Martyr, Beza, Piscator, and Calvin.]
+
+[Footnote 58: Calvin in 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. _Vid. etiam Jacob. Laurent.
+Comment, in_ 1 Pet. v. 2, 3, _ubi fusius de hac distinctione disserit_,
+p. 322, ad. 325.]
+
+[Footnote 59: Mat. Sutliv. De Presbyterio, cap. 12, page 72 and 87:
+edit. Lond., an. 1591. Bilson's Perpetual Government of Christ's Church,
+chap. 10, page 141; in 4to. printed in anno 1610.]
+
+[Footnote 60: _Vide_ Calv. in loc.]
+
+[Footnote 61: Sutlive.]
+
+[Footnote 62: Whitgift.]
+
+[Footnote 63: Coleman.]
+
+[Footnote 64: Who desire more full satisfaction touching this poor and
+empty gloss, that the civil magistrate should be meant by these
+governments, let them consult Mr. Gillespie's elaborate treatise, called
+Aaron's Rod Blossoming, book 2, chap, 6, pp. 218 to 224.]
+
+[Footnote 65: Bilson.]
+
+[Footnote 66: Mr. Rutherford in his Due Right of Presbyteries, p. 145.]
+
+[Footnote 67: Calvin, Beza, &c. on this place.]
+
+[Footnote 68: See Gillespie's Aaron's Rod, book 2, chap. 9.]
+
+[Footnote 69: Mr. Rutherford in his Due Rights of Presbyteries, chap. 7,
+sec. 7, pages 145-147.]
+
+[Footnote 70: Beza, Piscata, Calvin, on this verse.]
+
+[Footnote 71: Bilson's Perpetual Government of Christ's Church, chap. x.
+pages 130, 131.]
+
+[Footnote 72: Altar. Damas. cap. xii., page 918 and page 920.]
+
+[Footnote 73: B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii., Bilson in his
+Perpetual Government of Christ's Church, c. x. page 132, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 74: B. King, in his Sermon on Cant. viii., page 40.]
+
+[Footnote 75: B. Whitgift in his Defence against Cartwright's first
+Reply. This is one of D. Field's three glosses. Field, Of the Church,
+lib v., chap. 26.]
+
+[Footnote 76: Bishops that have no tolerable gift of teaching, are like
+idols, their cases, or rather coffins, set up in the church's choice.
+Cartwright Testam. _Annot_., in 1 Tim. v. 17.]
+
+[Footnote 77: Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page 919.]
+
+[Footnote 78: Bridge, Hussey.]
+
+[Footnote 79: Altar. Damasc. chap, xii., page 919.]
+
+[Footnote 80: Sutlive.]
+
+[Footnote 81: Sutlive, De Presbyterio, cap. 12, pages 72, 73.]
+
+[Footnote 82: Bilson's Government of the Church, page 133.]
+
+[Footnote 83: Sutlive, De Presbyterio, c. 12, pages 72, 73.]
+
+[Footnote 84: Bilson, page 135.]
+
+[Footnote 85: Field, Book v.]
+
+[Footnote 86: Bilson, page 133.]
+
+[Footnote 87: Field, Book v.]
+
+[Footnote 88: D. Downham. See Altar. Damasc. c. xii. page 924.]
+
+[Footnote 89: Chrysost. Homil. 15, in 1 Tim. 5, Hier. in 1 Tim. cap. 5,
+Ambr. in 1 Tim. cap., Calv. in 1 Tim. cap. 5, Bullinger in 1 Tim. cap.
+5, Beza in 1 Tim. 5.]
+
+[Footnote 90: Bilson, Sutlive, and Downham.]
+
+[Footnote 91: The London ministers have here inserted the testimonies of
+these ancient writers in favor of the divine right of the office of the
+ruling elder, viz. Ignatius, Purpurius, Tertullian, Origen, Cyprian,
+Optatus, Ambrose, Augustine, and Isidorus; and of these three late ones,
+viz. Whitaker, Thorndike, and Rivet. The amount of their testimony, when
+taken together, appears to be simply this, that there have been ruling
+elders, as distinct from preaching elders, in the Church of Christ from
+the beginning. It is therefore judged unnecessary to give the quotations
+from these authors at large.--_Editor_.]
+
+[Footnote 92: Against the office of deacons, and the divine right
+thereof, fourteen objections are answered by Mr. S. Rutherford in his
+Due Right of Presbyteries, chap. 7, pages 159 to 175. To which the
+reader that shall make any scruple about the deacon's office, is
+referred for his further satisfaction.]
+
+[Footnote 93: Some of our brethren in New England, observing what
+confusion necessarily depends upon the government which hath been
+practised there, have been forced much to search into it within this
+four years, and incline to acknowledge the presbyters to be the subject
+of the power without dependence upon the people. "We judge, upon mature
+deliberation, that the ordinary exercise of government must be so in the
+presbyters, as not to depend upon the express votes and suffrages of the
+people. There hath been a convent or meeting of the ministers of these
+parts, about this question at Cambridge in the Bay, and there we have
+proposed our arguments, and answered theirs, and they proposed theirs,
+and answered ours; and so the point is left to consideration." Mr.
+Thomas Parker in his letter written from Newbury in New England,
+December 17, 1643, printed 1644.]
+
+[Footnote 94: Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. L. Graec. in verb.]
+
+[Footnote 95: Piscator.]
+
+[Footnote 96: Beza.]
+
+[Footnote 97: Zanch. in loco.]
+
+[Footnote 98: Vid. Hen. Steph. Thes. ad verb.]
+
+[Footnote 99: Mr. Jo. Cotton's Keys of the Kingdom of Heaven, chap. vii.
+in propos. 3, pages 44-46.]
+
+[Footnote 100: See Mr. Cotton's own words in chap. XIV. at the end, in
+the margin.]
+
+[Footnote 101: See John Calvin, in 1 Cor. v. 4.]
+
+[Footnote 102: Cameron, in Matt. xviii. 15.]
+
+[Footnote 103: Thus Mr. Bayne remarkably expounds this text, Matt.
+xviii., saying: Where first mark, that Christ doth presuppose the
+authority of every particular church taken indistinctly. For it is such
+a church as any brother offended may presently complain to. Therefore no
+universal, or provincial, or diocesan church gathered in a council. 2.
+It is not any particular church that he doth send all Christians to, for
+then all Christians in the world should come to one particular church,
+were it possible. He doth therefore presuppose indistinctly the very
+particular church where the brother offending and offended are members.
+And if they be not both of one church, the plaintiff must make his
+denunciation to the church where the defendant is. 3. As Christ doth
+speak it of any ordinary particular church indistinctly, so he doth by
+the name of church not understand essentially all the congregation. For
+then Christ should give not some, but all the members of the church to
+be governors of it. 4. Christ speaketh it of such a church to whom we
+may ordinarily and orderly complain; now this we cannot to the whole
+multitude. 5. This church he speaketh of then doth presuppose it, as the
+ordinary executioner of all discipline and censure. But the multitude
+have not this execution ordinary, as all but Morelius, and such
+democratical spirits, do affirm. And the reason ratifying the sentence
+of the church, doth show that often the number of it is but small, "For
+where two or three are gathered together in my name;" whereas the church
+or congregations essentially taken for teachers and people, are
+incomparably great. Neither doth Christ mean by church the chief pastor,
+who is virtually as the whole church.--Mr. Bayne's Diocesan's Trial.]
+
+[Footnote 104: Timothy received grace by the laying on of the hands of
+the presbytery. For that persons must be understood here, is apparent by
+the like place, when it is said, by the laying on of my hands, he noteth
+a person, and so here a presbytery. 2. To take presbytery to signify the
+order of priesthood, is against all lexicons, and the nature of the
+Greek termination. 3. Timothy never received that order of a presbyter,
+as before we have proved. 4. It cannot signify, as Greek expositors take
+it, a company of bishops; for neither was that canon of three bishops
+and the Metropolitan, or all the bishops in a province, in the apostle's
+time; neither were these who were now called bishops, then called
+presbyters, as they say, but apostles, men that had received apostolic
+grace, angels, &c. Finally, it is very absurd to think of companies of
+other presbyters in churches that Paul planted, but presbyteries of such
+presbyters as are now distinguished from bishops, which is the grant of
+our adversaries.--Bayne's Diocesan's Trial, page 82.]
+
+[Footnote 105: See Assertion of the Government of the Church of
+Scotland, Part I. Chap. 2, p. 122, &c.]
+
+[Footnote 106: Mr. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod Blossoming, book i. chap.
+iii. pages 8-38.]
+
+[Footnote 107: Vid. Joannis Seldeni de Anno Civili, and Calendario, &c.
+Dissertationem in Praefat., page 8. See also Mr. John Lightfoot's
+Commentary upon the Acts, c. x. 28, pages 235-239.]
+
+[Footnote 108: John Cameron, Praelect. in Matt. xviii. 15, page 143 ad
+162, and Mr. G. Gillespie's Aaron's Rod Blossoming, &c., book i., chap.
+3, page 8, &c., and book ii., chap. 9, page 294-297; and book iii.,
+chapters 2-6, handling this elaborately, pages 350-423.]
+
+[Footnote 109: Assertion, &c., part 2, chap. 3, p. 139.]
+
+[Footnote 110: Basilius in Psal. cxv. Oecumenius in loc. Jerom.
+Chrysostome, hom. 33, in Matt. Irenaeus, lib. 1, chap. 11. Salmeron.]
+
+[Footnote 111: Euseb. Hist. Eccles. 1. 8 c. 1.]
+
+[Footnote 112: If Cenchrea be comprehended under the church of Corinth
+in this epistle, and the apostle writing to the Corinthians, wrote also
+to this church, called, Rom. xvi. 1, _the church of Cenchrea_, then have
+we more congregations than one at Corinth. Now, Cenchrea was a seaport
+or harbor of the Corinthians. It was a place near to Corinth, on the
+east of the Egean Sea. Rutherford, in his Due Right of Presbyteries,
+page 462.]
+
+[Footnote 113: Paget, Gillespie, and the four Leyden professors, unto
+whose judicious and elaborate treatises, the reader is referred for more
+full satisfaction against the usual cavils and exceptions that are made
+against synods, and their power.]
+
+[Footnote 114: This is the judgment of the learned Whitaker upon these
+words: other lawful councils may in like manner assert "their decrees to
+be the decrees of the Holy Ghost, if they shall be like to this council,
+and shall keep the same rule, which in this council the apostles did
+keep and follow. For if they shall decree and determine nothing but from
+Scripture, (which was done in this council.) and if they shall examine
+all questions by the Scripture, and shall follow the voice of the
+Scriptures in all their decrees, then they may assert, that the Holy
+Ghost so decreed," &c. Whitaker, Cont. page 610.]
+
+[Footnote 115: That there is an authoritative, juridical synod; and that
+this synod, Acts xv., was such a one; and that this synod is a pattern
+to us;--all this is most ingenuously acknowledged and asserted by that
+learned Independent, Mr. John Cotton, in these words, viz:
+
+"IV. Proposition, in case a particular church be disturbed with errors
+of scandal, and the same maintained by a faction among them. Now a synod
+of churches, or of their messengers, is the first subject of that power
+and authority, whereby error is judicially convinced and condemned, the
+truth searched out and determined; and the way of truth and peace
+declared and imposed upon the churches.
+
+"The truth of this proposition may appear by two arguments
+
+"_Argum_. 1. From the want of power in such a particular church, to pass
+a binding sentence where error or scandal is maintained by a faction;
+for the promise of binding and loosing which is made to a particular
+church, Matt, xviii. 18, is not given to the church when it is leavened
+with error and variance. And the ground----If then the church, or a
+considerable part of it, fall into error through ignorance, or into
+faction; by variance, they cannot expect the presence of Christ with
+them according to his promise, to pass a blind sentence. And then as
+they fall under the conviction and admonition of any other sister
+church, in a way of brotherly love, by virtue of communion of churches;
+so their errors and variance, and whatsoever scandals else do accompany
+the same, they are justly subject to the condemnation of a synod of
+churches.
+
+"2. A second argument to prove that a synod is the first subject of
+power, to determine and judge errors and variances in particular
+churches, is taken from the pattern set before us in that case, Acts xv.
+1-28: when certain false teachers having taught in the church of Antioch
+a necessity of circumcision to salvation, and having gotten a faction to
+take part with them, (as appeareth by the dissension and disputation of
+Paul and Barnabas against them,) the church did not determine the case
+themselves, but referred the whole matter to the _apostles and elders at
+Jerusalem_, Acts xv. 1, 2. Not to the apostles alone, but to the
+apostles and elders. The apostles were as the elders and rulers of all
+churches; and the elders there were not a few, the believers in
+Jerusalem being many thousands. Neither did the apostles determine the
+matter (as hath been said) by apostolical authority from immediate
+revelation: but they assembled together with the elders, _to consider of
+the matter_, ver. 6, and a _multitude of brethren_ together with them,
+ver. 12, 22, 23; and after searching out the cause by an ordinary means
+of disputation, ver. 7, Peter cleared it by the witness Of the Spirit to
+his ministry in Cornelius's family; Paul and Barnabas by the like effect
+of their ministry among the Gentiles: James confirmed the same by the
+testimony of the prophets, wherewith the whole synod being satisfied,
+they determine of a JUDICIAL SENTENCE, and of a way to publish it by
+letters and messengers; in which they CENSURE the false teachers as
+troublers of their church, and subverters of their souls; they reject
+the imposition of circumcision as a yoke which neither they nor their
+fathers were able to bear; they IMPOSE upon the Church none but some
+necessary observations, and them by way of THAT AUTHORITY which the Lord
+had given them, ver. 28: which PATTERN clearly showeth us to whom the
+key of authority is committed, when there groweth offence and difference
+in a church. Look as in the case of the offence of a faithful brother
+persisted in, the matter is at last judged and determined in a church:
+so in the offence of the church or congregation, the matter is at last
+judged in a congregation of churches, a church of churches; for what is
+a synod else but a church of churches?"--Keys of the Kingdom of Heaven,
+pages 47-49.]
+
+[Footnote 116: Junius, Beza, Calvin, and Piscator.]
+
+
+
+
+APPENDIX.
+
+NO. 1.[117]
+
+_Of the Scriptural Qualifications and Duties of Church Members._
+
+
+_Quest_. What persons have a right in the sight of God to be actual
+members of the Church of Christ?
+
+_Ans_. Only regenerated and converted persons, such as are married to,
+and have put on Christ; such as are savingly and powerfully enlightened,
+quickened, and convinced of sin, righteousness, and judgment;[118] such
+as have chosen Christ for their Lord and Saviour, and resigned and made
+over themselves to him, and received him upon his own terms;[119] such
+only as are reconciled unto, and are in favor with God; as are justified
+by faith, sanctified by the Spirit, and set apart for holiness, and unto
+a living to God, and no more unto themselves:[120] such as are the
+beloved of God, called effectually to be saints, and have really and
+sincerely taken upon them the yoke of Christ Jesus, I say such persons,
+and only such, doth Jesus Christ account worthy of this privilege and
+dignity.[121] Although men do not certainly know those that are such,
+and by reason of their darkness and fallible judgments they may and do
+admit others into the Church, and unto her privileges, yet in truth
+these have no right unto them, and ought not to be there; for these
+spiritual holy things are for, and only for, spiritual and holy persons.
+Christ prepares men by his grace, word, and Spirit to make them fit
+materials, and then he calls them to join together and become a
+spiritual house, for his delight, service, and glory.[F] And therefore
+holy persons, and such only, ought to be full members of the Church of
+Christ.
+
+This will appear by these following particulars:
+
+1. Because God often declares his detestation and abhorrence of others
+being there, and manifests his indignation against them. As to the man
+that came to the marriage supper without the wedding-garment, Matt.
+xxii. 11-13; and the five foolish virgins, chap. xxv.; and the dreadful
+end of the tares, chap. xiii. 38-44, which were the hypocrites, that by
+the devil's instigation had crept into the Church. It is true that such
+were, and will be, in the best of churches, although their guides may do
+all they can to prevent it, because they cannot make an infallible
+judgment of persons' states; yet it is as certain these are usurpers and
+ought not to be there. For, although they are in God's providence
+permitted to creep in, yet we may be sure they are not there with his
+approbation:--they are not all Israel that are of Israel; for, saith God
+to all uncircumcised, What have you to do to take my covenant into your
+mouth, seeing you hate instruction and cast my words behind your back,
+(as all hypocrites do,) Ps. l. 16, 17. And Christ says, that such as
+will not have him to reign over him (and to be sure hypocrites will not)
+shall be destroyed, Luke xix. 27. Now, as hypocrites are most loathsome
+and abominable persons in the sight of God, as may be seen at large in
+Matt, xxiii. 13-35, they have no right unto the spiritual privileges of
+the Church of Christ, because, in the sight of God, the gospel Church
+should consist only of new creatures and real members of Jesus Christ.
+
+II. That all church members ought to be sincere-hearted believers
+appears by the high titles which the Lord Jesus gives unto them in
+Scripture: they are described to be like the king's daughter, all
+glorious within. They are called saints, holy brethren, and beloved,
+elect, dear children of God, the spouse of Christ, a holy temple of God,
+lively stones, built up a spiritual house, a holy priesthood, and the
+Lord's sealed ones. Now such honorable titles belong not unto mere
+formal professors, but only unto the real members of Christ: not unto
+those that have a name only; but to such as are so indeed and in truth.
+
+III. A third reason is taken from the ends of God in instituting and
+appointing churches. They are said to be built by the Spirit for God,
+i.e. for God to dwell and walk in them, to repose himself in them, as in
+his holy garden, house, and temple. They are designed for promoting his
+glory in the world, to distinguish his people from others; that they
+should be to the praise of his glorious grace, and be the living
+witnesses to his name, truths, and ways; that they should be the
+habitations of beauty and glory, of fame and renown in the world, and be
+the light thereof; and that with one heart and mouth they should glorify
+God. Believers are united into a church capacity for their spiritual
+profit and advantage, that God may there give them his love, and
+communicate his grace, truths, and counsels to them, as to his avowed
+household and family Christ walks there, and God the Father dwells
+there, and the Holy Spirit speaks to them in a special and frequent
+manner to distribute liberally of their love and fulness. They are
+formed and set up by Jesus Christ to be the only seats and subjects of
+his laws, ordinances, power, and authority, that they might receive,
+obey, and observe his laws, declare before the world their owning of him
+for their Lord, by their open and public profession of, and subjection
+unto him, as such; and that, by their regular and distinct following of
+him in their united church state, they might manifest to all men, that
+they are his subjects and disciples, that they have chosen him for their
+Lord and King, and his law for the rule of their faith and obedience;
+that they are not their own, but his; and that they have reposed
+themselves in him, as their happiness and eternal blessedness; that they
+are called out of the world and set apart by his grace for himself, to
+live unto him; and that they have taken upon themselves his holy yoke,
+and the observation of all his laws. God has united believers into
+churches, that by his Spirit and ministers he may feed and nourish them
+there as his flock, water them as his garden, support them as his house,
+and order and govern them as his family and household.
+
+IV. The Church of Christ should consist of new creatures and
+sincere-hearted believers, because they only can and will answer and
+prosecute the foresaid, and such like holy ends of God, in and by his
+Church. They are fitted and framed, moulded and polished, by the Holy
+Ghost, for their growing up into a holy temple in the Lord; and so, by
+the constant and promised guidance and conduct of their living head
+Jesus Christ, with their spiritual qualifications, they are enabled to
+answer and perform the great ends of God, in erecting and building them
+up in a church state. But unregenerate persons cannot do this, because
+they are strangers in heart to Jesus Christ, and to the power of
+godliness; nor would they if they could, because they have not the
+saving knowledge of Christ in them, but are full of obstinacy against
+God.
+
+V. Because all the laws, ordinances, and works of church members are
+holy, spiritual, and heavenly. They are such as the natural man
+understands not, and cannot discern what they are, because they are
+spiritual and holy; and therefore they that are not taught of God
+savingly to form a proper judgment of them, do think and judge of them
+carnally and vainly. But believers have them written in their hearts
+beforehand. Yet they have them not without book, I mean they have the
+same laws of Christ written in the books of their hearts which they find
+in the Bible, by which they are in some measure enabled to understand,
+receive, love, and rightly to obey, the laws and ordinances of Christ
+without. Their laws are holy and spiritual, and their works in a church
+state are so likewise. They have a holy God, who is a Spirit, to serve
+and worship; a spiritual Head to believe in and obey; holy and spiritual
+work to do; and therefore they need to be holy and spiritual persons,
+not only externally in profession, but also internally, in truth. Almost
+all the laws and ordinances of Christ are committed unto them, and God
+expects his principal and choicest worship from his Church; and these
+are all above and beyond the reach of carnal minds.
+
+VI. The Church ought to be composed of believers and regenerated
+persons, because they are called to continue and stand fast in all
+storms and tempests; and to hold out unto the end, as being built upon
+the rock Jesus Christ. For whatever church is built upon the sand, and
+not upon the Lord Jesus, and by the authority of his word and Spirit,
+will not stand long, because it wants a foundation to bear up its
+weight. They must all be built upon the rock and chief corner-stone, the
+sure foundation that God hath laid. The Lord Jesus tells us, Matt. xvi.
+18, that upon this rock (i.e. himself and the truths that Peter had
+confessed) will I build my Church, and the gates of hell shall not
+prevail against it. But it is certain that hypocrites are not built upon
+Christ by faith, but fix their vain hopes on a sandy foundation.
+Therefore, if their persons are not built upon Christ, their church
+state cannot; but upon the sand. Hence then it follows that only true
+believers are built on Christ, and so they are the only persons that
+Christ wishes to have built up into holy temples; because the churches
+that Christ builds shall be built upon himself, that they may stand
+impregnable against all opposition: and therefore they should only be
+composed of such as are united to him by faith, and have chosen him for
+their only rock and foundation, and not of such as do secretly reject
+him.
+
+_Quest_. What qualifications should believers find in themselves for
+their own satisfaction, before they enter into full communion with the
+visible Church of Christ?
+
+_Ans_. They should be able to answer the following questions in the
+affirmative.
+
+I. Can you say indeed that you do seriously and heartily desire to see,
+and to be more deeply and powerfully convinced of your own vileness and
+sinfulness, of your own weakness and wretchedness, and of your wants and
+unworthiness? and that, in order to your deep and spiritual humiliation
+and self-debasing, that you may be more vile in your own eyes, and Jesus
+Christ and free grace more precious and excellent, more high and
+honorable, and more sweet and desirable, that your hearts may be melted
+into godly sorrow, and that you may be moved thereby to abhor
+yourselves, and to repent in dust and ashes? Job xlii. 5, 6.
+
+II. Can you say that you do seriously and heartily desire and endeavor
+to believe in Christ, and to receive and accept of him in the gospel
+way, such as you find in Mark viii. 34; Luke xiv. 26-28, and elsewhere?
+Do you thus desire and choose to have him with his yoke and cross? Matt.
+xi. 28, 29. And do you so deny yourselves, and your sinful self,
+righteous self, worldly self, supposed able, powerful self, and every
+other carnal and spiritual self, that Christ only may be exalted, that
+you may be nothing in your justification and salvation, but that Jesus
+Christ and free grace may be all, and in all things? Col. iii. 11; Phil.
+iii. 7, 8. Do you desire, choose, and endeavor to have Christ on the
+hardest terms; and do you desire, that all may go for Christ's person,
+blood, and righteousness, his grace, love, life, and Spirit, for the
+pardon of your sins, and the justification of your persons, that you may
+be found in him, not having your own righteousness, but the
+righteousness of Christ by faith? Phil. iii. 9. And do you go and
+present yourselves as destitute condemned sinners to him, and to God the
+Father in and by him, that you may be clothed with the righteousness of
+Christ, and that God may pardon, justify, and accept you for his sake
+only?
+
+III. Do you seriously and heartily desire and choose to have Christ
+Jesus for your Lord and Ruler too, Col. ii. 6; that he may rule in you,
+and over you, and that your lusts and yourselves, your interests, and
+your all, may be subject unto him, and be wholly at his command and
+disposal continually? Is Christ the Lord as acceptable to you as Christ
+Jesus the Saviour? and are you willing to obey him, and to be subject to
+his authority and dominion, as well as to be saved by him? Would you
+have him to destroy your lusts, to make an end of sin, and to bring all
+under his obedience?
+
+IV. Do you seriously and heartily desire and endeavor never to sin more;
+but to walk with God unto all well-pleasing continually? Col. i. 10. And
+do you pray earnestly that God would work in you that which is
+well-pleasing in his sight, Heb. xiii. 21, that you may in all your ways
+honor and glorify him, as the end of your living in this world? 2 Cor.
+v. 15. Would you indeed live to the praise of his glorious grace, be an
+ornament unto his name and gospel, and be fruitful in every good word
+and work? Are these things the scope, aim, and intent of your hearts and
+souls (in some good measure and degree) daily, in duties and ordinances,
+and at other times?
+
+V. Do you seriously and heartily choose and desire communion with
+Christ, and in truth endeavor to obtain and keep it? Do you so seek for
+it in the way of gospel obedience, and in observing your duty in keeping
+Christ's commandments? And do you prefer it to all earthly, carnal
+things? Do your hearts breathe and pant after it, and are you willing to
+deny self, and all self-interests to get it? Are you glad when you find
+it, and sad when by your own carelessness you lose it? Doth it when
+obtained quicken your love to and zeal for Christ? Doth it warm your
+hearts, and cause them for a time to run your race in gospel obedience
+cheerfully? Doth it lead you unto, and cause your hearts to centre in
+Christ? and doth it oblige and bind them faster unto him and stir you up
+to thankfulness?
+
+VI. Do you sincerely and heartily desire, seriously choose, and
+earnestly endeavor, to be filled with gospel sincerity towards God and
+man, and would you rather be true-hearted towards God than seem to be so
+towards man? Would you much rather have the praise of God, and be
+approved of by him, than the praise of men, and be extolled by them? Is
+it the great thing you aim at, in your profession and practice, to
+attain sincerity and uprightness in heart? Is all hypocrisy hateful and
+abominable unto you? Are you afraid of it, and do you watch and strive
+against it, as against an enemy to God and your own souls, and are you
+grieved indeed when you find it in you?
+
+VII. Do you desire and choose Jesus Christ for the great object of your
+love, delight, and joy? and do you find him to be so in some measure? Do
+you desire and endeavor to make him the object of your warmest
+affections, and to love him sincerely, heartily, spiritually, fervently,
+and constantly; and do you express your love to him by keeping his
+commandments? Are you grieved in spirit, because you can love him no
+more? and do you earnestly pray unto him to shed abroad his love into
+your hearts by the Holy Ghost, that you may love him as ye ought? Rom.
+v. 5. Doth his love and loveliness attract your hearts to him, and cause
+you to yield the obedience of faith to his holy laws?
+
+VIII. Is it the desire, choice, and endeavor of your souls to have all
+sins purged out of them, and to have them filled with Christ's grace,
+truth, and holiness; and do you hate your sin, watch and fight against
+it, and endeavor to keep it under? Do you indeed aim at, desire, labor,
+and strive, to be holy in heart and life, and conformable unto Jesus
+Christ in all things possible? Are your lusts your heaviest burdens and
+your greatest afflictions, and do you intend and endeavor their utter
+ruin and destruction? Will no degree of grace satisfy you until you be
+perfect to the utmost as Christ is? Are you so much concerned for
+Christ's honor, and your soul's holiness and happiness, that you dare
+not knowingly sin against them for a world; or do, in word or deed, by
+omission or commission, that which may dishonor, grieve, or wound them?
+Are these things so indeed?
+
+IX. Have you a measure of spiritual knowledge and discerning of
+spiritual things? Do you understand the nature and concerns of the house
+of God, and the work and duties, the privileges and enjoyments thereof,
+and what you have to do there; together with the ends of God in
+instituting and erecting gospel churches?
+
+X. Do you intend and resolve, in the light, life, and power of Christ,
+to seek for, and endeavor unfeignedly to obtain, and prosecute the ends
+of church fellowship, when you shall he accepted among them? and do you
+desire and aim at the holy ends appointed by God in desiring communion
+with them? as, 1. To enjoy God and communion with him in all his
+ordinances. 2. To worship God there in spirit and truth, and to give him
+your homage and service in his house. 3. To show your subjection and
+obedience to him, and to make a public and open profession of him, and
+of his truths before men. 4. To receive of his grace, to enrich your
+souls with his fulness, and to be sealed by his Spirit unto the day of
+your redemption. 5. That you may walk orderly and beautifully, and shine
+as lights in the Church, and in the world, before saints and sinners. 6.
+That you may be established in the truth, live under the watch and care
+of Christ's ministers, and of fellow-members; that by their inspection
+and faithful dealings with you you may be kept, or brought back from sin
+to God, by their wise reproofs and holy instructions. 7. That you may
+yield up yourselves in holy obedience to Christ, and do all things
+whatsoever he commands you, that you may have the right use and
+enjoyment of all your purchased privileges, and be secured against the
+gates of hell. Are these and such like ends in your hearts and minds, in
+your walk and in church fellowship, and can you find the forementioned
+signs of grace in you in some suitable measure, though not so clearly
+and fully as you would wish? Then I may venture to assure you, that you
+are qualified for being actual members of the Church of Christ, that you
+are called and invited into his house, and that you are indispensably
+bound to answer to the call of God, and to enter into his holy temple.
+
+I say that church privileges are yours, the doors of God's house stand
+open for you, Christ stands at the door and waits for you, he invites
+you to come in and to sit down at his table, and you shall be most
+freely and heartily welcome to your Lord, and to his people.
+
+_Quest_. What are those qualifications, which the rulers of a church,
+for their own satisfaction, should look for, and find in such persons,
+as they admit into full communion with the Church of Christ?
+
+_Ans_. It is certain that all that profess the name of Christ and his
+ways, ought not, and may not be admitted into the Lord's holy temple,
+because many, if not the most of them, are very ignorant of Christ and
+his ways, and notoriously scandalous in their lives, as sad and woful
+experience shows. If church rulers should admit known hypocrites, they
+betray their trust, and defile Christ's holy temple, by taking in such
+persons as they know, or ought to know, he would not have there: and
+that they ought to try and prove persons, that they may know their
+fitness, before they admit them in, is clear in Acts ix. 26, 27, and
+because Christ hath committed the keys of his house to take in and
+exclude according to his will and appointment.
+
+As to satisfying qualifications in persons desiring admission into the
+church, when they appear to be real sound-hearted believers, according
+to the judgment of charity, by the rules of the word, the church ought
+to receive them in the Lord.
+
+I. If they can satisfy the church, by giving Scripture evidence of their
+regeneration, conversion, repentance, and faith in Christ; of their
+knowledge of Christ, his laws and ordinances; of their lost and
+perishing state by reason of sin, and of their sincere desires and
+resolutions to become the Lord's, and to walk with him unto all
+well-pleasing in all his ways.
+
+II. If they are sound in the faith of the gospel; I mean in the chief
+and principal doctrines thereof, although they may be ignorant of, or
+mistaken in matters of less importance. If they have some distinct
+knowledge and faith concerning these, and other such truths and matters
+contained in the word of God; as of the state and condition in which man
+was at first created; how he lost that holy and blessed estate, and the
+misery into which he brought himself and all his posterity thereby.
+Concerning themselves, that they are by nature children of wrath, dead
+in trespasses and sins, and condemned to eternal death; that they are
+enemies to, and at enmity with, God; that they have neither will nor
+power by nature to will and to do that which they ought, and which is
+well-pleasing to God; that they have forsaken God, and are under the
+curse of the law; and that they are the children, subjects, and servants
+of the devil, the world, and their own lusts; that God left not all men
+in this lost state and condition, but provided an all-sufficient remedy,
+namely, Jesus Christ, and that by an everlasting covenant, entered into
+with him, in the behalf of men, before the foundation of the world, Tit.
+i. 2; 2 Tim. i. 9; Prov. viii.: and that, in pursuance thereof, he
+elected and gave some to Christ, that he might save them out of his mere
+grace and love. John vi. 37, 40:--That God the Father gave and sent his
+Son, the second person of the Trinity, to mediate peace between God
+and man, and to reconcile them to God, by his active and passive
+obedience;--that Jesus Christ gave himself, and became a propitiation
+for their sins;--that he assumed our nature into a personal union with
+himself, whereby there are two natures in one person, by which he was
+made capable of his mediatorship;--that he, being God and man in one
+person, took upon himself our guilt and punishment, obeyed the whole law
+of God, that men had broke, and did always the things that pleased
+God;--that, when he had finished his active obedience, he became
+obedient unto the death of the cross, to the wrath of God, and to the
+curse of the law, Gal. iii. 13; Phil. ii. 8;--that he really died and
+was buried, lay in the grave, and rose again the third day; and after
+forty days he ascended into heaven, and sat down at the right hand of
+God; and that he will come again to judge the quick and the dead;--that
+he is king, priest, and prophet; a king to give laws unto men, and to
+command their obedience to him, to rule and govern his subjects, and to
+reward the obedient, and to punish the disobedient;--that all power in
+heaven and earth is committed unto him; and that he is coequally and
+coeternally God with the Father and Holy Spirit;--that as a High Priest
+he died and made atonement for the sins of his people, and sits in
+heaven to make intercession, and to appear in the presence of God for
+them, Heb. vii. 25, and ix. 24;--that there are three persons in the
+Godhead, yet but one God;--that the Holy Ghost is eternally God, was
+sent into the world, and came from the Father and Son, for the elect's
+sake;--that it is he that regenerates persons, works effectually in
+their hearts, applies Jesus Christ and all his benefits to men, and
+savingly convinces his elect of sin, righteousness, and judgment. That
+all that rightly believe in Christ shall be saved, but those that
+believe not shall be damned; and that all that believe in him must be
+careful to perform good works. That believers are made righteous,
+through the righteousness of Jesus Christ, and that they have none of
+their own to commend them unto God. That God hath made Jesus Christ unto
+his chosen, wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption; and
+that they are made the righteousness of God in him. That God imputed
+their sins to Christ, and imputes the blood and righteousness of Christ
+to them; and that they are justified thereby, and not by inherent
+holiness and righteousness. That God loves, pardons, justifies, and
+saves men _freely_, without any respect unto their good works, as any
+cause thereof; but that all the moving cause (without himself) is Jesus
+Christ in his mediation. That the ground and reason of their obedience,
+in performing good works, is the revealed will and pleasure of Christ
+commanding them, and the ends of them are to express their thankfulness
+to God for his grace and love, to please and honor him, to meet with
+God, and to enjoy communion with him, to receive of his grace and the
+good of many promises; to shine as lights in the world, and to be useful
+unto men; to declare whose and what they are, and to lay up a reward in
+another world; to keep their lusts under, and their graces in use and
+exercise; and to manifest their respect and subjection to Jesus Christ,
+his authority, and law. That the law, for the matter of it, as in the
+hand of Christ, is the rule of all obedience; and that all are bound to
+yield subjection to it. That there shall be a resurrection of the just
+and unjust. That regeneration is absolutely necessary to salvation, and
+that without it none can enter into the kingdom of heaven. That the
+Scriptures of the Old and New Testaments contain, and exhibit unto men,
+the whole revealed will of God, and are sufficient to make the man of
+God perfect, thoroughly furnished unto every good work; and that
+whatsoever they are to believe and do is contained therein; and that it
+is the ground of their faith, hope, and practice. That Jesus Christ hath
+instituted and appointed many ordinances of worship, for his own glory
+and his people's good, and that all are bound to observe and to wait on
+God in them. That all persons are indispensably bound to mind, and
+carefully to observe the principal manner and end of all their duties,
+and to see that they be right, holy, and spiritual indeed, and not to
+please themselves with the matter of them alone. That no man can serve
+God, or do any work acceptable unto him, until he be regenerated, and
+brought into a state of grace.
+
+These are some of the matters of faith that they should in some measure
+be acquainted with and believe, that are admitted into full communion
+with the Church of Christ. And these and other truths must not be known
+and believed in a general, notional, light, and speculative manner; but
+heartily, powerfully, and particularly: not for others, but for
+themselves; otherwise their faith and knowledge will no way profit their
+souls to salvation.
+
+III. They must be qualified also with a blameless conversation. Their
+conversation must be as becometh the gospel, otherwise they are not meet
+for communion with the gospel church. Carnal walking will not suit
+spiritual temples: for they will greatly pollute and defile them, and
+stain and obscure their beauty and glory. Therefore they must not be
+brawlers and contentious persons, covetous and worldly-minded, vain and
+frothy. They must not be froward and peevish, nor defraud others of
+their right. Nor must they neglect the worship of God in their families,
+nor be careless in governing and educating them in good manners, and in
+the things of God. They must not be such as are known to omit the
+duties and ordinances of religion in their proper seasons, or to have
+vicious families through their neglect: nor to have any other kind of
+conversation hateful to God and to his people. And therefore, whatever
+their profession be, they may not be admitted into the Church of God,
+until they have repented of these, or any other scandal in their life
+and conduct.
+
+IV. They ought to be such as have chosen the Lord Jesus Christ for their
+king and head, and dedicated and devoted themselves to him, to live in
+him and for him: such as have singled him out, and set him apart, (as it
+were,) to be the object of their love, trust, and delight, of their
+service and obedience. They must have chosen and closed with him upon
+his own terms, (i.e. _freely_,) renouncing and rejecting all their own
+righteousness, worthiness, interest, and sufficiency, and choosing and
+appropriating him to themselves, for their righteousness, worthiness,
+portion, and sufficiency, under a sight and conviction of their own
+emptiness and deformity; and with a heart-satisfied persuasion of the
+loveliness and fulness of Christ.
+
+V. All this must be done seriously, humbly, and heartily, so far as men
+can judge. If persons declare their knowledge of God and faith in Christ
+in such a manner, and apparently by such a spirit as evidences some
+sense and feeling of what they do declare, church rulers may be much
+helped in forming a right judgment of them, that they are fitted by God
+for church-membership. If they do seriously profess, that what they do
+is in obedience to the will, and, as they judge, to the call of Christ
+as their indispensable duty;--that they join in church fellowship to
+meet with and enjoy God, to receive out of his fulness to enable them to
+perform all duties, and to conform their hearts and lives in his will to
+all things;--such persons may undoubtedly be accounted worthy members,
+and admitted as such.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of church members towards one another?
+
+_Ans_. I. The greatest is love; love and spiritual affections are the
+holy cords which tie the hearts, souls, and judgments of believers
+together. This is that which, together with the fear of God, makes them
+avoid all things that may give just offence or grief to one another, and
+that which provokes them to follow after the things that make for peace
+and edification. Love is the bond of peace. It is that which, together
+with divine light and truth, causes church members to draw together as
+in one yoke, and unanimously as with one heart and soul to design, aim
+at, and carry on mutual and common good in the church. Without this they
+cannot, they will not cement, nor long abide and live together as a
+church, in peace and unity, nor promote any good work among themselves.
+Without heart-uniting love they will receive and entertain jealousies
+and suspicions one of another, and put the worst construction on
+whatever is said or done; and they cannot walk together comfortably and
+profitably when these are entertained. Therefore it is absolutely
+necessary for all church members to be firmly united in cordial love and
+charity, which is the bond of perfectness to and in all other duties.
+God highly commends and strictly commands this love one to another, and
+puts it into the heart of his peculiar people, that they may do what he
+commands.
+
+1. God highly commends it wherever he finds it in act and exercise; 1
+Thess. iv. 10, "and indeed," says he, "ye do it towards all the
+brethren." To this duty, and to manifest his high approbation of it, God
+hath promised a great reward, Heb. vi. 10.
+
+2. God commands it and vehemently exhorts to it often in the gospel. Oh
+how importunately did the Lord Jesus enjoin it, and frequently press it
+on his disciples when he was on earth! John xiii. 34, "A new commandment
+give I unto you." What is that new commandment? Why, "That ye love one
+another, as I have loved you, that ye also love one another." And in
+John xv. 12, 17, "This is my commandment, that ye love one another, as I
+have loved you;" i.e. Take the pattern of my love to you for your
+pattern in loving one another. I have loved and will love you--1. With
+_great_ love, John xv. 13: so do you likewise. 2. My love to you is
+_free_, without any desert in you: let yours be free, without carnal
+respects one to another also. 3. My love to you is _real, hearty_, and
+_unfeigned_: so let yours be one to another, 1 Pet. i. 22. 4. My love to
+you is an exceeding _fruitful love_. I loved you so, as to labor, toil,
+sweat, and die for you: so must you love one another with a fruitful,
+profiting love. 5. My love to you is a _pitying, sparing, and forgiving
+love; a forbearing and tender-hearted love_: so must you be to one
+another, Col. iii. 12, 13. 6. I love you with a _warm and fervent love_:
+so do you love one another. 7. I love with a _holy, spiritual love_, as
+new men who have my image stamped on, and my holy nature in you, and as
+you are made perfect by the comeliness and beauty I have put on you: so
+do you love one another, because you are a lovely and holy people unto
+me. 8. I love you with a _constant and unchangeable love_;
+notwithstanding of all your weaknesses, yea, unkindness too, and
+unworthy walkings before me: thus you are bound to love one another.
+
+O that church members and all other Christians would seriously,
+sincerely, diligently, and constantly mind and practise this grand and
+indispensable duty to one another, in all their ways and actions, and
+not lay it aside as a little, useless, or indifferent matter, which they
+may neglect at their own will and pleasure.
+
+2. As we are indispensably bound to love one another; so we are as
+absolutely and perfectly bound to walk in a loving and encouraging
+manner towards one another. Our behavior ought to be such in all things,
+as to invite all to love us, as holy, humble, and blameless saints, and
+brethren in Christ. The Lord Jesus expects church members to walk
+lovingly towards one another, as well as to love one another. They
+ought, therefore, as much as possible, to provoke and encourage each
+other, and to remove out of the way of love all such stumbling-blocks as
+may any way hinder it, as we cannot love a sour, peevish, contentious,
+and cross-grained professor, with as much complacency as a meek, quiet,
+humble, affable, and courteous one.
+
+3. Christ hath charged and strictly commanded all church members to live
+in peace: to be at peace among themselves; to follow peace with all men,
+and as much as in them lieth to live peaceably with all men. O how
+often, and with what vehemency doth the Holy Ghost press and enjoin this
+duty, especially among church members, in the Holy Scriptures! See Psal.
+xxxiv. 14; 1 Pet. iii. 11; Rom xiv. 19; 2 Cor. xiii. 11; 1 Thess. v. 13;
+Heb. xii. 14; Eph. v. 3. The apostle Paul earnestly warns church members
+against all debates, strifes, and contentions one with another,
+especially in their church meetings, Phil. ii. 3. David tells us, that
+it is a most pleasant and lovely thing for brethren to dwell together in
+unity, Psal. cxxxiii. 1, 2. Then how much more pleasant and lovely is it
+for spiritual brethren to love and worship God in this manner together
+Christ came into the world and lived here a peace-maker, and pronounces
+them blessed that are so, Matt. v. 9. He is a lover of peace and
+concord, especially in his Church; but he is an implacable hater of
+strife and discord, and will not endure it therein: much less will he
+wink at such as are the first sowers of these seeds. The truth is,
+strivers and disputers in a church are the devil's agents, do a great
+deal of mischief to it, and are real plagues in it. They greatly hinder
+edification, and spoil the order, beauty, and harmony there: they are
+the proud, self-conceited men, who are vainly puffed up with high
+thoughts of themselves, and their own abilities, because they have got
+some speculative knowledge into their heads, with a volubility of
+speech, while they are destitute of spiritual wisdom and humility in
+their hearts; and therefore they conceive that they are wiser than the
+church, and more able to manage and order church affairs than their
+rulers. Their pride and self-conceit make them slight and contemn their
+teachers, and rise up in a rebellious contention with, and opposition
+unto them; as the prophet complains, Hos. iv. 4, _This people are they
+that strive with the priests_. Take heed then of strife and contention,
+and follow peace one with another, especially in your assembling
+together about the work of the church. Endeavor to get humble hearts,
+and then you will not be contentious, but quiet and peaceable.
+
+4. Church members ought to sympathize with, and to help to bear one
+another's burdens as need requires, Rom. xii. 15, 16; Gal. vi. 2. They
+ought to make their brethren's crosses, losses, temptations, and
+afflictions their own. And, when they need the helping hand of
+fellow-members to support or lift them up, when fallen, they must give
+it to them freely, readily, and cheerfully, and not turn a deaf ear to,
+nor hide their eyes from, them and their cries. And, if they are cruel
+to, or careless of, one another in affliction, our Lord Jesus will
+require it at their hands, and lake it as done to himself. Therefore,
+seeing it is the will of God, and our indispensable duty to one another,
+who are members of the church, let us put on bowels of mercies and
+kindness, Col. iii. 12, and be tender-hearted, pitiful, and courteous to
+each other, Eph. iv. 32; 1 Pet. iii. 8.
+
+5. Church members ought to exhort and comfort one another, for so is the
+will of God concerning them. This is not only their teacher's duty and
+work, but theirs also to each other, Heb. x. 24, 25; Heb. iii. 13; 1
+Thess. v. 14. Christians stand in continual need of one another's
+exhortations and consolations; and if they manage this work well they
+may be very useful and profitable to one another, and may help to
+awaken, quicken, and provoke one another, to the love and practice of
+holiness.
+
+6. It is the will of the Lord Jesus Christ, the Church's head, that her
+members should be each other's keepers; that they should watch over one
+another, and admonish and reprove one another, as need requires. It is
+not meant, that they should pry into one another's secrets, or be
+busybodies in other men's matters, but that they should watch over one
+another's life and conversation, that if they do well they may be
+encouraged; if ill, that they may, by counsel, reproof, instruction, and
+exhortation, be brought to a real sight and sense of their misconduct,
+and to unfeigned repentance. By which good work, you will do them, the
+church, yea, Christ himself, good and acceptable service. Church members
+should carefully observe, if all do keep close to their duty in the
+church, or are remiss and negligent;--if they conduct themselves in a
+holy, righteous, and sober way; or if, on the contrary, they are frothy,
+vain, proud, extravagant, unjust, idle, careless, or any way scandalous.
+They should strictly observe if there be any tattlers, backbiters, or
+sowers of discord; or such as speak contemptibly of their brethren,
+especially of their elders, (ruling or preaching,) and of their
+administrations: as also, if there be any such as combine together, and
+make parties in the church, or endeavor to obstruct any good work which
+their elders are carrying on, for promoting the glory of Christ and the
+good of his people, and deal with them accordingly. They ought carefully
+to observe if any be fallen under sin or temptation in any case, and
+presently to set their hands to help, to relieve, and to restore them,
+Rev. vi. 1. They must watch, and endeavor to gain a sinning member, 1.
+By their private admonition, in case the offence be private; and if that
+will not do, to take one or two more to see what effect that will have.
+2. But if that will not answer the end, then they are bound to bring it
+to the church representative, that they may deal with the offending
+brother, and proceed against him as commanded: This is another great and
+indispensable duty required of church members, that they be not
+partakers of other men's sins.
+
+7. Church members ought to forbear and forgive one another; for this is
+another commanded duty, Eph. iv. 2, 32; Col. iii. 13. When a brother
+offends or does another any injury, the offended brother should tell him
+of it, examine the matter and search out the circumstances of it, and
+see whether he did it unadvisedly, through weakness or ignorance; or
+whether he did it wilfully and knowingly. If upon an impartial search he
+is found to have wronged his brother through ignorance or weakness, he
+must judge charitably of him, and not be harsh and severe towards him,
+in his carriage or censure. But if it clearly appear, upon impartial
+inquiry, that he did the injury knowingly and wilfully, then the
+offended brother must deal with him as a wilful transgressor. He must
+lay his sin before him, and show him what laws he hath transgressed;
+what evil he hath done him, what wrong to his own soul, and what offence
+he hath done to Christ, by breaking his holy laws. He must admonish him
+again and again of his sin, and reprove him, but not too severely, until
+he find him obstinate and stubborn. And if God convince him of his sin,
+and give him repentance unto life, he must readily forgive him. And, if
+he be once truly convinced of, and humbled for, his sin, he will most
+fully confess it to his brother, as well as to God, and endeavor to make
+him amends, and give him all possible satisfaction for the injury he
+hath done him, most freely and willingly: for it is a certain sign that
+a person is not powerfully and savingly convinced of, and humbled for,
+his sin, while he bears off, and must be sought after to make
+satisfaction to such as he hath wronged; because were his heart really
+melted into the will of God, he could not be quiet, until he have given
+all possible satisfaction to his brother whom he has injured, Luke xix.
+8. But in case he remain obstinate, and will not hearken to reproof,
+then the offended brother should take one or two more and deal with him;
+and if that will not do, he ought to bring it to the church
+representative, i.e. the elders of the church, that they may see what
+they can do with him. But if they cannot prevail on him to repent and to
+make satisfaction, then he ought to be cast out of the communion of the
+church, Matt, xviii. 17.
+
+8. It is the indispensable duty of church members to hearken to and
+receive instruction, admonition, and reproof from one another. For if
+some are indispensably bound at certain times to give them, surely
+others who need them are as much bound to receive them, Prov. viii. 33,
+x. 17, and xxix. 1. These are bound to hearken to their brethren's
+reproofs, counsels, and admonitions, with all humility, patience, and
+freedom of spirit, with all love, meekness, and thankfulness to God, and
+to the givers of them: for they are great mercies to such as need them,
+and they are their real and profitable friends, who seek their good, and
+endeavor to prevent their destruction. Let it therefore never be said
+justly of any of you that are church members, that you were reproved and
+admonished of any known sin by a brother, and that you refused and
+slighted their counsel or reproof, justified yourselves in your sins,
+and were displeased with or angry at such as admonished you, and did
+their indispensable duty to you, under your sin, for your salvation.
+
+9. Church members ought to pray for one another, and that with a real
+love, fervency, and importunity, as they do for themselves, James v. 16.
+O with what serious minds and strong affections should all church
+members pray for one another! They should be much in building up one
+another, and praying in the Holy Ghost one for another, Jude 20. They
+should carry one another in their hearts at the throne of grace,
+especially such as are under affliction, the whole Church in general,
+and her teachers in particular, Heb. xiii. 18, and wrestle with God for
+them; for they have the spirit of prayer given them, and audience and
+interest in heaven, for others, as well as for themselves.
+
+10. Church members should often meet together for prayer and holy
+conversation, by two or three or more, as they may have opportunity.
+This was wont to be the commendable practice of our forefathers, when
+Christ, duty, heaven, and religion lay warmer on their hearts than now
+they do; and this is still the practice of some, that are now alive. God
+hath promised his glorious teaching, and his warming, strengthening,
+sanctifying, and comforting presence to such as do so, Matt, xviii. 20.
+Church members find time enough to visit one another, and meet together
+to tell some idle stories, to tattle about other men's matters, which
+do not concern them, and perhaps to _backbite_ some of their brethren,
+and to prejudice the minds of persons against their teachers and their
+work, if they do not please them. And will not such meetings have
+bitterness in the end? Is it not great iniquity for Christians to tempt
+one another to sin, and to wrong their own souls, by misspending that
+precious time which they might have employed in the service of God, and
+one another's spiritual profit. Men and women were wont to discourse
+often of the things of God and their experiences one to another, Mal.
+iii. 16. But, alas! few persons are now to be found, who can find time
+and inclination for such an exercise. And the reason seems to be, that
+most are great strangers to God and to themselves, and are so much
+intoxicated with the things of this world, that they will not attend
+with any pleasure unto the spiritual duties of religion.
+
+11. Church members ought to encourage one another by their example, to
+attend regularly on the public ordinances of God's worship in his
+church. Whenever the church meets for the celebration of the worship of
+God, all her members are bound to meet together at the appointed time,
+except in extraordinary cases; otherwise good order cannot be kept, and
+the public duties performed, for the glory of God, and the edification
+of the church. By church members wilfully or carelessly absenting
+themselves at the time of meeting, they give an evil example to others,
+tempt them to do the like, and cast a stumbling-block in the way of
+their duty, Heb. x. 25.
+
+12. Church members must be charitable to the poor that are among them,
+and freely contribute to them according to their ability and _their_
+necessity. They are indispensably bound to impart their help and
+assistance to the poor, and to give them a little of their estates. It
+is a debt which they owe to God, and a duty to them. They will comfort
+them thereby; but they will much more profit themselves than them. It is
+a more blessed thing to give than to receive. Wealthy persons are
+stewards for the poor, and a part of what God hath given those was
+designed for these, 1 Pet. iv. 10, and therefore, says God, Deut. xv. 7,
+8, "Thou shalt not shut thine hand from thy poor brother, but shalt open
+it wide unto him." The rich must not only give to keep the poor alive in
+misery, but make comfortable provisions for them, that they may have
+enough to keep them from the temptations of poverty and pressing wants,
+and to fit them for, and encourage them in, their work and duty, to God
+and man.
+
+13. Church members ought carefully, watchfully, diligently, and
+conscientiously to beware of and avoid whatever may give any just
+offence or scandal to one another. For we are charged to "give none
+offence neither to Jew nor Gentile, nor to the Church of God," 1 Cor. x.
+32. And our Saviour tells us, that "wo to them by whom the offence
+cometh," Matt, xviii. 7.
+
+You must take heed of such evils as the following, and avoid them,
+because they all carry scandal in their nature to your own and others'
+souls: as, 1. Proud, disdainful, and haughty words conduct, and
+conversation; for these are grievous and provoking evils, which will
+justly offend all the observers of them. 2. Sullen, sour, and churlish
+language and behavior, which is offensive unto all sorts of persons; for
+this is an evil altogether unbecoming the followers of Jesus Christ. 3.
+A cross, captious, and contradictive spirit and conduct, delighting in
+opposition to the judgment of the church and her rulers. This is very
+scandalous to the brethren, and very reproachful unto themselves. 4.
+Speaking evil of one another behind their backs; backbiting or
+publishing their real or supposed evils, before they have been spoken to
+in secret. 5. Speaking lightly or contemptibly of one another, either to
+themselves or to others in their absence, as few men can bear patiently
+to be despised by the slighting carriages of their brethren. 6. Vain,
+foolish, and frothy discourses, which are very offensive to gracious
+saints. 7. Earthly-mindedness and greedy pursuits after worldly things;
+for as these are offensive to God, and hurtful to the soul, so they are
+offensive to saints. 8. Strife and contention among brethren, and
+grudging or envying one another's prosperity; as these produce many evil
+and wicked fruits, and cast blame upon the providence of God, who
+bestows his mercies as he will. 9. Defrauding and breaking promises.
+Contracting debts and unduly delaying or refusing to pay them, and
+disappointing men of their just expectations in virtue of promises made
+to them. Those also are scandalous, and cause the name of God to be evil
+spoken of. 10. Entering into a marriage relation with such as are
+apparently in an unbelieving, carnal, and unconverted state and
+condition; for this also is very offensive to holy serious men, although
+many make very light of it. 11. Idleness and slothfulness in your
+external calling, neglecting to provide for your own house, as that will
+prove a scandalous sin to others and to yourselves too. 12. Taking up a
+report rashly against one another of a scandalous nature, giving ear
+unto tattlers, and busybodies; or being busybodies in other men's
+matters yourselves, as this will give great offence.
+
+
+
+
+NO. II.[122]
+
+
+_Quest_. Who have a right to preach the gospel and dispense the public
+ordinances of religion?
+
+_Ans_. Without some proper furniture, it is absurd to imagine any should
+be sent of God to the ministerial work. When the ascended Jesus gave to
+the church apostles, evangelists; pastors and teachers, he gave gifts to
+men. _Who_, saith he, _goeth at, any time a warfare on his own charges?_
+What is the furniture, the qualifications prerequisite, according to the
+Holy Scriptures? A blameless conversation, a good report; experience of
+the self-debasing work of the Spirit of God; compassion to the souls of
+men; a fixedness in the Christian doctrines; a disposition faithfully to
+perform his vows; an aptness to teach the ignorant, and convince
+gainsayers. Knowledge of languages, knowledge of the history and
+sciences of this world, are useful handmaids to assist us in the study
+of divine things. To preach from the oracles of God, without capacity to
+peruse the original, especially if versant in romances and plays, we
+abhor and detest. This aptness to teach, however, consists not chiefly
+in any of these, but in a capacity to conceive spiritual things, and
+with some distinctness to express their conceptions to the edification
+of others, in that energy and life, whereby one, as affected himself,
+declares the truths of God, in a simple, serious, bold, and
+conscience-touching manner. The difference of this, from human
+eloquence, loud bawling, and theatrical action, is evident. These may
+touch the passions, and not affect the conscience: they may procure
+esteem to the preacher, none to Christ. These are the product of natural
+art: this the distinguished gift of God, without which, in a certain
+degree, none can have evidence that he was divinely sent to minister the
+gospel of Christ.
+
+No appearance of furniture, real or pretended, can warrant a man's
+exercising of the ministry, unless he have a regular call. That _all may
+prophesy one by one_ is indeed hinted in the sacred records: but there
+it is evident inspiration treats of what pertains to extraordinary
+officers in the church; hence there is mentioned _the gift of tongues_,
+extraordinary _psalms, revelations_: the _all_ that might prophesy are,
+therefore, not _all_ the members of the church; not _women_, who are
+forbid to speak in the church; but _all_ the extraordinary officers
+called prophets, 1 Cor. xiv. 31. The _all_ that were scattered abroad
+from Jerusalem, and _went about preaching the gospel_, Acts viii. 2,
+could not be _all_ the believers; for there remained at Jerusalem a
+church of believers for Saul to make havoc of. It must therefore have
+been _all_ the preachers, besides the apostles. To strengthen this, let
+it be observed, that the word here rendered _preaching_ is nowhere in
+Scripture referred to one out of office: that every one of this
+dispersion, we afterward hear of, are represented as evangelists,
+pastors, or teachers, Acts ix. 1, 11, 19, and xiii. 1. Parents and
+masters convey the same instruction that ministers do; but with a
+different authority: not as ministers of Christ, or officers in his
+Church. If other gifts or saintship entitled to preach the gospel, wo
+would be unto every gifted person, every saint, that did not preach it.
+If our adored Redeemer refused the work of a civil judge because not
+humanly vested with such power, will he allow his followers to exercise
+an office far more important, without any regular call? His oracles
+distinguish between the mission of persons, and their gifts, sometimes
+called a receiving of the Holy Ghost, John xx. 21, 23.
+
+To render the point incontestably evident, he demands, how men shall
+preach _except they be sent_? declares, that _no man_ rightly _taketh
+this honor to himself but he that is called of God, as was Aaron_. "I
+sent them not, therefore they shall not profit this people at all, saith
+the Lord." The characters divinely affixed to ministers, preachers, or
+heralds, ambassadors, stewards, watchmen, angels, messengers, brightly
+mark their call and commission to their work. The inspired rules for the
+qualifications, the election, the ordination of ministers, are divinely
+charged to be kept till _the day_, the second coming _of Jesus Christ_.
+For intermeddling with the sacred business without a regular call, has
+the Almighty severely punished numbers of men. Witness the destruction
+of Korah and his company; the rejection of Saul; and the death of Uzza;
+the leprosy of Uriah; the disaster of the sons of Sceva, &c., Num. xvi.;
+1 Sam. xiii.; 1 Chron. xiii.; 2 Chron. xxvi.; Acts xix.
+
+To rush into it, if gifted, or to imagine we are so, at our own hand,
+introduces the wildest disorder, and the most shocking errors: it did so
+at Antioch, and the places adjacent, where some falsely pretended a
+mission from the apostles. This, too, was its effect with the German
+anabaptists, and with the sectaries of England. Aversion at manual work,
+pride of abilities, a disturbed imagination, a carnal project to promote
+self, prompts the man to be preacher. Such ultroneous rushing is
+inconsistent with the deep impression of the charge, and the care to
+manifest their mission, everywhere in Scripture obvious in the ministers
+of Christ. However sound his doctrine, great his abilities, warm his
+address, where is the promise of God's especial presence, protection,
+or success, to the ultroneous preacher? Where is his conduct commanded,
+commended, or unmarked with wrath, exemplified in the sacred words? How
+then can the preaching, or our hearing, of such, be in faith? How can it
+be acceptable to God, or profitable to ourselves? For _whatsoever is not
+of faith is sin_. Falsely this preacher pretends a mission from Christ:
+wickedly, he usurps an authority over his Church: rebelliously he
+deserts his own calling, and attempts to make void the office his
+Saviour has appointed; to frustrate the dispensation of the gospel
+committed to his faithful ambassadors. For how can they fulfil their
+ministry, if others take the work out of their hand? How can they
+_commit it to faithful men_, if, not waiting their commission, men rush
+into it at pleasure?
+
+In vain pleads the ultroneous preacher, that a particular mission to the
+office of preaching and dispensing the sacraments was only necessary,
+when the gospel was preached to the heathen. From age to age, it is _as
+new_, to children _as new_, to such as never heard it. Nor, when hinting
+the necessity of a mission, does the inspiring Spirit make any
+distinction, whether the gospel be newly dispensed or not. _What
+therefore God hath joined together, let no man put asunder_. In vain he
+pleads an immediate commission from God: in his infallible statutes,
+having fixed standing rules of vocation to the ministry, by the
+mediation of men, God gives us no command, no encouragement, to hope for
+an immediate call, till the end of time. Absurdly then we allow any to
+have such a call, till we see _the signs of an apostle wrought in him_.
+It is not sufficient he be sound in his doctrine, exemplarily holy in
+his life, active in his labors, disinterested in his aims, seeking not
+his own, but the honor of Christ, not his own carnal profit, but the
+spiritual welfare of men: every ordinary preacher is, or ought to be so.
+But, to this claimant of a mission uncommon, working of miracles, or
+such extraordinary credentials, must demonstrate he hath not run unsent.
+
+In vain the ultroneous preacher boasts of his feelings; his success; his
+moving his audience; his reforming their lives; as if these demonstrated
+his call from God. On earth, was ever delusion carried on without
+pretence to, or without appearances of these? Let them, who know the
+history of Popery, of Mahometanism, Quakerism, &c., say if they were.
+Who knows not, that the Pharisaic sect pretended far more strictness,
+far more devotion, than the family of Christ? Who knows not, that Satan
+may, and has oft _transformed_ himself _into an angel of light_; his
+ministers into the form of inspired apostles; and his influences, almost
+indiscernibly similar to those of the Spirit of Jesus Christ? Who knows
+not, how oft vain-glory, proud and falsely extolling of himself and
+party, in their number, their spiritual experience and high advances in
+holiness, mark the distinguished impostor? How oft his sermons are
+larded with these!
+
+No more tell us, if the sermon be good, you do not regard who preach it.
+If God has prescribed a method of call, has stated the qualifications of
+the candidate, has warned against preachers unsent, has oft marked their
+guilt with visible strokes of his wrath, be ashamed to talk at so
+arrogant, so careless a rate. Lay it not in the power of the
+Mesopotamian wizard! Lies it not in the power of a Romish Jesuit, nay,
+if permitted, of Beelzebub, for a time to preach to you many truths of
+the gospel, in the warmest strain, the loftiest language? Would you
+acknowledge the _three_ for honored ambassadors of Christ? Tell us not
+your preacher is wonderfully pious and good: perhaps you have only his
+own attestation; when better known he may be a drunkard, a swearer, a
+villain, for you. Suppose he were pious, so was Uzziah; yet it pertained
+not to him to execute the priest's office. Say not he is wonderfully
+gifted--speaks like _never man_: perhaps so was Korah, a man famous and
+of renown: such perhaps were the vagabond sons of Sceva. Say not his
+earnestness in his work marks his heavenly call: no, such were the
+Satanic exorcists just mentioned; such was Mahomet, the vilest impostor.
+To abolish the idolatry, and various other abominations of his country,
+he exposed himself to cruel reproach, to manifold hardship and hazard of
+life; about fourteen years almost unsuccessful he persevered in this
+difficult, but delusive attempt. What hunger, what cold, what torment
+and death have some Jesuitic and other antichristian missionaries
+undergone, to propagate the most ruining delusions of hell; all under
+the pretence of earnestness to gain sinners to Christ and his church.
+The Scripture, however, nowhere saith, how shall they preach except they
+be gracious? except they be gifted? except they be in earnest? But, _how
+shall they preach except they be sent_?
+
+
+
+
+NO. III.[123]
+
+_On the same subject--Who have a right to preach the gospel_?
+
+
+It is expressly enjoined in the word of God that we should earnestly
+contend for the faith once delivered to the saints. This faith includes
+all the ordinances, as well as all the doctrines of Christ; and it is no
+less our duty to contend for the former than for the latter. They have
+been equally opposed, and there is the same necessity why we should
+contend for both. Among the ordinances of Christ, the preaching of the
+gospel holds a principal place, and it hath accordingly, in all ages,
+met with considerable opposition. Like other ordinances, it hath been
+often grievously abused, and perverted to the most unworthy purposes. By
+many who would be esteemed the wise of the world, it is counted unworthy
+the attention of any but the vulgar: it has been called the foolishness
+of preaching. The infidels of our time, and some who, by attachment to
+the Arian and Socinian system, are in a progress to infidelity, cry it
+down as a human device or piece of craft. This need not, however,
+occasion any great surprise: the spirit of the world savoreth not the
+things that be of God, and the enemies of the truth naturally wish to
+have full scope to propagate their delusions. But it is matter of regret
+that the preaching of the gospel is, by many who attend upon it, too
+little regarded as an ordinance of Christ. And some of the professed
+friends of gospel doctrine so far mistake the nature and institution of
+preaching, as to engage in it without any other call than their own
+abundant zeal, and even to plead that all should do so who find
+themselves qualified. To show that such a sentiment and practice have no
+warrant from the word of God, the following observations are offered.
+
+I. The preaching of the gospel is an ordinance that Christ hath
+appointed for the gathering and edification of his Church; and, being a
+matter of positive institution, all that belongs to the administration
+of it can be learned only from the rules and approved examples recorded
+in the New Testament. It is not like those duties that are incumbent
+upon all, according to the opportunities they have in providence for the
+performance of them, and which, without any express commandment, could
+be urged upon Christians by the common principles of moral obligation,
+such as to teach and admonish one another. And because the obligation to
+such moral duties depends not upon positive institution, it must equally
+extend to all, and no person whatever can be free from it. But it is
+otherwise as to the preaching of the gospel, which is a positive
+institution of Christ; for it is a duty enjoined upon some only; yea,
+some are even absolutely prohibited from intermeddling in it, 1 Cor.
+xiv. 34; 1 Tim. ii. 12: and this could not be the case if it were a
+matter of common moral obligation. All arguments therefore taken from
+general principles, to prove the obligation that Christians are under to
+exert themselves for promoting the cause of religion, are to no purpose
+here, as they do not prove that the preaching of the gospel is one of
+those means that all are warranted to use.
+
+II. There is an instituted ministry of the ordinances of Christ unto his
+Church, by such ministers and office-bearers as he hath appointed. And
+the preaching of the gospel is frequently referred to as a principal
+part of that ministry. We read of a ministry of the word, Acts vi. 4; a
+ministry received of the Lord Jesus to testify the gospel of the grace
+of God, Acts xx. 24; a ministry of reconciliation, 2 Cor. v. 18; and a
+ministry into which some are put by the Lord Christ, 1 Tim. i. 12. This
+ministry is not left open to all the members of the church, in such a
+manner as that everyone who finds himself disposed, of supposes himself
+to be qualified, may engage in it as he finds opportunity; but
+office-bearers are appointed for it by the Lord Christ, Eph. iv. 11,12:
+"And he gave some apostles, and some prophets, and some evangelists, and
+some pastors and teachers, for the perfecting of the saints, for the
+work of the ministry, and for the edifying of the body of Christ." Some
+of these officers were extraordinary and temporary; they had an
+extraordinary call, and were endued with miraculous powers, which are
+now ceased: but the work of the ministry, and particularly the preaching
+of the gospel, is to continue to the end of the world, as appears from
+the promise given for the encouragement of those that are employed in
+it, Matt, xxviii. 20. There are accordingly ordinary officers, pastors,
+and teachers, appointed for the continued exercise of that ministry.
+
+To these instituted office-bearers is this ministry exclusively
+committed, Mark xvi., Matt, xxviii. The gospel of Christ, in respect of
+the public ministry thereof by preaching, is frequently mentioned as a
+special and peculiar _trust_ committed unto them, 2 Cor. v. 18-20; 1
+Tim. i. 11, and vi. 20. In all the passages of Scripture where we have
+any mention of a charge or commission to preach the gospel, it would be
+easy to show that it is directed only to persons in office; and a
+variety of names are given to those that are employed in a ministry of
+the word, all of which are expressive of their peculiar office. They are
+called ministers, 1 Cor. iii. 6; officers and stewards, 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+ambassadors for Christ, 2 Cor. v. 20; heralds (so the word preacher
+signifies) and teachers, 2 Tim. i. 11.
+
+There is no room to plead here, that though a constant ministry of the
+word, in a pastoral charge, belongs only to persons in office, yet all
+may occasionally exercise their gifts in preaching the gospel. The word
+of God acknowledges no such distinction as that between a constant and
+an occasional ministry of the gospel. It enjoins upon those who are
+called to the work of the ministry, not an occasional, but a constant
+exercise of that ministry; so that whether they be paid pastors, or
+itinerant preachers, they are not to entangle themselves with the
+affairs of this life, but must be devoted wholly to the work of the
+gospel, 1 Tim. iv. 13-16; 2 Tim. ii. 4, and iv. 2. And because they must
+thus devote their time and attention to this work, the word of God also
+enjoins that a maintenance be given them by those to whom they exercise
+their ministry, 1 Cor. ix. 7-14; Gal. vi. 6; 1 Tim. v. 17. This is a
+farther evidence that the ministry of the word is restricted to persons
+in office, and that they are to devote their time and attention to it,
+not entangling themselves in the prosecution of a secular business.
+
+III. Those only can be warrantably employed in a ministry of the
+ordinances of Christ, and particularly in preaching the gospel, who are
+thereunto called by him, and admitted according to the rule laid down in
+the word. And none can be warrantably acknowledged and received as
+office-bearers, to whom that ministry is committed without some proper
+evidence of their being called and sent by Christ. "How shall they
+preach except they be sent?" Rom. x. 15. How, without this, can they do
+it warrantably or profitably? And, without some evidence of this, what
+ground have we to expect a blessing in waiting upon their ministry? It
+is not a mere providential sending that is here meant, as if there were
+no more necessity than abilities, and an opportunity of exercising them;
+for so the ministers of Satan may be sent, and a lying spirit was thus
+sent among the prophets of Ahab. But this sending means the call of
+Christ, intimated in such a way as to warrant the preacher, and with
+such evidence as may satisfy the conscience of the hearers, in receiving
+his ministry as the ordinance of Christ. A zeal for God, a strong desire
+of being useful to souls, and even a persuasion of having the call of
+Christ, cannot be sufficient warrant to the preacher; far less can the
+hearers, in receiving him, proceed upon grounds so uncertain.
+
+The apostles, and some other ministers in the beginning of the Christian
+dispensation, had an extraordinary call and immediate mission by Christ,
+and this was evidenced to all by the miraculous powers bestowed on them.
+These powers are now ceased, and it is vain to plead any such immediate
+call. The ordinary call of Christ to the work of the ministry is
+intimated by or through the church, judging thereof by the rules laid
+down in the word; and according to these rules, they that are found
+qualified and called, are to be admitted to the ministry by them who are
+already invested with it. The charge is given to the office-bearers of
+the church, to commit that ministry which they have received "to
+faithful men, who shall be able to teach others also," 2 Tim. ii. 2;
+Tit. i. 5. And for their direction in this matter, the qualifications
+necessary, both as to character and abilities, are laid down in the
+Word, particularly in 1 Tim. iii.; of these qualifications they are
+required to make an impartial and deliberate examination, so as to _lay
+hands suddenly on no man_, 1 Tim. iv. 22, but to admit to the office of
+the ministry those only, who, by this trial, they have reason to judge
+are called and sent by Christ.
+
+It is vain to distinguish here between a pastor of a congregation and an
+itinerant preacher; as if the call of the church was necessary only to
+the former and not to the latter. If by the call of the church is meant
+only the choice and call of the people, it is admitted, that this is
+only necessary to fix a pastoral relation to that part of the flock; but
+a regular admission to the work of the ministry, by the office-bearers
+of the church, is equally necessary in the case of all that are employed
+in it, whether they have a fixed charge or not. Timothy, who had no
+fixed charge, and though pointed out by prophecy as designed for the
+ministry, was ordained and admitted to it by the presbytery. And though
+Paul and Barnabas had an extraordinary call, yet the prophets and
+teachers of the church at Antioch are directed to separate and send them
+out, according to the call of the Holy Ghost, to preach the gospel unto
+the Gentiles, Acts xiii. A principal design of this seems to have been,
+to set an example of procedure to the church in after times.
+
+It appears, then, that the preaching of the gospel is an ordinance or
+institution of Christ--that the ministry of that and other ordinances
+belongs only to those office-bearers whom he hath appointed and
+commissioned for that end--and that in ordinary cases, none can be
+acknowledged as sent by him, but such as are admitted to the ministry in
+the way above mentioned. These observations would have admitted a much
+larger illustration; but as they are, they may assist an attentive
+reader to consult his Bible for further satisfaction. It is necessary,
+however, to take some notice of the arguments urged in support of the
+opposite sentiment, and of the attempt to prove that every man who is
+qualified has a right to preach the gospel, without any regular call and
+admission by the church. And,
+
+1st. It is pretended that this is enjoined upon all that are qualified
+for it, because Christians are called to teach, exhort, and admonish one
+another. But even supposing that this were to be understood of
+preaching, or a public ministry of the word, such directions, though
+expressed generally, would not apply to all, but to those only who are
+called to the ministry, according to the limitation and restriction that
+is laid down in other places of Scripture. There is, however, no
+necessity of understanding these directions in that sense. The
+Scripture evidently distinguishes the preaching of the gospel, or that
+public teaching which belongs to an instituted ministry, from that
+private teaching which is competent to, and obligatory on, all
+Christians by the law of love; the latter is enjoined upon some to whom
+the former is absolutely prohibited: compare 1 Tim. ii. 12, with Tit.
+ii. 3, 4. Christians in a private station have abundant opportunity, and
+ordinarily much more than they improve, to exercise their talents in
+teaching their families, friends, and neighbors, without interfering
+with that public ministry of the word which is committed to those who
+are especially called thereto.
+
+2d. Some passages of Scripture are urged, wherein it is supposed all
+Christians are enjoined to exercise their qualifications in public
+teaching or preaching: particularly Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11.
+These Scriptures, on the contrary, restrict the public ministry of the
+word to those invested with an office, and it is that ministry which
+belongs to their office that is spoken of. In Rom. xii. persons in
+office are exhorted to apply themselves faithfully and diligently to
+that ministry to which they are called, whether it be a ministry of the
+word, and of spiritual things, or a ministry of temporal things, and
+that without envying others who have a different office and ministry.
+And, to enforce this exhortation, the apostle compares the Church to the
+natural body, ver. 4, in which all members have not the same office, but
+one member is appointed to one office, and another member to a different
+office: and so it is in the Church of Christ, ver. 5. The same allusion
+is applied more largely, 1 Cor. xii. 27, 28, to illustrate this very
+point. The other passage, 1 Pet. iv. 10, 11, is of the very same import:
+those in office are called to exercise their ministry faithfully,
+whether it be in spiritual or temporal things, and are addressed as
+stewards, ver. 10; "As every man hath received the gift, even so
+minister the same one to another as good stewards of the manifold grace
+of God." Some are led to mistake the meaning of these Scriptures, by
+misunderstanding the word _gift_, as if it meant only talents or
+qualifications; whereas, in these and many other passages, it means a
+certain office and ministry to which one is appointed. Eph. iv. 8, 11:
+He gave gifts unto men; he gave some apostles, some prophets, &c. 1 Tim.
+iv. 14: "Neglect not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by
+prophecy, with the laying on of the hands of the presbytery." Timothy
+was ordained to the office of the ministry in consequence of special
+direction of the spirit of prophecy. See 1 Tim. i. 18.
+
+3d. It is also supposed and much insisted on by some, that both precept
+and example for the preaching of the gospel, by what they call every
+gifted brother, may be found in 1 Cor. xiv. 31, which is particularly
+urged in support of their opinion: "For ye may _all_ prophesy, one by
+one, that _all_ may learn, and _all_ may be comforted." But universal
+terms, such as are here used, are limited or extended according to the
+subject; and that even in the same verse, as in chap. xv. 22. In like
+manner here, the _all_ that may prophesy are not the same _all_ that may
+learn and be comforted. The latter may extend to all the members of the
+church, and even to strangers who might come into their assemblies; the
+former could apply only to a few. Some members of the church are
+expressly prohibited from public teaching, ver. 34. Besides, all were
+not prophets, chap. xii. 29, and therefore all could neither prophesy,
+nor could warrantably attempt it. The state of matters referred to in
+that chapter seems to have been this: The church at Corinth was
+numerous, and had many ministers, of whom the most, if not all, were
+endowed with some miraculous power, such as that of prophecy, of
+speaking strange languages, and the like; they were proud of these
+gifts, and forward to show them, ver. 26, which occasioned disorder in
+their assemblies for worship; those that had the gift of tongues
+prevented the prophets, and did not modestly give place to one another.
+These disorders the apostle reproves, and exhorts them to exercise their
+gifts in a more regular and decent manner, for the edification of the
+church. This being the case, it is strange to plead this passage as a
+warrant for the preaching of the gospel by those who are in no office,
+and who neither have any miraculous power to prove their immediate call
+by Christ to the work of the ministry, nor are admitted thereto by the
+call of the church.
+
+4th. Further, we are referred to Acts viii. 1-4, for an example of the
+preaching of the gospel by persons not in office. We are told, ver. 1,
+that "there was a great persecution against the church which was at
+Jerusalem, and they were all scattered abroad--_except the apostles_."
+And it is said, ver. 4, "_they_, that were scattered abroad, went
+everywhere _preaching the word_." From this it is argued, that _the
+Church in general_ proclaimed the gospel of the Lord Jesus. But why
+mention the Church in general, when the method of reasoning used would
+equally prove that the Church universally did so; and the absurdity of
+such reasoning must be evident upon a very little consideration of the
+subject. How absurd to suppose that _all_ mentioned in ver. 1, refers to
+and comprehends all the members of that church, and that all the
+thousands and ten thousands belonging to it were all scattered abroad,
+or that they all, men, women, and children, went _everywhere preaching_
+the word! Are we not told, ver. 3, that some of them, probably many of
+them, both men and women, were haled and committed to prison? Or, had
+all the members of the church been driven from Jerusalem, how were the
+apostles to be employed? Did they only tarry to gather a new church?
+When it is said, ver. 3, that Saul entered into every house, how absurd
+would it be to suppose that it is meant every house in Jerusalem, or
+even every house in which there was a Christian! The expression, also,
+_everywhere_, ver. 4, must be limited. It would therefore be
+unreasonable to object against a proper limitation of the word _all_,
+ver. 1. And about the just limitation of it we need be at no loss. They
+were all scattered abroad--except the apostles. What reason can there be
+for mentioning only the apostles as excepted, while there were so many
+other members of that church still remaining at Jerusalem, but this,
+that the persons referred to were of the same description in general
+with the apostles, persons in office, ministers of the church? Others
+might also be scattered, but these are here spoken of; and Philip, an
+evangelist, and endowed with miraculous powers, is mentioned as one of
+them.
+
+5th. As to the case of Apollos, which some urge as affording
+irresistible evidence to prove that all who are qualified may preach the
+gospel, a few words may suffice. He spoke boldly in the synagogue, the
+practice of which is no rule to the Christian Church. He was not yet
+acquainted with some important doctrines of the New Testament Church,
+much less could he be acquainted with the ordinances of it. Two
+intelligent Christians instructed him more perfectly in the way of God.
+He was recommended by the brethren to the church at Corinth, and there
+he labored successfully in the work of the ministry. And what is all
+this to the purpose for which his example is urged? We have no
+information, indeed, of what time, nor in what manner, he was called and
+admitted to the work of the ministry, more than we have about many
+others mentioned in Scripture: but he is expressly called a minister,
+and is, once and again, classed with the chiefest of the apostles, 1
+Cor. i. 12, iii. 5, 22.
+
+Lest these and the like arguments should be found insufficient, recourse
+is had by some to the plea of pure motives and good designs, with a kind
+of appeal to the judgment of the great day, and profession of trust,
+that they are such as will not then be condemned. It is a great
+satisfaction to have the testimony of conscience to the purity of
+motives in every part of conduct that is warranted by the word of God,
+and also to know that the judgment of the saints at the great day will
+be a judgment of mercy. But every part of the truth of Christ will be
+determined at that day in exact conformity to what is now declared in
+the word. And the purest motives and most noble designs are no rule of
+conduct to any; much less can they give satisfaction to others.
+
+These observations concerning the institution of a gospel ministry, the
+writer is persuaded, are agreeable to the word of God: if they be not,
+it would be idle to appeal to his motives in support of them. But he can
+freely say that they are here offered to the public, not from a desire
+of controversy, but from a conviction, that at this time it is
+necessary, on different accounts, to call people's attention to the mind
+and will of Christ, as revealed in the word concerning this subject. Let
+not such of the friends of religion, as may be of different sentiments
+from what are here expressed, be offended at an attempt, in the spirit
+of meekness, to remove their mistakes: nor let them impute it to envy,
+pride, or selfish principles. In a perfect consistency with all that he
+hath advanced, the writer can say, "Would to God that all the Lord's
+people were prophets."
+
+It is a necessary consequence of what is advanced on this subject, that
+all should be careful that the ministry of the ordinances they attend
+upon be such as is warranted in the word. If none can warrantably preach
+except they be sent, we cannot warrantably attend on the ministry of any
+but those who we have reason to believe have Christ's call and mission.
+And if it be an objection against a pastor of a congregation, that he is
+imposed upon the flock without their choice, it is no less an objection
+against a preacher, if he be not admitted to the ministry of the word by
+those whose office it is to examine his qualifications, and judge of his
+call. It must, however, be acknowledged, that to have gone through the
+ordinary forms of admission is no sufficient evidence of one's having
+the call of Christ. The outward forms may be observed, while the spirit
+and design of them is neglected, and the rule of the word transgressed.
+Nor can any be acknowledged as sent by Christ, unless their character
+correspond with that pointed out and required in the word, and unless
+the doctrine they teach be the gospel of Christ. None can be supposed to
+have a mission from Christ, who do not bring his message, 2 John ver.
+10: "If there come any unto you and bring not this doctrine, receive him
+not into your house, neither bid him God speed." But when we are favored
+with the pure gospel, and an administration of it agreeable to the word,
+let us wait upon it diligently; regarding the preaching of the gospel as
+an ordinance of Christ, and depending on his promised blessing to make
+it effectual: for when "the world by wisdom knew not God, it pleased
+God, by the foolishness of preaching, to save them that believe," 1 Cor.
+i. 21.
+
+Both parts of this number are recommended to the serious consideration
+of what are called _lay-preachers_, and of such as favor that scheme.
+And let all intruders upon the office of the holy ministry, with their
+deluded votaries, beware lest it should be said to them, _Who hath
+required this at your hands_?
+
+
+
+
+NO. IV.
+
+
+_Quest_. Have not the people a divine right to choose their own pastors
+and other church officers?
+
+_Ans_. In those divinely qualified for the ministry, there are
+diversities of gifts, though but one spirit. As the same food, though
+abundantly wholesome and nourishing, is not equally suited to the taste,
+appetite, and constitutions of different persons and nations; so the
+same gifts in a candidate for the gospel ministry are not equally
+adapted to every person and place. To secure edification there must
+therefore be a choice of the gifts most suitable. And who fitter to make
+it than those who are to enjoy the use thereof, if their senses be
+exercised to discern good and evil? Can any man pretend to know better
+what gifts suit the case of my soul than I do myself?
+
+Those ignorant of the fundamental truths of Christianity; those
+scandalous, profane deniers of the divine original of the Old and New
+Testaments, or of any truth therein plainly revealed; those neglecters
+of the public, private, and secret worship of God; those given to
+cursing, swearing, Sabbath profanation, drunkenness, whoredom, or other
+scandalous courses, are destitute of capacity and right to choose a
+gospel minister. The ignorant are utterly incapable to judge of either
+the preacher's matter or method. The openly wicked have their hatred of
+Christ, and a faithful minister, marked in their forehead; neither are
+such qualified to be visible members of the Christian Church. To admit
+them therefore to choose a Christian pastor would be a method,
+introducing ruin and we; a method equally absurd as for unfreemen to
+choose the magistrates of a burgh: rather, equally absurd as if ignorant
+babes, and our enemies the French, should be sustained electors of our
+members of parliament and privy council.
+
+Whether visible believers, adults, and having a life and conversation
+becoming the gospel, have a right from God to choose their pastors and
+other church officers, must now be examined.
+
+All along from the Reformation it has been the avowed principle of
+Scotch Presbyterians, that they have a divine warrant to choose their
+own pastors and other ecclesiastic officers. The first book of
+discipline, published A.D. 1560, declares the lawful calling of the
+ministry to consist in the election of the people, the examination of
+the ministry, and administration by both, and that no pastor should be
+intruded on any particular kirk without their consent. Their second book
+of discipline declares that the people's liberty of choosing church
+officers continued till the Church was corrupted by antichrist: that
+patronage flowed from the Pope's canon law, and is inconsistent with the
+order prescribed in God's word. From various documents the assembly of
+1736 declared it obvious, that from the Reformation it had been the
+fixed principle of this church that no minister ought to be intruded
+into any church contrary to the will of the congregation. They seriously
+recommended a due regard hereunto in planting the vacancies, as
+judicatories would study the glory of God, the honor of God, and the
+edification of men. It is the law of heaven, however, the book of the
+Lord, that here and everywhere we intend to build our faith upon.
+
+That of Matthias is the first instance of an election of an officer in
+the Christian Church. No doubt, then, it is marked in the sacred history
+as a pattern for the ages to come. Being an officer extraordinary, his
+call was in part immediately divine, by the determination of the lot.
+Being a church officer, he was chosen by the Church as far as consistent
+with his extraordinary office. The disciples about Jerusalem (120) were
+gathered together. Peter represented the necessity of filling up Judas's
+place in the apostolate with one who could be a meet witness of Jesus'
+doctrines, miracles, death, and resurrection. The one hundred and twenty
+disciples chose, appointed, or presented to whom they judged proper for
+that work. The office being extraordinary, and perhaps the votes equal,
+the decision which of these two was referred to the divine determination
+of the lot. After prayer for a perfect _one_, it fell upon Matthias, and
+he was, by suffrages, or votes, added to the number of the apostles.
+
+Had the next election of a church officer entirely excluded the
+Christian people, one had been tempted to suspect that Matthias's
+extraordinary case was never designed for a pattern. Instead hereof, the
+choice being of an ordinary officer, is entirely deposited in their
+hands. Never were men better qualified for such an election than the
+inspired, the spirit-discerning apostles; yet when restrained by
+laborious attendance to their principal work, the ministry of the word
+and of prayer, from sufficient leisure to distribute their multiplied
+alms to their now numerous poor, and directed by the Holy Ghost, they
+ordered the Christian people _to look out_, choose seven of their
+number, _men of honest report, full of the Holy Ghost and of wisdom_,
+who might be ordained to the office of deacons. Judging of the mentioned
+qualifications, the Christian multitude, entirely of their own accord,
+chose Stephen, Philip, Prochorus, Nicanor, Timon, Parmenas, and
+Nicolas. These they presented to the apostles, who immediately ordained
+them by prayer, and imposition of hands, Acts vi. 1-6. Here, by inspired
+appointment, the people had the whole power of electing their deacons.
+If they have the power of electing one ordinary officer, why not of all?
+If in the case of deacons they can judge of the qualifications of
+_honest report, full of the Holy Ghost and of wisdom_, what hinders them
+to judge of these and the like of ministers? If Jesus and his apostles
+argued from the less to the greater, Matt. vi. 30,1 Cor. ix. 10, who can
+forbid us to argue so? If it be right and equal for the Christian people
+to choose deacons who take care of their sacred alms, is it not much
+more right and equal that they have the choice of their pastors, who
+take the oversight of their souls?
+
+A third instance of the Christian people electing their ecclesiastical
+officers, relates to the joint travels of Paul and Barnabas at Lystra
+and places around, Acts xiv. 23. These two divinely directed messengers
+of Christ, having ordained (or, as properly translated from the Greek,
+_through suffrages or votes constituted) them elders_ (presbyters) _in
+every city, and prayed with fasting, commended them to the Lord_. Here
+it is plainly marked that these elders, _presbyters_, were chosen by
+_suffrages (votes)_ in order to ordination. This the Greek word in our
+version, by the fraud of the English bishops rendered _had ordained_,
+plainly imports. The root of this word is borrowed from the custom of
+giving votes at Athens and elsewhere in Greece, by lifting up of the
+hand. Wherever it is used in the Greek Testament, and for anything we
+know in every Greek author, not posterior to Luke, the writer of the
+Acts, it constantly implies _to give vote or suffrage_. In the text
+before us it agrees with Paul and Barnabas; because they presided in the
+choice, and finished the design of it by ordination. Here, moreover, it
+is evident that the persons chosen for elders _(presbyters)_ were set
+apart to their office, not by a hurried prayer and riotous banquet, but
+_by prayer and fasting:_ and this manner of choice and ordination was
+used in every church. The very performance of the work of ordination in
+public conjunction with the church tacitly infers their consent.
+
+Christ's commanding his people _to try the spirits_, to try false
+prophets, and to flee from them, 1 John iv. 1, 2, necessarily imports a
+right to choose the worthy, and reject the vile; to choose what suits
+our edification, and to reject what doth not; for, if we must receive
+whoever is imposed, there is no occasion for trial, we can have no
+other. The privilege of trial here allowed to his people by Christ
+plainly supposes their having some ability for it; and, by a diligent
+perusal of his word, and consulting his ministers, they may become more
+capable. Has our adored Redeemer thus intrusted to his adult members the
+election of their pastors? at what peril or guilt do any ministers or
+laics concur to bereave them thereof, thrusting men into the evangelic
+office by another way; thus constituting them spiritual _thieves_ and
+_robbers_? Instead of being _gentle_ to church members, as a _nurse
+cherisheth her children_; instead of _condescending to men of low
+degree_, and _doing all things to the glory of God_ and the _edification
+of souls_, is not this to set at naught their brethren; exercise lordly
+dominion over the members of Christ; and rule them with rigor?
+
+In the oracles of God, where is the hint, that the choice of pastors for
+the Christian people is lodged in any but themselves?--Since men
+apostolic and inspired put the choice from themselves to the Christian
+people; who can believe that it belongs to the clergy? Acts i. and vi.
+When Christ avers _his kingdom is not of this world_; when he threatens
+judgment without mercy to such as in his worshipping assemblies more
+readily give a seat to the rich, with his gold ring and gay clothing,
+than to the poor; can it be imagined that he has intrusted the choice of
+his ambassadors to men, for their greatness?
+
+There is indeed a haughty objection often stated against the people's
+choice: Shall a cottager, poor and unlearned, who pays not one farthing
+of the stipend, and at next term will perhaps remove from the
+congregation, have an equal choice of a minister with his master, a
+gentleman, a nobleman, of liberal education, of distinguished abilities,
+who is head of a large family, has a fixed property and residence in the
+parish, and furnishes almost the whole benefice? Will you fly in the
+face of our civil law? Will you plead for the method of choosing church
+officers, which already has produced so much strife, bloody squabbling,
+or riot? If Christ's _kingdom_, as himself when dying attested, _is not
+of this world_, how can outward learning, riches, settled abode, or any
+worldly thing, constitute one a member thereof? These do not make one a
+better Christian. No. _Not many wise men after the flesh, not many
+mighty, not many noble, are called_ with a holy calling. How ordinarily
+do rich men oppress the saints, draw them before judgment-seats, and
+blaspheme Jesus' worthy name, by which they are called! If worldly
+privileges and endowments cannot make one a subject of the Mediator's
+spiritual kingdom, how can they entitle any to, or raise him above his
+brethren in, the privileges thereof? If by the Son of God the poor
+cottager has been made free indeed; has been taught to profit; is rich
+in faith; is a king and priest unto God; and hath received a kingdom
+that cannot be moved; in the view of the Omniscient and his angels, and
+every man wise to salvation, how little is he inferior to his rich,
+perhaps his graceless, master? Your rich man has college education,
+understands philosophy, history, law, agriculture; but will that infer
+that he understands his Bible, understands Christian principles,
+spiritual experiences, and what spiritual gifts best correspond
+therewith, better than his cottager, who daily searches the Scriptures,
+and has heard and learned of the Father? How oft are the great things of
+God hid from the wise and prudent, and revealed unto babes! Christ
+crucified was to the learned Greeks foolishness; but to the poorest
+believer the power of God and the wisdom of God. "The natural man,"
+however learned, "receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God, neither
+can he know them; for they are spiritually discerned," 1 Cor. ii. 14.
+How easy to find the herdman, or the silly woman, who will endure a
+trial on Christian principles to far better purpose than many of your
+rich, your great men!--Your great man is the head of a numerous family,
+and has great influence in the corner. That, no doubt, is a strong
+motive for him, if he is a Christian, to be exceeding wary in his
+choice: if he is so, no doubt his Christian judgment, as far as is
+consistent with spiritual liberty, is to have its own weight. But while
+Christ's _kingdom is not of this world_; while in him there is _neither
+male nor female, bond nor free_; headship over a family can found no
+claim to a spiritual privilege. Thousands of heads of families are
+plainly _aliens from the commonwealth of Israel_, without God, and
+without hope in the world. Many are heads of families who, by neglect of
+the daily worship of God, of religious instruction, and by other
+unchristian conduct, ruin the same.
+
+Boast not of the great man's settled abode, boast not of to-morrow, for
+thou knowest not what a day may bring forth; how suddenly may disaster
+and death pluck him up by the roots! The rich fathers, where are they?
+Do the nobles live forever? Shall their dwelling continue to all
+generations? How often, in a few years, the rich inheritance changes its
+master, while the race of the poor hovers about the same spot for many
+generations! What if the cottager attend more to gospel ministrations,
+in one year, than the rich in forty! what if, removing at next term, he
+carry his beloved pastor in his heart, and by effectual fervent prayers,
+availing much, by multiplied groanings that cannot be uttered, he bring
+manifold blessings on the parish and ministry which he leaves; while
+your rich man, if wicked, if of the too common stamp, continues in it,
+for no better purpose than to distress the faithful pastor, corrupt the
+people, bring down a curse, and cumber the ground! The great man bears
+the load of the stipend no more than the poorest cottager. He purchased
+his estate with this burden upon it, and on that account had its price
+proportionally abated. Suppose it were otherwise, might not a poor
+widow's _two mites_ be more in Jesus' account than all he gives? Will
+we, with the Samaritan sorcerer, indulge the thought that the _gifts of
+God_, the spiritual privileges of his Church, _are to be purchased with
+money_? For money to erect the church or defray the benefice we must
+not, with the infamous traitor, betray the Son of God in his church--his
+ordinance, his ministry, into the hands of sinners to be crucified.
+
+It is in vain to mention the civil law: the very worst statute thereof,
+relative to the point in hand, indirectly supposes the consent of the
+congregation. It leaves to the presbytery the full power to judge
+whether the presentee is fit for that charge. If the congregation
+generally oppose, with what candor do the presbytery, in Jesus' name,
+determine that he is fit? The last statute relative hereto declared the
+presentation void, unless accepted. Nor is there in being any, but the
+_law of sin and death_ within them, the law of itch after worldly gain,
+that obliges candidates to accept. How unmanly, how disingenuous, to
+blame the civil law with the present course of intrusions!--Since the
+resurrection of Christ, we think we may almost defy any to produce an
+instance of bloody squabbling, or like outrageous contention, in the
+choice of a pastor, where none but the visible members of Christ's
+mystical body, adult, and blameless in their lives, were admitted to act
+in the choice. But if at any called popular elections, the power was
+sinfully betrayed into the hands of such baptized persons, as in
+ignorance and loose practice equalled, if not transcended, _heathen men
+and publicans_; into the hand of those who, to please a superior, to
+obtain a paltry bribe, or a flagon of wine, were readily determined in
+their vote for a minister; let the prostitutes of Jesus' ordinance
+answer for the unhappy consequences of their conduct. If they so
+enormously broke through the hedge of the divine law, no wonder a
+serpent bit them. But who has forgot what angry contentions, what
+necessity of a military guard at ordinations, the lodging of the power
+of elections in patrons or heritors, _as such_, has of late occasioned?
+
+To deprive the Christian people of their privilege in choosing their
+pastor, and give it to others upon worldly accounts, is the grossest
+absurdity. It overturns the nature of Christ's spiritual kingdom,
+founding a claim to her privileges on worldly character and property. It
+gives those blessed lips the lie, which said, _"My kingdom is not of
+this world."_ It counteracts the nature of the church, as a voluntary
+society; thrusting men into a momentous relation to her, without, nay
+contrary to, her consent. It settles the ministerial office upon a very
+rotten foundation: for how hard is it to believe the man is a minister
+of a Christian congregation, who never consented to his being such! to
+believe he has a pastoral mission from Christ, for whom providence would
+never open a regular door of entrance to the office; but he was obliged
+to be thrust in by the window, _as a thief and a robber_! If he comes
+unsent, how can I expect edification by his ministry, when God has
+declared, _such shall not profit his people at all_? It implies the most
+unnatural cruelty. If the law of nature allow me the choice of my
+physician, my servant, my guide, my master, how absurd to deny me the
+choice of a physician, a servant, a guide, to my soul; and to give it to
+another, merely because he has some more money, has a certain _piece of
+ground_, which I have not! How do these qualify him, or entitle him to
+provide, what the eternal salvation of my soul is so nearly connected
+with, better than myself, if taught of God?
+
+By patronage how oft the honor of Christ and the souls of men are
+betrayed into the hands of their declared enemies! If the patron is
+unholy, profane, how readily the candidate he prefers is too like
+himself! If a candidate be faithful, be holy, how readily, like Ahab in
+the case of Micaiah, he hates, he sends not for him! The complaisant
+chaplain, who almost never disturbed the family with the worship of God;
+who along with the children or others took off his cheerful glass; sung
+his wanton song; attended the licentious ball, or play-house; connived
+at, or swore a profane oath; took a hand at cards; or ridiculed the
+mysteries, the experiences, the circumspect professor of the Christian
+faith, is almost certain to have the presentation: perhaps he covenanted
+for it as part of his wages. For what simony, sacrilege, and deceitful
+perjury, with respect to ordination vows, patronage opens a door, he
+that runs may read. Shocked with the view, let us forbear!
+
+ * * * * *
+
+N.B. The London ministers in the preceding treatise have a large note
+respecting the election of ministers, which does not fully invest this
+right in the people. The editor, therefore, omitted that note
+altogether, and has inserted this number, extracted from Brown's
+Letters, in the place of it, as better adapted to the nature of the
+gospel church, and to that liberty wherewith Christ has made his people
+free.
+
+
+
+
+NO. V.[124]
+
+_Of the Ordination and Duty of Ministers._
+
+
+That the ordination of pastors is an ordinance of Christ, the sacred
+volumes clearly prove. Through election by suffrages (or votes) Paul and
+Barnabas ordained _elders_ (presbyters) _in every church_, Acts xiv. 23.
+By Paul's inspired orders Titus was left at Crete to ordain elders
+(presbyters) in every city, Tit. i. 5. By the laying on of the hands of
+the presbytery was Timothy himself ordained: he was apostolically
+authorized and directed to ordain others; and informed that these
+directions are to be observed, _till the day of Jesus Christ_, 1 Tim.
+iv. 14, 15.
+
+That not election, but ordination, confers the sacred office is no less
+evident. Election marks out the person to be ordained; ordination fixes
+the relation of a candidate to a particular congregation, upon receiving
+a regular call; while at the same time it constitutes him a minister of
+the whole catholic Church. Ordination made men _presbyters_ and
+_deacons_, which were not so before. If a person be destitute of the
+distinguishing ministerial gift, or any other essential qualification,
+ten thousand elections or ordinations cannot render him a minister of
+Christ. But solemnly tried and found qualified, he is to be set apart to
+the ministry, by prayer, fasting, and laying on of the hands of the
+presbytery.
+
+Nowhere in the heavenly volume do we find either precept or example that
+Christian people have a whit more right to ordain their pastor, than
+midwives have to baptize the children they assist to bring forth.
+Ordination appears to have been performed by apostles, by evangelists,
+and by a presbytery, Acts vi. 6, and xiv. 23; Tit. i. 5; 1 Tim. v. 22,
+and iv. 14: but never by private Christians. Could these ordain their
+pastors or other ecclesiastic officers, to what purpose did Paul leave
+Titus at Crete to _ordain elders in every city_? or why did he write
+never a word about ordination to the people, in any of his epistles, but
+to their rulers?
+
+Thus regularly ordained, the Christian pastor must enter upon his
+important work. Endowed with spiritual wisdom and understanding;
+possessed of inward experience of the power of divine truth; inflamed
+with zeal for the glory of God, love to his work, and compassion to the
+perishing souls of men, he is to endeavor to acquaint himself with the
+spiritual state of his flock; and to feed them, not with heathenish and
+Arminian harangues, but with the gospel of Christ, the sincere milk of
+the word, diligently preaching and rightly dividing it, according to
+their diversified state and condition, 1 Pet. v. 3; 2 Cor. v. 11; 1 Cor.
+ix. 16. Assiduously growing in the knowledge and love of divine things,
+he is to instruct and confirm his hearers therein. Every divine truth he
+is to publish and apply, as opportunity calls for: chiefly such as are
+most important, or, though once openly confessed, are in his time
+attacked and denied, 1 Tim. vi. 20, iii. 15. Painfully is he to
+catechize his people, and in Jesus' name to visit and teach them from
+house to house. To awaken their conscience, to promote the conversion of
+sinners, to direct and comfort the cast down, perplexed, tempted, and
+deserted; to ponder the Scripture, and his own and others' experience,
+to qualify him for this work, must be his earnest care. Faithfully is he
+to administer the sacraments to such (only) as are duly prepared; and in
+the simple manner prescribed by Christ. Tenderly is he to take care of
+the poor; to sympathize with the afflicted; impartially to visit the
+sick; to deal plainly with their consciences, and to exhort and pray
+over them in the name of the Lord. With impartiality, zeal, meekness,
+and prudence, he is to rule and govern the church, to admonish the
+unruly, to rebuke offenders, to excommunicate the incorrigible, and to
+absolve the penitent. Habitually is he to give himself to effectual
+fervent prayer, for his flock, and for the Church of God, travailing as
+in birth till Jesus be formed in the souls of men. Be a man's parts,
+diligence, and apparent piety what they will, negligence in this will
+blast his ministrations, and too clearly mark, that he is therein
+chiefly influenced by some carnal motive of honor or gain. Finally, he
+is constantly to walk before his flock a distinguished pattern of
+sobriety, righteousness, holiness, humility, heavenliness, temperance,
+charity, brotherly kindness, and every good word and work. Without this
+his ministrations appear but a solemn farce of deceit, 2 Tim. ii. 4; 1
+Tim. iv. 15; 2 Tim. iv. 2.
+
+Can ministers' reading of sermons consist with the dignity of their
+office? Did Jesus or his apostles ever show them an example of this? No.
+At Nazareth, when he read his text in the book of Esaias, he _closed his
+book_, and discoursed to the people. On the mount _he opened his mouth,
+and taught_: we hear not that he took out his papers and read. Peter, in
+his sermon at Pentecost, _lifted up his voice, and said_: his papers and
+reading we hear nothing of. After reading of the law and the prophets,
+the rulers of the synagogue of Antioch in Pisidia, desired Paul and
+Barnabas, not to _read_, but to _say on_. Our adored Saviour knew well
+enough how to direct his ambassadors; yet he ordered them to _go and
+preach_, not _read_, the gospel to every creature, Luke iv. 20, 21;
+Matt. v. 2; Acts ii. 14, and xiii. 15. How hard to believe, that he who
+gives gifts to men, for the edifying of his body, would send the
+sermonist, whose memory and judgment are so insufficient, that from
+neither he can produce an half hour's discourse without reading it! How
+dull and insipid the manner! How absurdly it hinders the Spirit's
+assistance, as to matter during the discourse! How shameful! Shall the
+bookless lawyer warmly and sensibly plead almost insignificant trifles,
+and shall the ambassador of Christ, deprived of his papers, be incapable
+to plead so short a space in favor of his Master, and of the souls of
+men?
+
+
+
+
+NO. VI.[125]
+
+_Of Ruling Elders._
+
+
+The rule and government of the Church, or the execution of the authority
+of Christ therein, is in the hand of the elders. All elders in office
+have rule, and none have rule in the church but elders: _as such_, rule
+doth belong unto them. The apostles by virtue of their special office
+were intrusted with all church power; but therefore they were elders
+also, 1 Pet. v. 1; 3 John i.: see Acts xxi. 17; 1 Tim. i. 17. They are
+some of them on other accounts called bishops, pastors, teachers,
+ministers, guides; but what belongs to any of them in point of rule, or
+what interest they have therein, it belongs unto them as elders, and not
+otherwise, Acts xx. 17, 18. The Scriptures affirm, 1st, That there is a
+work and duty of rule in the Church, distinct from the work and duty of
+pastoral feeding, by the preaching of the word and administration of the
+sacraments, Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 8; 1 Cor. xii. 28; 1 Tim. v. 17; 2
+Tim. iv. 5; Heb. xiii. 7, 17; Rev. ii. 3.
+
+2d. Different and distinct gifts are required unto the discharge of
+these distinct works and duties. This belongs unto the harmony of the
+dispensation of the gospel. Gifts are bestowed to answer all duties
+prescribed. Hence they are the first foundation of all power, work, and
+duty in the church. Unto every one of us is given grace according to the
+measure of the gift of Christ, that is, ability for duty, according to
+the measure wherein Christ is pleased to grant it; Eph. iv. 7: see also
+1 Cor. xii. 4, 7, 8-10; Rom. xii. 6-8; 1 Pet. iv. 10: wherefore
+different gifts are the first foundation of different offices and
+duties.
+
+3d. That different gifts are required unto the different works of
+pastoral teaching on the one hand, and practical rule on the other, is
+evident, 1st, From the light of reason, and the nature of the works
+themselves being so different. And, 2d, From experience; some men are
+fitted by gifts for the dispensation of the word and doctrine in a way
+of pastoral feeding, who have no useful ability in the work of rule; and
+some are fitted for rule, who have no gifts for the discharge of the
+pastoral work in preaching, Yea, it is very seldom that both these sort
+of gifts do concur in any eminent degree in the same persons, or without
+some notable defect.
+
+4th. The work of rule, as distinct from teaching, is in general to watch
+over the walk or conversation of the members of the church with
+authority, exhorting, comforting, admonishing, reproving, encouraging,
+and directing of them, as occasion shall require. The gifts necessary
+hereunto are diligence, wisdom, courage, and gravity; as we shall see
+afterwards. The pastoral work is principally to reveal the whole counsel
+of God, to divide the word aright, or to labor in the word and doctrine,
+both as unto the general dispensation and particular application of it,
+in all seasons and on all occasions. Hereunto spiritual wisdom,
+knowledge, sound judgment, experience, and utterance are required; all
+to be improved by continual study of the word and prayer. But this
+difference of gifts unto these distinct works doth not of itself
+constitute distinct offices, because the same persons may be suitably
+furnished with those of both sorts.
+
+5th. Yet distinct works and duties, though some were furnished with
+gifts for both, were a ground in the wisdom of the Holy Ghost, for
+distinct offices in the church, where one sort of them were as much as
+those of one office could, ordinarily attend unto, Acts vi. 2-4.
+Ministration unto the poor of the church, for the supply of their
+temporal necessities, is an ordinance of Christ, instituted that the
+apostles might give a more diligent attendance unto the word and prayer.
+
+6th. The work of the ministry in prayer, and preaching of the word, or
+labor in the word and doctrine, whereunto the administration of the
+seals of the covenant is annexed, with all the duties that belong unto
+the special application of these things before insisted on unto the
+flock, are ordinarily sufficient to take up the whole man, and the
+utmost of their endowments who are called unto the pastoral office in
+the church. The very nature of the work in itself is such, as that the
+apostle giving a short description of it adds, as an intimation of its
+greatness and excellency, "Who is sufficient for these things?" 2 Cor.
+ii. 16. And the manner of its performance adds unto its weight. For not
+to mention that intenseness of mind in the exercise of faith, love,
+zeal, and compassion, which is required of them in the discharge of
+their whole office; the diligent consideration of the state of the
+flock, so as to provide spiritual food for them; with a constant
+attendance unto the issues and effects of the word in the consciences
+and lives of men; is enough for the most part to take up their whole
+time and strength. It is gross ignorance or negligence that causeth any
+to be otherwise minded. As the work of the ministry is generally
+discharged, consisting only in a weekly provision of sermons, and the
+performance of some stated offices by reading, men have time and liberty
+enough to attend unto other occasions. But in such persons we are not at
+present concerned. Our rule is plain, 1 Tim. iv. 12-17.
+
+7th. It doth not hence follow, that those who are called unto the
+ministry of the word, as pastors and teachers, who are elders also, are
+divested of their right to rule in the church, or discharged from the
+exercise of it, because others, not called unto their office, are
+appointed to be assistant unto them, that is, _helps in the government_.
+For the right and duty of rule is inseparable from the office of elders,
+which all bishops and pastors are. The right is still in them, and the
+exercise of it, consistent with their more excellent work, is required
+of them. The apostles in the constitution of elders in every church
+derogated nothing from their own authority, nor discharged themselves of
+their care. So when they appointed deacons to take care of supplies for
+the poor, they did not forego their own right, nor the exercise of their
+duty as their other work would permit them, Gal. ii. 9, 10. And in
+particular the apostle Paul manifested his concernment herein, in the
+care he took about _collection for the poor_ in all churches.
+
+8th. As we observed at the entrance of this chapter, the whole work of
+the church, as unto authoritative teaching and rule, is committed unto
+the elders. For authoritative teaching and ruling, is teaching and
+ruling by virtue of office: and this office whereunto they do belong is
+that of elders, as is undeniably attested, Acts xx. 17, &c. All that
+belongs unto the care, inspection, oversight, rule, fend instruction of
+the church, is committed unto the _elders_ of it expressly. For _elders_
+is a name derived from the Jews, denoting them that have _authority_ in
+the church.
+
+9th. To the complete constitution of any church, or to the perfection of
+its organical state, it is required that there be _many elders_ in it;
+at least more than one. I do not determine what their number ought to
+be; but it is to be proportioned to the work and end designed. Where the
+churches are small, the number of elders must be so also. So many are
+necessary in each office as are able to discharge the work which is
+allotted unto them. But that church, be it small or great, is defective,
+which hath not more elders than one; so many as are sufficient for their
+work. The pattern of the first churches constituted by the apostles,
+which it is our duty to imitate and follow as our rule, plainly
+declares, that many elders were appointed by them in every church, Acts
+xi. 30, xiv. 23, xv. 2, 4, 6, 22, xvi. 4, xx. 17; 1 Tim. v. 17; Phil. i.
+1; Tit. i. 5; 1 Pet. v. 1.
+
+10th. We shall now make application of these things unto our present
+purpose. I say then, 1st, Whereas there is a work of rule in the Church,
+distinct from that of pastoral feeding: 2d, Whereas this work is to be
+attended unto with diligence, which includes the whole duty of him that
+attends unto it: 3d, That the ministry of the word and prayer, with all
+those duties that accompany it, is a full employment for any man, and so
+consequently his principal and proper work, which it is unlawful for him
+to be remiss in, by attending on another with diligence: 4th, That, in
+the wisdom of the Holy Ghost, distinct works did require distinct
+offices for their discharge: and, 5th, Whereas there ought to be many
+elders in every church, that both the works of _teaching_ and _ruling_
+may be constantly attended unto; all which we have proved already: our
+inquiry herein is, whether the same Holy Spirit hath not distinguished
+this office of elders into those two sorts, namely, those who are called
+unto teaching and rule also, and those who are called unto rule only,
+which we affirm.
+
+The testimonies whereby the truth of this assertion is confirmed are
+generally known and pleaded. I shall insist on some of them only,
+beginning with that which is of uncontrollable evidence, if it had any
+thing to conflict with but prejudices and interest, and this is 1 Tim.
+v. 17, the meaning of which is, the elders or presbyters in office,
+elders of the church _that rule well_ or discharge their presidency for
+rule in due manner, are worthy, or ought to be reputed worthy, _of
+double honor_; especially those of them who labor, or are engaged in the
+great labor and travail of the word and doctrine.
+
+According to this sense the words of the text have a plain and obvious
+signification, which at first view presents itself unto the common sense
+and understanding of all men. On the first proposal of this text, that
+the elders that rule well are worthy of double honor, especially those
+who labor in the word and doctrine, a rational man, who is unprejudiced,
+and never heard of the controversy about ruling elders, can hardly avoid
+an apprehension that there are _two sorts of elders_, some that labor in
+the word and doctrine, and some who do not. This is the substance of the
+truth in the text. There are elders in the Church; there are or ought to
+be so in every church. With these elders the whole rule of the Church is
+intrusted; all these, and only these, do rule in it. Of these elders
+there are two sorts; for a description is given of one sort distinct
+from the other, and comparative with it. The first sort doth rule, and
+also labor in the word and doctrine. That these works are distinct and
+different was before declared: yet by the institution of Christ the
+right of rule is inseparable from the office of pastors or teachers. For
+all that are rightly called thereunto are elders also, which gives them
+an interest in rule. But there are elders which are not pastors or
+teachers. For there are some who rule well, but labor not in the word
+and doctrine; that is, who are not pastors or teachers.
+
+Elders which rule well, but labor not in the word and doctrine, are
+ruling elders only; for he who says, The elders who rule well are worthy
+of double honor, especially they who labor in the word and doctrine,
+saith that there are, or may be elders who rule well, who do not labor
+in the word and doctrine; that is, who are not obliged to do so.
+
+The argument from these words may be otherwise framed, but this contains
+the plain sense of this testimony.
+
+Our next testimony is from the same apostle, Rom. xii. 6, 7, _He that
+ruleth with diligence_. Our argument from hence is this: there is in the
+Church one that ruleth with authority by virtue of his office. For the
+discharge of this office there is a differing peculiar gift bestowed on
+some, ver. 7, and there is the special manner prescribed for the
+discharge of this special office, by virtue of that special gift; it is
+to be done with peculiar _diligence_. And this ruler is distinguished
+from him that exhorteth, and him that teacheth, with whose special work,
+as such, he hath nothing to do; even as they are distinguished from
+those who give and show mercy; that is, there is an elder by office in
+the Church, whose work and duty it is to _rule_, not to exhort or teach
+ministerially, which is our ruling elder. He that ruleth is a distinct
+officer, and is expressly distinguished from all others. Rule is the
+principal part of him that ruleth; for he is to attend unto it with
+_diligence_; that is, such as is peculiar unto _rule_, in
+contradistinction unto what is principally required in other
+administrations.
+
+There is the same evidence given unto the truth argued for in another
+testimony of the same apostle, 1 Cor. xii. 28: that there is here an
+enumeration of offices and officers in the Church, both extraordinary
+for that season, and ordinary for continuance, is beyond exception. Unto
+them is added the present exercise of some extraordinary gifts, as
+miracles, healing, tongues. That by _helps_ the deacons of the Church
+are intended most do agree, because their original institution was as
+helpers in the affairs of the Church. _Governments_ are governors or
+rulers; that is, such as are distinct from teachers; such hath God
+placed in the Church, and such there ought to be. It is said that
+_gifts_, not _offices_, are intended; the gift of government, or the
+gift for government. If God hath given gifts for government to abide in
+the Church, distinct from those given unto _teachers_, and unto other
+persons than the teachers, then there is a distinct office of rule or
+government in the Church, which is all we plead for.
+
+
+_Of the Duties of Ruling Elders._
+
+1st. To watch diligently over the ways, walk, and conversation of all
+the members of the church, to see that it be blameless, without offence,
+useful, exemplary, and in all things answering the holiness of the
+commands of Christ, the honor of the gospel, and the profession thereof
+which they make in the world. And upon the observation which they make
+in the watch wherein they are placed, to instruct, admonish, charge,
+exhort, encourage, or comfort as they see cause. And this they are to
+attend unto, with courage and diligence.
+
+2d. To endeavor to prevent every thing that is contrary unto that love
+which the Lord Christ requireth in a peculiar and eminent manner to be
+found among his disciples. This he calls his own _new command_, with
+respect unto his authority requiring it, his example first illustrating
+it in the world, and the peculiar fruits and effects of it which he
+revealed and taught. Wherefore, the due observance of this law of love
+in itself and all its fruits, with the prevention, removal, or
+condemnation of all that is contrary unto it, is that in which the _rule
+of the church_ doth in a great measure consist. And considering the
+weakness, the passions, the temptations of men, the mutual provocations
+and differences that are apt to fall out even among the best, the
+influence that earthly objects are apt to have upon their minds, the
+frowardness sometimes of men's natural tempers; the attendance unto
+this one duty, or part of rule, requires the utmost diligence of them
+that are called unto it.
+
+3d. To warn all the members of the church of their special church
+duties, that they be not found negligent or wanting in them. These are
+special duties required respectively of all church members, according
+unto the distinct talents which they have received, whether in things
+spiritual or temporal. Some are rich and some are poor; some old and
+some young; some in peace and some in trouble; some have received more
+spiritual gifts than others, and have more opportunity for their
+exercise: therefore it belongs unto the rule of the church, that all be
+admonished, instructed, and exhorted to attend unto their respective
+duties, by those in _rule_, according to the observation which they make
+of people's diligence or negligence in them.
+
+4th. To watch against the beginning of any church disorders, such as
+those that infested the church of Corinth, or any of the like sort; and
+to see that the members of the church attend regularly upon the
+ordinances of the gospel, as by slothfulness in this, decays in faith,
+love, and order have insensibly prevailed in many, to the dishonor of
+Christ, and the danger of their own souls.
+
+5th. It belongs unto them also to visit the sick, and especially such as
+their inward or outward conditions do expose them unto more than
+ordinary trials in their sickness; that is, the poor, the afflicted, the
+tempted in any kind. This in general is a moral duty, a work of mercy;
+but it is moreover a peculiar church duty by virtue of divine
+institution, ordaining, that the disciples of Christ may have all that
+spiritual and temporal relief, which is necessary for them, and useful
+to them, in their troubles and distresses.
+
+6th. To assist the pastor in watching over and directing the flock, and
+to advise with the deacons concerning the relief of the poor. According
+to the advantage which they have by their peculiar inspection of the
+conversation of all the members of the church, they ought to acquaint
+the teaching elders with the state of the flock, as to their knowledge,
+conditions, and temptations, which may be of singular use unto them, for
+their direction in the exercise of their ministry. The liberal
+contributions at Antioch for the brethren which dwelt in Judea, were
+sent by the hands of Barnabas and Saul unto the elders in Judea, Acts
+xi. 27, 30.
+
+7th. To unite with teaching elders in admitting members into the
+fellowship of the church, upon a visible evidence of their being
+qualified as the Scriptures direct. Unto them God bath given the keys of
+the kingdom of heaven, to open the door of admission unto those whom God
+hath received, Matt. xvi. 19.
+
+8th. To meet and consult with the teaching elders about such things of
+importance as are to be proposed to the members of the church for their
+consent. Hence nothing rash or indigested, nothing unsuited to the duty
+of the church, will at any time be proposed therein, so as to give
+occasion for contests, janglings, or disputes, contrary to order or
+decency, but all things may be preserved in a due regard unto the
+gravity and authority of the rulers.
+
+9th. To sit in judgment upon offenders, to take the proof, to weigh the
+evidence and determine accordingly, justifying the innocent, and
+ordaining censure to be inflicted on the convicted brother, according to
+the nature of the offence, Matt. xviii. 15, 17, 18.
+
+10th. Whereas there is generally but one teaching elder in a church,
+upon his death or removal, it is the work and duty of the ruling elders
+to preserve the church in peace and unity, to take care of the
+continuation of its public ordinances, to prevent irregularities in any
+persons or parties among them, and to give all necessary aid and advice
+in the choice and call of some other meet person to be their pastor, in
+the room of the deceased or removed.
+
+
+
+
+CONCLUSION.
+
+_A Summary of the preceding Treatise on Church Government,_
+
+BY QUESTION AND ANSWER.
+
+
+_Quest_. What is meant by church government?
+
+_Ans_. That particular form and order, which Christ has fixed in his
+Church, for the proper management thereof.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that there is a particular form of
+government appointed in the New Testament Church?
+
+_Ans_. As there is as great, if not greater, need of a government, in
+the New Testament Church, than there was in the Old, all the ordinances
+of which were most minutely described. Satan is now more experienced in
+deceiving, and his agents are still alive, and very actively employed,
+in attempting to waste and destroy this sacred vineyard, if without its
+proper hedge. Her members are still a mixture of tares and wheat; of
+sheep and goats: so that there is still a necessity of discerning
+between the precious and the vile; of trying and censuring false
+teachers; and of guarding divine ordinances from contempt and pollution.
+As Jesus gives the New Testament Church the peculiar title of the
+_kingdom of heaven_, he could not, in a consistency with his wisdom,
+leave it without any particular laws or form of government, except the
+changeable inclinations of men. As he was faithful in his New Testament
+house, he must fix a particular form of government for her, such as
+tends to her peace, order, and spiritual edification. And, amidst the
+prophet's vision of the New Testament Church, he is directed to teach
+his people _the form of the house, the laws of the house_, &c., Ezek.
+xliii. 11.
+
+_Quest_. When may a particular form of church government be said to be
+of divine right?
+
+_Ans_. When all the parts thereof are agreeable to Scripture precepts;
+to approved Scripture examples; or are deducible by fair Scripture
+consequences.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear, that Scripture consequences are to be
+admitted to prove any particular truth or doctrine?
+
+_Ans_. Because God has formed man a rational intelligent creature,
+capable of searching out the plain meaning and import, and also the
+necessary consequences of his express declarations. We find Christ
+reasoning by a deduction of consequences, when he showed that the
+doctrine of the resurrection was revealed to Moses at the burning bush;
+that the sixth commandment forbids angry words; and the seventh
+lascivious looks, Luke xx. 37, 38; Matt. v. 21, 28. And a great part of
+the inspired epistles to the Romans, Galatians, and Hebrews consists in
+such a deduction of consequences. And as all Scripture is said to be
+profitable "for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, and for
+instruction in righteousness," 2 Tim. iii. 16, without a rational
+deduction of consequences, every portion of Scripture cannot answer each
+of these valuable ends.
+
+_Quest_. What particular form of church government may lay the only
+proper claim to a divine right, according to the Holy Scriptures?
+
+_Ans_. The true presbyterian form, without that lordly dominion and
+tyrannical power, which has too often been exercised by courts, bearing
+this name. This government claimeth no power over men's bodies or
+estates. It does not inflict civil pains or corporal punishments. But it
+is a government purely spiritual, dealing with the consciences of men,
+and exercising the keys of the kingdom of heaven, doing all things
+according to the word of God.
+
+_Quest_. What are the parts of presbyterial church government?
+
+_Ans_. It consists of a people, having the qualifications which the
+Scriptures require; of certain rulers, who are to perform the duties of
+their respective offices; and of certain courts, in which these rulers
+sit and act in matters of judgment.
+
+_Quest_. What are the qualifications of persons who constitute the
+private members of the visible church?
+
+_Ans_. They ought to be true believers in Christ, to have a competent
+knowledge of the doctrines of the gospel, to make a sound profession of
+their faith, and to maintain a holy conversation.
+
+_Quest_. What rulers are there in the presbyterian church?
+
+_Ans_. Preaching elders, ruling elders, and deacons.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for the preaching elder?
+
+_Ans_. In the Holy Scriptures we find that God hath set some in the
+Church, TEACHERS: that our ascended Redeemer hath given her PASTORS and
+TEACHERS: that the Holy Ghost had made some BISHOPS, OVERSEERS, to feed
+her; and qualifies some for _prophecy, ministry, teaching, exhortation_,
+1 Cor. xii. 28; Eph. iv. 11; Acts xx. 28; Rom. xii. 6-8.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of preaching elders?
+
+_Ans_. To preach the word; to dispense the ordinances of baptism and the
+Lord's Supper; to administer church discipline; and to rule and govern
+the church, 2 Tim. iv. 2; Matt. xxviii. 19; 1 Cor. xi. 23-29; 1 Tim. v.
+20; Tit. ii. 15, and iii. 10; Heb. xiii. 17; 1 Pet. v. 2, 3. _Quest_.
+Is the office of the gospel minister instituted by God to continue to
+the end of time?
+
+_Ans_. Yes; the ends of it are of a permanent nature, the converting and
+confirming of the elect, and the silencing of gain-savers, Acts xxvi.
+18; Tit. i. 9, 11.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for the office of the ruling elder?
+
+_Ans_. From the three following passages of sacred Scripture: 1. From
+Rom. xii. 5 to 8: "We being many are one body in Christ, and members one
+of another. Having then gifts, differing according to the grace that is
+given to us, whether prophecy, let us prophesy according to the
+proportion of faith; or ministry, let us wait on our ministering; or he
+that teacheth, on teaching; or he that exhorteth, on exhortation; he
+that giveth, let him do it with simplicity; he that ruleth, with
+diligence," &c. Here we have a list of the ordinary officers of Christ,
+one body, the church. Here is the teacher: _he that teacheth_. Here is
+the pastor: _he that exhorteth_. Here is the deacon: _he that giveth_.
+And here is another officer distinct from all them, _he that ruleth_.
+His description attests, that _ruling_ is, if not his only, yet his
+principal work. He that _ruleth_ is here marked by a distinct character,
+as having a different _gift_, and a distinct work from his
+fellow-officers. This office therefore must be _distinct_. 2. From 1
+Cor. xii. 28, where the _Spirit of God_ informs us, that God hath set
+some in the Church, GOVERNMENTS. These must be understood of
+_governors_, as _miracles_ are afterwards explained of _workers of
+miracles_. These governments and governors are said to be _set_ in the
+church, not in the state; by God, not by men: they are declared to be
+distinct officers by themselves. Their title, government, implies, that
+_ruling_ is their principal work. 3. From 1 Tim. v. 17, where the divine
+warrant for ruling elders shines with more peculiar brightness than
+anywhere in the book of God: "Let the elders that rule well be counted
+worthy of double honor; especially they who labor in the word and
+doctrine." The ruling elders here mentioned necessarily pertain to the
+church. Two sorts of ruling elders are here plainly distinguished: some
+that only rule well; others that also labor in word and doctrine. There
+is not one place in the New Testament, nor perhaps in any Greek author,
+where the word here translated ESPECIALLY does not distinguish between
+different persons or things, Gal. vi. 10; Phil. iv. 22; 1 Tim. iv. 10; 2
+Tim. iv. 13; and it would be absurd to suppose, that it does not
+distinguish here also. Therefore this single text shows the divine right
+of both the teaching and ruling elder.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of ruling elders?
+
+_Ans_. To exercise ecclesiastical rule in church courts with the same
+authority as the preaching elder; to watch over the flock; impartially
+to receive or exclude members; to warn and censure the unruly; and to
+visit and pray with the sick.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for deacons?
+
+_Ans_. From Acts vi., where we are informed of the original and design
+of their office; and from 1 Tim. iii. 8-12, where the inspired apostle
+describes their necessary qualifications.
+
+_Quest_. What are the duties of deacons?
+
+_Ans_. To look into the state and to serve the tables of the poor, by
+distributing the funds of the church, according to the respective
+necessities of the saints, 1 Tim. iii. 12.
+
+_Quest_. What are the courts in which presbyterian rulers meet?
+
+_Ans_. Congregational sessions, presbyteries, and synods.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for congregational sessions?
+
+_Ans_. From Matt, xviii. 15-18, where, in the Christian form of church
+discipline prescribed by the Church's Head, the concluding expression,
+"Let him be unto thee as a heathen man and publican," plainly alludes to
+the Jewish form of procedure in scandals. They had rulers, and
+consequently courts in every synagogue, or worshipping congregation,
+Mark v. 35-39. By virtue of letters from the high-priest to these, Saul
+had free access to punish the Christians in every synagogue, Acts ix. 1,
+2. To these congregational courts it pertained to cast out of the
+synagogue, and to order transgressors to be held for heathen men and
+publicans, John ix. 22. Now Jesus, in alluding to these, intimates that
+similar courts should be in every Christian congregation. In this form
+of discipline our divine Saviour shows his utmost aversion against
+private offences being unnecessarily published abroad: and therefore the
+church, to which the offence is to be told, after private admonition is
+fruitless, must be understood in the most private sense of the word. The
+following context evidences that it is a _church_, which may consist
+only of _two or three_ met together in Christ's name; yet,
+notwithstanding, a church having power to bind and loose from censure;
+that is, a church having the keys of the kingdom of heaven. It cannot
+then be the whole congregation or body of the people, as they are in
+general far too numerous to conceal offences, and to them Christ has
+given no formal judicial power, Matt. xviii. 18-21.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for a presbytery?
+
+_Ans_. Timothy is expressly said to be ordained by the laying on of the
+hands of the PRESBYTERY, 1 Tim. iv. 14. And the number of different
+Christian congregations governed by one presbytery, as at Jerusalem,
+Antioch, Ephesus, and Corinth, proves the divine right of this court. It
+is shown in the xiii. chapter of the preceding treatise, that in each
+of these places there were more Christians than could meet in one
+worshipping congregation, for the enjoying of public ordinances: and yet
+all these different congregations, at Jerusalem, are expressly said to
+have been one church, Acts viii. 1: so those at Antioch, Acts xiii. 1:
+so those at Ephesus, Acts xx. 17: and those also at Corinth, 1 Cor. i.
+2. Now the question is, How were the different congregations in each of
+these places ONE CHURCH? Not merely in union to Christ and mutual
+affection one to another; for in this respect all the saints are ONE,
+whether in heaven or in earth. And therefore they are one church in
+virtue of conjunct government under ONE PRESBYTERY. And in difficult
+cases, or where a single congregation is so divided into parties that it
+cannot act impartially; where the difference is between the pastor and
+the people, a superior court is necessary to obtain material justice.
+
+_Quest_. Where is the divine warrant for an ecclesiastical synod?
+
+_Ans_. In Acts xv. and xvi., where we have a cause referred; the proper
+members of a synod convened; the ordinary and equal power exercised by
+all those members; the ordinary method of procedure in such courts; and
+the judicial decrees given by the synod; together with the effect which
+their judgment, in this matter, had upon the churches.
+
+_Quest_. What was the cause referred to this synod?
+
+_Ans_. False doctrine propagated by some Judaizing teachers, who had
+gone down from Jerusalem to Antioch, and maintained that circumcision
+and the observance of other branches of the ceremonial law continued
+necessary for salvation, whereby they subverted some, and troubled other
+members of the churches there. After much unsuccessful disputing, Paul,
+Barnabas, and others were delegated to go up to Jerusalem to the
+apostles and elders about this matter.
+
+_Quest_. Who were the proper members of the synod convened here?
+
+_Ans_. The apostles and elders at Jerusalem; Paul, Barnabas, and others,
+from Antioch; and other commissioners from the troubled churches to whom
+the decrees were sent.
+
+_Quest_. Are not the brethren, the church, the whole church, mentioned
+here as well as the apostles and elders?
+
+_Ans_. But none of these expressions can mean, that all the members of
+the church of Jerusalem either were present or judged in that synod; for
+women, real members of the church, of the whole church, are expressly
+forbid to speak in the church, 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Church sometimes
+signifies only a small part of the church, either as delegates or
+commissioners, and in this sense it is used in verse 3, where the
+commissioners from Antioch are said to be brought on their way by the
+_church_; and in chap. xviii. 22, it is said that Paul saluted the
+_church_ at Jerusalem. Now, it is not credible that all the Christian
+professors at Antioch would attend their commissioners a part of the way
+to Jerusalem; or that Paul saluted the many ten thousand Christians at
+Jerusalem, Acts xxi. 20. And the _whole church_ does not necessarily
+mean the whole individual members of the church, more than the _whole
+world_ mentioned, 1 John ii. 2, means every individual in the world. If
+any, to support a favorite opinion, will still insist that the whole
+members of the church actually met and judged of this affair equally
+with the apostles and elders, they may inform us where they obtained a
+proper place for so many judges to reason and determine with
+distinctness or order. That the brethren who joined in judgment with the
+apostles and elders were not private persons, but rather delegates from
+the troubled churches around, appears from Judas and Silas, two of them
+being preachers, v. 22.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that the power of all the members was
+ordinary and equal?
+
+_Ans_. As every member, inspired or not, acted equally in the whole
+business laid before them. Paul and Barnabas were delegated by the
+church of Antioch: and the elders, who convened, had the same power as
+the apostles. To the elders, teaching or ruling, as well as to the
+apostles, was the matter referred: both met to consider of it: both were
+equally concerned in the decision, saying, _It seemed good to the Holy
+Ghost and to us_. Elders, as well as apostles, imposed the necessary
+things upon the churches, and authoritatively determined the decrees. In
+the name of the elders, as well as of the apostles, the letters of the
+meeting, containing their decision, were written to the churches. And
+the only reason why the inspired members put themselves on an equality
+with others was to exhibit a pattern to after ages.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear, that this synod followed the ordinary
+method of procedure in such courts?
+
+_Ans_. As they examined the cause by much reasoning and dispute. In
+consequence of mature deliberation they determined the question, and
+sent letters, containing their decrees, by proper messengers, to the
+churches concerned. In their disputation they reasoned from the oracles
+of God: on these they founded their decision; and hence therein they
+say, _It seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us_. And if this had not
+been to have given a pattern to succeeding ages, all this was
+unnecessary: how absurd for inspired men to reason and dispute on the
+subject, when the sentence of one inspired was sufficient for decision!
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that there were judicial decrees given by
+this synod?
+
+_Ans_. In opposition to the false doctrine taught, they, by a judicial
+decision, plainly declared, that obedience to the ceremonies of the law
+of Moses was no longer necessary: and by a decree for promoting decency
+and good order, they enacted, that to avoid offence, the believing
+Gentiles should abstain from fornication, from things strangled, and
+from blood, verse 24-29.
+
+_Quest_. What effect had the decision of this synod upon the churches?
+
+_Ans_. They cheerfully submitted to these _decrees_, and were by them
+conformed in the faith, comforted in heart, and increased in number
+daily, Acts xv. 31, and xvi. 4, 5.
+
+_Quest_. But might not this be a meeting merely for consultation, and
+their decision a mere advice?
+
+_Ans_. No: for every word here used imports authority. The word
+translated _lay upon_, commonly signifies an authoritative imposition,
+Matt. xxiii. 4. The decision is expressly called a _necessary burden_,
+and _decrees ordained_, which imply power and authority, Acts xv. 16,
+xvii. 7.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that inferior courts are subordinate to
+those that are superior; sessions to presbyteries, and presbyteries to
+synods?
+
+_Ans_. The true light of nature (which is proved, chap, iii., to be one
+of those ways, whereby a thing is of divine right) teacheth us, that, if
+we be injured by an inferior court, we may appeal to a higher court for
+redress, if there be one. As in the Jewish church there was evidently a
+subordination of judicatories, so that those injured in the synagogue
+might appeal to the Sanhedrin, Deut. xvii. 8, 12; 2 Chron. xix. 8, 11;
+Exod. xviii. 22, 26; Ps. cxxii. 5: therefore as our dangers,
+difficulties, and necessities are as great as theirs, by reason of false
+teachers and corrupt doctrines, which were foretold should appear in the
+last times, 1 Tim. iv. 1; 2 Pet. ii. 1; we cannot, without dishonor to
+Christ, suppose that he would deprive us of a proper remedy for
+redressing our grievances, which was afforded unto them:--the gradual
+advance in managing offences prescribed by Christ himself, Matt. xviii.
+19, as his care for the whole church cannot be less than for a single
+member. If then an inferior judicatory offend or injure us, we ought to
+carry the matter to another that has more influence and authority. If
+the offending judicatory neglect to hear this, we ought to tell the
+offence to the church in the highest sense, that redress may be
+obtained--the apostle Paul declaring, _that the spirits of the prophets
+are subject to the prophets_. But the right of reference or appeal from
+an inferior to a superior court is most clearly evinced from the case
+of the presbytery of Antioch, respecting circumcision, being referred
+for decision to the synod of Jerusalem, and their readily submitting to
+its determination, Acts xv.
+
+_Quest_. How does it appear that no power of authority is lodged in the
+body of the people, the private members of the church?
+
+_Ans_. Although every church member has a right to all the spiritual
+privileges purchased with the Saviour's blood, and given to the church,
+as need requires; although he has a right to try the spirits, and to
+prove all things by the word of God; a power to choose the church
+officers who are immediately to rule over him; yet the Holy Scriptures
+allow the exercise of no official power to the private members of the
+church. Not the Christian people, but their pastors have power to preach
+the gospel, Rom. x. 15; and to administer the sacraments, those
+mysteries of God, which are connected with preaching, 1 Cor. iv. 1;
+Matt. xxviii. 19. Not the people, but their rulers, are divinely
+warranted. Timothy was ordained, not by the people, but by the
+presbytery: elders, not by the people, but by Paul and Barnabas: and
+deacons, not by the people, but by the apostles, 1 Tim. iv. 14; Acts
+xiv. 23, and vi. 3, 6. Not the people, but their rulers are to censure
+the scandalous, and to absolve the penitent, Matt. xviii. 18; 1 Cor. v.
+The Scripture nowhere ascribes to the people any such characters as
+imply authority lodged in them; but the contrary. Instead of being
+styled pastors, they are called the _flock_, watched over and fed;
+instead of overseers, the family overseen; instead of _rulers, guides,
+governors_, they are called the _body_ governed, the persons subject in
+the Lord, and they are solemnly charged to know, honor, obey, and submit
+to those that are over them.
+
+_Quest_. What is the proper method of dealing with persons that fall
+into scandal?
+
+_Ans_. If the offence be known only to one or to a few, the offender is
+to be told his fault secretly, with Christian meekness, plainness, and
+love. If he profess his sorrow and resolution to amend, the whole matter
+ought to be carefully concealed; and those offended ought to be well
+pleased that their offending brother is gained. If, after one or more
+secret reproofs, he continue impenitent, defending his fault, one or two
+more Christian brethren, grave, judicious, and meek, are to be taken
+along, and the offender to be dealt with by them, and in their presence.
+If now he appear to repent, the several persons concerned in his reproof
+are, with care and in love, to conceal his offence, lest, by divulging
+it, they be reproached as wicked calumniators. If the offender contemn
+one or more such private admonitions or reproofs, or if his scandal be
+of such a nature that it will necessarily become public, the affair is
+to be told to the church court, to which he is most immediately subject.
+And, to bring him to a due sense of his fault, he is to be there dealt
+with in a prudent, affectionate, plain, and convincing manner. If this
+prove a means of bringing him to a sense of his offence, the censures of
+the church are to be executed upon him according to the laws of Christ's
+house, and the nature of his crime, and he is to be restored to the
+privileges of the church. But if, after due pains taken by the
+judicatories, he remain obstinate, he is then to be cast out of the
+church, and held as a heathen man and publican, Matt. xviii. 15 to 18.
+
+THE END.
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS.
+
+
+ PAGE.
+PREFACE 7
+
+PART I.
+
+CHAP. I.--That there is a Government in the Church of divine
+right now under the New Testament 19
+
+CHAP. II.--Of the nature of a divine right in general 22
+
+CHAP. III.--Of a divine right in particular, which is five ways;
+first, by the true light of Nature 24
+
+CHAP. IV.--Of a divine right, second, by obligatory Scripture 27
+examples
+
+CHAP. V.--Of a divine right, third, by God's approbation 37
+
+CHAP. VI.--Of a divine right, fourth, by divine acts 39
+
+CHAP. VII.--Of a divine right, fifth, by divine precepts 40
+
+
+PART II.
+
+CHAP. I.--A description of church government 45
+
+CHAP. II.--The subject described, and the terms church government
+briefly defined 46
+
+CHAP. III.--The general nature of church government, viz., power or
+authority 48
+
+CHAP. IV.--The special difference of church government from other
+governments, as to the special rule of it, viz., the Holy 53
+Scriptures
+
+CHAP. V.--The proper fountain from which church government is
+derived, so as to constitute it of divine authority, viz., Jesus
+Christ our Mediator 55
+
+CHAP. VI.--The peculiar nature of this power and authority 57
+
+CHAP. VII.--The several acts about which this power and authority
+is exercised, viz., doctrine and discipline 61
+
+CHAP. VIII.--The end and design of this government of the church 67
+
+CHAP. IX.--The peculiar subject intrusted by Christ with this
+power, and the execution thereof according to the Scriptures 70
+
+SECT. I.--The power granted to the civil magistrate about the 92
+Church
+
+SECT. II.--The power utterly refused him in church affairs 94
+
+CHAP. X.--That the community of the faithful, or body of the
+people, are not the immediate subject of the power of church 97
+government
+
+CHAP. XI.--That Christ's own officers are the immediate subject of
+it; pastors and ruling elders 111
+
+The divine right of the ruling elder at large 114
+
+The divine right of the deacon 149
+
+CHAP. XII.--The divine right of congregational elderships, or kirk
+sessions, for the government of the Church 172
+
+CHAP. XIII.--The divine right of presbyteries, consisting of rulers
+from different neighboring congregations 177
+
+CHAP. XIV.--The divine right of synods 197
+
+CHAP. XV.--The subordination of particular congregations to greater
+assemblies, for their judicial determination of ecclesiastical
+causes, proved to be of divine right 210
+
+
+APPENDIX.
+
+No. I.--Of the qualifications and duties of church members 219
+
+No. II.--Who have a right to preach the Gospel 237
+
+No. III.--On the same subject 240
+
+No. IV.--On the people's right to choose their own pastors 249
+
+No. V.--On the ordination and duty of ministers 256
+
+No. VI.--Of ruling elders, from Dr. Owen 258
+
+Conclusion 266
+
+
+
+
+FOOTNOTES:
+
+[Footnote 117: The substance of this Number is extracted from Ford's
+Gospel Church, printed 1675.]
+
+[Footnote 118: John xvi. 8, 9; 2 Cor. v. 5; Eph. ii. 1, 5.]
+
+[Footnote 119: Col. ii. 6; 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.]
+
+[Footnote 120: Col. i. 12.]
+
+[Footnote 121: 1 Pet. ii. 5.]
+
+[Footnote 122: From Brown's Letters.]
+
+[Footnote 123: Extracted from the Christian Magazine for Sept. 1797--a
+periodical publication well worth the perusal of the friends of
+evangelical doctrine.]
+
+[Footnote 124: From Brown's Letters.]
+
+[Footnote 125: This number is a summary of Dr. Owen's arguments in favor
+of the divine right of the ruling elder, with an abstract of the duties
+which he ought to perform. Although the Doctor was a professed
+Independent, yet he was entirely different, both in doctrine and church
+government, from any in Scotland that bear that name, as all who are
+acquainted with his works will easily observe. The writer of his life
+asserts that he heard him say, "He could readily join with presbytery as
+it was exercised in Scotland." And indeed it appears very probable that
+the difference between the consultative synod which he allows, and the
+authoritative synod contended for by true Presbyterians, is not so far
+different as many apprehend, because the decisions of either bind the
+conscience only as they are agreeable to the Holy Ghost speaking in the
+Scriptures.]
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Divine Right of Church Government
+by Sundry Ministers Of Christ Within The City Of London
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DIVINE RIGHT OF CHURCH ***
+
+***** This file should be named 13941.txt or 13941.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ https://www.gutenberg.org/1/3/9/4/13941/
+
+Produced by Jordan Dohms and the PG Online Distributed Proofreading Team.
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+https://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at https://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit https://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
+donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ https://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/13941.zip b/old/13941.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f289b8b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/13941.zip
Binary files differ